Law of War Manual June 2015
Law of War Manual June 2015
Law of War Manual June 2015
JUNE 2015
OFFICE OF GENERAL COUNSEL
DEPARTMENT OF DEFENSE
FOREWORD
The law of war is of fundamental importance to the Armed Forces of the United States.
The law of war is part of who we are. George Washington, as Commander in Chief of
the Continental Army, agreed with his British adversary that the Revolutionary War would be
carried on agreeable to the rules which humanity formed and to prevent or punish every
breach of the rules of war within the sphere of our respective commands. During the Civil War,
President Lincoln approved a set of Instructions for the Government of the Armies of the
United States in the Field, which inspired other countries to adopt similar codes for their armed
forces, and which served as a template for international codifications of the law of war.
After World War II, U.S. military lawyers, trying thousands of defendants before military
commissions did, in the words of Justice Robert Jackson, stay the hand of vengeance and
voluntarily submit their captive enemies to the judgment of law in one of the most significant
tributes that Power has ever paid to Reason. Reflecting on this distinctive history, one
Chairman of the Joint Chiefs of Staff observed that [t]he laws of war have a peculiarly
American cast. And it is also true that the laws of war have shaped the U.S. Armed Forces as
much as they have shaped any other armed force in the world.
The law of war is a part of our military heritage, and obeying it is the right thing to do.
But we also know that the law of war poses no obstacle to fighting well and prevailing. Nations
have developed the law of war to be fundamentally consistent with the military doctrines that are
the basis for effective combat operations. For example, the self-control needed to refrain from
violations of the law of war under the stresses of combat is the same good order and discipline
necessary to operate cohesively and victoriously in battle. Similarly, the law of wars
prohibitions on torture and unnecessary destruction are consistent with the practical insight that
such actions ultimately frustrate rather than accomplish the mission.
This manual reflects many years of labor and expertise, on the part of civilian and
military lawyers from every Military Service. It reflects the experience of this Department in
applying the law of war in actual military operations, and it will help us remember the hard-
learned lessons from the past. Understanding our duties imposed by the law of war and our
rights under it is essential to our service in the nations defense.
Stephen W. Preston
General Counsel of the Department of Defense
ii
PREFACE
This manual has many distinguished antecedents that have provided important guidance
to the U.S. Armed Forces. For example, General Order No. 100, the Instructions for the
Government of Armies of the United States in the Field, commonly known as the Lieber Code,
was prepared by Professor Francis Lieber and approved by President Abraham Lincoln during
the Civil War in 1863.1 A similar code related to naval warfare titled The Law and Usages of
War at Sea: A Naval War Code was prepared by then-Captain Charles H. Stockton and
approved by President William McKinley in 1900. 2 The War Department published instructions
for the armed land forces of the United States in a 1914 manual titled Rules of Land Warfare,
which was updated in 1917, 1934, and 1940. 3
After World War II, in connection with U.S. ratification of the 1949 Geneva
Conventions, the Department of the Navy published Naval Warfare Information Publication 10-
2, Law of Naval Warfare, in 1955, 4 and the Department of the Army published Field Manual 27-
10, The Law of Land Warfare, in 1956, which was updated in 1976. 5 The Department of the
Army also published pamphlets on international law applicable in peace and war in the 1960s,
and, in 1979, an updated version of the pamphlet on the law of peace. 6 The Department of the
Air Force published in 1976 Air Force Pamphlet 110-31, International Law The Conduct of
Armed Conflict and Air Operations, which was updated in 1980. 7 More recently, the Judge
Advocate General of the Air Forces School has published a manual titled Air Force Operations
and the Law in 2002, with new editions in 2009 and 2014. 8 The Navy, Marine Corps, and Coast
1
E. D. Townsend, Assistant Adjutant General, General Orders No. 100, Instructions for the Government of Armies
of the United States in the Field, Apr. 24, 1863, reprinted in INSTRUCTIONS FOR THE GOVERNMENT OF ARMIES OF
THE UNITED STATES IN THE FIELD (Government Printing Office, 1898).
2
John D. Long, Secretary of the Navy, General Orders No. 551, The Laws and Usages of War at Sea, Jun. 27, 1900,
reprinted as Appendix I in U.S. Naval War College, International Law Discussions, 1903: The United States Naval
War Code of 1900, 101 (1904).
3
War Department, Office of the Chief of Staff, Rules of Land Warfare (Apr. 25, 1914); War Department, Office of
the Chief of Staff, Rules of Land Warfare (Apr. 25, 1914 with Changes Nos. 1 and 2, corrected to Apr. 15, 1917);
War Department, Basic Field Manual, Volume VII, Military Law, Part Two: Rules of Land Warfare (Jan. 2, 1934);
War Department Field Manual 27-10, Rules of Land Warfare (Oct. 1, 1940).
4
Department of the Navy, Office of the Chief of Naval Operations, Naval Warfare Information Publication 10-2,
Law of Naval Warfare (Sept. 1955), reprinted as Appendix in ROBERT W. TUCKER, THE LAW OF WAR AND
NEUTRALITY AT SEA (U.S. Naval War College International Law Studies, Volume 50, 1955).
5
Department of the Army Field Manual 27-10, The Law of Land Warfare (Jul. 18, 1956 with Change 1, Jul. 15,
1976).
6
Department of the Army Pamphlet 27-161-2, II International Law (Oct. 23, 1962); Department of the Army
Pamphlet 27-161-1, I International Law: The Law of Peace (Sept. 1, 1979).
7
Department of the Air Force Pamphlet 110-31, International Law The Conduct of Armed Conflict and Air
Operations (Nov. 19, 1976).
iii
Guard have published several editions of The Commanders Handbook on the Law of Naval
Operations starting in 1987 and most recently in 2007. 9 Helpful annotated supplements have
also been published. 10
In addition to these major publications, DoD components have produced many other
publications that have supported DoD lawyers in giving advice on the law of war. For example,
since 1895, the Naval War College has published its International Law Studies journal. 11 The
Judge Advocate General of the Armys Legal Center & School has published many editions of a
Law of Armed Conflict Deskbook, a Law of Armed Conflict Documentary Supplement, and an
Operational Law Handbook. 12
The preparation of this manual also has benefited greatly from consulting foreign experts
and resources for example, the 2004 edition of the Manual of the Law of Armed Conflict by
United Kingdom Ministry of Defence. 13 In this way, the preparation of this manual is no
different from its predecessors. For example, the 1956 Army Field manual benefited from
considering a draft of what ultimately became the 1958 United Kingdom law of war manual, and
the preparation of the 1914 War Department manual benefited from the Rules of Land Warfare
prepared by officers of the English Army and Professor Lassa Oppenheim. 14 The law of war
8
Department of the Air Force, The Judge Advocate Generals School, Air Force Operations and the Law (3rd ed.,
2014); Department of the Air Force, The Judge Advocate Generals School, Air Force Operations & the Law: A
Guide for Air, Space, and Cyber Forces (2nd ed., 2009); Department of the Air Force, Office of the Judge Advocate
General, Air Force Operations & the Law (1st ed., 2002).
9
Department of the Navy, Naval Warfare Publication 9, The Commanders Handbook on the Law of Naval
Operations (Jul. 1987); Department of the Navy, Naval Warfare Publication 1-14M / Marine Corps Warfighting
Publication 5-2.1 / Commandant Publication P5800.1, The Commanders Handbook on the Law of Naval
Operations (Oct. 1995); Department of the Navy, Naval Warfare Publication 1-14M / Marine Corps Warfighting
Publication 5-12.1 / Commandant Publication P5800.7A, The Commanders Handbook on the Law of Naval
Operations (Jul. 2007).
10
Department of the Navy, Office of the Judge Advocate General, Annotated Supplement to the Commanders
Handbook on the Law of Naval Operations, NWP (Rev.A)/FMFM 1-10 (1989); U.S. Naval War College, Center for
Naval Warfare Studies, Oceans Law and Policy Department, Annotated Supplement to the Commanders Handbook
on the Law of Naval Operations (1997).
11
See, e.g., U.S. Naval War College, International Law Studies, Vol. 88, Non-International Armed Conflict in the
Twenty-first Century (2012).
12
See, e.g., The Judge Advocate Generals Legal Center and School, U.S. Army, International and Operational Law
Department, Law of Armed Conflict Deskbook (2014); The Judge Advocate Generals Legal Center and School, U.S.
Army, International and Operational Law Department, Law of Armed Conflict Documentary Supplement (2014);
The Judge Advocate Generals Legal Center and School, U.S. Army, International and Operational Law
Department, Operational Law Handbook (2014).
13
United Kingdom Ministry of Defence, Joint Service Publication 383, The Joint Service Manual of the Law of
Armed Conflict (2004).
14
See War Department, Office of the Chief of Staff, Rules of Land Warfare, Preface 7 (Apr. 25, 1914) (Especial
use was made of the Rules of Land Warfare, prepared by officers of the English Army and Prof. L. Oppenheim,
LL.D., and of Prof. Nagao Arigas book, La Guerre Russo-Japonaise, which deals so carefully and thoroughly with
the laws and usages of war during one of the greatest wars of recent times.).
iv
manuals of Germany, Australia, and Canada were also helpful resources in the preparation of this
manual. 15
The preparation of this manual has also benefited from the participation of officers from
the United Kingdoms Royal Air Force and the Australian Royal Air Force on exchange
assignments with the U.S. Air Force. In addition, military lawyers from Canada, the United
Kingdom, New Zealand, and Australia reviewed and commented on a draft of the manual in
2009 as part of review that also included comments from distinguished scholars.
Promulgating a DoD-wide manual on the law of war has been a long-standing goal of
DoD lawyers. Memoranda and meeting notes from the 1970s reflect that the international law
offices of the Department of the Armys Office of the Judge Advocate General and the
Department of the Navys Office of the Judge Advocate General generally agreed on a concept
plan for a new all-Services law of war manual that would be a resource for implementing the
1977 Additional Protocols to the 1949 Geneva Conventions. 16 At the time, it was anticipated
that the United States would ratify the Protocols, which has not occurred.
The origin of this manual may be traced to work in the late 1980s to update Department
of the Army Field Manual 27-10, The Law of Land Warfare. 17 Then, in the mid-1990s, work
began on an all-Services law of war manual to reflect the views of all DoD components. It was
envisioned that the manual would provide not only the black letter rules, but also discussion,
examples of State practice, and references to past manuals, treatises, and other documents to
provide explanation, clarification, and elaboration. The present manual has sought to realize that
vision and thus it falls within the tradition of the 1914 War Department manual, as well as the
1989 and 1997 Commanders Handbook on the Law of Naval Operations, which also adopted
this general approach of an annotated manual.
This manual is an institutional publication and reflects the views of the Department of
Defense, rather than the views of any particular person or DoD component. An effort has been
made to reflect in this manual sound legal positions based on relevant authoritative sources of the
law, including as developed by the DoD or the U.S. Government under such sources, and to
show in the cited sources the past practice of DoD or the United States in applying the law of
war.
This manual primarily has been prepared by the DoD Law of War Working Group, which
is chaired by a representative of the DoD General Counsel and includes representatives of the
15
Germany, Federal Ministry of Defence, Joint Service Regulation (ZDv) 15/2, Law of Armed Conflict Manual
(May 1, 2013); Australian Defence Force, Australian Defence Doctrine Publication 06.4, Law of Armed Conflict
(May 11, 2006); Canada, Department of National Defence, Joint Doctrine Manual B-GJ-005-104/FP-021, Law of
Armed Conflict at the Operational and Tactical Levels (Aug. 13, 2001).
16
Captain Bruce A. Harlow, JAGC, U.S. Navy, Memorandum for Mr. Waldemar H. Solf (DAJA-IA), Preparation
of New Law of War Manual (Dec. 28, 1976).
17
Remarks by W. Hays Parks, Customary Law and Additional Protocol I to the Geneva Conventions for Protection
of War Victims: Future Directions in Light of the U.S. Decision Not to Ratify, 81 AMERICAN SOCIETY OF
INTERNATIONAL LAW PROCEEDINGS 26 (Apr. 9, 1987) (I have the job of writing the new U.S. Army Field Manual
27-10, The Law of Land Warfare, so this panel is of particular interest to me.).
v
Judge Advocates General of the Army, Navy, and Air Force; the Staff Judge Advocate to the
Commandant of the Marine Corps; the offices of the General Counsels of the Military
Departments; and the Legal Counsel to the Chairman of the Joint Chiefs of Staff. 18 This manual
has been reviewed by principals of these offices. The preparation of this manual has also
benefited significantly from the participation of experts from the Department of State, Office of
the Legal Adviser, and the Department of Justice, Office of Legal Counsel, although the views in
this manual do not necessarily reflect the views of those Departments or the U.S. Government as
a whole.
Comments and suggestions from users of the DoD Law of War Manual are invited. All
such correspondence should be addressed by email to:
osd.pentagon.ogc.mbx.ia-law-of-war-manual-comments@mail.mil.
18
Department of Defense Directive 2310.01E, DoD Law of War Program 5.1.4 (May 9, 2006, Certified Current as
of Feb. 22, 2011) (providing for a DoD Law of War Working Group, consisting of representatives, at the election
by each of the GC, DoD; the General Counsel of each Military Department; the Counsel to the Commandant of the
Marine Corps; the Judge Advocate General of each Military Department; the Staff Judge Advocate to the
Commandant of the Marine Corps; and the Legal Counsel to the Chairman of the Joint Chiefs of Staff. The DoD
Law of War Working Group shall develop and coordinate law of war initiatives and issues; support the research,
preparation, review, and updating of the DoD Law of War Manual; manage other law of war matters as they arise;
and provide advice to the General Counsel on legal matters covered by this Directive.).
vi
TABLE OF CONTENTS
Foreword .........................................................................................................................ii
Preface .............................................................................................................................iii
Table of Contents ...........................................................................................................vii
List of Abbreviations .....................................................................................................xvii
II Principles .............................................................................................................................50
2.1 Introduction ................................................................................................................50
2.2 Military Necessity ......................................................................................................52
2.3 Humanity....................................................................................................................58
2.4 Proportionality ...........................................................................................................60
2.5 Distinction ..................................................................................................................62
2.6 Honor .........................................................................................................................66
vii
4.2 The Armed Forces and the Civilian Population.........................................................100
4.3 Lawful Combatants and Unprivileged Belligerents ...................................................103
4.4 Rights, Duties, and Liabilities of Combatants ...........................................................106
4.5 Armed Forces of a State .............................................................................................112
4.6 Other Militia and Volunteer Corps ............................................................................118
4.7 Leve en Masse ..........................................................................................................125
4.8 Rights, Duties, and Liabilities of Civilians ................................................................127
4.9 Military Medical and Religious Personnel ................................................................129
4.10 Rights, Duties, and Liabilities of Military Medical and Religious Personnel .........133
4.11 Authorized Staff of Voluntary Aid Societies ...........................................................134
4.12 Staff of a Recognized Aid Society of a Neutral Country.........................................135
4.13 Auxiliary Medical Personnel ...................................................................................136
4.14 Personnel Engaged in Duties Related to the Protection of Cultural Property .........138
4.15 Persons Authorized to Accompany the Armed Forces ............................................142
4.16 Crews of Merchant Marine Vessels or Civil Aircraft ..............................................148
4.17 Spies, Saboteurs, and Other Persons Engaging in Similar Acts Behind
Enemy Lines ........................................................................................................150
4.18 Private Persons Who Engage in Hostilities .............................................................157
4.19 Rights, Duties, and Liabilities of Unprivileged Belligerents ...................................162
4.20 Children....................................................................................................................166
4.21 Mercenaries ..............................................................................................................170
4.22 AP I Provisions on Civil Defense Personnel ...........................................................172
4.23 Law Enforcement Officers .......................................................................................172
4.24 Journalists ................................................................................................................173
4.25 Delegates or Representatives of the Protecting Powers ...........................................175
4.26 ICRC and Other Impartial Humanitarian Organizations .........................................176
4.27 Determining the Status of Detainees in Cases of Doubt ..........................................179
viii
5.15 Undefended Cities, Towns, and Villages .................................................................253
5.16 Prohibition on Using Protected Persons and Objects to Shield, Favor, or
Impede Military Operations .................................................................................258
5.17 Seizure and Destruction of Enemy Property............................................................261
5.18 Protection of Cultural Property During Hostilities ..................................................269
5.19 Sieges and Encircled Areas ......................................................................................288
5.20 Starvation .................................................................................................................291
5.21 Overview of Good Faith, Perfidy, and Ruses ..........................................................294
5.22 Treachery or Perfidy Used to Kill or Wound...........................................................296
5.23 Use of Enemy Flags, Insignia, and Military Uniforms ............................................298
5.24 Improper Use of Certain Signs ................................................................................300
5.25 Ruses of War and Other Lawful Deceptions ...........................................................302
5.26 Non-Forcible Means and Methods of Warfare ........................................................307
5.27 Prohibition Against Compelling Enemy Nationals to Take Part in the
Operations of War Directed Against Their Own Country ...................................310
VI Weapons .............................................................................................................................312
6.1 Introduction ................................................................................................................312
6.2 DoD Policy of Reviewing the Legality of Weapons .................................................313
6.3 Other Practices to Help Implement Law of War Obligations With Respect to
Weapons ...............................................................................................................316
6.4 Prohibited Weapons ...................................................................................................317
6.5 Lawful Weapons ........................................................................................................318
6.6 Weapons Calculated to Cause Superfluous Injury.....................................................334
6.7 Inherently Indiscriminate Weapons ...........................................................................340
6.8 Poison, Poisoned Weapons, Poisonous Gases, and Other Chemical Weapons .........343
6.9 Biological Weapons ...................................................................................................350
6.10 Certain Environmental Modification Techniques ....................................................352
6.11 Weapons Injuring by Fragments Not Detectable by X-Rays...................................355
6.12 Landmines, Booby-Traps, and Other Devices .........................................................356
6.13 Cluster Munitions.....................................................................................................380
6.14 Incendiary Weapons.................................................................................................382
6.15 Laser Weapons .........................................................................................................387
6.16 Riot Control Agents .................................................................................................389
6.17 Herbicides ................................................................................................................392
6.18 Nuclear Weapons .....................................................................................................393
6.19 Explosive Ordnance .................................................................................................395
6.20 Explosive Remnants of War ....................................................................................400
VII Wounded, Sick, Shipwrecked, Dead, and the Medical Services ...................................410
7.1 Introduction ................................................................................................................410
7.2 Application of the Protections of the GWS and GWS-Sea........................................413
7.3 Respect and Protection of the Wounded, Sick, and Shipwrecked .............................415
ix
7.4 Search, Collection, and Affirmative Protection of the Wounded, Sick,
Shipwrecked, and Dead .......................................................................................420
7.5 Humane Treatment and Care of Enemy Military Wounded, Sick, and
Shipwrecked in the Power of a Party to the Conflict ...........................................424
7.6 Accountability Information From the Enemy Military Wounded, Sick,
Shipwrecked, and Dead .......................................................................................428
7.7 Treatment and Handling of Enemy Military Dead ....................................................430
7.8 Respect and Protection of Categories of Medical and Religious Personnel ..............435
7.9 Captured Medical and Religious Personnel ...............................................................438
7.10 Military Medical Units and Facilities ......................................................................444
7.11 Ground Transports of the Wounded and Sick, or of Medical Equipment ...............451
7.12 Hospital Ships, Sick-Bays in Warships, and Coastal Rescue Craft .........................453
7.13 Chartered Medical Transport Ships .........................................................................465
7.14 Military Medical Aircraft .........................................................................................466
7.15 Display of the Distinctive Emblem to Facilitate Identification ...............................470
7.16 Protection of Civilians Who Are Wounded, Sick, Infirm, or Expectant
Mothers ................................................................................................................477
7.17 Civilian Hospitals and Their Personnel ...................................................................478
7.18 Land and Sea Civilian Hospital Convoys ................................................................481
7.19 Civilian Medical Aircraft .........................................................................................482
7.20 AP I Provisions on the Wounded, Sick, and Shipwrecked ......................................483
x
9.4 National-Level GPW Implementation Measures .......................................................522
9.5 Humane Treatment and Basic Protections for POWs ................................................524
9.6 Security Measures With Respect to POWs................................................................529
9.7 POW Effects and Articles of Personal Use................................................................530
9.8 Interrogation of POWs ...............................................................................................532
9.9 Evacuation From Combat Areas ................................................................................534
9.10 Transit or Screening Facilities .................................................................................536
9.11 General Conditions in POW Camps: Location, Safety, Hygiene, and Living
Conditions ............................................................................................................538
9.12 Segregation of POWs...............................................................................................544
9.13 Food, Water, Tobacco, and Clothing for POWs ......................................................545
9.14 Medical Attention for Interned POWs .....................................................................548
9.15 Religious Exercise by POWs ...................................................................................550
9.16 Intellectual, Physical, and Recreational Activities ..................................................551
9.17 Canteens for POWs ..................................................................................................553
9.18 Financial Resources of POWs .................................................................................555
9.19 POW Labor ..............................................................................................................562
9.20 POW Correspondence and Relief Shipments ..........................................................569
9.21 Private Legal Matters of POWs ...............................................................................577
9.22 Internal Discipline of POW Camps .........................................................................578
9.23 POW Requests, Complaints, and Reports About Conditions of Captivity ..............582
9.24 POW Representatives ..............................................................................................584
9.25 POW Escapes ...........................................................................................................591
9.26 General Principles Applicable to POW Discipline ..................................................595
9.27 Disciplinary Proceedings and Punishment...............................................................598
9.28 Judicial Proceedings and Punishment ......................................................................603
9.29 Transfer of POWs From the POW Camp ................................................................610
9.30 Transfer of POWs to the Custody of Another Detaining Power .............................611
9.31 National Accounting of the Detention of POWs .....................................................613
9.32 Role of the Protecting Power in the GPW ...............................................................618
9.33 Access to POWs by the Protecting Powers, ICRC, and Relief Organizations ........621
9.34 Death of POWs ........................................................................................................622
9.35 Exchanges and Other Release and Repatriation of POWs During Hostilities .........626
9.36 Direct Repatriation and Accommodation in Neutral Countries During
Hostilities .............................................................................................................627
9.37 Release and Repatriation After Hostilities ...............................................................632
9.38 Procedure on Release and Repatriation After Hostilities ........................................638
9.39 Code of Conduct for U.S. Armed Forces .................................................................640
xi
10.6 Measures of Control and Security............................................................................659
10.7 General Treatment of Protected Persons in a Belligerents Home Territory ...........662
10.8 Expulsion From Areas Within a Belligerents Home Territory and Departure
and Transfers of Protected Persons From a Belligerents Home Territory .........664
10.9 Internment ................................................................................................................667
10.10 Segregation of Internees ........................................................................................671
10.11 Safety, Hygiene, and Living Conditions in Places of Internment..........................672
10.12 Canteens for Internees............................................................................................675
10.13 Food, Water, Tobacco, and Clothing for Internees ................................................677
10.14 Medical Attention for Internees .............................................................................678
10.15 Religious Exercise by Internees .............................................................................680
10.16 Intellectual, Physical, and Recreational Activities ................................................682
10.17 Internee Labor ........................................................................................................683
10.18 Internees Articles of Personal Use........................................................................685
10.19 Financial Resources of Internees ...........................................................................686
10.20 Administration of Places of Internment and Discipline.........................................689
10.21 Internee Petitions, Complaints, and Reports About Conditions of
Internment ............................................................................................................690
10.22 Internee Committees ..............................................................................................692
10.23 Internee Correspondence and Relief Shipments ....................................................696
10.24 Private Legal Matters of Internees .........................................................................703
10.25 Internees and Visits of Family and Friends ...........................................................705
10.26 Internee Escapes.....................................................................................................706
10.27 General Provisions Applicable to Both Judicial and Disciplinary Sanctions
Regarding Internees .............................................................................................707
10.28 Disciplinary Proceedings and Punishment.............................................................708
10.29 Judicial Proceedings Regarding Protected Persons in Occupied Territory or
Internees in a Belligerents Home Territory ........................................................713
10.30 Transfers of Internees From the Place of Internment ............................................717
10.31 National Accounting for Protected Persons in Its Power.......................................720
10.32 Role of the Protecting Power in the GC.................................................................725
10.33 Access to Internees by Protecting Powers, ICRC, and Other Relief
Organizations .......................................................................................................727
10.34 Death of Internees ..................................................................................................729
10.35 Release, Return, Repatriation of Internees After the Close of Hostilities .............732
xii
11.9 Local Law and Legislation.......................................................................................763
11.10 Ordinary Courts in Occupied Territory..................................................................767
11.11 Criminal Law in Occupied Territory .....................................................................769
11.12 Movement of Persons in Occupied Territory.........................................................777
11.13 Protection of Children in Occupied Territory ........................................................780
11.14 Food and Medical Supplies for the Civilian Population ........................................781
11.15 Public Health and Hygiene ....................................................................................782
11.16 Spiritual Assistance................................................................................................784
11.17 Relief Efforts and Consignments ...........................................................................785
11.18 Enemy Property During Occupation ......................................................................788
11.19 Protection of Cultural Property During Occupation ..............................................798
11.20 Labor of Protected Persons in Occupied Territory ................................................800
11.21 Judges and Other Public Officials..........................................................................806
11.22 Public Finances and Taxes .....................................................................................807
11.23 Other Economic Regulation of Occupied Territory...............................................817
xiii
13.11 Naval Mines ...........................................................................................................892
13.12 Torpedoes ...............................................................................................................898
13.13 Deception by Naval Forces, Including the Use of Enemy or Neutral Flags ..........898
xiv
16.1 Introduction ..............................................................................................................994
16.2 Application of the Law of War to Cyber Operations ...............................................996
16.3 Cyber Operations and Jus ad Bellum .......................................................................998
16.4 Cyber Operations and the Law of Neutrality ...........................................................1002
16.5 Cyber Operations and Jus in Bello...........................................................................1003
16.6 Legal Review of Weapons That Employ Cyber Capabilities ..................................1008
xv
18.11 Protests and Demands to the Offending Party .......................................................1078
18.12 U.N. Security Council and Enforcement of the Law of War .................................1078
18.13 National Investigations of Alleged Violations of the Law of War ........................1082
18.14 International Mechanisms to Investigate Alleged Law of War Violations............1084
18.15 Protecting Power and Other Neutral Intermediaries ..............................................1085
18.16 Compensation for Violations of the Law of War...................................................1089
18.17 Retorsion ................................................................................................................1092
18.18 Reprisals .................................................................................................................1093
18.19 Discipline in National Jurisdictions of Individuals for Violations of the Law
of War ..................................................................................................................1100
18.20 Prosecution in International and Hybrid Courts ....................................................1108
18.21 Limits on the Punishment of Individuals Under the Law of War ..........................1113
18.22 Principles of Individual Criminal Responsibility for Crimes Under
International Law .................................................................................................1118
18.23 Theories of Individual Criminal Liability ..............................................................1122
xvi
LIST OF ABBREVIATIONS
To make the manual easier to read, the use of abbreviations has often been avoided,
especially in the main text. Nonetheless, the following abbreviations of the titles of documents
have been used for frequently cited documents.
xvii
Abbreviation Long Form
1958 UK Manual United Kingdom War Office, Manual of Military Law, Part
III: The Law of War on Land (1958)
1976 Air Force Pamphlet 110-31 Department of the Air Force Pamphlet 110-31,
International Law The Conduct of Armed Conflict and
Air Operations (Nov. 19, 1976)
1989 NWP 9 Department of the Navy, Office of the Judge Advocate
General, Annotated Supplement to the Commanders
Handbook on the Law of Naval Operations, NWP
(Rev.A)/FMFM 1-10 (1989)
1997 Multi-Service Detention Army Regulation 190-8 / Office of the Chief of Naval
Regulation Operations Instruction 3461.6 / Air Force Joint Instruction
31-304 / Marine Corps Order 3461.1, Enemy Prisoners of
War, Retained Personnel, Civilian Internees and Other
Detainees (Oct. 1, 1997)
1997 NWP 9 U.S. Naval War College, Center for Naval Warfare Studies,
Oceans Law and Policy Department, Annotated Supplement
to the Commanders Handbook on the Law of Naval
Operations (1997)
2001 Canadian Manual Canada, Department of National Defence, Joint Doctrine
Manual B-GJ-005-104/FP-021, Law of Armed Conflict at
the Operational and Tactical Levels (Aug. 13, 2001)
2004 UK Manual United Kingdom Ministry of Defence, Joint Service
Publication 383, The Joint Service Manual of the Law of
Armed Conflict (2004)
2006 Australian Manual Australian Defence Force, Australian Defence Doctrine
Publication 06.4, Law of Armed Conflict (May 11, 2006)
2007 NWP 1-14M Department of the Navy, Naval Warfare Publication 1-14M
/ Marine Corps Warfighting Publication 5-12.1 /
Commandant Publication P5800.7A, The Commanders
Handbook on the Law of Naval Operations (Jul. 2007)
2013 German Manual Germany, Federal Ministry of Defence, Joint Service
Regulation (ZDv) 15/2, Law of Armed Conflict Manual
(May 1, 2013)
AJIL American Journal of International Law
AP I Protocol (I) Additional to the Geneva Conventions of
August 12, 1949, and Relating to the Protection of Victims
of International Armed Conflicts, Jun. 8, 1977, 1125 UNTS
3
AP II Protocol (II) Additional to the Geneva Conventions of 12
August 1949, and Relating to the Protection of Victims of
Non-International Armed Conflicts, Jun. 8, 1977, 1125
UNTS 609
xviii
Abbreviation Long Form
AP III Protocol (III) Additional to the Geneva Conventions of 12
August 1949, and Relating to the Adoption of an
Additional Distinctive Emblem, Dec. 8, 2005, 2404 UNTS
1
Appendix to 1985 CJCS Memo on Appendix to John W. Vessey, Jr., Chairman, Joint Chiefs of
AP I Staff, Review of the 1977 First Additional Protocol to the
Geneva Conventions of 1949, May 3, 1985.
Bevans Charles I. Bevans, Assistant Legal Adviser, Department of
State, Treaties and Other International Agreements of the
United States of America, 1776-1949 (13 Volumes, 1968-
1976)
Biological Weapons Convention Convention on the Prohibition of the Development,
Production and Stockpiling of Bacteriological (Biological)
and Toxin Weapons and on Their Destruction, Apr. 10,
1972, 1015 UNTS 163
Bothe, Partsch, & Solf, New Rules Michael Bothe, Karl Josef Partsch, & Waldemar A. Solf,
New Rules for Victims of Armed Conflicts (1982)
CCW Convention on Prohibitions or Restrictions on the Use of
Certain Conventional Weapons Which May be Deemed to
be Excessively Injurious or to Have Indiscriminate Effects,
Oct. 10, 1980, 1342 UNTS 137
CCW Amended Amendment to Article I of the Convention on Prohibitions
or Restrictions on the Use of Certain Conventional
Weapons Which May be Deemed to be Excessively
Injurious or to Have Indiscriminate Effects, Dec. 21, 2001,
2260 UNTS 82
CCW Amended Mines Protocol Protocol (II) on Prohibitions or Restrictions on the Use of
Mines, Booby-Traps and Other Devices, as Amended on
May 3, 1996, Annexed to the Convention on Prohibitions
or Restrictions on the Use of Certain Conventional
Weapons Which May be Deemed to be Excessively
Injurious or to Have Indiscriminate Effects, May 3, 1996,
2048 UNTS 93
CCW Protocol I Protocol (I) on Non-Detectable Fragments, Annexed to the
Convention on Prohibitions or Restrictions on the Use of
Certain Conventional Weapons Which May be Deemed to
be Excessively Injurious or to Have Indiscriminate Effects,
Oct. 10, 1980, 1342 UNTS 137
CCW Protocol III on Incendiary Protocol (III) on Prohibitions or Restrictions on the Use of
Weapons Incendiary Weapons, Annexed to the Convention on
Prohibitions or Restrictions on the Use of Certain
Conventional Weapons Which May be Deemed to be
Excessively Injurious or to Have Indiscriminate Effects,
Oct. 10, 1980, 1342 UNTS 137
xix
Abbreviation Long Form
CCW Protocol IV on Blinding Protocol (IV) on Blinding Laser Weapons, Annexed to the
Laser Weapons Convention on Prohibitions or Restrictions on the Use of
Certain Conventional Weapons Which May be Deemed to
be Excessively Injurious or to Have Indiscriminate Effects,
Oct. 13, 1995, 1380 UNTS 163
CCW Protocol V on Explosive Protocol (V) on Explosive Remnants of War, Annexed to
Remnants of War the Convention on Prohibitions or Restrictions on the Use
of Certain Conventional Weapons Which May be Deemed
to be Excessively Injurious or to Have Indiscriminate
Effects, Nov. 28, 2003, 2399 UNTS 100
Chairmans Commentary to the The Copenhagen Process on the Handling of Detainees in
Copenhagen Process: Principles International Military Operations, Chairmans Commentary
and Guidelines to the Copenhagen Process: Principles and Guidelines
(Denmark, Ministry of Foreign Affairs, Oct. 19, 2012)
Chemical Weapons Convention Convention on the Prohibition of the Development,
Production, Stockpiling and Use of Chemical Weapons and
on Their Destruction, Jan. 13, 1993, 1974 UNTS 317
Copenhagen Process: Principles The Copenhagen Process on the Handling of Detainees in
and Guidelines International Military Operations, The Copenhagen
Process: Principles and Guidelines (Denmark, Ministry of
Foreign Affairs, Oct. 19, 2012)
Digest of United States Practice in Digest of United States Practice in International Law
International Law (Department of State, Office of the Legal Adviser)
ENMOD Convention Convention on the Prohibition of Military or Any Other
Hostile Use of Environmental Modification Techniques,
Dec. 10, 1976, 1108 UNTS 151
Final Record of 1949 Geneva Diplomatic Conference of Geneva, Final Record of the
Diplomatic Conference Diplomatic Conference of Geneva of 1949 (Switzerland,
Federal Political Department, 1949)
Final Report on the Persian Gulf Department of Defense, Conduct of the Persian Gulf War:
War Final Report to Congress (1992)
GC Geneva Convention Relative to the Protection of Civilian
Persons in Time of War, Aug. 12, 1949, 75 UNTS 287
GC Commentary Jean S. Pictet, Geneva Convention Relative to the
Protection of Civilian Persons in Time of War:
Commentary (International Committee of the Red Cross,
1958)
GPW Geneva Convention Relative to the Treatment of Prisoners
of War, Aug. 12, 1949, 75 UNTS 135
GPW Commentary Jean S. Pictet, Geneva Convention Relative to the
Treatment of Prisoners of War: Commentary (International
Committee of the Red Cross, 1960)
Greenspan, Modern Law of Land Morris Greenspan, The Modern Law of Land Warfare
Warfare (1959)
xx
Abbreviation Long Form
Grotius, Law of War & Peace Hugo Grotius, The Law of War and Peace: De Jure Belli
ac Pacis Libri Tres (translated by Francis W. Kelsey, 1925)
GWS Geneva Convention for the Amelioration of the Condition
of the Wounded and Sick in Armed Forces in the Field,
Aug. 12, 1949, 75 UNTS 31
GWS Commentary Jean S. Pictet, Geneva Convention for the Amelioration of
the Condition of the Wounded and Sick in Armed Forces in
the Field: Commentary (International Committee of the
Red Cross, 1952)
GWS-Sea Geneva Convention for the Amelioration of the Condition
of the Wounded, Sick and Shipwrecked Members of Armed
Forces at Sea, Aug. 12, 1949, 75 UNTS 85
GWS-Sea Commentary Jean S. Pictet, Geneva Convention for the Amelioration of
the Condition of the Wounded, Sick and Shipwrecked
Members of Armed Forces at Sea: Commentary
(International Committee of the Red Cross, 1960)
Hague IV Convention (IV) Respecting the Laws and Customs of War
on Land, Oct. 18, 1907, 36 Stat. 2277
Hague IV Reg. Regulations Respecting the Laws and Customs of War on
Land, Annex to Convention (IV) Respecting the Laws and
Customs of War on Land, Oct. 18, 1907, 36 Stat. 2295
Hague IX Convention (IX) Concerning Bombardment by Naval
Forces in Time of War, Oct. 18, 1907, 36 Stat. 2351
Hague V Convention (V) Respecting the Rights and Duties of
Neutral Powers and Persons in Case of War on Land, Oct.
18, 1907, 36 Stat. 2310
Hague VIII Convention (VIII) Relative to the Laying of Automatic
Submarine Contact Mines, Oct. 18, 1907, 36 Stat. 2332
Hague X Convention (X) for the Adaptation to Maritime Warfare of
the Principles of the Geneva Convention, Oct. 18, 1907, 36
Stat. 2371
Hague XI Convention (XI) Relative to Certain Restrictions with
Regard to the Exercise of the Right of Capture in Naval
War, Oct. 18, 1907, 36 Stat. 2396
Hague XIII Convention (XIII) Concerning the Rights and Duties of
Neutral Powers in Naval War, Oct. 18, 1907, 36 Stat. 2415
ICJ Statute Statute of the International Court of Justice (Annex to the
Charter of the United Nations), Jun. 26, 1945, 59 Stat. 1055
ICRC AP Commentary Jean S. Pictet et al., Commentary on the Additional
Protocols of 8 June 1977 to the Geneva Conventions of 12
August 1949 (International Committee of the Red Cross,
1987)
xxi
Abbreviation Long Form
ICTR International Criminal Tribunal for the Prosecution of
Persons Responsible for Genocide and Other Serious
Violations of International Humanitarian Law Committed
in the Territory of Rwanda and Rwandan Citizens
Responsible for Genocide and Other Such Violations
Committed in the Territory of Neighbouring States,
between 1 January 1994 and 31 December 1994
ICTR Statute Statute of the ICTR, Annex to U.N. Security Council
Resolution 955 (1994), U.N. Doc. S/RES/955(1994) (Nov.
8, 1994).
ICTY International Tribunal for the Prosecution of Persons
Responsible for Serious Violations of International
Humanitarian Law Committed in the Territory of the
Former Yugoslavia since 1991
ICTY Statute Statute of the ICTY, Annex to Report of the Secretary-
General Pursuant to Paragraph 2 of Security Council
Resolution 808 (1993), U.N. Doc. S/25704 (May 3, 1993),
adopted by U.N. Security Council Resolution 827 (1993),
U.N. Doc. S/RES/827(1993) (May 25, 1993).
J.A.G.S. Text No. 11, Law of U.S. Army, The Judge Advocate Generals School Text
Belligerent Occupation No. 11, Law of Belligerent Occupation (Jun. 1, 1944,
reissued Jul. 2, 1945)
Lauterpacht, II Oppenheims Lassa Oppenheim, International Law, Volume II: Disputes,
International Law War and Neutrality (edited by H. Lauterpacht, 7th ed.,
1952)
Levie, Documents on POWs Howard S. Levie, Documents on Prisoners of War (U.S.
Naval War College International Law Studies, Volume 60,
1979)
Levie, POWs Howard Levie, Prisoners of War in International Armed
Conflicts (U.S. Naval War College International Law
Studies, Volume 59, 1978)
Lieber Code E. D. Townsend, Assistant Adjutant General, General
Orders No. 100, Instructions for the Government of Armies
of the United States in the Field, Apr. 24, 1863, reprinted in
Instructions for the Government of Armies of the United
States in the Field (Government Printing Office, 1898).
LNTS League of Nations Treaty Series
LOS Convention United Nations Convention on the Law of the Sea, Dec.10,
1982, 1833 UNTS 396.
Message from the President Message from the President of the United States
Transmitting AP II Transmitting the Protocol II Additional to the Geneva
Conventions of August 12, 1949, and Relating to the
Protection of Victims of Noninternational Armed Conflicts,
Concluded at Geneva on June 10, 1977, Treaty Doc. 100-2
(1987)
xxii
Abbreviation Long Form
Message from the President Message from the President of the United States
Transmitting AP III, CCW transmitting Protocol Additional to the Geneva
Amended Article 1, and CCW Conventions of 12 August 1949, and Relating to the
Protocol V on Explosive Adoption of an Additional Distinctive Emblem (The
Remnants of War Geneva Protocol III), Adopted at Geneva on December 8,
2005, and Signed by the United States on that date; The
Amendment to Article 1 of the Convention on Prohibitions
or Restrictions on the Use of Certain Conventional
Weapons Which May Be Deemed to be Excessively
Injurious or to Have Indiscriminate Effects (The CCW
Amendment); and The CCW Protocol Explosive
Remnants of War (The CCW Protocol V), Treaty Doc.
109-10 (2006)
Message from the President Message from the President of the United States
Transmitting LOS Convention transmitting the United Nations Convention on the Law of
the Sea, with Annexes, and the Agreement Relating to the
Implementation of Part XI of the United Nations
Convention on the Law of the Sea, with Annex, Adopted at
New York on July 28, 1994 and signed by the United
States, Subject to Ratification on July 29, 1994, Treaty
Doc. 103-09 (1994)
Message from the President Message From the President of the United States
Transmitting the 1925 Geneva Gas Transmitting The Protocol for the Prohibition of the Use in
and Bacteriological Protocol War of Asphyxiating, Poisonous, or Other Gases, and of
Bacteriological Methods of Warfare, Signed at Geneva
June 17, 1925, Executive J (1970)
Message from the President Message from the President of the United States
Transmitting the 1954 Hague Transmitting the Hague Convention for the Protection of
Cultural Property Convention Cultural Property in the Event of Armed Conflict (the
Convention) and, for Accession, the Hague Protocol,
Concluded on May 14, 1954, and Entered into Force on
August 7, 1956 with Accompanying Report from the
Department of State on the Convention and the Hague
Protocol, Treaty Doc. 106-1 (1999)
xxiii
Abbreviation Long Form
Message from the President Message From the President of the United States
Transmitting the CCW Amended Transmitting Protocols to the 1980 Convention on
Mines Protocol, Protocol III on Prohibitions or Restrictions on the use of Certain
Incendiary Weapons, and Protocol Conventional Weapons which may be deemed to be
IV on Blinding Laser Weapons excessively injurious or to Have Indiscriminate effects:
The Amended Protocol on Prohibitions or Restrictions on
the Use of Mines, Booby-traps or other devices (Protocol II
or the Amended Mines Protocol); The Protocol On
Prohibitions or Restrictions on the Use of Incendiary
Weapons (Protocol III or the Incendiary Weapons
Protocol); and the Protocol on Blinding Laser Weapons
(Protocol IV), Treaty Doc. 105-1 (1997)
Message from the President Message from the President of the United States
Transmitting the Chemical Transmitting the Convention on the Prohibition of
Weapons Convention Development, Production, Stockpiling, and use of
Chemical Weapons and on their Destruction, Opened for
Signature and Signed by the United States at Paris on Jan.
13, 1993, Treaty Doc. 103-21 (1993)
Message from the President Message from the President of the United States
Transmitting the VCLT Transmitting the Vienna Convention on the Law of Treaties
Signed for the United States on April 24, 1970, Executive L
(1971)
Moores Digest John Bassett Moore, A Digest of International Law (8
Volumes, 1906)
Official Records of the CDDH Official Records of the Diplomatic Conference on the
Reaffirmation and Development of International
Humanitarian Law Applicable in Armed Conflicts, Geneva
1974-1977 (16 Volumes, 1978)
Outer Space Treaty Treaty on Principles Governing the Activities of States in
the Exploration and Use of Outer Space, Including the
Moon and Other Celestial Bodies, Jan. 27, 1967, 610
UNTS 205
Public Papers of the Presidents Public Papers of the Presidents of the United States
(National Archives and Records Administration, Office of
the Federal Register)
Regulations for the Execution of Regulations for the Execution of the Convention for the
the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Protection of Cultural Property in the Event of Armed
Convention Conflict, Annexed to the Hague Cultural Property
Convention, May 14, 1954, 249 UNTS 270
Roerich Pact Treaty between the United States of America and other
American Republics on the Protection of Artistic and
Scientific Institutions and Historic Monuments, Apr. 15,
1935, 49 Stat. 3267
Rome Statute Rome Statute of the International Criminal Court, July 17,
1998, 2187 UNTS 90
xxiv
Abbreviation Long Form
Spaight, Air Power and War James Maloney Spaight, Air Power and War Rights (3rd
Rights ed., 1947)
Spaight, War Rights on Land James Maloney Spaight, War Rights on Land (1911)
Stat. United States Statutes at Large
Technical Annex to CCW Technical Annex to Protocol (II) on Prohibitions or
Amended Mines Protocol Restrictions on the Use of Mines, Booby-Traps and Other
Devices, as Amended on May 3, 1996, Annexed to the
Convention on Prohibitions or Restrictions on the Use of
Certain Conventional Weapons Which May be Deemed to
be Excessively Injurious or to Have Indiscriminate Effects,
May 3, 1996, 2048 UNTS 144
Technical Annex to CCW Protocol Technical Annex to Protocol (V) on Explosive Remnants of
V On Explosive Remnants of War War, Annexed to the Convention on Prohibitions or
Restrictions on the Use of Certain Conventional Weapons
Which May be Deemed to be Excessively Injurious or to
Have Indiscriminate Effects, Nov. 28, 2003, 2399 UNTS
132
Trial of the Major War Criminals Trial of the Major War Criminals Before the International
Before the IMT Military Tribunal (42 Volumes, 1947-1949)
Trials of War Criminals Before the Trials of War Criminals Before the Nuernberg Military
NMT Tribunals Under Control Council Law No. 10 (15 Volumes,
1949-1953)
Tucker, The Law of War and Robert W. Tucker, The Law of War and Neutrality at Sea
Neutrality at Sea (U.S. Naval War College International Law Studies,
Volume 50, 1955)
U.N. Charter Charter of the United Nations, Jun. 26, 1945, 59 Stat. 1031
U.N. Law Reports United Nations War Crimes Commission, Law Reports of
the Trials of War Criminals (15 Volumes 1947-1949)
U.S. Response to ICRC CIHL John B. Bellinger, III, Legal Adviser, Department of State,
Study & William J. Haynes II, General Counsel, Department of
Defense, Letter to Dr. Jacob Kellenberger, President,
International Committee of the Red Cross, Regarding
Customary International Humanitarian Law Study, Nov. 3,
2006, reprinted in 46 International Legal Materials 514
(2007).
U.S.C. United States Code (as of the date of publication of this
manual)
UNTS United Nations Treaty Series
Vattel, The Law of Nations Emer de Vattel, The Law of Nations, or the Principles of
the Law of Nature, Applied to the Conduct and Affairs of
Nations and Sovereigns (translated by Charles Fenwick,
1916)
VCLT Vienna Convention on the Law of Treaties, May 23, 1969,
1155 UNTS 331
xxv
Abbreviation Long Form
Von Glahn, The Occupation of Gerhard von Glahn, The Occupation of Enemy Territory
Enemy Territory (1957)
Whitemans Digest Marjorie M. Whiteman, Assistant Legal Adviser,
Department of State, Digest of International Law (15
Volumes, 1963-1973)
Winthrop, Military Law & William Winthrop, Military Law and Precedents (2nd. ed.,
Precedents 1920)
xxvi
I General Background
Chapter Contents
1.1.1 Purpose. The purpose of this manual is to provide information on the law of war to
DoD personnel responsible for implementing the law of war and executing military operations. 1
This manual represents the legal views of the Department of Defense. This manual does
not, however, preclude the Department from subsequently changing its interpretation of the law.
Although the preparation of this manual has benefited from the participation of lawyers from the
Department of State and the Department of Justice, this manual does not necessarily reflect the
views of any other department or agency of the U.S. Government or the views of the U.S.
Government as a whole.
This manual is not intended to, and does not, create any right or benefit, substantive or
procedural, enforceable at law or in equity against the United States, its departments, agencies, or
other entities, its officers or employees, or any other person.
1.1.2 Scope. This manual is not a definitive explanation of all law of war issues. This
manual focuses on jus in bello law relating to the conduct of hostilities and the protection of
war victims.
This manual seeks to address the law of war that is applicable to the United States,
including treaties to which the United States is a Party, and applicable customary international
law. It provides legal rules, principles, and discussion, particularly with respect to DoD practice.
Although the views of other States may be referenced in this manual, it is not a purpose of this
manual to describe the views of other States, which may differ from views expressed in this
manual.
1
Refer to 1.3 (Definition of the Law of War).
1
This manual is not a substitute for the careful practice of law. As specific legal issues
arise, legal advisers should consider relevant legal and policy materials (e.g., treaty provisions,
judicial decisions, past U.S. practice, regulations, and doctrine), and should apply the law to the
specific factual circumstances.
This manual is intended to be a description of the law as of the date of the manuals
promulgation. In this vein, much of this manual has been written in the past tense to help ensure
that the text remains accurate, even after subsequent developments have occurred. Every effort
has been made to ensure the accuracy of the manual, but it must be read in the light of later
developments in the law.
1.2.1 Use of Footnotes in This Manual. This manual uses footnotes to provide sources or
cross-references to other sections of the manual in order to clarify, elaborate on, or support the
main text.
An effort has been made to avoid introducing discussion in the footnotes that addresses
different propositions than those discussed in the main text. Although providing tangential
information in footnotes is common in academic legal writing, this practice has been avoided to
the extent possible for principally two reasons. First, it was desirable that this manuals main
text convey as much information as possible without the reader needing to read the footnotes.
For example, it was desirable to avoid the possibility that a reader might misunderstand a legal
rule addressed in the main text because a notable exception to that rule was addressed only in a
footnote accompanying the text. Second, tangential discussion on a given issue in footnotes
would have made it much more difficult to keep the manuals treatment of that issue consistent
from section to section and to allow the reader to find all the relevant information about a single
topic. Thus, tangential discussion in footnotes has been avoided, to the extent possible, in favor
of cross-references to the appropriate section of the manual that addresses that topic in more
detail.
1.2.2 Use of Sources in This Manual. This manual cites sources in the footnotes to
support or elaborate upon propositions in the main text. These sources are cited in the footnotes
to help practitioners research particular topics discussed in the main text. Reviewing the cited
sources in their entirety may provide additional contextual information, especially where sources
are only partially quoted in the footnotes.
1.2.2.1 Selection of Sources. The sources cited in the footnotes have been chosen
for a variety of reasons. For example, a source may contain a particularly helpful explanation or
illustration. A source may have been chosen to illustrate U.S. practice or legal interpretation. A
source may have been selected because its author was a particularly influential and respected
international lawyer. For example, the 1956 Department of Army Field Manual 27-10, The Law
of Land Warfare, has been a source of legal guidance for the U.S. armed forces for more than 50
years, and was published in connection with the U.S. ratification of the 1949 Geneva
Conventions. One of the persons who helped prepare the 1956 manual was Richard Baxter, a
highly respected DoD lawyer, who later became a judge on the International Court of Justice.
2
Citation to a particular source should not be interpreted to mean that the cited source
represents an official DoD position, or to be an endorsement of the source in its entirety. For
example, parts of a source, such as an opinion by the International Court of Justice or a
commentary published by the International Committee of the Red Cross, may reflect the DoD
legal interpretation, while other parts of the source may not. Similarly, the citation of the
jurisprudence of the Inter-American Commission on Human Rights should not be understood to
indicate that the United States has accepted the competence of the Inter-American Commission
on Human Rights to apply the law of war. 2
1.2.2.2 Use of Older Sources. Older sources are sometimes cited: (1) because
that source is particularly influential; (2) to demonstrate the origin of a legal proposition; or (3)
to illustrate that a particular rule or formulation has a long history.
1.2.2.3 Quotes Provided From Sources. Quotes from sources are sometimes
given in parentheticals within footnotes. These parentheticals are provided to help practitioners,
such as by facilitating comparison between the main text of the manual and the language used in
the sources. Every effort has been made to quote sources accurately. Practitioners, however,
should verify quotations using the original source.
Certain formatting rules have been followed for quoted material. Two spaces have been
placed after each period ending a sentence. Footnote numbers and carriage returns have been
omitted from quoted text. Otherwise, quotes have not been changed unless noted through the use
of ellipses, brackets, or parentheticals after the quotes indicating the changes made.
1.2.2.4 Citation of Policies and Regulations. Policies and regulations of the U.S.
Government or particular DoD components are sometimes cited as examples of past practice.
This manual, however, seeks primarily to address the law and not to address applicable
U.S. Government or DoD policies or regulations. Many policies and regulations are not
addressed in this manual, and the discussion of some policies, where relevant, should not be
understood to indicate that other pertinent policies or regulations do not exist. Moreover,
2
See, e.g., U.S. Additional Response to the Request for Precautionary MeasuresDetention of Enemy Combatants
at Guantanamo Bay, Cuba, Inter-American Commission on Human Rights, Jul. 15, 2002, 2002 DIGEST OF UNITED
STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 1008, 1009 (Put simply, the Commissions jurisdiction does not include
the application of the law of armed conflict, the lex specialis governing the status and treatment of persons detained
during armed conflict.).
3
Refer to 19.3 (Lieber Code).
3
policies and regulations are constantly updated, so practitioners are advised to ascertain whether
more recent versions of cited policies and regulations have been issued.
In some cases, cancelled issuances or superseded policies or regulations are cited to show
the past practice, and, at times, a series of issuances are cited to illustrate a continuity in practice.
Policies and regulations often exceed the requirements of applicable law, and the mere
citation of a policy or regulation in this manual should not be understood to reflect the view that
the policy or regulations requirements have been promulgated out of a sense of legal obligation
for the purposes of assessing customary international law or otherwise intending to reflect legal
requirements.
1.2.2.5 Citation Forms. An effort has been made to make citations forms
consistent throughout the manual, and to provide enough information about each cited source to
reflect its significance and to enable readers to find it. 4 This manual has not strictly adhered to
an established system of citation. Although certain citation systems were consulted,
modifications were made as deemed appropriate for this type of resource, to make the citation
forms straightforward and simple and relatively easy for readers to understand. In regard to
abbreviations, for example, this manual generally does not abbreviate the names of academic
journals. Moreover, it is hoped that the quotations from the cited sources that have been
included in footnotes will help readers find the cited sources electronically.
1.2.3 Use of Cross-References in This Manual. This manual uses cross-references in the
footnotes to point the reader to other sections of the manual containing relevant discussion of a
particular topic. In particular, an effort has been made to use cross-references rather than to
repeat discussion of a recurring issue or duplicate citation of legal sources. In sections in which
a law of war rule is only mentioned tangentially or as an example, a cross-reference is used to
direct the reader to the section of the manual in which a more in-depth discussion of that rule and
supporting sources are provided. 5
Cross-references are linked to enable the reader to access the referenced section quickly.
4
Cf. Richard A. Posner, The Bluebook Blues (reviewing Harvard Law Review Association, The Bluebook: A
Uniform System of Citation (19th ed., 2010)), THE YALE LAW JOURNAL 850, 852 (2011) (A system of citation
forms has basically two functions: to provide enough information about a reference to give the reader a general idea
of its significance and whether its worth looking up, and to enable the reader to find the reference if he decides that
he does want to look it up. In Goodbye to the Bluebook I suggested four principles to guide the design of such a
system: to spare the writer or editor from having to think about citation form, to economize on space and the
reader's time, to provide information to the reader, and to minimize distraction.).
5
Refer to 1.2.1 (Use of Footnotes in This Manual).
4
1.2.4 Use of Signals in This Manual. This manual uses signals to introduce the sources
and cross-references in the footnotes. The table below identifies the signals used in this manual,
describes their function, and provides examples of their use.
1
1958 UK MANUAL 100 (If it is shown that they joined the leve en masse, but took
no part in the defence, they may be held as prisoners of war.).
2
Ex parte Quirin, 317 U.S. 1, 31 (1942).
3
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 11.
See Clearly supports the proposition but does not directly state it
This means that a combatants killing, wounding, or other warlike acts are not
individual crimes or offenses.5
5
LIEBER CODE art. 57. See also WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW & PRECEDENTS 778 (The
State is represented in active war by its contending army, and the laws of war justify the
killing or disabling of members of the one army by those of the other in battle or hostile
operations.).
5
Signal Function and Examples of Use
Cf. Supports the proposition by analogy, i.e., discusses a different proposition that is sufficiently
similar to support the original proposition
Certain categories of persons are not members of the armed forces, but are nonetheless
authorized to support the armed forces in the fighting:
persons authorized to accompany the armed forces, but who are not members
thereof;7
7
Refer to 4.15 (Persons Authorized to Accompany the Armed Forces).
Compare Refers to another manual section that is analogous to the proposition
Persons authorized to accompany the armed forces who provide security against criminal
elements generally would not be viewed as taking a direct part in hostilities (and do not
forfeit their protection from being made the object of attack).269
269
Compare 4.23.1 (Police as Civilians).
Consider Identifies a treaty that relates to the proposition but to which the United States is not a Party
(e.g., AP I)
Under international law, every treaty in force is binding upon the Parties to it and must
be performed by them in good faith.10
10
Consider VCLT art. 26 (Every treaty in force is binding upon the parties to it and
must be performed by them in good faith.).
For Illustrates the proposition with an example drawn from historical practice
example,
Adjusting the timing of an attack may reduce the risk of incidental harm. For example,
attacking a military objective when civilians are less likely to be present may be
appropriate.11
11
For example, FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 100 (noting that during
Operation DESERT STORM attacks on known dual (i.e., military and civilian) use
facilities normally were scheduled at night, because fewer people would be inside or on
the streets outside.).
6
Signal Function and Examples of Use
e.g., Added to any of the other signals when the cited authority is one of several authorities (some
of which remain uncited) that stand for the same proposition
International humanitarian law is an alternative term for the law of war that may be
understood to have the same substantive meaning as the law of war.12
12
See, e.g., Overview of the Amendment to the Convention on the Physical Protection of
Nuclear Material, 6, Enclosure to Condoleezza Rice, Letter of Submittal, Jun. 11, 2007,
MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT OF THE UNITED STATES TRANSMITTING AMENDMENT
TO THE CONVENTION ON THE PHYSICAL PROTECTION OF NUCLEAR MATERIAL (THE
AMENDMENT). A CONFERENCE OF STATES PARTIES TO THE CONVENTION ON THE
PHYSICAL PROTECTION OF NUCLEAR MATERIAL, ADOPTED ON OCTOBER 28, 1979,
ADOPTED THE AMENDMENT ON JULY 8, 2005, AT THE INTERNATIONAL ATOMIC ENERGY
AGENCY IN VIENNA, TREATY DOC. 110-6, 6 (2007) ((2) The United States of America
understands that the term international humanitarian law in Paragraph 5 of the
Amendment (Article 2 of the Convention on the Physical Protection of Nuclear Material,
as amended) has the same substantive meaning as the law of war.).
For the purposes of this manual, the law of war is that part of international law that
regulates the resort to armed force; the conduct of hostilities and the protection of war victims in
both international and non-international armed conflict; belligerent occupation; and the
relationships between belligerent, neutral, and non-belligerent States. 6
For the purposes of this manual, the law of war comprises treaties and customary
international law applicable to the United States. 7
1.3.1.1 Different Definitions of the Law of War. The law of war may be defined
slightly differently in other publications. For example, DoD issuances have defined the law of
war more narrowly than the definition discussed in this section (e.g., by omitting reference to
that part of international law that regulates the resort to armed force). 8
6
Refer to 3.2 (Situations to Which the Law of War Applies).
7
Refer to 1.7 (Treaties); 1.8 (Customary International Law).
8
For example, DOD DIRECTIVE 2310.01E, DoD Detainee Program, 14 (Aug. 19, 2014) (law of war. The part of
international law that regulates the conduct of hostilities and the protection of victims of armed conflict in both
international and non-international armed conflict and occupation, and that prescribes the rights and duties of
neutral, non-belligerent, and belligerent states. It is often called the law of armed conflict or international
humanitarian law, and is specifically intended to address the circumstances of armed conflict. It encompasses all
international law applicable to the conduct of military operations in armed conflicts that is binding on the United
States or its individual citizens, including treaties and international agreements to which the United States is a party
(e.g., the Geneva Conventions of 1949), and applicable customary international law.); DOD DIRECTIVE 2311.01E,
DoD Law of War Program, 3.1 (May 9, 2006, Certified Current as of Feb. 22, 2011) (Law of War. That part of
7
1.3.1.2 Law of War versus International Humanitarian Law and Law of Armed
Conflict. The law of war is often called the law of armed conflict. Both terms can be found in
DoD directives and training materials. International humanitarian law is an alternative term for
the law of war that may be understood to have the same substantive meaning as the law of war. 9
In other cases, international humanitarian law is understood more narrowly than the law of war
(e.g., by understanding international humanitarian law not to include the law of neutrality). 10
1.3.2 The Law of Wars Relationship to Other Bodies of Law. An issue that often
confronts law of war practitioners is the relationship of the law of war to other bodies of law,
especially when rules in those bodies of law may appear to conflict with rules reflected in the
law of war. These apparent conflicts are often resolved by considering the principle that the law
of war is the lex specialis governing armed conflict. 11 How a law of war rule relates to a
particular rule that is not grounded in the law of war may depend on the specific legal rule in
question.
In general, the law of war may relate to other bodies of law through: (1) law of war rules
superseding rules in other bodies of law with respect to armed conflict; (2) construing the rules in
other bodies of law to avoid conflict with law of war rules; (3) law of war rules informing the
content of general standards in other bodies of law, should such standards be construed to apply
international law that regulates the conduct of armed hostilities. It is often called the law of armed conflict. The
law of war encompasses all international law for the conduct of hostilities binding on the United States or its
individual citizens, including treaties and international agreements to which the United States is a party, and
applicable customary international law.).
9
See, e.g., Overview of the Amendment to the Convention on the Physical Protection of Nuclear Material, 6,
Enclosure to Condoleezza Rice, Letter of Submittal, Jun. 11, 2007, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT OF THE UNITED
STATES TRANSMITTING AMENDMENT TO THE CONVENTION ON THE PHYSICAL PROTECTION OF NUCLEAR MATERIAL
(THE AMENDMENT). A CONFERENCE OF STATES PARTIES TO THE CONVENTION ON THE PHYSICAL PROTECTION OF
NUCLEAR MATERIAL, ADOPTED ON OCTOBER 28, 1979, ADOPTED THE AMENDMENT ON JULY 8, 2005, AT THE
INTERNATIONAL ATOMIC ENERGY AGENCY IN VIENNA, TREATY DOC. 110-6, 6 (2007) ((2) The United States of
America understands that the term international humanitarian law in Paragraph 5 of the Amendment (Article 2 of
the Convention on the Physical Protection of Nuclear Material, as amended) has the same substantive meaning as
the law of war.); FRITS KALSHOVEN & LIESBETH ZEGVELD, CONSTRAINTS ON THE WAGING OF WAR: AN
INTRODUCTION TO INTERNATIONAL HUMANITARIAN LAW 11 (International Committee of the Red Cross, 3rd ed.,
2001) (The law of war nowadays is often referred to by a phrase better suited to express its object and purpose,
such as international humanitarian law applicable in armed conflict or humanitarian law we shall be using these
terms interchangeably, as we do with war and armed conflict.).
10
Christopher Greenwood, Historical Development and Legal Basis, in DIETER FLECK, THE HANDBOOK OF
HUMANITARIAN LAW IN ARMED CONFLICTS 9 (102) (1999) (The term international humanitarian law is of
relatively recent origin and does not appear in the Geneva Conventions of 1949. International humanitarian law
thus includes most of what used to be known as the laws of war, although strictly speaking some parts of those laws,
such as the law of neutrality, are not included since their primary purpose is not humanitarian.).
11
See, e.g., Mary McLeod, Acting Legal Adviser, Department of State, Opening Statement at 53rd Session of the
U.N. Committee Against Torture, Nov. 3 28, 2014, Nov. 12, 2014 (noting that the law of armed conflict is the
controlling body of law with respect to the conduct of hostilities and the protection of war victims,); U.S.
Delegation to U.N. General Assembly Third Committee, Statement Clarifying Legal Points of Importance, 2004
DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 331 (Third, with respect to [preambular paragraph
(PP)] 4 and PP6, references to human rights law during armed conflict by necessity refer only to those provisions,
if any, that may be applicable. As may be well known, it is the position of the United States Government that the
Law of War is the lex specialis governing armed conflict.) (amendment in original).
8
to armed conflict; and (4) law of war treaties explicitly incorporating concepts from other bodies
of law.
In some cases, it may be difficult to distinguish between these approaches, and different
entities may apply different approaches to achieve the same result. 12 Although there are different
approaches and although the ultimate resolution may depend on the specific rules and context,
the law of war, as the lex specialis of armed conflict, is the controlling body of law with regard
to the conduct of hostilities and the protection of war victims. 13
1.3.2.1 The Law of War as the Lex Specialis Governing Armed Conflict. The
maxim lex specialis derogat legi generali means that [a]s a rule the special rule overrides the
general law. 14 The rule that is more specifically directed towards the action receives priority
because it takes better account of the particular features of the context in which the law is to be
applied, thus creating a more equitable result and better reflecting the intent of the authorities
that have made the law. 15
The law of war has been developed with special consideration of the circumstances of
war and the challenges inherent in its regulation by law. Thus, for example, the exigencies of
armed conflict cannot justify violating the law of war. 16 Moreover, lawmakers sometimes have
12
Report of the International Law Commission, Fifty-sixth session (3 May-4 June and 5 July-6 August 2004), U.N.
Doc. A/59/10 304 (2004) (In introducing the part of the study concerning the function and scope of the lex
specialis rule, the Chairman stressed several points. First, he emphasized that recourse to the lex specialis rule was
an aspect of legal reasoning that was closely linked to the idea of international law as a legal system. The lex
specialis maxim sought to harmonize conflicting standards through interpretation or establishment of definite
relationships of priority between them. In fact, he said, it was often difficult to distinguish between these two
aspects of the functioning of the technique: the interpretation of a special law in the light of general law, and the
setting aside of the general law in view of the existence of a conflicting specific rule. The adoption of a systemic
view was important precisely in order to avoid thinking of lex specialis in an overly formal or rigid manner. Its
operation was always conditioned by its legal-systemic environment.).
13
Observations of the United States of America on the Human Rights Committees Draft General Comment 35:
Article 9, June 10, 2014, 20 (While the United States acknowledges that difficult questions arise regarding the
applicability of international human rights law in situations of armed conflict, the draft does not accord sufficient
weight to the well-established principle that international humanitarian law, as the lex specialis of armed conflict, is
the controlling body of law with regard to the conduct of hostilities and the protection of war victims.).
14
Colleanu v. German State, German-Rumanian Mixed Arbitral Tribunal, Jan. 12, 1929, reprinted in H.
LAUTERPACHT, V INTERNATIONAL LAW REPORTS 438 (1929). See also GROTIUS, LAW OF WAR & PEACE 428
(2.16.29.1) ([A]mong agreements which are equal in respect to the qualities mentioned, that should be given
preference which is most specific and approaches most nearly to the subject at hand; for special provisions are
ordinarily more effective than those that are general).
15
U.N. International Law Commission, Conclusions of the work of the Study Group on the Fragmentation of
International Law: Difficulties arising from the Diversification and Expansion of International Law 2(7) (2006)
(Rationale of the principle. That special law has priority over general law is justified by the fact that such special
law, being more concrete, often takes better account of the particular features of the context in which it is to be
applied than any applicable general law. Its application may also often create a more equitable result and it may
often better reflect the intent of the legal subjects.).
16
Refer to 2.2.2 (Military Necessity and Law of War Rules).
9
considered peacetime rules appropriate to apply during armed conflict, and in certain of these
cases, they have explicitly incorporated such concepts into the law of war. 17
Thus, traditionally, the law of war has been described as the only authoritative rules of
action between hostile armies, or as superseding ordinary law in the actual theater of military
operations. 18 Similarly, law of war treaties have been viewed as a clear example of a lex
specialis in relation to treaties providing peacetime norms concerning the same subjects. 19
1.3.2.2 Construing Other Laws to Avoid Conflict With the Law of War. Potential
conflicts between the law of war and other law may be resolved by construing such other law to
avoid conflict with law of war rules.
Underlying this approach is the fact that the law of war is firmly established in customary
international law as a well-developed body of law that is separate from the principles of law
generally applicable in peace. 20 Lawmakers have been understood not to amend that well-
developed body of law, absent affirmative evidence of an intention to do so. 21 In a similar
17
Refer to 1.3.2.4 (Explicit Incorporation of Concepts From Other Bodies of Law Into the Law of War).
18
See LIEBER CODE art. 40 (There exists no law or body of authoritative rules of action between hostile armies,
except that branch of the law of nature and nations which is called the law and usages of war on land.). See also
WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW & PRECEDENTS 773-74 (By the term LAW OF WAR is intended that branch of
International Law which prescribes the rights and obligations of belligerents, ormore broadlythose principles
and usages which, in time of war, define the status and relations not only of enemieswhether or not in armsbut
also of persons under military government or martial law and persons simply resident or being upon the theatre of
war, and which authorizes their trial and punishment when offenders. Unlike Military Law Proper, the Law of War
in this country is not a formal written code, but consists mainly of general rules derived from International Law,
supplemented by acts and orders of the military power and a few legislative provisions. In general it is quite
independent of the ordinary law. On the actual theatre of military operations, as is remarked by a learned judge,
the ordinary laws of the land are superseded by the laws of war. The jurisdiction of the civil magistrate is there
suspended, and military authority and force are substituted. Finding indeed its original authority in the war powers
of Congress and the Executive, and thus constitutional in its source, the Law of War may, in its exercise,
substantially supersede for the time even the Constitution itself as will be hereinafter indicated.).
19
C. Wilfred Jenks, The Conflict of Law-Making Treaties, 30 BRITISH YEARBOOK OF INTERNATIONAL LAW 401, 446
(1953) (A clear illustration of [the lex specialis principles] applicability is afforded by instruments relating to the
laws of war which, in the absence of evidence of a contrary intention or other special circumstances, must clearly be
regarded as a leges speciales in relation to instruments laying down peace-time norms concerning the same
subjects.).
20
Edwin D. Williamson, Agent of the United States of America, Preliminary Objections Submitted by the United
States of America, Case Concerning the Aerial Incident of 3 July 1988, I.C.J. (Iran v. United States), 200-01 (Mar. 4,
1991) (The laws of armed conflict are firmly established in customary international law as a well-developed body
of law separate from the principles of law generally applicable in times of peace.).
21
See, e.g., Case Concerning Oil Platforms (Iran v. United States), Preliminary Objection, Judgment,1996 I.C.J.
874, 876 (Dissenting Opinion of Vice-President Schwebel) (It is plain that this is a Treaty which is essentially
concerned with encouraging mutually beneficial trade and investments and closer economic intercourse on the basis
of reciprocal equality of treatment. There is no suggestion of regulating the use of armed force by one party against
the other. None of these core provisions of the Treaty suggests that attacks by armed forces of one party against
what it treats as military objectives within the jurisdiction of the other party are within the reach of the Treaty. It is
significant as well that the Treaty contains none of the treaty provisions which typically do bear on the international
use of force.); Written Statement of the Government of the United States of America, 34, Jun. 20, 1995, I.C.J.,
Request by the United Nations General Assembly for an Advisory Opinion on the Legality of the Threat or Use of
Nuclear Weapons (No international environmental instrument is expressly applicable in armed conflict. No such
10
fashion, for comparison, the GC deliberately excludes from its application the nationals of
certain States in order to avoid creating complications or inconsistencies in procedures should
both the GC and the law applicable to normal diplomatic representation apply. 22
In some cases, treaties explicitly clarify that they do not affect States rights under the
law of war. 23 For example, the 1944 Chicago Convention on civil aviation explicitly provides
that it does not affect the freedom of action of States during armed conflict. 24 However, even
when not explicitly stated, infringements on the law of war through international agreements that
primarily address situations other than armed conflict are not to be presumed. 25 For example, the
LOS Convention has been interpreted not to impair a States rights during armed conflict, even
though this principle is not explicitly stated in the treaty. 26 In addition, the International
Convention for the Suppression of the Financing of Terrorism has been understood not to
preclude any State Party to the Convention from conducting any legitimate activity against any
lawful target in accordance with the law of armed conflict. 27
instrument expressly prohibits or regulates the use of nuclear weapons. Consequently, such an international
environmental instrument could be applicable only by inference. Such an inference is not warranted because none
of these instruments was negotiated with the intention that it would be applicable in armed conflict or to any use of
nuclear weapons. Further, such an implication is not warranted by the textual interpretation of these instruments.);
Edwin D. Williamson, Agent of the United States of America, Preliminary Objections Submitted by the United
States of America, Case Concerning the Aerial Incident of 3 July 1988, I.C.J. (Iran v. United States), 207 (Mar. 4,
1991) (When, 14 years later, the ICAO Assembly drafted Article 3 bis of the Chicago Convention, discussed
above, it was careful to include in the Article a statement that it should not be interpreted as modifying in any way
the rights and obligations of States set forth in the Charter of the United Nations; which included the inherent right
of self-defense. The participants at the Montreal conference would have included a similar provision if they had
intended the Montreal Convention to modify the laws of armed conflict, and particularly if they had intended to
address actions by military forces in armed conflict. There is no such provision in the Montreal Convention.).
22
Refer to 10.3.3.3 (Nationals of a Neutral State or Co-Belligerent State While Normal Diplomatic Representation
Exists).
23
See, e.g., Convention on the Protection of Submarine Cables, art. 15, Mar. 14, 1884, 24 STAT. 989, 997 (It is
understood that the stipulations of this Convention shall in no wise affect the liberty of action of belligerents.).
24
Refer to 14.1.1.1 (1944 Chicago Convention and Freedom of Action of States During Armed Conflict).
25
Edwin D. Williamson, Agent of the United States of America, Preliminary Objections Submitted by the United
States of America, Case Concerning the Aerial Incident of 3 July 1988, I.C.J., (Iran v. United States) 203 (Mar. 4,
1991) (Infringements on the laws of armed conflict through international agreements primarily addressing
situations other than armed conflict are not to be presumed. There is no indication that the drafters of the Montreal
Convention intended it to apply to military forces acting in armed conflict. If they had so intended, they would have
had to address a myriad of issues relating to acts by military forces.); The S.S. Wimbledon, (United Kingdom,
France, Japan v. Germany), Judgment (MM. Anzilotti and Huber, dissenting), 1923 P.C.I.J. (series A) 1, 35, 36 (3)
(In this respect, it must be remembered that international conventions and more particularly those relating to
commerce and communications are generally concluded having regard to normal peace conditions. If, as the result
of a war, a neutral or belligerent State is faced with the necessity of taking extraordinary measures temporarily
affecting the application of such conventions in order to protect its neutrality or for the purposes of national defence,
it is entitled to do so even if no express reservations are made in the convention. This right possessed by all nations,
which is based on generally accepted usage, cannot lose its raison dtre simply because it may in some cases have
been abused;).
26
Refer to 13.1.1 (The Law of the Sea During Armed Conflict).
27
United States, Statement on Ratification of International Convention for the Suppression of the Financing
Terrorism, Jun. 26, 2002, 2185 UNTS 611, 612 ((1) Exclusion of legitimate activities against lawful targets. The
11
In addition to treaties, domestic statutes have also been construed not to violate
international law, including the law of war, if any other construction remains possible. 28 Certain
domestic statutes have been interpreted not to apply to situations addressed by the law of war
because such intention was not made clear and unequivocal. 29
1.3.2.3 Using the Law of War to Determine the Content of General Standards if
Applied to Armed Conflict. Another way in which the law of war has been applied as lex
specialis is to determine the content of a more general standard with respect to the situation of
armed conflict. For example, the law of war has been used to inform the content of general
authorizations to conduct military operations. 30
United States of America understands that nothing in the Convention precludes any State Party to the Convention
from conducting any legitimate activity against any lawful target in accordance with the law of armed conflict.).
28
The Charming Betsy, 6 U.S. 64, 118 (1804) (Marshall, C.J.) (It has also been observed that an act of Congress
ought never to be construed to violate the law of nations if any other possible construction remains, and
consequently can never be construed to violate neutral rights or to affect neutral commerce further than is warranted
by the law of nations as understood in this country. These principles are believed to be correct, and they ought to be
kept in view in construing the act now under consideration.).
29
See, e.g., Walter Dellinger, Assistant Attorney General, United States Assistance to Countries that Shoot Down
Civil Aircraft Involved in Drug Trafficking, Jul. 14, 1994, 18 OPINIONS OF THE OFFICE OF LEGAL COUNSEL 148, 163-
64 (Specifically, we believe that the section would not apply to the actions of United States military forces acting
on behalf of the United States during a state of hostilities. As discussed above, 32(b)(2) was intended to
implement the United Statess obligations under the Montreal Convention. That Convention does not appear to
apply to acts of armed forces that are otherwise governed by the laws of armed conflict. We do not think that
32(b)(2) should be construed to have the surprising and almost certainly unintended effect of criminalizing actions
by military personnel that are lawful under international law and the laws of armed conflict. We note specifically
that the application of 32(b)(2) to acts of United States military personnel in a state of hostilities could readily lead
to absurdities: for example, it could mean in some circumstances that military personnel would not be able to
engage in reasonable self-defense without subjecting themselves to the risk of criminal prosecution. Unless
Congress by a clear and unequivocal statement declares otherwise, 32(b)(2) should be construed to avoid such
outcomes. Thus, we do not think the statute, as written, should apply to such incidents as the downing on July 3,
1988 of Iran Air Flight 655 by the United States Navy cruiser Vincennes.); France Biddle, Attorney General,
Procurements by Commanding Generals in Foreign Theaters of Operations, Nov. 12, 1942, 40 OPINIONS OF THE
ATTORNEY GENERAL 250, 253 (1949) (The statutes in question do not expressly declare that their provisions are
inapplicable to foreign theaters of operations. But there are conclusive reasons for inferring that the Congress did
not intend them to apply to such theaters. The Supreme Court has long recognized that the power to conduct
military campaigns includes power to procure needed supplies in theaters of operations by whatever methods are
dictated by military necessity. Property may be taken summarily, even from a citizen, if military exigencies make
its seizure reasonably appear to be necessary. It is unthinkable that the Congress attempted, by statutory restrictions,
to abrogate this rule of military necessity, to handicap commanding generals waging war on foreign soil, to limit or
encroach upon the power of the President as Commander in Chief to conduct, through his subordinates, military
campaigns abroad.) (internal citations omitted).
30
Hamdi v. Rumsfeld, 542 U.S. 507, 519 (2004) (plurality) (In light of these principles, it is of no moment that the
AUMF does not use specific language of detention. Because detention to prevent a combatants return to the
battlefield is a fundamental incident of waging war, in permitting the use of necessary and appropriate force,
Congress has clearly and unmistakably authorized detention in the narrow circumstances considered here.). See
also In re Guantanamo Bay Litigation, Respondents Memorandum Regarding the Governments Detention
Authority Relative to Detainees Held at Guantanamo Bay, Misc. No. 08-442, 4 (D.D.C., Mar. 13, 2009) (The
United States bases its detention authority as to such persons on the Authorization for the Use of Military Force
(AUMF), Pub. L. 107-40, 115 Stat. 224 (2001). The detention authority conferred by the AUMF is necessarily
informed by principles of the laws of war.).
12
As another example, to the extent that the concept of due regard for the safety of civil
aircraft may be deemed to apply during armed conflict, what regard is due would be understood
in terms of the requirements of the law of war. 31 Similarly, to the extent that the concept of due
regard for the rights of other States under the law of the sea may be deemed to apply during
armed conflict, what regard is due would be understood in terms of the requirements of the law
of war. 32
Lastly, even where international courts or commissions have characterized human rights
obligations as applicable during armed conflict, they generally have characterized the content of
those obligations as determined by standards and tests drawn from the law of war. 33
1.3.2.4 Explicit Incorporation of Concepts From Other Bodies of Law Into the
Law of War. In some cases, law of war treaties explicitly incorporate concepts from other bodies
of law. For example, the peacetime property law concept of usufruct is made applicable to the
duties of the Occupying States. 34 Similarly, the GC explicitly applies a peacetime rule with
respect to the nationals of the Occupying Power who, before the outbreak of hostilities, have
sought refuge in the occupied territory. 35 And as another example, Common Article 3 of the
1949 Geneva Conventions incorporates by reference those judicial guarantees that are
recognized as indispensable by civilized peoples. 36
1.3.3 Restrictive and Permissive Character of the Law of War. In certain respects, the law
of war may be viewed as prohibitive; in other respects, the law of war may be viewed as
permissive. 37
1.3.3.1 Law of War as Prohibitive Law. The law of war that relates to the conduct
of hostilities has generally been viewed as prohibitive law, in the sense that it forbids rather
than authorizes certain uses of force. 38 For example, the lawfulness of the use of a type of
31
Refer to 14.1.1.4 (Due Regard for the Safety of Navigation of Civil Aircraft).
32
Refer to 13.1.1 (The Law of the Sea During Armed Conflict).
33
Refer to 1.6.3.1 (Relationship Between Human Rights Treaties and the Law of War).
34
Refer to 11.18.5.2 (Public Real (Immovable) Property That Is Essentially of a Non-Military Nature).
35
Refer to 11.11.7.2 (Protection of Nationals of the Occupying Power Who, Before the Outbreak of Hostilities,
Have Sought Refuge in the Territory of the Occupied State).
36
Refer to 8.16 (Criminal Procedure and Punishment).
37
VON GLAHN, THE OCCUPATION OF ENEMY TERRITORY 5 (Throughout the pages of this study a basic fact will
appear repeatedly: the laws of war, including the rules applicable to belligerent occupation, are in part permissive
and in part prohibitivea fact that has been overlooked frequently in treatments of the subject.).
38
See Richard R. Baxter, So-Called Unprivileged Belligerency: Spies, Guerillas, and Saboteurs, 28 BRITISH YEAR
BOOK OF INTERNATIONAL LAW 323, 324 (1951) (The law of war is, in the descriptive words of a war crimes
tribunal, prohibitive law in the sense that it forbids rather than authorizes certain manifestations of force.)
(quoting United States v. List, et al. (The Hostage Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 1252);
Gherebi v. Obama, 609 F. Supp. 2d 43, 65 (D.D.C. 2009) (rejecting as exactly backwards the notion that the
Geneva Conventions must specifically enable its signatories to act in a specific manner for a signatory to have the
authority necessary to take such action.); JOHN WESTLAKE, II INTERNATIONAL LAW 52 (1907) (These rules are
always restrictive, never permissive in any other sense than that of the absence of prohibition, for law can give no
positive sanction to any act of force of which it cannot secure the employment on the side of justice alone, even if
13
weapon does not depend on an absence of authorization, but, on the contrary, on whether the
weapon is prohibited. 39
One rationale for this view is that the rules binding upon States in treaties and customary
law reflect restrictions that they have accepted, and that States are otherwise independent entities
with freedom to act. 40 Thus, the authority to take actions under the law of war would be viewed
as emanating from the States rights as a sovereign entity rather than from any particular
instrument of international law.
The prohibitive character of the law of war that relates to the conduct of hostilities is also
consistent with the view that jus in bello applies to aggressors and defenders alike. The fact that
an aggressor complies with jus in bello does not justify the legality of its military operations
under jus ad bellum. 41
The lack of an express prohibition in treaty law, however, does not necessarily mean that
an action is lawful under jus in bello. When no specific rule applies, the principles of the law of
war form the general guide for conduct during war. 42
1.3.3.2 Law of War as Permissive Law. Although the law of war is generally
viewed as prohibitive law, in some respects, especially in the context of domestic law, the law
of war may be viewed as permissive or even as a source of authority. 43
For example, the principle of military necessity in the customary law of war may be
viewed as justifying or permitting certain acts. 44 Similarly, under the law of belligerent
the particular act be not one which the law would prohibit both to the just and to the unjust if it could. Whenever
therefore in speaking of the laws of war it is said that a belligerent may do this or that, it is always only the absence
of prohibition that must be understood.).
39
Refer to 6.2.1 (Review of New Types of Weapons).
40
The S.S. Lotus, (France v. Turkey) (Judgment), 1927 P.C.I.J. (series A) No. 10, at 18 (International law governs
relations between independent States. The rules of law binding upon States therefore emanate from their own free
will as expressed in conventions or by usages generally accepted as expressing principles of law and established in
order to regulate the relations between these co-existing independent communities or with a view to the achievement
of common aims. Restrictions upon the independence of States cannot therefore be presumed.).
41
Refer to 3.5.2 (Jus in Bello and Jus ad Bellum Generally Operate Independently of One Another).
42
Refer to 2.1.2.2 (Law of War Principles as a General Guide).
43
See, e.g., Eric Holder, Attorney General, Remarks at Northwestern University School of Law, Mar. 5, 2012, 2012
DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 577, 581 (It is preferable to capture suspected
terrorists where feasibleamong other reasons, so that we can gather valuable intelligence from thembut we must
also recognize that there are instances where our government has the clear authorityand, I would argue, the
responsibilityto defend the United States through the appropriate and lawful use of lethal force. This principle has
long been established under both U.S. and international law. In response to the attacks perpetratedand the
continuing threat posedby al Qaeda, the Taliban, and associated forces, Congress has authorized the President to
use all necessary and appropriate force against those groups. Because the United States is in an armed conflict, we
are authorized to take action against enemy belligerents under international law. The Constitution empowers the
President to protect the nation from any imminent threat of violent attack. And international law recognizes the
inherent right of national self-defense. None of this is changed by the fact that we are not in a conventional war.).
44
Refer to 2.2.1 (Military Necessity as a Justification).
14
occupation, the fact of occupation is the basis for the Occupying Power to exercise authority over
the occupied territory. 45 In addition, law of war treaties also sometimes recognize States
authorities in war. 46
1.3.4 Purposes of the Law of War. The main purposes of the law of war are:
providing certain fundamental protections for persons who fall into the hands of the
enemy, particularly prisoners of war, civilians, and military wounded, sick, and
shipwrecked; 48
assisting military commanders in ensuring the disciplined and efficient use of military
force; 50 and
Understanding the object and nature of war is important in understanding and applying
the law of war. 52
45
Refer to 11.2.1 (Military Occupation as a Fact).
46
See, e.g., GPW art. 21 (recognizing that [t]he Detaining Power may subject prisoners of war to internment.);
HAGUE IV REG. art. 24 (recognizing that [r]uses of war and the employment of measures necessary for obtaining
information about the enemy and the country are considered permissible.).
47
Refer to 2.3 (Humanity).
48
Refer to 7.5 (Humane Treatment and Care of Enemy Military Wounded, Sick, and Shipwrecked in the Power of
a Party to the Conflict); 8.2 (Humane Treatment of Detainees); 9.5 (Humane Treatment and Basic Protections
for POWs); 10.5 (Humane Treatment and Other Basic Protections for Protected Persons).
49
Refer to 12.1.2.2 (Non-Hostile Relations to Facilitate the Restoration of Peace).
50
Refer to 18.2.1 (Reinforcing Military Effectiveness).
51
Refer to 2.6 (Honor).
52
DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY PAMPHLET 27-161-2, II International Law, 1 (Oct. 23, 1962) (An understanding of
the laws of war necessitates an understanding of war itself. It is the phenomenon of war which these laws are
attempting in some manner to control.). See also Adam Roberts, Land Warfare: From Hague to Nuremberg, in
MICHAEL HOWARD, GEORGE J. ANDREOPOULOUS, & MARK A. SHULMAN, THE LAWS OF WAR: CONSTRAINTS ON
WARFARE IN THE WESTERN WORLD 117 (1994) (The laws of war are strange not only in their subject matter, which
to many people seems a contradiction in terms, but also in their methodology. There is little tradition of disciplined
and reasoned assessment of how the laws of war have operated in practice. Lawyers, academics, and diplomats have
often been better at interpreting the precise legal meaning of existing accords, or at devising new law, than they have
been at assessing the performance of existing accords or at generalizing about the circumstances in which they can
or cannot work. In short, the study of law needs to be integrated with the study of history; if not, it is inadequate.).
15
1.4.1 Object of War. The object of war has been understood to be the submission of the
enemy as quickly and efficiently as possible. 53 The military defeat of the enemy in war is
intended to advance political objectives. 54 Even where those political objectives are limited, the
object of war is nonetheless to ensure the submission of the enemy as quickly and efficiently as
possible. 55
The object of war informs the principle of military necessity and what uses of force may
be justified in war. 56 Nevertheless, the law of war limits what uses of force the object of war
may justify. 57
1.4.2.1 Nature of War Violence and Suffering. War has been described as a
violent clash of interests characterized by the use of force. 58 The fact that violence is an essential
53
See 1940 RULES OF LAND WARFARE 22 (The object of war is to bring about the complete submission of the
enemy as soon as possible by means of regulated violence.); 1914 RULES OF LAND WARFARE 10 (same).
54
George H. Aldrich, Deputy Legal Adviser, Department of State, Human Rights in Armed Conflict: Development
of the Law, Apr. 13, 1973, 68 DEPARTMENT OF STATE BULLETIN, 876, 880 (Jun. 18, 1973) (What we have seen is
all too clearly a general acceptance of the view that modern war is aimed not merely at the enemys military forces
but at the enemys willingness and ability to pursue its war aims. Thus, in the Second World War the enemys will
to fight and his capacity to produce weapons were primary targets; and saturation bombing, blockade of food
supplies, and indiscriminate terror weapons such as the German V bombs, were all brought to bear on those targets.
In Viet-Nam political, rather than military, objectives were even more dominant. Both sides had as their goal not
the destruction of the others military forces but the destruction of the will to continue the struggle.); United States
v. von Leeb, et al. (The High Command Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 485 (War is the
exerting of violence by one state or politically organized body against another. In other words, it is the
implementation of a political policy by means of violence.); CARL VON CLAUSEWITZ, ON WAR 87 (1989) (We see,
therefore, that war is not merely an act of policy but a true political instrument, a continuation of political
intercourse, carried on with other means. What remains peculiar to war is simply the peculiar nature of its means.
War in general, and the commander in any specific instance, is entitled to require that the trend and designs of policy
shall not be inconsistent with these means. That, of course, is no small demand; but however much it may affect
political aims in a given case, it will never do more than modify them. The political object is the goal, war is the
means of reaching it, and means can never be considered in isolation from their purpose.).
55
For example, General Colin L. Powell, Chairman of the Joint Chiefs of Staff, U.S. Forces: Challenges Ahead, 71
FOREIGN AFFAIRS 32, 37 (1992) (explaining that despite the limited political objectives of the 1991 Gulf War, the
United States did use overwhelming force quickly and decisively.).
56
Refer to 2.2.1 (Military Necessity as a Justification); 2.2.3.1 (Consideration of the Broader Imperatives of
Winning the War).
57
Refer to 2.2.2 (Military Necessity and Law of War Rules).
58
DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY FIELD MANUAL 3-24, Counterinsurgency, 1-1 (1-1) (Dec. 2006) (Insurgency and
counterinsurgency (COIN) are complex subsets of warfare. Globalization, technological advancement, urbanization,
and extremists who conduct suicide attacks for their cause have certainly influenced contemporary conflict;
however, warfare in the 21st century retains many of the characteristics it has exhibited since ancient times.
Warfare remains a violent clash of interests between organized groups characterized by the use of force. Achieving
victory still depends on a groups ability to mobilize support for its political interests (often religiously or ethnically
based) and to generate enough violence to achieve political consequences. Means to achieve these goals are not
limited to conventional forces employed by nation-states.); MARINE CORPS DOCTRINAL PUBLICATION 1,
Warfighting, 3 (Jun. 20, 1997) (explaining that war is a violent clash of interests between or among organized
groups characterized by the use of military force.).
16
element of war has been viewed as important in understanding the nature of war. 59 The violent
nature of war has also meant that suffering has been an unfortunate and tragic, but unavoidable
consequence of war. 60
Law of war treaties such as the Hague and Geneva Conventions have been negotiated
with the understanding that suffering and destruction are unavoidably part of war. 61 But these
treaties and the principle of humanity seek to reduce unnecessary suffering and destruction. 62
The limited and unreliable nature of information available during war has influenced the
development of the law of war. For example, it affects how the principle of military necessity is
59
MARINE CORPS DOCTRINAL PUBLICATION 1, Warfighting, 14 (Jun. 20, 1997) (War is among the greatest horrors
known to humanity; it should never be romanticized. The means of war is force, applied in the form of organized
violence. It is through the use of violence, or a credible threat of violence, that we compel our enemy to do our will.
Violence is an essential element of war, and its immediate result is bloodshed, destruction, and suffering. While the
magnitude of violence may vary with the object and means of war, the violent essence of war will never change.
Any study of war that neglects this basic truth is misleading and incomplete.).
60
For example, Friedrich II, Letter to Lord Marischal, Nov. 23, 1758 reprinted in THOMAS CARLYLE, V HISTORY OF
FRIEDERICH II OF PRUSSIA: CALLED FREDERICK THE GREAT 386 (1865) (Our Campaign is over; and there has
nothing come of it on one side or the other, but the loss of a great many worthy people, the misery of a great many
poor soldiers crippled forever, the ruin of some Provinces, the ravage, pillage and conflagration of some flourishing
Towns. Exploits these, which make humanity shudder: .).
61
Edward R. Cummings, Acting Assistant Legal Adviser for Politico-Military Affairs, Remarks at Symposium at
Brooklyn Law School, Sept. 25, 1982, III CUMULATIVE DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL
LAW 1981-88 3421, 3422 (The Conventions referred to today, such as the Hague and Geneva Conventions, are
important ones and are strongly supported by the United States. They have helped reduce the suffering caused by
wars. But one should not ask the impossible of these agreements. They were not intended to make war humane or
to ban war, or to make wars more difficult to fight. They were modestly intended to reduce the inhumanity and
barbarity of war when militarily possible. Anyone who has read the negotiating records of these old agreements will
note that they were largely negotiated by the military. In fact, the first agreement of this kind, the St. Petersburg
Declaration, was agreed to by a military commission. Unrealistic provisions which just would not be accepted or
respected in battle were not favored.).
62
Refer to 2.3 (Humanity).
63
See, e.g., United States v. List, et al. (The Hostage Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 1297
(The course of a military operation by the enemy is loaded with uncertainties, such as the numerical strength of the
enemy, the quality of his equipment, his fighting spirit, the efficiency and daring of his commanders, and the
uncertainty of his intentions.); CARL VON CLAUSEWITZ, ON WAR 140 (1989) (the general unreliability of all
information presents a special problem in war: all action takes place so to speak, in a kind of twilight, which like
fog or moonlight, often tends to make things grotesque and larger than they really are.).
64
Refer to 5.25 (Ruses of War and Other Lawful Deceptions).
17
applied. 65 The limited and unreliable nature of information available during war also is
recognized in the law of wars standards for how persons are to assess information. 66
War is sometimes used as a legal concept, i.e., the application or operation of a legal
rule may depend on the existence of a war, armed conflict, or hostilities. As a legal
concept, war has traditionally been viewed as a condition in which a State is prosecuting its
rights by military force, usually against another State. However, the precise definition of war
often depends on the specific legal context in which it is used.
As a legal concept, war has usually been described as a condition or state that applies
more broadly than only the mere employment of force or the mere commission of acts of
violence. 68
When treated as a legal concept, war has been associated with a States use of force to
vindicate its rights (principally, its inherent right of self-defense) under international law. 69
65
Refer to 2.2.3 (Applying Military Necessity).
66
Refer to 5.4 (Assessing Information Under the Law of War).
67
See, e.g., Arnold D. McNair, The Legal Meaning of War, and the Relation of War to Reprisals, 11 TRANSACTIONS
OF THE GROTIUS SOCIETY 29, 30 (1925) (There exist many treaties and other international conventions under which
important obligations arise upon the occurrence of a state of war, and as regards which, therefore, either because
the term war or some other term connoting war, such as neutrality, is used, it becomes essential to know whether
or not a state of war exists at a given point of time. Thus most of the Hague Conventions only come into operation
once a state of war has arisenfor instance, those relating to the Laws and Customs of War on Land, to the Rights
and Duties of Neutrals in Land and Maritime War respectively, to the Bombardment of Ports, Towns and Villages
by Naval Forces, and to the Status of Enemy Merchant Ships at the Outbreak of Hostilities.).
68
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 8 (While it is usually accompanied by the commission of acts of violence,
a state of war may exist prior to or subsequent to the use of force.); VII MOORES DIGEST 153 (Much confusion
may be avoided by bearing in mind the fact that by the term war is meant not the mere employment of force, but the
existence of the legal condition of things in which rights are or may be prosecuted by force.); GROTIUS, LAW OF
WAR & PEACE 33 (1.1.2.1) (war is the condition of those contending by force).
69
SPAIGHT, AIR POWER AND WAR RIGHTS 2 (War, after all, is only a means to an end. It is a way of settling an
international difference which diplomacy has failed to adjust and which is not susceptible of treatment by the other
means of pacific settlement, such as inquiry commissions, arbitration, or submission to the Permanent Court of The
Hague. When all else fails, there is no way in which a nation can assert its rights save by going to war. War is the
means by which it vindicates a vital right threatened or infringed by the claim or act of another State. Its object is to
cause the other State to desist from the action or abandon the claim which is the cause of offence. In other words, a
war is fought in order to bring about a change of mind in another State.); The Prize Cases, 67 U.S. 635, 666 (1863)
(War has been well defined to be, That state in which a nation prosecutes its right by force.) (quoting EMERICH
DE VATTEL, DROIT DE GENS (LAW OF NATIONS) (1760)); LIEBER CODE art. 30 (Ever since the formation and
coexistence of modern nations, and ever since wars have become great national wars, war has come to be
acknowledged not to be its own end, but the means to obtain great ends of state, or to consist in defense against
18
Traditionally, war has often been described as a legal condition between two or more
70
States. However, certain law of war rules apply to non-international armed conflicts (such as
intrastate conflicts or conflicts between a State and a non-State armed group). 71
1.5.2 Different Definitions of War for Different Legal Purposes. There is no single
legal definition of war, hostilities, or armed conflict, and the definition of these terms has
varied in both domestic and international law.
In domestic law, war, hostilities, and armed conflict have been interpreted
differently depending on the specific legal context at issue. 72 For example, under the
Constitution, Congress has the power to declare war. 73 Thus, war might be interpreted to
determine whether a military operation constitutes war in this sense. 74 Similarly, the War
Powers Resolution states certain requirements that are triggered when U.S. forces are introduced
wrong; and no conventional restriction of the modes adopted to injure the enemy is any longer admitted; but the law
of war imposes many limitations and restrictions on principles of justice, faith, and honor.).
70
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 8a (War may be defined as a legal condition of armed hostility between
States. While it is usually accompanied by the commission of acts of violence, a state of war may exist prior to or
subsequent to the use of force. The outbreak of war is usually accompanied by a declaration of war (see par. 20).
Instances of armed conflict without declaration of war may include, but are not necessarily limited to, the exercise of
armed force pursuant to a recommendation, decision, or call by the United Nations, in the exercise of the inherent
right of individual or collective self-defense against armed attack, or in the performance of enforcement measures
through a regional arrangement, or otherwise, in conformity with appropriate provisions of the United Nations
Charter.); LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 202 (54) (War is a contention between two or
more States through their armed forces, for the purpose of overpowering each other and imposing such conditions of
peace as the victor pleases.); LIEBER CODE art. 20 (Public war is a state of armed hostility between sovereign
nations or governments. It is a law and requisite of civilized existence that men live in political, continuous
societies, forming organized units, called states or nations, whose constituents bear, enjoy, and suffer, advance and
retrograde together, in peace and in war.).
71
Refer to 3.3.1 (International Armed Conflict and Non-International Armed Conflict).
72
See, e.g., Fred K. Green, The Concept of War and the Concept of Combatant in Modern Conflicts, 10
MILITARY LAW AND LAW OF WAR REVIEW 267, 269 (1971) ([I]n US municipal law, the existence of war and its
beginning and termination is a question of objective fact determined for different purposes by different agencies of
the sovereign. There has been no apparent effort to coordinate federal law so as to permit establishment of fixed
criteria that would be identified and applicable for all purposes. The tremendous variations in result that this
situation produces renders meaningless any attempt to generalize with respect to established criteria.).
73
U.S. CONSTITUTION art. I, 8.
74
Caroline D. Krass, Principal Deputy Assistant Attorney General, Authority to use Military Force in Libya, 8 (Apr.
1, 2011) ([T]he historical practice of presidential military action without congressional approval precludes any
suggestion that Congresss authority to declare war covers every military engagement, however limited, that the
President initiates. In our view, determining whether a particular planned engagement constitutes a war for
constitutional purposes instead requires a fact-specific assessment of the anticipated nature, scope, and duration of
the planned military operations. Haiti Deployment, 18 Op. O.L.C. at 179.).
19
into hostilities. 75 Other statutes may require a determination that conduct has occurred
[w]hen the United States is at war or during time of war. 76
Under international law, war, hostilities, and armed conflict may also be
interpreted with different purposes in mind. 77 A state of war can affect what duties States that
are not participating in the conflict have under the law of neutrality. 78 A state of war can affect
whether peacetime treaties between two States continue to apply. Most importantly for the
purposes of this manual, the terms war and armed conflict are used to describe when jus in
bello rules apply. 79
The law of war may be distinguished from the following topics: (1) operational law; (2)
arms control; (3) human rights treaties; (4) the Just War Tradition; (5) rules of engagement; and
(6) the Code of Conduct for U.S. Armed Forces.
1.6.1 Operational Law. The law of war is an important part of, but not the entirety of,
operational law. Operational law consists of that body of domestic, foreign, and international
law that specifically pertains to the activities of military forces across the entire conflict
spectrum. Operational law includes diverse legal disciplines, such as military justice,
administrative and civil law, legal assistance, claims, procurement law, national security law,
fiscal law, and the law of war. 80
75
See 50 U.S.C. 1543(a)(1) (In the absence of a declaration of war, in any case in which United States Armed
Forces are introduced (1) into hostilities or into situations where imminent involvement in hostilities is clearly
indicated by the circumstances; the President shall submit within 48 hours to the Speaker of the House of
Representatives and to the President pro tempore of the Senate a report, in writing, setting forth .).
76
See, e.g., 10 U.S.C. 843(f) (When the United States is at war, the running of any statute of limitations
applicable to [certain offenses] is suspended until three years after the termination of hostilities as proclaimed by
the President or by a joint resolution of Congress.); 10 U.S.C. 906 (Any person who in time of war is found
lurking as a spy or acting as a spy in or about any place, vessel, or aircraft, within the control or jurisdiction of any
of the armed forces, or in or about any shipyard, any manufacturing or industrial plant, or any other place or
institution engaged in work in aid of the prosecution of the war by the United States, or elsewhere, shall be tried by a
general court-martial or by a military commission and on conviction shall be punished by death. This section does
not apply to a military commission established under chapter 47A of this title.).
77
JULIUS STONE, LEGAL CONTROLS OF INTERNATIONAL CONFLICT 312 (1954) ([T]he question War or No War?
may have to be answered differently according to the purposes for which an answer is sought. One answer, for
example, may be indicated for the purposes of the rules for the mitigation of suffering; another for those governing
war supplies to belligerents from neutral governments, or governing blockade or contraband.).
78
Refer to 15.2.1 (Armed Conflict and the Application of the Law of Neutrality).
79
Refer to 3.4 (When Jus in Bello Rules Apply).
80
THE JUDGE ADVOCATE GENERALS SCHOOL, U.S. ARMY, OPERATIONAL LAW HANDBOOK JA 422 1-1 (1997)
([Operational law is] [t]hat body of domestic, foreign, and international law that impacts specifically upon the
activities of U.S. Forces across the entire operational spectrum. Operational law is the essence of the military legal
practice. It is a collection of diverse legal and military skills, focused on military operations. It includes military
justice, administrative and civil law, legal assistance, claims, procurement law, environmental law, national security
law, fiscal law, international law, host nations law, and the law of war. In short, operational law is a unique blend of
20
1.6.2 Arms Control. Arms control is a broad term that includes a variety of efforts to
reduce the numbers, types, performance characteristics, proliferation, testing, or other aspects of
certain categories of weapons. Arms control usually proceeds through bilateral or multilateral
treaties. Arms control can also include non-binding political commitments, as well as reciprocal
unilateral statements of intention or policy. The overall goals of arms control are to reduce: (1)
the likelihood of war; (2) the consequences of war, should it occur; and (3) the costs of preparing
for war.
Arms control is closely related to other concepts. For example, non-proliferation refers
specifically to efforts to restrict the spread of weapons (in particular, weapons of mass
destruction). Disarmament refers to efforts to eliminate entirely, rather than to restrict, a
particular category of weapon. And sometimes States accept confidence-building measures (or
confidence, security, and transparency-building measures) that do not directly reduce the
quantity or quality of armaments, but rather increase States certainty that ambiguous activities
by other States are not secret actions in violation of arms control obligations.
Arms control and the law of war frequently overlap in treaties. For example, the CCW
Protocol IV on Blinding Laser Weapons has both arms control and law of war provisions. 81
Similarly, the Chemical Weapons Convention prohibits, inter alia, the development and
stockpiling of chemical weapons, but it is also directly relevant to the law of war because it
prohibits the use of chemical weapons in all circumstances. 82
1.6.3 Human Rights Treaties. 83 Human rights treaties address primarily the obligations
of governments with respect to the rights of individuals, including their own nationals. 84 For
every source of law that has application within the operational context. Because the definition of operational law
is so broad, ample statutory and regulatory references serve to establish the substance of the practice.).
81
Refer to 19.21.5 (CCW Protocol IV on Blinding Laser Weapons).
82
Refer to 6.8.3.2 (Prohibitions With Respect to Chemical Weapons).
83
This section focuses on human rights treaties and not other sources of international human rights law. See, e.g.,
Catherine Amirfar, Counselor for International Law, Department of State, Statement at 53rd Session of the U.N.
Committee Against Torture, Nov. 3 28, 2014, Nov. 12, 2014 (For example, the prohibition against torture is
customary international law binding on all nations everywhere, at all times.); U.N. International Law Commission,
State responsibility: Comments and observations received from Governments, U.N. Doc. A/CN.4/488, 133 (Mar.
25, 1998) (United States of America Subparagraph (e) [which would reflect a prohibition against conduct by way
of countermeasures in contravention of a peremptory norm of general international law] similarly does not provide
useful guidance in determining whether a countermeasure would be permissible. Just as there is little agreement
with respect to basic human rights and political and economic coercion, the content of peremptory norms is
difficult to determine outside the areas of genocide, slavery and torture.).
84
See, e.g., Jimmy Carter, United Nations Remarks on Signing International Covenants on Human Rights, 1977-II
PUBLIC PAPERS OF THE PRESIDENTS 1734 (The Covenant on Civil and Political Rights concerns what governments
must not do to their people, and the Covenant on Economic, Social and Cultural Rights concerns what governments
must do for their people. By ratifying the Covenant on Civil and Political Rights, a government pledges, as a matter
of law, to refrain from subjecting its own people to arbitrary imprisonment or execution or to cruel or degrading
treatment. It recognizes the right of every person to freedom of thought, freedom of conscience, freedom of
religion, freedom of opinion, freedom of expression, freedom of association, and the rights of peaceful assembly,
and the right to emigrate from that country.).
21
example, governments must refrain from subjecting individuals to arbitrary detention, to
arbitrary deprivation of life, or to cruel, inhuman, or degrading treatment or punishment. 85
As a general matter, human rights treaties have been described as primarily applicable to
the relationship between a State and individuals in peacetime. 86 Some human rights treaties also
provide for derogation from certain provisions in emergency situations. 87
Law of war treaties have been described as chiefly concerned with the conditions
particular to armed conflict and the relationship between a State and nationals of the enemy
State. 88 Law of war treaties generally do not provide for derogation because necessity is not a
basis for derogating from law of war rules. 89
1.6.3.1 Relationship Between Human Rights Treaties and the Law of War. In
some circumstances, the rules in the law of war and the rules in human rights treaties may appear
to conflict; these apparent conflicts may be resolved by the principle that the law of war is the lex
specialis during situations of armed conflict, and, as such, is the controlling body of law with
regard to the conduct of hostilities and the protection of war victims. 90
85
International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights, art. 9(1), Dec. 19, 1966, 999 UNTS 171, 175 (Everyone has
the right to liberty and security of person. No one shall be subjected to arbitrary arrest or detention. No one shall be
deprived of his liberty except on such grounds and in accordance with such procedure as are established by law.);
International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights, art. 6(1), Dec. 19, 1966, 999 UNTS 171, 174 (Every human
being has the inherent right to life. This right shall be protected by law. No one shall be arbitrarily deprived of his
life.); International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights, art. 7, Dec. 19, 1966, 999 UNTS 171, 175 (No one
shall be subjected to torture or to cruel, inhuman or degrading treatment or punishment. In particular, no one shall
be subjected without his free consent to medical or scientific experimentation.).
86
See, e.g., JEAN PICTET, HUMANITARIAN LAW AND THE PROTECTION OF WAR VICTIMS 15 (1975) (Admittedly,
human rights embody more general principles while the law of armed conflicts is of a specific and exceptional
nature, coming as it does into operation at the very time when the exercise of human rights is prevented or restricted
by war. But the two legal systems are fundamentally different, for humanitarian law is valid only in the case of an
armed conflict while human rights are essentially applicable in peacetime, and contain derogation clauses in case of
conflict. Moreover, human rights govern relations between the State and its own nationals, the law of war those
between the State and enemy nationals.).
87
See, e.g., International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights, art. 4(1), Dec. 19, 1966, 999 UNTS 171, 174 (In
time of public emergency which threatens the life of the nation and the existence of which is officially proclaimed,
the States Parties to the present Covenant may take measures derogating from their obligations under the present
Covenant to the extent strictly required by the exigencies of the situation, provided that such measures are not
inconsistent with their other obligations under international law and do not involve discrimination solely on the
ground of race, colour, sex, language, religion or social origin.).
88
Christopher Greenwood, Historical Development and Legal Basis, in DIETER FLECK, THE HANDBOOK OF
HUMANITARIAN LAW IN ARMED CONFLICTS 9 (102) (1999) (Human rights law is designed to operate primarily in
normal peacetime conditions, and within the framework of the legal relationship between a state and its citizens.
International humanitarian law, by contrast, is chiefly concerned with the abnormal conditions of armed conflict and
the relationship between a state and the citizens of its adversary, a relationship otherwise based upon power rather
than law.).
89
Refer to 2.2.2 (Military Necessity and Law of War Rules).
90
Refer to 1.3.2 (The Law of Wars Relationship to Other Bodies of Law).
22
For example, the right to challenge the lawfulness of an arrest before a court provided in
Article 9 of the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights (ICCPR) would appear to
conflict with the authority under the law of war to detain certain persons without judicial process
or criminal charge. 91 However, the United States has understood Article 9 of the ICCPR not to
affect a States authorities under the law of war, including a States authority in both
international and non-international armed conflicts to detain enemy combatants until the end of
hostilities.92 Some international courts or commissions have interpreted the rights conveyed by
human rights treaties in light of the rules of the law of war, as the applicable lex specialis, when
assessing situations in armed conflict. 93
On the other hand, during armed conflict, human rights treaties would clearly be
controlling with respect to matters that are within their scope of application and that are not
addressed by the law of war. For example, a time of war does not suspend the operation of the
ICCPR with respect to matters within its scope of application. Therefore, as an illustration,
participation in a war would in no way excuse a State Party to the ICCPR from respecting and
91
International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights, art. 9(4), Dec. 19, 1966, 999 UNTS 171, 176 (Anyone who
is deprived of his liberty by arrest or detention shall be entitled to take proceedings before a court, in order that that
court may decide without delay on the lawfulness of his detention and order his release if the detention is not
lawful.).
92
Observations of the United States of America on the Human Rights Committees Draft General Comment 35:
Article 9, 22, Jun. 10, 2014 (Given that international humanitarian law is the controlling body of law in armed
conflict with regard to the conduct of hostilities and the protection of war victims, the United States does not
interpret references to detainees and detention in several paragraphs to refer to government action in the context
of and associated with an armed conflict. For example, paragraph 15 incorrectly implies that the detention of enemy
combatants in the context of a non-international armed conflict would normally amount to arbitrary detention as
other effective measures addressing the threat, including the criminal justice system, would be available. On the
contrary, in both international and non-international armed conflicts, a State may detain enemy combatants
consistent with the law of armed conflict until the end of hostilities. Similarly, to the extent paragraphs 15 and 66
are intended to address law-of-war detention in situations of armed conflict, it would be incorrect to state that there
is a right to take proceedings before a court to enable the court to decide without delay on the lawfulness of
detention in all cases. In addition, to the extent the discussion of an individual right to compensation under Article
9 in paragraphs 49-52 is intended to extend to individuals detained in the context of an armed conflict, as a matter of
international law, the rules governing available remedies for unlawful detention in the context of an armed conflict
would be drawn from international humanitarian law.).
93
Coard, et al. v. United States, Inter-American Commission on Human Rights, Organization of American States,
Case 10.951, Report 109/99, 42 (Sept. 29, 1999) ([I]n a situation of armed conflict, the test for assessing the
observance of a particular right, such as the right to liberty, may, under given circumstances, be distinct from that
applicable in a time of peace. For that reason, the standard to be applied must be deduced by reference to the
applicable lex specialis.); Juan Carlos Abella v. Argentina, Inter-American Commission on Human Rights,
Organization of American States, Case 11.137, OEA/Ser.L/V/II.98, 161 (Nov. 18, 1997) ([T]he Commission must
necessarily look to and apply definitional standards and relevant rules of humanitarian law as sources of
authoritative guidance in its resolution of this and other kinds of claims alleging violations of the American
Convention in combat situations.); Legality of the Threat or Use of Nuclear Weapons, Advisory Opinion, 1996
I.C.J. 226, 240 (25) (In principle, the right not arbitrarily to be deprived of ones life applies also in hostilities.
The test of what is an arbitrary deprivation of life, however, then falls to be determined by the applicable lex
specialis, namely, the law applicable to armed conflict which is designed to regulate the conduct of hostilities.).
23
ensuring the right and opportunity of every citizen to vote and to be elected at genuine periodic
elections. 94
The ICCPR creates obligations for a State with respect to persons within its territory and
subject to its jurisdiction. 96 The United States has long interpreted the ICCPR not to apply
abroad. 97 The inclusion of the reference to within its territory in Article 2(1) of the ICCPR
was adopted as a result of a proposal made by U.S. delegate Eleanor Roosevelt specifically to
94
Fourth Periodic Report of the United States of America to the United Nations Committee on Human Rights
Concerning the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights, Dec. 30, 2011, 506 (With respect to the
application of the Covenant and the international law of armed conflict (also referred to as international
humanitarian law or IHL), the United States has not taken the position that the Covenant does not apply in time of
war. Indeed, a time of war does not suspend the operation of the Covenant to matters within its scope of
application. To cite but two obvious examples from among many, a State Partys participation in a war would in no
way excuse it from respecting and ensuring rights to have or adopt a religion or belief of ones choice or the right
and opportunity of every citizen to vote and to be elected at genuine periodic elections.).
95
Case of Al-Skeini and Others v. The United Kingdom, ECtHR, 55721/07, 149 (Jul. 7, 2011) (It can be seen,
therefore, that following the removal from power of the Baath regime and until the accession of the Interim
Government, the United Kingdom (together with the United States) assumed in Iraq the exercise of some of the
public powers normally to be exercised by a sovereign government. In particular the United Kingdom assumed
authority and responsibility for the maintenance of security in South East Iraq. In these exceptional circumstances
the Court considers that the United Kingdom, through its soldiers engaged in security operations in Basrah during
the period in question, exercised authority and control over individuals killed in the course of such security
operations so as to establish a jurisdictional link between the deceased and the United Kingdom for the purposes of
Article 1 of the (ECHR).).
96
International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights, art. 2(1), Dec. 19, 1966, 999 UNTS 171, 173 (Each State
Party to the present Covenant undertakes to respect and to ensure to all individuals within its territory and subject to
its jurisdiction the rights recognized in the present Covenant, without distinction of any kind, such as race, colour,
sex, language, religion, political or other opinion, national or social origin, property, birth or other status.).
97
See, e.g., U.N. Human Rights Committee, Summary Record of the 1405th Meeting, U.N. Doc. CCPR/C/SR.1405
6-7 (20) (Apr. 24, 1995) (Klein had asked whether the United States took the view that the Covenant did not apply
to government actions outside the United States. The Covenant was not regarded as having extraterritorial
application. In general, where the scope of application of a treaty was not specified, it was presumed to apply only
within a partys territory. Article 2 of the Covenant expressly stated that each State party undertook to respect and
ensure the rights recognized to all individuals within its territory and subject to its jurisdiction. That dual
requirement restricted the scope of the Covenant to persons under United States jurisdiction and within United
States territory. During the negotiating history, the words within its territory had been debated and were added by
vote, with the clear understanding that such wording would limit the obligations to within a Partys territory.).
24
ensure that a State Partys obligations would not apply to persons outside its territories, such as
in occupied territory and leased territory. 98
The Convention against Torture was not intended to supersede the prohibitions against
torture already contained in customary international law and the 1949 Geneva Conventions or its
Additional Protocols. 100 The law of war is the controlling body of law with respect to the
conduct of hostilities and the protection of war victims. Nevertheless, a time of war does not
suspend operation of the Convention Against Torture. The Convention Against Torture
continues to apply even when a State is engaged in armed conflict. 101 For example, a state of
war could not justify a States torture of individuals during armed conflict. 102
In addition, where the text of the Convention Against Torture provides that obligations
apply to a State Party in any territory under its jurisdiction, such obligations, including the
obligations in Articles 2 and 16 to prevent torture and cruel, inhuman, or degrading treatment or
punishment, extend to certain areas beyond the sovereign territory of the State Party, and more
specifically to all places that the State Party controls as a governmental authority. 103
1.6.4 Just War Tradition. The Just War Tradition describes customs, ethical codes, and
moral teachings associated with warfare that military thinkers and philosophers have developed
over centuries to seek the moral justification of and the limitations to war. 104
98
Refer to 11.1.2.6 (Occupation and the ICCPR and Other Human Rights Treaties).
99
Convention against Torture and Other Cruel, Inhuman or Degrading Treatment or Punishment, Dec. 10, 1984,
1465 UNTS 85.
100
Refer to 8.2.1 (Protection Against Violence, Torture, and Cruel Treatment).
101
Mary McLeod, Acting Legal Adviser, Department of State, Opening Statement at 53rd Session of the U.N.
Committee Against Torture, Nov. 3 28, 2014, Nov. 12, 2014 (Although the law of armed conflict is the
controlling body of law with respect to the conduct of hostilities and the protection of war victims, a time of war
does not suspend operation of the Convention Against Torture, which continues to apply even when a State is
engaged in armed conflict. The obligations to prevent torture and cruel, inhuman, and degrading treatment and
punishment in the Convention remain applicable in times of armed conflict and are reinforced by complementary
prohibitions in the law of armed conflict.).
102
Convention against Torture and Other Cruel, Inhuman or Degrading Treatment or Punishment, art. 2(2), Dec. 10,
1984, 1465 UNTS 85, 114 (No exceptional circumstances whatsoever, whether a state of war or a threat of war,
internal political instability or any other public emergency, may be invoked as a justification of torture.).
103
Mary McLeod, Acting Legal Adviser, Department of State, Opening Statement at 53rd Session of the U.N.
Committee Against Torture, Nov. 3 28, 2014, Nov. 12, 2014 (In brief, we understand that where the text of the
Convention provides that obligations apply to a State Party in any territory under its jurisdiction, such obligations,
including the obligations in Articles 2 and 16 to prevent torture and cruel, inhuman or degrading treatment or
punishment, extend to certain areas beyond the sovereign territory of the State Party, and more specifically to all
places that the State Party controls as a governmental authority. We have determined that the United States
currently exercises such control at the U.S. Naval Station at Guantanamo Bay, Cuba, and with respect to U.S.
registered ships and aircraft.).
104
WILLIAM OBRIEN, THE CONDUCT OF JUST AND LIMITED WAR 4 (1981) (The just-war tradition begins with the
efforts of St. Augustine to justify Christian participation in Roman wars. From this foundation, St. Thomas Aquinas
25
The Just War Tradition provides part of the philosophical foundation for the modern law
of war and has considered both jus ad bellum and jus in bello. The Just War Tradition developed
criteria or principles that have provided the foundation for modern jus ad bellum rules. 105
Similarly, law of war treaties that provide jus in bello rules, such as the 1949 Geneva
Conventions, are also rooted in the Just War Tradition. The Just War Tradition remains relevant
for decisions to employ U.S. military forces and in warfighting. 106
1.6.5 Rules of Engagement (ROE). Rules of engagement (ROE) have been defined as
[d]irectives issued by competent military authority that delineate the circumstances and
limitations under which United States forces will initiate and/or continue combat engagement
with other forces encountered. 107 ROE are used by States to tailor the rules for the use of force
to the circumstances of a particular operation. 108
ROE reflect legal, policy, and operational considerations, and are consistent with the
international law obligations of the United States, including the law of war. 109 ROE may restrict
and other Scholastic thinkers developed the Scholastic just-war doctrine. This doctrine reached its mature form by
the time of the writings of Vitoria and Suarez in the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries. Various Protestant
moralists and secular writers dealt with just-war issues during the Reformation, but by the eighteenth century just-
war doctrine was becoming a curiosity that was not taken seriously. It remained for the twentieth century reaction
against total war to spark renewed studies in the just-war tradition.).
105
Refer to 1.11.1 (Jus ad Bellum Criteria).
106
See, e.g., Barack Obama, Remarks on Accepting the Nobel Peace Prize in Oslo, Dec. 10, 2009, 2009-II PUBLIC
PAPERS OF THE PRESIDENTS 1799 (And over time, as codes of law sought to control violence within groups, so did
philosophers and clerics and statesmen seek to regulate the destructive power of war. The concept of a just war
emerged, suggesting that war is justified only when certain conditions were met: if it is waged as a last resort or in
self-defense; if the force used is proportional; and if, whenever possible, civilians are spared from violence.);
George H. W. Bush, Remarks at the Annual Convention of the National Religious Broadcasters, Jan. 28, 1991,
1991-I PUBLIC PAPERS OF THE PRESIDENTS 70 (Nowhere is this more true than in the Persian Gulf where -- despite
protestations of Saddam Hussein -- it is not Iraq against the United States, its the regime of Saddam Hussein against
the rest of the world. Saddam tried to cast this conflict as a religious war, but it has nothing to do with religion per
se. It has, on the other hand, everything to do with what religion embodies: good versus evil, right versus wrong,
human dignity and freedom versus tyranny and oppression. The war in the Gulf is not a Christian war, a Jewish
war, or a Moslem war; it is a just war. And it is a war with which good will prevail.).
107
JOINT PUBLICATION 1-04, Legal Support to Military Operations, GL-3 (Aug. 17, 2011) (rules of engagement.
Directives issued by competent military authority that delineate the circumstances and limitations under which
United States forces will initiate and/or continue combat engagement with other forces encountered. Also called
ROE.).
108
For example, Juan Carlos Gomez, Twenty-First-Century Challenges: The Use of Military Forces to Combat
Criminal Threats, 88 INTERNATIONAL LAW STUDIES 279, 285-86 (2012) (There must be clear, understandable rules
provided to military forces on the circumstances under which force may be used and the type and degree of that
force. This is dependent on the mission assigned to the forces. In Colombia, two differently colored cards are used.
A blue card is used when the military unit is engaged in a law enforcement mission. The rules on the blue card are
based on HRL. They provide for the use of force only when no other option is available to accomplish the mission
and in self-defense of the person and others. The red card is used in operations against military objectives. These
cards are based on IHL and permit the offensive use of force, including lethal force if demanded by military
necessity.).
109
J. Fred Buzhardt, DoD General Counsel, Letter to Senator Edward Kennedy, Sept. 22, 1972, reprinted in 67 AJIL
124 (1973) (With reference to your inquiry concerning the rules of engagement governing American military
activity in Indochina, you are advised that rules of engagement are directives issued by competent military authority
26
actions that would be lawful under the law of war, but may not permit actions prohibited by the
law of war. States have used ROE as part of the implementation of their law of war obligations
during military operations. 110
1.6.6 Code of Conduct for U.S. Armed Forces. The Code of Conduct is a moral guide for
U.S. forces to govern their conduct in resisting capture and their actions in the event they fall
into hostile hands. 111 The Code of Conduct was developed after the Korean War and was
promulgated by Executive Order. 112 The Code of Conduct is consistent with the law of war
obligations of the United States, including obligations in the GPW. 113
1.7 TREATIES
The United States is a Party to a number of law of war treaties. 116 For many years, the
Department of State has published annually a listing of treaties and other international
agreements in force for the United States. This publication has provided helpful information
about such treaties, including the date of U.S. ratification and a listing of other Parties to each
treaty.
which delineate the circumstances and limitations under which United States Forces will initiate and/or continue
combat engagement with the enemy. These rules are the subject of constant review and command emphasis. They
are changed from time to time to conform to changing situations and the demands of military necessity. One critical
and unchanging factor is their conformity to existing international law as reflected in the Hague Conventions of
1907 and the Geneva Conventions of 1949, as well as with the principles of customary international law of which
UNGA Resolution 2444 (XXIII) is deemed to be a correct restatement.).
110
Refer to 5.1.2 (Adherence to Law of War Obligations in the Conduct of Hostilities During Military Operations).
111
Refer to 9.39 (Code of Conduct for U.S. Armed Forces).
112
Refer to 9.39.2 (Background on the U.S. Code of Conduct).
113
Refer to 9.39.1 (Text of the Code of Conduct and Discussion).
114
Consider, e.g., VCLT art. 1(a) ([T]reaty means an international agreement concluded between States in written
form and governed by international law, whether embodied in a single instrument or in two or more related
instruments and whatever its particular designation;).
115
Refer to 1.10.1.1 (Legal Force of Treaties Among States).
116
Refer to 19.2.1 (Law of War Treaties to Which the United States Is a Party).
27
for the purposes of this requirement, although they may be characterized as treaties for the
purposes of international law and impose obligations upon the United States. 117
1.7.2 Reservations to Treaties. A State may limit the application of provisions of a treaty
by reservation upon ratification of the treaty as long as the treaty does not prohibit such
reservations and the reservation is compatible with the object and purpose of the treaty. 118 For
example, the United States has taken a reservation to certain provisions of CCW Protocol III on
Incendiary Weapons. 119 On the other hand, for example, the Chemical Weapons Convention
expressly prohibits reservations to the Convention and prohibits reservations to the Conventions
Annexes that are incompatible with its object and purpose. 120
1.7.3 Withdrawal From Treaties. Under certain circumstances, States may withdraw
from treaties. 121 Some law of war and arms control treaties specify the conditions under which
Parties may withdraw from them. 122 Even upon denunciation of a treaty, States remain bound by
customary international law, including law of war principles. 123
28
interpretation when it constitutes objective evidence of the understanding of the Parties as to the
meaning of the treaty. 125 For example, the subsequent practice of States in the application of the
GWS-Seas requirements for hospital ships has clarified that States may use hospital ships with
the capability to conduct encrypted communications. 126
1.7.5 Treaties and Domestic Implementing Legislation. States may enact domestic
legislation to implement treaty provisions. Although such implementing legislation is not
international law, it may reflect a States interpretation of those provisions. 127
Customary international law results from a general and consistent practice of States that
is followed by them from a sense of legal obligation (opinio juris). 129 Customary international
law is an unwritten form of law in the sense that it is not created through a written agreement by
States.
subsequent agreement between the parties regarding the interpretation of the agreement, and subsequent practice
between the parties in the application of the agreement, are to be taken into account in its interpretation.); I
RESTATEMENT (THIRD) OF FOREIGN RELATIONS LAW OF THE UNITED STATES 203 (325, comment c) (1987) (This
conforms to United States modes of interpretation, affirming that subsequent practice of the parties can be taken
into account in interpreting international agreements.).
125
See II YEARBOOK OF THE INTERNATIONAL LAW COMMISSION 221 (15) (1966) (The importance of such
subsequent practice in the application of the treaty, as an element of interpretation, is obvious; for it constitutes
objective evidence of the understanding of the parties as to the meaning of the treaty. Recourse to it as a means of
interpretation is well-established in the jurisprudence of international tribunals.). See also Case Concerning
Kasikili/Sedudu Island (Botswana v. Namibia), Judgment, 1999 I.C.J. 1045, 1075-76 (49) (same); Russian Claim
for Interest on Indemnities (The Russian Indemnity Case), Russia/Turkey, 11 R.I.A.A. 421, 433 (1912) Permanent
Court of Arbitration Unofficial English Translation, 3 (Whereas the fulfilment of obligations is, between States as
between individuals, the surest commentary on the meaning of these obligations;); Case Concerning The Temple of
Preah Vihear (Cambodia v. Thailand), Merits, Judgment, 1962 I.C.J. 6, 34 (The map was accepted by the Parties in
1908 and thereafter as constituting the result of the interpretation given by the two Governments to the delimitation
which the Treaty itself required. In other words, the Parties at that time adopted an interpretation of the treaty
settlement which caused the map line, in so far as it may have departed from the line of the watershed, to prevail
over the relevant clause of the treaty.).
126
Refer to 7.12.2.7 (Use of Secret Codes for Communication).
127
See United States v. Navarre, 173 U.S. 77, 79 (1899) (noting that [i]f the meaning of the treaty was doubtful, it
was competent for Congress to resolve the doubt in its enactment of legislation).
128
Refer to 1.10.1.4 (Force of International Law Notwithstanding a States Domestic Law).
129
See I RESTATEMENT (THIRD) OF FOREIGN RELATIONS LAW OF THE UNITED STATES 24 (102(2)) (1987)
(Customary international law results from a general and consistent practice of states followed by them from a sense
of legal obligation.).
29
Customary international law is generally binding on all States, but States that have been
persistent objectors to a customary international law rule during its development are not bound
by that rule. 130
Assessing whether State practice and opinio juris have resulted in a rule of customary
international law may be a difficult inquiry. 131
In most cases, treaty provisions do not reflect customary international law. For example,
AP Is provisions changing which persons would be entitled to the privileges of combatant status
were viewed as novel at the time of the adoption of AP I and as not reflecting customary
international law. 132
In some cases, a treaty provision may reflect customary international law. The rule
reflected in the treaty would thus be understood to be binding, even if the treaty provision was
not applicable, because the rule maintains a separate existence as a customary norm. 133 For
example, provisions of Hague IV and the Hague IV Regulations have been found to reflect
customary international law. 134 Law of war treaties have specified that customary law and
principles continue to apply even if the treaty is not applicable. 135
130
Refer to 1.10.1.2 (Legal Force of Customary International Law Among States).
131
Michael J. Matheson, Deputy Legal Adviser, Department of State, Remarks on the United States Position on the
Relation of Customary International Law to the 1977 Protocols Additional to the 1949 Geneva Conventions at the
Sixth Annual American Red Cross-Washington College of Law Conference on International Humanitarian Law
(Jan. 22, 1987), 2 AMERICAN UNIVERSITY JOURNAL OF INTERNATIONAL LAW AND POLICY 419, 421-22 (1987)
(Having described the reasons why I believe that the topic of this Workshop is important and very relevant to
decisions currently being taken with respect to Protocol I in the United States and other governments, it is of course
much more difficult to say exactly which of the rules contained in the Protocol currently are in fact a part of
customary law. As I am sure you all appreciate quite well, there is no clear line drawn in the dust for all to see
between those principles that are now customary law and those which have not yet attained the degree of acceptance
and observance that might make them customary law. Instead, there are degrees of acceptance and degrees of
observance, and the judgment as to what degree of each is sufficient for establishment as customary law is
inherently subjective and hard to define precisely.).
132
Refer to, e.g., 4.6.1.2 (AP I and the GPW 4A(2) Conditions).
133
Military and Paramilitary Activities in and Against Nicaragua (Nicaragua v. United States), Merits, Judgment,
1986 I.C.J. 14, 95 (178) ([E]ven if two norms belonging to two sources of international law appear identical in
content, and even if the States in question are bound by these rules both on the level of treaty-law and on that of
customary international law, these norms retain a separate existence.).
134
Refer to 19.8.2.1 (Hague IV and Customary International Law).
135
Refer to 19.8.3 (Martens Clause).
30
that underlying principle. 136 For example, the United States has expressed support for the
customary principle on which Article 51(3) of AP I is based, but has noted that Article 51(3) of
AP I, as drafted, does not reflect customary international law. 137
1.8.2 State Practice. One part of determining whether a purported rule is customary
international law is to analyze whether there is a general and consistent practice of States that
supports the purported rule.
An analysis of State practice to determine whether a purported rule reflects the customary
international law of war should include consideration of, inter alia: (1) whether the State
practice is extensive and virtually uniform; (2) actual operational practice; (3) the practice of
specially affected States; and (4) contrary practice.
136
Michael J. Matheson, Deputy Legal Adviser, Department of State, Remarks on the United States Position on the
Relation of Customary International Law to the 1977 Protocols Additional to the 1949 Geneva Conventions at the
Sixth Annual American Red Cross-Washington College of Law Conference on International Humanitarian Law
(Jan. 22, 1987), 2 AMERICAN UNIVERSITY JOURNAL OF INTERNATIONAL LAW AND POLICY 419, 422 (1987) (In
addition, it may be possible in many cases to say that a general principle is an accepted part of customary law, but to
have considerable disagreement as to the precise statement of that general principle.).
137
Refer to 5.9.1.2 (AP I, Article 51(3) Provision on Direct Participation in Hostilities).
138
See, e.g., Harold Koh, Legal Adviser, Department of State, Responses to Questions Submitted by Senator Richard
G. Lugar, in Libya and War Powers: Hearing Before the Committee on Foreign Relations, U.S. Senate, 112th
Congress, First Session, 53, 57 (Jun. 28, 2011) (Determining that a principle has become customary international
law requires a rigorous legal analysis to determine whether such principle is supported by a general and consistent
practice of states followed by them from a sense of legal obligation. Although there is no precise formula to indicate
how widespread a practice must be, one frequently used standard is that state practice must be extensive and
virtually uniform, including among States particularly involved in the relevant activity (i.e., specially affected
States).); North Sea Continental Shelf Cases (Federal Republic of Germany v. Denmark; Federal Republic of
Germany v. Netherlands), 1969 I.C.J. 3, 43 (74) (Although the passage of only a short period of time is not
necessarily, or of itself, a bar to the formation of a new rule of customary international law on the basis of what was
originally a purely conventional rule, an indispensable requirement would be that within the period in question, short
though it might be, State practice, including that of States whose interests are specially affected, should have been
both extensive and virtually uniform in the sense of the provision invoked; and should moreover have occurred in
such a way as to show a general recognition that a rule of law or legal obligation is involved.).
139
U.S. RESPONSE TO ICRC CIHL STUDY 515 (Second, we are troubled by the type of practice on which the Study
has, in too many places, relied. Our initial review of the State practice volumes suggests that the Study places too
much emphasis on written materials, such as military manuals and other guidelines published by States, as opposed
to actual operational practice by States during armed conflict. Although manuals may provide important indications
of State behavior and opinio juris, they cannot be a replacement for a meaningful assessment of operational State
practice in connection with actual military operations. We also are troubled by the extent to which the Study relies
31
1.8.2.3 Specially Affected States. The practice of States whose interests are
specially affected, e.g., States with a distinctive history of participation in the relevant matter,
must support the purported rule. 140 States that have had a wealth of experience, or that have
otherwise had significant opportunities to develop a carefully considered military doctrine, may
be expected to have contributed a greater quantity and quality of State practice relevant to the
law of war than States that have not.
For example, specially affected States could include, depending upon the relevant
matter, the nuclear powers, other major military powers, and occupying or occupied States. 141
As a case in point, the United Kingdom has been viewed as a specially affected State with
respect to the law of the sea. 142
on non-binding resolutions of the General Assembly, given that States may lend their support to a particular
resolution, or determine not to break consensus in regard to such a resolution, for reasons having nothing to do with
a belief that the propositions in it reflect customary international law.).
140
See U.S. RESPONSE TO ICRC CIHL STUDY 517 endnote 3 (Not every State that has participated in an armed
conflict is specially affected; such States do generate salient practice, but it is those States that have a distinctive
history of participation that merit being regarded as specially affected.); Written Statement of the Government of
the United States of America, 28-29, Jun. 20, 1995, I.C.J., Request by the United Nations General Assembly for an
Advisory Opinion on the Legality of the Threat or Use of Nuclear Weapons (Evidence of a customary norm
requires indication of extensive and virtually uniform State practice, including States whose interests are specially
affected. With respect to the use of nuclear weapons, customary law could not be created over the objection of
the nuclear-weapon States, which are the States whose interests are most specially affected.).
141
Theodor Meron, The Continuing Role of Custom in the Formation of International Humanitarian Law, 90 AJIL
238, 249 (1996) (A broader question, however, concerns the degree of weight to be assigned to the practice of
various states in the formation of the international customary law of war. I find it difficult to accept the view,
sometimes advanced, that all states, whatever their geographical situation, military power and interests, inter alia,
have an equal role in this regard. Belligerency is only one factor here. The practice and opinion of Switzerland, for
example, as a neutral state, surely have more to teach us about assessment of customary neutrality law than the
practice of states that are not committed to the policy of neutrality and have not engaged in pertinent national
practice. The practice of specially affected states -such as nuclear powers, other major military powers, and
occupying and occupied states-which have a track record of statements, practice and policy, remains particularly
telling. I do not mean to denigrate state equality, but simply to recognize the greater involvement of some states in
the development of the law of war, not only through operational practice but through policies expressed, for
example, in military manuals.).
142
See, e g., The Paquete Habana, 175 U.S. 677, 719 (1900) (Fuller, J., dissenting) (noting that [i]t is difficult to
conceive of a law of the sea of universal obligation to which Great Britain has not acceded.).
143
For example, Legality of the Threat or Use of Nuclear Weapons, Advisory Opinion, 1996 I.C.J. 311, 311-12
(Dissenting Opinion of Vice-President Schwebel) (One way of surmounting the antinomy between practice and
principle would be to put aside practice. That is what those who maintain that the threat or use of nuclear weapons
is unlawful in all circumstances do. State practice demonstrates that nuclear weapons have been manufactured
and deployed by States for some 50 years; that in that deployment inheres a threat of possible use; and that the
international community, by treaty and through action of the United Nations Security Council, has, far from
proscribing the threat or use of nuclear weapons in all circumstances, recognized in effect or in terms that in certain
circumstances nuclear weapons may be used or their use threatened.).
32
In addition, the persistent objection of States may be relevant after the formation of that
rule by preventing the application of that rule to States that have objected to that rule during its
development. 144
1.8.3 Opinio Juris. In addition to analyzing State practice, one must determine whether
the State practice results from a sense of legal obligation (opinio juris) or merely reflects States
policy or practical interests. Opinio juris cannot simply be inferred from consistent State
practice, which may exist for reasons other than opinio juris.145 For example, the fact that
nuclear weapons have not been used to conduct attacks during armed conflict since 1945 does
not reflect a prohibition in customary international law against their use because such lack of use
has not resulted from opinio juris. 146
144
Refer to 1.8.4 (Objection During Development).
145
U.S. RESPONSE TO ICRC CIHL STUDY 515 (Although the same action may serve as evidence both of State
practice and opinio juris, we do not agree that opinio juris simply can be inferred from practice. Both elements
instead must be assessed separately in order to determine the presence of a norm of customary international law.).
146
See Legality of the Threat or Use of Nuclear Weapons, Advisory Opinion, 1996 I.C.J. 226, 253-54 (65-67)
(States which hold the view that the use of nuclear weapons is illegal have endeavoured to demonstrate the
existence of a customary rule prohibiting this use. They refer to a consistent practice of non-utilization of nuclear
weapons by States since 1945 and they would see in that practice the expression of an opinio juris on the part of
those who possess such weapons. Some other States, which assert the legality of the threat and use of nuclear
weapons in certain circumstances, invoked the doctrine and practice of deterrence in support of their argument.
They recall that they have always, in concert with certain other States, reserved the right to use those weapons in the
exercise of the right to self-defence against an armed attack threatening their vital security interests. In their view, if
nuclear weapons have not been used since 1945, it is not on account of an existing or nascent custom but merely
because circumstances that might justify their use have fortunately not arisen. The Court does not intend to
pronounce here upon the practice known as the policy of deterrence. It notes that it is a fact that a number of
States adhered to that practice during the greater part of the Cold War and continue to adhere to it. Furthermore, the
members of the international community are profoundly divided on the matter of whether non-recourse to nuclear
weapons over the past 50 years constitutes the expression of an opinio juris. Under these circumstances the Court
does not consider itself able to find that there is such an opinio juris.).
147
U.S. RESPONSE TO ICRC CIHL STUDY 515 (One therefore must be cautious in drawing conclusions as to opinio
juris from the practice of States that are parties to conventions, since their actions often are taken pursuant to their
treaty obligations, particularly inter se, and not in contemplation of independently binding customary international
law norms.).
148
U.S. RESPONSE TO ICRC CIHL STUDY 516 (We are troubled by the Studys heavy reliance on military manuals.
We do not agree that opinio juris has been established when the evidence of a States sense of legal obligation
consists predominately of military manuals. Rather than indicating a position expressed out of a sense of a
customary legal obligation, in the sense pertinent to customary international law, a States military manual often
(properly) will recite requirements applicable to that State under treaties to which it is a party. Reliance on
33
1.8.4 Objection During Development. Even if a rule otherwise reflects customary
international law, the rule is not binding upon a State that has persistently objected to that rule
during its development. 149 This principle is an accepted application of the traditional principle
that international law essentially depends on the consent of States. 150
As a subsidiary means, it may be helpful to consult judicial decisions and the teachings of
the most highly qualified publicists of various nations in determining the applicable rules of
international law. These means are subsidiary in the sense that they do not, in themselves,
constitute sources of treaty or customary international law.
1.9.1 Judicial Decisions. Judicial decisions have sometimes been used as a subsidiary
means of determining the rules of international law. 152
provisions of military manuals designed to implement treaty rules provides only weak evidence that those treaty
rules apply as a matter of customary international law in non-treaty contexts.).
149
See Fisheries Case, (United Kingdom v. Norway), Judgment, 1951 I.C.J. 116, 131 (In these circumstances the
Court deems it necessary to point out that although the ten-mile rule has been adopted by certain States both in their
national law and in their treaties and conventions, and although certain arbitral decisions have applied it as between
these States, other States have adopted a different limit. Consequently, the ten-mile rule has not acquired the
authority of a general rule of international law. In any event the ten-mile rule would appear to be inapplicable as
against Norway inasmuch as she has always opposed any attempt to apply it to the Norwegian coast.); Asylum
Case (Colombia v. Peru), 1950 I.C.J. 266, 277-78 (The Court cannot therefore find that the Colombian Government
has proved the existence of such a custom. But even if it could be supposed that such a custom existed between
certain Latin-American States only, it could not be invoked against Peru which, far from having by its attitude
adhered to it, has, on the contrary, repudiated it by refraining from ratifying the Montevideo Conventions of 1933
and 1939, which were the first to include a rule concerning the qualification of the offence in matters of diplomatic
asylum.). See also U.S. RESPONSE TO ICRC CIHL STUDY 529 endnote 38 (We note that the Study raises doubts
about the continued validity of the persistent objector doctrine. Study, Vol. I, p. xxxix. The U.S. Government
believes that the doctrine remains valid.).
150
I RESTATEMENT (THIRD) OF THE FOREIGN RELATIONS LAW OF THE UNITED STATES 32 (102, Reporters Note 2)
(1987) (That a rule of customary law is not binding on any state indicating its dissent during the development of the
rule (Comment d) is an accepted application of the traditional principle that international law essentially depends on
the consent of states.).
151
Refer to 19.25 (2005 ICRC Study on Customary International Humanitarian Law).
152
ICJ STATUTE art. 38(1) (The Court, whose function is to decide in accordance with international law such
disputes as are submitted to it, shall apply: d. subject to the provisions of Article 59, judicial decisions as
subsidiary means for the determination of rules of law.).
34
of that particular case. 153 The legal reasoning underlying the decisions of the International Court
of Justice is not binding on States. 154 Similarly, the decisions of the International Criminal
Tribunal for the Former Yugoslavia and the International Criminal Tribunal for Rwanda cannot,
as a strictly legal matter, bind other courts. 155
The legal principle of stare decisis does not generally apply between international
tribunals, i.e., customary international law does not require that one international tribunal follow
the judicial precedent of another tribunal in dealing with questions of international law. 156
Moreover, depending on the international tribunal, a tribunal may not be bound by its prior
decisions. Some international courts, however, may adhere to their own prior decisions in
resolving a case absent a sufficiently persuasive reason to reconsider the point of law. 157
153
See, e.g., ICJ STATUTE art. 59 (The decision of the Court has no binding force except between the parties and in
respect of that particular case.).
154
John B. Bellinger, III, Department of State Legal Adviser, 2006 DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN
INTERNATIONAL LAW 1024 (We believe that these concerns were largely borne out in the advisory opinion
rendered by the Court. In practice, the opinion has made little meaningful contribution to efforts to resolve issues
between the Israelis and Palestinians. Also, the Courts opinion is open to criticism on its treatment of both factual
and legal issues, in some cases due more to process than to any fault on the part of the Court. For example, the fact
that the General Assembly had already declared itself on many of the issues, risks creating the impression that the
Court was being used to advance a particular set of political claims. Also of concern are efforts in some quarters to
suggest that aspects of the Courts advisory opinion, such as that relating to the extraterritorial application of the
International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights, have binding force on member states in contexts that go
beyond those addressed in the advisory opinion. This of course, is not the case. Under the ICJ statute, states are
bound only by the decisionsand not by the Courts reasoning underlying those decisionsin contentious cases to
which they are parties, and advisory opinions have no binding force at all, but rather serve to provide guidance on
legal questions to the UN organ or specialized agency requesting them.).
155
Harold Hongju Koh, Legal Adviser, Department of State, Remarks on international criminal justice at the Vera
Institute of Justice in New York and at Leiden University, Campus The Hague, 2012 DIGEST OF UNITED STATES
PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 61, 67 (The ICTY and ICTR began developing a modern jurisprudence of
criminal liability that was based on existing law as applied to a modern ethnic conflict. One of the ICTYs early
accomplishments was the Dusko Tadic case, which involved a relatively low-level offender who -- had he been
caught only a few years later -- would have been referred to Bosnia for domestic prosecution. The Tadic decision
provided a reasoned basis for the seminal conclusions that (1) the UN Security Council had the authority to set up a
criminal court under Chapter VII of the UN Charter; (2) the tribunals jurisdiction extended to war crimes
committed in the course of a non-international armed conflict; and (3) Tadic could be convicted for his association
with a small group of offenders, articulating the concept of joint criminal enterprise (JCE) that later became a
central feature of the ICTYs work. The post-WWII tribunals had largely ignored sexual violence, but the ICTY
and ICTR situated the issue within the existing law of war crimes, crimes against humanity, and genocide. Although
these decisions cannot, as a strictly legal matter bind other courts, there is no doubt that the jurisprudence of the
ICTY and ICTR has been influential in the broader development of international criminal law.).
156
I RESTATEMENT (THIRD) OF FOREIGN RELATIONS LAW OF THE UNITED STATES 36-37 (103, comment b) (1987)
(That provision [Article 59 of the Statute of the ICJ] reflects the traditional view that there is no stare decisis in
international law.).
157
See, e.g., Prosecutor v. Aleksovski, ICTY Appeals Chamber, IT-95-14/1-A, Judgment, 107-109 (Mar. 24,
2000) ([I]in the interests of certainty and predictability, the Appeals Chamber should follow its previous decisions,
but should be free to depart from them for cogent reasons in the interests of justice. It is necessary to stress that
the normal rule is that previous decisions are to be followed, and departure from them is the exception. The Appeals
Chamber will only depart from a previous decision after the most careful consideration has been given to it, both as
to the law, including the authorities cited, and the facts.).
35
1.9.2 Legal Writings of Highly Qualified Publicists. The writings of the most highly
qualified publicists have sometimes been used as a subsidiary means of determining the rules of
international law. 158 For example, classical publicists, such as Hugo Grotius and Emmerich de
Vattel, and recognized scholars, such as Francis Lieber and Hersch Lauterpacht, have been
widely cited and relied upon as practitioners have sought to interpret and apply the law of war.
The standard for whose writings should be relied upon is high, and writings are only as
authoritative as the evidence upon which they are based. The writings should only be relied
upon to the degree they accurately reflect existing law, rather than the authors views about what
the law should be. 159
This section addresses the technical legal force of the law of war under international and
U.S. domestic law. As a matter of policy, DoD personnel may be required to adhere to law of
war rules, even where the rules do not technically apply as a matter of law. 160
1.10.1 Legal Force of the Law of War Under International Law. The technical force of a
law of war rule depends on whether it takes the form of a treaty or customary international law.
1.10.1.1 Legal Force of Treaties Among States. Under international law, every
treaty in force is binding upon the Parties to it and must be performed by them in good faith. 161
A treaty enters into force for a State after, inter alia, it has provided its consent to be bound by
the treaty. 162 In some cases, the terms of a treaty may cause it to expire, and in other cases,
158
ICJ STATUTE art. 38(1) (The Court, whose function is to decide in accordance with international law such
disputes as are submitted to it, shall apply: d. subject to the provisions of Article 59, the teachings of the most
highly qualified publicists of the various nations, as subsidiary means for the determination of rules of law.).
159
See The Paquete Habana, 175 U.S. 677, 700 (1900) (For this purpose, where there is no treaty, and no
controlling executive or legislative act or judicial decision, resort must be had to the customs and usages of civilized
nations; and, as evidence of these, to the works of jurists and commentators, who by years of labor, research and
experience, have made themselves peculiarly well acquainted with the subjects of which they treat. Such works are
resorted to by judicial tribunals, not for the speculations of their authors concerning what the law ought to be, but for
trustworthy evidence of what the law really is.).
160
Refer to 3.1.1 (DoD Practice of Applying Law of War Rules Even When Not Technically Applicable).
161
Consider VCLT art. 26 (Every treaty in force is binding upon the parties to it and must be performed by them in
good faith.).
162
Consider VCLT art. 24 (1. A treaty enters into force in such manner and upon such date as it may provide or as
the negotiating States may agree. 2. Failing any such provision or agreement, a treaty enters into force as soon as
consent to be bound by the treaty has been established for all the negotiating States. 3. When the consent of a State
to be bound by a treaty is established on a date after the treaty has come into force, the treaty enters into force for
that State on that date, unless the treaty otherwise provides. 4. The provisions of a treaty regulating the
authentication of its text, the establishment of the consent of States to be bound by the treaty, the manner or date of
its entry into force, reservations, the functions of the depositary and other matters arising necessarily before the entry
into force of the treaty apply from the time of the adoption of its text.). See also DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY
PAMPHLET 27-161-1, I International Law: Law of Peace, 8-12 (Sept. 1, 1979) (An international agreement is
basically a contract between states, and elements of obligation akin to those found in municipal contract law are
present. However, as discussed in Part I, a treaty is not a contract in the common law sense of an agreement
requiring consideration. It is the assent to be bound and not reciprocity or quid pro quo that obligates the parties.).
36
States may withdraw from a treaty. 163 In some cases, a reservation may also modify the
obligations imposed by a treaty on that State. 164
A treaty does not create either obligations or rights for a third State without its consent. 165
Thus, a treaty generally would not be binding on non-Parties to the treaty or create rights or
obligations for a non-Party to the treaty with respect to a Party to the treaty. Instead, a treaty
only creates law (i.e., rights that may be invoked) as between the States that are Parties to it. 166
Traditionally, international law has governed relations between States, although over time
it has increasingly regulated the relationships between States and persons. Under the traditional
view, a States international law obligations run to other States, even when the obligations relate
to an individual (e.g., by protecting that individual), such that individuals place in international
life depends largely on their status as nationals of states. 168 For example, the 1949 Geneva
Conventions and the customary law of war do not provide a private right for individuals to claim
compensation directly from a State for violations of the law of war; rather, such claims are made
by other States. 169
International law has long prescribed certain rules regulating the conduct of
individuals. 170 Under international law, there may be responsibility for individuals, apart from
163
Refer to 1.7.3 (Withdrawal From Treaties).
164
Refer to 1.7.2 (Reservations to Treaties).
165
Consider VCLT art. 34 (A treaty does not create either obligations or rights for a third State without its
consent.).
166
Case Concerning Certain German Interests in Polish Upper Silesia (Merits) (Germany v. Poland) 1925 P.C.I.J.
(series A) No. 7, at 29 (A treaty only creates law as between the States which are parties to it; in case of doubt, no
rights can be deduced from it in favour of third States.).
167
Refer to 1.8.4 (Objection During Development).
168
I RESTATEMENT (THIRD) OF FOREIGN RELATIONS LAW OF THE UNITED STATES 71 (1987). See also II
RESTATEMENT (THIRD) OF FOREIGN RELATIONS LAW OF THE UNITED STATES 217 (713, comment a) (1987)
(explaining that in principle, state responsibility for injury to the nationals of other states is to the state of the
aliens nationality and gives that state a claim against the offending state. The claim derives from injury to an
individual, but once espoused it is the states claim, and can be waived by the state.).
169
Refer to 18.16.4 (No Private Right to Compensation Under Customary International Law or the 1949 Geneva
Conventions).
170
See Sosa v. Alvarez-Machain, 542 U.S. 692, 715 (2004) (noting that international law has included a body of
judge-made law regulating the conduct of individuals situated outside domestic boundaries and rules binding
individuals for the benefit of other individuals [that] overlapped with the norms of state relationships).
37
State responsibility. 171
1.10.2 Force of the Law of War Under U.S. Domestic Law. The specific legal force of a
law of war rule under U.S. domestic law may depend on whether that rule takes the form of a
self-executing treaty, non-self-executing treaty, or customary international law.
Longstanding DoD policy has been to require DoD personnel to comply with the law of
war obligations of the United States. 174
Even if a violation of a rule is not directly punishable under U.S. law, a variety of tools in
U.S. domestic law may be used to enforce a law of war obligation of the United States. For
example, a violation of a law of war obligation may be made punishable through implementation
of the obligation in military instructions, regulations, and procedures. 175
The terms self-executing and non-self-executing may be used to explain how a treaty
is to take effect in U.S. domestic law. A treaty may be classified as a self-executing treaty that
operates of itself, without the aid of any legislative provision, or as a non-self-executing treaty
that would require that the Legislature must execute the contract before it can become a rule for
the Court. 177
171
Refer to 18.22.1 (Individual Criminal Responsibility for Acts Constituting Crimes Under International Law).
172
Secretary of State Bayard, Instruction to Mr. Connery, charge to Mexico, Nov. 1, 1887, II MOORES DIGEST 235
([A] government can not appeal to its municipal regulations as an answer to demands for the fulfillment of
international duties. Such regulations may either exceed or fall short of the requirements of international law, and in
either case that law furnishes the test of the nations liability and not its own municipal rules.). Consider VCLT art.
27 (A party may not invoke the provisions of its internal law as justification for its failure to perform a treaty. This
rule is without prejudice to article 46.).
173
Refer to 18.22.2 (Absence of Penalty Under Domestic Law Does Not Relieve a Person of Responsibility).
174
Refer to 18.1.1 (DoD Policy on Implementing and Enforcing the Law of War).
175
Refer to 18.7 (Instructions, Regulations, and Procedures to Implement and Enforce the Law of War).
176
See U.S. CONSTITUTION art. VI (This Constitution, and the laws of the United States which shall be made in
pursuance thereof; and all treaties made, or which shall be made, under the authority of the United States, shall be
the supreme law of the land; and the judges in every state shall be bound thereby, anything in the Constitution or
laws of any State to the contrary notwithstanding.).
177
Foster & Elam v. Neilson 27 U.S. 253, 314 (1829) (Marshall, C.J.). See also Whitney v. Robertson, 124 U.S.
190, 194 (1888) (A treaty is primarily a contract between two or more independent nations, and is so regarded by
writers on public law. For the infraction of its provisions a remedy must be sought by the injured party through
38
1.10.2.2 Force of Customary International Law Under U.S. Domestic Law. The
customary law of war is part of U.S. law insofar as it is not inconsistent with any treaty to which
the United States is a Party, or a controlling executive or legislative act. 178
The law of war has been categorized into jus ad bellum (law concerning the resort to
force) and jus in bello (law concerning conduct during war). 179 Although jus ad bellum is an
essential part of the law of war to consider in the political process of whether to resort to military
force, this manual focuses on jus in bello. 180 Although jus in bello rules generally operate
independently of whether a side has comported with jus ad bellum in the resort to force, parts of
jus ad bellum are relevant to jus in bello. 181
This section provides a brief overview of some basic aspects of jus ad bellum. Jus ad
bellum issues might raise questions of national policy that, in the Executive Branch, would be
decided by the President. In U.S. practice, legal advice provided to national-level principal
officials on such issues generally would need to be addressed through interagency discussions
coordinated by the legal adviser to the National Security Council, including consultation and
coordination among senior counsel of relevant U.S. departments and agencies.
1.11.1 Jus ad Bellum Criteria. Certain jus ad bellum criteria have, at their philosophical
roots, drawn from principles that have been developed as part of the Just War Tradition. 182
These principles have included:
reclamations upon the other. When the stipulations are not self-executing, they can only be enforced pursuant to
legislation to carry them into effect, and such legislation is as much subject to modification and repeal by Congress
as legislation upon any other subject. If the treaty contains stipulations which are self-executing, that is, require no
legislation to make them operative, to that extent they have the force and effect of a legislative enactment.);
Medellin v. Texas, 552 U.S. 491, 525-26 (2008) (The responsibility for transforming an international obligation
arising from a non-self-executing treaty into domestic law falls to Congress.).
178
The Paquete Habana, 175 U.S. 677, 700 (1900) (International law is part of our law, where there is no treaty
and no controlling executive or legislative act or judicial decision, resort must be had to the customs and usages of
civilized nations,).
179
See, e.g., WILLIAM OBRIEN, THE CONDUCT OF JUST AND LIMITED WAR 9 (1981) (defining jus ad bellum as the
doctrines concerning permissible recourse to war and jus in bello as the just conduct of war); MICHAEL
WALZER, JUST AND UNJUST WARS 21 (1977) (War is always judged twice, first with reference to the reasons states
have for fighting, secondly with reference to the means they adopt. The first kind of judgment is adjectival in
character: we say that a particular war is just or unjust. The second is adverbial: we say that a war is being fought
justly or unjustly. Medieval writers made the difference a matter of prepositions, distinguishing jus ad bellum, the
justice of war, from jus in bello, justice in war.). But see Robert Kolb, Origin of the twin terms jus ad bellum/jus in
bello, 37 INTERNATIONAL REVIEW OF THE RED CROSS 553 (Sept.-Oct. 1997) (The august solemnity of Latin confers
on the terms jus ad bellum and jus in bello the misleading appearance of being centuries old. In fact, these
expressions were only coined at the time of the League of Nations and were rarely used in doctrine or practice until
after the Second World War, in the late 1940s to be precise.).
180
Refer to 1.1.2 (Scope).
181
Refer to 3.5 (Relationship Between Jus in Bello and Jus ad Bellum).
182
Refer to 1.6.4 (Just War Tradition).
39
a competent authority to order the war for a public purpose;
These principles may be reflected in modern law of war rules. For example, the Charter
of the United Nations recognizes the inherent right of States to use force in individual or
collective self-defensea just cause for military action. 184
These principles have also been incorporated into military doctrine. 185
The criterion that war must be ordered by a competent authority for a public purpose is
reflected in the requirement that armed groups must belong to a State to receive the privileges of
combatant status. 187 This criterion is also reflected in the general denial to private persons of the
entitlement to the privileges of combatant status. 188 This criterion is also reflected in the
183
WILLIAM OBRIEN, THE CONDUCT OF JUST AND LIMITED WAR 16 (1981) (The decision to invoke the
exceptional rights of war must be based on the following criteria: there must be competent authority to order the
war for a public purpose; there must be a just cause (it may be self-defense or the protection of rights by offensive
war) and the means must be proportionate to the just cause and all peaceful alternatives must have been exhausted;
and there must be right intention on the part of the just belligerent.).
184
Refer to 1.11.4.1 (Use of Force in Self-Defense).
185
MARINE CORPS DOCTRINAL PUBLICATION 1-1, Strategy, 93, 95 (1997) ([T]he just war criteria provide objective
measures from which to judge our motives. The effective strategist must be prepared to demonstrate to all sides
why the defended cause meets the criteria of just war theory and why the enemys cause does not. If a legitimate
and effective argument on this basis cannot be assembled, then it is likely that both the cause and the strategy are
fatally flawed.).
186
See Talbot v. Janson, 3 U.S. 133, 160-61 (1795) (Iredell, J., concurring) ([N]o hostilities of any kind, except in
necessary self-defence, can lawfully be practised by one individual of a nation, against an individual of any other
nation at enmity with it, but in virtue of some public authority. War can alone be entered into by national authority;
it is instituted for national purposes, and directed to national objects; and each individual on both sides is engaged in
it as a member of the society to which he belongs, not from motives of personal malignity and ill will.); VATTEL,
THE LAW OF NATIONS 235 (3.1.4) (It is the sovereign power alone, therefore, which has the right to make war.);
GROTIUS, LAW OF WAR & PEACE 97 (1.3.4.2) (But because the whole state is endangered by war, provision has
been made by the laws of almost every state that war may be waged only under the authority of him who holds the
sovereign power in the state.).
187
Refer to 4.6.2 (Belonging to a Party to the Conflict).
188
Refer to 4.18.3 (Private Persons Who Engage in Hostilities Lack of the Privileges of Combatant Status).
40
condemnation under international law of certain types of private acts of hostility (such as piracy
or terrorism) outside the context of patriotic resistance against an enemy State during
international armed conflict. 189
The jus ad bellum criterion of proportionality is different from the jus in bello rule of
proportionality in conducting attacks. 194 These concepts should not be confused with one
another. 195
189
Refer to 4.18.5 (Private Persons Who Engage in Hostilities and the Law of War).
190
Refer to 2.4 (Proportionality).
191
William H. Taft IV, Legal Adviser, Department of State, Self-Defense and the Oil Platforms Decision, 29 YALE
JOURNAL OF INTERNATIONAL LAW 295, 305-06 (2004) (There is no requirement in international law that a State
exercising its right of self-defense must use the same degree or type of force used by the attacking State in its most
recent attack. Rather, the proportionality of the measures taken in self-defense is to be judged according to the
nature of the threat being addressed . A proper assessment of the proportionality of a defensive use of force
would require looking not only at the immediately preceding armed attack, but also at whether it was part of an
ongoing series of attacks, what steps were already taken to deter future attacks, and what force could reasonably be
judged to be needed to successfully deter future attacks.).
192
Counter-memorial and Counter-claim Submitted by the United States of America, International Court of Justice,
Case Concerning Oil Platforms (Iran v. United States) 141 (4.31) (Jun. 23, 1997) (Actions in self-defense must be
proportionate. Force can be used in self-defense, but only to the extent that it is required to repel the armed attack
and to restore the security of the party attacked.).
193
Herbert S. Okun, Letter Dated 14 April 1986 from the Acting Permanent Representative of the United States of
America to the United Nations Addressed to the President of the Security Council, U.N. Doc. S/17990 (Apr. 14,
1986) (The United States objective was to destroy facilities used to carry out Libyas hostile policy of international
terrorism and to discourage Libyan terrorist attacks in the future. These facilities constituted essential elements
which have enabled Libyan agents to carry out deadly missions against U.S. installations and innocent
individuals.); Madeleine Albright, Letter Dated 26 June 1993 from the Permanent Representative of the United
States of America to the United Nations Addressed to the President of the Security Council, U.N. Doc. S/26003 (Jun.
26, 1993) (Accordingly, as a last resort, the United States has decided that it is necessary to respond to the
attempted attack and the threat of further attacks by striking at an Iraqi military and intelligence target that is
involved in such attacks. It is the sincere hope of the United States Government that such limited and
proportionate action may frustrate future unlawful actions on the part of the Government of Iraq and discourage or
preempt such activities.).
194
Refer to 5.12 (Proportionality in Conducting Attacks).
195
Refer to 3.5.1 (General Distinction Between Jus in Bello and Jus ad Bellum).
41
1.11.1.3 All Peaceful Alternatives Must Have Been Exhausted (Necessity Jus ad
Bellum). The jus ad bellum condition of necessity requires that no reasonable alternative means
of redress are available. 196 For example, in exercising the right of self-defense, diplomatic
means must be exhausted or provide no reasonable prospect of stopping the armed attack or
threat thereof. 197
The jus ad bellum criterion of necessity is different from the jus in bello concept of
military necessity. 198
1.11.2 U.N. Charter Framework and the U.N. Security Council. The Charter of the
United Nations provides the modern treaty framework for jus ad bellum. Under the Charter of
the United Nations, the U.N. Security Council has primary responsibility for the maintenance of
international peace and security. 199 The U.N. Security Council may determine the existence of
any threat to the peace, breach of the peace, or act of aggression, and may decide what measures
shall be taken under the Charter to maintain or restore international peace and security. 200 For
example, the U.N. Security Council may recognize that a State is acting lawfully in self-defense
or that another State is the aggressor in an armed conflict. 201 In addition, the U.N. Security
Council may authorize the use of military force. 202
196
William H. Taft IV, Legal Adviser, Department of State, Self-Defense and the Oil Platforms Decision, 29 YALE
JOURNAL OF INTERNATIONAL LAW 295, 304 (2004) (The condition of necessity, rather, requires that no
reasonable alternative means of redress are available.).
197
For example, Madeleine Albright, Letter Dated 26 June 1993 from the Permanent Representative of the United
States of America to the United Nations Addressed to the President of the Security Council, U.N. Doc. S/26003 (Jun.
26, 1993) (Based on the pattern of the Government of Iraqs behavior, including the disregard for international law
and Security Council resolutions, the United States has concluded that there is no reasonable prospect that new
diplomatic initiatives or economic measures can influence the current Government of Iraq to cease planning future
attacks against the United States. Accordingly, as a last resort, the United States has decided that it is necessary to
respond to the attempted attack and the threat of further attacks by striking at an Iraqi military and intelligence target
that is involved in such attacks.); Thomas R. Pickering, Letter Dated 20 December 1989 from the Permanent
Representative of the United States of America to the United Nations Addressed to the President of the Security
Council, U.N. Doc. S/21035 (Dec. 20, 1989) (The United States has exhausted every available diplomatic means to
resolve peacefully disputes with Mr. Noriega, who has rejected all such efforts. Action by the United States was
taken after Mr. Noriega declared on 15 December that a state of war existed with the United States, and following
brutal attacks by forces of Mr. Noriega on lawfully present American personnel, murdering one American and
injuring and threatening others.).
198
Refer to 2.2 (Military Necessity).
199
U.N. CHARTER art. 24(1) (In order to ensure prompt and effective action by the United Nations, its Members
confer on the Security Council primary responsibility for the maintenance of international peace and security, and
agree that in carrying out its duties under this responsibility the Security Council acts on their behalf.).
200
U.N. CHARTER art. 39 (The Security Council shall determine the existence of any threat to the peace, breach of
the peace, or act of aggression and shall make recommendations, or decide what measures shall be taken in
accordance with Articles 41 and 42, to maintain or restore international peace and security.).
201
For example, U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 661, U.N. Doc. S/RES/661 (1990) (Affirming the inherent
right of individual or collective self-defence, in response to the armed attack of Iraq against Kuwait, in accordance
with Article 51 of the Charter,); U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 1368, U.N. Doc. S/RES/1368 (2001)
(Determined to combat by all means threats to international peace and security caused by terrorist acts, Recognizing
the inherent right of individual or collective self-defence in accordance with the Charter, 1. Unequivocally condemns
in the strongest terms the horrifying terrorist attacks which took place on 11 September 2001 in New York,
42
1.11.2.1 U.N. Member State Obligations With Respect to U.N. Security Council
Decisions. Members of the United Nations have agreed to give the United Nations every
assistance in any action it takes in accordance with the Charter and to refrain from giving
assistance to any State against which the United Nations is taking preventive or enforcement
action. 203
Members of the United Nations have agreed to accept and carry out the decisions of the
U.N. Security Council in accordance with the Charter. 204 They have also agreed to join in
affording mutual assistance in carrying out the measures decided upon by the U.N. Security
Council. 205
Moreover, in the event of a conflict between the obligations of the Members of the
United Nations under the Charter and their obligations under any other international agreement,
their obligations under the Charter prevail. 206
1.11.3 Prohibition on Certain Uses of Force. Under Article 2(4) of the Charter of the
United Nations, [a]ll Members shall refrain in their international relations from the threat or use
of force against the territorial integrity or political independence of any State, or in any other
manner inconsistent with the Purposes of the United Nations. 207 Numerous other treaties also
reflect these prohibitions on the threat or use of force. 208
Washington, D.C. and Pennsylvania and regards such acts, like any act of international terrorism, as a threat to
international peace and security;).
202
Refer to 1.11.4.2 (Use of Force Authorized by the U.N. Security Council Acting Under Chapter VII of the
Charter of the United Nations).
203
U.N. CHARTER art. 2(5) (All Members shall give the United Nations every assistance in any action it takes in
accordance with the present Charter, and shall refrain from giving assistance to any state against which the United
Nations is taking preventive or enforcement action.).
204
U.N. CHARTER art. 25 (The Members of the United Nations agree to accept and carry out the decisions of the
Security Council in accordance with the present Charter.).
205
U.N. CHARTER art. 49 (The Members of the United Nations shall join in affording mutual assistance in carrying
out the measures decided upon by the Security Council.).
206
U.N. CHARTER art. 103 (In the event of a conflict between the obligations of the Members of the United Nations
under the present Charter and their obligations under any other international agreement, their obligations under the
present Charter shall prevail.).
207
U.N. CHARTER art. 2(4).
208
See, e.g., Inter-American Treaty of Reciprocal Assistance, art. 1, Sept. 2, 1947, 62 STAT. 1681, 1700 (The High
Contracting Parties formally condemn war and undertake in their international relations not to resort to the threat or
the use of force in any manner inconsistent with the provisions of the Charter of the United Nations or of this
Treaty.); Treaty Providing for the Renunciation of War as an Instrument of National Policy, art. 1, Aug. 27, 1928,
46 STAT. 2343, 2345-46 (The High Contracting Parties solemnly declare in the names of their respective peoples
that they condemn recourse to war for the solution of international controversies, and renounce it as an instrument of
national policy in their relations with one another.).
43
The resort to force must have a legal basis in order not to violate these prohibitions. The
legality of the use of force must be assessed in light of the particular facts and circumstances at
issue. 209
1.11.3.1 Aggression. Aggression is the most serious and dangerous form of the
illegal use of force. 210 Not every act of illegal use of force prohibited by Article 2(4) of the
Charter constitutes aggression. 211 Initiating a war of aggression is a serious international
crime. 212
U.N. General Assembly Resolution 3314 suggested considerations that the Security
Council should bear in mind in determining whether an act of aggression had occurred. 213
Although this resolution states basic principles as guidance for such determinations, it recognizes
that whether an act of aggression has been committed must be considered in light of all the
circumstances of each particular case. 214
209
See, e.g., William H. Taft IV, Legal Adviser, Department of State, & Todd F. Buchwald, Assistant Legal Adviser
for Political-Military Affairs, Department of State, Preemption, Iraq, and International Law, 97 AJIL 557 (2003)
(In the end, each use of force must find legitimacy in the facts and circumstances that the state believes have made
it necessary. Each should be judged not on abstract concepts, but on the particular events that gave rise to it.);
Daniel Webster, Letter to Mr. Fox, Apr. 24, 1841, reprinted in DANIEL WEBSTER, THE DIPLOMATIC AND OFFICIAL
PAPERS OF DANIEL WEBSTER, WHILE SECRETARY OF STATE 105 (1848) (It is admitted that a just right of self-
defense attaches always to nations as well as to individuals, and is equally necessary for the preservation of both.
But the extent of this right is a question to be judged of by the circumstances of each particular case;).
210
Definition of Aggression, preamble 5, Annex to U.N. GENERAL ASSEMBLY RESOLUTION 3314 (XXIX),
Definition of Aggression, U.N. Doc. A/RES/3314 (XXIX) (Dec. 14, 1974) (Considering also that, since aggression
is the most serious and dangerous form of the illegal use of force, being fraught, in the conditions created by the
existence of all types of weapons of mass destruction, with the possible threat of a world conflict and all its
catastrophic consequences, aggression should be defined at the present stage.).
211
Joseph Sanders, Rapporteur, The Special Committee on the Question of Defining Aggression, Report of the
Special Committee on the Question of Defining Aggression, Annex 1: Views expressed by members of the Special
Committee at the concluding stage of the Special Committees session, U.N. General Assembly Official Records:
Twenty-Ninth Session Supplement No. 19, U.N. Doc. A/9619, 22-23 (Mar. 11-Apr. 12, 1974) (Mr.
ROSENSTOCK (United States of America) The fifth preambular paragraph, while recognizing the dangers
which would flow from an illegal use of force amounting to aggression, correctly stated the view that not every act
of force in violation of the Charter constituted aggression.).
212
United States, et al. v. Gring, et al., Judgment, I TRIAL OF THE MAJOR WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE IMT 421
(To initiate a war of aggression, therefore, is not only an international crime; it is the supreme international crime
differing only from other war crimes in that it contains within itself the accumulated evil of the whole.).
213
Joseph Sanders, Rapporteur, The Special Committee on the Question of Defining Aggression, Report of the
Special Committee on the Question of Defining Aggression, Annex 1: Views expressed by members of the Special
Committee at the concluding stage of the Special Committees session, U.N. General Assembly Official Records:
Twenty-Ninth Session Supplement No. 19, U.N. Doc. A/9619, 22-23 (Mar. 11-Apr. 12, 1974) (Mr.
ROSENSTOCK (United States of America) The text that had been produced was a recommendation of the
General Assembly for use by the Security Council. In article 2, the definition suggested the considerations which
the Security Council should bear in mind in determining whether an act of aggression had occurred.).
214
Definition of Aggression, preamble 10, Annex to U.N. GENERAL ASSEMBLY RESOLUTION 3314 (XXIX),
Definition of Aggression, U.N. Doc. A/RES/3314 (XXIX) (Dec. 14, 1974) (Believing that, although the question
whether an act of aggression has been committed must be considered in the light of all the circumstances of each
particular case, it is nevertheless desirable to formulate basic principles as guidance for such determination,).
44
The United States has expressed the view that the definition of the act of aggression in
the Kampala amendments to the Rome Statute does not reflect customary international law. 215
1.11.4.2 Use of Force Authorized by the U.N. Security Council Acting Under
Chapter VII of the Charter of the United Nations. Chapter VII of the Charter of the United
Nations provides that the U.N. Security Council may take such action by air, sea, or land forces
as may be necessary to maintain or restore international peace or security, including
demonstrations, blockade, and other military operations. 217
1.11.4.3 Use of Force With the Consent of the Territorial State. Military action in
the territory of another State is not a violation of Article 2(4)s prohibition against the use of
force against that State where it consents to such military action. 218
Although the United Kingdom and certain other States have argued that intervention for
humanitarian reasons may be a legal basis for the resort to force, the United States has not
215
Refer to 18.20.3.4 (ICC and the Crime of Aggression).
216
Refer to 1.11.5 (Use of Force in Self-Defense).
217
U.N. CHARTER art. 42 (Should the Security Council consider that measures provided for in Article 41 would be
inadequate or have proved to be inadequate, it may take such action by air, sea, or land forces as may be necessary
to maintain or restore international peace and security. Such action may include demonstrations, blockade, and
other operations by air, sea, or land forces of Members of the United Nations.).
218
For example, Davis R. Robinson, Department of State Legal Adviser, Letter to Professor Edward Gordon,
Chairman of the Committee on Grenada Section on International Law and Practice American Bar Association on
The Legal Position of the United States on the Action taken in Grenada (Feb. 10, 1984), reprinted in 18
INTERNATIONAL LAWYERS 381 (1984) (In the case of the action taken in Grenada, the legal position of the United
States was based upon the application of a combination of three well established principles of international law
(1) the lawful governmental authorities of a State may invite the assistance in its territory of military forces of other
states or collective organizations in dealing with internal disorder as well as external threats.); Statement of the
U.S. Government, attached to Adlai E. Stevenson, Letter Dated 24 November 1964 From the Permanent
Representative of the United States of America Addressed to the President of the Security Council, U.N. Doc.
S/6062, Nov. 24, 1964 (The United States Government has just received confirmation that a short time ago - early
morning of 24 November in the Congo - a unit of Belgian paratroopers, carried by United States military transport
planes, landed at Stanleyville in the Congo. This landing has been made (1) with the authorization of the
Government of the Congo, (2) in conformity with our adherence to the Geneva Conventions, and (3) in exercise of
our clear responsibility to protect United States citizens under the circumstances existing in the Stanleyville area.).
219
Refer to 17.18.1 (Duty of Non-Belligerent States to Refrain From Supporting Hostilities by Non-State Armed
Groups Against Other States).
45
adopted this legal rationale. 220 Consistent with this view, the United States did not adopt this
theory as a legal rationale for NATOs military action to address the humanitarian catastrophe in
Kosovo in 1999, but rather expressed the view that such action was justified on the basis of a
number of factors. 221
Military action for humanitarian reasons may, however, be authorized by the U.N.
Security Council. 222
1.11.5 Use of Force in Self-Defense. Article 51 of the Charter of the United Nations
provides that [n]othing in the present Charter shall impair the inherent right of individual or
collective self-defence if an armed attack occurs against a Member of the United Nations, until
the Security Council has taken measures necessary to maintain international peace and
security. 223
220
William H. Taft IV, Legal Adviser, Department of State, Role and Significance of International Law Governing
the Use of Force in the New Global Context Confronting the United States After 9/11: remarks regarding the use of
force under international law (Oct. 27, 2004) (Of particular note, the idea that humanitarian catastrophes must be
avoided has been asserted as a reason for rethinking what actions international law permits in a number of situations.
NATOs intervention in Kosovo in 1999 is a case to consider in this connection. In defending the legality of
NATOs actions, the United Kingdom and several other allies asserted a doctrine of humanitarian intervention,
under which states have a right to use force if it is necessary to prevent genocide, a major loss of civilian life, or a
large scale forced movement of a population, which would destabilize other states and threaten international peace
and security. In this view, the humanitarian intervention doctrine is often presented as a necessary extension of
humanitarian law as it has evolved since 1945. Significantly, the doctrine was invoked in the absence of
authorization by the UN Security Council. The United States did not, however, adopt this theory as a basis for the
NATO intervention in Kosovo, and instead pointed to a range of other factors to justify its participation in the
Kosovo campaign.).
221
David Andrews, Legal Adviser, Department of State, Oral Proceedings, May 11, 1999, Legality of Use of Force
(Yugoslavia v. United States) I.C.J. 10 (1.7) (As you have already heard, the actions of the Members of the NATO
Alliance find their justification in a number of factors. These include: - The humanitarian catastrophe that has
engulfed the people of Kosovo as a brutal and unlawful campaign of ethnic cleansing has forced many hundreds of
thousands to flee their homes and has severely endangered their lives and well-being; - The acute threat of the
actions of the Federal Republic of Yugoslavia to the security of neighbouring States, including threat posed by
extremely heavy flows of refugees and armed incursions into their territories; - The serious violation of international
humanitarian law and human rights obligations by forces under the control of the Federal Republic of Yugoslavia,
including widespread murder, disappearances, rape, theft and destruction of property; and, finally - The resolutions
of the Security Council, which have determined that the actions of the Federal Republic of Yugoslavia constitute a
threat to peace and security in the region and, pursuant to Chapter VII of the Charter, demanded a halt to such
actions.).
222
For example, U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 1973, U.N. Doc. S/RES/1973, 4 (Mar. 17, 2011) ([This
Resolution] [a]uthorizes Member States that have notified the Secretary-General, acting nationally or through
regional organizations or arrangements, and acting in cooperation with the Secretary-General, to take all necessary
measures, notwithstanding paragraph 9 of resolution 1970 (2011), to protect civilians and civilian populated areas
under threat of attack in the Libyan Arab Jamahiriya, including Benghazi, while excluding a foreign occupation
force of any form on any part of Libyan territory .).
223
U.N. CHARTER art. 51.
46
The Charter of the United Nations was not intended to supersede a States inherent right
of individual or collective self-defense in customary international law. 224
1.11.5.2 Use of Force Versus Armed Attack. The United States has long taken the
position that the inherent right of self-defense potentially applies against any illegal use of
force. 230 Others, however, would be inclined to draw more of a distinction between armed
attacks and uses of force that do not give rise to the right to use force in self-defense. 231
224
Abraham D. Sofaer, Terrorism, the Law, and the National Defense, 126 MILITARY LAW REVIEW 89, 94 (1989)
(The United States rejects the notion that the U.N. Charter supersedes customary international law on the right of
self-defense. Article 51 characterizes that right as inherent in order to prevent its limitation based on any provision
in the Charter. We have always construed the phrase armed attack in a reasonable manner, consistent with a
customary practice that enables any State effectively to protect itself and its citizens from every illegal use of force
aimed at the State.).
225
William H. Taft IV, Legal Adviser, Department of State, Self-Defense and the Oil Platforms Decision, 29 YALE
JOURNAL OF INTERNATIONAL LAW 295, 304 (2004) (To constitute legitimate self-defense under customary
international law, it is generally understood that the defending States actions must be both necessary and
proportional.).
226
Refer to 1.11.1.3 (All Peaceful Alternatives Must Have Been Exhausted (Necessity Jus ad Bellum)).
227
Refer to 1.11.1.2 (The Means Must Be Proportionate to the Just Cause (Proportionality Jus ad Bellum)).
228
U.N. CHARTER art. 51.
229
Lord Peter Henry Goldsmith, Attorney General, United Kingdom, Oral Answers to Questions, Apr. 21, 2004,
HANSARD 660 HOUSE OF COMMONS DEBATES 370-71 (It is argued by some that the language of Article 51
provides for a right of self-defence only in response to an actual armed attack. However, it has been the consistent
position of successive United Kingdom Governments over many years that the right of self-defence under
international law includes the right to use force where an armed attack is imminent. It is clear that the language of
Article 51 was not intended to create a new right of self-defence. Article 51 recognises the inherent right of self-
defence that states enjoy under international law. It is not a new invention. The charter did not therefore affect
the scope of the right of self-defence existing at that time in customary international law, which included the right to
use force in anticipation of an imminent armed attack.).
230
See Abraham D. Sofaer, Terrorism, the Law, and the National Defense, 126 MILITARY LAW REVIEW 89, 92-93
(1989) (The United States has long assumed that the inherent right of self defense potentially applies against any
illegal use of force, and that it extends to any group or State that can properly be regarded as responsible for such
activities. These assumptions are supported in customary practice.). See also William H. Taft IV, Legal Adviser,
Department of State, Self-Defense and the Oil Platforms Decision, 29 YALE JOURNAL OF INTERNATIONAL LAW 295,
300-01 (2004) (A requirement that an attack reach a certain level of gravity before triggering a right of self-defense
would make the use of force more rather than less likely, because it would encourage States to engage in a series of
small-scale military attacks, in the hope that they could do so without being subject to defensive responses.
Moreover, if States were required to wait until attacks reached a high level of gravity before responding with force,
47
1.11.5.3 Use of Force to Protect Nationals Abroad. A States right to use force in
self-defense may be understood to include the right to use force to protect its nationals abroad. 232
The United States has taken action to protect U.S. nationals abroad when the government of the
territory in which they are located was unwilling or unable to protect them. 233 A State need not
await actual violence against its nationals before taking such action if an attack against them is
imminent. 234
their eventual response would likely be much greater, making it more difficult to prevent disputes from escalating
into full-scale military conflicts.).
231
See, e.g., Military and Paramilitary Activities in and Against Nicaragua (Nicaragua v. United States), Merits,
Judgment, 1986 I.C.J. 14, 101 (191) (As regards certain particular aspects of the principle in question, it will be
necessary to distinguish the most grave forms of the use of force (those constituting an armed attack) from other less
grave forms.); id. at 126-27 (247) (So far as regards the allegations of supply of arms by Nicaragua to the armed
opposition in El Salvador, the Court has indicated that while the concept of an armed attack includes the despatch by
one State of armed bands into the territory of another State, the supply of arms and other support to such bands
cannot be equated with armed attack. Nevertheless, such activities may well constitute a breach of the principle of
the non-use of force and an intervention in the internal affairs of a State, that is, a form of conduct which is certainly
wrongful, but is of lesser gravity than an armed attack.).
232
Ambassador William Scranton, U.S. Representative to the United Nations, Statement in the U.N. Security
Council regarding Israeli action at Entebbe, Jul. 12, 1976, 1976 DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN
INTERNATIONAL LAW 150 ([T]here is a well-established right to use limited force for the protection of ones own
nationals from an imminent threat of injury or death in a situation where the State in whose territory they are located
either is unwilling or unable to protect them. The right, flowing from the right of self defense, is limited to such use
of force as is necessary and appropriate to protect threatened nationals from injury.).
233
For example, Jimmy Carter, Letter to Thomas P. ONeal, Jr., Speaker of the House of Representatives, and
Warren G. Magnuson, President pro tempore of the Senate regarding the rescue attempt for American hostages in
Iran, Apr. 26, 1980, 1980-I PUBLIC PAPERS OF THE PRESIDENTS 779 (In carrying out this operation [to rescue the
American hostages in the U.S. embassy in Tehran] the United States was acting wholly within its right, in
accordance with Article 51 of the United Nations Charter, to protect and rescue its citizens where the government of
the territory in which they are located is unwilling or unable to protect them.).
234
Kenneth W. Dam, Deputy Secretary of State, Statement before the House Committee on Foreign Affairs, Nov. 2,
1983, reprinted in 78 AJIL 200, 203-04 (1984) (U.S. actions have been based on three legal grounds: Third,
U.S. action to secure and evacuate endangered U.S. citizens on the island was undertaken in accordance with well-
established principles of international law regarding the protection of ones nationals. That the circumstances
warranted this action has been amply documented by the returning students themselves. There is absolutely no
requirement of international law that compelled the United States to await further deterioration of the situation that
would have jeopardized a successful operation. Nor was the United States required to await actual violence against
U.S. citizens before rescuing them from the anarchic and threatening conditions the students have described.).
235
See, e.g., In re Guantanamo Bay Litigation, Respondents Memorandum Regarding the Governments Detention
Authority Relative to Detainees Held at Guantanamo Bay, Misc. No. 08-442, 4 (D.D.C., Mar. 13, 2009) (Under
international law, nations lawfully can use military force in an armed conflict against irregular terrorist groups such
as al-Qaida. The United Nations Charter, for example, recognizes the inherent right of states to use force in self
defense in response to any armed attack, not just attacks that originate with states. United Nations Charter, art.
51.); U.S. Additional Response to the Request for Precautionary MeasuresDetention of Enemy Combatants at
Guantanamo Bay, Cuba, Inter-American Commission on Human Rights, Jul. 15, 2002, 2002 DIGEST OF UNITED
STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 1008, 1011-12 (The terrorist attacks of September 11 were not ordinary
criminal acts. The international community has clearly recognized the right of the United States and allied forces
48
the right of self-defense, actions taken in self-defense against non-State actors must comply with
applicable international law. 236
Some treaties include commitments by States to assist one another in collective self-
defense. 238
1.11.5.6 Reporting to the U.N. Security Council. Measures taken in the exercise
of national self-defense shall be immediately reported to the U.N. Security Council. 239
to resort to armed force in self-defense in response to these attacks. For instance, the United Nations explicitly
recognized the inherent right of individual and collective self-defence immediately following September 11. It is
in this context that NATO and others recognized that the September 11 attacks constituted an armed attack, a
conclusion inherent in the UN Security Councils recognition of the right of self-defense.).
236
Refer to 17.18.2 (Duty of Belligerent States to Respect the Sovereignty of Other States).
237
See also BRUNO SIMMA, THE CHARTER OF THE UNITED NATIONS: A COMMENTARY 675 (1994) (Art. 51 of the
Charter allows not only individual, but also collective self-defence. The latter is not, as the wording might suggest,
restricted to a common, co-ordinated exercise of the right to individual self-defence by a number of states. It is
not required for the exercise of the right of collective self-defence that the state invoking the right be under an
obligation resulting from a treaty of assistance. Rather, it is sufficient, but also necessary, that the support be given
with the consent of the attacked state. But this consent does not, as the ICJ states for the right of self-defence under
customary law, need to be declared in the form of an explicit request.).
238
For example, The North Atlantic Treaty, Washington, D.C., Apr. 4, 1949, art. 5 (The Parties agree that an armed
attack against one or more of them in Europe or North America shall be considered an attack against them all and
consequently they agree that, if such an armed attack occurs, each of them, in exercise of the right of individual or
collective self-defense recognized by Article 51 of the Charter of the United Nations, will assist the Party or Parties
so attacked by taking forthwith, individually and in concert with the other Parties, such action as it deems necessary,
including the use of armed force, to restore and maintain the security of the North Atlantic area.).
239
U.N. CHARTER art. 51 (Measures taken by Members in the exercise of this right of self-defence shall be
immediately reported to the Security Council and shall not in any way affect the authority and responsibility of the
Security Council under the present Charter to take at any time such action as it deems necessary in order to maintain
or restore international peace and security.).
49
II Principles
Chapter Contents
2.1 Introduction
2.2 Military Necessity
2.3 Humanity
2.4 Proportionality
2.5 Distinction
2.6 Honor
2.1 INTRODUCTION
Three interdependent principles military necessity, humanity, and honor provide the
foundation for other law of war principles, such as proportionality and distinction, and most of
the treaty and customary rules of the law of war.
This Chapter briefly addresses certain specific rules to illustrate these foundational
principles. For more information about a specific rule, practitioners should refer to the cross-
referenced section that addresses that rule. 1
2.1.1 Legal Principles as Part of International Law. General principles of law common to
the major legal systems of the world are a recognized part of international law. 2 Law of war
principles have been understood to be included in this category of international law. 3
1
Refer to 1.2.3 (Use of Cross-References in This Manual).
2
See ICJ STATUTE art. 38(1)(c) (providing that the general principles of law recognized by civilized nations are a
source of applicable law for the court); I RESTATEMENT (THIRD) OF FOREIGN RELATIONS LAW OF THE UNITED
STATES 24 (102(1)(c)(4)) (1987) (including general principles common to the major legal systems of the world,
among sources of international law); Thirty Hogsheads of Sugar v. Boyle, 13 U.S. 191, 198 (1815) (Marshall, C.J.)
(ascertaining international law includes resort to the great principles of reason and justice).
3
See BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 44 (AP I art. 1, 2.10) (Following the original clause in the preamble
of the 1899 IV. Hague Convention on Land Warfare (para. 9) and para. 4 of the denunciation clause in the
Conventions (63/62/142/158) these principles are stated in the present text to be part of international law. They are
general principles of law in the sense of Art. 38 of the Statute of the ICJ.); Speech by Baron Descamps on the
Rules of Law to be applied, Annex No. 1 to 14th Meeting (Private), held at the Peace Palace, the Hague, on July
2nd, 1920, PERMANENT COURT OF INTERNATIONAL JUSTICE, ADVISORY COMMITTEE OF JURISTS, PROCS-VERBAUX
OF THE PROCEEDINGS OF THE COMMITTEE: JUNE 16TH JULY 24TH 1920 WITH ANNEXES 322, 323-24 (1920) (The
only question is, -- how to make unerring rules for the judges guidance. I allow him to take into consideration
the legal conscience of civilised nations, which is illustrated so strikingly on certain occasions. [L]isten to this
solemn declaration of the Powers, placed at the beginning of the Convention dealing with laws and customs of war
on land: Until a more complete code of the laws of war has been issued, the high contracting Parties deem it
expedient to declare that, in cases not included in the Regulations adopted by them, populations and belligerents
remain under the protection and the rule of the principles of the law of nations, as they result from the usages
established among civilised peoples, from the laws of humanity, and the dictates of the public conscience. I am
convinced that the assembly of all the States does not and cannot intend, in dealing with the state of peace, to abjure
principles which are clearly intended to be applied in war.).
50
2.1.2 Uses of Law of War Principles. Law of war principles provide the foundation for
the specific law of war rules. Legal principles, however, are not as specific as rules, and thus
interpretations of how principles apply to a given situation may vary.
Law of war principles: (1) help practitioners interpret and apply specific treaty or
customary rules; (2) provide a general guide for conduct during war when no specific rule
applies; and (3) work as interdependent and reinforcing parts of a coherent system.
2.1.2.1 Law of War Principles as an Aid in Interpreting and Applying Law of War
Rules. Understanding law of war principles helps practitioners interpret and apply specific law
of war rules. For example, the principle of military necessity has been incorporated into specific
law of war rules. 4 Similarly, the principle of humanity can assist in the proper interpretation and
application of law of war rules that are based on humanitarian considerations. 5
States have reflected this idea in certain treaty provisions, including the Martens
Clause, which make clear that situations not covered by the treaty remain governed by
principles of international law. 6
The considerable progress States have made in developing specific law of war rules,
however, has lessened the need to rely solely on these principles to guide conduct during war. 7
2.1.2.3 Law of War Principles as a Coherent System. Law of war principles work
as interdependent and reinforcing parts of a coherent system.
Military necessity justifies certain actions necessary to defeat the enemy as quickly and
efficiently as possible. 8 Conversely, humanity forbids actions unnecessary to achieve that
object. 9 Proportionality requires that even when actions may be justified by military necessity,
such actions not be unreasonable or excessive. 10 Distinction underpins the parties responsibility
to comport their behavior with military necessity, humanity, and proportionality by requiring
parties to a conflict to apply certain legal categories, principally the distinction between the
4
Refer to 2.2.2.2 (Incorporation of Military Necessity Into Law of War Rules).
5
Refer to 2.3.2 (Humanity and Law of War Rules).
6
Refer to 19.8.3 (Martens Clause).
7
TUCKER, THE LAW OF WAR AND NEUTRALITY AT SEA 46-47 (Where the general principles of the law of war have
receivedthrough the agreement of statesdetailed application in the form of specific rules, the question of the
proper interpretation of these general principles can only be answered by an examination of the former. Hence, to
the extent that the conduct of war is increasingly subjected to such regulation resort to the general principles of the
law of war must become, in turn, correspondingly less frequent. The reason for this is simply that the essential
function of these general principles is to provide a guide for determining the legal status of weapons and methods of
warfare where no more specific rule is applicable.).
8
Refer to 2.2 (Military Necessity).
9
Refer to 2.3 (Humanity).
10
Refer to 2.4 (Proportionality).
51
armed forces and the civilian population. 11 Lastly, honor supports the entire system and gives
parties confidence in it. 12
Military necessity may be defined as the principle that justifies the use of all measures
needed to defeat the enemy as quickly and efficiently as possible that are not prohibited by the
law of war. Military necessity has been defined in military publications, 13 judicial decisions, 14
and scholarly works. 15
11
Refer to 2.5 (Distinction).
12
Refer to 2.6 (Honor).
13
See LIEBER CODE art. 14 (Military necessity, as understood by modern civilized nations, consists in the necessity
of those measures which are indispensable for securing the ends of the war, and which are lawful according to the
modern law and usages of war.); 1914 RULES OF LAND WARFARE 9-11 (a belligerent is justified in applying any
amount and any kind of force which is necessary for the purpose of the war; that is, the complete submission of the
enemy at the earliest possible moment with the least expenditure of men and money. Military necessity justifies a
resort to all measures which are indispensable for securing this object and which are not forbidden by the modern
laws and customs of war.); 1940 RULES OF LAND WARFARE 4a (a belligerent is justified in applying any amount
and any kind of force to compel the complete submission of the enemy with the least possible expenditure of time,
life, and money.); 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 3 (that principle which justifies those measures not
forbidden by international law which are indispensable for securing the complete submission of the enemy as soon
as possible.); 1958 UK MANUAL 3 ( a belligerent is justified in applying compulsion and force of any kind, to the
extent necessary for the realization of the purpose of war, that is, the complete submission of the enemy at the
earliest possible moment with the least possible expenditure of men, resources, and money.); 2004 UK MANUAL
2.2 (Military necessity is now defined as the principle whereby a belligerent has the right to apply any measures
which are required to bring about the successful conclusion of a military operation and which are not forbidden by
the laws of war. Put another way, a state engaged in an armed conflict may use that degree and kind of force, not
otherwise prohibited by the law of armed conflict, that is required in order to achieve the legitimate purpose of the
conflict, namely the complete or partial submission of the enemy at the earliest possible moment with the minimum
expenditure of life and resources.); NATO, Glossary of Terms and Definitions, AAP-6 at 2-M-6 (2009) (defining
military necessity as the principle whereby a belligerent has the right to apply any measures which are required to
bring about the successful conclusion of a military operation and which are not forbidden by the laws of war.).
14
See United States v. List, et al. (The Hostage Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 1253
(Military necessity permits a belligerent, subject to the laws of war, to apply any amount and kind of force to
compel the complete submission of the enemy with the least possible expenditure of time, life, and money.).
15
See GREENSPAN, MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 313-14 (military necessity is the right to apply that amount
and kind of force which is necessary to compel the submission of the enemy with the least possible expenditure of
time, life, and money); CHARLES HENRY HYDE, II INTERNATIONAL LAW: CHIEFLY AS INTERPRETED AND APPLIED
BY THE UNITED STATES 299-300 (1922) (Military necessity, as understood by the United States, justifies a resort to
all measures which are indispensable to bring about the complete submission of the enemy by means of regulated
violence and which are not forbidden by the modern laws and customs of war.); WILLIAM EDWARD HALL, A
TREATISE ON INTERNATIONAL LAW 63 (17) (A. Pearce Higgins, ed., 7th ed., 1917) (When violence is permitted at
all, the amount which is permissible is that which is necessary to attain the object proposed. The measure of the
violence which is permitted in war is therefore that which is required to reduce the enemy to terms.).
16
See LIEBER CODE art. 15 (Military necessity admits of all destruction of life or limb of armed enemies, it
allows of the capturing of every armed enemy, and every enemy of importance to the hostile government, or of
peculiar danger to the captor; it allows of all destruction of property, and obstruction of the ways and channels of
52
concepts that explain when persons and property may be the object of attack, e.g., the concepts
of taking a direct part in hostilities 17 and military objective. 18
Military necessity may justify not only violence and destruction, but also alternative
means of subduing the enemy. 19 For example, military necessity may justify the capture of
enemy persons, 20 or non-forcible measures, such as propaganda and intelligence-gathering. 21
Military necessity also justifies certain incidental harms that inevitably result from the
actions it justifies. 22 The extent to which military necessity justifies such harms is addressed by
the principle of proportionality. 23
2.2.2.1 Military Necessity Does Not Justify Actions Prohibited by the Law of War.
Military necessity does not justify actions that are prohibited by the law of war.
From the late 19th Century through World War II, Germany asserted that military
necessity could override specific law of war rules (Kriegsraeson geht vor Kriegsmanier
necessity in war overrules the manner of warfare). 24 This view was strongly criticized. 25 Post-
World War II war crimes tribunals rejected it as well. 26
traffic, travel, or communication, and of all withholding of sustenance or means of life from the enemy; of the
appropriation of whatever an enemys country affords necessary for the subsistence and safety of the army, and of
such deception as does not involve the breaking of good faith either positively pledged, regarding agreements
entered into during the war, or supposed by the modern law of war to exist.); United States v. List, et al. (The
Hostage Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 1253-54 (In general, [military necessity]
sanctions measures by an occupant necessary to protect the safety of his forces and to facilitate the success of his
operations. It permits the destruction of life of armed enemies and other persons whose destruction is incidentally
unavoidable by the armed conflicts of the war; it allows the capturing of armed enemies and others of peculiar
danger . It is lawful to destroy railways, lines of communication, or any other property that might be utilized by
the enemy. Private homes and churches even may be destroyed if necessary for military operations.).
17
Refer to 5.9 (Civilians Taking a Direct Part in Hostilities).
18
Refer to 5.7 (Military Objective).
19
For example, Abraham Lincoln, The Emancipation Proclamation, Jan. 1, 1863, reprinted in 12 STAT. 1268
(justifying emancipation of slaves held in rebellious states as warranted by the Constitution, upon military
necessity).
20
Refer to 8.1.3.1 (Detention Authority).
21
Refer to 5.26 (Non-Forcible Means and Methods of Warfare).
22
See LIEBER CODE art. 15 (Military necessity admits of all destruction of life or limb of persons whose
destruction is incidentally unavoidable in the armed contests of the war;); United States v. List, et al. (The Hostage
Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 1253-54 (military necessity permits the destruction of life
of persons whose destruction is incidentally unavoidable by the armed conflicts of the war;).
23
Refer to 2.4 (Proportionality).
24
See LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 231-32 (69) (In accordance with the German
proverb, Kriegsraeson geht vor Kriegsmanier (necessity in war overrules the manner of warfare), many German
authors before the First World War were maintaining that the laws of war lose their binding force in case of extreme
necessity.); United States, et al. v. Gring, et al., Judgment, I TRIAL OF THE MAJOR WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE
53
Military necessity cannot justify departures from the law of war because States have
crafted the law of war specifically with wars exigencies in mind. 27 In devising law of war rules,
States considered military requirements. 28 Thus, prohibitions on conduct in the law of war may
be understood to reflect States determinations that such conduct is militarily unnecessary per se.
IMT 227 (The truth remains that War Crimes were committed on a vast scale, never before seen in the history of
war. There can be no doubt that the majority of them arose from the Nazi conception of total war, with which
the aggressive wars were waged. For in this conception of total war, the moral ideas underlying the conventions
which seek to make war more humane are no longer regarded as having force or validity. Everything is made
subordinate to the overmastering dictates of war. Rules, regulations, assurances, and treaties all alike are of no
moment; and so, freed from the restraining influence of international law, the aggressive war is conducted by the
Nazi leaders in the most barbaric way. Accordingly, War Crimes were committed when and wherever the Fhrer
and his close associates thought them to be advantageous.).
25
See, e.g., Elihu Root, Opening Address, 15 PROCEEDINGS OF THE AMERICAN SOCIETY OF INTERNATIONAL LAW 1,
2 (1921) (More important still is a fact which threatens the foundation of all international law. The doctrine of
kriegsraison has not been destroyed. It was asserted by Bethman Hollweg at the beginning of the war when he
sought to justify the plain and acknowledged violation of international law in the invasion of Belgium upon the
ground of military necessity. The doctrine practically is that if a belligerent deems it necessary for the success of its
military operations to violate a rule of international law, the violation is permissible. As the belligerent is to be the
sole judge of the necessity, the doctrine really is that a belligerent may violate the law or repudiate it or ignore it
whenever that is deemed to be for its military advantage. The alleged necessity in the case of the German invasion
of Belgium was simply that Belgium was deemed to be the most advantageous avenue through which to attack
France. Of course, if that doctrine is to be maintained, there is no more international law, for the doctrine cannot be
confined to the laws specifically relating to war on land and sea. With a nation at liberty to declare war, there are
few rules of peaceful intercourse, the violation of which may not be alleged to have some possible bearing upon a
military advantage, and a law which may rightfully be set aside by those whom it is intended to restrain is no law at
all.).
26
See, e.g., United States v. List, et al. (The Hostage Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 1255-
56 (It is apparent from the evidence of these defendants that they considered military necessity, a matter to be
determined by them, a complete justification of their acts. We do not concur in the view that the rules of warfare are
anything less than they purport to be. Military necessity or expediency do not justify a violation of positive rules.);
United States v. Krupp, et al., IX TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 1340 (rejecting defense counsel
argument that Hague IV and Hague IV Reg. rules did not apply in cases of total war). See also Trial of Gunther
Thiele and Georg Steinert, III U.N. LAW REPORTS 58-59 (U.S. Military Commission, Augsberg, Germany, Jun. 13,
1945) (rejecting military necessity as a defense to the murder of a prisoner of war); United States v. Milch, II TRIALS
OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 849-50 (Musmanno, J., concurring) (rejecting defense counsel argument that
total warfare allowed suspension or abrogation of law of war rules).
27
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 3a (Military necessity has been generally rejected as a defense for acts
forbidden by the customary and conventional laws of war inasmuch as the latter have been developed and framed
with consideration for the concept of military necessity.); United States v. Krupp, et al., IX TRIALS OF WAR
CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 1347 (In short these rules and customs of warfare are designed specifically for all
phases of war. They comprise the law for such emergency.); Treaty of Amity and Commerce between His Majesty
the King of Prussia and the United States of America, art. 24, Sept. 10, 1785, 18 STAT. 641, 647 (declaring that
neither the pretence that war dissolves all treaties, nor any other whatever, shall be considered as annulling or
suspending this and next preceding article; but on the contrary, that the state of war is precisely that for which they
are provided, and during which they are to be as sacredly observed as the most acknowledged articles in the law of
nature or nations.).
28
See, e.g., HAGUE IV preamble 5 (these provisions, the wording of which has been inspired by the desire to
diminish the evils of war, as far as military requirements permit, are intended to serve as a general rule of conduct
for the belligerents in their mutual relations and in their relations with the inhabitants.) (emphasis added).
54
The fact that law of war rules are formulated specifically with military requirements in
mind has played an important part in the doctrine that the law of war is the lex specialis
governing armed conflict. 29
For example, certain law of war rules specify that departures from what would otherwise
be the rule are permissible when absolutely or imperatively necessary. In these cases, military
necessity must not be conflated with mere convenience. 30 Examples of rules incorporating the
concept of absolute or imperative necessity include the following:
The activities of the representatives or delegates of the Protecting Powers shall only be
restricted as an exceptional and temporary measure when this is rendered necessary by
imperative military necessities. 31
If the Occupying Power considers it necessary, for imperative reasons of security, to take
safety measures concerning protected persons, it may, at the most, subject them to
assigned residence or to internment. 33
Certain law of war rules may direct that persons comply with an obligation, but only to
the extent feasible or consistent with military necessity. Examples of rules incorporating the
concept of feasibility or necessity include the following:
29
Refer to 1.3.2.1 (The Law of War as the Lex Specialis Governing Armed Conflict).
30
See United States v. List, et al. (The Hostage Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 1252
(rejecting defendants plea of military necessity, a term which they confuse with convenience and strategical
interests.); General Dwight D. Eisenhower, Commander-in-Chief, U.S. Army, Memorandum Regarding the
Protection of Historical Monuments in Italy, Dec. 29, 1943, X WHITEMANS DIGEST 438 (13) (explaining that
although the phrase military necessity is sometimes used where it would be more truthful to speak of military
convenience or even personal convenience, military necessity should not cloak slackness or indifference to
discerning whether law of war obligations, such as the protection of cultural property, may be fulfilled without any
detriment to operational needs).
31
Refer to 4.25.3 (Restrictions on Representatives of the Protecting Powers).
32
Refer to 10.9.2.1 (Internment or Assigned Residence Only if Absolutely Necessary).
33
Refer to 10.9.3.1 (Internment or Assigned Residence for Imperative Reasons of Security).
34
Refer to 5.17.2 (Enemy Property Military Necessity Standard); 11.18.2 (Seizure or Destruction of Property
During Occupation Application of the Military Necessity Standard).
55
Certain affirmative duties to take feasible precautions to reduce the risk of harm to the
civilian population and other protected persons and objects. 35
Military medical and religious personnel, if their retention is not indispensable, are to be
returned to the party to the conflict to which they belong as soon as a road is open for
their return and military requirements permit. 36
Whenever military considerations permit, POW camps shall be indicated in the day time
by the letters PW or PG, placed so as to be clearly visible from the air. 37
Should military necessity require the quantity of relief shipments to civilian internees to
be limited, due notice thereof shall be given to the Protecting Power and to the
International Committee of the Red Cross, or to any other organization giving assistance
to the internees and responsible for the forwarding of such shipments. 38
2.2.3 Applying Military Necessity. Military necessity is a difficult concept to define and
apply. 39 What is necessary in war may depend closely on the specific facts and circumstances of
a given situation, and different people often assess military necessity differently. The limited and
unreliable nature of information available during war compounds this difficulty in evaluating
what is necessary. 40 This difficulty runs throughout the law of war, since military necessity is
itself important and is an element of many other principles and rules.
The law of war seeks to ameliorate these difficulties in applying military necessity by:
(1) permitting consideration of the broader imperatives of winning the war as quickly and
efficiently as possible; (2) recognizing that certain types of actions are, as a general matter,
inherently militarily necessary; and (3) recognizing that persons must assess the military
necessity of an action in good faith based on the information available to them at the relevant
time and that they cannot be judged based on information that subsequently comes to light.
This is the case because military necessity justifies those measures necessary to achieve
the object of war, and the object of war is not simply to prevail, but to prevail as quickly and
35
Refer to 5.3.3 (Affirmative Duties to Take Feasible Precautions for the Protection of Civilians and Other
Protected Persons and Objects).
36
Refer to 7.9.4 (Return of Personnel Whose Retention Is Not Indispensable).
37
Refer to 9.11.4.3 (Marking of POW Camps).
38
Refer to 10.23.3 (Receipt of Individual and Collective Relief Shipments for Internees).
39
See SPAIGHT, WAR RIGHTS ON LAND 113 (There is no conception in International Law more elusive, protean,
wholly unsatisfactory, than that of war necessity.).
40
Refer to 1.4.2.2 (Nature of War Limited and Unreliable Information Fog of War).
56
efficiently as possible. 41 Thus, military necessity may consider the broader imperatives of
winning the war and not only the demands of the immediate situation. For example, in assessing
the military advantage of attacking an object, one may consider the entire war strategy rather
than only the potential tactical gains from attacking that object. 42 An interpretation of military
necessity that only permitted consideration of the immediate situation could prolong the fighting
and increase the overall suffering caused by the war. 43
41
Refer to 1.4.1 (Object of War).
42
Refer to 5.7.7.3 (Definite Military Advantage); 5.12.5 (Concrete and Direct Military Advantage Expected to
Be Gained).
43
See, e.g., Department of Defense, National Military Strategy of the United States, 10 (Jan. 1992) (Once a
decision for military action has been made, half-measures and confused objectives extract a severe price in the form
of a protracted conflict which can cause needless waste of human lives and material resources, a divided nation at
home, and defeat. Therefore, one of the essential elements of our national military strategy is the ability to rapidly
assemble the forces needed to win -- the concept of applying decisive force to overwhelm our adversaries and
thereby terminate conflicts swiftly with a minimum loss of life.); LIEBER CODE art. 29 (The more vigorously wars
are pursued, the better it is for humanity. Sharp wars are brief.); Count von Moltke, letter to Professor Bluntschli,
Dec. 11, 1880, reprinted in G. SHERSTON BAKER, II HALLECKS INTERNATIONAL LAW 19 footnote 1 (1908) (The
greatest kindness in war is to bring it to a speedy conclusion.).
44
See, e.g., Nils Melzer, Legal Adviser, International Committee of the Red Cross, Interpretive Guidance on the
Notion of Direct Participation in Hostilities Under International Humanitarian Law, 79 (May 2009) (In
conjunction, the principles of military necessity and of humanity reduce the sum total of permissible military action
from that which IHL does not expressly prohibit to that which is actually necessary for the accomplishment of a
legitimate military purpose in the prevailing circumstances.) (emphasis added); JEAN PICTET, DEVELOPMENT AND
PRINCIPLES OF INTERNATIONAL HUMANITARIAN LAW 75-76 (1985) (If we can put a soldier out of action by
capturing him, we should not wound him; if we can obtain the same result by wounding him, we must not kill
him.).
45
See, e.g., W. Hays Parks, Chief, International Law Branch, Office of the Judge Advocate General, Department of
the Army, Executive Order 12333 and Assassination, Nov. 2, 1989, III CUMULATIVE DIGEST OF UNITED STATES
PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 1981-1988 3411, 3419 (In the employment of military forces, the phrase
capture or kill carries the same meaning or connotation in peacetime as it does in wartime. There is no obligation
to attempt capture rather than attack of an enemy. In some cases, it may be preferable to utilize ground forces in
order to capture, e.g., a known terrorist. However, where the risk to U.S. forces is deemed too great, if the President
has determined that the individual[s] in question pose such a threat to U.S. citizens or the national security interests
of the United States as to require the use of military force, it would be legally permissible to employ, e.g., an
airstrike against that individual or group rather than attempt his, her, or their capture, and would not violate the
prohibition on assassination.).
57
made the object of attack. 46 Moreover, the law of war may justify the use of overwhelming force
against enemy military objectives. 47
2.3 HUMANITY
Humanity may be defined as the principle that forbids the infliction of suffering, injury,
or destruction unnecessary to accomplish a legitimate military purpose. 53
46
Refer to 5.5.6.1 (Surprise Attacks); 5.5.6.2 (Attacks on Retreating Forces).
47
Refer to 5.5.6 (Force That May Be Applied Against Military Objectives).
48
See VATTEL, THE LAW OF NATIONS 295 (3.9.173) (explaining that the law of war seeks to avoid contentious
disputes between belligerents about whether actions are militarily necessary by establishing general rules
independent of circumstances and of certain and easy application and thus permits or tolerates every act which in
its essential nature is adapted to attaining the end of war; and it does not stop to consider whether the act was
unnecessary, useless, or superfluous in a given case unless there is the clearest evidence that an exception should be
made in that instance).
49
Refer to 5.6.1 (Persons, Objects, and Locations That Are Not Protected From Being Made the Object of Attack).
50
Refer to 9.11.1 (Internment in POW Camps).
51
Refer to 2.1.2.2 (Law of War Principles as a General Guide).
52
Refer to 5.4 (Assessing Information Under the Law of War).
53
See, e.g., 2001 CANADIAN MANUAL 202(6) (humanity forbids the infliction of suffering, injury or destruction
not actually necessary for the accomplishment of legitimate military purposes.); 2004 UK MANUAL 2.4
(Humanity forbids the infliction of suffering, injury, or destruction not actually necessary for the accomplishment
of legitimate military purposes.); GREENSPAN, MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 315 (humanity forbids the
employment of all such kinds and degrees of violence as are not necessary for the purpose of the war); 1958 UK
MANUAL 3 (humanity is the principle according to which kinds and degrees of violence which are not necessary
for the purpose of war are not permitted to a belligerent;); LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW
227 (67) (Humanity postulates that all such kinds and degrees of violence as are not necessary for the
overpowering of the opponent should not be permitted to a belligerent.); 1940 RULES OF LAND WARFARE 4b
(defining the principle of humanity as prohibiting employment of any such kind or degree of violence as is not
actually necessary for the purpose of the war); 1914 RULES OF LAND WARFARE 9 (The principle of humanity
says that all such kinds and degrees of violence as are not necessary for the purpose of war are not permitted to a
belligerent.).
58
justify actions not necessary to achieve this purpose, such as cruelty or wanton violence. 54
Moreover, once a military purpose has been achieved, inflicting more suffering is unnecessary
and should be avoided. For example, if an enemy combatant has been placed hors de combat
(e.g., incapacitated by being severely wounded or captured), no military purpose is served by
continuing to attack him or her. 55 Thus, the principle of humanity forbids making enemy
combatants who have been placed hors de combat the object of attack. 56 Similarly, the principle
of humanity has been viewed as the source of the civilian populations immunity from being
made the object of attack because their inoffensive and harmless character means that there is no
military purpose served by attacking them. 57
Humanity may be viewed as the logical inverse of the principle of military necessity. If
certain necessary actions are justified, then certain unnecessary actions are prohibited. The
principle of humanity is an example of how the concept of necessity can function as a limitation
as well as a justification.58
Because humanity forbids those actions that are unnecessary, the principle of humanity is
not in tension with military effectiveness, but instead reinforces military effectiveness.59
2.3.2 Humanity and Law of War Rules. Humanity animates certain law of war rules,
including:
fundamental safeguards for persons who fall into the hands of the enemy; 60
54
United States v. List, et al. (The Hostage Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 1253-54
([Military necessity] does not permit the killing of innocent inhabitants for purposes of revenge or the satisfaction
of a lust to kill. It does not admit the wanton devastation of a district or the willful infliction of suffering upon its
inhabitants for the sake of suffering alone.); LIEBER CODE art. 16 (Military necessity does not admit to cruelty --
that is, the infliction of suffering for the sake of suffering or for revenge, .).
55
See 2004 UK MANUAL 2.4.1 (The principle of humanity is based on the notion that once a military purpose has
been achieved, the further infliction of suffering is unnecessary. Thus, if an enemy combatant has been put out of
action by being wounded or captured, there is no military purpose to be achieved by continuing to attack him. For
the same reason, the principle of humanity confirms the basic immunity of civilian populations and civilian objects
from attack because civilians and civilian objects make no contribution to military action.).
56
Refer to 5.10 (Persons Placed Hors de Combat).
57
Refer to 4.2.1 (Development of the Distinction Between the Armed Forces and the Civilian Population).
58
Cf. Ex parte Milligan, 71 U.S. 2, 127 (1866) (If, in foreign invasion or civil war, the courts are actually closed,
and it is impossible to administer criminal justice according to law, then, on the theatre of active military operations,
where war really prevails, there is a necessity to furnish a substitute for the civil authority, thus overthrown, to
preserve the safety of the army and society, and as no power is left but the military, it is allowed to govern by
martial rule until the laws can have their free course. As necessity creates the rule, so it limits its duration, for, if
this government is continued after the courts are reinstated, it is a gross usurpation of power.) (emphasis added).
59
Refer to 18.2.1 (Reinforcing Military Effectiveness).
59
protections for the civilian population and civilian objects; 61
The principle of humanity may help interpret or apply these and other law of war rules.
For example, the requirement that POWs be interned only in premises located on land has been
understood not to prohibit POW detention aboard ships pending the establishment of suitable
facilities on land, if detention aboard ships provides the most appropriate living conditions for
POWs.65 Similarly, the U.S. reservation to CCW Protocol III on Incendiary Weapons makes
clear that U.S. forces may use incendiary weapons against military objectives located in
concentrations of civilians where it is judged that such use would cause fewer casualties and/or
less collateral damage than alternative weapons. 66
2.4 PROPORTIONALITY
Proportionality may be defined as the principle that even where one is justified in acting,
one must not act in way that is unreasonable or excessive. 67
Proportionality has also been viewed as a legal restatement of the military concept of
economy of force. 68
60
Refer to 8.2 (Humane Treatment of Detainees); 9.5 (Humane Treatment and Basic Protections for POWs);
10.5 (Humane Treatment and Other Basic Protections for Protected Persons).
61
Refer to 5.3 (Overview of Rules for the Protection of Civilians).
62
Refer to 7.8 (Respect and Protection of Categories of Medical and Religious Personnel); 7.10 (Military
Medical Units and Facilities); 7.11 (Ground Transport); 7.12 (Hospital Ships, Sick-Bays in Warships, and
Coastal Rescue Craft); 7.14 (Military Medical Aircraft).
63
Refer to 6.6 (Weapons Calculated to Cause Superfluous Injury).
64
Refer to 6.7 (Inherently Indiscriminate Weapons).
65
Refer to 9.11.3.1 (Location on Land).
66
Refer to 6.14.3.2 (U.S. Reservation to CCW Protocol III on Incendiary Weapons).
67
See Daniel Webster, Letter to Mr. Fox, Apr. 24, 1841, reprinted in DANIEL WEBSTER, THE DIPLOMATIC AND
OFFICIAL PAPERS OF DANIEL WEBSTER, WHILE SECRETARY OF STATE 110 (1848) (explaining that even actions taken
in self-defense should not be unreasonable or excessive since such actions justified by the necessity of self-
defense, must be limited by that necessity and kept clearly within it). See also GROTIUS, LAW OF WAR & PEACE
601 (3.1.4.2) (we must also beware of what happens, and what we foresee may happen, beyond our purpose, unless
the good which our action has in view is much greater than the evil which is feared, or, greater than the fear of the
evil.); VATTEL, THE LAW OF NATIONS 279 (3.8.137) (explaining that a Sovereign has the right to make war upon
his fellow-men as a matter of necessity, and as a remedy, but the Sovereign should not push the remedy beyond its
just limits, and should be careful not to make it more severe or more disastrous to mankind than the care of his
own safety and the defense of his rights require.).
60
2.4.1 Proportionality as a Limit on the Exercise of a Right.
Under the law of war, judgments of proportionality often involve difficult and subjective
comparisons. 71 Recognizing these difficulties, States have declined to use the term
proportionality in law of war treaties because it could incorrectly imply an equilibrium
between considerations or suggest that a precise comparison between them is possible. 72
2.4.2 Proportionality and the Law of War. The principle of proportionality is reflected in
many areas in the law of war.
Proportionality most often refers to the jus in bello standard applicable to persons
conducting attacks. 73 Proportionality considerations, however, may also be understood to apply
to the party subject to attack, which must take feasible precautions to reduce the risk of
68
General George S. Brown, Chairman of the Joint Chiefs of Staff, Address: Duke University School of Law, Oct.
10, 1974, reprinted in ADDRESSES AND STATEMENTS BY GENERAL GEORGE S. BROWN, USAF, CHAIRMAN, JOINT
CHIEF OF STAFF 1974-1978 (1978) (We recognize that wanton destruction and unnecessary suffering are both
violations of these military developed legal principles and counterproductive to the political military goals of the
Nation. The law of proportionality is simply a legal restatement of the time honored military concept of economy
of force.).
69
Refer to 1.4.2 (Nature of War).
70
Refer to 5.12 (Proportionality in Conducting Attacks).
71
Refer to 5.12.4 (Excessive). Compare 2.2.3 (Applying Military Necessity).
72
See, e.g., BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 309-10 (AP I art. 51, 2.6.2) (describing how some government
delegations in the 1974-1977 Diplomatic Conference opposed incorporation of the term proportionality or
acknowledgement of a law of war rule of proportionality in AP I and AP II).
73
Refer to 5.12 (Proportionality in Conducting Attacks).
61
incidental harm. 74 Proportionality also plays a role in assessing whether weapons are prohibited
because they are calculated to cause unnecessary suffering. 75
In jus ad bellum, proportionality requires that the States means in resorting to force be
proportionate to its just cause in using force, such as the threat that the State seeks to address. 76
Proportionality is also a requirement for reprisals, which must respond in a proportionate manner
to the preceding illegal act by the party against which they are taken. 77
2.5 DISTINCTION
Principally, distinction seeks to separate the armed forces and the civilian population. 79
There are, however, certain special cases, such as military medical and religious personnel, who
may be treated like a combatant for one purpose (e.g., detention) but like a civilian for another
74
Refer to 5.14 (Feasible Precautions to Reduce the Risk of Harm to Protected Persons and Objects by the Party
Subject to Attack).
75
Refer to 6.6.3.3 (Clearly Disproportionate).
76
Refer to 1.11.1.2 (The Means Must Be Proportionate to the Just Cause (Proportionality Jus ad Bellum)).
77
Refer to 18.18.2.4 (Proportionality in Reprisal).
78
See, e.g., J. Fred Buzhardt, DoD General Counsel, Letter to Senator Edward Kennedy, Sept. 22, 1972, reprinted in
67 AJIL 122 (1973) (A summary of the laws of armed conflict, in the broadest terms, reveals certain general
principles including the following: (c). That a distinction must be made at all times between persons taking part
in the hostilities and members of the civilian population to the effect that the civilians be spared as much as possible.
These general principles were recognized in a resolution unanimously adopted by the United Nations General
Assembly in its Resolution dated 13 January 1969 (Resolution 2444 (XXIII)). We regard them as declaratory of
existing customary international law.); Ex parte Quirin, 317 U.S. 1, 30 (1942) (By universal agreement and
practice, the law of war draws a distinction between the armed forces and the peaceful populations of belligerent
nations,); 2004 UK MANUAL 2.5 (Since military operations are to be conducted only against the enemys armed
forces and military objectives, there must be a clear distinction between the armed forces and civilians, or between
combatants and non-combatants, and between objects that might legitimately be attacked and those that are
protected from attack.). Consider AP I art. 48 (In order to ensure respect for and protection of the civilian
population and civilian objects, the Parties to the conflict shall at all times distinguish between the civilian
population and combatants and between civilian objects and military objectives and accordingly shall direct their
operations only against military objectives.).
79
Refer to 4.2 (The Armed Forces and the Civilian Population).
62
purpose (e.g., not being made the object of attack). 80 However, for any particular legal purpose,
a person may not claim the distinct rights afforded to both combatants and civilians at the same
time. 81
2.5.3 Distinguishing a Partys Own Persons and Objects. Distinction enjoins the party
controlling the population 86 to use its best efforts to distinguish or separate its military forces and
war-making activities from members of the civilian population to the maximum extent feasible
so that civilian casualties and damage to civilian objects incidental to attacks on military
objectives will be minimized as much as possible. 87
Parties to a conflict must: (1) take certain measures to help ensure that military forces
and civilians can be visually distinguished from one another; (2) physically separate, as feasible,
their military objectives from the civilian population and other protected persons and objects;
and (3) refrain from the misuse of protected persons and objects to shield military objectives.
2.5.3.1 Measures to Help Ensure That Military Forces and Civilians Are Visually
Distinguishable From One Another. Parties to a conflict must take certain measures, in offense
or defense, to help ensure that military forces and civilians can be visually distinguished from
one another.
80
Refer to 4.2.3 (Mixed Cases).
81
Refer to 4.2.2 (No Person May Claim the Distinct Rights Afforded to Both Combatants and Civilians at the
Same Time).
82
Refer to 5.6 (Discrimination in Conducting Attacks).
83
Refer to 5.6.1 (Persons, Objects, and Locations That Are Not Protected From Being Made the Object of Attack).
84
Refer to 5.6.2 (Persons, Objects, and Locations That Are Protected From Being Made the Object of Attack).
85
Refer to 5.4 (Assessing Information Under the Law of War).
86
Refer to 5.3.1 (Responsibility of the Party Controlling Civilian Persons and Objects).
87
See J. Fred Buzhardt, DoD General Counsel, Letter to Senator Edward Kennedy, Sept. 22, 1972, reprinted in 67
AJIL 122 (1973) (A summary of the laws of armed conflict, in the broadest terms, reveals certain general principles
including the following: (c). That a distinction must be made at all times between persons taking part in the
hostilities and members of the civilian population to the effect that the civilians be spared as much as possible.
The principle in (c) addresses primarily the Party exercising control over members of the civilian population. This
principle recognizes the interdependence of the civilian community with the overall war effort of a modern society.
But its application enjoins the party controlling the population to use its best efforts to distinguish or separate its
military forces and war making activities from members of the civilian population to the maximum extent feasible
so that civilian casualties and damage to civilian objects incidental to attacks on military objectives, will be
minimized as much as possible.).
63
First, parties to a conflict must not disguise their armed forces as civilians or as other
protected categories of persons in order to kill or wound opposing forces. 88 Second, other rules
obligate parties to mark protected persons and objects to help ensure they receive the protections
of that status. 89 Third, certain rules encourage parties to a conflict to identify certain persons and
objects as unprotected. For example, during international armed conflict, members of organized
resistance movements must, inter alia, wear fixed distinctive signs visible at a distance and carry
arms openly to distinguish themselves from the civilian population in order for members of their
group to receive POW status. 90
For example, it may be appropriate to evacuate civilians from danger areas. 92 Similarly,
if feasible, military commanders should avoid placing military objectives in densely populated
areas. 93 In addition, it may be appropriate to establish zones where civilians and other protected
persons may seek refuge. 94
2.5.3.3 Refrain From the Misuse of Protected Persons and Objects to Shield
Military Objectives. Parties to a conflict must refrain from the misuse of civilians and other
protected persons and objects to shield their own military objectives. 95 For example, it is
prohibited to take hostages or otherwise to endanger deliberately protected persons or objects for
the purpose of deterring enemy military operations.
Misusing protected persons and objects to shield military objectives also offends honor
because it constitutes a breach of trust with the enemy and thus undermines respect for the law of
war. 96
2.5.4 Misconceptions About Distinction. Distinction seeks to ensure that protected and
unprotected categories are distinct from one another, not distinct in the abstract. For example,
using camouflage is consistent with distinction because foliage is not a protected category and
88
Refer to 5.22 (Treachery or Perfidy Used to Kill or Wound).
89
Refer to 5.14.4 (Using Distinctive and Visible Signs to Identify Protected Persons and Objects as Such).
90
Refer to 4.6.4 (Having a Fixed Distinctive Sign Recognizable at a Distance); 4.6.5 (Carrying Arms Openly).
91
Refer to 5.14 (Feasible Precautions to Reduce the Risk of Harm to Protected Persons and Objects by the Party
Subject to Attack).
92
Refer to 5.14.2 (Removing Civilians and Civilian Objects From the Vicinity of Military Objectives).
93
Refer to 5.14.1 (Refraining From Placing Military Objectives in Densely Populated Areas).
94
Refer to 5.14.3 (Establishing Areas Where Civilians or the Wounded and Sick Are Protected).
95
Refer to 5.16 (Prohibition on Using Protected Persons and Objects to Shield, Favor, or Impede Military
Operations).
96
Refer to 2.6.2 (Certain Amount of Fairness in Offense and Defense).
64
because civilians generally do not wear camouflage. 97 Similarly, U.S. forces have worn non-
standard uniforms to blend with local forces while remaining distinct from the civilian
population. 98
Distinction addresses the different rights, duties, and liabilities of the categories; it does
not require that a particular person or object fall within a particular category. For example, the
principle of distinction does not prohibit an otherwise civilian object from being used for military
purposes, thereby turning it into a military objective. 99 However, if such an object were seized
from the enemy, such seizure would have to have been imperatively demanded by the necessities
of war. 100 Similarly, persons with medical training or who provide medical care on the
battlefield are not necessarily military medical personnel and need not be identified as such. 101
Rather, a State may reserve the ability to use these persons as combatants by refraining from
designating them as exclusively engaged in medical activities.
97
Refer to 5.25.2 (Examples of Ruses), footnote 700 and accompanying text.
98
Refer to 5.25.2.1 (Mimicking Other Friendly Forces).
99
Refer to 5.16.1 (Protected Persons and Objects).
100
Refer to 5.17.2.2 (Seizure or Destruction of Enemy Property to Support Military Operations).
101
Refer to 4.9.2 (Requirements for Military Medical and Religious Status).
102
Refer to 5.5.4 (Failure by the Defender to Separate or Distinguish Does Not Relieve the Attacker of the Duty to
Discriminate in Conducting Attacks).
103
Refer to 7.15.2.1 (Removal or Obscuration of the Distinctive Emblem).
104
Refer to 17.5.2.1 (Positioning Military Forces Near the Civilian Population to Win Their Support and to Protect
Them).
65
2.6 HONOR
Honor demands a certain amount of fairness in offense and defense and a certain mutual
respect between opposing forces. 105
2.6.1 Honor Background and Notes on Terminology. Honor has been vital to the
development of the law of war, which was preceded by warriors codes of honor. 106 Honor
continues to be vital to giving the law of war effect today.
Honor is also called chivalry. Chivalry is often associated with a specific historical
contexta code of behavior for knights in Europe during the Middle Ages. Honor may be more
readily understood as incorporating warriors codes from a variety of cultures and time periods.
2.6.2 Certain Amount of Fairness in Offense and Defense. Honor requires a certain
amount of fairness in offense and defense. Honor forbids resort to means, expedients, or conduct
that would constitute a breach of trust with the enemy. 107
66
This acceptance is a prerequisite for the existence and operation of the law of war in the way that
the principle of pacta sunt servanda (treaties are binding on parties and must be performed by
them in good faith) provides a necessary foundation for treaties to exist and operate as
instruments that are legally binding on States. 110
Thus, honor may be understood to provide a foundation for obligations that help enforce
and implement the law of war or special agreements between belligerents during armed
conflict. 111 For example, honor may be understood to provide the foundation for the requirement
for persons to comply with the law of war in good faith. 112 Similarly, POWs are bound to adhere
to paroles on their personal honor. 113
Honor forbids such conduct because it may: (1) undermine the protections afforded by
the law of war; (2) impair non-hostile relations between opposing belligerents; and (3) damage
the basis for the restoration of peace short of complete annihilation of one belligerent by
another. 114
For example, enemies must deal with one another in good faith in their non-hostile
relations. 115 And even in the conduct of hostilities, good faith prohibits: (1) killing or wounding
enemy persons by resort to perfidy; (2) misusing certain signs; (3) fighting in the enemys
uniform; (4) feigning non-hostile relations in order to seek a military advantage; and (5)
compelling nationals of a hostile party to take part in the operations of war directed against their
own country. 116 Honor, however, does not forbid parties from using ruses and other lawful
deceptions against which the enemy ought to take measures to protect itself. 117
2.6.3 Certain Mutual Respect Between Opposing Forces. Honor demands a certain
mutual respect between opposing forces.
Opposing military forces should respect one another outside of the fighting because they
share a profession and they fight one another on behalf of their respective States and not out of
110
Refer to 1.10.1.1 (Legal Force of Treaties Among States).
111
Refer to 18.1.2 (National Obligations to Implement and Enforce the Law of War).
112
Refer to 18.3 (Duties of Individual Members of the Armed Forces).
113
Refer to 9.11.2 (Parole of POWs).
114
Refer to 5.21.1 (Harms From Breaches of Good Faith).
115
Refer to 12.2 (Principle of Good Faith in Non-Hostile Relations).
116
Refer to 5.21 (Overview of Good Faith, Perfidy, and Ruses).
117
Refer to 5.25 (Ruses of War and Other Lawful Deceptions).
67
personal hostility. 118 For example, this principle is reflected in the rule that POWs are legally in
the hands of the enemy State and not the individuals or military units who have captured them. 119
2.6.3.1 Honor and Rules for POW Captivity. In demanding a certain mutual
respect between opposing forces, honor animates rules that relate to the treatment of POWs. For
example, honor is one of the foundations for the humane treatment of POWs. 120 The principle of
honor is also reflected in rules that require POWs and their captors to treat one another with
respect. For example, POWs must be treated with respect for their honor and person. 121 As
another example, POWs, with the exception of officers, must salute and show to all officers of
the Detaining Power the external marks of respect provided for by the regulations applying in
their own forces. 122 In addition, capitulations agreed upon between belligerents must take into
account the rules of military honor. 123
Honor thus animates the rules that determine who qualifies for privileges of combatant
status. For example, an armed group must, inter alia, be organized under a responsible
118
See JEAN-JACQUES ROUSSEAU, THE SOCIAL CONTRACT & DISCOURSES 12 (1920) (The object of war being the
destruction of the hostile State, the other side has a right to kill its defenders, while they are bearing arms; but as
soon as they lay them down and surrender, they cease to be enemies or instruments of the enemy, and become once
more merely men, whose life no one has any right to take.).
119
Refer to 9.2.2 (Responsibility of the Detaining Power).
120
See, e.g., Samuel Falle, Chivalry, 113 Proceedings Magazine, Jan. 1987 (During World War II, the Japanese
were portrayed as brutal, subhuman savagesthe hordes of Attila or Genghis Khan. Certainly they did terrible
things, but I was fortunate enough to see something different. It is called chivalry, which the Oxford Dictionary
defines as a medieval knightly system, with its religious, moral, and social code; ideal knights characteristics. I
see it as compassion and magnanimity toward a beaten enemy.); United States, et al. v. Gring, et al., Judgment, I
TRIAL OF THE MAJOR WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE IMT 289 (When, on 8 September 1941, OKW issued its
ruthless regulations for Soviet POWs, Canaris wrote to [the defendant] Keitel that under international law the SD
should have nothing to do with this matter. On this memorandum, in Keitels handwriting, dated 23 September and
initialed by him, is the statement: The objections arise from the military concept of chivalrous warfare. This is the
destruction of an ideology. Therefore I approve and back the measures.).
121
Refer to 9.5.1 (Respect for Their Persons and Honor).
122
Refer to 9.22.3 (Saluting Between POWs and Officers of the Detaining Power).
123
Refer to 12.8.3 (Rules of Military Honor).
124
SPAIGHT, AIR POWER AND WAR RIGHTS 109-10 (Chivalry is difficult to define but it means broadly, the waging
of war in accordance with certain well-recognised formalities and courtesies. It is an influence quite distinct from
the humanitarian one; indeed, it prevailed in its full vigour at a time in which humanitarian interests were otherwise
entirely disregarded: witness the cruelty of the Black Prince to the people of Limoges. It is against free from any
necessary connection with Christianity; Saladin was a chivalrous as Coeur-de-Lion. It is, indeed, the spirit pure and
simple, of knighthood. It expresses in effect the feeling of the combatants that they belong to a caste, that their
encounter in arms is a high ceremonial, that an opponent is entitled to all honour and respect, that your enemy,
though he is your enemy, is at the same time a brother in the same noble family of knights-at-arms. Until
gunpowder came to democratise war, chivalry and chivalry alone was an influence making for moderation in war. It
was the first motive power for the creation of a restrictive law of war.).
68
command and conduct its operations in accordance with the law of war in order for its members
to be entitled to POW status during international armed conflict. 125 On the other hand, private
persons are generally denied the privileges of combatant status because they do not belong to this
class of combatants. 126
The principle that combatants share a common class has also been a foundation for the
trial of enemy combatants by military tribunals. 127 For example, the GPW expresses a
preference for POWs to be tried by military courts rather than civilian courts. 128
125
Refer to 4.6.1 (GPW 4A(2) Conditions in General).
126
Refer to 4.18.3 (Private Persons Who Engage in Hostilities Lack of the Privileges of Combatant Status).
127
General Douglas MacArthur, Action of the Confirming Authority, Feb. 7, 1946, United States v. Yamashita (U.S.
Military Commission, Manila, Dec. 7, 1945), LEVIE, DOCUMENTS ON POWS 298 (It is not easy for me to pass penal
judgment upon a defeated adversary in a major military campaign. I have reviewed the proceedings in vain search
for some mitigating circumstance on his behalf. I can find none. Rarely has so cruel and wanton a record been
spread to public gaze. Revolting as this may be in itself, it pales before the sinister and far reaching implication
thereby attached to the profession of arms. The soldier, be he friend or foe, is charged with the protection of the
weak and unarmed. It is the very essence and reason for his being. When he violates this sacred trust, he not only
profanes his entire cult but threatens the very fabric of international society. The traditions of fighting men are long
and honorable. They are based upon the noblest of human traits, - sacrifice. This officer, of proven field merit,
entrusted with high command involving authority adequate to responsibility, has failed this irrevocable standard; has
failed his duty to his troops, to his country, to his enemy, to mankind; has failed utterly his soldier faith. The
transgressions resulting therefrom as revealed by the trial are a blot upon the military profession, a stain upon
civilization and constitute a memory of shame and dishonor that can never be forgotten. Peculiarly callous and
purposeless was the sack of the ancient city of Manila, with its Christian population and its countless historic shrines
and monuments of culture and civilization, which with campaign conditions reversed had previously been spared.).
128
Refer to 9.26.3 (Trial by Military Courts).
69
III Application of the Law of War
Chapter Contents
3.1 Introduction
3.2 Situations to Which the Law of War Applies
3.3 Status of the Parties and the Law of War
3.4 When Jus in Bello Rules Apply
3.5 Relationship Between Jus in Bello and Jus ad Bellum
3.6 Reciprocity and Law of War Rules
3.7 Applying Rules by Analogy
3.8 End of Hostilities and the Application of the Law of War
3.9 Law of War Duties Also Applicable in Peace
3.1 INTRODUCTION
Whether a particular law of war rule applies to a situation may depend on a variety of
issues, such as (1) whether a state of war, hostilities, or armed conflict exists; 1 (2) whether
a party is recognized as a belligerent or as a State; 2 or (3) whether an enemy State has accepted
that law of war rule. 3 This Chapter addresses these and other broad issues underlying the
application of law of war rules. Later chapters address issues in applying specific rules,
including considerations specific to those rules. For example, whether a specific provision of the
GPW applies to a particular person may depend on whether that person is entitled to POW status
under the GPW. 4
Many of the legal issues underlying the application of law of war rules may be confusing
because they are complex and may appear to result in contradictory legal positions. For
example, a State may be at war for some purposes, but not for other purposes. 5 The legal
character of U.S. military operations may change rapidly. For example, some operations may
begin as military operations other than war and later evolve into war, or an international armed
conflict may change into a non-international armed conflict.
Although this Chapter addresses how rules apply as a matter of law, DoD practice has
often been to act consistently with law of war rules, even in certain cases where these rules might
not technically be applicable as a matter of law.
1
Refer to 3.4 (When Jus in Bello Rules Apply).
2
Refer to 3.3 (Status of the Parties and the Law of War).
3
Refer to 3.6.1 (Treaty Provisions That Provide for Reciprocity in the Scope of Application of the Treaty).
4
Refer to 9.3 (POW Status).
5
Refer to 1.5 (War as a Legal Concept).
70
3.1.1 DoD Practice of Applying Law of War Rules Even When Not Technically
Applicable. DoD policy and doctrine make clear the importance of compliance with,
implementation of, and enforcement of the law of war. 6
In addition, DoD practice has often been to act consistently with law of war rules, even in
certain cases where these rules might not technically be applicable as a matter of law. This
means, for example, that DoD practice has often been to act consistently with a particular law of
war treaty rule, even if that rule might not apply as a matter of treaty law. Moreover, DoD
practice has sometimes been to adhere to the standards in the law of war, even in situations that
do not constitute war or armed conflict, because these standards in the law of war reflect
legal standards that must be adhered to in all circumstances (i.e., whether there is a state of
armed conflict or not).
3.1.1.1 Reasons for Acting Consistent With a Treaty Rule, Even Though the
Treaty Does Not Apply. DoD practice has often been to act consistently with a treaty rule, even
if that rule might not apply as a matter of treaty law. First, it may be appropriate to act
consistently with the terms of a treaty (even as applied in dealings with a non-Party to a treaty)
because the general principles of the treaty have been determined to be declaratory of customary
international law. 7 In such cases, practice that is consistent with the treatys terms with regard to
a particular matter likewise would be in compliance with applicable customary international law.
In addition, it may be important to act consistently with the terms of the treaty because
the treaty represents modern international public opinion as to how military operations should
be conducted. 8 Other policy considerations, including efficacious training standards or close
relations with coalition partners, may lead to a policy decision that DoD practice should be
consistent with a particular law of war treaty rule, even if that rule does not apply to U.S. forces
as a matter of law.
6
Refer to 18.1.1 (DoD Policy on Implementing and Enforcing the Law of War).
7
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) Foreword (Moreover, even though States may not be parties to, or strictly
bound by, the 1907 Hague Conventions and the 1929 Geneva Convention relative to the Treatment of Prisoners of
War, the general principles of these conventions have been held declaratory of the customary law of war to which all
States are subject. For this reason, the United States has adopted the policy of observing and enforcing the terms of
these conventions in so far as they have not been superseded by the 1949 Geneva Conventions which necessarily
govern the relations between the parties to the latter (see pars. 6 and 7 of the text).).
8
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 7a (These treaty provisions are in large part but formal and specific
applications of general principles of the unwritten law. While solemnly obligatory only as between the parties
thereto, they may be said also to represent modern international public opinion as to how belligerents and neutrals
should conduct themselves in the particulars indicated. For these reasons, the treaty provisions quoted herein will be
strictly observed and enforced by United States forces without regard to whether they are legally binding upon this
country. Military commanders will be instructed which, if any, of the written rules herein quoted are not legally
binding as between the United States and each of the States immediately concerned, and which, if any, for that
reason are not for the time being to be observed or enforced.).
71
the standards adhered to equal or exceed those required. This practice has been reflected in DoD
policies to comply with the law of war, or to comply with the spirit and principles of the law of
war, during military operations outside the context of armed conflict. 9
Certain prohibitions and certain other rules in the law of war that reflect customary
international law have been described as reflecting elementary considerations of humanity. 10
These elementary considerations of humanity have been understood to be even more exacting
in peace than in war. 11 Thus, these legal standards, at a minimum, must be adhered to in all
circumstances.
9
See DOD DIRECTIVE 2311.01E, DoD Law of War Program, 4.1 (May 9, 2006, Certified Current as of Feb. 22,
2011) (Members of the DoD Components comply with the law of war during all armed conflicts, however such
conflicts are characterized, and in all other military operations.); DOD DIRECTIVE 5100.77, DoD Law of War
Program, 5.3 (Dec. 9, 1998) (The Heads of the DoD Components shall: 5.3.1. Ensure that the members of their
DoD Components comply with the law of war during all armed conflicts, however such conflicts are characterized,
and with the principles and spirit of the law of war during all other operations.). Refer to 18.1.1 (DoD Policy on
Implementing and Enforcing the Law of War).
10
Legality of the Threat or Use of Nuclear Weapons, Advisory Opinion, 1996 I.C.J. 226, 257 (79) (It is
undoubtedly because a great many rules of humanitarian law applicable in armed conflict are so fundamental to the
respect of the human person and elementary considerations of humanity as the Court put it in its Judgment of 9
April 1949 in the Corfu Channel case (I.C.J. Reports 1949, p. 22), that the Hague and Geneva Conventions have
enjoyed a broad accession. Further these fundamental rules are to be observed by all States whether or not they have
ratified the conventions that contain them, because they constitute intransgressible principles of international
customary law.).
11
Corfu Channel Case (United Kingdom v. Albania), Merits, Judgment, 1949 I.C.J. 4, 22 (The obligations
incumbent upon the Albanian authorities consisted in notifying, for the benefit of shipping in general, the existence
of a minefield in Albanian territorial waters and in warning the approaching British warships of the imminent danger
to which the minefield exposed them. Such obligations are based, not on the Hague Convention of 1907, No. VIII,
which is applicable in time of war, but on certain general and well-recognized principles, namely: elementary
considerations of humanity, even more exacting in peace than in war; the principle of the freedom of maritime
communication; and every States obligation not to allow knowingly its territory to be used for acts contrary to the
rights of other States.).
12
Refer to 8.1.4.1 (Common Article 3 of the 1949 Geneva Conventions).
13
Refer to 8.1.4.2 (Article 75 of AP I and Relevant AP II Provisions).
72
3.2 SITUATIONS TO WHICH THE LAW OF WAR APPLIES
Although the law of war is commonly understood as applying to the conduct of hostilities
and the protection of war victims, the law of war addresses other situations as well. The law of
war establishes:
rules between enemies for the conduct of hostilities and the protection of war victims in
international and non-international armed conflict; 15
In addition, these rules in the law of war can sometimes be applied by analogy to other
contexts. 19
The law of war distinguishes between: (1) international armed conflicts, i.e., conflicts
between States; and (2) other armed conflicts, typically called non-international armed conflicts.
3.3.1 International Armed Conflict and Non-International Armed Conflict. The law of
war treats situations of war, hostilities, or armed conflict differently based on the legal
status of parties to the conflict. If two or more States oppose one another, then this type of
armed conflict is known as an international armed conflict because it takes place between
States. However, a state of war can exist when States are not on opposite sides of the conflict. 20
14
Refer to 1.11 (Jus ad Bellum).
15
Chapter V addresses the conduct of hostilities.
16
Chapter XV addresses the law of neutrality.
17
Refer to 11.2 (When Military Occupation Law Applies).
18
Refer to 3.9 (Law of War Duties Also Applicable in Peace).
19
Refer to 3.7 (Applying Rules by Analogy).
20
See, e.g., Hamdan v. Rumsfeld, 548 U.S. 557, 630 (2006) (noting that an armed conflict described in Common
Article 3 of the 1949 Geneva Conventions does not involve a clash between nations.); The Prize Cases, 67 U.S.
635, 666 (1863) (it is not necessary to constitute war, that both parties should be acknowledged as independent
nations or sovereign States. A war may exist where one of the belligerents, claims sovereign rights as against the
other.).
73
These other types of conflict are described as not of an international character or non-
international armed conflict. 21 For example, two non-State armed groups warring against one
another or States warring against non-State armed groups may be described as non-international
armed conflict, even if international borders are crossed in the fighting. 22
The law of war rules applicable to non-international armed conflict are addressed in
Chapter XVII. 23 There are a number of important differences between the law applicable to
international armed conflict and the law applicable to non-international armed conflict. 24
3.3.1.1 Application of Jus in Bello Rules Does Not Necessarily Affect the Legal
Status of Parties. Although the legal status of an opponent affects the character of the conflict
and what rules apply as a matter of law, the application of jus in bello rules does not necessarily
affect the legal status of parties to a conflict. For example, a belligerent may, as a policy matter,
afford a person POW protections and treatment without affording that person legal status as a
POW.25 Similarly, the application of humanitarian rules, such as those reflected in Common
Article 3 of the 1949 Geneva Conventions, towards enemy non-State armed groups does not
affect their legal status (e.g., such application does not amount to recognizing the group as lawful
belligerents or as the legitimate government of a State). 26
3.3.1.2 Mixed Conflicts Between Opposing States and Non-State Armed Groups.
Rather than viewing a situation as either an international armed conflict or a non-international
armed conflict, it may be possible to characterize parts of a conflict as international in character,
while other parts of that armed conflict may be regarded as non-international in character. 27 For
example, under this view, during a situation involving conflict between a variety of States and
non-State armed groups, as between the States, the rules of international armed conflict would
21
See, e.g., Hamdan v. Rumsfeld, 415 F.3d 33, 44 (D.C. Cir. 2005) (Williams, J., concurring) (Non-state actors
cannot sign an international treaty. Nor is such an actor even a Power that would be eligible under Article 2 (P3)
to secure protection by complying with the Conventions requirements. Common Article 3 fills the gap, providing
some minimal protection for such non-eligibles in an armed conflict not of an international character occurring in
the territory of one of the High Contracting Parties. The gap being filled is the non-eligible partys failure to be a
nation. Thus the words not of an international character are sensibly understood to refer to a conflict between a
signatory nation and a non-state actor. The most obvious form of such a conflict is a civil war. But given the
Conventions structure, the logical reading of international character is one that matches the basic derivation of the
word international, i.e., between nations. Thus, I think the context compels the view that a conflict between a
signatory and a non-state actor is a conflict not of an international character.).
22
Refer to 17.1.1.2 (NIAC and Internal Armed Conflict).
23
Refer to 17.1 (Introduction).
24
Refer to 17.1.3 (Important Differences Between the Law Applicable to International Armed Conflict and the
Law Applicable to Non-International Armed Conflict).
25
Refer to 9.3.1 (POW Status Versus POW Protections).
26
Refer to 17.2.3 (Application of Humanitarian Rules and the Legal Status of the Parties to the Conflict).
27
Christopher Greenwood, International Humanitarian Law and the Tadic Case, 7 EUROPEAN JOURNAL OF
INTERNATIONAL LAW 265, 271 (1996) ([T]here is nothing intrinsically illogical or novel in characterizing some
aspects of a particular set of hostilities as an international armed conflict while others possess an internal character.
Conflicts have been treated as having such a dual aspect where a Government is simultaneously engaged in
hostilities with a rebel movement and with another State which backs that movement.).
74
apply, while as between the States and non-State armed groups, the rules of non-international
armed conflicts would apply. 28
3.3.2 Unrecognized Governments. Even if a State does not recognize an opponent as the
legitimate government of a State, under certain circumstances, rules of international armed
conflict may apply to a conflict between a State and a government that it does not recognize. For
example, members of the regular armed forces who profess allegiance to a government or
authority not recognized by the Detaining Power nonetheless would be entitled to POW status if
they fall into the power of the enemy during international armed conflict. 29
3.3.3 State Recognition of Armed Groups as Belligerents. In certain cases, States have
recognized armed groups as belligerents for certain legal purposes.
For the purpose of applying humanitarian rules, recognition of the armed group as having
belligerent rights is neither a prerequisite for nor a result of applying humanitarian rules. 30
28
See, e.g., Military and Paramilitary Activities in and Against Nicaragua (Nicaragua v. United States), Merits,
Judgment, 1986 I.C.J. 14, 114 (219) (The conflict between the contras forces and those of the Government of
Nicaragua is an armed conflict which is not of an international character. The acts of the contras towards the
Nicaraguan Government are therefore governed by the law applicable to conflicts of that character; whereas the
actions of the United States in and against Nicaragua fall under the legal rules relating to international conflicts.
Because the minimum rules applicable to international and to non-international conflicts are identical, there is no
need to address the question whether those actions must be looked at in the context of the rules which operate for the
one or for the other category of conflict.); Prosecutor v. Thomas Lubanga Dyilo, ICC Trial Chamber I, ICC-01/04-
01/06, Judgment 258 (563) (Mar. 14, 2012) (Similarly, although there is evidence of direct intervention on the
part of Uganda, this intervention would only have internationalised the conflict between the two states concerned
(viz. the DRC and Uganda). Since the conflict to which the UPC/FPLC [Lubangas militia] was a party was not a
difference arising between two states but rather protracted violence carried out by multiple non-state armed groups,
it remained a non-international conflict notwithstanding any concurrent international armed conflict between
Uganda and the DRC.).
29
Refer to 4.5.3 (Regular Armed Forces Who Profess Allegiance to a Government or an Authority Not
Recognized by the Detaining Power).
30
Refer to 17.2.3 (Application of Humanitarian Rules and the Legal Status of the Parties to the Conflict).
31
For example, STEFAN TALMON, RECOGNITION OF GOVERNMENTS IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 309 (1998) (Prior to
its installation in Nicaraguan territory the PJNR [Provisional Junta of National Reconstruction] was recognized as
the Government of Nicaragua by the following States: Panama (22 June 1979), Grenada (23 June 1979), Costa Rica
(18 July 1969). In a rare case of recognition of belligerency in modern history, the members of the Andean Group
(Bolivia, Colombia, Ecuador, Peru, and Venezuela) declared on 17 June 1979 that they had recognized both sides in
the Nicaraguan conflict as belligerents.); B.F. Butler, Attorney General, Piracy Upon the High Seas, May 17,
1836, 3 OPINIONS OF THE ATTORNEY GENERAL 120, 122 (1852) (The existence of a civil war between the people of
Texas and the authorities and people of the other Mexican States, was recognised by the President of the United
States at an early day in the month of November last. Official notice of this fact, and of the Presidents intention to
preserve the neutrality of the United States, was soon after given to the Mexican government.); The Santissima
Trinidad, 20 U.S. 283, 337 (1822) (The government of the United States has recognized the existence of a civil war
between Spain and her colonies, and has avowed a determination to remain neutral between the parties, and to allow
75
Historically, certain conditions had to be satisfied before outside States could recognize a
non-State armed group as a belligerent:
the armed group occupies and administers a significant portion of national territory;
the armed group acts under responsible chain of command and respects the laws of war;
and
circumstances exist that make it necessary for outside States to define their attitude
toward the conflict. 32
This doctrine has not been invoked often, especially after the adoption of the Charter of
the United Nations, and the unwarranted recognition of an insurgent group likely would, at least,
be considered an unfriendly act against a State engaged in hostilities against that group. 33
to each the same rights of asylum and hospitality and intercourse. Each party is, therefore, deemed by us a
belligerent nation, having, so far as concerns us, the sovereign rights of war, and entitled to be respected in the
exercise of those rights.).
32
HERSCH LAUTERPACHT, RECOGNITION IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 175-76 (1947) (There is general agreement as to
the nature of the conditions which impose the duty of recognition of belligerencyor which, according to others,
justify recognition of belligerency. These conditions are as follows: first, there must exist within the State an armed
conflict of a general (as distinguished from a purely local) character; secondly, the insurgents must occupy and
administer a substantial portion of national territory; thirdly, they must conduct the hostilities in accordance with the
rules of war and through organized armed forces acting under a responsible authority; fourthly, there must exist
circumstances which make it necessary for outside States to define their attitude by means of recognition of
belligerency.).
33
See, e.g., HERSCH LAUTERPACHT, RECOGNITION IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 239 (1947) (If a distant continental
State in no way directly concerned with the hostilities at sea were to recognize the insurgents as belligerents, it
would lay itself open to the charge of a gratuitous gesture unfriendly to the lawful government and merely calculated
to encourage the rebellion.).
34
The Prize Cases, 67 U.S. 635, 670 (1862) (Whether the President, in fulfilling his duties as Commander-in-chief
in suppressing an insurrection, has met with such armed hostile resistance and a civil war of such alarming
proportions as will compel him to accord to them the character of belligerents is a question to be decided by him,
and this Court must be governed by the decisions and acts of the political department of the Government to which
this power was entrusted. He must determine what degree of force the crisis demands. The proclamation of
blockade is itself official and conclusive evidence to the Court that a state of war existed which demanded and
authorized a recourse to such a measure under the circumstances peculiar to the case.).
76
3.3.3.3 Recognition of Friendly Armed Groups as Lawful Belligerents. In some
cases, a State has recognized an armed group that fights alongside it as a belligerent. 35 One
reason for such recognition might be to seek to persuade other States that have not recognized
the armed group as a belligerent, such as an enemy State, to grant the privileges of combatant
status to members of those armed groups. 36 An armed group that has been recognized in this
way by a friendly State may be viewed as analogous to an organized resistance movement that
belongs to a State that is a party to a conflict. 37
The United States has strongly objected to this provision as making the applicability of
the rules of international armed conflict turn on subjective and politicized criteria that would
eliminate the distinction between international and non-international conflicts. 39 The United
States has understood these types of conflicts to be non-international armed conflicts. 40
35
For example, Case Concerning Certain German Interests in Polish Upper Silesia (Merits) (Germany v. Poland)
P.C.I.J. (series A) No. 7, at 28 (At the time of the conclusion of those two Conventions, Poland was not recognized
as a belligerent by Germany; it is, however, only on the basis of such recognition that an armistice could have been
concluded between those two Powers. The Principal Allied Powers had, it is true, recognized the Polish armed
forces as an autonomous, allied and co-belligerent (or belligerent) army. This army was placed under the supreme
political authority of the Polish National Committee with headquarters in Paris.); Statement of the Secretary of
State, September 1918, reprinted in Charles Henry Hyde, The Recognition of the Czecho-Slovaks as Belligerents, 13
AJIL 93-95 (1919) (The Government of the United States recognizes that a state of belligerency exists between the
Czecho-Slovaks thus organized and the German and Austro-Hungarian Empires. It also recognizes the Czecho-
Slovak National Council as a de facto belligerent government, clothed with proper authority to direct the military
and political affairs of the Czecho-Slovaks.).
36
For example, Declaration Concerning Czechoslovak Army, Sept. 7, 1944, 11 DEPARTMENT OF STATE BULLETIN
263 (Sept. 10, 1944) (The United States Government therefore declares: (3) In these circumstances reprisals by
the German military authorities against the soldiers of the Czechoslovak Army violate the rules of war by which
Germany is bound. The United States Government, therefore, solemnly warns all Germans who take part in or are
in any way responsible for such violations that they do so at their peril and will be held answerable for their
crimes.).
37
Compare 4.6.2 (Belonging to a Party to the Conflict).
38
AP I art. 1(4) (The situations referred to in the preceding paragraph [i.e., the situations referred to in Article 2
common to those Conventions] include armed conflicts in which peoples are fighting against colonial domination
and alien occupation and against racist regimes in the exercise of their right of self-determination, as enshrined in
the Charter of the United Nations and the Declaration on Principles of International Law concerning Friendly
Relations and Co-operation among States in accordance with the Charter of the United Nations.).
39
See Ronald Reagan, Letter of Transmittal, Jan. 29, 1987, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING AP II III-
IV (But Protocol I is fundamentally and irreconcilably flawed. It contains provisions that would undermine
humanitarian law and endanger civilians in war. One of its provisions, for example, would automatically treat as an
international conflict any so-called war of national liberation. Whether such wars are international or non-
international should turn exclusively on objective reality, not on ones view of the moral qualities of each conflict.
To rest on such subjective distinctions based on a wars alleged purposes would politicize humanitarian law and
eliminate the distinction between international and non-international conflicts. It would give special status to wars
of national liberation, an ill-defined concept expressed in vague, subjective, politicized terminology.).
40
Detailed Analysis of Provisions, Attachment 1 to George P. Shultz, Letter of Submittal, Dec. 13, 1986, MESSAGE
FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING AP II 1-2 (This Article technically excludes four types of situations from the
77
Moreover, the United States has not accepted this provision in the context of the CCW. 41 The
United States has expressed the view that it would not be appropriate to treat this provision of
AP I as customary international law. 42
Jus in bello treaties often provide that they apply in cases of declared war or of any
other armed conflict, even if the state of war is not recognized by them. 43 This standard has
also been understood to result in the application of the customary law of war. 44
A case of declared war or any other armed conflict for the purpose of determining
whether parties must comply with jus in bello rules may be understood as arising in two ways:
(1) when a party intends to conduct hostilities; or (2) when parties are actually conducting
hostilities.
War, hostilities, and armed conflict may be defined differently for other legal
purposes. 45 It must be emphasized that the discussion in this section is for the purpose of
assessing whether jus in bello restrictions apply and not necessarily for other purposes. For
example, the fact that jus in bello restrictions apply is not determinative of whether a States
actions are lawful under jus ad bellum. 46 Similarly, the fact that jus in bello restrictions apply is
scope of the Protocol: (2) the so-called wars of national liberation defined as international armed conflicts by
Article 1(4) of Protocol I Additional to the 1949 Geneva Conventions; However, the exclusion of the second and
third categories is inappropriate. The second category--so-called liberation wars defined in Protocol I--are often in
fact non-international conflicts, and are distinguished by Protocol I from other non-international conflicts only on
the basis of highly politicized and undesirable criteria which detract from the integrity of international humanitarian
law; the United States should therefore reject this distinction.).
41
Refer to 19.21.1.2 (U.S. Reservation to Article 7(4)(b) of the CCW).
42
Memorandum submitted in United States v. Shakur, 690 F. Supp. 1291 (S.D.N.Y. 1988), III CUMULATIVE DIGEST
OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 1981-88 3436, 3441 (The new provisions on wars of
national liberation and prisoners of war in Protocol I clearly do not reflect the practice of states. Indeed, they were
adopted precisely because states did not accord prisoner-of-war status in such conflicts. It is most unlikely that
states will in the future choose to accord prisoner-of-war status in conflicts described as wars of national liberation.
Accordingly, it is the view of the United States that it would be inappropriate to treat these provisions as part of
customary international law under any circumstances.).
43
See, e.g., GWS art. 2 (The convention applies to all cases of declared war or of any other armed conflict which
may arise between two or more of the High Contracting Parties, even if the state of war is not recognized by
them.); GWS-SEA art. 2 (same); GPW art. 2 (same); GC art. 2 (same); 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY
CONVENTION art. 18 (the present Convention shall apply in the event of declared war or of any other armed conflict
which may arise between two or more of the High Contracting Parties, even if the state of war is not recognized by
one or more of them.); CCW art. 1 (This Convention and its annexed Protocols shall apply in the situations
referred to in Article 2 common to the Geneva Conventions of 12 August 1949 for the Protection of War Victims,).
44
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 8b (The customary law of war applies to all cases of declared war or any
other armed conflict which may arise between the United States and other nations, even if the state of war is not
recognized by one of them. The customary law is also applicable to all cases of occupation of foreign territory by
the exercise of armed force, even if the occupation meets with no armed resistance.).
45
Refer to 1.5.2 (Different Definitions of War for Different Legal Purposes).
46
Refer to 3.5.2 (Jus in Bello and Jus ad Bellum Generally Operate Independently of One Another).
78
not determinative of whether the permissions that are sometimes viewed as inherent in jus in
bello rules may be relied upon by a State or non-State actor. 47
3.4.1 Intent-Based Test for Applying Jus in Bello Rules. Jus in bello rules apply when a
party intends to conduct hostilities.
If a State chooses to go to war, then it is bound by jus in bello rules for the conduct of
those hostilities.48 For example, if a State considers it necessary to respond to attacks with
military force, then those military operations must comply with jus in bello rules. 49
The fact that the intention to conduct hostilities gives rise to obligations to comply with
the law of war is important because law of war obligations must be taken into account even
before the fighting actually begins, such as in the planning of military operations. 50 Similarly,
certain obligations under the GPW and the GC are triggered by the onset of hostilities, and it
may be necessary to implement these obligations even before the fighting actually begins. 51 As
another example, the party that is subject to attack is often in a position to take feasible
precautions for the protection of the civilian population even before the fighting begins. 52
79
simply by providing objective evidence of its decision to resort to force through formal
declarations that hostilities exist between them. 54
Although States generally no longer file formal declarations of war with one another,
officials may make public statements that are like declarations of war in that they provide notice
of a state of hostilities. 55 For example, States may make statements that indicate their view that
they are engaged in armed conflict in the context of reporting measures taken in the exercise of
their inherent right of self-defense to the U.N. Security Council. 56 Similarly, the authorization
by Congress of the use of military force has been interpreted as triggering the application of
certain parts of the law of war. 57
These types of statements concerning jus ad bellum may be probative of the applicability
of jus in bello restrictions. For example, a statement by a State indicating that it had suffered a
wrongful attack under jus ad bellum would also indicate that the State viewed jus in bello
restrictions as applicable to its adversarys operations against it and its own military operations
against its adversary. 58
Similarly, statements by States that justify the legality of their actions or assert authority
under jus in bello rules may also provide evidence that States have the intention of conducting
54
See, e.g., Convention (III) Relative to the Opening of Hostilities, art. 1, Oct. 18, 1907, 36 STAT. 2259, 2271 (The
Contracting Powers recognize that hostilities between themselves must not commence without previous and explicit
warning, in the form either of a reasoned declaration of war or of an ultimatum with conditional declaration of
war.); Eliza Ann and others, 1 DODSON 244, 247 (Mar. 9, 1813) (a declaration of war proves the existence of
actual hostilities on one side at least, and puts the other party also into a state of war, though he may, perhaps, think
proper to act on the defensive only.).
55
See, e.g., Navios Corp. v. The Ulysses II, 161 F. Supp. 932, 943 (D. Md. 1958) (concluding that a speech by
President Nasser of Egypt of November 1, confirmed by the statement of November 3, constituted a declaration of
war even under the technical requirements of international law.), affirmed, 260 F.2d 959 (4th Cir. 1958).
56
Refer to 1.11.5.6 (Reporting to the U.N. Security Council).
57
Talbot v. Seeman, 5 U.S. 1, 28 (1801) (Marshall, C.J.) (It is not denied, nor in the course of the argument has it
been denied, that congress may authorize general hostilities, in which case the general laws of war apply to our
situation; or partial hostilities, in which case the laws of war, so far as they actually apply to our situation, must be
noticed.).
58
For example, John O. Brennan, Assistant to the President for Homeland Security and Counterterrorism, Remarks
at Harvard Law School: Strengthening Our Security by Adhering to Our Values and Laws, Sept. 16, 2011 (First,
our definition of the conflict. As the President has said many times, we are at war with al-Qaida. In an indisputable
act of aggression, al-Qaida attacked our nation and killed nearly 3,000 innocent people. And as we were reminded
just last weekend, al-Qaida seeks to attack us again. Our ongoing armed conflict with al-Qaida stems from our
rightrecognized under international lawto self defense. An area in which there is some disagreement is the
geographic scope of the conflict. The United States does not view our authority to use military force against al-
Qaida as being restricted solely to hot battlefields like Afghanistan. Because we are engaged in an armed conflict
with al-Qaida, the United States takes the legal position that in accordance with international lawwe have the
authority to take action against al-Qaida and its associated forces without doing a separate self-defense analysis
each time. And as President Obama has stated on numerous occasions, we reserve the right to take unilateral action
if or when other governments are unwilling or unable to take the necessary actions themselves. That does not mean
we can use military force whenever we want, wherever we want. International legal principles, including respect for
a states sovereignty and the laws of war, impose important constraints on our ability to act unilaterallyand on the
way in which we can use forcein foreign territories.).
80
hostilities and that jus in bello restrictions apply to the activities that will effectuate those
intentions. 59
3.4.2 Act-Based Test for Applying Jus in Bello Rules. Jus in bello rules apply when
parties are actually conducting hostilities, even if the war is not declared or if the state of war is
59
Legal and Practical Consequences of a Blockade of Cuba, Oct. 19, 1962, 1 SUPPLEMENTAL OPINIONS OF THE
OFFICE OF LEGAL COUNSEL 486, 488-89 (2013) (The declaration of a state of war was helpful in ascertaining the
rights and obligations of neutrals in a given situation. Apart from this, however, it served little function. War itself,
whatever its reason, was legal self-help, and so were lesser measures if such could be said to exist. Whether or not a
nation declared a state of war it would be found by others to exist if that state were claiming rights, such as
blockade, normally associated with war.). For example, National Defense Authorization Act for Fiscal Year 2012
1021 (Congress affirms that the authority of the President to use all necessary and appropriate force pursuant to
the Authorization for Use of Military Force (Public Law 10740; 50 U.S.C. 1541 note) includes the authority for the
Armed Forces of the United States to detain covered persons (as defined in subsection (b)) pending disposition
under the law of war.); Hugh J. Clausen & W. Hays Parks, Geneva Conventions Status of Enemy Personnel
Captured During URGENT FURY, DAJA-IA 1983/7031 (Nov. 4, 1983), III CUMULATIVE DIGEST OF UNITED
STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 1981-1988 3452, 3454 (considering, inter alia, the fact that [t]he
Department of State, in a press release on 4 November 9 [1984], cited the GPW as authority for U.S. detention of
Cuban Grenadan military personnel in concluding that de facto hostilities existed on Grenada and that the Geneva
Conventions do apply.) (insertion reflect in the Digest).
60
For example, Hamdan v. Rumsfeld, 548 U.S. 557, 687 (2006) (Thomas, J., dissenting) (According to the State
Department, al Qaeda declared war on the United States as early as August 1996. In February 1998, al Qaeda
leadership issued another statement ordering the indiscriminateand, even under the laws of war as applied to
legitimate nation-states, plainly illegalkilling of American civilians and military personnel alike. This was not
mere rhetoric; even before September 11, 2001, al Qaeda was involved in the bombing of the World Trade Center in
New York City in 1993, the bombing of the Khobar Towers in Saudi Arabia in 1996, the bombing of the U. S.
Embassies in Kenya and Tanzania in 1998, and the attack on the U. S. S. Cole in Yemen in 2000.) (internal
citations omitted). See also United States v. Burr, 25 F. Cas. 201, 203 (C.C.D. Va. 1807) (Marshall, C.J.)
(explaining in the context of a prosecution of rebels for treason that war might be levied without a battle, or the
actual application of force to the object on which it was designed to act; that a body of men assembled for the
purpose of war, and being in a posture of war, do levy war; and from that opinion I have certainly felt no disposition
to recede. But the intention is an indispensable ingredient in the composition of the fact; and if war may be levied
without striking the blow, the intention to strike must be plainly proved.).
61
Refer to 17.2.4 (Binding Force of the Law of War on Insurgents and Other Non-State Armed Groups).
62
Refer to 1.11.1.1 (Competent Authority (Right Authority) to Wage War for a Public Purpose).
63
Refer to 1.3.3.2 (Law of War as Permissive Law).
64
Refer to 17.4.1 (Ability of a State to Use Its Domestic Law Against Non-State Armed Groups).
81
not recognized by them. 65 The de facto existence of an armed conflict is sufficient to trigger
obligations for the conduct of hostilities. 66
The United States has interpreted armed conflict in Common Article 2 of the 1949
Geneva Conventions to include any situation in which there is hostile action between the armed
forces of two parties, regardless of the duration, intensity or scope of the fighting. 67
3.4.2.1 Reasons for States to Seek to Deny the Existence of Hostilities. States
have specified that jus in bello rules apply even if a state of hostilities is not recognized by them
because States have frequently denied that they are at war. And, in some cases, this denial has
resulted in a refusal to comply with jus in bello obligations. 68
65
See, e.g., GWS art. 2 (The convention applies to all cases of declared war or of any other armed conflict which
may arise between two or more of the High Contracting Parties, even if the state of war is not recognized by them.)
(emphasis added); GWS-SEA art. 2 (same); GPW art. 2 (same); GC art. 2 (same); 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL
PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 18 (the present Convention shall apply in the event of declared war or of any other
armed conflict which may arise between two or more of the High Contracting Parties, even if the state of war is not
recognized by one or more of them.) (emphasis added); CCW art. 1 (This Convention and its annexed Protocols
shall apply in the situations referred to in Article 2 common to the Geneva Conventions of 12 August 1949 for the
Protection of War Victims,).
66
GPW COMMENTARY 22-23 (There is no need for a formal declaration of war, or for the recognition of the
existence of a state of war, as preliminaries to the application of the Convention. The occurrence of de facto
hostilities is sufficient.). For example, Hugh J. Clausen & W. Hays Parks, Geneva Conventions Status of Enemy
Personnel Captured During URGENT FURY, DAJA-IA 1983/7031 (Nov. 4, 1983), III CUMULATIVE DIGEST OF
UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 1981-1988 3452, 3454 (concluding that de facto hostilities
existed on Grenada and that the Geneva Conventions do apply despite the fact that [n]o party to the hostilities in
Grenada has suggested that a state of war exists; officials of Cuba and the United States publicly have announced
they are not at war.); George Aldrich, Assistant Legal Adviser for Far Eastern Affairs, Department of State,
Entitlement of American Military Personnel Held by North Viet-Nam to Treatment as Prisoners of War Under the
Geneva Convention of 1949 Relative to the Treatment of Prisoners of War, Jul. 13, 1966, X WHITEMANS DIGEST
231-32 (7) (Although there have been no declarations of war, the present conflict in Vietnam is indisputably an
armed conflict between parties to the Geneva Conventions of 1949. In one aspect of the war, American aircraft are
operating against military targets in North Vietnam, and North Vietnamese forces have engaged these aircraft.
Under these circumstances, the Convention applies in its entirety to this conflict. In this case, the state of war
(under international law) is not disputed; it is merely undeclared.).
67
Department of State, Telegram 348126 to American Embassy at Damascus, Dec. 8, 1983, III CUMULATIVE
DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 1981-1988 3456, 3457 (The Third Geneva
Convention accords prisoner-of-war status to members of the armed forces who are captured during armed
conflict between two or more parties to the Convention. Armed conflict includes any situation in which there is
hostile action between the armed forces of two parties, regardless of the duration, intensity or scope of the fighting
and irrespective of whether a state of war exists between the two parties.). Cf. Bas v. Tingy, 4 U.S. 37, 40 (1800)
(Washington, J., concurring) (every contention by force between two nations, in external matters, under the
authority of their respective governments, is not only war, but public war.).
68
For example, United States, et al. v. Araki, et al., Majority Judgment, International Military Tribunal for the Far
East, 49,602, reprinted in NEIL BOISTER & ROBERT CRYER, DOCUMENTS ON THE TOKYO INTERNATIONAL MILITARY
TRIBUNAL: CHARTER, INDICTMENT AND JUDGMENTS 535 (2008) (Since the Government of Japan officially
classified the China War as an Incident and considered Chinese soldiers in Manchuria as bandits the Army
refused to accord to captives taken in the fighting the status and the rights of prisoners of war. MUTO says that it
was officially decided in 1938 to continue to call the war in China an Incident and to continue for that reason to
refuse to apply the rules of war to the conflict. TOJO told us the same.).
82
There are a variety of reasons why States might deny that they are at war. For
example, government officials may deny that an armed conflict exists: (1) to avoid an escalation
in fighting and to facilitate a diplomatic resolution; (2) for reasons of domestic law; (3) to avoid
economic costs (such as discouraging commerce and foreign investment); or (4) to avoid
appearing to acknowledge the military effectiveness of an opposing force.
In particular, States have often been reluctant to acknowledge that operations by non-
State armed groups have triggered the application of Common Article 3 of the 1949 Geneva
Conventions. 69 This reluctance often stems from an unwillingness to take any action that could
enhance the perceived status of rebels or give any appearance of legitimacy to their actions. 70
Nonetheless, the application of the humanitarian rules does not affect the legal status of parties to
a conflict. 71
69
See, e.g., George H. Aldrich, Deputy Legal Adviser, Department of State, Human Rights in Armed Conflict:
Development of the Law, Apr. 13, 1973, 68 DEPARTMENT OF STATE BULLETIN, 876, 878 (Jun. 18, 1973) (I would
note that Pakistan in Bangladesh and the United Kingdom in Northern Ireland have refused to acknowledge the
applicability of article 3 common to the four Geneva Conventions concerning noninternational armed conflicts.).
70
See, e.g., George H. Aldrich, Deputy Legal Adviser, Department of State, Human Rights in Armed Conflict:
Development of the Law, Apr. 13, 1973, 68 DEPARTMENT OF STATE BULLETIN, 876, 879 (Jun. 18, 1973) (In the
first place there is a general concern of governments that the acceptance of international standards for a civil war
connotes international recognition of the insurgents. This concern results from the historical development of the
law; in customary law the international laws of war become applicable to a civil war upon international recognition
of the rebels as belligerents. This concern persists despite an explicit provision in common article 3 that its
application shall not affect the legal status of the parties to the conflict. Personally, I deplore the fact that this
concern so often effectively prevents official admission that an internal armed conflict is one to which article 3
applies, but we cannot ignore that political reality. Governments will predictably remain unwilling to do anything
that could enhance the perceived status of rebels or give any appearance of legitimacy to their actions.).
71
Refer to 17.2.3 (Application of Humanitarian Rules and the Legal Status of the Parties to the Conflict).
72
See, e.g., CCW AMENDED art. 1 (2) (This Convention and its annexed Protocols shall not apply to situations of
internal disturbances and tensions, such as riots, isolated and sporadic acts of violence, and other acts of similar
nature, as not being armed conflicts.); CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 1(2) (This Protocol shall not apply
to situations of internal disturbances and tensions, such as riots, isolated and sporadic acts of violence and other acts
of a similar nature, as not being armed conflicts.); United States, Statement on Ratification of the International
Convention for the Suppression of the Financing of Terrorism, Jun. 26, 2002, 2185 UNTS 611, 612 ((2) Meaning
of the term armed conflict. The United States of America understands that the term armed conflict in Article 2 (1)
(b) of the Convention does not include internal disturbances and tensions, such as riots, isolated and sporadic acts of
violence, and other acts of a similar nature.). Consider AP II art. 1(2) (This Protocol shall not apply to situations
of internal disturbances and tensions, such as riots, isolated and sporadic acts of violence and other acts of a similar
nature, as not being armed conflicts.); ROME STATUTE art. 8(2)(d) (Paragraph 2(c) applies to armed conflicts not
of an international character and thus does not apply to situations of internal disturbances and tensions, such as riots,
isolated and sporadic acts of violence or other acts of a similar nature.); ROME STATUTE art. 8(2)(f) (Paragraph
2(e) applies to armed conflicts not of an international character and thus does not apply to situations of internal
disturbances and tensions, such as riots, isolated and sporadic acts of violence or other acts of a similar nature.).
83
Any hostile action between the armed forces of different States (i.e., international armed
conflict) may readily be distinguished from an internal disturbance or tension. However, it has
been more difficult to distinguish armed conflict not of an international character from
internal disturbances or tensions.
Armed conflict not of an international character for the purpose of applying the
obligations in Common Article 3 of the 1949 Geneva Conventions was not specifically defined
in those conventions. 73 There has been a range of views on what constitutes an armed conflict
not of an international character for this purpose. 74 The intensity of the conflict and the
organization of the parties are criteria that have been assessed to distinguish between non-
international armed conflict and internal disturbances and tensions. 75 A variety of factors have
been considered in assessing these criteria and in seeking to distinguish between armed conflict
and internal disturbances and tensions. 76
73
GWS COMMENTARY 49 (What is meant by armed conflict not of an international character? That was the
burning question which arose again and again at the Diplomatic Conference. The expression was so general, so
vague, that many of the delegations feared that it might be taken to cover any act committed by force of armsany
form of anarchy, rebellion, or even plain banditry. For example, if a handful of individuals were to rise in rebellion
against the State and attack a police station, would that suffice to bring into being an armed conflict within the
meaning of the Article? In order to reply to questions of this sort, it was suggested that the term conflict should be
defined or, which would come to the same thing, that a certain number of conditions for the application of the
Convention should be enumerated. The idea was finally abandonedwisely, we think.).
74
See, e.g., Prosecutor v. Tadi, ICTY Appeals Chamber, IT-94-1-A, Decision on the Defence Motion for
Interlocutory Appeal on Jurisdiction, 70 (Oct. 2, 1995) (On the basis of the foregoing, we find that an armed
conflict exists whenever there is a resort to armed force between States or protracted armed violence between
governmental authorities and organized armed groups or between such groups within a State.); Juan Carlos Abella
v. Argentina, Inter-American Commission on Human Rights, Organization of American States, Case 11.137,
OEA/Ser.L/V/II.98, 152 (Nov. 18, 1997) (Common Article 3 is generally understood to apply to low intensity and
open armed confrontations between relatively organized armed forces or groups that take place within the territory
of a particular State.).
75
See, e.g., Prosecutor v. Tadi, ICTY Trial Chamber, IT-94-1-A, Judgment, 562 (May 7, 1997) (In an armed
conflict of an internal or mixed character, these closely related criteria are used solely for the purpose, as a
minimum, of distinguishing an armed conflict from banditry, unorganized and short-lived insurrections, or terrorist
activities, which are not subject to international humanitarian law.); Prosecutor v. Akayesu, ICTR Trial Chamber,
ICTR-96-4-T, Judgment, 625 (Sept. 2, 1998) (The concept of armed conflict has already been discussed in the
previous section pertaining to Common Article 3. It suffices to recall that an armed conflict is distinguished from
internal disturbances by the level of intensity of the conflict and the degree of organization of the parties to the
conflict.).
76
See, e.g., GPW COMMENTARY 35-36 (collecting conditions that States negotiating the 1949 Geneva Conventions
viewed as indicative factors); Prosecutor v. Boskoski, ICTY Trial Chamber II, IT-04-82-T, Judgment, 177 (Jul. 10,
2008) (Various indicative factors have been taken into account by Trial Chambers to assess the intensity of the
conflict. These include the seriousness of attacks and whether there has been an increase in armed clashes, the
spread of clashes over territory and over a period of time, any increase in the number of government forces and
mobilisation and the distribution of weapons among both parties to the conflict, as well as whether the conflict has
attracted the attention of the United Nations Security Council, and whether any resolutions on the matter have been
passed. Trial Chambers have also taken into account in this respect the number of civilians forced to flee from the
combat zones; the type of weapons used, in particular the use of heavy weapons, and other military equipment, such
as tanks and other heavy vehicles; the blocking or besieging of towns and the heavy shelling of these towns; the
extent of destruction and the number of casualties caused by shelling or fighting; the quantity of troops and units
deployed; existence and change of front lines between the parties; the occupation of territory, and towns and
villages; the deployment of government forces to the crisis area; the closure of roads; cease fire orders and
84
A helpful rule of thumb may be that where parties are, in fact, engaged in activities that
the law of war contemplates (e.g., detention of enemy military personnel without criminal
charge, bombardment of military objectives), those activities are subject to the law of war. 77
agreements, and the attempt of representatives from international organisations to broker and enforce cease fire
agreements.); Prosecutor v. Dordevic, ICTY Trial Chamber II, IT-04-82-T, Judgment, 1526 (Feb. 23, 2011)
(Trial Chambers have taken into account a number of factors when assessing the organization of an armed group.
These fall into five broad groups. First, are the factors signalling the presence of a command structure. Secondly,
are factors indicating that an armed group could carry out operations in an organised manner. Thirdly, are factors
indicating a level of logistics have been taken into account. Fourthly, are factors relevant to determining whether an
armed group possessed a level of discipline and the ability to implement the basic obligations of Common Article 3.
A fifth group includes factors indicating that the armed group was able to speak with one voice.).
77
Juan Carlos Abella v. Argentina, Inter-American Commission on Human Rights, Organization of American
States, Case 11.137, OEA/Ser.L/V/II.98, 155 (Nov. 18, 1997) (What differentiates the events at the La Tablada
base from these situations [of internal disturbances] are the concerted nature of the hostile acts undertaken by the
attackers, the direct involvement of governmental armed forces, and the nature and level of the violence attending
the events in question. More particularly, the attackers involved carefully planned, coordinated and executed an
armed attack, i.e., a military operation, against a quintessential military objective - a military base.); GPW
COMMENTARY 23 (It makes no difference how long the conflict lasts, how much slaughter takes place, or how
numerous are the participating forces; it suffices for the armed forces of one Power to have captured adversaries
falling within the scope of Article 4. Even if there has been no fighting, the fact that persons covered by the
Convention are detained is sufficient for its application. The number of persons captured in such circumstances is,
of course, immaterial.).
78
United Kingdom, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Jan. 28, 1998, 2020 UNTS 75, 76 (It is the understanding of
the United Kingdom that the term armed conflict of itself and in its context denotes a situation of a kind which is
not constituted by the commission of ordinary crimes including acts of terrorism whether concerted or in
isolation.).
79
Refer to 17.4.1 (Ability of a State to Use Its Domestic Law Against Non-State Armed Groups).
80
For example, William J. Clinton, Address to the Nation on Military Action Against Terrorist Sites in Afghanistan
and Sudan, Aug. 20, 1998, 1998-II PUBLIC PAPERS OF THE PRESIDENTS 1460, 1461 (America has battled terrorism
for many years. Where possible, weve used law enforcement and diplomatic tools to wage the fight. But there
have been and will be times when law enforcement and diplomatic tools are simply not enough, when our very
national security is challenged, and when we must take extraordinary steps to protect the safety of our citizens. With
compelling evidence that the bin Ladin network of terrorist groups was planning to mount further attacks against
Americans and other freedom-loving people, I decided America must act. And so this morning, based on the
unanimous recommendation of my national security team, I ordered our armed forces to take action to counter an
immediate threat from the bin Ladin network. Earlier today, the United States carried out simultaneous strikes
against terrorist facilities and infrastructure in Afghanistan.); Public Committee against Torture in Israel, et al. v.
Government of Israel, et al., HCJ 769/02, Israel Supreme Court Sitting as the High Court of Justice, 21 (Dec. 11,
2005) (Indeed, in todays reality, a terrorist organization is likely to have considerable military capabilities. At
times they have military capabilities that exceed those of states. Confrontation with those dangers cannot be
restricted within the state and its penal law.).
85
they are also bound by the applicable jus in bello restrictions in the law of war. 81
Acts of terrorism during armed conflict are prohibited by the law of war. 82
3.5.1 General Distinction Between Jus in Bello and Jus ad Bellum. As a general matter,
jus in bello and jus ad bellum address different legal issues and should not be conflated. 83
Conflating jus in bello and jus ad bellum risks misunderstanding and misapplying these
concepts. For example, in jus ad bellum, proportionality refers to the principle that the overall
goal of the State in resorting to war should not be outweighed by the harm that the war is
expected to produce. 84 However, proportionality in jus in bello generally refers to the standard
that the expected incidental harm to the civilian population and civilian objects should not be
disproportionate to the anticipated military advantage from an attack. 85 Therefore, although a jus
ad bellum proportionality analysis might consider the harm suffered by enemy military forces in
the fighting, a jus in bello proportionality analysis would not.
3.5.2 Jus in Bello and Jus ad Bellum Generally Operate Independently of One Another.
One important attribute of rules for conduct during war (jus in bello) is that, in general, they
operate independently from rules regarding the resort to force (jus ad bellum).
81
Refer to 3.4.1 (Intent-Based Test for Applying Jus in Bello Rules).
82
Refer to 10.5.3.2 (Collective Penalties and Measures of Intimidation or Terrorism); 17.6.5 (Prohibition on
Acts of Terrorism).
83
Refer to 1.11 (Jus ad Bellum).
84
Refer to 1.11.1.2 (The Means Must Be Proportionate to the Just Cause (Proportionality Jus ad Bellum)).
85
Refer to 5.12 (Proportionality in Conducting Attacks).
86
GWS art. 1 (The High Contracting Parties undertake to respect and to ensure respect for the present Convention
in all circumstances.).
87
GWS COMMENTARY 27 (The words in all circumstances mean in short that the application of the Convention
does not depend on the character of the conflict. Whether a war is just or unjust, whether it is a war of
aggression or of resistance to aggression, the protection and care due to the wounded and sick are in no way
affected.). Consider AP I preamble (the provisions of the Geneva Conventions of 12 August 1949 and of this
Protocol must be fully applied in all circumstances to all persons who are protected by those instruments, without
86
3.5.2.2 Compliance With Jus ad Bellum Is Required Regardless of Compliance
With Jus in Bello. Compliance with jus ad bellum is required regardless of compliance with jus
in bello. 89 For example, a State that complies with jus in bello rules may nonetheless commit
aggression under jus ad bellum. 90 In addition, violations of law of war treaties applicable to non-
international armed conflict generally have not been understood to provide a basis in
international law for a non-belligerent State to intervene against the State in that conflict. 91
3.5.2.3 Rationales for the Independent Operation of Jus in Bello and Jus ad
Bellum. The principle that jus in bello rules operate independently of jus ad bellum rules is
based on principles of sovereignty and humanity, as well as practical considerations.
If the law of war only protected parties justly resorting to force, then both sides, believing
their opponents cause to be unjust, could consider themselves free to depart from jus in bello
rules. 92 As a consequence, both sides could deny protections to their opponent, and no one
would benefit from the law of wars humanitarian protections. 93 Moreover, there might not be a
competent procedure for deciding which, if any, State has unlawfully resorted to force. 94
any adverse distinction based on the nature or origin of the armed conflict or on the causes espoused by or attributed
to the Parties to the conflict,).
88
Refer to 11.2.1 (Military Occupation as a Fact).
89
Consider AP I preamble (nothing in this Protocol or in the Geneva Conventions of 12 August 1949 can be
construed as legitimizing or authorizing any act of aggression or any other use of force inconsistent with the Charter
of the United Nations,).
90
Refer to 1.11.3.1 (Aggression).
91
Refer to 17.18.1 (Duty of Non-Belligerent States to Refrain From Supporting Hostilities by Non-State Armed
Groups Against Other States).
92
VATTEL, THE LAW OF NATIONS 305 (3.12.190) (Moreover, since each Nation claims to have justice on its side, it
will arrogate to itself all the rights of war and claim that its enemy has none, that his hostilities are but deeds of
robbery, acts in violation of the Law of Nations, and deserving of punishment by all Nations. The decision of the
rights at issue will not be advanced thereby, and the context will become more cruel, more disastrous in its effects,
and more difficult of termination.).
93
VATTEL, THE LAW OF NATIONS 305 (3.12.190) (The first rule of that law [of nations], with respect to the subject
under consideration, is that regular war, as regards its effects, must be accounted just on both sides. This principle,
as we have just shown, is absolutely necessary if any law or order is to be introduced into a method of redress as
violent as that of war, if any bounds are to be set to the disasters it occasions, and if a door is to be left at all times
open for the return of peace. Moreover, any other rule would be impractical as between Nation and Nation, since
they recognize no common judge.).
94
LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 218 (61) (Unless war is to degenerate into a savage
contest of physical forces freed from all restraints of compassion, chivalry and respect for human life and dignity, it
is essential that the accepted rules of war should continue to be observed. This is so in particular in view of the fact
that in the present state of international judicial and political organisation there may be no means by which an
authoritative judgment can be arrived at on the question as to which State is the aggressor. (It will be noted, for
instance, that nothing short of an unanimous vote of the permanent members of the Security Council is sufficient for
the determination that a particular State has resorted to war in violation of its obligations under the Charter.)
Accordingly it must be held that during the war all belligerents are bound to respect and are entitled to insist as
among themselves on the observance of rules of war as generally recognised.).
87
The principle that jus in bello rules operate independently of jus ad bellum rules is also
influenced by the fact that it would be unjust to punish individual military members based on jus
ad bellum considerations when they have no influence on whether their State has resorted to
force lawfully under applicable international law. 95
3.5.3 Jus in Bello and Jus ad Bellum Are Sometimes Related. Although as a general
matter parties must comport with jus in bello rules, regardless of jus ad bellum considerations,
sometimes jus ad bellum issues can affect how jus in bello rules operate.
For example, the jus ad bellum principle of competent authority (also called right
authority) acknowledges that the resort to military force is a prerogative of the State. 96
Competent authority is reflected in the distinction between international armed conflict and non-
international armed conflict; military operations against another State are fundamentally different
as a matter of law than military operations against a non-State armed group. 97 Competent
authority also is reflected in jus in bello rules relating to who is entitled to receive the privileges
of combatant status. Private persons captured after engaging in hostilities generally are not
entitled to receive the privileges of POW status under the law of war because they lack
competent authority. 98
As another example, the jus ad bellum issue of whether a disputed territory belongs to a
State affects whether the law of belligerent occupation applies to that territory because the law of
belligerent occupation only applies to territory that belongs to an enemy State. 99
3.5.4 U.N. Security Council Decisions and Jus in Bello. The Charter of the United
Nations provides the modern treaty framework for jus ad bellum, and assigns important
responsibilities to the U.N. Security Council. 100
In theory, decisions by the Security Council, acting under Chapter VII of the Charter of
the United Nations, could create obligations that conflict with, and prevail over, obligations in
law of war treaties or customary international law. 101 In practice, however, the U.N. Security
Council frequently has affirmed the obligations of States and parties to conflicts to comply with
95
United States v. Josef Altstoetter, et al. (Justice Case), III TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 1027 (If
we should adopt the view that by reason of the fact that the war was a criminal war of aggression every act which
would have been legal in a defensive war was illegal in this one, we would be forced to the conclusion that every
soldier who marched under orders into occupied territory or who fought in the homeland was a criminal and a
murderer. The rules of land warfare upon which the prosecution has relied would not be the measure of conduct and
the pronouncement of guilt in any case would become a mere formality.).
96
Refer to 1.11.1.1 (Competent Authority (Right Authority) to Wage War for a Public Purpose).
97
Refer to 3.3.1 (International Armed Conflict and Non-International Armed Conflict).
98
Refer to 4.18.3 (Private Persons Who Engage in Hostilities Lack of the Privileges of Combatant Status).
99
Refer to 11.2.2.3 (Of the Hostile Army Belligerent Occupation Applies to Enemy Territory).
100
Refer to 1.11.2 (U.N. Charter Framework and the U.N. Security Council).
101
Refer to 1.11.2.1 (U.N. Member State Obligations With Respect to U.N. Security Council Decisions).
88
the law of war, including military forces operating pursuant to U.N. Security Council
decisions. 102
The U.N. Security Council also has certain authorities to respond to situations involving
violations of the law of war, including establishing commissions of inquiry or authorizing the use
of force. 103
Decisions of the Security Council, however, may alter the obligations of member States
of the United Nations under the law of neutrality. 104 In addition, a U.N. Security Council
authorization may provide additional authority for an Occupying Power to govern occupied
territory. 105
Reciprocity sometimes refers to the idea that whether a law of war rule applies to a
party to a conflict depends on whether its opponent has accepted and complies with that same
rule or a corresponding rule. The requirement to comply with many law of war rules (such as the
obligation to treat detainees humanely) does not depend on whether the enemy complies with
that rule. Nonetheless, in the law of war, reciprocity may play a role in: (1) whether a rule
applies; (2) enforcing a rule; or (3) how a rule operates.
3.6.1 Treaty Provisions That Provide for Reciprocity in the Scope of Application of the
Treaty. Considerations of reciprocity i.e., the degree of confidence as to whether an adversary
will, in fact, abide by a certain rule may be a critical factor in the willingness of States to enter
into treaty obligations.
Similarly, various treaty provisions also reflect, to varying degrees, the principle that
whether a rule is legally binding on a party depends on whether its opponent has accepted and
applied that same rule. For example, some law of war treaties have a general participation
clause i.e., a clause specifying that the treaty only applies to an armed conflict if all the parties
to the armed conflict are also Parties to the treaty. 106 A number of treaties on the law of
102
For example, U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 2011(2011), U.N. Doc. S/RES/2011 (2011) (Oct. 12, 2011)
(Expressing its serious concern with the increased high number of civilian casualties in Afghanistan, in particular
women and children casualties, the increasingly large majority of which are caused by Taliban, Al-Qaida and other
violent and extremist groups, reaffirming that all parties to armed conflict must take all feasible steps to ensure the
protection of affected civilians, especially women, children and displaced persons, calling for all parties to comply
with their obligations under international humanitarian and human rights law and for all appropriate measures to be
taken to ensure the protection of civilians, and recognizing the importance of the ongoing monitoring and reporting
to the United Nations Security Council, including by ISAF, of the situation of civilians and in particular civilian
casualties, and noting in this regard the work of the ISAF Civilian Casualties Tracking Cell,).
103
Refer to 18.12 (U.N. Security Council and Enforcement of the Law of War).
104
Refer to 15.2.3 (The Law of Neutrality Under the Charter of the United Nations).
105
Refer to 11.1.2.5 (Occupation and U.N. Security Council Resolutions).
106
For example, HAGUE IV art. 2 (The provisions contained in the Regulations referred to in Article 1, as well as in
the present Convention, do not apply except between Contracting Powers, and then only if all the belligerents are
parties to the Convention.); HAGUE V art. 20 (The provisions of the present Convention do not apply except
between Contracting Powers, and then only if all the belligerents are parties to the Convention.); HAGUE IX art. 8
89
neutrality have such a clause. 107 Other treaties specify that if both Parties and non-Parties to a
treaty are in an armed conflict, then Parties to the treaty remain bound by the treaty in their
mutual relations, but not in relation to States that are not Parties to the treaty. 108 Treaties have
also provided that if a State in an armed conflict is not a Party to the treaty, but it accepts and
applies the treatys provisions, then the Parties to the treaty are bound by the treaty in relation to
that State. 109
These provisions, however, only determine the application of the treaty as matter of
treaty law and not as customary international law. For example, although not all parties to World
War II were Parties to Hague IV (thus failing to satisfy the requirements of Hague IVs general
participation clause), Hague IVs humanitarian protections were deemed applicable as a matter
of customary international law. 110
3.6.2 Reciprocity in the Enforcement of the Law of War. Reciprocity may be reflected in
the enforcement of the law of war. For example, the principle of reciprocity is reflected in the
concept of reprisal, which under very limited circumstances permits a belligerent to take action
that would otherwise be unlawful in order to remedy an enemys breach of the law. 111 However,
the prohibitions on reprisal in the law of war also may be understood to reflect important
limitations on the principle of reciprocity in enforcing the law of war. 112
(The provisions of the present Convention do not apply except between Contracting Powers, and then only if all the
belligerents are parties to the Convention.); HAGUE XIII art. 28 (The provisions of the present Convention do not
apply except to the Contracting Powers, and then only if all the belligerents are parties to the Convention.); 1929
GPW art. 82 (The provisions of the present Convention must be respected by the High Contracting Parties under all
circumstances. In case, in time of war, one of the belligerents is not a party to the Convention, its provisions shall
nevertheless remain in force as between the belligerents who are parties thereto.); 1929 GWS art. 25 (The
provisions of the present Convention shall be respected by the High Contracting Parties under all circumstances. If,
in time of war, a belligerent is not a party to the Convention, its provisions shall nevertheless remain in force as
between all the belligerents who are parties to the Convention.).
107
Refer to 15.1.4 (Application of Treaties on Neutrality and Customary International Law).
108
See, e.g., GPW art. 2 (Although one of the Powers in conflict may not be a party to the present Convention, the
Powers who are parties thereto shall remain bound by it in their mutual relations.); GWS-SEA art. 2 (same); GPW
art. 2 (same); GC art. 2 (same); CCW art. 7(1) (When one of the parties to a conflict is not bound by an annexed
Protocol, the parties bound by this Convention and that annexed Protocol shall remain bound by them in their
mutual relations.).
109
See CCW art. 7(2) (Any High Contracting Party shall be bound by this Convention and any Protocol annexed
thereto which is in force for it, in any situation contemplated by Article 1, in relation to any State which is not a
party to this Convention or bound by the relevant annexed Protocol, if the latter accepts and applies this Convention
or the relevant Protocol, and so notifies the Depositary.); GWS art. 2 (Although one of the Powers in conflict may
not be a party to the present Convention, the Powers who are parties thereto shall furthermore be bound by the
Convention in relation to the said Power, if the latter accepts and applies the provisions thereof.); GWS-SEA art. 2
(same); GPW art. 2 (same); GC art. 2 (same).
110
Refer to 19.8.2.1 (Hague IV and Customary International Law).
111
Refer to 18.18 (Reprisals).
112
Refer to 18.18.3 (Treaty Prohibitions on Reprisals). Consider also VCLT art. 60(5) (Paragraphs 1 to 3 do not
apply to provisions relating to the protection of the human person contained in treaties of a humanitarian character,
in particular to provisions prohibiting any form of reprisals against persons protected by such treaties.).
90
Reciprocity is also reflected in the principle of tu quoque, which may limit a States
ability to deem unlawful and punish certain conduct by its adversary when that State has chosen
to allow its forces to engage in that same conduct. 113
Even if the application of a law of war rule does not depend on reciprocity as a matter of
law, reciprocity may be important as a practical way of encouraging compliance by the adversary
with the law of war. 114
3.6.3 Law of War Rules May Incorporate Reciprocity. Apart from affecting whether
rules apply, reciprocity may be incorporated into the operation of particular law of war rules. In
other words, a law of war rule may operate differently depending upon an opponents behavior.
3.6.3.2 Benefits-Burdens Principle in Law of War Rules. In some cases, the law
of war requires that those seeking to obtain certain benefits under the law of war also accept
certain burdens as a condition for receiving those benefits. 118 For example, militia and volunteer
corps that seek the privileges of combatant status during international armed conflict must meet
certain conditions (e.g., conducting their operations in accordance with the laws and customs of
war) before receiving such privileges. 119 In addition, hospital ships and coastal rescue craft must
113
Refer to 18.21.2 (Tu Quoque).
114
Refer to 18.2.2 (Encouraging Reciprocal Adherence by the Adversary).
115
See J. Pictet, The Principles of International Humanitarian Law, 6 INTERNATIONAL REVIEW OF THE RED CROSS
455, 462 (Sept. 1966) (Humanitarian law receives its impulse from moral science all of which can be summed up in
one sentence, do to others what you would have done to yourself. This crystallizes the wisdom of nations and is
the secret of happiness, or at least, of the best order of society. This fundamental precept can be found, in an almost
identical form, in all the great religions, Brahmin, Buddhist, Christian, Confucian, Islamic, Jewish and Taoist. It is
also the main prop of the positivists who do not base themselves on precepts of any given religion, but on social
facts, considered objectively, through their own reasoning alone.).
116
Refer to 9.2.5 (Reciprocity in the Treatment of POWs).
117
Refer to 9.37.1 (Agreements on POW Release and Repatriation).
118
See, e.g., Al Warafi v. Obama, 716 F.3d 627, 631-32 (D.C. Cir. 2013) (The Geneva Conventions and their
commentary provide a roadmap for the establishment of protected status. As the district court found, Al Warafi was
serving as part of the Taliban. The Taliban has not followed the roadmap set forth in the Conventions, and it has not
carried Al Warafi to the destination. Without compliance with the requirements of the Geneva Conventions, the
Talibans personnel are not entitled to the protection of the Convention.); Jack L. Goldsmith III, Assistant Attorney
General, Protected Person Status in Occupied Iraq Under the Fourth Geneva Convention, Mar. 18, 2004, 28
OPINIONS OF THE OFFICE OF LEGAL COUNSEL 35, 53-57 (explaining the Geneva Conventions fundamental
principle that warring entities must accept the Conventions burdens in order to claim their benefits.).
119
Refer to 4.6 (Other Militia and Volunteer Corps).
91
not be used for military purposes in order to receive their protection from capture and from being
made the object of attack. 120 Similarly, cultural property must not be used for military purposes
in order to receive special protection. 121
As another example, the rights and duties of belligerents and neutrals under the law of
neutrality may be understood as correlative or reciprocal. For example, a neutrals valid
assertion of its rights may depend on whether it has fulfilled its corresponding neutral duties. 122
3.6.3.3 Law of War Duties That Are Reinforced by Corresponding Duties for the
Enemy. Similarly, the ability of a party to comply with a particular duty may be affected by
whether its opponent has complied with a corresponding duty. For example, the ability of a
party to discriminate in conducting attacks may be affected by whether its adversary has properly
distinguished its military objectives from the civilian population and other protected persons and
objects. 123
In some cases, a rule developed specifically for one situation may be a useful and
appropriate standard to apply in a different situation. This is sometimes called an application of
a rule by analogy.
In some cases, there is a treaty requirement to apply rules by analogy; in other cases, it
may be appropriate to apply law of war rules by analogy without a treaty-based requirement to
do so.
3.7.1 Treaty Requirement to Apply Rules by Analogy. The application of law of war
rules by analogy is sometimes required by a treaty provision.
For example, under the 1949 Geneva Conventions, neutral or non-belligerent States must
apply by analogy the rules relating to the treatment of the wounded and sick and of POWs when
interning such persons under their duties of neutrality. 124 Similarly, the GC rules for penal
procedures for protected persons in occupied territory apply by analogy to proceedings against
internees who are in the national territory of the Detaining Power. 125
3.7.2 Examples of Law of War Rules and Areas in Which Such Rules Have Been
Applied by Analogy. There are other situations in which it may be appropriate to apply law of
war rules by analogy, even though there is no treaty requirement to do so. For example, it may
120
Refer to 5.18.8.2 (Conditions for the Granting of Special Protection No Use for Military Purposes).
121
Refer to 7.12.2.2 (No Use for Military Purposes).
122
Refer to 15.3.3 (Correlative or Reciprocal Nature of Rights and Duties Under the Law of Neutrality).
123
Refer to 2.5.5 (Reinforcing Duties Discriminating in Conducting Attacks and Distinguishing a Partys Own
Persons and Objects).
124
Refer to 15.16.3.1 (Provision of POW Treatment and Application of the GWS and GWS-Sea by Analogy).
125
Refer to 10.29 (Judicial Proceedings Regarding Protected Persons in Occupied Territory or Internees in a
Belligerents Home Territory).
92
be appropriate to apply the GWS and GWS-Sea rules for the respectful treatment and handling of
enemy military dead to all persons. 126 Other examples of law of war rules and situations in
which it may be appropriate to apply those rules by analogy include: (1) applying jus in bello
rules in certain situations involving neutral or non-belligerent States; (2) applying law of war
rules with a humanitarian purpose in situations outside the context of armed conflict; (3)
applying occupation law provisions for the protection of the civilian population in situations not
constituting belligerent occupation; and (4) applying certain international armed conflict rules in
situations of non-international armed conflict.
3.7.2.2 Law of War Rules and Military Operations Outside the Context of Armed
Conflict. Because law of war rules often reflect elementary considerations of humanity, it may
be appropriate to apply such standards to military operations occurring outside the context of
armed conflict. 129
126
Refer to 7.7 (Treatment and Handling of Enemy Military Dead).
127
For example, DEPARTMENT OF THE AIR FORCE, HEADQUARTERS PACIFIC AIR FORCES, DIRECTORATE OF
OPERATIONS ANALYSIS, Project CHECO [Contemporary Historical Examination of Current Operations] Report,
Rules of engagement, November 1969-September 1972 (Mar. 1, 1973), reprinted in CONGRESSIONAL RECORD
S3011, S3014 (Mar. 18, 1985) (The Cambodian incursion plan was a closely held secret timed to coincide with the
Presidents announcement. It was not until 27 April [1970] that 7AF was told to start definitive planning. Thus,
there was no time to coordinate a new set of ROE for [neutral] Cambodia. Instead 7AF instructed its pilots to follow
the normal rules for South Vietnam and to exercise extreme vigilance to avoid dropping ordnance on the
noncombatant populace.); Franklin Roosevelt, message to Winston Churchill, reprinted in WINSTON CHURCHILL,
CLOSING THE RING 467-68 (1985) (I share fully with you your distress at the loss of life among the French
population incident to our air preparations for Overlord. I share also with you a satisfaction that every possible
care is being and will be taken to minimise civilian casualties. No possibility of alleviating adverse French opinion
should be overlooked, always provided that there is no reduction of our effectiveness against the enemy at this
crucial time. However regrettable the attendant loss of civilian lives is, I am not prepared to impose from this
distance any restriction on military action by the responsible commanders that in their opinion might militate against
the success of Overlord or cause additional loss of life to our Allied forces of invasion.).
128
Refer to 10.3.3 (Categories of Nationals Specifically Excluded From the Definition of Protected Person Under
the GC).
129
Refer to 3.1.1.2 (Applying Law of War Standards as Reflecting Minimum Legal Standards).
130
Refer to 11.1.3 (Application of Occupation Law to Situations Not Constituting Belligerent Occupation).
93
territory from enemy control to apply by analogy rules from the law of belligerent occupation to
the administration of such territory, pending an agreement with the allied government. 131
In general, law of war rules for the conduct of hostilities cease to apply when hostilities
have ended. However, certain duties that have arisen during hostilities may continue after
hostilities have ended, and certain new duties arise at the end of hostilities.
3.8.1 General Cessation of the Application of the Law of War at the End of Hostilities.
Hostilities end when opposing parties decide to end hostilities and actually do so, i.e., when
neither the intent-based nor act-based tests for when hostilities exist are met. 133 Of course, if the
test for the existence of hostilities continues to be met, then hostilities cannot be deemed to have
ceased. 134 For example, hostilities may be terminated by:
unilateral declaration of one of the parties to end the war, provided the other party does
not continue hostilities or otherwise decline to recognize the act of its enemy;
131
Refer to 11.1.3.2 (Liberation of Friendly Territory).
132
Refer to 17.2.2.3 (Application of IAC Rules by Analogy).
133
Refer to 3.4 (When Jus in Bello Rules Apply).
134
David Kris, Assistant Attorney General, Response to Questions Submitted by Members Post Hearing, Questions
Submitted by Mr. Skelton, Reforming the Military Commissions Act of 2006 and Detainee Policy: Hearing Before
the Committee on Armed Services, U.S. House of Representatives, 111th Congress, 1st Session, 77 (Jul. 24, 2009)
(At a minimum, we believe active hostilities will continue--and detention of enemy forces will be authorized--as
long as the United States is involved in active combat operations against such forces. In reaching the determination
that active hostilities have ceased, we would likely consider factors that have been recognized in international law as
relevant to the existence of an armed conflict, including the frequency and level of intensity of any continuing
violence generated by enemy forces; the degree to which they maintain an organizational structure and operate
according to a plan; the enemys capacity to procure, transport and distribute arms; and the enemys intent to inflict
violence.).
135
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 10 (The law of land warfare generally ceases to be applicable upon: a.
The termination of a war by agreement, normally in the form of a treaty of peace; or b. The termination of a war by
unilateral declaration of one of the parties, provided the other party does not continue hostilities or otherwise decline
to recognize the act of its enemy; or c. The complete subjugation of an enemy State and its allies, if prior to a or b;
or d. The termination of a declared war or armed conflict by simple cessation of hostilities.).
94
3.8.1.1 Agreements to End Hostilities. Parties to a conflict often have negotiated
peace treaties to end hostilities.136 Armistice agreements, i.e., temporary cease-fires, are
negotiated to suspend hostilities.137 In addition, the U.N. Security Council may require certain
steps leading to the end of hostilities. 138
3.8.1.2 End of Hostilities Absent Written Agreement. Although States often have
concluded agreements to end hostilities, it is possible for hostilities to cease absent a written or
formal agreement. For example, an armed conflict may end when a party is fully subjugated.
It may be difficult to determine when an armed conflict has ceased, as opposed, for
example, to a lull in hostilities during which opposing forces may simply be reconstituting
themselves. 139 Hostilities generally would not be deemed to have ceased without an agreement,
unless the conditions clearly indicate that they are not be resumed or there has been a lapse of
time indicating the improbability of resumption. 140
3.8.2 Duties Continuing After Hostilities. Under the law of war, certain duties that have
arisen during hostilities may continue after hostilities have ended. For example, POWs are
protected by the GPW from the moment they fall into the power of the enemy until their final
release and repatriation. 141 Similarly, protected persons whose release, repatriation, or re-
establishment may take place after the general close of military operations continue to benefit
136
For example, Agreement on Ending the War and Restoring Peace in Viet Nam signed between the Government
of the Democratic Republic of Viet Nam and the Government of the United States, and the Protocols to this
Agreement, Jan. 27, 1973, T.I.A.S. 7542, 935 UNTS 2, 6; General Agreement for Peace in Bosnia and Herzegovina,
Bosn. & Herz.-Croat.-F.R.Y, December 14, 1995, 35 I.L.M. 75 (also known as the Dayton Accords).
137
Refer to 12.11.1.2 (Armistice as a Suspension of Hostilities and Not a Peace Treaty).
138
Refer to 12.14 (U.N. Security Council Cease-Fires).
139
Mr. Seward, Secretary of State, to Mr. Goni, Spanish Minister, Jul. 22, 1868, VII MOORES DIGEST 336 (It is
certain that a condition of war can be raised without an authoritative declaration of war, and, on the other hand, the
situation of peace may be restored by the long suspension of hostilities without a treaty of peace being made.
History is full of such occurrences. What period of suspension of war is necessary to justify the presumption of the
restoration of peace has never yet been settled, and must in every case be determined with reference to collateral
facts and circumstances.).
140
Manley O. Hudson, The Duration of the War Between the United States and Germany, 39 HARVARD LAW
REVIEW 1020, 1029-30 (1926) (If a war may be ended by a mere cessation of hostilities, the cessation of hostilities
must either be under such conditions that it is clear that they are not to be resumed or there must be a lapse of time
indicating the improbability of resumption.).
141
Refer to 9.3.6 (Commencement and Duration of POW Status and Treatment).
95
from the protection of the GC. 142 In addition, duties under occupation law may continue after
hostilities have ended. 143
3.8.3 Duties Arising at the End of Hostilities. Certain obligations are triggered by the
end of hostilities. For example, the end of hostilities triggers obligations regarding the marking
of minefields, demining, and clearance of unexploded ordnance. 144 In addition, POWs and
protected persons, in general, must be released and returned to the party to the conflict to which
they belong. 145
Some law of war obligations also apply in peace, i.e., even when a State is not engaged in
an armed conflict. For example, States must:
train their armed forces in accordance with the law of war; 147
issue instructions and regulations for their armed forces in conformity with the law of
war; 148
take appropriate measures to prepare for the safeguarding of cultural property; 150 and
take other appropriate measures to ensure the implementation and enforcement of law of
war treaties. 151
States that are at peace have obligations under the law of neutrality in relation to States
142
Refer to 10.3.4 (Commencement and Duration of Protected Person Status).
143
Refer to 11.3.2 (Duration of GC Obligations in the Case of Occupied Territory).
144
Refer to 6.12.12.2 (Clearance of Minefields, Mined Areas, Mines, Booby-Traps, and Other Devices After
Hostilities); 6.20.5 (Obligations Under the CCW Protocol V on Explosive Remnants of War That Are Triggered
by the Cessation of Active Hostilities).
145
Refer to 9.37 (Release and Repatriation After Hostilities); 10.35 (Release, Return, Repatriation of Internees
After the Close of Hostilities); 11.11.8 (Disposition of Accused and Convicted Protected Persons Upon the Close
of Occupation).
146
Refer to 18.6.1 (General Dissemination and Study of Treaties).
147
Refer to 18.6.2 (Special Instruction or Training).
148
Refer to 18.7 (Instructions, Regulations, and Procedures to Implement and Enforce the Law of War).
149
Refer to 6.2 (DoD Policy of Reviewing the Legality of Weapons).
150
Refer to 5.18.2.1 (Peacetime Obligations to Prepare for the Safeguarding of Cultural Property).
151
Refer to 18.1.2 (National Obligations to Implement and Enforce the Law of War).
96
that are at war. 152
152
Refer to 15.1.1 (Matters Addressed by the Law of Neutrality).
97
IV Classes of Persons
Chapter Contents
4.1 Introduction
4.2 The Armed Forces and the Civilian Population
4.3 Lawful Combatants and Unprivileged Belligerents
4.4 Rights, Duties, and Liabilities of Combatants
4.5 Armed Forces of a State
4.6 Other Militia and Volunteer Corps
4.7 Leve en Masse
4.8 Rights, Duties, and Liabilities of Civilians
4.9 Military Medical and Religious Personnel
4.10 Rights, Duties, and Liabilities of Military Medical and Religious Personnel
4.11 Authorized Staff of Voluntary Aid Societies
4.12 Staff of a Recognized Aid Society of a Neutral Country
4.13 Auxiliary Medical Personnel
4.14 Personnel Engaged in Duties Related to the Protection of Cultural Property
4.15 Persons Authorized to Accompany the Armed Forces
4.16 Crews of Merchant Marine Vessels or Civil Aircraft
4.17 Spies, Saboteurs, and Other Persons Engaging in Similar Acts Behind
Enemy Lines
4.18 Private Persons Who Engage in Hostilities
4.19 Rights, Duties, and Liabilities of Unprivileged Belligerents
4.20 Children
4.21 Mercenaries
4.22 AP I Provisions on Civil Defense Personnel
4.23 Law Enforcement Officers
4.24 Journalists
4.25 Delegates or Representatives of the Protecting Powers
4.26 ICRC and Other Impartial Humanitarian Organizations
4.27 Determining the Status of Detainees in Cases of Doubt
4.1 INTRODUCTION
This Chapter addresses different classes of persons under the law of war. The law of war
has created a framework of classes of persons to help confine the fighting between opposing
military forces and thereby to help protect the civilian population from the effects of war. 1
This Chapter addresses issues relating to various classes of people under the law of war
including: (1) who is included in the various classes, such as combatant and civilian; (2) the
rights, duties, and liabilities of the persons in each class; and (3) how certain factual categories of
persons, such as journalists, police officers, or child soldiers, fall within various classes and are
treated under the law of war.
1
Refer to 2.5.1 (Distinction as a Framework of Legal Classes).
98
This Chapter briefly addresses specific rules that relate to the rights, duties, and liabilities
of persons in the various classes to illustrate and provide an overview of that class. For more
information about specific rules, practitioners should refer to the cross-referenced sections that
addresses those specific rules. 2
4.1.1 General Notes on Terminology for Persons in the Law of War. The terms in the
law of war that describe different classes of people are often used in confusing and contradictory
ways. Although striving to use terms consistently within DoD reduces confusion, understanding
the substantive standards that apply to a person in the applicable circumstances is more important
than using a particular label or a particular system of classification.
4.1.1.1 The Same Term Used With Different Meanings. Sometimes different
meanings are given to the same term. For example, someone might be considered a combatant
in the sense that the person may be made the object of attack, but the person would not
necessarily be a combatant in the sense that the person is privileged to engage in hostilities. 3
Similarly, one source might use the term noncombatant to mean all persons who are
not combatants, including persons placed hors de combat and civilians. 4 Alternatively, another
source might use the term noncombatant to refer specifically to persons who are members of
the armed forces, but who are not combatants. 5 In the past, some commentators have used
noncombatants of the armed forces to refer to all members of the armed forces serving in
combat service support or sustainment roles. 6 In contemporary parlance, however, the term
noncombatant should generally be used to mean military medical and religious personnel, 7 but
also can include those combatants placed hors de combat. 8
2
Refer to 1.2.3 (Use of Cross-References in This Manual).
3
Refer to 4.3.2 (Combatant Notes on Terminology).
4
See, e.g., L.C. GREEN, THE CONTEMPORARY LAW OF ARMED CONFLICT 88 (2nd ed., 2000) (Nationals of the
adverse party are normally classified as combatants and non-combatants, with the latter including some members of
the armed forces chaplains, medical personnel and those hors de combat.); LIEBER CODE art. 19 (Commanders,
whenever admissible, inform the enemy of their intention to bombard a place, so that the noncombatants, and
especially the women and children, may be removed before the bombardment commences.).
5
See, e.g., HAGUE IV REG. art. 3 (The armed forces of the belligerent parties may consist of combatants and
noncombatants. In the case of capture by the enemy, both have the right to be treated as prisoners of war.).
6
See, e.g., GREENSPAN, MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 56 (The distinction between combatants and
noncombatants within the armed forces must be taken to correspond to the distinction between fighting troops and
troops in service units. The fighting troops of an army carry out the actual military operations, whereas the service
troops minister to the needs of the former and supply their various requirements. The Hague Regulations do not
define the elements in the two classes, but combatants would include infantry, cavalry, armored troops, and the like,
whose function it is to engage with the enemy; as well as artillery, engineers, signals, and others, whose duty it is to
support such action. Noncombatants would include personnel of the various services comprising (inter alia)
medical, chaplains, veterinary, graves, pay, postal, labor, supply, transport, ordnance, provost, legal, and military-
government units.); GWS COMMENTARY 223 footnote 4 (In correct terminology, however, armed forces include
combatants (i.e. soldiers bearing arms) and non-combatants (who comprise not only medical personnel but also
various other army services not called upon to carry arms).).
7
Refer to 4.9 (Military Medical and Religious Personnel).
8
Refer to 5.10 (Persons Placed Hors de Combat).
99
4.1.1.2 Different Terms Used to Describe the Same Concept. Different legal
sources may use different terms to refer to the same class of people under the law of war. For
example, one source might use belligerent, whereas another source might use combatant to
refer to the same class of people under the law of war. 9
4.1.2 Classes and Categories Are Only the Starting Point for Legal Analysis. When
analyzing a persons rights, duties, and liabilities under the law of war, it is important to analyze
the specific question in light of the applicable facts. Determining what class a person falls into,
such as combatant, civilian, or unprivileged belligerent, may be only the first step in a
legal analysis. For example, whether a person may be the object of attack, may be detained, is
entitled to POW status, or may be punished for their actions are all different questions. Although
these questions are often related to one another and associated with the general classes of
combatant and civilian, each question requires its own specific analysis. This specific
analysis should be done in each case, applying the legal rules to the facts, rather than deriving an
answer based on a conclusory labeling of a person as, for example, an enemy combatant. 10
Indeed, some persons might, for some purposes, be treated like combatants, but for other
purposes be treated like civilians. 11
The law of war has recognized that the population of an enemy State is generally divided
into two classes: the armed forces and the civilian population, also sometimes called,
respectively, combatants and civilians. This division results from the principle of
distinction. 12
4.2.1 Development of the Distinction Between the Armed Forces and the Civilian
Population. A citizen or national of a State that is a party to a conflict, as one of the constituents
of a State that is engaged in hostilities, may be subjected to the hardships of war by an enemy
State. 13 However, because the ordinary members of the civilian population make no resistance,
it has long been recognized that there is no right to make them the object of attack. 14 Thus,
9
Refer to 4.3.2 (Combatant Notes on Terminology).
10
Refer to 4.18.1 (Private Persons Who Engage in Hostilities Notes on Terminology).
11
Refer to 4.2.3 (Mixed Cases).
12
Refer to 2.5 (Distinction).
13
See, e.g., Johnson v. Eisentrager, 339 U.S. 763, 772-73 (1950) (The alien enemy is bound by an allegiance which
commits him to lose no opportunity to forward the cause of our enemy; hence the United States, assuming him to be
faithful to his allegiance, regards him as part of the enemy resources. It therefore takes measures to disable him
from commission of hostile acts imputed as his intention because they are a duty to his sovereign.); LIEBER CODE
art. 21 (The citizen or native of a hostile country is thus an enemy, as one of the constituents of the hostile state or
nation, and as such is subjected to the hardships of the war.).
14
See LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 204 (57) (Those private subjects of the belligerents
who do not directly or indirectly belong to the armed forces do not take part in it; they do not attack and defend; and
no attack ought therefore to be made upon them.); G. SHERSTON BAKER, II HALLECKS INTERNATIONAL LAW 15-16
(20.3) (1908) (Feeble old men, women, and children, and sick persons, come under the general description of
enemies, and we have certain rights over them as members of the community with which we are at war; but, as they
are enemies who make no resistance, we have no right to maltreat their persons, or to use any violence toward them,
much less to take their lives.); LIEBER CODE arts. 22, 23, 25 (explaining that protection of the unarmed citizen,
100
States have departed from ancient and medieval practices of war between entire peoples, and
instead, as much as possible, have treated war as a contention between the professional military
forces of warring States. 15 This separation of the armed forces and the civilian population has
greatly mitigated the evils of war. 16
4.2.2 No Person May Claim the Distinct Rights Afforded to Both Combatants and
Civilians at the Same Time. The classes of combatants and civilians have distinct rights, duties,
and liabilities; no person may claim the distinct rights afforded both classes at the same time. 17
For example, a person may not claim the combatants right to attack enemy forces while also
claiming the civilians right not to be made the object of attack. 18
4.2.3 Mixed Cases. Certain classes of persons do not fit neatly within the dichotomy of
the armed forces and the civilian population, i.e., combatants and civilians. Each of these
the inoffensive individual, or the inoffensive citizen of the hostile country is the rule) (emphasis added);
VATTEL, THE LAW OF NATIONS 282 (3.8.145) (Women, children, feeble old men, and the sick these are enemies
who make no resistance, and consequently the belligerent has no right to maltreat or otherwise offer violence to
them, much less to put them to death.).
15
See, e.g., LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 204 (57) (During antiquity, and the greater part
of the Middle Ages, war was a contention between the whole populations of the belligerent States. In time of war
every subject of one belligerent, whether an armed and fighting individual or not, whether man or woman, adult or
infant, could be killed or enslaved by the other belligerent at will. But gradually a milder and more discriminating
practice grew up, and nowadays the life and liberty of such private subjects of belligerents as do not directly or
indirectly belong to their armed forces, and, with certain exceptions, their private property, are protected by
International Law.); LIEBER CODE art. 22 (Nevertheless, as civilization has advanced during the last centuries, so
has likewise steadily advanced, especially in war on land, the distinction between the private individual belonging to
a hostile country and the hostile country itself, with its men in arms. The principle has been more and more
acknowledged that the unarmed citizen is to be spared in person, property, and honor as much as the exigencies of
war will admit.).
16
See SPAIGHT, WAR RIGHTS ON LAND 37 (The separation of armies and peaceful inhabitants into two distinct
classes is perhaps the greatest triumph of International Law. Its effect in mitigating the evils of war has been
incalculable.); G. SHERSTON BAKER, II HALLECKS INTERNATIONAL LAW 20-22 (20.3) (1908) (But afterwards in
Italy, and more particularly during the lawless confusion of the feudal ages, hostilities were carried on by all classes
of persons, and everyone capable of being a soldier was regarded as such, and all the rights of war attached to his
person. But as wars are now carried on by regular troops, or, at least, by forces regularly organised, the peasants,
merchants, manufacturers, agriculturists, and, generally, all public and private persons, who are engaged in the
ordinary pursuits of life, and take no part in military operations, have nothing to fear from the sword of the enemy.
So long as they refrain from all hostilities, pay the military contributions which may be imposed on them and quietly
submit to the authority of the belligerent who may happen to be in the military possession of their country, they are
allowed to continue in the enjoyment of their property, and in the pursuit of their ordinary avocations. This system
has greatly mitigated the evils of war, .).
17
See, e.g., 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 60 (dividing into prisoners of war and the civilian
population, and noting that [p]ersons in each of the foregoing categories have distinct rights, duties, and
disabilities.); 1940 RULES OF LAND WARFARE 8 (The enemy population is divided in war into two general
classes, known as, the armed forces and the peaceful population. Both classes have distinct rights, duties, and
disabilities, and no person can belong to both classes at one and the same time.); 1934 RULES OF LAND WARFARE
8 (same); 1914 RULES OF LAND WARFARE 29 (same).
18
See 1958 UK MANUAL 86 (It is one of the purposes of the law of war to ensure that an individual who belongs
to one class or the other shall not be permitted to enjoy the privileges of both. Thus he must not be allowed to kill or
wound members of the army of the opposing belligerent and subsequently, if captured, to claim that he is a peaceful
citizen.).
101
particular classes has some attributes of combatant status and some attributes of civilian status; in
certain respects persons in these classes are treated like combatants, but in other respects they are
treated like civilians. These classes may be classified into three groups: (1) certain personnel
engaged in humanitarian duties; (2) certain authorized supporters of the armed forces; and (3)
unprivileged belligerents.
persons authorized to accompany the armed forces, but who are not members thereof; 24
and
persons engaging in spying, sabotage, and similar acts behind enemy lines; 27 and
19
Refer to 4.9 (Military Medical and Religious Personnel).
20
Refer to 4.11 (Authorized Staff of Voluntary Aid Societies).
21
Refer to 4.12 (Staff of a Recognized Aid Society of a Neutral Country).
22
Refer to 4.13 (Auxiliary Medical Personnel).
23
Refer to 4.14.1 (Personnel Engaged in the Protection of Cultural Property).
24
Refer to 4.15 (Persons Authorized to Accompany the Armed Forces).
25
Refer to 4.16 (Crews of Merchant Marine Vessels or Civil Aircraft).
26
Refer to 4.3.4 (Types of Unprivileged Belligerents).
27
Refer to 4.17 (Spies, Saboteurs, and Other Persons Engaging in Similar Acts Behind Enemy Lines).
102
4.3 LAWFUL COMBATANTS AND UNPRIVILEGED BELLIGERENTS
In addition to distinguishing between the armed forces and the civilian population, the
law of war also distinguishes between privileged and unprivileged, or lawful and
unlawful combatants. As the Supreme Court has explained:
Law of war treaties have been understood to reflect restrictions on the conduct of
hostilities by States, 33 and States have been reluctant to conclude treaties to afford unprivileged
enemy belligerents the distinct privileges of POW status or the full protections afforded
civilians. 34
28
Refer to 4.18 (Private Persons Who Engage in Hostilities).
29
Ex parte Quirin, 317 U.S. 1, 31 (1942). See also Hamdi v. Rumsfeld, 542 U.S. 507, 518 (2004) (plurality) (The
capture and detention of lawful combatants and the capture, detention, and trial of unlawful combatants, by
universal agreement and practice, are important incident[s] of war.) (quoting Ex parte Quirin at 28, 30).
30
Refer to 4.19 (Rights, Duties, and Liabilities of Unprivileged Belligerents).
31
See, e.g., HAGUE IV REG. arts. 29-31 (defining the category of spy and regulating the treatment of captured spies);
GC art. 5 (regulating the treatment of certain protected persons detained as a spy or saboteur, or as a person under
definite suspicion of activity hostile to the security of the Occupying Power). See also GC COMMENTARY 5 (It
may, nevertheless, seem rather surprising that a humanitarian Convention should tend to protect spies, saboteurs or
irregular combatants. Those who take part in the struggle while not belonging to the armed forces are acting
deliberately outside the laws of warfare. Surely they know the dangers to which they are exposing themselves. It
might therefore have been simpler to exclude them from the benefits of the Convention, if such a course had been
possible, but the terms espionage, sabotage, terrorism, banditry and intelligence with the enemy, have so often been
used lightly, and applied to such trivial offences, that it was not advisable to leave the accused at the mercy of those
detaining them.).
32
See, e.g., GWS art. 13; GWS-SEA art. 13; GPW art. 4.
33
Refer to 1.3.3.1 (Law of War as Prohibitive Law).
34
See, e.g., IIA FINAL REPORT OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 433 (ICRC representative
explaining that [t]he present Conference was engaged in framing a Convention to protect members of armed forces
and similar categories of persons, such as members of organized resistance movements, and another convention to
103
Although seldom explicitly recognized as a class in law of war treaties, the category of
unprivileged belligerent may be understood as an implicit consequence of creating the classes of
lawful combatants and peaceful civilians. 35 The concept of unprivileged belligerency, i.e., the
set of legal liabilities associated with unprivileged belligerents, may be understood in opposition
to the rights, duties, and liabilities of lawful combatants and peaceful civilians. Unprivileged
belligerents include lawful combatants who have forfeited the privileges of combatant status by
engaging in spying or sabotage, and private persons who have forfeited one or more of the
protections of civilian status by engaging in hostilities. 36
Belligerent, however, has also sometimes used to describe States and to contrast such
States with neutral or non-belligerent States. 37 Belligerent has also been used to contrast
armed groups that have belligerent rights with armed groups that lack such rights, such as
insurgents. 38
protect civilians. Although the two Conventions might appear to cover all the categories concerned, irregular
belligerents were not actually protected.); id. at 612 (Swiss representative taking the view that [i]n regard to the
legal status of those who violated the laws of war, the [Civilians] Convention could not of course cover criminals or
saboteurs.); id. at 621 (UK representative rejecting a draft which would mean that persons who were not entitled
to protection under the Prisoners of War Convention would receive exactly the same protection by virtue of the
Civilians Convention, so that all persons participating in hostilities would be protected, whether they conformed to
the laws of war or not. The whole conception of the Civilians Convention was the protection of civilian victims
of war and not the protection of illegitimate bearers of arms, who could not expect full protection under rules of war
to which they did not conform. Such persons should no doubt be accorded certain standards of treatment, but should
not be entitled to all the benefits of the Convention.).
35
See, e.g., 10 U.S.C. 948a (The term unprivileged enemy belligerent means an individual (other than a
privileged belligerent) who engages in certain conduct); Ex parte Quirin, 317 U.S. 1, 35 (1942) (Our Government,
by thus defining lawful belligerents entitled to be treated as prisoners of war, has recognized that there is a class of
unlawful belligerents not entitled to that privilege, including those who, though combatants, do not wear fixed and
distinctive emblems.).
36
Refer to 4.3.4 (Types of Unprivileged Belligerents).
37
Refer to 15.1.2 (Classification of States as Belligerent, Neutral, or Non-Belligerent).
38
See, e.g., Memorandum submitted in United States v. Shakur, 690 F. Supp. 1291 (S.D.N.Y. 1988), III
CUMULATIVE DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 1981-88 3436, 3448 (The concept of
insurgency was traditionally used to describe a conflict that did not meet the rigid standards of customary
international law for recognition of belligerency.); Anthony Eden, Secretary of State for Foreign Affairs, United
Kingdom, Oral Answers to Questions, Dec. 8, 1937, HANSARD 330 HOUSE OF COMMONS DEBATES 357 (His
Majestys Ambassador at Hendaye has been instructed to inform the Salamanca authorities that as belligerent rights
have not been recognised to either party in the Spanish conflict. His Majestys Government are not prepared to
admit their right to declare any such blockade.). Refer to 3.3.3 (State Recognition of Armed Groups as
Belligerents).
104
privileged and unprivileged belligerents, i.e., distinguishing between persons who are
entitled to the privileges of combatant or belligerent status, and those who are not. 39 This
distinction has also sometimes been called a distinction between qualified and unqualified
belligerents, i.e., distinguishing between persons who have met the qualifications to receive the
privileges of combatant status and those who have not. 40
This manual generally uses the term unprivileged belligerent (instead of, e.g.,
unlawful combatant, unlawful belligerent, unprivileged combatant, etc.) to refer to persons
who are subject to one or more of the liabilities of combatant status, but are not entitled to
receive its distinct privileges.
members of the armed forces of a State that is a party to a conflict, aside from certain
categories of medical and religious personnel; 42
under certain conditions, members of militia or volunteer corps that are not part of the
armed forces of a State, but belong to a State; 43 and
39
See, e.g., 1958 UK MANUAL 96 (Should regular combatants fail to comply with these four conditions, they may
in certain cases become unprivileged belligerents. This would mean that they would not be entitled to the status of
prisoners of war upon their capture.); Richard R. Baxter, So-Called Unprivileged Belligerency: Spies, Guerillas,
and Saboteurs, 28 BRITISH YEAR BOOK OF INTERNATIONAL LAW 323 (1951); LIEBER CODE art. 49 (describing who
is exposed to the inconveniences as well as entitled to the privileges of a prisoner of war).
40
See, e.g., JAMES M. SPAIGHT, AIRCRAFT IN WAR 51 (1914) (referring to that outlaw of war lawthe unqualified
belligerent); HAGUE IV REG. arts. 1-3 (describing who meets [t]he Qualifications of Belligerents).
41
See, e.g., AP I art. 43(2) (describing combatants as those who have the right to participate directly in
hostilities.).
42
Refer to 4.5 (Armed Forces of a State).
43
Refer to 4.6 (Other Militia and Volunteer Corps).
44
Refer to 4.7 (Leve en Masse).
105
4.3.4 Types of Unprivileged Belligerents. Unprivileged belligerents may generally be
classified into two categories that may be distinguished from one another by the presence or
absence of State authorization:
persons who have initially qualified as combatants (i.e., by falling into one of the three
categories mentioned above), but who have acted so as to forfeit the privileges of
combatant status by engaging in spying or sabotage; 45 and
persons who never meet the qualifications to be entitled to the privileges of combatant
status, but who have, by engaging in hostilities, incurred the corresponding liabilities of
combatant status (i.e., forfeited one or more of the protections of civilian status). 46
These two categories of unprivileged belligerents generally receive the same treatment. 47
However, the distinction that the first category has State authorization, while the second category
does not, may be important and create different legal results. For example, the combatant who
spies regains the entitlement to the privileges of combatant status upon returning to friendly
lines, but the private person who spies cannot regain a status to which the person was never
entitled. 48 Similarly, acts of unprivileged belligerency on the high seas may constitute piracy, a
crime under international law, although similar acts by persons acting under State authority, even
if they were not members of the armed forces, could not constitute piracy. 49
Combatants have a special legal status, i.e., certain rights, duties, and liabilities. As
discussed below, combatants may engage in hostilities and are liable to being made the object of
attack by enemy combatants. Combatants must conduct their operations in accordance with the
law of war. They have the right to POW status if they fall into the power of the enemy during
international armed conflict. Combatants have legal immunity from domestic law for acts done
under military authority and in accordance with the law of war.
Combatants must conduct their operations in accordance with the law of war. For
example, combatants must take certain measures to distinguish themselves from the civilian
population. 52 Combatants also may not kill or wound the enemy by resort to perfidy. 53
45
Refer to 4.17 (Spies, Saboteurs, and Other Persons Engaging in Similar Acts Behind Enemy Lines).
46
Refer to 4.18 (Private Persons Who Engage in Hostilities).
47
Refer to 4.19 (Rights, Duties, and Liabilities of Unprivileged Belligerents).
48
Refer to 4.17.5 (Spying and Sabotage Forfeiture of the Privileges of Combatant Status).
49
Refer to 4.18.5 (Private Persons Who Engage in Hostilities and the Law of War).
50
Refer to 5.8 (Combatants).
51
Refer to 5.10 (Persons Placed Hors de Combat).
52
Refer to 5.5.8 (Obligation of Combatants to Distinguish Themselves When Conducting Attacks).
106
Combatants must only direct their attacks against military objectives. 54 Combatants must take
feasible precautions in conducting attacks to reduce the risk of harm to the civilian population. 55
Chapter V addresses in detail the rules that combatants must follow in the conduct of hostilities.
4.4.2 Combatants POW Status During Detention. Combatants are liable to capture and
detention by enemy combatants, but are entitled to POW status when they fall into the power of
the enemy during international armed conflict. POWs, like all detained individuals, must be
treated humanely. 56 In addition, POWs are afforded a variety of privileges in detention in
accordance with the GPW, such as camp canteens, advances of pay, and permission to wear their
badges of rank, nationality, or decorations. 57 POWs also have duties in detention, such as
identifying themselves to their captors, 58 and they are subject to the laws, regulations, and orders
of the Detaining Power. 59 Chapter IX addresses in detail the treatment of POWs and their duties.
In general, POWs shall be released and repatriated without delay after the cessation of
active hostilities. 60 However, seriously wounded, injured, or sick POWs should be returned
before the end of hostilities. 61 In addition, after the hostilities have ended, certain POWs may be
held in connection with criminal proceedings. 62
In general, combatants retain their right to POW status and treatment, even if they are
alleged to have committed crimes before capture. 63 For example, POWs are entitled to a variety
of rights in relation to judicial proceedings against them. 64 In addition, POWs serving
disciplinary punishment shall continue to receive the benefits of the GPW, except insofar as
these benefits are necessarily rendered inapplicable by the mere fact that the POW is confined. 65
53
Refer to 5.22 (Treachery or Perfidy Used to Kill or Wound).
54
Refer to 5.5 (Rules on Conducting Assaults, Bombardments, and Other Attacks).
55
Refer to 5.11 (Feasible Precautions in Conducting Attacks to Reduce the Risk of Harm to Protected Persons and
Objects).
56
Refer to 9.5 (Humane Treatment and Basic Protections for POWs).
57
Refer to 9.17 (Canteens for POWs); 9.18.3 (Advance of Pay); 9.22.4 (Rank and Age of POWs).
58
Refer to 9.8 (Interrogation of POWs).
59
Refer to 9.26.1 (POWs Subject to the Laws, Regulations, and Orders in Force in the Armed Forces of the
Detaining Power).
60
Refer to 9.37 (Release and Repatriation After Hostilities).
61
Refer to 9.36.1 (Direct Repatriation of Seriously Wounded, Injured, or Sick POWs).
62
Refer to 9.37.4.3 (POWs Undergoing Criminal Proceedings for an Indictable Offense).
63
Refer to 9.26.4 (Retention of Benefits of the GPW Even if Prosecuted for Pre-Capture Acts).
64
Refer to 9.28 (Judicial Proceedings and Punishment).
65
Refer to 9.27.6.2 (Retention of the Benefits of the GPW While Undergoing Disciplinary Punishment).
66
Refer to 4.17.5 (Spying and Sabotage Forfeiture of the Privileges of Combatant Status).
107
should be afforded the protections of POW status until their status has been determined by a
competent tribunal. 67
4.4.3 Combatants - Legal Immunity From a Foreign States Domestic Law. International
law affords combatants a special legal immunity from the domestic law of the enemy State for
their actions done in accordance with the law of war. 68 This legal immunity is sometimes called
the combatants privilege or combatant immunity. This means that a combatants killing,
wounding, or other warlike acts are not individual crimes or offenses, 69 if they are done under
military authority and are not prohibited by the law of war. 70 Similarly, a combatants warlike
acts done under military authority and in accordance with the law of war also do not create civil
liability. 71
Combatants lack legal immunity from an enemy States domestic law for acts that are
prohibited by the law of war. 72 Also, combatants lack legal immunity from an enemy States
domestic law while engaging in spying or sabotage. 73 Combatants, however, must receive a fair
and regular trial before any punishment. 74
67
Refer to 4.27.2 (POW Protections for Certain Persons Until Status Has Been Determined).
68
This legal immunity would also be applicable with respect to neutral States to the extent they sought to exercise
jurisdiction over the conduct of belligerents. Traditionally, however, neutral States generally did not assert
jurisdiction over conduct committed between belligerents. Refer to 18.21.1 (Jurisdiction Over War Crimes).
69
LIEBER CODE art. 57. See also Johnson v. Eisentrager, 339 U.S. 763, 793 (1950) (Black, J., dissenting)
(explaining that legitimate acts of warfare, however murderous, do not justify criminal conviction and that it is
no crime to be a soldier.); WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW & PRECEDENTS 778 (The State is represented in active
war by its contending army, and the laws of war justify the killing or disabling of members of the one army by those
of the other in battle or hostile operations.); Arce v. State, 202 S.W. 951 (Texas Court of Criminal Appeals 1918)
(reversing homicide conviction of Mexican soldiers prosecuted in connection with hostilities between the United
States and Mexico). Consider AP I art. 43(2) (combatants have the right to participate directly in hostilities.).
70
See United States v. List, et al. (The Hostage Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 1236 (acts
done in time of war under the military authority of an enemy cannot involve criminal liability on the part of officers
or soldiers if the acts are not prohibited by the conventional or customary rules of war.); Daniel Webster,
Department of State, Letter to John G. Crittenden, Attorney General, Mar. 15, 1841, reprinted in THE DIPLOMATIC
AND OFFICIAL PAPERS OF DANIEL WEBSTER, WHILE SECRETARY OF STATE 134-35 (1848) (explaining [t]hat an
individual forming part of a public force, and acting under the authority of his Government, is not to be held
answerable, as a private trespasser or malefactor, is a principle of public law sanctioned by the usages of all civilized
nations).
71
See Freeland v. Williams, 131 U.S. 405, 416 (1889) (Ever since the case of Dow v. Johnson, 100 U.S. 158, the
doctrine has been settled in the courts that in our late civil war, each party was entitled to the benefit of belligerent
rights, as in the case of public war, and that, for an act done in accordance with the usages of civilized warfare,
under and by military authority of either party, no civil liability attached to the officers or soldiers who acted under
such authority.); Dow v. Johnson, 100 U.S. 158, 165 (1879) (There would be something singularly absurd in
permitting an officer or soldier of an invading army to be tried by his enemy, whose country it had invaded. The
same reasons for his exemption from criminal prosecution apply to civil proceedings.).
72
See United States, et al. v. Gring, et al., Judgment, I TRIAL OF THE MAJOR WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE IMT
223 (He who violates the laws of war cannot obtain immunity while acting in pursuance of the authority of the state
if the state in authorizing action moves outside its competence under international law.).
73
Refer to 4.17.3 (Spying and Sabotage Forfeiture of the Privileges of Combatant Status).
74
Refer to 9.28.4 (Rights of Defense and Trial Procedure).
108
4.4.3.1 Combatants - Legal Immunity and POW Status. The combatants
privilege from liability under domestic law has been associated with POW status. 75 In that
vein, U.S. courts have inferred from provisions of the GPW the combatants privilege against
being prosecuted by capturing States. 76 However, the legal immunity that combatants may be
afforded is not the same as POW status. For example, a combatants conduct may be protected
by legal immunities even when that person is not in the power of the enemy and thus is not a
POW. As another example of how POW status and legal immunity may differ, the GPW
generally affords the same treatment to all classes of POWs identified in Article 4. However, not
all the categories of POWs identified in Article 4 of the GPW, such as persons authorized to
accompany the armed forces, receive the general license to commit belligerent acts that is
afforded members of the armed forces. 77
75
See, e.g., Memorandum submitted in United States v. Shakur, 690 F. Supp. 1291 (S.D.N.Y. 1988), III
CUMULATIVE DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 1981-88 3436, 3451 (It is well-
accepted that individuals who enjoy the status of prisoner of war are generally immune from prosecution for
legitimate acts of war in international armed conflicts.); ALLAN ROSAS, THE LEGAL STATUS OF PRISONERS OF WAR:
A STUDY IN INTERNATIONAL HUMANITARIAN LAW APPLICABLE IN ARMED CONFLICTS 305 (1976) (there has
traditionally been a close relationship between the concept of prisoners of war and that of lawful combatants.);
LIEBER CODE art. 56 (A prisoner of war is subject to no punishment for being a public enemy, nor is any revenge
wreaked upon him by the intentional infliction of any suffering, or disgrace, by cruel imprisonment, want of food,
by mutilation, death, or any other barbarity.).
76
See United States v. Lindh, 212 F. Supp. 2d 541, 553 (E.D. Va. 2002) (memorandum opinion) (interpreting
articles 87 and 99 of GPW to make clear that a belligerent in a war cannot prosecute the soldiers of its foes for the
soldiers lawful acts of war); United States v. Khadr, 717 F.Supp.2d. 1215, 1222 footnote 7 (USCMCR 2007)
(same); United States v. Pineda, 2006 U.S. Dist. LEXIS 17509, 6-8 (D.D.C. Mar. 23, 2006) (D.D.C. 2006) (same).
See also United States v. Noriega, 746 F. Supp. 1506, 1529 (S.D. Fla. 1990) (As is evident from its text and
construed as a whole, the essential purpose of the Geneva Convention Relative to the Treatment of Prisoners of War
is to protect prisoners of war from prosecution for conduct which is customary in armed conflict.).
77
ALLAN ROSAS, THE LEGAL STATUS OF PRISONERS OF WAR: A STUDY IN INTERNATIONAL HUMANITARIAN LAW
APPLICABLE IN ARMED CONFLICTS 305 (1976) (The relationship between the concepts of lawful combatants and
prisoners of war has been said to arise from the fact that lawful combatants are always entitled to prisoner-of-war
status, while the reverse is not necessarily true, as there are categories of persons entitled to the status of prisoners of
war who as civilians enjoy no general license to commit belligerent acts.).
78
Cf. United States v. Thierichens, 243 F. 419, 420 (E.D. Pa. 1917) (The well-settled rule that, under the comity
existing between nations, the public armed ship of a friendly nation, acting under the immediate and direct command
of the sovereign power, is not to be interfered with by the courts of a foreign state, is based upon the principle that, if
the courts did attempt to assume jurisdiction over such vessel, it would require the sovereign of the nation to which
the vessel belongs to be impleaded in the court from which the process issued, and, by common consent of nations,
such situations could not arise without interference with the power and dignity of the foreign sovereign. Therefore
the courts will not assume jurisdiction over such vessel or its officers, while acting as such, but leave controversies
arising out of the acts of the vessel, and its officers, while acting in their official character, for settlement through
diplomatic channels.).
109
state of jurisdiction. 79 This view of the combatants privilege requires that combatants act
under the commission of a belligerent State. 80 This view also reflects the principle that only
States may authorize the resort to force. 81
4.4.4.2 Nationals of a State Who Join Enemy Forces. The special privileges that
international law affords combatants generally do not apply between a national and his or her
State of nationality. 84 For example, provisions of the GPW assume that POWs are not nationals
of the Detaining Power. 85 Thus, international law does not prevent a State from punishing its
79
Richard Baxter, The Municipal and International Law Basis of Jurisdiction over War Crimes, 28 BRITISH YEAR
BOOK OF INTERNATIONAL LAW 382, 385 (1951). See also Hans Kelsen, Collective and Individual Responsibility in
International Law with Particular Regard to the Punishment of War Criminals, 31 CALIFORNIA LAW REVIEW 530,
549 (1943) (That a State violates international law if it punishes as a criminal, according to its national law, a
member of the armed forces of the enemy for an act of legitimate warfare, can be explained only by the fact that the
State by so doing makes an individual responsible for an act of another State. According to international law, the act
in question must be imputed to the enemy State and not to the individual who in the service of his State has
performed the act. It cannot be considered as a crime of the individual because it must not be considered as his act
at all.); LIEBER CODE art. 41 (All municipal law of the ground on which the armies stand, or of the countries to
which they belong, is silent and of no effect between armies in the field.).
80
See Wharton, Com. Am. Law, 221, VII MOORES DIGEST 175 (It is necessary in order to place the members of
an army under the protection of the law of nations, that it should be commissioned by a state. Hence, all civilized
nations have agreed in the position that war to be a defence to an indictment for homicide or other wrong, must be
conducted by a belligerent state, and that it can not avail voluntary combatants not acting under the commission of a
belligerent.).
81
Refer to 1.11.1.1 (Competent Authority (Right Authority) to Wage War for a Public Purpose).
82
Refer to 15.6.2.1 (No More Severe Treatment Than Nationals of an Opposing Belligerent State).
83
LEVIE, POWS 74-75 (Normally, the nationality of the individual falling within one of the categories enumerated
in Article 4 is that of the belligerent Power for which he is fighting. However, he may have the nationality of a
neutral, or of an ally of the belligerent in whose armed forces he is serving at the time that he falls into the power of
the enemy--or even of the adverse Party, or one of its allies. Does this affect his entitlement to prisoner-of-war
status? Apparently there is no dispute with respect to the entitlement to prisoner-of-war status of an individual who
is a national of a neutral State or of a State which is an ally of the belligerent in whose armed forces he is serving.).
84
Compare 10.3.3.1 (A States Own Nationals).
85
See, e.g., GPW art. 87 (When fixing the penalty, the courts or authorities of the Detaining Power shall take into
consideration, to the widest extent possible, the fact that the accused, not being a national of the Detaining Power, is
not bound to it by any duty of allegiance, and that he is in its power as the result of circumstances independent of his
own will.). Refer to 9.26.6 (Prohibited Penalties); 9.28.6 (Death Sentences).
110
nationals whom it may capture among the ranks of enemy forces. 86 This rule is significant in
non-international armed conflicts in which a State is fighting a rebel group composed of its own
citizens. 87
Although, as a matter of international law, nationals may not assert the privileges of
combatant status against their own State, they may be subject to the liabilities of combatant
status in relation to their own State under that States domestic law. For example, under U.S.
law, U.S. nationals who join enemy forces have been subject to the liabilities of combatant
status, such as potentially being made the object of attack or detained. 88
86
See Public Prosecutor v. Oie Hee Koi and Associated Appeals (UK Privy Council, Dec. 4 1967), LEVIE,
DOCUMENTS ON POWS 737, 741 (quoting LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW) (The privileges
of members of armed forces cannot be claimed by members of the armed forces of a belligerent who go over to the
forces of the enemy and are afterwards captured by the former. They may be, and always are, treated as criminals.
The same applies to traitorous subjects of a belligerent who, without having been members of his armed forces, fight
in the armed forces of the enemy. Even if they appear under the protection of a flag of truce, deserters and traitors
may be seized and punished. This edition was published in 1951 after Aug. 12, 1949, the date of the Geneva
Conventions, and in their lordships opinion correctly states the relevant law.).
87
Refer to 17.12 (Use of Captured or Surrendered Enemy Personnel in NIAC).
88
See, e.g., Hamdi v. Rumsfeld 542 U.S. 507, 519 (2004) (plurality) (There is no bar to this Nations holding one
of its own citizens as an enemy combatant.); Ex parte Quirin, 317 U.S. 1, 37 (1942) (Citizenship in the United
States of an enemy belligerent does not relieve him from the consequences of a belligerency which is unlawful
because in violation of the law of war.); In re Territo, 156 F. 2d 142, 145 (9th Cir. 1946) (rejecting the argument of
petitioner, an Italian army draftee, that he could not be subject to the liabilities of combatant status and detained
because he was a U.S. citizen).
89
For example, DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY PAMPHLET 20-213, History of Prisoner Of War Utilization By The
United States Army, 1776-1945, 198 (Jun. 24, 1955) (During the [Second World] war many soldiers of a state of
origin other than Germany were found in German uniform among German prisoners of war. Therefore when Allied
forces captured these prisoners they segregated them by nationalities. The individual PW was then interrogated by
representatives of his countrys government in exile. If acceptable to that government and if he was willing, the PW
was sent to Great Britain for service in an army unit of his national government. If the PW was rejected, he was
treated in all respects as a German prisoner of war.).
90
For example, Announcement Concerning Soviet Allegations on Allied Prisoners of War, May 3, 1945, 12
DEPARTMENT OF STATE BULLETIN 864 (May 6, 1945) (In as much as the American Government has always
insisted that all wearers of the American uniform, whether American citizens or not, are, as American soldiers,
entitled to full protection of the [1929] Geneva convention and has so informed the enemy, these German prisoners
of war of apparent Soviet nationality claiming such protection are being held as German prisoners of war in order to
protect American soldiers in enemy hands.).
111
4.5 ARMED FORCES OF A STATE
Members of the armed forces of a State, including members of all groups that are part of
the armed forces of a State, but excluding certain medical and religious personnel, 91 receive
combatant status (i.e., its rights, duties, and liabilities) by virtue of that membership. 92 This
section addresses various classes of persons within the armed forces of a State.
4.5.1 Components of Armed Forces. The armed forces of a State may include a variety
of components, such as militia or volunteer corps that form part of those armed forces. 93
The U.S. armed forces include members of the active duty military, the reserve forces,
and the National Guard. U.S. armed forces also include the Coast Guard, which normally
operates under the Department of Homeland Security. 94
The U.S. armed forces may also include the Commissioned Corps of the U.S. Public
Health Service, which normally operates under the Department of Health and Human Services. 95
Similarly, members of the Commissioned Corps of the National Oceanic and Atmospheric
Administration, which normally operates under the Department of Commerce, may also become
part of the U.S. armed forces. 96 Members of these and other organizations assigned to, and
serving with, the U.S. armed forces may be subject to the Uniform Code of Military Justice. 97
91
Refer to 4.9 (Military Medical and Religious Personnel).
92
See GPW art. 4A(1) (defining prisoners of war, in the sense of the present Convention, to include (1)
[m]embers of the armed forces of a Party to the conflict who have fallen into the power of the enemy); HAGUE IV
REG. art. 1 (The laws, rights, and duties of war apply to armies); LIEBER CODE art. 57 (So soon as a man is
armed by a sovereign government and takes the soldiers oath of fidelity, he is a belligerent;). Cf. sources cited in
footnote 150 in 4.6.1.3 (Application of GPW 4A(2) Conditions to the Armed Forces of a State).
93
See GPW art. 4A(1) (defining prisoners of war, in the sense of the present Convention, to include members of
militias or volunteer corps forming part of such armed forces who have fallen into the power of the enemy); HAGUE
IV REG. art. 1 (In countries where militia or volunteer corps constitute the army, or form part of it, they are
included under the denomination army.).
94
See 10 U.S.C. 101(a)(4) (explaining that, for the purposes of U.S. domestic law, the term armed forces means
the Army, Navy, Air Force, Marine Corps, and Coast Guard.); 14 U.S.C. 1 (The Coast Guard as established
January 28, 1915, shall be a military service and a branch of the armed forces of the United States at all times. The
Coast Guard shall be a service in the Department of Homeland Security, except when operating as a service in the
Navy.).
95
42 U.S.C. 217 (In time of war, or of emergency involving the national defense proclaimed by the President, he
may by Executive order declare the commissioned corps of the [Public Health] Service to be a military service.).
96
33 U.S.C. 3061 (The President may, whenever in the judgment of the President a sufficient national emergency
exists, transfer to the service and jurisdiction of a military department such vessels, equipment, stations, and officers
of the Administration as the President considers to be in the best interest of the country. An officer of the
Administration transferred under this section, shall, while under the jurisdiction of a military department, have
proper military status and shall be subject to the laws, regulations, and orders for the government of the Army,
Navy, or Air Force, as the case may be, insofar as the same may be applicable to persons whose retention
permanently in the military service of the United States is not contemplated by law.).
97
10 U.S.C. 802(a)(8) (Members of the National Oceanic and Atmospheric Administration, Public Health
Service, and other organizations, when assigned to and serving with the armed forces, are subject to the Uniform
Code of Military Justice).
112
The U.S. armed forces may also include the volunteer auxiliary of the Air Force when the
services of the Civil Air Patrol are used in certain missions. 98
In the United States, reserve armed forces include the reserve components of the Army,
Navy, Air Force, Marine Corps, and Coast Guard, as well as the Army National Guard of the
United States and the Air National Guard of the United States. 99
Nonetheless, in the past, some States have illegitimately questioned whether special
operations forces are entitled to the privileges of combatant status. For example, during World
War II, Hitler directed that German forces summarily execute captured Allied special operations
forces. 102 Post-World War II war crimes tribunals found that this order was not a legitimate
98
See 10 U.S.C. 9442(b)(1) (The Secretary of the Air Force may use the services of the Civil Air Patrol to fulfill
the noncombat programs and missions of the Department of the Air Force.).
99
10 U.S.C. 10101 (The reserve components of the armed forces are: (1) The Army National Guard of the
United States. (2) The Army Reserve. (3) The Navy Reserve. (4) The Marine Corps Reserve. (5) The Air National
Guard of the United States. (6) The Air Force Reserve. (7) The Coast Guard Reserve.).
100
JOINT PUBLICATION 3-05, Special Operations, ix (Jul. 16, 2014) (Special operations require unique modes of
employment, tactics, techniques, procedures, and equipment. They are often conducted in hostile, denied, or
politically and/or diplomatically sensitive environments, and are characterized by one or more of the following:
time-sensitivity, clandestine or covert nature, low visibility, work with or through indigenous forces, greater
requirements for regional orientation and cultural expertise, and a higher degree of risk. Special operations provide
joint force commanders (JFCs) and chiefs of mission with discrete, precise, and scalable options that can be
synchronized with activities of other interagency partners to achieve United States Government (USG) objectives.).
101
Refer to 4.4 (Rights, Duties, and Liabilities of Combatants).
102
Adolf Hitler, Commando Order, reprinted in Trial of Generaloberst Nickolaus von Falkenhorst, XI U.N. LAW
REPORTS 18, 20-21 (British Military Court, Brunswick, Jul. 29-Aug. 2, 1946); also reprinted in United States v. von
Leeb, et al. (The High Command Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 525-27; also reprinted in
The Dostler Case, Trial of General Anton Dostler, I U.N. LAW REPORTS 22, 33-34 (U.S. Military Commission,
Rome, Oct. 8-12, 1945).
113
reprisal, violated the prohibition against executions without a fair trial, and improperly denied
POW status to soldiers wearing a uniform behind enemy lines. 103
Special operations forces personnel, like other members of the armed forces, remain
entitled to the privileges of combatant status, unless they temporarily forfeit such privileges by
engaging in spying or sabotage. 104 In some cases, military personnel who do not wear the
standard uniform of their armed forces may nonetheless remain entitled to the privileges of
combatant status because the wearing of such uniforms does not constitute the element of acting
clandestinely or under false pretenses. 105 For example, special operations forces have
sometimes dressed like friendly forces. 106 Special operations forces personnel remain entitled to
the privileges of combatant status even when operating detached from the main body of forces
behind enemy lines. 107
4.5.2.2 Members Trained as Medical Personnel, but Not Attached to the Medical
Service. Members of the armed forces might have medical training but not be designated as
military medical personnel. For example, before joining the armed forces, a person might have
been trained as a nurse or physician, and after joining the armed forces might not be designated
as part of the medical corps.
Because such personnel have not been designated as military medical personnel, they are
are combatants, like other members of the armed forces. 108 However, if they fall into the power
of the enemy during international armed conflict, such personnel may be required to tend to
fellow POWs, in light of their previous training. In particular, POWs who, though not attached
to the medical service of their armed forces, are physicians, surgeons, dentists, nurses, or medical
orderlies may be required by the Detaining Power to exercise their medical functions in the
103
See Trial of Generaloberst Nickolaus von Falkenhorst, XI U.N. LAW REPORTS 18, 28 (British Military Court,
Brunswick, Jul. 29-Aug. 2, 1946) (reporter noting that Hitlers commando order was clearly illegal because it
provided that there should be no military courts, for even a war traitor is entitled to a trial, and because the
commando order was to apply to troops engaged on commando operations whether in uniform or not); The
Dostler Case, Trial of General Anton Dostler, I U.N. LAW REPORTS 22, 27-33 (U.S. Military Commission, Rome,
Oct. 8-12, 1945) (conviction of a German General for the murder of 15 U.S. Army personnel and rejection of his
defense that the commando order was a valid and applicable superior order); Trial of Karl Adam Golkel and
Thirteen Others, V U.N. LAW REPORTS 45-53 (British Military Court, Wuppertal, Germany, May 15-21, 1946) (trial
of German soldiers for killing eight members of the British Special Air Service); United States v. von Leeb, et al.
(The High Command Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 527 (This order was criminal on its
face. It simply directed the slaughter of these sabotage troops.).
104
Refer to 4.17 (Spies, Saboteurs, and Other Persons Engaging in Similar Acts Behind Enemy Lines).
105
Refer to 4.17.2.1 (Acting Clandestinely or Under False Pretenses).
106
Refer to 5.25.2.1 (Mimicking Other Friendly Forces).
107
See Trial of Generaloberst Nickolaus von Falkenhorst, XI U.N. LAW REPORTS 18, 28 (British Military Court,
Brunswick, Jul. 29-Aug. 2, 1946) (reporter noting that [i]t is not possible to say that troops who engage in acts of
sabotage behind the enemy lines are bandits, as Hitler declared them. They carry out a legitimate act of war,
provided the objective relates directly to the war effort and provided they carry it out in uniform.); LIEBER CODE
art. 81 (Partisans are soldiers armed and wearing the uniform of their army, but belonging to a corps which acts
detached from the main body for the purpose of making inroads into the territory occupied by the enemy. If
captured, they are entitled to all the privileges of the prisoner of war.).
108
Refer to 4.9.2.2 (Designated by Their Armed Forces).
114
interests of POWs dependent on the same Power. 109 In that case, they shall continue to be
POWs, but shall receive the same treatment as corresponding medical personnel retained by the
Detaining Power. 110 They shall be exempted from any other work under Article 49 of the
GPW.111
4.5.2.4 Draftees. Some States require military service for categories of their
nationals. The United States employs all-volunteer armed forces, although it has drafted its
nationals into military service in prior conflicts.
Under international law, a draftee, i.e., a person who has been compelled to join a States
armed forces, is to be treated the same as other members of the armed forces. 117
4.5.2.5 Deserters. A deserter from the armed forces of a belligerent who falls into
the power of the enemy in international armed conflict is a POW. 118 Similarly, a deserter who is
interned by a neutral State would also be treated as a POW. 119 The deserters relationship with
109
GPW art. 32 (Prisoners of war who, though not attached to the medical service of their armed forces, are
physicians, surgeons, dentists, nurses or medical orderlies, may be required by the Detaining Power to exercise their
medical functions in the interests of prisoners of war dependent on the same Power.).
110
GPW art. 32 (In that case they shall continue to be prisoners of war, but shall receive the same treatment as
corresponding medical personnel retained by the Detaining Power.).
111
GPW art. 32 (They shall be exempted from any other work under Article 49.).
112
Refer to 4.9.2 (Requirements for Military Medical and Religious Status).
113
Refer to 4.9.2.2 (Designated by Their Armed Forces).
114
GPW art. 36 (Prisoners of war who are ministers of religion, without having officiated as chaplains to their own
forces, shall be at liberty, whatever their denomination, to minister freely to the members of their community.).
115
GPW art. 36 (For this purpose, they shall receive the same treatment as the chaplains retained by the Detaining
Power.).
116
GPW art. 36 (They shall not be obliged to do any other work.).
117
See 1958 UK MANUAL 89(i) (noting that [t]he members, male and female, of the land, sea and air forces are
entitled to recognition as belligerent forces whether they have joined voluntarily or have been compelled to do so by
their own law).
118
See GREENSPAN, MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 99 (Deserters from the enemy do not thereby lose their right
to be treated as prisoners of war if they fall into the hands of the opposing side.).
119
Refer to 15.16 (Belligerent Forces Taking Refuge in Neutral Territory).
115
his or her armed forces is a question of that States domestic law and not international law.
States generally forbid members of their armed forces from desertion and generally regard
members of the armed forces who desert as continuing to be members of their armed forces.
Deserters who are subsequently captured by their own armed forces are not POWs
because they are not in the power of the enemy and because the privileges of combatant status
are generally understood not to apply, as a matter of international law, between nationals and
their State of nationality. 120
4.5.2.6 Defectors. Defectors are persons from one sides armed forces who
voluntarily join the armed forces of the opposing side. They are generally not regarded as POWs
while serving in their new armed force. 121
Defectors serving in the forces of the enemy who are captured by the State to which they
originally owed an allegiance generally would not be entitled to POW status because the
privileges of combatant status are generally understood not to apply, as a matter of international
law, between nationals and their State of nationality. 122
States may not compel POWs, retained personnel, or protected persons in their power to
defect and serve in their armed forces. 123
Article 4A(3) of the GPW was developed to address situations like those that had
occurred during World War II, when members of a military force continued fighting after their
State had been occupied. 126 For example, military forces might continue to fight for a
120
Refer to 4.4.4 (Nationality and Combatant Status).
121
Refer to 9.3.4.1 (Having Fallen).
122
Refer to 4.4.4.2 (Nationals of a State Who Join Enemy Forces).
123
Refer to 9.19.2.3 (Labor Assignments That May Be Compelled); 10.7.3 (Compulsory Work for Protected
Persons in a Belligerents Home Territory); 11.20.1.1 (Prohibition on Compulsory Service in an Occupying
Powers Armed Forces).
124
GPW art. 4A(3) (defining prisoners of war, in the sense of the present Convention, to include [m]embers of
regular armed forces who profess allegiance to a government or an authority not recognized by the Detaining
Power who have fallen into the power of the enemy).
125
Refer to 4.4 (Rights, Duties, and Liabilities of Combatants).
126
See INTERNATIONAL COMMITTEE OF THE RED CROSS, Report on the Work of the Conference of Government
Exports for the Study of the Convention for the Protection of War Victims, 106 (Geneva, Apr. 14-26, 1947) (In its
report, the ICRC stressed that certain States [during World War II] had denied the status of belligerents to combatant
units subject to a Government or authority which these States did not recognise; this despite the fact that these units
(e.g. the French forces constituted under General de Gaulle) fulfilled all the conditions required for the granting of
116
government-in-exile or for a government that had ceased to exist.127 Such a government would
provide the right authority for its regular armed forces to participate in the ongoing war and to
receive POW status upon capture by the enemy. 128 Members of those forces were sometimes
denied POW status by an enemy State, even though other States recognized the group to which
they belonged as a co-belligerent force. 129
4.5.4 Persons Belonging, or Having Belonged, to the Armed Forces of an Occupied State.
Under Article 4B(1) of the GPW, persons belonging, or having belonged, to the armed forces of
an occupied State should be treated as POWs if, while hostilities are continuing outside occupied
territory, the Occupying Power considers it necessary, by reason of their allegiance to the armed
forces, to intern them. 130
Article 4B(1) of the GPW seeks to address the proper status of an army demobilized by
the Occupying Power while a portion of those same armed forces continue the struggle. When
the forces are demobilized, they are treated as civilians, but when recalled for internment based
on their prior service, they are treated as POWs. 131 In particular, States developed this provision
to address Germanys practice during World War II of arresting demobilized military personnel
from occupied States. 132 These personnel were often interned and sought to escape to join the
ongoing fighting. This provision was promulgated to ensure that individuals in similar
PW status. The Commission approved the ICRCs proposal that these armed forces should enjoy PW status,
irrespective of the Government or authority under whose orders they might claim to be.).
127
II-A FINAL RECORD OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 415 (Mr. Lamarle (France) realized
that cases might arise where combatants claiming allegiance to an authority which was not recognized by the
Detaining Power might be deprived of the benefit of the Convention; but he thought the word authority afforded
sufficient safeguards to such combatants. After an exchange of views on the subject, the Committee agreed that the
word authority afforded sufficient safeguards to combatants claiming allegiance to Governments which had ceased
to exist.).
128
Refer to 1.11.1.1 (Competent Authority (Right Authority) to Wage War for a Public Purpose).
129
Refer to 3.3.3.3 (Recognition of Friendly Armed Groups as Lawful Belligerents).
130
GPW art. 4B(1) ((1) Persons belonging, or having belonged, to the armed forces of the occupied country, if the
occupying Power considers it necessary by reason of such allegiance to intern them, even though it has originally
liberated them while hostilities were going on outside the territory it occupies, in particular where such persons have
made an unsuccessful attempt to rejoin the armed forces to which they belong and which are engaged in combat, or
where they fail to comply with a summons made to them with a view to internment.).
131
GPW COMMENTARY 69 (In fact, as one delegate to the Conference pointed out, the question relates to the proper
status of an army demobilized by the Occupying Power, while a portion of those same armed forces continue the
struggle. It is logical to treat its members as civilians until such time as they are recalled in order to be interned; but
from that moment, it is equally logical to treat them as prisoners of war.).
132
See GPW COMMENTARY 68 (During the Second World War, the Occupying Power, for security reasons,
frequently arrested demobilized military personnel in occupied territory, especially officers. These men were
granted prisoner-of-war status but usually only after repeated representations by the International Committee of the
Red Cross and the Governments concerned. In the report which the International Committee prepared for the
Government Experts, it therefore proposed that the entitlement of such persons to prisoner-of-war status should be
explicitly mentioned and the Conference supported this suggestion.). For further historical background see LEVIE,
POWS 66-67, II-A FINAL RECORD OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 431-32, and the note
appended to In re Siebers, Special Court of Cassation, Feb. 20, 1950, The Hague, in 1950 INTERNATIONAL LAW
REPORTS, 399-400.
117
circumstances would receive POW treatment if they were interned. For example, the rules for
the parole of POWs would apply to them. 133 Similarly, the rules relating to POW escape would
also apply to them. 134 So, a demobilized person who disobeyed an internment order and
attempted to escape to rejoin his or her armed force would, like a POW, be subject, at most, to
disciplinary punishment in respect of the act of escape. 135
Persons belonging, or having belonged, to the armed forces of an occupied State would
only be entitled to receive POW treatment while an international armed conflict continues. 136
For example, this provision would not apply to a situation like the occupation of Japan after
World War II because all hostilities had ended. 137
Under certain conditions, members of militia and volunteer corps that are not part of the
armed forces of a State qualify as combatants and receive the rights, duties, and liabilities of
combatant status. 138 More specifically, Article 4(A)(2) of the GPW defines prisoners of war to
include:
Members of other militias and members of other volunteer corps, including those
of organized resistance movements, belonging to a Party to the conflict and
operating in or outside their own territory, even if this territory is occupied,
provided that such militias or volunteer corps, including such organized resistance
movements, fulfil the following conditions:
133
Refer to 9.11.2 (Parole of POWs).
134
Refer to 9.25 (POW Escapes).
135
Refer to 9.25.2.2 (Only Disciplinary Punishments in Respect of an Act of Escape).
136
See LEVIE, POWS 67-68 (It is important to bear in mind that the foregoing provisions explicitly contemplate that
the government of the unoccupied part of the territory of the State the members of whose armed forces are in
question, or that States allies if it has been completely occupied, are continuing the hostilities. The mere existence
of a government-in-exile after the complete cessation of hostilities would not suffice to make the provision
applicable. In other words, this provision was not intended to apply to the situation which arises when the
capitulation of a State is followed by the complete termination of armed hostilities.).
137
See LEVIE, POWS 68 and footnote 261 ([T]his provision was not intended to apply to the situation which arises
when the capitulation of a State is followed by the complete termination of armed hostilities and would, therefore,
not apply in a situation such as that which existed upon the capitulation of Japan in 1945.).
138
Refer to 4.4 (Rights, Duties, and Liabilities of Combatants).
118
(d) that of conducting their operations in accordance with the laws and customs of
war. 139
Under these conditions, which are discussed below, members of these armed groups may
operate as combatants in or outside their own territory, even if this territory is occupied. By
contrast, a leve en masse may only be formed on the approach of the enemy to non-occupied
territory. 140
4.6.1 GPW 4A(2) Conditions in General. The conditions set forth in Article 4A(2) of the
GPW were derived from conditions found in the Regulations annexed to the 1899 Hague II and
the 1907 Hague IV. 141 These conditions reflect the attributes common to regular armed forces of
a State. 142 By seeking to ensure that participants in hostilities are sufficiently disciplined, law-
abiding, and distinguishable from the civilian population, these conditions help protect the
civilian population from the hardships of war. In addition, these conditions contribute to the
military effectiveness of the force that satisfies the conditions. 143
4.6.1.1 GPW 4A(2) Conditions Required on a Group Basis. The armed group, as
a whole, must fulfill these conditions for its members to be entitled to the privileges of
combatant status. For example, if a member of an armed group met these requirements, but the
armed group did not, that member would not be entitled to the privileges of combatant status
139
GPW art. 4(A)(2). See also HAGUE IV REG. art. 1 (The laws, rights, and duties of war apply not only to armies,
but also to militia and volunteer corps fulfilling the following conditions: -- 1. To be commanded by a person
responsible for his subordinates; 2. To have a fixed distinctive emblem recognizable at a distance; 3. To carry arms
openly; and 4. To conduct their operations in accordance with the laws and customs of war.); 1899 HAGUE II REG.
art. 1 (The laws, rights, and duties of war apply not only to armies, but also to militia and volunteer corps, fulfilling
the following conditions: 1. To be commanded by a person responsible for his subordinates; 2. To have a fixed
distinctive emblem recognizable at a distance; 3. To carry arms openly; and 4. To conduct their operations in
accordance with the laws and customs of war.).
140
Refer to 4.7.1.3 (Approach of the Enemy to Non-Occupied Territory).
141
See GPW COMMENTARY 49 ([T]here was unanimous agreement [at the 1949 Diplomatic Conference] that the
categories of persons to whom the Convention is applicable must be defined, in harmony with the Hague
Regulations.).
142
See GPW COMMENTARY 58 (explaining that an organization satisfying the conditions of GPW art. 4A(2) must
have the principal characteristics generally found in armed forces throughout the world, particularly in regard to
discipline, hierarchy, responsibility and honour.).
143
JAMES BROWN SCOTT, THE PROCEEDINGS OF THE HAGUE PEACE CONFERENCES: THE CONFERENCE OF 1899 549
(General den Beer Poortugael, while fully endorsing the considerations set forth by the PRESIDENT and his
Excellency Mr. BEERNAERT, wishes to add a few words. But from a military standpoint also it must be
recognized that it is to the benefit of the populations to impose on them the conditions contained in Articles 9 and 10
[predecessors to GPW art. 4A(2) and 4A(6) and], which they must satisfy if they wish to take up arms. For it is an
undeniable fact that to lead undisciplined and unorganized troops into the fire is to lead them to butchery.).
144
Refer to 3.6.3.2 (Benefits-Burdens Principle in Law of War Rules).
119
because the armed group failed to satisfy the conditions. 145 Similarly, isolated departures from a
condition by a member of the armed group (e.g., a failure to comply with the conditions by a
member of the armed group that was not directed by the armed groups leader) would not
prevent the armed group from satisfying these conditions.
4.6.1.2 AP I and the GPW 4A(2) Conditions. AP I changed, for its Parties, the
conditions under which armed groups that are not part of a States armed forces may qualify for
combatant status. 146 The United States has objected to the way these changes relaxed the
requirements for obtaining the privileges of combatant status, and did not ratify AP I, in large
part, because of them. 147 A chief concern has been the extent to which these changes would
undermine the protection of the civilian population. 148 The United States has expressed the view
that it would not be appropriate to treat this provision of AP I as customary international law. 149
145
See G.I.A.D. Draper, The Status of Combatants and the Question of Guerrilla Warfare, 45 BRITISH YEAR BOOK
OF INTERNATIONAL LAW 173, 197 (1971) (the fate of the individual irregular is essentially linked with that of the
group in which he operates. If the groups members, as a majority, always meet the legal conditions, the individual
will answer only for his own misdoings, and then as a prisoner of war who had the right to participate in the combat.
If, however, the individual were punctilious in a group in which the majority did not observe the conditions on any
one occasion, he would not acquire combatant status or prisoner-of-war status upon capture, and will answer in law
as an individual who participated in combat with no legal right to do so, i.e. answerable in municipal law or
occupation law, or the law of war.).
146
See AP I, arts. 1(4), 43, 44.
147
See Ronald Reagan, Letter of Transmittal, Jan. 29, 1987, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING AP II IV
(Another provision [of AP I] would grant combatant status to irregular forces even if they do not satisfy the
traditional requirements to distinguish themselves from the civilian population and otherwise comply with the laws
of war. This would endanger civilians among whom terrorists and other irregulars attempt to conceal themselves.).
148
See, e.g., John B. Bellinger, III, Lawyers and Wars: A Symposium in Honor of Edward R. Cummings, Sept. 30,
2005, 2005 DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 953, 955 (More problematic from the
lawyers perspectiveor at least this lawyers perspectiveis how law deals with the kind of situation where a
would-be terrorist seeks to cloak his actions in the garb of legitimate combatant. This second factor working against
civilian protection is fueled in part by Article 44 of Additional Protocol I, which suggests that combatants do not
need to distinguish themselves from the civilian population except prior to and during an attack. To be fair, there is
no doubt that a terrorist would not meet the combatancy definition of any instrument of international humanitarian
law. But the very fact that Additional Protocol I allows greater flexibility in distinction undermines this
fundamental protection. The principle of distinction, among the foundational principles of humanitarian law, exists
for the purposes of civilian protection, to ensure that fighters can identify the combatant from the bystander. Article
44, pressed so strongly for largely political reasons in the 1970s, undermines it. And as a result, one has to lament
that the process of negotiating international humanitarian law instruments has not always inured to the civilian
populations benefit.).
149
Memorandum submitted in United States v. Shakur, 690 F. Supp. 1291 (S.D.N.Y. 1988), III CUMULATIVE
DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 1981-88 3436, 3441 (Article 44 grants combatant
status to irregular forces in certain circumstances even if they do not satisfy the traditional requirements to
distinguish themselves from the civilian population and otherwise comply with the existing laws of war. This was
not acceptable as a new norm of international law. It clearly does not reflect customary law. While the U.S. is of
the view that certain provisions in Protocol I reflect customary international law (see, e.g., Treaty Doc. 100-2, supra,
at X), the provisions on wars of national liberation and combatant and prisoner-of-war status are definitely not in
this category. Accordingly, it is the view of the United States that it would be inappropriate to treat these
provisions as part of customary international law under any circumstances.).
120
4.6.1.3 Application of GPW 4A(2) Conditions to the Armed Forces of a State.
The text of the GPW does not expressly apply the conditions in Article 4A(2) of the GPW to the
armed forces of a State. 150 Thus, under the GPW, members of the armed forces of a State
receive combatant status (including its privileges and liabilities) by virtue of their membership in
the armed forces of a State. 151 Nonetheless, the GPW 4A(2) conditions were intended to reflect
attributes of States armed forces. 152 If an armed force of a State systematically failed to
distinguish itself from the civilian population and to conduct its operations in accordance with
the law of war, its members should not expect to receive the privileges afforded lawful
combatants. 153 Similarly, members of the armed forces engaged in spying or sabotage forfeit
their entitlement to the privileges of combatant status if captured while engaged in those
activities. 154
4.6.2 Belonging to a Party to the Conflict. The armed group must belong to a party to the
conflict. 155 The requirement of belonging to a party establishes that the armed group fulfills a
jus ad bellum requirement of right authority, i.e., it is acting on the authority of a State. 156 This
150
II-A FINAL RECORD OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 465-66 (General SLAVIN (Union of
Soviet Socialist Republics) said that according to the first paragraph, sub-paragraph I, of the working text it would
appear that members of the Armed forces would have to fulfil the four traditional requirements mentioned in (a),
(b), (c) and (d) in order to obtain prisoner of war status, which was contrary to the Hague Regulations (Article I of
the Regulations concerning the Laws and Customs of War, 18 October 1907). General DEVIJVER (Belgium) pointed
out that the above reproduced working text had been drafted with due regard to the Hague Regulations, and the first
paragraph, sub-paragraph (I), of the working text carefully specified that only members of militia or volunteer corps
should fulfil all four conditions.). Cf. In re Lewinski (called von Manstein) Case, reprinted in ANNUAL DIGEST
AND REPORTS OF PUBLIC INTERNATIONAL LAW CASES 509, 515-16 (H. Lauterpacht, ed., 1949) (Regular soldiers
are so entitled without any of the four requirements set out in Article 1 [of the Hague IV Reg.]: they are requisite in
order to give the Militia and Volunteer Corps the same privileges as the Army.).
151
Refer to 4.5 (Armed Forces of a State).
152
Refer to footnote 142 in 4.6.1 (GPW 4A(2) Conditions in General).
153
See Jay S. Bybee, Assistant Attorney General, Status of Taliban Forces Under Article 4 of the Third Geneva
Convention of 1949, Feb. 7, 2002, 26 OPINIONS OF THE OFFICE OF LEGAL COUNSEL 1, 4 (We conclude, however,
that the four basic conditions that apply to militias must also apply, at a minimum, to members of armed forces who
would be legally entitled to POW status. In other words, an individual cannot be a POW, even if a member of an
armed force, unless forces also are: (a) commanded by a person responsible for his subordinates; (b) hav[e] a
fixed distinctive sign recognizable at a distance; (c) carry[] arms openly; and (d) conduct[] their operations in
accordance with the laws and customs of war. Thus, if the President has the factual basis to determine that Taliban
prisoners are not entitled to POW status under Article 4(A)(2) as members of a militia, he therefore has the grounds
to also find that they are not entitled to POW status as members of an armed force under either Article 4(A)(1) or
Article 4(A)(3).) (brackets in original); BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 234-35 (AP I art. 43, 2.1.2) (It is
generally assumed that these conditions were deemed, by the 1874 Brussels Conference and the 1899 and 1907
Hague Peace Conferences, to be inherent in the regular armed forces of States. Accordingly, it was considered to be
unnecessary and redundant to spell them out in the Conventions.).
154
Refer to 4.17.5 (Spying and Sabotage Forfeiture of the Privileges of Combatant Status).
155
GPW art. 4A(2). Cf. LIEBER CODE art. 81 (Partisans are soldiers armed and wearing the uniform of their army,
but belonging to a corps which acts detached from the main body for the purpose of making inroads into the territory
occupied by the enemy. If captured, they are entitled to all the privileges of the prisoner of war.).
156
Refer to 1.11.1.1 (Competent Authority (Right Authority) to Wage War for a Public Purpose).
121
requirement recognizes that members of a non-State armed group are not entitled to the
privileges of combatant status even if that armed group satisfies the other conditions. 157
The States authority may be granted by its representatives orally; it need not be granted
in writing, such as through a commission or warrant. In all cases, however, opposing parties to
the conflict must be able to discern that the armed group enjoys such authority. A States formal
acknowledgement that an armed group belongs to it is sufficient. On the other hand, the bare
claim by the armed group that it acts on behalf of a State would be insufficient. In some cases,
State support and direction to the armed group may establish that it belongs to the State. 158
4.6.3 Being Commanded by a Person Responsible for His or Her Subordinates. The
armed group must be commanded by a person responsible for his or her subordinates; the armed
group must have a commander with effective authority over the armed group. 159 This
requirement helps ensure that the armed group has sufficient discipline and organization to
conduct its operations in accordance with the law of war. 160
The commander may derive his or her authority over the armed group by a regular or
temporary commission from a State. However, a commander may derive his or her command
from another position or authority. For example, the armed group may be formed informally and
may have elected the commander as its leader. In practice, a State may provide members of the
armed group with certificates or distinctive badges to show that they are officers, or military
157
See The Military Prosecutor v. Omar Mahmud Kassem and Others (Israeli Military Court, Ramallah, Apr. 13,
1969), LEVIE, DOCUMENTS ON POWS 776 (explaining that the most basic condition of the right of combatants to be
considered upon capture as prisoners of war is belonging to a belligerent State and that if persons do not belong to
the Government or State for which they fight, they do not possess the right to enjoy the status of prisoners of war
upon capture.). Cf. BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 237 (AP I art. 43, 2.3.1) (gangs of terrorists acting on
their own behalf and not linked to an entity subject to international law are excluded from the definition of armed
forces of a Party to the Conflict in AP I similar to how they would be excluded under Article 4A(2) of the GPW).
158
See The Military Prosecutor v. Omar Mahmud Kassem and Others (Israeli Military Court, Ramallah, Apr. 13,
1969), LEVIE, DOCUMENTS ON POWS 776-77 (It is natural that, in international armed conflicts, the Government
which previously possessed an occupied area should encourage and take under its wing the irregular forces which
continue fighting within the borders of the country, give them protection and material assistance, and that therefore a
command relationship should exist between such Government and the fighting forces, with the result that a
continuing responsibility exists of the Government and the commanders of its army for those who fight in its name
and on its behalf.).
159
See GREENSPAN, MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 59 (The commander must be a person responsible for his
subordinates, that is, his authority over those in his command must be effective.).
160
See G.I.A.D. Draper, The Status of Combatants and the Question of Guerrilla Warfare, 45 BRITISH YEAR BOOK
OF INTERNATIONAL LAW 173, 201 (1971) (explaining that this condition does probably mean that the commander
must have sufficient authority to ensure that the conditions applicable to the members of the group, necessary for
lawful combatancy, are observed.); 1958 UK MANUAL 91 note 1 (explaining that Field Marshall Rundstedt, C.-
in-C. of the German armed forces in the West, disclaimed all responsibilities for the atrocities by Waffen S.S. units
on the ground that neither their commanders nor members were subject to military law and that he could take no
disciplinary action against them, and thus German Waffen S.S. paramilitary units used during World War II
failed to meet this condition and were not lawful combatants).
122
personnel responsible to higher authority, and not private persons acting on individual
initiative. 161
The authority of the commander over his or her subordinates gives rise to a
corresponding duty to ensure that the armed groups members conduct their operations in
accordance with the law of war. 162
4.6.4.1 Distinctive Sign. The requirement does not specify a particular sign or
emblem that persons must wear. 165 Wearing a military uniform satisfies this condition.
However, a full uniform is not required. 166 The sign suffices if it enables the person to be
161
1958 UK MANUAL 91 (The first condition, to be commanded by a person responsible for his subordinates, is
fulfilled if the commander of the corps is regularly or temporarily commissioned as an officer or is a person of
position and authority, or if the members are provided with certificates or badges granted by the government of the
State to show that they are officers, or soldiers, so that there may be no doubt that they are not partisans acting on
their own responsibility. State recognition, however, is not essential, and an organisation may be formed
spontaneously and elect its own officers.).
162
Refer to 18.23.3 (Command Responsibility).
163
See GREENSPAN, MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 59 (Soldiers must be dressed in such a fashion that they are
clearly distinguishable from the general population as members of the armed forces.).
164
See Abraham Sofaer, Legal Adviser, Department of State, The Rationale for the United States Decision, 82 AJIL
784, 786 (1988) (Inevitably, regular forces would treat civilians more harshly and with less restraint if they
believed that their opponents were free to pose as civilians while retaining their right to act as combatants and their
POW status if captured.). For example, LEVIE, POWS 50 footnote 187 (In Vietnam individuals who were
apparently civilian noncombatants (women, children, working farmers, etc.) would approach American servicemen
in seeming innocence and then suddenly toss a hand grenade at them. After a very few such incidents the soldiers
understandably came to distrust all civilians while they were in the field and frequently took definitive action upon
suspicion and without waiting to ascertain the facts. Thus, the original illegal actions taken by the guerrillas
subsequently endangered the members of the civilian population who, as noncombatants, were entitled to be
protected in their status.) (internal citations omitted).
165
See GPW COMMENTARY 52 (The drafters of the 1949 Convention, like those of the Hague Conventions,
considered it unnecessary to specify the sign which members of the armed forces should have for the purposes of
recognition. It is the duty of each State to take steps so that members of its armed forces can be immediately
recognized as such and to see to it that they are easily distinguishable from civilians.).
166
See, e.g., 1958 UK MANUAL 92 (The second condition, relating to a fixed distinctive sign recognisable at a
distance, would be satisfied by the wearing of a military uniform, but something less than a complete uniform will
suffice.); 1914 RULES OF LAND WARFARE 33 (The distinctive sign. This requirement will be satisfied by the
wearing of a uniform or even less than a complete uniform.); SPAIGHT, WAR RIGHTS ON LAND 57 (The distinctive
emblem does not mean a uniform.). Cf. ICRC AP COMMENTARY 468 (1577) (What constitutes a uniform, and
how can emblems or nationality be distinguished from each other? The Conference in no way intended to define
what constitutes a uniform . [A]ny customary uniform which clearly distinguished the member wearing it from
a non-member should suffice. Thus a cap or an armlet, etc. worn in a standard way is actually equivalent to a
uniform.).
123
distinguished from the civilian population. For example, a helmet or headdress that makes the
silhouette of the individual readily distinguishable from that of a civilian can meet this
requirement. Similarly, a partial uniform (such as a uniform jacket or trousers), load bearing
vest, armband, or other device could suffice, so long as it served to distinguish the members from
the civilian population. Formally notifying enemy forces of the distinctive sign is not required,
and the proposal to add such a requirement was not accepted by States. 167 Such notification,
however, may avoid misunderstanding and facilitate claims of POW status for captured members
of the armed group.
4.6.4.2 Fixed. The text of the GPW indicates that the sign should be fixed.
This requirement has been interpreted to mean that the sign must be such that it cannot be easily
removed and disposed of at the first sign of danger. 168 In practice, however, it would be
important to assess whether members of the armed group are functionally distinguishable from
the civilian population, even if the distinctive sign that they wear is not permanent and could be
removed. 169
4.6.4.3 Visible at a Distance. Distance has not been defined, but may be
interpreted as requiring that the sign be easily distinguishable by the naked eye of ordinary
people at a distance at which the form of the individual can be determined. 170
167
See JAMES BROWN SCOTT, THE PROCEEDINGS OF THE HAGUE PEACE CONFERENCES: III THE CONFERENCE OF
1907 6 (1921) (The PRESIDENT first takes up the German amendment relating to Article 1, tending to require
previous notice to the hostile party of fixed distinctive emblems recognizable at a distance. He recalls that this
amendment was rejected by 23 votes to 11, and asks whether it is again advanced by the German delegation. On the
negative answer of Major General VON GUNDELL, he considers it useless to put the question to discussion and
passes to Article 2.).
168
See LEVIE, POWS 48 (a resistance fighter must wear some item which will identify him as a combatant, thereby
distinguishing him from the general population, and that item must be such that he cannot remove and dispose of it
at the first sign of danger. A handkerchief, or rag, or armband slipped onto or loosely pinned to the sleeve does not
meet this definition. An armband sewed to the sleeve, a logotype of sufficient size displayed on the clothing, a
unique type of jacket-these will constitute a fixed and distinctive identifying insignia, effectively separating the
combatant of the moment from the rest of the population.); GREENSPAN, MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 59
(Where a complete uniform is not worn, and this is sometimes not possible because of the poverty of the country,
sudden emergency or other reasons, the fixed distinctive sign should be something which cannot be instantly taken
off or assumed at will, thus enabling a combatant to appear a peaceful citizen one moment and a soldier the next.
The sign should be part of the clothing or sewn to it.); 1958 UK MANUAL 92 (Something in the nature of a badge
sewn on the clothing should therefore be worn in addition [to a distinctive helmet] in order to meet the condition
that the sign must be fixed.).
169
See FRANCIS LIEBER, GUERRILLA PARTIES CONSIDERED WITH REFERENCE TO THE LAWS AND USAGES OF WAR 16-
17 (1862) (The Southern prisoners made at Fort Donelson, whom I have seen at the West, had no uniform. They
were indeed dressed very much alike, but it was the uniform dress of the countryman in that region. Yet they were
treated by us as prisoner of war, and well treated too. Nor would it be difficult to adopt something of a badge, easily
put on and off, and to call it a uniform. It makes a great difference, however, whether the absence of the uniform is
used for the purpose of concealment or disguise, in order to get by stealth within the lines of the invader, for
destruction or life or property, or for pillage, and whether the parties have no organization at all, and are so small
that they cannot act otherwise than by stealth.).
170
See 1958 UK MANUAL 92 (The distance at which the sign should be visible is necessarily vague, but it is
reasonable to expect that the silhouette of an irregular combatant in the position of standing against the skyline
should at once be distinguishable from the outline of a peaceful inhabitant, and this by the naked eye of an ordinary
individual at a distance at which the form of the individual can be determined.); 1914 RULES OF LAND WARFARE
124
4.6.5 Carrying Arms Openly. Members of the armed group must carry their arms
openly. 171 This requirement is not satisfied if the armed group makes a practice of carrying only
concealed weapons or of hiding weapons on the approach of enemy forces to avoid identification
as fighters. 172
4.6.6 Conducting Their Operations in Accordance With the Laws and Customs of War.
The armed group, as a whole, must conduct its operations in accordance with the law of war.
Evidence that an armed group enforced the law of war (such as by promulgating instructions
regarding law of war requirements and punishing violations by its members) would help
establish that an armed group meets this condition.
4.7.1 Conditions for a Leve en Masse. The following discussion elaborates upon some
of the conditions for a leve en masse.
33 (The distance that the sign must be visible is left vague and undetermined and the practice is not uniform. This
requirement will be satisfied certainly if the sign is easily distinguishable by the naked eye of ordinary people at a
distance at which the form of the individual can be determined.); CHARLES HENRY HYDE, II INTERNATIONAL LAW:
CHIEFLY AS INTERPRETED AND APPLIED BY THE UNITED STATES 291 footnote 3 (1922) (quoting the same provision
in the 1917 U.S. Rules of Land Warfare); SPAIGHT, WAR RIGHTS ON LAND 57 (explaining that [i]f the sign is
recognizable at a distance at which the naked eye can distinguish the form and color of a persons dress, all
reasonable requirements appear to be met and noting the Japanese view during the Russo-Japanese War that a
Russian free corps that would wear no uniform but only a distinctive sign on the cap and sleeve would only be
considered belligerents if they can be distinguishable by the naked eye from the ordinary people or fulfill the
conditions for militias or volunteers by the Hague Rglement.).
171
See GPW art. 4A(2)(c); HAGUE IV REG. art. 1(3).
172
1958 UK MANUAL 94 (The third condition is that irregular combatants shall carry arms openly. They may
therefore be refused the rights of the armed forces if it is found that their sole arm is a pistol, hand-grenade, or
dagger concealed about the person, or a sword-stick or similar weapon, or if it is found that they have hidden their
arms on the approach of the enemy.).
173
GPW art. 4A(6) (defining prisoners of war, in the sense of the present Convention, to include [i]nhabitants of
a non-occupied territory, who on the approach of the enemy spontaneously take up arms to resist the invading
forces, without having had time to form themselves into regular armed units, provided they carry arms openly and
respect the laws and customs of war who have fallen into the power of the enemy); HAGUE IV REG. art. 2 (The
inhabitants of a territory which has not been occupied, who, on the approach of the enemy, spontaneously take up
arms to resist the invading troops without having had time to organize themselves in accordance with Article 1, shall
be regarded as belligerents if they carry arms openly and if they respect the laws and customs of war.); LIEBER
CODE art. 51 (If the people of that portion of an invaded country which is not yet occupied by the enemy, or of the
whole country, at the approach of a hostile army, rise, under a duly authorized levy, en masse to resist the invader,
they are now treated as public enemies, and, if captured, are prisoners of war.).
174
For more background, see LEVIE, POWS 64-66.
125
4.7.1.1 Spontaneous. A leve en masse is a spontaneous uprising in which
members have not had time to form into regular armed units. 175 Thus, unlike other categories of
lawful combatants, persons who join a leve en masse need not wear a distinctive sign nor be
organized under a responsible command. The spontaneity of their response generally precludes
their being able to take such measures.
4.7.2 Leve en Masse Discerning Participants. Should some inhabitants form a leve en
masse to defend an area, it may be justifiable for the invading force to detain all persons of
military age in that area and treat them as POWs. 180 Even if an inhabitant who joined or
participated in the leve en masse lays down arms, if he or she is later captured, he or she may be
175
See GREENSPAN, MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 63 (the essence of a leve en masse is that it is
unorganized.).
176
Compare 10.3.2.1 (Find Themselves).
177
Refer to 11.7.1 (Inhabitants Obedience to the Occupying Power).
178
See LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 258 (81) (Article 2 [of the HAGUE IV REG.]
distinctly speaks of the approach of the enemy, and thereby sanctions only such a levy en masse as takes place in
territory not yet invaded by the enemy. Once the territory is invaded, although the invasion has not yet ripened into
occupation, a levy en masse is no longer legitimate. But, of course, the term territory, as used by Article 2, is not
intended to mean the whole extent of the State of a belligerent, but only such parts of it as are not yet invaded. For
this reason, if a town is already invaded, but not a neighbouring town, the inhabitants of the latter may, on the
approach of the enemy, legitimately rise en masse.).
179
Refer to 4.6 (Other Militia and Volunteer Corps).
180
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 65 (Should some inhabitants of a locality thus take part in its defense, it
might be justifiable to treat all the males of military age as prisoners of war.); 1958 UK MANUAL 100 (Where the
majority of inhabitants of a locality have taken part in its defence in circumstances amounting to a leve en masse, it
is justifiable and probably advisable to treat all the male inhabitants of military age as prisoners of war, leaving it to
the individual concerned to claim that they took no part in the leve en masse or defence of the locality.).
126
detained as a POW. 181 If a person joins a leve en masse, he or she may be held as a POW even
if he or she actually took no part in fighting. 182
Like combatants, members of the civilian population also have certain rights, duties, and
liabilities under the law of war. Civilians may not be made the object of attack. If detained,
civilians are entitled to humane treatment and a variety of additional protections. Civilians lack
the combatants privilege, and may be punished, after a fair trial, by an enemy State for engaging
in hostilities against it.
4.8.1 Civilians Notes on Terminology. Like other terms, civilian is used in a variety
of different ways in the law of war. 186
181
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 65 (Even if inhabitants who formed the levee en masse lay down their
arms and return to their normal activities, they may be made prisoners of war.).
182
1958 UK MANUAL 100 (If it is shown that they joined the leve en masse, but took no part in the defence, they
may be held as prisoners of war.).
183
Refer to 4.27.3 (Competent Tribunal to Assess Entitlement to POW Status or Treatment).
184
Refer to 4.18 (Private Persons Who Engage in Hostilities).
185
Refer to 4.19 (Rights, Duties, and Liabilities of Unprivileged Belligerents).
186
Refer to 4.3.2 (Combatant Notes on Terminology).
187
Refer to 4.15.3 (Persons Authorized to Accompany the Armed Forces Detention).
188
See, e.g., GC COMMENTARY 134 (These rules [for the protection of the wounded and sick] are even more
essential when the wounded or sick person is a civilian, i.e. a person who, by definition, takes no part in the
hostilities.).
127
4.8.1.3 Civilian in the GC. The GC does not define civilian, although it uses
189
the word. The GC uses the term protected person to refer to persons protected by the
Convention. 190 The GC excludes from the definition of protected person those persons who
are protected under the other 1949 Geneva Conventions, e.g., POWs and retained personnel. 191
In some cases, protected persons can include a person detained as a spy or saboteur, or as a
person under definite suspicion of activity hostile to the security of the Occupying Power,
although such persons are not entitled to all the protections applicable to protected persons. 192
4.8.1.5 General Usage of Civilian in This Manual. This manual generally uses
civilian to mean a member of the civilian population, i.e., a person who is neither part of nor
associated with an armed force or group, nor otherwise engaging in hostilities.
4.8.2 Civilians Conduct of Hostilities. Civilians may not be made the object of attack,
unless they take direct part in hostilities. 196 The wounded and sick, as well as the infirm, and
expectant mothers, shall be the object of particular protection and respect. 197 Civilians may be
killed incidentally in military operations; however, the expected incidental harm to civilians may
not be excessive in relation to the anticipated military advantage from an attack, 198 and feasible
precautions must be taken to reduce the risk of harm to civilians during military operations. 199
189
See, e.g., GC art. 10 (The provisions of the present Convention constitute no obstacle to the humanitarian
activities which the International Committee of the Red Cross or any other impartial humanitarian organization may,
subject to the consent of the Parties to the conflict concerned, undertake for the protection of civilian persons and for
their relief.).
190
Refer to 10.3 (Protected Person Status).
191
Refer to 10.3.2.3 (Not Protected by the GWS, GWS-Sea, or the GPW).
192
GC art. 5. Refer to 10.3.2.4 (Unprivileged Belligerents Not Per Se Excluded From Protected Person Status).
193
See AP I art. 50(1) (A civilian is any person who does not belong to one of the categories of persons referred to
in Article 4 A (1), (2), (3) and (6) of the Third Convention and in Article 43 of this Protocol. In case of doubt
whether a person is a civilian, that person shall be considered to be a civilian.).
194
Refer to 4.6.1.2 (AP I and the GPW 4A(2) Conditions).
195
See, e.g., AP II art. 13 (1. The civilian population and individual civilians shall enjoy general protection against
the dangers arising from military operations.).
196
Refer to 5.9 (Civilians Taking a Direct Part in Hostilities).
197
GC art. 16 (The wounded and sick, as well as the infirm, and expectant mothers, shall be the object of particular
protection and respect.).
198
Refer to 5.12 (Proportionality in Conducting Attacks).
199
Refer to 5.11 (Feasible Precautions in Conducting Attacks to Reduce the Risk of Harm to Protected Persons and
Objects); 5.14 (Feasible Precautions to Reduce the Risk of Harm to Protected Persons and Objects by the Party
Subject to Attack).
128
Civilians who engage in hostilities thereby forfeit the corresponding protections of
civilian status and may be liable to treatment in one or more respects as unprivileged
belligerents. 200
Enemy civilians who are interned during international armed conflict or occupation
generally are classified as protected persons under the GC and receive a variety of
protections. 203 Chapter X addresses in detail the required treatment of enemy civilian internees
during international armed conflict and occupation. In all circumstances, detained civilians must
be treated humanely. 204 Special categories of civilians, such as children, may require additional
consideration during detention. 205
4.8.4 Civilians Legal Liability Under an Enemy States Domestic Law. Unlike
combatants, civilians lack the combatants privilege excepting them from the domestic law of the
enemy State. Civilians who engage in hostilities may, after a fair trial, be punished by an
opposing State. 206
A State that is an Occupying Power has additional authorities over enemy civilians that
extend beyond the ability to punish their unauthorized participation in hostilities. 207
Note, however, the special cases of persons authorized to accompany the armed forces, 208
members of the merchant marine and civil aircraft, 209 and participants in a leve en masse. 210
Medical personnel exclusively engaged in the search for, or the collection, transport or
treatment of the wounded or sick, or in the prevention of disease, staff exclusively engaged in the
administration of medical units and establishments, as well as chaplains attached to the armed
200
Refer to 4.18 (Private Persons Who Engage in Hostilities).
201
Refer to 5.3.2.1 (Non-Violent Measures That Are Militarily Necessary).
202
Refer to 10.6 (Measures of Control and Security).
203
Refer to 10.3 (Protected Person Status).
204
Refer to 10.5 (Humane Treatment and Other Basic Protections for Protected Persons).
205
Refer to 4.20 (Children).
206
Refer to 4.18.3 (Private Persons Who Engage in Hostilities Lack of the Privileges of Combatant Status).
207
Refer to 11.7 (Authority of the Occupying Power Over Inhabitants).
208
Refer to 4.15.4 (Persons Authorized to Accompany the Armed Forces Liability Under Domestic Law for
Participation in Hostilities).
209
Refer to 4.16 (Crews of Merchant Marine Vessels or Civil Aircraft).
210
Refer to 4.7 (Leve en Masse).
129
forces are treated as a special category under the law of war. 211 This manual generally refers to
them as military medical and religious personnel.
Under certain circumstances, (1) the authorized staff of voluntary aid societies and (2) the
staff of a recognized aid society of a neutral country are treated like military medical and
religious personnel. 212
4.9.1 Types of Military Medical and Religious Personnel. Military medical and religious
personnel include: (1) medical personnel exclusively engaged in the search for, or the collection,
transport, or treatment of the wounded or sick, or in the prevention of disease; (2) staff
exclusively engaged in the administration of medical units and establishments; and (3) chaplains
attached to the armed forces. 213
Persons who are exclusively engaged in the prevention of disease also qualify as military
medical personnel. For example, veterinary personnel qualify for military medical status, if they
are exclusively engaged in providing health services for military personnel (e.g., performing
food safety inspections and ensuring that animal illnesses do not spread to humans). However,
as a general matter, veterinary personnel would not qualify for military medical status based on
being part of the veterinary service. 215
130
individuals with a non-medical Military Occupation Specialty permanently assigned to a medical
unit or facility (such as its cooks, clerks and supply personnel, or crews operating permanent
medical aircraft), would qualify for military medical status.
4.9.1.3 Chaplains Attached to the Armed Forces. Chaplains attached to the armed
forces include any cleric, regardless of faith, who is attached to the armed forces of a belligerent
and assigned duties exclusively of a religious or spiritual nature. 217
4.9.2 Requirements for Military Medical and Religious Status. To acquire and retain
military medical and religious status, members of the armed forces must (1) belong to a force
whose members qualify for POW status; (2) be designated as exclusive medical or religious
personnel by their armed forces; and (3) serve exclusively in a medical or religious capacity.
Underlying military medical and religious status is the principle that the armed forces
have committed to use these personnel exclusively in a humanitarian role; thus, these personnel
have a supra-national and quasi-neutral character because their humanitarian duties place
them above the conflict. 218
4.9.2.1 Belong to a Force Whose Members Qualify for POW Status. To acquire
military medical and religious status, a person must belong to an armed force whose members
qualify for POW status, i.e., the armed forces of a State, regular armed forces who profess
allegiance to a government or an authority not recognized by the Detaining Power, or other
militia and volunteer corps meeting the conditions in the GPW.219 For example, medical
personnel belonging to non-State armed groups would not be entitled to retained personnel status
under the GWS, GWS-Sea, and GPW because their members do not qualify for POW status.
Medical Service of the armed forces, and accordingly had to be accorded the same immunity as medical personnel
proper. They form an integral part of medical units and establishments, which could not function properly without
their help. They too must be exclusively assigned to the Medical Service.).
217
GWS art. 24. Cf. BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 99 (AP I art. 8, 2.6) (In the new definition [of
religious personnel in AP I], the Christian notion of chaplain is only used by way of an example. Religious
personnel are ministers of any religion. What is a minister will not always be easy to determine, because that
concept varies from religion to religion. Again the word exclusively adds some precision. A lay preacher, being,
if a minister, a part-time minister, is not protected as religious personnel. Furthermore, the protection does not
extend to every individual minister. The protection granted by the First and Second Conventions only applies to
those attached to the armed forces or to a hospital ship.).
218
GWS COMMENTARY 244 (On the one hand, the Conference thought it necessary to affirm the supra-national and
quasi-neutral character of personnel whose duties placed them above the conflict.). See also Vowinckel v. First
Federal Trust Co., 10 F.2d 19, 21 (9th Cir. 1926) (Red Cross surgeons and nurses, who are engaged exclusively in
ameliorating the condition of the wounded of the armies in the field, and in alleviating the sufferings of mankind in
general, are not enemies of the United States in any proper sense of that term.); WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW &
PRECEDENTS 779 (Another class who are to be exempt from violence, or seizure as prisoners, are the surgeons,
assistants and employees charged with the care and transport of the wounded on the field and the attendance upon
them in field ambulance or hospital. Persons of this class enjoy the rights of neutrality, provided they take no
active part in the operations of war.).
219
Refer to 4.5 (Armed Forces of a State); 4.5.3 (Regular Armed Forces Who Profess Allegiance to a
Government or an Authority Not Recognized by the Detaining Power); 4.6 (Other Militia and Volunteer Corps).
131
4.9.2.2 Designated by Their Armed Forces. To acquire military medical and
religious status, members of the armed forces must be designated as such by their armed forces,
usually by being part of the official medical or religious service. 220 A member of the armed
forces cannot designate himself or herself as military medical or religious personnel.
Thus, members of the armed forces do not acquire military medical and religious status
merely by performing medical or religious functions or by having medical or religious training.
For example, a member of a special operations unit might be trained as a medical specialist, but
not be designated as military medical personnel, because that person is expected to perform both
combatant and medical duties. That person, therefore, would not receive the rights, duties, and
liabilities related to military medical status. He or she, however, may be treated like military
medical personnel while detained by the enemy by being required to perform medical duties. 221
Military physicians or other medical specialist personnel who are not exclusively
engaged in humanitarian duties, such as duties that involve committing acts harmful to the
enemy, would not be entitled to military medical status. 223 For example, an Army Medical
Corps or Medical Service Corps officer serving as the commander of a tactical convoy would not
be entitled to military medical status. 224 Similarly, in general, persons who engage in combat
search and rescue missions would not be exclusively engaged in humanitarian duties, since
preventing the capture of combatants by the adversary constitutes an act harmful to the enemy. 225
220
See GWS COMMENTARY 218 (Article 24 refers to the official medical personnel and chaplains of the armed
forces.); id. at 220 (On the other hand, chaplains, to be accorded immunity, must be attached to the armed forces.
They do not attach themselves. The decision will rest with the competent military authorities and the relationship
must be an official one. Accordingly, ministers of religion who wish to serve in a non-official capacity, are not
covered by the Convention, and, until such time as they have been regularly appointed, act at their own risk and
peril.). Cf. GPW art. 32 (referring to POWs who, though not attached to the medical service of their armed forces,
are physicians, surgeons, dentists, nurses or medical orderlies, as not being entitled to retained personnel status).
221
Refer to 4.5.2.2 (Members Trained as Medical Personnel, but Not Attached to the Medical Service); 4.5.2.3
(Members Who Are Ministers of Religion Without Having Officiated as Chaplains to Their Own Forces).
222
See GWS COMMENTARY 219 (The words exclusively engaged indicate that the assignment must be permanent,
which is not the case in Article 25 dealing with auxiliary personnel.).
223
Refer to 7.8.3 (Loss of Protection for Medical and Religious Personnel From Being Made the Object of Attack).
224
See W. Hays Parks, Status of Certain Medical Corps and Medical Service Corps Officers under the Geneva
Conventions, reprinted in THE ARMY LAWYER 5 (8) (Apr. 1989) (U.S. Army MSC officers, AMEDD
noncommissioned officers, or other Medical Corps personnel serving in positions that do not meet the exclusively
engaged criteria of article 24 are not entitled to its protections but, under article 25, are entitled to protection from
intentional attack during those times in which they are performing medical support functions. This would include
physicians who, while serving as medical company commanders, might be detailed to perform the duties specified
in paragraph 2b. [2b. The medical company commander, a physician, and the executive officer, an MSC officer,
by nature of their positions and grade, may be detailed as convoy march unit commanders. In this position they
would be responsible for medical and nonmedical unit routes of march, convoy control, defense, and repulsing
attacks.]).
225
Refer to 7.10.3.1 (Acts Harmful to the Enemy).
132
However, these individuals may be treated like auxiliary medical personnel or members of the
armed forces who are trained in medical care, but who are not attached to the medical service. 226
The requirement that military medical and religious personnel serve exclusively in a
humanitarian capacity not only requires that they refrain from acts harmful to the enemy, but also
has been interpreted as an affirmative obligation to serve in a humanitarian capacity. For
example, captured military medical personnel who refuse to perform their medical duties to care
for fellow prisoners would not be entitled to retained personnel status. 227
4.10 RIGHTS, DUTIES, AND LIABILITIES OF MILITARY MEDICAL AND RELIGIOUS PERSONNEL
Although military medical and religious personnel are members of, or attached to, the
armed forces and are in many respects treated like combatants, they are afforded special
privileges so that they may fulfill their humanitarian duties. They must be respected and
protected in all circumstances. In turn, they generally may not commit acts harmful to the
enemy. If they fall into the power of the enemy during international armed conflict, they may be
retained to care for, or minister to, POWs.
Military medical and religious personnel generally may not commit acts harmful to the
enemy (e.g., resisting lawful capture by the enemy military forces). 230 Military medical and
religious personnel, however, may employ arms in self-defense or in defense of their patients
against unlawful attacks. 231
226
Refer to 4.13 (Auxiliary Medical Personnel); 4.5.2.2 (Members Trained as Medical Personnel, but Not
Attached to the Medical Service).
227
See LEVIE, POWS 74 (But what of the physician in the power of the enemy who, perhaps for some ideological
reason, refuses to perform any professional duties and will not provide medical treatment for the sick and wounded
members of the armed forces of his own Power of Origin? This was the procedure followed by most of the North
Vietnamese medical personnel captured in Vietnam. The South Vietnamese responded by treating them as ordinary
prisoners of war. Once again, there was probably no specific legal basis for such action; but certainly, if a member
of the medical profession refuses to employ his professional abilities, even for the benefit of his own countrymen, he
is denying his professional status and, under those circumstances, there is little that a Detaining Power can do except
to remove him from the category of a retained person and to place him in a general prisoner-of-war status (unless his
recalcitrance is to be rewarded by repatriation).).
228
Refer to 7.8.2 (Meaning of Respect and Protection of Medical and Religious Personnel).
229
Refer to 7.8.2.1 (Incidental Harm Not Prohibited).
230
Refer to 7.8.3 (Loss of Protection for Medical and Religious Personnel From Being Made the Object of Attack).
231
Refer to 7.10.3.5 (Use of Weapons in Self-Defense or Defense of the Wounded and Sick).
133
Military medical and religious personnel who take actions outside their role as military
medical and religious personnel forfeit the corresponding protections of their special status and
may be treated as combatants or auxiliary medical personnel, as appropriate. 232
4.10.2 Military Medical and Religious Personnel - Detention. If military medical and
religious personnel fall into the power of the enemy during international armed conflict, they are
not held as POWs, but instead are held as retained personnel. 233 They should present their
identity cards to demonstrate their status as retained personnel. 234 They are retained so that they
may fulfill their humanitarian duties to care for, or minister to, POWs. 235
Although they are not held as POWs, military medical and religious personnel receive, at
a minimum, the protections of POW status. 236 In addition, retained personnel shall be granted all
facilities necessary to provide for the medical care of, and religious ministration to, POWs. 237
For example, retained personnel may not be compelled to carry out any work other than that
concerned with their medical or religious duties. 238 Retained personnel shall be authorized to
visit periodically POWs situated in working detachments or in hospitals outside the camp. 239
Retained personnel, through their senior officer in each camp, have the right to deal with the
competent authorities of the camp on all questions relating to their duties. 240
If they are not needed to care for, or minister to, POWs, and if military requirements
permit, retained personnel should be returned to the forces to which they belong so that they may
continue to care for, or minister to, members of their armed forces. 241 The parties to the conflict
would establish special agreements to establish the procedures for repatriation. 242
States may choose to employ the staff of National Red Cross Societies and that of other
Voluntary Aid Societies, like military medical and religious personnel. If States subject such
staff to military laws and regulations, then such personnel are to be treated like military medical
232
Refer to 4.9.2.3 (Exclusively Engaged in Humanitarian Duties).
233
Refer to 7.9.1.2 (Medical and Religious Personnel Who May Be Retained).
234
Refer to 7.9.2 (Use of Identification Card to Help Establish Retained Personnel Status).
235
Refer to 7.9.3 (Duties of Retained Personnel).
236
Refer to 7.9.5.1 (POW Treatment as a Minimum).
237
Refer to 7.9.5.2 (All Facilities Necessary to Provide for the Medical Care of, and Religious Ministration to,
POWs).
238
Refer to 7.9.5.6 (No Other Compulsory Duties).
239
Refer to 7.9.5.3 (Visits of POWs Outside the Camp).
240
Refer to 7.9.5.7 (Senior Medical Officer in the Camp).
241
Refer to 7.9.4 (Return of Personnel Whose Retention Is Not Indispensable).
242
Refer to 7.9.4.3 (Special Agreements on the Percentage of Personnel to Be Retained); 7.9.5.8 (Agreements on
Possible Relief of Retained Personnel).
134
and religious personnel. 243 States must notify other Parties to the 1949 Geneva Conventions
before actually employing such personnel. 244
4.11.1 American National Red Cross. Under U.S. law, the American National Red Cross
is a voluntary aid society authorized to support the U.S. armed forces in time of war. 245
American National Red Cross personnel who support the U.S. armed forces in military
operations in this way are subject to the Uniform Code of Military Justice. 246
The 1949 Geneva Conventions recognize that neutral States may lend their recognized
aid societies to a party to the conflict by placing those personnel and units under the control of
that party to the conflict. 247 The neutral Government shall notify this consent to the adversary of
the State that accepts such assistance, and the party to a conflict that accepts such assistance must
notify enemy States before using it. 248 This assistance is not considered as interference in the
conflict by the neutral State. 249
The staff of a recognized aid society of a neutral country who have been lent to a party to
the conflict must be furnished with an identity card similar to that provided to retained personnel
before leaving their neutral State. 250 Such personnel who have fallen into the hands of the
243
See GWS art. 26 (The staff of National Red Cross Societies and that of other Voluntary Aid Societies, duly
recognized and authorized by their Governments, who may be employed on the same duties as the personnel named
in Article 24, are placed on the same footing as the personnel named in the said Article, provided that the staff of
such societies are subject to military laws and regulations.).
244
See GWS art. 26 (Each High Contracting Party shall notify to the other, either in time of peace or at the
commencement of or during hostilities, but in any case before actually employing them, the names of the societies
which it has authorized, under its responsibility, to render assistance to the regular medical service of its armed
forces.).
245
See 36 U.S.C. 300102 (the purposes of the American National Red Cross include to provide volunteer aid in
time of war to the sick and wounded of the Armed Forces, in accordance with the spirit and conditions of the
treaties of Geneva, August 22, 1864, July 27, 1929, and August 12, 1949 and to perform all the duties devolved on
a national society by each nation that has acceded to any of those treaties, conventions, or protocols).
246
Refer to 18.19.3.1 (Uniform Code of Military Justice Offenses).
247
GWS art. 27 (A recognized Society of a neutral country can only lend the assistance of its medical personnel
and units to a Party to the conflict with the previous consent of its own Government and the authorization of the
Party to the conflict concerned. That personnel and those units shall be placed under the control of that Party to the
conflict.).
248
GWS art. 27 (The neutral Government shall notify this consent to the adversary of the State which accepts such
assistance. The Party to the conflict who accepts such assistance is bound to notify the adverse Party thereof before
making any use of it.).
249
GWS art. 27 (In no circumstances shall this assistance be considered as interference in the conflict.).
250
GWS art. 27 (The members of the personnel named in the first paragraph shall be duly furnished with the
identity cards provided for in Article 40 before leaving the neutral country to which they belong.); GWS art. 40
(giving requirements with regard to the identification of [t]he personnel designated in Article 24 and in Articles 26
and 27).
135
adverse party may not be detained. 251 Unless otherwise agreed, such personnel shall have
permission to return to their country, or if this is not possible, to the territory of the party to the
conflict in whose service they were, as soon as a route for their return is open and military
considerations permit. 252 Pending their release, such personnel shall continue their work under
the direction of the adverse party; they shall preferably be engaged in the care of the wounded
and sick of the party to the conflict in whose service they were. 253 On their departure, they shall
take with them their effects, personal articles and valuables and the instruments, arms, and if
possible, the means of transport belonging to them. 254
Such personnel, while in the power of a party to the conflict, should be treated on the
same basis as corresponding personnel of the armed forces of that party to the conflict; food in
particular must be sufficient as regards quantity, quality, and variety to keep them in a normal
state of health. 255 They may also fly their national flag. 256
Auxiliary medical personnel are members of the armed forces specially trained for
employment, should the need arise, as hospital orderlies, nurses, or auxiliary stretcher-bearers, in
the search for or the collection, transport, or treatment of the wounded and sick in international
armed conflict. 257 In general, auxiliary medical personnel are treated like combatants; however,
while carrying out medical duties, they must distinguish themselves by wearing a white armlet
bearing the distinctive sign (e.g., the red cross), and they may not be made the object of attack.
251
GWS art. 32 (Persons designated in Article 27 who have fallen into the hands of the adverse Party may not be
detained.).
252
GWS art. 32 (Unless otherwise agreed, they shall have permission to return to their country, or if this is not
possible, to the territory of the Party to the conflict in whose service they were, as soon as a route for their return is
open and military considerations permit.).
253
GWS art. 32 (Pending their release, they shall continue their work under the direction of the adverse Party; they
shall preferably be engaged in the care of the wounded and sick of the Party to the conflict in whose service they
were.).
254
GWS art. 32 (On their departure, they shall take with them their effects, personal articles and valuables and the
instruments, arms and if possible the means of transport belonging to them.).
255
GWS art. 32 (The Parties to the conflict shall secure to this personnel, while in their power, the same food,
lodging, allowances and pay as are granted to the corresponding personnel of their armed forces. The food shall in
any case be sufficient as regards quantity, quality and variety to keep the said personnel in a normal state of
health.).
256
GWS art. 43 (The medical units belonging to neutral countries, which may have been authorized to lend their
services to a belligerent under the conditions laid down in Article 27, shall fly, along with the flag of the
Convention, the national flag of that belligerent, wherever the latter makes use of the faculty conferred on him by
Article 42. Subject to orders to the contrary by the responsible military authorities, they may on all occasions fly
their national flag, even if they fall into the hands of the adverse Party.).
257
GWS art. 25 (Members of the armed forces specially trained for employment, should the need arise, as hospital
orderlies, nurses or auxiliary stretcher-bearers, in the search for or the collection, transport or treatment of the
wounded and sick shall likewise be respected and protected if they are carrying out these duties at the time when
they come into contact with the enemy or fall into his hands.).
136
4.13.1 Auxiliary Medical Personnel U.S. Armed Forces. The recent practice of the
United States has not been to employ persons as auxiliary medical personnel. Rather, the U.S.
armed forces have employed military medical and religious personnel. 258 In addition, the U.S.
armed forces have given members of the armed forces additional training in combat medicine but
have not designated them as military medical personnel or as auxiliary medical personnel. 259
Thus, such personnel have not worn the distinctive emblem while engaging in medical duties,
and they may be made the object of attack by the enemy.
Although the recent practice of the United States has not been to employ persons as
auxiliary medical personnel, the United States may later decide to employ auxiliary medical
personnel, and enemy military forces may employ such personnel. Moreover, certain members
of the medical corps, who do not qualify as military medical personnel because they perform
duties inconsistent with exclusive medical status, may be treated like auxiliary medical
personnel. 260
4.13.2 Acquiring Auxiliary Medical Status. As with military medical and religious
status, members of the armed forces do not acquire auxiliary medical status simply by
performing medical duties. 261 For example, a combatant who treats fellow combatants on the
battlefield does not automatically acquire auxiliary medical status. Similarly, persons do not
acquire auxiliary medical status only because they happen to have medical training.
In order to acquire auxiliary medical status, a person must receive appropriate training
and be designated as such by his or her armed forces. 262 Those armed forces must provide
proper identification to such persons, including an armband and a special identity document. 263
258
Refer to 4.9 (Military Medical and Religious Personnel).
259
Refer to 4.5.2.2 (Members Trained as Medical Personnel, but Not Attached to the Medical Service).
260
See, e.g., W. Hays Parks, Status of Certain Medical Corps and Medical Service Corps Officers under the Geneva
Conventions, reprinted in THE ARMY LAWYER 5 (8) (Apr. 1989) (U.S. Army MSC officers, AMEDD
noncommissioned officers, or other Medical Corps personnel serving in positions that do not meet the exclusively
engaged criteria of article 24 are not entitled to its protection but, under article 25 are entitled to protection from
intentional attack during those times in which they are performing medical support functions.).
261
Refer to 4.9.2 (Requirements for Military Medical and Religious Status).
262
GWS COMMENTARY 222 (To be accorded immunity, auxiliary personnel must, as we have said, have received
special medical training beforehand, the nature and duration of which are wisely not defined. If it is necessary to
make good a deficiency in permanent personnel, such training may even take place in wartime; but personnel filling
this temporary role must in any case have had a real training.).
263
GWS COMMENTARY 223-24 (To have immunity even on the battlefield, military personnel caring for the
wounded had to form a distinct categorythat of medical personneland enjoy a separate status, recognizable by a
distinctive emblem and an identity card. If recourse was had to such safeguards, it was because military
considerations demanded them. Otherwise the risk of abuse would have been too great. It is not straining the
imagination to picture combatants approaching an enemy position, ostensibly to assist the wounded, and then
opening fire in order to seize it: similarly, a fighting unit might suddenly transform itself into a medical unit, in
order to avoid enemy fire.).
137
Auxiliary medical personnel shall wear, but only while carrying out medical duties, a white
armlet bearing in its center the distinctive sign in miniature; the armlet shall be issued and
stamped by the military authority. 265 In addition, auxiliary medical personnel must abstain from
acts harmful to the enemy while carrying out their medical duties. 266
When the above conditions are not present, auxiliary medical personnel may be made the
object of attack on the same basis as other combatants.
4.13.4 Auxiliary Medical Personnel Detention. Auxiliary medical personnel are POWs
when detained by the enemy during international armed conflict, but may be required to perform
their medical duties, as needed. 267 Auxiliary medical personnel are not subject to the repatriation
provisions that apply specifically to retained personnel. 268
During armed conflict, different classes of persons may be engaged in duties related to
the protection of cultural property. These classes of persons may include: specialist personnel in
the armed forces, armed custodians specially empowered to guard cultural property, as well as
persons who are engaged in duties of control in accordance with the Regulations for the
Execution of the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention. So far as consistent with the
interests of security, such personnel should be respected and permitted to carry out their duties
for the protection of cultural property.
264
Refer to 7.8.1 (Categories of Persons Who Are Entitled to Respect and Protection as Medical and Religious
Personnel on the Battlefield).
265
Refer to 7.8.4.2 (Wearing of Armlet With Miniature Distinctive Emblem).
266
Refer to 7.8.3 (Loss of Protection for Medical and Religious Personnel From Being Made the Object of Attack).
267
See GWS art. 29 (Members of the personnel designated in Article 25 who have fallen into the hands of the
enemy, shall be prisoners of war, but shall be employed on their medical duties in so far as the need arises.).
268
Refer to 4.10.2 (Military Medical and Religious Personnel - Detention).
269
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 15 (As far as is consistent with the interests of security,
personnel engaged in the protection of cultural property shall, in the interests of such property, be respected and, if
they fall into the hands of the opposing Party, shall be allowed to continue to carry out duties whenever the cultural
property for which they are responsible has also fallen into the hands of the opposing Party.); ROERICH PACT art. 1
(requiring respect and protection for personnel of [t]he historic monuments, museums, scientific, artistic,
educational and cultural institutions).
270
Refer to 7.9.3 (Duties of Retained Personnel).
138
No special agreement may be concluded that would diminish the protection afforded by
the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention to the personnel engaged in the protection of
cultural property. 271
For example, during World War II, Allied forces dedicated a specific group of personnel
who were tasked to save as much of the culture of Europe as they could during combat. 274 These
personnel worked to mitigate combat damage to churches and museums and to locate moveable
works of art that were stolen or missing. 275
4.14.2 Persons Responsible for the Duties of Control in Accordance With the Regulations
for the Execution of the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention. A number of persons are
responsible for the duties of control in accordance with the Regulations for the Execution of the
271
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 24(2) (No special agreement may be concluded which
would diminish the protection afforded by the present Convention to cultural property and to the personnel engaged
in its protection.).
272
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 7(2) (The High Contracting Parties undertake to plan or
establish in peacetime, within their armed forces, services or specialist personnel whose purpose will be to secure
respect for cultural property and to co-operate with the civilian authorities responsible for safeguarding it.).
273
Section-by-Section Analysis of Provisions, 4, Tab 1 to Strobe Talbot, Letter of Submittal, May 12, 1998,
MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION 5 (It is
longstanding U.S. Army practice to maintain such personnel in their civil affairs reserve force. Marine Corps
reserve civil affairs personnel receive training to perform similar functions if necessary.).
274
R. M. EDSEL, THE MONUMENTS MEN 2 (2009) (The Monuments Men were a group of men and women from
thirteen nations, most of whom volunteered for service in the newly created Monuments, Fine Arts, and Archives
section [of the Western Allied military effort], or MFAA. Most of the early volunteers had expertise as museum
directors, curators, art scholars and educators, artists, architects, and archivists. Their job was simple: to save as
much of the culture of Europe as they could during combat. The creation of the MFAA section was a remarkable
experiment. It marked the first time an army fought a war while comprehensively attempting to mitigate cultural
damage, and was performed without adequate transportation, supplies, personnel, or historical precedent. The men
tasked with this mission were, on the surface, the most unlikely of heroes.).
275
R. M. EDSEL, THE MONUMENTS MEN xiv (2009) (Their initial responsibility was to mitigate combat damage,
primarily to structures churches, museums, and other important monuments. As the war progressed and the
German border was breached, their focus shifted to locating moveable works of art and other cultural items stolen or
otherwise missing.).
276
Refer to 5.18.8.2 (Conditions for the Granting of Special Protection No Use for Military Purposes).
139
1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention. These individuals may include: (1) the Director-
General of the United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization (UNESCO); (2)
a State-appointed representative for cultural property; (3) delegates of the Protecting Powers; (4)
a Commissioner-General for Cultural Property; and (5) inspectors and experts proposed by the
Commissioner-General for Cultural Property.
277
REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 8 (The
Commissioners-General for Cultural Property, delegates of the Protecting Powers, inspectors and experts shall in no
case exceed their mandates. In particular, they shall take account of the security needs of the High Contracting Party
to which they are accredited and shall in all circumstances act in accordance with the requirements of the military
situation as communicated to them by that High Contracting Party.).
278
REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 1 (On the entry
into force of the Convention, the Director-General of the United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural
Organization shall compile an international list consisting of all persons nominated by the High Contracting Parties
as qualified to carry out the functions of Commissioner-General for Cultural Property. On the initiative of the
Director-General of the United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization, this list shall be
periodically revised on the basis of requests formulated by the High Contracting Parties.).
279
REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 2 (As soon as
any High Contracting Party is engaged in an armed conflict to which Article 18 of the Convention applies: (a) It
shall appoint a representative for cultural property situated in its territory; if it is in occupation of another territory, it
shall appoint a special representative for cultural property situated in that territory;).
280
REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 2 (As soon as
any High Contracting Party is engaged in an armed conflict to which Article 18 of the Convention applies: (b) The
Protecting Power acting for each of the Parties in conflict with such High Contracting Party shall appoint delegates
accredited to the latter in conformity with Article 3 below;); REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954
HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 3 (The Protecting Power shall appoint its delegates from among the
140
the Protecting Powers shall take note of violations of the 1954 Hague Cultural Property
Convention, investigate, with the approval of the Party to which they are accredited, the
circumstances in which they have occurred, make representations locally to secure their
cessation, and, if necessary, notify the Commissioner-General of such violations. They shall
keep the Commissioner-General informed of their activities. 281
members of its diplomatic or consular staff or, with the approval of the Party to which they will be accredited, from
among other persons.).
281
REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 5 (The
delegates of the Protecting Powers shall take note of violations of the Convention, investigate, with the approval of
the Party to which they are accredited, the circumstances in which they have occurred, make representations locally
to secure their cessation and, if necessary, notify the Commissioner-General of such violations. They shall keep him
informed of their activities.).
282
REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 4 (1. The
Commissioner-General for Cultural Property shall be chosen from the international list of persons by joint
agreement between the Party to which he will be accredited and the Protecting Powers acting on behalf of the
opposing Parties. 2. Should the Parties fail to reach agreement within three weeks from the beginning of their
discussions on this point, they shall request the President of the International Court of Justice to appoint the
Commissioner-General, who shall not take up his duties until the Party to which he is accredited has approved his
appointment.).
283
REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 6 (1. The
Commissioner-General for Cultural Property shall deal with all matters referred to him in connexion with the
application of the Convention, in conjunction with the representative of the Party to which he is accredited and with
the delegates concerned. 2. He shall have powers of decision and appointment in the cases specified in the present
Regulations. 3. With the agreement of the Party to which he is accredited, he shall have the right to order an
investigation or to, conduct it himself. 4. He shall make any representations to the Parties to the conflict or to their
Protecting Powers which he deems useful for the application of the Convention. 5. He shall draw up such reports as
may be necessary on the application of the Convention and communicate them to the Parties concerned and to their
Protecting Powers. He shall send copies to the Director-General of the United Nations Educational, Scientific and
Cultural Organization, who may make use only of their technical contents. 6. If there is no Protecting Power, the
Commissioner-General shall exercise the functions of the Protecting Power as laid down in Articles 21 and 22 of the
Convention.).
284
REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 7(1)
(Whenever the Commissioner-General for Cultural Property considers it necessary, either at the request of the
delegates concerned or after consultation with them, he shall propose, for the approval of the Party to which he is
141
inspectors may have recourse to the services of experts, who will also be proposed for the
approval of the Party to which the Commissioner-General is accredited. 285
In some cases, inspectors may be entrusted with the functions of delegates of the
Protecting Powers. 286
4.14.3 Identifying Personnel Engaged in Duties for the Protection of Cultural Property.
Persons responsible for duties of control in accordance with the Regulations for the Execution of
the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention, and persons engaged in duties for the protection
of cultural property, are to carry a special identity card bearing the distinctive emblem. 287 In
addition, such persons may wear an armlet bearing the distinctive emblem issued and stamped by
the competent authorities. 288
Such persons may not, without legitimate reason, be deprived of their identity card or of
the right to wear the armlet. 289 The distinctive emblem displayed on an armlet or special identity
card is to be displayed once (as opposed to repeated three times). 290
Under the law of war, persons who are not members of the armed forces, but are
authorized to accompany them, fall into a special category. Although they are often referred to
as civilians because they are not military personnel, they differ materially from the civilian
accredited, an inspector of cultural property to be charged with a specific mission. An inspector shall be responsible
only to the Commissioner-General.).
285
REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 7(2) (The
Commissioner-General, delegates and inspectors may have recourse to the services of experts, who will also be
proposed for the approval of the Party mentioned in the preceding paragraph.).
286
REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 9 (If a Party to
the conflict does not benefit or ceases to benefit from the activities of a Protecting Power, a neutral State may be
asked to undertake those functions of a Protecting Power which concern the appointment of a Commissioner-
General for Cultural Property in accordance with the procedure laid down in Article 4 above. The Commissioner-
General thus appointed shall, if need be, entrust to inspectors the functions of delegates of Protecting Powers as
specified in the present Regulations.).
287
REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 21(2) ([The
persons mentioned in Article 17, paragraph 2 (b) and (c) of the Convention] shall carry a special identity card
bearing the distinctive emblem. This card shall mention at least the surname and first names, the date of birth, the
title or rank, and the function of the holder. The card shall bear the photograph of the holder as well as his signature
or his fingerprints, or both. It shall bear the embossed stamp of the competent authorities.).
288
REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 21(1) (The
persons mentioned in Article 17, paragraph 2 (b) and (c) of the Convention may wear an armlet bearing the
distinctive emblem, issued and stamped by the competent authorities.).
289
REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 21(4) (The said
persons may not, without legitimate reason, be deprived of their identity card or of the right to wear the armlet.).
290
Refer to 5.18.7.2 (Display of the Distinctive Emblem for Cultural Property Once Versus Three Times).
142
population because these persons are authorized and in some cases, are ordered to
accompany military forces into a theater of operations to support the force. 291
DoD policies have often addressed the use of non-military personnel to support military
operations. 292
Persons authorized to accompany the armed forces may not be made the object of attack
unless they take direct part in hostilities. They may, however, be detained by enemy military
forces, and are entitled to POW status if they fall into the power of the enemy during
international armed conflict. They have legal immunity from the enemys domestic law for
providing authorized support services to the armed forces.
143
subject to detention, not as POWs, but like civilians, only if specifically necessary. 295 On the
other hand, non-military persons who were serving the armed forces, such as civilian employees
of the war department, were detained as POWs. 296
Article 4A(4) of the GPW reflects the modern practice and rule. 297 Persons authorized to
accompany the armed forces under Article 4A(4) include employees of the Department of
Defense, employees of other government agencies sent to support the armed forces, and other
authorized persons working on government contracts to support the armed forces. DoD practice
has been to permit a broad range of civilians to be authorized to accompany U.S. forces. 298
Persons authorized to accompany the armed forces are often referred to, and treated as,
civilians, since they are not members of the armed forces. However, as discussed below,
persons authorized to accompany the armed forces are also treated like combatants in some
respects.
295
WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW & PRECEDENTS 789 (Camp-followers, including members of soldiers families,
sutlers, contractors, newspaper correspondents, and others allowed with the army but not in the public employment,
should, when taken, be treated similarly as prisoners of war, but should be held only so long as may be necessary.)
(emphasis added).
296
See, e.g., SPAIGHT, WAR RIGHTS ON LAND 304 ([W]hat persons may be made prisoner of war includes
persons not commissioned or enlisted, but employed permanently by an army as pay-clerks, telegraph-operators,
engine drivers, or, generally, in any civilian capacity with an army in the field.); WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW &
PRECEDENTS 789 (The class of persons entitled upon capture to the privileges of prisoners of war comprises
members of the enemys armies, embracing both combatants and non-combatants, and the wounded and sick taken
on the field and in hospital. It should comprise also civil persons engaged in military duty or in immediate
connection with an army, such as clerks, telegraphists, aeronauts, teamsters, laborers, messengers, guides, scouts,
and men employed on transports and military railwaysthe class indeed of civilians in the employment and service
of the government such as are specified in our 63d Article of War as Persons serving with the armies in the
field.).
297
See GPW COMMENTARY 64 (The Conference of Government Experts considered that the text of Article 81 of
the 1929 Convention had become obsolete (in particular the word sutlers is no longer appropriate) and should
include a reference to certain other classes of persons who were more or less part of the armed forces and whose
position when captured had given rise to difficulties during the Second World War. The list given is only by way of
indication, however, and the text could therefore cover other categories of persons or services who might be called
upon, in similar conditions, to follow the armed forces during any future conflict.).
298
For example, FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 599 (In Operations Desert Shield and Desert Storm,
the United States employed civilians both as career civil service employees and indirectly as contractor employees.
Civilians performed as part of the transportation system, at the forward depot level repair and intermediate level
maintenance activities and as weapon systems technical representatives. Civilians worked aboard Navy ships, at Air
Force (USAF) bases, and with virtually every Army unit. Only the Marine Corps (USMC) did not employ
significant numbers of civilians in theater. This civilian expertise was invaluable and contributed directly to the
success achieved.).
144
attack; (2) must accept the risk of incidental harm from enemy military operations; and (3) have
the right of self-defense against unlawful attacks. 299
4.15.2.1 Liability to Being Made the Object of Attack. For the purposes of
determining whether they may be made the object of attack, persons authorized to accompany
the armed forces are treated as civilians. They may not be made the object of attack unless they
take direct part in hostilities. 300
4.15.2.2 Employment in Hostilities. The law of war does not prohibit persons
authorized to accompany the armed forces from providing authorized support that constitutes
taking direct part in hostilities. Even if the authorized support that they provide constitutes
taking a direct part in hostilities, such persons retain their entitlement to POW status under
Article 4A(4) of the GPW. 301 Although international law does not prohibit States from using
persons authorized to accompany the armed forces to provide support that constitutes direct
participation in hostilities, commanders should exercise care in placing such personnel in
situations in which an attacking enemy may consider their activities to constitute taking a direct
part in hostilities, as there may be legal and policy considerations against such use.
Commanders may not employ persons authorized to accompany the armed forces to
perform duties and functions traditionally performed by a military person if such action is taken
for the purpose of shielding a military objective from attack. 302
299
Refer to 4.10.1 (Military Medical and Religious Personnel - Conduct of Hostilities).
300
Refer to 5.9 (Civilians Taking a Direct Part in Hostilities).
301
Refer to 4.15.4 (Persons Authorized to Accompany the Armed Forces Liability Under Domestic Law for
Participation in Hostilities).
302
Refer to 5.16 (Prohibition on Using Protected Persons and Objects to Shield, Favor, or Impede Military
Operations).
303
Refer to 5.12.3.2 (Harm to Certain Individuals Who May Be Employed In or On Military Objectives).
304
Refer to 5.7.8.4 (Examples of Military Objectives Places of Military Significance).
145
regarded as taking a direct part in hostilities, and may be made the object of attack. 305 Their
resistance to capture by enemy military forces whom they expect to respect their status under the
law of war would be incompatible with the principle that a person may not claim the distinct
rights of both combatants and civilians at the same time. 306
The arming of persons authorized to accompany the armed forces is analogous to the
arming of military medical and religious personnel. 307 DoD practice has been to permit
commanders to authorize persons authorized to accompany the armed forces to carry defensive
weapons if necessary. 308
A State may decide to arm persons authorized to accompany the armed forces for
personal security and self-defense purposes without incorporating them into the armed forces or
otherwise authorizing them to act as a combatant.
4.15.2.5 Wearing of Uniform. The law of war does not prohibit persons
authorized to accompany the armed forces from wearing a uniform, including the uniform of
armed forces that they accompany. Recent U.S. practice, however, has been to ensure that
persons accompanying U.S. forces wear clothing that distinguishes them from members of the
armed forces in order to prevent confusion about their status. 309
Persons who wear a military uniform accept the risk of being made the object of attack by
enemy forces, as the enemy would reasonably believe them to be lawful objects of attack.
However, the mere wearing of a uniform or being authorized by a State to wear a uniform does
not necessarily authorize that person to act as a combatant.
305
Refer to 5.9.3.1 (Examples of Taking a Direct Part in Hostilities).
306
Refer to 4.2.2 (No Person May Claim the Distinct Rights Afforded to Both Combatants and Civilians at the
Same Time).
307
Refer to 7.10.3.4 (Arming of Military Medical Units or Facilities).
308
See DOD INSTRUCTION 1100.22, Policy and Procedures for Determining Workforce Mix, E-5 2.d.(5)(a) (Apr.
12, 2010) (It is not a violation of the law of war for DoD civilians and Defense contractor employees who are
authorized to accompany the armed forces in the field during hostilities to be issued a weapon on the authority of the
Combatant Commander for individual self-defense as addressed in References (n), (o), and (t).); DOD INSTRUCTION
3020.41, Operational Contract Support (OCS), E-2 4.e (Dec. 20, 2011) (describing policy procedures for issuing
weapons to contingency contractor personnel).
309
DOD INSTRUCTION 3020.41, Operational Contract Support (OCS), E-2 3.j (Dec. 20, 2011) (Defense
contractors or their personnel are responsible for providing their own personal clothing, including casual and
working clothing required by the assignment. Generally, commanders shall not issue military clothing to contractor
personnel or allow the wearing of military or military look-alike uniforms. However, a CCDR [Combatant
Commander] or subordinate JFC [Joint Force Commander] deployed forward may authorize contractor personnel to
wear standard uniform items for operational reasons. Contracts shall require that this authorization be in writing and
maintained in the possession of authorized contractor personnel at all times. When commanders issue any type of
standard uniform item to contractor personnel, care must be taken to ensure, consistent with force protection
measures, that contractor personnel are distinguishable from military personnel through the use of distinctive
patches, arm bands, nametags, or headgear.).
146
taking a direct part in hostilities (and do not forfeit their protection from being made the object of
attack). 310 However, providing such services to defend against enemy armed forces of a State
would be regarded as taking a direct part in hostilities (and would forfeit their protection from
being made the object of attack). 311
DoD policies have addressed the use of non-military personnel to provide security
services for DoD components. 312 Where there has been a significant risk of attack by enemy
armed forces of a State, DoD practice generally has been to use military personnel to provide
security.
4.15.3 Persons Authorized to Accompany the Armed Forces Detention. For the
purposes of detention, persons authorized to accompany the armed forces are treated like
combatants. These persons may be detained by the enemy and are entitled to POW status during
international armed conflict. 313
When held as POWs, persons authorized to accompany the armed forces are to receive
advance of pay from the Detaining Power, and they should be assigned equivalent ranks to those
of members of the armed forces for this purpose. 314
Persons who are authorized to accompany the armed forces must be issued an identity
card to confirm their status. 315 Presenting the identification card is not a prerequisite for POW
status, but it helps captured persons establish to enemy forces that they are entitled to POW
status. 316
310
Compare 4.23.1 (Police as Civilians).
311
Refer to 5.9.3.1 (Examples of Taking a Direct Part in Hostilities).
312
For example, DOD INSTRUCTION 3020.50, Private Security Contractors Operating in Contingency Operations,
Humanitarian or Peace Operations, or Other Military Operations or Exercises (Jul. 22, 2009, Incorporating Change
1, Aug. 1, 2011).
313
See GPW art. 4(A)(4) (defining prisoners of war, in the sense of the present Convention, to include persons
who have fallen into the power of the enemy and who accompany the armed forces without actually being
members thereof, such as civilian members of military aircraft crews, war correspondents, supply contractors,
members of labour units or of services responsible for the welfare of the armed forces, provided that they have
received authorization from the armed forces which they accompany,); 1929 GPW art. 81 (Persons who follow the
armed forces without directly belonging thereto, such as correspondents, newspaper reporters, sutlers, or contractors,
who fall into the hands of the enemy, and whom the latter think fit to detain, shall be entitled to be treated as
prisoners of war, provided they are in possession of an authorization from the military authorities of the armed
forces which they were following.); HAGUE IV REG. art. 13 (Individuals who follow an army without directly
belonging to it, such as newspaper correspondents and reporters, sutlers and contractors, who fall into the enemys
hands and whom the latter thinks expedient to detain, are entitled to be treated as prisoners of war, provided they are
in possession of a certificate from the military authorities of the army which they were accompanying.); LIEBER
CODE art. 50 (Moreover, citizens who accompany an army for whatever purpose, such as sutlers, editors, or
reporters of journals, or contractors, if captured, may be made prisoners of war, and be detained as such.).
314
Refer to 9.18.3 (Advance of Pay).
315
Refer to 9.4.3 (Issue of Identification Cards to Persons Liable to Become POWs).
316
Refer to 4.27.1 (Identification Cards Used to Help Clarify Status).
147
4.15.4 Persons Authorized to Accompany the Armed Forces Liability Under Domestic
Law for Participation in Hostilities. Unlike combatants, persons authorized to accompany the
armed forces receive no general license to participate in hostilities. However, international law
contemplates that persons authorized to accompany the armed forces may lawfully support
armed forces in the conduct of hostilities. Such persons should not be liable under an enemy
States domestic law for providing authorized support services. 317 For example, they should not
be prosecuted for offenses of aiding the enemy. Persons authorized to accompany the armed
forces may not be punished by an enemy State for authorized support activities or for defending
themselves against unlawful attacks. This protection would not apply with respect to acts by
persons authorized to accompany the armed forces that are prohibited by the law of war.
Persons authorized to accompany the armed forces should not engage in unauthorized
participation in hostilities. Such activity would be treated like engagement in private acts of
hostility, 318 and such persons would be in the position of unprivileged belligerents in relation to
those activities. 319
Commanders who use persons authorized to accompany the armed forces could, under
certain circumstances, be prosecuted for war crimes committed by such personnel under theories
of command responsibility or other theories of individual liability. 321
Crews of merchant marine vessels or civil aircraft of a belligerent fall into a special
category, and are in many respects treated like persons authorized to accompany the armed
317
See BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 304 (AP I art. 51, 2.4.2.2) (As civilians, they have no general right
to take part in hostilities, but some activities of these persons could amount to direct participation if done in the
midst of an ongoing engagement. For example, it is common practice to have civilian technical advisers assist and
advise in the installation and maintenance of sophisticated command and control or target acquisition equipment.
Repair of a target acquisition or missile guidance equipment in the midst of battle would probably be regarded as
direct participation in hostilities. As in the case of a sick bay on a warship, the immunity from attack is academic,
except with respect to individualized attack against the protected person within a military objective. The issue
becomes practically significant only if an attempt is made to subject such a civilian to penal sanction for his
unauthorized participation in hostilities. Under US practice support activities behind the lines of battle is not subject
to penal sanction, although the support activity may be the legitimate object of attack.).
318
Refer to 4.18 (Private Persons Who Engage in Hostilities).
319
Refer to 4.19 (Rights, Duties, and Liabilities of Unprivileged Belligerents).
320
Refer to 18.19.4.1 (Limits on Military Jurisdiction Over U.S. Citizens Who Are Not Members of the Armed
Forces).
321
Refer to 18.23.3 (Command Responsibility); 18.23 (Theories of Individual Criminal Liability).
148
forces. 322 Under certain circumstances, crews of merchant marine vessels or civil aircraft of a
neutral that engage in hostilities may be treated like the crews of belligerent vessels or aircraft. 323
Enemy merchant vessels or civil aircraft may be captured. 324 Belligerent merchant
vessels or civil aircraft may resist attacks by enemy forces, including by eventually seizing the
attacking vessels or aircraft. 325 However, merchant vessels or civil aircraft should not commit
hostile acts in offensive combat operations. 326
4.16.2 Merchant or Civil Crews Detention. Members of the crews of merchant marine
vessels or civil aircraft of a belligerent are entitled to POW status, if they fall into the power of
the enemy during international armed conflict. 327
The GPW contemplates that certain members of the crews of merchant marine vessels or
civil aircraft of a belligerent may benefit from more favorable treatment under international law;
i.e., they would not be detained as POWs. During wartime, enemy merchant seamen have
customarily been subject to capture and detention. 328 However, the 1907 Hague XI provides that
the crews of enemy merchant ships that did not take part in hostilities were not to be held as
POWs provided that they make a formal promise in writing, not to undertake, while hostilities
last, any service connected with the operations of the war. 329 Although these provisions proved
322
Refer to 4.15 (Persons Authorized to Accompany the Armed Forces).
323
Refer to 15.14 (Acquisition of Enemy Character by Neutral-Flagged Merchant Vessels and Neutral-Marked
Civil Aircraft).
324
Refer to 13.5 (Enemy Merchant Vessels).
325
LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 266 (85) (In a sense, the crews of merchantmen owned
by subjects of a belligerent belong to its armed forces. For those vessels are liable to be seized by enemy men-of-
war, and, if attacked for that purpose, they may defend themselves, may return the attack, and eventually seize the
attacking men-of-war. The crews of merchant men become in such cases combatants, and enjoy all the privileges of
the members of the armed forces.).
326
LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 266 (85) (But, unless attacked, they must not commit
hostilities, and if they do so they are liable to be treated as criminals, just as are private individuals who commit
hostilities in land warfare.).
327
GPW art. 4A(5) (defining prisoners of war, in the sense of the present Convention, to include [m]embers of
crews, including masters, pilots and apprentices, of the merchant marine and the crews of civil aircraft of the Parties
to the conflict, who do not benefit by more favourable treatment under any other provisions of international law
who have fallen into the power of the enemy).
328
GPW COMMENTARY 65 (In the past, it was generally recognized that in time of war merchant seamen were
liable to capture.).
329
See HAGUE XI art. 6 (The captain, officers, and members of the crew, when nationals of the enemy State, are not
made prisoners of war, on condition that they make a formal promise in writing, not to undertake, while hostilities
last, any service connected with the operations of the war.); HAGUE XI art. 8 (The provisions of the three
preceding articles do not apply to ships taking part in the hostilities.).
149
ineffective during World War I and World War II, 330 the GPW allows for the possibility that
they might apply. 331
4.17 SPIES, SABOTEURS, AND OTHER PERSONS ENGAGING IN SIMILAR ACTS BEHIND ENEMY LINES
Spying, sabotage, and similar acts behind enemy lines have a dual character under the
law of war; States are permitted to employ persons who engage in these activities, but these
activities are punishable by the enemy State.
Belligerents may employ spies and saboteurs consistent with the law of war. However,
any person (including individuals who would otherwise receive the privileges of lawful
combatants) engaging in spying, sabotage, or similar acts behind enemy lines, is regarded as an
unprivileged belligerent while doing so. These persons forfeit entitlement to the privileges of
combatant status and may be punished after a fair trial if captured.
4.17.1 Spies, Saboteurs, and Other Persons Engaging in Similar Acts Behind Enemy
Lines Notes on Terminology. Spying has been given a technical definition in the Hague IV
Regulations. 332 However, as discussed below, certain conduct, most notably sabotage, has been
treated as having the same legal consequences as spying and has even been called spying, even
though such acts do not meet the definition of spying in the Hague IV Regulations. 333
In some cases, saboteurs has been used in a purely factual way to refer to those persons
engaged in damaging or destroying enemy materiel. 334 In other cases, saboteurs has been used
as a legal term of art to refer to those persons who are engaged in damaging or destroying enemy
330
See LEVIE, POWS 63 (explaining that Articles 5-8 of Hague XI proved ineffective during World War I and
[d]uring World War II the provisions of the Eleventh Hague Convention of 1907 were again completely
disregarded, with the result that there was no assurance as to exactly what the status of a captured merchant seaman
would be.). Hague XI had fewer than 30 Parties at that time, and only technically applied when all the belligerents
to a conflict were also parties to Hague XI. See HAGUE XI art. 9 (The provisions of the present Convention do not
apply except between Contracting Powers, and then only if all the belligerents are parties to the Convention.).
Hague XI did not apply during World War II for this reason. See II-A FINAL RECORD OF THE DIPLOMATIC
CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 419 (UK representative noting that [t]he provisions of the Eleventh Hague
Convention were not applied during the last War, owing to the fact that all the belligerent States were not parties to
it.).
331
For further background see II-A FINAL RECORD OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 238-39,
418-19.
332
Refer to 4.17.2 (Spies).
333
Refer to 4.17.3 (Saboteurs and Other Persons Engaging in Secretive, Hostile Acts Behind Enemy Lines).
334
1958 UK MANUAL 331 (Whether saboteurs, i.e., persons dropped or landed behind the lines of the belligerent
in order to commit acts of destruction and terrorism, are to be treated as spies depends on whether they are caught in
disguise or not. If they are disguised in civilian clothing or in the uniform of the army by which they are caught or
that of an ally of that army, they are in the same position as spies. If caught in their own uniform, they are entitled
to be treated as prisoners of war.).
150
material and who, by definition, would not be entitled to receive the privileges of combatant
status. 335
4.17.1.1 General Usage of Spies and Saboteurs in This Manual. This manual
generally uses the term spying and sabotage to refer to that general category of secretive,
hostile activities that, when performed behind enemy lines, deprives that person of entitlement to
the privileges of combatant status. In some places, the phrase spying, sabotage, and similar acts
behind enemy lines is used to make more clear that this general category of acts is broader than
only spying and sabotage.
4.17.2 Spies. A person may only be considered a spy when, (1) acting clandestinely or
under false pretenses, (2) in the zone of operations of a belligerent, (3) he or she obtains, or
endeavors to obtain, information, (4) with the intention of communicating it to the hostile
party. 336 During war, any personmilitary or civilianwhose actions meet all of these
elements may be considered a spy under the law of war.
335
II-A FINAL REPORT OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 621 (Norwegian representative
explaining that [s]aboteurs could not of course claim protection under the Prisoners of War Convention; they
should nevertheless be protected against criminal treatment and torture.).
336
HAGUE IV REG. art. 29 (A person can only be considered a spy when, acting clandestinely or on false pretences,
he obtains or endeavours to obtain information in the zone of operations of a belligerent, with the intention of
communicating it to the hostile party.); LIEBER CODE art. 88 (A spy is a person who secretly, in disguise or under
false pretense, seeks information with the intention of communicating it to the enemy.); id. at art. 83 (Scouts, or
single soldiers, if disguised in the dress of the country or in the uniform of the army hostile to their own, employed
in obtaining information, if found within or lurking about the lines of the captor, are treated as spies, and suffer
death.); WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW & PRECEDENTS 766-67 (A spy is a person who, without authority and
secretly, or under a false pretext, contrives to enter within the lines of an army for the purpose of obtaining material
information and communicating it to the enemy; or one who, being by authority within the lines, attempts secretly to
accomplish such purpose.). Consider AP I art. 46(3) (A member of the armed forces of a Party to the conflict who
is a resident of territory occupied by an adverse Party and who, on behalf of the Party on which he depends, gathers
or attempts to gather information of military value within that territory shall not be considered as engaging in
espionage unless he does so through an act of false pretences or deliberately in a clandestine manner.).
337
See WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW & PRECEDENTS 767 (The clandestine character of [the spys] proceedings and
the deception thus practised constitute the gist or rather aggravation of the offence of the spy.); 1958 UK MANUAL
330 (The principal characteristic of the offence of espionage is disguise and secrecy in action.). Consider AP I
art. 46(3) (A member of the armed forces of a Party to the conflict who is a resident of territory occupied by an
adverse Party and who, on behalf of the Party on which he depends, gathers or attempts to gather information of
military value within that territory shall not be considered as engaging in espionage unless he does so through an act
of false pretences or deliberately in a clandestine manner.).
151
Persons who act openly, such as by wearing the uniform of the armed forces to which
they belong, do not meet this element. 338 For example, members of a ground reconnaissance
team or couriers who wear their normal uniforms would not meet this element. 339 In addition,
observers on military reconnaissance aircraft have not been regarded as acting clandestinely or
under false pretenses. 340
338
See HAGUE IV REG. art. 29 ([S]oldiers not wearing a disguise who have penetrated into the zone of operations of
the hostile army, for the purpose of obtaining information, are not considered spies.). Consider AP I art. 46(2) (A
member of the armed forces of a Party to the conflict who, on behalf of that Party and in territory controlled by an
adverse Party, gathers or attempts to gather information shall not be considered as engaging in espionage if, while so
acting, he is in the uniform of his armed forces.).
339
See HAGUE IV REG. art. 29 (Soldiers and civilians, carrying out their mission openly, intrusted with the delivery
of despatches intended either for their own army or for the enemys army are not considered spies).
340
See HAGUE IV REG. art. 29 (Persons sent in balloons for the purpose of carrying despatches and, generally, of
maintaining communications between the different parts of an army or a territory are not considered spies.);
WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW & PRECEDENTS 768-69 ([T]he mere observing of the enemy, with a view to gain
intelligence of his movements, does not constitute [spying], for this may be done, and in active service is constantly
done, as a legitimate act of war . Observing the enemy from a balloon is no more criminal than any other form of
reconnaissance.).
341
See, e.g., Ex Parte Quirin, 317 U.S. 1, 31 (1942) (characterizing a spy as one who secretly and without uniform
passes the military lines of a belligerent in time of war, seeking to gather military information and communicate it to
the enemy) (emphasis added).
342
See United States ex rel. Wessels v. McDonald, 265 F. 754, 763-64 (E.D.N.Y. 1920) (In this great World War
through which we have just passed, the field of operations which existed after the United States entered the war,
and, especially in regard to naval operations, brought the port of New York within the field of active operations.).
Cf. Ex parte Quirin, 317 U.S. 1, 37 (1942) (The law of war cannot rightly treat those agents of enemy armies who
enter our territory, armed with explosives intended for the destruction of war industries and supplies, as any the less
belligerent enemies than are agents similarly entering for the purpose of destroying fortified places or our Armed
Forces.).
343
See LIEBER CODE art. 88 (The spy is punishable whether or not he succeed in obtaining the information or in
conveying it to the enemy.); WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW & PRECEDENTS 768 (The fact that [one] was lurking or
acting with intent to obtain material information, to be communicated by himself or another to the enemy, is all
that is required to complete the offence.).
152
However, a person who seeks to send information to a State not involved in the conflict
may still commit acts punishable by the offended State, and that persons conduct may fall
within the broader category of secretive, hostile acts behind enemy lines. 344
4.17.3 Saboteurs and Other Persons Engaging in Secretive, Hostile Acts Behind Enemy
Lines. In addition to spies, other persons acting clandestinely or under false pretenses with a
hostile purpose behind enemy lines have also been treated like spies under the law of war.
Like spies, persons engaged in these secretive, hostile activities behind enemy lines have
also been deprived of the privileges of combatant status and often been punished. For example,
saboteurs 345 acting clandestinely or under false pretenses in the zone of operations of a
belligerent are treated as spies. 346 However, activities besides sabotage that are helpful to one
sides war effort that are done behind the other sides lines have been punishable as well, often
under the rubric of war treason, 347 secretly entering the lines, 348 or activities hostile to the
security of the State. 349
344
Refer to 4.17.3 (Saboteurs and Other Persons Engaging in Secretive, Hostile Acts Behind Enemy Lines).
345
2001 CANADIAN MANUAL 610(1) (Saboteurs are persons operating behind the lines of an adverse party to
commit acts of destruction.); GC COMMENTARY 57 (Sabotage is harder to define, as no definition of it is given in
any text in international law. The term sabotage [in article 5 of the GC] should be understood to mean acts whose
object or effect is to damage or destroy material belonging to the army of occupation or utilized by it.).
346
2001 CANADIAN MANUAL 610(3) (Civilian saboteurs or saboteurs not in uniform are not so protected [i.e.,
entitled to POW status] and are liable to be treated as spies. Such civilian saboteurs and saboteurs not in uniform
may be tried in accordance with the law of the captor and may face the death penalty. They must not, however, be
punished without a fair trial.); 1958 UK MANUAL 331 (Whether saboteurs, i.e., persons dropped or landed behind
the lines of the belligerent in order to commit acts of destruction and terrorism, are to be treated as spies depends on
whether they are caught in disguise or not. If they are disguised in civilian clothing or in the uniform of the army by
which they are caught or that of an ally of that army, they are in the same position as spies. If caught in their own
uniform, they are entitled to be treated as prisoners of war.).
347
See GREENSPAN, MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 330 (The characteristic which unites all acts of war treason
is that they are hostile acts committed inside the area controlled by the belligerent against whom the acts are directed
by persons who do not possess the status of combatants.); LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW
575 (255) (So-called war treason consists of all such acts (except hostilities in arms on the part of the civilian
population, spreading of seditious propaganda by aircraft, and espionage) committed within the lines of a belligerent
as are harmful to him and are intended to favour the enemy.); LIEBER CODE art. 90 (A traitor under the law of war,
or a war-traitor, is a person in a place or district under Martial Law who, unauthorized by the military commander,
gives information of any kind to the enemy, or holds intercourse with him.).
348
Ex parte Quirin, 317 U.S. 1, 31 (1942) (giving as an example of an unprivileged belligerent an enemy combatant
who without uniform comes secretly through the lines for the purpose of waging war by destruction of life or
property); WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW & PRECEDENTS 786 (A similar though less aggravated offence against the
laws of war is that of officers, soldiers, or agents, of one belligerent who come secretly within the lines of the other,
or within the territory held by his forces, for any unauthorized purpose other than that of the spy, as, for example, for
the purpose of recruiting for their army, obtaining horses or supplies for the same, holding unlawful communication,
&c.,--a class of offences of which instances were not unfrequent in the border States during our late civil war.).
349
GC art. 5 (Where in the territory of a Party to the conflict, the latter is satisfied that an individual protected
person is definitely suspected of or engaged in activities hostile to the security of the State, such individual person
shall not be entitled to claim such rights and privileges under the present Convention as would, if exercised in the
favour of such individual person, be prejudicial to the security of such State.).
153
These kinds of activities almost necessarily take on the character of spying. 350 In many
cases, these actions have been reported as spying. 351 However, the actual purpose of these
activities may not be to gain or transmit intelligence information, but to take other sorts of
actions that would further the war effort.
4.17.4 Spying and Sabotage Permissible Under the Law of War. Under the law of war,
belligerents may employ spies and saboteurs. 353
Spying and sabotage are not prohibited by any law of war treaty to which the United
States is a Party. For example, spying and sabotage are not prohibited by the 1949 Geneva
Conventions, nor defined as a grave breach of those conventions. 354 Similarly, spying and
sabotage also have not been listed as war crimes punishable under the statutes of international
criminal tribunals. 355 In addition, law of war treaties that regulate, but do not prohibit, spying,
recognize implicitly that belligerents may use this method of warfare. 356
350
1958 UK MANUAL 331 note 1 (A question may arise if a saboteur, being a member of the armed forces, is
caught in civilian clothes worn over or under his military uniform. It may be difficult to accept the defence that the
intention was to shed the civilian clothing before the commission of the offence. Sabotage operations behind the
enemy lines are frequently carried out by members of the armed forces in uniform who, upon completion of their
mission, make their way to the nearest neutral territory with a view to returning to their own country. If when
engaged in sabotage or subsequent evading action they are discovered in civilian clothing worn over their uniform or
underneath it they run the risk of being treated as spies and not merely as members of the armed forces engaged in a
sabotage mission. It may well be that a sabotage mission behind the enemy lines inevitably takes on the added
character of espionage, unless uniform is worn throughout the stay in enemy territory.).
351
L. Oppenheim, On War Treason, 33 LAW QUARTERLY REVIEW 266 (1917) (Thus, in 1780, during the American
War of Independence, Major Andr was convicted and hanged as a spy, although he was not seeking information
but was returning after having negotiated treason with General Arnold; it was a case of war treason. And the
Japanese Major Shozo Jakoga and Captain Teisuki Oki, who in the summer of 1904, during the Russo-Japanese
War, were caught, disguised in Chinese clothes, in the attempt to destroy, with the aid of dynamite, a railway bridge
in Manchuria in the rear of the Russian forcesa clear case of war treasonwould previous to the Hague
Regulations surely have been executed as spies; in fact the case was reported in the newspapers as one of
espionage.).
352
Ex parte Quirin, 317 U.S. 1, 38 (1942) ([E]ach petitioner, in circumstances which gave him the status of an
enemy belligerent, passed our military and naval lines and defenses or went behind those lines, in civilian dress and
with hostile purpose. The offense was complete when with that purpose they entered or, having so entered, they
remained upon our territory in time of war without uniform or other appropriate means of identification.).
353
See United States v. List, et al. (The Hostage Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 1245 (By
the law of war it is lawful to use spies.); Richard R. Baxter, So-Called Unprivileged Belligerency: Spies,
Guerillas, and Saboteurs, 28 BRITISH YEAR BOOK OF INTERNATIONAL LAW 323, 333 (1951) (noting that espionage
is regarded a conventional weapon of war, being neither treacherous nor productive of unnecessary suffering).
354
Refer to 18.9.5 (War Crimes Notes on Terminology).
355
See, e.g., Charter of the International Military Tribunal, art. 6, annexed to Agreement by the Government of the
United Kingdom of Great Britain and Northern Ireland, the Government of the United States of America, the
Provisional Government of the French Republic and the Government of the Union of Soviet Socialist Republics for
154
Although spying and sabotage are not prohibited by the law of war, acting clandestinely
or under false pretenses could, in some circumstances, constitute feigning a protected status,
one of the elements of perfidy. 357 Persons engaged in these activities and commanders who
employ them should take special care not to kill or wound by resort to perfidy.
4.17.5 Spying and Sabotage Forfeiture of the Privileges of Combatant Status. Although
the law of war allows belligerents to employ spies, saboteurs, and other persons engaged in
secretive hostile activities behind enemy lines, the law of war also permits belligerents to take
additional measures to defend against these persons.
the Prosecution and Punishment of the Major War Criminals of the European Axis, Aug. 8, 1945, 82 UNTS 280,
288; ICTY STATUTE arts. 2-5; ICTR STATUTE arts. 2-4. Consider ROME STATUTE arts. 5-8.
356
See HAGUE IV REG. arts. 24, 29-31 (governing the classification, conduct, and treatment of spies). Consider AP I
art. 46 (same).
357
See 5.22.1 (Definition of Perfidy).
358
Refer to 5.14.5 (Carrying Arms Openly and Wearing of Distinctive Emblems by the Armed Forces to
Distinguish Themselves From the Civilian Population).
359
Compare 4.6.1.3 (Application of GPW 4A(2) Conditions to the Armed Forces of a State).
360
II-A FINAL RECORD OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 509 (noting the UK representatives
statement that spies according to general opinion, should not have the benefits of the privileges accorded by the
GPW); II-A FINAL REPORT OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 621 (Norwegian representative
explaining that Saboteurs could not of course claim protection under the Prisoners of War Convention; they should
nevertheless be protected against criminal treatment and torture.).
361
See HAGUE IV REG. art. 31 (impliedly contrasting the position of a spy captured while spying with a spy who,
after rejoining the army to which he belongs, is subsequently captured by the enemy, is treated as a prisoner of war,
and incurs no responsibility for his previous acts of espionage.). Consider AP I art. 46 (1) (Notwithstanding any
other provision of the Conventions or of this Protocol, any member of the armed forces of a Party to the conflict
who falls into the power of an adverse Party while engaging in espionage shall not have the right to the status of
prisoner of war and may be treated as a spy.); AP I art. 44(4) (A combatant who falls into the power of an adverse
Party while failing to meet the requirements set forth in the second sentence of paragraph 3 [certain obligations to
distinguish himself during military engagements] shall forfeit his right to be a prisoner of war, but he shall,
nevertheless, be given protections equivalent in all respects to those accorded to prisoners of war by the Third
Convention and by this Protocol. This protection includes protections equivalent to those accorded to prisoners of
war by the Third Convention in the case where such a person is tried and punished for any offences he has
committed.).
362
See, e.g., Ex parte Quirin, 317 U.S. 1, 31 (1942) (describing spies as familiar examples of belligerents who are
generally deemed not to be entitled to the status of prisoners of war); Mohamad Ali and Another v. Public
Prosecutor [1969] A.C. 430 (P.C.) (appeal taken from U.K.), LEVIE, DOCUMENTS ON POWS 766 ([A]ppellants, if
they were members of the Indonesian armed forces, were not entitled to be treated on capture as prisoners of war
155
4.17.5.1 Liability of Persons Not Captured While Spying for Previous Acts of
Espionage. Persons who qualify for the privileges of combatant status who engage in spying,
and then return to friendly lines, incur no responsibility or liability for previous acts of
espionage. 365 Persons who have never qualified for the privileges of combatant status would not
benefit from this rule because they cannot regain a status that they did not receive in the first
place. 366
4.17.5.2 Cases of Doubt. During international armed conflict, should there be any
doubt as to whether persons suspected of committing a belligerent act and having fallen into the
hands of the enemy are entitled to POW status, such persons are entitled to have their status
determined by a competent tribunal and should be treated as POWs pending that
determination. 367
under the Geneva Convention when they had landed to commit sabotage and had been dressed in civilian clothes
both when they had placed the explosives and lit them and when they were arrested.).
363
2001 CANADIAN MANUAL 320(1) (Generally speaking, persons engaging in espionage may be attacked and if
captured while doing so shall NOT have the right to the status of prisoner of war.); 1992 GERMAN MANUAL 321
(Even if they are members of their armed forces, they do not have the right to the status of prisoner of war.); 1958
UK MANUAL 96 (noting that regular members of the armed forces who are caught as spies are not entitled to be
treated as prisoners of war); 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 74 (Members of the armed forces of a party to
the conflict and members of militias or volunteer corps forming part of such armed forces lose their right to be
treated as prisoners of war whenever they deliberately conceal their status in order to pass behind the military lines
of the enemy for the purpose of gathering military information or for the purpose of waging war by destruction of
life or property.).
364
LEVIE, POWS 82-83 (noting that [e]ven individuals who fall within the categories specifically enumerated in
Article 4 are not entitled to prisoner-of-war status if, at the time of capture by the enemy, they were dressed in
civilian clothes and were engaged in an espionage or sabotage mission behind enemy lines); WINTHROP, MILITARY
LAW & PRECEDENTS 769 (A spy, under capture, is not treated as a prisoner of war but as an outlaw, and is to be
tried and punished as such.).
365
See HAGUE IV REG. art. 31 (A spy who, after rejoining the army to which he belongs, is subsequently captured
by the enemy, is treated as a prisoner of war, and incurs no responsibility for his previous acts of espionage.);
LIEBER CODE art. 104 (explaining that [a] successful spy or war-traitor, safely returned to his own army, and
afterwards captured as an enemy, is not subject to punishment for his acts as a spy or war-traitor); Rieger, Dalloz
Hebdomadaire (France, Cour de Cassation, Jul. 29, 1948), summarized in 44 AJIL 422 (1950) (The court sustained
the acquittal of a German national who, after mobilization as a German army officer, had been in France a spy and a
recruiter of spies, but had not been apprehended until after he had rejoined the German Army and been demobilized
in Germany.); In re Martin, 45 BARB. 142, 148 (New York County Supreme Court, Dec. 4, 1865) (Court directed
the release of a prisoner who was not taken in the act of committing the offense charged against him, of being a
spy. He had returned within the lines of the confederate forces, or had otherwise escaped, so that he was not
arrested till after the confederate armies had surrendered, been disbanded and sent to their homes, with the promise
that they should not be further disturbed if they remained there and engaged in peaceful pursuits.). Consider AP I
arts. 46(3), 46(4) (referring to persons who engage in espionage in [the] territory of a hostile party, and noting that
a person may not be treated as a spy unless he is captured while engaging in espionage).
366
See LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 424-25 (161) (But Article 31 applies only to spies
who belong to the armed forces of the enemy; civilians who act as spies, and are captured later, may be punished.).
Cf. HAGUE IV REG. art. 31 (referring only to a spy who rejoins the army to which he belongs in connection with
protection against subsequent prosecution).
367
Refer to 4.27.2 (POW Protections for Certain Persons Until Status Has Been Determined).
156
4.18 PRIVATE PERSONS WHO ENGAGE IN HOSTILITIES
In general, private persons who engage in hostilities forfeit many of the protections to
which members of the civilian population are entitled, and are liable to treatment in one or more
respects as unprivileged belligerents. 368
4.18.1 Private Persons Who Engage in Hostilities Notes on Terminology. This section
refers to private persons who engage in hostilities rather than civilians who engage in
hostilities for three reasons. First, an emphasis on private persons is consistent with
longstanding explanations of the principle of distinction. 369 Second, it may be analytically
unhelpful to focus on civilians because private persons who engage in hostilities are liable to
treatment in one or more respects as combatants. Third, non-military personnel belonging to a
State (e.g., persons authorized to accompany the armed forces), who are often called civilians,
raise a different set of issues that merit special consideration as opposed to the general case of a
private person who decides to engage in hostilities.
For the purpose of applying different law of war rules, different formulations have been
used to describe when a person has engaged in hostilities. Although these phrases often refer to
the same conduct, the context in which each term is applied is important; whether a phrase
includes a particular type of conduct may depend on the particular legal rule in question.
Whether a particular person is liable as a consequence of his or her conduct to treatment as a
combatant (e.g., being made the object of attack, internment, or prosecution for acts of
unprivileged belligerency) must be assessed with reference to the specific legal rule at issue
rather than based on the use of a conclusory label, such as enemy combatant. 370
This manual generally uses the phrase engaging in hostilities in a broad sense to refer
to any of those actions that could cause a person to forfeit one or more protections under the law
of war. When discussing specific legal rules, on the other hand, this manual uses the particular
language of the rule at issue, rather than the phrase engaging in hostilities. For example, this
manual generally reserves the use of the phrase taking a direct part in hostilities to address the
368
Refer to 4.19 (Rights, Duties, and Liabilities of Unprivileged Belligerents).
369
See, e.g., LIEBER CODE arts. 22 and 23 (Nevertheless, as civilization has advanced during the last centuries, so
has likewise steadily advanced, especially in war on land, the distinction between the private individual belonging to
a hostile country and the hostile country itself, with its men in arms. Private citizens are no longer murdered,
enslaved, or carried off to distant parts, and the inoffensive individual is as little disturbed in his private relations as
the commander of the hostile troops can afford to grant In the overruling demands of a vigorous war.).
370
See Harold Hongju Koh, Legal Adviser, Department of State, Address at the Annual Meeting of the American
Society of International Law: The Obama Administration and International Law, Mar. 25, 2010, 2010 DIGEST OF
UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 749 (Some commentators have criticized our decision to detain
certain individuals based on their membership in a non-state armed group. But as those of you who follow the
Guantnamo habeas litigation know, we have defended this position based on the AUMF, as informed by the text,
structure, and history of the Geneva Conventions and other sources of the laws of war. Moreover, while the various
judges who have considered these arguments have taken issue with certain points, they have accepted the overall
proposition that individuals who are part of an organized armed group like Al Qaeda can be subject to law-of-war
detention for the duration of the current conflict. In sum, we have based our authority to detain not on conclusory
labels, like enemy combatant, but on whether the factual record in the particular case meets the legal standard.).
157
rule applicable when a civilian forfeits his or her protection from being made the object of
attack. 371
4.18.2 Private Persons Who Engage in Hostilities Denial of the Distinct Protections
Afforded Peaceful Civilians. Private persons who engage in hostilities forfeit many of the
protections afforded civilians under the law of war. 372 The principle of military necessity can
justify taking military action (such as detention) to address the threat posed by such persons. 373
The forfeiture of many of the protections of civilian status is also reflected in the principle that a
person may not claim the distinct rights of both combatants and civilians at the same time. 374
4.18.3 Private Persons Who Engage in Hostilities Lack of the Privileges of Combatant
Status. Private persons who engage in hostilities are not entitled to the privileges of combatant
status and may be punished, after a fair trial. 375 The law of war does not condone the farmer by
day and guerilla by night. 376
371
Refer to 5.9 (Civilians Taking a Direct Part in Hostilities).
372
See Joint Chiefs of Staff, Joint Pub. 3-60, Joint Doctrine for Targeting, A-2 (Jan. 17, 2002) (The protection
offered civilians carries a strict obligation on the part of civilians not to participate directly in armed combat,
become combatants, or engage in acts of war. Civilians engaging in fighting or otherwise participating in combat
operations, singularly or as a group, become unlawful combatants and lose their protected civilian status.); 1992
GERMAN MANUAL 517 (Persons taking a direct part in hostilities are not entitled to claim the rights accorded to
civilians by international humanitarian law (Art. 51 para 3 AP I; Art. 13 para 3 AP II). The same applies if they are
they are definitely suspected of activities hostile to the security of the State (Art. 5 para 1 GC IV).); 1956 FM 27-10
(Change No. 1 1976) 60 (Persons who are not members of the armed forces, as defined in Article 4, GPW, who
bear arms or engage in other conduct hostile to the enemy thereby deprive themselves of many of the privileges
attaching to the members of the civilian population (see sec. II of this chapter).).
373
Refer to 2.2.1 (Military Necessity as a Justification).
374
Refer to 4.2.2 (No Person May Claim the Distinct Rights Afforded to Both Combatants and Civilians at the
Same Time).
375
See 1958 UK MANUAL 88 (If civilian inhabitants commit or attempt to commit hostile acts, they are liable to
punishment, after a proper trial.); LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 206 (57) (According to a
generally recognised customary rule of International Law, hostile acts on the part of private individuals, not
organised as compact movements operating under responsible authority, are not acts of legitimate wafare, and the
offenders may be punished in accordance with International Law.); United States v. List, et al., XI TRIALS OF WAR
CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 1246 ([T]he rule is established that a civilian who aids, abets, or participates in the
fighting is liable to punishment as a war criminal under the laws of war.); LIEBER CODE art. 82 (Men, or squads of
men, who commit hostilities, whether by fighting, or inroads for destruction or plunder, or by raids of any kind,
without commission, without being part and portion of the organized hostile army, and without sharing continuously
in the war, but who do so with intermitting returns to their homes and avocations, or with the occasional assumption
of the semblance of peaceful pursuits, divesting themselves of the character or appearance of soldiers -- such men,
or squads of men, are not public enemies, and, therefore, if captured, are not entitled to the privileges of prisoners of
war).
376
BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 252 (AP I art. 44, 2.7.1) ([T]he pre-existing rule [i.e., prior to AP I]
precluded combatant status and PW status for the persons who engaged in civilian pursuits during the day but fought
as a guerilla by night.); SENATE EXECUTIVE REPORT 84-9, Geneva Conventions for the Protection of War Victims:
Report of the Committee on Foreign Relations on Executives D, E, F, and G, 82nd Congress, First Session, 5 (Jun.
27, 1955) (In sum, extension of protection to partisans [in the GPW] does not embrace that type of partisan who
performs the role of farmer by day, guerilla by night. Such individuals remain subject to trial and punishment as
unlawful belligerents.); THEODORE WOOLSEY, INTRODUCTION TO THE STUDY OF INTERNATIONAL LAW 216 (134)
(1897) (explaining that [g]uerilla parties [i.e., armed groups not called out by public authority], however, do not
158
The denial of the privileges of combatant status to private persons engaging in hostilities
may be justified on the basis that such persons act inconsistently with the jus ad bellum principle
of competent authority, under which the resort to armed force is a prerogative of the State. 377
These individuals lack the principal qualification for entitlement to the privileges of combatant
statusState authorization. 378 This requirement for State authorization has been traced to
medieval law of arms. 379
Denying private persons who engage in hostilities the privileges of combatant status has
also been viewed as justified on humanitarian grounds. Private persons who engage in hostilities
risk undermining the protections afforded the civilian population. 380 And, private persons who
engage in hostilities generally have not been trained in the law of war and are not subject to the
same disciplinary regime as members of the armed forces. 381 Thus, their participation in
hostilities has been associated with the commission of war crimes. 382
enjoy the full benefit of the laws of war and instead are apt to fare worse than either regular troops or an unarmed
peasantry because, inter alia, they put on and off with ease the character of a soldier).
377
Refer to 1.11.1.1 (Competent Authority (Right Authority) to Wage War for a Public Purpose).
378
Refer to 4.6.2 (Belonging to a Party to the Conflict).
379
G.I.A.D. Draper, The Status of Combatants and the Question of Guerrilla Warfare, 45 BRITISH YEAR BOOK OF
INTERNATIONAL LAW 173, 175 (1971) (With the break-up of Christendom the medieval law of arms took shape as
the embryonic international law of war. The older idea of knights, men-at-arms and mercenaries avowed by a
prince changed to that of armed forces in the service of a territorial, secular state. However, many of the ideas and
technical rules of the jus militare came through into the new international law of war, including the idea of a right or
privilege to fight reserved for military classes and the requirement of a certain openness in the manner of fighting.
This openness spells out the older idea of a public war and the rejection of perfidy as abhorrent to the knightly
classes. Conversely, those who had not the right to fight met short shrift at the hands of those who had. The
marauder and the freebooter acted against, and were outside, faith and the law of nations and were early forms of
war criminals.). See also M. H. KEEN, THE LAWS OF WAR IN THE LATE MIDDLE AGES 246 (1965) (The medieval
law of arms was a formal and generally accepted law, and its currency helped to establish the principle that war,
in its proper sense could only be waged by sovereigns.).
380
GREENSPAN, MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 55 (If any and every citizen capable of bearing arms is entitled
to use them then the distinction between the soldier and the remainder of the population disappears. The result
could only expose the civilian element, regardless of sex, to massacre. The enemy soldier, unable to distinguish his
foe, aware that any man, woman, boy, or girl in civilian clothes might produce at any moment a concealed weapon
to be used against him, would inevitably be disposed to treat soldier and civilian alike, indiscriminately.); Raymund
T. Yingling and Robert W. Ginnane, The Geneva Conventions of 1949, 46 AJIL 393, 402 (1953) (While the
conditions imposed by the convention for treatment as prisoners of war of members of resistance movements would
not have covered many persons acting as partisans during World War II, nevertheless, it is believed that such
conditions are the minimum necessary if regular forces are to have any protection against attacks by the civilian
population and if any distinction is to be made between combatants and noncombatants. The farmer by day,
assassin by night, type of partisan cannot be condoned by international law, whatever other justification
circumstances may give him.). Refer to 4.6.4 (Having a Fixed Distinctive Sign Recognizable at a Distance),
footnote 164 and accompanying text.
381
Refer to 4.6.3 (Being Commanded by a Person Responsible for His or Her Subordinates).
382
See, e.g., CHARLES HENRY HYDE, II INTERNATIONAL LAW: CHIEFLY AS INTERPRETED AND APPLIED BY THE
UNITED STATES 296 (1922) (The law of nations, apart from the Hague Regulations above noted, denies belligerent
qualifications to guerrilla bands. Such forces wage a warfare which is irregular in point of origin and authority, of
discipline, of purpose and of procedure. They may be constituted at the beck of a single individual; they lack
uniforms; they are given to pillage and destruction; they take few prisoners and are hence disposed to show slight
159
4.18.4 Activities That Constitute Engaging in Hostilities by Private Persons. Certain
activities constitute engaging in hostilities, i.e., when done by private persons, make them
liable to treatment in one or more respects by the enemy State as unprivileged belligerents.
4.18.4.1 Being Part of a Hostile, Non-State Armed Group. Being part of a non-
State armed group that is engaged in hostilities against a State is a form of engaging in hostilities
that makes private persons liable to treatment in one or more respects as unprivileged
belligerents by that State. 383 Being part of a non-State armed group may involve formally
joining the group or simply participating sufficiently in its activities to be deemed part of it.
Whether a person has joined a non-State armed group may be a difficult factual question.
Non-State armed groups may not use formal indicia of membership (e.g., uniforms or identity
cards), or members of these groups may seek to conceal their association with the group. 384 It
may be appropriate to use circumstantial or functional information to assess whether a person is
part of a non-State armed group. 385
In addition, non-State armed groups may also rely on individuals who are not members of
the groups, but who are functionally part of those organizations. Their support might be
particularly important to enable the non-State armed group to conduct and sustain its
operations. 386 For example, these individuals might participate sufficiently in the activities of
the group or support its operations substantially in a way that is analogous to the support that
persons authorized to accompany the armed forces provide to the armed forces. 387 These
quarter.); Wharton, Com. Am. Law, 221, VII MOORES DIGEST 175 (If war were to be waged by private parties,
operating according to the whims of individual leaders, every place that was seized would be sacked and outraged;
and war would be the pretence to satiate private greed and spite.).
383
See, e.g., In re Guantanamo Bay Litigation, Respondents Memorandum Regarding the Governments Detention
Authority Relative to Detainees Held at Guantanamo Bay, Misc. No. 08-442, 5-6 (D.D.C., Mar. 13, 2009) (Because
the use of force includes the power of detention, the United States has the authority to detain those who were part of
al-Qaida and Taliban forces. Indeed, long-standing U.S. jurisprudence, as well as law-of-war principles, recognize
that members of enemy forces can be detained even if they have not actually committed or attempted to commit any
act of depredation or entered the theatre or zone of active military operations. Accordingly, under the AUMF as
informed by law-of-war principles, it is enough that an individual was part of al-Qaida or Taliban forces, the
principal organizations that fall within the AUMFs authorization of force.) (internal citations omitted); Hamdan v.
Rumsfeld, 548 U.S. 557, 693 (2006) (Thomas, J., dissenting) (For well over a century it has been established that to
unite with banditti, jayhawkers, guerillas, or any other unauthorized marauders is a high offence against the laws of
war; the offence is complete when the band is organized or joined.) (internal emphasis and quotations omitted).
384
Refer to 17.5.1.1 (Increased Difficulty in Identifying Enemy Forces and Other Military Objectives).
385
See, e.g., Bensayah v. Obama, 610 F.3d 718, 725 (D.C. Cir. 2010) (Although it is clear al Qaeda has, or at least
at one time had, a particular organizational structure, , the details of its structure are generally unknown, , but
it is thought to be somewhat amorphous, . As a result, it is impossible to provide an exhaustive list of criteria for
determining whether an individual is part of al Qaeda. That determination must be made on a case-by-case basis
by using a functional rather than a formal approach and by focusing upon the actions of the individual in relation to
the organization.) (internal citations omitted).
386
Refer to 17.5.1.2 (Different Support Structures for Non-State Armed Groups).
387
Refer to 4.15 (Persons Authorized to Accompany the Armed Forces).
160
individuals may be regarded as constructively part of the group, even if they are, in fact, not
formal members of the group. 388
4.18.5 Private Persons Who Engage in Hostilities and the Law of War. As in the cases of
spying and sabotage, under international law private enemy nationals are not generally regarded
as being prohibited from engaging in hostilities during international armed conflict.
International law does recognize, however, that opposing States may punish such persons. 391
Nonetheless, like other forms of unprivileged belligerency, private engagement in hostilities has
been described in some contexts as a war crime or as a violation of international law or the law
of war. 392
388
Hedges v. Obama, No. 12-3644, Reply Brief for Defendant-Appellant, 11-12 (2d Cir. Sept. 20, 2012) (More
generally, substantial support encompasses individuals who, even if not considered part of the irregular enemy
forces at issue in the current conflict, bear sufficiently close ties to those forces and provide them support that
warrants their detention consistent with the law of war. The substantial support concept, as properly informed by
the law of war, would include people whose support for al-Qaeda or the Taliban makes them analogous to those who
accompany the armed forces without actually being members thereof, such as civilian members of military aircraft
crews, war correspondents, supply contractors, members of labour units or of services responsible for the welfare of
the armed forces. Such substantial supporters are, in short, more or less part of the armed force and subject to
law-of-war detention for the duration of the conflict.) (internal citations omitted).
389
Refer to 5.9 (Civilians Taking a Direct Part in Hostilities).
390
Refer to 4.17 (Spies, Saboteurs, and Other Persons Engaging in Similar Acts Behind Enemy Lines).
391
See GREENSPAN, MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 61 (Guerillas who do not comply with the provisions laid
down [of GPW art. 4(A)(2)] may perform patriotic service for their country (just as espionage agents often do), yet
such illegitimate hostilities come within the technical heading of war crimes, and their perpetrators must be prepared
to take their punishment if captured.); United States v. List, et al. (The Hostage Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR
CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 1245 (Just as the spy may act lawfully for his country and at the same time be a war
criminal to the enemy, so guerrillas may render great service to their country and, in the event of success, become
heroes even, still they remain war criminals in the eyes of the enemy and may be treated as such.); HERBERT C.
FOOKS, PRISONERS OF WAR 40 (1924) (Individuals who undertake to wage a war in their private capacity are not
entitled to the treatment of prisoners of war. The enemy may punish them when captured as war criminals. The
safety of the troops compels the enemy to punish such hostilities as acts of illegitimate warfare, and international
law gives the right to do so. Nations do not prohibit its citizens from such acts, however, for they may be most
helpful to it just as spying is helpful.).
392
See, e.g., James Speed, Attorney General, Military Commissions, July 1865, 11 OPINIONS OF THE ATTORNEY
GENERAL 297, 314 (1869) (A bushwhacker, a jayhawker, a bandit, a war rebel, an assassin, being public enemies,
may be tried, condemned, and executed as offenders against the laws of war.).
161
In discussions of the status of private acts of hostility under international law, the point is
often made that international law does not require States to prevent what they may regard as acts
of patriotism and heroism. 393
393
Richard R. Baxter, So-Called Unprivileged Belligerency: Spies, Guerillas, and Saboteurs, 28 BRITISH YEAR
BOOK OF INTERNATIONAL LAW 323, 342 (1951) (In both occupied and unoccupied areas, resistance activities,
guerrilla warfare, and sabotage by private persons may be expected to continue on at least as widespread a basis in
future warfare as they have in the past. More often than not, patriotism or some sort of political allegiance lies at the
root of such activities. Consequently the law of nations has not ventured to require of states that they prevent the
belligerent activities of their citizenry or that they refrain from the use of secret agents or that these activities upon
the part of their military forces or civilian population be punished.).
394
Refer to 15.1.5 (Domestic Neutrality Laws).
395
Refer to 13.3.3.1 (Entitlement of Vessels to Conduct Attacks During Non-International Armed Conflict).
396
See, e.g., R. v. Khawaja, (Supreme Court of Canada, Dec. 14, 2012) (upholding the terrorism conviction of a
defendant who provided support to terrorist groups in Afghanistan and rejecting his argument that his support for
terrorist groups could not be punished because they were part of an armed conflict governed by international law).
397
Public Prosecutor v. Folkerts, (The Netherlands, District Court of Utrecht, Dec. 20, 1977), reprinted in 74
INTERNATIONAL LAW REPORTS 695, 698 (1987) (It is totally unacceptable in democratic countries such as those
just mentioned [the United States and the Federal Republic of Germany], and also in the Netherlands, for individuals
who disagree with their countrys policy, for that reason to resort to acts of violence such as those which took place
here. Such acts attack the most fundamental principles of the constitutional State.).
398
See, e.g., U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 1373, U.N. Doc. S/RES/1373 (2001) (deciding that all States
shall, inter alia, [e]nsure that any person who participates in the financing, planning, preparation or perpetration of
terrorist acts or in supporting terrorist acts is brought to justice and ensure that, in addition to any other measures
against them, such terrorist acts are established as serious criminal offences in domestic laws and regulations and
that the punishment duly reflects the seriousness of such terrorist acts;).
162
4.19.1 Rules Applicable to the Treatment of Unprivileged Belligerents. Although
unprivileged belligerents have not been recognized and protected in treaty law to the same extent
as peaceful civilians and lawful combatants, 399 basic guarantees of humane treatment in
customary international law (i.e., elementary considerations of humanity) protect unprivileged
belligerents. 400 Moreover, some treaty protections apply to certain unprivileged belligerents. 401
In some cases, U.S. practice has, as a matter of domestic law or policy, afforded
unprivileged belligerents more favorable treatment than they would be entitled to receive under
international law. 402 Nonetheless, U.S. practice has also recognized that unprivileged
belligerents should not be afforded the distinct privileges afforded lawful combatants and the
protections afforded peaceful civilians under the law of war. 403
In addition, unprivileged belligerents are generally subject to the same liabilities to which
combatants are subject in the conduct of hostilities; i.e., they may be made the object of attack by
enemy combatants. Unprivileged belligerents placed hors de combat, however, may not be made
the object of attack, and must be treated humanely.
399
Refer to 4.3.1 (Unprivileged Belligerents as a Category in Treaty Law).
400
Refer to 3.1.1.2 (Applying Law of War Standards as Reflecting Minimum Legal Standards).
401
See, e.g., GPW art. 3; GC art. 5.
402
See, e.g., Boumediene v. Bush, 553 U.S. 723 (2008) (affording the constitutional privilege of habeas corpus to
aliens detained as unprivileged belligerents at Guantanamo); U.S. MILITARY ASSISTANCE COMMAND VIETNAM
DIRECTIVE 381-46, Military Intelligence: Combined Screening of Detainees Annex A 4.a.(2)-(3) (Dec. 27, 1967),
reprinted in 62 AJIL 766-67 (classifying as POWs members of certain categories of guerilla or insurgent units
provided that they were not engaged in acts of terrorism, sabotage, or spying while captured).
403
Refer to, e.g., 4.6.1.2 (AP I and the GPW 4A(2) Conditions); FRANCIS LIEBER, GUERRILLA PARTIES
CONSIDERED WITH REFERENCE TO THE LAWS AND USAGES OF WAR 22 (1862) (no army, no society, engaged in war,
any more than a society at peace, can allow unpunished assassination, robbery, and devastation, without the deepest
injury to itself and disastrous consequences, which might change the very issue of the war.).
404
Refer to 4.4.1 (Combatants Conduct of Hostilities).
405
Refer to 8.1.4.1 (Common Article 3 of the 1949 Geneva Conventions).
163
legal obligation, the fundamental guarantees reflected in Article 75 of AP I as minimum
standards for the humane treatment of all persons detained during international armed conflict. 406
406
Refer to 8.1.4.2 (Article 75 of AP I and Relevant AP II Provisions).
407
Refer to 4.27.2 (POW Protections for Certain Persons Until Status Has Been Determined).
408
Refer to 10.4 (Derogation for Security Reasons).
409
Refer to 10.4.4 (Limits on Derogation).
410
Refer to 8.14.3.1 (Participants in Hostilities or Persons Belonging to Armed Groups That Are Engaged in
Hostilities).
411
Refer to 8.14.2 (Review of Continued Detention for Security Reasons).
412
Refer to 4.4.3 (Combatants - Legal Immunity From a Foreign States Domestic Law).
413
Refer to 4.17.5 (Spying and Sabotage Forfeiture of the Privileges of Combatant Status); 4.18.3 (Private
Persons Who Engage in Hostilities Lack of the Privileges of Combatant Status).
414
See, e.g., 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 73 (The foregoing provisions [of article 5 of the GC] impliedly
recognize the power of a Party to the conflict to impose the death penalty and lesser punishments on spies,
saboteurs, and other persons not entitled to be treated as prisoners of war, except to the extent that that power has
been limited or taken away by Article 68, GC (par. 438).); LIEBER CODE art. 88 (The spy is punishable with death
by hanging by the neck, whether or not he succeed in obtaining the information or in conveying it to the enemy.).
415
See HAGUE IV REG. art. 30 (A spy taken in the act shall not be punished without previous trial.).
164
4.19.4.1 Unprivileged Belligerency and the Law of War Notes on Terminology.
In contemporary parlance, spying and other forms of unprivileged belligerency generally have
not been referred to as violations of the law of war or war crimes. 416 For example, spying is
permissible under the law of war in the sense that belligerents are not prohibited from employing
spies; these activities are punishable but not prohibited under international law. 417
416
Richard R. Baxter, So-Called Unprivileged Belligerency: Spies, Guerillas, and Saboteurs, 28 BRITISH YEAR
BOOK OF INTERNATIONAL LAW 323, 324 (1951) (The correct legal formulation is, it is submitted, that armed and
unarmed hostilities, wherever occurring, committed by persons other than those entitled to be treated as prisoners of
war or peaceful civilians merely deprive such individuals of a protection they might otherwise enjoy under
international law and place them virtually at the power of the enemy. Unlawful belligerency is actually
unprivileged belligerency.).
417
Refer to 4.17.4 (Spying and Sabotage Permissible Under the Law of War).
418
See, e.g., 10 U.S.C. 950t (27) (defining the offense of spying as in violation of the law of war); G.I.A.D.
Draper, The Status of Combatants and the Question of Guerrilla Warfare, 45 BRITISH YEAR BOOK OF
INTERNATIONAL LAW 173, 173, 176 (1971) (On balance, the theory that illicit combatants may be killed after
capture, as an act of warfare, subject to any restraint imposed by the law of war, is somewhat artificial. There may
be some substance in the contention, and it may be more consonant with the war practices of belligerents, the
official manuals on the law of war issued by States, and the decisions of national tribunals applying the law of war,
that illegal participation in combat is a violation of the law of war exposing the offender to loss of immunity from
attack, and, upon capture, to trial and punishment upon conviction. However, the matter is controversial, and there
are certain passages in the classical writers on the law of war, such as Grotius, which lend support to the theory of
unprivileged belligerency.).
419
See, e.g., U.N. SECRETARY-GENERAL, Historical Survey of the Question of International Criminal Jurisdiction,
U.N. Doc. A/CN.4/7/Rev.1, 1 (1949) (During the greater part of modern history customary law has also recognized
so-called war crimes of various description. Perfidy, particularly that type of perfidy which is described as
espionage, is the oldest example of such a war crime.); Ex parte Quirin, 317 U.S. 1, 31 (1942) (describing spies as
offenders against the law of war subject to trial and punishment by military tribunals.); WINTHROP, MILITARY
LAW & PRECEDENTS 770 (Under the law of nations and of war, [a spys] offence is an exclusively military one,
cognizable only by military tribunals.); G. SHERSTON BAKER, I HALLECKS INTERNATIONAL LAW 628-29 (18.20)
(1908) (the act of spying is an offence against the laws of war alone); James Speed, Attorney General, Military
Commissions, July 1865, 11 OPINIONS OF THE ATTORNEY GENERAL 297, 312-13 (1869) (to act as spy is an offence
against the laws of war, every lawyer knows that a spy was a well-known offender under the laws of war,).
420
Ex parte Quirin, 317 U.S. 1, 28 (1942) (holding that the trial and punishment of enemy saboteurs by military
commission was an important incident to the conduct of war).
421
Refer to 1.3.3.1 (Law of War as Prohibitive Law).
165
law of war as also including sources of authority, the punishment of unprivileged belligerents is
also grounded in the international law of war. 422
Although the relationship between unprivileged belligerency and the law of war has been
characterized in different ways, it is well-accepted that States may punish unprivileged enemy
belligerents after a fair trial.
4.20 CHILDREN
The GC provides special protection for children in order to protect them against the
dangers of war. In addition, certain provisions of treaties and U.S. law seek to restrict the use or
recruitment of children in armed conflict.
4.20.1 Specific Protections for All Children During International Armed Conflict.
4.20.1.1 Children Under Fifteen Who Are Orphaned or Separated. The parties to
the conflict shall take the necessary measures to ensure that children under fifteen, who are
orphaned or are separated from their families as a result of the war, are not left to their own
resources, and that their maintenance, the exercise of their religion, and their education are
facilitated in all circumstances. 423 The maintenance of the children concerned means their
feeding, clothing, and accommodation, care for their health, and, where necessary, medical and
hospital treatment. 424
The parties to the conflict shall facilitate the reception of such children in a neutral
country for the duration of the conflict with the consent of the Protecting Power, if any, and
under due safeguards for the observance of the principles stated in the first paragraph of Article
24 of the GC. 427
422
Refer to 1.3.3.2 (Law of War as Permissive Law).
423
GC art. 24 (The Parties to the conflict shall take the necessary measures to ensure that children under fifteen,
who are orphaned or are separated from their families as a result of the war, are not left to their own resources, and
that their maintenance, the exercise of their religion and their education are facilitated in all circumstances.).
424
GC COMMENTARY 187 (The maintenance of the children concerned means their feeding, clothing, and
accommodation, care for their health and, where necessary medical and hospital treatment.).
425
GC art. 24 (Their education shall, as far as possible, be entrusted to persons of a similar cultural tradition.).
426
GC COMMENTARY 187 (That provision is most important. It is intended to exclude any religious or political
propaganda designed to wean children from their natural milieu; for that would cause additional suffering to human
beings already grievously stricken by the loss of their parents.).
427
GC art. 24 (The Parties to the conflict shall facilitate the reception of such children in a neutral country for the
duration of the conflict with the consent of the Protecting Power, if any, and under due safeguards for the
observance of the principles stated in the first paragraph.).
166
4.20.1.2 Identification for Children Under Twelve. The parties to the conflict
shall endeavor to arrange for all children under twelve to be identified by the wearing of identity
discs, or by some other means. 428 The age of twelve was chosen because it was considered that
children over twelve are generally capable of stating their own identity. 429
4.20.3 Protection for Children in Occupied Territory. Provisions of the GC address the
protection of children in occupied territory. 431
4.20.4 Protection for Children in the Context of Internment Under the GC. The GC
provides certain protections for children in the context of internment. Provisions of the GC
address:
o special playgrounds reserved for children and young people; 435 and
428
GC art. 24 (They shall, furthermore, endeavour to arrange for all children under twelve to be identified by the
wearing of identity discs, or by some other means.).
429
GC COMMENTARY 189 (It will be noticed that the age limit here is twelve, whereas in the first two paragraphs it
was fifteen years of age: this is in accordance with a recommendation made at the XVIIth International Red Cross
Conference in Stockholm, where it was considered that children over twelve were generally capable of stating their
own identity.).
430
Refer to 10.7.1 (Regulation of the Situation of Protected Persons, in Principle, by Provisions Applicable to
Aliens in Time of Peace).
431
Refer to 11.13 (Protection of Children in Occupied Territory).
432
Refer to 10.10.3 (Families Kept Together).
433
Refer to 10.16.2 (Education).
434
Refer to 10.13.1.2 (Additional Food for Certain Groups).
435
Refer to 10.16.3 (Opportunities for Physical Exercise, Sports, and Outdoor Games).
167
special agreements for the release, the repatriation, the return to places of residence, or
the accommodation in a neutral country of, among others, children, pregnant women, and
mothers with infants and young children. 436
4.20.5 Child Soldiers. Certain provisions of treaties and U.S. law seek to restrict the use
or recruitment of children in armed conflict. If children are nonetheless employed in armed
conflict, they generally are treated on the same basis as adults, although children may be subject
to special treatment in detention because of their age.
4.20.5.1 U.S. Offense of Recruiting or Using Child Soldiers. U.S. law makes it a
crime, under certain circumstances, to recruit, enlist, or conscript a person to serve in an armed
force or group, while such person is under 15 years of age. 438 U.S. law also makes it a crime to
use a person under 15 years of age to participate actively in hostilities. 439 These restrictions in
U.S. law are similar to provisions in treaties to which the United States is not a Party. 440
436
Refer to 10.9.6 (Agreements for the Release, Return, or Accommodation in a Neutral Country of Certain
Classes of Internees).
437
Refer to 17.10.2 (Children and Participation in Non-International Armed Conflict).
438
18 U.S.C. 2442(a) (making punishable, under certain circumstances, [w]hoever knowingly (1) recruits,
enlists, or conscripts a person to serve while such person is under 15 years of age in an armed force or group;
knowing such person is under 15 years of age).
439
18 U.S.C. 2442(a) (making punishable, under certain circumstances, [w]hoever knowingly (2) uses a
person under 15 years of age to participate actively in hostilities; knowing such person is under 15 years of age).
440
Consider AP I art. 77(2) (The Parties to the conflict shall take all feasible measures in order that children who
have not attained the age of fifteen years do not take a direct part in hostilities and, in particular, they shall refrain
from recruiting them into their armed forces. In recruiting among those persons who have attained the age of fifteen
years but who have not attained the age of eighteen years the Parties to the conflict shall endeavour to give priority
to those who are oldest.); Convention on the Rights of the Child, art. 38(2)-(3), Feb. 16, 1995, 1577 UNTS 3, 56
(providing that States Parties shall take all feasible measures to ensure that persons who have not attained the age
of fifteen years do not take a direct part in hostilities and that States Parties shall refrain from recruiting any
person who has not attained the age of fifteen years into their armed forces); ROME STATUTE art. 8(2)(b)(xxvi)
(defining war crime to include [c]onscripting or enlisting children under the age of fifteen years into the national
armed forces or using them to participate actively in hostilities in international armed conflict).
441
2201 UNTS 311 (RATIFICATION (WITH DECLARATION AND UNDERSTANDINGS) United States of America Deposit
of instrument with the Secretary-General of the United Nations: 23 December 2002).
442
Optional Protocol to the Convention on the Rights of the Child on the Involvement of Children in Armed
Conflict, art. 1, May 25, 2000, 2173 UNTS 222, 237 (States Parties shall take all feasible measures to ensure that
members of their armed forces who have not attained the age of 18 years do not take a direct part in hostilities.).
168
made a statement of understanding regarding the meaning of the phrase direct part in hostilities
in the Child Soldiers Protocol. 443
As a Party to the Child Soldiers Protocol, the United States also has an obligation to
ensure that persons who have not attained the age of 18 years are not compulsorily recruited into
its armed forces. 444 In a declaration deposited pursuant to Article 3(2) of the Child Soldiers
Protocol, 445 the United States described its measures in place to comply with this obligation and
stated that the minimum age at which it permitted persons to be voluntarily recruited in the U.S.
Armed Forces is 17 years of age. 446
Children who have participated in hostilities or been associated with an armed force who
are detained might require additional consideration because of their age. For example, rules for
the additional provision for their education might be applicable. 447 Similarly, it might be
appropriate to take into account the age of a defendant in determining liability or punishment for
violations of the law of war.
443
See United States, Statement on Ratification of the Child Soldiers Protocol, Dec. 23, 2002, 2201 UNTS 311, 312
((2) The United States understands that, with respect to Article 1 of the Protocol - (B) the phrase direct part in
hostilities - (i) means immediate and actual action on the battlefield likely to cause harm to the enemy because there
is a direct causal relationship between the activity engaged in and the harm done to the enemy; and (ii) does not
mean indirect participation in hostilities, such as gathering and transmitting military information, transporting
weapons, munitions, or other supplies, or forward deployment;). This statement of understanding was intended to
address the usage of the phrase direct part in hostilities in the context of these treaty obligations relating to
limiting the participation of children in armed conflict, and the phrase direct part in hostilities may be interpreted
differently in other contexts, such as the circumstances in which civilians forfeit their protection from being made
the object of attack. Refer to 5.9 (Civilians Taking a Direct Part in Hostilities).
444
Optional Protocol to the Convention on the Rights of the Child on the Involvement of Children in Armed
Conflict, art. 2, May 25, 2000, 2173 UNTS 222, 237 (States Parties shall ensure that persons who have not attained
the age of 18 years are not compulsorily recruited into their armed forces.).
445
Optional Protocol to the Convention on the Rights of the Child on the Involvement of Children in Armed
Conflict, art. 3(2), May 25, 2000, 2173 UNTS 222, 237 (Each State Party shall deposit a binding declaration upon
ratification of or accession to this Protocol that sets forth the minimum age at which it will permit voluntary
recruitment into its national armed forces and a description of the safeguards that it has adopted to ensure that such
recruitment is not forced or coerced.).
446
United States, Statement on Ratification of the Child Soldiers Protocol, Dec. 23, 2002, 2201 UNTS 311 ((A) the
minimum age at which the United States permits voluntary recruitment into the Armed Forces of the United States is
17 years of age; (B) The United States has established safeguards to ensure that such recruitment is not forced or
coerced, including a requirement in section 505 (a) of title 10, United States Code, that no person under 18 years of
age may be originally enlisted in the Armed Forces of the United States without the written consent of the persons
parent or guardian, if the parent or guardian is entitled to the persons custody and control; (C) each person recruited
into the Armed Forces of the United States receives a comprehensive briefing and must sign an enlistment contract
that, taken together, specify the duties involved in military service; and (D) all persons recruited into the Armed
Forces of the United States must provide reliable proof of age before their entry into military service.).
447
Refer to 9.16.2 (Education); 10.16.2 (Education).
169
4.21 MERCENARIES
The act of being a mercenary is not a crime in customary international law nor in any
treaty to which the United States is a Party. 448 Under the customary law of war and the GPW,
mercenaries receive the rights, duties, and liabilities of combatant status on the same basis as
other persons. For example, being a mercenary or paid for participating in hostilities does not
deprive a person of POW status, if that person otherwise meets the requirements for POW status,
such as by being a member of a militia that is part of the armed forces of a State. 449 Mercenaries
must comply with the law of war and may be tried and punished for violations of the law of war
on the same basis as other persons. States that employ mercenaries are responsible for their
conduct, including their compliance with the law of war.
Mercenaries are often nationals of States that are not parties to a conflict. In general, a
national of a neutral State who, during an international armed conflict, commits hostile acts
against a State or who voluntarily enlists in the armed forces of one of the parties should not be
more severely treated by the State against whom he or she has abandoned his or her neutrality
than a national of the other belligerent State could be for the same act. 450
AP I denies mercenaries the right to be lawful combatants or POWs. 452 This provision
in AP I was adopted because certain States wanted to condemn mercenary groups that had
played a role in armed conflicts that had taken place in Sub-saharan Africa since 1960. 453
448
See Edward R. Cummings, Attorney-Adviser, Department of State, International Legal Rights of Captured
Mercenaries, Oct. 17, 1980, III CUMULATIVE DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 1981-
1988 3457 (The act of being a mercenary is not a crime under international law. An individual who is accused of
being a mercenary and who is captured during an armed conflict is entitled to the basic humanitarian protections of
the international law applicable in armed conflict, including those specified in the Geneva Convention Relative to
the Protection of Civilian Persons in Time of War (Aug. 12, 1949; TIAS No. 3365; 6 UST 3516). The specific
rights which such an individual would be entitled to vary depending on whether the conflict is an international
conflict or an internal one and, in the case of international armed conflicts, on whether the person is entitled to
prisoner-of-war status.).
449
Refer to 4.5 (Armed Forces of a State).
450
Refer to 15.6.2.1 (No More Severe Treatment Than Nationals of an Opposing Belligerent State).
451
See, e.g., The Position of the United States on Current Law of War Agreements: Remarks of Judge Abraham D.
Sofaer, Legal Adviser, United States Department of State, January 22, 1987, 2 AMERICAN UNIVERSITY JOURNAL OF
INTERNATIONAL LAW AND POLICY 460, 469 (1987) ([Article 47 of AP I] was included in the Protocol not for
humanitarian reasons, but purely to make the political point that mercenary activity in the Third World is
unwelcome. In doing so, this article disregards one of the fundamental principles of international humanitarian law
by defining the right to combatant status, at least in part, on the basis of the personal or political motivations of the
individual in question. This politicizing of the rules of warfare is contrary to Western interests and the interests of
humanitarian law itself.).
452
See AP I art. 47(1) (A mercenary shall not have the right to be a combatant or a prisoner of war.).
453
BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 269 (AP I art. 47, 2.2) (The condemnation and outlawing of mercenary
groups and individual mercenaries who had played a substantial (and often unsavoury) role in the armed conflicts
170
However, AP I defines mercenary very narrowly. 454 For example, any member of the armed
forces of a party to the conflict, or any member of the armed forces of any other State, who is
sent on official duty as a member of its armed forces, is not a mercenary as defined by AP I. 455
In addition, although, under AP I, mercenaries lack the right to be a combatant or a POW, Parties
to AP I may nonetheless decide as a matter of policy to treat enemy mercenaries as lawful
combatants or POWs.
Shortly after the adoption of AP I, the Convention for the Elimination of Mercenarism in
Africa was adopted, which uses the same definition of mercenary as AP I, 456 but creates greater
obligations for Parties to punish and repress mercenarism. 457 The United States is not a Party to
this treaty.
The International Convention against the Recruitment, Use, Financing and Training of
Mercenaries of December 4, 1989, defines mercenary slightly more broadly than AP I, applies
to both international and non-international armed conflicts, and defines various offenses related
which took place in Sub-saharan Africa since 1960 was a high priority goal of African delegations, which was
supported by other Third World delegations and by the Eastern European group.).
454
See AP I art. 47(2) (A mercenary is any person who: (a) Is specially recruited locally or abroad in order to fight
in an armed conflict; (b) Does, in fact, take a direct part in the hostilities; (c) Is motivated to take part in the
hostilities essentially by the desire for private gain and, in fact, is promised, by or on behalf of a Party to the conflict,
material compensation substantially in excess of that promised or paid to combatants of similar ranks and functions
in the armed forces of that Party; (d) Is neither a national of a Party to the conflict nor a resident of territory
controlled by a Party to the conflict; (e) Is not a member of the armed forces of a Party to the conflict; and (f) Has
not been sent by a State which is not a Party to the conflict on official duty as a member of its armed forces.).
455
Edward R. Cummings, Attorney-Adviser, Department of State, International Legal Rights of Captured
Mercenaries, Oct. 17, 1980, III CUMULATIVE DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 1981-
1988 3457, 3461 (This narrow definition of mercenaries in effect denies prisoner-of-war status to individuals who
fight strictly for private gain. It does not affect any individual who is a member of the states regular forces and
other legitimate combatants.).
456
See Organisation of African Unity Convention for the Elimination of Mercenarism in Africa, art. 1(1), Jul. 3,
1977, 1490 UNTS 89, 96 (A mercenary is any person who: a) Is specially recruited locally or abroad in order to
fight in an armed conflict; b) Does in fact take a direct part in the hostilities; c) Is motivated to take part in the
hostilities essentially by the desire for private gain and in fact is promised by or on behalf of a party to the conflict
material compensation; d) Is neither a national of a party to the conflict nor a resident of territory controlled by a
party to the conflict; e) Is not a member of the armed forces of a party to the conflict; and f) Is not sent by a State
other than a party to the conflict on official mission as a member of the armed forces of the said State.).
457
See Organisation of African Unity Convention for the Elimination of Mercenarism in Africa, art. 6, Jul. 3, 1977,
1490 UNTS 89, 97-98 (The contracting parties shall take all necessary measures to eradicate all mercenary
activities in Africa. To this end, each contracting State shall undertake to: a) Prevent its nationals or foreigners on
its territory from engaging in any of the acts mentioned in Article 1 of this Convention; b) Prevent entry into or
passage through its territory of any mercenary or any equipment destined for mercenary use; c) Prohibit on its
territory any activities by persons or organisations who use mercenaries against any African State member of the
Organization of African Unity or the people of Africa in their struggle for liberation; d) Communicate to the other
Member States of the Organization of African Unity either directly or through the Secretariat of the OAU any
information related to the activities of mercenaries as soon as it comes to its knowledge; e) Forbid on its territory the
recruitment, training, financing and equipment of mercenaries and any other form of activities likely to promote
mercenarism; f) Take all the necessary legislative and other measures to ensure the immediate entry into force of this
Convention.).
171
to the recruiting, use, financing, or training of mercenaries. 458 The United States is not a Party to
this treaty.
The United States has supported the principle that civilian civil defense organizations and
their personnel be respected and protected as civilians and be permitted to perform their civil
defense tasks except in cases of imperative military necessity. 460 However, a number of military
operational problems have been identified with respect to the system of protection for civil
defense established by AP I, and these provisions of AP I may be understood not to preclude an
attack on an otherwise lawful military objective. 461
In general, police officers receive the rights, duties, and liabilities of civilian status. 462
However, law enforcement agencies are in many respects similar to military forces. They are
authorized to use necessary force on behalf of the State, are generally distinguishable from
private citizens, and are often organized like military forces. In cases where States choose to use
police officers as part of the armed forces, they receive the rights, duties, and liabilities of
combatant status. 463
458
See International Convention against the Recruitment, Use, Financing and Training of Mercenaries, Dec. 4, 1989,
Annex to U.N. GENERAL ASSEMBLY RESOLUTION 44/34, U.N. Doc. A/RES/44/34 (Dec. 4, 1989).
459
AP I art. 61 (For the purposes of this Protocol: (a) Civil defence means the performance of some or all of the
undermentioned humanitarian tasks intended to protect the civilian population against the dangers, and to help it to
recover from the immediate effects, of hostilities or disasters and also to provide the conditions necessary for its
survival. These tasks are: (i) Warning; (ii) Evacuation; (iii) Management of shelters; (iv) Management of blackout
measures; (v) Rescue; (vi) Medical services, including first aid, and religious assistance; (vii) Fire-fighting; ).
460
Michael J. Matheson, Deputy Legal Adviser, Department of State, Remarks on the United States Position on the
Relation of Customary International Law to the 1977 Protocols Additional to the 1949 Geneva Conventions at the
Sixth Annual American Red Cross-Washington College of Law Conference on International Humanitarian Law
(Jan. 22, 1987), 2 AMERICAN UNIVERSITY JOURNAL OF INTERNATIONAL LAW AND POLICY 419, 427 (1987)
(Turning now to the field of civil defense, we support the principle that civilian civil defense organizations and
their personnel be respected and protected as civilians and be permitted to perform their civil defense tasks except in
cases of imperative military necessity. We also support the principle that in occupied territories, civilians receive
from the appropriate authorities, as practicable, the facilities necessary for the performance of their tasks. These
principles reflect, in general terms, many of the detailed provisions in articles 62 and 63.).
461
APPENDIX TO 1985 CJCS MEMO ON AP I 69-71 (In general, the system of protection for civil defense established
by the Protocol is well-meaning, but creates a number of military operational problems. The main practical
problems arise from the ambiguity of the definition of civil defense activities in Article 61. An attacking force
will often have difficulty deciding whether to respect the sign in a particular case. To lessen the risk of misuse of
this sign and avoid placing an unacceptable burden on proof of an attacking force, an understanding is proposed that
makes it clear that Articles 61-67 do not preclude an attack on an otherwise lawful military objective.).
462
Refer to 4.8 (Rights, Duties, and Liabilities of Civilians).
463
Refer to 4.4 (Rights, Duties, and Liabilities of Combatants).
172
4.23.1 Police as Civilians. In general, members of law enforcement agencies have
civilian status. 464 Furthermore, routine domestic law enforcement is part of the general
protection of the civilian population and does not constitute taking a direct part in hostilities
that would deprive police officers of their protection from being made the object of attack. 465
4.23.2 Police With a Military Role. Some States use police forces in a paramilitary
capacity or use military forces in a police role. Members of the armed forces engaged in police
roles are combatants.
The extent to which police officers are treated as combatants largely depends on whether
the State decides to use them in that capacity. States may decide to make law enforcement
agencies part of their armed forces. 466 Members of these law enforcement agencies, like other
members of those armed forces, receive combatant status by virtue of their membership in the
armed forces. 467 In addition, States may authorize members of the law enforcement agencies to
accompany their armed forces without incorporating them into their armed forces. These
persons have the legal status of persons authorized to accompany the armed forces. 468
4.23.3 Police in Non-International Armed Conflict. Police officers may play a larger role
in armed conflicts between States and insurgent or terrorist groups because in such conflicts the
State may treat all enemy persons participation in hostilities as criminal. 469
4.24 JOURNALISTS
In general, journalists are civilians. However, journalists may be members of the armed
forces, persons authorized to accompany the armed forces, or unprivileged belligerents.
4.24.1 Military Journalists. Members of the armed forces may serve as journalists or in
some other public affairs capacity. These persons have the same status as other members of the
armed forces. 470
464
Memorandum submitted in United States v. Shakur, 690 F. Supp. 1291 (S.D.N.Y. 1988), III CUMULATIVE
DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 1981-88 3436, 3450 (Members of the civilian police
force are not deemed to be legitimate objects of attack during international wars unless they are incorporated into the
armed forces. The status of police is generally that of civilians for purposes of the law of war.).
465
Refer to 5.9.3.2 (Examples of Acts Not Considered Taking a Direct in Hostilities).
466
For example, Belgium, Statement on Ratification of AP I, May 20, 1986, 1435 UNTS 367, 367-68 (Considering
paragraph 3 of article 43 (armed forces) and the special status of the Belgian gendarmerie, the Belgian Government
has decided to notify the High Contracting Parties about the following duties which are entrusted to the Belgian
gendarmerie during periods of armed conflict. It believes that this notification, in so far as is necessary, meets the
requirements of article 43 in respect of the gendarmerie. (a) The Belgian gendarmerie, which was established to
maintain order and enforce the law, is a public force which, under national legislation, constitutes one of the armed
forces and which therefore corresponds to the concept of armed forces of a party to a conflict within the meaning
of article 43 of Protocol I. Thus, in times of international armed conflict the members of the gendarmerie have
combatant status within the meaning of that Protocol.).
467
Refer to 4.5 (Armed Forces of a State).
468
Refer to 4.15 (Persons Authorized to Accompany the Armed Forces).
469
Refer to 17.4.1 (Ability of a State to Use Its Domestic Law Against Non-State Armed Groups).
173
4.24.2 Other Journalists. In general, independent journalists and other media
representatives are regarded as civilians; 471 i.e., journalism does not constitute taking a direct
part in hostilities such that such a person would be deprived of protection from being made the
object of attack. 472
4.24.3 General Rules for the Treatment of Civilian Journalists and Journalists Authorized
to Accompany the Armed Forces.
470
Refer to 4.4 (Rights, Duties, and Liabilities of Combatants).
471
See Hedges v. Obama, No. 12-3644, Reply Brief for Defendant-Appellant, 11 (2d Cir. Sept. 20, 2012) (As an
initial matter, it is an established law of war norm, which is reflected in Article 79 of Additional Protocol I to the
Geneva Conventions, that journalists are generally to be protected as civilians. Although the United States is not
a party to Additional Protocol I, it supports and respects this important principle.). Consider AP I art. 79
(MEASURES OF PROTECTION FOR JOURNALISTS. 1. Journalists engaged in dangerous professional missions in areas
of armed conflict shall be considered as civilians within the meaning of Article 50, paragraph 1. 2. They shall be
protected as such under the Conventions and this Protocol, provided that they take no action adversely affecting
their status as civilians, and without prejudice to the right of war correspondents accredited to the armed forces to
the status provided for in Article 4 A (4) of the Third Convention.).
472
Refer to 5.9.3.2 (Examples of Acts Not Considered Taking a Direct in Hostilities).
473
Refer to 4.15 (Persons Authorized to Accompany the Armed Forces).
474
See GPW art. 4A(4) (defining prisoners of war, in the sense of the present Convention to include [p]ersons
who accompany the armed forces without actually being members thereof, such as war correspondents,
provided that they have received authorization from the armed forces which they accompany, who have fallen into
the power of the enemy); HAGUE IV REG. art. 13 (Individuals who follow an army without directly belonging to it,
such as newspaper correspondents and reporters, who fall into the enemys hands and whom the latter thinks
expedient to detain, are entitled to be treated as prisoners of war, provided they are in possession of a certificate
from the military authorities of the army which they were accompanying.).
475
GPW art. 4A(4); AP I art. 79(2).
476
DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY FIELD MANUAL 46-1, Public Affairs Operations, 25-26 (May 30, 1997) (PAOs
should seek out those members of the media who are willing to spend extended periods of time with soldiers during
an operation, embedding them into the unit they cover. Embedding is the act of assigning a reporter to a unit as a
member of the unit. The reporter eats, sleeps, and moves with the unit. The reporter is authorized open access to all
sections of the unit and is not escorted by public affairs personnel. Rather, the unit is the reporters escort.).
477
Refer to 9.4.3 (Issue of Identification Cards to Persons Liable to Become POWs).
174
incidental to an enemy attack or from other dangers. 478 To minimize the risk that they will be
made the object of attack, journalists should seek to distinguish themselves from military forces.
Moreover, in some cases, the relaying of information (such as providing information of
immediate use in combat operations) could constitute taking a direct part in hostilities.479
Civilian journalists and journalists authorized to accompany the armed forces should not
participate in the fighting between the belligerents in this or other ways if they wish to retain
protection from being made the object of attack. 480 Like other civilians, civilian journalists who
engage in hostilities against a State may be punished by that State after a fair trial.
4.24.4 Journalists and Spying. Reporting on military operations can be very similar to
collecting intelligence or even spying. 481 A journalist who acts as a spy may be subject to
security measures and punished if captured. 482 To avoid being mistaken for spies, journalists
should act openly and with the permission of relevant authorities. Presenting identification
documents, such as the identification card issued to authorized war correspondents or other
appropriate identification, may help journalists avoid being mistaken as spies. 483
4.24.5 Security Precautions and Journalists. States may need to censor journalists work
or take other security measures so that journalists do not reveal sensitive information to the
enemy. Under the law of war, there is no special right for journalists to enter a States territory
without its consent or to access areas of military operations without the consent of the State
conducting those operations. 484
4.25.1 Appointment of Delegates of the Protecting Powers. The Protecting Powers may
appoint, apart from their diplomatic or consular staff, delegates from among their own nationals
or the nationals of other neutral Powers to carry out its duties under the GPW and the GC. 485
478
For example, Ernie Pyle Is Killed on Ie Island; Foe Fired when All Seemed Safe, THE NEW YORK TIMES, Apr.
19, 1945 (GUAM, April 18Ernie Pyle died today on Ie Island, just west of Okinawa, like so many of the
doughboys he had written about. The nationally known war correspondent was killed instantly by Japanese
machine-gun fire. The slight, graying newspaper man, chronicler of the average American soldiers daily round, in
and out of foxholes in many war theatres, had gone forward early this morning to observe the advance of a well-
known division of the Twenty-fourth Army Corps.). Refer to 4.15.2.3 (Increased Risk of Incidental Harm).
479
Refer to 5.9.3.1 (Examples of Taking a Direct Part in Hostilities).
480
Consider AP I art. 79 (Journalists engaged in dangerous professional missions in areas of armed conflict shall
be protected as civilians from attack provided that they take no action adversely affecting their status as civilians,).
481
Refer to 4.17.2 (Spies).
482
Refer to 4.19.3.3 (Necessary Security Measures); 4.19.4 (Unprivileged Belligerents Liability for
Participation in Hostilities).
483
Consider AP I art. 79(3) (journalists may obtain an identity card similar to the model in Annex II of this
Protocol. This card, which shall be issued by the government of the State of which the journalist is a national or in
whose territory he resides or in which the news medium employing him is located, shall attest to his status as a
journalist.).
484
Compare 4.26.2 (Consent of the Parties to the Conflict Concerned).
485
GPW art. 8 (For this purpose, the Protecting Powers may appoint, apart from their diplomatic or consular staff,
delegates from amongst their own nationals or the nationals of other neutral Powers.); GC art. 9 (same).
175
These delegates shall be subject to the approval of the Power with which they are to carry out
their duties. 486
4.25.2 Duties of the Representatives or Delegates of the Protecting Power. The parties to
the conflict shall facilitate to the greatest extent possible the task of the representatives or
delegates of the Protecting Powers. 487
The representatives or delegates of the Protecting Powers shall not in any case exceed
their mission under the 1949 Geneva Conventions. 488 They shall, in particular, take account of
the imperative necessities of security of the State wherein they carry out their duties. 489
The 1949 Geneva Conventions contemplate that the ICRC and other impartial
humanitarian organizations may, subject to the consent of the parties to the conflict concerned,
provide humanitarian aid and seek to ensure the protection of war victims in armed conflict. 491
In some cases, the ICRC or another impartial humanitarian organization may assume the
humanitarian functions performed by the Protecting Powers. 492
486
GPW art. 8 (The said delegates shall be subject to the approval of the Power with which they are to carry out
their duties.); GC art. 9 (same).
487
GPW art. 8 (The Parties to the conflict shall facilitate to the greatest extent possible the task of the
representatives or delegates of the Protecting Powers.); GC art. 9 (same).
488
GPW art. 8 (The representatives or delegates of the Protecting Powers shall not in any case exceed their mission
under the present Convention.); GC art. 9 (same).
489
GPW art. 8 (They shall, in particular, take account of the imperative necessities of security of the State wherein
they carry out their duties.); GC art. 9 (same).
490
GWS art. 8; GWS-SEA art. 8 (same). Refer to 9.33.1 (Access by Protecting Powers); 10.33.1 (Access by
Protecting Powers).
491
See, e.g., GWS art. 9 (The provisions of the present Convention constitute no obstacle to the humanitarian
activities which the International Committee of the Red Cross or any other impartial humanitarian organization may,
subject to the consent of the Parties to the conflict concerned, undertake for the protection and relief of persons
protected by the Convention); GWS-SEA art. 9 (same); GPW art. 9 (same); GC art. 10 (same).
492
Refer to 18.15.2 (Appointment of a Protecting Power).
176
impartiality distinguishes these humanitarian organizations from those with an allegiance to a
party to the conflict, such as national red cross societies. 493
4.26.2 Consent of the Parties to the Conflict Concerned. The activities of the ICRC or
other impartial humanitarian organizations in a States sovereign territory, or in the area of a
States military operations, are subject to the consent of that State. 494 The requirement of State
consent is based on the States sovereign right to control access to its territory and a belligerents
right to control access to its military operations or territory it occupies. 495 For example,
members of impartial humanitarian organizations, like other civilians, may be removed from the
vicinity of military objectives for their protection. 496
States may grant access on a case-by-case basis; access granted to one impartial
humanitarian organization does not constitute entitlement of access for other humanitarian
organizations. Impartial humanitarian organizations that have been granted access must also act
within the terms of this consent. 497 For comparison, the activities of the Protecting Power are
also subject to the consent of the affected States. 498
177
considerations may also limit access by impartial humanitarian organizations to military
operations. For example, the GPW obligates a Detaining Power to protect POWs from public
curiosity, which may entail limiting access to POWs by private organizations. 500
4.26.3 Special Status of the ICRC. The 1949 Geneva Conventions explicitly recognize
the special position of the ICRC among impartial humanitarian organizations. 502 Similarly,
Congress has specifically authorized and the President has designated the ICRC to be
extended the same privileges and immunities that are afforded to public international
organizations in which the United States participates. 503 The President has also recognized the
role of the ICRC in visiting individuals detained in armed conflict. 504 The United States has
relied on the ICRCs capacity, particularly in conflict situations, and has contributed
substantially to the ICRCs work. 505 The United States has maintained a very constructive
dialogue with the ICRC.
The ICRC does important work in visiting detainees, facilitating communication between
detainees and their families, organizing relief operations, and undertaking similar humanitarian
activities during armed conflicts. For example, the ICRC has performed the functions of a
500
Refer to 9.5.3 (Protection Against Insults and Public Curiosity).
501
Refer to 6.12.11 (Obligation to Seek to Protect Certain Groups From the Effects of Minefields, Mined Areas,
Mines, Booby-Traps, and Other Devices).
502
See, e.g., GPW art. 125 (The special position of the International Committee of the Red Cross in this field shall
be recognized and respected at all times.); GC art. 142 (same).
503
See 22 U.S.C. 288f-3 (The International Committee of the Red Cross, in view of its unique status as an
impartial humanitarian body named in the Geneva Conventions of 1949 and assisting in their implementation, shall
be considered to be an international organization for the purposes of this subchapter and may be extended the
provisions of this subchapter in the same manner, to the same extent, and subject to the same conditions, as such
provisions may be extended to a public international organization in which the United States participates pursuant to
any treaty or under the authority of any Act of Congress authorizing such participation or making an appropriation
for such participation.); Executive Order 12643, International Committee of the Red Cross, 53 FEDERAL REGISTER
24247 (Jun. 23, 1988) (I hereby extend to the International Committee of the Red Cross the privileges, exemptions,
and immunities provided by the International Organizations Immunities Act.).
504
Refer to 8.10.4 (ICRC Access to Detainees).
505
Gary Robbins, Charg dAffaires, Department of State, U.S. Mission to the Organization for Security and
Cooperation in Europe, Response to Ambassador Peter Maurer, President of the International Committee of the Red
Cross, Jan. 30, 2014 (We honor the work that the ICRC has done over the past 150 years. With its founding
principles of impartiality, neutrality, and independence, the ICRC is able to carry out crucial work where others
cannot. The United States values the ICRCs work and relies on its capacity, particularly in conflict situations. In
fiscal year 2013, the United States contributed more than $280 million to the ICRCs work, which reflects our
confidence in the organization. We look forward to supporting the ICRC in the future as we confront significant
humanitarian need around the globe.).
178
Protecting Power during armed conflict. 506 In addition, the ICRC has performed the functions of
the Central Information Agency for POWs and protected persons during international armed
conflict. 507 In order to facilitate access, the ICRC conducts its visits to detention facilities on a
confidential basis, a practice that DoD has sought to respect. 508
4.27.1 Identification Cards Used to Help Clarify Status. The 1949 Geneva Conventions
contemplate that identification cards will be used to help clarify the status of detainees in
international armed conflict. 510 Parties to the GPW must provide identity cards to persons under
their jurisdiction who are liable to become POWs. 511 Similarly, Parties to the GWS must
provide retained personnel with a special identity card that denotes their status. 512 Capturing
units should not take these identity cards from POWs or retained personnel. 513 In addition,
States should retain duplicate copies of identification cards that they issue. 514 In contemporary
506
Refer to 18.15.2.3 (Impartial Humanitarian Organizations Assuming Humanitarian Functions Performed by
Protecting Powers Under the 1949 Geneva Conventions).
507
Refer to 9.31.3 (Central POW Information Agency); 10.31.3 (Central Information Agency for Protected
Persons).
508
See, e.g., American Civil Liberties Union v. Department of Defense, 389 F. Supp. 2d 547, 554 (S.D.N.Y. 2005)
(noting that DoD policy requires confidential treatment of all ICRC communications). For discussion of the ICRC
practice of confidentiality, see Prosecutor v. Blagoje Simic et al., ICTY Trial Chamber, IT-95-9, Decision on the
Prosecution Motion Under Rule 73 for a Ruling Concerning the Testimony of a Witness, 45-74 (Jul. 27, 1999);
Prosecutor v. Blagoje Simic, et al., ICTY Trial Chamber, IT-95-9, Separate Opinion Of Judge David Hunt On
Prosecutors Motion For A Ruling Concerning The Testimony Of A Witness, 14-33 (Jul. 27, 1999).
509
Refer to 19.25 (2005 ICRC Study on Customary International Humanitarian Law); 5.9.1.2 (AP I, Article
51(3) Provision on Direct Participation in Hostilities).
510
See, e.g., GPW COMMENTARY 52 (If need be, any person to whom the provisions of Article 4 [of the GPW] are
applicable can prove his status by presenting the identity card provided for in Article 17.).
511
Refer to 9.4.3 (Issue of Identification Cards to Persons Liable to Become POWs).
512
Refer to 7.9.2 (Use of Identification Card to Help Establish Retained Personnel Status).
513
GPW art. 17 (The identity card shall be shown by the prisoner of war upon demand, but may in no case be taken
away from him.); GWS art. 40 (In no circumstances may the said personnel be deprived of their insignia or
identity cards nor of the right to wear the armlet. In case of loss, they shall be entitled to receive duplicates of the
cards and to have the insignia replaced.).
514
GWS art. 40 (Identity cards for military medical and religious personnel should be made out, if possible, at least
in duplicate, one copy being kept by the home country.); GPW art. 17 (Identity cards for prisoners of war [a]s far
as possible shall be issued in duplicate.).
179
practice, modern storage systems, such as computer databases, are used rather than storing
duplicates of the issued identification cards. 515
4.27.2 POW Protections for Certain Persons Until Status Has Been Determined.
Capturing personnel may be unable to establish a detainees status, including whether that person
is entitled to POW status under the GPW. For example, a detainee might have lost his or her
identity card or the detainee might be a deserter who does not wish to admit that he or she is a
member of enemy armed forces.
During international armed conflict, should any doubt arise as to whether persons, having
committed a belligerent act and having fallen into the hands of the enemy, belong to any of the
categories enumerated in Article 4 of the GPW, such persons shall enjoy the protection of the
GPW until such time as their status has been determined by a competent tribunal. 517
515
For example, DOD INSTRUCTION 1000.01, Identification (ID) Cards Required by the Geneva Conventions,
3(a)(3) (Apr. 16, 2012) (The duplicate ID card requirements of Article 17 of Reference (f), to facilitate
identification of POWs with the Prisoner of War Information Bureau as delineated in Article 122 of Reference (f),
are more adequately met by the information routinely maintained in the Defense Enrollment Eligibility Reporting
System (DEERS). Accordingly, duplicate ID cards will not be required.).
516
See, e.g., GPW COMMENTARY 64-65 (noting that States at the Diplomatic Conference of Geneva of 1949
considered that the capacity in which the person was serving should be a determining factor; the possession of a[n
identification] card is not therefore an indispensable condition of the right to be treated as a prisoner of war, but a
supplementary safeguard).
517
GPW art. 5 (Should any doubt arise as to whether persons, having committed a belligerent act and having fallen
into the hands of the enemy, belong to any of the categories enumerated in Article 4, such persons shall enjoy the
protection of the present Convention until such time as their status has been determined by a competent tribunal.).
Consider AP I art. 45(1) (A person who takes part in hostilities and falls into the power of an adverse Party shall be
presumed to be a prisoner of war, and therefore shall be protected by the Third Convention, if he claims the status of
prisoner of war, or if he appears to be entitled to such status, or if the Party on which he depends claims such status
on his behalf by notification to the detaining Power or to the Protecting Power. Should any doubt arise as to
whether any such person is entitled to the status of prisoner of war, he shall continue to have such status and,
therefore, to be protected by the Third Convention and this Protocol until such time as his status has been
determined by a competent tribunal.).
518
See, e.g., United States v. Lindh, 212 F. Supp. 2d 541, 557-58 (E.D. Va. 2002) (assessing whether a captured
Taliban fighter was entitled to POW status under GPW); United States v. Noriega, 808 F. Supp. 791, 794-96 (S.D.
Fla. 1992) (assessing whether a captured Panamanian General was entitled to POW Status under GPW); Stanislaus
Krofan & Anor. v. Public Prosecutor, (Singapore Federal Court, 1966), LEVIE, DOCUMENTS ON POWS 732-36
(assessing whether captured Indonesian saboteurs were entitled to POW status under GPW); The Military
Prosecutor v. Omar Mahmud Kassem and Others (Israeli Military Court, Ramallah, Apr. 13, 1969), LEVIE,
DOCUMENTS ON POWS 771-80 (assessing whether members of the Popular Front for the Liberation of Palestine
were entitled to POW status under GPW).
180
competent tribunal generally entails the Detaining Power convening an administrative
board. 519 The GPW affords the Detaining Power substantial discretion regarding the
composition and procedures of an Article 5 tribunal. 520
Article 5 only requires a tribunal if there is any doubt regarding a persons entitlement
to POW status or treatment. 521 For example, if there was no doubt that the armed group to which
a person belongs fails to qualify for POW status, then the GPW would not require a tribunal to
adjudicate the persons claim to POW status by virtue of membership in that group. 522
4.27.4 Tribunals to Assess Other Detainee Issues. By its terms, Article 5 of the GPW
only addresses a persons entitlement to POW status or treatment. However, an administrative
process may be appropriate to address status questions besides entitlement to POW status or
treatment, such as whether detainees are retained personnel or civilians. DoD practice has been
to use Article 5 tribunals or similar administrative tribunals to address those issues. 523 For
example, DoD used administrative tribunals to address a variety of detainee issues during
detention operations in Viet Nam, 524 Panama, 525 the Persian Gulf in 1991, 526 Iraq in 2003, 527
519
Denmark proposed the term competent tribunal instead of military tribunal because [t]he laws of the
Detaining Power may allow the settlement of this question by a civil court rather than by a military tribunal. II-B
FINAL RECORD OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 270.
520
For examples of the procedures of past U.S. tribunals, see, e.g., U.S. CENTRAL COMMAND REGULATION 27-13,
Captured Persons: Determination of Eligibility for Enemy Prisoner of War Status (Jan. 15, 1991); 1997 MULTI-
SERVICE DETENTION REGULATION 1-6.e.
521
Jay S. Bybee, Assistant Attorney General, Status of Taliban Forces Under Article 4 of the Third Geneva
Convention of 1949, Feb. 7, 2002, 26 OPINIONS OF THE OFFICE OF LEGAL COUNSEL 1, 9 (Under Article 5 of GPW,
[s]hould any doubt arise as to whether persons belong to any of the categories enumerated in Article 4, such
persons shall enjoy the protection of the present Convention until such time as their status has been determined by a
competent tribunal. As we understand it, DoD in the past has presumed prisoners to be entitled to POW status until
a tribunal determines otherwise. The presumption and tribunal requirement are triggered, however, only if there is
any doubt as to a prisoners Article 4 status.) (amendments in original).
522
Refer to 4.6.1.1 (GPW 4A(2) Conditions Required on a Group Basis).
523
See, e.g., 1997 MULTI-SERVICE DETENTION REGULATION 1-6.e.(10) (boards making determinations pursuant to
Article 5 of GPW may make, in addition to a determination that someone is an enemy prisoner of war, also
determinations that an individuals is retained personnel, an innocent civilian, or a civilian internee who for
reasons of operational security, or probable cause incident to criminal investigation, should be detained.).
524
In Viet Nam, the U.S. Army used panels of three officers assisted by a judge advocate advisor to assess the status
of detainees. See, e.g., U.S. MILITARY ASSISTANCE COMMAND VIETNAM DIRECTIVE 381-46, Military Intelligence:
Combined Screening of Detainees (Dec. 27, 1967); U.S. MILITARY ASSISTANCE COMMAND VIETNAM DIRECTIVE 20-
5, Prisoners of War -- Determination of Eligibility (Mar. 15, 1968); Fred K. Green, The Concept of War and the
Concept of Combatant in Modern Conflicts, 10 THE MILITARY LAW AND THE LAW OF WAR REVIEW 267, 285
(1971) (discussing detainee status classifications under Military Assistance Command Vietnam Directive 20-5).
525
See FRED BORCH, JUDGE ADVOCATES IN COMBAT 103-06 (2001) (describing detainee screening procedures in
1989-1990 Operation JUST CAUSE in Panama).
526
See FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 577-78 (describing article 5 tribunals during Operation DESERT
STORM).
527
See, e.g., CENTER FOR LAW AND MILITARY OPERATIONS, THE JUDGE ADVOCATE GENERALS LEGAL CENTER &
SCHOOL, U.S. ARMY, I LEGAL LESSONS LEARNED FROM AFGHANISTAN AND IRAQ: MAJOR COMBAT OPERATIONS
(11 SEPTEMBER 2001 - 1 MAY 2003) 41-47 (2004) (describing Article 5 tribunals conducted during Operation IRAQI
FREEDOM in 2003).
181
Afghanistan, 528 and Guantanamo. 529
528
See Al Maqaleh v. Gates, 604 F. Supp. 2d 205, 227 (D.D.C., 2009) (describing detainee review procedures in
Afghanistan); Detainee Review Procedures At Bagram Theater Internment, enclosed in Phillip Carter, Deputy
Assistant Secretary of Defense for Detainee Policy, Letter to Senator Carl Levin, Jul. 14, 2009 (describing modified
detainee review procedures in Afghanistan).
529
See, e.g., Executive Order 13567, Periodic Review of Individuals Detained at Guantanamo Bay Naval Station
Pursuant to the Authorization for Use of Military Force, 76 FEDERAL REGISTER 13277 (Mar. 7, 2011) (establishing
a process to review on a periodic basis the continued discretionary exercise of existing detention authority for certain
individuals detained at Guantanamo Bay, Cuba); Paul Wolfowitz, Deputy Secretary of Defense, Order Establishing
Combatant Status Review Tribunal, Jul. 7, 2004, as amended 2006 (establishing an administrative process to review
the detention of foreign nationals held as enemy combatants at Guantanamo Bay, Cuba).
182
V The Conduct of Hostilities
Chapter Contents
5.1 Introduction
5.2 Principles for the Conduct of Hostilities
5.3 Overview of Rules for the Protection of Civilians
5.4 Assessing Information Under the Law of War
5.5 Rules on Conducting Assaults, Bombardments, and Other Attacks
5.6 Discrimination in Conducting Attacks
5.7 Military Objectives
5.8 Combatants
5.9 Civilians Taking a Direct Part in Hostilities
5.10 Persons Placed Hors de Combat
5.11 Feasible Precautions in Conducting Attacks to Reduce the Risk of Harm to
Protected Persons and Objects
5.12 Proportionality in Conducting Attacks
5.13 Attacks on Facilities, Works, or Installations Containing Dangerous Forces
5.14 Feasible Precautions to Reduce the Risk of Harm to Protected Persons and
Objects by the Party Subject to Attack
5.15 Undefended Cities, Towns, and Villages
5.16 Prohibition on Using Protected Persons and Objects to Shield, Favor, or
Impede Military Operations
5.17 Seizure and Destruction of Enemy Property
5.18 Protection of Cultural Property During Hostilities
5.19 Sieges and Encircled Areas
5.20 Starvation
5.21 Overview of Good Faith, Perfidy, and Ruses
5.22 Treachery or Perfidy Used to Kill or Wound
5.23 Use of Enemy Flags, Insignia, and Military Uniforms
5.24 Improper Use of Certain Signs
5.25 Ruses of War and Other Lawful Deceptions
5.26 Non-Forcible Means and Methods of Warfare
5.27 Prohibition Against Compelling Enemy Nationals to Take Part in the
Operations of War Directed Against Their Own Country
5.1 INTRODUCTION
The right of States engaged in armed conflict to adopt means and methods of warfare is
not unlimited. 1 This Chapter addresses the law of war rules on the conduct of hostilities during
international armed conflict, such as the rules applicable to conducting attacks, the seizure and
destruction of enemy property, and deception.
1
Refer to 2.6.2.1 (Acceptance That Belligerent Rights Are Not Unlimited).
183
This Chapter, however, does not address all rules related to the conduct of hostilities. For
example, rules on weapons are addressed in Chapter VI. In addition, later chapters address the
rules and issues specific to the Naval (Chapter XIII), Air (Chapter XIV), Space (Chapter XIV),
and Cyber (Chapter XVI) domains, and Chapter XVIII addresses non-international armed
conflict.
Violations of the rules in the conduct of hostilities may be violations of criminal law,
although it is not a purpose of this Chapter to address liability under criminal law.
For example, an analysis of a method of warfare might consider the way in which an
artillery projectile may be employed, particularly where employment could have an adverse
effect on the civilian population. On the other hand, an analysis of the legality of the means of
warfare might consider the legality of the way in which the artillery projectile is designed to kill
or injure enemy combatants. 3
Although the terms means of warfare and methods of warfare lack an established,
specific meaning, in some cases, the phrase method of warfare may be a term of art in a legal
instrument that has been specifically interpreted by the United States. For example, the
Chemical Weapons Convention obligates Parties to undertake not to use riot control agents as a
method of warfare, and the United States has interpreted that prohibition not to include certain
uses of riot control agents. 4
5.1.2 Adherence to Law of War Obligations in the Conduct of Hostilities During Military
Operations. The law of war rules in the conduct of hostilities have been implemented during
military operations through rules of engagement and other military orders.
U.S. practice and the conduct of U.S. military operations often exceed the requirements
of the law of war. For example, military commanders often seek to reduce the risk of civilian
2
See, e.g., W. Hays Parks, Special Assistant to The Judge Advocate General of the Army for Law of War Matters,
Memorandum of Law: Travaux Preparatoires and Legal Analysis of Blinding Laser Weapons Protocol, reprinted in
THE ARMY LAWYER 33, 34-35 (Jun. 1997) (Method of warfare is one of two historic phrases in the law of war.
Although neither phrase has an agreed definition, means of warfare traditionally has been understood to refer to the
effect of weapons in their use against combatants, while method of warfare refers to the way weapons are used in a
broader sense.); ICRC AP COMMENTARY 621 (1957) (The term means of combat or means of warfare (cf.
Article 35 Basic rules) generally refers to the weapons being used, while the expression methods of combat
generally refers to the way in which such weapons are used.).
3
See W. Hays Parks, Special Assistant to The Judge Advocate General of the Army for Law of War Matters,
Memorandum of Law: Travaux Preparatoires and Legal Analysis of Blinding Laser Weapons Protocol, reprinted in
THE ARMY LAWYER 33, 35 (Jun. 1997) (Thus, means considers the legality of the way in which a projectile or its
fragments, for example, kill or injure combatants. As an illustration, Protocol I of the UNCCW makes the use of
fragments not detectable by X-ray a prohibited means of warfare. In contrast, method weighs the way in which
weapons may be employed, particularly where employment may have an adverse effect on civilians not taking a
direct part in the hostilities.).
4
Refer to 6.16.2 (Prohibition on Use of Riot Control Agents as a Method of Warfare).
184
casualties by taking additional precautions even when such measures are not required by the law
of war. Similarly, there are cases in which, for military or policy reasons, an attack is not
conducted, even though the attack would be legally permissible. 5
Although the law of war creates international obligations regarding the conduct of
hostilities that apply to the parties to a conflict, responsibility for implementing certain
international obligations would only apply to those persons belonging to the partys forces with
the domestic authority to make the decisions necessary to implement those obligations. 6 For
example, a pilot would be entitled to rely on the determination by headquarters that a given
target is, in fact, a military objective. 7
The principles that provide the foundation for the law of war are discussed in Chapter II,
and these principles apply to the conduct of hostilities. As noted in Chapter II, specific rules on
the conduct of hostilities are derived from, and must be interpreted consistent with, the basic
principles that underlie the law of war. 8 Moreover, where no specific rule applies, law of war
principles provide a general guide for conduct during war, including the conduct of hostilities. 9
The protection of civilians 10 against the harmful effects of hostilities is one of the main
purposes of the law of war. 11 Many of the rules for the protection of civilians are derived from
the principles of distinction and proportionality. 12 Specific rules for the protection of civilians
5
For example, FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 615 (Similar actions were taken by the Government of
Iraq to use cultural property to protect legitimate targets from attack; a classic example was the positioning of two
fighter aircraft adjacent to the ancient temple of Ur (as depicted in the photograph in Volume II, Chapter VI, Off
Limits Targets section) on the theory that Coalition respect for the protection of cultural property would preclude
the attack of those aircraft. While the law of war permits the attack of the two fighter aircraft, with Iraq bearing
responsibility for any damage to the temple, Commander-in-Chief, Central Command (CINCCENT) elected not to
attack the aircraft on the basis of respect for cultural property and the belief that positioning of the aircraft adjacent
to Ur (without servicing equipment or a runway nearby) effectively had placed each out of action, thereby limiting
the value of their destruction by Coalition air forces when weighed against the risk of damage to the temple. Other
cultural property similarly remained on the Coalition no-attack list, despite Iraqi placement of valuable military
equipment in or near those sites.).
6
Cf. United Kingdom, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Jan. 28, 1998, 2020 UNTS 75, 78 (The United Kingdom
understands that the obligation to comply with [art. 57] paragraph 2(b) only extends to those who have the authority
and practical possibility to cancel or suspend the attack.).
7
ICTY, Final Report to the Prosecutor by the Committee Established to Review the NATO Bombing Campaign
Against the Federal Republic of Yugoslavia, 84 (Jun. 13, 2000) (The building hit was clearly a civilian object and
not a legitimate military objective. It is the opinion of the committee that the aircrew involved in the attack
should not be assigned any responsibility for the fact they were given the wrong target .).
8
Refer to 2.1.2.1 (Law of War Principles as an Aid in Interpreting and Applying Law of War Rules).
9
Refer to 2.1.2.2 (Law of War Principles as a General Guide).
10
Refer to 4.8.1.5 (General Usage of Civilian in This Manual).
11
Refer to 1.3.4 (Purposes of the Law of War).
12
Refer to 2.5 (Distinction); 2.4 (Proportionality).
185
may be grouped into two categories: (1) essentially negative duties to respect civilians and to
refrain from directing military operations against them; (2) affirmative duties to take feasible
precautions to protect civilians and other protected persons and objects.
5.3.1 Responsibility of the Party Controlling Civilian Persons and Objects. The party
controlling civilians and civilian objects has the primary responsibility for the protection of
civilians and civilian objects. 13 The party controlling the civilian population generally has the
greater opportunity to minimize risk to civilians. 14 Civilians also may share in the responsibility
to take precautions for their own protection. 15
5.3.2 Essentially Negative Duties to Respect Civilians and to Refrain From Directing
Military Operations Against Them. In general, military operations must not be directed against
enemy civilians. 16 In particular:
13
See J. Fred Buzhardt, DoD General Counsel, Letter to Senator Edward Kennedy, Sept. 22, 1972, reprinted in 67
AJIL 122 (1973) (A summary of the laws of armed conflict, in the broadest terms, reveals certain general principles
including the following: (c). That a distinction must be made at all times between persons taking part in the
hostilities and members of the civilian population to the effect that the civilians be spared as much as possible.
The principle in (c) addresses primarily the Party exercising control over members of the civilian population.);
BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 284 (AP I art. 48, 2.2) (explaining that an important share of the
responsibility for implementing the principle of distinction rests on the Party which controls the civilian
population.); United States, Statement on Ratification of the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention, Mar. 13,
2009, 2575 UNTS 7, 8 (It is the understanding of the United States of America that, as is true for all civilian
objects, the primary responsibility for protection of cultural objects rests with the party controlling that property, to
ensure that it is properly identified and that it is not used for an unlawful purpose.).
14
FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 614 (In the effort to minimize collateral civilian casualties, a
substantial responsibility for protection of the civilian population rests with the party controlling the civilian
population. Historically, and from a common sense standpoint, the party controlling the civilian population has the
opportunity and the responsibility to minimize the risk to the civilian population through the separation of military
objects from the civilian population, evacuation of the civilian population from near immovable military objects, and
development of air raid precautions. Throughout World War II, for example, both Axis and Allied nations took each
of these steps to protect their respective civilian populations from the effects of military operations.).
15
U.S. Comments on the International Committee of the Red Crosss Memorandum on the Applicability of
International Humanitarian Law in the Gulf Region, Jan. 11, 1991, DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN
INTERNATIONAL LAW 1991-1999 2057, 2063 (The obligation of distinguishing combatants and military objectives
from civilians and civilian objects is a shared responsibility of the attacker, defender, and the civilian population as
such. An attacker must exercise reasonable precautions to minimize incidental or collateral injury to the civilian
population, consistent with mission accomplishment and allowable risk to the attacking force. A defender must
exercise reasonable precaution to separate the civilian population and civilian objects from military objectives.
Civilians must exercise reasonable precaution to remove themselves from the vicinity of military objectives or
military operations. The force that has control over the civilians has an obligation to place them in a safe place.);
Brigadier General George B. Davis, Working Memoranda (Confidential for the United States Delegates): The
Second Peace Conference (Paragraph 2 of Programme), The Rules of War on Land, 28 (1907) (It seems hardly
necessary to say, however, that if any defense is attempted or if a town is occupied or held by the armed forces of
the enemy, it ceases to be undefended and, for that reason, may be attacked or fired upon. The inhabitants of such a
place, so soon as a garrison is established or military defense is attempted, become charged with the knowledge that
the town is defended and, as such, liable to attack, and, if they desire to secure an immunity from acts of war, should
remove their families and belongings from the zone of active military operations.).
16
Consider AP I art. 48 (In order to ensure respect for and protection of the civilian population and civilian objects,
the Parties to the conflict shall at all times distinguish between the civilian population and combatants and between
186
Civilians must not be made the object of attack; 17
Military objectives may not be attacked when the expected incidental loss of life and
injury to civilians or damage to civilian objects would be excessive in relation to the
concrete and direct military advantage expected to be gained; 18
5.3.2.1 Non-Violent Measures That Are Militarily Necessary. The principle that
military operations must not be directed against civilians does not prohibit military operations
short of violence that are militarily necessary. For example, such operations may include:
stopping and searching civilians for weapons and to verify that they are civilians; 21
civilian objects and military objectives and accordingly shall direct their operations only against military
objectives.).
17
Refer to 5.6.2 (Persons, Objects, and Locations That Are Protected From Being Made the Object of Attack).
18
Refer to 5.12 (Proportionality in Conducting Attacks).
19
Refer to 5.16 (Prohibition on Using Protected Persons and Objects to Shield, Favor, or Impede Military
Operations).
20
Refer to 10.5.3.2 (Collective Penalties and Measures of Intimidation or Terrorism).
21
For example, 101st Airborne ROE Card, Iraq (2003), reprinted in CENTER FOR LAW AND MILITARY OPERATIONS,
THE JUDGE ADVOCATE GENERALS LEGAL CENTER & SCHOOL, U.S. ARMY, I LEGAL LESSONS LEARNED FROM
AFGHANISTAN AND IRAQ: MAJOR COMBAT OPERATIONS (11 SEPTEMBER 2001 - 1 MAY 2003) 315 (2004) (You may
stop civilians and check their identities, search for weapons and seize any found.). Compare 10.6.1 (General
Authority of a Belligerent to Search and Secure Protected Persons and Their Property).
22
For example, Detainee Review Procedures at Bagram Theater Internment Facility (BTIF), Afghanistan, enclosure
to Phillip Carter, Deputy Assistant Secretary of Defense for Detainee Policy, Letter to Chairman Carl Levin, Jul. 14,
2009 ((U) U.S. Forces operating under Operation Enduring Freedom (OEF) authority are authorized to detain
persons temporarily, consistent with the laws and customs of war (e.g., in self-defense or for force protection).);
Coalition Forces Land Component Command (CFLCC) Rules of Engagement (ROE) Card, Iraq (2003), reprinted in
CENTER FOR LAW AND MILITARY OPERATIONS, THE JUDGE ADVOCATE GENERALS LEGAL CENTER & SCHOOL, U.S.
ARMY, I LEGAL LESSONS LEARNED FROM AFGHANISTAN AND IRAQ: MAJOR COMBAT OPERATIONS (11 SEPTEMBER
2001 - 1 MAY 2003) 314 (2004) (Detain civilians if they interfere with mission accomplishment or if required for
self-defense.); 101st Airborne ROE Card, Iraq (2003), reprinted in CENTER FOR LAW AND MILITARY OPERATIONS,
THE JUDGE ADVOCATE GENERALS LEGAL CENTER & SCHOOL, U.S. ARMY, I LEGAL LESSONS LEARNED FROM
AFGHANISTAN AND IRAQ: MAJOR COMBAT OPERATIONS (11 SEPTEMBER 2001 - 1 MAY 2003) 315 (2004) (Detain
civilians when necessary to accomplish your mission or for their own safety.); CENTER FOR LAW AND MILITARY
OPERATIONS, THE JUDGE ADVOCATE GENERALS LEGAL CENTER & SCHOOL, U.S. ARMY, LAW AND MILITARY
OPERATIONS IN KOSOVO, 1999-2001: LESSONS LEARNED FOR JUDGE ADVOCATES 102-03 (2001) (Based on the
KFOR [Kosovo Force] guidance, Task Force Falcon instructed U.S. soldiers and Marines to detain persons who
187
collecting intelligence from civilians, including interrogating civilians; 23
restricting the movement of civilians or directing their movement away from military
operations for their own protection; 24 or
5.3.3 Affirmative Duties to Take Feasible Precautions for the Protection of Civilians and
Other Protected Persons and Objects. Parties to a conflict must take feasible precautions to
reduce the risk of harm to the civilian population and other protected persons and objects. 27
Feasible precautions to reduce the risk of harm to civilians and civilian objects must be taken
when planning and conducting attacks. 28 Feasible precautions should be taken to mitigate the
burden on civilians when seizing or destroying enemy property. 29 It is specifically provided that
committed criminal misconduct under a familiar standard, the Uniform Code of Military Justice (UCMJ). This was
the standard to be applied during each of the 1,300 patrols that U.S. soldiers conducted per week in Kosovo. If
soldiers or Marines witnessed an act that would be a crime under the UCMJ, they arrested the wrongdoer.
COMKFOR and the SRSG augmented crimes under the military code with mission-specific unauthorized acts, such
as weapons, uniform, and curfew violations. Soldiers were also authorized to detain local citizens who were
considered a threat to the military or to the overall mission.).
23
Refer to 5.26.2 (Information Gathering).
24
Refer to 5.14.2 (Removing Civilians and Civilian Objects From the Vicinity of Military Objectives).
25
Refer to 5.26.1.2 (Propaganda Generally Permissible).
26
Refer to 17.5.2.1 (Positioning Military Forces Near the Civilian Population to Win Their Support and to Protect
Them).
27
See, e.g., Michael J. Matheson, Deputy Legal Adviser, Department of State, Remarks on the United States
Position on the Relation of Customary International Law to the 1977 Protocols Additional to the 1949 Geneva
Conventions at the Sixth Annual American Red Cross-Washington College of Law Conference on International
Humanitarian Law (Jan. 22, 1987), 2 AMERICAN UNIVERSITY JOURNAL OF INTERNATIONAL LAW AND POLICY 419,
426-27 (1987) (We support the principle that all practicable precautions, taking into account military and
humanitarian considerations, be taken in the conduct of military operations to minimize incidental death, injury, and
damage to civilians and civilian objects, and that effective advance warning be given of attacks which may affect the
civilian population, unless circumstances do not permit.); U.N. GENERAL ASSEMBLY RESOLUTION 2675, Basic
Principles for the Protection of Civilian Populations in Armed Conflict, U.N. Doc. A/8028 (Dec. 9, 1970) (In the
conduct of military operations, every effort should be made to spare the civilian populations from the ravages of
war, and all necessary precautions should be taken to avoid injury, loss or damage to civilian populations.). Refer
to 5.18.4 (Other Feasible Precautions to Reduce the Risk of Harm to Cultural Property).
28
Refer to 5.11 (Feasible Precautions in Conducting Attacks to Reduce the Risk of Harm to Protected Persons and
Objects).
29
Refer to 5.17.5 (Feasible Precautions Should Be Taken to Mitigate the Burden on Civilians).
188
feasible precautions must be taken in connection with certain types of weapons. 30 Feasible
precautions to reduce the risk of harm to civilians must also be taken by the party subject to
attack. 31
5.3.3.2 What Precautions Are Feasible. The standard for what precautions must
be taken is one of due regard or diligence, not an absolute requirement to do everything
possible. 36 A wanton disregard for civilian casualties or harm to other protected persons and
objects is clearly prohibited. 37
30
Refer to 5.3.3.3 (Requirements to Take Precautions Regarding Specific Weapons).
31
Refer to 5.14 (Feasible Precautions to Reduce the Risk of Harm to Protected Persons and Objects by the Party
Subject to Attack).
32
Michael J. Matheson, Deputy Legal Adviser, Department of State, Remarks on the United States Position on the
Relation of Customary International Law to the 1977 Protocols Additional to the 1949 Geneva Conventions at the
Sixth Annual American Red Cross-Washington College of Law Conference on International Humanitarian Law
(Jan. 22, 1987), 2 AMERICAN UNIVERSITY JOURNAL OF INTERNATIONAL LAW AND POLICY 419, 426-27 (1987) (We
support the principle that all practicable precautions, taking into account military and humanitarian considerations,
be taken in the conduct of military operations to minimize incidental death, injury, and damage to civilians and
civilian objects, and that effective advance warning be given of attacks which may affect the civilian population,
unless circumstances do not permit.).
33
See, e.g., U.S. Comments on the International Committee of the Red Crosss Memorandum on the Applicability of
International Humanitarian Law in the Gulf Region, Jan. 11, 1991, DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN
INTERNATIONAL LAW 1991-1999 2057, 2063 (A defender must exercise reasonable precaution to separate the
civilian population and civilian objects from military objectives.); 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 41
(Those who plan or decide upon an attack, therefore, must take all reasonable steps to ensure not only that the
objectives are identified as military objectives or defended places within the meaning of the preceding paragraph but
also that these objectives may be attacked without probable losses in lives and damage to property disproportionate
to the military advantage anticipated.); Neville Chamberlain, Prime Minster, United Kingdom, Statement before the
House of Commons, Jun. 21, 1938, HANSARD, 337 HOUSE OF COMMONS DEBATES 937 ([R]easonable care must
be taken in attacking those military objectives so that by carelessness a civilian population in the neighbourhood is
not bombed.).
34
United States, Statement on Consent to Be Bound by the CCW Amended Mines Protocol, May 24, 1999, 2065
UNTS 128, 129 (The United States reserves the right to use other devices (as defined in Article 2(5) of the
Amended Mines Protocol) to destroy any stock of food or drink that is judged likely to be used by an enemy military
force, if due precautions are taken for the safety of the civilian population.).
35
U.N. GENERAL ASSEMBLY RESOLUTION 2675, Basic Principles for the Protection of Civilian Populations in
Armed Conflict, U.N. Doc. A/8028 (Dec. 9, 1970) (In the conduct of military operations, every effort should be
made to spare the civilian populations from the ravages of war, and all necessary precautions should be taken to
avoid injury, loss or damage to civilian populations.); HAGUE IX art. 5 (In bombardments by naval forces all the
necessary measures must be taken by the commander to spare as far as possible sacred edifices, buildings used for
artistic, scientific, or charitable purposes, historic monuments, hospitals, and places where the sick or wounded are
collected, on the understanding that they are not used at the same time for military purposes.).
36
See also Neville Chamberlain, Prime Minster, United Kingdom, Statement before the House of Commons, Jun. 21,
1938, HANSARD, 337 HOUSE OF COMMONS DEBATES 937-939 ([R]easonable care must be taken in attacking
189
Feasible precautions are those that are practicable or practically possible, taking into
account all circumstances ruling at the time, including humanitarian and military
considerations. 38 These circumstances may include:
whether taking the precaution poses a risk to ones own forces or presents other security
risks;
the likelihood and degree of humanitarian benefit from taking the precaution;
those military objectives so that by carelessness a civilian population in the neighbourhood is not bombed. I say
that reasonable care must be taken, in attacking military objectives, not to go outside those objectives, but it is
extremely difficult in practice to determine whether in fact the dropping of bombs which have killed civilians in the
neighbourhood of military objectives is the result of want of care or not. Suppose a man makes a bad shot, which is
not at all unlikely when machines are going at over 300 miles an hour and when, as I am informed, in taking aim
you have to release the bomb miles away from its objectiveit seems to me that it is extremely difficult to lay down
exactly the point at which reasonable care turns into unreasonable want of care.).
37
U.S. Comments on the International Committee of the Red Crosss Memorandum on the Applicability of
International Humanitarian Law in the Gulf Region, Jan. 11, 1991, DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN
INTERNATIONAL LAW 1991-1999 2057, 2064 (While it is difficult to weigh the possibility of collateral civilian
casualties on a target-by-target basis, minimization of collateral civilian casualties is a continuing responsibility at
all levels of the targeting process. Combat is a give-and-take between attacker and defender, and collateral civilian
casualties are likely to occur notwithstanding the best efforts of either party. What is prohibited is wanton disregard
for possible civilian casualties.).
38
See CCW PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS art. 1(5) (Feasible precautions are those precautions which
are practicable or practically possible taking into account all circumstances ruling at the time, including
humanitarian and military considerations.); CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 3(10) (Feasible precautions are
those precautions which are practicable or practically possible taking into account all circumstances ruling at the
time, including humanitarian and military considerations.); CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR
art. 5(1) (Feasible precautions are those precautions which are practicable or practicably possible, taking into
account all circumstances ruling at the time, including humanitarian and military considerations.). Cf. United
Kingdom, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Jan. 28, 1998, 2020 UNTS 75, 76 (The United Kingdom understands
the term feasible as used in the Protocol to mean that which is practicable or practically possible, taking into
account all circumstances ruling at the time, including humanitarian and military considerations.); Canada,
Statement on Ratification of AP I, Nov. 20, 1990, 1591 UNTS 462, 464 (It is the understanding of the Government
of Canada that, in relation to Articles 41, 56, 57, 58, 78 and 86 the [word] feasible means that which is practicable
or practically possible, taking into account all circumstances ruling at the time, including humanitarian and military
considerations.); Germany, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Feb. 14, 1991, 1607 UNTS 526, 529 (The Federal
Republic of Germany understands the word feasible in Articles 41, 56, 57, 58, 78 and 86 of Additional Protocol I
to mean that which is practicable or practically possible, taking into account all circumstances ruling at the time
including humanitarian and military considerations.); Netherlands, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Jun. 26, 1987,
1477 UNTS 300 (With regard to Article 41, paragraph 3, Article 56, paragraph 2, Article 57, paragraph 2, Article
58, Article 78, paragraph 1, and Article 86, paragraph 2 of Protocol I: It is the understanding of the Government of
the Kingdom of the Netherlands that the word feasible means that which is practicable or practically possible,
taking into account all circumstances ruling at the time, including humanitarian and military considerations.).
190
For example, if a commander determines that taking a precaution would result in
operational risk (i.e., a risk of failing to accomplish the mission) or an increased risk of harm to
their own forces, then the precaution would not be feasible and would not be required. 39
Since what precautions are feasible depends greatly on the context and other military
considerations, it would be inaccurate to conclude that specific precautions are required as a
general rule. For example, there is not a general requirement to use precision-guided
munitions.42 Nonetheless, military commanders must make reasonable efforts to reduce the risk
of harm to civilians and civilian objects.
incendiary weapons; 44
explosive ordnance. 46
39
U.S. Comments on the International Committee of the Red Crosss Memorandum on the Applicability of
International Humanitarian Law in the Gulf Region, Jan. 11, 1991, DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN
INTERNATIONAL LAW 1991-1999 2057, 2063 (Feasible precautions are reasonable precautions, consistent with
mission accomplishment and allowable risk to attacking forces. While collateral damage to civilian objects should
be minimized, consistent with the above, collateral damage to civilian objects should not be given the same level of
concern as incidental injury to civilians. Measures to minimize collateral damage to civilian objects should not
include steps that will place U.S. and allied lives at greater or unnecessary risk.).
40
Refer to 5.11.1 (Effective Advance Warning Before an Attack That May Affect the Civilian Population).
41
Refer to 5.14.4 (Using Distinctive and Visible Signs to Identify Protected Persons and Objects as Such).
42
Refer to 5.11.3 (Selecting Weapons (Weaponeering)).
43
Refer to 6.12.5.3 (Obligation to Take Feasible Precautions to Protect Civilians From the Effects of Mines,
Booby-Traps, and Other Devices).
44
Refer to 6.14.3 (Restrictions on the Use of Incendiary Weapons).
45
Refer to 6.15.2 (Feasible Precautions in the Employment of Laser Systems to Avoid the Incident of Permanent
Blindness).
46
Refer to 6.19.2 (Using Explosive Ordnance); 6.19.3 (Abandoning Explosive Ordnance).
191
5.3.3.4 AP I Obligation to Take Constant Care to Spare Civilians and Civilian
Objects. Parties to AP I have agreed that [i]n the conduct of military operations, constant care
shall be taken to spare the civilian population, civilians and civilian objects. 47 Although this
obligation is susceptible to a range of interpretations, Parties to AP I may also interpret it in a
manner that is consistent with the discussion in this section.
Commanders and other decision-makers must make decisions in good faith and based on
the information available to them. Even when information is imperfect or lacking (as will
frequently be the case during armed conflict), commanders and other decision-makers may direct
and conduct military operations, so long as they make a good faith assessment of the information
that is available to them at that time. 48
5.4.1 Law of War Rules Often Depend on Difficult Factual Assessments. Many of the
rules for the conduct of hostilities require determinations of fact that may be difficult to make.
5.4.2 Decisions Must Be Made in Good Faith and Based on Information Available at the
Time. Decisions by military commanders or other persons responsible for planning, authorizing,
47
AP I art. 57(1).
48
APPENDIX TO 1985 CJCS MEMO ON AP I 52 (Commanders and other military personnel who make decisions in
the fog of war must do so in good faith and on the basis of whatever information they have available at the time.
Such decisions will almost never be free of doubt, either subjective or objective.).
49
Refer to 1.4.2.2 (Nature of War Limited and Unreliable Information Fog of War).
50
Cf. Brown v. United States, 256 U.S. 335, 343 (1921) (Detached reflection cannot be demanded in the presence
of an uplifted knife. Therefore in this Court, at least, it is not a condition of immunity that one in that situation
should pause to consider whether a reasonable man might not think it possible to fly with safety or to disable his
assailant rather than to kill him.).
51
Refer to 5.25 (Ruses of War and Other Lawful Deceptions).
52
Refer to 1.4.1 (Object of War).
53
Korematsu v. United States, 323 U.S. 214, 244 (1944) (Jackson, J., dissenting) (The very essence of the military
job is to marshal physical force, to remove every obstacle to its effectiveness, to give it every strategic advantage.
Defense measures will not, and often should not, be held within the limits that bind civil authority in peace. No
court can require such a commander in such circumstances to act as a reasonable man; he may be unreasonably
cautious and exacting. Perhaps he should be.).
192
or executing military action must be made in good faith and based on their assessment of the
information available to them at the time. 54 A large number of States have recognized this
principle. 55 This principle has also been reflected in the decisions of courts assessing individual
responsibility under the law of war, which have declined to second-guess military decisions with
the benefit of hindsight. 56
The requirement that military commanders and other decision-makers make decisions in
good faith based on the information available to them recognizes that decisions may be made
when information is imperfect or lacking, which will often be the case during armed conflict.
54
See United States, Statement on Consent to Be Bound by CCW Protocol III on Incendiary Weapons, Jan. 21, 2009,
2562 UNTS 36, 37 ([A]ny decision by any military commander, military personnel, or any other person responsible
for planning, authorizing or executing military action shall only be judged on the basis of that persons assessment
of the information reasonably available to the person at the time the person planned, authorized, or executed the
action under review, and shall not be judged on the basis of information that comes to light after the action under
review was taken.).
55
See, e.g., Australia, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Jun. 21, 1991, 1642 UNTS 473 (In relation to Articles 51
to 58 inclusive it is the understanding of Australia that military commanders and others responsible for planning,
deciding upon, or executing attacks, necessarily have to reach their decisions on the basis of their assessment of the
information from all sources, which is available to them at the relevant time.); Austria, Statement on Ratification of
AP I, Feb. 13, 1983, 1289 UNTS 303 (Article 57, paragraph 2, of Protocol I shall be applied to the extent that, for
any decision taken by a military commander, the information actually available at the time of the decision is the
determining factor.); Canada, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Nov. 20, 1990, 1591 UNTS 462, 464 (It is the
understanding of the Government of Canada that, in relation to Articles 48, 51 to 60 inclusive, 62 and 67, military
commanders and others responsible for planning, deciding upon or executing attacks have to reach decisions on the
basis of their assessment of the information reasonably available to them at the relevant time and that such decisions
cannot be judged on the basis of information which has subsequently come to light.); Italy, Statement on
Ratification of AP I, Feb. 27, 1986, 1425 UNTS 438, 439 (In relation to Articles 51 to 58 inclusive, the Italian
Government understands that military commanders and others responsible for planning, deciding upon or executing
attacks necessarily have to reach decisions on the basis of their assessment of the information from all sources which
is available to them at the relevant time.); Netherlands, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Jun. 26, 1987, 1477
UNTS 300 (With regard to Articles 51 to 58 inclusive of Protocol I: It is the understanding of the Government of
the Kingdom of the Netherlands that military commanders and others responsible for planning, deciding upon or
executing attacks necessarily have to reach decisions on the basis of their assessment of the information from all
sources which is available to them at the relevant time;); Spain, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Apr. 21, 1989,
1537 UNTS 389, 392 (It is understood that decisions by military authorities or others with legal powers to plan or
carry out attacks which might affect civilian personnel goods or other effects, necessarily shall not be made on any
basis other than that of relevant information available at the time in question and obtained for that purpose.);
Switzerland, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Feb. 17, 1982, 1271 UNTS 409 (The provisions of article 57,
paragraph 2, create obligations only for battalion or group commanders and higher-echelon commanders. The
information available to the commanders at the time of the decision shall be the determining factor.); United
Kingdom, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Jan. 28, 1998, 2020 UNTS 75, 76 (Military commanders and others
responsible for planning, deciding upon, or executing attacks necessarily have to reach decisions on the basis of their
assessment of the information from all sources which is reasonably available to them at the relevant time.).
56
United States v. List, et al. (The Hostage Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 1295-96 (It
was with this situation confronting him that he [the defendant, Rendulic] carried out the scorched earth policy in
the Norwegian province of Finmark which provided the basis for this charge [of wanton destruction of property] of
the indictment. There is evidence in the record that there was no military necessity for this destruction and
devastation. An examination of the facts in restrospect can well sustain this conclusion. But we are obliged to judge
the situation as it appeared to the defendant at the time. If the facts were such as would justify the action by the
exercise of judgment, after giving consideration to all the factors and existing possibilities, even though the
conclusion reached may have been faulty, it cannot be said to be criminal.).
193
5.5 RULES ON CONDUCTING ASSAULTS, BOMBARDMENTS, AND OTHER ATTACKS
Combatants may conduct assaults, bombardments, and other attacks, but a number of
rules apply to these operations.
5.5.1 Notes on Terminology Protection From Attack As Such, Being Made the
Object of Attack, Direct Attack, and Intentional Attack Versus Protection From
Incidental or Collateral Harm. A variety of formulations have been commonly used to
distinguish between: (1) the protection from being made the object of attack (i.e., the attack is
purposefully directed against that person or object) and (2) the protection from the incidental
effects of an attack (i.e., the object or person is not the object of the attack, but is collaterally
harmed by the attack).
These situations are treated quite differently under the law of war. 57 In the former case, it
is often said that protected persons and objects are protected as such, 58 from direct attack, 59
from intentional attack, 60 from attack directed exclusively against them, 61 or from being
made the object of attack. 62 Sometimes a combination of these formulations has been used.
In some cases, a text may not use any qualification (e.g., direct attack or as such,),
but is understood to refer only to the first category of protection. For example, Article 52 of AP
I provides that [a]ttacks shall be limited strictly to military objectives. 63 However, this article
has been understood to comprise only an obligation not to direct attacks against civilian objects
and not to address the question of incidental harm resulting from attacks directed against military
57
See, e.g., United States v. Ohlendorf, et al. (The Einsatzgruppen Case), IV TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE
THE NMT 411, 467 (A city is bombed for tactical purposes; communications are to be destroyed, railroads wrecked,
ammunition plants demolished, factories razed, all for the purpose of impeding the military. In these operations it
inevitably happens that nonmilitary persons are killed. This is an incident, a grave incident to be sure, but an
unavoidable corollary of battle action. The civilians are not individualized. The bomb falls, it is aimed at the
railroad yards, houses along the tracks are hit and many of their occupants killed. But that is entirely different, both
in fact and in law, from an armed force marching up to these same railroad tracks, entering those houses abutting
thereon, dragging out the men, women, and children and shooting them.).
58
See, e.g., 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 40a (Customary international law prohibits the launching of
attacks (including bombardment) against either the civilian population as such or individual civilians as such.)
(emphasis added).
59
2004 UK MANUAL 5.3.2 (A civilian is a non-combatant. He is protected from direct attack and is to be
protected against dangers arising from military operations.) (emphasis added).
60
Department of Defense, Report to the Senate and House Appropriations Committees regarding international
policies and procedures regarding the protection of natural and cultural resources during times of war, Jan. 19,
1993, reprinted as Appendix VIII in Patrick J. Boylan, Review of the Convention for the Protection of Cultural
Property in the Event of Armed Conflict (The Hague Convention of 1954) 201, 204 (1993) (Like any civilian
object, cultural property is protected from intentional attack so long as it is not used for military purposes, or to
shield military objectives from attack.).
61
See, e.g., 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 25 (However, it is a generally recognized rule of international
law that civilians must not be made the object of attack directed exclusively against them.) (emphasis added).
62
AP I art. 51(2) (The civilian population as such, as well as individual civilians, shall not be the object of attack.)
(emphasis added).
63
AP I art. 52(2).
194
objectives. 64
This manual generally uses the phrase object of attack to convey the idea that the attack
is being purposefully directed against that person or object.
This manual generally uses the term incidental harm to refer to the death or injury to
civilians, or the destruction of or damage to civilian objects, that is incidentally (but potentially
knowingly) caused as a collateral consequence of an attack directed against a military
objective. 65
Combatants may make military objectives the object of attack, but may not direct attacks
against civilians, civilian objects, or other protected persons and objects. 66
Combatants must refrain from attacks in which the expected loss of life or injury to
civilians, and damage to civilian objects incidental to the attack, would be excessive in
relation to the concrete and direct military advantage expected to be gained. 67
Combatants must take feasible precautions in conducting attacks to reduce the risk of
harm to civilians and other protected persons and objects. 68
In conducting attacks, combatants must assess in good faith the information that is
available to them. 69
64
See, e.g., United Kingdom, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Jan. 28, 1998, 2020 UNTS 75, 77 (The first
sentence of paragraph 2 prohibits only such attacks as may be directed against non-military objectives; it does not
deal with the question of collateral damage resulting from attacks directed against military objectives.); Canada,
Statement on Ratification of AP I, Nov. 20, 1990, 1591 UNTS 462, 465 (The first sentence of paragraph 2 of the
Article is not intended to, nor does it, deal with the question of incidental or collateral damage resulting from an
attack directed against a military objective.).
65
Refer to 5.12 (Proportionality in Conducting Attacks).
66
Refer to 5.6 (Discrimination in Conducting Attacks).
67
Refer to 5.12 (Proportionality in Conducting Attacks).
68
Refer to 5.11 (Feasible Precautions in Conducting Attacks to Reduce the Risk of Harm to Protected Persons and
Objects).
69
Refer to 5.5.3 (Assessing Information in Conducting Attacks).
70
Refer to 5.22 (Treachery or Perfidy Used to Kill or Wound).
71
Refer to 6.5.1 (Certain Types of Weapons With Specific Rules on Use).
195
5.5.3 Assessing Information in Conducting Attacks. Persons who plan, authorize, or
make other decisions in conducting attacks must make the judgments required by the law of war
in good faith and on the basis of information available to them at the time. 72 For example, a
commander must, on the basis of available information, determine in good faith that a target is a
military objective before authorizing an attack. Similarly, the expected incidental damage to
civilians or civilian objects must be assessed in good faith, given the information available to the
commander at the time.
In making the judgments that are required by the law of war rules governing attacks,
persons may rely on information obtained from other sources, including human intelligence or
other sources of information. 73 For example, in a long-distance attack, a commander may rely
on information obtained from aerial reconnaissance and intelligence units in determining
whether to conduct an attack. 74
72
Refer to 5.4 (Assessing Information Under the Law of War).
73
ICTY, Final Report to the Prosecutor by the Committee Established to Review the NATO Bombing Campaign
Against the Federal Republic of Yugoslavia, 84 (Jun. 13, 2000) (The building hit was clearly a civilian object and
not a legitimate military objective. It is the opinion of the committee that it is inappropriate to attempt to
assign criminal responsibility for the incident to senior leaders because they were provided with wrong information
by officials of another agency.).
74
ICRC AP COMMENTARY 681 (2195) (In the case of long-distance attacks, information will be obtained in
particular from aerial reconnaissance and from intelligence units, which will of course attempt to gather information
about enemy military objectives by various means.).
75
For example, The White House, Office of the Press Secretary, Fact Sheet: U.S. Policy Standards and Procedures
for the Use of Force in Counterterrorism Operations Outside the United States and Areas of Active Hostilities, May
23, 2013 (In counterterrorism operations, lethal force will be used outside areas of active hostilities only when the
following preconditions are met: Third, the following criteria must be met before lethal action may be taken: 1)
Near certainty that the terrorist target is present; 2) Near certainty that non-combatants will not be injured or
killed;); Coalition Forces Land Component Command (CFLCC) Rules of Engagement (ROE) Card, Iraq (2003),
reprinted in CENTER FOR LAW AND MILITARY OPERATIONS, THE JUDGE ADVOCATE GENERALS LEGAL CENTER &
SCHOOL, U.S. ARMY, I LEGAL LESSONS LEARNED FROM AFGHANISTAN AND IRAQ: MAJOR COMBAT OPERATIONS
(11 SEPTEMBER 2001 - 1 MAY 2003) 314 (2004) (1. On order, enemy military and paramilitary forces are declared
hostile and may be attacked subject to the following instructions: a. Positive Identification (PID) is required prior to
engagement. PID is a reasonable certainty that the proposed target is a legitimate military target. If no PID, contact
your next higher commander for decision.); FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 177 (Attack procedures
specified that if the pilot could not positively identify his target or was not confident the weapon would guide
properly (because of clouds, for example), he could not deliver that weapon. Several attack sorties were forced to
return with their bombs for this reason.); U.S. MILITARY ASSISTANCE COMMAND VIET-NAM DIRECTIVE 525-13,
Military Operations: Rules of Engagement for the Employment of Firepower in the Republic of Vietnam, 6a (May
1971), reprinted in 1975 DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 814, 815 (All possible
means will be employed to limit the risk to the lives and property of friendly forces and civilians. In this respect, a
target must be clearly identified as hostile prior to making a decision to place fire on it.) (All possible means will
be employed to limit the risk to the lives and property of friendly forces and civilians. In this respect, a target must
be clearly identified as hostile prior to making a decision to place fire on it.).
196
5.5.3.2 AP I Presumptions in Favor of Civilian Status in Conducting Attacks. In
the context of conducting attacks, certain provisions of AP I reflect a presumption in favor of
civilian status in cases of doubt. Article 52(3) of AP I provides that [i]n case of doubt whether
an object which is normally dedicated to civilian purposes, such as a place of worship, a house or
other dwelling or a school, is being used to make an effective contribution to military actions, it
shall be presumed not to be so used. 76 Article 50(1) of AP I provides that [i]n case of doubt
whether a person is a civilian, that person shall be considered to be a civilian.
Under customary international law, no legal presumption of civilian status exists for
persons or objects, nor is there any rule inhibiting commanders or other military personnel from
acting based on the information available to him or her in doubtful cases. 77 Attacks, however,
may not be directed against civilians or civilian objects based on merely hypothetical or
speculative considerations regarding their possible current status as a military objective. In
assessing whether a person or object that normally does not have any military purpose or use is a
military objective, commanders and other decision-makers must make the decision in good faith
based on the information available to them in light of the circumstances ruling at the time.
A legal presumption of civilian status in cases of doubt may demand a degree of certainty
that would not account for the realities of war. 78 Affording such a presumption could also
encourage a defender to ignore its obligation to separate military objectives from civilians and
civilian objects. 79 For example, unprivileged belligerents may seek to take advantage of a legal
presumption of civilian status. 80 Thus, there is concern that affording such a presumption likely
would increase the risk of harm to the civilian population and tend to undermine respect for the
law of war.
76
AP I art. 52(3). See also BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 326 (AP I art. 52, 2.5.1) (It should be noted
that the presumption applies only as to objects which normally do not have any significant military use or purpose.
The committee deleted from the illustrative list proposed by the ICRC in draft Art. 47, the phrase installations and
means of transport, thus indicating an intent by the Conference that the presumption should not apply to objects
which are of such a nature that their value to military action in combat situations is probable. Means of transport
and of communication fall into a category where their use for military purposes cannot be excluded through a
presumption.).
77
See, e.g., Christopher Greenwood, Customary international law and the First Geneva Protocol of 1977 in the Gulf
conflict, in PETER ROWE, THE GULF WAR 1990-91 IN INTERNATIONAL AND ENGLISH LAW 63, 75 (1993) ([I]t is very
doubtful that Article 52(3) represents customary international law.); BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 327
(AP I art. 52, 2.5.2) (quoting a Rapporteurs observation at the Diplomatic Conference that a presumption will be
a significant new addition to the law).
78
Refer to 1.4.2.2 (Nature of War Limited and Unreliable Information Fog of War).
79
See FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 616 (This language, which is not a codification of the customary
practice of nations, causes several things to occur that are contrary to the traditional law of war. It shifts the burden
for determining the precise use of an object from the party controlling that object (and therefore in possession of the
facts as to its use) to the party lacking such control and facts, i.e., from defender to attacker. This imbalance ignores
the realities of war in demanding a degree of certainty of an attacker that seldom exists in combat. It also
encourages a defender to ignore its obligation to separate the civilian population, individual civilians and civilian
objects from military objectives, as the Government of Iraq illustrated during the Persian Gulf War.).
80
See APPENDIX TO 1985 CJCS MEMO ON AP I 53 (rejecting the presumption of civilian status in AP I because
[t]his presumption also provides an additional protection for guerillas and other irregulars who may find it
advantageous to be presumed to be a civilian rather than a combatant.).
197
In applying its rules on doubt, some Parties to AP I have interpreted these rules in a
more limited way (e.g., applying a substantial doubt standard) than its text would suggest. 81
5.5.4 Failure by the Defender to Separate or Distinguish Does Not Relieve the Attacker
of the Duty to Discriminate in Conducting Attacks. A party that is subject to attack might fail to
take feasible precautions to reduce the risk of harm to civilians, such as by separating the civilian
population from military objectives. 82 Moreover, in some cases, a party to a conflict may
attempt to use the presence or movement of the civilian population or individual civilians in
order to shield military objectives from seizure or attack. 83
When enemy persons engage in such behavior, commanders should continue to seek to
discriminate in conducting attacks and to take feasible precautions to reduce the risk of harm to
the civilian population and civilian objects. 84 However, the ability to discriminate and to reduce
the risk of harm to the civilian population likely will be diminished by such enemy conduct. In
addition, such conduct by the adversary does not increase the legal obligations of the attacking
party to discriminate in conducting attacks against the enemy. 85
81
See, e.g., 2004 UK MANUAL 5.3.4 (In the practical application of the principle of civilian immunity and the rule
of doubt, (a) commanders and others responsible for planning, deciding upon, or executing attacks necessarily have
to reach decisions on the basis of their assessment of the information from all sources which is available to them at
the relevant time, (b) it is only in cases of substantial doubt, after this assessment about the status of the individual in
question, that the latter should be given the benefit of the doubt and treated as a civilian, and (c) the rule of doubt
does not override the commanders duty to protect the safety of troops under his command or to preserve the
military situation.).
82
Refer to 5.14 (Feasible Precautions to Reduce the Risk of Harm to Protected Persons and Objects by the Party
Subject to Attack).
83
Refer to 5.16 (Prohibition on Using Protected Persons and Objects to Shield, Favor, or Impede Military
Operations).
84
See FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 615 (As correctly stated in Article 51(8) of Protocol I, a nation
confronted with callous actions by its opponent (such as the use of human shields) is not released from its
obligation to exercise reasonable precaution to minimize collateral injury to the civilian population or damage to
civilian objects. This obligation was recognized by Coalition forces in the conduct of their operations.).
85
See W. Hays Parks, Air War and the Law of War, 32 AIR FORCE LAW REVIEW 1, 163 (1990) (While an attacker
facing a target shielded from attack by civilians is not relieved from his duty to exercise reasonable precautions to
minimize the loss of civilian life, neither is he obligated to assume any additional responsibility as a result of the
illegal acts of the defender. Were an attacker to do so, his erroneous assumption of additional responsibility with
regard to protecting the civilians shielding a lawful target would serve as an incentive for a defender to continue to
violate the law of war by exposing other innocent civilians to similar risk.).
86
Refer to 15.3.1.2 (Inviolability of Neutral Territory - Prohibition on Hostile Acts or Other Violations of
Neutrality).
87
Refer to 5.14.3 (Establishing Areas Where Civilians or the Wounded and Sick Are Protected).
198
Attacks on military objectives in the enemy rear or diversionary attacks away from the
current theaters or zones of active military operations are lawful. 88 The law of war does not
require that attacks on enemy military personnel or objectives be conducted near ongoing
fighting, in a theater of active military operations, or in a theater of active armed conflict. 89
There are many examples of lawful attacks taking place far from where the fighting was
previously taking place. 90
5.5.6 Force That May Be Applied Against Military Objectives. In the absence of
expected harm to civilians and civilian objects or of wanton destruction that is not justified by
military necessity, the law of war imposes no limit on the degree of force that may be directed
against enemy military objectives, including enemy military personnel (but not including enemy
personnel who are placed hors de combat). 91 For example, the principle of military necessity
does not require that only the minimum force that is actually necessary in a specific situation
88
Refer to 5.7.7.3 (Definite Military Advantage).
89
John O. Brennan, Assistant to the President for Homeland Security and Counterterrorism, Speech at the Wilson
Center: The Ethics and Efficacy of the Presidents Counterterrorism Strategy, Apr. 30, 2012, 2012 DIGEST OF
UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 584, 585 (There is nothing in international law that prohibits
us from using lethal force against our enemies outside of an active battlefield, at least when the country involved
consents or is unable or unwilling to take action against the threat.).
90
For example, John D. Negroponte, Letter dated 7 October 2001 from the Permanent Representative of the United
States of America to the United Nations addressed to the President of the Security Council, U.N. Doc. No.
S/2001/946 (Oct. 7, 2001) (informing the U.N. Security Council that the United States of America, together with
other States, has initiated actions in the exercise of its inherent right of individual and collective self-defence
following the armed attacks that were carried out against the United States on 11 September 2001 including U.S.
military operations against al-Qaida and the Taliban in Afghanistan); LOUIS MORTON, UNITED STATES ARMY IN
WORLD WAR II, THE WAR IN THE PACIFIC, STRATEGY AND COMMAND: THE FIRST TWO YEARS, 269-74 (1962)
(describing U.S. bombing raid led by Lt. Col. James H. Doolittle on April 18, 1942, against military objectives in
Tokyo).
91
See Refresher Course for Battalion and Brigade Commanders, 11, Appendix B in DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY
SUBJECT SCHEDULE 27-1, The Geneva Conventions of 1949 and Hague Convention No. IV of 1907, 16 (Aug. 29,
1975) (Nowhere in the law of war will you find a prohibition on shootingand shooting to killthe enemy in a
firefight. On the battlefield the regrettable but necessary reality is kill or be killed. Once the enemy has
surrendered, however, or otherwise fallen into your hands, there is no need to kill him.); J. Fred Buzhardt, DoD
General Counsel, Letter to Senator Edward Kennedy, Sept. 22, 1972, reprinted in 67 AJIL 122, 124 (1973) (I
would like to reiterate that it is recognized by all states that they may not lawfully use their weapons against civilian
population or civilians as such, but there is no rule of international law that restrains them from using weapons
against enemy armed forces or military targets. The correct rule of international law which has applied in the past
and continued to apply to the conduct of our military operations in Southeast Asia is that the loss of life and damage
to property must not be out of proportion to the military advantage to be gained.); ICRC AP COMMENTARY 620
(1953) (The armed forces and their installations are objectives that may be attacked wherever they are, except
when the attack could incidentally result in loss of human life among the civilian population, injuries to civilians,
and damage to civilian objects which would be excessive in relation to the expected direct and specific military
advantage.).
199
may be used against military objectives. 92 Instead, the broader imperatives of winning the war
may be considered, and overwhelming force may be used against enemy military objectives. 93
In particular, the following practices are not prohibited: (1) surprise attacks; (2) attacks
on retreating forces; (3) harassing fires; and (4) attacks on specific individuals.
5.5.6.1 Surprise Attacks. The law of war does not prohibit the use of surprise to
conduct attacks, such as the use of surprise in ambushes, sniper attacks, air raids, and attacks by
special operations forces carried out behind enemy lines. 95 There is no requirement that an
enemy combatant must be warned before being attacked. 96 Rather, warning requirements only
apply with respect to the civilian population. 97
92
Refer to 2.2.3.1 (Consideration of the Broader Imperatives of Winning the War).
93
See, e.g., 2007 NWP 1-14M 5.3.1 (It is important to note that the principle of military necessity does not
prohibit the application of overwhelming force against enemy combatants, units and material consistent with the
principles of distinction and proportionality.); AIR FORCE OPERATIONS & THE LAW 16 (2009) (The prohibition of
unnecessary suffering does not limit the bringing of overwhelming firepower on an opposing military force in order
to subdue or destroy it.).
94
See FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 629 (A combatant force involved in an armed conflict is not
obligated to offer its opponent an opportunity to surrender before carrying out an attack.).
95
For example, 1958 UK MANUAL 115 note 2 (It is not forbidden to send a detachment or individual members of
the armed forces to kill, by sudden attack, members or a member of the enemy armed forces. Thus, for instance, the
raid by a British commando party on the headquarters of General Rommels African Army at Beda Littoria in 1943
was not contrary to the provisions of the Hague Rules. The operation was carried out by military personnel in
uniform; it had as part of its objective the seizure of Rommels operational headquarters, including his own
residence, and the capture or killing of enemy personnel therein, .); SPAIGHT, WAR RIGHTS ON LAND 87-88 (A
surprise attack is a very different thing [from a treacherous one]. When a body of Federal cavalrymen made a
sudden descent on Hickory Hill farm, in which the young Confederate General, W. F. H. Lee (son of the great
commander, R. E. Lee), was convalescing from a wound, and carried him off as a prisoner of war to Fortress
Munroe, they were guilty of no treachery under the laws of war. It was a fair and open raid.).
96
See, e.g., W. Hays Parks, Special Assistant for Law of War Matters, Office of the Judge Advocate General, U.S.
Army, Memorandum re: Legality of Silencers/Suppressors 6 (Jun. 9, 1995) (There is no law of war requirement
that a combatant must be warned before he or she is subject to the application of lawful, lethal force. A landmine
provides no warning; neither does an ambush, a sniper, a machinegun in a concealed defensive position, a Claymore
munition in a defensive perimeter, a delayed action munition, a naval mine, or many other means or methods of
warfare. A sentry or personnel in a listening or observation post lawfully may be killed quietly, preferably through
surprise, by garrote or knife attack. A surface-to-air missile undetected by its targeted aircraft likewise kills by
surprise.); W. Hays Parks, Special Assistant for Law of War Matters, Memorandum of LawLegality of Snipers
(Sept. 29, 1992), reprinted in THE ARMY LAWYER 3 (Dec. 1992) (The element of surprise is a fundamental
principle of war, and does not make an otherwise legitimate act of violence unlawful.).
97
Refer to 5.11.1.2 (That May Affect the Civilian Population).
98
FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 632 (The law of war permits the attack of enemy combatants and
enemy equipment at any time, wherever located, whether advancing, retreating, or standing still. Retreat does not
prevent further attack. At the small-unit level, for example, once an objective has been seized and the position
200
the enemy force may recover to counterattack, consolidate a new defensive position, or assist the
war effort in other ways. 99 Retreat may also be a ruse. 100 Retreating enemy combatants may
have the same amount of force brought to bear upon them as an attacking military force, and a
military commander is under no obligation to limit force directed against enemy combatants
because they are, or appear to be, in retreat.
5.5.6.3 Harassing Fires. Harassing fires against enemy combatants are not
prohibited. (Such action is clearly distinguishable from attacks to terrorize or otherwise harm the
civilian population, which are, of course, prohibited.) Harassing fires are delivered on enemy
locations for the purpose of disturbing enemy forces rest, curtailing their movement, or lowering
their morale. 101
consolidated, an attacking force is trained to fire upon the retreating enemy to discourage or prevent a
counterattack.).
99
See FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 622 (It is recognized by military professionals that a retreating
force remains dangerous. The First Marine Division and its 4,000 attached U.S. Army forces and British Royal
Marines, in the famous 1950 march out of the Chosin Reservoir in North Korea, fighting outnumbered by a 4:1
margin, turned its retreat into a battle in which it defeated the 20th and 26th Chinese Armies trying to annihilate it,
.).
100
Refer to 5.25.2 (Examples of Ruses).
101
APPENDIX TO 1985 CJCS MEMO ON AP I 47 (Harassing fires are delivered on enemy locations for the purpose of
disturbing the rest, curtailing the movement, or lowering the morale of troops.).
102
See, e.g., Harold Hongju Koh, Legal Adviser, Department of State, Address at the Annual Meeting of the
American Society of International Law: The Obama Administration and International Law, Mar. 25, 2010, 2010
DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 718 (First, some have suggested that the very act of
targeting a particular leader of an enemy force in an armed conflict must violate the laws of war. But individuals
who are part of such an armed group are belligerents and, therefore, lawful targets under international law.
Indeed, targeting particular individuals serves to narrow the focus when force is employed and to avoid broader
harm to civilians and civilian objects.); 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 31 ([The prohibition on killing or
wounding treacherously reflected the Hague IV Regulations] does not, however, preclude attacks on individual
soldiers or officers of the enemy whether in the zone of hostilities, occupied territory, or elsewhere.).
103
For example, Barack Obama, Remarks by the President on Osama Bin Laden (May 2, 2011) (Today, at my
direction, the United States launched a targeted operation against that compound [suspected of housing Osama Bin
Laden] in Abbottabad, Pakistan. A small team of Americans carried out the operation with extraordinary courage
and capability. No Americans were harmed. They took care to avoid civilian casualties. After a firefight, they
killed Osama bin Laden and took custody of his body.); George W. Bush, Remarks on the Death of Senior Al
Qaeda Associate Abu Musab Al Zarqawi, Jun. 8, 2006, 2006-I PUBLIC PAPERS OF THE PRESIDENTS 1099 (describing
how after work[ing] tirelessly with their Iraqi counterparts to track down this brutal terrorist, U.S. special
operation forces, acting on tips and intelligence from Iraqis, confirmed Zarqawis location and killed him); JOHN
MILLER, CARTWHEEL: THE REDUCTION OF RABAUL 44 (Office of the Chief of Military History, Department of the
Army 1959) (American intelligence officers had discovered the exact time on 18 April [Admiral] Yamamoto[,
Commander-in-Chief of the Japanese Combined Fleet,] was due to reach the Buin area . [D]isposing of
Yamamoto would advance the Allied cause, so the Commander, Aircraft, Solomons, was told to shoot him down
[and did so successfully].); Henry Pinckney McCain, Adjutant General of the U.S. Army, Telegram to General
Frederick Funston (Mar. 10, 1916), reprinted in PAPERS RELATING TO THE FOREIGN RELATIONS OF THE UNITED
STATES WITH THE ADDRESS OF THE PRESIDENT TO CONGRESS DECEMBER 5, 1916 (Department of State 1925)
201
5.5.7 Prohibition Against Declaring That No Quarter Be Given. It is forbidden to declare
that no quarter will be given. 104 This means that it is prohibited to order that legitimate offers of
surrender will be refused or that detainees, such as unprivileged belligerents, will be summarily
executed. 105 Moreover, it is also prohibited to conduct hostilities on the basis that there shall be
no survivors, or to threaten the adversary with the denial of quarter. 106
This rule is based on both humanitarian and military considerations. 107 This rule also
applies during non-international armed conflict. 108
(relaying that the President has directed that an armed force be sent into Mexico with the sole object of capturing
[Pancho] Villa and preventing any further raids by his band).
104
HAGUE IV REG. art. 23(d) (noting that it is especially forbidden [t]o declare that no quarter will be given;).
Consider AP I art. 40 (It is prohibited to order that there shall be no survivors, to threaten an adversary therewith or
to conduct hostilities on this basis.).
105
ICRC AP COMMENTARY 476 (1595) ([A]ny order of liquidation is prohibited, whether it concerns
commandos, political or any other kind of commissars, irregular troops or so-called irregular troops, saboteurs,
parachutists, mercenaries or persons considered to be mercenaries, or other cases.).
106
ICRC AP COMMENTARY 476 (1595) (It is not only the order to put them to death that is prohibited, but also the
threat and the execution, with or without orders.).
107
BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 217 (AP I art. 40, 2.1) (A declaration or order that there shall be no
survivors, or that no prisoners shall be taken, tends to stiffen the adversarys will to resist and is therefore
counterproductive to the achievement of the legitimate objectives of a military operations. Moreover, it incites the
adversary to adopt a similar policy thus causing the conflict to degenerate into unrestrained savagery.).
108
Refer to 17.6.1 (Prohibition on Declaring That No Quarter Be Given).
109
See also ALLAN ROSAS, THE LEGAL STATUS OF PRISONERS OF WAR: A STUDY IN INTERNATIONAL
HUMANITARIAN LAW APPLICABLE IN ARMED CONFLICTS 351 (1976) (What such proposals and statements [made in
the context of the negotiations for the 1949 Geneva Conventions] do seem to imply, however, is that in areas where
enemy forces are present (notably in occupied territory) members of independent (or of regular) forces are not
allowed to appear as part of the peaceful civilian population (e.g., as peasants or workers) while occasionally
committing hostile acts against the enemy (the day-time civilian, night-time combatant -situation).).
110
Refer to 4.6.4 (Having a Fixed Distinctive Sign Recognizable at a Distance).
111
Refer to 5.22 (Treachery or Perfidy Used to Kill or Wound).
112
Refer to 5.23 (Use of Enemy Flags, Insignia, and Military Uniforms).
113
Refer to 4.17 (Spies, Saboteurs, and Other Persons Engaging in Similar Acts Behind Enemy Lines).
202
as a surprise attack by enemy forces, when military personnel are unable to dress in their
uniforms before resisting the enemys assault. 114
Military personnel not in uniform may resist an attack, so long as they are not wearing
the enemys uniform and do not kill or wound treacherously. 115 For example, military personnel
not in uniform who resist an attack, and who do not purposefully seek to conceal their status as
combatants, commit no violation of the law of war and remain entitled to the privileges of
combatant status. The normal wearing of uniforms or other distinctive emblems, however,
should resume as soon as practicable because such wear helps protect the civilian population
from erroneous attack by helping to distinguish military forces from the civilian population. 116
The AP I provision only partially describes the obligation under customary international
law of combatants to distinguish themselves from the civilian population. Under customary
international law, the obligation of combatants to distinguish themselves is a general obligation
that the armed forces have as a group and is not limited to times when they are engaged in an
attack or in a military operation preparatory to an attack. 118 Moreover, measures such as wearing
insignia or other distinctive emblems may be of less practical significance during an attack.
During an attack, combatants are likely to be distinguishable based on their activities more than
any insignia or devices they are wearing.
Under the principle of distinction, combatants may make enemy combatants and other
military objectives the object of attack, but may not make the civilian population and other
protected persons and objects the object of attack. 119
5.6.1 Persons, Objects, and Locations That Are Not Protected From Being Made the
Object of Attack. Combatants may make enemy combatants and other military objectives the
object of attack. 120
114
For example, SPAIGHT, AIR POWER AND WAR RIGHTS 101 (In the second world war, too, there were instances in
which pilots fought en dishabille. For example, in Kenya a pilot of the South African Air Force happened to be
wearing nothing but a singlet when Italian bombers approached, and so clad (or unclad) he dashed to his aircraft and
joined in the fight.).
115
Refer to 5.23 (Use of Enemy Flags, Insignia, and Military Uniforms); 5.22 (Treachery or Perfidy Used to Kill
or Wound).
116
Refer to 5.14.5 (Carrying Arms Openly and Wearing of Distinctive Emblems by the Armed Forces to
Distinguish Themselves From the Civilian Population).
117
AP I art. 44(3).
118
Refer to 4.6.1.1 (GPW 4A(2) Conditions Required on a Group Basis).
119
Refer to 2.5.2 (Discriminating in Conducting Attacks Against the Enemy).
203
5.6.2 Persons, Objects, and Locations That Are Protected From Being Made the Object of
Attack. Persons, objects, and locations that are not military objectives may not be made the
object of attack. In particular, the following persons and objects may not be made the object of
attack, unless that protection is specifically forfeited under the circumstances:
Persons, such as
o military medical and religious personnel, including military medical units; 122
Objects and locations, provided they are not military objectives, such as
o places of worship;
o hospital and safety zones, and persons and objects within these zones; 129 and
120
Refer to 5.7 (Military Objectives).
121
Refer to 4.8.2 (Civilians Conduct of Hostilities).
122
Refer to 4.10.1 (Military Medical and Religious Personnel - Conduct of Hostilities); 7.8 (Respect and
Protection of Categories of Medical and Religious Personnel); 7.10 (Military Medical Units and Facilities).
123
Refer to 5.10 (Persons Placed Hors de Combat).
124
Refer to 12.5.4 (Rights of Inviolability of the Parlementaire).
125
Refer to 7.10 (Military Medical Units and Facilities).
126
Refer to 5.18 (Protection of Cultural Property During Hostilities).
127
ROERICH PACT art. 1 (The historic monuments, museums, scientific, artistic, educational and cultural institutions
shall be considered as neutral and as such respected and protected by belligerents. The same respect and protection
shall be due to the personnel of the institutions mentioned above. The same respect and protection shall be accorded
to the historic monuments, museums, scientific, artistic, educational and cultural institutions in time of peace as well
as in war.).
128
Refer to 5.15 (Undefended Cities, Towns, and Villages).
129
Refer to 5.14.3.1 (Civilian Hospital and Safety Zones and Localities).
204
o neutralized zones, and persons and objects within neutralized zones. 130
Military objectives refers to persons and objects that may be made the object of attack.
Certain classes of persons and objects are categorically recognized as military objectives. Apart
from these classes that are categorically military objectives, other objects are assessed as to
whether they meet the definition of military objective.
5.7.1 Military Objective Notes on Terminology. The term military objective has been
used in various treaties as a term of art to mean a person or object that may lawfully be made the
object of attack. 131
Definitions of military objectives in treaties have defined the term military objective
insofar as objects (rather than persons) are concerned. 132 In addition, the treaty definitions have
been written with the purpose of explaining when objects that normally are civilian objects have
become military objectives under the circumstances.
This manual uses the term military objective to include persons who may be made the
object of attack. 133
130
Refer to 5.14.3.3 (Neutralized Zones).
131
See, e.g., CCW PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS art. 2(4) (referring to combatants or other military
objectives); 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 8(1) (referring to any important military
objective constituting a vulnerable point); GC art. 18 (In view of the dangers to which hospitals may be exposed
by being close to military objectives, it is recommended that such [civilian] hospitals be situated as far as possible
from such objectives.).
132
See CCW PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS art. 1(3) (Military objective means, so far as objects are
concerned, any object which .); CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 2(6) (Military objective means, so far
as objects are concerned, any object which .). Consider AP I art. 52(2) (Attacks shall be limited strictly to
military objectives. In so far as objects are concerned, military objectives are limited to those objects which .).
133
Refer to 5.7.2 (Persons Who Are Military Objectives).
134
Christopher Greenwood, Customary international law and the First Geneva Protocol of 1977 in the Gulf conflict,
in PETER ROWE, THE GULF WAR 1990-91 IN INTERNATIONAL AND ENGLISH LAW 63, 73 (1993) (If an object is a
military objective, it may be attacked (subject to the requirements of the principle of proportionality which are
discussed in the next section), while if it is a civilian object, it may not be attacked. There is no intermediate
category of dual use objects: either something is a military objective or it is not.).
205
objective, it is not a civilian object and may be made the object of attack. 135 However, it will be
appropriate to consider in a proportionality analysis the harm to the civilian population resulting
from the destruction of such a military objective. 136
5.7.2 Persons Who Are Military Objectives. Certain classes of persons are military
objectives and may be made the object of attack. 137 These classes of persons include:
combatants, such as military ground, air, and naval units, or unprivileged belligerents; 138
and
military medical and religious personnel, unless they commit acts harmful to the
enemy; 140
military medical units, unless they have forfeited their protected status; 141
parlementaires. 143
5.7.3 Objects That Are Military Objectives. Military objectives, insofar as objects are
concerned, include any object which by its nature, location, purpose or use makes an effective
contribution to military action and whose total or partial destruction, capture or neutralization, in
the circumstances ruling at the time, offers a definite military advantage. 144
135
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 2(7) (Civilian objects are all objects which are not military objectives
as defined in paragraph 6 of this Article.).
136
Refer to 5.12 (Proportionality in Conducting Attacks).
137
See CCW PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS art. 2(4) (referring to combatants or other military
objectives); ICRC AP COMMENTARY 635 (2017) (It should be noted that the definition [of military objective in
AP I] is limited to objects but it is clear that members of the armed forces are military objectives, .).
138
Refer to 5.8 (Combatants).
139
Refer to 5.9 (Civilians Taking a Direct Part in Hostilities).
140
Refer to 7.8.3 (Loss of Protection for Medical and Religious Personnel From Being Made the Object of Attack).
141
Refer to 7.10.3 (Loss of Protection of Military Medical Units and Facilities From Being Made the Object of
Attack).
142
Refer to 5.10 (Persons Placed Hors de Combat).
143
Refer to 12.5.4 (Rights of Inviolability of the Parlementaire).
144
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 2(6). See also CCW PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS art. 1(3)
(same); 10 U.S.C. 950p(a)(1) (The term military objective means combatants and those objects during
hostilities which, by their nature, location, purpose, or use, effectively contribute to the war-fighting or war-
sustaining capability of an opposing force and whose total or partial destruction, capture, or neutralization would
206
This definition of military objective may be viewed as a way of evaluating whether
military necessity exists to attack an object. 145 It may also be applied outside the context of
conducting attacks to assess whether the seizure or destruction of an object is justified by
military necessity. 146
5.7.4 Objects Categorically Recognized as Military Objectives. Two types of objects are
categorically recognized as military objectives. In other words, the definition of military
objective is always considered to be met as a matter of law with regard to these objects. Thus,
these objects may be made the object of attack without specifically applying the analysis
discussed in 5.7.5 (Definition of Military Objective for Objects: A Two-Part Test).
5.7.4.1 Military Equipment and Bases. First, certain objects belonging to the
armed forces and used in military operations are recognized as military objectives. 147 This
includes:
Military ground, air, and naval equipment (other than identifiable medical equipment or
transport), 148 including vehicles, ships, weapons, munitions, and supplies, such as
Military bases, such as army, air, and naval bases (other than military medical facilities,
POW camps, and civilian internee camps), whether used for training, billeting, or staging,
or offensive or defensive purposes, such as
constitute a definite military advantage to the attacker under the circumstances at the time of an attack.). Consider
AP I art. 52(2) (In so far as objects are concerned, military objectives are limited to those objects which by their
nature, location, purpose or use make an effective contribution to military action and whose total or partial
destruction, capture or neutralization, in the circumstances ruling at the time, offers a definite military advantage.).
145
Refer to 2.2 (Military Necessity).
146
Refer to 5.17 (Seizure and Destruction of Enemy Property); 5.17.2.1 (Using the Military Objective Definition
to Assess Whether the Seizure or Destruction of Enemy Property Is Justified by Military Necessity).
147
2004 UK MANUAL 5.4.1 (The term military objective includes combatant members of the enemy armed
forces and their military weapons, vehicles, equipment, and installations.); 2006 AUSTRALIAN MANUAL 5.27
(The term military objective includes combatant members of the enemy armed forces and their military weapons,
vehicles, equipment and installations.); 2001 CANADIAN MANUAL 407(1) (The following are generally accepted
as being military objectives: a. military bases, warehouses, petroleum storage areas, ports and airfields; and b.
military aircraft, weapons, ammunition, buildings and objects that provide administrative and logistical support for
military operations.).
148
For devices to facilitate identification of military medical units, transport, and equipment, refer to 7.15 (Display
of the Distinctive Emblem to Facilitate Identification).
207
o intelligence facilities.
o nuclear, biological, and chemical weapons research and production facilities; and
5.7.5 Definition of Military Objective for Objects: A Two-Part Test. The definition of
military objective insofar as objects are concerned may be divided into two parts, both of which
must be met for the object to be considered a military objective: (1) that the object somehow
makes an effective contribution to military action; and (2) attacking the object, in the
circumstances, offers a definite military advantage. 151
Generally, the reason why the object meets the first part of the definition also satisfies the
second part of the definition. In other words, attacking the object in the circumstances will offer
a definite military advantage because it seeks to preclude the object from effectively contributing
to the enemys military action. However, the two parts are not necessarily connected because the
concept of definite military advantage is broader than simply denying the adversary the benefit
of an objects effective contribution to its military operations. 152 These broader aspects of
military advantage may also be relevant in evaluating an attack under the proportionality
rule. 153
149
ROGERS, LAW ON THE BATTLEFIELD 36 (A civilian object which contains military personnel or things of military
significance is considered a military objective.); 2001 CANADIAN MANUAL 407(2) (Civilian vessels, aircraft,
vehicles and buildings are military objectives if they contain combatants, military equipment or supplies.). Cf.
CCW PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS art. 2(4) (plants used to cover, conceal, or camouflage combatants
or other military objectives, may be attacked with incendiary weapons).
150
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 40 (giving as examples of legitimate objects of attack a place which is
occupied by a combatant military force or through which such a force is passing, as well as [f]actories producing
munitions and military supplies, military camps, warehouses storing munitions and military supplies, ports and
railroads being used for the transportation of military supplies, and other places devoted to the support of military
operations or the accommodation of troops); ICRC AP COMMENTARY 701 (2265) (If combat is taking place
within a city or a town, and there is fighting from house to house, which is frequently the case, it is clear that the
situation becomes very different and that any building sheltering combatants becomes a military objective.).
151
ICRC AP COMMENTARY 635 (2018) (The definition comprises two elements: a) the nature, location, purpose
or use which makes an effective contribution to military action; b) the total or partial destruction, capture or
neutralization which in the circumstances ruling at the time offers a definite military advantage. Whenever these
two elements are simultaneously present, there is a military objective in the sense of the Protocol.).
152
Refer to 5.7.7.3 (Definite Military Advantage).
153
Refer to 5.12.5 (Concrete and Direct Military Advantage Expected to Be Gained).
208
5.7.6 By its nature, location, purpose, or use makes an effective contribution to military
action. The first part of the test is whether the object, by its nature, location, purpose, or use
makes an effective contribution to the enemys military action.
5.7.6.1 Nature, Location, Purpose, or Use. The nature, location, purpose, or use
of the object may contribute to the object making an effective contribution to the enemys
military action. The issue is whether, in total, an effective contribution is made; one factor alone
need not provide the effective contribution. In addition, nature, location, purpose, or use need
not be viewed as mutually exclusive concepts; rather, these concepts may be understood to
overlap.
Nature refers to the type of object and may be understood to refer to objects that are
per se military objectives. For example, military equipment and facilities, by their nature, make
an effective contribution to military action. 154 On the other hand, nature can also be
understood to refer to objects that may be used for military purposes as discussed below.
The location of an object may provide an effective contribution to military action. For
example, during military operations in urban areas, a house or other structure that would
ordinarily be a civilian object may be located such that it provides cover to enemy forces or
would provide a vantage point from which attacks could be launched or directed. The word
location also helps clarify that an area of land can be militarily important and therefore a
military objective. 155
Use refers to the objects present function. For example, using an otherwise civilian
building to billet combatant forces makes the building a military objective. 156 Similarly, using
equipment and facilities for military purposes, such as using them as a command and control
center or a communications station, would result in such objects providing an effective
contribution to the enemys military action.
Purpose means the intended or possible use in the future. 157 For example, runways at a
civilian airport could qualify as military objectives because they may be subject to immediate
military use in the event that runways at military air bases have been rendered unserviceable or
inoperable. 158 Similarly, the possibility that bridges or tunnels would be used to assist in the
adversarys military operations in the future could result in such objects providing an effective
154
ICRC AP COMMENTARY 636 (2020) (A closer look at the various criteria used [i.e., nature, purpose, location,
or use] reveals that the first refers to objects which, by their nature, make an effective contribution to military
action. This category comprises all objects directly used by the armed forces: weapons, equipment, transports,
fortifications, depots, buildings occupied by armed forces, staff headquarters, communications centres etc.). Refer
to 5.7.4 (Objects Categorically Recognized as Military Objectives).
155
Refer to 5.7.8.4 (Examples of Military Objectives Places of Military Significance).
156
Refer to 5.7.4.2 (Objects Containing Military Objectives).
157
See, e.g., 2006 AUSTRALIAN MANUAL 5.29 (Purpose means the future intended use of an object while use
means its present function.); 2004 UK MANUAL 5.4.4 (e. Purpose means the future intended use of an object
while use means its present function.).
158
Refer to 5.7.8.3 (Examples of Military Objectives Transportation Objects).
209
contribution to the enemys military action, even though they are not being used at that moment
for such purposes.
5.7.6.2 Make an Effective Contribution to Military Action. The object must make
or be intended to make an effective contribution to military action; however, this contribution
need not be direct or proximate. 159 For example, an object might make an effective, but
remote, contribution to the enemys military action and nonetheless meet this aspect of the
definition. Similarly, an object might be geographically distant from most of the fighting and
nonetheless satisfy this element.
Military action has a broad meaning and is understood to mean the general prosecution of
the war. 160 It is not necessary that the object provide immediate tactical or operational gains or
that the object make an effective contribution to a specific military operation. Rather, the
objects effective contribution to the war-fighting or war-sustaining capability of an opposing
force is sufficient. 161 Although terms such as war-fighting, war-supporting, and war-
sustaining are not explicitly reflected in the treaty definitions of military objective, the United
States has interpreted the military objective definition to include these concepts. 162
159
Cf. BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 324 (AP I art. 52, 2.4.3) (noting that [m]ilitary objectives must
make an effective contribution to military action does not require a direct connection with combat operations
and that a civilian object may become a military objective and thereby lose its immunity from deliberate attack
through use which is only indirectly related to combat action, but which nevertheless provides an effective
contribution to the military phase of a Partys overall war effort.).
160
ROGERS, LAW ON THE BATTLEFIELD 36 (The term military action appears to have a wide meaning equating to
the general prosecution of the war.).
161
See APPENDIX TO 1985 CJCS MEMO ON AP I 51 (Under this definition [of military objective in AP I], an area of
land could, for example, be a military objective, as could political and economic activities that support the enemys
war effort.); BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 324 (AP I art. 52, 2.4.2) (noting that military objectives may
include activities providing administrative and logistical support to military operations such as transportation and
communications systems, railroads, airfields and port facilities and industries of fundamental importance for the
conduct of the armed conflict.). Cf. 10 U.S.C. 950p(a)(1) (The term military objective means those objects
during hostilities which, by their nature, location, purpose, or use, effectively contribute to the war-fighting or war-
sustaining capability of an opposing force.) (emphasis added).
162
See also W. Hays Parks, Asymmetries and the Identification of Legitimate Military Objectives, in
INTERNATIONAL HUMANITARIAN LAW FACING NEW CHALLENGES 100 (2007) (War-sustaining and/or war-fighting
reflect State practice. Historical evidence and the description of the target sets agreed upon by NATO governments
in ALLIED FORCE support the idea that nations have, do, and will attack not only an enemys war-fighting
capability, but also his capacity to sustain the conflict.); Horace B. Robertson, The Principle of the Military
Objective in the Law of Armed Conflict, 8 UNITED STATES AIR FORCE ACADEMY JOURNAL OF LEGAL STUDIES 35,
50-51 (1997) (comparing the definition of military objective in the 1995 Commanders Handbook on the Law of
Naval Operations to the definition of military objective in AP I).
210
5.7.7.1 Capture or Neutralization. The definition of military objective
incorporates considerations beyond whether an objects destruction is justified. It also
incorporates considerations of whether the objects capture and neutralization would offer a
military advantage.
Capture refers to the possibility of seizure (rather than destruction), which would confer a
military advantage. For example, the seizure of a city may be a military objective because of its
strategic location. 163
Neutralization refers to a military action that denies an object to the enemy without
capturing or destroying it. For example, a specific area of land may be neutralized by planting
landmines on or around it, and thus denying it to the enemy. 164
5.7.7.2 In the Circumstances Ruling at the Time. The attack of the object must,
in the circumstances ruling at the time, offer a definite military advantage for the object to be
considered a military objective.
Nonetheless, the purpose (i.e., future use) of the object can be considered in whether an
object provides an effective contribution to the adversarys military action. 165 In addition, the
definite military advantage offered by the attack need not be immediate, but may be assessed in
the full context of the war strategy. 166
The advantage need not be immediate. 168 For example, the military advantage in the
attack of an individual bridge may not be seen immediately (particularly if, at the time of the
attack, there is no military traffic in the area), but can be established by the overall effort to
isolate enemy military forces on the battlefield through the destruction of bridges.
163
Refer to 5.7.8.4 (Examples of Military Objectives Places of Military Significance).
164
Refer to 5.7.8.4 (Examples of Military Objectives Places of Military Significance).
165
Refer to 5.7.6.1 (Nature, Location, Purpose, or Use).
166
Refer to 5.7.7.3 (Definite Military Advantage).
167
For example, W. Hays Parks, Asymmetries and the Identification of Legitimate Military Objectives, in
INTERNATIONAL HUMANITARIAN LAW FACING NEW CHALLENGES footnotes 88 and 170 and accompanying text
(2007) (giving an example of a case in which objects did not meet this standard, the 25 February 1991
recommendation by the U.S. Air Force component of US Central Command for an air attack on a Baghdad statue of
Saddam Hussayn and another statue, consisting of matching sets of arms with crossed swords (modeled on the arms
of Saddam Hussayn), called the Victory Arch or Crossed Swords Monument, because the military assessment was
that such targets were worthless and any value from attacking them was too speculative).
168
See J. Fred Buzhardt, DoD General Counsel, Letter to Senator Edward Kennedy, Sept. 22, 1972, reprinted in 67
AJIL 122, 124 (1973) (Turning to the deficiencies in the Resolutions of the Institut de Droit International, and with
the foregoing in view, it cannot be said that Paragraph 2, which refers to legal restraints that there must be an
immediate military advantage, reflects the law of armed conflict that has been adopted in the practices of States.).
211
Military advantage refers to the advantage anticipated from an attack when considered
as a whole, and not only from its isolated or particular parts. 169 Similarly, military advantage
is not restricted to immediate tactical gains, but may be assessed in the full context of the war
strategy. 170
The military advantage from an attack is broader than only denying the enemy the benefit
of that objects contribution to its military action. For example, in a diversionary attack, the
military advantage to be gained from attacking an object would result from diverting the enemys
resources and attention. 171 The military advantage from an attack may involve a variety of other
considerations, including improving the security of the attacking force.
The military advantage from an attack may result from harm to the morale of enemy
forces. 172 Diminishing the morale of the civilian population and their support for the war effort
does not provide a definite military advantage. 173 However, attacks that are otherwise lawful are
not rendered unlawful if they happen to result in diminished civilian morale. 174
169
See, e.g., France, Statement on Ratification of AP I, translated in SCHINDLER & TOMAN, THE LAWS OF ARMED
CONFLICTS: A COLLECTION OF CONVENTIONS, RESOLUTIONS, AND OTHER DOCUMENTS 800 (2004) (It is the
understanding of the Government of the French Republic that the expression military advantage contained in
paragraphs 5(b) of Article 51, 2 of Article 52 and 2(a)(iii) of Article 57, is intended to refer to the advantage
anticipated from the attack considered as a whole and not from isolated or particular parts of the attack.); Spain,
Statement on Ratification of AP I, Apr. 21, 1989, 1537 UNTS 389, 392 (Articles 51, 52 and 57. It is understood
that the words military advantage in these articles refer to the advantage expected from the attack as a whole and
not from isolated parts of it.).
170
See FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 613 (Military advantage is not restricted to tactical gains, but
is linked to the full context of a war strategy, in this instance, the execution of the Coalition war plan for liberation
of Kuwait.).
171
For example, BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 325 (AP I art. 52, 2.4.4) (Thus, prior to the 1944 cross
channel operation, the Allies attacked a large number of bridges, fuel dumps, airfields and other targets in the Pas de
Calais. These targets made an effective contribution to German military action in that area. The primary military
advantage of these attacks anticipated by the Allies, however, was not to reduce German military strength in that
area, but to deceive the Germans into believing that the Allied amphibious assault would occur in the Pas de Calais
instead of the beaches of Normandy.); MILITARY ANALYSIS DIVISION, THE UNITED STATES STRATEGIC BOMBING
SURVEY (PACIFIC): JAPANESE AIR POWER 10 (1946) (The [Doolittle] raid was too small to do substantial physical
damage, but its repercussions on the planning level of the high command were considerable. ... [A]ttention was
focused on the eastern approaches to the home islands, and additional impetus given the prewar plan to attack
Midway and the Aleutians. ... [T]he Japanese began to implement their plans for air defense of Japan which before
that time had received scant consideration. ... A total of four Army fighter groups were held in Japan throughout
1942 and 1943 for the defense of the homeland when the Japanese Navy was urgently demanding that the Army
send reinforcements to the Solomons.).
172
Refer to 5.5.6.3 (Harassing Fires).
173
Cf. LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 528-29 (214eb) (It is also probable that till the end of
the War the aerial bombardment by the Allies did not assume the complexion of bombing for the exclusive purpose
212
The military advantage expected to be gained from an attack might not be readily
apparent to the enemy or to outside observers because, for example, the expected military
advantage might depend on the commanders strategy or assessments of classified information.
5.7.8 Examples of Objects Often Regarded as Military Objectives. The following types
of objects generally have met the definition of military objective in past conflicts, but may not
be military objectives in all circumstances: (1) leadership facilities; (2) communications objects;
(3) transportation objects; (4) places of military significance; and (5) economic objects
associated with military operations or with war-supporting or war-sustaining industries.
This list of examples is not exclusive (i.e., an object could fall in more than one category
in this list), and this list is not exhaustive (i.e., an object outside these categories may nonetheless
meet the definition of military objective). Lastly, this list is not conclusive, i.e., whether an
example is, in fact, a military objective, must be assessed according to the definition of military
objective.
of spreading terror and shattering the morale of the population at largethough this was the inevitable concomitant
of strategic target-bombing. Thus what remained of the protection afforded by International Law to the civilian
population in the matter of aerial bombardment was the principlegenerally acknowledged by the Allies, though
not always capable of being adhered to in practicethat the bombing of towns or purely residential parts of towns
which were not in any way related to the war efforts of the enemy was unlawful. At the same time abstention from
such bombing could also be explained by reference to considerations of economy militating against costly
operations for the sake of achieving purely psychological effectconsiderations the disregard of which rendered the
use by Germany of the flying bomb and long-range projectiles not only unlawful but, in the judgment of many, also
detrimental to her own war effort.).
174
For example, Judith A. Miller, Commentary, 78 U.S. NAVAL WAR COLLEGE INTERNATIONAL LAW STUDIES 107,
110 (2002) (I will readily admit that, aside from directly damaging the military electrical power infrastructure,
NATO wanted the civilian population to experience discomfort, so that the population would pressure Milosevic and
the Serbian leadership to accede to UN Security Council Resolution 1244, but the intended effects on the civilian
population were secondary to the military advantage gained by attacking the electrical power infrastructure.). Refer
to 5.3.2 (Essentially Negative Duties to Respect Civilians and to Refrain From Directing Military Operations
Against Them).
175
For example, 2006 AUSTRALIAN MANUAL 2.8, at 2-5 (HISTORICAL EXAMPLEAVOIDING
COLLATERAL DAMAGE, AFGHANISTAN 2002-2003 A major focus in Afghanistan was the leadership.
This meant targeting residences and road convoys, with difficulties of identification and the consequent acceptance
of non-combatant casualties as a necessary proportionate risk to achieve the military objective.).
176
Refer to 5.8.4 (Leaders).
213
command and control of military operations or intelligence gathering, have often been regarded
as military objectives. 177
177
For example, ICTY, Final Report to the Prosecutor by the Committee Established to Review the NATO Bombing
Campaign Against the Federal Republic of Yugoslavia, 71-72 (Jun. 13, 2000) (On 23 April 1999, at 0220,
NATO intentionally bombed the central studio of the RTS (state-owned) broadcasting corporation at 1 Aberdareva
Street in the centre of Belgrade. The bombing of the TV studio was part of a planned attack aimed at disrupting
and degrading the C3 (Command, Control and Communications) network. In co-ordinated attacks, on the same
night, radio relay buildings and towers were hit along with electrical power transformer stations.).
178
For example, DoD statement, Dec. 26, 1966, X WHITEMANS DIGEST 427 (U.S. policy is to target military
targets only, particularly those which have a direct impact on the movement of men and supplies into South
Vietnam. These targets include but are not limited to roads, railroads, bridges, road junctions, POL facilities,
barracks and supply depots. In the specific case of Nam Dinh and Phu Li, targets have been limited to railroad
and highway bridges, railroad yards, POL dumps and air defense sites.); Report of the United Nations Command
Operations in Korea for the Period 1 to 15 August 1950, enclosure to Note Dated 2 September 1950 From the
Permanent Representative of the United States of America to the President of the Security Council Transmitting the
Third Report of the United Nations Command in Korea in Accordance with the Security Council Resolution of 7
July 1950 (S/1588), U.N. Doc. S/1756 (Sept. 2, 1950) (United States Far East Air Force medium bombers struck
heavy blows at north Korean industrial targets of military significance and at the north Korean transportation
system. The Korean manufacturing complex, the largest in the Far East, and the oil refinery at Wonsan, have been
extensively damaged by successive attacks. The marshalling yards in Pyongyang, Wonsan, and Seoul have been
repeatedly attacked, as have yards of less consequence. A general transportation interdiction program continues
with destruction of rail and highway bridges along principal lines of communication. The rail and port
transportation center at Najin-dong was also bombed.).
179
See, e.g., Canada, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Nov. 20, 1990, 1591 UNTS 462, 465 (It is the
understanding of the Government of Canada in relation to Article 52 that: a. A specific area of land may be a
military objective if, because of its location or other reasons specified in the Article as to what constitutes a military
objective, its total or partial destruction, capture or neutralization in the circumstances governing at the time offers a
definite military advantage, .); Germany, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Feb. 14, 1991, 1607 UNTS 526, 529
(Article 52 of Additional Protocol I is understood by the Federal Republic of Germany to mean that a specific area
of land may also be a military objective if it meets all requirements of Article 52, paragraph 2.); Netherlands,
Statement on Ratification of AP I, Jun. 26, 1987, 1477 UNTS 300 (It is the understanding of the Government of the
Kingdom of the Netherlands that a specific area of land may also be a military objective if, because of its location or
other reasons specified in paragraph 2, its total or partial destruction, capture, or neutralization in the circumstances
ruling at the time, offers a definite military advantage;); New Zealand, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Feb. 8,
1988, 1499 UNTS 358 (In relation to Article 52, it is the understanding of the Government of New Zealand that a
specific area of land may be a military objective if, because of its location or other reasons specified in the Article,
its total or partial destruction, capture or neutralisation in the circumstances ruling at the time offers a definite
military advantage.); United Kingdom, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Jan. 28, 1998, 2020 UNTS 75, 77 (Re:
Article 52 It is the understanding of the United Kingdom that: A specific area of land may be a military objective if,
because of its location or other reasons specified in this Article, its total or partial destruction, capture or
neutralization in the circumstances ruling at the time offers definite military advantage; .).
214
tank mines may be laid on such areas in order to block enemy forces tanks. 180 Areas of land
that have been regarded as military objectives have included, for example:
180
United States, Statement on Consent to Be Bound by the CCW Amended Mines Protocol, May 24, 1999, 2065
UNTS 128, 130 (The United States understands that an area of land itself can be a legitimate military objective for
the purpose of the use of landmines, if its neutralization or denial, in the circumstances applicable at the time, offers
a military advantage.).
181
See FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 612 (A bridge or highway vital to daily commuter and business
traffic can be equally crucial to military traffic, or support for a nations war effort. Railroads, airports, seaports,
and the interstate highway system in the United States have been funded by the Congress in part because of US
national security concerns, for example; each proved invaluable to the movement of US military units to various
ports for deployment to Southwest Asia (SWA) for Operations Desert Shield and Desert Storm. Destruction of a
bridge, airport, or port facility, or interdiction of a highway can be equally important in impeding an enemys war
effort.).
182
ROGERS, LAW ON THE BATTLEFIELD 37.
183
For example, MILAN N. VEGO, JOINT OPERATIONAL WARFARE: THEORY AND PRACTICE II-34-II-35 (Reprint of
1st ed., 2009) (In purely military terms, a capital is normally an operational objective to be seized or defended. The
reason is that no enemys capital can possibly physically include the enemys entire armed forces, or even most of
the ground forces. Therefore, the defeat of enemy forces defending the capital (and most other large cities as well)
would normally amount to the accomplishment of an operational objective that in some situations could have
strategic consequences for the wars outcome. General Mark Clark, the Fifth Armys commander, was directed
by President Franklin D. Roosevelt and General George Marshall to take Rome as quickly as possible, and in any
event before the planned Normandy landing. The Allied troops entered Rome on 6 June 1944, the same day the
Allied forces landed in Normandy.).
184
Eritrea Ethiopia Claims Commission, Partial Award: Western Front, Aerial Bombardment and Related Claims,
Eritreas Claims 1, 3, 5, 9-13, 14, 21, 25 & 26, 117 (Dec. 19, 2005) (The Commission agrees with Ethiopia that
electric power stations are generally recognized to be of sufficient importance to a States capacity to meet its
wartime needs of communication, transport and industry so as usually to qualify as military objectives during armed
conflicts. The Commission also recognizes that not all such power stations would qualify as military objectives, for
example, power stations that are known, or should be known, to be segregated from a general power grid and are
limited to supplying power for humanitarian purposes, such as medical facilities, or other uses that could have no
effect on the States ability to wage war.). For example, W. Hays Parks, Air War and the Law of War, 32 AIR
FORCE LAW REVIEW 1, 168-69 (1990) (In selecting North Vietnamese power sources for attack, target intelligence
authorities identified the Lang Chi hydroelectric facility, a Soviet-built, 122,500-kilowatt electric generating plant
215
Oil refining and distribution facilities and objects associated with petroleum, oil, and
lubricant products (including production, transportation, storage, and distribution facilities) have
also been regarded as military objectives. 185
5.8 COMBATANTS
5.8.1 Armed Forces and Groups and Liability to Being Made the Object of Attack.
Membership in the armed forces or belonging to an armed group makes a person liable to being
made the object of attack regardless of whether he or she is taking a direct part in hostilities. 186
This is because the organizations hostile intent may be imputed to an individual through his or
her association with the organization. Moreover, the individual, as an agent of the group, can be
assigned a combat role at any time, even if the individual normally performs other functions for
the group. 187
Thus, combatants may be made the object of attack at all times, regardless of the
activities in which they are engaged at the time of attack. 188 For example, combatants who are
63 miles up the Red River Valley from Hanoi that was capable of supplying seventy-five percent of the electricity
for Hanois industrial and defense needs. Without question, it was a valuable target. The Lang Chi hydroelectric
facility was attacked by Air Force F-4 Phantoms using LGB [laser-guided bombs] on 10 June 1972. They placed
twelve 2000-pound LGB through the roof of the 50-by-100-foot building, thereby destroying the electric generating
plant without breach of the dam, despite the fact that the roof of the power plant was 100 feet below the top of the
dam.).
185
For example, Department of Defense, Report to Congress: Kosovo/Operation Allied Force, After-Action Report,
82 (Jan. 31, 2000) (Following the end of Operation Allied Force, NATO released an initial assessment of their
attack effectiveness against a number of targets. These targets destroyed or significantly damaged include:
Fifty-seven percent of petroleum reserves; All Yugoslav oil refineries .); Department of Defense, Report to the
Senate and House Appropriations Committees regarding international policies and procedures regarding the
protection of natural and cultural resources during times of war, Jan. 19, 1993, reprinted as Appendix VIII in
Patrick J. Boylan, Review of the Convention for the Protection of Cultural Property in the Event of Armed Conflict
(The Hague Convention of 1954) 201, 204 (1993) (Similarly, natural resources that may be of value to an enemy in
his war effort are legitimate targets. The 1943 air raids on the Ploesti oil fields in Romania, and the Combined
Bomber Offensive campaign against Nazi oil, were critical to allied defeat of Germany in World War II, for
example. What is prohibited is unnecessary destruction, that is, destruction of natural resources that has no or
limited military value.).
186
See, e.g., ICRC AP COMMENTARY 1453 (4789) (Those who belong to armed forces or armed groups may be
attacked at any time.); GREENSPAN, MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 57 (explaining that as members of the
armed forces [non-combat military personnel except for medical personnel and chaplains] are legitimate objects of
attack by the enemy,).
187
Gherebi v. Obama, 609 F. Supp. 2d 43, 69 (D.D.C. 2009) (noting that many members of the armed forces who,
under different circumstances, would be fighters may be assigned to non-combat roles at the time of their
apprehension and that [t]hese individuals are no less a part of the military command structure of the enemy, and
may assume (or resume) a combat role at any time because of their integration into that structure.), abrogated on
different grounds by Uthman v. Obama, 637 F.3d 400, 403 (D.C. Cir. 2011).
188
W. Hays Parks, Chief, International Law Branch, Office of the Judge Advocate General, Department of the
Army, Executive Order 12333 and Assassination, Nov. 2, 1989, III CUMULATIVE DIGEST OF UNITED STATES
PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 1981-1988 3411, 3413 (Combatants are liable to attack at any time or place,
216
standing in a mess line, engaging in recreational activities, or sleeping remain the lawful object
of attack, provided they are not placed hors de combat. 189
5.8.2 Categories of Persons Who Are Combatants for the Purpose of Assessing Their
Liability to Attack. The following categories of persons are combatants who may be made the
object of attack because they are sufficiently associated with armed forces or armed groups:
regardless of their activity when attacked. Nor is a distinction made between combat and combat service support
personnel with regard to the right to be attacked as combatants; combatants are subject to attack if they are
participating in hostilities through fire, maneuver, and assault; providing logistic, communications, administrative,
or other support; or functioning as staff planners. An individual combatants vulnerability to lawful targeting (as
opposed to assassination) is not dependent upon his or her military duties, or proximity to combat as such.)
(citations omitted).
189
For example, 101st Airborne ROE Card, Iraq (2003), reprinted in CENTER FOR LAW AND MILITARY OPERATIONS,
THE JUDGE ADVOCATE GENERALS LEGAL CENTER & SCHOOL, U.S. ARMY, I LEGAL LESSONS LEARNED FROM
AFGHANISTAN AND IRAQ: MAJOR COMBAT OPERATIONS (11 SEPTEMBER 2001 - 1 MAY 2003) 315-16 (2004) (1.
Fire at all members of forces DECLARED HOSTILE. You may immediately fire upon any force that you know to
be hostile. 1. Facts: An enemy unit maneuvers within your weapon range. Response: Shoot to eliminate the
threat and accomplish the mission. 2. Facts: An unarmed enemy soldier sees you and does nothing but stare at you.
Response: Shoot to eliminate the threat. The soldier is a member of a Hostile Force and is lawful target.).
190
For example, CHAIRMAN OF THE JOINT CHIEFS OF STAFF INSTRUCTION 3121.01B, Standing Rules of
Engagement/Standing Rules for the Use of Force for U.S. Forces, A-2, 2(b) (June 13, 2005), reprinted in
INTERNATIONAL AND OPERATIONAL LAW DEPARTMENT, THE JUDGE ADVOCATE GENERALS LEGAL CENTER &
SCHOOL, U.S. ARMY, OPERATIONAL LAW HANDBOOK 94 (2014) (Once a force is declared hostile by appropriate
authority, U.S. forces need not observe a hostile act or demonstrated hostile intent before engaging the declared
hostile force. Policy and procedures regarding the authority to declare forces hostile are provided in Appendix A to
Enclosure A, paragraph 3.); CHAIRMAN OF THE JOINT CHIEFS OF STAFF INSTRUCTION 3121.01A, Standing Rules of
Engagement for US Forces, A-12, 6 (Jan. 15, 2000), reprinted in CENTER FOR LAW AND MILITARY OPERATIONS,
THE JUDGE ADVOCATE GENERALS LEGAL CENTER & SCHOOL, U.S. ARMY, Rules of Engagement (ROE) Handbook
for Judge Advocates 96 (May 1, 2000) (6. Declaring Forces Hostile. Once a force is declared hostile by
appropriate authority, US units need not observe a hostile act or a demonstration of hostile intent before engaging
that force. The responsibility for exercising the right and obligation of national self-defense and as necessary
declaring a force hostile is a matter of the utmost importance. All available intelligence, the status of international
relationships, the requirements of international law, an appreciation of the political situation, and the potential
consequences for the United States must be carefully weighed. The exercise of the right and obligation of national
self-defense by competent authority is separate from and in no way limits the commander's right and obligation to
exercise unit self-defense. The authority to declare a force hostile is limited as amplified in Appendix A of this
Enclosure.).
191
Refer to 4.5 (Armed Forces of a State).
192
Refer to 4.6 (Other Militia and Volunteer Corps).
217
participants in a leve en masse; 193
leaders whose responsibilities include the operational command and control of the armed
forces or of a non-State armed group. 195
In some cases, there might be formal or direct information indicating membership in the
group. This might include:
documents issued or belonging to the group that identify the person as a member, such as
membership lists, identity cards, or membership applications. 197
Although in some cases this type of formal or direct information might be available, in
many cases it will not be available because members of these groups seek to conceal their
association with that group. In such cases, the following types of information might indicate that
a person is a member of a non-State armed group:
193
Refer to 4.7 (Leve en Masse).
194
Refer to 5.8.3 (Persons Belonging to Non-State Armed Groups).
195
Refer to 5.8.4 (Leaders).
196
Cf. Al-Adahi v. Obama, 613 F.3d 1102, 1108 (D.C. Cir. 2010) (The district court seemed to think it important to
determine Al-Adahis motive for attending the al-Qaida training camp. We do not understand why. Whatever his
motive, the significant points are that al-Qaida was intent on attacking the United States and its allies, that bin Laden
had issued a fatwa announcing that every Muslim had a duty to kill Americans, and that Al-Adahi voluntarily
affiliated himself with al-Qaida.).
197
Cf. Alsabri v. Obama, 684 F.3d 1298, 1304-05 (D.C. Cir. 2012) (upholding a district courts determination that
petitioner was part of the Taliban, al-Qaida, or associated forces, including by considering an English translation of
a document appearing to be Alsabris application to attend an al Qaeda training camp and an English-language
translation of a 92-page collection of documents that the government maintains were internal Taliban or al Qaeda
records that were captured by Coalition forces from the Director of Al-Qaida Security Training Office,).
218
acting at the direction of the group or within its command structure;
performing a function for the group that is analogous to a function normally performed
by a member of a States armed forces;
taking a direct part in hostilities, including consideration of the frequency, intensity, and
duration of such participation; 198
accessing facilities, such as safehouses, training camps, or bases used by the group that
outsiders would not be permitted to access; 199
traveling with members of the group in remote locations or while the group conducts
operations. 201
198
Refer to 5.9.3 (Taking a Direct Part in in Hostilities).
199
Cf. Alsabri v. Obama, 684 F.3d 1298, 1306 (D.C. Cir. 2012) ([I]t is difficult to believe that Taliban fighters
would allow an individual to infiltrate their posts near a battle zone unless that person was understood to be a part of
the Taliban.) (quoting Alsabri v. Obama, 764 F.Supp.2d 60, 94 (D.D.C. 2011)); Uthman v. Obama, 637 F.3d 400,
406 (D.C. Cir. 2011) (In two prior cases, this Court has stated that staying at an al Qaeda guesthouse is powerful
indeed overwhelmingevidence that an individual is part of al Qaeda. AlAdahi, 613 F.3d at 1108 (quoting Al
Bihani v. Obama, 590 F.3d 866, 873 footnote 2 (D.C. Cir. 2010)) (alterations omitted). The reason for that
assessment is plain: It is highly unlikely that a visitor to Afghanistan would end up at an al Qaeda guesthouse by
mistake, either by the guest or by the host.).
200
Cf. Suleiman v. Obama, 670 F.3d 1311, 1314 (D.C. Cir. 2012) (There is no dispute that Suleimans travel was
initiated at the suggestion of and facilitated by a Taliban recruiter, and that he traveled a well-worn path to
Afghanistan frequently used by Taliban recruits. We have stated that such travel may indicate that an individual
traveled to Afghanistan to join the Taliban.) (citing Al Odah v. United States, 611 F.3d 8, 14 (D.C. Cir. 2010));
Uthman v. Obama, 637 F.3d 400, 405 (D.C. Cir. 2011) ([T]raveling to Afghanistan along a distinctive path used by
al Qaeda members can be probative evidence that the traveler was part of al Qaeda.); Al Odah v. United States, 611
F.3d 8, 16 (D.C. Cir. 2010) (finding it significant that Al Odah traveled to Afghanistan on a series of one-way plane
tickets purchased with cash in a manner consistent with travel patterns of those going to Afghanistan to join the
Taliban and al Qaeda).
201
Cf. Hussain v. Obama, 718 F.3d 964, 968-69 (D.C. Cir. 2013) (Evidence that Hussain bore a weapon of war
while living side-by-side with enemy forces on the front lines of a battlefield at least invites and may very well
compel the conclusion that he was loyal to those forces. We have repeatedly affirmed the propriety of this
common-sense inference.); Uthman v. Obama, 637 F.3d 400, 405 (D.C. Cir. 2011) (Being captured in the
company of a Taliban fighter and two al Qaeda members and Osama bin Laden bodyguards 12 miles from Tora
Bora in December 2001 might not be precisely the same as being captured in a German uniform 12 miles from the
Normandy beaches in June 1944. But it is still, at a minimum, highly significant. And absent a credible alternative
explanation, the location and date of Uthmans capture, together with the company he was keeping, strongly suggest
that he was part of al Qaeda.).
219
international armed conflict. 202 Such groups might lack a formal distinction between those
members and non-members who nonetheless participate in the hostile activities of the group. 203
An individual who is integrated into the group such that the groups hostile intent may be
imputed to him or her may be deemed to be functionally (i.e., constructively) part of the group,
even if not formally a member of the group. The integration of the person into the non-State
armed group and the inference that the individual shares the groups intention to commit hostile
acts distinguish such an individual from persons who are merely sympathetic to the groups
goals. 204
The following may indicate that a person is functionally a member of a non-State armed
group:
performing tasks on behalf of the group similar to those provided in a combat, combat
support, or combat service support role in the armed forces of a State.
whether the individual has formally ceased to be a member of the group, such as by filing
relevant paperwork or by otherwise formally renouncing any allegiance to the group;
whether there are concrete and verifiable facts or persuasive indicia that he or she has
affirmatively returned to peaceful pursuits, such as by participating in a reconciliation
program and swearing an oath of loyalty to the government; and
the amount of time that has passed since the person participated in the activities of the
group in question, if coupled with other indicia of dissociation or renunciation. 207
202
Refer to 4.6.3 (Being Commanded by a Person Responsible for His or Her Subordinates).
203
Compare 4.7 (Leve en Masse).
204
Compare 5.9.3.2 (Examples of Acts Not Considered Taking a Direct in Hostilities).
205
Cf. Uthman v. Obama, 637 F.3d 400, 403 (D.C. Cir. 2011) ([D]emonstrating that someone is part of al Qaedas
command structure is sufficient to show that person is part of al Qaeda.); Al-Adahi v. Obama, 613 F.3d 1102, 1109
(D.C. Cir. 2010) (When the government shows that an individual received and executed orders from al-Qaida
members in a training camp, that evidence is sufficient (but not necessary) to prove that the individual has affiliated
himself with al-Qaida.); Salahi v. Obama, 625 F.3d 745, 752 (D.C. Cir. 2010) (Evidence that an individual
operated within al-Qaidas command structure is sufficient but is not necessary to show he is part of the
organization. (quoting Bensayah v. Obama, 610 F.3d 718, 725 (D.C. Cir. 2010))).
206
Refer to 5.9.3 (Taking a Direct Part in in Hostilities).
220
The onus is on the person having belonged to the armed group to demonstrate clearly and
affirmatively to the opposing forces that he or she will no longer participate in the activities of
the group. 208 Moreover, if persons who have dissociated from an armed group rejoin the group
or fail to cease permanently their participation in hostilities, they may be made the object of
attack. 209
5.8.4 Leaders. Military leaders are subject to attack on the same basis as other members
of the armed forces. Similarly, leaders of non-State armed groups are also subject to attack on
the same basis as other members of the group. There is no objection to making a specific enemy
leader who is a combatant the object of attack. 210
Leaders who are not members of an armed force or armed group (including heads of
State, civilian officials, and political leaders) may be made the object of attack if their
responsibilities include the operational command or control of the armed forces. For example, as
the commander-in-chief of the U.S. armed forces, the President would be a legitimate target in
wartime, as would, for example, the Prime Minister of a constitutional monarchy. In contrast,
the reigning monarch of a constitutional monarchy with an essentially ceremonial role in State
affairs may not be made the object of attack.
In addition to leaders who have a role in the operational chain of command, leaders
taking a direct part in hostilities may also be made the object of attack. 211 Planning or
authorizing a combat operation is an example of taking a direct part in hostilities. 212
As a matter of practice, attacks on the national leadership of an enemy State have often
been avoided on the basis of comity and to help ensure that authorities exist with whom peace
agreements may be concluded.
207
Stephen Pomper, Assistant Legal Adviser for Political-Military Affairs, Department of State, Toward a Limited
Consensus on the Loss of Civilian Immunity in Non-International Armed Conflict: Making Progress Through
Practice, 88 U.S. NAVAL WAR COLLEGE INTERNATIONAL LAW STUDIES 181, 189 (2012) (Relevant factors in
determining that an individual has ceased to be a member of an organized armed group include the amount of time
that has passed since that individual has taken relevant action on behalf of the group in question, and whether he or
she affirmatively has disassociated himself or herself from the organized armed group.).
208
Wolff Heintschel von Heinegg & Peter Dreist, The 2009 Kunduz Air Attack: The Decision of the Federal
Prosecutor-General on the Dismissal of Criminal Proceedings Against Members of the German Armed Forces, 53
GERMAN YEARBOOK OF INTERNATIONAL LAW 833, 844-45 (2010) (Here, the Prosecutor-General takes the
opportunity to identify different categories of lawful targets under the law of non-international armed conflict. As
regards fighters belonging to a non-State party to the conflict, their qualification as lawful targets is not based on
some form of legal status but on the mere fact of their functional integration into an organized armed group. If they
are so integrated, they do not qualify as civilians even though they may eventually pursue civilian occupation. They
only regain their civilian status if they clearly and irrevocably renounce their function in the organized armed group.
Hence, the Prosecutor-General is not prepared to consider Taliban fighters to be lawful targets only insofar and for
such time as they take a direct part in armed hostilities.). Compare 5.10.3 (Persons Who Have Surrendered).
209
Refer to 5.9.4.2 (No Revolving Door Protection); 5.9.4.1 (Permanently Ceased Participation in Hostilities).
210
Refer to 5.5.6.4 (Attacks on Specific Individuals).
211
Refer to 5.9.3 (Taking a Direct Part in in Hostilities).
212
Refer to 5.9.3.1 (Examples of Taking a Direct Part in Hostilities).
221
5.9 CIVILIANS TAKING A DIRECT PART IN HOSTILITIES
Civilians who take a direct part in hostilities forfeit protection from being made the object
of attack.
5.9.1 Civilians Taking a Direct Part in Hostilities Notes on Terminology. This manual
uses the phrase direct part in hostilities to indicate what activities cause a civilian to forfeit his
or her protection from being made the object of attack. This usage does not mean that the United
States has adopted the direct participation in hostilities rule that is expressed in Article 51 of AP
I.
5.9.1.1 Active Versus Direct. The phrases active part in hostilities and
direct part in hostilities have been used to describe when civilians forfeit their protection from
being made the object of attack. As noted above, this manual uses direct rather than active
in this context, although as discussed below, this usage should not be regarded as indicating a
substantive difference between active and direct.
Common Article 3 of the 1949 Geneva Conventions refers to [p]ersons taking no active
part in the hostilities. AP I and AP II use the phrase direct part in hostilities. 213 In addition,
AP I uses the phrase direct part in hostilities to address other situations apart from the
protection of civilians. 214
Although the words active and direct can mean different things in the English language,
the terms have sometimes been treated as the same for the purpose of applying the direct
participation in hostilities rule. 215 One of the reasons for treating the terms the same is that
although the English language version of the 1949 Geneva Conventions uses active, and the
English language versions of AP I and AP II use direct, the French language versions of these
treaties use the same word, directement. 216 Because the English and French language versions
213
AP I art. 51(3) (Civilians shall enjoy the protection [from being made the object of attack], unless and for such
time as they take a direct part in hostilities.); AP II art. 13(3) (Civilians shall enjoy the protection [from being
made the object of attack], unless and for such time as they take a direct part in hostilities.).
214
See, e.g., AP I art. 43(2) (Members of the armed forces of a Party to a conflict (other than medical personnel and
chaplains covered by Article 33 of the Third Convention) are combatants, that is to say, they have the right to
participate directly in hostilities); AP I art. 47(2) (A mercenary is any person who ... [inter alia] (b) Does, in fact,
take a direct part in the hostilities .).
215
See, e.g., Prosecutor v. Tadi, ICTY Trial Chamber, IT-94-1-T, Judgment, 614-15 (May 7, 1997) (The rules
contained in paragraph 1 of Common Article 3 proscribe a number of acts which: ... (iii) are committed against
persons taking no active part in hostilities ... the test the Trial Chamber has applied is to ask whether, at the time of
the alleged offence, the alleged victim of the proscribed acts was directly taking part in hostilities, being those
hostilities in the context of which the alleged offences are said to have been committed. If the answer to that
question is negative, the victim will enjoy the protection of the proscriptions contained in Common Article 3.);
Prosecutor v. Akayesu, ICTR Trial Chamber, ICTR-96-4-T, Judgment, 629 (Sept. 2, 1998) (The victims referred
to in this Indictment were, at all relevant times, persons not taking an active part in the hostilities. This is a material
averment for charges involving Article 4 inasmuch as Common Article 3 is for the protection of persons taking no
active part in the hostilities (Common Article 3(1)), and Article 4 of Additional Protocol II is for the protection of,
all persons who do not take a direct part or who have ceased to take part in hostilities. These phrases are so similar
that, for the Chambers purposes, they may be treated as synonymous.).
216
GC art. 3, 973 UNTS 289 (ne participant pas directement aux hostilitis).
222
of the 1949 Geneva Conventions, AP I, and AP II are equally authentic, States negotiating these
treaties may not have intended a difference between active and direct. 217
Another reason for treating the terms active and direct the same in this context is that
they are understood to be terms of art addressing a particular legal standard, and there are a range
of views as to what that legal standard means. Thus, there may be different views about what the
underlying standard means, even when there is agreement on the appropriate term to describe
that standard. Accordingly, there seems to be little value in distinguishing between the two
terms for the purposes of applying this legal rule.
5.9.2 Persons to Whom This Rule Applies. For the purpose of applying the rule
discussed in this section, civilians are persons who do not fall within the categories of
combatants listed in 5.8.2 (Categories of Persons Who Are Combatants for the Purpose of
Assessing Their Liability to Attack). Accordingly, for the purposes of this section, civilians
include:
217
See, e.g., GC art. 150 (The present Convention is established in English and in French. Both texts are equally
authentic.); AP I art. 102 (The original of this Protocol, of which the Arabic, Chinese, English, French, Russian
and Spanish texts are equally authentic, shall be deposited with the depositary, which shall transmit certified true
copies thereof to all the Parties to the Conventions.); AP II art. 28 (same).
218
See John B. Bellinger, III, Legal Adviser, Department of State, Unlawful Enemy Combatants, Jan.17, 2007,
DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 915-16 (While we agree that there is a general
principle of international law that civilians lose their immunity from attack when they engage in hostilities, we
disagree with the contention that the provision as drafted in AP I [Article 51(3)] is customary international law.);
Michael J. Matheson, Deputy Legal Adviser, Department of State, Remarks on the United States Position on the
Relation of Customary International Law to the 1977 Protocols Additional to the 1949 Geneva Conventions at the
Sixth Annual American Red Cross-Washington College of Law Conference on International Humanitarian Law
(Jan. 22, 1987), 2 AMERICAN UNIVERSITY JOURNAL OF INTERNATIONAL LAW AND POLICY 419, 426 (1987) (We
also support the principle that the civilian population not be used to shield military objectives or operations from
attack, and that immunity not be extended to civilians who are taking part in hostilities. This corresponds to
provisions in articles 51 and 52[ of AP I].).
219
See, e.g., Stephen Pomper, Assistant Legal Adviser for Political-Military Affairs, Department of State, Toward a
Limited Consensus on the Loss of Civilian Immunity in Non-International Armed Conflict: Making Progress
Through Practice, 88 U.S. NAVAL WAR COLLEGE INTERNATIONAL LAW STUDIES 181, 186 (2012) (From the
operational perspective, the feedback [on the ICRCs interpretive guidance] was that the report was too rigid and
complex, and did not give an accurate picture of State practice or (in some respects) of a practice to which States
could realistically aspire.); Al-Bihani v. Obama, 590 F.3d 866, 885 (D.C. Cir. 2010) (Williams, J., concurring)
(The work itself explicitly disclaims that it should be read to have the force of law. Even to the extent that Al
Bihanis reading of the Guidance is correct, then, the best he can do is suggest that we should follow it on the basis
of its persuasive force. As against the binding language of the AUMF and its necessary implications, however, that
force is insubstantial.).
223
members of the civilian population; 220
members of the merchant marine and civil aircraft of parties to a conflict. 222
The U.S. approach has generally been to refrain from classifying those belonging to non-
State armed groups as civilians to whom this rule would apply. The U.S. approach has been to
treat the status of belonging to a hostile, non-State armed group as a separate basis upon which a
person is liable to attack, apart from whether he or she has taken a direct part in hostilities. 224
Either approach may yield the same result: members of hostile, non-State armed groups may be
made the object of attack unless they are placed hors de combat. However, practitioners,
especially when working with coalition partners, should understand that different legal reasoning
is sometimes applied in reaching that result.
5.9.3 Taking a Direct Part in in Hostilities. Unlike the treaty definition of military
objective for objects, 225 the United States is not a Party to a treaty with a comparable provision
defining taking a direct part in hostilities for the purpose of assessing what conduct renders
civilians liable to being made the object of attack.
At a minimum, taking a direct part in hostilities includes actions that are, by their nature
and purpose, intended to cause actual harm to the enemy. 226 Taking a direct part in hostilities
extends beyond merely engaging in combat and also includes certain acts that are an integral part
of combat operations or that effectively and substantially contribute to an adversarys ability to
220
Refer to 4.8.1.5 (General Usage of Civilian in This Manual).
221
Refer to 4.15 (Persons Authorized to Accompany the Armed Forces).
222
Refer to 4.16 (Crews of Merchant Marine Vessels or Civil Aircraft).
223
Stephen Pomper, Assistant Legal Adviser for Political-Military Affairs, Department of State, Toward a Limited
Consensus on the Loss of Civilian Immunity in Non-International Armed Conflict: Making Progress Through
Practice, 88 U.S. NAVAL WAR COLLEGE INTERNATIONAL LAW STUDIES 181, 193 endnote 22 (2012) (As discussed
below, there is a range of views on whether individuals who pass the membership threshold lose their civilian status
(and are therefore unprivileged belligerents) or remain civilians but are deemed to be continuously taking a direct
part in hostilities and accordingly continuously lose their protections from being made the object of attack.).
224
Refer to 5.8.3 (Persons Belonging to Non-State Armed Groups).
225
Refer to 5.7.3 (Objects That Are Military Objectives).
226
ICRC AP COMMENTARY 619 (Thus direct participation means acts of war which by their nature or purpose are
likely to cause actual harm to the personnel and equipment of the enemy armed forces.).
224
conduct or sustain combat operations. 227 However, taking a direct part in hostilities does not
encompass the general support that members of the civilian population provide to their States
war effort, such as by buying war bonds. 228
227
See GUENTER LEWY, AMERICA IN VIETNAM 232 (1978) (We know that on occasion in Vietnam women and
children placed mines and booby traps, and that villagers of all ages and sexes, willingly or under duress, served as
porters, built fortifications, or engaged in other acts helping the communist forces. It is well established that once
civilians act as support personnel they cease to be noncombatants and are subject to attack.).
228
Stephen Pomper, Assistant Legal Adviser for Political-Military Affairs, Department of State, Toward a Limited
Consensus on the Loss of Civilian Immunity in Non-International Armed Conflict: Making Progress Through
Practice, 88 U.S. NAVAL WAR COLLEGE INTERNATIONAL LAW STUDIES 181, 189 (2012) (With respect to
determining what it means to take direct part in hostilities, as a threshold matter there seems to be a common view
that direct participation in hostilities stands in contrast to support by a general population to a nations war effort.
Civilians who are contributing to a nations war effort accordingly do not by dint of this alone lose their
protection.).
229
See Nils Melzer, Third Expert Meeting on the Notion of Direct Participation in Hostilities: Summary Report, 35
(2005) (Since, currently, the qualification of a particular act as direct participation in hostilities often depends on
the particular circumstances and the technology or weapons system employed, it is unlikely that an abstract
definition of direct participation in hostilities applicable to every situation can be found.).
230
For example, Kenneth Watkin, Opportunity Lost: Organized Armed Groups and the ICRC Direct Participation
in Hostilities Interpretive Guidance, 42 N.Y.U. JOURNAL OF INTERNATIONAL LAW AND POLITICS 641, 680-81
(2010) (For example in Iraq, it has been noted, IED and suicide-bomber cells are essentially combatant units
themselves, where the most technically skilled bomb builder also doubles as a training instructor. Further,
bombers do not just turn up to their target. They need a logistical infrastructure, which consists of individuals ...
who provide everything from reconnaissance of the potential target ... to the provision of a safe house and food, and
the explosives-laden vehicle or suicide belt. To limit direct participation to persons who place or detonate
explosives is an artificial division of what is fundamentally a group activity. The person who is key in planning
and facilitating such deadly attacks must be a valid target as a direct participant in hostilities ) (first and second
ellipses in original).
231
Stephen Pomper, Assistant Legal Adviser for Political-Military Affairs, Department of State, Toward a Limited
Consensus on the Loss of Civilian Immunity in Non-International Armed Conflict: Making Progress Through
Practice, 88 U.S. NAVAL WAR COLLEGE INTERNATIONAL LAW STUDIES 181, 189 (Any determination that a civilian
is taking part in hostilities (and thus loses immunity from being made the object of attack) will be highly situational
and needs to be made by a decisionmaker taking the following considerations into account: Nature of the harm: Is
the individual's activity directed at (i) adversely affecting one party's military capacity or operations or enhancing
the capacity/operations of the other, or (ii) killing, injuring or damaging civilian objects or persons?
Causation/integration between action and harm: Is there a sufficiently direct causal link between the individual's
relevant act and the relevant harm, or does the act otherwise form an integral part of coordinated action resulting in
that harm? (Although it is not enough that the act merely occurs during hostilities, there is no requirement that the
act be only a single causal step removed from the harm.) Nexus to hostilities: Is the individual's activity linked to
an ongoing armed conflict and is it intended either to disadvantage one party, or advance the interests of an opposing
party, in that conflict? There is also a range of views about whether each of the foregoing three factors must be
present in order to make a determination that an individual is directly participating in hostilities (or whether a
totality of the circumstances approach should govern), . Moreover, there is a range of views concerning the
225
the degree to which the act causes harm to the opposing partys persons or objects, such
as
o whether the act is the proximate or but for cause of death, injury, or damage to
persons or objects belonging to the opposing party; or
o the degree to which the act is likely to affect adversely the military operations or
military capacity of the opposing party;
o the degree to which the act is temporally or geographically near the fighting; or
o whether the activity is intended to advance the war aims of one party to the
conflict to the detriment of the opposing party;
the military significance of the activity to the partys war effort, such as
o the degree to which the act contributes to a partys military action against the
opposing party;
o whether the act is of comparable or greater value to a partys war effort than acts
that are commonly regarded as taking a direct part in hostilities; 232
the degree to which the activity is viewed inherently or traditionally as a military one,
such as
relevance of geographic and temporal proximity of an individual's actions to particular hostile acts in ongoing
hostilities.).
232
W. Hays Parks, Chief, International Law Branch, Office of the Judge Advocate General, Department of the
Army, Executive Order 12333 and Assassination, Nov. 2, 1989, III CUMULATIVE DIGEST OF UNITED STATES
PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 1981-1988 3411, 3416 (Finally, one rule of thumb with regard to the likelihood
that an individual may be subject to lawful attack is his (or her) immunity from military service if continued service
in his (or her) civilian position is of greater value to a nations war effort than that persons service in the military.
A prime example would be civilian scientists occupying key positions in a weapons program regarded as vital to a
nations national security or war aims. Thus, more than 900 of the World War II Project Manhattan personnel were
civilians, and their participation in the U.S. atomic weapons program was of such importance as to have made them
liable to legitimate attack. Similarly, the September 1944 Allied bombing raids on the German rocket sites at
Peenemunde regarded the death of scientists involved in research and development at that facility to have been as
important as destruction of the missiles themselves.).
226
o whether the act is traditionally performed by military forces in conducting
military operations against the enemy (including combat, combat support, and
combat service support functions); 233 or
o whether the activity involves making decisions on the conduct of hostilities, such
as determining the use or application of combat power.
5.9.3.1 Examples of Taking a Direct Part in Hostilities. The following acts are
generally considered taking a direct part in hostilities that would deprive civilians who perform
them of protection from being made the object of attack. These examples are illustrative and not
exhaustive:
taking up or bearing arms against the opposing party, or otherwise personally trying to
kill, injure, or capture personnel or damage material belonging to the opposing party, 234
such as
233
Kenneth Watkin, Controlling the Use of Force: A Role for Human Rights Norms in Contemporary Armed
Conflict, 98 AJIL 1, 17 (2004) (The argument that civilians are protected unless engaged in overtly aggressive acts
like carrying weapons may be particularly difficult to maintain where armed groups are technically accorded civilian
status by virtue of not being considered lawful combatants. To the extent that civilians fulfill the same function as
combatants, either in the armed forces or as part of the organization of an illegitimate nonstate actor, they are
logically subject to targeting under the same provisions of international humanitarian law.).
234
2006 AUSTRALIAN MANUAL 5.36 (Civilians are only protected as long as they refrain from taking a direct part
in hostilities. Civilians bearing arms and taking part in military operations are clearly taking part in hostilities;);
ICRC AP COMMENTARY 618-19 (1943) (It seems that the word hostilities covers not only the time that the
civilian actually makes use of a weapon, but also, for example, the time that he is carrying it, as well as situations in
which he undertakes hostile acts without using a weapon.).
235
2004 UK MANUAL 5.3.3 (Whether civilians are taking a direct part in hostilities is a question of fact. Civilians
manning an anti-aircraft gun or engaging in sabotage of military installations are doing so.).
236
See Public Committee against Torture in Israel, et al. v. Government of Israel, et al., HCJ 769/02, Israel Supreme
Court Sitting as the High Court of Justice, 37 (Dec. 11, 2005) (We have seen that a civilian causing harm to the
army is taking a direct part in hostilities. What says the law about those who enlist him to take a direct part in the
hostilities, and those who send him to commit hostilities? Is there a difference between his direct commanders and
227
providing or relaying information of immediate use in combat operations, such as
general contributions made by citizens to their States war effort (e.g., buying war bonds
or paying taxes to the government that will ultimately be used to fund the armed forces);
those responsible for them? Is the direct part taken only by the last terrorist in the chain of command, or by the
entire chain? In our opinion, the direct character of the part taken should not be narrowed merely to the person
committing the physical act of attack. Those who have sent him, as well, take a direct part. The same goes for the
person who decided upon the act, and the person who planned it. It is not to be said about them that they are taking
an indirect part in the hostilities. Their contribution is direct (and active) (see Schmitt, at p. 529).).
237
2013 GERMAN MANUAL 518 (Accordingly, civilians who perform concrete actions that constitute direct
participation in hostilities (e.g. conducting military operations, transporting weapons and ammunition to combat
units, operating weapon systems, transmitting target data that leads immediately to the engagement of a military
objective, etc.) can be engaged as military objectives while performing such actions.).
238
For example, 101st Airborne ROE Card, Iraq (2003), reprinted in CENTER FOR LAW AND MILITARY OPERATIONS,
THE JUDGE ADVOCATE GENERALS LEGAL CENTER & SCHOOL, U.S. ARMY, I LEGAL LESSONS LEARNED FROM
AFGHANISTAN AND IRAQ: MAJOR COMBAT OPERATIONS (11 SEPTEMBER 2001 - 1 MAY 2003) 315, 316 (2004) (7.
Facts: Your unit comes under fire, you notice a young civilian woman who appears to be pointing to the location
where friendly troops are concealed, based on her actions, those locations are then targeted. Response: Shoot to
eliminate the threat .).
239
See, e.g., United States v. Hamdan 6 (Dec. 19, 2007), reversed on different grounds, 696 F.3d 1238 (D.C. Cir.
2012) (The Commission also finds that the accused directly participated in those hostilities by driving a vehicle
containing two surface-to-air missiles in both temporal and spatial proximity to both ongoing combat operations [in
the nearby town of Takta Pol and the more distant Kandahar]. Although Kandahar was a short distance away, the
accuseds past history of delivering munitions to Taliban and al Qaeda fighters, his possession of a vehicle
containing surface to air missiles, and his capture while driving in the direction of a battle already underway,
satisfies the requirement of direct participation.).
228
police services (e.g., police officers who maintain public order against common criminals
during armed conflict); 240
independent journalism or public advocacy (e.g., opinion journalists who write columns
supporting or criticizing a States war effort); 241
Although performing these activities does not make a person liable to being made the object of
attack, performing these activities also does not immunize a person from attack if that person
takes a direct part in hostilities or is otherwise lawfully made the object of attack.
5.9.3.3 Taking a Direct Part in Hostilities and Standards for the Use of Force in
Self-Defense. In the practice of the United States, the U.S. armed forces have been authorized to
use necessary and proportional force in self-defense in response to hostile acts or demonstrated
hostile intent. 243
In some cases, hostile acts or demonstrated hostile intent may also constitute taking a
direct part in hostilities. However, hostile acts and demonstrated hostile intent in some respects
may be narrower than the concept of taking a direct part in hostilities. For example, although
supplying weapons and ammunition in close geographic or temporal proximity to their use is a
240
Refer to 4.23.1 (Police as Civilians).
241
Refer to 4.24.2 (Other Journalists). Cf. ICTY, Final Report to the Prosecutor by the Committee Established to
Review the NATO Bombing Campaign Against the Federal Republic of Yugoslavia, 47 (Jun. 13, 2000) (Whether
the media constitutes a legitimate target group is a debatable issue. If the media is used to incite crimes, as in
Rwanda, then it is a legitimate target. If it is merely disseminating propaganda to generate support for the war
effort, it is not a legitimate target.).
242
BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 303 (AP I art. 51, 2.4.2.2) (noting that during international armed
conflict, workers in defense plants or those engaged in distribution or storage of military supplies in rear areas, do
not pose an immediate threat to the adversary and therefore would not be subject to deliberate individual attack).
However, these individuals assume the risk of incidental injury as a result of attacks against those factories. Refer to
5.12.3.2 (Harm to Certain Individuals Who May Be Employed In or On Military Objectives).
243
For example, CHAIRMAN OF THE JOINT CHIEFS OF STAFF INSTRUCTION 3121.01B, Standing Rules of
Engagement/Standing Rules for the Use of Force for U.S. Forces, 6b(1) (June 13, 2005), reprinted in
INTERNATIONAL AND OPERATIONAL LAW DEPARTMENT, THE JUDGE ADVOCATE GENERALS LEGAL CENTER &
SCHOOL, U.S. ARMY, OPERATIONAL LAW HANDBOOK 95 (2007) (Unit commanders always retain the inherent right
and obligation to exercise unit self-defense in response to a hostile act or demonstrated hostile intent. Unless
otherwise directed by a unit commander as detailed below, military members may exercise individual self-defense in
response to a hostile act or demonstrated hostile intent.); CHAIRMAN OF THE JOINT CHIEFS OF STAFF INSTRUCTION
3121.01A, Standing Rules of Engagement for US Forces, Enclosure A, A-1 (Jan. 15, 2000), reprinted in
INTERNATIONAL AND OPERATIONAL LAW DEPARTMENT, THE JUDGE ADVOCATE GENERAL'S SCHOOL, U.S. ARMY,
JA, OPERATIONAL LAW HANDBOOK 102 (2006) (US forces always retain the right to use necessary and
proportional force for unit and individual self-defense in response to a hostile act or demonstrated hostile intent.).
229
common example of taking a direct part in hostilities, it would not necessarily constitute a hostile
act or demonstrated hostile intent.
On the other hand, hostile acts and demonstrated hostile intent in some respects may be
broader than the concept of taking a direct part in hostilities. For example, the use of force in
response to hostile acts and demonstrated hostile intent applies outside hostilities, but taking a
direct part in hostilities is limited to acts that occur during hostilities. Thus, the concept of taking
a direct part hostilities must not be understood to limit the use of force in response to hostile acts
or demonstrated hostile intent.
In the practice of the United States, offensive combat operations against people who are
taking a direct part in hostilities have been authorized through specific rules of engagement.
5.9.4 Duration of Liability to Attack. There has been a range of views about the duration
for which civilians who have taken a direct part in hostilities forfeit protection from being made
the object of attack. 244
In the U.S. approach, civilians who have taken a direct part in hostilities must not be
made the object of attack after they have permanently ceased their participation because there
would be no military necessity for attacking them. Persons who take a direct part in hostilities,
however, do not benefit from a revolving door of protection. There may be difficult cases not
clearly falling into either of these categories, and in such situations a case-by-case analysis of the
specific facts would be needed. 245
244
See, e.g., Nils Melzer, Background Paper Direct Participation on Hostilities under International Humanitarian
Law Expert Meeting of Oct. 25-26, 2004 34 (At one end of the spectrum were experts who preferred narrowly
defining temporal scope and favoured strictly limiting loss of protection to the period where DPH is actually being
carried out. At the other end were experts who said that, once a person had undertaken an act constituting DPH, that
person must clearly express a will to definitively disengage and offer assurances that he or she will not resume
hostilities in order to regain protection against direct attack. However, opinions varied greatly and could not easily
be divided into two groups supporting distinct positions.).
245
Public Committee against Torture in Israel, et al. v. Government of Israel, et al., HCJ 769/02, Israel Supreme
Court Sitting as the High Court of Justice, 40 (Dec. 11, 2005) (These examples point out the dilemma which the
for such time requirement presents before us. On the one hand, a civilian who took a direct part in hostilities once,
or sporadically, but detached himself from them (entirely, or for a long period) is not to be harmed. On the other
hand, the revolving door phenomenon, by which each terrorist has horns of the alter (1 Kings 1:50) to grasp or a
city of refuge (Numbers 35:11) to flee to, to which he turns in order to rest and prepare while they grant him
immunity from attack, is to be avoided (see Schmitt, at p. 536; Watkin, at p. 12; Kretzmer, at p. 193; DINSTEIN, at p.
29; and Parks, at p. 118). In the wide area between those two possibilities, one finds the gray cases, about which
customary international law has not yet crystallized. There is thus no escaping examination of each and every
case.).
246
Refer to 2.3 (Humanity).
230
has permanently ceased participation in hostilities must be based on a good faith assessment of
the available information. 247
For example, a civilian might have engaged in an isolated instance of taking a direct part
in hostilities. This isolated instance is likely to have involved multiple acts, because taking a
direct part in hostilities normally includes deploying or moving to a position of attack and
exfiltrating from an attack. 248 However, if this participation was an isolated instance that will
not be repeated, then no military necessity for attacking that person exists after he or she has
ceased taking a direct part in hostilities. Accordingly, the civilian must not be made the object of
attack after he or she has ceased taking a direct part in hostilities. However, there may be other
legal consequences from this isolated instance of participation. For example, such civilians may,
depending on the circumstances, be detained, interned, or prosecuted because of these actions. 249
247
Refer to 5.4 (Assessing Information Under the Law of War).
248
Refer to 5.9.3.1 (Examples of Taking a Direct Part in Hostilities).
249
Refer to 4.18 (Private Persons Who Engage in Hostilities).
250
See also Kenneth Watkin, Opportunity Lost: Organized Armed Groups and the ICRC Direct Participation in
Hostilities Interpretive Guidance, 42 NEW YORK UNIVERSITY JOURNAL OF INTERNATIONAL LAW AND POLITICS
641, 689 (2010) (Further, on one level the term revolving door evokes the idea of a form of carnival shooting
gallery, where soldiers must wait until an opponent pops out from behind a door to be shot at. At some point, the
credibility of the law begins to be undermined by suggesting an opponent can repeatedly avail themselves of such
protection.).
251
Kenneth Watkin, Opportunity Lost: Organized Armed Groups and the ICRC Direct Participation in Hostilities
Interpretive Guidance, 42 NEW YORK UNIVERSITY JOURNAL OF INTERNATIONAL LAW AND POLITICS 641, 692 (2010)
(However, given the lack of credibility associated with the term, there can be no revolving door of protection.
After the first involvement, any subsequent act demonstrating direct participation would start to provide the basis to
believe that there is the beginning of a pattern of conduct that reflects an intention to regularly engage in the
hostilities. Repetitious participation can be considered in determining if such persons are in reality continuously
engaged in hostilities. When such participation occurs, affirmative disengagement would be required in order to
establish that such persons are no longer direct participants in hostilities.). Cf. Bill Boothby, And For Such Time
As: The Time Dimension to Direct Participation in Hostilities, 42 NEW YORK UNIVERSITY JOURNAL OF
INTERNATIONAL LAW AND POLITICS 741, 765-66 (2010) (In my view, an alternative interpretation of the treaty
language is equally valid. According to this alternative view, the temporal element in the provision lies both in the
phrase unless and for such time and in the word participates. If, however, a person engages in repeated acts of
DPH, there is an evident artificiality in regarding that individual as having protected status during the intervals in
between. Experience shows that during those periods a further act of direct participation by the persistent
participator is likely to be in prospect, and the likelihood is that during those intervals he will be preparing himself
for the next act, checking his equipment, obtaining any additional equipment or stores he may require,
communicating with like-minded or otherwise involved individuals, refining his plan and so on. While some such
activities may be DP in their own right, the more important point is that a person who is so engaged cannot be
231
A revolving door of protection would place these civilians who take a direct part in
hostilities on a better footing than lawful combatants, who may be made the object of attack even
when not taking a direct part in hostilities.252 The United States has strongly disagreed with
posited rules of international law that, if accepted, would operate to give the so-called farmer by
day, guerilla by night greater protections than lawful combatants. 253 Adoption of such a rule
would risk diminishing the protection of the civilian population.
5.9.5 Civilians Who Take a Direct Part in Hostilities and the Law of War. Although the
concept of direct participation in hostilities may be discussed in contexts besides targeting, such
as in the context of criminal liability or detention, there are often significant differences between
taking a direct part in hostilities for targeting purposes and the standards used for assessing
whether a civilian may be detained or prosecuted.
For example, whether someone may be made the object of attack for taking a direct part
in hostilities is different from whether he or she may be prosecuted for his or her actions. In
some cases, domestic criminal liability for support to enemy armed groups is much broader than
what acts constitute taking a direct part in hostilities.
Similarly, the authority to detain enemy persons during wartime extends beyond
detaining those who have taken a direct part in hostilities.254
Persons, including combatants, placed hors de combat may not be made the object of
attack. Persons placed hors de combat include the following categories of persons, provided
they abstain from any hostile act and do not attempt to escape:
5.10.1 Hors de Combat Notes on Terminology. Hors de combat is a French phrase that
means out of the battle. It is generally used as a term of art to mean persons who may not be
made the object of attack because they are out of the fighting and who therefore must be treated
humanely.
equated with a civilian who remains uninvolved in the conflict. To do so is to place at risk the respect, based on
law, to be accorded to the civilian population.).
252
Refer to 5.8.1 (Armed Forces and Groups and Liability to Being Made the Object of Attack).
253
Refer to 4.18.3 (Private Persons Who Engage in Hostilities Lack of the Privileges of Combatant Status).
254
Refer to 4.8.3 (Civilians Detention); 4.4.2 (Combatants POW Status During Detention).
232
Hors de combat is used in Common Article 3 of the 1949 Geneva Conventions 255 and has
been defined in Article 41 of AP I. 256
5.10.2 Persons in the Power of an Adverse Party. Persons in the power of an adverse
party include all persons detained by an adverse party, such as POWs, unprivileged belligerents,
retained personnel, and civilian internees. As with other categories of persons hors de combat,
detainees must refrain from hostile acts or attempts to escape in order to be considered hors de
combat. 257
5.10.3 Persons Who Have Surrendered. Persons who are not in custody but who have
surrendered are hors de combat and may not be made the object of attack. 258 In order to make a
person hors de combat, the surrender must be (1) genuine; (2) clear and unconditional; and (3)
under circumstances where it is feasible for the opposing party to accept the surrender. 259
5.10.3.2 Clear and Unconditional. The offer to surrender must be clear and
unconditional.
Any arms being carried should be laid down. All hostile acts or resistance, or
manifestations of hostile intent, including efforts to escape or to destroy items, documents, or
equipment to prevent their capture by the enemy, would need to cease immediately for the offer
to be clear and unconditional. Raising ones hands above ones head to show that one is not
255
GWS art. 3(1) (requiring humane treatment for [p]ersons taking no active part in the hostilities, including
members of armed forces who have laid down their arms and those placed hors de combat by sickness, wounds,
detention, or any other cause); GWS-SEA art. 3(1) (same); GPW art. 3(1) (same); GC art. 3(1) (same).
256
AP I art. 41(2) (A person is hors de combat if: (a) He is in the power of an adverse Party; (b) He clearly
expresses an intention to surrender; or (c) He has been rendered unconscious or is otherwise incapacitated by
wounds or sickness, and therefore is incapable of defending himself; provided that in any of these cases he abstains
from any hostile act and does not attempt to escape.).
257
Consider AP I art. 41(2) (A person is hors de combat if: (a) He is in the power of an adverse Party; provided
that in any of these cases he abstains from any hostile act and does not attempt to escape.).
258
HAGUE IV REG. art. 23(c) (it is especially forbidden [t]o kill or wound an enemy who, having laid down his
arms, or having no longer means of defence, has surrendered at discretion;). Consider AP I art. 41(2) (A person is
hors de combat if: (b) He clearly expresses an intention to surrender; provided that in any of these cases he
abstains from any hostile act and does not attempt to escape.).
259
Harold Hongju Koh, Legal Adviser, Department of State, The Lawfulness of the U.S. Operation Against Osama
bin Laden, May 19, 2011, 2011 DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 558-59 (Finally,
consistent with the laws of armed conflict and U.S. military doctrine, the U.S. forces were prepared to capture bin
Laden if he had surrendered in a way that they could safely accept. The laws of armed conflict require acceptance
of a genuine offer of surrender that is clearly communicated by the surrendering party and received by the opposing
force, under circumstances where it is feasible for the opposing force to accept that offer of surrender. But where
that is not the case, those laws authorize use of lethal force against an enemy belligerent, under the circumstances
presented here.).
260
Refer to 5.22.3 (Examples of Killing or Wounding by Resort to Perfidy).
233
preparing to fire a weapon or engage in combat is often a sign of surrender. Waving a white flag
technically is not a sign of surrender, but signals a desire to negotiate. 261
The surrender must be at discretion, i.e., unconditional. 262 A person who offers to
surrender only if certain demands are met would not be hors de combat until that offer has been
accepted.
The feasibility of accepting the surrender refers to whether it is practical and safe for the
opposing force to take custody of the surrendering persons in the circumstances. For example,
consider the situation of enemy soldiers who man an antiaircraft gun and shoot at an enemy
aircraft, and then who raise their hands as if to surrender seconds before a second aircraft attacks
their position. In the circumstances, it would not be feasible for the crew of the attacking aircraft
to land and accept their surrender. 265 Similarly, a soldier fifty meters from an enemy defensive
position in the midst of an infantry assault by his unit could not throw down his weapon and raise
his arms (as if to indicate his desire to surrender) and reasonably expect that the defending unit
will be able to accept and accomplish his surrender while resisting the ongoing assault by his
unit. 266
261
Refer to 12.4 (The White Flag of Truce to Initiate Negotiations).
262
HAGUE IV REG. art. 23(c) (it is especially forbidden [t]o kill or wound an enemy who, having laid down his
arms, or having no longer means of defence, has surrendered at discretion;) (emphasis added).
263
See FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 629 (Surrender involves an offer by the surrendering party (a
unit or an individual soldier) and an ability to accept on the part of his opponent. The latter may not refuse an offer
of surrender when communicated, but that communication must be made at a time when it can be received and
properly acted upon an attempt at surrender in the midst of a hard-fought battle is neither easily communicated nor
received. The issue is one of reasonableness.).
264
Refer to 5.15.3.1 (Open for Immediate Physical Occupation).
265
Refer to 14.9.3.2 (Feasibility of Air Units to Accept the Surrender of Ground Forces).
266
See SPAIGHT, WAR RIGHTS ON LAND 92-93 (A party in a trench must all surrender, genuinely and unmistakably,
for a regiment, squadron, company or squad of men is not like a ship, which, when it hath its bellyful of fighting,
hauls down its colours and is clearly out of the fight. There is no such homogeneity in a unit in land war. It is the
safest rule for a commander to pay no heed to a white flag which is hoisted, in the midst of an action, by a few men
who form part of a more considerable force which still resists.).
267
Refer to 9.5.2.1 (Prohibition on Killing of POWs).
234
5.10.4 Persons Rendered Unconscious or Otherwise Incapacitated by Wounds, Sickness,
or Shipwreck. Persons who have been rendered unconscious or otherwise incapacitated by
wounds, sickness, or shipwreck, such that they are no longer capable of fighting, are hors de
combat. 268
Those rendered unconscious does not include persons who simply fall asleep. Sleeping
combatants generally may be made the object of attack. 269
Shipwrecked combatants include those who have been shipwrecked from any cause and
includes forced landings at sea by or from aircraft. 270
Persons who have been incapacitated by wounds, sickness, or shipwreck are in a helpless
state, and it would be dishonorable and inhumane to make them the object of attack. 271 In order
to receive protection as hors de combat, the person must be wholly disabled from fighting. 272 On
the other hand, many combatants suffer from wounds and sickness, but nonetheless continue to
fight and would not be protected. 273
In many cases, the circumstances of combat may make it difficult to distinguish between
persons who have been incapacitated by wounds, sickness, or shipwreck and those who continue
268
Consider AP I art. 41(2) (A person is hors de combat if: (c) He has been rendered unconscious or is
otherwise incapacitated by wounds or sickness, and therefore is incapable of defending himself; provided that in any
of these cases he abstains from any hostile act and does not attempt to escape.).
269
For example, Judy G. Endicott, Raid on Libya: Operation ELDORADO CANYON, in SHORT OF WAR: MAJOR USAF
CONTINGENCY OPERATIONS 19471997 (A. Timothy Warnock, Air Force Historical Research Agency ed., 2000)
(describing Operation ELDORADO CANYON, in which the United States responded to the Berlin discotheque bombing
by conducting air strikes on multiple Libyan targetsincluding two military barracksin the early hours of April
15, 1986).
270
Refer to 7.3.1.2 (Shipwrecked).
271
GWS-SEA COMMENTARY 87 ([I]t must be pointed out that the purpose of this provision [i.e., the first paragraph
of Article 12 of the GWS-Sea], and indeed of the whole Convention, is to protect wounded, sick and shipwrecked
persons who, if they were not in this helpless state, could rightfully be attacked.).
272
Cf. LIEBER CODE art. 71 (Whoever intentionally inflicts additional wounds on an enemy already wholly
disabled, or kills such an enemy, or who orders or encourages soldiers to do so, shall suffer death, if duly convicted,
whether he belongs to the Army of the United States, or is an enemy captured after having committed his
misdeed.).
273
GWS COMMENTARY 136 footnote 1 (Cases are frequent of soldiers who have heroically continued to fight in
spite of serious wounds. It goes without saying that in so doing they renounce any claim to protection under the
Convention.).
235
to fight. 274 If possible, those seeking protection as wounded, sick, or shipwrecked, should make
their condition clear. 275
274
GWS-SEA COMMENTARY 90 ([D]uring a landing by armed forces it will not always be possible while the attack
is in progress to distinguish between an attacker trying to reach land and a soldier in danger of drowning. Similarly,
in the case of persons specialized in under-water attacks, it may not always be evident when they are in peril and
need assistance as shipwrecked. In such instances, persons in distress who renounce active combat can only expect
the adversary to respect and rescue them if they make their situation clear, and of course provided the adversary sees
their signals.).
275
Compare 5.10.3.2 (Clear and Unconditional).
276
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 30 (The law of war does not prohibit firing upon paratroops or other
persons who are or appear to be bound upon hostile missions while such persons are descending by parachute.
Persons other than those mentioned in the preceding sentence who are descending by parachute from disabled
aircraft may not be fired upon.); APPENDIX TO 1985 CJCS MEMO ON AP I 31 (Article 42 of the Protocol prohibits
attacks on aircrew members descending by parachute from disabled aircraft. The United States regards such attacks
as prohibited under customary international law, and the US delegation argued for explicit recognition of such a rule
at the diplomatic conference which negotiated the Protocol.). Consider AP I art. 42 (1. No person parachuting
from an aircraft in distress shall be made the object of attack during his descent. 3. Airborne troops are not
protected by this Article.); Commission of Jurists to Consider and Report Upon the Revision of the Rules of
Warfare, General Report, Part II: Rules of Arial Warfare, art. 20, Feb. 19, 1923, reprinted in 32 AJIL
SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL DOCUMENTS 12, 21 (1938) (When an aircraft has been disabled, the occupants, when
endeavoring to escape by means of a parachute, must not be attacked in the course of their descent.).
277
ICRC AP COMMENTARY 495 (1637) (There is absolutely no doubt that the majority [of States at the diplomatic
conference] considered that airmen in distress are comparable to the shipwrecked persons protected by the Second
Convention.).
278
ICRC AP COMMENTARY 497 (1644) (The airman who parachutes from an aircraft in distress is therefore
temporarily hors de combat, just as if he had lost consciousness, until the moment that he lands on the ground, and
as long as he is incapacitated.).
236
Persons deploying into combat by parachute may be attacked even if they deploy from an
aircraft in distress (e.g., the enemy has attacked the aircraft to resist the assault).
It may be the case, however, that airborne forces are parachuting from an aircraft in
distress outside the context of an airborne assault. Since they would not be deploying into
combat, they would be hors de combat while descending by parachute.
Combatants must take feasible precautions in conducting attacks to reduce the risk of
harm to civilians and other protected persons and objects. 279 As discussed above, what
precautions are feasible depend greatly on the context, including operational considerations. 280
Feasible precautions in conducting attacks may include the following:
5.11.1 Effective Advance Warning Before an Attack That May Affect the Civilian
Population. Effective advance warning must be given of an attack that may affect the civilian
population, unless circumstances do not permit. 281
In addition, warning requirements exist before certain medical units, vessels, or facilities
forfeit their protection from being made the object of attack:
279
See HAGUE IV REG art. 27 (In sieges and bombardments all necessary steps must be taken to spare, as far as
possible, buildings dedicated to religion, art, science, or charitable purposes, historic monuments, hospitals, and
places where the sick and wounded are collected, provided they are not being used at the time for military
purposes.); HAGUE IX art. 5 (In bombardments by naval forces all the necessary measures must be taken by the
commander to spare as far as possible sacred edifices, buildings used for artistic, scientific, or charitable purposes,
historic monuments, hospitals, and places where the sick or wounded are collected, on the understanding that they
are not used at the same time for military purposes.); Harold Koh, Legal Adviser, Department of State, Letter to
Paul Seger, Legal Adviser of Switzerland regarding Switzerlands Position on the U.S. Reservation to Protocol III
of the Convention on Certain Conventional Weapons, Dec. 30, 2009 (In particular, the U.S. reservation is
consistent with article 57(2)(ii) and article 57(4) of the 1977 Additional Protocol I to the Geneva Conventions.
Article 57(4) provides that governments shall take all reasonable precautions to avoid losses of civilian lives and
damage to civilian objects. Although the United States is not a party to Additional Protocol I, we believe these
provisions are an accurate statement of the fundamental law of war principle of discrimination.). Consider AP I
art. 57(2) (With respect to attacks, the following precautions shall be taken: (a) Those who plan or decide upon an
attack shall: (ii) Take all feasible precautions in the choice of means and methods of attack with a view to
avoiding, and in any event to minimizing, incidental loss of civilian life, injury to civilians and damage to civilian
objects;); AP I art. 57(4) (In the conduct of military operations at sea or in the air, each Party to the conflict shall,
in conformity with its rights and duties under the rules of international law applicable in armed conflict, take all
reasonable precautions to avoid losses of civilian lives and damage to civilian objects.).
280
Refer to 5.3.3 (Affirmative Duties to Take Feasible Precautions for the Protection of Civilians and Other
Protected Persons and Objects).
281
HAGUE IV REG. art. 26 (The officer in command of an attacking force must, before commencing a
bombardment, except in cases of assault, do all in his power to warn the authorities.); HAGUE IX art. 6 (If the
military situation permits, the commander of the attacking naval force, before commencing the bombardment, must
do his utmost to warn the authorities.); LIEBER CODE art. 19 (Commanders, whenever admissible, inform the
enemy of their intention to bombard a place, so that the noncombatants, and especially the women and children, may
be removed before the bombardment commences. But it is no infraction of the common law of war to omit thus to
inform the enemy. Surprise may be a necessity.). Consider AP I art. 57(2)(c) (Effective advance warning shall be
given of attacks which may affect the civilian population, unless circumstances do not permit.).
237
military medical units and facilities; 282
Warnings have been used by U.S. forces conducting bombardments in many conflicts,
such as World War II, 288 the Korean War, 289 the 2003 Iraq War, 290 and the armed conflict against
al-Qaida, the Taliban, and associated forces. 291
282
Refer to 7.10.3.2 (Due Warning Before Cessation of Protection).
283
Refer to 7.11.1 (Protection of Ground Medical Transports on the Same Basis as That of Medical Units).
284
Refer to 7.12.6.1 (Due Warning Before Cessation of Protection).
285
Refer to 7.17.1.2 (Due Warning Before Cessation of Protection).
286
Refer to 7.18.1 (Protection of Civilian Hospital Convoys on the Same Basis as That of Civilian Hospitals).
287
U.S. Comments on the International Committee of the Red Crosss Memorandum on the Applicability of
International Humanitarian Law in the Gulf Region, Jan. 11, 1991, DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN
INTERNATIONAL LAW 1991-1999 2057, 2064 (A warning need not be specific. It may be a blanket warning,
delivered by leaflets and/or radio, advising the civilian population of an enemy nation to avoid remaining in
proximity to military objectives.).
288
For example, SPAIGHT, AIR POWER AND WAR RIGHTS 242 (An hour and a half before the Skoda armament
works at Pilsen in Czechoslovakia were attacked by Flying Fortresses of the 8th U.S.A.A.F. on 25 April, 1945,
Supreme Allied Headquarters broadcast the following warning: Allied bombers are out in great strength to-day.
Their destination may be the Skoda works. Skoda workers get out and stay out until the afternoon.); SPAIGHT, AIR
POWER AND WAR RIGHTS 243 (Before objectives in the French town of Annecy were bombed on the night of 9
May, 1944, the alert was sounded by an Allied plane equipped with a siren. It cruised over the town for twenty
minutes before the first bombers arrived, with the result that the inhabitants had time to seek shelter and only those
who disregarded the warning were injured.).
289
For example, Report of the United Nations Command Operations in Korea for the Period 1-15 July 1952,
enclosure to Note Dated 8 October 1952 From the Representative of the United States Addressed to the Secretary-
General Transmitting the Forty-Ninth Report of the United Nations Command Operations in Korea in Accordance
with the Security Council Resolution of 7 July 1950 (S/1588 ), U.N. Doc. S/2805 (Oct. 9, 1952) (For approximately
one month prior to the raid on Pyongyang and other main supply targets, the United Nations Command aircraft had
dropped leaflets warning civilians to stay away from military targets. Immediately after the strikes more leaflets
were dropped telling civilians to beware of delayed action bombs and to stay away from bomb craters. Every
precaution was taken to attack only military targets and to prevent injury to non-combatants. In consonance with
the United Nations policy of taking every possible step both to restore peace and to prevent needless loss of life,
United Nations Command leaflets and radio broadcasts are being used continually to warn civilians in enemy-
238
5.11.1.2 That May Affect the Civilian Population. The purpose of warning is to
facilitate the protection of the civilian population so that they can take measures to avoid the
dangers inherent in military operations. If the civilian population will not be affected, then there
is no obligation to provide a warning. 292
5.11.2 Adjusting the Timing of the Attack. Adjusting the timing of an attack may reduce
the risk of incidental harm. For example, attacking a military objective when civilians are less
likely to be present may be appropriate. 294 Similarly, it may be appropriate to wait until enemy
forces have departed from populated areas before attacking such forces in order to reduce the
risk of civilian casualties. 295
occupied northern Korea to move away from places where the Communists have concentrated war material factories
and military equipment, supplies and personnel. These warnings are a humanitarian measure taken to minimize
civilian loss of life in United Nations Command attacks on military targets.).
290
For example, Jim Garamone, Coalition Aircraft Paper Iraq With Leaflets, AMERICAN FORCES PRESS SERVICE,
Mar. 19, 2003 (stating that Coalition forces dropped almost 2 million leaflets over Iraq that warned Iraqis to stay
away from military targets).
291
For example, Jim Garamone, U.S. Commando Solo II Takes Over Afghan Airwaves, AMERICAN FORCES PRESS
SERVICE, Oct. 29, 2001 (describing the Commando Solo II flights that use broadcasts to warn the Afghan
population to stay away from Taliban and Al Qaeda targets, including one broadcast that warns civilians to [s]tay
away from military installations, government buildings, terrorist camps, roads, factories or bridges).
292
GREENSPAN, MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 338-39 (Naturally, there is no obligation to give notice where
no civilians remain, and only the military will come under fire.).
293
U.S. Comments on the International Committee of the Red Crosss Memorandum on the Applicability of
International Humanitarian Law in the Gulf Region, Jan. 11, 1991, DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN
INTERNATIONAL LAW 1991-1999 2057, 2064 (The unless circumstances do not permit recognizes the importance
of the element of surprise. Where surprise is important to mission accomplishment and allowable risk to friendly
forces, a warning is not required.).
294
For example, FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 100 (noting that during Operation DESERT STORM
attacks on known dual (i.e., military and civilian) use facilities normally were scheduled at night, because fewer
people would be inside or on the streets outside.).
295
For example, FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 631 (The concentration of Iraqi military personnel and
vehicles, including tanks, invited attack. CINCCENT decided against attack of the Iraqi forces in Kuwait City, since
it could lead to substantial collateral damage to Kuwaiti civilian property and could cause surviving Iraqi units to
decide to mount a defense from Kuwait City rather than depart. Iraqi units remaining in Kuwait City would cause
the Coalition to engage in military operations in urban terrain, a form of fighting that is costly to attacker, defender,
innocent civilians, and civilian objects. The decision was made to permit Iraqi forces to leave Kuwait City and
engage them in the unpopulated area to the north.).
239
For example, it may be advantageous to employ incendiary weapons in attacking an
adversarys repository of biological weapons so as to prevent the biological agents from
adversely affecting the civilian population. 296 Similarly, under certain circumstances, it may be
advantageous to use cluster munitions or precision-guided munitions to minimize the risk of
incidental harm. 297
As with other precautions, the decision of which weapon to use will be subject to many
practical considerations, including effectiveness, cost, and the need to preserve capabilities for
other engagements. Thus, there would be few, if any, instances in which the use of a particular
weapon system, such as precision-guided munitions or cyber tools, 298 would be the only legally
permissible weapon. 299
5.11.4 Identifying Zones in Which Military Objectives Are More Likely to Be Present or
Civilians Are Likely to Be Absent. Identifying and designating zones in which military
objectives are more likely to be present or civilians are likely to be absent may also reduce the
risk of harm to civilians or other protected persons and objects.
For example, attacks in areas in which civilians are present might be subject to greater
restrictions. 300 Similarly, it may be possible to identify areas in which objects of the greatest
296
Refer to 6.14 (Incendiary Weapons).
297
For example, W. Hays Parks, Linebacker and the Law of War, AIR UNIVERSITY REVIEW (Jan.-Feb. 1983)
(During the Vietnam War, the North Vietnamese placed AAA gun positions, ground-controlled intercept (GCI)
radar, and surface-to-air missile (SAM) sites atop or adjacent to dikes, and storing POL [petroleum, oil, and
lubricants] alongside or on top of dikes as a shield against attack. All were legitimate targets. When [the air
defenses] were finally authorized for attack during Linebacker I, it was with the stipulation that the targets were to
be attacked with weapons that would minimize the risk of structural damage to the dikes. This was accomplished
through the use of napalm, strafing, cluster munitions, and other antipersonnel weapons.). Refer to 6.13.2 (Use of
Cluster Munitions to Reduce the Risk of Incidental Harm); 6.14.3.2 (U.S. Reservation to CCW Protocol III on
Incendiary Weapons).
298
Refer to 14.9.2 (Selection of Weapons in Conducting Attacks From the Air Against Ground Military
Objectives); 16.5.3.1 (Cyber Tools as Potential Measures to Reduce the Risk of Harm to Civilians or Civilian
Objects).
299
See, e.g., 2013 GERMAN MANUAL 1117 (The law of armed conflict (LOAC) contains no obligation to use
precision guided ammunition. There may however be situations in which the obligation to discriminate between
military targets and civilians/civilian objects or the obligation to avoid or minimise collateral damage cannot be
fulfilled without the use of such weapons.) (internal cross-reference omitted); 2006 AUSTRALIAN MANUAL 8.38
(The existence of precision-guided weapons, such as GBU 10 and Harpoon missiles, in a military inventory does
not mean that they must necessarily be used in preference to conventional weapons even though the latter may cause
collateral damage. In many cases, conventional weapons may be used to bomb legitimate military targets without
violating the LOAC requirements. It is a command decision as to which weapon to use. This decision will be
guided by the basic principles of the LOAC: military necessity, avoidance of unnecessary suffering and
proportionality.); 2001 CANADIAN MANUAL 527(1) (With the advent of modern technology many armed forces
are now able to deliver weapons on target with much greater precision. However, states are not limited to the use of
precision weapons and munitions. An attack by conventional, free-fall weapons or dumb bombs is lawful
provided that the overriding principles of proportionality and superfluous injury/unnecessary suffering as well as
other applicable rules are not violated.).
300
For example, General Petraeus, Unclassified Excerpts from Tactical Directive, Aug. 1, 2010, reprinted in
International Security Assistance Force Afghanistan, Headquarters, General Petraeus Issues Updated Tactical
Directive: Emphasizes Disciplined Use of Force, Aug. 4, 2010 (Prior to the use of fires, the commander
240
military importance are located and to place additional restrictions on attacks conducted outside
these areas in order to limit unnecessary destruction. 301
Combatants must refrain from attacks in which the expected loss of life or injury to
civilians, and damage to civilian objects incidental to the attack, would be excessive in relation
to the concrete and direct military advantage expected to be gained. 304 This is commonly called
the proportionality rule.
approving the strike must determine that no civilians are present. If unable to assess the risk of civilian presence,
fires are prohibited, except under of the following two conditions (specific conditions deleted due to operational
security; however, they have to do with the risk to ISAF and Afghan forces). (NOTE) This directive, as with the
previous version, does not prevent commanders from protecting the lives of their men and women as a matter of
self-defense where it is determined no other options are available to effectively counter the threat.).); U.S.
MILITARY ASSISTANCE COMMAND VIET-NAM DIRECTIVE 525-13, Military Operations: Rules of Engagement for the
Employment of Firepower in the Republic of Vietnam, 5g (May 1971), reprinted in 1975 DIGEST OF UNITED
STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 814, 815 (Specified Strike Zones (SSZ). An area designated for a
specific period of time by Government of South Viet-Nam (G.V.N.) RVNAF [Republic of Vietnam Armed Forces]
in which there are no friendly forces or populace and in which targets may be attacked on the initiative of
U.S./FWMAF/RVNAF commanders. SSZ will not be referred to as Free Fire Zones. Furthermore, the term Free
Fire Zone will not be used under any circumstances.).
301
For example, MALCOLM W. CAGLE & FRANK A. MANSON, THE SEA WAR IN KOREA 97 (1957) (Vice Admiral
Strubles orders to the bombardment forces clearly specified that there should be no promiscuous firing at the city
itself or at civilian installations. To achieve this, the entire objective area had been divided into 60 sub-areas.
Known military targets had been previously assigned, and those which offered the greatest potential hazard to our
landing troops were circled in red. It had been agreed that any ship could fire into a red-circle area with or without a
spot. In the uncircled areas, however, firing was permitted only if definite targets were found and an air spot was
available. This differentiation between types of areas was adopted to reduce destruction of nonmilitary targets to a
minimum, to save the city of Inchon for occupation forces, and to avoid injury to civilian personnel. The Seoul-
Inchon area is inhabited by our South Korean Allies, said Struble in an order to his forces, and our forces plan to
utilize facilities in this area. Unnecessary destruction will impede our progress. Bombing and gunfire will be
confined to targets whose destruction will contribute to the conduct of operations accurate gunfire and pinpoint
bombing against specific targets, rather than area destruction, is contemplated.).
302
AP I art. 57(3).
303
U.S. Comments on the International Committee of the Red Crosss Memorandum on the Applicability of
International Humanitarian Law in the Gulf Region, Jan. 11, 1991, DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN
INTERNATIONAL LAW 1991-1999 2057, 2064 (Paragraph 4B(4) contains the language of Article 57(3) of Protocol I,
and is not a part of customary law. The provision applies when a choice is possible ; it is not mandatory. An
attacker may comply with it if it is possible to do so, subject to mission accomplishment and allowable risk, or he
may determine that it is impossible to make such a determination.) (amendment shown in Digest).
304
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 41 (loss of life and damage to property incidental to attacks must not be
excessive in relation to the concrete and direct military advantage expected to be gained. Those who plan or decide
upon an attack, therefore, must take all reasonable steps to ensure not only that the objectives are identified as
241
5.12.1 General Notes on Applying the Proportionality Rule in Conducting Attacks. In
conducting attacks, the proportionality rule only need be applied when civilians or civilian
objects are at risk of harm from attacks on military objectives. It would not apply when civilians
or civilian objects are not at risk. 305
5.12.2 Types of Harm Loss of Life, Injury, and Damage. The proportionality rule in
conducting attacks addresses loss of life, injury, and damage to property. Lesser forms of harm,
such as mere inconveniences or temporary losses, need not be considered in applying the
proportionality rule. 306
5.12.2.1 Remote Harms. Remote harms resulting from the attack do not need to
be considered in a proportionality analysis. For example, the death of an enemy combatant
might cause economic harm to his or her family, or the destruction of a tank factory might cause
economic harm in the form of lost jobs; the attacker would not be required to consider such loss
in applying the proportionality rule. 307 Similarly, the attacker would not be required to consider
in the proportionality analysis the possibility that a munition might not detonate as intended and
might injure civilians much later after the attack because the risk of such harm is too remote. 308
military objectives or defended places within the meaning of the preceding paragraph but also that these objectives
may be attacked without probable losses in lives and damage to property disproportionate to the military advantage
anticipated.). Consider AP I art. 51(5)(b) (considering as a prohibited indiscriminate attack [a]n attack which may
be expected to cause incidental loss of civilian life, injury to civilians, damage to civilian objects, or a combination
thereof, which would be excessive in relation to the concrete and direct military advantage anticipated.); AP I art.
57(2)(a)(iii) (requiring that those who plan or decide upon an attack [r]efrain from deciding to launch any attack
which may be expected to cause incidental loss of civilian life, injury to civilians, damage to civilian objects, or a
combination thereof, which would be excessive in relation to the concrete and direct military advantage
anticipated).
305
Refer to 5.5.6 (Force That May Be Applied Against Military Objectives).
306
See Yoram Dinstein, Distinction and Loss of Civilian Protection in International Armed Conflicts, 84 U.S.
NAVAL WAR COLLEGE INTERNATIONAL LAW STUDIES, 183, 186 (2008) (Yet it must be borne in mind that not
every inconvenience to civilians ought to be considered relevant. In war-time, there are inevitable scarcities of
foodstuffs and services. Indeed, food, clothing, petrol and other essentials may actually be rationed; buses and trains
may not run on time; curfews and blackouts may impinge on the quality of life; etc. These do not count in the
calculus of proportionality.). Cf. WILLIAM H. BOOTHBY, THE LAW OF TARGETING 370 (2012) (Issues of
proportionality do not of course arise where there is no attack. Thus where soft attack methods are adopted
resulting, perhaps, in inconvenience but neither injury nor damage, there is no requirement to consider that
inconvenience when deciding whether, and if so how, to undertake the military operation.).
307
For example, Rear Admiral Thomas Wilson, Director of Intelligence, Joint Staff, DoD News Briefing, Apr. 22,
1999 (Krusevac tractor plant in Serbia was a new target. You can see here assembly and engineering buildings
which were involved in manufacturing support or parts for tanks and APCs as well as for civilian vehicles, and we
had moderate to severe physical damage to these facilities with functional damage assessments being made at this
time. ... Q: At the Yugo factory there are tens of thousands of Yugoslav workers that cant work. I take it the tractor
factory will put thousands out of work. Is that an intended strike against the economy of Milosevic? Rear Admiral
Wilson: The intent of the strike was to destroy their ability to sustain and repair military vehicles. Its an
unfortunate consequence of the leadership's decision to pursue their policies thats impacting the Yugoslav
people.).
308
Christopher Greenwood, Legal Issues Regarding Explosive Remnants Of War, Group of Government Experts of
States Parties to the Convention on Prohibitions or Restrictions on the Use of Certain Conventional Weapons,
CCW/GGE/I/WP.10 (2002) 8 (If, for example, cluster weapons are used against military targets in an area where
242
5.12.2.2 Harm Resulting From Enemy Action, or Beyond the Control of Either
Party. Persons or objects harmed through action directly attributable to enemy action, or beyond
the control of either party, would be excluded from the attacking forces proportionality analysis.
For example, civilians injured or killed by enemy air defense measures, such as spent
surface-to-air measures or antiaircraft projectiles, would not be considered in the attacking
forces proportionality analysis. 309 Similarly, the risk that the attacking forces munitions would
be diverted from their intended target by legitimate deception activities of the opposing force,
such as jamming, smoke, or chaff, would not need to be considered in the attacking forces
proportionality analysis.
5.12.3 Harm to Certain Categories of Persons and Objects That is Understood Not to
Prohibit Attacks Under the Proportionality Rule. Harm to the following categories of persons
and objects would be understood not to prohibit attacks under the proportionality rule: (1)
military objectives; (2) certain categories of individuals who may be employed in or on military
objectives; and (3) human shields.
For example, an attack against an enemy combatant might also injure other enemy
combatants who were not the specific targets of the attack. Harm to these individuals or damage
to military objectives would not need to be taken into account in applying the proportionality
rule, even if this harm was an unintended result of the attack.
there are known to be civilians, then the proportionality test may require that account be taken both of the risk to the
civilians from sub-munitions exploding during the attack and of the risk from unexploded sub-munitions in the
hours immediately after the attack. It is an entirely different matter, however, to require that account be taken of the
longer-term risk posed by [Explosive Remnants of War (ERW)], particularly of the risk which ERW can pose after a
conflict has ended or after civilians have returned to an area from which they had fled. The degree of that risk turns
on too many factors which are incapable of assessment at the time of the attack, such as when and whether civilians
will be permitted to return to an area, what steps the party controlling that area will have taken to clear unexploded
ordnance, what priority that party gives to the protection of civilians and so forth. The proportionality test has to be
applied on the basis of information reasonably available at the time of the attack. The risks posed by ERW once the
immediate aftermath of an attack has passed are too remote to be capable of assessment at that time.).
309
See, e.g., FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 177-78 (During the 1991 Gulf War, [t]here is also a
probability that some [incidental civilian] casualties occurred when unexploded Iraqi SAMs [surface-to-air missiles]
or AAA [antiaircraft artillery] fell back to earth. The often dense fire the Iraqis expended in attempts to shoot down
Coalition aircraft and cruise missiles almost certainly caused some destruction on the ground from malfunctioning
fuses or self-destruction features, as well as the simple impact of spent rounds.).
310
Refer to 4.15.2.3 (Increased Risk of Incidental Harm).
243
parlementaires; 311 and
These persons are deemed to have assumed the risk of incidental harm from military
operations. Moreover, the law of war accepts that the defender may employ these persons to
support military operations near or within military objectives. If these persons could have the
effect of prohibiting attacks by the attacking force, then the defending force that used such
persons in proximity to its forces or military objectives would be unlawfully using the presence
of such persons to shield its operations or its military objectives from attack. 313
5.12.3.3 Harm to Human Shields. Use of human shields violates the rule that
civilians may not be used to shield, favor, or impede military operations. 314 The party that
employs human shields in an attempt to shield military objectives from attack assumes
responsibility for their injury, provided that the attacker takes feasible precautions in conducting
its attack. 315
311
Refer to 12.5.3 (Duties and Liabilities of the Parlementaire).
312
See 2007 NWP 1-14M 8.3.2 (The presence of civilian workers, such as technical representatives aboard a
warship or employees in a munitions factory, in or on a military objective, does not alter the status of the military
objective. These civilians may be excluded from the proportionality analysis.); BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW
RULES 303 (AP I art. 51, 2.4.2.2) (During international armed conflict, workers in defense plants or those engaged
in distribution or storage of military supplies in rear areas assume the risk of incidental injury as a result of attacks
against their places of work or transport.); International Committee of the Red Cross, Draft Rules for the Limitation
of the Dangers Incurred by the Civilian Population in Time of War, art. 6(3), 9 (Sept. 1956) (Nevertheless, should
members of the civilian population, Article 11 notwithstanding, be within or in close proximity to a military
objective they must accept the risks resulting from an attack directed against that objective.).
313
Refer to 5.16 (Prohibition on Using Protected Persons and Objects to Shield, Favor, or Impede Military
Operations).
314
Refer to 5.16 (Prohibition on Using Protected Persons and Objects to Shield, Favor, or Impede Military
Operations).
315
U.S. Comments on the International Committee of the Red Crosss Memorandum on the Applicability of
International Humanitarian Law in the Gulf Region, Jan. 11, 1991, DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN
INTERNATIONAL LAW 1991-1999 2057, 2063 (In no case may a combatant force utilize individual civilians or the
civilian population to shield a military objective from attack. A nation that utilizes civilians to shield a target from
attack assumes responsibility for their injury, so long as an attacker exercises reasonable precaution in executing its
operations. Likewise, civilians working within or in the immediate vicinity of a legitimate military objective assume
a certain risk of injury.); Instructor Training Course, 3g, Appendix C in DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY SUBJECT
SCHEDULE 27-1, The Geneva Conventions of 1949 and Hague Convention No. IV of 1907, 18 (Aug. 29, 1975) ((4)
Question: Suppose we are receiving fire from the enemy, and they are using unarmed civilians as shields. May we
fire back, knowing that we will be killing many of these unarmed cilivians? Answer: Yes. We may fire since we
have the right to defend ourselves. The responsibility for innocent casualties falls upon those who would violate the
law of war by using innocents as shields.).
244
If the proportionality rule were interpreted to permit the use of human shields to prohibit
attacks, such an interpretation would perversely encourage the use of human shields and allow
violations by the defending force to increase the legal obligations on the attacking force. 316
5.12.4 Excessive. Under the proportionality rule, the potential attack against the
military objective is prohibited only when the expected incidental harm is excessive compared to
the military advantage to be gained.
The weighing or comparison between the expected incidental harm and the expected
military advantage does not necessarily lend itself to empirical analyses. 317 On the one hand,
striking an ammunition depot or a terrorist training camp would not be prohibited because a
farmer is plowing a field in the area. 318 On the other hand, a very significant military advantage
would be necessary to justify the collateral death or injury to thousands of civilians. 319 In less
clear-cut cases, the question of whether the expected incidental harm is excessive may be a
highly open-ended legal inquiry, and the answer may be subjective and imprecise. 320
316
Refer to 5.5.4 (Failure by the Defender to Separate or Distinguish Does Not Relieve the Attacker of the Duty to
Discriminate in Conducting Attacks).
317
ICTY, Final Report to the Prosecutor by the Committee Established to Review the NATO Bombing Campaign
Against the Federal Republic of Yugoslavia, 48 (Jun. 13, 2000) (The main problem with the principle of
proportionality is not whether or not it exists but what it means and how it is to be applied. It is relatively simple to
state that there must be an acceptable relation between the legitimate destructive effect and undesirable collateral
effects. Unfortunately, most applications of the principle of proportionality are not quite so clear cut. It is much
easier to formulate the principle of proportionality in general terms than it is to apply it to a particular set of
circumstances because the comparison is often between unlike quantities and values. One cannot easily assess the
value of innocent human lives as opposed to capturing a particular military objective.).
318
ICTY, Final Report to the Prosecutor by the Committee Established to Review the NATO Bombing Campaign
Against the Federal Republic of Yugoslavia, 48 (Jun. 13, 2000) (For example, bombing a refugee camp is
obviously prohibited if its only military significance is that people in the camp are knitting socks for soldiers.
Conversely, an air strike on an ammunition dump should not be prohibited merely because a farmer is plowing a
field in the area.); ROGERS, LAW ON THE BATTLEFIELD 64-65 (Accepting at face value for the sake of legal
analysis a press report of a pilot whose attack on an army lorry and a busload of soldiers also killed a small boy in a
civilian car, this could not be said to have violated the proportionality principle.).
319
See, e.g., GREENSPAN, MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 335 ([A]n attack on a war factory which is known to
be of minor importance cannot justify the incidental destruction of the whole town where it is situated.). For
example, W. Hays Parks, The 1977 Protocols to the Geneva Convention of 1949, 68 U.S. NAVAL WAR COLLEGE
INTERNATIONAL LAW STUDIES 467, 470 (1995) (During the Vietnam War, for example, the North Vietnamese
installed substantial concentrations of antiaircraft guns and missiles on the earthware dikes and dams surrounding
Haiphong and Hanoi. Military necessity warranted airstrikes against these positions. However, attack of the
positions with conventional ordnance would destroy not only the enemy positions but the dams as well. This would
result in massive flooding and in the probable deaths of several hundred thousand civilians, a cost U.S. authorities
concluded was disproportionate to the military advantage to be gained. When the mission finally was approved by
President Nixon, it was executed with a clear proviso that only antipersonnel bombs, capable of neutralization of the
positions without substantial damage to the dikes, would be used.).
320
Statement of Interest of the United States of America, Matar v. Dichter, 05 Civ. 10270 (WHP) (S.D.N.Y. Nov. 17,
2006), 2006 DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 465, 471-72 (Along similar lines,
plaintiffs cite Article 57 of Additional Protocol I, which provides, inter alia, that [t]hose who plan or decide upon
an attack shall [r]efrain from deciding to launch any attack which may be expected to cause incidental loss of
civilian life, injury to civilians, damage to civilian objects, or a combination thereof, which would be excessive in
relation to the concrete and direct military advantage anticipated. Additional Protocol I, Art. 57, cl. 2(a)(iii).
245
5.12.5 Concrete and Direct Military Advantage Expected to Be Gained. The expected
military advantage gained from attacking a particular military objective must be concrete and
direct.
Military advantage may involve a variety of considerations, including: (1) denying the
enemy the ability to benefit from the objects effective contribution to its military action (e.g.,
using this object in its military operations); (2) improving the security of the attacking force; and
(3) diverting the enemys resources and attention.
Again, the rub lies in determining what counts as excessive. Any number of intangibles must be [c]onsidered:
How important is the military objective sought to be achieved? What are the pros and cons of each option available
to achieve that objective? For each option, what is the probability of success? What are the costs of failure? What
are the risks of civilian casualties involved in each option? What are the risks of military casualties involved in each
option? How are casualties of either kind to be weighed against the benefits of the operation? In short, questions of
proportionality are highly open-ended, and the answers to them tend to be subjective and imprecise.).
321
Refer to 5.7.7.3 (Definite Military Advantage).
322
U.S. Comments on the International Committee of the Red Crosss Memorandum on the Applicability of
International Humanitarian Law in the Gulf Region, Jan. 11, 1991, DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN
INTERNATIONAL LAW 1991-1999 2057, 2064 (The concept of incidental loss of life excessive in relation to the
military advantage anticipated generally is measured against an overall campaign.). For example, FINAL REPORT
ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 611 (An uncodified but similar provision is the principle of proportionality. It
prohibits military action in which the negative effects (such as collateral civilian casualties) clearly outweigh the
military gain. This balancing may be done on a target-by-target basis, as frequently was the case during Operation
Desert Storm, but also may be weighed in overall terms against campaign objectives.).
323
United Kingdom, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Jan. 28, 1998, 2020 UNTS 75, 77 (Re: Article 51 and
Article 57 In the view of the United Kingdom, the military advantage anticipated from an attack is intended to refer
to the advantage anticipated from the attack considered as a whole and not only from isolated or particular parts of
the attack.); Australia, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Jun. 21, 1991, 1642 UNTS 473 (In relation to paragraph
5(b) of Article 51 and to paragraph 2(a)(iii) of Article 57, it is the understanding of Australia that references to the
military advantage are intended to mean the advantage anticipated from the military attack considered as a whole
and not only from isolated or particular parts of that attack .); Germany, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Feb.
14, 1991, 1607 UNTS 526, 529 (In applying the rule of proportionality in Article 51 and Article 57, 'military
advantage' is understood to refer to the advantage anticipated from the attack considered as a whole and not only
from isolated or particular parts of the attack.); Netherlands, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Jun. 26, 1987, 1477
UNTS 300 (With regard to Article 51, paragraph 5 and Article 57, paragraphs 2 and 3 of Protocol I: It is the
understanding of the Government of the Kingdom of the Netherlands that military advantage refers to the advantage
anticipated from the attack considered as a whole and not only from isolated or particular parts of the attack .).
246
5.13 ATTACKS ON FACILITIES, WORKS, OR INSTALLATIONS CONTAINING DANGEROUS FORCES
Certain facilities containing dangerous forces, such as dams, nuclear power plants, or
facilities producing weapons of mass destruction, may constitute military objectives. There may
be a number of reasons for their attack, such as denial of electric power to military sources, use
of a dangerous facility (e.g., by causing release from a dam) to damage or destroy other military
objectives, or to pre-empt enemy release of the dangerous forces to hamper the movement or
advance of U.S. or allied forces. 324
The United States has objected to this article of AP I. 327 In ratifying AP I, other States
have taken reservations from this article. 328 Insofar as Article 56 of AP I deviates from the
324
For example, Mark L. Evans and C. Ross Bloodsworth, The Dambusters at Hwachon, NAVAL AVIATION NEWS
22, 23 (May-Jun. 2001) (explaining the military significance of Hwachon Dam during the Korean war by noting that
the enemys control of the facility allowed them to flood the valley and stop further UN advances or [i]f they
held back the water by closing the gates, the river would be lowered to fordable depths and enable communist
infiltration across the river against the exposed allied flanks.).
325
Refer to 5.6 (Discrimination in Conducting Attacks); 5.12 (Proportionality in Conducting Attacks).
326
Refer to 5.11 (Feasible Precautions in Conducting Attacks to Reduce the Risk of Harm to Protected Persons and
Objects).
327
See The Position of the United States on Current Law of War Agreements: Remarks of Judge Abraham D.
Sofaer, Legal Adviser, United States Department of State, Jan. 22, 1987, 2 AMERICAN UNIVERSITY JOURNAL OF
INTERNATIONAL LAW AND POLICY 460, 468 (1987) (Article 56 of Protocol I is designed to protect dams, dikes, and
nuclear power plants against attacks that could result in severe civilian losses. As its negotiating history indicates,
this article would protect objects that would be considered legitimate military objectives under customary
international law. Attacks on such military objectives would be prohibited if severe civilian casualties might result
from flooding or release of radiation. The negotiating history throws little light on what level of civilian losses
would be severe. It is clear, however, that under this article, civilian losses are not to be balanced against the
military value of the target. If severe losses would result, then the attack is forbidden, no matter how important the
target. It also appears that article 56 forbids any attack that raises the possibility of severe civilian losses, even
though considerable care is taken to avoid them.).
247
regular application of the distinction and proportionality rules, the U.S. view has been that it does
not reflect customary international law applicable in international and non-international armed
conflicts.
5.14 FEASIBLE PRECAUTIONS TO REDUCE THE RISK OF HARM TO PROTECTED PERSONS AND
OBJECTS BY THE PARTY SUBJECT TO ATTACK
Outside the context of conducting attacks (such as when conducting defense planning or
other military operations), parties to a conflict should also take feasible precautions to reduce the
risk of harm to protected persons and objects from the effects of enemy attacks. 329 In particular,
military commanders and other officials responsible for the safety of the civilian populations
must take reasonable steps to separate the civilian population from military objectives and to
protect the civilian population from the effects of combat. As discussed above, what precautions
are feasible depends greatly on the context, including operational considerations. 330 Feasible
precautions by the party subject to attack may include the following:
5.14.1 Refraining From Placing Military Objectives in Densely Populated Areas. It may
be appropriate to avoid placing military objectives, such as the armed forces, in urban or other
densely populated areas, in order to reduce the risk of incidental harm to the civilian
population. 331
However, it often may not be feasible to refrain from placing military objectives in
densely populated areas. Legitimate military reasons often require locating or billeting military
forces in urban areas or other areas where civilians are present. For example, forces may be
housed in populated areas to take advantage of existing facilities, such as facilities for shelter,
health and sanitation, communications, or power. In some cases, especially during counter-
insurgency operations or in non-international armed conflict generally, the protection of the
328
See, e.g., United Kingdom, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Jan. 28, 1998, 2020 UNTS 75, 78 (Re. Articles 56
and 85, paragraph 3 (c) The United Kingdom cannot undertake to grant absolute protection to installations which
may contribute to the opposing Partys war effort, or to the defenders of such installations, but will take all due
precautions in military operations at or near the installations referred to in paragraph 1 of Article 56 in the light of
the known facts, including any special marking which the installation may carry, to avoid severe collateral losses
among civilian populations; direct attacks on such installations will be launched only on authorization at a high level
of command.); France, Statement on Ratification of AP I, translated in SCHINDLER & TOMAN, THE LAWS OF
ARMED CONFLICTS: A COLLECTION OF CONVENTIONS, RESOLUTIONS, AND OTHER DOCUMENTS 801 (2004) (The
Government of the French Republic cannot guarantee an absolute protection to the works and installations
containing dangerous forces which may contribute to the opposing Partys war effort, or to the defenders of such
installations, but will take all precautions referred to the provisions of Article 56, of Article 57, paragraph 2(a)(iii)
and of paragraph 3(c) of Article 85 in order to avoid severe collateral losses among the civilian populations,
including possible direct attacks.).
329
Consider AP I art. 58 (The Parties to the conflict shall, to the maximum extent feasible: (a) Without prejudice
to Article 49 of the Fourth Convention, endeavour to remove the civilian population, individual civilians and civilian
objects under their control from the vicinity of military objectives; (b) Avoid locating military objectives within or
near densely populated areas; (c) Take the other necessary precautions to protect the civilian population, individual
civilians and civilian objects under their control against the dangers resulting from military operations.).
330
Refer to 5.3.3.2 (What Precautions Are Feasible).
331
Consider AP I art. 58 (The Parties to the conflict shall, to the maximum extent feasible: (b) Avoid locating
military objectives within or near densely populated areas;).
248
civilian population may be increased by placing military forces in densely populated areas to
protect the civilian population from enemy attack and influence.
5.14.2 Removing Civilians and Civilian Objects From the Vicinity of Military
Objectives. It may be appropriate to remove civilians and civilian objects from the vicinity of
military objectives. 332 In particular, civilian hospitals should be situated as far as possible from
military objectives. 333
The evacuation of civilians from areas likely to be attacked is advisable when there is
immediate danger and where it would be likely to involve less hardship and danger to civilians
than leaving them in place. 334
Voluntary removal of civilians may be accomplished through the use of warnings. 335
When removing civilians from the vicinity of military objectives, it may be appropriate to
establish safety, hospital, or neutralized zones so that civilians have safe places to move
toward. 336
It also may be appropriate to conclude local agreements for the removal of civilians from
besieged or encircled areas. 337
5.14.3 Establishing Areas Where Civilians or the Wounded and Sick Are Protected.
Certain zones or localities may be established through the agreement of parties to a conflict to
shelter civilians or wounded and sick combatants from the effects of attacks. 339
332
Consider AP I art. 58 (The Parties to the conflict shall, to the maximum extent feasible: (a) Without prejudice
to Article 49 of the Fourth Convention, endeavour to remove the civilian population, individual civilians and civilian
objects under their control from the vicinity of military objectives;).
333
Refer to 7.17.3 (Location of Civilian Hospitals).
334
2004 UK MANUAL 5.36.1 (The evacuation of civilians from areas likely to be attacked is advisable when there
is immediate danger and where it would be likely to involve less hardship and danger to civilians than leaving them
in place.).
335
Refer to 5.11.1 (Effective Advance Warning Before an Attack That May Affect the Civilian Population).
336
Refer to 5.14.3 (Establishing Areas Where Civilians or the Wounded and Sick Are Protected).
337
Refer to 5.19.2 (Removal and Passage of Certain Personnel Vulnerable Civilians, Diplomatic and Consular
Personnel, the Wounded and Sick, and Medical Personnel).
338
Refer to 11.12.3 (Prohibition Against Forcible Transfers and Deportations).
339
For example, SYLVIE-STOYANKA JUNOD, INTERNATIONAL COMMITTEE OF THE RED CROSS, PROTECTION OF THE
VICTIMS OF ARMED CONFLICT FALKLAND-MALVINAS ISLANDS: INTERNATIONAL HUMANITARIAN LAW AND
HUMANITARIAN ACTION (1982) 26 (1984) (At Britains suggestion, and without any special agreement in writing,
the Parties to the conflict established a neutral zone at sea. This zone, called the Red Cross Box, with a diameter of
approximately twenty nautical miles, was located on the high seas to the north of the islands. Without hampering
military operations, it enabled hospital ships to hold position, in particular the UGANDA, and exchange British and
Argentine wounded.).
249
In this context, locality means a specific place of limited area, generally containing
buildings, while zone means a relatively large area of land and may include one or more
localities. 340
5.14.3.1 Civilian Hospital and Safety Zones and Localities. During international
armed conflict, States may establish hospital and safety zones and localities to protect certain
persons from the effects of war, namely, wounded, sick, and aged persons, children under fifteen,
expectant mothers, and mothers of children under seven. 341 Parties to a conflict may conclude
agreements on the mutual recognition of the hospital zones and localities they have created,
drawing upon model agreements that are annexed to the 1949 Geneva Conventions. 342 The
establishment of a zone only binds an adverse party when it agrees to recognize the zone. 343
These zones and localities may be combined with hospital zones established for the wounded and
sick of the armed forces. 344
Protecting Powers and the ICRC may seek to facilitate the institution and recognition of
civilian hospital and safety zones and localities. 345
5.14.3.2 Military Hospital Zones and Localities. States may establish in their
own territory, and if the need arises, in occupied areas, hospital zones and localities so organized
as to protect the wounded and sick (as defined in the GWS 346) from the effects of war, as well as
340
GC COMMENTARY 120-21 (Locality should be taken to mean a specific place of limited area, generally
containing buildings. The term zone is used to describe a relatively large area of land and may include one or more
localities.).
341
GC art. 14 (In time of peace, the High Contracting Parties and, after the outbreak of hostilities, the Parties
thereto, may establish in their own territory and, if the need arises, in occupied areas, hospital and safety zones and
localities so organized as to protect from the effects of war, wounded, sick and aged persons, children under fifteen,
expectant mothers and mothers of children under seven.).
342
GC art. 14 (Upon the outbreak and during the course of hostilities, the Parties concerned may conclude
agreements on mutual recognition of the zones and localities they have created. They may for this purpose
implement the provisions of the Draft Agreement annexed to the present Convention, with such amendments as they
may consider necessary.).
343
GC COMMENTARY 127 (The zones will not, strictly speaking, have any legal existence, or enjoy protection
under the Convention, until such time as they have been recognized by the adverse Party. This will entail the
conclusion of an agreement between the Power which has established zones in its territory and the Powers with
which it is at war. It is only an agreement of this kind, concluded, as a general rule, after the outbreak of hostilities,
which gives legal form to the obligation on States which have accorded recognition to zones to respect those zones.
An agreement recognizing the zones is thus a sine qua non of their legal existence from the international point of
view. It should contain all the provisions, particularly in regard to control procedure, required to prevent disputes
arising later in regard to its interpretation.).
344
GC COMMENTARY 125 (As has already been pointed out, the provisions relating to hospital and safety zones in
the First and Fourth Geneva Conventions are sufficiently flexible to make various combinations possible. There is,
for instance, no reason why a hospital zone should not combine the two types and provide shelter for both soldiers
and civilians in need of treatment, since once a soldier is wounded or sick, he may be said to be no longer a
combatant on either side, but simply a suffering, inoffensive human being.).
345
GC art. 14 (The Protecting Powers and the International Committee of the Red Cross are invited to lend their
good offices in order to facilitate the institution and recognition of these hospital and safety zones and localities.).
346
Refer to 7.3.2 (Persons Entitled to Protection as Wounded, Sick, or Shipwrecked Under the GWS and GWS-
Sea).
250
the personnel entrusted with the organization and administration of these zones and localities and
with the care of the persons assembled within them. 347
These neutralized zones are to shelter: (a) wounded and sick combatants or
noncombatants; and (b) civilian persons who take no part in hostilities, and who, while they
reside in the zones, perform no work of a military character. 350
5.14.4 Using Distinctive and Visible Signs to Identify Protected Persons and Objects as
Such. It may be appropriate to identify protected persons and objects, as such, through the use of
347
GWS art. 23 (In time of peace, the High Contracting Parties and, after the outbreak of hostilities, the Parties
thereto, may establish in their own territory and, if the need arises, in occupied areas, hospital zones and localities so
organized as to protect the wounded and sick from the effects of war, as well as the personnel entrusted with the
organization and administration of these zones and localities and with the care of the persons therein assembled.).
348
For example, 2004 UK MANUAL 5.40.1 footnote 258 (During the Falklands conflict of 1982, a neutralized zone
was set up in the centre of Port Stanley, comprising the cathedral and a clearly defined area around it. This was
done at the suggestion of the ICRC representative and with the consent of the Argentine and British authorities.);
SPAIGHT, AIR POWER AND WAR RIGHTS 256 (With the consent of both the Chinese and Japanese military
authorities a district known as Nantao, lying between the French concession and a densely populated part of the old
Chinese city, was selected and cleared of all troops, munition factories and other military establishments, and its
boundaries were marked by flags. The outstanding success of this scheme at Shanghai led very quickly to the
adoption of similar arrangements at Hankow and other great Chinese cities that were liable to bombardment, and it
may be accepted that the lives of tens, if not of hundreds, of thousands of hapless Chinese have thus been saved.).
349
GC COMMENTARY 129 ([N]eutralized zones differ from hospital and safety zones in that they are established in
the actual regions where fighting is taking place and are intended to give shelter to both civilian and military
wounded and sick, as well as all civilian persons who take no part in hostilities. Furthermore, they are generally set
up on a temporary basis to meet the tactical situation at a particular moment, whereas hospital and safety zones tend
to be more permanent in character.).
350
GC art. 15 (Any Party to the conflict may, either direct or through a neutral State or some humanitarian
organization, propose to the adverse Party to establish, in the regions where fighting is taking place, neutralized
zones intended to shelter from the effects of war the following persons, without distinction: (a) wounded and sick
combatants or non-combatants; (b) civilian persons who take no part in hostilities, and who, while they reside in the
zones, perform no work of a military character.).
351
GC art. 15 (When the Parties concerned have agreed upon the geographical position, administration, food
supply and supervision of the proposed neutralized zone, a written agreement shall be concluded and signed by the
representatives of the Parties to the conflict. The agreement shall fix the beginning and the duration of the
neutralization of the zone.).
251
distinctive and visible signs. For example, it may be appropriate to identify civilian hospitals 352
or civilian air raid shelters in order to facilitate their protection during enemy bombardment. 353
Signs indicating civilian objects, as such, should be notified to the opposing party so that the
opposing party knows to refrain from bombarding places or buildings bearing these signs.
Where enemy forces seek to make peaceful civilians the object of attack, then it would
not be appropriate to distinguish civilian objects. Such precautions would not be feasible
because they would not be expected to yield a humanitarian benefit. 354
5.14.5 Carrying Arms Openly and Wearing of Distinctive Emblems by the Armed Forces
to Distinguish Themselves From the Civilian Population. Although the practices of carrying
arms openly and wearing uniforms and distinctive emblems by armed forces predates
contemporary doctrines of feasible precautions, these practices may be viewed as feasible
precautions that help protect the civilian population from being erroneously made the object of
attack. 355
This requirement of armed forces to wear distinctive emblems has been understood as a
requirement for the armed forces as a group. 356 However, it applies, to some extent, on an
individual basis in the context of liability for spying or sabotage. 357 The obligation of armed
forces to distinguish themselves includes, but is not limited to, those times when they conduct
attacks. 358 However, the requirement to wear distinctive emblems is not an absolute one, even
during combat. 359
352
Refer to 7.17.2.2 (Markings of Civilian Hospitals With the Distinctive Emblem).
353
See, e.g., HAGUE IV REG art. 27 (In sieges and bombardments all necessary steps must be taken to spare, as far
as possible, buildings dedicated to religion, art, science, or charitable purposes, historic monuments, hospitals, and
places where the sick and wounded are collected, provided they are not being used at the time for military purposes.
It is the duty of the besieged to indicate the presence of such buildings or places by distinctive and visible signs,
which shall be notified to the enemy beforehand.); HAGUE IX art. 5 (In bombardments by naval forces all the
necessary measures must be taken by the commander to spare as far as possible sacred edifices, buildings used for
artistic, scientific, or charitable purposes, historic monuments, hospitals, and places where the sick or wounded are
collected, on the understanding that they are not used at the same time for military purposes. It is the duty of the
inhabitants to indicate such monuments, edifices, or places by visible signs, which shall consist of large stiff
rectangular panels divided diagonally into two coloured triangular portions, the upper portion black, the lower
portion white.).
354
Refer to 5.3.3.2 (What Precautions Are Feasible).
355
Refer to 4.6.4 (Having a Fixed Distinctive Sign Recognizable at a Distance); 4.6.5 (Carrying Arms Openly).
356
Refer to 4.6.1.1 (GPW 4A(2) Conditions Required on a Group Basis).
357
Refer to 4.17 (Spies, Saboteurs, and Other Persons Engaging in Similar Acts Behind Enemy Lines).
358
Refer to 5.5.8 (Obligation of Combatants to Distinguish Themselves When Conducting Attacks).
359
Refer to 5.5.8.1 (Fighting Out of Uniform).
252
5.15 UNDEFENDED CITIES, TOWNS, AND VILLAGES
Attack, by whatever means, of a village, town, or city that is undefended is prohibited. 360
Undefended villages, towns, or cities may, however, be captured.
5.15.1 Undefended Notes on Terminology. The term undefended city (or town or
village, or any other populated area) is a term of art in the law of war and should not be confused
with a place that simply lacks defensive capabilities. Historically, open or undefended status for
a town, village, or city would be sought as opposing military forces approached and the military
forces previously controlling the city abandoned it. 361 Undefended or open status would
essentially surrender the city to the opposing force; this minimized injury to the inhabitants and
damage to civilian objects within the city because the city could be occupied without resistance
or bypassed. 362
The original text of the Hague IV Regulations and Hague IX is French. 363 In the French
versions of the text, both the Hague IV Regulations and Hague IX use a dependent clause that
360
See HAGUE IV REG. art. 25 (The attack or bombardment, by whatever means, of towns, villages, dwellings, or
buildings which are undefended is prohibited.); HAGUE IX art. 1 (The bombardment by naval forces of
undefended ports, towns, villages, dwellings, or buildings is forbidden.). Consider AP I art. 59(1) (It is prohibited
for the Parties to the conflict to attack, by any means whatsoever, non-defended localities.).
361
For example, H. Wayne Elliot, Open Cities and (Un)defended Places, THE ARMY LAWYER 39, 41 (Apr. 1995)
(When the military forces had abandoned the city, the citys civic leaders normally had the burden of meeting with
the opposing commander and informing him that the city was open. Accordingly, the mayor of Columbia, South
Carolina, went to the Union lines as General Sherman approached the city and informed him that the Confederate
forces had left and that the city was open for the Union armys entry. When the Confederate government was forced
to abandon Richmond, Virginia, the mayor met the advancing Union forces and informed General Grants
commanders that the city was open. Once the capturing forces entered the city, they were obligated to refrain from
looting and pillaging and were responsible for the safety of the citys residents. Nonetheless, war materials still in
the city could be destroyed.).
362
H. Wayne Elliot, Open Cities and (Un)defended Places, THE ARMY LAWYER 39, 41 (Apr. 1995) (Surrender
usually meant the complete submission of the military forces defending an area to the enemy. However, when the
opposing military forces simply abandoned the city, the city was considered to be undefended and open. That is,
the attacking force could enter the city at will and without fear of attack. Under these circumstances destroying the
entire city was unnecessary, although individual military targets in the city might be destroyed, either before or after
entry.).
363
William H. Taft, Proclamation Regarding the Hague IX, Feb. 28, 1910, 36 STAT. 2351 (Whereas a Convention
concerning bombardment by naval forces in time of war was concluded the original of which Convention, being
in the French language, is word for word as follows:); William H. Taft, Proclamation Regarding the Hague IV,
Feb. 28, 1910, 36 STAT. 2277 (Whereas a Convention respecting the laws and customs of war on land was
concluded the original of which Convention, being in the French language, is word for word as follows:).
253
are not defended in order to modify the list of places. 364 Rather than a dependent clause, AP I
uses an adjective -- non-defended modifying the word localities. 365 The difference in
English terms seems to reflect this underlying change in the French phrasing.
Moreover, the title of the chapter in Hague IXDu bombardement des ports, villes,
villages, habitations ou btiments non dfendus (emphasis added)uses the same French
phrase as is used in AP I, yet the last two words of the title of the chapter in Hague IX have
typically been translated as undefended rather than non-defended.
Thus, the consistency in terminology across the French texts suggests that even though
the English terminology has varied slightly, no substantive change has been intended.
Most sources, however, use open and undefended interchangeably. 366 It appears that
these terms tend to be used interchangeably because both terms generally refer to a specific legal
category of populated areas that are protected by the law of war from attack. 367
5.15.2 By Whatever Means. The phrase by whatever means was inserted in the
Hague IV Regulations to clarify that bombing attacks by air were included in the rule. 368
364
See HAGUE IV REG. art. 25 (Il est interdit dattaquer ou de bombarder, par quelque moyen que ce soit, des villes,
villages, habitations, ou btiments qui ne sont pas dfendus.) (emphasis added); HAGUE IX art. 1 (Il est interdit de
bombarder, par des forces navales, des ports, villes, villages, habitations ou btiments, qui ne sont pas dfendus.)
(emphasis added).
365
See AP I art. 59, 1125 UNTS 299 (Il est interdit aux Parties au conflit dattaquer, par quelque moyen que ce soit,
des localits non dfendues.) (emphasis added).
366
See, e.g., 1958 UK MANUAL 290 (An undefended or open town is a town which is so completely undefended
from within or without that the enemy may enter and take possession of it without fighting or incurring casualties.).
367
See R.Y. Jennings, Open Towns, 22 BYIL 258, 260-61 (1945) (There can be little doubt that the land warfare
rules exempted the open and undefended town from bombardment because, being undefended, it was, under the
conditions of contemporary warfare, open for the enemy to enter and take possession of, or destroy, its military
resources. This quality of being open to entry by the enemy is the essence of the rule. It is impossible to
conceive of a truly undefended town which is not also open in every sense of the word.).
368
See JAMES BROWN SCOTT, THE PROCEEDINGS OF THE HAGUE PEACE CONFERENCES: I THE CONFERENCE OF 1907
104 (1920) (The Russian and Italian proposals had the same design, and were calculated to supplement Article 25
of the 1899 Regulations with a provision securing to undefended towns, villages, dwellings or buildings absolute
immunity from all attack or bombardment, even by aid of balloons or other new methods of a similar nature.
The delegation of France then observed that the prohibition contemplated by the new Russian text, while entirely
conforming to its opinion as previously expressed, is already contained in the text now in force in Article 25, and
that consequently it is sufficient, if deemed necessary to avoid misunderstanding by rendering its terms precise, to
insert the words by any means whatever after to attack or bombard.).
254
5.15.3 Declaration of a City as Undefended. An undefended city may be established
through negotiations with opposing forces, 369 or unilaterally by the party to the conflict in
control of it. If the latter, the intent and actions of that party should be communicated to
opposing military forces through a declaration. A town, village, or city may be declared
undefended when it is near, or in, a zone where opposing armed forces are in contact with one
another and it is open for immediate physical occupation by an adverse party without
resistance. 370
5.15.3.1 Open for Immediate Physical Occupation. The area in question must be
open for immediate physical occupation by opposing military ground forces. 371 Thus, a city in
rear areas behind enemy lines cannot be undefended. For example, a party to a conflict cannot
declare a city or other population center to be undefended if it is several hundred miles behind
the area of ground conflict where it would not be feasible for opposing ground forces to occupy
it. By way of comparison, it would not be effective for a person to seek to surrender to an
opposing forces aircraft that could not physically take custody of that person. 372
369
Refer to 5.15.5 (Agreements to Establish Undefended Cities).
370
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 39b (An undefended place, within the meaning of Article 25, HR, is any
inhabited place near or in a zone where opposing armed forces are in contact which is open for occupation by an
adverse party without resistance.). Consider AP art. 59(2) (The appropriate authorities of a Party to the conflict
may declare as a non-defended locality any inhabited place near or in a zone where armed forces are in contact
which is open for occupation by an adverse Party.).
371
BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 382 (AP I art. 59, 2.5.1) (The concept intended is that it is sufficiently
close to the adverse Partys forces that tactical movement to occupy it is a feasible course of action by the advancing
force.).
372
Refer to 5.10.3.3 (Under Circumstances in Which It Is Feasible to Accept).
373
R.Y. Jennings, Open Towns, 22 BYIL 258, 261 (1945) (But it is ludicrous to suppose that a town shielded by an
army holding a line in front of it is undefended. Moreover, even the defences peculiarly appropriate to aerial
warfare are no longer purely or even mainly local defences. Defending fighter planes may be based miles from the
town. A screen of anti-aircraft guns sited on the route to the town, even though many miles away from it, may be a
more effective defence than anti-aircraft guns sited in or around the town itself.).
374
Consider AP I art. 59(4) (The Party to the conflict to which the declaration is addressed shall ackowledge [sic]
its receipt and shall treat the locality as a non-defended locality unless the conditions laid down in paragraph 2 are
not in fact fullfilled, in which event it shall immediately so inform the Party making the declaration.).
255
Absent or until recognition, military objectives in a city unilaterally designated as undefended
remain subject to attack. 375
5.15.4 Conditions Necessary for a Place to Maintain Undefended Status. Once a party to
a conflict has validly declared a city to be undefended, the city must also satisfy certain
conditions. If the city fails to satisfy these conditions, it would not be entitled to undefended
status, or, if previously granted, it would lose that status. 377 Persons and objects within that city,
however, may still receive other protections for civilians and civilian objects. 378
5.15.4.1 Combatants and Mobile Military Equipment Have Been Evacuated. All
combatants, as well as their mobile weapons and mobile military equipment, must have been
evacuated. 379 However, the presence of military medical personnel, the wounded and sick, and
375
Cf. Sansolini and Others v. Bentivegna and Others, Italian Court of Cassation, Jul. 19, 1957 (The declaration
that Rome was an open city was made by the Italian Government before the armistice, viz., on July 31, 1943. It was
made to the British and the Americans but never accepted by them. It follows from this lack of acceptance that the
declaration could not create any legal obligation for the Italian Government vis--vis the British and the Americans.
We must therefore reject the contention that there was any violation of an undertaking to respect Rome as an
open city because there were not agreements to this effect .); BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 383 (AP I
art. 59, 2.5.2) (Drawing on the World War II experience, the Canadian delegation pointed out that the decision not
to defend Paris and Rome had been made while defending forces still had possession of these urban centres.
Accordingly, the Canadian delegation proposed that a mechanism be developed under which the defending Party
would declare that it did not intend to defend the locality and to initiate negotiations for permitting an orderly
withdrawal. The locality was not to be attacked while such negotiation was taking place. Other delegations pointed
out that the Canadian proposal would amount to a unilateral cease fire enabling the defending force to extricate itself
from a precarious situation. This matter was left for mutual agreement between the Parties under para. 5.).
376
For example, R.Y. Jennings, Open Towns, 22 BYIL 258, 263 (1945) (The declaration of Rome as an open city
by the Italian Government in August 1943 was little more than a public request to the Allies to state the conditions
under which they would discontinue their bombing attacks on the city. The Allies were unable to comply with the
request for the very good reason that however anxious the Italian Government might have been to comply with any
conditions, they were in fact powerless to prevent the German Army from using the city as a military centre.).
377
Consider AP I art. 59(7) (A locality loses its status as a non-defended locality when it ceases to fulfil the
conditions laid down in paragraph 2 or in the agreement referred to in paragraph 5.).
378
Consider AP I art. 59(7) (In such an eventuality, the locality shall continue to enjoy the protection provided by
the other provisions of this Protocol and the other rules of international law applicable in armed conflict.).
379
See 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 39b (In order to be considered as undefended, the following
conditions should be fulfilled: (1) Armed forces and all other combatants, as well as mobile weapons and mobile
military equipment, must have been evacuated, or otherwise neutralized;). Consider AP I art. 59(2) (requiring that
in a non-defended locality (a) All combatants, as well as mobile weapons and mobile military equipment, must
have been evacuated;).
256
civilian police forces for the purpose of maintaining local law and order would not cause a city
designated as undefended to lose that status. 380
5.15.4.2 No Hostile Use of Fixed Military Facilities. No hostile use shall be made
of fixed military installations or establishments within the city. 381
5.15.4.3 No Hostile Acts Against the Occupying Force. Hostile acts may not be
committed by the local civilian authorities or the civilian population against the occupying
military force. 382
380
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 39b (The presence, in the place, of medical units, wounded and sick, and
police forces retained for the sole purpose of maintaining law and order does not change the character of such an
undefended place.). Consider AP I art. 59(3) (The presence, in this locality, of persons specially protected under
the Conventions and this Protocol, and of police forces retained for the sole purpose of maintaining law and order, is
not contrary to the conditions laid down in paragraph 2.). Compare 4.23.1 (Police as Civilians).
381
See 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 39b (In order to be considered as undefended, the following
conditions should be fulfilled: (2) no hostile use shall be made of fixed military installations or establishments;).
Consider AP I art. 59(2) (requiring that in a non-defended locality (b) No hostile use shall be made of fixed
military installations or establishments;).
382
See 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 39b (In order to be considered as undefended, the following
conditions should be fulfilled: (3) no acts of warfare shall be committed by the authorities or by the
population;). Consider AP I art. 59(2) (requiring that in a non-defended locality (c) No acts of hostility shall be
committed by the authorities or by the population;).
383
See 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 39b (In order to be considered as undefended, the following
conditions should be fulfilled: (4) no activities in support of military operations shall be undertaken.). Consider
AP I art. 59(2) (requiring that in a non-defended locality (d) No activities in support of military operations shall be
undertaken.).
384
For example, F.D. ROOSEVELT & S. ROSENMAN, THE PUBLIC PAPERS AND ADDRESSES OF FRANKLIN D.
ROOSEVELT: 1943 VOLUME 309 (1950) (The Nine Hundred and Tenth Press Conference (Excerpts) July 23, 1943
(Rome as a military center - Bombing of Rome) Q. Mr. President, is there any comment you can make, sir, upon
establishing Rome as an open city? THE PRESIDENT: I think the easiest thing is to tell you in general what has
been happening for over a year. We have been very anxious to have Rome declared an open city. However, the
Fascists would not do it; and on the contrary, it has becomeprobably was thena very important military center.
That means they were making munitions, and using airports very close to Rome-actually in Rome, and the use of
Rome because its a railroad center for transportation of troops, guns, and ammunition down to the south of Rome.
And we used every argument, and pleaded that it be made an open city. But it didnt work. We did our best. And
we still hope that the Germans and the Fascists will make it an open city.).
385
Consider AP I art. 59(5) (The Parties to the conflict may agree on the establishment of non-defended localities
even if such localities do not fulfil the conditions laid down in paragraph 2.).
257
locality, when the location is to begin to receive protection as undefended, and the duration of
undefended status). If necessary, methods of supervision to ensure that the city continues to
fulfill the conditions should be specified. 386 It may also be appropriate for agreements to
specify: (1) rules on marking the city and agreed signs; 387 (2) persons authorized to enter the
city; and (3) whether and under what conditions the city may be occupied by enemy forces.
5.15.6 Actions of the Occupying Force. The occupying force may use the city, town, or
village for military operations, including by establishing defenses to prevent its recapture by the
enemy. 388 In such cases, the city would lose its undefended status, and, for example, military
objectives within the city may be attacked. 389
However, if the occupying force acts in a manner consistent with the conditions
necessary for the inhabited place to maintain undefended status, 390 the place would remain
undefended for the purpose of protecting it against military operations by all parties to the
conflict.
5.16 PROHIBITION ON USING PROTECTED PERSONS AND OBJECTS TO SHIELD, FAVOR, OR IMPEDE
MILITARY OPERATIONS
Parties to a conflict may not use the presence or movement of protected persons 391 or
392
objects : (1) to attempt to make certain points or areas immune from seizure or attack; (2) to
386
Consider AP I art. 59(5) (The agreement should define and describe, as precisely as possible, the limits of the
non-defended locality; if necessary, it may lay down the methods of supervision.).
387
Consider AP I art. 59(6) (The Party which is in control of a locality governed by such an agreement shall mark
it, so far as possible, by such signs as may be agreed upon with the other Party, which shall be displayed where they
are clearly visible, especially on its perimeter and limits and on highways.).
388
BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 382 (AP I art. 59, 2.4) (Once in possession of a previously non-
defended locality a Party is not bound to refrain from organizing its defense to maintain the security of the locality
against an attempt to recapture the locality.).
389
See The Legal Adviser (Hackworth) to Secretary of State Hull, memorandum, Aug. 19, 1943, X WHITEMANS
DIGEST 437 (If our troops were in Rome [after the United States had recognized it as an open city] or passing
through Rome, they would be subject to bombardment by Germany and hence the city would be in the same position
as French cities, including Paris, were after they were occupied by German forces or were being used for military
purposes. It appears that in the last war French cities, such as Vouziers, Charleville, and Mzires, regarded as open
cities were bombarded by the French after they had been occupied by Germany. The sum and substance of these
examples is that the status of a city may change from an undefended to a defended place as military operations
change, and that recognition by use of Rome as an open city would mean only that we could not bomb it while it
was so recognized, but that if we later used it ourselves, it would again become subject to bombardment.).
390
Refer to 5.15.4 (Conditions Necessary for a Place to Maintain Undefended Status).
391
Cf. 10 U.S.C. 950t ((9) USING PROTECTED PERSONS AS A SHIELD.Any person subject to this chapter who
positions, or otherwise takes advantage of, a protected person with the intent to shield a military objective from
attack. [sic] or to shield, favor, or impede military operations, shall be punished, if death results to one or more of
the victims, by death or such other punishment as a military commission under this chapter may direct, and, if death
does not result to any of the victims, by such punishment, other than death, as a military commission under this
chapter may direct.); 10 U.S.C. 950p (a)(3) (The term protected person means any person entitled to protection
under one or more of the Geneva Conventions, including civilians not taking an active part in hostilities, military
personnel placed out of combat by sickness, wounds, or detention, and military medical or religious personnel.).
258
shield military objectives from attack; or (3) otherwise to shield or favor ones own military
operations or to impede the adversarys military operations.
5.16.1 Protected Persons and Objects. In particular, the civilian population, 393 protected
persons under the GC, 394 POWs, 395 fixed medical establishments and medical units,
parlementaires and other persons protected by a flag of truce, 396 and cultural property are
protected persons and objects that may not be used for the above purposes.
Although persons and objects that are protected by the law of war may not be used in
these ways, this rule does not prohibit a party from using what would otherwise be a civilian
object for military purposes and thereby converting it to a military objective that is not protected
by the law of war. For example, a building that previously was a civilian object could be used
for military purposes (including as cover) and would not implicate this rule because it would no
longer be a protected object. Similarly, this rule does not prohibit persons who would otherwise
be civilians from participating in hostilities or assuming the risks inherent in supporting military
operations. Incidental harm to those individuals would be understood not to prohibit attacks
under the proportionality rule, and thus would not implicate this rule. 397
259
to refrain from purposeful misconduct may be contrasted with the affirmative obligation that
parties have to take feasible precautions to separate the civilian population, 399 civilian
internees, 400 POWs, 401 fixed medical establishments and medical units, 402 and cultural
property, 403 from the dangers of military operations.
An adversarys intention to violate this rule is likely to be clear because that adversary
normally would make it apparent to the opposing party that attacks against the military objective
being shielded would risk harming protected persons or objects. 404
On the other hand, in the absence of purposeful action to put protected persons and
objects at risk of harm from enemy military operations, there would be no violation of this rule.
For example, this rule would not prohibit restricting the movement of civilians in order to
conduct military operations without their interference. In addition, it would also not prohibit the
evacuation of civilians for their own security or for imperative military reasons. 405
In addition, this rule must not be understood to alter the rules on spying and sabotage. In
other words, this rule does not prohibit a spy from hiding among civilians in order to gather
intelligence. However, the spy runs the risk of prosecution by the enemy State if he or she is
discovered and captured while spying.
5.16.3 Prohibition on Taking Hostages. The taking of hostages is prohibited. 406 This
prohibition is understood to include a prohibition against threatening to harm detainees whose
399
Refer to 5.14 (Feasible Precautions to Reduce the Risk of Harm to Protected Persons and Objects by the Party
Subject to Attack).
400
Refer to 10.11.1.1 (Avoidance of Particularly Dangerous Areas).
401
Refer to 9.11.3 (Location of POW Camps).
402
Refer to 7.10.2 (Obligation to Situate Military Medical Units and Facilities Relative to Military Objectives).
403
Refer to 5.18.3 (Refraining From Any Use for Purposes That Are Likely to Expose It to Destruction or
Damage).
404
For example, STUART I. ROCHESTER & FREDERICK KILEY, HONOR BOUND: THE HISTORY OF AMERICAN
PRISONERS OF WAR IN SOUTHEAST ASIA, 1961-1973 316-21 (1998) (Between June and October 1967 the North
Vietnamese confined more than 30 U.S. PWs in the vicinity of the Yen Phu thermal power plant in northern Hanoi.
Although the Communists would deny it, their conspicuous display and virtual announcement of the PWs
presence at the power plant evidenced a transparent attempt to use the prisoners as hostages to discourage U.S.
bombing of the facility. Through calculated disclosures to visiting journalists and diplomats, local placard
publicity, and exhibiting the captives in full view of civiliansall sharp departures from their normal practicethe
Vietnamese could be certain the PWs presence would be reported to the U.S. government. The hostage charade
did not deter U.S. strikes on the target. The plant was attacked regularly after 13 August, with apparently no
casualties and conflicting reports on the extent of damage to the power facility and PW cellblocks.).
405
Cf. BOTHE, PARTSCH & SOLF, NEW RULES 317 (AP I art. 51, 2.8.3) (Paragraph 7 [of Article 51 of AP I] does
not prohibit measures to restrict the movement of civilians so as to avoid their interference with military movement,
nor does it prohibit ordering their evacuation if their security or imperative military reasons so demand.).
406
GC art. 34 (The taking of hostages is prohibited.). Cf. 18 U.S.C. 2441(d)(1)(I) (defining Taking hostages
as The act of a person who, having knowingly seized or detained one or more persons, threatens to kill, injure, or
continue to detain such person or persons with the intent of compelling any nation, person other than the hostage, or
group of persons to act or refrain from acting as an explicit or implicit condition for the safety or release of such
person or persons.); 10 U.S.C. 950t(7) (TAKING HOSTAGES.Any person subject to this chapter who, having
260
lives are valued by the adversary in order to induce the adversary not to attack, but is also
understood to include the prohibition against using hostages as human shields. 407
Outside the context of attacks, certain rules apply to the seizure and destruction of enemy
property:
Enemy property may not be seized or destroyed unless imperatively demanded by the
necessities of war;
knowingly seized or detained one or more persons, threatens to kill, injure, or continue to detain such person or
persons with the intent of compelling any nation, person other than the hostage, or group of persons to act or refrain
from acting as an explicit or implicit condition for the safety or release of such person or persons, shall be punished,
if death results to one or more of the victims, by death or such other punishment as a military commission under this
chapter may direct, and, if death does not result to any of the victims, by such punishment, other than death, as a
military commission under this chapter may direct.).
407
GC COMMENTARY 230 (giving as examples of hostage taking: (1) taking as hostages persons generally selected
from among prominent persons in a city or a district in order to prevent disorders or attacks on occupation troops;
(2) arresting after an attack a certain number of inhabitants of the occupied territory and announcing that they will
be kept captive or executed if the guilty are not given up; and (3) the practice of taking so-called accompanying
hostages consists of placing inhabitants of occupied territory on board lorry convoys or trains in order to prevent
attacks by their compatriots).
408
Refer to 17.6.2 (Prohibition on the Taking of Hostages).
409
Refer to 5.5.4 (Failure by the Defender to Separate or Distinguish Does Not Relieve the Attacker of the Duty to
Discriminate in Conducting Attacks).
410
FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 613 (Another reason for collateral damage to civilian objects and
injury to civilians during Operation Desert Storm lay in the policy of the Government of Iraq, which purposely used
both Iraqi and Kuwaiti civilian populations and civilian objects as shields for military objects. Contrary to the
admonishment against such conduct contained in Article 19, GWS, Articles 18 and 28, GC, Article 4(1), 1954
Hague, and certain principles of customary law codified in Protocol I (discussed below), the Government of Iraq
placed military assets (personnel, weapons, and equipment) in civilian populated areas and next to protected objects
(mosques, medical facilities, and cultural sites) in an effort to protect them from attack. For this purpose, Iraqi
military helicopters were dispersed into residential areas; and military supplies were stored in mosques, schools, and
hospitals in Iraq and Kuwait. Similarly, a cache of Iraqi Silkworm surface-to-surface missiles was found inside a
school in a populated area in Kuwait City. UN inspectors uncovered chemical bomb production equipment while
inspecting a sugar factory in Iraq. The equipment had been moved to the site to escape Coalition air strikes. This
intentional mingling of military objects with civilian objects naturally placed the civilian population living nearby,
working within, or using those civilian objects at risk from legitimate military attacks on those military objects.).
261
Public movable property and certain types of private movable property may customarily
be captured as war booty;
Enemy private movable property that is not susceptible of direct military use may be
appropriated only to the extent that such taking is permissible in occupied areas;
Feasible precautions should be taken to mitigate the burden on civilians, but there is no
obligation to compensate the owners of enemy property that is lawfully damaged.
During occupation, other rules relating to the treatment of enemy property apply. 411
5.17.1 Definition of Enemy Property. All property located in enemy territory is regarded
as enemy property regardless of its ownership. 412
5.17.2 Enemy Property Military Necessity Standard. Enemy property may not be
seized or destroyed unless imperatively demanded by the necessities of war. 413 In particular,
devastation or destruction may not be pursued as an end in itself. 414 The measure of permissible
seizure or destruction of enemy property is found in the strict necessities of war. 415 There must
be some reasonable connection between the seizure or destruction of the enemy property and the
overcoming of enemy forces. 416
Extensive destruction and appropriation of property protected by the GC, not justified by
military necessity and carried out unlawfully and wantonly, constitutes a grave breach of the
GC. 417
5.17.2.1 Using the Military Objective Definition to Assess Whether the Seizure or
Destruction of Enemy Property Is Justified by Military Necessity. The definition of military
411
Refer to 11.18 (Enemy Property During Occupation).
412
See, e.g., Aris Gloves, Inc. v. United States, 420 F.2d 1386, 1391 (Ct. Cl. 1970) (collecting cases and describing
the general rule that all property located in enemy territory, regardless of its ownership, is in time of war regarded
as enemy property subject to the laws of war).
413
HAGUE IV REG. art. 23(g) ([I]t is especially forbidden: (g.) To destroy or seize the enemys property, unless
such destruction or seizure be imperatively demanded by the necessities of war;). For general discussion of
military necessity, refer to 2.2 (Military Necessity).
414
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 56 (Devastation as an end in itself or as a separate measure of war is not
sanctioned by the law of war.); United States v. List, et al. (The Hostage Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS
BEFORE THE NMT 1253 (Destruction as an end in itself is a violation of international law.). Refer to 2.3.1
(Humanity as a Prohibition).
415
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 56 (The measure of permissible devastation is found in the strict
necessities of war.).
416
United States v. List, et al. (The Hostage Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 1253-54
(There must be some reasonable connection between the destruction of property and the overcoming of the enemy
forces.).
417
Refer to 18.9.3.1 (Acts Constituting Grave Breaches).
262
objective (that has been developed to assess whether objects may be made the object of attack)
may be applied outside the context of attacks to assess whether an objects seizure or destruction
is justified by imperative military necessity. 418 After all, if sufficient military necessity exists to
justify attacking an object as reflected by that object meeting the definition of military objective,
then imperative military necessity would also exist to justify seizing or destroying that object by
measures short of attack.
On the other hand, if imperative military necessity justifies the seizure or destruction of
an object, that object does not necessarily satisfy the definition of a military objective. Rather,
the object must be assessed as to whether it meets the definition of military objective and may be
made the object of attack.
using enemy land for the construction of military bases, air fields, and other facilities to
support military operations; 419
using enemy buildings to billet military personnel and others supporting them, to house
the wounded and sick, for observation and reconnaissance, for concealment and cover,
and for defensive purposes; 420
demolishing, cutting down, or removing enemy walls, forests, and buildings to clear a
field of fire or to provide construction material; 421 or
418
Refer to 5.7.5 (Definition of Military Objective for Objects: A Two-Part Test).
419
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 56 ([R]eal estate may be used for marches, camp sites, construction of
field fortifications, etc.).
420
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 56 (Buildings may be destroyed for sanitary purposes or used for shelter
for troops, the wounded and sick and vehicles and for reconnaissance, cover, and defense.); LAUTERPACHT, II
OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 398 (136) (So far as the necessities of war demand, a belligerent may make
use of public enemy buildings for all kinds of purposes. Troops must be housed, horses stabled, the sick and
wounded looked after. Public buildings may in the first instance, therefore, be made use of for such purposes,
although they may thereby be considerably damaged.); LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 403
(140) (What has been said above with regard to utilisation of public buildings applies equally to private
buildings.).
421
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 56 (Fences, woods, crops, buildings, etc., may be demolished, cut down,
and removed to clear a field of fire, to clear the ground for landing fields, or to furnish building materials or fuel if
imperatively needed for the army.).
422
For example, Interview by Robert K. Wright, Jr., Department of the Army, with Col. Barry S. Baer, Commander,
18th Finance Group, in Fort Bragg, N.C. (Mar. 15, 1990), available at
http://www.history.army.mil/documents/panama/JCIT/JCIT31.htm (recounting how U.S. forces commandeered
rental cars in Panama to increase tactical mobility in Operation JUST CAUSE).
263
5.17.2.3 Destruction of Enemy Property to Diminish the Enemys Ability to
Conduct or Sustain Operations. It may be imperatively demanded by the necessities of war to
seize or destroy enemy property in order to diminish the enemys ability to conduct or sustain
operations, such as railways, lines of communication, and other war fighting and war sustaining
infrastructure. 423 For instance, Union forces destroyed the Confederacys cotton during the Civil
War in order to deprive the Confederacy of the ability to fund its military operations. 424
Similarly, coalition forces during Operation ENDURING FREEDOM destroyed narcotics in order to
weaken the Taliban and al Qaedas ability to finance their operations. 425
423
United States v. List, et al. (The Hostage Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 1254 (It is
lawful to destroy railways, lines of communication, or any other property that might be utilized by the enemy.
Private homes and churches even may be destroyed if necessary for military operations.); LIEBER CODE art. 15
(Military necessity allows of all destruction of property, and obstruction of the ways and channels of traffic,
travel, or communication, and of all withholding of sustenance or means of life from the enemy.). Compare
5.7.6.2 (Make an Effective Contribution to Military Action).
424
In re Mrs. Alexanders Cotton, 69 U.S. 404, 419-20, 421 (1864) (holding that 72 bales of cotton taken from a
barn by Union naval forces could lawfully be captured as enemy property based on the peculiar character of the
property as one of [the rebels] main sinews of war, but that the cotton was not a maritime prize because it had
been captured on land).
425
International Security Assistance Force (ISAF) Joint Command Afghanistan, Press Release: Combined Force
Finds, Destroys Drugs, Weapons Cache (Sept. 7, 2010) (describing a patrols destruction of a cache of opium and
weapons in order to significantly reduce[] the insurgents ability to procure financial resources); April
Campbell, Afghan Forces Becoming Increasingly Effective Against Drug Producers, AFGHANISTAN INTERNATIONAL
SECURITY ASSISTANCE FORCE NEWS (Sept. 29, 2011) (describing Afghan counter-narcotics forces seizure and
destruction of narcotics laboratories and narcotics as dealing a significant blow to the insurgencys ability to fund
operations).
426
See also GREENSPAN, MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 282-83 (While the seizure or destruction of enemy
personnel and war material are actual objectives of warfare, the operations of war must also result in the incidental
destruction and seizure of much property, not as the prime object of attack, but which becomes involved in the
struggle. Troops march, ride, and fight wherever the battle takes them, whether over fields of growing crops or
in the streets of cities, towns, or villages. Land is used for camp sites, entrenchments, and other defenses
constructed in or on it, streets may be torn up, bridges demolished, dwellings and factories converted into strong
points, furniture and bedding may provide the cover for a sharpshooter hidden in some dwelling. Practically every
shell or bomb that explodes damages property in one form or another, whether or not it attains its objective. Most
bullets that are fired strike, not humans, but property. Each missile that is launched must finally come to earth
somewhere.).
427
See, e.g., 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 56 (explaining that the rule requiring respect for private
property is not violated through damage resulting from operations, movements, or combat activity of the army);
1958 UK MANUAL 589 (The rule that private property must be respected admits, however, of exceptions
necessitated by the exigencies of war. In the first instance, practically every operation, movement or combat
occasions damage to private property.); LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 414 (151)
(Destruction of enemy property in marching troops, in conducting military transport, and in reconnoitring, is lawful
if unavoidable. A reconnoitring party need not keep on the road if they can better serve their purpose by riding
across tilled fields. Troops may be marched, and transport may be conducted, over crops when necessary. A
264
5.17.3 Enemy Movable Property on the Battlefield (War Booty). Any enemy public
movable property on the battlefield may be seized. 428 Property is public if it belongs to the
enemy State or an agency of that State. 429
In general, enemy private movable property on the battlefield may be seized if the
property is susceptible to direct military use, i.e., it is necessary and indispensable for the
conduct of war. 430 This includes arms, ammunition, military papers, or property that can be used
as military equipment (e.g., as a means of transportation or communication). 431 However,
certain types of military equipment used for clothing, feeding, or personal protection (e.g.,
helmets and gas masks) may not be seized from POWs, and should remain in their possession. 432
humane commander will not unnecessarily allow his troops and transport to march and ride over tilled fields and
crops. But if the purpose of war necessitates it, he is justified in so doing.).
428
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 59a (All enemy public movable property captured or found on a
battlefield becomes the property of the capturing State.); LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 402
(139) ([Movable] public enemy property on the battlefield may be appropriated by belligerents.).
429
See, e.g., William Gerald Downey, Jr., Captured Enemy Property: Booty of War and Seized Enemy Property, 44
AJIL 488, 489 (1950) (Enemy public property is defined as chattels, the title to which is vested in a state or in any
agency of such state.).
430
See Menzel v. List, 267 N.Y.S.2d 804, 820 (N.Y. Sup. Ct. 1966) (Booty is defined as property necessary and
indispensable for the conduct of war, such as food, means of transportation, and means of communication; and is
lawfully taken.).
431
1958 UK MANUAL 615 (Private enemy property on the battlefield is not (as it was in former times) in every
case booty. Arms and ammunition and military equipment and papers are booty, even if they are the property of
individuals, but cash, jewellery, and other private articles of value are not.); GREENSPAN, MODERN LAW OF LAND
WARFARE 281 (Private property in the following categories belonging to members of the enemy forces falls within
the description of booty: arms, horses, military equipment, and military documents.); LAUTERPACHT, II
OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 406 (144) (Private enemy property on the battlefield is no longer in every
case an object of booty. Arms, horses, and military papers may indeed be appropriated, even if they are private
property, as may also private means of transport, such as cars and other vehicles which an enemy may make use
of.).
432
Refer to 9.7 (POW Effects and Articles of Personal Use).
433
See 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 59b (Enemy private movable property, other than arms, military
papers, horses, and the like captured or found on a battlefield, may be appropriated only to the extent that such
taking is permissible in occupied areas.). Refer to 11.18.6 (Treatment of Enemy Private Property).
434
Refer to 11.18.6.2 (Seizure of Private Property Susceptible to Direct Military Use).
435
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 59a-b (providing that [a]ll enemy public movable property captured or
found on a battlefield becomes the property of the capturing State and that [e]nemy private movable property,
265
becomes the property of the capturing State for the purpose of returning it to the next-of-kin of
the deceased. 436 The individual military member or person accompanying the armed forces who
captures or finds enemy property acquires no title or claim. 437
Failure to turn over such property to the proper authorities, or disposal of such property
for personal profit, is punishable under Article 103 of the Uniform Code of Military Justice. 438
5.17.4 Pillage Prohibited. Pillage is prohibited, both in general 439 and specifically with
respect to:
POWs; 441
persons in occupied territory 443 and in areas of non-international armed conflict; 444 and
other than arms, military papers, horses, and the like captured or found on a battlefield, may be appropriated only to
the extent that such taking is permissible in occupied areas (see pars. 405-411).); 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1
1976) 396 (Public property captured or seized from the enemy, as well as private property validly captured on the
battlefield and abandoned property, is property of the United States .); 1958 UK MANUAL 615 (Public enemy
property found or captured on a battlefield becomes, as a general rule, the property of the opposing belligerent.).
436
Refer to 7.7.2.2 (Forwarding Valuable Articles Found on the Dead).
437
Foster v. United States, 98 F. Supp. 349, 352 (Ct. Cl. 1951) ([A] soldier may not make a profit out of the
disorder and flight which ensues from war. In the abandoned property which he comes upon, and which he must
turn over to the proper authority without delay, he does not acquire any proprietary interest. His taking possession
of it is done as an agent of the Government, and if it is not reclaimed by the owner who abandoned it, it belongs to
the Government.).
438
See 10 U.S.C. 903 ((a) All persons subject to this chapter shall secure all public property taken from the
enemy for the service of the United States, and shall give notice and turn over to the proper authority without delay
all captured or abandoned property in their possession, custody, or control. (b) Any person subject to this chapter
who(1) fails to carry out the duties prescribed in subsection (a); (2) buys, sells, trades, or in any way deals in or
disposes of captured or abandoned property, whereby he receives or expects any profit, benefit, or advantage to
himself or another directly or indirectly connected with himself; or (3) engages in looting or pillaging; shall be
punished as a court-martial may direct.).
439
See, e.g., HAGUE IV REG. art. 28 (The pillage of a town or place, even when taken by assault, is prohibited.);
1899 HAGUE II art. 28 (same); LIEBER CODE art. 44 ([A]ll robbery, all pillage or sacking, even after taking a place
by main force are prohibited under the penalty of death, or such other severe punishment as may seem adequate
for the gravity of the offense.).
440
Refer to 7.4.2 (Affirmative Measures to Protect Against Pillage and Ill-Treatment); 7.7.2.1 (Measures to
Prevent the Dead From Being Despoiled); 17.14.3 (Search, Collection, and Protection of the Wounded, Sick,
Shipwrecked, and Dead).
441
Refer to 9.7 (POW Effects and Articles of Personal Use).
442
Refer to 10.5.3.3 (Pillage Against Protected Persons).
443
Refer to 11.18.1 (Prohibition Against Pillage in Occupied Territory).
444
Refer to 17.6.4 (Prohibition on Pillage).
266
cultural property. 445
In certain cases, there is an affirmative obligation to prohibit and prevent pillage. 446
445
Refer to 5.18.6 (Prohibition Against and Prevention of Theft, Pillage, Misappropriation, or Acts of Vandalism,
and Prohibition Against Requisition of Foreign Cultural Property).
446
Refer to 5.18.6.1 (Obligation to Stop or Prevent Theft, Pillage, or Misappropriation of, and Acts of Vandalism
Against, Cultural Property); 7.4.2 (Affirmative Measures to Protect Against Pillage and Ill-Treatment); 17.14.3
(Search, Collection, and Protection of the Wounded, Sick, Shipwrecked, and Dead).
447
10 U.S.C. 950t(5) ((5) PILLAGING.--Any person subject to this chapter who intentionally and in the absence of
military necessity appropriates or seizes property for private or personal use, without the consent of a person with
authority to permit such appropriation or seizure, shall be punished.). Consider ROME STATUTE, ELEMENTS OF
CRIMES, art. 8(2)(b)(xvi), Official Records of the Assembly of States Parties to the Rome Statute of the International
Criminal Court, First session, New York, ICC-ASP/1/3, 112, 145-6 (Sept. 3-10, 2002) (defining the elements of the
war crime of pillaging as including (1) appropriation of property, (2) intent to deprive the owner of the property
and to appropriate it for private or personal use, and (3) appropriation without the consent of the owner).
448
Consider ROME STATUTE, ELEMENTS OF CRIMES art. 8(2)(b)(xvi), Official Records of the Assembly of States
Parties to the Rome Statute of the International Criminal Court, First session, New York, ICC-ASP/1/3, 112, 146
footnote 47 (Sept. 3-10, 2002) (As indicated by the use of the term private or personal use, appropriations
justified by military necessity cannot constitute the crime of pillaging.).
449
LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 405 (143) (If there is no time for ordinary requisitions to
provide food, forage, clothing, and fuel, or if the inhabitants of a locality have fled so that ordinary requisitions
cannot be made, a belligerent must take these articles wherever he can get them, and he is justified in so doing.).
Refer to 11.18.7 (Requisitions of Private Enemy Property).
450
10 U.S.C. 903 ((b) Any person subject to this chapter who- ... (3) engages in looting or pillaging; shall be
punished as a court-martial may direct.); MANUAL FOR COURTS-MARTIAL IV-40 (27.c.(4)) (2012) (Looting or
pillaging means unlawfully seizing or appropriating property which is located in enemy or occupied territory.).
451
See, e.g., MANUAL FOR COURTS-MARTIAL IV-35 (23.c.(6)(b)) (2012) (Plunder or pillage means to seize or
appropriate public or private property unlawfully.); Prosecutor v. Jelisi, ICTY Trial Chamber, IT-95-10-T,
Judgment, 48-49 (Dec. 14, 1999) (noting that [p]lunder is defined as the fraudulent appropriation of public or
private funds belonging to the enemy or the opposing party perpetrated during an armed conflict and related thereto
and confirming the guilt of the accused on the charge of plunder because he stole money, watches, jewellery and
other valuables from the detainees upon their arrival at Luka camp by threatening those who did not hand over their
possessions with death).
452
1958 UK MANUAL 589 (noting that the prohibitions contained in Hague IV Regulations did not constitute new
rules at the time they were promulgated and that it has for a long time past been embodied in the regulations of
every civilized army, for nothing is more demoralizing to troops or more subversive of discipline than plundering.).
267
of the armed forces who before or in the presence of the enemy quits his or her place of duty to
plunder or pillage is guilty of the offense of misbehavior before the enemy. 453
For example, in the practice of the United States, religious buildings, shrines, and
consecrated places employed for worship are used only for aid stations, medical installations, or
the housing of wounded personnel awaiting evacuation, provided in each case that a situation of
emergency requires such use. 454
Similarly, if armed forces use a private residence, they must treat its inhabitants and
owners humanely and with as much consideration as the circumstances permit. 455 In particular,
the armed forces should generally allow the inhabitants to continue to live in part of their own
homes, and should not expel them in the absence of alternate shelter. 456 But if imperative
military necessity requires the removal of the inhabitants, then efforts should be made to give
them notice and to aid them in taking their essential possessions. 457 If the armed forces take
anything, they should leave a note to this effect. 458
453
10 U.S.C. 899 (Any member of the armed forces who before or in the presence of the enemy (6) quits his
place of duty to plunder or pillage; shall be punished by death or such other punishment as a court-martial may
direct.).
454
Refer to 11.18.6.4 (Municipal, Religious, Charitable, and Cultural Property).
455
GREENSPAN, MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 283 (Where private dwellings are taken over by troops, the
inhabitants must be treated humanely and afforded as much consideration as the circumstances permit.). For
example, DICK COUCH, THE SHERIFF OF RAMADI 69 (2008) (On yet another SR [special reconnaissance] mission,
we had intelligence that a restaurant was being used as a meeting place for insurgents, but there were a lot of other
Iraqis coming and going there as well. We needed an OP [observation post] that was close to the restaurant but not
too close -- a secure perch from which we could observe the target for several days and still be safe from informers.
We found this three-story house that was several hundred yards from the restaurant entrance. It was perfect. We
sent one of our interpreters to speak with the residents and to make arrangements to use one of their upper-floor
rooms for a few days. We paid them well, but the key was that after being coached by the terp and our scouts, we
were very polite and respectful of their customs.) (second alteration in original).
456
1958 UK MANUAL 615 (When troops are quartered in private dwellings some rooms should be left to the
inhabitants; the latter should not be driven into the streets and left without shelter.).
457
1958 UK MANUAL 615 (If for military reasons, whether for operational purposes or to protect men and animals
from the weather, it is imperative to remove the inhabitants, efforts should be made to give them notice and provide
them with facilities for taking essential baggage with them.).
458
1958 UK MANUAL 615 (A note should be left if anything is taken.); GREENSPAN, MODERN LAW OF LAND
WARFARE 284 (For anything validly taken, a note to this effect should be left.).
459
1958 UK MANUAL 615 (There is no obligation to protect abandoned property.); GREENSPAN, MODERN
LAW OF LAND Warfare 284 ([T]here is no obligation on the part of the invader to protect abandoned property in the
area of active operations .).
268
5.17.5.1 Compensation for Property Seizure or Damage. Although reasonable
efforts should be made to spare civilians from unnecessary harm when seizing or destroying
enemy property, the law of war imposes no obligation to compensate for loss of, or damage to,
private property imperatively demanded by the necessities of war, including damage incidental
to combat operations. 460 However, if time allows, a record of the use or damage should be kept,
or given to the owner, so that in the event of funds being provided by either belligerent at the
close of hostilities to compensate the owners, there may be evidence to assist the assessors. 461
Some obligations with respect to cultural property apply during non-international armed
conflict. 463 There are also obligations with respect to cultural property during occupation 464 and
peacetime. 465 Certain treaty obligations with respect to cultural property may only apply on the
territory of Parties to the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention, 466 but the United States has
previously identified some of these obligations as customary international law. 467 DoD
personnel, therefore, in the absence of contrary guidance by competent authority, should act as if
they were legally bound by the rules for the protection of cultural property in the 1954 Hague
Cultural Property Convention during hostilities even when conducting operations in the territory
of a State that is not a Party to the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention. 468
460
See, e.g., 1958 UK MANUAL 593 (The owner of property may claim neither rent for its use nor compensation
for damage caused by the necessities of war.).
461
1958 UK MANUAL 593 (If time allows, however, a note of the use or damage should be kept, or given to the
owner, so that in the event of funds being provided by either belligerent at the close of hostilities to compensate the
inhabitants, there may be evidence to assist the assessors.).
462
For example, DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY FIELD MANUAL 3-24.2, Tactics in Counterinsurgency, 7-89 (Apr.
2009) (Recent experiences have shown the effectiveness of using money to win popular support and further the
interests and goals of units conducting counterinsurgency operations. A counterinsurgency force can use money
to Repair damage resulting from combined and coalition operations. Provide condolence payments to civilians
for casualties from combined and coalition operations.).
463
Refer to 17.11 (Protection of Cultural Property in NIAC).
464
Refer to 11.19 (Protection of Cultural Property During Occupation).
465
Refer to 5.18.2.1 (Peacetime Obligations to Prepare for the Safeguarding of Cultural Property).
466
See, e.g., 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 4(1) (The High Contracting Parties undertake to
respect cultural property situated within their own territory as well as within the territory of other High Contracting
Parties.).
467
Refer to 5.18.8 (Special Protection for Certain Cultural Property).
468
Refer to 3.1.1 (DoD Practice of Applying Law of War Rules Even When Not Technically Applicable).
269
5.18.1 Definition of Cultural Property. For the purpose of the 1954 Hague Cultural
Property Convention and this manual, cultural property includes, irrespective of origin or
ownership: 469
For example, the Lieber Code contemplates protection for property belonging to
establishments of an exclusively charitable character, to establishments of education, or
foundations for the promotion of knowledge, whether public schools, universities, academies of
learning or observatories, museums of the fine arts, or of a scientific character, as well as
[c]lassical works of art, libraries, scientific collections, or precious instruments, such as
astronomical telescopes. 473 The Hague IV Regulations seek to protect buildings dedicated to
religion, art, science, or charitable purposes, historic monuments. 474 Hague IX seeks to protect
sacred edifices, buildings used for artistic, scientific, or charitable purposes, [and] historic
monuments. 475 The Roerich Pact seeks to protect historic monuments, museums, scientific,
artistic, educational and cultural institutions.476 AP I seeks to protect historic monuments,
469
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 1 (For the purposes of the present Convention, the term
cultural property shall cover, irrespective of origin or ownership: (a) movable or immovable property of great
importance to the cultural heritage of every people, such as monuments of architecture, art or history, whether
religious or secular; archaeological sites; groups of buildings which, as a whole, are of historical or artistic interest;
works of art; manuscripts, books and other objects of artistic, historical or archaeological interest; as well as
scientific collections and important collections of books or archives or of reproductions of the property defined
above; (b) buildings whose main and effective purpose is to preserve or exhibit the movable cultural property
defined in sub-paragraph (a) such as museums, large libraries and depositories of archives, and refuges intended to
shelter, in the event of armed conflict, the movable cultural property defined in subparagraph (a); (c) centres
containing a large amount of cultural property as defined in sub-paragraphs (a) and (b), to be known as centres
containing monuments.).
470
Refer to 5.18.1.2 (Movable or Immovable Property of Great Importance to the Cultural Heritage of Every
People).
471
Refer to 5.18.1.3 (Buildings Intended to Preserve Cultural Property).
472
Refer to 5.18.1.4 (Centers Containing Monuments).
473
LIEBER CODE arts. 34-36.
474
HAGUE IV REG. art. 27.
475
HAGUE IX art. 5.
476
ROERICH PACT art. 1.
270
works of art or places of worship which constitute the cultural or spiritual heritage of
peoples. 477
Because the definition of cultural property in the 1954 Hague Cultural Property
Convention is different from the categories of property protected by other instruments, the scope
of objects being protected by each instrument is not the same (although there may be overlap).
Nevertheless, the protections afforded cultural property by the 1954 Hague Cultural Property
Convention are supplementary to those afforded by earlier treaties, although the distinctive
emblem for cultural property established in the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention is to
be used where appropriate instead of emblems established in earlier treaties. 478
The question of whether cultural property is of great importance to the cultural heritage
of every people may involve delicate and somewhat subjective judgments. 480 Items that can
easily be replaced would not qualify as being of great importance. 481 On the other hand,
irreplaceable items may be of great cultural importance, even if they have little monetary
value. 482
Cultural property may include, but is not limited to, the following types of property
(provided the property is of great importance to the cultural heritage of every people):
477
AP I art. 53.
478
Refer to 19.17.1 (Relationship Between the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention and Earlier Treaties).
479
Refer to 5.6.2 (Persons, Objects, and Locations That Are Protected From Being Made the Object of Attack);
5.17 (Seizure and Destruction of Enemy Property).
480
See ROGERS, LAW ON THE BATTLEFIELD 90 (It must be property of great importance to the cultural heritage of
every people. This may involve delicate decisions about whether, for example, an original manuscript by a minor
composer, say Spohr, was of great importance to the cultural heritage of every people, perhaps not. The situation
would be different if it were an original manuscript by one of the great composers, say Schubert.).
481
See JIRI TOMAN, CULTURAL PROPERTY IN WARTIME 50 (1996) (Certain objects, although of limited value, may
be important for the national culture while others, even though of great value, can be replaced and are therefore less
important.).
482
For example, JIRI TOMAN, CULTURAL PROPERTY IN WARTIME 49-50 (1996) ([A] papyrus reporting a marriage
that took place three thousand years ago, although it was of no intrinsic cultural value, was of very great cultural
importance because of the fact that it enabled an institution, on which no such ancient information existed, to be
studied.) (internal quotation marks omitted).
483
See also JIRI TOMAN, CULTURAL PROPERTY IN WARTIME 50-51 (1996) ([W]orks of architecture, sculpture,
specially designed to perpetuate the memory of a person, action, period, event or thing, or as buildings, structures,
271
archaeological sites;
works of art;
Natural sites of great beauty are not included within the definition of cultural property. 487
For these types of buildings, protection is gained from the structures purpose and
contents as opposed to the physical structure itself constituting immovable property of great
importance to the cultural heritage of every people. The building must be intended to contain
edifices remarkable for their archaeological, historical or aesthetic interest or intended to commemorate a notable
person, action or event.).
484
See also JIRI TOMAN, CULTURAL PROPERTY IN WARTIME 51 (1996) (During the drafting of the 1954 Hague
Cultural Property Convention the Scandinavian countries proposed the protection of certain sites which, although
not containing particularly remarkable monuments, were of undoubted value from a cultural point of view and for
that reason had a right to be protected. It was explained that the Scandinavian countries had very little cultural
property and that their gift to culture consisted mainly in distant mediaeval villages or lonely farms.) (internal
quotation marks omitted).
485
See also JIRI TOMAN, CULTURAL PROPERTY IN WARTIME 52 (1996) (Scientific collections are made up of
scientific books but also cover other objects such as Boissiers herbarium in Geneva or the collections of important
laboratories ... [and] national monuments that were objects of valuable scientific research, such as rare animals or
plants that were becoming extinct.).
486
See also JIRI TOMAN, CULTURAL PROPERTY IN WARTIME 52 (1996) ([P]rotection is accorded to important
collections of books without their necessarily having to be of artistic, historical or archaeological interest. Any
important library is thus protected, probably in the spirit of protecting human knowledge.).
487
See JIRI TOMAN, CULTURAL PROPERTY IN WARTIME 53 (1996) (The [1954 Hague Cultural Property] Conference
also discussed the protection of natural sites of great beauty (United States of America and Japan), but appears to
have given up the idea for reasons mentioned by the delegation of France, who considered that it was probably
difficult to define the protection of natural sites as their value was of a subjective nature. At best, only a diluted
form of protection could result. Finally, it had been observed that natural sites could often be restored very
quickly.).
488
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 1(b) (defining the term cultural property to include, inter
alia, buildings whose main and effective purpose is to preserve or exhibit the movable cultural property defined in
sub-paragraph (a) such as museums, large libraries and depositories of archives, and refuges intended to shelter, in
the event of armed conflict, the movable cultural property defined in subparagraph (a)).
272
and, in fact, contain, conserve, or exhibit movable cultural property as its primary purpose. 489
Alternatively, the structure may be intended to store movable cultural property for protection in
the event of armed conflict. Some of these refuges may be subject to special protection. 490
Safeguarding and respect are mutually reinforcing obligations that help ensure the
protection of cultural property.
489
See JIRI TOMAN, CULTURAL PROPERTY IN WARTIME 53-54 (1996) (According to subparagraph (b), such
buildings are protected not because of their own historical value but because of their purpose and their content. The
purpose must be the primary one, the very aim and raison d'etre of such a building; it must also be effectively true --
the building must in fact contain, conserve or exhibit movable cultural property.).
490
Refer to 5.18.8 (Special Protection for Certain Cultural Property).
491
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 1(c) (defining the term cultural property to include, inter
alia, centres containing a large amount of cultural property as defined in sub-paragraphs (a) and (b) to be known as
centres containing monuments). See also JIRI TOMAN, CULTURAL PROPERTY IN WARTIME 54 (1996) (The term
centres containing monuments was preferred to the terms groups or groups of buildings when the reference was
to larger areas containing a considerable amount of cultural property coming under subparagraphs (a) and (b). The
term comprises a group of historical or artistic monuments situated in the same vicinity, such as the districts of
certain cities or even entire cities.).
492
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 2 (For the purposes of the present Convention, the
protection of cultural property shall comprise the safeguarding of and respect for such property.).
493
JIRI TOMAN, CULTURAL PROPERTY IN WARTIME 57 (1996) (Safeguarding consists of all the positive measures
(defining the action to be taken) which are designed to ensure the best possible material conditions for the protection
of cultural property.).
494
JIRI TOMAN, CULTURAL PROPERTY IN WARTIME 57 (1996) (Respect has an essentially negative character: it
represents an obligation not to commit a number of prohibited acts. Respect therefore implies a requirement to
refrain from certain acts, such as placing cultural property in peril or causing damage to it.).
273
consider appropriate. 495 This obligation reflects the opinion that measures for the protection of
cultural property during armed conflict, in order to be effective, must begin in peacetime. 496
The failure of a State to fulfill its obligations in peacetime to safeguard cultural property
during armed conflict does not relieve other States of their obligation to respect cultural
property. 497
5.18.3 Refraining From Any Use for Purposes That Are Likely to Expose It to
Destruction or Damage. In general, no use should be made of cultural property, its immediate
surroundings, or appliances in use for its protection, for purposes that are likely to expose it to
destruction or damage in the event of armed conflict. 498 However, such use is permissible when
military necessity imperatively requires such use. 499
Uses that would be likely to expose cultural property to destruction or damage in the
event of armed conflict would include: (1) using the cultural property for military purposes; 500
(2) placing military objectives near cultural property; or (3) using the cultural property in such a
way that an adversary would likely regard it as a military objective. 501 For example, such uses
would include billeting military personnel in buildings that constitute cultural property, or
emplacing artillery, mortars, or anti-air systems on the grounds of cultural property.
495
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 3 (The High Contracting Parties undertake to prepare in
time of peace for the safeguarding of cultural property situated within their own territory against the foreseeable
effects of an armed conflict, by taking such measures as they consider appropriate.).
496
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION preamble (Guided by the principles concerning the protection
of cultural property during armed conflict, as established in the Conventions of The Hague of 1899 and of 1907 and
in the Washington Pact of 15 April, 1935; Being of the opinion that such protection cannot be effective unless both
national and international measures have been taken to organize it in time of peace;).
497
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 4(5) (No High Contracting Party may evade the
obligations incumbent upon it under the present Article, in respect of another High Contracting Party, by reason of
the fact that the latter as not applied the measures of safeguard referred to in Article 3.).
498
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 4(1) (The High Contracting Parties undertake to respect
cultural property situated within their own territory as well as within the territory of other High Contracting Parties
by refraining from any use of the property and its immediate surroundings or of the appliances in use for its
protection for purposes which are likely to expose it to destruction or damage in the event of armed conflict .).
499
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 4(2) (The obligations mentioned in paragraph 1 of the
present Article may be waived only in cases where military necessity imperatively requires such a waiver.).
500
Compare 5.18.8.2 (Conditions for the Granting of Special Protection No Use for Military Purposes).
501
Refer to 5.7 (Military Objectives).
502
Refer to 5.16 (Prohibition on Using Protected Persons and Objects to Shield, Favor, or Impede Military
Operations).
274
5.18.3.1 Imperative Military Necessity Waiver. Cultural property, its immediate
surroundings, and appliances in use for its protection may be used for purposes that are likely to
expose it to destruction or damage if military necessity imperatively requires such use. The
requirement that military necessity imperatively require such acts should not be confused with
convenience or be used to cloak slackness or indifference to the preservation of cultural
property. 503 This waiver of obligations with respect to cultural property is analogous to the
requirement that enemy property may only be seized or destroyed if imperatively required by the
necessities of war. 504
5.18.4 Other Feasible Precautions to Reduce the Risk of Harm to Cultural Property.
Other feasible precautions should be taken to reduce the risk of harm to cultural property. 505
Such precautions may include:
determining the location of cultural property and disseminating that information among
the armed forces; 506
compiling and promulgating lists of cultural property and areas that are not to be
attacked; 507
503
See General Dwight D. Eisenhower, Commander-in-Chief, U.S. Army, Memorandum Regarding the Protection
of Historical Monuments in Italy, Dec. 29, 1943, X WHITEMANS DIGEST 438 (13) (If we have to choose between
destroying a famous building and sacrificing our own men, then our mens lives count infinitely more and the
building must go. But the choice is not always so clear-cut as that. In many cases the monuments can be spared
without any detriment to operational needs. Nothing can stand against the argument of military necessity. That is
an accepted principle. But the phrase military necessity is sometimes used where it would be more truthful to
speak of military convenience or even personal convenience. I do not want it to cloak slackness or indifference.).
504
Refer to 5.17.2 (Enemy Property Military Necessity Standard). For general discussion of military necessity
refer to 2.2 (Military Necessity).
505
Refer to 5.3.3 (Affirmative Duties to Take Feasible Precautions for the Protection of Civilians and Other
Protected Persons and Objects).
506
For example, General Dwight D. Eisenhower, Commander-in-Chief, U.S. Army, Memorandum Regarding the
Protection of Historical Monuments in Italy, Dec. 29, 1943, X WHITEMANS DIGEST 438 (13) (It is a
responsibility of higher commanders to determine through A.M.G. Officers the locations of historical monuments
whether they be immediately ahead of our front lines or in areas occupied by us. This information passed to lower
echelons through normal channels places the responsibility on all Commanders of complying with the spirit of this
letter.).
507
For example, Strobe Talbot, Letter of Submittal, May 12, 1998, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING
THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION VIII (1999) (During Operation Desert Storm, for example,
intelligence resources were utilized to look for cultural property in order to properly identify it. Target intelligence
officers identified cultural property or cultural property sites in Iraq; a no-strike target list was prepared, placing
known cultural property off limits from attack, as well as some otherwise legitimate targets if their attack might
place nearby cultural property at risk of damage.); 7th Air Force Operations Order 71-17 (Rules of Engagement),
reprinted in 121 CONGRESSIONAL RECORD 17555 (Jun. 6, 1975) (specifying during the Vietnam War Angkor Wat
Park: This area will not be attacked for any reason. Under no circumstances will [forward air controllers] control or
assist air strikes of any nation within the Angkor Wat area. Should a [forward air controller] observe such a strike
being made, he will advise the [Forces Arme Nationale Khmer] ground commander and depart the area
immediately. Other Areas of Cultural Value: Except during [combat search and rescue] operations, no U.S. air
strikes will be made within 1,000 meters of any of the areas of cultural value [nearly 100 other sites specifically
275
establishing civil authorities to assume responsibility for planning and acting to ensure
respect for cultural property under its control; 508
5.18.5 Refraining From Any Act of Hostility. In general, acts of hostility may not be
directed against cultural property, its immediate surroundings, or appliances in use for its
protection. 510 Acts of hostility may, however, be directed against cultural property, its
immediate surroundings, or appliances in use for its protection, when military necessity
imperatively requires such acts. 511
For example, if cultural property is being used by an opposing force for military
purposes, then military necessity generally would imperatively require its seizure or
destruction. 514
listed in the directive]. U.S. [forward air controllers] will not control or assist air strikes of any nation within 1,000
meters of these areas regardless of [Forces Arme Nationale Khmer] request of validation.).
508
These include museum curators and staff, local fire and law enforcement authorities, and civil defense personnel.
509
Refer to 5.18.1.3 (Buildings Intended to Preserve Cultural Property).
510
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 4(1) (The High Contracting Parties undertake to respect
cultural property situated within their own territory as well as within the territory of other High Contracting Parties
by refraining from any act of hostility directed against such property.).
511
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 4(2) (The obligations mentioned in paragraph 1 of the
present Article may be waived only in cases where military necessity imperatively requires such a waiver.).
512
Refer to footnote 503 in 5.18.3.1 (Imperative Military Necessity Waiver).
513
Refer to 5.17.2 (Enemy Property Military Necessity Standard). For general discussion of military necessity,
refer to 2.2 (Military Necessity).
514
Cf. ROERICH PACT art. 5 (The monuments and institutions mentioned in article I shall cease to enjoy the
privileges recognized in the present treaty in case they are made use of for military purposes.); HAGUE IV REG. art.
27 (In sieges and bombardments all necessary steps must be taken to spare, as far as possible, buildings dedicated
to religion, art, science, or charitable purposes, historic monuments, hospitals, and places where the sick and
wounded are collected, provided they are not being used at the time for military purposes.) (emphasis added);
HAGUE IX art. 5 (In bombardments by naval forces all the necessary measures must be taken by the commander to
spare as far as possible sacred edifices, buildings used for artistic, scientific, or charitable purposes, historic
monuments, hospitals, and places where the sick or wounded are collected, on the understanding that they are not
used at the same time for military purposes.) (emphasis added). Compare 5.18.8.2 (Conditions for the Granting
of Special Protection No Use for Military Purposes).
276
Similarly, if an opposing force uses cultural property and its immediate surroundings to
protect military objectives, then the attack of those military objectives may be imperatively
required by military necessity. 515 Or, if a military objective was located near cultural property,
the protection afforded the area surrounding the cultural property could be subject to waiver for
reasons of imperative military necessity such that the attack of the military objective would be
permissible, despite its proximity to cultural property. 516
Even where the waiver of the protection afforded cultural property, its immediate
surroundings, or appliances in use for its protection may be warranted for reasons of imperative
military necessity, the risk of harm to the cultural property must be considered in a
proportionality analysis 517 and feasible precautions should be taken to reduce the risk of harm to
the cultural property. 518 And, even where waiver of the protection of cultural property may be
warranted as a matter of law, as a matter of policy, decision-makers may still seek to refrain from
harming cultural property. 519
515
FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 610 (While Article 4(1) of the 1954 Hague Convention provides
specific protection for cultural property, Article 4(2) permits waiver of that protection where military necessity
makes such a waiver imperative; such imperative military necessity can occur when an enemy uses cultural
property and its immediate surroundings to protect legitimate military targets, in violation of Article 4(1).).
516
Strobe Talbot, Letter of Submittal, May 12, 1998, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE 1954
HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION VIII (1999) (During Operation DESERT STORM, when attacking
legitimate targets in the vicinity of cultural objects, to the extent possible, weapons were selected that would
accomplish destruction of the target while minimizing the risk of collateral damage to nearby cultural or civilian
property. However, the proximity of military objectives to cultural property did not render those military objectives
immune from attack, nor would it under the [1954 Hague Cultural Property] Convention.).
517
Refer to 5.12 (Proportionality in Conducting Attacks).
518
Refer to 5.11 (Feasible Precautions in Conducting Attacks to Reduce the Risk of Harm to Protected Persons and
Objects).
519
For example, H. STIMSON, ON SERVICE IN PEACE AND WAR 625 (1948) (With President Trumans warm support
I struck off the list of suggest targets the city of Kyoto. Although it was a target of considerable military
importance, it had been the ancient capital of Japan and was a shrine of Japanese art and culture. We determined
that it should be spared. I approved four other targets including the cities of Hiroshima and Nagasaki.).
520
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 4(3) (The High Contracting Parties further undertake to
prohibit, prevent and, if necessary, put a stop to any form of theft, pillage or misappropriation of, and any acts of
vandalism directed against, cultural property.). See also LIEBER CODE art. 36 (In no case shall [classical works of
art, libraries, scientific collections, or precious instruments] be sold or given away, if captured by the armies of the
United States, nor shall they ever be privately appropriated, or wantonly destroyed or injured.).
277
Pillage is prohibited more broadly. 521
Some measures to ensure adherence to this obligation may include training members of
the armed forces and persons authorized to accompany the armed forces on the protection of
cultural property in general (and the prohibition of theft, pillage, or vandalism in particular) as
part of general procedures for the dissemination and implementation of the law of war. 524 Other
measures may include: (1) issuing and enforcing orders to the same effect; 525 (2) investigating
alleged or suspected offenses and taking disciplinary or punitive action, as appropriate under
U.S. law; 526 and (3) taking measures to facilitate the recovery and return of stolen or
misappropriated cultural property.
521
Refer to 5.17.4 (Pillage Prohibited).
522
Refer to 5.18.4 (Other Feasible Precautions to Reduce the Risk of Harm to Cultural Property).
523
Refer to 5.4 (Assessing Information Under the Law of War).
524
Refer to 18.6 (Dissemination, Study, and Other Measures to Facilitate Understanding of Duties Under the Law
of War).
525
For example, General John P. Abizaid, U.S. Central Command, General Order 1B (GO-1B), Prohibited Activities
for U.S. Department of Defense Personnel Present Within the United States Central Command (USCENTCOM)
Area of Responsibility (AOR), 2h (Mar. 13, 2006) (prohibiting [r]emoving, possessing, selling, defacing or
destroying archaeological artifacts or national treasures.).
526
Refer to 18.19 (Discipline in National Jurisdictions of Individuals for Violations of the Law of War).
527
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 4(3) (They [the High Contracting Parties] shall, refrain
from requisitioning movable cultural property situated in the territory of another High Contracting Party.).
278
This rule makes no distinction between movable property of nationals of the country in
which it is located and property of nationals of another High Contracting Party. As such, it
would also protect from requisition any movable property from a third State temporarily on loan
for an exhibition within the territory of a State participating in an armed conflict. 528
5.18.7 Marking of Cultural Property With the Distinctive Emblem. Cultural property
may bear a distinctive emblem so as to facilitate its recognition. 529 This distinctive emblem is
described in Article 16 of the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention. 530 There is a degree of
discretion as to the placing of the distinctive emblem and its degree of visibility. 531 The emblem
may be displayed on flags or armlets, and it may be painted on an object or represented in any
other appropriate form. 532
5.18.7.2 Display of the Distinctive Emblem for Cultural Property Once Versus
Three Times. In some cases, the distinctive emblem for cultural property is to be used once,
while in other cases, the distinctive emblem for cultural property is to be displayed three times in
a triangular formation (one shield below the other two shields). 535
528
JIRI TOMAN, CULTURAL PROPERTY IN WARTIME 71 (1996) ([T]he prohibition of requisitioning should also apply
to property existing on the territory of a High Contracting Party but belonging to the nationals of another High
Contracting Party, as in the case of the collections of the historical or scientific institutes in Athens, Cairo, Paris, and
Rome. The same guarantee would also apply in respect of movable cultural property made available on loan for an
exhibition ... .).
529
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 6 (In accordance with the provisions of Article 16, cultural
property may bear a distinctive emblem so as to facilitate its recognition.).
530
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 16(1) (The distinctive emblem of the Convention shall
take the form of a shield, pointed below, per saltire blue and white (a shield consisting of a royal-blue square, one of
the angles of which forms the point of the shield, and of a royal-blue triangle above the square, the space on either
side being taken up by a white triangle).).
531
REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 20(1) (The
placing of the distinctive emblem and its degree of visibility shall be left to the discretion of the competent
authorities of each High Contracting Party.).
532
REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 20(1) (It may
be displayed on flags or armlets; it may be painted on an object or represented in any other appropriate form.).
533
Compare 7.15 (Display of the Distinctive Emblem to Facilitate Identification).
534
Refer to 5.18.1 (Definition of Cultural Property).
535
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 16(2) (The emblem shall be used alone, or repeated three
times in a triangular formation (one shield below), under the conditions provided for in Article 17.).
279
The distinctive emblem for cultural property used once may only be used as a means of
identification of:
the persons responsible for the duties of control in accordance with the Regulations for
the Execution of the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention; 536
the identity cards mentioned in the Regulations for the Execution of the 1954 Hague
Cultural Property Convention. 538
The distinctive emblem, repeated three times, may be used only as a means of
identification of: 539
the transport of cultural property under the special protection or in urgent cases; 541 and
improvised refuges, under the conditions provided for in the Regulations for the
Execution of the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention. 542
536
Refer to 4.14 (Personnel Engaged in Duties Related to the Protection of Cultural Property).
537
Refer to 4.14 (Personnel Engaged in Duties Related to the Protection of Cultural Property).
538
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 17(2) (The distinctive emblem may be used alone only as
a means of identification of: (a) cultural property not under special protection; (b) the persons responsible for the
duties of control in accordance with the Regulations for the execution of the Convention; (c) the personnel engaged
in the protection of cultural property; (d) the identity cards mentioned in the Regulations for the execution of the
Convention.).
539
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 17(1) (The distinctive emblem repeated three times may
be used only as a means of identification of: (a) immovable cultural property under special protection; (b) the
transport of cultural property under the conditions provided for in Articles 12 and 13; (c) improvised refuges, under
the conditions provided for in the Regulations for the execution of the Convention.).
540
Refer to 5.18.8 (Special Protection for Certain Cultural Property).
541
Refer to 5.18.9 (Transport of Cultural Property).
542
Refer to 5.18.8 (Special Protection for Certain Cultural Property).
543
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 17(4) (The distinctive emblem may not be placed on any
immovable cultural property unless at the same time there is displayed an authorization duly dated and signed by the
competent authority of the High Contracting Party.).
280
5.18.7.4 Other Uses of the Distinctive Emblem for Cultural Property Prohibited
During Armed Conflict. During armed conflict, the use of the distinctive emblem for cultural
property in any other cases than those mentioned in the 1954 Hague Cultural Property
Convention, and the use for any purpose whatsoever of a sign resembling the distinctive emblem,
is forbidden. 544
5.18.8 Special Protection for Certain Cultural Property. A highly limited category of
cultural property receives special protection by its entry in an International Register. 545
The standards governing the protection of such cultural property are essentially the same
as the standards governing the protection of cultural property under customary law 546 and the
protection afforded all cultural property under the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention. 547
However, the special procedures applicable to cultural property under special protection facilitate
its protection beyond that afforded cultural property that is not under special protection.
544
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 17(3) (During an armed conflict, the use of the distinctive
emblem in any other cases than those mentioned in the Cultural Property Convention, and the use for any purpose
whatever of a sign resembling the distinctive emblem, shall be forbidden.). Consider AP I art. 38(1)(a) (It is also
prohibited to misuse deliberately in an armed conflict other internationally recognized protective emblems, signs or
signals, including the flag of truce, and the protective emblem of cultural property.).
545
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 8(6) (Special protection is granted to cultural property by
its entry in the International Register of Cultural Property under Special Protection. This entry shall only be made,
in accordance with the provisions of the present Convention and under the conditions provided for in the
Regulations for the execution of the Convention.).
546
See United States, Statement on Ratification of the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention, Mar. 13, 2009,
2575 UNTS 7, 8 (It is the understanding of the United States of America that special protection, as defined in
Chapter II of the Convention, codifies customary international law in that it, first, prohibits the use of any cultural
property to shield any legitimate military targets from attack and, second, allows all property to be attacked using
any lawful and proportionate means, if required by military necessity and notwithstanding possible collateral
damage to such property.).
547
Compare 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 9 (The High Contracting Parties undertake to
ensure the immunity of cultural property under special protection by refraining, from the time of entry in the
International Register, from any act of hostility directed against such property and, except for the cases provided for
in paragraph 5 of Article 8, from any use of such property or its surroundings for military purposes.) with 1954
HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 4(1) (The High Contracting Parties undertake to respect cultural
property situated within their own territory as well as within the territory of other High Contracting Parties by
refraining from any use of the property and its immediate surroundings or of the appliances in use for its protection
for purposes which are likely to expose it to destruction or damage in the event of armed conflict; and by refraining
from any act of hostility directed against such property.).
548
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 8(1) (There may be placed under special protection a
limited number of refuges intended to shelter movable cultural property in the event of armed conflict, of centres
containing monuments and other immovable cultural property of very great importance, provided that they: (a) are
situated at an adequate distance from any large industrial centre or from any important military objective
constituting a vulnerable point, such as, for example, an aerodrome, broadcasting station, establishment engaged
upon work of national defence, a port or railway station of relative importance or a main line of communication; (b)
are not used for military purposes.).
281
a limited number of refuges intended to shelter movable cultural property in the event of
armed conflict;
a limited number of centers containing monuments and other immovable property of very
great importance; and
improvised refuges under the procedures specified in the Regulations for the Execution of
the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention. 549
Property granted special protection must be marked with the distinctive emblem for
special protection, and opened to international control as provided for in the Regulations for the
Execution of the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention. 550
The property must be situated at an adequate distance from any large industrial center or
from any important military objective, such as an airport, railway station, or marshalling yards,
port facilities, key lines of communication, command and control activity, or other defense
facility. 551 The term adequate distance is not defined within the 1954 Hague Cultural Property
Convention, but relies upon determinations and actions by the State Party requesting special
protection status, and by States Parties in determining whether the distance set forth by the
requesting nation is sufficient to support approval of the request.
549
REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 11 (1. If,
during an armed conflict, any High Contracting Party is induced by unforeseen circumstances to set up an
improvised refuge and desires that it should be placed under special protection, it shall communicate this fact
forthwith to the Commissioner-General accredited to that Party. 2. If the Commissioner-General considers that such
a measure is justified by the circumstances and by the importance of the cultural property sheltered in this
improvised refuge, he may authorize the High Contracting Party to display on such refuge the distinctive emblem
defined in Article 16 of the Convention. He shall communicate his decision without delay to the delegates of the
Protecting Powers who are concerned, each of whom may, within a time-limit of 30 days, order the immediate
withdrawal of the emblem. 3. As soon as such delegates have signified their agreement or if the time-limit of 30
days has passed without any of the delegates concerned having made an objection, and if, in the view of the
Commissioner-General, the refuge fulfils the conditions laid down in Article 8 of the Convention, the
Commissioner-General shall request the Director-General of the United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural
Organization to enter the refuge in the Register of Cultural Property under Special Protection.).
550
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 10 (During an armed conflict, cultural property under
special protection shall be marked with the distinctive emblem described in Article 16, and shall be open to
international control as provided for in the Regulations for the execution of the Convention.).
551
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 8(1) (Refuges and centers may only be placed under special
protection if they: (a) are situated at an adequate distance from any large industrial centre or from any important
military objective constituting a vulnerable point, such as, for example, an aerodrome, broadcasting station,
establishment engaged upon work of national defence, a port or railway station of relative importance or a main line
of communication.). Refer to 5.7 (Military Objectives).
282
Immovable cultural property of very great importance adjacent to a military objective
may retain its special protection status provided, in the event of armed conflict, all use of the
military objective ceases. 552 For example, if the military objective in question is an airport, port
facility, or railway station or marshaling yards, all activity must cease, and military traffic must
be diverted, in order for the site to maintain its protected status.
A refuge for storing and protecting movable cultural property may also be placed under
special protection, whatever its location, if it is so constructed that, in all probability, it will not
be damaged by bombs. 553
5.18.8.2 Conditions for the Granting of Special Protection No Use for Military
Purposes. A center containing monuments 554 shall be deemed to be used for military purposes
whenever it is used for the movement of military personnel or material, even in transit. The
same shall apply whenever activities directly connected with military operations, the stationing
of military personnel, or the production of war material are carried on within the center. 555
The guarding of cultural property under special protection by armed custodians specially
empowered to do so, or the presence, in the vicinity of such cultural property, of police forces
normally responsible for the maintenance of public order, however, shall not be deemed to be
use for military purposes. 556 Such activities may fulfill the obligation to safeguard cultural
property, especially against looters. 557 Employment of law enforcement personnel to protect
cultural property is analogous to activities of armed military medical personnel deployed in and
around military medical units and facilities in order to provide security from criminal acts. 558
552
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 8(5) (If any cultural property mentioned in paragraph 1 of
the present Article is situated near an important military objective as defined in the said paragraph, it may
nevertheless be placed under special protection if the High Contracting Party asking for that protection undertakes,
in the event of armed conflict, to make no use of the objective and particularly, in the case of a port, railway station
or aerodrome, to divert all traffic therefrom. In that event, such diversion shall be prepared in time of peace.).
553
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 8(2) (A refuge for movable cultural property may also be
placed under special protection, whatever its location, if it is so constructed that, in all probability, it will not be
damaged by bombs.).
554
Refer to 5.18.1.4 (Centers Containing Monuments).
555
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 8(3) (A centre containing monuments shall be deemed to
be used for military purposes whenever it is used for the movement of military personnel or material, even in transit.
The same shall apply whenever activities directly connected with military operations, the stationing of military
personnel, or the production of war material are carried on within the centre.).
556
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 8(4) (The guarding of cultural property mentioned in
paragraph 1 above by armed custodians specially empowered to do so, or the presence, in the vicinity of such
cultural property, of police forces normally responsible for the maintenance of public order shall not be deemed to
be used for military purposes.). Compare 4.23.1 (Police as Civilians).
557
Refer to 5.18.6.1 (Obligation to Stop or Prevent Theft, Pillage, or Misappropriation of, and Acts of Vandalism
Against, Cultural Property).
558
Refer to 7.10.3.5 (Use of Weapons in Self-Defense or Defense of the Wounded and Sick).
283
5.18.8.3 Marking of Cultural Property Under Special Protection. The distinctive
emblem for cultural property is to be displayed three times in a triangular formation to indicate
cultural property under special protection. 559
The emblem shall be visible from the ground: (a) at regular intervals sufficient to
indicate clearly the perimeter of a center containing monuments under special protection; and (b)
at the entrance to other immovable cultural property under special protection. 560
Apart from violations by the opposing Party, immunity shall be withdrawn from cultural
property under special protection only in exceptional cases of unavoidable military necessity,
and only for such time as that necessity continues. 563 Such necessity can be established only by
an officer commanding a force the equivalent of a division in size or larger. 564 However, such
necessity should not be construed to impose an unreasonable and disproportionate responsibility
on the attacker to avoid damage to cultural property. 565 Moreover, all property may be attacked
559
Refer to 5.18.7.2 (Display of the Distinctive Emblem for Cultural Property Once Versus Three Times).
560
REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 20(2) (The
emblem shall be visible from the ground: (a) at regular intervals sufficient to indicate clearly the perimeter of a
centre containing monuments under special protection; (b) at the entrance to other immovable cultural property
under special protection.).
561
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 11(1) (If one of the High Contracting Parties commits, in
respect of any item of cultural property under special protection, a violation of the obligations under Article 9, the
opposing Party shall, so long as this violation persists, be released from the obligation to ensure the immunity of the
property concerned.).
562
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 11(1) (Nevertheless, whenever possible, the latter Party
shall first request the cessation of such violation within a reasonable time.).
563
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 11(2) (Apart from the case provided for in paragraph I of
the present Article, immunity shall be withdrawn from cultural property under special protection only in exceptional
cases of unavoidable military necessity, and only for such time as that necessity continues.).
564
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 11(2) (Such necessity can be established only by the
officer commanding a force the equivalent of a division in size or larger.).
565
Section-by-Section Analysis of Provisions, 6, Tab 1 to Strobe Talbot, Letter of Submittal, May 12, 1998,
MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION 7 (Due to
ambiguous modifiers such as those in the Article 11 phrase exceptional cases of unavoidable military necessity,
the provisions may be misconstrued to impose an unreasonable and disproportionate responsibility on the attacker to
avoid damage to cultural property. Clarification would help avoid a suggestion that strict compliance with the
Convention would mean that any collateral damage would constitute a violation of the Convention.).
284
using any lawful and proportionate means if required by military necessity and notwithstanding
possible collateral damage to such property. 566
Whenever circumstances permit, the opposing Party shall be notified, a reasonable time
in advance, of the decision to withdraw immunity. 567 The Party withdrawing immunity is also to
notify the Commissioner-General for Cultural Property as soon as possible as provided for in the
Regulations for the Execution of the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention, in writing,
stating the reasons for withdrawing immunity. 568
5.18.9 Transport of Cultural Property. The transport of cultural property may take place:
(1) under special protection through procedures provided in the Regulations for the Execution of
the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention; and (2) in urgent cases without such procedures.
Additional rules apply to the transport of cultural property in occupied territory. 569
The distinctive emblem for cultural property should be placed on vehicles of transport so
as to be clearly visible in daylight from the air as well as from the ground. 570
566
See United States, Statement on Ratification of the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention, Mar. 13, 2009,
2575 UNTS 7, 8 (It is the understanding of the United States of America that special protection, as defined in
Chapter II of the Convention, allows all property to be attacked using any lawful and proportionate means, if
required by military necessity and notwithstanding possible collateral damage to such property.).
567
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 11(2) (Whenever circumstances permit, the opposing
Party shall be notified, a reasonable time in advance, of the decision to withdraw immunity.).
568
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 11(3) (The Party withdrawing immunity shall, as soon as
possible, so inform the Commissioner-General for cultural property provided for in the Regulations for the
execution of the Convention, in writing, stating the reasons.).
569
Refer to 11.19 (Protection of Cultural Property During Occupation).
570
REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 20(2)
(However, without prejudice to any possible fuller markings, the emblem shall, in the event of armed conflict and
in the cases mentioned in Articles 12 and 13 of the Convention, be placed on vehicles of transport so as to be clearly
visible in daylight from the air as well as from the ground.).
571
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 12(1) (Transport exclusively engaged in the transfer of
cultural property, whether within a territory or to another territory, may, at the request of the High Contracting Party
concerned, take place under special protection in accordance with the conditions specified in the Regulations for the
execution of the Convention.).
572
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 12(3) (The High Contracting Parties shall refrain from any
act of hostility directed against transport under special protection.).
285
location, the intended destination, the means of transport to be used, the route to be followed, and
the date proposed for transfer. 573 The Commissioner-General for Cultural Property determines
whether such transfer is justified and notifies parties to the conflict concerned of the transfer. 574
Transport under special protection shall take place under the international supervision
provided for in the Regulations for the Execution of the 1954 Hague Cultural Property
Convention and shall display the distinctive emblem described in Article 16. 575 The distinctive
emblem for cultural property is to be displayed repeated three times in a triangular formation to
indicate that the transport occurs under special protection. 576
The transport of cultural property to the territory of another State is subject to additional
rules. 577
5.18.9.2 Transport in Urgent Cases. If a State that is a Party to the 1954 Hague
Cultural Property Convention considers that the safety of certain cultural property requires
transfer, and that the matter is of such urgency that the request procedure to the Commissioner-
General for Cultural Property cannot be followed, the transport may display the distinctive
emblem for cultural property, provided that a request for transport under special protection has
573
REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 17(1) (The
request mentioned in paragraph 1 of Article 12 of the Convention shall be addressed to the Commissioner-General
for Cultural Property. It shall mention the reasons on which it is based and specify the approximate number and the
importance of the objects to be transferred, their present location, the location now envisaged, the means of transport
to be used, the route to be followed, the date proposed for the transfer, and any other relevant information.).
574
REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 17(2) (If the
Commissioner-General, after taking such opinions as he deems fit, considers that such transfer is justified, he shall
consult those delegates of the Protecting Powers who are concerned, on the measures proposed for carrying it out.
Following such consultation, he shall notify the Parties to the conflict concerned of the transfer, including in such
notification all useful information.).
575
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 12(2) (Transport under special protection shall take place
under the international supervision provided for in the aforesaid Regulations and shall display the distinctive
emblem described in Article 16.). See also REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL
PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 17(3) (The Commission-General shall appoint one or more inspectors, who shall
satisfy themselves that only the property stated in the request is to be transferred and that the transport is to be by the
approved methods and bears the distinctive emblem. The inspector or inspectors shall accompany the property to its
destination.).
576
Refer to 5.18.7.2 (Display of the Distinctive Emblem for Cultural Property Once Versus Three Times).
577
See REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 18 ((a)
[W]hile the cultural property remains on the territory of another State, that State shall be its depositary and shall
extend to it as great a measure of care as that which it bestows upon its own cultural property of comparable
importance; (b) the depositary State shall return the property only on the cessation of the conflict; such return shall
be effected within six months from the date on which it was requested; (c) during the various transfer operations,
and while it remains on the territory of another State, the cultural property shall be exempt from confiscation and
may not be disposed of either by the depositor or by the depositary. Nevertheless, when the safety of the property
requires it, the depositary may, with the assent of the depositor, have the property transported to the territory of a
third country, under the conditions laid down in the present article; (d) the request for special protection shall
indicate that the State to whose territory the property is to be transferred accepts the provisions of the present Article
[of the Regulations for the Execution of the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention].).
286
not already been made and refused. 578 As far as possible, notification of transfer should be made
to the opposing Parties. 579 Nevertheless, transport conveying cultural property to the territory of
another State may not display the distinctive emblem unless immunity has been expressly
granted to it. 580
As far as possible, necessary precautions shall be taken to avoid acts of hostility directed
against transport of cultural property under the protection provided in urgent cases and while
displaying the distinctive emblem. 581
For example, based on the statements of national delegations, including the U.S.
delegation, during the negotiations of this provision, it appears that objects that qualify for
578
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 13(1) (If a High Contracting Party considers that the safety
of certain cultural property requires its transfer and that the matter is of such urgency that the procedure laid down in
Article 12 cannot be followed, especially at the beginning of an armed conflict, the transport may display the
distinctive emblem described in Article 16, provided that an application for immunity referred to in Article 12 has
not already been made and refused.).
579
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 13(1) (As far as possible, notification of transfer should be
made to the opposing Parties.).
580
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 13(1) (Nevertheless, transport conveying cultural property
to the territory of another country may not display the distinctive emblem unless immunity has been expressly
granted to it.).
581
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 13(2) (The High Contracting Parties shall take, so far as
possible, the necessary precautions to avoid acts of hostility directed against the transport described in paragraph 1
of the present Article and displaying the distinctive emblem.).
582
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 14(1) (Immunity from seizure, placing in prize, or capture
shall be granted to: (a) cultural property enjoying the protection provided for in Article 12 or that provided for in
Article 13; (b) the means of transport exclusively engaged in the transfer of such cultural property.).
583
Compare 4.9.2.3 (Exclusively Engaged in Humanitarian Duties).
584
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 14(2) (Nothing in the present Article shall limit the right
of visit and search.). Refer to 15.13 (Belligerent Right of Visit and Search of Merchant Vessels).
585
AP I art. 53 (Without prejudice to the provisions of the Hague Convention for the Protection of Cultural
Property in the Event of Armed Conflict of 14 May 1954, and of other relevant international instruments, it is
prohibited: (a) to commit any acts of hostility directed against the historic monuments, works of art or places of
worship which constitute the cultural or spiritual heritage of peoples; (b) to use such objects in support of the
military effort; (c) to make such objects the object of reprisals.).
287
special protection under Article 53 of AP I are substantially those that qualify for special
protection under the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention. 586
In addition, protection is waived when an object is used in support of the military effort
or for military purposes. 587 In addition, Canada has interpreted Article 53 to permit waiver of its
obligations when military necessity imperatively requires such waiver. 588
5.19.1 Siege and Encirclement Permissible. It is lawful to besiege enemy forces, i.e., to
encircle them with a view towards inducing their surrender by cutting them off from
reinforcements, supplies, and communications with the outside world. 590 In particular, it is
permissible to seek to starve enemy forces into submission.591
586
BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 333 (AP I art. 53, 2.5.1) (In light of this understanding [by the U.S.
delegation], it appears that the objects which qualify for special protection under Art. 53 are substantially those
which would qualify for special protection under Art. 8 of the Hague Convention of 1954 without, however,
imposing a requirement for the procedural measures required by that Convention to effect such special protection.).
587
See, e.g., France, Statement on Ratification of AP I, translated in SCHINDLER & TOMAN, THE LAWS OF ARMED
CONFLICTS: A COLLECTION OF CONVENTIONS, RESOLUTIONS, AND OTHER DOCUMENTS 801 (2004) (The
Government of the French Republic declares that if the objects protected by Article 53 are used for military
purposes, they will lose protection which they would otherwise have according to the provisions of the Protocol.);
Ireland, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Nov. 19, 1999, 2073 UNTS 28, 30 (It is the understanding of Ireland in
relation to the protection of cultural objects in Article 53 that if the objects protected by this Article are unlawfully
used for military purposes they will thereby lose protection from attacks directed against such unlawful military
use.); Italy, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Feb. 27, 1986, 1425 UNTS 438, 439 (If and so long as the
objectives protected by Article 53 are unlawfully used for military purposes, they will thereby lose protection.);
United Kingdom, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Jan. 28, 1998, 2020 UNTS 75, 77 (The United Kingdom
declares that if the objects protected by this Article are unlawfully used for military purposes they will thereby lose
protection from attacks directed against such unlawful military uses.).
588
Canada, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Nov. 20, 1990, 1591 UNTS 462, 465 (It is the understanding of the
Government of Canada in relation to Article 53 that: a. Such protection as is afforded by the Article will be lost
during such time as the protected property is used for military purposes, and b. The prohibitions contained in
subparagraphs (a) and (b) of this Article can only be waived when military necessity imperatively requires such a
waiver.).
589
Refer to 13.10 (Blockade).
590
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 40 (Investment, bombardment, assault, and siege have always been
recognized as legitimate means of land warfare.). See also 2004 UK MANUAL 5.34.1 (Attacks can be costly in
casualties and incidental loss or damage. A more effective method may be to encircle enemy forces, cutting them
off from supplies and communications with the outside world and forcing their surrender. The same is true of
besieging a town or stronghold. Siege is a legitimate method of warfare as long as it is directed against enemy
armed forces. It would be unlawful to besiege an undefended town since it could be occupied without resistance.).
591
Refer to 5.20 (Starvation).
288
5.19.1.1 Belligerent Authority to Exercise Control in the Immediate Vicinity of
Military Operations. The conduct of a siege or encirclement may require the imposition of
measures of control to ensure that outsiders may not deliver supplies to enemy forces. Thus, the
right to conduct a siege or encirclement impliedly recognizes the authority of the military
commander to exercise control (e.g., stopping, searching, and diverting traffic) over civilians
and other persons in the immediate vicinity of military operations. For example, commanders
may also impose certain restrictions on neutral vessels or aircraft (such as restricting
communications) within the immediate vicinity of the belligerents operations. 592
5.19.2 Removal and Passage of Certain Personnel Vulnerable Civilians, Diplomatic and
Consular Personnel, the Wounded and Sick, and Medical Personnel. Although the commander
of the force laying siege has the right to forbid all communications and access between the
besieged place and the outside, the parties to the conflict should attempt to conclude local
agreements for the removal of wounded, sick, infirm and aged persons, children, and maternity
cases, or for the passage of ministers of all religions, medical personnel, and medical equipment
on their way to such areas. 593 Concluding such agreements is not compulsory. A commander of
an encircling force is not required to agree to the passage of medical or religious personnel,
supplies, and equipment if he or she has legitimate military reasons denying such requests (e.g.,
if denying passage may increase the likelihood of surrender of enemy forces in the encircled
area). Nonetheless, commanders should make reasonable, good-faith efforts to do so when
possible. 594
Diplomatic and consular personnel of a neutral State should not be prevented from
leaving a besieged place before hostilities commence, but this privilege cannot be claimed while
hostilities are in progress. If diplomatic and consular personnel of a neutral State voluntarily
decide to remain, they are subject to the same risks as other inhabitants. 595
592
Refer to 13.8 (Belligerent Control of the Immediate Area of Naval Operations); 14.6 (Belligerent Control of
Aviation in the Immediate Vicinity of Hostilities).
593
GC art. 17 (The Parties to the conflict shall endeavour to conclude local agreements for the removal from
besieged or encircled areas, of wounded, sick, infirm, and aged persons, children and maternity cases, and for the
passage of ministers of all religions, medical personnel and medical equipment on their way to such areas.); GWS
art. 15 (Likewise, local arrangements may be concluded between Parties to the conflict for the removal or exchange
of wounded and sick from a besieged or encircled area, and for the passage of medical and religious personnel and
equipment on their way to that area.); GWS-SEA art. 18 (Whenever circumstances permit, the Parties to the
conflict shall conclude local arrangements for the removal of the wounded and sick by sea from a besieged or
encircled area and for the passage of medical and religious personnel and equipment on their way to that area.).
594
GC COMMENTARY 139 (The words The Parties to the conflict shall endeavor show that under the Convention
evacuation is not compulsory; belligerents should nevertheless regard this provision as a very strong
recommendation to arrange for evacuation whenever it is in the interest of the civilian population and the military
situation makes it possible.).
595
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 44b (Diplomatic and consular personnel of a neutral State should not be
prevented from leaving a besieged place before hostilities commence, but this privilege cannot be claimed while
hostilities are in progress. Should they voluntarily decide to remain, they must undergo the same risks as other
inhabitants.).
289
all consignments of medical and hospital stores and objects necessary for religious
worship intended only for civilians; and
all consignments of essential foodstuffs, clothing, and tonics (i.e., medicine) intended for
children under fifteen, expectant mothers, and maternity cases. 596
However, allowing passage of these items is not required by the party controlling the area
unless that party is satisfied that there are no serious reasons for fearing that:
a definite advantage may accrue to the military efforts or economy of the enemy. 597
5.19.4 Attacks by Forces Laying Siege. The general rules that apply to conducting
attacks also apply to attacks by forces laying siege. 600
5.19.4.1 Use of Force to Drive Fleeing Civilians Back to Besieged Areas. In the
past, it was permissible, but an extreme measure, to refuse to allow civilians to leave a besieged
locality and to use force to drive any who attempted to flee back to the besieged locality. 601
596
GC art. 23 (Each High Contracting Party shall allow the free passage of all consignments of medical and
hospital stores and objects necessary for religious worship intended only for civilians of another High Contracting
Party, even if the latter is its adversary. It shall likewise permit the free passage of all consignments of essential
foodstuffs, clothing and tonics intended for children under fifteen, expectant mothers and maternity cases.).
597
GC art. 23 (The obligation of a High Contracting Party to allow the free passage of the consignments indicated
in the preceding paragraph is subject to the condition that this Party is satisfied that there are no serious reasons for
fearing: (a) that the consignments may be diverted from their destination, (b) that the control may not be effective,
or (c) that a definite advantage may accrue to the military efforts or economy of the enemy through the substitution
of the above-mentioned consignments for goods which would otherwise be provided or produced by the enemy or
through the release of such material, services or facilities as would otherwise be required for the production of such
goods.).
598
GC art. 23 (The Power which allows the passage of the consignments indicated in the first paragraph of this
Article may make such permission conditional on the distribution to the persons benefited thereby being made under
the local supervision of the Protecting Powers.).
599
GC art. 23 (Such consignments shall be forwarded as rapidly as possible, and the Power which permits their free
passage shall have the right to prescribe the technical arrangements under which such passage is allowed.).
600
Refer to 5.5 (Rules on Conducting Assaults, Bombardments, and Other Attacks).
601
See, e.g., United States v. von Leeb, et al. (The High Command Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE
THE NMT 563 (Leningrad was encircled and besieged. Its defenders and the civilian population were in great
290
However, such actions would now be prohibited because they would not be consistent with the
duty to take feasible precautions for the protection of civilians. 602 Permitting civilians to flee
may also be militarily advantageous. 603
5.19.5 Duties of Forces Under Siege to Take Feasible Precautions to Reduce the Risk of
Incidental Harm. Besieged forces should take feasible precautions to reduce the risk of
incidental harm. 604 For example, it may be appropriate to mark protected buildings to indicate
their protected status to enemy forces. 605 Similarly, it may be appropriate to concentrate the
wounded and sick and civilians in areas remote from military objectives 606 or in areas neutralized
by arrangement with the enemy. 607
5.20 STARVATION
straits and it was feared the population would undertake to flee through the German lines. Orders were issued to use
artillery to prevent any such attempt at the greatest possible distance from our own lines by opening fire as early as
possible, so that the infantry, if possible, is spared shooting on civilians. It is said that if the commander of a
besieged place expels the noncombatants, in order to lessen the number of those who consume his stock of
provisions, it is lawful, though an extreme measure, to drive them back so as to hasten the surrender. We might
wish the law were otherwise but we must administer it as we find it. Consequently, we hold no criminality attached
on this charge.).
602
Refer to 5.3.3 (Affirmative Duties to Take Feasible Precautions for the Protection of Civilians and Other
Protected Persons and Objects).
603
See ROGERS, LAW ON THE BATTLEFIELD 62 (In fact, the besieging commander would be better advised to allow
all civilians and the wounded and sick to leave the besieged area. He would then legitimately be able to prevent all
supplies from reaching the enemy forces and bombardment and assault would be considerably eased.).
604
Refer to 5.14 (Feasible Precautions to Reduce the Risk of Harm to Protected Persons and Objects by the Party
Subject to Attack).
605
Refer to 5.14.4 (Using Distinctive and Visible Signs to Identify Protected Persons and Objects as Such).
606
Refer to 5.14.2 (Removing Civilians and Civilian Objects From the Vicinity of Military Objectives).
607
Refer to 5.14.3 (Establishing Areas Where Civilians or the Wounded and Sick Are Protected).
608
Refer to 17.9.2 (Prohibition on Starvation of Civilians as a Method of Combat).
609
See LIEBER CODE art. 17 (It is lawful to starve the hostile belligerent, armed or unarmed, so that it leads to the
speedier subjection of the enemy.). Consider AP I art. 54(3) (The prohibitions in paragraph 2 shall not apply to
such of the objects covered by it as are used by an adverse Party: (a) As sustenance solely for the members of its
armed forces; or (b) If not as sustenance, then in direct support of military action, provided, however, that in no
event shall actions against these objects be taken which may be expected to leave the civilian population with such
inadequate food or water as to cause its starvation or force its movement.).
291
with a view towards weakening them and diverting their resources. 610 Enemy forces, for the
purpose of this rule, means those persons constituting military objectives. 611
Feasible precautions to reduce the risk of harm to the civilian population or other
reasonable measures to mitigate the burden to the civilian population may also be warranted
when seeking to starve enemy forces. 614 For example, it may be appropriate to seek to
compensate civilians whose food has been inadvertently destroyed. 615 Moreover, an Occupying
610
For example, Department of the Air Force, Headquarters Pacific Air Forces, Directorate of Operations Analysis,
Project CHECO [Contemporary Historical Examination of Current Operations] Report, Ranch Hand: Herbicide
Operations in SEA [Southeast Asia] 19 (Jul. 13, 1971) (The enemy documents revealed that the VC [Viet Cong]
had suffered serious personnel losses due to the lack of food. Troops normally used in fighting had to be detailed to
crop raising, and in one case the 95th North Vietnamese Army (NVA) regiment had to fast for one or two days on
several occasions due to a lack of food. The overall conclusion of the PACOM report was that crop destruction was
an integral, essential and effective part of the total effort in South Vietnam.).
611
Refer to 5.7.2 (Persons Who Are Military Objectives).
612
See J. Fred Buzhardt, DoD General Counsel, Letter to Chairman Fulbright, Senate Committee on Foreign
Relations, Apr. 5, 1971, 10 INTERNATIONAL LEGAL MATERIALS 1300, 1302 (1971) (But an attack by any means
against crops intended solely for consumption by noncombatants not contributing to the enemys war effort would
be unlawful for such would not be an attack upon a legitimate military objective.). Consider AP I art. 54(1)
(Starvation of civilians as a method of warfare is prohibited.).
613
Cf. J. Fred Buzhardt, DoD General Counsel, Letter to Chairman Fulbright, Senate Committee on Foreign
Relations, Apr. 5, 1971, 10 INTERNATIONAL LEGAL MATERIALS 1300, 1302 (1971) (Where it cannot be determined
whether crops were intended solely for consumption by the enemys armed forces, crop destruction would be lawful
if a reasonable inquiry indicated that the intended destruction is justified by military necessity under the principles of
Hague Regulation Article 23(g), and that the devastation occasioned is not disproportionate to the military
advantage gained.).
614
Refer to 5.3.3 (Affirmative Duties to Take Feasible Precautions for the Protection of Civilians and Other
Protected Persons and Objects).
615
For example, Department of State, Telegram From the Department of State to the Embassy in Vietnam,
Washington, May 7, 1963, reprinted in III FOREIGN RELATIONS OF THE UNITED STATES, 19611963, VIETNAM,
JANUARYAUGUST 1963, DOCUMENT 110, p. 275 (All herbicide operations [including crop destruction] to be
undertaken only after it is clear both PsyWar preparations and compensation and relief machinery [for peasants
whose crops are inadvertently destroyed] are adequate. Would appear GVN [Government of Vietnam] should
increase compensation efforts.); Memorandum Prepared in the Department of State, Chemical Defoliation and
Crop Destruction in South Viet-Nam, Washington, Apr. 18, 1963, reprinted in III FOREIGN RELATIONS OF THE
UNITED STATES, 19611963, VIETNAM, JANUARYAUGUST 1963, DOCUMENT 96, pp. 240 (The GVN [Government
of Vietnam] has set up a mechanism for compensating peasants whose crops are inadvertently destroyed. We do not
have much information on the results of the compensation program, but there are indications that it was not
adequately carried out, in part because of security difficulties.).
292
Power would have additional duties to ensure food and water for the civilian population. 616
5.20.3 Starvation and Other Law of War Rules. Starvation as a method of warfare must
comply with other applicable law of war rules. For example, it would be unlawful to poison
food or water. 617 Additionally, starvation, for example, may involve sieges or encirclement,
blockades, attacks, or the seizure and destruction of enemy property. 618 In each case, the rules
applicable to those situations must be followed.
This rule would not apply to attacks that are carried out for specific purposes other than
to deny sustenance. 620 For example, this rule would not prohibit destroying a field of crops to
prevent it from being used as concealment by the enemy or destroying a supply route that is used
to move military supplies but is also used to supply the civilian population with food. 621
Similarly, this AP I prohibition does not apply to objects that would otherwise be covered
by it if those objects are used by an adverse party as sustenance solely for the members of its
armed forces or if not as sustenance, then in direct support of military action. 622 Actions
against this latter category of objects forfeiting protection, however, may not be taken if they
616
Refer to 11.14 (Food and Medical Supplies for the Civilian Population).
617
Refer to 6.8 (Poison).
618
Refer to 5.19 (Sieges and Encircled Areas); 13.10 (Blockade); 5.5 (Rules on Conducting Assaults,
Bombardments, and Other Attacks); 5.17 (Seizure and Destruction of Enemy Property).
619
AP I art. 54(2).
620
See, e.g., APPENDIX TO 1985 CJCS MEMO ON AP I 56 (The restrictions of Article 54(2) do not apply to attacks
that are not for the specific purpose of denying sustenance;); United Kingdom, Statement on Ratification of AP I,
Jan. 28, 1998, 2020 UNTS 75, 77 (Article 54(2) of AP I has no application to attacks that are carried out for a
specific purpose other than denying sustenance to the civilian population or the adverse party.).
621
2004 UK MANUAL 5.27.2 (The law is not violated if military operations are not intended to cause starvation but
have that incidental effect, for example, by cutting off enemy supply routes which are also used for the
transportation of food, or if civilians through fear of military operations abandon agricultural land or are not
prepared to risk bringing food supplies into areas where fighting is going on.); BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW
RULES 339 (AP I art. 54, 2.3) (This paragraph does not prohibit the incidental distress of civilians resulting from
otherwise lawful military operations. It would not, for example, be unlawful to attack or destroy a railroad line
simply because the railroad was used to transport food needed to supply the population of a city, if the railroad was
otherwise a military objective under Art. 52 [of AP I].).
622
AP I art. 54(3) (The prohibitions in paragraph 2 shall not apply to such of the objects covered by it as are used
by an adverse Party: (a) As sustenance solely for the members of its armed forces; or (b) If not as sustenance, then
in direct support of military action, provided, however, that in no event shall actions against these objects be taken
which may be expected to leave the civilian population with such inadequate food or water as to cause its starvation
or force its movement.).
293
may be expected to leave the civilian population with such inadequate food or water as to cause
its starvation or force its movement. 623
Further exception is made for a State to engage in a scorched earth defense of a partys
own territory. 624
When adopted, this AP I prohibition was novel and the product of extensive diplomatic
negotiation. Given the intricacy of this provision of AP I, it would be difficult to conclude that
all of its particulars reflect customary international law. Nonetheless, the United States has
supported the underlying principle that starvation of civilians may not be used as a method of
warfare, as discussed in the sub-sections above. 625
Absolute good faith with the enemy must be observed as a rule of conduct. 626 The line
between those deceptions that good faith permits and those that good faith prohibits may appear
indistinct and has varied according to State practice. 627 Good faith prohibits:
623
AP I art. 54(3) (The prohibitions in paragraph 2 shall not apply to such of the objects covered by it as are used
by an adverse Party: (b) If not as sustenance, then in direct support of military action, provided, however, that in
no event shall actions against these objects be taken which may be expected to leave the civilian population with
such inadequate food or water as to cause its starvation or force its movement.).
624
AP I art. 54(5) (In recognition of the vital requirements of any Party to the conflict in the defence of its national
territory against invasion, derogation from the prohibitions contained in paragraph 2 may be made by a Party to the
conflict within such territory under its own control where required by imperative military necessity.).
625
Michael J. Matheson, Deputy Legal Adviser, Department of State, Remarks on the United States Position on the
Relation of Customary International Law to the 1977 Protocols Additional to the 1949 Geneva Conventions at the
Sixth Annual American Red Cross-Washington College of Law Conference on International Humanitarian Law
(Jan. 22, 1987), 2 AMERICAN UNIVERSITY JOURNAL OF INTERNATIONAL LAW AND POLICY 419, 426 (1987) (We
support the principle that starvation of civilians not be used as a method of warfare, and subject to the requirements
of imperative military necessity, that impartial relief actions necessary for the survival of the civilian population be
permitted and encouraged. These principles can be found, though in a somewhat different form, in articles 54 and
70.).
626
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 49 (Absolute good faith with the enemy must be observed as a rule of
conduct; but this does not prevent measures such as using spies and secret agents, encouraging defection or
insurrection among the enemy civilian population, corrupting enemy civilians or soldiers by bribes, or inducing the
enemys soldiers to desert, surrender, or rebel.).
627
1958 UK MANUAL 310 (The borderline between legitimate ruses and forbidden treachery has varied at
different times, and it is difficult to lay down hard and fast rules in the matter. Many of the doubtful cases, however,
which arose at a time when, from the nature of their weapons, troops could only engage at close range, can now
seldom or never occur.).
628
Refer to 5.22 (Treachery or Perfidy Used to Kill or Wound).
629
Refer to 5.24 (Improper Use of Certain Signs).
294
fighting in the enemys uniform; 630
compelling nationals of a hostile party to take part in the operations of war directed
against their own country. 632
5.21.1 Harms From Breaches of Good Faith. Breaches of good faith may: (1) undermine
the protections afforded by the law of war to classes of persons and objects; (2) impair non-
hostile relations between opposing belligerents; and (3) damage the basis for the restoration of
peace short of complete annihilation of one belligerent by another.
Breaches of good faith, principally perfidious conduct, may undermine the protections
afforded by the law of war to civilians, persons who are hors de combat, or certain other classes
of persons and objects. 637
Breaches of good faith also impair other non-hostile relations between opposing
belligerents during the war. For example, such breaches may diminish the legitimate activities
that depend upon a degree of mutual respect and trust between hostile forces, such as effecting
surrender or collection of the dead, wounded, or sick (enemy or friendly force) on the battlefield.
It also may make it more difficult for military commanders to ensure that their forces comply
630
Refer to 5.23 (Use of Enemy Flags, Insignia, and Military Uniforms).
631
Refer to 12.2 (Principle of Good Faith in Non-Hostile Relations).
632
Refer to 5.27 (Prohibition Against Compelling Enemy Nationals to Take Part in the Operations of War Directed
Against Their Own Country).
633
Refer to 5.25 (Ruses of War and Other Lawful Deceptions).
634
Refer to 5.26.1 (Propaganda).
635
Refer to 5.26.2 (Information Gathering).
636
Refer to 5.26.3 (Bribery or Offering of Rewards).
637
BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 202 (AP I art. 37, 2.1) (Combatants, in practice, find it difficult to
respect protected persons and objects if experience causes them to believe or suspect that their adversaries are
abusing their claim to protection under the rules of international law applicable in armed conflict in order to achieve
a military advantage. The prohibitions of perfidy are thus directly related to protection for the wounded and sick,
hors de combat combatants, prisoners of war and civilians.). See also footnote 164, 4.6.4 (Having a Fixed
Distinctive Sign Recognizable at a Distance).
295
with the law of war where treacherous acts by the enemy have resulted in casualties among their
own forces.
Breaches of good faith also damage, and may destroy, the basis for restoration of peace
short of the complete annihilation of one belligerent by another. 638 A degree of mutual respect
and trust is essential for the negotiation of cease-fires, truces, surrenders, and other agreements
necessary to bring an end to hostilities.
During international armed conflict, it is prohibited to kill or wound the enemy by resort
to perfidy. 639
5.22.1 Definition of Perfidy. Acts of perfidy are acts that invite the confidence of enemy
persons to lead them to believe that they are entitled to, or are obliged to accord, protection under
the law of war, with intent to betray that confidence. 640
The key element in perfidy is the false claim to protections under the law of war in order
to secure a military advantage over the opponent. 641 The claim must be to legal protections. 642
638
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 50 (Treacherous or perfidious conduct in war is forbidden because it
destroys the basis for a restoration of peace short of the complete annihilation of one belligerent by the other.).
639
HAGUE IV REG. art. 23(b) (It is especially forbidden [t]o kill or wound treacherously individuals belonging to
the hostile nation or army); LIEBER Code art. 101 (noting that the common law of war allows even capital
punishment for clandestine or treacherous attempts to injure an enemy). Consider ROME STATUTE art. 8(2)(b)(xi)
(defining war crimes in international armed conflict to include [k]illing or wounding treacherously individuals
belonging to the hostile nation or army).
640
Consider AP I art. 37(1) (Acts inviting the confidence of an adversary to lead him to believe that he is entitled
to, or is obliged to accord, protection under the rules of international law applicable in armed conflict, with intent to
betray that confidence, shall constitute perfidy.); APPENDIX TO 1985 CJCS MEMO ON AP I 26 (Rather than
treachery, paragraph 1 of Article 37 uses the modern term perfidy, and defines it as acts inviting the confidence
of an adversary to lead him to believe that he is entitled to, or is obliged to accord, protection under the rules of
international law applicable in armed conflict, with the intent to betray that confidence. This definition, and the
examples provided, are an accurate and helpful clarification of existing law.).
641
ICRC AP COMMENTARY 435 (1500) (The central element of the definition of perfidy is the deliberate claim to
legal protection for hostile purposes.).
642
BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 204-05 (AP I art. 37, 2.4.2) (The ICRC draft of the article referred to
confidence without elaborating that confidence must be based on a norm of international law. It would have
involved confidence in moral obligations as well as in binding legal obligations. This was considered to be overly
abstract and ambiguous by delegations representing several regional groups.).
643
For example, XV OFFICIAL RECORDS OF THE CDDH 99 (CDDH/III/SR.47 78) (Mr. Reed (United States of
America) said that article 35, paragraph 1, was a reaffirmation and development of Article 23 b) of The Hague
Regulations respecting the Laws and Customs of War on Land annexed to The Hague Convention No. IV of 1907
296
Sometimes, perfidy is used to refer to conduct that is, by definition, prohibited. 645
Other times, as, for example, in AP I, perfidy is used to refer to a certain type of deception,
which might not, by itself, be prohibited (e.g., feigning death would not be prohibited in order to
facilitate escape). 646 It will be important to examine closely the context to determine which
usage is intended. This manual generally uses perfidy in the latter sense.
5.22.2 Perfidy - Kill or Wound. It is prohibited to use perfidy to kill or wound the
enemy. It may not be prohibited to invite the confidence of the adversary that he or she is
obligated to accord protection under the law of war, for certain purposes (e.g., to facilitate
spying, sabotage, capturing enemy personnel, or evading enemy forces). However, such
deception may not rely on certain signs and symbols. 647 Moreover, persons who use perfidy to
engage in spying and sabotage may forfeit POW status or be liable to certain penalties under the
domestic law of enemy States. 648
feigning an intent to negotiate under a flag of truce and then attacking, 649 which takes
advantage of the rule that flags of truce may not be used to shield military operations. 650
feigning surrender and then attacking, 651 which takes advantage of the rule that the
enemy may not attack those who have surrendered; 652
concerning the Laws and Customs of War on Land. The word treacherously in Article 23 b) was synonymous
with perfidy in article 35 of draft Protocol I.).
644
SPAIGHT, WAR RIGHTS ON LAND 86 (The word Treachery in Article XXIII(b) seems hardly applicable to an
enemys act, and one of the Brussels delegates proposed to substitute perfidy for it. The original word was,
however, retained, as being the equivalent of the German Meuchelmord (murder by treachery)).
645
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 50 (providing that [t]reacherous or perfidious conduct in war is
forbidden).
646
BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 203 (AP I art. 37, 2.4) (It should be noted that Art. 37 [of AP I] does
not prohibit perfidy per se, although the term is defined with precision.).
647
Refer to 5.24 (Improper Use of Certain Signs).
648
Refer to 4.17 (Spies, Saboteurs, and Other Persons Engaging in Similar Acts Behind Enemy Lines).
649
For example, William Gerald Downey, The Law of War and Military Necessity, 47 AJIL 251, 260 (1953) (A
good example of the use of deception which involved a breach of good faith is one that happened in this writers
presence during the Battle of Metz in 1944. At that time the German forces held several forts south and east of
Metz. One November morning, just as our attack was getting under way, a German unit of some 20 men came out
of one of the forts under a white flag. The American battalion commander gave the order to cease fire, and the
Germans marched under the protection of the white flag down the road toward our lines. As they came abreast of a
large bunker they pulled down their white flag, ran into the bunker and immediately opened fire on our positions.).
650
Refer to 5.24.7 (Flags of Truce).
297
feigning of death or incapacitation by wounds or sickness 653 and then attacking, which
takes advantage of the respect afforded the dead 654 or the protection afforded those who
are hors de combat; 655
calling out do not fire; we are friends and then attacking. 657
During international armed conflict, improper use of enemy flags, military emblems,
insignia, or uniforms, is prohibited. 658
5.23.1 Improper Use of Enemy Flags, Insignia, and Military Uniforms Prohibited. In
general, the use of enemy flags, insignia, and military uniforms is prohibited during combat, but
is permissible outside of combat. 659
5.23.1.1 Improper Use of Enemy Uniforms and Perfidy. The prohibition on the
use of enemy uniforms in combat has been described as a prohibition against using enemy
651
See FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 621 (During the same battle, an Iraqi officer approached
Coalition forces with his hands in the air, indicating his intention to surrender. When near his would-be captors, he
drew a concealed pistol from his boot, fired, and was killed during the combat that followed.).
652
Refer to 5.10.3 (Persons Who Have Surrendered).
653
1958 UK MANUAL 115 note 2 (For instance, it would be treachery for a soldier to sham wounded or dead and
then to attack enemy soldiers who approached him without hostile intent, or to pretend he had surrendered and
afterwards to open fire upon or attack an enemy who was treating him as hors de combat or a prisoner.).
654
Refer to 7.7 (Treatment and Handling of Enemy Military Dead).
655
Refer to 5.10.4 (Persons Rendered Unconscious or Otherwise Incapacitated by Wounds, Sickness, or
Shipwreck).
656
Refer to 5.5.8 (Obligation of Combatants to Distinguish Themselves When Conducting Attacks).
657
2004 UK MANUAL 5.9 footnote 35 (Examples of treachery included calling out Do no fire, we are friends and
then firing at enemy troops who had lowered their guard, especially if coupled with the wearing of enemy uniforms
or civilian clothing;); 1958 UK MANUAL 311 note 1 (giving as an example of treacherous killing or wounding
calling out Do not fire, we are friends, and then firing which is often accompanied by the use of enemy
uniforms or civilian clothing); 1914 1914 RULES OF LAND WARFARE 178 note 1 (It would be treacherous to call
out, Do not fire; we are friends, and then fire a volley.).
658
HAGUE IV REG. art. 23(f) (making it especially forbidden [t]o make improper use of the national flag, or of
the military insignia and uniform of the enemy,).
659
APPENDIX TO 1985 CJCS MEMO ON AP I 28 (Existing international law prohibits improper use of the enemy
uniform or insignia. The United States interprets this rule to prohibit their use in combat, but not in situations
preceding or following combat.); 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 54 (It is certainly forbidden to employ
[national flags, insignia, and uniforms] during combat, but their use at other times is not forbidden.).
660
Refer to 13.13.1 (Belligerent Warships Use of False Colors and Other Disguises).
298
uniforms to kill or wound treacherously. 661 However, feigning enemy military status is not
technically perfidy as the term is used in this manual because perfidy requires the feigning of
protected status, and the law of war generally does not protect enemy military personnel from
being made the object of attack. 662
5.23.1.2 Use of Enemy Uniforms and Other Equipment Without the Intent to
Deceive. Uses of enemy uniforms and other equipment without any intention to deceive the
enemy are not prohibited. For example, if there is a shortage of clothing it may be necessary to
use enemy uniforms. 663 Similarly, the immediate use of captured enemy weapons or equipment
during combat is permissible. When circumstances permit, however, enemy insignia should
generally be removed or alternative measures taken to distinguish U.S. forces from the enemy. 664
5.23.1.3 Deceptive Use of Enemy Flags, Insignia, and Military Uniforms Outside
of Combat. It is a legitimate ruse to use enemy flags, insignia, and military uniforms outside of
combat. 665
However, those using enemy uniforms to evade capture or escape must not engage in
combat while in the enemys uniform, and, if they are not escaping POWs, they may be liable to
treatment as spies and saboteurs if caught behind enemy lines. 667
661
For example, Trial of Otto Skorzeny and Others, IX U.N. LAW REPORTS 90 (General Military Government Court
of the U.S. Zone of Germany, Aug. 18-Sept. 9, 1947) (The ten accused involved in this trial were all officers in the
150th Panzer Brigade commanded by the accused Skorzeny. They were charged with participating in the improper
use of American uniforms by entering into combat disguised therewith and treacherously firing upon and killing
members of the armed forces of the United States.).
662
Refer to 5.22.1 (Definition of Perfidy).
663
See 1958 UK MANUAL 322 (If, owing to shortage of clothing, it becomes necessary to utilise apparel captured
from the enemy, the badges should be removed before the articles are worn.); 1958 UK MANUAL 322 note 1
(Articles of uniform which are distinctive of a particular armysuch as the beret of the French Chasseurs des
Alpes or the coloured berets of certain British troops, the kilt of some regiments, or the Turkish fezshould not be
used except in cases of absolute necessity.).
664
See LIEBER CODE art. 64 (If American troops capture a train containing uniforms of the enemy, and the
commander considers it advisable to distribute them for use among his men, some striking mark or sign must be
adopted to distinguish the American soldier from the enemy.).
665
For example, 1958 UK MANUAL 320 note 3 (During the Second World War the German intelligence service in
Belgium used German soldiers disguised as British airmen to discover the attitude of the Belgian population
towards individual British airmen landing in Belgium. The operation was completely successful. Active assistance
was rendered by an organised network which was uncovered. The mass of the population was not involved.
(Extract from a captured German teleprint dated 9th January, 1943.) It would seem that this use of enemy uniform
outside of battle operations is a legitimate ruse.).
666
Refer to 9.25.2.3 (Disciplinary Punishment for Certain Offenses Committed in Connection With Escape).
667
Refer to 4.17 (Spies, Saboteurs, and Other Persons Engaging in Similar Acts Behind Enemy Lines).
299
5.23.1.5 Use of Enemy Codes, Passwords, and Countersigns Not Restricted. The
prohibition on misuse of enemy flags, insignia, and military uniforms refers only to concrete
visual objects, rather than enemy codes, passwords, and countersigns. 668 Enemy codes,
passwords, and countersigns may be used as a ruse to aid military operations. 669 Enemy use of
these measures is permissible because military forces are expected to take measures to guard
against the use of their codes, passwords, and countersigns by the enemy.
5.23.2 Persons Using Enemy Uniforms May Be Liable to Treatment as Spies and
Saboteurs. Although the use of enemy uniforms outside of combat generally is neither
prohibited by the customary law of war nor by law of war treaties to which the United States is a
Party, combatants captured by an opposing party behind the opposing partys lines while wearing
the uniform of the opposing party may be liable to treatment as spies and saboteurs. 670
5.23.3 AP I and the Use of Enemy Flags, Insignia, or Uniforms to Shield, Favor, Protect,
or Impede Military Operations. In addition to prohibiting the use of enemy uniforms while
engaging in attacks, AP I also prohibits the use of flags, military emblems, insignia, or uniforms
of an enemy in order to shield, favor, protect, or impede military operations. 671 Canada has
taken a reservation from this rule. 672
This provision of AP I is unclear as to what uses would be permissible and what uses
would be prohibited. 673 However, because the United States is not a Party to AP I and because
the rule is not part of customary international law, U.S. military personnel are not subject to this
more restrictive rule.
Certain signs, symbols, or signals reflect a status that receives special protection under
the law of war, and thus these signs may not be improperly used. They may not be used: (1)
while engaging in attacks; (2) in order to shield, favor, or protect ones own military operations;
668
Cf. BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 214 (AP I art. 29, 2.3.3) (The term emblem, insignia, or uniforms
[in AP I art. 39(2)] refers only to concrete visual objects, including the national symbols marked on military vehicles
and aircraft. This prohibition does not apply to the ruse of using the adversarys codes, passwords and countersigns
to aid military operations.).
669
See, e.g., BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 207 footnote 25 (AP I art. 37, 2.5) (It would be a legitimate
ruse to use the electronic transponder aboard a combatant aircraft to respond with the code used for identifying
friendly aircraft,); SPAIGHT, AIR POWER AND WAR RIGHTS 176 (The greatly developed use of wireless telephony
afforded opportunities for deception of which the airmen were not slow to avail themselves. The feigning of orders
to enemy machines to return to their base, for instance, was a common ruse.).
670
Refer to 4.17 (Spies, Saboteurs, and Other Persons Engaging in Similar Acts Behind Enemy Lines).
671
AP I art. 39(2) (It is prohibited to make use of the flags or military emblems, insignia or uniforms of adverse
Parties while engaging in attacks or in order to shield, favour, protect or impede military operations.).
672
Canada, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Nov. 20, 1990, 1591 UNTS 462, 463 (The Government of Canada
does not intend to be bound by the prohibitions contained in paragraph 2 of Article 39 to make use of military
emblems, insignia or uniforms of adverse parties in order to shield, favour, protect or impede military operations.).
673
BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 214 (AP I art. 39, 2.3) (Article 39(2) of AP I suggests that some uses
[of the enemy uniform] are not breaches of the Protocol, but the boundary between forbidden and permissible uses is
not very distinct.).
300
or (3) to impede enemy military operations. Thus, their use may be improper even when that use
does not involve killing or wounding, and they may not be used to facilitate espionage (except
for signs, emblems, or uniforms of a neutral or non-belligerent State). The following types of
signs are subject to this broader rule against improper use:
However, recognized exceptions exist concerning espionage 675 and warfare at sea. 676
5.24.2 Distinctive Emblems of the Geneva Conventions (e.g., Red Cross). The
distinctive emblems of the red cross, red crescent, and red crystal are symbols that identify
military medical and religious personnel, medical units, and medical transports, or certain other
categories of persons engaged in humanitarian work as personnel and objects entitled to special
protection. 677 These emblems may not be used except to identify these protected persons and
objects. 678
5.24.3 Markings for POW or Civilian Internee Camps. Only POW camps under the
GPW should be marked using internationally agreed symbols, such as the PW or PG
designation. 679
Only civilian internee camps under the GC should be marked with an IC designation. 680
674
Consider AP I art. 39(1) (It is prohibited to make use in an armed conflict of the flags or military emblems,
insignia or uniforms of neutral or other States not Parties to the conflict.); AP I art. 37(1)(d) (giving as an example
of perfidy the feigning of protected status by the use of signs, emblems or uniforms of neutral or other States not
Parties to the conflict.); BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 213 (AP I art. 39, 2.2) (The purpose behind the
rule is to avoid escalation of armed conflict to neutral countries in the mistaken belief that the neutral State had
abandoned its neutrality.).
675
See SPAIGHT, WAR RIGHTS ON LAND 203-04 (The spy in modern war is usually a soldier who dons civilian
dress, or the uniform of the enemy, or of a neutral country; and in all these cases, he would be liable to punishment,
apart from this article, for assuming a disguise to further a hostile act.). Although Article 37(1)(d) of AP I lists
[t]he feigning of protected status by the use of signs, emblems or uniforms ... of neutral or other States not Parties
to the conflict as an example of perfidy, and Article 39(1) prohibits the use in an armed conflict of the flags or
military emblems, insignia or uniforms of neutral or other States not Parties to the conflict, Article 39(3) of AP I
clarifies that [n]othing in this Article or in Article 37, paragraph 1 (d), shall affect the existing generally recognized
rules of international law applicable to espionage ... .
676
APPENDIX TO 1985 CJCS MEMO ON AP I 28 (Article 39, paragraph 1, of the Protocol prohibits the use of neutral
flags, uniforms or emblems in armed conflict. This is already a rule of customary law, to which recognized
exceptions exists governing espionage and warfare at sea. The exceptions are preserved by paragraph 3 of the
Article.). Refer to 13.13.1 (Belligerent Warships Use of False Colors and Other Disguises).
677
Refer to 7.15 (Display of the Distinctive Emblem to Facilitate Identification).
678
Refer to 7.15.4 (Prohibitions on Unauthorized Uses of the Distinctive Emblem).
679
Refer to 9.11.4.3 (Marking of POW Camps).
680
Refer to 10.11.1.3 (Marking of Internment Camps).
301
5.24.4 Markings for Hospital, Safety, or Neutralized Zones. Markings that distinguish
hospital or safety zones or neutralized zones established under the 1949 Geneva Conventions
may not be used for other purposes. 681
5.24.5 Distinctive and Visible Signs to Identify Civilian Objects as Such. Certain
distinctive and visible signs that are intended to identify that an object is protected as a civilian
object under the law of war must not be used for other purposes. 682
5.24.6 Markings for Cultural Property. The distinctive emblem for cultural property may
not be used for other purposes. 683
5.24.7 Flags of Truce. The improper use of a flag of truce is strictly prohibited. 684
Ruses of war are considered permissible. 685 In general, a belligerent may resort to those
measures for mystifying or misleading the enemy against which the enemy ought to take
measures to protect itself. 686 Apart from ruses of war, certain other deceptions are not
prohibited, but may expose combatants employing them to liability as spies and saboteurs.
5.25.1 Definition of Ruses of War. Ruses of war are acts that are intended to mislead an
adversary or to induce him to act recklessly, but that do not infringe upon any rule of
international law applicable in armed conflict and that are not perfidious because they do not
invite the confidence of an adversary with respect to protection under that law. 687
Ruses of war are methods, resources, and techniques that can be used either to convey
false information or deny information to opposing forces. They can include physical, technical,
or administrative means, such as electronic warfare measures, flares, smoke, chaff, aerosol
material, or dissemination devices.
681
Refer to 5.14.3 (Establishing Areas Where Civilians or the Wounded and Sick Are Protected).
682
Refer to 5.14.4 (Using Distinctive and Visible Signs to Identify Protected Persons and Objects as Such).
683
Refer to 5.18.7.4 (Other Uses of the Distinctive Emblem for Cultural Property Prohibited During Armed
Conflict).
684
Refer to 12.4.2.1 (Prohibition on Improper Use of the Flag of Truce).
685
HAGUE IV REG. 24 (Ruses of war and the employment of measures necessary for obtaining information about
the enemy and the country are considered permissible.). Consider AP I art. 37(2) (Ruses of war are not
prohibited.).
686
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 49 (In general, a belligerent may resort to those measures for mystifying
or misleading the enemy against which the enemy ought to take measures to protect himself.).
687
Consider AP I art. 37(2) (Such ruses are acts which are intended to mislead an adversary or to induce him to act
recklessly but which infringe no rule of international law applicable in armed conflict and which are not perfidious
because they do not invite th confidence of an adversary with respect to protection under that law.). Refer to
5.22.1 (Definition of Perfidy).
302
facilitating surprise attacks or ambushes, 688 such as by
5.25.1.2 But That Do Not Infringe Upon Any Rule of International Law
Applicable in Armed Conflict. According to the definition in AP I, ruses do not infringe upon
any rule of international law applicable in armed conflict. For example, misusing certain signs
and symbols would not constitute ruses. 690 Similarly, although fighting in the enemys uniform
would not be perfidy since enemy military personnel are not generally protected by the law of
war, fighting in the enemys uniform also would not be a ruse, since such action would infringe
upon the rule against improper use of the enemys uniform. 691
5.25.1.3 And That Are Not Perfidious Because They Do Not Invite the Confidence
of an Adversary With Respect to Protection Under That Law. The ruses described in AP I do not
invite the confidence of the enemy with respect to protection under the law of war. 692 For
688
Refer to 5.5.6.1 (Surprise Attacks).
689
For example, FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 247 (CINCCENT [Commander-in-Chief, U.S. Central
Command] placed a high priority on deception operations which were intended to convince Iraq that the main attack
would be directly into Kuwait, supported by an amphibious assault. All components contributed to the deception
operation. Aggressive ground force patrolling, artillery raids, amphibious feints and ship movements, and air
operations all were part of CINCCENTs orchestrated deception operation.); SPAIGHT, AIR POWER AND WAR
RIGHTS 185 (The greatest hoax in military history was the description officially applied to the scheme of
deception used to induce the Germans to believe that the invasion of the Continent in June, 1944, was coming in the
Pas de Calais and not in Normandy. It was carried out by a force of 105 aircraft of the R.A.F., by 34 ships of the
Royal Navy, and by R.C.M. (Radio Counter-Measures). On the night of 5 June, 18 small ships of the Navy
steamed towards Cap dAntifer to give the impression of an intended landing, while a bomber squadron, No. 617,
under G/Capt. G. L. Chesire, V.C., circled over them, dropping bundles of Window, the thin metallised strips
which produce false echoes on the enemys radar screens and so confuse their plotting. Another squadron, No. 218,
with 16 ships, made a similar feint towards Boulogne, and other methods of deception were practised elsewhere
along the Channel. The result was that the enemy were led to believe that convoys were moving to points other than
that at which the landing was in fact made with complete success and without opposition by air or sea.).
690
Refer to 5.24 (Improper Use of Certain Signs).
691
Refer to 5.23.1 (Improper Use of Enemy Flags, Insignia, and Military Uniforms Prohibited).
692
Refer to 5.22.1 (Definition of Perfidy).
303
example, pretending to be a civilian would not constitute a ruse, although it may be a permissible
deception in certain circumstances. 693
In this manual, the term ruse is used to indicate a certain category of permissible
deceptions.
5.25.2 Examples of Ruses. Often, ruses of war operate by misleading the enemy as to the
identity, strength, position, or disposition of ones own forces. Ruses of war include, but are not
limited to: 695
decoys or dummy materials, such as dummy weapons, equipment, ships, aircraft, and
buildings; 696
o simulating quiet;
693
Refer to 5.25.3 (Examples of Other Deceptions That Are Not Prohibited).
694
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 50 (Ruses of war are legitimate so long as they do not involve treachery
or perfidy on the party of the belligerent resorting to them.).
695
Consider AP I art. 37 (giving as examples of lawful ruses the use of camouflage, decoys, mock operations and
misinformation).
696
For example, SPAIGHT, WAR RIGHTS ON LAND 153-54 (The Quaker gunslogs shaped like ordinary cannon
and mounted on wheelswhich the Confederates used at Vicksburg to induce the besieging Federals to credit them
with an heavier armament than they possessed[were a] legitimate ruse[] of war.).
697
For example, SPAIGHT, AIR POWER AND WAR RIGHTS 186 (The ruse of reversing temporarily the direction of a
march was used on both sides in the first world war. Aeroplane observers can easily be deceived by a body of the
enemy who, on sighting the aeroplane, move at once in a contrary direction to that of the real march, and turn back
as soon as the machine has gone to give the news.[A] Turkish order which was captured in the Kara Tepe
operations in Mesopotamia in December, 1917, instruct[ed] the Turkish infantry to try to deceive the British
aeroplanes by setting out at once upon the march towards Jebel Hamrin if the aeroplanes came into sight and only to
return to Kara Tepe upon the withdrawal of the aeroplanes.).
698
For example, SPAIGHT, AIR POWER AND WAR RIGHTS 187 (The outstanding example of the technique of indirect
approach is to be found in the raid on Munich on the night of 24 April, 1944. A force of Lancasters left England in
the evening and made for north Italy; they crossed the French Alps and flew nearly to Milan; then they suddenly
changed direction to the north-east and flew to Munich, which was heavily bombed. The feint took the Germans
completely by surprise and the raiders losses were extremely low. The bewilderment of the defences was increased
by the fact that Karlsruhe was attacked, after direct approach, on the same night.).
304
camouflage or deceptive lighting; 700
planting false information in a manner that allows enemy forces to intercept it, 701 such as
through the use of
feigning enemy military status by using enemy flags, insignia, or military uniforms
outside of combat; 702 or
305
equipment or personnel as belonging to a particular unit may be removed. Individuals or units
may also dress like friendly forces. 706
5.25.3 Examples of Other Deceptions That Are Not Prohibited. Certain deceptions may
not meet the definition of ruses because they may invite the confidence of an adversary with
respect to protection under the law of war. Nevertheless, these deceptions are not technically
prohibited by the law of war, even though, in some cases, they may expose the persons
performing them to liability under an enemy States domestic law. 707 These include:
o a soldier who feigns death in the hope that he or she will be left alone by enemy
forces, permitting him or her subsequently to take evasive actions to return to
friendly forces without engaging the enemy; 709 and
o an aircraft crew that feigns loss of control and the appearance that the aircraft was
about to crash in order to dissuade further enemy attack and to break contact with
enemy forces; 710
705
For example, R. FRANK FUTRELL, ET AL., ACES AND AERIAL VICTORIES: THE UNITED STATES AIR FORCE IN
SOUTHEAST ASIA 1965-1973, 37-43 (1976) (The West Force used an elaborate ruse to make the Phantoms appear
to the enemy as an F-105 Rolling Thunder strike force. The F4Cs used F-105 tanker anchors, refueling altitudes,
approach routes, approach altitudes, airspeeds, and radio call signs and communications to simulate a normal
Thunderchief strike force. This was intended to deceive the enemy on NVN [North Vietnamese] radars. An
opportunity to perpetuate another ruse presented itself a few days later, when RF-4C weather reconnaissance aircraft
were forced to abort their planned weather reconnaissance missions in North Vietnam because of MIG attacks on 3
and 4 January 1967. To lure the MIGs into the air, two F4Cs on the following day flew, in close formation, a route
similar to that normally flown by weather reconnaissance aircraft. The intent of the F4Cs was to deceive the enemy
radar operators into believing that only one aircraft was flying a weather reconnaissance mission.).
706
For example, W. Hays Parks, Special Forces Wear of Non-Standard Uniform, 4 CHICAGO JOURNAL OF
INTERNATIONAL LAW 493, 554 (2003) (In response to the September 11, 2001 al Qaeda terrorist attacks against the
World Trade Center and the Pentagon, US and Coalition Special Forces began operations in Afghanistan in late
September 2001. At the request initially insistenceof the leaders of the indigenous forces they supported, they
dressed in indigenous attire. For identification purposes within the Northern Alliance, this included the Massoud
pakol (a round brownish-tan or gray wool cap) and Massoud checkered scarf, each named for former Northern
Alliance leader Ahmad Shah Massoud, who was assassinated days before the al Qaeda attacks on the World Trade
Center and Pentagon. This attire was not worn to appear as civilians, or to blend in with the civilian population, but
rather to lower the visibility of US forces vis--vis the forces they supported.).
707
Refer to 4.17 (Spies, Saboteurs, and Other Persons Engaging in Similar Acts Behind Enemy Lines).
708
ICRC AP COMMENTARY 438 (1505) ([P]erfidious use always involves the abuse of the adversarys confidence.
Thus, for example, feigning death simply to save ones life would not be an act of perfidy, while feigning death to
kill an enemy once his back is turned, would constitute an act of perfidy.).
709
For example, SPAIGHT, AIR POWER AND WAR RIGHTS 173 (A ruse which is mentioned by Major C. J. Biddle,
American Aviation, appears to have been a legitimate one. An American pilot was forced down in the German
lines. When he landed he left his motor turning over slowly and lay over in his cockpit, as though he had been shot,
the Huns all the time circling above his head. They evidently thought he was done for, for after looking him over
they flew away, whereupon our pilot took off and came home.).
306
feigning civilian status to facilitate spying or sabotage, such as
using an informal ceasefire for the purpose of collecting wounded and dead and to
withdraw unseen by the enemy. 711
In general, propaganda, information gathering, and bribery are permissible means and
methods of warfare.
5.26.1 Propaganda. In general, the use of propaganda is permissible under the law of
war, even when it encourages acts that violate an enemy States domestic law or is directed
towards civilian or neutral audiences. However, certain types of propaganda are prohibited.
710
SPAIGHT, AIR POWER AND WAR RIGHTS 170-71 (The chief ruse practised in air fighting in the first world war
was the vertical nose-dive or spin, used by a pilot who was outfought or outnumbered, or whose gun had jammed or
engine failed, to escape by simulating a fall out of control.).
711
For example, 1958 UK MANUAL 319 note 1 ([A]t 1 p.m. on 7th March, 1905, during the battle of Mukden, a
group of Russians bearing Red Cross and white flags advanced towards the 1st Japanese Army and asked for a
suspension of arms for several hours to remove the wounded and dead. The Japanese agreed, as they themselves
had many wounded, but the suspension was made without any formal agreement (sans entente bien dfinie). In the
evening, when the Japanese reopened fire, there was no reply and it was found that the Russians had retired during
the suspension of arms.).
712
Robert Gates, Secretary of Defense, Memorandum: Changing the Term Psychological Operations (PSYOP) to
Military Information Support Operations (MISO), OSD 1012-10 (Dec. 3, 2010) (Since the 1940s, military
information activities, undertaken both in wartime and peacetime, have been described as psychological warfare,
psychological operations, or PSYOP. These terms helped draw a useful distinction between lethal military
operations, on the one hand, and military efforts to change minds and reduce or prevent conflict through truthful,
persuasive information, on the other. Today, however, the term Psychological Operations has become
anachronistic and misleading. Although PSYOP activities rely on truthful information, credibly conveyed, the term
PSYOP tends to connote propaganda, brainwashing, manipulation, and deceit.).
713
GREENSPAN, MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 323 (Propaganda must be considered a legal means of warfare,
since there are no specific rules of war which forbid its use, nor is it as such incompatible with the existing rules of
war.).
307
aircraft, or the internet. Propaganda is sometimes used with bribery714 or to support intelligence
gathering. 715 Propaganda may be directed at enemy civilians and neutrals. 716
Propaganda may encourage enemy persons to commit acts that would violate the
domestic law of the enemy State. 717 For example, it would be permissible to encourage enemy
combatants to defect, desert, or surrender. 718 Similarly, it is generally permissible to encourage
insurrection among the enemy civilian population. 719
714
1976 AIR FORCE PAMPHLET 110-31 5-6 (In World War I, Austrian airmen dropped leaflets over Italian lines
inviting desertion with the promise of compensation for every airplane surrendered intact. In the Korean conflict, an
award was offered to any enemy flier who would defect with his plane intact to the United Nations Command. In
fact $100,000 was paid to a North Korean pilot for such a defection.).
715
Robert Gates, Secretary of Defense, Memorandum: Changing the Term Psychological Operations (PSYOP) to
Military Information Support Operations (MISO), OSD 1012-10 (Dec. 3, 2010) (In Iraq and Afghanistan, U.S.
military information programs urging civilians to report possible insurgent activity led to valuable information,
enabling our forces to disarm hundreds of improvised explosive devices safely and capture numerous key insurgent
leaders.).
716
For example, 1958 UK MANUAL 313 note 3 (In the Second World War both sides established regular wireless
services for spreading war news among both the enemy and neutrals. They also resorted on a large scale to
propaganda disseminated from aircraft and from the ground.).
717
See SPAIGHT, AIR POWER AND WAR RIGHTS 333 (To drop a pamphlet inciting to assassination would no doubt
be an offence under the laws of war, assassination being forbidden by those laws. It is an entirely different matter
when the act which the message seeks to accomplish is one not repugnant to natural law, not malum in se, but
merely contrary to the law (because to the interest) of the State affected, or malum prohibitum. It cannot be held that
to try to persuade a modern civilized nation to change its form of government is to incite to an act of the former
category.).
718
For example, FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR xxvi (Coalition strategy also benefitted immensely
from psychological operations, the success of which is evidenced primarily by the large number of Iraqi soldiers
who deserted Iraqi ranks or surrendered without putting up any resistance during the ground offensive. Our efforts
built on, among other factors, the disheartening effect on Iraqi troops of the unanswered and intensive Coalition
aerial bombardment, the privations they suffered due to the degradation of the Iraqi logistics system, and the threat
of the impending ground campaign. Radio transmissions and leaflets exploited this demoralization by explaining to
the Iraqi troops how to surrender and assuring them of humane treatment if they did. More specific messages
reduced Iraqi readiness by warning troops to stay away from their equipment (which was vulnerable to attack by
precision munitions) and induced desertions by warning troops that their positions were about to be attacked by B-
52s.).
719
For example, LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 426-27 (162a) (The legitimacy, formerly
controversial, of inciting enemy subjects to rise against the Government in power is now no longer disputed.
While, in the Second World War, both sides established regular wireless services for spreading war news among
both the enemy and the neutrals, the Allies resorted on a large scale to propaganda disseminated from aircraft as a
means of inducing the population of Germany to remove a dictatorial rgime which, it was asserted, was solely
responsible for the war.).
308
Propaganda must not incite acts that are prohibited by the law of war. 720 For example,
propaganda intended to incite attacks against civilians is prohibited. In certain cases, individuals
may be liable for instigating or inciting violations of the law of war. 721
Propaganda is also prohibited when it would violate other law of war rules. For example,
it is specifically prohibited for an Occupying Power to use propaganda that aims at securing
voluntary enlistment of protected persons in its armed or auxiliary forces. 722 Similarly, it is
prohibited to declare that no quarter will be given, and propaganda in the form of a declaration to
the adversary that no quarter will be given would be prohibited. 723 In addition, propaganda
would be prohibited if it constituted a measure of intimidation or terrorism against the civilian
population, such as the threats of violence whose primary purpose is to spread terror among the
civilian population. 724 Similarly, propaganda may not be used to subject a detainee to public
curiosity or other humiliating or degrading treatment. 725 Additionally, the delivery of the
propaganda should be consistent with other law of war obligations. 726
Information gathering measures, however, may not violate specific law of war rules. 728
For example, it would be unlawful, of course, to use torture or abuse to interrogate detainees for
purposes of gathering information. Similarly, it is prohibited to make improper use of a flag of
truce to obtain information. 729
Some forms of deception used to gather information, although not prohibited by the law
of war, may put the persons engaging in them at risk of being treated as spies. 730
720
1976 AIR FORCE PAMPHLET 110-31 5-6 (Propaganda which would incite illegal acts of warfare, as for example
killing civilians, killing or wounding by treachery or the use of poison or poisonous weapons, is forbidden.).
721
Refer to 18.23.2 (Instigating or Directly Inciting).
722
Refer to 11.20.1.1 (Prohibition on Compulsory Service in an Occupying Powers Armed Forces).
723
Refer to 5.5.7 (Prohibition Against Declaring That No Quarter Be Given).
724
Refer to 10.5.3.2 (Collective Penalties and Measures of Intimidation or Terrorism).
725
Refer to 8.2.2 (Protection Against Humiliating or Degrading Treatment).
726
See, e.g., GREENSPAN, MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 324 (It would appear to be improper to induce enemy
nationals to listen to propaganda emanating from the opposing side by such methods as doling out a few names of
prisoners of war on the occasion of each broadcast and deliberately holding other next of kin in suspense, instead of
transmitting such information by the most rapid means possible.).
727
HAGUE IV REG. 24 ([T]he employment of measures necessary for obtaining information about the enemy and
the country are considered permissible.).
728
GREENSPAN, MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 325 (In obtaining information, a belligerent must not
contravene specific rules of war.).
729
Refer to 5.24.7 (Flags of Truce).
730
Refer to 4.17 (Spies, Saboteurs, and Other Persons Engaging in Similar Acts Behind Enemy Lines).
309
5.26.3 Bribery or Offering of Rewards. In general, it is permissible to offer rewards for
assistance in the conduct of hostilities, including rewards intended to corrupt enemy combatants
or civilians. 731 Rewards, however, may not be offered for the commission of violations of the
law of war, and rewards may not be offered for the killing of enemy persons.
However, this rule would not prohibit offering rewards for the capture of unharmed
enemy personnel generally or of particular enemy personnel. 734 Similarly, this rule does not
prohibit offering rewards for information that may be used by combatants to conduct military
operations that attack enemy combatants.
5.27 PROHIBITION AGAINST COMPELLING ENEMY NATIONALS TO TAKE PART IN THE OPERATIONS
OF WAR DIRECTED AGAINST THEIR OWN COUNTRY
During international armed conflict, it is prohibited to compel the nationals of the hostile
party to take part in the operations of war directed against their own country, even if they were in
the belligerents service before the commencement of the war. 735 Underlying this prohibition is
the principle that States must not compel foreign nationals to commit treason or otherwise to
violate their allegiance to their country. 736
731
1958 UK MANUAL 313 (It is not unlawful to employ spies; or to corrupt enemy civilians or soldiers by bribes
in order to induce them to give information, to desert with or without technical equipment, new weapons, vehicles or
aircraft, to surrender, to rebel, or to mutiny; or to give false information to the enemy.).
732
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 31 (Article 23 of the Hague IV Regulations is construed as prohibiting
putting a price upon an enemys head, as well as offering a reward for an enemy dead or alive.).
733
Refer to 4.18.3 (Private Persons Who Engage in Hostilities Lack of the Privileges of Combatant Status).
734
See 2004 UK MANUAL 5.14.1 ([O]ffers of rewards for the capture unharmed of enemy personnel generally or
of particular enemy personnel would be lawful.).
735
HAGUE IV REG. art. 23 (A belligerent is likewise forbidden to compel the nationals of the hostile party to take
part in the operations of war directed against their own country, even if they were in the belligerents service before
the commencement of the war.).
736
See Johnson v. Eisentrager, 339 U.S. 763, 773 (1950) (The United States does not invoke this enemy allegiance
only for its own interest, but respects it also when to the enemys advantage. In World War I, our conscription act
did not subject the alien enemy to compulsory military service. 40 Stat. 885, c. XII, 4. The Selective Service Act
of 1948, 62 Stat. 604, 50 U.S.C. Appendix, 454(a), exempts aliens who have not formally declared their intention
to become citizens from military training, service and registration, if they make application, but if so relieved, they
are barred from becoming citizens. Thus, the alien enemy status carries important immunities, as well as
disadvantages. The United States does not ask him to violate his allegiance or to commit treason toward his own
country for the sake of ours. This also is the doctrine and the practice of other states comprising our Western
Civilization.).
310
Additional restrictions are applicable with respect to POWs, retained personnel, protected
persons in the home territory of a belligerent, and protected persons in occupied territory. 737
5.27.1 Compel. This prohibition applies to attempts to compel enemy nationals, rather
than measures short of compulsion, such as bribing enemy nationals or seeking to influence them
through propaganda. 738 However, it is specifically prohibited for an Occupying Power to use
propaganda that aims at securing voluntary enlistment of protected persons in its armed or
auxiliary forces. 739
5.27.2 Nationals of a Hostile Party Against Their Own Country. This rule applies to
nationals of a hostile party; States are not prohibited by the law of war from compelling their
nationals to serve in the armed forces. 740 Similarly, this rule would not prohibit States from
compelling persons to betray an allegiance to a non-State armed group during non-international
armed conflict. 741
737
Refer to 9.19.2.3 (Labor Assignments That May Be Compelled); 7.9.5.6 (No Other Compulsory Duties);
10.7.3 (Compulsory Work for Protected Persons in a Belligerents Home Territory); 11.20.1.1 (Prohibition on
Compulsory Service in an Occupying Powers Armed Forces).
738
United States v. Weizsaecker, et al. (The Ministries Case), XIV TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT
549 (As the war progressed Germany suffered severe losses of manpower. It adopted conscription as to its own
nationals and in many instances of foreign nationals living within its borders. We hold that it is not illegal to recruit
prisoners of war who volunteer to fight against their own country, but pressure or coercion to compel such persons
to enter into the armed services obviously violates international law.). Refer to 5.26.1 (Propaganda); 5.26.3
(Bribery or Offering of Rewards).
739
Refer to 11.20.1.1 (Prohibition on Compulsory Service in an Occupying Powers Armed Forces).
740
Refer to 4.5.2.4 (Draftees).
741
Refer to 17.12.1 (Compelling Captured or Surrendered Enemy Personnel to Take Part in the Conflict).
311
VI Weapons
Chapter Contents
6.1 Introduction
6.2 DoD Policy of Reviewing the Legality of Weapons
6.3 Other Practices to Help Implement Law of War Obligations With Respect to
Weapons
6.4 Prohibited Weapons
6.5 Lawful Weapons
6.6 Weapons Calculated to Cause Superfluous Injury
6.7 Inherently Indiscriminate Weapons
6.8 Poison, Poisoned Weapons, Poisonous Gases, and Other Chemical Weapons
6.9 Biological Weapons
6.10 Certain Environmental Modification Techniques
6.11 Weapons Injuring by Fragments Not Detectable by X-Rays
6.12 Landmines, Booby-Traps, and Other Devices
6.13 Cluster Munitions
6.14 Incendiary Weapons
6.15 Laser Weapons
6.16 Riot Control Agents
6.17 Herbicides
6.18 Nuclear Weapons
6.19 Explosive Ordnance
6.20 Explosive Remnants of War
6.1 INTRODUCTION
This Chapter addresses the legal review of new weapons and legal rules specific to
certain types of weapons, including whether certain weapons are illegal per se, specific rules for
the use of certain other weapons, and obligations that may arise after certain weapons are used.
In addition to the law of war, other law, policy, and regulation may apply to certain
weapons. Such law, policy, or regulation may include arms control agreements, U.S. domestic
law, U.S. policy, applicable rules of engagement, and other military orders. This Chapter notes
some provisions of such law, policy, and regulation where relevant, but does not seek to address
exhaustively all of them. 1 In advising on the legality of specific weapons, one must take care to
identify all applicable restrictions and not rely unduly on the absence of discussion in this
Chapter as reflecting the absence of any such restrictions.
6.1.1 Legality of the Weapon Itself (Per Se) Distinguished From the Legality of the Use
of the Weapon. A weapon may be illegal per se if a treaty to which the United States is a Party
1
Refer to 1.2.2.4 (Citation of Policies and Regulations).
312
or customary international law has prohibited its use under all circumstances. 2 For example, the
use of blinding laser weapons is prohibited, regardless of how they are used. 3
On the other hand, most weapons are not illegal per se. That is, their use may be lawful
in some circumstances, although unlawful in others, such as if they are used to attack combatants
placed hors de combat. 4
Law of war issues related to targeting (e.g., the requirement that an attack may only be
directed against a military objective) generally are not determinative of the lawfulness of a
weapon. However, weapons that are inherently indiscriminate are prohibited. 5 In addition,
certain weapons, such as mines, are subject to specific rules on their use in order to reduce the
risk of harm to the civilian population. 6
As provided in DoD issuances, DoD policy for many years has required the legal review
of the intended acquisition or procurement of weapons or weapon systems; this review includes
ensuring that such acquisition or procurement is consistent with the law of war. 7 These DoD
policy requirements have been implemented in Military Department regulations. 8
2
1976 AIR FORCE PAMPHLET 110-31 6-2 (A weapon may be illegal per se if either international custom or treaty
has forbidden its use under all circumstances.). Refer to 6.4.2 (Specifically Prohibited Types of Weapons).
3
Refer to 6.15.1 (Prohibition on Blinding Laser Weapons).
4
Refer to 5.10 (Persons Placed Hors de Combat).
5
Refer to 6.7 (Inherently Indiscriminate Weapons).
6
Refer to 6.12.5.3 (Obligation to Take Feasible Precautions to Protect Civilians From the Effects of Mines,
Booby-Traps, and Other Devices).
7
For example, DOD DIRECTIVE 5000.01, The Defense Acquisition System, E1.1.15 (May 12, 2003, certified current
as of Nov. 20, 2007) (The acquisition and procurement of DoD weapons and weapon systems shall be consistent
with all applicable domestic law and treaties and international agreements (for arms control agreements, see DoD
Directive 2060.1 (Reference (m), customary international law, and the law of armed conflict (also known as the laws
and customs of war)[)]. An attorney authorized to conduct such legal reviews in the Department shall conduct the
legal review of the intended acquisition of weapons or weapons systems.); DOD DIRECTIVE 5000.01, The Defense
Acquisition System, 4.2.10 (Mar. 15, 1996, cancelled by DoD Directive 5000.1 Oct. 23, 2000) (DoD acquisition
and procurement of weapons shall be consistent with applicable domestic law and all applicable treaties, customary
international law, and the law of armed conflict (also known as the laws and customs of war).); DOD INSTRUCTION
5500.15, Review of Legality of Weapons Under International Law, II (Oct. 16, 1974, cancelled by DoD Instruction
5000.2 Feb. 23, 1991) (All actions of the Department of Defense with respect to the acquisition and procurement of
weapons, and their intended use in armed conflict, shall be consistent with the obligations assumed by the United
States Government under all applicable treaties, with customary international law, and, in particular, with the laws
of war.).
8
For example, DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY REGULATION 27-53, Review of Legality of Weapons Under International
Law (Jan. 1, 1979); SECRETARY OF THE NAVY INSTRUCTION 5000.2E, Department of the Navy Implementation and
Operation of the Defense Acquisition System and the Joint Capabilities Integration and Development System (Sept.
1, 2011); DEPARTMENT OF THE AIR FORCE INSTRUCTION 51-402, Legal Reviews of Weapons and Cyber Capabilities
(Jul. 27, 2011).
313
The fact that the legality of a weapon is discussed in this manual does not obviate the
requirement under applicable directives or regulations for a legal review of a weapon or weapon
system that is to be acquired or procured.
6.2.1 Review of New Types of Weapons. The development of new types of weapons has
often resulted in public denunciation of their allegedly cruel effects and in attempts to prohibit
their use in armed conflict. 9 This has been true of the crossbow, siege engines for hurling
projectiles, firearms, gunpowder, bayonets, and other weapons that have since been widely
recognized as not prohibited by the law of war.
Like other aspects of the law of war, the rules relating to weapons are generally
characterized as prohibitive law forbidding certain weapons or the use of weapons in certain
instances rather than positive law authorizing the weapon or its use. 10 The lawfulness of the use
of a type of weapon does not depend on the presence or absence of authorization, but, on the
contrary, on whether the weapon is prohibited. 11 Thus, the mere fact that a weapon is novel or
employs new technology does not mean that the weapon is illegal. 12 The law of war does not
require States to establish a general practice of using a weapon before it is to be regarded as
legal. Moreover, it would appear absurd to suggest that a new type of weapon should
automatically be prohibited because there is no State practice supporting such use, or to suggest
that States must continue using a weapon in each conflict simply to maintain its legality.
6.2.2 Questions Considered in the Legal Review of Weapons for Consistency With U.S.
Law of War Obligations. The review of the acquisition or procurement of a weapon for
consistency with U.S. law of war obligations should consider three questions to determine
whether the weapons acquisition or procurement is prohibited:
whether the weapon falls within a class of weapons that has been specifically
prohibited. 15
9
1976 AIR FORCE PAMPHLET 110-31 6-7a (The development of new weapons or methods of warfare has often
resulted in public denunciation of their allegedly cruel effects, and attempts to prohibit their use in warfare. This has
been true of the crossbow, siege engines for hurling projectiles, firearms, gunpowder, bayonets and other less
efficient methods of warfare.).
10
Refer to 1.3.3.1 (Law of War as Prohibitive Law).
11
Legality of the Threat or Use of Nuclear Weapons, Advisory Opinion, 1996 I.C.J. 226, 247 (52) (Nor, however,
is there any principle or rule of international law which would make the legality of the threat or use of nuclear
weapons or of any other weapons dependent on a specific authorization. State practice shows that the illegality of
the use of certain weapons as such does not result from an absence of authorization but, on the contrary, is
formulated in terms of prohibition.).
12
1976 AIR FORCE PAMPHLET 110-31 6-7a (A weapon or method of warfare may not be considered illegal solely
because it is new or has not previously been used in warfare.).
13
Refer to 6.6 (Weapons Calculated to Cause Superfluous Injury).
14
Refer to 6.7 (Inherently Indiscriminate Weapons).
314
If the weapon is not prohibited, the review should also consider whether there are legal
restrictions on the weapons use that are specific to that type of weapon. 16 If any specific
restrictions apply, then the intended concept of employment of the weapon should be reviewed
for consistency with those restrictions.
Lastly, it may be appropriate to advise whether other measures should be taken that
would assist in ensuring compliance with law of war obligations related to the type of weapon
being acquired or procured. For example, it may be appropriate to advise on the need for
training programs and other practical measures, such as promulgating doctrine and rules of
engagement related to that type of weapon. 17
The DoD policy and practice of conducting legal reviews of weapons preceded this AP I
provision. 18
6.2.4 Policy and Processes for Review of Applicable Arms Control Obligations. DoD
has had a separate, but complementary, policy and practice requiring review of its activities (e.g.,
research, development, and testing of weapons) to ensure that these activities are consistent with
the arms control agreements to which the United States is a Party. 19
15
Refer to 6.4.2 (Specifically Prohibited Types of Weapons).
16
Refer to 6.5.1 (Certain Types of Weapons With Specific Rules on Use).
17
Refer to 6.15.2 (Feasible Precautions in the Employment of Laser Systems to Avoid the Incident of Permanent
Blindness).
18
For example, DOD INSTRUCTION 5500.15, Review of Legality of Weapons Under International Law, II (Oct. 16,
1974, cancelled by DoD Instruction 5000.2 Feb. 23, 1991) (All actions of the Department of Defense with respect
to the acquisition and procurement of weapons, and their intended use in armed conflict, shall be consistent with the
obligations assumed by the United States Government under all applicable treaties, with customary international
law, and, in particular, with the laws of war.).
19
DOD DIRECTIVE 2060.1, Implementation of, and Compliance with, Arms Control Agreements, 4.6.7 (Jan. 9,
2001, certified current Nov. 24, 2003) (For specific DoD-planned activities, [Heads of DoD components are to]
seek clearance from the USD(AT&L), through the appropriate CRG [Compliance Review Group], on a timely basis,
before taking any action, including but not limited to research, tests, development, exercises and operations that
reasonably raises an issue of DoD compliance with an arms control agreement. For other compliance issues
requiring resolution (such as those arising from an on-site inspection), seek resolution from the USD(AT&L),
through the appropriate CRG. When there is doubt whether clearance or resolution is necessary, it shall be sought.
If the issue involves a DoD SAP [Special Access Program], contact the Director of the cognizant DoD SAP Central
Office and the Chairman of the DoD SAP Senior Review Group (SRG). The SRG Chairman will effect
coordination with the appropriate CRG.).
315
6.3 OTHER PRACTICES TO HELP IMPLEMENT LAW OF WAR OBLIGATIONS WITH RESPECT TO
WEAPONS
6.3.1 Using Weapons in Accordance With Their Design Intent and Promulgated
Doctrine. The use of weapons in accordance with their design intent and the doctrine that has
been promulgated for their use contributes to compliance with law of war obligations with
respect to weapons because the legality of the weapon would have been reviewed based on its
intended use. 20 However, the use of weapons outside their design intent does not necessarily
violate the law of war.
Certain weapon systems may also be subject to law of war restrictions on how they are to
be used, such as incendiary weapons or mines. 21 In such cases, the use of the weapon in
accordance with doctrine and policy is required by international law because that doctrine and
policy incorporates certain international obligations.
6.3.1.1 Using Weapons for Purposes Other Than Those for Which a Weapon or
Tool Is Designed. Although in some cases military orders may restrict the use of certain
weapons to only certain authorized purposes, there is not a law of war rule that requires that
weapons or tools only be used for the purposes for which they were designed.
For example, an entrenching tool may be designed for digging fighting positions.
However, its use as a weapon is not prohibited by the law of war. 22 Similarly, it is not prohibited
to use a laser that is not designed to blind enemy persons as a weapon to blind an attacking
enemy. 23 It also generally would not be prohibited to use a weapon that has been designed to
destroy enemy material, such as a large-caliber machine gun, against enemy personnel. 24
6.3.2 Refraining From Modifying Weapons Without Proper Authorization. For a variety
of reasons, DoD practice has been not to permit the modification of weapons without proper
authorization.
20
Refer to 6.6.3.4 (Superfluous Injury Rule the Circumstances to Be Assessed and Design Intent); 6.7.2
(Inherently Indiscriminate Weapons Circumstances to Be Assessed and Design Intent).
21
Refer to 6.5.1 (Certain Types of Weapons With Specific Rules on Use).
22
Refer to 6.5.3.2 (Use of Tools to Stab or Cut).
23
Refer to 6.15.2.1 (Use of Non-Prohibited Laser Systems to Blind Is Not Absolutely Prohibited).
24
Refer to 6.5.4.7 (Anti-Personnel Use of Larger (e.g., .50) Caliber Guns or Cannons).
316
In particular, weapons must not be modified in the field for the purposes of aggravating
the harm inflicted on incapacitated persons. 25 For example, substances designed to inflame
wounds must not be added to bullets or edged weapons for the purpose of making wounds more
painful or difficult to treat.
6.3.3 Refraining From the Use of Personal Firearms and Ammunition. DoD personnel
have normally not been permitted to deploy with, or use, personal firearms or ammunition during
military operations. 26 This practice is based on a variety of reasons, including to help ensure
compliance with the law of war and U.S. domestic law.
6.3.4 Refraining From the Use of Captured Weapons, Except on a Field-Expedient Basis.
Under DoD practice, captured or other foreign weapons have been used on a field-expedient
basis, but otherwise have not been used in combat unless they have undergone the required legal
review and have been duly issued to personnel.
Two general prohibitions apply to all types of weapons. In addition, certain types of
weapons are specifically prohibited.
6.4.2 Specifically Prohibited Types of Weapons. In addition, the use of the following
types of weapons is prohibited by treaty or customary international law:
25
Refer to 6.6.4 (Weapons Modified for the Purpose of Aggravating the Harm Inflicted on Incapacitated Persons).
26
For example, General John P. Abizaid, U.S. Central Command, General Order 1B (GO-1B), Prohibited Activities
for U.S. Department of Defense Personnel Present Within the United States Central Command (USCENTCOM)
Area of Responsibility (AOR), 2a (Mar. 13, 2006) (prohibiting [p]urchase, possession, use or sale of privately
owned firearms, ammunition, explosives or the introduction of these items into the USCENTCOM AOR.); General
Tommy R. Franks, U.S. Central Command, General Order 1A (GO-1A), Prohibited Activities for U.S. Department
of Defense Personnel Present Within the United States Central Command (USCENTCOM) AOR, 2a (Dec. 19,
2000) (prohibiting [p]urchase, possession, use or sale of privately owned firearms, ammunition, explosives, or the
introduction of these items into the USCENTCOM AOR.).
27
Refer to 5.17.3 (Enemy Movable Property on the Battlefield (War Booty)).
28
Refer to 6.6 (Weapons Calculated to Cause Superfluous Injury).
29
Refer to 6.7 (Inherently Indiscriminate Weapons).
317
poison, poisoned weapons, poisonous gases, and other chemical weapons; 30
biological weapons; 31
blinding lasers. 35
6.4.3 Relationship Between the Specific Prohibitions and the General Prohibitions.
When a specific prohibition on a weapon is viewed as reflecting customary international law,
such prohibition may sometimes be viewed as, in effect, a declaration that the weapon is
prohibited as one calculated to cause superfluous injury or as one that is inherently
indiscriminate. 36
However, a specific treaty prohibition on a weapon does not necessarily reflect a State
Partys view that the weapon is prohibited by customary international law (e.g., that the weapon
is calculated to cause superfluous injury or is inherently indiscriminate). For example, the mere
prohibition or restriction of a weapon in the CCW or its Protocols does not necessarily reflect the
conclusion that the weapon is calculated to cause superfluous injury or is inherently
indiscriminate. 37
Apart from the categories of weapons described in 6.4 (Prohibited Weapons), all other
types of weapons are lawful for use by the U.S. armed forces; that is, they are not illegal per se.
In other words, other types of weapons are prohibited only to the extent that they fall under the
categories of weapons described in 6.4 (Prohibited Weapons). For example, a landmine is not
30
Refer to 6.8 (Poison, Poisoned Weapons, Poisonous Gases, and Other Chemical Weapons).
31
Refer to 6.9 (Biological Weapons).
32
Refer to 6.10 (Certain Environmental Modification Techniques).
33
Refer to 6.11 (Weapons Injuring by Fragments Not Detectable by X-Rays).
34
Refer to 6.12.4 (Prohibited Classes of Mines, Booby-Traps, and Other Devices).
35
Refer to 6.15.1 (Prohibition on Blinding Laser Weapons).
36
J. Fred Buzhardt, DoD General Counsel, Letter to Chairman Fulbright, Senate Committee on Foreign Relations,
Apr. 5, 1971, 10 INTERNATIONAL LEGAL MATERIALS 1300, 1302 (1971) (The thrust of the phrase harmless to
man made part of the discussion of the rules draws attention to Article 23(e) of the Hague Regulations of 1907,
wherein combatants are forbidden to employ weapons calculated to cause unnecessary suffering. However, the
provision in Hague Regulation Article 23(a) concerning the prohibition against using poison or poisoned weapons is
a special case of this rule since it, in effect, declares that any use of a lethal substance against human beings is, per
se, a use which is calculated to cause unnecessary suffering.).
37
Refer to 19.21.1.3 (CCW and Customary International Law).
318
necessarily a legally prohibited weapon; it is only prohibited if it falls under one of the specific
classes of prohibited mines listed in 6.12.4 (Prohibited Classes of Mines, Booby-Traps, and
Other Devices).
The rules that apply to the use of all weapons are addressed in 5.5.2 (Overview of Rules
in Conducting Attacks).
6.5.1 Certain Types of Weapons With Specific Rules on Use. Certain types of weapons,
however, are subject to specific rules that apply to their use by the U.S. armed forces. These
rules may reflect U.S. obligations under international law or national policy. These weapons
include:
mines, booby-traps, and other devices (except certain specific classes of prohibited
mines, booby-traps, and other devices); 38
cluster munitions; 39
incendiary weapons; 40
herbicides; 43
explosive ordnance. 45
6.5.2 Other Examples of Lawful Weapons. In particular, aside from the rules prohibiting
weapons calculated to cause superfluous injury and inherently indiscriminate weapons, 46 there
are no law of war rules specifically prohibiting or restricting the following types of weapons by
the U.S. armed forces:
38
Refer to 6.12 (Landmines, Booby-Traps, and Other Devices).
39
Refer to 6.13 (Cluster Munitions).
40
Refer to 6.14 (Incendiary Weapons).
41
Refer to 6.15.2 (Feasible Precautions in the Employment of Laser Systems to Avoid the Incident of Permanent
Blindness).
42
Refer to 6.16 (Riot Control Agents).
43
Refer to 6.17 (Herbicides).
44
Refer to 6.18 (Nuclear Weapons).
45
Refer to 6.19 (Explosive Ordnance).
46
Refer to 6.6 (Weapons Calculated to Cause Superfluous Injury); 6.7 (Inherently Indiscriminate Weapons).
319
edged or pointed weapons, including weapons with serrated edges or entrenching tools
used as weapons; 47
small arms, cannons, and other guns, including shotguns, exploding bullets, expanding
bullets, suppressors, or large-caliber guns; 48
blast weapons; 49
fragmentation weapons; 50
non-lethal weapons. 54
6.5.3 Edged or Pointed Weapons. Stabbing or cutting weapons (e.g., knives, bayonets,
swords, lances, and tomahawks) are not specifically prohibited or restricted by the law of war.
Like other weapons, however, they must not be calculated to cause superfluous injury. 55 Thus, it
is prohibited to modify the weapon for the purpose of making wounds more difficult to treat,
such as by adding a barbed head to a lance or by applying to the blade or point a poison or
substance that is designed to inflame wounds. 56
6.5.3.1 Serrated Edges. The law of war does not prohibit the use of serrated-
edged weapons by military forces, including against enemy personnel.
Many bayonets or knives have a serrated edge (a formation resembling the toothed edge
of a saw). Provided that the design intent of the serrated edge is not to aggravate suffering
unnecessarily, such as by making the wound more difficult to treat, the serrated edge is not
prohibited. For example, a serrated edge may improve the capabilities of the blade as a multi-
purpose field utility tool, rather than be intended to increase the pain and suffering of enemy
personnel injured by the blade.
47
Refer to 6.5.3 (Edged or Pointed Weapons).
48
Refer to 6.5.4 (Small Arms, Cannons, and Other Guns).
49
Refer to 6.5.5 (Blast Weapons).
50
Refer to 6.5.6 (Fragmentation Weapons).
51
Refer to 6.5.7 (Depleted Uranium Munitions).
52
Refer to 6.5.8 (Remotely Piloted Aircraft).
53
Refer to 6.5.9 (Autonomy in Weapon Systems).
54
Refer to 6.5.10 (Non-Lethal (Less-Lethal) Weapons).
55
Refer to 6.6 (Weapons Calculated to Cause Superfluous Injury).
56
Refer to 6.6.4 (Weapons Modified for the Purpose of Aggravating the Harm Inflicted on Incapacitated Persons).
320
6.5.3.2 Use of Tools to Stab or Cut. Edged tools, such as over-size knives,
machetes, and entrenching tools, have often been employed both as tools and as weapons. Such
tools are not prohibited by the law of war, and the law of war does not prohibit the use of tools as
weapons to bludgeon, stab, or cut.
6.5.4 Small Arms, Cannons, and Other Guns. Small arms, cannons, and other guns are
not specifically restricted or prohibited by the law of war. In particular, there are no specific
rules against shotguns, exploding bullets, expanding bullets, suppressors, or anti-personnel use of
larger caliber guns or cannons.
6.5.4.1 Small Arms, Cannons, and Other Guns Other Rules on Weapons, as
Applicable. Although no law of war rule regulates small arms, cannons, and other guns as a
specific category, these weapons are subject to other law of war rules on weapons, as applicable.
For example, the use of ammunition, the primary effect of which is to injure by fragments
that in the human body escape detection by X-rays, is prohibited. 57 In addition, poison must not
be added to bullets or other projectiles. 58 As with other weapons, small arms, cannons, and other
guns must not be calculated to cause superfluous injury. 59 For example, modifying guns or
ammunition for the purpose of aggravating the harm inflicted upon incapacitated persons would
be prohibited (e.g., adding a substance to bullets with the intent to inflame wounds). 60
Guns that fall under the definition of incendiary weapons would be regulated as
incendiary weapons. 61 However, tracer ammunition is not an incendiary weapon because any
incendiary effects are incidental. 62 In addition, even certain projectiles designed to have
incendiary effects that are combined with other effects (e.g., penetration, blast, or fragmentation
effects) would not be regulated as incendiary weapons. 63
6.5.4.2 Shotguns. There is no law of war prohibition on the use (including anti-
personnel use) of the shotgun in combat. 64 The fact that multiple fragments are used in many
shotgun rounds to wound does not prohibit their use. 65
57
Refer to 6.11 (Weapons Injuring by Fragments Not Detectable by X-Rays).
58
Refer to 6.8.1 (Poison and Poisoned Weapons).
59
Refer to 6.6 (Weapons Calculated to Cause Superfluous Injury).
60
Refer to 6.6.4 (Weapons Modified for the Purpose of Aggravating the Harm Inflicted on Incapacitated Persons).
61
Refer to 6.14 (Incendiary Weapons).
62
Refer to 6.14.1.3 (Excluded From the Definition of Incendiary Weapons Weapons With Incidental Incendiary
Effects).
63
Refer to 6.14.1.4 (Excluded From the Definition of Incendiary Weapons Certain Combined-Effects
Munitions).
64
For example, The Secretary of State to the Swiss Charg (Oderlin) (Sept. 28, 1918), reprinted in PAPERS
RELATING TO THE FOREIGN RELATIONS OF THE UNITED STATES, 1918, SUPPLEMENT 2, THE WORLD WAR 785-86
(1933) (In reply to the German protest, the Government of the United States has to say that the provision of the
Hague convention [Hague IV Reg. art. 23(e)], cited in the protest, does not in its opinion forbid the use of this kind
of weapon. Moreover, in view of the history of the shotgun as a weapon of warfare, and in view of the well-known
321
Shotguns have been used as anti-personnel weapons for close-combat, for guarding
enemy prisoners of war, and for anti-materiel purposes during armed conflict for many years. 66
Shotgun munitions may include, for example, buckshot ammunition, flechette ammunition, non-
lethal projectiles, and breaching rounds.
Breaching rounds are an anti-materiel munition designed to dislodge door hinges or door
locks and are used to enable military forces to enter a room or building. As with other weapons
designed for anti-material use, the use of an anti-material round against enemy personnel is not
prohibited. 67 For example, a breaching round may be used against an enemy combatant who
opens the door or appears in the doorway just as the door is about to be breached.
6.5.4.3 Exploding Bullets. The use of exploding bullets, including use against
enemy personnel, is not prohibited by the law of war. For example, explosive bullets have been
lawfully used during armed conflict, against both enemy material and enemy combatants. 68
Exploding bullets, like all weapons, however, are subject to the superfluous injury rule. 69
For example, without a valid military reason, bullets that are specifically designed to explode
within the human body would be prohibited, since a non-exploding bullet would be just as
effective and efficient at incapacitating an enemy combatant. 70
effects of its present use, and in the light of a comparison of it with other weapons approved in warfare, the shotgun
now in use by the American Army cannot be the subject of legitimate or reasonable protest.).
65
Refer to 6.5.6 (Fragmentation Weapons).
66
For example, W. Hays Parks, Special Assistant for Law of War Matters, Office of The Judge Advocate General,
U.S. Army, Joint Service Combat Shotgun Program, THE ARMY LAWYER 16, 17-18 (Oct. 1997) (The combat
shotgun or military rifle with a shotgun-type munition continued to be used in the United States. In the American
Revolution, General George Washington encouraged his troops to load their muskets with buck and ball, a load
consisting of one standard musket ball and three to six buckshot, in order to increase the probability of achieving a
hit. United States Air Force security police employed shotguns in base security operations in Saudi Arabia during
Operations Desert Shield and Desert Storm (1990-91) to protect them from attack by terrorists or Iraqi military
units, and some personnel in British armored units were armed with shotguns as individual weapons during that
conflict.).
67
Refer to 6.3.1.1 (Using Weapons for Purposes Other Than Those for Which a Weapon or Tool Is Designed).
68
For example, SPAIGHT, AIR POWER AND WAR RIGHTS 213 (In the second world war projectiles of the kind
referred to [in the 1868 St. Petersburg Declaration] were freely used by all the belligerent air forces. The explosive
bullet gave place to the small cannon shell, but the latter, fired normally from a gun of 20 mm. bore, was equally
within the prohibited limit, since its weight was only 130 grammes as compared with the 400 grammes specified in
the Declaration. Cannon guns of 40 mm. were also mounted in aircraft and the projectiles were outside the ban.
The incendiary bullets used were usually fired from machine guns with bores of .303 inch and .5 inch.).
69
Refer to 6.6 (Weapons Calculated to Cause Superfluous Injury).
70
For example, ULYSSES S. GRANT, I PERSONAL MEMOIRS OF U.S. GRANT 538 (1892) (The enemy used in their
defence explosive musket-balls, no doubt thinking that, bursting over our men in the trenches, they would do some
execution; but I do not remember a single case where a man was injured by a piece of one of these shells. When
they were hit and the ball exploded, the wound was terrible. In these cases a solid ball would have hit as well. Their
use is barbarous, because they produce increased suffering without any corresponding advantage to those using
them.).
322
On the other hand, an explosive bullet that was designed to explode in order to increase
the probability of striking an enemy combatant or to strike an enemy combatant behind cover
would not be prohibited. 71 Similarly, bullets that explode in order to neutralize enemy material
more effectively are not prohibited, and there is no objection to using these bullets also against
enemy combatants. 72
The United States is not a Party to the 1868 St. Petersburg Declaration on Exploding
Bullets, and its prohibition on the use of certain projectiles does not reflect customary
international law. 73
6.5.4.4 Expanding Bullets. The law of war does not prohibit the use of bullets
that expand or flatten easily in the human body. Like other weapons, such bullets are only
prohibited if they are calculated to cause superfluous injury. 74 The U.S. armed forces have used
expanding bullets in various counterterrorism and hostage rescue operations, some of which have
been conducted in the context of armed conflict.
The 1899 Declaration on Expanding Bullets prohibits the use of expanding bullets in
armed conflicts in which all States that are parties to the conflict are also Party to the 1899
Declaration on Expanding Bullets. 75 The United States is not a Party to the 1899 Declaration on
Expanding Bullets, in part because evidence was not presented at the diplomatic conference that
expanding bullets produced unnecessarily severe or cruel wounds. 76
71
For example, C. Todd Lopez, Army wants 36 more Punisher weapons in 2012, ARMY NEWS SERVICE, Feb. 3,
2011 (The XM25 allows Soldiers to engage defilade targets -- those behind a barrier, protected from oncoming
weapons fire. The XM25 measures the distance to the enemys protective barrier, and can then program the round
to detonate a user-adjustable distance past that -- allowing Soldiers to put an air-bursting round directly above the
enemys head, inside their protected area. The five prototype weapons entered theater in November, and were
first used in combat Dec. 3.).
72
U.S. RESPONSE TO ICRC CIHL STUDY 524 (States widely have employed bullets that may detonate on impact
with materiel for both anti-materiel and anti-personnel purposes. Such ammunition was in common use by all States
that participated in World War II, and in conflicts thereafter including in widespread aircraft strafing of enemy
forces, a practice common to every conflict since World War I in which aircraft were employed.). See
also Commission of Jurists to Consider and Report Upon the Revision of the Rules of Warfare, General Report,
Feb. 19, 1923, reprinted in 32 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL DOCUMENTS 1, 20-21 (1938) (In the form in which the
proposal was first brought forward its provisions were limited to a stipulation that the use of tracer bullets against
aircraft generally was not prohibited. Various criticisms were, however, made about the proposed text, chiefly
founded on the impracticability for an airman while in flight to change the ammunition which he is using in the
machine-gun in his aircraft. He cannot employ different bullets in accordance with the target at which he is aiming,
one sort of ammunition for other aircraft and another sort for land forces by whom he may be attacked. The
Commission, therefore, came to the conclusion that the most satisfactory solution of the problem would be to state
specifically that the use of tracer, incendiary or explosive projectiles by or against aircraft is not prohibited.).
73
Refer to 19.6 (1868 St. Petersburg Declaration).
74
Refer to 6.6 (Weapons Calculated to Cause Superfluous Injury).
75
Refer to 19.7.1 (1899 Declaration on Expanding Bullets).
76
William Crozier, Captain of Ordnance, U.S. Army, Report of Captain Crozier to the American Delegation to the
First Hague Conference, Regarding the Work of the First Committee of the Conference and its Subcommittee,
reprinted in INSTRUCTIONS TO THE AMERICAN DELEGATES TO THE HAGUE PEACE CONFERENCES AND THEIR
OFFICIAL REPORTS 34 (1916) (noting the objection of the U.S. representative that the 1899 Declaration condemned
323
In 2013, a review conducted by DoD in coordination with the Department of State
reconfirmed that the prohibition in the 1899 Declaration on Expanding Bullets did not reflect
customary international law. 77 The findings of this review were consistent with the longstanding
position of the United States not to become a Party to the 1899 Declaration and not to apply a
distinct prohibition against expanding bullets, but instead to regard expanding bullets as
prohibited only to the extent that such bullets are calculated to cause unnecessary suffering. 78
In the past, expanding bullets have been viewed as ineffective for military and technical
reasons. 79 Non-expanding bullets that were widely used in armed conflict produced wounds
by designed implication, without even the introduction of any evidence against it, the use of a bullet actually
employed by the army of a civilized nation).
77
Portions of the analysis in this review are presented in the following paragraphs.
78
William Crozier, Captain of Ordnance, U.S. Army, Report of Captain Crozier to the American Delegation to the
First Hague Conference, Regarding the Work of the First Committee of the Conference and its Subcommittee,
reprinted in INSTRUCTIONS TO THE AMERICAN DELEGATES TO THE HAGUE PEACE CONFERENCES AND THEIR
OFFICIAL REPORTS 33-34 (1916); JAMES BROWN SCOTT, THE PROCEEDINGS OF THE HAGUE PEACE CONFERENCES:
III THE CONFERENCE OF 1907 15 (1921) (Brigadier General George B. Davis recalling the U.S. delegations
proposal in 1907 to amend the 1899 Declaration to prohibit bullets that inflict unnecessarily cruel wounds); 1914
RULES OF LAND WARFARE 3 note 2 (explaining that the 1899 Declaration has never been ratified by the United
States but see paragraph e, Article XXIII, convention IV, Hague Rules, 1907, infra, par., 184); U.S. ARMY
ORDNANCE, HISTORY OF SMALL-ARMS AMMUNITION, NO. 1940, 15 (1920) (The Judge Advocate Generals Office
has given the opinion that the armor-piercing ammunition [with a soft lead nose that mushrooms] is a lawful
weapon); 1934 RULES OF LAND WARFARE 34 (1934) (giving no separate rule against expanding bullets, but
providing that certain types of bullets may be prohibited under the rule against weapons calculated to cause
unnecessary suffering); 1940 RULES OF LAND WARFARE 34 (1940) (same); 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976)
34(b) (same); Use of Expanding Ammunition by U.S. Military Forces in Counterterrorist Incidents, 45 (reiterating
that the United States is not a party to the 1899 Hague Declaration on expanding bullets but is a party to the Hague
Convention IV, which includes the prohibition against weapons calculated to cause unnecessary suffering); W. Hays
Parks for The Judge Advocate General, U.S. Army, Memorandum of LawSniper Use of Open-Tip Ammunition,
Oct. 12, 1990, reprinted in THE ARMY LAWYER 86, 87 (Feb. 1991) (The United States is not a party to [the 1899
Hague Declaration], but United States officials over the years have taken the position that the armed forces of the
United States will adhere to its terms to the extent that its application is consistent with the object and purpose of
article 23e of the Annex to Hague Convention IV); W. Hays Parks, Joint Service Combat Shotgun Program, THE
ARMY LAWYER 16, 22 (Oct. 1997) (same).
79
See, e.g., Alfons Vanheusden, W. Hays Parks, and William H. Boothby, The Use of Expanding Bullets in Military
Operations: Examining the Kampala Consensus, 50 MILITARY LAW AND LAW OF WAR REVIEW 535, 537 (2011)
([L]ack of use of expanding ammunition by armed forces could be attributed equally to the increased risk of
weapon malfunction (specifically, failure to feed) through its use, particularly in machineguns); P. R. COURTNEY-
GREEN, AMMUNITION FOR THE LAND BATTLE 33 (1991) (noting that expanding bullets may not cause a sufficiently
incapacitating wound, particularly in a military context,); WILLY LEY, SHELLS AND SHOOTING 39-41 (1942)
([D]umdum bullets find too much air resistance. Roughly speaking, their power of penetration is only one-quarter
that of other bullets, and the dumdum effect does not take place if the velocity is low. Ranges of more than 600
yards ruin the dumdum effect, and over 1200 yards the bullet may be so slow that it cannot penetrate a heavy
uniform with overcoat.); Charles Frederick Carter, Atrocities in War, Nov. 1914, 29 THE WORLDS WORK 65, 66
(1915) (But since the first Hague Conference no nation has used dum-dum bullets for a compelling reason that has
nothing to do with the Hague nor with considerations of humanity. Experience has taught that when a modern high
powered rifle, such as is used in all armies to-day, is hot and dirty, conditions common to battle, the dum-dum bullet
is liable to strip; that is, the leaden core is apt to squirt out, leaving the jacket in the barrel, so that when the next
shot is fired the gun blows back, or bursts.).
324
comparable to, or more severe than, wounds produced by expanding bullets. 80 In addition,
expanding bullets are widely used by law enforcement agencies today, which also supports the
conclusion that States do not regard such bullets are inherently inhumane or needlessly cruel. 81
6.5.4.5 Rome Statute of the International Criminal Court War Crime Regarding
the Use of Expanding Bullets. The war crime of using expanding bullets that is reflected in the
Rome Statute of the International Criminal Court has been interpreted by States only to
criminalize the use of expanding bullets that are also calculated to cause superfluous injury and
not to create or reflect a prohibition against expanding bullets as such.
The Rome Statute of the International Criminal Court lists as a war crime [e]mploying
bullets which expand or flatten easily in the human body, such as bullets with a hard envelope
which does not entirely cover the core or is pierced with incisions. 82
Elements of Crimes have been adopted by the Assembly of States Parties to the Rome
Statute to assist the ICC in its interpretation and application of the Article 8 of the Rome Statute,
which includes this war crime. 83 The Elements of Crimes explain that this rule is not violated
unless, inter alia, [t]he perpetrator was aware that the nature of the bullets was such that their
employment would uselessly aggravate suffering or the wounding effect. 84 When adopting an
amendment at the Review Conference in 2010 that would apply this crime to non-international
armed conflict, Parties to the Rome Statute reiterated this understanding and explained that the
crime is committed only if the perpetrator employs the bullets to uselessly aggravate suffering or
80
See, e.g., High-speed Bullets and Dumdums, 79 SCIENTIFIC AMERICAN SUPPLEMENT NO. 2053, 304 (May 8, 1915)
(But the modern spitzer, at its still higher velocities and its unsteady performance in tissue, gives results that are
more frightful than any dumdum.); Medical News: The Explosive Effect of Bullets, 46 JOURNAL OF THE AMERICAN
MEDICAL ASSOCIATION 66 (Jan. 2, 1915) ([T]he instability of flight and tendency of the [pointed modern] bullet to
revolve around a transverse axis give it a capacity for wounding the soft part greater than that of any expanding or
soft-nosed bullet.); George B. Davis, The Amelioration of the Rules of War on Land, 2 AJIL 63, 75-76 (1908)
(Small-arm projectiles having the mechanical construction, or causing the wounds which are particularly described
in the declaration, have ceased to be manufactured; and the forms now in use, some of which inflict wounds of great
and unnecessary severity, are no longer within the narrow and illogical terms of the prohibition. Had the Crozier
amendment been adopted, it is highly probable that a type of small-arm projectile would have been developed which
would have met all reasonable requirements in respect to velocity, range, and flatness of trajectory, without the
needless and inhuman laceration of tissues which attend those now in use, or which are proposed for adoption in the
armies of some civilized powers.).
81
For example, NILS MELZER, TARGETED KILLING IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 417 and note 103 (2009) (A model
example in this respect [i.e., a situation governed by the law enforcement paradigm] is the case of Ewald K., which
occurred in Chur, Switzerland, in 2000. In this case, although there was no risk to innocent bystanders, Swiss Police
snipers deliberately used expanding rifle bullets in order to ensure that Ewald K. had no opportunity to return fire,
but would be killed instantly. This motivation was accepted by the Cantonal Court as sufficient to justify the use
of expanding rifle bullets. See Cantonal Court Grisons, Ewald K. Case, Deliberation 13(d).).
82
ROME STATUTE art. 8(2)(b)(xix).
83
ROME STATUTE art. 9 (1. Elements of Crimes shall assist the Court in the interpretation and application of articles
6, 7 and 8. They shall be adopted by a two-thirds majority of the members of the Assembly of States Parties.).
84
ROME STATUTE, ELEMENTS OF CRIMES, art. 8(2)(b)(xix), Official Records of the Assembly of States Parties to the
Rome Statute of the International Criminal Court, First session, New York, ICC-ASP/1/3, 112, 146 (Sept. 3-10,
2002).
325
the wounding effect upon the target of such bullets, as reflected in customary international
law. 85
Thus, this crime only applies to expanding bullets that are also calculated to cause
superfluous injury and does not create or reflect a prohibition against expanding bullets as
such. 86
6.5.4.7 Anti-Personnel Use of Larger (e.g., .50) Caliber Guns or Cannons. The
law of war does not prohibit the use of .50 caliber machineguns or other large-caliber guns
against enemy personnel. 88 Such use has been widespread and long-standing. 89
Similarly, cannons and other artillery (e.g., the M242 25mm Bushmaster in the Bradley
Fighting Vehicle or the 30mm GAU-8 in the A-10 aircraft) have often been used during armed
conflict against enemy material and may also be used against enemy combatants. Although use
against individual enemy combatants may not necessarily reflect the most efficient use of
resources, such use is not prohibited by the law of war.
85
Resolution RC/Res. 5, First ICC Review Conference: Resolutions and Declarations, 49 INTERNATIONAL LEGAL
MATERIALS 1328, 1333 (2010) (emphasis added).
86
Refer to 6.6 (Weapons Calculated to Cause Superfluous Injury).
87
W. Hays Parks, Special Assistant for Law of War Matters, Office of the Judge Advocate General, U.S. Army,
Memorandum re: Legality of Silencers/Suppressors 3 (Jun. 9, 1995) (Today, silenced weapons are a standard part
of the inventory of military forces and law enforcement agencies throughout the world. For example, the Heckler
and Koch MP5SD, an integrally suppressed 9x19mm Parabellum submachinegun, is in use by law enforcement and
military forces in more than forty nations; in the United States, local, state and federal law enforcement agencies and
each of the four armed services are equipped with the MP5SD. The H&K MP5SD was employed by U.S. Army,
Navy and Marine Corps units during the 1991 liberation of Kuwait.).
88
U.S. Army, Office of the Judge Advocate General, International Law Division, Opinion DAJA-IA 1986/8044,
Use of the .50-Caliber Machinegun, Nov. 21, 1986, reprinted in THE ARMY LAWYER 36, 37 (Apr. 1987)
(Employment of the .50 caliber machinegun or other .50 caliber weapons against enemy personnel does not violate
the law of war.).
89
U.S. Army, Office of the Judge Advocate General, International Law Division, Opinion DAJA-IA 1986/8044,
Use of the .50-Caliber Machinegun, Nov. 21, 1986, reprinted in THE ARMY LAWYER 36 (Apr. 1987) (Larger-
caliber weapons have remained in the inventories of virtually every nation. For example, the Soviet Union mounts
the NSV .50 caliber machinegun on its tanks; it can be removed and employed on a tripod in a ground mode.
Nations generally employ .50-caliber machineguns as antiaircraft, antimaterial, and antipersonnel weapons. On
occasion, they have been employed specifically as long-range sniper weapons. The Soviet PTRD was a 14.5mm
(.58 caliber) bolt-action, single-shot antitank weapon employed during World War II; because of its long-range
accuracy, it was frequently employed as a sniper weapon against German troops. Similarly, the Browning
Machinegun Caliber .50 HB, M2 currently in use by U.S. forces, was employed as a single-shot sniper rifle during
the Vietnam War.).
326
6.5.5 Blast Weapons. Blast weapons rely upon the pressure wave caused by an
explosion, rather than fragmentation, to cause damage to objects and injury to enemy military
personnel. Inflicting blast injury is not prohibited by the law of war. 90
6.5.7 Depleted Uranium Munitions. Depleted uranium (DU) is used in some munitions
because its density and physical properties create a particularly effective penetrating combination
to defeat enemy armored vehicles, including tanks. 95
90
W. Hays Parks, Special Assistant to The Judge Advocate General, U.S. Army, Memorandum re: 40mm
Thermobaric Munition; Legal Review, Apr. 2, 2003 (Blast is and has been an inherent part of high explosive
munitions, and combatants have died solely from the blast effects of conventional HE munitions. Pioneers, sappers
and combat engineers engaged in tunneling operations under enemy lines in the American Civil War, World War I,
and Korea employed substantial amounts of high explosives. Enemy personnel above the detonation became blast
casualties. Artillery barrages generally will produce a number of enemy casualties, including fatalities, from blast
alone, as will heavy aerial bombardment.).
91
See SPAIGHT, AIR POWER AND WAR RIGHTS 201 (1947) (Reference has been made above to flchettes and it is
desirable to explain what these were. They were small arrows of steel which were dropped in bundles of fifty at a
time from aeroplanes upon ground targets or observation balloons. They were used on both the Allies and the
German sides, but were originally an Italian invention, having been first used in Tripoli in 1911-12.). See also W.
Hays Parks, Conventional Weapons and Weapons Reviews, 8 YEARBOOK OF INTERNATIONAL HUMANITARIAN LAW
55, 81 (2005) (Flechettes are steel darts of varying sizes fired at high velocities in large quantities in munitions as
small as a shotgun shell to as large as a 90mm tank round, 105mm artillery round and 106mm recoilless rifle round,
enabling a uniform dispersion of flechettes to increase the probability of wounding enemy combatants within their
path. These munitions had proved particularly effective as a close-range final defensive fire against massed
attacking forces.).
92
Refer to 6.5.4.2 (Shotguns).
93
Refer to 6.11 (Weapons Injuring by Fragments Not Detectable by X-Rays).
94
1976 AIR FORCE PAMPHLET 110-31 6-6b (Where a military purpose is apparent and suffering is incidental to the
military necessities involved, the use of explosives and fragmentation particles such as those contained in
projectiles, mines, bombs, rockets, missiles and hand grenades is not prohibited under the law of armed conflict.
This result is confirmed by an extensive practice of nations in using such weapons during periods of armed conflict
in the 20th Century and previously.).
95
Col. James Naughton, Army Materiel Command, Special Department of Defense Briefing: Update on Depleted
Uranium (Mar. 14, 2003) ([T]he depleted uranium is a material that has a characteristic that allows it to sharpen
itself as it penetrates the target. The uranium shreds off the sides of the penetrator instead of squashing or
mushrooming. If you look at the lower picture, which is what happens with tungsten, the tungsten mushrooms. The
result is the depleted uranium will penetrate more armor of a given character and type at a given range than tungsten
will, no matter how we design the penetrators.).
327
States have regarded the use of depleted uranium weapons as consistent with their law of
war obligations. 96
The U.S. armed forces have fielded and used depleted uranium munitions. Extensive
efforts have been made to study whether there are harmful health effects from exposure to
depleted uranium from weapons that use it, but no such effects have been found. 97
6.5.8 Remotely Piloted Aircraft. There is no prohibition in the law of war on the use of
remotely piloted aircraft (also called unmanned aerial vehicles). 98 Such weapons may offer
certain advantages over other weapons systems. 99
96
For example, DAILY HANSARD, HOUSE OF COMMONS DEBATES, Jul. 12, 2012, Written Ministerial Statements,
Column 40WS-41WS (The Minister for the Armed Forces (Nick Harvey): I informed the House on 31 October
2011 that I had commissioned officials to undertake a legal weapons review of our depleted uranium (DU) anti-
armour tank rounds, known as Charm-3. The review is now complete and has concluded that Charm-3 is capable
of being used lawfully by UK armed forces in an international armed conflict. The use of DU in weapon systems
is not prohibited by any treaty provision. There have been extensive scientifically based studies, undertaken by the
World Health Organisation in relation to the long-term environmental and other health effects allegedly attributable
to the use of DU munitions. In the light of the reassuring conclusions drawn by such scientific studies, and noting
the continuing military imperative underpinning retention of Charm-3 as a weapon system, it was concluded that use
of Charm-3 does not offend the principle prohibiting superfluous injury or unnecessary suffering in armed conflict.
Finally, it was concluded that DU continues to be a material of choice used by states in the manufacture of anti-
armour munitions. To date no inter-state consensus has emerged that DU munitions should be banned and the
available scientific evidence (developed in the aftermath of the Gulf war in 1991) continues to support the view held
by the UK that such munitions can be retained for the limited role envisaged for their employment. The UK policy
remains that DU can be used within weapons; it is not prohibited under current or likely future international
agreements.).
97
Ambassador Robert Wood, United States Mission to the United Nations, Remarks at the Sixty-Ninth UNGA First
Committee Cluster Five: Explanation of Vote Before the Vote on L.43, Agenda Item 96 (e) Effects of the use of
armaments and ammunitions containing depleted uranium, Oct. 31, 2014 (I am speaking on behalf of France, the
United Kingdom and the United States to explain our negative vote on draft resolution L.43 Effects of the use of
armaments and ammunitions containing depleted uranium. Mr. Chairman, this is not a new issue. The
environmental and long-term health effects of the use of depleted uranium munitions have been thoroughly
investigated by the World Health Organization, the United Nations Environmental Program, the International
Atomic Energy Agency, NATO, the Centres for Disease Control, the European Commission, and others. None of
these inquiries has documented long-term environmental or health effects attributable to use of these munitions.);
Dr. Michael Kilpatrick, DoD Deployment Health Support Directorate, Special Department of Defense Briefing:
Update on Depleted Uranium (Mar. 14, 2003) (We looked at some 90 Gulf War veterans who were in or on an
armored vehicle when it was struck by depleted uranium in friendly fire. And those individuals have been followed
on an annual basis now we are talking 12 years post-incident. And we do not see any kidney damage in those
individuals . They were also followed for other medical problems, and theyve had no other medical
consequences of that depleted uranium exposure. Now, some of these individuals had amputations, were burned,
had deep wounds, so that these individuals, some of them of course do have medical problems. But as far as a
consequence of the depleted uranium exposure, we are not seeing anything related to that either from a chemical or
radiological effect.).
98
John O. Brennan, Assistant to the President for Homeland Security and Counterterrorism, Speech at the Wilson
Center: The Ethics and Efficacy of the Presidents Counterterrorism Strategy, Apr. 30, 2012, 2012 DIGEST OF
UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 584, 585 (As a matter of international law, the United States is
in an armed conflict with al-Qaida, the Taliban, and associated forces, in response to the 9/11 attacks, and we may
also use force consistent with our inherent right of national self-defense. There is nothing in international law that
bans the use of remotely piloted aircraft for this purpose .); Harold Hongju Koh, Legal Adviser, Department of
State, Address at the Annual Meeting of the American Society of International Law: The Obama Administration and
328
6.5.9 Autonomy in Weapon Systems. The law of war does not prohibit the use of
autonomy in weapon systems. DoD has developed policy on the use of autonomy in weapon
systems. 100
In fact, in many cases, the use of autonomy could enhance the way law of war principles
are implemented in military operations. For example, some munitions have homing functions
that enable the user to strike military objectives with greater discrimination and less risk of
incidental harm. As another example, some munitions have mechanisms to self-deactivate or to
self-destruct, which helps reduce the risk they may pose generally to the civilian population or
after the munitions have served their military purpose. 102
Although no law of war rule specifically restricts the use of autonomy in weapon
systems, other rules may apply to weapons with autonomous functions. For example, to the
extent a weapon system with autonomous functions falls within the definition of a mine in the
CCW Amended Mines Protocol, it would be regulated as such. 103 In addition, the general rules
International Law, Mar. 25, 2010, 2010 DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 715, 718-19
([T]here is no prohibition under the laws of war on the use of technologically advanced weapons systems in armed
conflict -- such as pilotless aircraft .).
99
John O. Brennan, Assistant to the President for Homeland Security and Counterterrorism, Speech at the Wilson
Center: The Ethics and Efficacy of the Presidents Counterterrorism Strategy, Apr. 30, 2012, 2012 DIGEST OF
UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 584, 586 (Targeted strikes are wise. Remotely piloted aircraft
in particular can be a wise choice because of geography, with their ability to fly hundreds of miles over the most
treacherous terrain, strike their targets with astonishing precision, and then return to base. They can be a wise
choice because of time, when windows of opportunity can close quickly and there may be just minutes to act. They
can be a wise choice because they dramatically reduce the danger to U.S. personnel, even eliminating the danger
altogether. Yet they are also a wise choice because they dramatically reduce the danger to innocent civilians,
especially considered against massive ordnance that can cause injury and death far beyond its intended target.).
100
Refer to 6.5.9.4 (DoD Policy on Autonomy in Weapon Systems).
101
Refer to 6.12.1.2 (Designed to Be Exploded by the Presence, Proximity, or Contact of a Person or Vehicle).
102
Refer to 6.12.1.6 (Mines With Compliant Self-Destruction and Self-Deactivation (SD/SDA) Mechanisms).
103
Refer to 6.12.1 (Definition of Mine).
329
applicable to all weapons would apply to weapons with autonomous functions. For example,
autonomous weapon systems must not be calculated to cause superfluous injury or be inherently
indiscriminate. 104
Rather, it is persons who must comply with the law of war. For example, persons may
not use inherently indiscriminate weapons. 105 In addition, in the situation in which a person is
using a weapon that selects and engages targets autonomously, that person must refrain from
using that weapon where it is expected to result in incidental harm that is excessive in relation to
the concrete and direct military advantage expected to be gained. 106 In addition, the obligation
on the person using the weapon to take feasible precautions in order to reduce the risk of civilian
casualties may be more significant when the person uses weapon systems with more
sophisticated autonomous functions. 107 For example, such feasible precautions a person is
obligated to take may include monitoring the operation of the weapon system or programming or
building mechanisms for the weapon to deactivate automatically after a certain period of time.
6.5.9.4 DoD Policy on Autonomy in Weapon Systems. DoD policy has addressed
the use of autonomy in certain types of weapon systems. 108 Under a 2012 policy, certain types
of autonomous weapon systems require an additional review by senior DoD officials before
formal development and fielding. 109 In addition, the policy establishes rigorous standards for
104
Refer to 6.6 (Weapons Calculated to Cause Superfluous Injury); 6.7 (Inherently Indiscriminate Weapons).
105
Refer to 6.7 (Inherently Indiscriminate Weapons).
106
Refer to 5.12 (Proportionality in Conducting Attacks).
107
Refer to 5.11 (Feasible Precautions in Conducting Attacks to Reduce the Risk of Harm to Protected Persons and
Objects).
108
DOD DIRECTIVE 3000.09, Autonomy in Weapons Systems (Nov. 21, 2012).
109
DOD DIRECTIVE 3000.09, Autonomy in Weapons Systems, 4d (Nov. 21, 2012) (Autonomous or semi-
autonomous weapon systems intended to be used in a manner that falls outside the policies in subparagraphs 4.c.(1)
through 4.c.(3) must be approved by the Under Secretary of Defense for Policy (USD(P)); the Under Secretary of
Defense for Acquisition, Technology, and Logistics (USD(AT&L)); and the CJCS before formal development and
again before fielding in accordance with the guidelines in Enclosure 3, References (b) and (c), and other applicable
policies and issuances.).
330
system design, testing of hardware and software, and training of personnel on the proper use of
autonomous and semi-autonomous systems. Among other things, the policy requires that
military commanders use autonomous and semi-autonomous weapon systems in a manner
consistent with their design, testing, certification, operator training, and doctrine. 110
U.S. domestic law may also be applicable to the development of autonomous functions in
certain weapon systems. 111
6.5.10 Non-Lethal (Less-Lethal) Weapons. The law of war does not prohibit or
specifically address non-lethal weapons as a class of weapons. DoD policies regulate non-lethal
weapons and require the legal review of their acquisition, as with other types of weapons. There
is no requirement to use non-lethal weapons before using lethal weapons against military
objectives.
Non-lethal weapons are less lethal than conventional military weapons, and they use
means other than gross physical destruction to defeat targets (whether enemy vehicles or
personnel). Non-lethal weapons are intended to have reversible effects on personnel and
materiel.
110
DOD DIRECTIVE 3000.09, Autonomy in Weapons Systems, Enclosure 4 10 (Nov. 21, 2012) (The Commanders
of the Combatant Commands shall: a. Use autonomous and semi-autonomous weapon systems in accordance with
this Directive and in a manner consistent with their design, testing, certification, operator training, doctrine, TTPs,
and approval as autonomous or semi-autonomous systems.).
111
See, e.g., PUBLIC LAW 100-180, 224 (No agency of the Federal Government may plan for, fund, or otherwise
support the development of command and control systems for strategic defense in the boost or post-boost phase
against ballistic missile threats that would permit such strategic defenses to initiate the directing of damaging or
lethal fire except by affirmative human decision at an appropriate level of authority.). This statute may, however,
be an unconstitutional intrusion on the Presidents authority, as Commander in Chief, to determine how weapons are
to be used in military operations.
112
DOD DIRECTIVE 3000.03E, DoD Executive Agent for Non-Lethal Weapons (NLW), and NLW Policy, Glossary
(Apr. 25, 2013) (NLW. Weapons, devices, and munitions that are explicitly designed and primarily employed to
incapacitate targeted personnel or materiel immediately, while minimizing fatalities, permanent injury to personnel,
and undesired damage to property in the target area or environment. NLW are intended to have reversible effects on
personnel and materiel.).
331
Non-lethal weapons, however, do not have a zero probability of producing fatalities or
permanent injuries, which is why these weapons are sometimes referred to as less-lethal
weapons. 113 The use of non-lethal weapons may still present risks of serious injury or loss of
life.
blunt impact projectiles, such as stingball grenades, beanbag rounds, and rubber bullets;
the active denial system, a directed energy weapon that uses millimeter wave energy to
penetrate 1/64th of an inch into the surface of the skin, causing a rapid and intense
heating sensation;
electrical stun guns that incapacitate by disrupting the bodys electrical signals (also
called human electro-muscular incapacitation devices or tasers); and
counter-material weapons, such as the vehicle lightweight arresting device or the portable
vehicle arresting barrier, that are designed to stop vehicles without harming the occupants
of the vehicles.
113
See NATO RESEARCH AND TECHNOLOGY ORGANISATION TECHNICAL REPORT RTO-TR-HFM-073, The Human
Effects of Non-Lethal Technologies, 6-4 (August 2006) (Terminology options have referred to non-lethal, less
than lethal, or less-lethal. These first two terms imply that death will not result following the use of these
weapons but plainly, this is not always the case in spite of the reassuring connotation. The military forces of the
North Atlantic Treaty Organisation (NATO) use the descriptor non-lethal. This term in the military context does
not imply nil casualties or damage, but is a statement of intent to achieve the lowest achievable probability of
casualties and physical damage. The term has often been challenged as being inappropriate, but an alternative
descriptor that can provide a better interpretation has yet to be widely adopted within international circles.).
114
For example, David A. Koplow, Tangled Up in Khaki and Blue: Lethal and Non-Lethal Weapons in Recent
Confrontations, 36 GEORGETOWN JOURNAL OF INTERNATIONAL LAW 703, 727 (2005) (In 1995, the thirteenth
Marine Expeditionary Unit was assigned the daunting mission of covering the withdrawal of 2,500 United Nations
peacekeepers from chaotic Somalia, while providing protection against native war lords, disorganized military, and
paramilitary units. Lieutenant General Anthony C. Zinni boldly decided to include a variety of NLW in the
Marines training and equipment for this operation United Shield, and his departure from standard operation
procedures garnered a substantial amount of publicity. Among the unconventional tools deployed to Somalia were:
sticky foam, used to create temporary, immediate barriers; caltrops, sharp-edged pyramids that could puncture the
tires of vehicles following too closely; flash-bang and stinger grenades; low-kinetic-energy rounds which fired
beanbags or wooden plugs; laser dazzlers and target designators; and chemical riot control agents.).
115
Refer to 6.16 (Riot Control Agents).
332
weapons and other specific rules, insofar as those rules are applicable. For example, the use of
riot control agents is prohibited as a method of warfare. 116
Weapons designed to use the minimum amount of force and to preserve life are,
consistent with the principle of humanity, often less likely to be prohibited or restricted by the
law of war.
In addition, the availability of non-lethal weapons does not limit the authority to use force
in self-defense. 121
116
Refer to 6.16.2 (Prohibition on Use of Riot Control Agents as a Method of Warfare).
117
For example, DOD DIRECTIVE 3000.03E, DoD Executive Agent for Non-Lethal Weapons (NLW), and NLW
Policy (Apr. 25, 2013); DOD DIRECTIVE 3000.3, Policy for Non-Lethal Weapons (Jul. 9, 1996).
118
For example, DOD DIRECTIVE 3000.03E, DoD Executive Agent for Non-Lethal Weapons (NLW), and NLW
Policy, Enclosure 2 11 (Apr. 25, 2013) (The Secretaries of the Military Departments and the Commander,
USSOCOM, through the CJCS: c. Require, as appropriate, that a legal review of the acquisition of all NLW is
conducted in accordance with Reference (h) and an arms control compliance review is completed in accordance with
DoDD 2060.1 (Reference (l)).); DOD DIRECTIVE 3000.3, Policy for Non-Lethal Weapons, E6 (Jul. 9, 1996) (The
Secretaries of the Military Departments and the Commander in Chief of the United States Special Operations
Command shall: ... (b) Ensure that a legal review of the acquisition of all non-lethal weapons is conducted. The
review should ensure consistency with the obligations assumed by the U.S. Government under all applicable
treaties, with customary international law, and, in particular, the laws of war.).
119
Refer to 5.5.6 (Force That May Be Applied Against Military Objectives).
120
DOD DIRECTIVE 3000.03E, DoD Executive Agent for Non-Lethal Weapons (NLW), and NLW Policy, 3h (Apr.
25, 2013) (The presence of NLW will not constitute an obligation for their use, or create a higher standard for the
use of force, under the applicable law, rules of engagement, or other rules for the use of force.); DOD DIRECTIVE
3000.3, Policy for Non-Lethal Weapons, 4.5 (Jul. 9, 1996) (Neither the presence nor the potential effect of non-
lethal weapons shall constitute an obligation for their employment or a higher standard for employment of force than
provided for by applicable law. In all cases, the United States retains the option for immediate use of lethal
weapons, when appropriate, consistent with international law.).
121
DOD DIRECTIVE 3000.03E, DoD Executive Agent for Non-Lethal Weapons (NLW), and NLW Policy, 3g (Apr.
25, 2013) (The availability of NLW will not limit the commanders inherent right or obligation to exercise unit
333
6.6 WEAPONS CALCULATED TO CAUSE SUPERFLUOUS INJURY
Article 23(e) of the 1899 Hague II Regulations prohibits weapons of a nature to cause
superfluous injury. Article 23(e) of the 1907 Hague IV Regulations prohibits weapons
calculated to cause unnecessary suffering. The official texts of both the 1899 and 1907 treaties
are French, and the French text of that paragraph is exactly the same in both treaties, even though
English translations of the treaties are different. The title of the CCW refers to Weapons Which
May be Deemed to Be Excessively Injurious, and the CCW Preamble also recognizes the
principle that prohibits the employment in armed conflicts of weapons, projectiles and material
and methods of warfare of a nature to cause superfluous injury or unnecessary suffering.
Treaties that the United States has not ratified have also included this prohibition. The
Preamble to the 1868 Declaration of St. Petersburg noted that the employment of arms which
uselessly aggravate the sufferings of disabled men, or render their death inevitable would be be
contrary to the laws of humanity. 123 AP I Article 35(2) prohibits the use of weapons,
projectiles and material and methods of warfare of a nature to cause superfluous injury or
unnecessary suffering.
Although the various formulations may be regarded as describing the same underlying
prohibition, the phrase calculated to cause superfluous injury may be regarded as the more
accurate translation of the French rule stated in the 1907 Hague IV Regulations and as more
precisely conveying the intent of the rule. 124
self-defense in response to a hostile act of [sic] demonstrated hostile intent, or to use lethal force when authorized by
competent authority pursuant to the standing rules of engagement or standing rules for the use of force.); DOD
DIRECTIVE 3000.3, Policy for Non-Lethal Weapons, 4.4 (Jul. 9, 1996) (The availability of non-lethal weapons
shall not limit a commanders inherent authority and obligation to use all necessary means available and to take all
appropriate action in self-defense.).
122
CCW preamble (recognizing the principle that prohibits the employment in armed conflicts of weapons,
projectiles and material and methods of warfare of a nature to cause superfluous injury or unnecessary suffering);
HAGUE IV REG. art. 23 ([I]t is especially forbidden (e) To employ arms, projectiles, or material calculated to
cause unnecessary suffering .); 1899 HAGUE II REG. art. 23 (prohibits employing arms, projectiles, or material
of a nature to cause superfluous injury). Consider AP I art. 35(2) (It is prohibited to employ weapons, projectiles
and material and methods of warfare of a nature to cause superfluous injury or unnecessary suffering.).
123
The Declaration of St. Petersburg, 1868, reprinted in 1 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL DOCUMENTS 95 (1907).
124
R.R. Baxter, Conventional Weapons Under Legal Prohibitions, 1 INTERNATIONAL SECURITY 42, 43 (1977)
(This last expression [calculated to cause unnecessary suffering] has been the source of a vast amount of confusion
because the English translation from the authentic French text is inaccurate. The expression used in French was
propres a causer des maux superflus, which might be more accurately translated as calculated to cause superfluous
334
This manual generally uses the formulation weapons calculated to cause superfluous
injury or refers to the superfluous injury rule.
6.6.2 Superfluous Injury Rule the Principle of Humanity. The superfluous injury rule is
an application of the principle of humanity in the context of weapons. 125 The superfluous injury
rule prohibits weapons that are designed to increase the injury or suffering of the persons
attacked beyond that justified by military necessity. 126
Thus, the principle of humanity may assist in understanding and applying the rule. 127 For
example, weapons that are regarded as lawful in peacetime or that apply only the minimum force
necessary in order to avoid death or injury to civilians would not be prohibited under the
superfluous injury rule. 128
6.6.3 Applying the Superfluous Injury Rule. The test for whether a weapon is prohibited
by the superfluous injury rule is whether the suffering caused by the weapon provides no military
advantage or is otherwise clearly disproportionate to the military advantage reasonably expected
from the use of the weapon. 129 Thus, the suffering must be assessed in relation to the military
(or excessive) injury. In the metaphysical atmosphere in which the legality of certain weapons is often discussed,
such niceties count.); W. Hays Parks, Conventional Weapons and Weapons Reviews, 8 YEARBOOK OF
INTERNATIONAL HUMANITARIAN LAW 55, 86-87 footnote 123 (2005) (This argument [about superfluous injury or
unnecessary suffering] was based upon a novel ICRC interpretation of the original 1899 Hague language in Art.
23(g) of the Annex prohibiting arms, projectiles or material of a nature to cause superfluous injury, as compared to
the language in the subsequent 1907 Hague Convention, calculated to cause unnecessary suffering. The latter
phrase is a clearer expression of the intent of governments to focus on design and intended purpose rather than every
remote possibility of weapon injury.).
125
Prosecutor v. Tadi, ICTY Appeals Chamber, IT-94-1-AR72, Decision on the Defence Motion for Interlocutory
Appeal on Jurisdiction, 119 (Oct. 2, 1995) (explaining that the prohibitions on weapons in the customary law of
war applicable to international and non-international armed conflicts are based on elementary considerations of
humanity and common sense).
126
Written Statement of the Government of the United States of America, 28-29, Jun. 20, 1995, I.C.J., Request by the
United Nations General Assembly for an Advisory Opinion on the Legality of the Threat or Use of Nuclear
Weapons (This prohibition was intended to preclude weapons designed to increase the injury or suffering of the
persons attacked beyond that necessary to accomplish the military objective. It does not prohibit weapons that may
cause great injury or suffering if the use of the weapon is necessary to accomplish the military mission. For
example, it does not prohibit the use of anti-tank munitions which must penetrate armor by kinetic-energy or
incendiary effects, even though such weapons can produce severe and painful injuries.).
127
Refer to 2.3 (Humanity).
128
Cf. Statement by Secretary Rusk, Mar. 24, 1965, 52 DEPARTMENT OF STATE BULLETIN 529 (Apr. 12, 1965)
(defending the legality of riot control agents by explaining that [w]hat has been involved has been well-known,
traditional agents, in the hands of police forces in many parts of the world. And under the circumstances in which
this gas was used in Viet-Nam, the desire was to use the minimum force required to deal with the situation to avoid
death or injury to innocent people.). Refer to 6.16 (Riot Control Agents).
129
WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW & PRECEDENTS 784 (An illegitimate weapon of war would be one which, in
disabling or causing death, inflicted a needless, unusual and unreasonable amount of torture or injury and the
deliberate use of such a weapon would properly be treated as a violation of the laws of war.); SPAIGHT, WAR
RIGHTS ON LAND 75 (Hence commanders are quite ready to admit the claims of humanity to the extent of forgoing
the use of any engine of war whose military effect is disproportioned to the suffering it entails.).
335
utility of the weapon. 130 Weapons that may cause great injury or suffering or inevitable death
are not prohibited, if the weapons effects that cause such injury are necessary to enable users to
accomplish their military missions. 131
the probability of striking a person against whom the weapon is aimed or directed;
the probability that a person who is struck by the weapon will be incapacitated;
the speed at which a person who is struck by the weapon will be incapacitated; and
However, the military utility of the weapon is often broader than its capacity to disable
enemy combatants. 133 It may include other factors, such as: 134
130
Ronald J. Bettauer, Deputy Assistant Legal Adviser, Department of State, Statement at the Conference of
Government Experts on Weapons which may Cause Unnecessary Suffering or have Indiscriminate Effects, held in
Lucerne from Sept. 24 to Oct. 18, 1974, Sept. 25, 1974, 1974 DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN
INTERNATIONAL LAW 707 (It is the U.S. view that the necessity of the suffering must be judged in relation to the
military utility of the weapons. The test is whether the suffering is needless, superfluous, or disproportionate to the
military advantage reasonably expected from the use of the weapon.).
131
Written Statement of the Government of the United States of America, 32-33, Jun. 20, 1995, I.C.J., Request by the
United Nations General Assembly for an Advisory Opinion on the Legality of the Threat or Use of Nuclear
Weapons (This argument is based on a misconception of the St. Petersburg principle, which was directed at anti-
personnel weapons that were deliberately designed to kill when that design feature was not needed to disable enemy
combatants. This does not mean that it is unlawful to use a weapon that has a high probability of killing persons in
its immediate vicinity if that design feature is required to fulfill a legitimate military mission. For example, any
large high-explosive or fragmentation weapon has a high probability of killing exposed persons within a certain
distance of the detonation. An effective anti-submarine, anti-aircraft or anti-tank weapon has a high probability of
killing the crews of these vehicles. This fact does not make these weapons unlawful, since these lethal effects are
necessary for the effective accomplishment of their legitimate mission.).
132
SPAIGHT, AIR POWER AND WAR RIGHTS 203 ([A]lthough a shell [fired by a cannon] may kill or mutilateand
mutilate horriblyonly one man, it may also be compensated by the possible bag of a projectile of widely
radiating effect.).
133
BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 196 (AP I art. 35, 2.3.3) (The problem cannot be simplified by restating
the preamble of the 1968 [sic] St. Petersburg Declaration that to weaken the enemys military forces it is sufficient
to disable the greatest possible number of men (i.e., to render enemy combatants hors de combat). This test is valid
only for weapons designed for antipersonnel purposes. However, weapons are designed and produced to be used to
fulfill a variety of military requirements other than merely disabling enemy combatants.).
134
BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 196-97 (AP I art. 35, 2.3.3) (Some examples of such requirements
include the destruction or neutralization of military material, restriction of military movement, the interdiction of
military lines of communications, the weakening of the enemys war making resources and capabilities, and the
enhancement of the security of friendly forces. Factors which must also be taken into account are the
availability of alternate weapon systems (and their effects), the logistics of providing the weapon and its ammunition
at the place where it is to be used when needed, and the security of the troops involved.).
336
the destruction or neutralization of military materiel;
the effects on the morale, command and control, stamina, and cohesion of opposing
forces;
the enhancement of the security of forces employing the weapon or other friendly forces;
the logistics of providing the weapon and its ammunition where and when it is needed;
the cost of using the weapon in terms of time, money, and other resources;
the efficacy of the weapon in light of the weapons and tactics of the adversary; or
the risk to the civilian population when the weapon is used for its intended purposes. 135
These other factors can justify weapons that inflict injuries on enemy combatants that are much
greater than the minimum needed to render them hors de combat. For example, an artillery shell
designed to destroy field fortifications or heavy material causes injuries to enemy personnel that
are much greater than those necessary to make enemy combatants hors de combat. However, the
artillery shell is not prohibited because these military advantages are not clearly disproportionate
to the injuries it inflicts. 136
135
Christopher Greenwood, Legal Aspects of current Regulations, KEYNOTE SPEECHES, THIRD INTERNATIONAL
WORKSHOP ON WOUND BALLISTICS (Thun, Switzerland, Mar. 28-29, 2001) (Moreover, there are circumstances,
particularly in street warfare and in counter terrorist operations where it may be necessary to make a trade, in effect,
between the principle of the protection of civilian life and the principle of unnecessary suffering to combatants.
What I would like to suggest is that where that trade has to be made and I accept that it is not one which has to be
made in all, or even most types of combat one cannot regard suffering as unnecessary if it is inflicted for the
purpose of protecting the civilian population. In other words, if the civilian populations protection is enhanced by
the use of a particular weapon, then the adverse effects of that weapon on combatants cannot properly be regarded as
unnecessary.).
136
BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 196-97 (AP I art. 35, 2.3.3) ([A]n artillery projectile or missile
designed to destroy field fortifications or heavy material may be expected to cause injuries to personnel in the
vicinity of the target which would be more severe than necessary to render these combatants hors de combat, but no
337
6.6.3.2 Suffering and Injury Inflicted. The superfluous injury rule addresses the
harm inflicted upon the persons who are struck by the weapon. The types of harm addressed by
the superfluous rule include: mortality rates, the painfulness of wounds, the severity of wounds,
and the ease with which they may be treated (including the incidence of permanent damage or
disfigurement). 137 Weapons that have been modified only for the purpose of increasing these
types of harms for persons who have already been incapacitated are prohibited by the
superfluous injury rule. 138
Because of the difficulty of comparing the military necessity for the weapon and the
suffering it is likely to cause, a weapon is only prohibited if the suffering is clearly or manifestly
disproportionate to the military necessity. 139 The suffering likely to result from the use of the
weapon and its military effectiveness are likely to be difficult to assess, much less to compare to
one another. 140
authority has questioned the lawfulness of such projectiles despite the gravity of the incidental effect on
personnel.).
137
See INTERNATIONAL COMMITTEE OF THE RED CROSS, CONFERENCE OF GOVERNMENT EXPERTS ON THE USE OF
CERTAIN CONVENTIONAL WEAPONS: LUCERNE, SEPT. 24- OCT. 18, 1974, 8 (23) (Geneva, 1975) (The concept of
injury or suffering evoked some further comment. It was generally considered that this comprised such factors
as mortality rates, the painfulness or severeness of wounds, or the incidence of permanent damage or
disfigurement.).
138
Refer to 6.6.4 (Weapons Modified for the Purpose of Aggravating the Harm Inflicted on Incapacitated Persons).
139
BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 197 (AP I art. 35, 2.3.3) (Because of the impossibility of quantifying
either side of the equation it is important that military advantage be qualified by such words as definite, and also
that the disproportionate suffering be manifest or clear.). See also W. Hays Parks, Special Assistant for Law of
War Matters, Office of The Judge Advocate General, U.S. Army, Joint Service Combat Shotgun Program, THE
ARMY LAWYER 16, 18 (Oct. 1997) (In determining whether a weapon causes superfluous injury, a balancing test is
applied between the force dictated by military necessity to achieve a legitimate objective vis-a-vis injury that may be
considered superfluous to the achievement of the stated or intended objective (in other words, whether the suffering
caused is out of proportion to the military advantage to be gained). The test is not easily applied; a weapon that can
incapacitate or wound lethally at, for example, 300 meters or longer ranges may result in a greater degree of
incapacitation or greater lethality at lesser ranges. For this reason, the degree of superfluous injury must be clearly
disproportionate to the intended objective(s) for development of the weapon (that is, the suffering must outweigh
substantially the military necessity for the weapon).); W. Hays Parks, Chief, International Law Branch,
International Affairs Division, Office of the Judge Advocate General, U.S. Army, Memorandum re: Sniper Use of
Open-Tip Ammunition, Oct. 12, 1990, reprinted in THE ARMY LAWYER 86, 87 (Feb. 1991) (similar);
140
BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 196 (AP I art. 35, 2.3.3) (In applying para. 2 of Art. 35, the suffering or
injury caused by a weapon must be judged in relation to the military utility of the weapon. The test is whether the
suffering is needless, superfluous, or manifestly disproportionate to the military advantage reasonably expected from
the use of the weapon. On the humanitarian side of the equation against which military advantage is to be balanced
are such factors as the painfulness or severity of wounds, mortality rates, and the incidence of permanent damage or
disfigurement and the feasibility of treatment under field conditions. Neither element of the equation can be taken in
isolation. All such comparative judgments logically lead to an inquiry into how much suffering various weapons
cause and whether available alternate weapons can achieve the same military advantage effectively but cause less
338
Like other determinations of customary international law, whether a weapon is calculated
to cause superfluous injury is to be determined in light of the practice of States, and in particular,
whether States have declined to use the weapon or similar weapons because they are believed to
have this effect. 141 The consideration of the military utility of the weapon and the suffering the
weapon inflicts should be compared to other destructive mechanisms that States have used or
retained for use and consider to be lawful.
suffering. The comparison of, and balancing between, suffering and military effectiveness is difficult in practice
because neither side of the equation is easy to quantify. Inevitably, the assessment will be subjective even when
sufficient agreed factual data are available on wound effects and military effectiveness.).
141
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 34b (What weapons cause unnecessary injury [within the meaning of
Hague IV Reg. art. 23(e)] can only be determined in light of the practice of States in refraining from the use of a
given weapon because it is believed to have that effect.).
142
Refer to 19.21.1.3 (CCW and Customary International Law).
143
Refer to 6.12.4.1 (Mines, Booby-Traps, and Other Devices Calculated to Cause Superfluous Injury).
144
Article-by-Article Analysis of CCW Amended Mines Protocol, 11, Enclosure A to Warren Christopher, Letter of
Submittal, Dec. 7, 1996, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL,
PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS, AND PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS 11 (CCW Amended
Mines Protocol art. 3(3) reiterates a proscription already in place as a matter of customary international law
applicable to all weapons. It also implicitly makes clear that mines, booby-traps and other devices are not, per se, of
a nature to cause unnecessary suffering, for if that were considered to be the case, no such rule would be necessary
and they would be prohibited entirely.).
145
Refer to 1.8.2.3 (Specially Affected States).
146
WILLIAM BOOTHBY, WEAPONS AND THE LAW OF ARMED CONFLICT 62 (2009) (So, in the context of superfluous
injury and unnecessary suffering, the comparator [or excessiveness] must be determined by the generic purpose or
purposes for which the weapon has been designed or adapted, or the purpose or purposes for which that weapon will
generally be used. The word generic is used here to show that we are specifically not referring to the use of the
weapon on a particular occasion in prosecution of a specific mission. The word generally indicates that it is the
339
6.6.4 Weapons Modified for the Purpose of Aggravating the Harm Inflicted on
Incapacitated Persons. Weapons that have been modified for the purpose of aggravating the
harm inflicted upon incapacitated persons are weapons that are prohibited by the superfluous
injury rule. 147
For example, adding poison to bullets or other substances to weapons for the purpose of
increasing the pain caused by the wound, to make wounds more difficult to treat, or to make
death inevitable, would be prohibited. Such a substance would not increase the military utility of
the weapon to incapacitate the enemy (i.e., it would have no corresponding military advantage);
thus, the additional injury would be superfluous when compared to the injury caused by the
weapon without such a substance.
Weapons that have been modified are readily assessed under the superfluous injury rule
because the unmodified version of the weapon provides a clear point of comparison. It is
difficult to compare, in the abstract, the military utility of a weapon against the suffering it
causes. But, by comparing an existing weapon to a proposed modification, one can evaluate
more easily whether the proposed changes are warranted by legitimate military reasons (e.g., to
increase the ability of the weapon to incapacitate the enemy) or illegitimate reasons (e.g.,
cruelty) because, in considering a modification to the weapon, one would expect that a number
of relevant factors would be the same as between the existing weapon and the proposed
modification.
Inherently indiscriminate weapons, i.e., weapons that are incapable of being used in
accordance with the principles of distinction and proportionality, are prohibited. Such weapons
include weapons that are specifically designed to conduct attacks against the civilian population
as well as weapons that, when used, would necessarily cause incidental harm that is excessive
compared the military advantage expected to be gained from their use.
normal applications of the weapon that are to be considered, not some unusual application, or misapplication, of it
which lies outside the scope of purposes for which it was procured or adapted.).
147
Consider The Declaration of St. Petersburg, 1868, reprinted in 1 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL DOCUMENTS 95
(1907) (considering that it would be contrary to the laws of humanity to use arms which uselessly aggravate the
sufferings of disabled men, or render their death inevitable;).
148
Refer to 2.5 (Distinction); 2.4 (Proportionality).
149
Refer to 5.6 (Discrimination in Conducting Attacks); 5.12 (Proportionality in Conducting Attacks).
150
See Legality of the Threat or Use of Nuclear Weapons, Advisory Opinion, 1996 I.C.J. 226, 257 (78) (The
cardinal principles contained in the texts constituting the fabric of humanitarian law are the following. The first is
aimed at the protection of the civilian population and civilian objects and establishes the distinction between
340
Few weapons have been understood to be inherently indiscriminate weapons. 151 This
may be the case because weapons that are more accurate and precise are more militarily
effective; the military and humanitarian interests coincide. 152 On the other hand, the few
weapons that have been understood to violate this rule have been directed at illegitimate
objectives, such as attacking and terrorizing the civilian population. 153
Special consideration should be given to the planned or intended uses of the weapon, i.e.,
those that are reasonably foreseeable. For example, a practitioner conducting a legal review of
the proposed acquisition or procurement of a weapon should consider the uses of the weapon that
are planned and reflected in the design documents. Practitioners should advise if the planned
uses of the weapon are not consistent with the principles of distinction and proportionality, with
a view towards ensuring that either the weapon or the planned uses are modified accordingly.
The wide range of circumstances in which weapons can lawfully be used should also be
considered before concluding that a weapon is prohibited as inherently indiscriminate. For
example, in some circumstances, an area of land can be a military objective. 154 Thus, even if it
would not be possible for the weapon to be directed against enemy combatants, if the weapon
could be directed at specific areas, it would be unlikely that the weapon would be considered
inherently indiscriminate. As another example, in some circumstances, feasible precautions can
mitigate the incidental harm expected to be caused so that it is not excessive. 155 Whether such
precautions could be taken to mitigate the expected incidental harm caused by the weapon under
combatants and non-combatants; States must never make civilians the object of attack and must consequently never
use weapons that are incapable of distinguishing between civilian and military targets.); GREENSPAN, MODERN
LAW OF LAND WARFARE 359 ([I]t must be borne in mind that indiscriminate bombardment of the civilian
population is prohibited, so that weapons which must necessarily have that effect when used are also illegal.).
151
Christopher Greenwood, Legal Aspects of current Regulations, KEYNOTE SPEECHES, THIRD INTERNATIONAL
WORKSHOP ON WOUND BALLISTICS (Thun, Switzerland, Mar. 28-29, 2001) (There are virtually no cases of
weapons which are inherently indiscriminate. The United States Naval Commanders Handbook, one of the most
modern texts and an important piece of State practice, gives in its annotations an illustration of an inherently
indiscriminate weapon a proposal during the Second World War to tie tiny incendiary bombs around the necks of
bats. The bats would then be released from aircraft over enemy targets, would glide down into the trees and into the
rafters of buildings and set fire to those buildings when the incendiaries exploded. If that is the best example that
can be given of an inherently indiscriminate weapon, there are not very many inherently indiscriminate weapons in
existence.).
152
ICRC AP COMMENTARY 621 (1958) (It should be noted that most armies endeavour to use accurate weapons as
attacks which do not strike the intended objective result in a loss of time and equipment without giving a
corresponding advantage. Here the military interests and humanitarian requirements coincide.).
153
Refer to 6.7.3 (Weapons Designed to Conduct Attacks Against the Civilian Population).
154
Refer to 5.7.8.4 (Examples of Military Objectives Places of Military Significance).
155
Refer to 5.11 (Feasible Precautions in Conducting Attacks to Reduce the Risk of Harm to Protected Persons and
Objects).
341
review should be considered before concluding that a weapon is prohibited as inherently
indiscriminate.
6.7.3 Weapons Designed to Conduct Attacks Against the Civilian Population. Inherently
indiscriminate weapons include those that are specifically designed to be used to conduct attacks
against the civilian population, including attacks to terrorize the civilian population. For
example, Japanese bombs attached to free-floating, long-range balloons used during World War
II were unlawful for this reason. 156 Also, German long-range rockets without guidance systems
used during World War II were similarly illegal. 157
156
For example, ROBERT C. MIKESH, JAPANS WORLD WAR II BALLOON BOMB ATTACKS ON NORTH AMERICA 1
(1973) (In a desperate attempt to find a means of reprisal [for the Doolittle raid], the Japanese conceived a method
to strike directly at the American continent. Their plan was simple; launch balloons with incendiary and
antipersonnel bombs attached, let them travel across the Pacific with the prevailing winds, and drop on American
cities, forests, and farmlands. It took over two years to design the balloons, bombs, and automatic dropping
mechanism. Finally, on 3 November 1944, the first of more than nine thousand bomb-bearing balloons was
released. It is estimated that nearly one thousand of the death-dealing balloons must have reached the North
American continent.).
157
For example, SPAIGHT, AIR POWER AND WAR RIGHTS 214-15 (As used by the Germans in 1944-45, [the V-2
long-range rocket] was simply a crude instrument of random bombardment, utterly lacking in precision, and its
military value was nil. While such a weapon is not banned in terms by any international convention, the use of it
could not be regarded as compatible with the observance of certain rules which are the subject of definite
international agreement, such as those forbidding the bombardment by any means of undefended towns and
villages, and those enjoining the sparing, as far as possible, of buildings dedicated to religious, art, science or
charitable purposes, historic monuments, hospitals and places where the sick and wounded are collected. The
flying [V-1] bomb is another abominable projectile which might well be prohibited at the same time. It is, again, a
weapon which cannot really be aimed at all.).
158
1976 AIR FORCE PAMPHLET 110-31 6-3c (In addition, some weapons, though capable of being directed only at
military objectives, may have otherwise uncontrollable effects so as to cause disproportionate civilian injuries or
damage. Biological warfare is a universally agreed illustration of such an indiscriminate weapon. Uncontrollable
effects, in this context, may include injury to the civilian population of other states as well as injury to an enemys
civilian population. Uncontrollable refers to effects which escape in time or space from the control of the user as to
necessarily create risk to civilian persons or objects excessive in relation to the military advantage anticipated.
International law does not require that a weapons effects be strictly confined to the military objectives against
which it is directed, but it does restrict weapons whose foreseeable effects result in unlawful disproportionate injury
to civilians or damage to civilian objects.).
159
J. Fred Buzhardt, DoD General Counsel, Letter to Senator Edward Kennedy, Sept. 22, 1972, reprinted in 67 AJIL
122, 124 (1973) (The existing laws of armed conflict do not prohibit the use of weapons whose destructive force
cannot be limited to a specific military objective. The use of such weapons is not proscribed when their use is
necessarily required against a military target of sufficient importance to outweigh inevitable, but regrettable,
incidental casualties to civilians and destruction of civilian objects.). See also Edward Cummings, Head of the
U.S. Delegation to CCW Group of Government Experts, Statement, Jul. 17, 2002 (On proportionality. As the
paper noted, the law of armed conflict does not require the effects of weapons to be limited such that they cause no
civilian casualties. This would, unfortunately, be impossible. It does however, as Professor Greenwood points out,
342
use is required against a target of sufficient military importance to outweigh the incidental harm
that is expected to result. 160
As with the superfluous injury rule, in assessing whether weapons necessarily cause
excessive incidental harm, it will be important to consider whether the practice of States
demonstrates that they are prohibited as such. 161 For example, the United States regards nuclear
weapons not to be inherently disproportionate weapons. 162
Weapons that necessarily cause excessive incidental harm include blind or essentially
random weapons that are incapable of being controlled, and thus, cannot, with any degree of
certainty, be directed against a military objective. 163 The expected incidental harm from the use
of such weapons outweighs the little, if any, military utility of such weapons. 164
Weapons that necessarily cause excessive incidental harm also include weapons whose
uncontrollable nature is such that, even when directed against military objectives, they otherwise
are expected invariably to cause excessive incidental harm. For example, using communicable
diseases such as the plague as weapons has been prohibited, in part because such use would
almost inevitably cause excessive incidental harm among the civilian population compared to the
military advantages from their use. 165
6.8 POISON, POISONED WEAPONS, POISONOUS GASES, AND OTHER CHEMICAL WEAPONS
The use of poison, poisoned weapons, poison and asphyxiating gases, and other chemical
weapons is prohibited.
require compliance with the principle of proportionality with respect to the use of weapons and thus requires an
assessment of the risks posed to civilians in the context of the military advantage hoped for.).
160
Refer to 5.12 (Proportionality in Conducting Attacks).
161
Refer to 6.6.3.3 (Clearly Disproportionate).
162
Written Statement of the Government of the United States of America, 23, Jun. 20, 1995, I.C.J., Request by the
United Nations General Assembly for an Advisory Opinion on the Legality of the Threat or Use of Nuclear
Weapons (Whether an attack with nuclear weapons would be disproportionate depends entirely on the
circumstances, including the nature of the enemy threat, the importance of destroying the objective, the character,
size and likely effects of the device, and the magnitude of the risk to civilians. Nuclear weapons are not inherently
disproportionate.).
163
1976 AIR FORCE PAMPHLET 110-31 6-3c (Indiscriminate weapons are those incapable of being controlled,
through design or function, and thus they can not, with any degree of certainty be directed against military
objectives.); BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 305 (AP I art. 51, 2.5.2.2) (The provision of subpara. 4.b. to
methods which cannot be directed at a specific military objective prohibits blind weapons which cannot, with any
reasonable assurance, be directed against a military objective. Attaching incendiary or antipersonnel bombs to free
floating balloons, or using long range missiles with only a rudimentary guidance system are examples of this type of
weapon.).
164
1976 AIR FORCE PAMPHLET 110-31 6-3c (Use of such essentially unguided weapons could be expected to
cause unlawful excessive injury to civilians and damage to civilian objects.).
165
Refer to 6.9.1 (Biological Weapons Prohibition on Use as a Method of Warfare).
343
6.8.1 Poison and Poisoned Weapons. It is especially forbidden to use poison or poisoned
weapons. 166 For example, poisoning the enemys food or water supply is prohibited. 167
Similarly, adding poison to weapons is prohibited. The rule against poison and poisoned
weapons reflected in the 1899 Hague II Regulations has been interpreted not to include poison
gas weapons that were developed during the modern era, which were subsequently prohibited. 168
Poisons are understood to be substances that cause death or disability with permanent
effects when, in even small quantities, they are ingested, enter the lungs or bloodstream, or touch
the skin. 169
The longstanding prohibition against poison is based on: (1) their uncontrolled character;
(2) the inevitability of death or permanent disability; and (3) the traditional belief that it is
treacherous to use poison. 170
166
See HAGUE IV REG. art. 23(a) (it is especially forbidden [t]o employ poison or poisoned weapons;); 1899
HAGUE II REG. art. 23(a) (same); LIEBER CODE art. 16 (military necessity does not admit of the use of poison in any
way,); LIEBER CODE art. 70 (The use of poison in any manner, be it to poison wells, or food, or arms, is wholly
excluded from modern warfare. He that uses it puts himself out of the pale of the law and usages of war.).
167
1958 UK MANUAL 112 (Water in wells, pumps, pipes, reservoirs, lakes, rivers, and the like, from which the
enemy may draw drinking water, must not be poisoned or contaminated. The poisoning or contamination of water is
not made lawful by posting up a notice informing the enemy that the water has been thus polluted. There is,
however, no rule to prevent measures being taken to dry up springs and to divert rivers and aqueducts.).
168
WILLIAM H. BOOTHBY, WEAPONS AND THE LAW OF ARMED CONFLICT 122 (2009) (The Hague Peace
Conference of 1899 tackled the problem [of poison gas attacks]. The delegates at that conference made no direct
association between poison, which they considered to be an ancient and barbarous form of warfare, and poison gas,
which was seen as a novel weapon the product of scientific advance.).
169
1976 AIR FORCE PAMPHLET 110-31 6-4f (Poisons are biological or chemical substances causing death or
disability with permanent effects when, in even small quantities, they are ingested, enter the lungs or bloodstream, or
touch the skin.).
170
1976 AIR FORCE PAMPHLET 110-31 6-4f (The longstanding customary prohibition against poison is based on
their uncontrolled character and the inevitability of death or permanent disability as well as on a traditional belief
that it is treacherous to use poison.).
171
Written Statement of the Government of the United States of America, 24, Jun. 20, 1995, I.C.J., Request by the
United Nations General Assembly for an Advisory Opinion on the Legality of the Threat or Use of Nuclear
Weapons (This prohibition was established with particular reference to projectiles that carry poison into the body of
the victim. It was not intended to apply, and has not been applied, to weapons that are designed to injure or cause
destruction by other means, even though they also may create toxic byproducts. For example, the prohibition on
poison weapons does not prohibit conventional explosives or incendiaries, even though they may produce dangerous
fumes. By the same token, it does not prohibit nuclear weapons, which are designed to injure or cause destruction
by means other than poisoning the victim, even though nuclear explosions may also create toxic radioactive
byproducts.).
344
been understood not to prohibit the use of chemical herbicides that are harmless to human
beings. 173 Other rules, however, may apply to the use of herbicides. 174
6.8.2 Asphyxiating, Poisonous, or Other Gases, and All Analogous Liquids, Materials, or
Devices. It is prohibited to use in war asphyxiating, poisonous, or other gases, and all analogous
liquids, materials, or devices. 175 The United States has determined that this rule is part of
customary international law. 176
Although the rule appears quite broad, it has been understood only to apply to the use of
gases that are designed to kill or injure human beings. 177 Thus, herbicides and riot control agents
172
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 37b (explaining that the prohibition against poison or poison weapons in
the Hague IV Regulations prohibits the use in war of poison or poisoned weapons against human beings.).
173
J. Fred Buzhardt, DoD General Counsel, Letter to Chairman Fulbright, Senate Committee on Foreign Relations,
Apr. 5, 1971, 10 INTERNATIONAL LEGAL MATERIALS 1300, 1302 (1971) (explaining the DoD view that it does not
regard chemical herbicides, harmless to man, as poison or poisoned weapons, for if they had been so considered,
their use against crops intended solely for the consumption by the enemys armed forces would clearly have been
prohibited by Article 23(a) of the Hague Regulations.).
174
Refer to 6.17 (Herbicides).
175
1925 GENEVA GAS AND BACTERIOLOGICAL PROTOCOL (Whereas the use in war of asphyxiating, poisonous or
other gases, and of all analogous liquids materials or devices, has been justly condemned by the general opinion of
the civilised world; and Whereas the prohibition of such use has been declared in Treaties to which the majority of
Powers of the world are Parties; and To the end that this prohibition shall be universally accepted as part of
International Law, binding alike the conscience and the practice of nations; DECLARE: That the High Contracting
Parties, so far as they are not already Parties to Treaties prohibiting such use, accept this prohibition, agree to extend
this prohibition to the use of bacteriological methods of warfare and agree to be bound as between themselves
according to the terms of this declaration.). Consider Treaty in Relation to the Use of Submarines and Noxious
Gases in Warfare, art. 5, Feb. 6, 1922, reprinted in 16 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL DOCUMENTS 57, 59 (1922)
(The use in war of asphyxiating, poisonous or other gases, and all analogous liquids, materials or devices, having
been justly condemned by the general opinion of the civilized world and a prohibition of such use having been
declared in treaties to which a majority of the civilized Powers are parties, The Signatory Powers, to the end that this
prohibition shall be universally accepted as a part of international law binding alike the conscience and practice of
nations, declare their assent to such prohibition, agree to be bound thereby as between themselves and invite all
other civilized nations to adhere thereto.); Declaration to Abstain From the Use of Projectiles the Object of Which
Is the Diffusion of Asphyxiating or Deleterious Gases, Jul. 29, 1899, reprinted in 1 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL
DOCUMENTS 157 (1907) (The Contracting Powers agree to abstain from the use of projectiles the object of which is
the diffusion of asphyxiating or deleterious gases.).
176
Franklin D. Roosevelt, Statement Warning the Axis Against Using Poison Gas, Jun. 8, 1943 (From time to time
since the present war began there have been reports that one or more of the Axis powers were seriously
contemplating use of poisonous or noxious gases or other inhumane devices of warfare. Use of such weapons
has been outlawed by the general opinion of civilized mankind.); Myron C. Cramer, The Judge Advocate General,
U.S. Army, Memorandum re: Destruction of Crops by Chemicals, 2, Mar. 1945, 10 INTERNATIONAL LEGAL
MATERIALS 1304, 1305 (1971) (noting that [a]n exhaustive study of the source materials, however, warrants the
conclusion that a customary rule of international law has developed by which poisonous gases and those causing
unnecessary suffering are prohibited).
177
Myron C. Cramer, The Judge Advocate General, U.S. Army, Memorandum re: Destruction of Crops by
Chemicals, 3, Mar. 1945, 10 INTERNATIONAL LEGAL MATERIALS 1304, 1305 (1971) (Nevertheless, the scope of
this prohibition is restricted. It does not constitute a complete ban on all gases and chemical substances. A
distinction exists between the employment of poisonous and deleterious gases against enemy human beings, and the
use of chemical agents to destroy property, such as natural vegetation, crop cultivations, and the like. The true
345
are not prohibited by this rule. 178 In addition, the rule is understood only to prohibit weapons
whose prime, or even exclusive, effect is to poison or asphyxiate. 179 Thus, for example, smoke,
flame, napalm, conventional explosives, and nuclear weapons are not covered by this rule, even
though these weapons may produce asphyxiating or poisonous byproducts. 180
(a) Toxic chemicals and their precursors, except where intended for purposes not
prohibited under this Convention, as long as the types and quantities are
consistent with such purposes;
(b) Munitions and devices, specifically designed to cause death or other harm
through the toxic properties of those toxic chemicals specified in subparagraph
(a), which would be released as a result of the employment of such munitions and
devices;
(c) Any equipment specifically designed for use directly in connection with the
employment of munitions and devices specified in subparagraph (b). 181
Toxic chemicals refer to any chemical that through its chemical action on life processes
can cause death, temporary incapacitation, or permanent harm to humans or animals. This
includes all such chemicals, regardless of their origin or of their method of production, and
motive behind the movement to outlaw poison gas is that it is considered a barbarous and inhumane weapon against
human beings, because it inflicts unnecessary suffering upon them.).
178
William P. Rogers, Letter of Submittal, Aug. 11, 1970, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE 1925
GENEVA GAS AND BACTERIOLOGICAL PROTOCOL VI (It is the United States understanding of the Protocol that it
does not prohibit the use in war of riot-control agents and chemical herbicides.).
179
Legality of the Threat or Use of Nuclear Weapons, Advisory Opinion, 1996 I.C.J. 226, 248 (55) (The Court
will observe that the Regulations annexed to the Hague Convention IV do not define what is to be understood by
poison or poisoned weapons and that different interpretations exist on the issue. Nor does the 1925 Protocol
specify the meaning to be given to the term analogous materials or devices. The terms have been understood, in
the practice of States, in their ordinary sense as covering weapons whose prime, or even exclusive, effect is to
poison or asphyxiate. This practice is clear, and the parties to those instruments have not treated them as referring to
nuclear weapons.).
180
See William P. Rogers, Letter of Submittal, Aug. 11, 1970, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE
1925 GENEVA GAS AND BACTERIOLOGICAL PROTOCOL VI (Smoke, flame, and napalm are also not covered by the
Protocol.); Written Statement of the Government of the United States of America, 25, Jun. 20, 1995, I.C.J., Request
by the United Nations General Assembly for an Advisory Opinion on the Legality of the Threat or Use of Nuclear
Weapons (Once again, the [1925 Geneva Gas and Bacteriological] Protocol does not prohibit conventional
explosives or incendiary weapons, even though they may produce asphyxiating or poisonous byproducts, and it
likewise does not prohibit nuclear weapons.); GREENSPAN, MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 359 (The use of
smoke for smoke screens concealing movements and operations could not be considered an infringement of the law
against gas warfare.).
181
CHEMICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION art. 2(1).
346
regardless of whether they are produced in facilities, in munitions, or elsewhere. 182 Chemicals
that only cause harm to plants, such as herbicides, are not covered. 183 In addition, toxic
chemicals intended for purposes not prohibited by the Chemical Weapons Convention are also
excluded, so long as they are of a type and quantity consistent with these purposes that are not
prohibited. 184
Precursor means any chemical reactant (including any key component of a binary or
multicomponent chemical system) that takes part at any stage in the production by whatever
method of a toxic chemical. 185 Key component of a binary or multicomponent chemical system
means the precursor that plays the most important role in determining the toxic properties of the
final product and reacts rapidly with other chemicals in the binary or multicomponent system. 186
Equipment specifically designed for use directly in connection with the employment of
such munitions and devices only applies to equipment designed solely for use with chemical
weapons and does not, for example, include equipment that is designed also for purposes that are
not prohibited. 187
182
CHEMICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION art. 2(2) (Toxic Chemical means: Any chemical which through its
chemical action on life processes can cause death, temporary incapacitation or permanent harm to humans or
animals. This includes all such chemicals, regardless of their origin or of their method of production, and regardless
of whether they are produced in facilities, in munitions or elsewhere. (For the purpose of implementing this
Convention, toxic chemicals which have been identified for the application of verification measures are listed in
Schedules contained in the Annex on Chemicals.)). See also Article-by-Article Analysis of the Chemical Weapons
Convention, 9, Attachment to Peter Tarnoff, Acting, Letter of Submittal, Nov. 20, 1993, MESSAGE FROM THE
PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CHEMICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION 9 (The wording of this definition [in paragraph
2 of Article 2] is intended to cover toxins, as well as organic and inorganic chemicals, and chemicals produced by
binary and multicomponent weapons.).
183
Refer to 6.17 (Herbicides).
184
Refer to 6.8.3.4 (Certain Uses of Toxic Chemicals Not Prohibited).
185
CHEMICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION art. 2(3) (Precursor means: Any chemical reactant which takes part at any
stage in the production by whatever method of a toxic chemical. This includes any key component of a binary or
multicomponent chemical system.).
186
CHEMICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION art. 2(4) (Key Component of Binary or Multicomponent Chemical
Systems (hereinafter referred to as key component) means: The precursor which plays the most important role in
determining the toxic properties of the final product and reacts rapidly with other chemicals in the binary or
multicomponent system.).
187
See Article-by-Article Analysis of the Chemical Weapons Convention, 9, Attachment to Peter Tarnoff, Acting,
Letter of Submittal, Nov. 20, 1993, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CHEMICAL WEAPONS
CONVENTION 9 (Note that the term directly in subparagraph 1(c) is intended to mean solely. Thus, dual-use
munitions and their components are not considered to be chemical weapons provided they do not otherwise meet
this definition. For example, dual-use munitions may be used to disperse chemicals not prohibited by the
Convention, such as smoke, provided the munitions have not been specifically designed to cause death through the
release of toxic chemicals. Also, dual-use weapons systems such as artillery or aircraft that are capable of
employing chemical weapons are not covered by this definition, and so are not subject to the destruction
requirements.).
347
to use chemical weapons;
to assist, encourage, or induce, in any way, anyone to engage in any activity prohibited to
a Party to the Chemical Weapons Convention. 188
These prohibitions apply in any circumstances. For example, chemical weapons may not
be used in international armed conflict and non-international armed conflicts. 189 Similarly,
chemical weapons may not be used in retaliation after a State has suffered from a chemical
weapons attack, even if that attack has been conducted by a State that is not a Party to the
Chemical Weapons Convention. 190
188
CHEMICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION art. 1(1) (Each State Party to this Convention undertakes never under any
circumstances: (a) To develop, produce, otherwise acquire, stockpile or retain chemical weapons, or transfer,
directly or indirectly, chemical weapons to anyone; (b) To use chemical weapons; (c) To engage in any military
preparations to use chemical weapons; (d) To assist, encourage or induce, in any way, anyone to engage in any
activity prohibited to a State Party under this Convention.).
189
Article-by-Article Analysis of the Chemical Weapons Convention, 4, Attachment to Peter Tarnoff, Acting, Letter
of Submittal, Nov. 20, 1993, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CHEMICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION
4 (Moreover, the prohibition on the use of chemical weapons extends beyond solely their use in international armed
conflicts, i.e. chemical weapons may not be used in any type of situation, including purely domestic conflicts, civil
wars or state-sponsored terrorism. As such, this article closes a loophole in the Geneva Protocol of 1925, which
covered only uses in war, i.e. international armed conflicts.).
190
Article-by-Article Analysis of the Chemical Weapons Convention, 4, Attachment to Peter Tarnoff, Acting, Letter
of Submittal, Nov. 20, 1993, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CHEMICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION
4 (The prohibitions are phrased as undertakings never under any circumstances to engage in certain activities
related to chemical weapons. Thus, the prohibitions apply to a State Party even if chemical weapons are used
against it and even if those chemical weapons are used by a State not Party to the Convention, i.e. even retaliatory
use of chemical weapons is banned.).
191
CHEMICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION art. 1(2) (Each State Party undertakes to destroy chemical weapons it owns
or possesses, or that are located in any place under its jurisdiction or control, in accordance with the provisions of
this Convention.); CHEMICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION art. 1(4) (Each State Party undertakes to destroy any
chemical weapons production facilities it owns or possesses, or that are located in any place under its jurisdiction or
control, in accordance with the provisions of this Convention.).
348
for safety and security considerations, reasonable efforts should be made to secure and retain
information regarding the chemical weapons. 192
6.8.3.4 Certain Uses of Toxic Chemicals Not Prohibited. The Chemical Weapons
Convention does not prohibit the use of toxic chemicals and their precursors for certain
purposes. 193 Toxic chemicals and their precursors that are used for these purposes are not
considered chemical weapons, so long as they are of a type and quantity consistent with these
permitted purposes. 194 These purposes include:
protective purposes, namely those purposes directly related to protection against toxic
chemicals and to protection against chemical weapons;
military purposes not connected with the use of chemical weapons and not dependent on
the use of the toxic properties of chemicals as a method of warfare; and
Seeking to develop and use means of protection against chemical weapons is permissible,
provided such protection is not intended to facilitate the use of chemical weapons or for other
purposes prohibited by the Chemical Weapons Convention. 196
192
See Ireland, Facilitators Paper, Concerning the Mandate Created by the Executive Council at its Fifty-Eighth
Sessions Under the Heading Other Destruction-Related Issues, Oct. 8, 2010, Organization for the Prohibition of
Chemical Weapons Doc. No. EC-62/NAT.11.
193
CHEMICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION art. 6(1) (Each State Party has the right, subject to the provisions of this
Convention, to develop, produce, otherwise acquire, retain, transfer and use toxic chemicals and their precursors for
purposes not prohibited under this Convention.).
194
Article-by-Article Analysis of the Chemical Weapons Convention, 13, Attachment to Peter Tarnoff, Acting, Letter
of Submittal, Nov. 20, 1993, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CHEMICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION
13 (Paragraph 9 of Article II defines, in four subparagraphs, the phrase purposes not prohibited under this
Convention. This phrase is important because it forms the basis for many exceptions to obligations or prohibited
activities. This provision means that toxic chemicals and their precursors that are used for one or more of these
enumerated purposes are not chemical weapons, so long as they are of a type and quantity consistent with these
permitted purposes.).
195
CHEMICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION art. 2(9) (Purposes Not Prohibited Under this Convention means: (a)
Industrial, agricultural, research, medical, pharmaceutical or other peaceful purposes; (b) Protective purposes,
namely those purposes directly related to protection against toxic chemicals and to protection against chemical
weapons; (c) Military purposes not connected with the use of chemical weapons and not dependent on the use of the
toxic properties of chemicals as a method of warfare; (d) Law enforcement including domestic riot control
purposes.).
196
CHEMICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION art. 10(2) (Nothing in this Convention shall be interpreted as impeding the
right of any State Party to conduct research into, develop, produce, acquire, transfer or use means of protection
against chemical weapons, for purposes not prohibited under this Convention.).
349
6.9 BIOLOGICAL WEAPONS
Biological weapons, including bacteriological and toxin weapons, are subject to a number
of prohibitions and restrictions.
A prohibition against the use of biological weapons may be understood to result from
U.S. obligations in the Biological Weapons Convention to refrain from developing, acquiring, or
retaining biological weapons. 200
197
Richard Nixon, Statement on Chemical and Biological Defense Policies and Programs, Nov. 25, 1969, 1969
PUBLIC PAPERS OF THE PRESIDENTS 968 (The United States shall renounce the use of lethal biological agents and
weapons, and all other methods of biological warfare.); 1925 GENEVA GAS AND BACTERIOLOGICAL PROTOCOL
(The High Contracting Parties agree to prohibit the use of bacteriological methods of warfare and agree to be
bound as between themselves according to the terms of this declaration.).
198
William P. Rogers, Letter of Submittal, Aug. 11, 1970, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE 1925
GENEVA GAS AND BACTERIOLOGICAL PROTOCOL VI (The United States considers the term bacteriological methods
of warfare as used in the Protocol encompasses all biological methods of warfare and the use in warfare of toxins
however produced.).
199
For example, Verdict of the Military Tribunal, MATERIALS ON THE TRIAL OF FORMER SERVICEMEN OF THE
JAPANESE ARMY CHARGED WITH MANUFACTURING AND EMPLOYING BACTERIOLOGICAL WEAPONS 529-30 (1950)
(The Japanese imperialists employed bacteriological weapons in the war against China and in sabotage raids
against the U.S.S.R. In 1940 a special expedition of Detachment 731 commanded by General Ishii was despatched
to the theatre of hostilities in Central China, where, by dropping plague-infected fleas from aircraft with special
apparatus, it caused a plague epidemic in the Nimpo area. This criminal operation which brought in its wake
thousands of victims among the peaceful Chinese population was filmed, and this film was later demonstrated in
Detachment 731 to representatives of the High Command of the Japanese Army, among the accused Yamada.).
200
William P. Rogers, Report of the Secretary of State, Jun. 21, 1972, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT OF THE
UNITED STATES TRANSMITTING THE CONVENTION ON THE PROHIBITION OF THE DEVELOPMENT, PRODUCTION, AND
STOCKPILING OF BACTERIOLOGICAL (BIOLOGICAL) AND TOXIN WEAPONS, AND ON THEIR DESTRUCTION, OPENED
FOR SIGNATURE AT WASHINGTON, LONDON AND MOSCOW ON APRIL 10, 1972, EXECUTIVE Q, 3 (1972) (While this
Convention does not explicitly ban the use of biological weapons, no Party to the Convention would be permitted to
possess such weapons even in wartime. There is no possibility that a Party could use biological or toxin weapons
without being in violation of Articles I and II of this Convention.). Refer to 6.9.2 (Biological Weapons
Prohibition on Development, Acquisition, or Retention).
201
Richard Nixon, Statement on Chemical and Biological Defense Policies and Programs, Nov. 25, 1969, 1969
PUBLIC PAPERS OF THE PRESIDENTS 968 (Biological weapons have massive, unpredictable and potentially
uncontrollable consequences. They may produce global epidemics and impair the health of future generations.);
1976 AIR FORCE PAMPHLET 110-31 6-4(b) (The wholly indiscriminate and uncontrollable nature of biological
weapons has resulted in the condemnation of biological weapons by the international community, and the practice of
states in refraining from their use in warfare has confirmed this rule.); ICRC AP COMMENTARY 623 (1965)
(There are some weapons which by their very nature have an indiscriminate effect. The example of bacteriological
means of warfare is an obvious illustration of this point.).
350
6.9.1.1 Toxin Weapons. The term toxin refers to poisonous chemical substances
that are naturally produced by living organisms, and that, if present in the body, produce effects
similar to disease in the human body. 202 Toxins are not living organisms and thus are not
capable of reproducing themselves and transmissible from one person to another. 203
Toxin weapons have been regulated in connection with biological weapons because they
have been produced in facilities similar to those used for the production of biological agents. 204
However, even toxins that are produced synthetically, and not through biological processes, fall
within these prohibitions. Substances that are classified as toxins for the purpose of applying
the requirements of the Biological Weapons Convention may also be classified as chemical
weapons that are subject to the requirements of the Chemical Weapons Convention. 205
weapons, equipment or means of delivery designed to use such agents or toxins for
hostile purposes or in armed conflict. 206
202
William P. Rogers, Report of the Secretary of State, Jun. 21, 1972, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT OF THE
UNITED STATES TRANSMITTING THE CONVENTION ON THE PROHIBITION OF THE DEVELOPMENT, PRODUCTION, AND
STOCKPILING OF BACTERIOLOGICAL (BIOLOGICAL) AND TOXIN WEAPONS, AND ON THEIR DESTRUCTION, OPENED
FOR SIGNATURE AT WASHINGTON, LONDON AND MOSCOW ON APRIL 10, 1972, EXECUTIVE Q, 3 (1972) (Toxins are
poisonous chemical substances which are naturally produced by living organisms and which, if present in the body,
produce effects comparable to those of infection by hostile organisms.).
203
Office of the White House Press Secretary, The United States renounces offensive preparations for and the use of
toxins as a method of warfare, Feb. 14, 1970, reprinted in DEPARTMENT OF STATE, FOREIGN RELATIONS OF THE
UNITED STATES, 1969-1976, VOLUME E-2, DOCUMENTS ON ARMS CONTROL, 1969-1972, Document 189 (2007)
(Toxins are chemical substances, not living organisms, and are so regarded by the U.N. Secretary General and the
World Health Organization. Although the effects of some toxins are commonly described as disease, they are not
capable of reproducing themselves and are not, transmissible from one person to another.).
204
Office of the White House Press Secretary, The United States renounces offensive preparations for and the use of
toxins as a method of warfare, Feb. 14, 1970, reprinted in DEPARTMENT OF STATE, FOREIGN RELATIONS OF THE
UNITED STATES, 1969-1976, VOLUME E-2, DOCUMENTS ON ARMS CONTROL, 1969-1972, Document 189 (2007)
(However, the production of toxins in any significant quantity would require facilities similar to those needed for
the production of biological agents. If the United States continued to operate such facilities, it would be difficult for
others to know whether they were being used to produce only toxins but not biological agents. Moreover, though
toxins of the type useful for military purposes could conceivably be produced by chemical synthesis in the future,
the end products would be the same and their effects would be indistinguishable from toxins produced by
bacteriological or other biological processes.).
205
Refer to 6.8.3.1 (Definition of Chemical Weapons).
206
BIOLOGICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION art. 1 (Each State Party to this Convention undertakes never in any
circumstances to develop, produce, stockpile or otherwise acquire or retain: (1) microbial or other biological agents,
or toxins whatever their origin or method of production, of types and in quantities that have no justification for
prophylactic, protective or other peaceful purposes; (2) weapons, equipment or means of delivery designed to use
such agents or toxins for hostile purposes or in armed conflict.).
351
6.9.3 Biological Weapons Prohibition on Transfer or Assisting, Encouraging, or
Inducing the Manufacture or Acquisition. It is also prohibited to transfer or to assist, encourage,
or induce others to acquire biological weapons. 207
The exchange of equipment, materials, and scientific and technological information for
the use of bacteriological and biological agents and toxins for peaceful purposes, such as the
prevention of disease, however, is not restricted. 208
6.10.2 Having Widespread, Long-Lasting, or Severe Effects. The techniques must have
widespread, long-lasting, or severe effects. These terms are interpreted as follows:
207
BIOLOGICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION art. 3 (Each State Party to this Convention undertakes not to transfer to
any recipient whatsover [sic], directly or indirectly, and not in any way to assist, encourage, or induce any State,
group of States or international organisations to manufacture or otherwise acquire any of the agents, toxins,
weapons, equipment or means of delivery specified in Article I of the Convention.).
208
BIOLOGICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION art. 10(1) (The States Parties to this Convention undertake to facilitate, and
have the right to participate in, the fullest possible exchange of equipment, materials and scientific and technological
information for the use of bacteriological (biological) agents and toxins for peaceful purposes. Parties to the
Convention in a position to do so shall also co-operate in contributing individually or together with other States or
international organisations to the further development and application of scientific discoveries in the field of
bacteriology (biology) for the prevention of disease, or for other peaceful purposes.); BIOLOGICAL WEAPONS
CONVENTION art. 10(2) (This Convention shall be implemented in a manner designed to avoid hampering the
economic or technological development of States Parties to the Convention or international co-operation in the field
of peaceful bacteriological (biological) activities, including the international exchange of bacteriological (biological)
agents and toxins and equipment for the processing, use or production of bacteriological (biological) agents and
toxins for peaceful purposes in accordance with the provisions of the Convention.).
209
ENMOD CONVENTION art. 1(1) (Each State Party to this Convention undertakes not to engage in military or any
other hostile use of environmental modification techniques having widespread, long-lasting or severe effects as the
means of destruction, damage or injury to any other State Party.).
210
ENMOD CONVENTION art. 1(2) (Each State Party to this Convention undertakes not to assist, encourage or
induce any State, group of States or international organization to engage in activities contrary to the provisions of
paragraph 1 of this article.).
211
ENMOD CONVENTION art. 2 (The term Environmental modification techniques refers to any technique for
changing through the deliberate manipulation of natural processes the dynamics, composition or structure of the
earth, including its biota, lithosphere, hydrosphere and atmosphere, or of outer space.).
352
(a) widespread: encompassing an area on the scale of several hundred square
kilometers;
For example, earthquakes, tsunamis, and cyclones are environmental effects likely to be
widespread, long-lasting, or severe that could be caused by the use of environmental
modification techniques. 213 On the other hand, dispelling fog to facilitate military or combat
operations may involve the use of environmental modification techniques that would not have
widespread, long-lasting, or severe effects. 214
212
Cyrus Vance, Letter of Submittal, Aug. 31, 1978, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT OF THE UNITED STATES
TRANSMITTING THE CONVENTION ON THE PROHIBITION OF MILITARY OR ANY OTHER HOSTILE USE OF
ENVIRONMENTAL MODIFICATION TECHNIQUES, SIGNED AT GENEVA ON MAY 18, 1977, EXECUTIVE K, 4 (1978)
(According to the Understanding related to this Article the terms widespread, long-lasting and severe, for
purposes of this Convention only, are to be interpreted as follows: (a) widespread: encompassing an area on the
scale of several hundred square kilometers; (b) long-lasting: lasting for a period of months, or approximately a
season; (c) severe: involving serious or significant disruption or harm to human life, natural and economic
resources or other assets.). See also U.N. Conference of the Committee on Disarmament, New York, U.S., Dec.
10, 1976, Report of the Conference of the Committee on Disarmament: Official records: Thirty-first session,
Supplement No. 27 92 U.N. Doc A/31/27 (Vol I) (1976) (Referring to suggestions at the previous years session
and at the General Assembly that the phrase having widespread, long-lasting or severe effects be eliminated, the
delegation of the United States held that the phrase was necessary to ensure that the ban could be implemented
successfully and would not give rise to friction over trivial issues: the phrase served to avoid the risk of unprovable
claims of violation while eliminating the use of techniques with significant effects.).
213
See U.N. Conference of the Committee on Disarmament, Report of the Conference of the Committee on
Disarmament, U.N. Official records: Thirty-First Session, Supplement No. 27, U.N. Doc A/31/27 (Vol I) 92 (Dec.
10, 1976) (It is the understanding of the Committee that the following examples are illustrative of phenomena that
could be caused by the use of environmental modification techniques as defined in article II of the Convention:
earthquakes; tsunamis; an upset in the ecological balance of a region; changes in weather patterns (clouds,
precipitation, cyclones of various types and tornadic storms); changes in climate patterns; changes in ocean currents;
changes in the state of the ozone layer; and changes in the state of the ionosphere.).
214
Rear Admiral Edward F. Welch, Jr., Deputy Director for International Negotiations, Plans and Policy Directorate,
Joint Chiefs of Staff, Environmental Modication Treaty: Hearing Before the Committee on Foreign Relations, U.S.
Senate, Ninety-Fifth Congress, Second Session, 31 (Oct. 3, 1978) (I think the Joint Chiefs of Staff prefer to have
this threshold treaty with these stipulations in it rather than a complete foreclosure of any military options. The
example I might cite, that was in the testimony given to this committee in 1974 was the case of the situation in
Belgium during the Battle of the Bulge where they had the opportunity and, had the technique been available for
cutting and dispelling the fog that attended that battle, it could have been done in 30 to 40 minutes. Dispelling the
fog that was there preventing the resupply of our units is now within the technology of limiting fog.).
353
ENMOD Convention does not prohibit damage to the environment, but reflects the idea that the
environment itself should not be used as an instrument of war. 215
The United States has not accepted these provisions 217 and has repeatedly expressed the
view that these provisions are overly broad and ambiguous and not a part of customary
law. 218 Articles 35(3) and 55 of AP I fail to acknowledge that use of such weapons is
215
Michael Moodie, United States Arms Control and Disarmament Agency, Statement before the Second Review
Conference of the Convention on the Prohibition of Military or Any Other Hostile Use of Environmental
Modification Techniques (Sept. 15, 1992) (The Environmental Modification Convention is not an Environmental
Protection Treaty; it is not a treaty to prohibit damage to the environment resulting from armed conflict. Rather, the
Environmental Modification Convention fills a special, but important niche reflecting the international communitys
consensus that the environment itself should not be used as an instrument of war.).
216
Written Statement of the Government of the United States of America, 29, Jun. 20, 1995, I.C.J., Request by the
United Nations General Assembly for an Advisory Opinion on the Legality of the Threat or Use of Nuclear
Weapons (Although one might imagine a hypothetical use of nuclear weapons to create an environmental
modification technique (for example, to cause an earthquake or tidal wave), the Convention does not prohibit other
uses of nuclear weapons (or any other weapon), even if they cause serious damage to the environment. Only the
deliberate manipulation of environmental forces to cause destruction is covered.).
217
See, e.g., United States, Statement on Ratification of the CCW, Accepting Protocols I & II, Mar. 24, 1995, 1861
UNTS 482, 483 (The United States considers that the fourth paragraph of the preamble to the Convention, which
refers to the substance of provisions of article 35 (3) and article 55 (1) of additional Protocol I to the Geneva
Conventions for the Protection of War Victims of August 12, 1949, applies only to States which have accepted those
provisions.).
218
U.S. RESPONSE TO ICRC CIHL STUDY 521 (France and the United States repeatedly have declared that Articles
35(3) and 55 of AP I, from which the Study derives the first sentence of rule 45, do not reflect customary
354
prohibited only if their use is clearly excessive in relation to the concrete and direct overall
military advantage anticipated. 219
It is prohibited to use any weapon the primary effect of which is to injure by fragments
that in the human body escape detection by X-rays. 221
6.11.1 Primary Effect. The prohibition requires that the fragments that are intended to
cause injury be made of materials that are detectable in the human body by X-rays.
Portions of many munitions, such as the casing, detonator, or timing mechanism, may be
made of nonmetallic parts or other substances that are not detectable by X-rays in order to reduce
weight, manufacturing costs, etc. These munitions are not prohibited because their primary
effect is not to injure by fragments that in the human body escape detection by X-rays. 222
6.11.2 Fragments That Injure by Penetrating the Human Body. The prohibition applies
only to weapons that are intended to injure by penetrating the human body. Thus, for example, a
international law. In their instruments of ratification of the 1980 CCW, both France and the United States asserted
that the preambular paragraph in the CCW treaty, which refers to the substance of Articles 35(3) and 55, applied
only to States that have accepted those articles. The U.S. State Department Principal Deputy Legal Adviser stated
during a conference in 1987 that the United States considered Articles 35 and 55 to be overly broad and ambiguous
and not a part of customary law.).
219
U.S. RESPONSE TO ICRC CIHL STUDY 528 endnote 30 (An example illustrates why States particularly those
not party to AP I are unlikely to have supported rule 45. Suppose that country A has hidden its chemical and
biological weapons arsenal in a large rainforest, and plans imminently to launch the arsenal at country B. Under
such a rule, country B could not launch a strike against that arsenal if it expects that such a strike may cause
widespread, long-term, and severe damage to the rainforest, even if it has evidence of country As imminent launch,
and knows that such a launch itself would cause environmental devastation.).
220
ENMOD CONVENTION art. 3(1) (The provisions of this Convention shall not hinder the use of environmental
modification techniques for peaceful purposes and shall be without prejudice to the generally recognized principles
and applicable rules of international law concerning such use.).
221
CCW PROTOCOL I (It is prohibited to use any weapon the primary effect of which is to injure by fragments
which in the human body escape detection by X-rays.).
222
Canada, Statement on Ratification of CCW, Accepting Protocols I, II, & III, Jun. 24, 1994, 1787 UNTS 501
(With respect to Protocol I, it is the understanding of the Government of Canada that the use of plastics or similar
materials for detonators or other weapons parts not designed to cause injury is not prohibited.). For example, W.
Hays Parks, Memorandum re: Advanced Combat Rifle; Request for Legal Review, 6 (May 21, 1990), reprinted in
THE ARMY LAWYER 18, 20 (Jul. 1990) ([B]oth the AAI and Steyr-Mannlicher ammunition employ liquid crystal
polymers in the sabot that holds the flechette in place. It is not necessary to determine whether liquid crystal
polymers are detectable by x-ray, as the sabot in each round is employed for effects other than injury to combatants.
(The wounding capability of the sabot is extremely limited, as it separates from the flechette, quickly loses its force,
and falls to the ground within one hundred feet of the muzzle.) The negotiation history of the UNCCW Protocol I is
clear that its prohibition would not extend to the polymer sabot in the AAI and Steyr ammunition.).
355
weapon that employs rubber projectiles that are unlikely to penetrate the skin need not be
detectable by X-rays.
6.11.3 Fragments Escaping Detection by X-Rays. The fragments must not be such that
they escape detection by X-rays. For example, a member of the armed forces engaged in the
authorized construction and/or employment of field-improvised booby-traps may not use glass
for fragments for the purpose of wounding enemy personnel. 223
In some cases, the fragments that otherwise would not be detectable by X-rays may be
modified in order to ensure that they would be detectable by X-rays. For example, projectiles
may be modified with a substance, such as barium sulfate, so that they are readily detectable by
X-rays if they happen to penetrate the skin. 224
As a class of weapons, landmines, booby-traps, and other devices are not specifically
prohibited under the law of war. However, certain landmines, booby-traps, and other devices are
prohibited. In addition, the use of landmines, booby-traps, and other devices is subject to certain
restrictions that the United States has accepted in the CCW Amended Mines Protocol.
6.12.1 Definition of Mine. The CCW Amended Mines Protocol defines a mine as a
munition placed under, on, or near the ground or other surface area and designed to be exploded
by the presence, proximity or contact of a person or vehicle. 225 The term mine thus includes
both anti-personnel and anti-vehicle mines, including anti-tank mines.
The mines to which the CCW Amended Mines Protocol relate are those used on land,
including those laid to interdict beaches, waterway crossings, or river crossings, but do not
include the use of anti-ship mines at sea or in inland waterways. 226 The rules on naval mines are
addressed in 13.11 (Naval Mines).
223
Refer to 6.12.4.1 (Mines, Booby-Traps, and Other Devices Calculated to Cause Superfluous Injury).
224
W. Hays Parks, Means and Methods of Warfare, 38 THE GEORGE WASHINGTON INTERNATIONAL LAW REVIEW
511, 524 note 53 (2006) (In 1998, the author conducted the legal review of the Modular Crowd Control Munition, a
less-lethal version of the M18 Claymore mine containing rubber instead of steel projectiles. While the chance of the
rubber projectiles penetrating the skin was negligible, the rubber projectiles were implanted with 5 percent Barium
Sulfate to make them detectable by x-ray and compliant with Protocol I of the UNCCW. See Office of The Judge
Advocate General of the Army, Memorandum of Law: Legal Review of Modular Crowd Control Munition
(MCCM) (Oct. 13, 1998) [hereinafter DAJA-IO: Modular Crowd Control Munition].) (insertion in original).
225
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 2(1) (Mine means a munition placed under, on or near the ground or
other surface area and designed to be exploded by the presence, proximity or contact of a person or vehicle.).
226
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 1(1) (This Protocol relates to the use on land of the mines, booby-traps
and other devices, defined herein, including mines laid to interdict beaches, waterway crossings or river crossings,
but does not apply to the use of anti-ship mines at sea or in inland waterways.).
356
The term mine does not include hand grenades. 227 A trip-wired hand grenade is not
considered a mine, but is considered a booby-trap under the CCW Amended Mines Protocol. 228
Some munitions, such as the Claymore, may be configured for detonation by command,
or by trip-wire. When used in trip-wire mode, they are mines and subject to corresponding
restrictions. When used in command-detonated mode, they are subject to the restrictions
applicable to other devices. 231
227
United States, Statement on Consent to Be Bound by the CCW Amended Mines Protocol, May 24, 1999, 2065
UNTS 128, 130 (For the purposes of the Amended Mines Protocol, the United States understands that - (C)
none of the provisions of the Amended Mines Protocol, including Article 2 (5), applies to hand grenades other than
trip-wired hand grenades.).
228
United States, Statement on Consent to Be Bound by the CCW Amended Mines Protocol, May 24, 1999, 2065
UNTS 128, 130 (For the purposes of the Amended Mines Protocol, the United States understands that - (B) a
trip-wired hand grenade shall be considered a booby-trap under Article 2(4) of the Amended Mines Protocol and
shall not be considered a mine or an anti-personnel mine under Article 2(1) or 2(3), respectively;). Refer to
6.12.2 (Definition of Booby-Trap).
229
Article-by-Article Analysis of CCW Amended Mines Protocol, 5, Enclosure A to Warren Christopher, Letter of
Submittal, Dec. 7, 1996, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL,
PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS, AND PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS 5 (The definition also
contemplates that mines can be emplaced in a variety of ways -- under, on or near the ground or other surface area.
This makes clear that the critical defining characteristic of a mine is not its relationship to the ground or other
surface area but rather its design function of being exploded by the presence, proximity or contact of a target, be that
target a person or a vehicle. (This applies whether a munition is designed for this purpose in the factory, or adapted
for this purpose in the field.)).
230
Refer to 6.12.10 (Rule for Using Booby-Traps and Other Devices).
231
Article-by-Article Analysis of CCW Amended Mines Protocol, 7, Enclosure A to Warren Christopher, Letter of
Submittal, Dec. 7, 1996, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL,
PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS, AND PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS 7 (With respect to
anti-personnel mines which have the potential to be either trip-wired or command-detonated, the definition applies
when such mines are used with a trip-wire or are otherwise target-activated. When such mines are command-
detonated, that is, exploded not by the target itself, but by an operator, they do not meet the definition of
antipersonnel mine and are therefore not subject to the restrictions imposed on anti-personnel mines. They do,
however, fall within the definition of other devices in paragraph 7.).
357
The design function of being activated by the target also distinguishes a mine from
unexploded ordnance that results from the malfunction of a munition. 232 Other rules address
unexploded ordnance. 233
Primarily was added to ensure that anti-vehicle mines equipped with anti-handling
devices (which often cause the mine to detonate by contact of a person) are not treated as anti-
personnel mines under the CCW Amended Mines Protocol. 235
232
Article-by-Article Analysis of CCW Amended Mines Protocol, 5, Enclosure A to Warren Christopher, Letter of
Submittal, Dec. 7, 1996, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL,
PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS, AND PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS 5 (It is also this
characteristic, i.e. that the munition is designed to be activated by the target, that distinguishes a mine from so-called
unexploded ordinance [sic] or UXO. UXO is not covered by the Protocol, either the 1980 or the amended version.
Unexploded ordinance [sic] is a result of a malfunction of a munition; UXO is not designed in any sense, and, in
particular, is not designed to be detonated by the presence, proximity or contact of person. Although UXO presents
a serious problem that requires concerted attention, it is a problem outside the scope of Protocol II.).
233
Refer to 6.20 (Explosive Remnants of War).
234
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 2(3) (Anti-personnel mine means a mine primarily designed to be
exploded by the presence, proximity or contact of a person and that will incapacitate, injure or kill one or more
persons.).
235
Article-by-Article Analysis of CCW Amended Mines Protocol, 6-7, Enclosure A to Warren Christopher, Letter of
Submittal, Dec. 7, 1996, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL,
PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS, AND PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS 6-7 (The first is the
word primarily in the phrase primarily designed. This element was added to ensure that anti-tank mines
equipped with anti-handling devices are not treated as anti-personnel mines. This was an important consideration
for U.S. military operations. Anti-personnel mines are frequently used in conjunction with anti-tank mines to
protect anti-tank mines against enemy removal during military operations. With increasing restrictions on the use of
anti-personnel mines, it was clear, from a military perspective, that alternative means of protecting anti-tank mines
against enemy removal during combat operations would be increasingly important. One such common alternative is
to equip anti-tank mines with anti-handling devices. But since such devices are, as a practical matter, intended to
cause an anti-tank mine to detonate if handled by a person, there was concern that an anti-tank mine equipped with
an anti-handling device would inadvertently fall within the definition of an anti-personnel mine, and be subject,
therefore, to the additional constraints imposed on anti-personnel mines. Adding the word primarily before
designed clarified that anti-tank mines that are equipped with anti-handling devices are not considered anti-
personnel mines as a result of being so equipped. This language was not intended to exclude from the restrictions on
anti-personnel mines any munition designed to perform the function of an anti-personnel mine.).
236
Article-by-Article Analysis of CCW Amended Mines Protocol, 7, Enclosure A to Warren Christopher, Letter of
Submittal, Dec. 7, 1996, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL,
PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS, AND PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS 7 (The second
additional element in the anti-personnel mine definition is the reference to incapacitating, injuring or killing one or
more persons. This description was understood to be broad enough to cover the range of hazards posed by anti-
358
Mines Protocol does not include non-lethal weapon technology that is designed temporarily to
disable, stun, or signal the presence of a person, but not to cause permanent incapacity. 237
6.12.1.4 Mines Other Than Anti-Personnel Mines. The CCW Amended Mines
Protocol uses the term mines other than anti-personnel mines to refer to anti-vehicle mines.
Anti-vehicle mines or mines other than anti-personnel mines are also sometimes referred to
as anti-tank mines. 238
The CCW Amended Mines Protocol defines mine in terms of a munition that is
designed to be exploded by a person or vehicle. 239 Thus, mines other than anti-personnel
mines are anti-vehicle mines. 240
Mines delivered from a land-based system from less than 500 meters, however, are not
considered to be remotely delivered, provided that they are used in accordance with Article 5 and
other relevant articles of the CCW Amended Mines Protocol. 242 These mines were excluded
from the definition of remotely delivered mines because, when delivered in the prescribed
manner, they can be accurately marked and precautions to protect civilians can be reliably
maintained.
personnel mines. Additionally, the term incapacitating does not restrict non-lethal weapon technology that may
temporarily disable, stun or signal the presence of person but not cause permanent incapacity.).
237
United States, Statement on Consent to Be Bound by the CCW Amended Mines Protocol, May 24, 1999, 2065
UNTS 128, 130 (The United States understands that nothing in the Amended Mines Protocol may be construed as
restricting or affecting in any way non-lethal weapon technology that is designed to temporarily disable, stun, signal
the presence of a person, or operate in any other fashion, but not to cause permanent incapacity.).
238
Article-by-Article Analysis of CCW Amended Mines Protocol, 8, Enclosure A to Warren Christopher, Letter of
Submittal, Dec. 7, 1996, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL,
PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS, AND PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS 8 (Finally, the term
anti-tank mine is not used or defined in the amended Protocol; such mines are referred to by the use of the phrase
mines other than anti-personnel mines, which includes all mines designed to be exploded by the presence,
proximity or contact of a vehicle. This formulation flows from the definitions for mine and anti-personnel mine
when read in light of each other. Throughout this analysis mines other than anti-personnel mines are also referred to
as anti-tank mines.).
239
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 2(1) (Mine means a munition placed under, on or near the ground or
other surface area and designed to be exploded by the presence, proximity or contact of a person or vehicle.).
240
See CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 2(3) (Anti-personnel mine means a mine primarily designed to be
exploded by the presence, proximity or contact of a person and that will incapacitate, injure or kill one or more
persons.).
241
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 2(2) (Remotely-delivered mine means a mine not directly emplaced but
delivered by artillery, missile, rocket, mortar, or similar means, or dropped from an aircraft.).
242
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 2(2) (Mines delivered from a land-based system from less than 500
metres are not considered to be remotely delivered, provided that they are used in accordance with Article 5 and
other relevant Articles of this Protocol.).
359
6.12.1.6 Mines With Compliant Self-Destruction and Self-Deactivation (SD/SDA)
Mechanisms. Certain types of mines may be equipped with self-destruction or self-neutralization
mechanisms, or be self-deactivating.
6.12.2 Definition of Booby-Trap. Under the CCW Amended Mines Protocol, a booby-
trap means any device or material that is designed, constructed, or adapted to kill or injure, and
that functions when a person disturbs or approaches an apparently harmless object or performs
an apparently safe act. 247
This includes field-expedient devices, e.g., a hand grenade attached to a door and rigged
to explode when the door is opened (as opening a door is an apparently safe act), as well as
devices designed in advance to function as booby-traps (such as explosive devices designed to
resemble civilian objects). 248
243
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 2(10) (Self-destruction mechanism means an incorporated or externally
attached automatically-functioning mechanism which secures the destruction of the munition into which it is
incorporated or to which it is attached.).
244
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 2(11) (Self-neutralization mechanism means an incorporated
automatically-functioning mechanism which renders inoperable the munition into which it is incorporated.).
245
Article-by-Article Analysis of CCW Amended Mines Protocol, 9, Enclosure A to Warren Christopher, Letter of
Submittal, Dec. 7, 1996, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL,
PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS, AND PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS 9 (The term is used in
Article 6 in relation to remotely-delivered mines other than anti-personnel mines. There are no technical
specifications for self-neutralization mechanisms in the Technical Annex.).
246
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 2(12) (Self-deactivating means automatically rendering a munition
inoperable by means of the irreversible exhaustion of a component, for example, a battery, that is essential to the
operation of the munition.).
247
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 2(4) (Booby-trap means any device or material which is designed,
constructed or adapted to kill or injure, and which functions unexpectedly when a person disturbs or approaches an
apparently harmless object or performs an apparently safe act.).
248
Article-by-Article Analysis of CCW Amended Mines Protocol, 8, Enclosure A to Warren Christopher, Letter of
Submittal, Dec. 7, 1996, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL,
PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS, AND PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS 8 ([Paragraph 4 of
360
6.12.3 Definition of Other Devices Similar to Mines. Other devices in the CCW
Amended Mines Protocol means manually emplaced munitions and devices, including
improvised explosive devices, designed to kill, injure, or damage, and which are actuated
manually, by remote control, or automatically after a lapse of time. 249
Other devices do not include munitions and devices that are not manually emplaced,
such as munitions that are remotely delivered.
Other devices do not include hand grenades. 250 However, trip-wired hand grenades are
regulated as booby traps. 251
6.12.4 Prohibited Classes of Mines, Booby-Traps, and Other Devices. Certain types of
mines, booby-traps, and other devices are prohibited. These types include:
mines, booby-traps, and other devices calculated to cause superfluous injury; 252
mines, booby-traps, and other devices specifically designed to detonate during detection
operations; 253
self-deactivating mines with anti-handling devices designed to function after the mines
operation; 254
Article 2 of the CCW Amended Mines Protocol] is understood to include, for example, a hand-grenade when
attached to a door and rigged to explode when the door opens, as well as devices designed in advance to function as
booby-traps.).
249
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 2(5) (Other devices means manually-emplaced munitions and devices
including improvised explosive devices designed to kill, injure or damage and which are actuated manually, by
remote control or automatically after a lapse of time.).
250
United States, Statement on Consent to Be Bound by the CCW Amended Mines Protocol, May 24, 1999, 2065
UNTS 128, 130 (For the purposes of the Amended Mines Protocol, the United States understands that - (C)
none of the provisions of the Amended Mines Protocol, including Article 2 (5), applies to hand grenades other than
trip-wired hand grenades.).
251
Refer to 6.12.2 (Definition of Booby-Trap).
252
Refer to 6.12.4.1 (Mines, Booby-Traps, and Other Devices Calculated to Cause Superfluous Injury).
253
Refer to 6.12.4.2 (Mines, Booby-Traps, and Other Devices Specifically Designed to Detonate During Detection
Operations).
254
Refer to 6.12.4.3 (Self-Deactivating Mines With Anti-Handling Devices Designed to Function After the Mines
Operation).
255
Refer to 6.12.4.4 (Non-Detectable Anti-Personnel Mines).
256
Refer to 6.12.4.5 (Remotely Delivered Anti-Personnel Mines Not in Compliance With Self-Destruction and
Self-Deactivation Requirements).
361
remotely delivered mines other than anti-personnel mines without a feasible SD/SDA
mechanism; 257
booby-traps and other devices in the form of apparently harmless portable objects
specifically designed to explode; 259 and
For example, mines and booby-traps filled with shards of glass as their primary wounding
mechanism would violate this prohibition. Such a weapon would be regarded as calculated to
cause superfluous injury because the shards would be undetectable by X-rays and would hinder
the medical treatment of the wound without offering any corresponding military advantage. 262 In
addition, such a weapon would be prohibited on the grounds that it used fragments non-
detectable by X-rays. 263
257
Refer to 6.12.4.6 (Remotely Delivered Mines Other Than Anti-Personnel Mines Without a Feasible SD/SDA
Mechanism).
258
Refer to 6.12.4.7 (Mines Produced After December 3, 1998, Without Identifying Information).
259
Refer to 6.12.4.8 (Booby-Traps and Other Devices in the Form of Apparently Harmless Portable Objects
Specifically Designed to Explode).
260
Refer to 6.12.4.9 (Certain Types of Prohibited Booby-Traps and Other Devices).
261
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 3(3) (It is prohibited in all circumstances to use any mine, booby-trap or
other device which is designed or of a nature to cause superfluous injury or unnecessary suffering.). Refer to 6.6
(Weapons Calculated to Cause Superfluous Injury).
262
Article-by-Article Analysis of CCW Amended Mines Protocol, 11, Enclosure A to Warren Christopher, Letter of
Submittal, Dec. 7, 1996, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL,
PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS, AND PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS 11 (Which types of
such weapons might cause unnecessary suffering can only be determined on a case-by-case basis, weighing the
suffering caused against the military necessity for its use. One example of a prohibited device might be a mine or
booby-trap that is filled with shards of glass. Such a weapon would likely be regarded as unnecessarily injurious
because the shards would be undetectable by X-ray in the victims body, and this would cause suffering that would
be wholly unnecessary for its military purpose. (In any case, the device would be prohibited by Protocol I of the
Convention on non-detectable fragments).).
263
Refer to 6.11 (Weapons Injuring by Fragments Not Detectable by X-Rays).
362
presence of commonly available mine detectors as a result of their magnetic or other non-contact
influence during normal use in detection operations. 264
This rule only applies to mines, booby-traps, and other devices that are specifically
designed to detonate through the normal use of non-contact mine detectors during mine detection
operations. Thus, mines, booby-traps, and other devices specifically designed to detonate upon
actual physical contact are permissible. 265 Similarly, anti-handling devices that are designed to
detonate a mine upon attempts to defuse or deactivate the mine are not prohibited by this rule.
The intent is to avoid situations where a self-deactivating mine, the life of which is
normally limited by the life of its battery, remains dangerous indefinitely as a result of a long-
lived anti-handling device. This would defeat the purpose of the self-deactivation function by
leaving a hazardous mine in place. 267
(a) With respect to anti-personnel mines produced after 1 January 1997, such
mines shall incorporate in their construction a material or device that enables the
mine to be detected by commonly-available technical mine detection equipment
264
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 3(5) (It is prohibited to use mines, booby-traps or other devices which
employ a mechanism or device specifically designed to detonate the munition by the presence of commonly
available mine detectors as a result of their magnetic or other non-contact influence during normal use in detection
operations.).
265
Article-by-Article Analysis of CCW Amended Mines Protocol, 12, Enclosure A to Warren Christopher, Letter of
Submittal, Dec. 7, 1996, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL,
PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS, AND PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS 12 (The provision
clearly excludes situations where actual physical contact with mine detectors or abnormal use of mine detectors is
required to detonate the mine. For example, a mines trip-wire or tilt-rod (a type of vertical trip-wire) may be pulled
or pushed in a sweep of a mine detector, setting off the mine. This would not constitute the use of a mine in
contravention of this provision.).
266
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 3(6) (It is prohibited to use a self-deactivating mine equipped with an
anti-handling device that is designed in such a manner that the anti-handling device is capable of functioning after
the mine has ceased to be capable of functioning.).
267
Article-by-Article Analysis of CCW Amended Mines Protocol, 15, Enclosure A to Warren Christopher, Letter of
Submittal, Dec. 7, 1996, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL,
PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS, AND PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS 15 (The intent is to
avoid situations where a self-deactivating mine, the life of which is normally limited by the life of its battery, is
dangerous indefinitely as a result of a long-lived anti-handling device. This would defeat the purpose of the self-
deactivation function by leaving a hazardous mine in place.).
268
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 4 (It is prohibited to use anti-personnel mines which are not detectable,
as specified in paragraph 2 of the Technical Annex.).
363
and provides a response signal equivalent to a signal from 8 grammes or more of
iron in a single coherent mass.
(b) With respect to anti-personnel mines produced before 1 January 1997, such
mines shall either incorporate in their construction, or have attached prior to their
emplacement, in a manner not easily removable, a material or device that enables
the mine to be detected by commonly-available technical mine detection
equipment and provides a response signal equivalent to a signal from 8 grammes
or more of iron in a single coherent mass.
(c) In the event that a High Contracting Party determines that it cannot
immediately comply with sub-paragraph (b), it may declare at the time of its
notification of consent to be bound by this Protocol that it will defer compliance
with sub-paragraph (b) for a period not to exceed 9 years from the entry into force
of this Protocol. In the meantime it shall, to the extent feasible, minimize the use
of anti-personnel mines that do not so comply. 269
All remotely delivered anti-personnel mines shall be designed and constructed so that no
more than 10% of activated mines will fail to self-destruct within 30 days after emplacement,
and each mine shall have a back-up self-deactivation feature designed and constructed so that, in
combination with the self-destruction mechanism, no more than one in one thousand activated
mines will function as a mine 120 days after emplacement. 271
269
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL 2.
270
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 6(2) (It is prohibited to use remotely-delivered anti-personnel mines
which are not in compliance with the provisions on self-destruction and self-deactivation in the Technical Annex.).
271
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL 3(a) (All remotely-delivered anti-personnel mines
shall be designed and constructed so that no more than 10% of activated mines will fail to self-destruct within 30
days after emplacement, and each mine shall have a back-up self-deactivation feature designed and constructed so
that, in combination with the self-destruction mechanism, no more than one in one thousand activated mines will
function as a mine 120 days after emplacement.).
272
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 6(3) (It is prohibited to use remotely-delivered mines other than anti-
personnel mines, unless, to the extent feasible, they are equipped with an effective self-destruction or self-
neutralization mechanism and have a back-up self-deactivation feature, which is designed so that the mine will no
longer function as a mine when the mine no longer serves the military purpose for which it was placed in position.).
364
6.12.4.7 Mines Produced After December 3, 1998, Without Identifying
Information. Subparagraph 1(d) of the Technical Annex to the CCW Amended Mines Protocol
provides:
The use of mines produced after the entry into force of this Protocol is prohibited
unless they are marked in English or in the respective national language or
languages with the following information:
The CCW Amended Mines Protocol entered into force on December 3, 1998. 273
This rule does not prohibit the use of booby-traps in connection with non-portable
objects, such as a door or gate.
273
Refer to 19.21.3 (CCW Amended Mines Protocol).
274
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 7(2) (It is prohibited to use booby-traps or other devices in the form of
apparently harmless portable objects which are specifically designed and constructed to contain explosive
material.).
275
During World War II, such devices were manufactured and intended to be used by guerilla forces operating in
denied areas or forces withdrawing from territory about to be occupied by enemy forces. See DEPARTMENT OF THE
ARMY FIELD MANUAL 5-31, Land Mines and Booby Traps, 1(d) (1943) (Factory-produced booby-traps (dirty trick
devices) are described. Most of these have been developed and used in the field by foreign armies.); id. at.
50(d)(4-5) (1943) (The Japanese manufactured a [tobacco] pipe boobytrap with a charge, detonator, and spring-
loaded striker. The Italians had a booby-trapped headset containing an electric detonator connected to the terminals
on the back. The connection of the headset into the line communication line initiated detonation.).
276
United States, Statement on Consent to Be Bound by the CCW Amended Mines Protocol, May 24, 1999, 2065
UNTS 128, 130 (For the purposes of the Amended Mines Protocol, the United States understands that - (A) the
365
hand grenade in the form of an apparently harmless portable object. Such improvisation of
booby-traps, for example, to retard an enemy advance, does not pose the same sort of danger to
the civilian population as the mass production of objects specifically designed as booby-traps. 277
o This includes the distinctive emblem of the red cross and red crescent and the
distinctive emblem for cultural property. 279
childrens toys or other portable objects or products specially designed for the feeding,
health, hygiene, clothing, or education of children;
food or drink;
o The United States has reserved the right to use other devices to destroy any stock
of food or drink that is judged likely to be used by an enemy military force, if due
precautions are taken for the safety of the civilian population. 280
prohibition contained in Article 7(2) of the Amended Mines Protocol does not preclude the expedient adaptation or
adaptation in advance of other objects for use as booby-traps or other devices;).
277
Article-by-Article Analysis of CCW Amended Mines Protocol, 27, Enclosure A to Warren Christopher, Letter of
Submittal, Dec. 7, 1996, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL,
PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS, AND PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS 27 (Such
improvisation of booby-traps, for example to retard an enemy advance, does not pose the same sort of danger to the
civilian population as the mass production of objects specifically designed as booby-traps toward which the
provision was directed.).
278
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 7(1) (Without prejudice to the rules of international law applicable in
armed conflict relating to treachery and perfidy, it is prohibited in all circumstances to use booby-traps and other
devices which are in any way attached to or associated with: (a) internationally recognized protective emblems,
signs or signals; (b) sick, wounded or dead persons; (c) burial or cremation sites or graves; (d) medical facilities,
medical equipment, medical supplies or medical transportation; (e) childrens toys or other portable objects or
products specially designed for the feeding, health, hygiene, clothing or education of children; (f) food or drink; (g)
kitchen utensils or appliances except in military establishments, military locations or military supply depots; (h)
objects clearly of a religious nature; (i) historic monuments, works of art or places of worship which constitute the
cultural or spiritual heritage of peoples; or (j) animals or their carcasses.).
279
Refer to 7.15.1 (The Distinctive Emblems: Red Cross, Crescent, and Crystal); 5.18.7 (Marking of Cultural
Property With the Distinctive Emblem).
366
kitchen utensils or appliances, except in military establishments, military locations, or
military supply depots;
o This does not authorize kitchen utensils or appliances in military hospitals, POW
camps, or military chapels to be booby-trapped. 281
historic monuments, works of art, or places of worship that constitute the cultural or
spiritual heritage of peoples; 282 or
6.12.5 General Rules for Using Mines, Booby-Traps, and Other Devices. The use of
mines, booby traps, and other devices is subject to the same rules and principles that govern the
use of other weapons to conduct attacks. 283 However, because mines, booby-traps, and other
devices explode only after their emplacement, there have been different views as to when the use
of a mine constitutes an attack. 284 Thus, the CCW Amended Mines Protocol seeks to clarify
how these principles apply to the use of mines, booby-traps, and other devices. These rules
include:
280
United States, Statement on Consent to Be Bound by the CCW Amended Mines Protocol, May 24, 1999, 2065
UNTS 128, 129 (The United States reserves the right to use other devices (as defined in Article 2(5) of the
Amended Mines Protocol) to destroy any stock of food or drink that is judged likely to be used by an enemy military
force, if due precautions are taken for the safety of the civilian population.).
281
Article-by-Article Analysis of CCW Amended Mines Protocol, 26, Enclosure A to Warren Christopher, Letter of
Submittal, Dec. 7, 1996, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL,
PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS, AND PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS 26 (The exception in
paragraph 1(g) of Article 7 does not, however, authorize kitchen utensils or appliances in military hospitals, military
POW camps or military chapels to be booby-trapped.).
282
United States, Statement on Consent to Be Bound by the CCW Amended Mines Protocol, May 24, 1999, 2065
UNTS 128, 129 (The United states [sic] understands that Article 7(1)(i) of the Amended Mines Protocol refers only
to a limited class of objects that, because of their clearly recognizable characteristics and because of their widely
recognized importance, constitute a part of the cultural or spiritual heritage of peoples.). Refer to 5.18.1
(Definition of Cultural Property).
283
Refer to 5.5 (Rules on Conducting Assaults, Bombardments, and Other Attacks).
284
See, e.g., A.P.V. Rogers, Mines, Booby-traps and Other Devices, 30 INTERNATIONAL REVIEW OF THE RED CROSS
521, 524-25 (Nov.-Dec. 1990) (One of the difficulties of the conference [that negotiated the Original Mines
Protocol] was to apply to mine warfare the provisions of Additional Protocol I dealing with attacks. Agreement
could not be reached as to what stage in the mine-laying process amounts to an attack: when the mine is laid, when
it is armed, when somebody is endangered by it or when it actually explodes. To avoid these difficulties it was
necessary to draw up special rules relating to the use of mines.); ICRC AP COMMENTARY 622 (1960) (However,
the question may arise at what point the use of mines constitutes an attack in the sense of this provision [AP I art.
51(4)(b)]. Is it when the mine is laid, when it is armed, when a person is endangered by it, or when it finally
explodes? The participants at the meeting of the International Society of Military Law and the Law of War
(Lausanne, 1982) conceded that from the legal point of view the use of mines constituted an attack in the sense of
the Protocol when a person was directly endangered by such a mine.).
367
a prohibition against directing mines, booby-traps, and other devices against the civilian
population;
a prohibition against the indiscriminate use of mines, booby-traps, and other devices;
an obligation to take feasible precautions to protect civilians from the effects of mines,
booby-traps, and other devices;
obligations with respect to the recording of the placement of mines, booby-traps, and
other devices.
285
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 3(7) (It is prohibited in all circumstances to direct weapons to which this
Article applies, either in offence, defence or by way of reprisals, against the civilian population as such or against
individual civilians or civilian objects.). Refer to 5.6 (Discrimination in Conducting Attacks).
286
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 3(8) (The indiscriminate use of weapons to which this Article applies is
prohibited.).
287
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 3(8) (Indiscriminate use is any placement of such weapons: (a) which is
not on, or directed against, a military objective. In case of doubt as to whether an object which is normally
dedicated to civilian purposes, such as a place of worship, a house or other dwelling or a school, is being used to
make an effective contribution to military action, it shall be presumed not to be so used;).
288
Refer to 5.7.8.4 (Examples of Military Objectives Places of Military Significance).
368
cannot be directed at a specific military objective. 289 For example, it would be prohibited to
deliver mines using unguided long-distance balloons. 290
the short- and long-term effect of mines, booby-traps, and other devices upon the local
civilian population for the duration of their use;
possible measures to protect civilians (e.g., fencing, signs, warning, and monitoring);
the short- and long-term military requirements for a minefield, or for the use of booby-
traps or other devices. 295
289
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 3(8) (Indiscriminate use is any placement of such weapons: (b)
which employs a method or means of delivery which cannot be directed at a specific military objective;).
290
Refer to 6.7 (Inherently Indiscriminate Weapons).
291
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 3(8) (Indiscriminate use is any placement of such weapons: (c) which
may be expected to cause incidental loss of civilian life, injury to civilians, damage to civilian objects, or a
combination thereof, which would be excessive in relation to the concrete and direct military advantage
anticipated.). Refer to 5.12 (Proportionality in Conducting Attacks).
292
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 3(10) (All feasible precautions shall be taken to protect civilians from the
effects of weapons to which this Article applies.).
293
Refer to 5.3.3 (Affirmative Duties to Take Feasible Precautions for the Protection of Civilians and Other
Protected Persons and Objects).
294
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 3(10) (Feasible precautions are those precautions which are practicable
or practically possible taking into account all circumstances ruling at the time, including humanitarian and military
considerations.). Refer to 5.3.3.2 (What Precautions Are Feasible).
295
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 3(10) (These circumstances include, but are not limited to: (a) the short-
and long-term effect of mines upon the local civilian population for the duration of the minefield; (b) possible
measures to protect civilians (for example, fencing, signs, warning and monitoring); (c) the availability and
feasibility of using alternatives; and (d) the short- and long-term military requirements for a minefield.). See also
Article-by-Article Analysis of CCW Amended Mines Protocol, 14, Enclosure A to Warren Christopher, Letter of
Submittal, Dec. 7, 1996, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL,
PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS, AND PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS 14 (These general
369
6.12.5.4 Effective Advance Warning of Any Emplacement. Effective advanced
warning shall be given of any emplacement of mines, booby-traps, and other devices that may
affect the civilian population, unless circumstances do not permit doing so. 296
Minefield is a defined area in which mines have been emplaced (including areas free of
mines that simulate a minefield), and a mined area is an area that is dangerous due to the
presence of mines. 298 Recording means a physical, administrative, and technical operation
designed to obtain, for the purpose of registration in official records, all available information
facilitating the location of minefields, mined areas, booby-traps, and other devices. 299
Subparagraph 1(a) of the Technical Annex to the CCW Amended Mines Protocol
specifies that the recording of the location of non-remotely delivered mines, minefields, mined
areas, booby-traps, and other devices shall be carried out in accordance with the following
provisions:
(i) the location of the minefields, mined areas and areas of booby-traps and other
devices shall be specified accurately by relation to the coordinates of at least two
reference points and the estimated dimensions of the area containing these
weapons in relation to those reference points;
(ii) maps, diagrams or other records shall be made in such a way as to indicate the
location of minefields, mined areas, booby-traps and other devices in relation to
reference points, and these records shall also indicate their perimeters and extent;
(iii) for purposes of detection and clearance of mines, booby-traps and other
devices, maps, diagrams or other records shall contain complete information on
the type, number, emplacing method, type of fuse and life time, date and time of
considerations [described in CCW Amended Mines Protocol art. 3(10)] are relevant to all mines, both anti-personnel
and anti-tank, as well as the other weapons to which the amended Protocol applies.).
296
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 3(11) (Effective advance warning shall be given of any emplacement of
mines, booby-traps and other devices which may affect the civilian population, unless circumstances do not
permit.). Refer to 5.11.1 (Effective Advance Warning Before an Attack That May Affect the Civilian
Population).
297
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 9(1) (All information concerning minefields, mined areas, mines, booby-
traps and other devices shall be recorded in accordance with the provisions of the Technical Annex.).
298
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 2(8) (Minefield is a defined area in which mines have been emplaced
and mined area is an area which is dangerous due to the presence of mines. Phoney minefield means an area free
of mines that simulates a minefield. The term minefield includes phoney minefields.).
299
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 2(9) (Recording means a physical, administrative and technical
operation designed to obtain, for the purpose of registration in official records, all available information facilitating
the location of minefields, mined areas, mines, booby-traps and other devices.).
370
laying, antihandling devices (if any) and other relevant information on all these
weapons laid. Whenever feasible the minefield record shall show the exact
location of every mine, except in row minefields where the row location is
sufficient. The precise location and operating mechanism of each booby-trap laid
shall be individually recorded. 300
Records shall be retained by the parties to the conflict. 301 Copies of records shall be held
at a level of command sufficient to guarantee their safety as far as possible. 302
6.12.6 Rules for Using Non-Remotely Delivered Anti-Personnel Mines With Compliant
SD/SDA Mechanisms. Non-remotely delivered anti-personnel mines that comply with the
requirements for self-destruction and self-deactivation in the Technical Annex to the CCW
Amended Mines Protocol may be used outside of marked areas. 303
First, such weapons are to be placed within a perimeter-marked area that is monitored by
military personnel and protected by fencing or other means, to ensure the effective exclusion of
civilians from the area. The marking must be of a distinct and durable character, and must be
visible to a person who is about to enter the perimeter-marked area. 306 The State Party
300
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL 1(c).
301
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 9(2) (providing that [a]ll such records [mentioned in paragraph 1 of
Article 9] shall be retained by the parties to a conflict).
302
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL 1(c) (Copies of records shall be held at a level of
command sufficient to guarantee their safety as far as possible.).
303
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL 3(b) (All non-remotely delivered anti-personnel
mines, used outside marked areas, as defined in Article 5 of this Protocol, shall comply with the requirements for
self-destruction and self-deactivation stated in sub-paragraph (a).).
304
Article-by-Article Analysis of CCW Amended Mines Protocol, 16-17, Enclosure A to Warren Christopher, Letter
of Submittal, Dec. 7, 1996, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL,
PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS, AND PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS 16-17 (The U.S.
military has maintained minefields for a number of years in Guantanamo and Korea that meet these standards, and is
confident that these requirements are feasible and realistic.).
305
Department of State, Bureau of Political-Military Affairs, Fact Sheet: Frequently Asked Questions on the New
United States Landmine Policy (Feb. 27, 2004) (The United States currently maintains no minefields anywhere
in the world, including Korea.).
306
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 5(2)(a) (It is prohibited to use weapons to which this Article applies
which are not in compliance with the provisions on self-destruction and self-deactivation in the Technical Annex,
unless: such weapons are placed within a perimeter-marked area which is monitored by military personnel and
protected by fencing or other means, to ensure the effective exclusion of civilians from the area. The marking must
be of a distinct and durable character and must at least be visible to a person who is about to enter the perimeter-
marked area;).
371
controlling a minefield is obligated to take all feasible measures to prevent the unauthorized
removal, defacement, destruction, or concealment of any device, system, or material used to
establish the perimeter of a permanently marked area. 307
Second, such weapons are to be cleared before the area is abandoned, unless the area is
turned over to the forces of another State that accepts responsibility for the maintenance of the
protections stated above, and the subsequent clearance of those weapons. 308 This requirement
does not preclude agreement, in connection with peace treaties or similar arrangements, to
allocate responsibilities under Article 5 of the CCW Amended Mines Protocol in a manner that
respects the essential spirit and purpose of Article 5. 309
6.12.8 Rules for Using Non-Remotely Delivered Anti-Personnel Mines That Propel
Fragments in a Horizontal Arc of Less Than 90 Degrees (e.g., Claymores). Anti-personnel
mines other than remotely delivered mines that propel fragments in a horizontal arc of less than
90 degrees may be used on or above the ground outside of marked areas for up to 72 hours if:
they are located in immediate proximity to the military unit that emplaced them; and
307
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 5(5) (All feasible measures shall be taken to prevent the unauthorized
removal, defacement, destruction or concealment of any device, system or material used to establish the perimeter of
a perimeter-marked area.).
308
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 5(2)(b) (such weapons are cleared before the area is abandoned, unless
the area is turned over to the forces of another State which accept responsibility for the maintenance of the
protections required by this Article and the subsequent clearance of those weapons.).
309
United States, Statement on Consent to Be Bound by the CCW Amended Mines Protocol, May 24, 1999, 2065
UNTS 128, 130 (The United States understands that the allocation of responsibilities for landmines in Article
5(2)(b) of the Amended Mines Protocol does not preclude agreement, in connection with peace treaties or similar
arrangements, to allocate responsibilities under that Article in a manner that respects the essential spirit and purpose
of the Article.).
310
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 5(3) (A party to a conflict is relieved from further compliance with the
provisions of subparagraphs 2 (a) and 2 (b) of this Article only if such compliance is not feasible due to forcible loss
of control of the area as a result of enemy military action, including situations where direct enemy military action
makes it impossible to comply. If that party regains control of the area, it shall resume compliance with the
provisions of sub-paragraphs 2 (a) and 2 (b) of this Article.).
311
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 5(4) (If the forces of a party to a conflict gain control of an area in which
weapons to which this Article applies have been laid, such forces shall, to the maximum extent feasible, maintain
and, if necessary, establish the protections required by this Article until such weapons have been cleared.).
372
the area is monitored by military personnel to ensure the effective exclusion of
civilians. 312
The maintenance of observation over avenues of approach where such mines are deployed
constitutes one acceptable form of monitoring to ensure the effective exclusion of civilians. 313
A Claymore munition used in trip-wire mode is an example of this type of mine. 314 A
Claymore used in command-detonated mode is regulated as an other device. 315
6.12.9 Rules for Using Remotely Delivered Mines. Remotely delivered mines are subject
to special, additional restrictions because their location cannot be marked as accurately as mines
placed by hand or by mechanical mine layers. In addition, because remotely delivered mines are
often emplaced by long-range means, it may be difficult to ensure that civilians are absent or
excluded from areas containing such mines. Remotely delivered mines may not be used unless
they have compliant self-destruction and self-deactivation mechanisms. 316
312
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 5(6) (Weapons to which this Article applies which propel fragments in a
horizontal arc of less than 90 degrees and which are placed on or above the ground may be used without the
measures provided for in sub-paragraph 2 (a) of this Article for a maximum period of 72 hours, if: (a) they are
located in immediate proximity to the military unit that emplaced them; and (b) the area is monitored by military
personnel to ensure the effective exclusion of civilians.).
313
United States, Statement on Consent to Be Bound by the CCW Amended Mines Protocol, May 24, 1999, 2065
UNTS 128, 129 (The United States understands that, for the purposes of Article 5(6)(b) of the Amended Mines
Protocol, the maintenance of observation over avenues of approach where mines subject to that Article are deployed
constitutes one acceptable form of monitoring to ensure the effective exclusion of civilians.).
314
Article-by-Article Analysis of CCW Amended Mines Protocol, 7-8, Enclosure A to Warren Christopher, Letter of
Submittal, Dec. 7, 1996, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL,
PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS, AND PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS 7-8 (In a trip-wired
mode, the Claymore is not excluded from the restrictions applicable to anti-personnel mines by reason of the
definition in paragraph 3. Specifically, such mines, when used in a trip-wired mode, are covered by the definition
but special, less restrictive rules in Article 5 apply to their use for a limited time -- 72 hours -- from their
emplacement.).
315
Refer to 6.12.10 (Rule for Using Booby-Traps and Other Devices).
316
Refer to 6.12.4.5 (Remotely Delivered Anti-Personnel Mines Not in Compliance With Self-Destruction and
Self-Deactivation Requirements).
317
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 6(4) (Effective advance warning shall be given of any delivery or
dropping of remotely-delivered mines which may affect the civilian population, unless circumstances do not
permit.). Refer to 5.11.1 (Warning Before Attack).
373
Annex to the CCW Amended Mines Protocol. 318 Subparagraph 1(b) of the Technical Annex
requires that the estimated location and area of remotely delivered mines be specified by
coordinates of reference points (normally corner points) and shall be ascertained and, when
feasible, marked on the ground at the earliest opportunity. In addition, the total number and type
of mines laid, the date and time of laying, and the self-destruction time periods shall also be
recorded. 319
6.12.10 Rule for Using Booby-Traps and Other Devices. Booby-traps may not be of the
prohibited type discussed in 6.12.4.8 (Booby-Traps and Other Devices in the Form of
Apparently Harmless Portable Objects Specifically Designed to Explode) and 6.12.4.9 (Certain
Types of Prohibited Booby-Traps and Other Devices).
In addition, as with mines, there are recording obligations with respect to the use of
booby-traps and other devices, including the obligation to record the precise location and
operating mechanism of each booby-trap laid. 320
measures are taken to protect civilians from their effects, for example, the posting of
warning [signs, the posting of] sentries, the issue of warnings or the provision of
fences. 322
6.12.11 Obligation to Seek to Protect Certain Groups From the Effects of Minefields,
Mined Areas, Mines, Booby-Traps, and Other Devices. Article 12 of the CCW Amended Mines
Protocol creates certain obligations to take measures to help protect certain groups from the
318
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 6(1) (It is prohibited to use remotely-delivered mines unless they are
recorded in accordance with sub-paragraph I (b) of the Technical Annex.).
319
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL 1(b) (The estimated location and area of remotely-
delivered mines shall be specified by coordinates of reference points (normally corner points) and shall be
ascertained and when feasible marked on the ground at the earliest opportunity. The total number and types of
mines laid, the date and time of laying and the self-destruction time periods shall also be recorded.).
320
Refer to 6.12.5.5 (Recording of Minefields, Mined Areas, Mines, Booby-Traps, and Other Devices).
321
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 7(3)(a).
322
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 7(3) (Without prejudice to the provisions of Article 3, it is prohibited to
use weapons to which this Article applies in any city, town, village or other area containing a similar concentration
of civilians in which combat between ground forces is not taking place or does not appear to be imminent, unless
either: (a) they are placed on or in the close vicinity of a military objective; or (b) measures are taken to protect
civilians from their effects, for example, the posting of warning sentries, the issuing of warnings or the provision of
fences.). The words in square brackets appeared in Original CCW Protocol II Article 4(2)(b). Their omission in
the CCW Amended Mines Protocol is an apparent error overlooked by the Drafting Committee.
374
effects of minefields, mined areas, mines, booby-traps, and other devices. Such obligations may
apply with respect to:
Any of the following, if they have the consent of the State in whose territory they are
operating: 323
o missions established pursuant to Chapter VIII of the Charter of the United Nations
and performing its functions in the area of a conflict;
The obligations to take affirmative measures under Article 12 are subject to practical
considerations. 324 In addition, the forces and missions that are afforded protection under Article
12 have corresponding obligations to keep information confidential, to respect applicable laws
323
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 12(a) (With the exception of the forces and missions referred to in sub-
paragraph 2(a) (i) of this Article, this Article applies only to missions which are performing functions in an area with
the consent of the High Contracting Party on whose territory the functions are performed.).
324
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 12(2)(b) (Each High Contracting Party or party to a conflict, if so
requested by the head of a force or mission to which this paragraph applies, shall: (i) so far as it is able, take such
measures as are necessary to protect the force or mission from the effects of mines, booby-traps and other devices in
any area under its control; (ii) if necessary in order effectively to protect such personnel, remove or render harmless,
so far as it is able, all mines, booby-traps and other devices in that area; and (iii) inform the head of the force or
mission of the location of all known minefields, mined areas, mines, booby-traps and other devices in the area in
which the force or mission is performing its functions and, so far as is feasible, make available to the head of the
force or mission all information in its possession concerning such minefields, mined areas, mines, booby-traps and
other devices.) (emphasis added); CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 12(3)(b) (Each High Contracting Party
or party to a conflict, if so requested by the head of a mission to which this paragraph applies, shall: (i) provide the
personnel of the mission with the protections set out in sub-paragraph 2(b) (i) of this Article; and (ii) if access to or
through any place under its control is necessary for the performance of the missions functions and in order to
provide the personnel of the mission with safe passage to or through that place: (aa) unless on-going hostilities
prevent, inform the head of the mission of a safe route to that place if such information is available; or (bb) if
information identifying a safe route is not provided in accordance with sub-paragraph (aa), so far as is necessary and
feasible, clear a lane through minefields.) (emphasis added); CCW Amended Mines Protocol art. 12(5)(b) (Each
High Contracting Party or party to a conflict, if so requested by the head of a mission to which this paragraph
applies, shall, so far as is feasible: (i) provide the personnel of the mission with the protections set out in sub-
paragraph 2(b) (i) of this Article, and (ii) take the measures set out in sub-paragraph 3(b) (ii) of this Article.)
(emphasis added).
375
and regulations, and to refrain from activities that are incompatible with the impartial and
international nature of their duties. 325
6.12.12 Obligations Arising After the Cessation of Active Hostilities. Certain obligations
with respect to mines, booby-traps, and other devices are triggered after the cessation of active
hostilities.
Without delay after the cessation of active hostilities, a Party to the CCW Amended
Mines Protocol or a party to a conflict has an obligation to ensure that all minefields, mined
325
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 12 (6. Confidentiality All information provided in confidence pursuant
to this Article shall be treated by the recipient in strict confidence and shall not be released outside the force or
mission concerned without the express authorization of the provider of the information. 7. Respect for laws and
regulations Without prejudice to such privileges and immunities as they may enjoy or to the requirements of their
duties, personnel participating in the forces and missions referred to in this Article shall: (a) respect the laws and
regulations of the host State; and (b) refrain from any action or activity incompatible with the impartial and
international nature of their duties.).
326
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 9(2) (All such records shall be retained by the parties to a conflict, who
shall, without delay after the cessation of active hostilities, take all necessary and appropriate measures, including
the use of such information, to protect civilians from the effects of minefields, mined areas, mines, booby-traps and
other devices in areas under their control.).
327
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 9(2) (At the same time, they shall also make available to the other party
or parties to the conflict and to the Secretary-General of the United Nations all such information in their possession
concerning minefields, mined areas, mines, booby-traps and other devices laid by them in areas no longer under
their control; provided, however, subject to reciprocity, where the forces of a party to a conflict are in the territory of
an adverse party, either party may withhold such information from the Secretary-General and the other party, to the
extent that security interests require such withholding, until neither party is in the territory of the other. In the latter
case, the information withheld shall be disclosed as soon as those security interests permit. Wherever possible, the
parties to the conflict shall seek, by mutual agreement, to provide for the release of such information at the earliest
possible time in a manner consistent with the security interests of each party.).
328
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 3(2) (Each High Contracting Party or party to a conflict is, in accordance
with the provisions of this Protocol, responsible for all mines, booby-traps, and other devices employed by it and
undertakes to clear, remove, destroy or maintain them as specified in Article 10 of this Protocol.).
376
areas, mines, booby-traps, and other devices in areas under its control are cleared, removed,
destroyed, or maintained in accordance with Article 3 and Paragraph 2 of Article 5 of the CCW
Amended Mines Protocol. 329
With respect to mines laid by a Party to the CCW Amended Mines Protocol or a party to
a conflict in areas over which the party no longer exercises control, the party is to provide to the
party that is now in control of the area, to the extent permitted by such party, technical and
material assistance necessary to fulfill its responsibility to ensure that all minefields are cleared,
removed, destroyed, or maintained. 330 For example, such assistance may include maps and other
information regarding the mines and minefields.
6.12.13 U.S. Policy on Landmines. Landmines have been addressed by U.S. national
policy. The United States has announced a policy: (1) not to use antipersonnel land mines
outside the Korean Peninsula; (2) not to assist, encourage, or induce anyone outside the Korean
329
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 10(1) (Without delay after the cessation of active hostilities, all
minefields, mined areas, mines, booby-traps and other devices shall be cleared, removed, destroyed or maintained in
accordance with Article 3 and paragraph 2 of Article 5 of this Protocol.); CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art.
10(2) (High Contracting Parties and parties to a conflict bear such responsibility with respect to minefields, mined
areas, mines, booby-traps and other devices in areas under their control.).
330
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 10(3) (With respect to minefields, mined areas, mines, booby-traps and
other devices laid by a party in areas over which it no longer exercises control, such party shall provide to the party
in control of the area pursuant to paragraph 2 of this Article, to the extent permitted by such party, technical and
material assistance necessary to fulfil such responsibility.).
331
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 10(4) (At all times necessary, the parties shall endeavour to reach
agreement, both among themselves and, where appropriate, with other States and with international organizations,
on the provision of technical and material assistance, including, in appropriate circumstances, the undertaking of
joint operations necessary to fulfil such responsibilities.).
332
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 11.
333
United States, Statement on Consent to Be Bound by the CCW Amended Mines Protocol, May 24, 1999, 2065
UNTS 128, 130 (The United States understands that - (A) no provision of the Protocol may be construed as
affecting the discretion of the United States to refuse assistance or to restrict or deny permission for the export of
equipment, material, or scientific or technological information for any reason; and (B) the Amended Mines Protocol
may not be used as a pretext for the transfer of weapons technology or the provision of assistance to the military
mining or military counter-mining capabilities of a State Party to the Protocol.).
377
Peninsula to engage in activity prohibited by the Ottawa Convention; (3) to undertake to destroy
antipersonnel landmine stockpiles not required for the defense of the Republic of Korea; and (4)
not to produce or otherwise acquire any antipersonnel munitions that are not compliant with the
Ottawa Convention. 334 The United States has also previously committed not to emplace new
persistent anti-personnel or anti-vehicle landmines (i.e., landmines without self-destruction
mechanisms and self-deactivation features). 335 U.S. landmines will continue to meet or exceed
international standards for self-destruction and self-deactivation. 336 In addition, the United
States no longer has any non-detectable mine of any type in its arsenal. 337
334
Department of State, Bureau of Political-Military Affairs, Fact Sheet: Changes to U.S. Anti-Personnel Landmine
Policy (Sept. 23, 2014) (This means that [the] United States will: not use APL outside the Korean Peninsula; not
assist, encourage, or induce anyone outside the Korean Peninsula to engage in activity prohibited by the Ottawa
Convention; and undertake to destroy APL stockpiles not required for the defense of the Republic of Korea. This
change to U.S. APL policy builds on the announcement that the U.S. delegation made in June at the Third Review
Conference of the Ottawa Convention in Maputo, Mozambique, that the United States will not produce or otherwise
acquire any anti-personnel munitions that are not compliant with the Ottawa Convention, including to replace such
munitions as they expire in the coming years.).
335
Department of State, Bureau of Political-Military Affairs, Fact Sheet: New United States Policy on Landmines:
Reducing Humanitarian Risk and Saving Lives of United States Soldiers (Feb. 27, 2004) (The United States has
committed to eliminate persistent landmines of all types from its arsenal.).
336
Department of State, Bureau of Political-Military Affairs, Fact Sheet: New United States Policy on Landmines:
Reducing Humanitarian Risk and Saving Lives of United States Soldiers (Feb. 27, 2004) (The United States will
continue to develop non-persistent anti-personnel and anti-tank landmines. As with the current United States
inventory of non-persistent landmines, these mines will continue to meet or exceed international standards for self-
destruction and self-deactivation. This ensures that, after they are no longer needed for the battlefield, these
landmines will detonate or turn themselves off, eliminating the threat to civilians.).
337
Department of State, Bureau of Political-Military Affairs, Fact Sheet: New United States Policy on Landmines:
Reducing Humanitarian Risk and Saving Lives of United States Soldiers (Feb. 27, 2004) (Within one year, the
United States will no longer have any non-detectable mine of any type in its arsenal.).
338
Department of State, Bureau of Political-Military Affairs, To Walk the Earth in Safety: Documenting the United
States 20 Year Commitment to Conventional Weapons Destruction, 6 (August 2013) (In 1993, the United States
established the Demining Assistance Program and the Interagency Working Group (IWG) on Demining and
Landmine Control, initiating a coordinated interagency aid effort to support international humanitarian mine action
(HMA). Though the United States first provided HMA assistance in 1988, a coordinated and sustained U.S.
Government effort began with this IWG. Over the past two decades, the U.S. approach to mine action has expanded
to meet related needs in post-conflict environments, such as threats from ERW and at-risk SA/LW [small arms and
light weapons], including manportable air-defense systems (MANPADS). Since 1993, the United States has
invested more than $2 billion in CWD programs in over 90 countries.).
339
Convention on the Prohibition of the Use, Stockpiling, Production and Transfer of Anti-Personnel Mines and on
their Destruction, Sept. 18, 1997, 2056 UNTS 211.
378
The United States has announced policy changes that align U.S. antipersonnel landmine
policy outside the Korean Peninsula with the key requirements of the Ottawa Convention. 340
Among other reasons, because the practice of the United States and other States remains
inconsistent with the prohibitions of the Ottawa Convention, its prohibitions do not reflect
customary international law. 341
Many U.S. allies and coalition partners, including Australia, Canada, and the United
Kingdom, are parties to the Ottawa Convention. Article 1 of the Ottawa Convention prohibits
States Parties from using, developing, producing, otherwise acquiring, stockpiling, retaining, or
transferring to anyone, directly or indirectly, anti-personnel landmines, or to assist, encourage, or
induce, in any way, anyone to engage in any activity prohibited to a State Party under the
Convention. Australia, Canada, and the United Kingdom have taken the position that its armed
forces would not violate the Ottawa Convention merely by reason of taking part in joint
operations with forces of an ally that is not bound by the Ottawa Convention and that uses anti-
personnel mines. 342
340
Department of State, Bureau of Political-Military Affairs, Fact Sheet: Changes to U.S. Anti-Personnel Landmine
Policy (Sept. 23, 2014) (President Clinton, in his 1994 address to the United Nations General Assembly, called for
the eventual elimination of anti-personnel landmines (APL). Today, the Obama Administration is announcing new
policy changes that bring the United States closer to that goal. Specifically, the United States is aligning our APL
policy outside the Korean Peninsula with the key requirements of the Ottawa Convention, the international treaty
prohibiting the use, stockpiling, production, and transfer of APL, which more than 160 countries have joined,
including all of our NATO Allies.).
341
See, e.g., Eritrea Ethiopia Claims Commission, Partial Award: Central Front, Ethiopias Claim 2, 95 (Apr. 28,
2004) (Landmines. As with other weredas [i.e., geographic districts], the evidence indicates that Eritrea made
extensive use of anti-personnel landmines, but it does not demonstrate a pattern of their unlawful use. For liability,
the Commission would have to conclude that landmines were used in ways that intentionally targeted civilians or
were indiscriminate. However, the available evidence suggests that landmines were extensively used as part of the
defenses of Eritreas trenches and field fortifications. Thus, the declarations citing landmine use also frequently
refer to the presence of Eritrean trenches in the area/kushet concerned. In principle, the defensive use of minefields
to protect trenches would be a lawful use under customary international law.).
342
Australia, Statement on Ratification of the Convention on the Prohibition of the Use, Stockpiling, Production and
Transfer of Anti-Personnel Mines and on Their Destruction, Jan. 14, 1999, 2057 UNTS 214, 218 (It is the
understanding of Australia that, in the context of operations, exercises or other military activity authorized by the
United Nations or otherwise conducted in accordance with international law, the participation by the ADF, or
individual Australian citizens or residents, in such operations, exercises or other military activity conducted in
combination with the armed forces of States not party to the Convention which engage in activity prohibited under
the Convention would not, by itself, be considered to be in violation of the Convention.); Canada, Statement on
Signature of the Convention on the Prohibition of the Use, Stockpiling, Production and Transfer of Anti-Personnel
Mines and on Their Destruction, Dec. 3, 1997, 2056 UNTS 211, 310 (It is the understanding of the Government of
Canada that, in the context of operations, exercises or other military activity sanctioned by the United Nations or
otherwise conducted in accordance with international law, the mere participation by the Canadian Forces, or
individual Canadians, in operations, exercises or other military activity conducted in combination with the armed
forces of States not party to the Convention which engage in activity prohibited under the Convention would not, by
itself, be considered to be assistance, encouragement or inducement in accordance with the meaning of those terms
in article 1, paragraph 1 (c).); 2004 UK MANUAL 6.13 (Members of the United Kingdom armed forces, will not,
however, be guilty of an offence merely by reason of taking part in joint operations with forces of an ally not bound
by the Ottawa Convention which deploy landmines.).
379
6.13 CLUSTER MUNITIONS
Cluster munitions are not specifically prohibited or restricted by the law of war. DoD has
policies on cluster munitions. The use of cluster munitions, in certain circumstances, is likely to
reduce the risk of incidental harm as compared to other weapons.
6.13.2 Use of Cluster Munitions to Reduce the Risk of Incidental Harm. As with
incendiary weapons, the use of cluster munitions, in certain circumstances, is likely to result in
less incidental harm than the use of other weapons. 344 For example, cluster munitions have been
used against military objectives containing dangerous forces, such as dams, in order to reduce the
risk that bombardment of these objectives would release such forces and cause incidental harm to
the civilian population. 345
6.13.3 DoD Policy on Cluster Munitions. DoD has developed policies to minimize the
negative humanitarian consequences that can sometimes be associated with cluster munitions. 346
Under a 2008 policy, the U.S. armed forces will, after 2018, only employ cluster munitions
containing submunitions that, after arming, do not result in more than 1% unexploded ordnance
343
Robert Gates, Secretary of Defense, Memorandum re: DoD Policy on Cluster Munitions and Unintended Harm
to Civilians, Jun. 19, 2008 (For the purposes of this policy, cluster munitions are defined as munitions composed of
a non-reusable canister or delivery body containing multiple, conventional explosive submunitions. Excluded from
the definition are nuclear, chemical, and biological weapons as well as obscurants, pyrotechnics, non-lethal systems
(e.g., leaflets), non-explosive kinetic effect submunitions (e.g., flechettes or rods), or electronic effects. Landmine
submunitions are also excluded since they are covered by existing policy and international agreements.).
344
Robert Gates, Secretary of Defense, Memorandum re: DoD Policy on Cluster Munitions and Unintended Harm
to Civilians, Jun. 19, 2008 (DoD recognizes that blanket elimination of cluster munitions is unacceptable due not
only to negative military consequences but also due to potential negative consequences for civilians. Large-scale
use of unitary weapons, as the only alternative to achieve military objectives, could result, in some cases, in
unacceptable collateral damage and explosive remnants of war (ERW) issues.).
345
Refer to 5.11.3 (Selecting Weapons (Weaponeering)).
346
Robert Gates, Secretary of Defense, Memorandum re: DoD Policy on Cluster Munitions and Unintended Harm
to Civilians, Jun. 19, 2008 (The DoD policy above is intended to minimize the potential unintended harm to
civilians and civilian infrastructure of U.S. cluster munitions employment to the extent possible.); William Cohen,
Memorandum re: DoD Policy on Submunition Reliability, Jan. 10, 2001 (Submunition weapons employment in
Southwest Asia and Kosovo, and major theater war modeling, have revealed a significant unexploded ordnance
(UXO) concern. It is the policy of the DoD to reduce overall UXO through a process of improvement in
submunition system reliability-the desire is to field future submunitions with a 99% or higher functioning rate.
Submunition functioning rates may be lower under operational conditions due to environmental factors such as
terrain and weather.).
380
(UXO) across the range of intended operational environments. 347 Until the end of 2018, cluster
munitions that exceed the 1% UXO rate may not be used unless approved by the Combatant
Commander. 348
6.13.4 Convention on Cluster Munitions. The United States is not a Party to the
Convention on Cluster Munitions. 349 The United States has determined that its national security
interests cannot be fully ensured consistent with the terms of the Convention on Cluster
Munitions.350
The Convention on Cluster Munitions establishes for its States Parties a number of
prohibitions and restrictions on certain types of cluster munitions. 351 These rules include
prohibitions on assisting, encouraging, or inducing anyone to engage in any activity prohibited to
a State Party. 352 Despite these restrictions, States Parties and their military personnel and
nationals may engage in military cooperation and operations with States that are not Parties to
the Convention on Cluster Munitions that might engage in activities prohibited to a State
Party. 353 Yet, even during such military operations, the Convention on Cluster Munitions does
not authorize a State Party:
381
(b) To itself stockpile or transfer cluster munitions;
(d) To expressly request the use of cluster munitions in cases where the choice of
munitions used is within its exclusive control. 354
The use of incendiary weapons is permissible, but subject to certain restrictions in order
to reduce the risk of incidental harm to civilians.
On the other hand, laser weapons, even if their primary effect is to set fire to objects or
cause burn injuries, do not constitute incendiary weapons under CCW Protocol III on
Incendiary Weapons because the fire or burn injuries are not produced by a chemical reaction of
a substance that is delivered to the target. 357 Similarly, chemical weapons cause death or other
harm through the toxic properties of chemicals themselves, rather than the chemicals causing a
fire or burn injury. 358
354
Convention on Cluster Munitions, art. 21(4), May 30, 2008, 2688 UNTS 39, 113.
355
CCW PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS art. 1(1) (defining incendiary weapon as any weapon or
munition which is primarily designed to set fire to objects or to cause burn injury to persons through the action of
flame, heat, or combination thereof, produced by a chemical reaction of a substance delivered on the target.).
356
Article-by-Article Analysis of CCW Protocol III on Incendiary Weapons, 2, Enclosure B to Warren Christopher,
Letter of Submittal, Dec. 7, 1996, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CCW AMENDED MINES
PROTOCOL, PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS, AND PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS 38 (As a
result, the Protocol only covers pure incendiaries, such as napalm or the type of incendiary bombs used in World
War II and Korea.).
357
Article-by-Article Analysis of CCW Protocol III on Incendiary Weapons, 2, Enclosure B to Warren Christopher,
Letter of Submittal, Dec. 7, 1996, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CCW AMENDED MINES
PROTOCOL, PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS, AND PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS 38
(Similarly, laser weapons are not covered even if their primary effect is to set fire to objects or cause burn injuries,
since they do not deliver burning substances on the target.).
358
Refer to 6.8.3.1 (Definition of Chemical Weapons).
382
6.14.1.2 Examples of Incendiary Weapons. Examples of incendiary weapons
359
include:
shells, rockets, grenades, mines, bombs, and other containers of incendiary substances,
such as napalm and thermite. 362
Similarly, tracer rounds are not incendiary weapons as they are designed to enable a
gunner to direct his or her rounds onto a target rather than to set fire to objects.
359
CCW PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS art. 1(a) (Incendiary weapons can take the form of, for example,
flame throwers, fougasses, shells, rockets, grenades, mines, bombs and other containers of incendiary substances.).
360
See also International Committee of the Red Cross, Conference of Government Experts on the Use of Certain
Conventional Weapons (Lucerne, 24.918.10.1974): Report, 69-70 (1975) (Experts referred to three different
types of flamethrower: portable, mechanized and emplaced. Emplaced flamethrowers, and such things as flame
fougasses and incendiary landmines, find their principal application in perimeter defence, both of fixed and of
temporary positions. Portable and mechanized flamethrowers were seen to have several applications of which the
two most important were the attack on pillboxes, and other such strongpoints, and the burning away of vegetation
from positions suspected of concealing enemy units.).
361
For example, DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY FIELD MANUAL 3-11 / MARINE CORPS WARFIGHTING PUBLICATION 3-
3.7.2, Flame, Riot Control Agents and Herbicide Operations (Aug. 19, 1996) (The flame fougasse is a variation of
an exploding FFE [flame field expedient] in which the flame is projected by explosive means over a preselected
area. An excellent defensive weapon, the fougasse can also provide illumination as well as produce casualties. On
Defensive Line Wyoming, during the Korean Conflict, elements of the 1st Cavalry Division emplaced 1,000 drums
of FFEs in front of fighting positions. The drums were set in the ground at a 45-degree angle with the opening
toward the enemy. Two examples of flame fougasses are the propellant charge container and the 55-gallon
container.).
362
W. Hays Parks, The Protocol on Incendiary Weapons, 30 INTERNATIONAL REVIEW OF THE RED CROSS 543-44
(Nov.-Dec. 1990) (Thermite weapons, which contain a mixture of powdered ferric oxide and powdered or granular
aluminium, are antimateriel and fire-sustaining. Thermite bombs, which burn at temperatures of about 2,400
degrees Centigrade, were the primary antimateriel incendiaries used by air forces of both sides in World Wars I and
II. A later version contained barium nitrate and is called thermate, while a more recent variant is triethylaluminium
(TEA). There has been little use of thermite-type bombs since 1945, in part because there have been few air
campaigns directed against industrial targets.).
363
CCW PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS art. 1(b) (Incendiary weapons do not include: (i) Munitions
which may have incidental incendiary effects, such as illuminants, tracers, smoke or signalling systems;).
383
6.14.1.4 Excluded From the Definition of Incendiary Weapons Certain
Combined-Effects Munitions. Certain combined-effects munitions are excluded from the
definition of incendiary weapons. These munitions are designed to combine penetration, blast,
or fragmentation effects with an additional incendiary effect, in which the incendiary effect is not
specifically designed to cause burn injury to persons, but to be used against objects that are
military objectives, such as armored vehicles, aircraft, and installations or facilities. Such
weapons may include armor-piercing projectiles, fragmentation shells, explosive bombs, and
similar combined-effects munitions.364
364
CCW PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS art. 1(b) (Incendiary weapons do not include: (ii) Munitions
designed to combine penetration, blast or fragmentation effects with an additional incendiary effect, such as armour-
piercing projectiles, fragmentation shells, explosive bombs and similar combined-effects munitions in which the
incendiary effect is not specifically designed to cause burn injury to persons, but to be used against military
objectives, such as armoured vehicles, aircraft and installations or facilities.).
365
For example, Captain James T. Cobb, First Lieutenant Christopher A. LaCour, and Sergeant First Class William
H. Hight, After-Action Review (AAR) for the Battle of Fallujah, 9b, reprinted in FIELD ARTILLERY 23, 26 (Mar.-
Apr. 2005) (White Phosphorous [WP]. WP proved to be an effective and versatile munition. We used it for
screening missions at two breeches and, later in the fight, as a potent psychological weapon against the insurgents in
trench lines and spider holes when we could not get effects on them with HE [High Explosive]. We fired shake and
bake missions at the insurgents, using WP to flush them out and HE to take them out.).
366
Refer to 5.6 (Discrimination in Conducting Attacks); 5.12 (Proportionality in Conducting Attacks).
367
Refer to 5.11 (Feasible Precautions in Conducting Attacks to Reduce the Risk of Harm to Protected Persons and
Objects).
368
For example, Peter Pace, Chairman of the Joint Chiefs of Staff, News Briefing with Secretary of Defense Donald
Rumsfeld and Gen. Peter Pace, Nov. 29, 2005 (No armed force in the world goes to greater effort than your armed
force to protect civilians and to be very precise in the way we apply our power. A bullet goes through skin even
faster than white phosphorus does. So I would rather have the proper instrument applied at the proper time as
precisely as possible to get the job done in a way that kills as many of the bad guys as possible and does as little
collateral damage as possible. That is just the nature of warfare.).
384
object of attack by incendiary weapons. 369 In addition, it is specifically prohibited to make
forests or other kinds of plant cover the object of attack by incendiary weapons, except when
such natural elements are used to cover, conceal, or camouflage combatants or other military
objectives, or are themselves military objectives. 370
Similarly, the risks that the use of an incendiary weapon may pose to the civilian
population should be considered in a proportionality analysis. 371
As with the use of other weapons, commanders must take feasible precautions to reduce
the risk of incidental harm to civilians when using incendiary weapons. 372
First, subject to the U.S. reservation discussed below, it is prohibited to use air-delivered
incendiary weapons to make any military objective located within a concentration of civilians the
object of attack. 374
Second, subject to the U.S. reservation discussed below, it is also prohibited to use
incendiary weapons other than air-delivered incendiary weapons (e.g., ground artillery) to make
any military objective located within a concentration of civilians the object of attack. However,
it is not prohibited to use such incendiary weapons against a military objective located within a
concentration of civilians, when such military objective is clearly separated from the
concentration of civilians and all feasible precautions are taken with a view to limiting the
369
CCW PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS art. 2(1) (It is prohibited in all circumstances to make the
civilian population as such, individual civilians or civilian objects the object of attack by incendiary weapons.).
370
CCW PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS art. 2(4) (It is prohibited to make forests or other kinds of plant
cover the object of attack by incendiary weapons except when such natural elements are used to cover, conceal or
camouflage combatants or other military objectives, or are themselves military objectives.).
371
Refer to 5.12 (Proportionality in Conducting Attacks).
372
Refer to 5.11 (Feasible Precautions in Conducting Attacks to Reduce the Risk of Harm to Protected Persons and
Objects).
373
CCW PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS art. 1(2) (A concentration of civilians means any concentration
of civilians, be it permanent or temporary, such as in inhabited parts of cities, or inhabited towns or villages, or as in
camps or columns of refugees or evacuees, or groups of nomads.).
374
CCW PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS art. 2(2) (It is prohibited in all circumstances to make any
military objective located within a concentration of civilians the object of attack by air-delivered incendiary
weapons.).
385
incendiary effects to the military objective and to avoiding, and in any event to minimizing,
incidental loss of civilian life, injury to civilians, and damage to civilian objects. 375
For example, the use of incendiary weapons might be the means of attacking enemy
biological weapons facilities that poses the least risk of incidental harm to the civilian
population. 378 Similarly, the use of incendiary weapons might reduce the number of sorties or
attacks, and thereby further reduce the risk of incidental harm to the civilian population. 379
375
CCW PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS art. 2(3) (prohibiting making any military objective located
within a concentration of civilians the object of attack by means of incendiary weapons other than air-delivered
incendiary weapons, except when such military objective is clearly separated from the concentration of civilians and
all feasible precautions are taken with a view to limiting the incendiary effects to the military objective and to
avoiding, and in any event to minimizing, incidental loss of civilian life, injury to civilians and damage to civilian
objects.).
376
Harold Koh, Legal Adviser, Department of State, Letter to Paul Seger, Legal Adviser of Switzerland regarding
Switzerlands Position on the U.S. Reservation to Protocol III of the Convention on Certain Conventional Weapons,
Dec. 30, 2009 (In our view, this reservation is compatible with the object and purpose of Protocol III. We take the
view that the object and purpose of Protocol III is to protect civilians from the collateral damage associated with the
use of incendiary weapons. The narrow reservation taken by the United States is not incompatible with this object
and purpose. In fact, this reservation ensures that the United States has the ability to provide for even greater
protection of the civilian population, consistent with Protocol III.).
377
United States, Statement on Consent to Be Bound by CCW Protocol III on Incendiary Weapons, Jan. 21, 2009,
2562 UNTS 36 (The United States of America, with reference to Article 2, paragraphs 2 and 3, reserves the right to
use incendiary weapons against military objectives located in concentrations of civilians where it is judged that such
use would cause fewer casualties and/or less collateral damage than alternative weapons, but in so doing will take all
feasible precautions with a view to limiting the incendiary effects to the military objective and to avoiding, and in
any event to minimizing, incidental loss of civilian life, injury to civilians and damage to civilian objects.). Refer
to 5.11 (Feasible Precautions in Conducting Attacks to Reduce the Risk of Harm to Protected Persons and
Objects).
378
Article-by-Article Analysis of CCW Protocol III on Incendiary Weapons, 3, Enclosure B to Warren Christopher,
Letter of Submittal, Dec. 7, 1996, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CCW AMENDED MINES
PROTOCOL, PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS, AND PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS 39
(Incendiaries are the only weapons which can effectively destroy certain counter-proliferation targets such as
biological weapons facilities which require high heat to eliminate bio-toxins. To use only high explosives would
risk the widespread release of dangerous contaminants with potentially disastrous consequences for the civilian
population.).
379
Article-by-Article Analysis of CCW Protocol III on Incendiary Weapons, 3-4, Enclosure B to Warren
Christopher, Letter of Submittal, Dec. 7, 1996, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CCW AMENDED
MINES PROTOCOL, PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS, AND PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS 39-
386
6.15 LASER WEAPONS
In general, laser weapons are permissible. They may be used against enemy combatants,
including to kill and injure them. However, the use of blinding laser weapons is prohibited. In
addition, feasible precautions shall be taken in the employment of laser systems to avoid causing
permanent blindness.
Any use of such weapons is prohibited, including uses that are not intended to blind.
Although the U.S. armed forces and other militaries use lasers in a variety of roles, such
as range-finding or causing temporary loss of sight, the United States has not developed or
fielded a blinding laser weapon.
On the other hand, blinding as an incidental or collateral effect of the legitimate military
employment of laser systems, including laser systems used against optical equipment, is not
prohibited. 381 Thus, laser systems and devices used for rangefinding, target designation,
jamming, dazzling, communications, and weapons guidance do not fall under this prohibition,
even if serious eye injury or permanent blindness may incidentally occur through their use. 382
Similarly, incidental blinding from the use of lasers that are designed to attack or destroy
material or injure persons as a combat function (but are not specifically designed to blind) would
be permissible.
40 (Certain flammable military targets are also more readily destroyed by incendiaries. For example, a fuel depot
could require up to eight times the bombs and sorties to destroy using only high explosives rather than incendiaries.
Such an increase means a significantly greater humanitarian risk of collateral damage.).
380
CCW PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS art. 1 (It is prohibited to employ laser weapons specifically
designed, as their sole combat function or as one of their combat functions, to cause permanent blindness to
unenhanced vision, that is to the naked eye or to the eye with corrective eyesight devices.).
381
CCW PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS art. 3 (Blinding as an incidental or collateral effect of the
legitimate military employment of laser systems, including laser systems used against optical equipment, is not
covered by the prohibition of this Protocol.).
382
W. Hays Parks, Special Assistant to The Judge Advocate General of the Army for Law of War Matters,
Memorandum of Law: Travaux Preparatoires and Legal Analysis of Blinding Laser Weapons Protocol, reprinted in
THE ARMY LAWYER 33, 36 (Jun. 1997) (Choice of the term weapon was intentional to distinguish the prohibited
system from lasers which are used for rangefinding, jamming, dazzling, communications, weapons guidance, and
similar purposes.).
387
prospect of recovery. Serious disability is equivalent to visual acuity of less than 20/200 Snellen
measured using both eyes. 383
Lasers that are designed to cause a temporary loss of sight, such as laser dazzlers,
would not fall under this prohibition. 384
Unenhanced vision means the naked eye or the eye with corrective eyesight devices, such
as ordinary glasses or contact lenses. 385 For example, unenhanced vision does not mean vision
through direct-view optics, such as binoculars, a telescopic sight, night-vision goggles, or similar
devices used to increase vision beyond that of an ordinary person without such enhancement.
Persons using direct-view optics may have an increased risk of eye injury from lasers.
6.15.2 Feasible Precautions in the Employment of Laser Systems to Avoid the Incident of
Permanent Blindness. In the employment of laser systems, all feasible precautions shall be taken
to avoid the incidence of permanent blindness to unenhanced vision. 386 Feasible precautions
may be understood to include those that are practicable or practically possible taking into
account all circumstances ruling at the time, including humanitarian and military
considerations. 387 Such precautions include training of the armed forces and other practical
measures, such as promulgating doctrine and rules of engagement. 388
383
CCW PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS art. 4 (For the purpose of this protocol permanent
blindness means irreversible and uncorrectable loss of vision which is seriously disabling with no prospect of
recovery. Serious disability is equivalent to visual acuity of less than 20/200 Snellen measured using both eyes.).
384
For example, Defense Science Board, Defense Science Board Task Force on Directed Energy Weapons, 13 (Dec.
2007) (Laser-based optical incapacitation devices have been deployed to Iraq in response to urgent fielding
requirements for a non-lethal means to warn or temporarily incapacitate individuals. Marines employing these
devices have reported that they consistently defuse potential escalation of force incidents. Laser devices currently
employed by the Marine Corps are green laser (532 nm) systems emitting a strong beam that can temporarily reduce
visual acuity at a distance of 300m or more. It has a nominal ocular hazard minimum distance that the operator must
avoid to preclude risk of eye injury. The lasers have been successfully used in convoy operations, mounted and
dismounted patrols, vehicle check points, and entry control points. Army units have also purchased laser optical
incapacitation devices of various types, principally for use in escalation of force situations and to warn or deter
drivers of cars approaching checkpoints, U.S. convoys, or fixed-site installations.).
385
CCW PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS art. 1 (defining unenhanced vision as the naked eye or
the eye with corrective eyesight devices.).
386
CCW PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS art. 2 (In the employment of laser systems, the High
Contracting Parties shall take all feasible precautions to avoid the incidence of permanent blindness to unenhanced
vision.).
387
Refer to 5.3.3.2 (What Precautions Are Feasible).
388
CCW PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS art. 2 (Such precautions shall include training of their armed
forces and other practical measures.).
388
example, it would not be prohibited for a soldier to use a non-prohibited laser system to blind an
enemy combatant to save the users life. 389
The use of riot control agents is subject to certain prohibitions and restrictions. Riot
control agents are widely used by governments for law enforcement purposes (such as crowd
control), but are prohibited as a method of warfare.
6.16.1 Definition of Riot Control Agents. Riot control agents mean any chemical not
listed in a Schedule Annexed to the Chemical Weapons Convention, which can produce rapidly
in humans sensory irritation or disabling physical effects that disappear within a short time
following termination of exposure. 390 Riot control agents include, for example, tear gas and
pepper spray, but generally are understood to exclude the broader class of non-lethal weapons
that may sometimes be used for riot control or other similar purposes, such as foams, water
cannons, bean bags, or rubber bullets. 391
The United States does not consider riot control agents to be chemical weapons, 392 or
otherwise to fall under the prohibition against asphyxiating, poisonous, or other gases, and all
analogous liquids, materials, or devices. 393
389
W. Hays Parks, Special Assistant to The Judge Advocate General of the Army for Law of War Matters,
Memorandum of Law: Travaux Preparatoires and Legal Analysis of Blinding Laser Weapons Protocol, reprinted in
THE ARMY LAWYER 33, 36 (Jun. 1997) (Finally, although Article 2 requires use of a laser device in a manner
consistent with the spirit and intent of the Protocol, the delegations could not agree that a soldier should be
criminally responsible if, in an in extremis situation, he employs a laser device against an enemy combatant to save
the users life.).
390
CHEMICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION art. 2(7) (Riot Control Agent means: Any chemical not listed in a
Schedule, which can produce rapidly in humans sensory irritation or disabling physical effects which disappear
within a short time following termination of exposure.).
391
Joseph Benkert, Principal Deputy Assistant Secretary of Defense for International Security Policy, Testimony on
U.S. policy and practice with respect to the use of riot control agents by the U.S. Armed Forces before the Senate
Committee on Armed Services, Subcommittee on Readiness and Management Support, Sept. 27, 2006, 2006 DIGEST
OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 1224 ([W]hen I refer to riot control agents in my testimony
today I am referring to chemicals not listed in a Chemical Weapons Convention schedule which can produce rapidly
in humans sensory irritation or disabling physical effects which disappear within a short time following termination
of exposure. This includes for example, tear gas and pepper spray. I am not referring to the broader class of non-
chemical non-lethal weapons that may sometimes be used for riot control or other similar purposes such as foams,
water cannons, bean bags, or rubber bullets.).
392
Joseph Benkert, Principal Deputy Assistant Secretary of Defense for International Security Policy, Testimony on
U.S. policy and practice with respect to the use of riot control agents by the U.S. Armed Forces before the Senate
Committee on Armed Services, Subcommittee on Readiness and Management Support, Sept. 27, 2006, 2006 DIGEST
OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 1223-24 (The Administration agrees with the policy
statement in the National Defense Authorization Act for FY2006, section 1232 (the Ensign Amendment); namely,
It is the policy of the United States that riot control agents are not chemical weapons .).
393
See Statement by Secretary Rusk, Mar. 24, 1965, 52 DEPARTMENT OF STATE BULLETIN 528 (Apr. 12, 1965)
(explaining that tear gas used by U.S. forces in Vietnam is not gas that is prohibited by the Geneva convention of
1925 or any other understandings about the use of gas). Refer to 6.8.2 (Asphyxiating, Poisonous, or Other Gases,
and All Analogous Liquids, Materials, or Devices).
389
6.16.2 Prohibition on Use of Riot Control Agents as a Method of Warfare. It is
prohibited to use riot control agents as a method of warfare. 394 The United States has understood
this prohibition not to prohibit the use of riot control agents in war in defensive military modes to
save lives, such as use of riot control agents:
in riot control situations in areas under direct and distinct U.S. military control, including
controlling rioting POWs; 395
in situations in which civilians are used to mask or screen attacks and civilian casualties
can be reduced or avoided; 396
in rescue missions in remotely isolated areas, of downed aircrews and passengers, and
escaping prisoners; and
in rear echelon areas outside the zone of immediate combat to protect convoys from civil
disturbances, terrorists, and paramilitary organizations.
These uses are as articulated in Executive Order 11850. 397 Even though Executive Order
11850 predated the Chemical Weapons Convention (which could have created legal obligations
that were inconsistent with Executive Order 11850), interpreting the Chemical Weapons
Convention consistent with Executive Order 11850 was a condition of the Senate giving its
394
CHEMICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION art. 1(5) (Each State Party undertakes not to use riot control agents as a
method of warfare.).
395
For example, WALTER G. HERMES, UNITED STATES ARMY IN THE KOREAN WAR: TRUCE TENT AND FIGHTING
FRONT 256-57 (1992) (Armed with stones, flails, sharpened tent poles, steel pipes, and knives, the defiant prisoners
[held during the Korean War] screamed insults and challenges. The infantry maintained excellent discipline, using
tear gas and concussion grenades to break up the prisoners opposition. Herding the prisoners into a corner, the
U.N. troops forced them into their new compound. Only one prisoner was killed and twenty-nine were wounded as
against one U.S. injury.).
396
For example, JACK SHULIMSON & MAJOR CHARLES M. JOHNSON, U.S. MARINES IN VIETNAM: THE LANDING AND
THE BUILDUP 1965, 91 (1978) (Operation STOMP unfolded according to plan. Company H made its LVT assault
through the mud flats of Qui Nhon bay while Company F landed by helicopter to cut off the VC avenues of retreat.
The two companies closed their cordon around the Viet Cong, killing 26 and capturing three. With escape denied,
the enemy went underground, taking many local peasants with them for use as human shields. During the mop-up
of the area, a much-publicized action occurred. As the Marines slowly and methodically searched out a complex of
tunnels, they threw in tear gas grenades to flush out the occupants. Seventeen VC were forced from hiding in this
fashion, as well as more than 300 women, children, and old men, not one of whom was harmed.).
397
Executive Order 11850, Renunciation of Certain Uses in War of Chemical Herbicides and Riot Control Agents,
40 FEDERAL REGISTER 16187 (Apr. 8, 1975) (The United States renounces, as a matter of national policy, first
use of riot control agents in war except in defensive military modes to save lives such as: (a) Use of riot control
agents in riot control situations in areas under direct and distinct U.S. military control, to include controlling rioting
prisoners of war. (b) Use of riot control agents in situations in which civilians are used to mask or screen attacks
and civilian casualties can be reduced or avoided. (c) Use of riot control agents in rescue missions in remotely
isolated areas, of downed aircrews and passengers, and escaping prisoners. (d) Use of riot control agents in rear
echelon areas outside the zone of immediate combat to protect convoys from civil disturbances, terrorists and
paramilitary organizations.).
390
advice and consent to ratification of the Chemical Weapons Convention. 398 Thus, Executive
Order 11850 has remained an important part of U.S. policy on the use of riot control agents. 399
In addition to being permitted in war in defensive military modes to save lives, it is not
prohibited to use riot control agents in military operations outside of war or armed conflict.
Specifically, the United States has taken the position that riot control agents may be used in the
conduct of:
peacetime military operations within an area of ongoing armed conflict when the United
States is not a party to the conflict;
consensual peacekeeping operations when the use of force is authorized by the receiving
state, including operations pursuant to Chapter VI of the United Nations Charter; and
peacekeeping operations when force is authorized by the Security Council under Chapter
VII of the United Nations Charter. 400
398
Senate, Conditions to Ratification of the Chemical Weapons Convention, Senate Resolution 75, 105th Congress
143 CONGRESSIONAL RECORD S3651, S3657 (1997) (The President shall take no measure, and prescribe no rule or
regulation, which would alter or eliminate Executive Order 11850 of April 8, 1975.).
399
Joseph Benkert, Principal Deputy Assistant Secretary of Defense for International Security Policy, Testimony on
U.S. policy and practice with respect to the use of riot control agents by the U.S. Armed Forces before the Senate
Committee on Armed Services, Subcommittee on Readiness and Management Support, Sept. 27, 2006, 2006 DIGEST
OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 1223-24 (The policy governing the use of riot control agents
by the U.S. Armed Forces is expressed principally in the Chemical Weapons Convention, the resolution of
ratification of the Chemical Weapons Convention, and Executive Order 11850 [Renunciation of Certain Uses in
War of Chemical Herbicides and Riot Control Agents (1975)]. The Administration agrees with the policy statement
in the National Defense Authorization Act for FY2006, section 1232 (the Ensign Amendment); namely, It is the
policy of the United States that riot control agents are not chemical weapons and that the President may authorize
their use as legitimate, legal, and nonlethal alternatives to the use of force that, as provided in Executive Order
11850 (40 Fed. Reg. 16187) and consistent with the resolution of ratification of the Chemical Weapons Convention,
may be employed by members of the Armed Forces in war in defensive military modes to save lives, including the
illustrative purposes cited in Executive Order 11850.) (insertions in original).
400
Senate, Conditions to Ratification of the Chemical Weapons Convention, Senate Resolution 75, 105th Congress
143 CONGRESSIONAL RECORD S3651, S3657 (1997) (Prior to the deposit of the United States instrument of
ratification, the President shall certify to Congress that the United States is not restricted by the Convention in its use
of riot control agents, including the use against combatants who are parties to a conflict, in any of the following
cases: (i) UNITED STATES NOT A PARTY. The conduct of peacetime military operations within an area of ongoing
armed conflict when the United States is not a party to the conflict (such as recent use of the United States Armed
Forces in Somalia, Bosnia, and Rwanda). (ii) CONSENSUAL PEACEKEEPING. Consensual peacekeeping operations
when the use of force is authorized by the receiving state, including operations pursuant to Chapter VI of the United
Nations Charter. (iii) CHAPTER VII PEACEKEEPING. Peacekeeping operations when force is authorized by the
Security Council under Chapter VII of the United Nations Charter.); William J. Clinton, Message to the Senate on
the Chemical Weapons Convention, Apr. 25, 1997, 1997-I PUBLIC PAPERS OF THE PRESIDENTS 495, 497 (In
accordance with Condition (26) on Riot Control Agents, I have certified that the United States is not restricted by
the Convention in its use of riot control agents in various peacetime and peacekeeping operations. These are
situations in which the United States is not engaged in a use of force of a scope, duration and intensity that would
trigger the laws of war with respect to U.S. forces.).
391
6.17 HERBICIDES
The United States has renounced, as a matter of national policy, first use of herbicides in
war except use, under regulations applicable to their domestic use, for control of vegetation
within U.S. bases and installations or around their immediate defensive perimeters. 401
6.17.3 ENMOD Convention and Herbicides. Under certain circumstances, the use of
herbicides could be prohibited by the ENMOD Convention. 406 However, the use of herbicides to
control vegetation within U.S. bases and installations or around their immediate defensive
perimeters has been understood by the United States to be permitted under international law. 407
401
Executive Order 11850, Renunciation of Certain Uses in War of Chemical Herbicides and Riot Control Agents,
40 FEDERAL REGISTER 16187 (Apr. 8, 1975) (The United States renounces, as a matter of national policy, first use
of herbicides in war except use, under regulations applicable to their domestic use, for control of vegetation within
U.S. bases and installations or around their immediate defensive perimeters.).
402
Refer to 6.8.1.2 (Death or Permanent Disability to Persons).
403
Article-by-Article Analysis of the Chemical Weapons Convention, 2-3, Attachment to Peter Tarnoff, Acting,
Letter of Submittal, Nov. 20, 1993, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CHEMICAL WEAPONS
CONVENTION 2-3 (The seventh preambular paragraph, although not legally binding, nevertheless recognizes the
prohibition, embodied in the pertinent agreements and relevant principles of international law, of the use of
herbicides as a method of warfare. Thus, the Convention does not add any new constraints on the use of
herbicides.).
404
Refer to 6.8.3.1 (Definition of Chemical Weapons).
405
Refer to 6.8.3.4 (Certain Uses of Toxic Chemicals Not Prohibited).
406
Second Review Conference of the Parties to the ENMOD Convention in September 1992, Final Declaration,
(The Conference confirms that the military or any other hostile use of herbicides as an environmental modification
technique in the meaning of Article II [of the ENMOD Convention] is a method of warfare prohibited by Article I
[of the ENMOD Convention] if such use of herbicides upsets the ecological balance of a region, thus causing
widespread, long-lasting or severe effects as the means of destruction, damage or injury to any other State Party [to
the ENMOD Convention].).
407
Article-by-Article Analysis of the Chemical Weapons Convention, 3, Attachment to Peter Tarnoff, Acting, Letter
of Submittal, Nov. 20, 1993, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CHEMICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION
3 (It is the understanding of the United States that the uses of herbicides proscribed [sic] in Executive Order 11850
do not cause such effects [that would violate the ENMOD Convention] and are allowed under international law.).
392
6.17.4 Authority Under Domestic Law to Employ Herbicides in War. Use of herbicides
in war by the U.S. armed forces requires advance Presidential approval. 408 Additional
regulations govern the use of herbicides.
The law of war governs the use of nuclear weapons, just as it governs the use of
conventional weapons. 410 For example, nuclear weapons must be directed against military
objectives. 411 In addition, attacks using nuclear weapons must not be conducted when the
expected incidental harm to civilians is excessive compared to the military advantage expected to
be gained. 412
6.18.1 U.S. Policy on the Use of Nuclear Weapons. The United States has developed
national policy on the use of nuclear weapons. For example, the United States has stated that it
would only consider the use of nuclear weapons in extreme circumstances to defend the vital
interests of the United States or its allies and partners. 413 In addition, the United States has stated
that it will not use or threaten to use nuclear weapons against non-nuclear weapons States that
408
Executive Order 11850, Renunciation of Certain Uses in War of Chemical Herbicides and Riot Control Agents,
40 FEDERAL REGISTER 16187 (Apr. 8, 1975) (The Secretary of Defense shall take all necessary measures to ensure
that the use by the Armed Forces of the United States of any ... chemical herbicides in war is prohibited unless such
use has Presidential approval, in advance.).
409
Written Statement of the Government of the United States of America, 21, Jun. 20, 1995, I.C.J., Request by the
United Nations General Assembly for an Advisory Opinion on the Legality of the Threat or Use of Nuclear
Weapons (noting that there is no general prohibition in conventional or customary international law on the use of
nuclear weapons,).
410
See, e.g., Secretary of Defense, Report on Nuclear Employment Strategy of the United States Specified in Section
491 of 10 U.S.C., 4-5 (Jun. 2013) (The new guidance makes clear that all plans must also be consistent with the
fundamental principles of the Law of Armed Conflict. Accordingly, plans will, for example, apply the principles of
distinction and proportionality and seek to minimize collateral damage to civilian populations and civilian objects.
The United States will not intentionally target civilian populations or civilian objects.); Written Statement of the
Government of the United States of America, 21, Jun. 20, 1995, I.C.J., Request by the United Nations General
Assembly for an Advisory Opinion on the Legality of the Threat or Use of Nuclear Weapons (The United States
has long taken the position that various principles of the international law of armed conflict would apply to the use
of nuclear weapons as well as to other means and methods of warfare. This in no way means, however, that the use
of nuclear weapons is precluded by the law of war.); Edward R. Cummings, The Role of Humanitarian Law, Sept.
25, 1982, III CUMULATIVE DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 1981-1988 3421, 3422 (As
far back as 1965 the U.S. supported a UN Resolution that essentially stated that all governments and other
authorities responsible for action in armed conflicts should conform at least to the following principle[] ... that the
general principles of the Law of War apply to nuclear and similar weapons.).
411
Refer to 5.6 (Discrimination in Conducting Attacks).
412
Refer to 5.12 (Proportionality in Conducting Attacks).
413
Department of Defense, Nuclear Posture Review Report 17 (Apr. 2010) (The United States would only consider
the use of nuclear weapons in extreme circumstances to defend the vital interests of the United States or its allies
and partners.).
393
are party to the Nuclear Non-Proliferation Treaty and in compliance with their nuclear non-
proliferation obligations. 414
6.18.2 Nuclear Weapons and Arms Control Obligations. Nuclear weapons are regulated
by a number of arms control agreements restricting their development, testing, production,
proliferation, deployment, use, and, with respect to specific types, possession. Some of these
agreements may not apply in times of war. Guidance on nuclear arms control agreements is
beyond the scope of this manual.
414
Department of Defense, Nuclear Posture Review Report 17 (Apr. 2010) (The United States will not use or
threaten to use nuclear weapons against non-nuclear weapons states that are party to the NPT and in compliance
with their nuclear non-proliferation obligations.).
415
Belgium, Statement on Ratification of AP I, May 20, 1986, 1435 UNTS 367 (The Belgian Government, bearing
in mind the preparatory work on the international instrument which is hereby ratified, wishes to stress that the
Protocol was drawn up in order to expand the protection conferred by humanitarian law exclusively when
conventional weapons are used in armed conflicts, without prejudice to the provisions of international law relating to
the use of other types of weapons.); Germany, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Feb. 14, 1991, 1607 UNTS 526,
529 (It is the understanding of the Federal Republic of Germany that the rules relating to the use of weapons
introduced by Additional Protocol I were intended to apply exclusively to conventional weapons without prejudice
to any other rules of international law applicable to other types of weapons.); Italy, Statement on Ratification of AP
I, Feb. 27, 1986, 1425 UNTS 438 (It is the understanding of the Government of Italy that the rules relating to the
use of weapons introduced by Additional Protocol I were intended to apply exclusively to conventional weapons.
They do not prejudice any other rule of international law applicable to other types of weapons.); Netherlands,
Statement on Ratification of AP I, Jun. 26, 1987, 1477 UNTS 300 (With regard to Protocol I as a whole: It is the
understanding of the Government of the Kingdom of the Netherlands that the rules introduced by Protocol I relating
to the use of weapons were intended to apply and consequently do apply solely to conventional weapons, without
prejudice to any other rules of international law applicable to other types of weapons;); Spain, Statement on
Ratification of AP I, Apr. 21, 1989, 1537 UNTS 390, 391 (This Protocol shall be understood to apply in its
particular field, exclusively to conventional weapons and without prejudice to the norms of international law
applicable to weapons of any other type.).
416
See, e.g., United Kingdom, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Jan. 28, 1998, 2020 UNTS 75, 76 (It continues to
be the understanding of the United Kingdom that the rules introduced by the Protocol apply exclusively to
conventional weapons without prejudice to any other rules of international law applicable to other types of weapons.
In particular, the rules so introduced do not have any effect on and do not regulate or prohibit the use of nuclear
weapons.); France, Statement on Ratification of AP I, translated in SCHINDLER & TOMAN, THE LAWS OF ARMED
CONLFICTS: A COLLECTION OF CONVENTIONS, RESOLUTIONS, AND OTHER DOCUMENTS 800 (2004) (Referring to
the draft protocol drawn up by the International Committee of the Red Cross which constituted the basis of 1974-
1977 Diplomatic Conference, the Government of the French Republic continues to consider that the Protocols
provisions concern exclusively conventional weapons and do not regulate or prohibit the use of nuclear weapons,
nor should they constitute a prejudice to any other rules of international law applicable to other activities necessary
for the exercise by France of its inherent right of self-defense.); Canada, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Nov. 20,
1990, 1591 UNTS 462, 463 (It is the understanding of the Government of Canada that the rules introduced by
Protocol I were intended to apply exclusively to conventional weapons. In particular, the rules so introduced do not
have any effect on and do not regulate or prohibit the use of nuclear weapons.).
394
is not a Party to AP I, the United States participated in the diplomatic conference that negotiated
AP I based upon this understanding. 417
6.18.4 Authority to Launch Nuclear Weapons. The authority to launch nuclear weapons
generally is restricted to the highest levels of government. The domestic law and procedures
concerning nuclear weapons employment are beyond the scope of this manual.
Information should be kept on the use of explosive ordnance in order to reduce the risk
posed by explosive remnants of war once the conflict has ended. 418 If possible, explosive
ordnance that must be abandoned should be left in a safe and secure manner, and information
should be recorded and retained on its abandonment. 419 In addition, generic preventive measures
should be taken during the life-cycle of explosive ordnance in order to minimize the occurrence
of explosive remnants of war. 420
As a factual matter, mines, booby-traps, and other devices may constitute explosive
ordnance, but the legal definition of explosive ordnance in the CCW Protocol V on Explosive
Remnants of War excludes these items because they are addressed by the CCW Amended Mines
Protocol. 422
417
APPENDIX TO 1985 CJCS MEMO ON AP I 89 (The United States participated in the negotiation of the Protocol on
the assumption that its rules on the conduct of combat operations would not apply to the use of nuclear weapons, a
position based on statements in the introduction to the original draft of the Protocol tabled by the Red Cross.);
United States, Statement on Signature of AP I, 1125 UNTS 434 (1. It is the understanding of the United States of
America that the rules established by this Protocol were not intended to have any effect on and do not regulate or
prohibit the use of nuclear weapons.). See also International Committee of the Red Cross, Introduction, Draft
Additional Protocols to the Geneva Conventions of August 12, 1949, June 1973, 2, reprinted in I OFFICIAL RECORDS
OF THE CDDH Part Three (Problems relating to atomic, bacteriological and chemical warfare are subjects of
international agreements or negotiations by governments, and in submitting these draft Additional Protocols, the
ICRC does not intend to broach those problems.).
418
Refer to 6.19.2 (Using Explosive Ordnance).
419
Refer to 6.19.3 (Abandoning Explosive Ordnance).
420
Refer to 6.19.5 (Generic Preventive Measures During the Life-Cycle of Explosive Ordnance Aimed at
Minimizing the Occurrence of Explosive Remnants of War).
421
CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 2(1) (Explosive ordnance means conventional
munitions containing explosives, with the exception of mines, booby traps and other devices as defined in Protocol
II of this Convention as amended on 3 May 1996.).
422
Refer to 6.12.1 (Definition of Mine); 6.12.2 (Definition of Booby-Trap); 6.12.3 (Definition of Other
Devices Similar to Mines).
395
The reference to conventional munitions in the definition of explosive ordnance means
that chemical, biological, and nuclear weapons are not covered by the CCW Protocol V on
Explosive Remnants of War. 423
6.19.2 Using Explosive Ordnance. To the maximum extent possible and as far as
practicable, information should be recorded and retained on the use of explosive ordnance during
armed conflict in order to reduce the risks posed by explosive remnants of war. 429 The best
practice is to record and retain, as accurately as possible, the following information regarding
explosive ordnance that may have become unexploded ordnance:
423
WILLIAM H. BOOTHBY, WEAPONS AND THE LAW OF ARMED CONFLICT 303 (2009) (Specifically, the Protocol
does not apply to chemical, biological, or nuclear weapons.).
424
CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 2(2) (Unexploded ordnance means explosive
ordnance that has been primed, fused, armed, or otherwise prepared for use and used in an armed conflict.).
425
CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 2(2) (It may have been fired, dropped, launched or
projected and should have exploded but failed to do so.).
426
WILLIAM H. BOOTHBY, WEAPONS AND THE LAW OF ARMED CONFLICT 303 (2009) ([Unexploded ordnance as
defined the CCW Protocol V on Explosive Remnants of War] also does not include weapons that have remained in
the armoury or arsenal and that have not been prepared for firing. The definition is quite specific. The ordnance
must have been prepared for use and must have been actually used in an armed conflict.).
427
CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 2(3) (Abandoned explosive ordnance means
explosive ordnance that has not been used during an armed conflict, that has been left behind or dumped by a party
to an armed conflict, and which is no longer under control of the party that left it behind or dumped it.).
428
CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 2(3) (Abandoned explosive ordnance may or may
not have been primed, fused, armed or otherwise prepared for use.).
429
CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 4(1) (High Contracting Parties and parties to an
armed conflict shall to the maximum extent possible and as far as practicable record and retain information on the
use of explosive ordnance to facilitate the rapid marking and clearance, removal or destruction of explosive
remnants of war, risk education and the provision of relevant information to the party in control of the territory and
to civilian populations in that territory.).
396
the approximate number, type, and nature of explosive ordnance used in these areas; and
397
measures include munitions manufacturing management, munitions management, training,
transfer, and future production. When producing or procuring explosive ordnance, to the extent
possible, and as appropriate, these best practice measures should be implemented and respected
during the life-cycle of explosive ordnance. 435
During the production of explosive ordnance, certified quality assurance standards that
are internationally recognized should be applied.
435
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 3 (States producing or
procuring explosive ordnance should to the extent possible and as appropriate endeavour to ensure that the following
measures are implemented and respected during the life-cycle of explosive ordnance.).
436
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 3(a) ((i) Production
processes should be designed to achieve the greatest reliability of munitions. (ii) Production processes should be
subject to certified quality control measures. (iii) During the production of explosive ordnance, certified quality
assurance standards that are internationally recognised should be applied. (iv) Acceptance testing should be
conducted through live-fire testing over a range of conditions or through other validated procedures. (v) High
reliability standards should be required in the course of explosive ordnance transactions and transfers.).
437
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 3(b) (In order to ensure the
best possible long-term reliability of explosive ordnance, States are encouraged to apply best practice norms and
operating procedures with respect to its storage, transport, field storage, and handling in accordance with the
following guidance.).
438
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 3(b)(i) (Explosive ordnance,
where necessary, should be stored in secure facilities or appropriate containers that protect the explosive ordnance
and its components in a controlled atmosphere, if necessary.).
398
Explosive ordnance should be transported to and from production facilities, storage
facilities, and the field in a manner that minimizes the risk of damage to the explosive
ordnance. 439
439
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 3(b)(ii) (A State should
transport explosive ordnance to and from production facilities, storage facilities and the field in a manner that
minimizes damage to the explosive ordnance.).
440
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 3(b)(iii) (Appropriate
containers and controlled environments, where necessary, should be used by a State when stockpiling and
transporting explosive ordnance.).
441
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 3(b)(iv) (The risk of
explosions in stockpiles should be minimised by the use of appropriate stockpile arrangements.).
442
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 3(b)(v) (States should apply
appropriate explosive ordnance logging, tracking and testing procedures, which should include information on the
date of manufacture of each number, lot or batch of explosive ordnance, and information on where the explosive
ordnance has been, under what conditions it has been stored, and to what environmental factors it has been
exposed.).
443
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 3(b)(vi) (Periodically,
stockpiled explosive ordnance should undergo, where appropriate, live-firing testing to ensure that munitions
function as desired.).
444
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 3(b)(vii) (Sub-assemblies of
stockpiled explosive ordnance should, where appropriate, undergo laboratory testing to ensure that munitions
function as desired.).
399
testing procedures, in order to maintain the reliability of stockpiled explosive
ordnance. 445
6.19.5.3 Training. All personnel who are involved in handling, transporting, and
using explosive ordnance should be properly trained through suitable training programs on the
munitions that they will be required to handle. 446
There are certain obligations with respect to explosive remnants of war on territory under
U.S. control. Most of these obligations are trigged upon the cessation of active hostilities.
445
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 3(b)(viii) (Where necessary,
appropriate action, including adjustment to the expected shelf-life of ordnance, should be taken as a result of
information acquired by logging, tracking and testing procedures, in order to maintain the reliability of stockpiled
explosive ordnance.).
446
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 3(c) (The proper training of
all personnel involved in the handling, transporting and use of explosive ordnance is an important factor in seeking
to ensure its reliable operation as intended. States should therefore adopt and maintain suitable training programmes
to ensure that personnel are properly trained with regard to the munitions with which they will be required to deal.).
447
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 3(d) (A State planning to
transfer explosive ordnance to another State that did not previously possess that type of explosive ordnance should
endeavour to ensure that the receiving State has the capability to store, maintain and use that explosive ordnance
correctly.).
448
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 3(e) (A State should examine
ways and means of improving the reliability of explosive ordnance that it intends to produce or procure, with a view
to achieving the highest possible reliability.).
449
CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 2(4) (Explosive remnants of war means unexploded
ordnance and abandoned explosive ordnance.).
400
6.20.2 Scope of the Obligations Created by the CCW Protocol V on Explosive Remnants
of War. The CCW Protocol V on Explosive Remnants of War applies to explosive remnants of
war on the land territory, including internal waters, of States that are Parties to the Protocol. 450
The CCW Protocol V on Explosive Remnants of War applies to situations resulting from
armed conflict and occupation. 451
Certain obligations in the CCW Protocol V on Explosive Remnants of War only apply to
explosive remnants of war that were created after the entry into force of the Protocol for the High
Contracting Party on whose territory the explosive remnants of war exist. 452 These obligations
include obligations discussed in:
Feasible precautions are those precautions that are practicable or practically possible,
taking into account all circumstances ruling at the time, including humanitarian and military
450
CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 1(2) (This Protocol shall apply to explosive remnants
of war on the land territory including internal waters of High Contracting Parties.).
451
CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 1(3) (This Protocol shall apply to situations resulting
from conflicts referred to in Article 1, paragraphs 1 to 6, of the Convention, as amended on 21 December 2001.).
452
CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 1(4) (Articles 3, 4, 5 and 8 of this Protocol apply to
explosive remnants of war other than existing explosive remnants of war as defined in Article 2, paragraph 5 of this
Protocol.); CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 2(5) (Existing explosive remnants of war
means unexploded ordnance and abandoned explosive ordnance that existed prior to the entry into force of this
Protocol for the High Contracting Party on whose territory it exists.).
453
CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 5(1) (High Contracting Parties and parties to an
armed conflict shall take all feasible precautions in the territory under their control affected by explosive remnants
of war to protect the civilian population, individual civilians and civilian objects from the risks and effects of
explosive remnants of war.).
401
considerations. 454
These precautions may include warnings, risk education to the civilian population, and
marking, fencing, and monitoring of territory affected by explosive remnants of war, as set out in
Part 2 of the Technical Annex to CCW Protocol V on Explosive Remnants of War. 455
6.20.3.1 Best Practice Elements on Warnings and Risk Education. Warnings are
the punctual provision of cautionary information to the civilian population, intended to minimize
risks caused by explosive remnants of war in affected territories. 456
Risk education to the civilian population should consist of risk education programs to
facilitate information exchange between affected communities, government authorities, and
humanitarian organizations so that affected communities are informed about the threat from
explosive remnants of war. Risk education programs are usually long-term activities. 457
All programs of warnings and risk education should, where possible, take into account
prevailing national and international standards, including the International Mine Action
Standards. 458
Warnings and risk education should be provided to the affected civilian population,
which comprises civilians living in or around areas containing explosive remnants of war and
civilians who transit such areas. 459
Warnings should be given as soon as possible, depending on the context and the
information available. A risk education program should replace a warnings program as soon as
454
CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 5(1) (Feasible precautions are those precautions
which are practicable or practicably possible, taking into account all circumstances ruling at the time, including
humanitarian and military considerations.). Refer to 5.3.3.2 (What Precautions Are Feasible).
455
CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 5(1) (These precautions may include warnings, risk
education to the civilian population, marking, fencing and monitoring of territory affected by explosive remnants of
war, as set out in Part 2 of the Technical Annex.).
456
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 2(a) (Warnings are the
punctual provision of cautionary information to the civilian population, intended to minimise risks caused by
explosive remnants of war in affected territories.).
457
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 2(b) (Risk education to the
civilian population should consist of risk education programmes to facilitate information exchange between affected
communities, government authorities and humanitarian organisations so that affected communities are informed
about the threat from explosive remnants of war. Risk education programmes are usually a long term activity.).
458
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 2(c) (All programmes of
warnings and risk education should, where possible, take into account prevailing national and international
standards, including the International Mine Action Standards.).
459
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 2(d) (Warnings and risk
education should be provided to the affected civilian population which comprises civilians living in or around areas
containing explosive remnants of war and civilians who transit such areas.).
402
possible. Warnings and risk education always should be provided to the affected communities at
the earliest possible time. 460
If possible, additional resources for warnings and risk education should be provided.
Such items might include: provision of logistical support, production of risk education materials,
financial support, and general cartographic information. 462
An appropriate structure should be put in place with responsibility for the monitoring and
maintenance of permanent and temporary marking systems, integrated with national and local
460
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 2(e) (Warnings should be
given, as soon as possible, depending on the context and the information available. A risk education programme
should replace a warnings programme as soon as possible. Warnings and risk education always should be provided
to the affected communities at the earliest possible time.).
461
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 2(f) (Parties to a conflict
should employ third parties such as international organisations and non-governmental organisations when they do
not have the resources and skills to deliver efficient risk education.).
462
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 2(g) (Parties to a conflict
should, if possible, provide additional resources for warnings and risk education. Such items might include:
provision of logistical support, production of risk education materials, financial support and general cartographic
information.).
463
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 2(h) (When possible, at any
time during the course of a conflict and thereafter, where explosive remnants of war exist the parties to a conflict
should, at the earliest possible time and to the maximum extent possible, ensure that areas containing explosive
remnants of war are marked, fenced and monitored so as to ensure the effective exclusion of civilians, in accordance
with the following provisions.).
464
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 2(i) (Warning signs based on
methods of marking recognised by the affected community should be utilised in the marking of suspected hazardous
areas. Signs and other hazardous area boundary markers should as far as possible be visible, legible, durable and
resistant to environmental effects and should clearly identify which side of the marked boundary is considered to be
within the explosive remnants of war affected area and which side is considered to be safe.).
403
risk education programs. 465
6.20.4 Protecting, as Far as Feasible, Humanitarian Missions and Organizations From the
Effects of Explosive Remnants of War. Each Party to the CCW Protocol V on Explosive
Remnants of War and party to an armed conflict shall protect, as far as feasible, from the effects
of explosive remnants of war, humanitarian missions and organizations that are or will be
operating in the area under the control of the Party to the CCW Protocol V on Explosive
Remnants of War or party to an armed conflict and with that partys consent. 466
In addition, each Party to the CCW Protocol V on Explosive Remnants of War and party
to an armed conflict shall, upon request by such a humanitarian mission or organization, provide,
as far as feasible, information on the location of all explosive remnants of war that it is aware of
in territory where the requesting humanitarian mission or organization will operate or is
operating. 467 Other treaties or certain U.N. Security Council resolutions may provide a higher
level of additional protection. 468
6.20.5 Obligations Under the CCW Protocol V on Explosive Remnants of War That Are
Triggered by the Cessation of Active Hostilities. Certain obligations under the CCW Protocol V
on Explosive Remnants of War are triggered by the cessation of active hostilities. These
obligations include those obligations addressed in:
The determination that active hostilities have ceased for the purposes of triggering these
obligations would be made at the national level.
465
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 2(j) (An appropriate structure
should be put in place with responsibility for the monitoring and maintenance of permanent and temporary marking
systems, integrated with national and local risk education programmes.).
466
CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 6(1) (Each High Contracting Party and party to an
armed conflict shall: (a) Protect, as far as feasible, from the effects of explosive remnants of war, humanitarian
missions and organizations that are or will be operating in the area under the control of the High Contracting Party
or party to an armed conflict and with that partys consent.).
467
CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 6(1) (Each High Contracting Party and party to an
armed conflict shall: (b) Upon request by such a humanitarian mission or organization, provide, as far as
feasible, information on the location of all explosive remnants of war that it is aware of in territory where the
requesting humanitarian mission or organization will operate or is operating.).
468
CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 6(2) (The provisions of this Article are without
prejudice to existing International Humanitarian Law or other international instruments as applicable or decisions by
the Security Council of the United Nations which provide for a higher level of protection.).
404
In addition, peace treaties or similar agreements negotiated in connection with the
settlement of armed conflicts may also allocate responsibilities with respect to explosive
remnants of war. 469 Nothing in the CCW Protocol V on Explosive Remnants of War precludes
future arrangements in connection with the settlement of armed conflicts, or assistance connected
thereto, to allocate responsibilities with respect to explosive remnants of war in a manner that
respects the essential spirit and purpose of the CCW Protocol V on Explosive Remnants of
War. 470
6.20.6.1 Timing of the Release of Information. The best practice is for the
information to be released as soon as possible, taking into account such matters as any ongoing
469
For example, Protocol to the Agreement on Ending the War and Restoring Peace in Viet-Nam Concerning the
Cease-fire in South Viet-Nam and the Joint Military Commissions, art. 5(a), Jan. 27, 1972, 935 UNTS 251, 253
(Within fifteen days after the cease-fire comes into effect, each party shall do its utmost to complete the removal or
deactivation of all demolition objects, mine-fields, traps, obstacles or other dangerous objects placed previously, so
as not to hamper the populations movement and work, in the first place on waterways, roads and railroads in South
Viet-Nam. Those mines which cannot be removed or deactivated within that time shall be clearly marked and must
be removed or deactivated as soon as possible.); Protocol to the Agreement on Ending the War and Restoring Peace
in Viet-Nam Concerning the Removal, Permanent Deactivation, or Destruction of Mines in the Territorial Waters,
Ports, Harbors, and Waterways of the Democratic Republic of Viet-Nam, art. 5, Jan. 27, 1973, 935 UNTS 393, 395
(The United States shall be responsible for the mine clearance on inland waterways of the Democratic Republic of
Viet-Nam. The Democratic Republic of Viet-Nam shall, to the full extent of its capabilities, actively participate in
the mine clearance with the means of surveying, removal and destruction and technical advice supplied by the
United States.).
470
United States, Statement on Consent to Be Bound by CCW Protocol V on Explosive Remnants of War, Jan. 21,
2009, 2562 UNTS 39, 40 (It is the understanding of the United States of America that nothing in Protocol V would
preclude future arrangements in connection with the settlement of armed conflicts, or assistance connected thereto,
to allocate responsibilities under Article 3 in a manner that respects the essential spirit and purpose of Protocol V).
See also Overview and Article-by-Article Analysis of CCW Protocol V on Explosive Remnants of War 3-4, MESSAGE
FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING AP III, CCW AMENDED ARTICLE 1, AND CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE
REMNANTS OF WAR 13-14 (During the negotiations, the United States and other delegations raised the need to
reconcile this Protocol with other international agreements or arrangements related to the settlement of armed
conflict, in order to avoid unintended consequences in connection with peace treaties or similar arrangements. In the
context of armed conflict, the parties to the conflict themselves will be in the best position to determine how the
responsibilities for ERW should fit into an overall settlement.).
471
CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 4(2) (High Contracting Parties and parties to an
armed conflict which have used or abandoned explosive ordnance which may have become explosive remnants of
war shall, without delay after the cessation of active hostilities and as far as practicable, subject to these parties
legitimate security interests, make available such information to the party or parties in control of the affected area,
bilaterally or through a mutually agreed third party including inter alia the United Nations or, upon request, to other
relevant organizations which the party providing the information is satisfied are or will be undertaking risk
education and the marking and clearance, removal or destruction of explosive remnants of war in the affected
area.).
405
military and humanitarian operations in the affected areas, the availability and reliability of
information, and relevant security issues. 472
The best practice is to release this information to the party or parties in control of the
affected territory and to those persons or institutions that the releasing State is satisfied are, or
will be, involved in UXO or AXO clearance in the affected area, or in the education of the
civilian population on the risks of UXO or AXO. 474
6.20.6.4 Best Practices for the Content of Released Information on UXO. The
best practice is for the released information on UXO to contain details on:
the types and approximate number of explosive ordnance used in the targeted areas;
472
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 1(c)(iv) (Timing: The
information should be released as soon as possible, taking into account such matters as any ongoing military and
humanitarian operations in the affected areas, the availability and reliability of information and relevant security
issues.).
473
CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 4(2) (information shall be made available to the
party or parties in control of the affected area, or, upon request, to other relevant organizations which the party
providing the information is satisfied are or will be undertaking risk education and the marking and clearance,
removal or destruction of explosive remnants of war in the affected area.).
474
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 1(c)(ii) (Recipient: The
information should be released to the party or parties in control of the affected territory and to those persons or
institutions that the releasing State is satisfied are, or will be, involved in UXO or AXO clearance in the affected
area, in the education of the civilian population on the risks of UXO or AXO.).
475
CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 4(2) (information shall be made available bilaterally
or through a mutually agreed third party including inter alia the United Nations).
476
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 1(c)(iii) (Mechanism: A
State should, where feasible, make use of those mechanisms established internationally or locally for the release of
information, such as through UNMAS, IMSMA, and other expert agencies, as considered appropriate by the
releasing State.).
406
the method of identifying the explosive ordnance including color, size, and shape, and
other relevant markings; and
This information may be drawn from the information recorded and retained when using
explosive ordnance. 478
6.20.6.5 Best Practices for the Content of Released Information on AXO. The
best practice is for the released information on AXO to contain details on:
the method of identifying the AXO, including color, size, and shape;
the location and nature of any booby traps known to be present in the area of AXO. 479
This information may be drawn from the information recorded and retained when
abandoning explosive ordnance. 480
477
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 1(c)(i) (On UXO the released
information should contain details on: (1) the general location of known and probable UXO; (2) the types and
approximate number of explosive ordnance used in the targeted areas; (3) the method of identifying the explosive
ordnance including colour, size and shape and other relevant markings; (4) the method for safe disposal of the
explosive ordnance.).
478
Refer to 6.19.2 (Using Explosive Ordnance); 6.19.4 (Storing Records on the Use or Abandonment of
Explosive Ordnance).
479
TECHNICAL ANNEX TO CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR part 1(c)(i) (On AXO the released
information should contain details on: (5) the location of the AXO; (6) the approximate number of AXO at each
specific site; (7) the types of AXO at each specific site; (8) the method of identifying the AXO, including colour,
size and shape; (9) information on type and methods of packing for AXO; (10) state of readiness; (11) the location
and nature of any booby traps known to be present in the area of AXO.).
480
Refer to 6.19.3 (Abandoning Explosive Ordnance); 6.19.4 (Storing Records on the Use or Abandonment of
Explosive Ordnance).
407
territories under its control. 481 This obligation is consistent with long-established customary
international law principles of sovereignty and responsibility. 482 In particular, the following
measures are to be taken in such territories:
assessing and prioritizing the needs and practicability in terms of marking and clearance,
removal, or destruction;
Territories under its control include territory over which the State is an Occupying Power.
An Occupying Power assumes responsibility for the safety of the civilian population, including
responsibilities associated with explosive remnants of war. 486
481
CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 3(2) (After the cessation of active hostilities and as
soon as feasible, each High Contracting Party and party to an armed conflict shall mark and clear, remove or destroy
explosive remnants of war in affected territories under its control.).
482
Overview and Article-by-Article Analysis of CCW Protocol V on Explosive Remnants of War 3, MESSAGE FROM
THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING AP III, CCW AMENDED ARTICLE 1, AND CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE
REMNANTS OF WAR 13 (During the negotiations [about CCW Protocol V on Explosive Remnants of War], some
delegations proposed that the responsibility to clear unexploded munitions should be shifted to the party that used
the munitions. Such a provision would have been contrary to the long-established customary principle of the rights
and responsibilities of a sovereign state over its territory; responsibility should be assigned to the entity in the best
position to exercise it.).
483
CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 3(3) (After the cessation of active hostilities and as
soon as feasible, each High Contracting Party and party to an armed conflict shall take the following measures in
affected territories under its control, to reduce the risks posed by explosive remnants of war: (a) survey and assess
the threat posed by explosive remnants of war; (b) assess and prioritize needs and practicability in terms of marking
and clearance, removal or destruction; (c) mark and clear, remove or destroy explosive remnants of war; (d) take
steps to mobilize resources to carry out these activities.).
484
CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 3(4) (In conducting the above activities High
Contracting Parties and parties to an armed conflict shall take into account international standards, including the
International Mine Action Standards.).
485
CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 3(2) (Areas affected by explosive remnants of war
which are assessed pursuant to paragraph 3 of this Article as posing a serious humanitarian risk shall be accorded
priority status for clearance, removal or destruction.).
486
Refer to 11.5 (Duty of the Occupying Power to Ensure Public Order and Safety).
408
explosive ordnance that has become explosive remnants of war does not exercise control of the
territory, the user shall, after the cessation of active hostilities, provide where feasible, inter alia,
technical, financial, material or human resources assistance, bilaterally or through a mutually
agreed third party, including, inter alia, through the United Nations system or other relevant
organizations, to facilitate the marking and clearance, removal, or destruction of such explosive
remnants of war. 487
487
CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 3(1) (Each High Contracting Party and party to an
armed conflict shall bear the responsibilities set out in this Article with respect to all explosive remnants of war in
territory under its control. In cases where a user of explosive ordnance which has become explosive remnants of
war, does not exercise control of the territory, the user shall, after the cessation of active hostilities, provide where
feasible, inter alia technical, financial, material or human resources assistance, bilaterally or through a mutually
agreed third party, including inter alia through the United Nations system or other relevant organizations, to
facilitate the marking and clearance, removal or destruction of such explosive remnants of war.).
409
VII Wounded, Sick, Shipwrecked, Dead, and the Medical Services
Chapter Contents
7.1 Introduction
7.2 Application of the Protections of the GWS and GWS-Sea
7.3 Respect and Protection of the Wounded, Sick, and Shipwrecked
7.4 Search, Collection, and Affirmative Protection of the Wounded, Sick,
Shipwrecked, and Dead
7.5 Humane Treatment and Care of Enemy Military Wounded, Sick, and
Shipwrecked in the Power of a Party to the Conflict
7.6 Accountability Information From the Enemy Military Wounded, Sick,
Shipwrecked, and Dead
7.7 Treatment and Handling of Enemy Military Dead
7.8 Respect and Protection of Categories of Medical and Religious Personnel
7.9 Captured Medical and Religious Personnel
7.10 Military Medical Units and Facilities
7.11 Ground Transports of the Wounded and Sick, or of Medical Equipment
7.12 Hospital Ships, Sick-Bays in Warships, and Coastal Rescue Craft
7.13 Chartered Medical Transport Ships
7.14 Military Medical Aircraft
7.15 Display of the Distinctive Emblem to Facilitate Identification
7.16 Protection of Civilians Who Are Wounded, Sick, Infirm, or Expectant
Mothers
7.17 Civilian Hospitals and Their Personnel
7.18 Land and Sea Civilian Hospital Convoys
7.19 Civilian Medical Aircraft
7.20 AP I Provisions on the Wounded, Sick, and Shipwrecked
7.1 INTRODUCTION
This Chapter addresses the protection of the wounded, sick, shipwrecked, and dead, both
on the battlefield and after having fallen into the hands of the enemy during international armed
conflict. It also addresses the rights, duties, and liabilities of military medical and religious
personnel, and the protection of military medical units, facilities, and transports. Lastly, it
addresses the protection of civilians who are wounded, sick, infirm, or maternity cases, and
civilian hospitals.
Hospital and safety zones are addressed in Chapter V. 1 Rights and obligations of neutral
States with respect to the wounded, sick, and shipwrecked are addressed in Chapter XV. 2 Rules
1
Refer to 5.14.3 (Establishing Areas Where Civilians or the Wounded and Sick Are Protected).
2
Refer to 15.3.2.4 (Authorized Humanitarian Assistance Is Not a Violation of Neutrality); 15.5.2.1 (Exception
for Authorized Medical Personnel); 15.16.2 (Neutral Reception of the Wounded, Sick, and Shipwrecked); 15.18
(Authorized Passage of Wounded and Sick Combatants Through Neutral Territory).
410
for the protection of medical personel and the wounded, sick, and shipwrecked during non-
international armed conflict are addressed in Chapter XVII. 3
In addition to the rules of the GWS and GWS-Sea, the GPW also has rules on the medical
treatment of POWs that may apply to persons who are wounded and sick. 4 The GWS and GWS-
Sea, however, have rules for the protection of the wounded, sick, shipwrecked, and dead who are
not POWs (e.g., they are on the battlefield and not in the power of the adverse party, they died
without being captured).
The GC has provisions relating to the protection of civilians who are wounded, sick,
infirm, or maternity cases, and civilian hospitals. 5 The GC also has rules addressing medical
care for civilians in occupied territory. 6
7.1.1.1 Interpretation of the GWS and GWS-Sea. As with the GPW and GC, the
provisions of the GWS and GWS-Sea should be interpreted in light of the principles that underlie
the treatment of the wounded, sick, shipwrecked, dead, and the medical services, and, in
particular, in light of the goal of promoting the care of the wounded and sick. 7 The subsequent
practice of States in applying the GWS and GWS-Sea could also assist in interpreting their
provisions because States decades of experience in applying the GWS and GWS-Sea may be
very helpful in understanding their requirements. 8
7.1.1.2 Special Agreements Under the GWS and GWS-Sea. Under the GWS and
GWS-Sea, States may conclude a variety of special agreements during international armed
conflict to facilitate the protection of the wounded, sick, shipwrecked, and others protected by
the GWS and GWS-Sea. The GWS and GWS-Sea specifically provide for agreements:
to entrust to an effective and impartial organization the duties of the Protecting Powers; 9
3
Refer to 17.14 (Protection of the Wounded, Sick, Shipwrecked, and Dead in NIAC); 17.15 (Protection of
Medical and Religious Personnel and Medical Transports in NIAC).
4
Refer to 9.14 (Medical Attention for Interned POWs).
5
Refer to 7.16 (Protection of Civilians Who Are Wounded, Sick, Infirm, or Expectant Mothers); 7.17 (Civilian
Hospitals and Their Personnel).
6
Refer to 11.15 (Public Health and Hygiene).
7
Refer to 9.1.2 (Interpretation and Application of the GPW); 10.1.1 (Interpretation and Application of the GC).
8
Refer to 1.7.4 (Use of Certain Subsequent Practice in Treaty Interpretation).
9
Refer to 18.15.2.1 (Agreement for an Impartial and Effective Organization to Perform Protecting Power Duties
Under the 1949 Geneva Conventions).
411
to establish an armistice or suspension of fire, or local arrangement to permit the removal,
exchange, and transport of the wounded, sick, and shipwrecked; 10
to establish the corresponding ranks for the medical personnel, including the staff of any
authorized voluntary aid societies, in order to help determine the senior retained medical
officer in POW camps; 12
to put neutral observers on board ships to verify the strict observation of provisions of the
GWS-Sea or verify the equipment carried on board is exclusively for the treatment of the
wounded and sick, or for the prevention of disease; 13
between the belligerent parties and a neutral Power on the wounded, sick, and
shipwrecked who are disembarked onto the neutral Powers territory; 17
to use the most modern methods available to facilitate the identification of hospital
ships; 18 and
on the procedure, or to select an umpire who will decide the procedure, to be followed for
an inquiry concerning any alleged violation of the GWS or GWS-Sea. 19
In addition to these agreements expressly provided for in the GWS and GWS-Sea, Parties
to the GWS or GWS-Sea may conclude other special agreements for all matters concerning
which they may deem it suitable to make separate provision. 20
10
Refer to 7.4.3.1 (Armistices and Local Arrangements to Permit the Removal, Exchange, or Transport of the
Wounded).
11
Refer to 5.14.3 (Establishing Areas Where Civilians or the Wounded and Sick Are Protected).
12
Refer to 7.9.5.7 (Senior Medical Officer in the Camp).
13
Refer to 7.13.1 (Agreement to Place Neutral Observers on Chartered Medical Transports); 7.12.2.6 (Control
and Search of Hospital Ships and Coastal Rescue Craft).
14
Refer to 7.9.4.3 (Special Agreements on the Percentage of Personnel to Be Retained).
15
Refer to 7.14 (Military Medical Aircraft).
16
Refer to 7.13 (Chartered Medical Transport Ships).
17
Refer to 7.14.6.2 (Detention of the Wounded, Sick, or Shipwrecked).
18
Refer to 7.12.3.5 (Agreements to Facilitate the Identification of Hospital Ships).
19
Refer to 18.14.1 (Inquiry Procedure in the 1949 Geneva Conventions).
412
No special agreement shall adversely affect the situation of wounded, sick, and
shipwrecked persons, of members of the medical personnel, or of chaplains, as defined by the
GWS or the GWS-Sea, nor restrict the rights that the GWS or GWS-Sea confer upon them. 21
Wounded, sick, and shipwrecked persons, as well as medical personnel and chaplains,
shall continue to have the benefit of such agreements as long as the GWS or GWS-Sea is
applicable to them, except where express provisions to the contrary are contained in these or in
subsequent agreements, or where more favorable measures have been taken with regard to them
by one or other of the parties to the conflict. 22
7.2.1 Circumstances and Duration of Application of the GWS and GWS-Sea. In general,
the GWS-Sea addresses the protection of persons at sea, while the GWS applies to persons on
land. In case of hostilities between land and naval forces of parties to the conflict, the provisions
of the GWS-Sea shall apply only to forces on board ship. 23
For the wounded and sick, the GWS and GWS-Sea provide corresponding protections
until these persons no longer suffer from that condition. For example, the GWS would no longer
cover a detained member of the armed forces who recovers from his or her wounds, although the
GPW would continue to apply to that person because he or she is a POW. 24
20
GWS art. 6 (In addition to the agreements expressly provided for in Articles 10, 15, 23, 28, 31, 36, 37 and 52, the
High Contracting Parties may conclude other special agreements for all matters concerning which they may deem it
suitable to make separate provision.); GWS-SEA art. 6 (In addition to the agreements expressly provided for in
Articles 10, 18, 31, 38, 39, 40, 43 and 53, the High Contracting Parties may conclude other special agreements for
all matters concerning which they may deem it suitable to make separate provision.).
21
GWS art. 6 (No special agreement shall adversely affect the situation of the wounded and sick, of members of
the medical personnel or of chaplains, as defined by the present Convention, nor restrict the rights which it confers
upon them.); GWS-SEA art. 6 (No special agreement shall adversely affect the situation of wounded, sick and
shipwrecked persons, of members of the medical personnel or of chaplains, as defined by the present Convention,
nor restrict the rights which it confers upon them.).
22
GWS art. 6 (Wounded and sick, as well as medical personnel and chaplains, shall continue to have the benefit of
such agreements as long as the Convention is applicable to them, except where express provisions to the contrary are
contained in the aforesaid or in subsequent agreements, or where more favourable measures have been taken with
regard to them by one or other of the Parties to the conflict.); GWS-SEA art. 6 (Wounded, sick and shipwrecked
persons, as well as medical personnel and chaplains, shall continue to have the benefit of such agreements as long as
the Convention is applicable to them, except where express provisions to the contrary are contained in the aforesaid
or in subsequent agreements, or where more favourable measures have been taken with regard to them by one or
other of the Parties to the conflict.).
23
GWS-SEA art. 4 (In case of hostilities between land and naval forces of Parties to the conflict, the provisions of
the present Convention shall apply only to forces on board ship.).
24
GWS COMMENTARY 65 (It is clear, however, that the Convention will cease to apply to the wounded and sick
from the moment they are cured. This does not result from the actual Article under review, but from the general
structure of the Convention. While in enemy hands, the wounded and sickwho are also prisoners of warenjoy
protection under both the First and Third Conventions. Once they have regained their health, only the Third
Convention, relative to the treatment of prisoners of war, applies.).
413
For protected persons who have fallen into the hands of the enemy, the GWS shall apply
until their final repatriation. 25 The GWS-Sea does not specify when it ceases to apply, but once
persons who are covered by its provisions reach land, the GWS applies. Forces put ashore shall
immediately become subject to the provisions of the GWS. 26 If dead persons are landed, the
provisions of the GWS shall be applicable. 27 Retained personnel at sea shall be subject, on
landing, to the provisions of the GWS. 28
This rule is intended to prevent States from evading their obligations by coercing enemy
nationals in their power to waive their rights. 31 The prohibition on the non-renunciation of rights
is based on a recognition that: (1) persons in the hands of the enemy are in a vulnerable position;
(2) it would be difficult to establish whether they had voluntarily renounced their rights; and (3)
an absolute prohibition would best serve the interests of the majority. 32
25
GWS art. 5 (For the protected persons who have fallen into the hands of the enemy, the present Convention shall
apply until their final repatriation.). Compare 9.3.6 (Commencement and Duration of POW Status and
Treatment).
26
GWS-SEA art. 4 (Forces put ashore shall immediately become subject to the provisions of the Geneva
Convention for the Amelioration of the Condition of the Wounded and Sick in Armed Forces in the Field of August
12, 1949.).
27
GWS-SEA art. 20 (If dead persons are landed, the provisions of the Geneva Convention for the Amelioration of
the Condition of the Wounded and Sick in Armed Forces in the Field of August 12, 1949, shall be applicable.).
28
GWS-SEA art. 37 (Retained personnel shall be subject, on landing, to the provisions of the Geneva Convention
for the Amelioration of the Condition of the Wounded and Sick in Armed Forces in the Field of August 12, 1949.).
29
GWS art. 7 (Wounded and sick, as well as members of the medical personnel and chaplains, may in no
circumstances renounce in part or in entirety the rights secured to them by the present Convention, and by the
special agreements referred to in the foregoing Article, if such there be.); GWS-SEA art. 7 (Wounded, sick and
shipwrecked persons, as well as members of the medical personnel and chaplains, may in no circumstances
renounce in part or in entirety the rights secured to them by the present Convention, and by the special agreements
referred to in the foregoing Article, if such there be.).
30
Refer to 9.3.7 (Non-Renunciation of Rights Secured by the GPW); 10.3.6 (Non-Renunciation of Rights
Secured by the GC).
31
GWS COMMENTARY 78-79 (When a State offers to persons detained by it the choice of another status, such a
step is usually dictated by its own interest. Experience has proved that such persons may be subjected to pressure in
order to influence their choice. The pressure may vary in its intensity and be either more or less apparent; but it
nevertheless constitutes a violation of their moral and sometimes even of their physical integrity. The inevitable
result of such practices is to expose the protected persons to a two-fold series of what may on occasion be very
serious drawbacks, first from the fact that they are under pressure, and secondly, as already indicated, from their
partial or total renunciation of the protection accorded to them by the Convention.).
32
See GWS COMMENTARY 79-80 (But in the end the Diplomatic Conference unanimously adopted the present
wordingmainly for the reasons given above, that is to say, the danger of allowing the persons concerned the
414
This rule does not prohibit States from reassigning their own military medical and
religious personnel to non-medical duties or from transferring their own personnel outside of the
medical service. Similarly, this rule constitutes an obligation on States and does not directly
bind individuals. 33
7.2.3 Reprisals Prohibited. Reprisals against the wounded, sick, or shipwrecked persons,
personnel, buildings, vessels, or equipment protected by the GWS or GWS-Sea are prohibited. 34
Members of the armed forces and other persons mentioned in Article 13 of the GWS and
the GWS-Sea, who are wounded, sick, or shipwrecked, shall be respected and protected in all
circumstances. 35 Such persons are among the categories of persons placed hors de combat;
making them the object of attack is strictly prohibited. 36
7.3.1.1 Wounded or Sick. The meanings of wounded and sick are a matter of
common sense and good faith. 37 They include:
choice of renouncing their rights, and the difficulty, and even impossibility, of proving the existence of duress or
pressure. Among the reasons given in favour of the present Article 7, two points call for notice. The Conference
did not overlook the fact that the absolute character of the rule drafted might entail for some persons what one
delegate termed unfortunate results. It adopted the rule, because it seemed to safeguard the interests of the
majority. If provision were made for exceptions in the case of certain individuals, would that not at once open a
breach which others, in much greater numbers, would, perhaps, have cause to regret?).
33
GWS COMMENTARY 85 (One last question remains to be considered. Rights entail obligations. With the focus
on the individual under Article 7, can the rules of the Conventions, or certain of them, be considered as obligations
which are directly incumbent on the persons protected? There can be no doubt that certain stipulations, such as the
respect due to the wounded and sick, are also incumbent on persons who can claim protection under the Convention.
For example, a member of the medical personnel who, profiting by his duties, plundered the wounded or dead on the
battlefield, would be liable to the punishment which the law of his country or of the enemy stipulates in of the
obligation by which every contracting State is bound to repress such breaches. This question arises in connection
with Article 7, which appears to take the form of an obligation on the persons protected, stating, as it does, that the
latter may in no circumstances renounce . It was for this reason that, in their Remarks and Proposals submitted
to the Diplomatic Conference, the International Committee of the Red Cross pointed out that the general effect of
the Conventions was to impose obligations on the States parties to the Conventions rather than on individuals, and
proposed to draft Article 7 in that sense.).
34
Refer to 18.18.3.2 (Reprisals Prohibited by the 1949 Geneva Conventions).
35
GWS art. 12 (Members of the armed forces and other persons mentioned in the following Article, who are
wounded or sick, shall be respected and protected in all circumstances.); GWS-SEA art. 12 (Members of the armed
forces and other persons mentioned in the following Article, who are at sea and who are wounded, sick or
shipwrecked, shall be respected and protected in all circumstances, it being understood that the term shipwreck
means shipwreck from any cause and includes forced landings at sea by or from aircraft.).
36
Refer to 5.10 (Persons Placed Hors de Combat).
37
See also GWS COMMENTARY 136 (No attempt has ever been made in the Geneva Convention to define what is
meant by a wounded or sick combatant; nor has there ever been any definition of the degree of severity of a wound
or a sickness entitling the wounded or sick combatant to respect. That is as well; for any definition would
necessarily be restrictive in character, and would thereby open the door to every kind of misinterpretation and abuse.
415
combatants who have been rendered unconscious or otherwise have been incapacitated
because of their wounds or sickness; 38 and
To merit respect and protection as wounded or sick under the law of war, combatants
must abstain from hostile acts or attempts to evade capture. 40
7.3.1.2 Shipwrecked. For the purpose of applying the protections afforded by the
GWS-Sea, the term shipwreck means shipwreck from any cause and includes forced landings
at sea by or from aircraft. 41
The shipwrecked may be understood to include those in distress at sea or stranded on the
coast who are also helpless. 42 To be considered shipwrecked, persons must be in need of
assistance and care, and they must refrain from any hostile act. 43 For example, shipwrecked
persons do not include combatant personnel engaged in amphibious, underwater, or airborne
attacks who are proceeding ashore. 44
The meaning of the words wounded and sick is a matter of common sense and good faith. They cover combatants
who have fallen by reason of a wound or sickness of any kind, or who have ceased to fight and laid down their arms
as a consequence of what they themselves think about their health. It is the fact of falling or laying down of arms
which constitutes the claim to protection. It is only the soldier who is himself seeking to kill who may be killed.
The abandonment of all aggressiveness should put an end to aggression.).
38
Refer to 5.10.4 (Persons Rendered Unconscious or Otherwise Incapacitated by Wounds, Sickness, or
Shipwreck).
39
Refer to 5.10.3 (Persons Who Have Surrendered).
40
Refer to 5.10 (Persons Placed Hors de Combat).
41
GWS-SEA art. 12 (Members of the armed forces and other persons mentioned in the following Article, who are at
sea and who are wounded, sick or shipwrecked, shall be respected and protected in all circumstances, it being
understood that the term shipwreck means shipwreck from any cause and includes forced landings at sea by or
from aircraft.).
42
GWS-SEA COMMENTARY 89 (Article 11 of the Brussels Convention of 1910 defines a shipwrecked person as
being a person found at sea in danger of perishing. That definition, however, does not introduce the concept of
need, and does not cover a shipwrecked person who manages to reach the coast or an island, or one who is not really
in danger of losing his life. For our part, we prefer the following definition: a person in distress at sea or stranded
on the coast.).
43
GWS-SEA COMMENTARY 89 (Another factor is involved here: the shipwrecked persons must be in need of
assistance and care, and they must naturally refrain from any hostile act.).
44
2007 NWP 1-14M 8.2.3.2 (Shipwrecked persons do not include combatant personnel engaged in amphibious,
underwater, or airborne attacks who are proceeding ashore, unless they are clearly in distress and require assistance.
In the latter case they may qualify as shipwrecked persons only if they cease all active combat activity and the
enemy has an opportunity to recognize their condition of distress.). Compare 5.10.5.2 (Persons Deploying Into
Combat by Parachute).
416
7.3.2 Persons Entitled to Protection as Wounded, Sick, or Shipwrecked Under the GWS
and GWS-Sea. The GWS and GWS-Sea apply to the wounded, sick, and shipwrecked belonging
to the following categories: 45
members of the armed forces of a party to the conflict, as well as members of militias or
volunteer corps forming part of such armed forces; 46
members of other militias and members of other volunteer corps meeting certain
conditions; 47
members of the crews of the merchant marine and the crews of civil aircraft of the parties
to the conflict; 50 and
45
GWS art. 13 (The present Convention shall apply to the wounded and sick belonging to the following categories:
(1) Members of the armed forces of a Party to the conflict, as well as members of militias or volunteer corps forming
part of such armed forces. (2) Members of other militias and members of other volunteer corps, including those of
organized resistance movements, belonging to a Party to the conflict and operating in or outside their own territory,
even if this territory is occupied, provided that such militias or volunteer corps, including such organized resistance
movements, fulfil the following conditions: a. That of being commanded by a person responsible for his
subordinates; b. That of having a fixed distinctive sign recognizable at a distance; c. That of carrying arms openly; d.
That of conducting their operations in accordance with the laws and customs of war. (3) Members of regular armed
forces who profess allegiance to a Government or an authority not recognized by the Detaining Power. (4) Persons
who accompany the armed forces without actually being members thereof, such as civil members of military aircraft
crews, war correspondents, supply contractors, members of labour units or of services responsible for the welfare of
the armed forces, provided that they have received authorization from the armed forces which they accompany. (5)
Members of crews, including masters, pilots and apprentices of the merchant marine and the crews of civil aircraft
of the Parties to the conflict, who do not benefit by more favourable treatment under any other provisions in
international law. (6) Inhabitants of a non-occupied territory who, on the approach of the enemy, spontaneously
take up arms to resist the invading forces, without having had time to form themselves into regular armed units,
provided they carry arms openly and respect the laws and customs of war.); GWS-SEA art. 13 (The present
Convention shall apply to the wounded, sick and shipwrecked at sea belonging to the following categories:
[identical to those covered in GWS].).
46
Refer to 4.5 (Armed Forces of a State).
47
Refer to 4.6 (Other Militia and Volunteer Corps).
48
Refer to 4.5.3 (Regular Armed Forces Who Profess Allegiance to a Government or an Authority Not
Recognized by the Detaining Power).
49
Refer to 4.15 (Persons Authorized to Accompany the Armed Forces).
50
Refer to 4.16 (Crews of Merchant Marine Vessels or Civil Aircraft).
51
Refer to 4.7 (Leve en Masse).
417
These categories are the same categories of persons to whom the GPW affords POW
status if they fall into the hands of the enemy during international armed conflict. 52 Thus, the
GWS and GWS-Sea recognize that such persons who fall into enemy hands during international
armed conflict shall be POWs, and the provisions of international law concerning POWs (such as
the GPW) shall also apply to them. 53
The categories of persons entitled to POW status under the GPW and protection as
wounded, sick, and shipwrecked under the GWS and GWS-Sea were drafted to be the same, but
the GWS or GWS-Sea do not refer specifically to Article 4 of the GPW so that the GWS and
GWS-Sea could operate as stand-alone legal instruments if a State ratified either the GWS or the
GWS-Sea, but not the GPW.54
Civilians who are wounded and sick are protected under the GC. 55
7.3.3 Meaning of Respect and Protection of the Wounded, Sick, and Shipwrecked. The
wounded, sick, and shipwrecked must be respected and protected at all times. This means that
they should not be knowingly attacked, fired upon, or unnecessarily interfered with. 56
7.3.3.1 Incidental Harm Not Prohibited. The respect and protection due to the
wounded, sick, and shipwrecked do not cover incidental damage or casualties due to proximity to
military objectives or to a justifiable mistake. Because combatants who are wounded, sick, or
shipwrecked on the battlefield are deemed to have accepted the risk of death or further injury due
52
Refer to 9.3.2 (Persons Entitled to POW Status).
53
GWS art. 14 (Subject to the provisions of Article 12, the wounded and sick of a belligerent who fall into enemy
hands shall be prisoners of war, and the provisions of international law concerning prisoners of war shall apply to
them.); GWS-SEA art. 16 (Subject to the provisions of Article 12, the wounded, sick and shipwrecked of a
belligerent who fall into enemy hands shall be prisoners of war, and the provisions of international law concerning
prisoners of war shall apply to them.).
54
GWS COMMENTARY 144-45 (When the Diplomatic Conference set out to define the categories of persons, to
whom, on their being wounded or falling sick, the First Geneva Convention was to apply, it noted that the categories
in question were precisely those which were entitled, on falling into the enemys hands, to be treated as prisoners of
war. The Conference was thus logically led to refer to the contents of Article 4 of the Third Convention. There
were two ways of doing this in practice. It was possible merely to refer to the Article in question, or alternatively to
repeat its substance in the First Convention. The second of these solutions was the one adopted, in accordance with
the general principle, to which the Conference adhered wherever possible, of endeavouring to make each of the four
Geneva Conventions an independent diplomatic instrument. The course thus adopted also covered the possible case
of a Power being a party to the First Convention without having ratified the Third.). Refer to 19.16.1 (Common
Provisions in the 1949 Geneva Conventions).
55
Refer to 7.16 (Protection of Civilians Who Are Wounded, Sick, Infirm, or Expectant Mothers).
56
Cf. APPENDIX TO 1985 CJCS MEMO ON AP I 5-6 (Articles 10, 12, and 15 [of AP I] then extend the provisions of
the First and Second Geneva Conventions of 1949 to civilian sick, wounded, and shipwrecked and to civilian
medical personnel and units and associated civilian religious personnel, all of whom would be respected and
protected by the parties to the conflict, the sick and wounded to receive required care to the fullest extent
practicable. As used in the Protocol [I to the 1949 Geneva Conventions], the term respected and protected means
that an activity should not be knowingly attacked, fired upon, or unnecessarily interfered with; it does not cover
accidental damage or casualties due to proximity to military objectives or to a justifiable mistake in identifying the
activity.). Compare 7.8.2 (Meaning of Respect and Protection of Medical and Religious Personnel).
418
to proximity to military operations, they need not be considered as incidental harm in assessing
proportionality in conducting attacks. 57
7.3.3.2 Search and Other Security Measures Not Prohibited. The wounded, sick,
and shipwrecked are not immune from search or other necessary security measures by the
enemy. 58 Searches of the wounded, sick, and shipwrecked, and other security measures applied
to them, should be consistent with those applicable to other POWs. 59
7.3.3.3 Capture of Wounded, Sick, and Shipwrecked Not Prohibited. The respect
and protection afforded the wounded, sick, and shipwrecked do not immunize them from
detention. 60 When they fall into enemy hands, they are POWs. 61
It is not prohibited to capture the wounded and sick, even if they are in the care of
military medical units or facilities, or civilian hospitals. 62 However, upon taking custody, the
Detaining Power is required to ensure that they continue to receive the necessary medical care. 63
All warships of a belligerent party shall have the right to demand that the wounded, sick,
or shipwrecked on board military hospital ships, and hospital ships belonging to relief societies
or to private individuals, as well as merchant vessels, yachts, and other craft shall be surrendered,
whatever their nationality, provided that the wounded and sick are in a fit state to be moved and
that the warship can provide adequate facilities for necessary medical treatment. 64
In cases of capture at sea, the captor may decide, according to circumstances, whether it
is expedient to hold the wounded, sick, or shipwrecked, or to convey them to a port in the
57
Refer to 5.12.3.2 (Harm to Certain Individuals Who May Be Employed In or On Military Objectives). Compare
7.12.2.5 (Acceptance of the Risk From Proximity to Combat Operations).
58
Refer to 7.10.1.2 (Search Not Prohibited).
59
Refer to 9.6 (Security Measures With Respect to POWs).
60
Refer to 7.9 (Captured Medical and Religious Personnel).
61
Refer to 7.3.2 (Persons Entitled to Protection as Wounded, Sick, or Shipwrecked Under the GWS and GWS-
Sea).
62
For example, J.C. Massop, Hospital Ships in the Second World War, 24 BRITISH YEAR BOOK OF INTERNATIONAL
LAW 398, 405 (1947) (In 1944 and 1945 the Germans decided to pass the hospital ships Tbingen and Gradisca
through the Allied patrol lines in the Adriatic to embark sick and wounded in Salonica. In accordance with the
requirements of the Convention the ships were allowed to pass on the outward voyage, but they were diverted to
Allied ports on the homeward trip and some 4,000 prisoners were made: a high percentage were only slightly
wounded and the great majority were considered likely to be fit for active service within twelve months. This action
brought forth no protest from the German Government, who considered it justified by the terms of the
Convention.).
63
Refer to 7.5 (Humane Treatment and Care of Enemy Military Wounded, Sick, and Shipwrecked in the Power of
a Party to the Conflict).
64
GWS-SEA art. 14 (All warships of a belligerent Party shall have the right to demand that the wounded, sick or
shipwrecked on board military hospital ships, and hospital ships belonging to relief societies or to private
individuals, as well as merchant vessels, yachts and other craft shall be surrendered, whatever their nationality,
provided that the wounded and sick are in a fit state to be moved and that the warship can provide adequate facilities
for necessary medical treatment.).
419
captors own country, to a neutral port, or even to a port in enemy territory. In the last case,
POWs thus returned to their home country may not serve for the duration of the war. 65
At all times, and particularly after an engagement, parties to the conflict shall, without
delay, take all possible measures to search for and collect the wounded and sick on land, to
protect them against pillage and ill-treatment, to ensure their adequate care, and to search for the
dead and prevent their being despoiled. 67
The GC provides for the obligation to search for, collect, protect, and care for, civilians
who are wounded, sick, shipwrecked, and dead. 68
7.4.1 GWS-Sea Obligation Regarding the Search, Collection, and Affirmative Protection
of the Wounded, Sick, Shipwrecked, and Dead. After each engagement, parties to the conflict
shall, without delay, take all possible measures to search for and collect the wounded, sick, and
shipwrecked at sea, to protect them against pillage and ill-treatment, to ensure their adequate
care, and to search for the dead and prevent their being despoiled. 69
The obligation in the GWS-Sea to search for, and collect, certain persons is written
differently than the comparable obligation in the GWS. Instead of a general obligation to take
measures at all times, in Article 15 of the GWS, in Article 18 of the GWS-Sea, the obligation
to search for and collect the wounded, sick, and shipwrecked applies only after each
engagement.
65
GWS-SEA art. 16 (The captor may decide, according to circumstances, whether it is expedient to hold them, or to
convey them to a port in the captors own country, to a neutral port or even to a port in enemy territory. In the last
case, prisoners of war thus returned to their home country may not serve for the duration of the war.).
66
Refer to 6.12.4.9 (Certain Types of Prohibited Booby-Traps and Other Devices).
67
GWS art. 15 (At all times, and particularly after an engagement, Parties to the conflict shall, without delay, take
all possible measures to search for and collect the wounded and sick, to protect them against pillage and ill-
treatment, to ensure their adequate care, and to search for the dead and prevent their being despoiled.).
68
Refer to 7.16.1 (Obligation to Facilitate Efforts to Search for Civilians Who Are Wounded, Killed,
Shipwrecked, or Exposed to Grave Danger).
69
GWS-SEA art. 18 (After each engagement, Parties to the conflict shall, without delay, take all possible measures
to search for and collect the shipwrecked, wounded and sick, to protect them against pillage and ill-treatment, to
ensure their adequate care, and to search for the dead and prevent their being despoiled.).
420
wounded, sick, and shipwrecked, from pillage or ill-treatment by any person, whether military or
civilian, seeking to harm them. 70
7.4.3 Range of Measures to Search for, Collect, and Protect the Wounded, Sick, and
Shipwrecked. A range of measures may be taken to fulfill the obligation to search for, collect,
and protect the wounded, sick, and shipwrecked. Military forces may directly engage in these
activities. 71
In addition to searching for, collecting, and protecting the wounded, sick, and
shipwrecked directly, commanders may take other measures to fulfill this obligation. For
example, commanders may request the help of civilian volunteers. 72 As another example, if a
warship is unable to collect the shipwrecked after an engagement, it might be able to alert a
hospital ship in the vicinity or provide the shipwrecked with a lifeboat. 73
Likewise, local arrangements may be concluded between parties to the conflict for the
removal or exchange of wounded and sick by land or sea from a besieged or encircled area, or
for the passage of medical and religious personnel and equipment on their way to that area. 76
70
GWS COMMENTARY 152 (In other words, the wounded and the dead must be guarded and, if necessary, defended
against all parties, whether military or civilian, who may seek to lay hands on them. Combatants, like medical
personnel, are called upon to prevent this, going, if necessary, to the length of using their arms for the purpose.).
71
For example, George W. Bush, Remarks to the Community at Camp Lejeune, North Carolina, Apr. 3, 2003, 2003-
I PUBLIC PAPERS OF THE PRESIDENTS 404, 406 (American forces and our allies are treating innocent civilians with
kindness and showing proper respect to soldiers who surrender. Many Americans have seen the picture of Marine
Lance Corporal Marcco Ware carrying a wounded Iraqi soldier on his shoulders to safety for medical treatment.).
72
Refer to 7.4.5.1 (Requests for Civilian Volunteers to Collect and Care for the Wounded, Sick, and
Shipwrecked).
73
GWS-SEA COMMENTARY 131 (The possible measures which may be taken by the belligerents to collect the
shipwrecked are, on the other hand, many and varied and in nearly all cases they should enable the purpose of the
present paragraph to be achieved. Thus, a warship which was unable to collect the victims of an engagement
should, for instance, alert a hospital ship if there is one in the vicinity, or even a ship of any kind better equipped
than itself; otherwise, it should resort to the possibility provided in Article 21, and appeal to neutral vessels. It can
also alert the nearest coastal authorities, or request assistance from the air forces. Generally speaking, if a warship is
forced to leave shipwrecked persons to their fate, it will endeavour to provide them with the means to enable them to
await rescue or reach the coast: life-boats, food, water, a compass, charts, etc.).
74
GWS art. 15 (Whenever circumstances permit, an armistice or a suspension of fire shall be arranged, or local
arrangements made, to permit the removal, exchange and transport of the wounded left on the battlefield.).
75
Refer to 5.14.3 (Establishing Areas Where Civilians or the Wounded and Sick Are Protected).
76
Refer to 5.19.2 (Removal and Passage of Certain Personnel Vulnerable Civilians, Diplomatic and Consular
Personnel, the Wounded and Sick, and Medical Personnel).
421
For example, parties to a conflict may agree to a temporary cease-fire to permit evacuation of the
wounded from the fighting area. 77
7.4.4 Practical Limitations on the Obligation to Search for, Collect, and Take Measures to
Protect the Wounded, Sick, and Shipwrecked. The obligations to search for, collect, and take
affirmative steps to protect the wounded, sick, and shipwrecked are subject to practical
limitations.
Military commanders are to judge what is possible, and to what extent they can commit
their personnel to these duties. 78 In some cases, commanders might designate specific units or
personnel to engage in such missions.
7.4.4.1 Risk of Harm. For example, personnel performing rescue and recovery
missions need not place their lives at undue risk in an effort to search for, collect, or protect the
wounded, sick, shipwrecked, or dead (e.g., recovery of a body from a minefield, or entry into a
disabled enemy armored vehicle that might contain unexploded ordnance or other hazards).
Similarly, a commander of a naval ship need not increase the risk to his or her vessel from
threats (e.g., by slowing his or her transit, or by placing his or her ship dead in the water) in order
to recover shipwrecked enemy military personnel from a sunken vessel or crashed aircraft. 79
77
For example, MARTIN MIDDLEBROOK, ARNHEM 1944: THE AIRBORNE BATTLE, 17-26 SEPTEMBER 383 (1994)
(After consulting Major-General Urquhart, Colonel Warrack decided to ask the Germans if they would allow the
wounded to be evacuated from the fighting area. He was driven with the Dutch officer, Commander Woters, who
would act as interpreter, and eventually met General Bittrich, who agreed to a truce and an evacuation. ... The
evacuation commenced that afternoon, but only in the Main Dressing Stations. ... All went well, much credit being
given to the Germans for their humane treatment of the wounded.).
78
GWS COMMENTARY 151 (But there are times when military operations will make the obligation to search for the
fallen impracticable. There will be cases which exceed the limits of what the medical personnel can be expected to
do, however great their courage and devotion. It was not possible, therefore, to make the obligation absolute. It was
accordingly provided that Parties to the conflict shall, without delay, take all possible measures... The obligation
to act without delay is strict; but the action to be taken is limited to what is possible, and it is left to the military
command to judge what is possible, and to decide to what extent it can commit its medical personnel.) (ellipsis in
original).
79
For example, W.T. MALLISON, JR., STUDIES IN THE LAW OF NAVAL WARFARE: SUBMARINES IN GENERAL AND
LIMITED WARS 136 (1968) (It should be mentioned also that there were apparently numerous instances when it was
not feasible for surface warships to make rescue attempts even though they had adequate passenger facilities. The
British heavy cruiser Devonshire, operating in the South Atlantic, sank the German raider Atlantis on November 22,
1941 and the German supply ship Python on November 30, 1941. In neither case was rescue attempted since it was
thought that U-boats might be in the vicinity.).
422
behind enemy lines or a submarine may not have the capability to receive and care for large
numbers of injured personnel. 80
7.4.5 Collection and Care of the Wounded, Sick, and Shipwrecked by Civilians.
7.4.5.1 Requests for Civilian Volunteers to Collect and Care for the Wounded,
Sick, and Shipwrecked. The military authorities may appeal to the charity of the inhabitants
voluntarily to collect and care for, under their direction, the wounded, sick, and shipwrecked,
granting persons who have responded to this appeal the necessary protection and facilities. 81
Should the adverse party take or retake control of the area, that party shall likewise grant these
persons the same protection and the same facilities. 82
7.4.5.2 Spontaneous Collection and Care for the Wounded, Sick, and Shipwrecked
by Inhabitants and Relief Societies. The military authorities shall permit the inhabitants and
relief societies, even in invaded or occupied areas, spontaneously to collect and care for wounded
or sick of whatever nationality. 83 The civilian population shall respect these wounded and sick,
and in particular abstain from offering them violence. 84
7.4.6 Collection and Care of the Wounded, Sick, and Shipwrecked by Neutral Vessels.
The parties to the conflict may appeal to the charity of commanders of neutral merchant vessels,
80
See also GWS-SEA COMMENTARY 131 (Of course, one cannot always require certain fighting ships, such as fast
torpedo-boats and submarines, to collect in all circumstances the crews of ships which they have sunk, for they will
often have inadequate equipment and insufficient accommodation. Submarines stay at sea for a long time and
sometimes they neither wish nor are able to put in at a port where they could land the persons whom they have
collected. Generally speaking, one cannot lay down an absolute rule that the commander of a warship must engage
in rescue operations if, by doing so, he would expose his vessel to attack.). Refer to 13.7.2 (Different Application
of Law of War Rules in the Context of Submarine Warfare).
81
GWS art. 18 (The military authorities may appeal to the charity of the inhabitants voluntarily to collect and care
for, under their direction, the wounded and sick, granting persons who have responded to this appeal the necessary
protection and facilities.).
82
GWS art. 18 (Should the adverse Party take or retake control of the area, he shall likewise grant these persons the
same protection and the same facilities.).
83
GWS art. 18 (The military authorities shall permit the inhabitants and relief societies, even in invaded or
occupied areas, spontaneously to collect and care for wounded or sick of whatever nationality.).
84
GWS art. 18 (The civilian population shall respect these wounded and sick, and in particular abstain from
offering them violence.).
85
GWS art. 18 (No one shall ever be molested or convicted for having nursed the wounded or sick.).
423
yachts, or other craft, to take on board and care for wounded, sick, or shipwrecked persons, and
to collect the dead. 86
Vessels of any kind responding to this appeal, and those having of their own accord
collected wounded, sick, or shipwrecked persons, shall enjoy special protection and facilities to
carry out such assistance. 87
They may, in no case, be captured on account of any such transport; but, in the absence of
any promise to the contrary, they shall remain liable to capture for any violations of neutrality
they may have committed. 88
7.5 HUMANE TREATMENT AND CARE OF ENEMY MILITARY WOUNDED, SICK, AND SHIPWRECKED
IN THE POWER OF A PARTY TO THE CONFLICT
The wounded, sick, and shipwrecked who are protected by the GWS and GWS-Sea shall
be treated humanely and cared for by the party to the conflict in whose power they may be,
without any adverse distinction founded on sex, race, nationality, religion, political opinions, or
any other similar criteria. 89 Any attempts upon their lives, or violence to their persons, shall be
strictly prohibited; in particular, they shall not be murdered or exterminated or subjected to
torture or to biological experiments; they shall not willfully be left without medical assistance
and care, nor shall conditions exposing them to contagion or infection be created. 90
7.5.1 Humane Treatment of the Wounded, Sick, and Shipwrecked Without Adverse
Distinction. The wounded, sick, and shipwrecked who are protected by the GWS or GWS-Sea
who are in the power of a party to the conflict are also POWs. Thus, their humane treatment is
required by the GPW as well. 91
86
GWS-SEA art. 21 (The Parties to the conflict may appeal to the charity of commanders of neutral merchant
vessels, yachts or other craft, to take on board and care for wounded, sick or shipwrecked persons, and to collect the
dead.).
87
GWS-SEA art. 21 (Vessels of any kind responding to this appeal, and those having of their own accord collected
wounded, sick or shipwrecked persons, shall enjoy special protection and facilities to carry out such assistance.).
88
GWS-SEA art. 21 (They may, in no case, be captured on account of any such transport; but, in the absence of any
promise to the contrary, they shall remain liable to capture for any violations of neutrality they may have
committed.).
89
GWS art. 12 (They shall be treated humanely and cared for by the Party to the conflict in whose power they may
be, without any adverse distinction founded on sex, race, nationality, religion, political opinions, or any other similar
criteria.); GWS-SEA art. 12 (Such persons shall be treated humanely and cared for by the Parties to the conflict in
whose power they may be, without any adverse distinction founded on sex, race, nationality, religion, political
opinions, or any other similar criteria.).
90
GWS art. 12 (Any attempts upon their lives, or violence to their persons, shall be strictly prohibited; in particular,
they shall not be murdered or exterminated, subjected to torture or to biological experiments; they shall not wilfully
be left without medical assistance and care, nor shall conditions exposing them to contagion or infection be
created.); GWS-SEA art. 12 (same).
91
Refer to 9.5 (Humane Treatment and Basic Protections for POWs).
424
For example, the prohibition on subjecting the wounded, sick, or shipwrecked to
biological experiments is also reflected in the GPW. 92 Similarly, the wounded, sick, and
shipwrecked who are women shall be treated with all consideration due to their sex. 93
7.5.2 Medical Care of the Wounded and Sick. Below are general rules for the medical
care of the wounded and sick, including both those on the battlefield and those who are POWs.
POWs shall be provided necessary medical attention during evacuation, although they
may be temporarily kept back in a danger zone if they would face greater risks by being
evacuated than by remaining where they are. 94 Additional rules provide for the medical attention
and care for POWs who have been interned in POW camps. 95
92
Refer to 9.5.2.4 (No Physical Mutilation or Medical, Scientific, or Biological Experiments).
93
GWS art. 12 (Women shall be treated with all consideration due to their sex.); GWS-SEA art. 12 (same). Refer
to 9.5.6 (Due Regard for Women POWs).
94
Refer to 9.9.2 (Conditions of Evacuation); 9.9.1 (Delay in Evacuation for Medical Reasons).
95
Refer to 9.14 (Medical Attention for Interned POWs).
96
Refer to 7.4 (Search, Collection, and Affirmative Protection of the Wounded, Sick, Shipwrecked, and Dead).
97
See, e.g., LIEBER CODE art. 79 (Every captured wounded enemy shall be medically treated, according to the
ability of the medical staff.); Convention for the Amelioration of the Wounded in Armies in the Field, art. 6, Aug.
22, 1864, 22 STAT. 940, 944 (Wounded or sick soldiers shall be entertained and taken care of, to whatever nation
they may belong.).
98
For example, OFFICE OF THE SURGEON GENERAL OF THE ARMY, EMERGENCY WAR SURGERY 30 (2014) (The
decision to withhold care from a casualty who in another less overwhelming situation might be salvaged is difficult
for any physician, nurse, or medic. Decisions of this nature are unusual, even in mass casualty situations.
Nonetheless, the overarching goal of providing the greatest good to the greatest number must guide these difficult
decisions. Commitment of resources should be decided first based on the mission and immediate tactical situation
and then by medical necessity, irrespective of a casualtys national or combatant status.).
425
For example, in addressing an influx of wounded that include both friends and enemies,
doctors should attend to those patients for whom delay might be fatal or at any rate prejudicial,
proceeding afterwards to those whose condition is not such as to necessitate immediate
attention. 100
Because POWs are subject to the laws, regulations, and orders in force in the armed
forces of the Detaining Power, POWs may be ordered to receive medical treatment just as
Detaining Power military personnel may be ordered to do so. 101 However, the wounded, sick,
and shipwrecked, and other POWs, may not be subjected to medical or biological experiments,
even if Detaining Power military personnel could be ordered to be subjected to such
procedures. 102
The Detaining Powers authority to order POWs to receive medical treatment also derives
from the Detaining Powers duty to ensure the well-being of POWs. 103 For example, the
Detaining Powers duty to take all sanitary measures necessary to prevent epidemics in the POW
camp may require the Detaining Power to order POWs to receive certain measures, such as
vaccinations. 104
AP I, Article 11, paragraph 5 provides for a right to refuse any surgical operation. 105
However, this rule could operate in an inhumane manner in some circumstances, and the United
States has not accepted it. 106
99
GWS art. 12 (Only urgent medical reasons will authorize priority in the order of treatment to be administered.);
GWS-SEA art. 12 (same).
100
GWS COMMENTARY 140 (Let us suppose that the Medical Service in some place is overwhelmed by an influx of
wounded, both friends and enemies. The doctors, in such a case, will attend first to those patients for whom delay
might be fatal or at any rate prejudicial, proceeding afterwards to those whose condition is not such as to necessitate
immediate attention.).
101
Refer to 9.26.1 (POWs Subject to the Laws, Regulations, and Orders in Force in the Armed Forces of the
Detaining Power).
102
Refer to 9.5.2.4 (No Physical Mutilation or Medical, Scientific, or Biological Experiments).
103
For example, 1958 UK MANUAL 154 note 3 (Again, if prisoners in British military custody resort to a hunger
strike, it would seem that they may under medical direction be forcibly fed if their lives are in danger. This is
permissible by English law and may in certain cases be a duty. If British military prisoners are allowed to die from
the effects of a hunger strike, the camp commandant and medical officer are liable to be prosecuted for
manslaughter, Leigh v. Gladstone and Others, 26 T.L.R. 139.).
104
Refer to 9.11.5.1 (Necessary Sanitary Measures).
105
AP I art. 11(5) (The persons described in paragraph 1 have the right to refuse any surgical operation. In case of
refusal, medical personnel shall endeavour to obtain a written statement to that effect, signed or acknowledged by
the patient.).
106
APPENDIX TO 1985 CJCS MEMO ON AP I 8 (The provision [in AP I art. 11] specifying an absolute right to refuse
any surgery could, however, operate in an inhumane manner in some circumstances. A detainee might, for example,
426
7.5.2.5 Medical Attention Free of Charge. The Power detaining POWs shall be
bound to provide free of charge for the medical attention required by POWs state of health. 107
Unlike the obligations to provide humane treatment for the wounded and sick who are in
custody, the obligation to provide medical personnel and material for the care of abandoned
wounded or sick is a strong recommendation, rather than an absolute requirement. 110
The party that encounters and captures the wounded and sick who have been abandoned
by another party to the conflict is not relieved of its duties because the party that has abandoned
wounded and sick personnel has not left medical personnel and material to assist in the care of
those wounded and sick. 111 On the other hand, the party that encounters and captures the
wounded and sick also is not relieved of its duties when the party that has abandoned wounded
and sick personnel has left medical personnel and material to assist in the care of those wounded
and sick. 112
refuse surgery necessary to save his own life in order to make a political point or because of ignorance or mental
incompetence.).
107
GPW art. 15 (The Power detaining prisoners of war shall be bound to provide free of charge for their
maintenance and for the medical attention required by their state of health.).
108
For example, STEPHEN BADSEY, ARNHEM 1944: OPERATION MARKET GARDEN 85 (1993) (At Arnhem itself,
10,300 men of 1st British Airborne Division and 1st Polish Parachute Brigade landed from air. Some 2,587 men
escaped across the Rhine in Operation Berlin (1,741 of 1st British Airborne, 422 of the Gilder Pilot Regiment, 160
Poles and 75 from the Dorsetshire Regiment), and 240 more returned later with the aid of the PAN. About 1,600
wounded were left behind in the Oosterbeek pocket, together with 204 medical officers and chaplains who
volunteered to stay. The Germans claimed 6,450 prisoners taken, wounded or not, and 1st British Airborne
therefore lost about 1,300 killed.).
109
GWS art. 12 (The Party to the conflict which is compelled to abandon wounded or sick to the enemy shall, as far
as military considerations permit, leave with them a part of its medical personnel and material to assist in their
care.).
110
GWS COMMENTARY 142 (If this provision [paragraph 5 of Article 12 of the GWS] cannot, therefore, be
considered imperative, it represents none the less a clear moral obligation which the responsible authority cannot
evade except in cases of urgent necessity. Paragraph 2 [of Article 12 of the GWS] imposes an absolute obligation
to which there are no exceptions; paragraph 5 is a recommendation, but an urgent and forcible one.).
111
GWS COMMENTARY 142 (It should, moreover, be noted that this provision is in no way bound up with the
obligation, imposed upon the Parties to the conflict by paragraph 2, to care for the wounded. A belligerent can never
refuse to care for enemy wounded he has picked up, on the pretext that his adversary has abandoned them without
medical personnel and equipment. On the contrary, he is bound to give to them the same care as he gives the
wounded of his own army.).
112
Refer to 7.9.6 (No Relief of Obligations of the Detaining Power).
427
In addition to providing for the medical care of wounded and sick abandoned to the
enemy, other feasible precautions should be taken to ensure their safety. 113
The GWS and GWS-Sea impose certain obligations to gather and report information in
order to gain as full an accounting as possible for captured enemy personnel and enemy dead
recovered from the battlefield. These obligations complement similar obligations in the GPW to
maintain accountability for POWs. 114
7.6.1 Recording Identifying Information. Parties to the conflict shall record as soon as
possible, in respect of each wounded, sick, shipwrecked, or dead person of the adverse party
falling into their hands, any particulars that may assist in his or her identification. 115 These
records should, if possible, include: 116
surname (i.e., last name) and first name or names (i.e., first and middle names);
date of birth;
any other particulars shown on the persons identity card or disc; 117
The GPW requires the collection of a similar set of information for all POWs. 118
113
Compare 9.9.3.2 (Feasible Precautions to Ensure Safety).
114
Refer to 9.31 (National Accounting of the Detention of POWs).
115
GWS art. 16 (Parties to the conflict shall record as soon as possible, in respect of each wounded, sick or dead
person of the adverse Party falling into their hands, any particulars which may assist in his identification.); GWS-
SEA art. 19 (The Parties to the conflict shall record as soon as possible, in respect of each shipwrecked, wounded,
sick or dead person of the adverse Party falling into their hands, any particulars which may assist in his
identification.).
116
GWS art. 16 (These records should if possible include: (a) designation of the Power on which he depends; (b)
army, regimental, personal or serial number; (c) surname; (d) first name or names; (e) date of birth; (f) any other
particulars shown on his identity card or disc; (g) date and place of capture or death; (h) particulars concerning
wounds or illness, or cause of death.); GWS-SEA art. 19 (same).
117
Refer to 9.4.3 (Issue of Identification Cards to Persons Liable to Become POWs).
118
Refer to 9.31.1 (Accountability Information That the Detaining Power Should Collect).
428
In order to implement these obligations, as part of their initial processing, the recovering
or capturing unit should endeavor to obtain this information from each living POW. 119 POWs
who, owing to their physical or mental condition, are unable to state their identity, shall be
handed over to the medical service. 120
Other sources of information should be used to establish the identity of the wounded,
sick, shipwrecked, and dead. For example, items associated with the person (e.g., personal
effects, a life jacket bearing the name of the ship on which that person served) should be
examined, and other members of the persons unit should be questioned.
7.6.3 U.S. Practice in Reporting Through the ICRC Central Tracing Agency. In U.S.
practice, information has been provided to the Theater Detainee Reporting Center, which in turn
processes it and reports it to the National Detainee Reporting Center, which has then transmitted
it to the ICRC Central Tracing Agency, acting as the Central POW Information Agency. 125
119
Refer to 9.8.4 (Accountability Information That POWs Are Bound to Provide Upon Questioning).
120
Refer to 9.8.4.1 (POWs Unable to State Their Identity).
121
See GWS COMMENTARY 177 (In the absence of papers recourse must be had to other methods which will make
it possible for the adverse Party itself to establish his identity, e.g. measurements and description of the body and its
physical features, examination of the teeth, fingerprints, photograph, etc.).
122
Refer to 7.7.4.1 (Examination of Bodies Before Burial or Cremation).
123
GWS art. 16 (As soon as possible the above mentioned information shall be forwarded to the Information
Bureau described in Article 122 of the Geneva Convention relative to the Treatment of Prisoners of War of August
12, 1949, which shall transmit this information to the Power on which these persons depend through the
intermediary of the Protecting Power and of the Central Prisoners of War Agency.); GWS-SEA art. 19 (same).
124
See, e.g., GWS-SEA COMMENTARY 138 (A warship always has good reasons for communicating by radio as
little as possible, and one cannot therefore expect it to transmit by that means sundry information about the
shipwrecked or sick whom it may have picked up. It will delay doing so until it has arrived at a port in its home
country, and the authorities on land will then have to notify the enemy.).
125
Refer to 9.31.4 (U.S. Practice in Reporting to the ICRC Central Tracing Agency).
429
7.7 TREATMENT AND HANDLING OF ENEMY MILITARY DEAD
The GWS and GWS-Sea address the treatment and handling of enemy dead who have
been collected from the battlefield. 126 However, the provisions of the GWS and GWS-Sea
relating to the treatment and handling of enemy dead may also be interpreted to include wounded
and sick combatants who have died shortly after having been collected. 127 The GPW provides
other rules relating to POWs who have died while in detention. 128 Thus, certain enemy dead
may be addressed by both the GPW and GWS.
Although the provisions of the GWS and GWS-Sea are not applicable to civilian dead, in
many cases it may be appropriate and practical to apply those rules by analogy. The GC
provides rules relating to protected persons who have died while interned. 129
7.7.1 Treatment of Enemy Military Dead. Subject to the tactical situation and sanitation
requirements, the handling and burial of enemy military dead must be discharged with the same
respect as would be afforded to, or expected for, friendly military dead. The respectful treatment
of the dead is one of the oldest rules in the law of war. 130
126
GWS COMMENTARY 179 (noting that the First Convention was essentially concerned with the dead picked up
on the battlefield).
127
GWS COMMENTARY 176 (In the first place the present Article (Article 17) is essentially concerned with the
dead picked up by the enemy on the battlefield, that is to say, with the mortal remains of combatants who have never
for one moment been prisoners of war. Again, combatants who have died shortly after having been picked up
wounded or sick, will have succumbed to the wounds or sickness which brought them under the protection of the
First Convention, and it is therefore only natural that they should remain subject to the provisions of that
Convention.).
128
Refer to 9.34 (Death of POWs).
129
Refer to 10.34 (Death of Internees).
130
See, e.g, GROTIUS, LAW OF WAR & PEACE 455-56 (2.19.3.1) (Consequently, all agree that even public enemies
are entitled to burial. Appian calls this a common right of wars; Philo, the common interchange in war. Says
Tacitus: Not even enemies begrudge burial. Dio Chrysostom says that this right is observed even among
enemies; he adds, even though hatred has reached the utmost limit. In treating of the same matter, Lucan says that
the laws and customs of humanity must be observed in the case of an enemy. The same Sopater, who was cited
above, asks: What war has deprived the human race of this last honour? What enmity has extended the memory of
evil deeds to such a point that it would dare to violate this law? And Dio Chrysostom, whom I have just cited, in
his oration On the Law, says: For this reason no one judges enemies after death, and wrath and insult are not
extended to their bodies.).
131
For example, Trial of Max Schmid, Outline of the Proceedings, XIII U.N. LAW REPORTS 151 (U.S. General
Military Government Court, Dachau, Germany, May 19, 1947) (The third charge against the accused was that he
did wilfully, deliberately and wrongfully encourage, aid, abet and participate in the maltreatment of a dead
unknown member of the United States Army. The evidence showed that shortly before the time of the allied
invasion of France the body of a dead U.S. airman was brought to his dispensary by a detail whose duty it was to
collect dead bodies, and to remove them from the battlefield. The accused severed the head from the body, boiled it
and removed the skin and flesh and bleached the skull which he kept on his desk for several months. The
prosecution alleged that he eventually sent it to his wife in Germany as a souvenir.).
430
cannibalism of dead bodies is prohibited. 132 In addition, posing with bodies for photographs or
leaving a calling card on a body are also inconsistent with the respectful treatment of the dead.
7.7.1.2 Prohibition Against Booby-Trapping Dead Bodies. The dead may not be
booby-trapped. 133
7.7.2.1 Measures to Prevent the Dead From Being Despoiled. At all times, and
particularly after an engagement, parties to the conflict shall, without delay, take all possible
measures to prevent the dead from being despoiled. 134 This means that the personal effects of
deceased persons may not be pillaged or otherwise taken without proper authorization. 135
Individuals are not entitled to retain the personal effects of a deceased person as booty;
the individual military member or person accompanying the armed forces who captures or finds
enemy property acquires no title or claim. 136
7.7.2.2 Forwarding Valuable Articles Found on the Dead. Parties to the conflict
shall collect and forward, through the National POW Information Bureau, one-half of the double
132
For example, H. Wayne Elliott, The Third Priority: The Battlefield Dead, ARMY LAWYER 3, 14 (Jul. 1996)
(Reports of the mutilation of bodies, particularly cutting the ears off dead enemy soldiers, also circulated. One
such incident was filmed and shown on the CBS Evening News in 1967. In another incident which occurred in
1967, an Army sergeant was court-martialed for conduct to the prejudice of good order and discipline, a violation
of Article 134 of the Uniform Code of Military Justice (UCMJ). The sergeant was convicted of decapitating two
enemy corpses and posing for a photograph with the heads. The disciplinary or judicial action taken in these
incidents is proof that such conduct was not sanctioned by the command in Vietnam. In October 1967, General
Westmoreland, United States Commander in Vietnam, described the practice of cutting ears and fingers off the dead
as subhuman and contrary to all policy and below the minimum standards of human decency.); Trial of Max
Schmid, Notes on the Case: Mutilation of Dead Bodies and Refusal of Honourable Burial, XIII U.N. LAW REPORTS
151, 152 (U.S. General Military Government Court, Dachau, Germany, May 19, 1947) (Another United States
Military Commission at the Mariana Islands (2nd-15th August, 1946) tried and convicted Tachibana Yochio, a
Lieutenant-General in the Japanese Army and 13 others, of murdering 8 prisoners of war. Some of the accused were
also charged with preventing an honourable burial due to the consumption of parts of the bodies of prisoners of war
by the accused during a special meal in the officers mess. They were found guilty of these charges; sentences
ranging from death to imprisonment for 5 years were imposed. (3) An Australian Military Court at Wewak (30th
November, 1945) sentenced Tazaki Takehiko, a First Lieutenant in the Japanese Army to death for mutilating the
dead body of a prisoner of war and for cannibalism. The sentence was commuted to 5 years imprisonment by the
confirming officer.).
133
Refer to 6.12.4.9 (Certain Types of Prohibited Booby-Traps and Other Devices).
134
GWS art. 15 (At all times, and particularly after an engagement, Parties to the conflict shall, without delay, take
all possible measures to search for and collect the wounded and sick, to protect them against pillage and ill-
treatment, to ensure their adequate care, and to search for the dead and prevent their being despoiled.).
135
GWS COMMENTARY 152 footnote 2 (Although this Article speaks only of measures to prevent the despoiling
(French, dpouillement) of the dead, it incontestably involves a prohibition of pillage (French, pillage) of the
dead.).
136
Refer to 5.17.3.2 (Ownership of Captured or Found Property on the Battlefield).
431
identity disc, last wills or other documents of importance to the next of kin, money, and in
general all articles of an intrinsic or sentimental value, which are found on the dead. 137
If there is only a single identity disc, it should remain with the body if the body is to be
buried on land, so that the body may subsequently be identified as needed. 138 If the body is to be
buried at sea, then the single identity disc itself should be collected and forwarded through the
National POW Information Bureau. 139
These articles, together with unidentified articles, shall be sent in sealed packets,
accompanied by statements giving all particulars necessary for the identification of the deceased
owners, as well as by a complete list of the contents of the parcel. 140
The GPW also requires the forwarding of wills and all personal valuables left by POWs,
including those who have died. 141
7.7.3 Preparation and Forwarding of Death Certificates and Lists of the Dead. Parties to
the conflict shall prepare and forward to each other, through the National POW Information
Bureau, certificates of death or duly authenticated lists of the dead. 142 Where applicable, these
certificates or lists shall state the circumstances and reasons for cremation. 143
The GPW provides further requirements for death certificates and lists of persons who
died as POWs. 144
137
GWS art. 16 (They shall likewise collect and forward through the same bureau one half of a double identity
disc, last wills or other documents of importance to the next of kin, money and in general all articles of an intrinsic
or sentimental value, which are found on the dead.); GWS-SEA art. 19 (They shall likewise collect and forward
through the same bureau one half of the double identity disc, or the identity disc itself if it is a single disc, last wills
or other documents of importance to the next of kin, money and in general all articles of an intrinsic or sentimental
value, which are found on the dead.).
138
Refer to 7.7.4.2 (Burial on Land).
139
See GWS-SEA COMMENTARY 144 (Provision is still made for the possibility of military personnel being issued
with single discs only, inscribed with the bare particulars. In the case of burial on land, such a disc must remain
with the body, so that the latter may be identifiable at any time. In the case of burial at sea, it must be removed and
sent to the deceaseds home country, for a body buried at sea is usually wrapped in a weighted sailcloth bag and we
know of no instance of one having been washed ashore; there is therefore no question of subsequent
identification.).
140
GWS art. 16 (These articles, together with unidentified articles, shall be sent in sealed packets, accompanied by
statements giving all particulars necessary for the identification of the deceased owners, as well as by a complete list
of the contents of the parcel.); GWS-SEA art. 19 (same).
141
Refer to 9.31.2.3 (Collection of Personal Valuables Left by POWs).
142
GWS art. 16 (Parties to the conflict shall prepare and forward to each other through the same bureau, certificates
of death or duly authenticated lists of the dead.); GWS-SEA art. 19 (same).
143
Refer to 7.7.4.4 (Cremation).
144
Refer to 9.34.1 (Transmittal of Wills); 9.34.2 (Death Certificates).
432
7.7.4 Handling of Enemy Battlefield Dead Burial and Cremation.
An examination helps ensure that persons who are still living are not mistakenly buried or
cremated. An examination also helps ensure that accountability information can be gathered and
forwarded in accordance with other requirements. 146
7.7.4.2 Burial on Land. Parties to the conflict shall further ensure that the dead
are honorably interred, if possible according to the rites of the religion to which they belonged,
and that their graves are respected, grouped if possible according to the nationality of the
deceased, properly maintained, and marked so that they may always be found. 147 The use of
collective graves should be avoided. 148
One-half of the double identity disc, or the identity disc itself if it is a single disc, should
remain on the body. 149
Where a double identity disc is used, one-half of the disc should remain on the body. 150
On the other hand, if a single identity disc is used, then it should be collected and forwarded
through the National POW Information Bureau along with other valuable articles. 151
145
GWS art. 17 (Parties to the conflict shall ensure that burial or cremation of the dead, carried out individually as
far as circumstances permit, is preceded by a careful examination, if possible by a medical examination, of the
bodies, with a view to confirming death, establishing identity and enabling a report to be made.); GWS-SEA art. 20
(Parties to the conflict shall ensure that burial at sea of the dead, carried out individually as far as circumstances
permit, is preceded by a careful examination, if possible by a medical examination, of the bodies, with a view to
confirming death, establishing identity and enabling a report to be made.).
146
Refer to 7.6 (Accountability Information From the Enemy Military Wounded, Sick, Shipwrecked, and Dead);
7.7.3 (Preparation and Forwarding of Death Certificates and Lists of the Dead).
147
GWS art. 17 (They shall further ensure that the dead are honourably interred, if possible according to the rites of
the religion to which they belonged, that their graves are respected, grouped if possible according to the nationality
of the deceased, properly maintained and marked so that they may always be found.).
148
Refer to 9.34.3.2 (Burial).
149
GWS art. 17 (One half of the double identity disc, or the identity disc itself if it is a single disc, should remain
on the body.).
150
GWS-SEA art. 20 (Where a double identity disc is used, one half of the disc should remain on the body.).
151
Refer to 7.7.2.2 (Forwarding Valuable Articles Found on the Dead).
433
An examination and report are especially important in such cases in order to ensure that
accountability information is collected and forwarded. 152 The position (latitude and longitude)
and the date should be recorded in the death certificate. 153
7.7.4.4 Cremation. Bodies shall not be cremated except for imperative reasons of
hygiene or for motives based on the religion of the deceased. 154 For example, hygiene reasons
may include the risk of contamination to recovery personnel or other personnel from disease or
exposure to chemical or biological warfare agents.
In case of cremation, the circumstances and reasons for cremation shall be stated in detail
in the death certificate or on the authenticated list of the dead. 155
7.7.5 Graves Registration Service. In order to ensure that graves may always be found,
parties to the conflict shall organize at the commencement of hostilities an Official Graves
Registration Service to allow subsequent exhumations and to ensure the identification of bodies,
whatever the site of the graves, and the possible transportation to the home country. 156 The
Graves Registration Service shall also identify, record, and respectfully keep the ashes until they
can be disposed of in accordance with the wishes of the home country. 157
The GPW provides additional requirements for the Graves Registration Service with
respect to POWs who have died while POWs. 158
152
Refer to 7.7.4.1 (Examination of Bodies Before Burial or Cremation).
153
GWS-SEA COMMENTARY 143 (If, as will more often be the case, they are buried at sea, then the position
(latitude and longitude) and date alone need be mentioned.).
154
GWS art. 17 (Bodies shall not be cremated except for imperative reasons of hygiene or for motives based on the
religion of the deceased.).
155
GWS art. 17 (In case of cremation, the circumstances and reasons for cremation shall be stated in detail in the
death certificate or on the authenticated list of the dead.).
156
GWS art. 17 (They shall further ensure that the dead are honourably interred, if possible according to the rites of
the religion to which they belonged, that their graves are respected, grouped if possible according to the nationality
of the deceased, properly maintained and marked so that they may always be found. For this purpose, they shall
organize at the commencement of hostilities an Official Graves Registration Service, to allow subsequent
exhumations and to ensure the identification of bodies, whatever the site of the graves, and the possible
transportation to the home country.).
157
GWS art. 17 (These provisions shall likewise apply to the ashes, which shall be kept by the Graves Registration
Service until proper disposal thereof in accordance with the wishes of the home country.).
158
Refer to 9.34.4.1 (Records Held by the Graves Registration Service).
434
the exact location and markings of the graves, together with particulars of the dead interred
therein. 159
Certain categories of medical and religious personnel shall be respected and protected
during military operations.
7.8.1 Categories of Persons Who Are Entitled to Respect and Protection as Medical and
Religious Personnel on the Battlefield. The categories of persons who are entitled to respect and
protection as medical and religious personnel during military operations include:
auxiliary medical personnel, if they are carrying out their medical duties at the time when
they come into contact with the enemy or fall into the enemys hands; 164
the religious, medical, and hospital personnel of hospital ships and their crews. 167
159
GWS art. 17 (As soon as circumstances permit, and at latest at the end of hostilities, these Services shall
exchange, through the Information Bureau mentioned in the second paragraph of Article 16, lists showing the exact
location and markings of the graves, together with particulars of the dead interred therein.).
160
GWS art. 24 (Medical personnel exclusively engaged in the search for, or the collection, transport or treatment
of the wounded or sick, or in the prevention of disease, staff exclusively engaged in the administration of medical
units and establishments, as well as chaplains attached to the armed forces, shall be respected and protected in all
circumstances.). Refer to 4.9 (Military Medical and Religious Personnel).
161
Refer to 4.9.1.1 (Medical Personnel Exclusively Engaged in Medical Duties).
162
Refer to 4.9.1.2 (Staff Exclusively Engaged in Support to Medical Units and Establishments).
163
Refer to 4.9.1.3 (Chaplains Attached to the Armed Forces).
164
GWS art. 25 (Members of the armed forces specially trained for employment, should the need arise, as hospital
orderlies, nurses or auxiliary stretcher-bearers, in the search for or the collection, transport or treatment of the
wounded and sick shall likewise be respected and protected if they are carrying out these duties at the time when
they come into contact with the enemy or fall into his hands.). Refer to 4.13 (Auxiliary Medical Personnel).
165
Refer to 4.11 (Authorized Staff of Voluntary Aid Societies).
166
Refer to 4.12 (Staff of a Recognized Aid Society of a Neutral Country).
435
7.8.2 Meaning of Respect and Protection of Medical and Religious Personnel. The
respect and protection accorded medical and religious personnel by the GWS and GWS-Sea
mean that they must not knowingly be attacked, fired upon, or unnecessarily prevented from
discharging their proper functions. 168
7.8.2.2 Search and Other Security Measures Not Prohibited. Medical and
religious personnel are not immune from search or other necessary security measures by the
enemy. 171 Searches of medical and religious personnel, and other security measures applied to
them, should be consistent with the rules applicable when such actions are taken with respect to
POWs.172
7.8.2.3 Capture Not Prohibited. The respect and protection afforded medical and
religious personnel do not immunize them from detention. 173 However, certain classes of
medical and religious personnel are, under other rules, exempt from detention or capture. 174
7.8.3 Loss of Protection for Medical and Religious Personnel From Being Made the
Object of Attack. Medical and religious personnel forfeit their protected status and therefore
may be made the object of attack if they, outside of their humanitarian duties, participate in
hostilities or otherwise commit acts harmful to the enemy. 175
167
GWS-SEA art. 36 (The religious, medical and hospital personnel of hospital ships and their crews shall be
respected and protected; they may not be captured during the time they are in the service of the hospital ship,
whether or not there are wounded and sick on board.).
168
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 225 (b. What is Meant by Respect and Protection. The respect and
protection accorded personnel of certain categories by Articles 19 (par. 220), 24 (par. 67), and 25 (par. 226), GWS,
mean that they must not knowingly be attacked, fired upon, or unnecessarily prevented from discharging their
proper functions. The accidental killing or wounding of such personnel, due to their presence among or in proximity
to combatant elements actually engaged, by fire directed at the latter, gives no just cause for complaint.).
169
See GREENSPAN, MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 57 (Medical personnel and chaplains must accept the risks
of accidental death or injury as a result of war operations.).
170
Refer to 5.12.3.2 (Harm to Certain Individuals Who May Be Employed In or On Military Objectives).
Compare 7.12.2.5 (Acceptance of the Risk From Proximity to Combat Operations).
171
Refer to 7.10.1.2 (Search Not Prohibited).
172
Refer to 9.6 (Security Measures With Respect to POWs).
173
Refer to 7.9 (Captured Medical and Religious Personnel).
174
Refer to 7.9.1.1 (Medical and Religious Personnel Who Are Exempt From Capture and Detention).
175
GWS COMMENTARY 221 (Nevertheless, to enjoy immunity, they must naturally abstain from any form of
participationeven indirectin hostile acts. We saw in Article 21 that the protection to which medical units are
entitled ceases if they are used to commit acts harmful to the enemy. This proviso obviously applies to medical
436
For example, weapons may not be used by medical and religious personnel against
enemy military forces except in self-defense or defense of their patients. 176 Similarly, medical or
religious personnel who, during combat, drive vehicles carrying able-bodied combatants or
ammunition for able-bodied combatants, forfeit their protection from being made the object of
attack by enemy military forces. 177 Hampering or impeding enemy military operations also
would be a basis for finding that medical or religious personnel have forfeited protection. 178
Acts that are part of their humanitarian duties, such as caring for the wounded and sick,
are not a basis for depriving medical and religious personnel of their protection. 179
7.8.4 Use of the Distinctive Emblem to Facilitate the Respect and Protection of Military
Medical and Religious Personnel. The GWS contemplates the use of the distinctive emblem,
including through wearing an armlet bearing the emblem, to facilitate the identification of
protected medical and religious personnel, as such.
Claiming protected medical status (including feigning such status) in order to deceive the
adversary into affording protection so as then to kill or wound the enemy is prohibited. 180
As with other instances of the display of the distinctive emblem, the wearing of the
armlet with the distinctive emblem is controlled by the competent military authority, and the
armlet may be obscured or removed at the competent military authoritys direction. 181 The fact
that military medical and religious personnel do not wear an armlet does not deprive them of
their protection from being made the object of attack if they are recognized as such. 182
7.8.4.1 Wearing of Armlet With the Distinctive Emblem. The GWS contemplates
that
personnel also.). Refer to 7.10.3 (Loss of Protection of Military Medical Units and Facilities From Being Made
the Object of Attack).
176
Refer to 7.10.3.5 (Use of Weapons in Self-Defense or Defense of the Wounded and Sick).
177
Compare 7.12.2.2 (No Use for Military Purposes).
178
Compare 7.12.2.3 (No Hampering the Movement of Combatants).
179
Refer to 7.10.3.1 (Acts Harmful to the Enemy).
180
Refer to 5.22 (Treachery or Perfidy Used to Kill or Wound).
181
Refer to 7.15.2 (Control of Display by the Competent Military Authority); 7.15.2.1 (Removal or Obscuration
of the Distinctive Emblem).
182
Refer to 7.15.3 (Significance of the Display of the Distinctive Emblem).
183
Refer to 4.9 (Military Medical and Religious Personnel).
184
Refer to 4.11 (Authorized Staff of Voluntary Aid Societies).
437
shall wear, affixed to the left arm, a water-resistant armlet bearing the distinctive emblem, issued
and stamped by the military authority. 186 In no circumstances may these personnel be deprived
of the right to wear the armlet. 187
The treatment of captured persons who perform medical or religious duties depends on
their legal status. Identification cards are used to help determine the correct status of medical
and religious personnel. Retained personnel are subject to certain duties, rights, and privileges
during detention.
7.9.1 Different Classes of Persons Performing Medical or Religious Duties. Persons who
perform medical or religious duties may be grouped into three categories based on their
treatment with respect to detention: (1) medical and religious personnel who are exempt from
capture; (2) medical and religious personnel who may be retained; and (3) persons who perform
medical and religious duties who are held as POWs.
7.9.1.1 Medical and Religious Personnel Who Are Exempt From Capture and
Detention. Certain classes of medical and religious personnel are exempt from capture and
detention. These classes of personnel include:
the religious, medical, and hospital personnel of hospital ships and their crews during the
time they are in service of the hospital ship, whether or not there are wounded and sick on
board. 190
185
Refer to 4.12 (Staff of a Recognized Aid Society of a Neutral Country).
186
GWS art. 40 (The personnel designated in Article 24 and in Articles 26 and 27 shall wear, affixed to the left
arm, a water-resistant armlet bearing the distinctive emblem, issued and stamped by the military authority.); GWS-
SEA art. 42 (The personnel designated in Articles 36 and 37 shall wear, affixed to the left arm, a water-resistant
armlet bearing the distinctive emblem, issued and stamped by the military authority.).
187
GWS art. 40 (In no circumstances may the said personnel be deprived of their insignia or identity cards nor of
the right to wear the armlet.); GWS-SEA art. 42 (In no circumstances may the said personnel be deprived of their
insignia or identity cards nor of the right to wear the armlet.).
188
GWS art. 41 (The personnel designated in Article 25 shall wear, but only while carrying out medical duties, a
white armlet bearing in its centre the distinctive sign in miniature; the armlet shall be issued and stamped by the
military authority.).
189
Refer to 4.12 (Staff of a Recognized Aid Society of a Neutral Country).
190
GWS-SEA art. 36 (The religious, medical and hospital personnel of hospital ships and their crews shall be
respected and protected; they may not be captured during the time they are in service of the hospital ship, whether or
not there are wounded and sick on board.).
438
Such individuals may be held temporarily pending determination of their status or until
conditions permit their safe return or release. 191
7.9.1.2 Medical and Religious Personnel Who May Be Retained. Certain classes
of medical and religious personnel who fall into the hands of the adverse party shall be retained
only in so far as the state of health, the spiritual needs, and the number of POWs require. 192
Personnel who are retained in this way are not considered POWs. 193
7.9.1.3 Persons Performing Medical or Religious Duties Who Are Held as POWs.
Certain classes of persons who perform medical or religious duties are held as POWs if they fall
into the hands of the enemy during international armed conflict. These classes of personnel
include:
auxiliary medical personnel, if they are carrying out their medical duties at the time when
they come into contact with the enemy or fall into the enemys hands; 199
members of the armed forces who are trained as medical personnel, but not attached to
the medical service; 200
191
Refer to 4.12 (Staff of a Recognized Aid Society of a Neutral Country).
192
GWS art. 28 (Personnel designated in Articles 24 and 26 who fall into the hands of the adverse Party, shall be
retained only in so far as the state of health, the spiritual needs and the number of prisoners of war require.).
193
GPW art. 33 (Members of the medical personnel and chaplains while retained by the Detaining Power with a
view to assisting prisoners of war, shall not be considered as prisoners of war.); GWS art. 28 (Personnel thus
retained shall not be deemed prisoners of war.). See also GPW art. 4C (This Article shall in no way affect the
status of medical personnel and chaplains as provided for in Article 33 of the present Convention.).
194
Refer to 4.9 (Military Medical and Religious Personnel).
195
Refer to 4.9.1.1 (Medical Personnel Exclusively Engaged in Medical Duties).
196
Refer to 4.9.1.2 (Staff Exclusively Engaged in Support to Medical Units and Establishments).
197
Refer to 4.9.1.3 (Chaplains Attached to the Armed Forces).
198
Refer to 4.11 (Authorized Staff of Voluntary Aid Societies).
199
Refer to 4.13 (Auxiliary Medical Personnel).
200
Refer to 4.5.2.2 (Members Trained as Medical Personnel, but Not Attached to the Medical Service).
439
members of the armed forces who are ministers of religion without having officiated as
chaplains to their own forces; 201 and
military medical and religious personnel who forfeit their status as retained personnel
because they are not exclusively engaged in medical and religious duties. 202
7.9.2 Use of Identification Card to Help Establish Retained Personnel Status. The 1949
Geneva Conventions contemplate that identification cards will be used to help establish the
proper status of persons, including the entitlement to retained personnel status. 203
Persons entitled to retained personnel status, in addition to wearing the identity disc
mentioned in Article 16 of the GWS or Article 19 of the GWS-Sea, shall also carry a special
identity card bearing the distinctive emblem. 204
This card shall be water-resistant and of such size that it can be carried in the pocket. It
shall be worded in the national language; shall mention at least the surname and first names, the
date of birth, the rank, and the service number of the bearer; and shall state in what capacity the
bearer is entitled to the protection of the GWS or GWS-Sea. The card shall bear the photograph
of the owner and also either the bearers signature or fingerprints or both. It shall be embossed
with the stamp of the military authority. 205
The identity card shall be uniform throughout the same armed forces and, as far as
possible, of a similar type in the armed forces of the Parties to the GWS and GWS-Sea. The
parties to the conflict may be guided by the model, which is annexed, by way of example, to the
GWS and GWS-Sea. Parties to the conflict shall inform each other, at the outbreak of hostilities,
of the model they are using. Identity cards should be made out, if possible, at least in duplicate,
one copy being kept by the home country. 206
201
Refer to 4.5.2.3 (Members Who Are Ministers of Religion Without Having Officiated as Chaplains to Their
Own Forces).
202
Refer to 4.9.2.3 (Exclusively Engaged in Humanitarian Duties).
203
Refer to 4.27.1 (Identification Cards Used to Help Clarify Status).
204
GWS art. 40 (Such personnel, in addition to wearing the identity disc mentioned in Article 16, shall also carry a
special identity card bearing the distinctive emblem.); GWS-SEA art. 42 (Such personnel, in addition to wearing
the identity disc mentioned in Article 19, shall also carry a special identity card bearing the distinctive emblem.).
205
GWS art. 40 (This card shall be water-resistant and of such size that it can be carried in the pocket. It shall be
worded in the national language, shall mention at least the surname and first names, the date of birth, the rank and
the service number of the bearer, and shall state in what capacity he is entitled to the protection of the present
Convention. The card shall bear the photograph of the owner and also either his signature or his finger-prints or
both. It shall be embossed with the stamp of military authority.); GWS-SEA (same).
206
GWS art. 40 (The identity card shall be uniform throughout the same armed forces and, as far as possible, of a
similar type in the armed forces of the High Contracting Parties. The Parties to the conflict may be guided by the
model which is annexed, by way of example, to the present Convention. They shall inform each other, at the
outbreak of hostilities, of the model they are using. Identity cards should be made out, if possible, at least in
duplicate, one copy being kept by the home country.); GWS-SEA art. 42 (same).
440
In no circumstances may retained personnel be deprived of their insignia or identity cards
nor of the right to wear the armlet. 207 In case of loss, they shall be entitled to receive duplicates
of the cards and to have the insignia replaced. 208
7.9.3 Duties of Retained Personnel. Within the framework of the military laws and
regulations of the Detaining Power, and under the authority of its competent service, retained
personnel shall continue to carry out, in accordance with their professional ethics, their medical
and spiritual duties on behalf of POWs, preferably those of the armed forces to which they
themselves belong. 209 This preference for retained personnel to treat the POWs of the armed
forces to which the retained personnel belong is also reflected in the provisions of the GPW
related to the medical treatment of POWs. 210
Like POWs, retained personnel may be subject to disciplinary or judicial proceedings for
violations of the laws and regulations of the Detaining Power. 211
If retained personnel refuse to perform their medical duties on behalf of POWs, they are
liable to forfeit their status as retained personnel. 212
207
GWS art. 40 (In no circumstances may the said personnel be deprived of their insignia or identity cards nor of
the right to wear the armlet.); GWS-SEA art. 42 (same).
208
GWS art. 40 (In case of loss, they shall be entitled to receive duplicates of the cards and to have the insignia
replaced.); GWS-SEA art. 42 (same).
209
GWS art. 28 (Within the framework of the military laws and regulations of the Detaining Power, and under the
authority of its competent service, they shall continue to carry out, in accordance with their professional ethics, their
medical and spiritual duties on behalf of prisoners of war, preferably those of the armed forces to which they
themselves belong.); GPW art. 33 (Members of the medical personnel and chaplains while retained by the
Detaining Power with a view to assisting prisoners of war, shall continue to exercise their medical and spiritual
functions for the benefit of prisoners of war, preferably those belonging to the armed forces upon which they
depend, within the scope of the military laws and regulations of the Detaining Power and under the control of its
competent services, in accordance with their professional etiquette.).
210
Refer to 9.14.2.2 (Treatment by Medical Personnel of the Power on Which They Depend).
211
Refer to 9.26 (General Principles Applicable to POW Discipline); 9.27 (Disciplinary Proceedings and
Punishment); 9.28 (Judicial Proceedings and Punishment).
212
Refer to 4.9.2.3 (Exclusively Engaged in Humanitarian Duties).
213
GWS art. 30 (Personnel whose retention is not indispensable by virtue of the provisions of Article 28 shall be
returned to the Party to the conflict to whom they belong, as soon as a road is open for their return and military
requirements permit.).
214
See Lewis C. Vollmar, Jr., Military Medicine in War: The Geneva Conventions Today, Chapter 23 in II
MILITARY MEDICAL ETHICS 739, 746 (2003) (As it always has been throughout the development of the Geneva
Conventions, retention of medical personnel remains subordinate to their repatriation. But, if history is any
indication of the future, it is likely that retention will become the rule and repatriation will remain the exception.).
441
7.9.4.1 Treatment Pending Return. Pending their return, such personnel whose
retention is not indispensable shall not be deemed POWs; nevertheless, they shall at least benefit
from all the provisions of the GPW. 215 They shall continue to fulfill their duties under the orders
of the adverse party and shall preferably be engaged in the care of the wounded and sick of the
party to the conflict to which they themselves belong. 216
On their departure, they shall take with them the effects, personal belongings, valuables,
and instruments belonging to them. 217
7.9.4.2 Selection of Personnel for Return. The selection of personnel for return
under Article 30 of the GWS shall be made irrespective of any consideration of race, religion, or
political opinion, but preferably according to the chronological order of their capture and their
state of health. 218
7.9.5.2 All Facilities Necessary to Provide for the Medical Care of, and Religious
Ministration to, POWs. Retained personnel shall also be granted all facilities necessary to
provide for the medical care of, and religious ministration to, POWs.221
215
GWS art. 30 (Pending their return, they shall not be deemed prisoners of war. Nevertheless they shall at least
benefit by all the provisions of the Geneva Convention relative to the Treatment of Prisoners of War of August 12,
1949.).
216
GWS art. 30 (They shall continue to fulfil their duties under the orders of the adverse Party and shall preferably
be engaged in the care of the wounded and sick of the Party to the conflict to which they themselves belong.).
217
GWS art. 30 (On their departure, they shall take with them the effects, personal belongings, valuables and
instruments belonging to them.).
218
GWS art. 31 (The selection of personnel for return under Article 30 shall be made irrespective of any
consideration of race, religion or political opinion, but preferably according to the chronological order of their
capture and their state of health.).
219
GWS art. 31 (As from the outbreak of hostilities, Parties to the conflict may determine by special agreement the
percentage of personnel to be retained, in proportion to the number of prisoners and the distribution of the said
personnel in the camps.).
220
GWS art. 28 (Retained personnel shall at least benefit by all the provisions of the Geneva Convention relative to
the Treatment of Prisoners of War of 12 August 1949.); GPW art. 33 (Members of the medical personnel and
chaplains while retained by the Detaining Power with a view to assisting prisoners of war, shall receive as a
minimum the benefits and protection of the present Convention,).
221
GPW art. 33 (Members of the medical personnel and chaplains while retained by the Detaining Power with a
view to assisting prisoners of war, shall not be considered as prisoners of war. They shall, however, receive as a
442
7.9.5.3 Visits of POWs Outside the Camp. Retained personnel, including
chaplains, shall be authorized to visit periodically POWs situated in working detachments or in
hospitals outside the camp. 222 For this purpose, the Detaining Power shall place at their disposal
the necessary means of transport. 223
7.9.5.7 Senior Medical Officer in the Camp. The senior medical officer in each
camp shall be responsible to the camp military authorities for everything connected with the
activities of retained medical personnel. 228 For this purpose, parties to the conflict shall agree at
minimum the benefits and protection of the present Convention, and shall also be granted all facilities necessary to
provide for the medical care of, and religious ministration to prisoners of war.); GWS art. 28 (Personnel thus
retained shall not be deemed prisoners of war. Nevertheless they shall at least benefit from the provisions of the
Geneva Convention relative to the Treatment of Prisoners of War of August 12, 1949.).
222
GPW art. 33 (They shall be authorized to visit periodically prisoners of war situated in working detachments or
in hospitals outside the camp.); GWS art. 28 (They shall be authorized to visit periodically the prisoners of war in
labour units or hospitals outside of the camp.); GPW art. 35 ([Chaplains] shall enjoy the necessary facilities,
including the means of transport provided for in Article 33, for visiting the prisoners of war outside their camp.).
223
GPW art. 33 (For this purpose, the Detaining Power shall place at their disposal the necessary means of
transport.); GWS art. 28 (The Detaining Power shall put at their disposal the means of transport required.).
224
GPW art. 35 (They shall be free to correspond, subject to censorship, on matters concerning their religious
duties with the ecclesiastical authorities in the country of detention and with international religious organizations.).
225
GPW art. 35 (Letters and cards which they may send for this purpose shall be in addition to the quota provided
for in Article 71.). Refer to 9.20.2.1 (POW Correspondence Quota).
226
Refer to 9.36.5.2 (POWs Entitled to Present Themselves for Examination Before the Commission); 9.36.5.3
(Observers at the Examination).
227
GPW art. 33 (Although they shall be subject to the internal discipline of the camp in which they are retained,
such personnel may not be compelled to carry out any work other than that concerned with their medical or religious
duties.); GWS art. 28 (Although retained personnel in a camp shall be subject to its internal discipline, they shall
not, however, be required to perform any work outside their medical or religious duties.).
228
GPW art. 33 (The senior medical officer in each camp shall be responsible to the camp military authorities for
everything connected with the activities of retained medical personnel.); GWS art. 28 (In each camp, the senior
medical officer of the highest rank shall be responsible to the military authorities of the camp for the professional
activity of the retained military medical personnel.).
443
the outbreak of hostilities on the subject of the corresponding ranks of the medical personnel,
including that of societies mentioned in Article 26 of the GWS. 229
In all questions arising out of their duties, the senior medical officer, and chaplains, shall
have direct access to the military and medical authorities of the camp, who shall grant them the
facilities they may require for correspondence relating to these questions. 230
7.9.6 No Relief of Obligations of the Detaining Power. None of the provisions of Article
28 of the GWS or Article 33 of the GPW shall relieve the Detaining Power of its obligations with
regard to POWs from the medical or spiritual point of view. 233 In other words, the fact that the
Detaining Power permits and enables retained personnel to care for POWs does not relieve the
Detaining Power of its own responsibilities to care for POWs.
Fixed establishments and mobile medical units of the Medical Service (i.e., military
medical units and facilities) may in no circumstances be attacked, but shall at all times be
229
GPW art. 33 (For this purpose, Parties to the conflict shall agree at the outbreak of hostilities on the subject of
the corresponding ranks of the medical personnel, including that of societies mentioned in Article 26 of the Geneva
Convention for the Amelioration of the Condition of the Wounded and Sick in Armed Forces in the Field of August
12, 1949.); GWS art. 28 (For this purpose, from the outbreak of hostilities, the Parties to the conflict shall agree
regarding the corresponding seniority of the ranks of their medical personnel, including those of the societies
designated in Article 26.).
230
GWS art. 28 (In all questions arising out of their duties, this medical officer, and the chaplains, shall have direct
access to the military and medical authorities of the camp who shall grant them the facilities they may require for
correspondence relating to these questions.); GPW art. 33 (This senior medical officer, as well as chaplains, shall
have the right to deal with the competent authorities of the camp on all questions relating to their duties. Such
authorities shall afford them all necessary facilities for correspondence relating to these questions.).
231
GPW art. 33 (During hostilities, the Parties to the conflict shall agree concerning the possible relief of retained
personnel and shall settle the procedure to be followed.); GWS art. 28 (During hostilities the Parties to the conflict
shall make arrangements for relieving where possible retained personnel, and shall settle the procedure of such
relief.).
232
GWS COMMENTARY 257 (During the last World War certain belligerents planned to relieve doctors retained in
enemy camps, by personnel from the home country. On being replaced the doctors in question were to be
repatriated. A beginning was made in the case of some Yugoslav doctors and a larger number of French doctors
retained in Germany.).
233
GPW art. 33 (None of the preceding provisions shall relieve the Detaining Power of its obligations with regard
to prisoners of war from the medical or spiritual point of view.); GWS art. 28 (None of the preceding provisions
shall reIieve the Detaining Power of the obligations imposed upon it with regard to the medical and spiritual welfare
of the prisoners of war.).
444
respected and protected by the parties to the conflict. 234 In addition, establishments ashore that
are entitled to the protection of the GWS shall be protected from bombardment or attack from the
sea. 235
7.10.1 Meaning of Respect and Protection of Military Medical Units and Facilities.
The respect and protection accorded by the GWS to military medical units and facilities mean
that they must not knowingly be attacked, fired upon, or unnecessarily prevented from
discharging their proper functions. 236
7.10.1.1 Incidental Harm Not Prohibited. The incidental harm to medical units or
facilities, due to their presence among or in proximity to combatant elements actually engaged,
by fire directed at the latter, gives no just cause for complaint. 237 Commanders are obligated to
situate medical units and facilities such that they are not in danger from attack against military
objectives. 238 Because medical units and facilities that are positioned near military objectives are
deemed to have accepted the risk of death or further injury due to proximity to military
operations, they need not be considered as incidental harm in assessing proportionality in
conducting attacks. 239
7.10.1.2 Search Not Prohibited. Military medical units and facilities are not
immune from search by the enemy. 240 For example, search may be necessary to verify that these
units and facilities are not being used, outside their humanitarian duties, to commit acts harmful
to the enemy.
234
GWS art. 19 (Fixed establishments and mobile medical units of the Medical Service may in no circumstances be
attacked, but shall at all times be respected and protected by the Parties to the conflict.).
235
GWS-SEA art. 23 (Establishments ashore entitled to protection of the Geneva Convention for the Amelioration
of the Condition of the Wounded and Sick in Armed Forces in the Field of August 12, 1949, shall be protected from
bombardment or attack from the sea.).
236
Refer to 7.8.2 (Meaning of Respect and Protection of Medical and Religious Personnel).
237
Compare 7.12.2.5 (Acceptance of the Risk From Proximity to Combat Operations). For example, Col. Robert
D. Heinl, Jr., Military Writer Charges: Reds Dupe Doves On Hanoi Hospital, THE PITTSBURGH PRESS, Jan. 10,
1973 (Bach Mai Hospital, outside Hanoi, appears to have replaced North Vietnams inconveniently intact dike
systems as Exhibit A in the Communist propaganda campaign to convict the United States of war crimes, atrocities
and what is called terror bombing. Bach Mai, or what is left of it, has been regularly shown to visiting American
antiwar activists as evidence that we are singling out hospitals, orphanages and similar illegal targets in the air war
against Hanoi. Examination of current aerial photographs shows the hospital to be sited by the Communists in the
very bulls-eye of a ring of military targets. Besides being virtually astride the Communists main logistic artery
for support of the war, the damaged hospital lies just across the road from Bach Mai Airfield, one of North
Vietnams most important military airdromes. Within a few hundred yards of Bach Mai Hospital, the
Communists maintain their main command center for the air defense of the North.).
238
Refer to 7.10.2 (Obligation to Situate Military Medical Units and Facilities Relative to Military Objectives).
239
Refer to 5.12.3.2 (Harm to Certain Individuals Who May Be Employed In or On Military Objectives).
Compare 7.12.2.5 (Acceptance of the Risk From Proximity to Combat Operations).
240
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 221 (GWS does not confer immunity from search by the enemy on
medical units, establishments, or transports.).
445
7.10.1.3 Capture Not Prohibited. The respect and protection afforded medical
units and facilities do not immunize them from capture. 241
7.10.2 Obligation to Situate Military Medical Units and Facilities Relative to Military
Objectives. Responsible authorities shall ensure that military medical establishments and units
are, as far as possible, situated in such a manner that attacks against military objectives cannot
imperil their safety. 242
In no case may a military medical unit or facility be used for the purpose of shielding
military objectives from attack. 243
For example, in order to perform their medical duties effectively, medical units and
facilities must, to some degree, be intermingled with military objectives (such as combatants or
vehicles that constitute military objectives). In addition, medical units and facilities may be
faced with threats of unlawful attacks (e.g., from criminal elements or enemy combatants not
abiding by the law of war) that may warrant the placement of medical units and facilities in a
more secure location (e.g., within the perimeter of a military base) so that they may be guarded
by combatant units. Logistical considerations (e.g., access to roads, water, power, or
communications) may also limit the implementation of this obligation.
Commanders of military medical units and facilities should, as far as possible, place their
units and facilities so as to protect them from the effects of enemy attacks on military objectives.
Commanders of combatant units should also avoid placing their units in proximity to medical
units and facilities to the extent feasible. For example, procedures should be established to
ensure that, during international armed conflict, non-medical vehicles or personnel do not remain
unnecessarily within or near medical facilities.
7.10.3 Loss of Protection of Military Medical Units and Facilities From Being Made the
Object of Attack. The protection from being made the object of attack, to which fixed
241
Refer to 7.10.5 (Capture of Military Medical Units and Facilities).
242
GWS art. 19 (The responsible authorities shall ensure that the said medical establishments and units are, as far
as possible, situated in such a manner that attacks against military objectives cannot imperil their safety.).
243
Refer to 5.16 (Prohibition on Using Protected Persons and Objects to Shield, Favor, or Impede Military
Operations).
446
establishments and mobile medical units of the Medical Service are entitled, shall not cease
unless they are used to commit, outside their humanitarian duties, acts harmful to the enemy. 244
7.10.3.1 Acts Harmful to the Enemy. Medical establishments and units must
refrain from all interference, direct or indirect, in military operations. 245 For example, a hospital
may not be used as a shelter for able-bodied combatants or fugitives, as an arms or ammunition
depot, or as a military observation post. 246 A medical unit must not be deliberately situated so as
to hamper or impede an enemy attack. 247
Acts that are part of their humanitarian duties, such as caring for the wounded and sick,
are not a basis for depriving medical units and facilities of their protection. 248
The obligation to refrain from use of force against a medical unit acting in violation of its
mission and protected status without due warning does not prohibit the exercise of the right of
self-defense. There may be cases in which, in the exercise of the right of self-defense, a warning
is not due or a reasonable time limit is not appropriate. For example, forces receiving heavy
fire from a hospital may exercise their right of self-defense and return fire. 250 Such use of force
244
GWS art. 21 (The protection to which fixed establishments and mobile medical units of the Medical Service are
entitled shall not cease unless they are used to commit, outside their humanitarian duties, acts harmful to the enemy.
Protection may, however, cease only after a due warning has been given, naming, in all appropriate cases, a
reasonable time limit, and after such warning has remained unheeded.).
245
GWS COMMENTARY 201 (Medical establishments and units must observe, towards the opposing belligerent, the
neutrality which they claim for themselves and which is their right under the Convention. Being placed outside the
struggle, they must loyally refrain from all interference, direct or indirect, in military operations.).
246
GWS COMMENTARY 200-01 (Such harmful acts would, for example, include the use of a hospital as a shelter for
able-bodied combatants or fugitives, as an arms or ammunition dump, or as a military observation post; another
instance would be the deliberate siting of a medical unit in a position where it would impede an enemy attack.).
247
Compare 7.12.2.3 (No Hampering the Movement of Combatants).
248
GWS COMMENTARY 201 (The Diplomatic Conference of 1949 stated specifically that protection could only
cease in the case of harmful acts committed by the units outside their humanitarian duties. It is possible for a
humane act to be harmful to the enemy, or for it to be wrongly interpreted as so being by an enemy lacking in
generosity. Thus the presence or activities of a medical unit might interfere with tactical operations; so might its
lights at night. It was stated, for example, at the Conference, that the waves given off by an X-ray apparatus could
interfere with the transmission or reception of wireless messages by a military set, or with the working of a radar
unit.).
249
GWS art. 21 (The protection to which fixed establishments and mobile medical units of the Medical Service are
entitled shall not cease unless they are used to commit, outside their humanitarian duties, acts harmful to the enemy.
Protection may, however, cease only after a due warning has been given, naming, in all appropriate cases, a
reasonable time limit, and after such warning has remained unheeded.).
250
See GWS COMMENTARY 202 (As we have seen, a time limit is to be named in all appropriate cases. There
might obviously be cases where no time limit could be allowed. Suppose, for example, that a body of troops
approaching a hospital were met by heavy fire from every window. Fire would be returned without delay.).
447
in self-defense against medical units or facilities must be proportionate. 251 For example, a single
enemy rifleman firing from a hospital window would warrant a response against the rifleman
only, rather than the destruction of the hospital.
That the personnel of the unit or establishment are armed, and that they use the arms in
their own defense, or in that of the wounded and sick in their charge.
That in the absence of armed orderlies, the unit or establishment is protected by a picket,
by sentries, or by an escort.
That small arms and ammunition taken from the wounded and sick and not yet handed to
the proper service are found in the unit or establishment.
That personnel and material of the veterinary service are found in the unit or
establishment, without forming an integral part thereof; and
That the humanitarian activities of medical units and establishments or of their personnel
extend to the care of civilian wounded or sick. 252
Military medical units and facilities may be armed to the extent necessary to enable them
to defend themselves or their patients against unlawful attacks. 254 For example, military medical
and religious personnel may be equipped with weapons to meet internal security needs, to
maintain discipline, to protect staff and patients from criminal threats of violence, and to prevent
the theft of medical supplies. On the other hand, medical units or establishments should not be
251
Refer to 2.4 (Proportionality).
252
GWS art. 22 (The following conditions shall not be considered as depriving a medical unit or establishment of
the protection guaranteed by Article 19: (1) That the personnel of the unit or establishment are armed, and that they
use the arms in their own defence, or in that of the wounded and sick in their charge. (2) That in the absence of
armed orderlies, the unit or establishment is protected by a picket or by sentries or by an escort. (3) That small arms
and ammunition taken from the wounded and sick and not yet handed to the proper service, are found in the unit or
establishment. (4) That personnel and material of the veterinary service are found in the unit or establishment,
without forming an integral part thereof. (5) That the humanitarian activities of medical units and establishments or
of their personnel extend to the care of civilian wounded or sick.).
253
See GWS art. 22 (The following conditions shall not be considered as depriving a medical unit or establishment
of the protection guaranteed by Article 19: (1) That the personnel of the unit or establishment are armed, and that
they use the arms in their own defence, or in that of the wounded and sick in their charge. (2) That in the absence of
armed orderlies, the unit or establishment is protected by a picket or by sentries or by an escort.).
254
For example, U.S. military medical and religious personnel have been armed with the M9 pistol, M16 rifle, or
M4 carbine.
448
armed such that they would appear to an enemy military force to present an offensive threat. 255
The type of weapon that is necessary for defensive or other legitimate purposes may depend on
the anticipated threats against the medical unit or facility.
Medical personnel may use force to defend themselves or the wounded and sick in their
care from unlawful attacks, such as those from unprivileged belligerents or other persons
violating the law of war. 258
Medical personnel who use their arms in circumstances not justified by the law of war
expose themselves to penalties for violation of the law of war and, provided they have been
given due warning to cease such acts, may also forfeit the protection of the medical unit or
facility of which they form part or that they are protecting. 259
255
For example, U.S. military medical and religious personnel have generally not been authorized to carry or
employ crew-served weapons, hand grenades, grenade launchers, antitank weapons, or Claymore munitions.
256
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 223b (Although medical personnel may carry arms for self-defense, they
may not employ such arms against enemy forces acting in conformity with the law of war. These arms are for their
personal defense and for the protection of the wounded and sick under their charge against marauders and other
persons violating the law of war.).
257
See, e.g., DOD INSTRUCTION 1300.21, Code of Conduct (CoC) Training and Education, Enclosure 2 E.2.3.2
(Jan. 8, 2001) ([M]edical personnel and chaplains are subject to lawful capture. They may only resort to arms in
self-defense or in defense of the wounded and sick in their charge when attacked in violation of the Geneva
Convention (I). They must refrain from all aggressive action and may not use force to prevent their capture or that
of their unit by the enemy.); GWS COMMENTARY 203 (But such personnel may only resort to arms for purely
defensive purposes, and in cases where it is obviously necessary. They must refrain from all aggressive action and
may not use force to prevent the capture of their unit by the enemy.).
258
GWS COMMENTARY 203 (If a medical unit is attacked, in violation of the Convention, its personnel cannot be
asked to sacrifice themselves without resistance. Quite apart from the above extreme case, it is clearly necessary for
medical personnel to be in a position to ensure the maintenance of order and discipline in the units under their
charge.).
259
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 223b (Medical personnel who use their arms in circumstances not
justified by the law of war expose themselves to penalties for violation of the law of war and, provided they have
been given due warning to cease such acts, may also forfeit the protection of the medical unit or establishment of
which they form part or which they are protecting.).
449
The temporary presence of combatants or other military objectives within a medical unit
or facility does not automatically constitute an act harmful to the enemy that forfeits its
protection from being made the object of attack. More facts would be necessary to establish that
the medical unit or facility was somehow being used to commit acts harmful to the enemy, such
as if a unit or facility were being used for the purpose of sheltering able-bodied combatants or
providing a base from which military operations were being planned or conducted.
7.10.4 Use of the Distinctive Emblem to Facilitate the Identification of Medical Units and
Facilities. The GWS contemplates that the distinctive emblem will be used to facilitate the
identification of medical units and facilities as such.
7.10.4.1 Flying of the Distinctive Flag of the GWS Over Medical Units and
Facilities. The distinctive flag of the GWS shall be hoisted only over such medical units and
establishments as are entitled to be respected under the GWS, and only with the consent of the
military authorities. 260 In mobile units, as in fixed establishments, it may be accompanied by the
national flag of the party to the conflict to which the unit or establishment belongs. 261
Nevertheless, medical units that have fallen into the hands of the enemy shall not fly any
flag other than that of the GWS. 262
7.10.5 Capture of Military Medical Units and Facilities. Military medical units and
facilities may be captured. Should they fall into the hands of the adverse party, their personnel
shall be free to pursue their duties, as long as the capturing Power has not itself ensured the
necessary care of the wounded and sick found in such establishments and units. 264
260
GWS art. 42 (The distinctive flag of the Convention shall be hoisted only over such medical units and
establishments as are entitled to be respected under the Convention, and only with the consent of the military
authorities.).
261
GWS art. 42 (In mobile units, as in fixed establishments, it may be accompanied by the national flag of the Party
to the conflict to which the unit or establishment belongs.).
262
GWS art. 42 (Nevertheless, medical units which have fallen into the hands of the enemy shall not fly any flag
other than that of the Convention.).
263
GWS art. 42 (Parties to the conflict shall take the necessary steps, in so far as military considerations permit, to
make the distinctive emblems indicating medical units and establishments clearly visible to the enemy land, air or
naval forces, in order to obviate the possibility of any hostile action.).
264
GWS art. 19 (Should they fall into the hands of the adverse Party, their personnel shall be free to pursue their
duties, as long as the capturing Power has not itself ensured the necessary care of the wounded and sick found in
such establishments and units.).
450
7.10.5.1 Disposition of Buildings, Material, and Stores of Captured Medical Units
and Facilities. The material of mobile medical units of the armed forces that fall into the hands
of the enemy shall be reserved for the care of wounded and sick. 265
The buildings, material, and stores of fixed medical establishments of the armed forces
shall remain subject to the laws of war (e.g., they may be captured and used by the enemy
military force 266), but may not be diverted from their purpose as long as they are required for the
care of wounded and sick. 267 Nevertheless, the commanders of forces in the field may make use
of them, in case of urgent military necessity, provided that they make previous arrangements for
the welfare of the wounded and sick who are being cared for in them. 268
The material and stores of mobile medical units and fixed medical establishments of the
armed forces that fall into the hands of the enemy shall not be intentionally destroyed. 269
Ground transports of wounded and sick, or of medical equipment, shall be respected and
protected in the same way as mobile medical units. 270
7.11.1 Protection of Ground Medical Transports on the Same Basis as That of Medical
Units. The protection to which these transports are entitled shall not cease unless they are used
to commit, outside their humanitarian duties, acts harmful to the enemy. 271
As with medical units, these ground transports must refrain from all interference, direct
or indirect, in military operations in order to retain protection. 272 For example, these ground
transports must not be used to transport able-bodied combatants or to carry ammunition to
combat forces. 273
265
GWS art. 33 (The material of mobile medical units of the armed forces which fall into the hands of the enemy,
shall be reserved for the care of wounded and sick.).
266
Refer to 5.17 (Seizure and Destruction of Enemy Property).
267
GWS art. 33 (The buildings, material and stores of fixed medical establishments of the armed forces shall
remain subject to the laws of war, but may not be diverted from their purpose as long as they are required for the
care of wounded and sick.).
268
GWS art. 33 (Nevertheless, the commanders of forces in the field may make use of them, in case of urgent
military necessity, provided that they make previous arrangements for the welfare of the wounded and sick who are
nursed in them.).
269
GWS art. 33 (The material and stores defined in the present Article shall not be intentionally destroyed.).
270
GWS art. 35 (Transports of wounded and sick or of medical equipment shall be respected and protected in the
same way as mobile medical units.). Refer to 7.10 (Military Medical Units and Facilities).
271
Compare 7.10.3 (Loss of Protection of Military Medical Units and Facilities From Being Made the Object of
Attack).
272
Compare 7.10.3.1 (Acts Harmful to the Enemy).
273
Compare 7.12.2.2 (No Use for Military Purposes).
451
The protection for ground transports of the wounded and sick, or of medical equipment,
may cease only after due warning has been given, naming, in all appropriate cases, a reasonable
time limit, and after such warning has remained unheeded. 274
7.11.2 Captured Medical Transport. Should these ground medical transports or vehicles
fall into the hands of the adverse party, they shall be subject to the laws of war, on condition that
the party to the conflict who captures them shall in all cases ensure the care of the wounded and
sick they contain. 275 The reference to the laws of war means that the adverse party may seize
and dispose of the property as enemy property. 276 Thus, the adverse party may use or dispose of
such transports (including by removing the distinctive emblem and using the vehicle for a hostile
purpose), provided that the capturing party ensures the care of the wounded and sick being
carried in such transports. 277
The civilian personnel and all means of transport obtained by requisition shall be subject
to the general rules of international law. 278 This rule is stated broadly to account for a variety of
situations. For example, if the civilian personnel and vehicles have been requisitioned in
occupied territory by the Occupying Power and then captured by a State that is adverse to the
Occupying Power, the persons and property would likely belong to the capturing State or a State
that is friendly to the capturing State and thus likely would not fall under the GC. 279 On the
other hand, the civilian personnel and vehicles could have been requisitioned by a belligerent
State within in its own territory and, upon capture by enemy forces, the persons and property
likely would fall under the protection of the GC. 280
274
Compare 7.10.3.2 (Due Warning Before Cessation of Protection).
275
GWS art. 35 (Should such transports or vehicles fall into the hands of the adverse Party, they shall be subject to
the laws of war, on condition that the Party to the conflict who captures them shall in all cases ensure the care of the
wounded and sick they contain.).
276
Refer to 5.17 (Seizure and Destruction of Enemy Property).
277
GWS COMMENTARY 282 (Medical vehicleslike the material of fixed medical establishmentsare to be
subject to the laws of war. The captor may thus dispose of these vehicles, and may even use them as military
transport. Naturally, in the latter case, the emblem must be at once removed.).
278
GWS art. 35 (The civilian personnel and all means of transport obtained by requisition shall be subject to the
general rules of international law.).
279
Refer to 10.3.3 (Categories of Nationals Specifically Excluded From the Definition of Protected Person Under
the GC).
280
GWS COMMENTARY 284 (The general rules of international law must needs apply to such persons and vehicles.
These rules cannot be specified as they will vary with the evolution of international law. There are two possible
cases to be considered. In the first place, the persons and vehicles may have been requisitioned in occupied territory
by the Occupying Power; on being captured, they will be released automatically. On the other hand, the persons and
vehicles may have been requisitioned by the belligerent within his own territory. On capture, the persons concerned
will have the benefit of the provisions of the Fourth Geneva Convention of 1949. The disposal of the vehicles is
governed by Articles 52 and 53 of the Hague Regulations.).
452
7.12 HOSPITAL SHIPS, SICK-BAYS IN WARSHIPS, AND COASTAL RESCUE CRAFT
7.12.1.1 Military Hospital Ships. Military hospital ships, that is to say, ships built
or equipped by the Powers specially and solely with a view to assisting the wounded, sick, and
shipwrecked, to treating them, and to transporting them, may in no circumstances be attacked or
captured, but shall at all times be respected and protected on condition that their names and
descriptions have been notified to the parties to the conflict ten days before those ships are
employed. 281
The characteristics, which must appear in the notification, shall include registered gross
tonnage, the length from stem to stern, and the number of masts and funnels. 282
Many States have employed ships that are equipped or converted into hospital ships,
rather than building them specifically as hospital ships. 283
281
GWS-SEA art. 22 (Military hospital ships, that is to say, ships built or equipped by the Powers specially and
solely with a view to assisting the wounded, sick and shipwrecked, to treating them and to transporting them, may in
no circumstances be attacked or captured, but shall at all times be respected and protected, on condition that their
names and descriptions have been notified to the Parties to the conflict ten days before those ships are employed.).
282
GWS-SEA art. 22 (The characteristics which must appear in the notification shall include registered gross
tonnage, the length from stem to stern and the number of masts and funnels.).
283
For example, Department of State, Diplomatic Note given to the Iraqi Charg daffairs in Washington, D.C., Jan.
19, 1991, reprinted as Annex II to Thomas R. Pickering, Letter Dated 21 January 1991 From the Permanent
Representative of the United States of America to the United Nations Addressed to President of the Security Council,
U.N. Doc. S/22122 (Jan. 21, 1991) (The two hospital ships are USNS Mercy (T-AH 19) and USNS Comfort (T-
AH 20). These two converted San Clemente class tankers, ex-SS Worth ex-SS Rose City, have identical
characteristics: . Both ships are equipped specially and solely to assist, treat, and transport wounded, sick, and
shipwrecked.).
284
GWS-SEA art. 24 (Hospital ships utilized by National Red Cross Societies, by officially recognized relief
societies or by private persons shall have the same protection as military hospital ships and shall be exempt from
capture, if the Party to the conflict on which they depend has given them an official commission and in so far as the
provisions of Article 22 concerning notification have been complied with.).
285
GWS-SEA art. 24 (These ships must be provided with certificates from the responsible authorities, stating that
the vessels have been under their control while fitting out and on departure.).
453
7.12.1.3 Authorized Neutral Civilian Hospital Ships. Civilian hospital ships may
also be sent from neutral countries. 286
Hospital ships utilized by National Red Cross Societies, officially recognized relief
societies, or private persons of neutral countries shall have the same protection as military
hospital ships and shall be exempt from capture, on condition that they have placed themselves
under the control of one of the parties to the conflict, with the previous consent of their own
governments and with the authorization of the party to the conflict concerned, in so far as the
provisions of Article 22 of the GWS-Sea concerning notification have been complied with. 287
7.12.1.4 Size of Hospital Ships. The protection for military hospital ships,
commissioned civilian hospital ships, and authorized neutral civilian hospital ships mentioned in
Articles 22, 24, and 25 of the GWS-Sea, respectively, shall apply to hospital ships of any
tonnage and to their lifeboats, wherever they are operating. 288 Nevertheless, to ensure the
maximum comfort and security, the parties to the conflict shall endeavor to use, for the transport
of the wounded, sick, and shipwrecked over long distances and on the high seas, only hospital
ships of more than 2,000 tons gross. 289 For example, U.S. military hospital ships have adhered
to this recommendation by a large margin. 290
7.12.1.5 Coastal Rescue Craft and Fixed Coastal Installations Used Exclusively
by Them. Under the same conditions as those provided for in Articles 22 and 24 of the GWS-
Sea, small craft employed by the State, or by the officially recognized lifeboat institutions for
coastal rescue operations, shall also be respected and protected, so far as operational
286
For example, LIEUTENANT GENERAL STANLEY ROBERT LARSEN AND BRIGADIER GENERAL JAMES LAWTON
COLLINS, JR., ALLIED PARTICIPATION IN VIETNAM 163-64 (1985) (German economic and humanitarian aid,
beginning in 1966, averaged about $7.5 million annually and more than 200 technical and medical personnel served
in Vietnam. In 1966 the Federal Republic of Germany also contributed the 3,000-ton hospital ship S.S. Helgoland
to provide medical assistance to the civilian population. With eight doctors, thirty other medical personnel, and a
130-bed capacity, the ship was initially stationed near Saigon where more than 21,000 out-patient treatments were
given to approximately 6,700 patients from September 1966 until 30 June 1967. Over 850 major surgical cases
were also treated. In October of 1967 the Helgoland shifted its operations to Da Nang.).
287
GWS-SEA art. 25 (Hospital ships utilized by National Red Cross Societies, officially recognized relief societies,
or private persons of neutral countries shall have the same protection as military hospital ships and shall be exempt
from capture, on condition that they have placed themselves under the control of one of the Parties to the conflict,
with the previous consent of their own governments and with the authorization of the Party to the conflict
concerned, in so far as the provisions of Article 22 concerning notification have been complied with.).
288
GWS-SEA art. 26 (The protection mentioned in Articles 22, 24 and 25 shall apply to hospital ships of any
tonnage and to their lifeboats, wherever they are operating.).
289
GWS-SEA art. 26 (Nevertheless, to ensure the maximum comfort and security, the Parties to the conflict shall
endeavor to utilize, for the transport of wounded, sick and shipwrecked over long distances and on the high seas,
only hospital ships of over 2,000 tons gross.).
290
For example, Department of State, Diplomatic Note given to the Iraqi Charg daffairs in Washington, D.C., Jan.
19, 1991, reprinted as Annex II to Thomas R. Pickering, Letter Dated 21 January 1991 From the Permanent
Representative of the United States of America to the United Nations Addressed to President of the Security Council,
U.N. Doc. S/22122 (Jan. 21, 1991) (The two hospital ships are USNS Mercy (T-AH 19) and USNS Comfort (T-
AH 20). These two converted San Clemente class tankers, ex-SS Worth ex-SS Rose City, have identical
characteristics: tonnage 54,367, gross, 35,958 net; dimensions feet (meters) 894 length, 105.6 width 32.8 draft, i.e.
depth, (272.6 x 32.2 x 10 meters); one mast forward, one funnel aft.).
454
requirements permit. 291 The same shall apply so far as possible to fixed coastal installations used
exclusively by these craft for their humanitarian missions. 292
The phrase, so far as operational requirements permit, has been used to acknowledge
the risks incurred by such craft, because of their small size, in a zone of military operations. 293
As provided in Articles 22 and 24 of the GWS-Sea, the names and descriptions of these
small craft (including registered gross tonnage, the length from stem to stern, and the number of
masts and funnels) must be notified to the parties to the conflict ten days before such craft are
employed. 294 In addition, if the craft are not military craft belonging to a party to the conflict,
they must be provided an official commission from the party to the conflict on which they
depend and with certificates from the responsible authorities. 295
7.12.2 Duties and Liabilities of Hospital Ships and Coastal Rescue Craft. The following
duties and liabilities apply to hospital ships and coastal rescue craft.
291
GWS-SEA art. 27 (Under the same conditions as those provided for in Articles 22 and 24, small craft employed
by the State or by the officially recognized lifeboat institutions for coastal rescue operations, shall also be respected
and protected, so far as operational requirements permit.).
292
GWS-SEA art. 27 (The same shall apply so far as possible to fixed coastal installations used exclusively by these
craft for their humanitarian missions.).
293
See GWS-SEA COMMENTARY 172 (Coastal rescue craft must be respected and protected in the same way as
hospital ships, wherever they are operating. Article 30 refers to their use, and the commentary on that provision
should be consulted. The protection is not absolute, however; it is afforded so far as operational requirements
permit. This wording was used in order to take account of the risks incurred by such craft, because of their small
size, in a zone of military operations. The limitation also has regard to past events and to the requirements of
military security. Thus, although lifeboats may in practice be exposed to certain risks, a belligerent which has
recognized them will never be allowed to make a deliberate attack on them, unless they have committed a grave
breach of neutrality.). See also II-A FINAL RECORD OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 202 (It
was, however, understood that the protection promised to these low tonnage craft as well as to coastal installations
could not be absolute. Such protection can only be afforded within the measure of operational necessities. A
belligerent face to face with an oponent [sic] in a restricted maritime area would find it difficult to tolerate the traffic
of a large number of very fast, small craft belonging to the adverse party.).
294
Refer to 7.12.1.1 (Military Hospital Ships).
295
Refer to 7.12.1.2 (Commissioned Civilian Hospital Ships).
296
GWS-SEA art. 30 (The vessels described in Articles 22, 24, 25 and 27 shall afford relief and assistance to the
wounded, sick and shipwrecked without distinction of nationality.).
297
For example, Vice Admiral Timothy Keating, News Briefing with Vice Admiral Timothy Keating, Apr. 12, 2003
(The United States Naval Ship Comfort, our hospital ship, is providing care not only to our wounded but to Iraqi
civilians and Iraqi military. This morning, there are over 80 Iraqi enemy prisoners of war who are in a significantly
serious medical condition that they have been airlifted out to the United States ship Comfort, which is on station in
455
7.12.2.2 No Use for Military Purposes. Parties to the GWS-Sea undertake not to
use these vessels for any military purpose. 298 These vessels must not participate in any way in
the armed conflict or the war effort. 299 For example, these vessels may not be used to relay
military orders, transport able-bodied combatants or military equipment, or engage in
reconnaissance. 300 Such acts constitute acts harmful to the enemy that forfeit a vessels
protection from being made the object of attack and capture. 301
the north Arabian Gulf. Eighty Iraqi military personnel and 40 Iraqi civilians, displaced civilians, all of them in
significant -- who have suffered injuries significantly enough that they are out on the Comfort.).
298
GWS-SEA art. 30 (The High Contracting Parties undertake not to use these vessels for any military purpose.).
299
GWS-SEA COMMENTARY 179 (Paragraph 2 [of Article 30 of the GWS-Sea] is self-explanatory. In return for
the immunity which they enjoy, hospital ships must refrain from participating in any way in the armed conflict or
war effort. This refers to acts even more serious than the acts harmful to the enemy referred to in Articles 34 and
35. What sanction is applied if a hospital ship commits a flagrant violation of its neutral status? It simply loses its
right to protection.).
300
For example, The Orel, reported in C. J. B. HURST AND F. E. BRAY, II RUSSIAN AND JAPANESE PRIZE CASES,
VII INTERNATIONAL MILITARY LAW & HISTORY 354, 356-57 (1910) (A hospital ship is only exempt from capture
if she fulfils certain conditions and is engaged solely in the humane work of aiding the sick and wounded. That she
is liable to capture, should she be used by the enemy for military purposes, is admitted by International Law, and is
clearly laid down by the stipulations of the Hague Convention No. 3 of July 29th, 1899, for the adaptation to
maritime warfare of the principles of the Geneva Convention of August 22nd, 1864. Although the Orel had been
lawfully equipped and due notification concerning her had been given by the Russian Government to the Japanese
Government, yet her action in communicating the orders of the Commander-in-Chief of the Russian Pacific Second
Squadron to other vessels during her eastward voyage with the squadron, and her attempt to carry persons in good
health, i.e. the master and three others of British steamship captured by the Russian fleet, to Vladivostock, which is a
naval port in enemy territory, were evidently acts in aid of the military operations of the enemy. Further, when the
facts that she was instructed by the Russian squadron to purchase munitions of war, and that she occupied the
position usually assigned to a ship engaged in reconnaissance, are taken in consideration, it is reasonable to assume
that she was constantly employed for military purposes on behalf of the Russian squadron. She is, therefore, not
entitled to the exemptions laid down in The Hague Convention for the adaptation to maritime warfare of the
principles of the Geneva Convention, and may be condemned according to International Law.); John D. Long,
Secretary of the Navy, General Orders No. 487, Apr. 27, 1898, reprinted in PAPERS RELATING TO THE FOREIGN
RELATIONS OF THE UNITED STATES WITH THE ANNUAL MESSAGE OF THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTED TO CONGRESS
DECEMBER 5, 1898 1153 (1901) (The Solace having been fitted and equipped by the Department as an ambulance
ship for the naval service under the terms of the Geneva Convention [of 1868] is about to be assigned to service.
The neutrality of the vessel will, under no circumstances, be changed, nor will any changes be made in her
equipment without the authority of the Secretary of the Navy. No guns, ammunition, or articles contraband of war,
except coal or stores necessary for the movement of the vessel, shall be placed on board; nor shall the vessel be used
as a transport for the carrying of dispatches, or officers or men not sick or disabled, other than those belonging to the
medical department.).
301
Refer to 7.12.6 (Forfeiture of Protection of Hospital Ships and Sick Bays).
302
GWS-SEA art. 30 (Such vessels shall in no wise hamper the movements of the combatants.).
456
inadvertent actions might also put those vessels at increased of harm (e.g., if enemy forces
mistakenly believe that the vessel is acting deliberately to impede their movements). 303
For example, hospital ships and coastal rescue craft belonging to one State must not
interfere with opposing forces efforts to capture shipwrecked personnel, nor otherwise interfere
with enemy military operations. 304 Therefore, hospital ships and coastal rescue craft should not
engage in such activities lest they forfeit the special protection afforded by the GWS-Sea.
Special agreements between the opposing forces, however, may provide protection to ships
engaged in search, rescue, or other recovery missions.
7.12.2.6 Control and Search of Hospital Ships and Coastal Rescue Craft. The
parties to the conflict shall have the right to control and search military hospital ships,
commissioned civilian hospital ships, authorized neutral civilian hospital ships, and costal rescue
craft mentioned in Articles 22, 24, 25, and 27 of the GWS-Sea, respectively. 307 They may refuse
303
GWS-SEA COMMENTARY 179-80 (During an engagement, hospital ships must not hamper the movements of
other vessels, and the authors might have added that they must not get in the line of fire. Any deliberate breach of
the present provision would constitute an act harmful to the enemy, in the sense of Article 34, and the hospital ship
committing it would then lose its right to protection under the Convention, according to the procedure laid down in
that clause. If, on the other hand, it had not acted with intent, the case would then be very close to that dealt with in
the following paragraph, which should be referred to. The hospital ship would not lose its right to protection, but it
would in fact be deprived of security.). Refer to 7.12.2.5 (Acceptance of the Risk From Proximity to Combat
Operations).
304
SPAIGHT, AIR POWER AND WAR RIGHTS 361-62 (German Red Cross rescue vessels.In August a further
attempt was made by the German Government to apply to the Red Cross to a purpose never contemplated in the
Convention of 1929. It notified His Majestys Government, through the Swiss Government, that it proposed to
make use of a number of vesselssixty-four in allmarked with the Red Cross to rescue airmen who came down in
the sea. His Majestys Government replied that the use of such vessels would interfere with the conduct of naval and
military operations and could not be accepted. It then went on to refer to Germanys attacks on British hospital
ships and to the sinking of the Maid of Kent, Brighton and Paris. His Majestys Government do not place their own
boats employed in rescuing airmen under the Red Cross, even though they have on several occasions been
deliberately attacked by the Germans while actually engaged in saving both British and German airmen, and they
regard the claim of the German Government to invest rescue boats with the privileges of the Red Cross as wholly
inadmissible. It may be added that such privileges were never claimed for the Walrus amphibians or the other
R.A.F. machines employed in the Air/Sea Rescue Service.).
305
GWS-SEA art. 33 (Merchant vessels which have been transformed into hospital ships cannot be put to any other
use throughout the duration of hostilities.).
306
GWS-SEA art. 30 (During and after an engagement, they will act at their own risk.).
307
GWS-SEA art. 31 (The Parties to the conflict shall have the right to control and search the vessels mentioned in
Articles 22, 24, 25 and 27.).
457
assistance from these vessels, order them off, make them take a certain course, control the use of
their wireless and other means of communication, and even detain them for a period not
exceeding seven days from the time of interception, if the gravity of the circumstances so
requires. 308 For example, a belligerent may delay the passage of a hospital ship belonging to its
adversary in order to avoid interference with its military operations. 309
Parties to a conflict may put a commissioner temporarily on board such vessels whose
sole task shall be to see that these orders are carried out. 310
As far as possible, the parties to the conflict shall enter in the log of the hospital ship, in a
language he or she can understand, the orders they have given the captain of the vessel. 311
Parties to the conflict may, either unilaterally or by particular agreements, put on board
their ships neutral observers who shall verify the strict observation of the provisions contained in
the GWS-Sea. 312
7.12.2.7 Use of Secret Codes for Communication. The GWS-Sea provides that
hospital ships may not possess or use a secret code for their wireless or other means of
communication. 313 The lack of secret codes for communication was intended to afford
belligerents a guarantee that hospital ships were not improperly participating in hostilities. 314
This rule was formulated before developments in modern communications technology made
308
GWS-SEA art. 31 (They can refuse assistance from these vessels, order them off, make them take a certain
course, control the use of their wireless and other means of communication, and even detain them for a period not
exceeding seven days from the time of interception, if the gravity of the circumstances so requires.).
309
For example, J.C. Massop, Hospital Ships in the Second World War, 24 BRITISH YEAR BOOK OF INTERNATIONAL
LAW, 398, 405-06 (1947) (The limitation imposed on the immunity of a hospital ship has by Article 12 is flanked
by the right conferred on a belligerent by Article 4 to control the movements of a hospital ship on grounds of
operational necessity. Such a situation arose at least twice during the 1939 war, when the German High Command
wished to pass a hospital ship through the Allied patrol lines to a besieged part. As noted above, no obstacle was
placed in the way of the voyages to Salonica, but when the Germans sought permission to send a hospital ship to
Brestthen invested by Allied forcesit was apparent that it could not pass into the port without serious
inconvenience to the attacking forces, and it was decided to refuse the request until the tactical situation had
clarified.).
310
GWS-SEA art. 31 (They may put a commissioner temporarily on board whose sole task shall be to see that
orders given in virtue of the provisions of the preceding paragraph are carried out.).
311
GWS-SEA art. 31 (As far as possible, the Parties to the conflict shall enter in the log of the hospital ship, in a
language he can understand, the orders they have given the captain of the vessel.).
312
GWS-SEA art. 31 (Parties to the conflict may, either unilaterally or by particular agreements, put on board their
ships neutral observers who shall verify the strict observation of the provisions contained in the present
Convention.).
313
GWS-SEA art. 34 (In particular, hospital ships may not possess or use a secret code for their wireless or other
means of communication.).
314
GWS-SEA COMMENTARY 193 (The fact that the use of any secret code is prohibited affords a guarantee to the
belligerents that hospital ships will not make improper use of their transmitting apparatus or any other means of
communication. Hospital ships may only communicate in clear, or at least in a code which is universally known,
and rightly so, for the spirit of the Geneva Conventions requires that there should be nothing secret in their
behaviour vis--vis the enemy.).
458
encryption more common. 315 Substantial practical difficulties have arisen in construing this rule
in a way that would prohibit any use of encrypted communications by hospital ships. 316
315
Richard J. Grunawalt, Hospital Ships in the War on Terror: Sanctuaries or Targets?, 58 NAVAL WAR COLLEGE
REVIEW 108-09 (Winter 2005) (The genesis of these constraints [on hospital ships and secret codes] involves a few
isolated incidents many years ago when hospital ships were alleged to have used coded wireless communications
capability to transmit operational intelligence, a military purpose use inconsistent with their protected status and in
violation of the 1899 Hague (III) Convention and the 1907 Hague (X) Convention. Obviously, the conventional
and customary rules mandating that hospital ships not be used for any military purpose other than the care and
transport of the wounded, sick, and shipwrecked must remain inviolable. However, the likelihood that a hospital
ship would be employed to collect and promulgate military intelligence in this age of satellite sensors, over-the-
horizon radar, and fixed and mobile long-range hydrophones is extremely remote; it strains the imagination to
conjure up a scenario where it would have any utility whatsoever.).
316
For example, 2004 UK MANUAL 13.125 footnote 142 (GC II, Art 34(2), states that hospital ships may not
possess or use a secret code for their wireless or other means of communication. This general wording has caused
difficulties. British forces in the Falklands conflict 1982 found that having to give orders to their hospital ships in
the clear risked giving away their own positions or likely movements. The rule stated in paragraph 13.128 is a
legitimate interpretation of Art 34(2).).
317
For example, Michael Sirak, US Navy seeks to revise laws of war on hospital ships, Janes Defense Weekly 1-3
(Aug. 19, 2003) (The USN installed both encrypted communications devices on the USNS Comfort (T-AH 20),
one of its two dedicated hospital ships, before it deployed in January to the Middle East theatre to support the US-
led Operation Iraqi Freedom, a US Department of Defense spokesman told Janes Defence Weekly. USN officials
argue that the rules preventing hospital ships from using encrypted communications devices - contained principally
in the Second Geneva Convention of 1949 - do not adequately account for technological advancements, such as
satellite communications, which are today regarded as vital for these vessels to function effectively. The way most
naval warships communicate now is done on a level that even the most simple communications have some level of
encryption, said one navy official. Even the actual navigation of the ship can sometimes be in jeopardy if you
cannot use these encrypted forms of communication. According to this official, the US position is that the
international community could allow the capability for encrypted communications, while maintaining confidence
among belligerents that a party is not exploiting it to gather and transmit intelligence on the enemy. A belligerent
retains the right under international law to place an observer on the ship, or request a neutral observer, such as from
the International Committee of the Red Cross (ICRC), to verify compliance, the official notes.).
318
See Wolff Heintschel Von Heinegg, The Law of Armed Conflict at Sea, in DIETER FLECK, THE HANDBOOK OF
INTERNATIONAL HUMANITARIAN LAW 463, 543 (1058) (3rd ed., 2013) (Moreover, Article 34, para. 2, GC II can
be considered to have become obsolete by the subsequent practice of the states parties. Today, hospital ships, like
all warships and the majority of merchant vessels, communicate via satellite. The use of satellite communications
implies encryption for both sending and receiving messages. The only two remaining hospital shipsthe USS
Comfort and the USS Mercydo not dispose of traditional radio equipments [sic] but communicate over satellite
communications only. This fact is known to the states parties to GC II. Still, there have been no protests so far.
Hence, there are good reasons to believe that the other states parties have acquiesced in the US practice. Again, it
should not be left of out of consideration that abandoning the prohibition of using encryption for emissions would
better serve the humanitarian purposes hospital ships are to serve.).
319
2006 AUSTRALIAN MANUAL 6.72 (In order to fulfil their humanitarian mission, hospital ships should be
permitted to use cryptographic equipment provided such equipment is not used to transmit intelligence data nor in
459
Hospital ships may not use encrypted communications for military purposes (e.g.,
transmitting intelligence data) or in any way that is harmful to an adversary. 321 Commissioners
or neutral observers may be placed on board hospital ships to verify compliance with this rule. 322
7.12.3 Distinctive Marking and Other Identification of Hospital Ships and Coastal Rescue
Craft. The ships designated for protection by Articles 22, 24, 25, and 27 of the GWS-Sea (i.e.,
military hospital ships, commissioned civilian hospital ships, authorized neutral civilian hospital
ships, and coastal rescue craft, respectively) shall be distinctively marked as follows:
one or more dark red crosses, as large as possible, shall be painted and displayed on each
side of the hull and on the horizontal surfaces, so placed as to afford the greatest possible
visibility from the sea and from the air. 323
7.12.3.1 Rules for Flying the National Flag, the Flag of the Party to the Conflict,
and the Distinctive Emblem Flag. All hospital ships must make themselves known by hoisting
their national flag and, further, if they belong to a neutral State, the flag of the party to the
conflict whose direction they have accepted. 324 A white flag with a red cross shall be flown at
the mainmast as high as possible. 325
any other way to acquire military advantage.); 2004 UK MANUAL 13.125 (In order to fulfil most effectively their
humanitarian mission, hospital ships should be permitted to use cryptographic equipment. The equipment shall not
be used in any circumstances to transmit intelligence data nor in any other way to acquire any military advantage.);
320
See, e.g., Jane G. Dalton, Future Navies Present Issues, 59 NAVAL WAR COLLEGE REVIEW 17, 26 (Winter
2006) (There is no need to belabor here the point that the prohibition on use of a secret code by hospital ships is
anachronistic, unrealistic, and unworkable in todays high-technology environment, where satellite communications
are both routinely encrypted and routinely employed by military systems.); Louise Doswald-Beck, Vessels, Aircraft
and Persons Entitled to Protection During Armed Conflicts at Sea, 65 BRITISH YEARBOOK OF INTERNATIONAL LAW
211, 219 (1994) (The participants working on the San Remo Manual were of the opinion that hospital ships should
be allowed to use cryptographic equipment, with a specification that it must not be used for transmitting intelligence
or put to any other use incompatible with the humanitarian mission of the hospital ship. This could be verified by a
qualified neutral observer on board as foreseen in Article 31(4) of GC2.).
321
Refer to 7.12.2.2 (No Use for Military Purposes); 7.10.3.1 (Acts Harmful to the Enemy).
322
Refer to 7.12.2.6 (Control and Search of Hospital Ships and Coastal Rescue Craft).
323
GWS-SEA art. 43 (The ships designated in Articles 22, 24, 25 and 27 shall be distinctively marked as follows:
(a) All exterior surfaces shall be white. (b) One or more dark red crosses, as large as possible, shall be painted and
displayed on each side of the hull and on the horizontal surfaces, so placed as to afford the greatest possible
visibility from the sea and from the air.).
324
GWS-SEA art. 43 (All hospital ships shall make themselves known by hoisting their national flag and further, if
they belong to a neutral state, the flag of the Party to the conflict whose direction they have accepted.).
325
GWS-SEA art. 43 (A white flag with a red cross shall be flown at the mainmast as high as possible.).
460
Hospital ships that, in accordance with Article 31 of the GWS-Sea, are provisionally
detained by the enemy, must haul down the flag of the party to the conflict in whose service they
are or whose direction they have accepted. 326
Coastal lifeboats, if they continue to operate with the consent of the Occupying Power
from a base that is occupied, may be allowed, when away from their base, to continue to fly their
own national colors along with a flag carrying a red cross on a white ground, subject to prior
notification to all the parties to the conflict concerned. 327
7.12.3.2 Lifeboats and All Small Craft Used by the Medical Service. Lifeboats of
hospital ships, coastal lifeboats, and all small craft used by the Medical Service shall be painted
white with dark red crosses prominently displayed and shall, in general, comply with the
identification system prescribed above for hospital ships. 328
7.12.3.4 Other Emblems Instead of the Red Cross. All the provisions in Article
43 of the GWS-Sea relating to the red cross apply equally to the other emblems mentioned in
Article 41 of the GWS-Sea. 330
The distinctive emblem of the red crystal also may be used for the same purposes as the
red cross. 331
326
GWS-SEA art. 43 (Hospital ships which, in accordance with Article 31, are provisionally detained by the enemy,
must haul down the flag of the Party to the conflict in whose service they are or whose direction they have
accepted.).
327
GWS-SEA art. 43 (Coastal lifeboats, if they continue to operate with the consent of the Occupying Power from a
base which is occupied, may be allowed, when away from their base, to continue to fly their own national colours
along with a flag carrying a red cross on a white ground, subject to prior notification to all the Parties to the conflict
concerned.).
328
GWS-SEA art. 43 (Lifeboats of hospital ships, coastal lifeboats and all small craft used by the Medical Service
shall be painted white with dark red crosses prominently displayed and shall, in general, comply with the
identification system prescribed above for hospital ships.).
329
GWS-SEA art. 43 (The above-mentioned ships and craft, which may wish to ensure by night and in times of
reduced visibility the protection to which they are entitled, must, subject to the assent of the Party to the conflict
under whose power they are, take the necessary measures to render their painting and distinctive emblems
sufficiently apparent.).
330
GWS-SEA art. 43 (All the provisions in this Article relating to the red cross shall apply equally to the other
emblems mentioned in Article 41.).
331
Refer to 7.15.1.3 (Red Crystal).
461
7.12.3.5 Agreements to Facilitate the Identification of Hospital Ships. Parties to
the conflict shall at all times endeavor to conclude mutual agreements in order to use the most
modern methods available to facilitate the identification of hospital ships. 332
7.12.4 Rights and Privileges of Hospital Ships and Coastal Rescue Craft. Military
hospital ships, commissioned civilian hospital ships, and authorized neutral civilian hospital
ships that meet the applicable requirements shall be respected and protected and are exempt from
capture. Coastal rescue craft shall also be respected and protected so far as operational
requirements permit.
7.12.4.1 Protection From Attacks From Land. Hospital ships entitled to the
protection of the GWS-Sea shall not be attacked from land. 333
7.12.4.2 Authority to Leave Ports Held by the Enemy. Any hospital ship in a port
that falls into the hands of the enemy shall be authorized to leave that port. 334
7.12.4.3 Relief From Taxation in Time of War. In time of war, military hospital
ships, commissioned civilian hospital ships, and authorized neutral civilian hospital ships are
exempt from all dues and taxes imposed for the benefit of the State in the ports of the Parties to a
particular 1904 Hague treaty. Article 1 of this 1904 Hague treaty provides that certain categories
of hospital ships listed in an 1899 Hague treaty receive this benefit. 335 These categories of
hospital ships listed in the 1899 Hague treaty are the same categories of hospital ships that are
used in the GWS-Sea. 336 Some States may be Parties to the GWS-Sea but not to the 1904 Hague
treaty that creates this exemption.
332
GWS-SEA art. 43 (Parties to the conflict shall at all times endeavour to conclude mutual agreements in order to
use the most modern methods available to facilitate the identification of hospital ships.).
333
GWS art. 20 (Hospital ships entitled to the protection of the Geneva Convention for the Amelioration of the
Condition of Wounded, Sick and Shipwrecked Members of Armed Forces at Sea of August 12, 1949, shall not be
attacked from the land.).
334
GWS-SEA art. 29 (Any hospital ship in a port which falls into the hands of the enemy shall be authorized to
leave the said port.).
335
Convention Regarding Hospital Ships, art. 1, Dec. 21, 1904, 35 STAT. 1854, 1857 (Hospital ships, concerning
which the conditions set forth in Articles 1, 2 & 3 of the Convention concluded at The Hague on July 29, 1899, for
the adaptation to Maritime Warfare of the principles of the Geneva Convention of August 22, 1864, are fulfilled
shall be exempted, in time of war, from all dues and taxes imposed on vessels for the benefit of the State, in the
ports of the Contracting Parties.).
336
See Convention for the Adaptation to Maritime Warfare of the Principles of the Geneva Convention of August
22, 1864, arts. 1-3, Jul. 29, 1899, 32 STAT. 1827, 1831-32 (Article 1 Military hospital ships, that is to say, ships
constructed or assigned by States specially and solely for the purpose of assisting the wounded, sick or shipwrecked,
and the names of which shall have been communicated to the belligerent Powers at the beginning or during the
course of hostilities, and in any case before they are employed, shall be respected and cannot be captured while
hostilities last. Article 2 Hospital ships, equipped wholly or in part at the cost of private individuals or officially
recognized relief Societies, shall likewise be respected and exempt from capture, provided the belligerent Power to
whom they belong has given them an official commission and has notified their names to the hostile Power at the
commencement of or during hostilities, and in any case before they are employed. Article 3 Hospital-ships,
462
7.12.4.4 Stay in Neutral Ports. Vessels described in Articles 22, 24, 25, and 27 of
the GWS-Sea (i.e., military hospital ships, commissioned civilian hospital ships, authorized
neutral civilian hospital ships, and coastal rescue craft, respectively), are not classed as warships
as regards their stay in a neutral port. 337 Thus, these vessels are not subject to the restrictions
that belligerent warships staying in a neutral port are subject to by neutral Powers. 338
7.12.5.1 Use of Seized Sick-Bays and Their Equipment. Sick-bays and their
equipment shall remain subject to the laws of warfare, but may not be diverted from their
purpose so long as they are required for the wounded and sick. 340 Nevertheless, the commander
into whose power they have fallen may, after ensuring the proper care of the wounded and sick
who are accommodated therein, apply them to other purposes in case of urgent military
necessity. 341
7.12.6 Forfeiture of Protection of Hospital Ships and Sick Bays. The protection to which
hospital ships and sick-bays are entitled shall not cease unless the vessels are used to commit,
outside their humanitarian duties, acts harmful to the enemy. 342 In particular, hospital ships and
coastal rescue craft may not be used for military purposes nor to hamper the movements of
combatants. 343
equipped wholly or in part at the cost of private individuals or officially recognized Societies of neutral countries,
shall be respected and exempt from capture, if the neutral Power to whom they belong has given them an official
commission and notified their names to the belligerent powers at the commencement of or during hostilities, and in
any case before they are employed.).
337
GWS-SEA art. 32 (Vessels described in Articles 22, 24, 25 and 27 are not classed as warships as regards their
stay in a neutral port.).
338
Refer to 15.9 (Additional Rules Applicable to Neutral Ports, Roadsteads, and Internal Waters).
339
GWS-SEA art. 28 (Should fighting occur on board a warship, the sick-bays shall be respected and spared as far
as possible.).
340
GWS-SEA art. 28 (Sick-bays and their equipment shall remain subject to the laws of warfare, but may not be
diverted from their purpose so long as they are required for the wounded and sick.).
341
GWS-SEA art. 28 (Nevertheless, the commander into whose power they have fallen may, after ensuring the
proper care of the wounded and sick who are accommodated therein, apply them to other purposes in case of urgent
military necessity.).
342
GWS-SEA art. 34 (The protection to which hospital ships and sick-bays are entitled shall not cease unless they
are used to commit, outside their humanitarian duties, acts harmful to the enemy.).
343
Refer to 7.12.2.2 (No Use for Military Purposes); 7.12.2.3 (No Hampering the Movement of Combatants).
344
GWS-SEA art. 34 (Protection may, however, cease only after due warning has been given, naming in all
appropriate cases a reasonable time limit, and after such warning has remained unheeded.).
463
The obligation to refrain from use of force against a medical vessel or sick-bay acting in
violation of its mission and protected status without due warning does not prohibit the exercise
of the right of self-defense. There may be cases in which, in the exercise of the right of self-
defense, a warning is not due or a reasonable time limit is not appropriate. For example, forces
receiving heavy fire may exercise their right of self-defense and return fire. Such use of force in
self-defense must also be proportionate. 345
7.12.6.2 Conditions That Do Not Deprive Hospital Ships and Sick-Bays of Vessels
of Their Protection. The following conditions shall not be considered as depriving hospital ships
or sick-bays of vessels of the protection due to them:
the fact that the crews of ships or sick-bays are armed for the maintenance of order, for
their own defense, or for the defense of the sick and wounded;
the discovery on board hospital ships or in sick-bays of portable arms and ammunition
taken from the wounded, sick, and shipwrecked, and not yet handed over to the proper
service;
the fact that the humanitarian activities of hospital ships and sick-bays of vessels or of the
crews extend to the care of wounded, sick, or shipwrecked civilians; and
the transport of equipment and of personnel intended exclusively for medical duties, over
and above the normal requirements. 346
7.12.6.3 Arming of Hospital Ships and Equipping Them With Defensive Devices.
The GWS-Sea contemplates that the crews of hospital ships may be armed and does not
specifically restrict the weapons that they may have.
The crews of hospital ships may be armed to the extent necessary to enable them to
defend themselves or their patients against unlawful attacks. Such arming is viewed as
consistent with the ships humanitarian purpose and the crews duty to safeguard the wounded
and sick. For example, crews of hospital ships may be equipped with weapons to meet internal
security needs, to maintain discipline, to protect staff and patients from criminal threats of
violence, and to prevent the theft of medical supplies. The type of weapon that is necessary for
defensive or other legitimate purposes may depend on the nature of the threats against the
345
Compare 7.10.3.2 (Due Warning Before Cessation of Protection).
346
GWS-SEA art. 35 (The following conditions shall not be considered as depriving hospital ships or sick-bays of
vessels of the protection due to them: (1) The fact that the crews of ships or sick-bays are armed for the
maintenance of order, for their own defence or that of the sick and wounded. (2) The presence on board of
apparatus exclusively intended to facilitate navigation or communication. (3) The discovery on board hospital ships
or in sick-bays of portable arms and ammunition taken from the wounded, sick and shipwrecked and not yet handed
to the proper service. (4) The fact that the humanitarian activities of hospital ships and sick-bays of vessels or of the
crews extend to the care of wounded, sick or shipwrecked civilians. (5) The transport of equipment and of personnel
intended exclusively for medical duties, over and above the normal requirements.).
464
hospital ship. 347 For example, hospital ships may be armed with defensive weapon systems,
including when necessary certain crew-served weapons, as a prudent anti-terrorism/force
protection (AT/FP) measure to defend against small boat attacks. 348 On the other hand, crews of
hospital ships should not be armed such that they would appear to an enemy military force to
present an offensive threat.
Equipping hospital ships with other defensive devices such as chaff for protection
against over-the-horizon weapons or similar threats is not prohibited. 349 However, such
devices, like weapons, must not be used to commit acts harmful to enemy military forces acting
in conformity with the law of war. 350
Ships chartered for medical transport purposes shall be authorized to transport equipment
exclusively intended for the treatment of wounded and sick members of armed forces or for the
prevention of disease, provided that the particulars regarding their voyage have been notified to
the adverse Power and approved by the latter. 351 The adverse Power shall preserve the right to
board the carrier ships, but not to capture them or seize the equipment carried. 352
347
For example, Michael Sirak, US Navy seeks to revise laws of war on hospital ships, Janes Defense Weekly 1-3
(Aug. 19, 2003) (The USN installed both encrypted communications devices and 50-cal machine guns on the
USNS Comfort (T-AH 20), one of its two dedicated hospital ships, before it deployed in January to the Middle East
theatre to support the US-led Operation Iraqi Freedom, a US Department of Defense spokesman told Janes
Defence Weekly. Furthermore, USN officials say the small arms currently allowed on hospital ships, such as
sidearms and rifles, are not enough to thwart an attack by a non-state actor like a terrorist group. They say the
limited protection afforded to these vessels under international law would be unlikely to deter terrorists and, unlike
lawful belligerents, terrorists would consider them an attractive soft target. Therefore, they argue that it is
necessary to place crew-served weapons like 30-cal and 50-cal machine guns on them, exclusively for defence, to
fend off attacks by swarming, heavily armed speed boats or suicide craft.).
348
Jane G. Dalton, Future Navies Present Issues, 59 NAVAL WAR COLLEGE REVIEW 17, 27 (Winter 2006) (noting
that a problem facing hospital ships is the need to arm them for force protection against USS Cole-type attacks and
that chaff and flares [would be] ineffective against a determined suicide attack like that launched against Cole,).
349
See 2004 UK MANUAL 13.124 (Hospital ships may be equipped with purely deflective means of defence, such
as chaff and flares.).
350
Refer to 7.12.6 (Forfeiture of Protection of Hospital Ships and Sick Bays).
351
GWS-SEA art. 38 (Ships chartered for that purpose shall be authorized to transport equipment exclusively
intended for the treatment of wounded and sick members of armed forces or for the prevention of disease, provided
that the particulars regarding their voyage have been notified to the adverse Power and approved by the latter.).
352
GWS-SEA art. 38 (The adverse Power shall preserve the right to board the carrier ships, but not to capture them
or seize the equipment carried.).
465
to verify the equipment carried. 353 For this purpose, free access to the equipment shall be
given. 354
Medical aircraft that is to say, aircraft exclusively employed for the removal of the
wounded, sick, and shipwrecked, and for the transport of medical personnel and equipment
shall not be attacked, but shall be respected by the belligerents, while flying at heights and times,
and on routes, specifically agreed upon by the belligerents concerned. 355
7.14.1 Medical Aircraft Not Flying at Heights and Times and on Routes Specifically
Agreed Upon by Belligerents Concerned. The use of protected medical aircraft generally
depends on an agreement between the belligerents. 356
However, known medical aircraft, when performing their humanitarian functions, must
be respected and protected. 357 Such aircraft does not constitute a military objective that is liable
to being made the object of attack. 358 Thus, even if not flying pursuant to an agreement, such
aircraft shall not be deliberately attacked or fired upon, if identified as protected medical aircraft.
For example, if there is no agreement and a military force happens upon a medical aircraft
belonging to an enemy State, the aircraft must not be made the object of attack until all other
353
GWS-SEA art. 38 (By agreement amongst the Parties to the conflict, neutral observers may be placed on board
such ships to verify the equipment carried.).
354
GWS-SEA art. 38 (For this purpose, free access to the equipment shall be given.).
355
GWS art. 36 (Medical aircraft, that is to say, aircraft exclusively employed for the removal of wounded and sick
and for the transport of medical personnel and equipment, shall not be attacked, but shall be respected by the
belligerents, while flying at heights, times and on routes specifically agreed upon between the belligerents
concerned.); GWS-SEA art. 39 (Medical aircraft, that is to say, aircraft exclusively employed for the removal of
the wounded, sick and shipwrecked, and for the transport of medical personnel and equipment, may not be the object
of attack, but shall be respected by the Parties to the conflict, while flying at heights, at times and on routes
specifically agreed upon between the Parties to the conflict concerned.).
356
GWS-SEA COMMENTARY 216-17 (The solution adopted makes any future use of protected medical aircraft
dependent on the conclusion of an agreement between the belligerents. As it will be a matter of fixing routes and
times of flights, such agreements will no doubt usually be made for each specific case and by a simple exchange of
communications between the military commands. But there might also be an agreement of longer duration. If there
is no agreement, belligerents will be able to use medical aircraft only at their own risk. It is, however, to be hoped
that in such cases the enemy will not resort to extreme measures until he has exhausted all other means of control at
his disposal.).
357
Michael J. Matheson, Deputy Legal Adviser, Department of State, Remarks on the United States Position on the
Relation of Customary International Law to the 1977 Protocols Additional to the 1949 Geneva Conventions at the
Sixth Annual American Red Cross-Washington College of Law Conference on International Humanitarian Law
(Jan. 22, 1987), 2 AMERICAN UNIVERSITY JOURNAL OF INTERNATIONAL LAW AND POLICY 419, 423-24 (1987) (We
support the principle that known medical aircraft be respected and protected when performing their humanitarian
functions. That is a rather general statement of what is reflected in many, but not all, aspects of the detailed rules in
articles 24 through 31, which include some of the more useful innovations in the Protocol.).
358
Refer to 5.7.4.1 (Military Equipment and Bases).
466
means of control (such as directing the aircraft to land and submit to search) have been
exhausted. 359
A medical aircraft that is not flying pursuant to a special agreement that seeks to claim
protection as medical aircraft shall make every effort to identify itself and to inform the enemy
State of its status and its operations, such as its flight times and routes. 360 For example, an
unknown aircraft within a theater of military operations would often be reasonably presumed to
be a military objective, and the aircraft must take affirmative steps to rebut this presumption. 361
In order to maintain its entitlement to protection, such aircraft must obey the directions of the
enemy State, such as directions to land and to submit to search.
7.14.2 Exclusively Employed for the Removal of the Wounded, Sick, or Shipwrecked,
and for the Transport of Medical Personnel and Equipment. In order to receive protection as
medical aircraft, the aircraft must be exclusively employed for the removal of wounded, sick, or
shipwrecked combatants and for the transport of medical personnel and equipment.
For example, such aircraft, while designated or operating as medical aircraft, may not be
used also for military purposes, such as to transport able-bodied combatants or to carry
ammunition to combat forces. 362
7.14.2.1 Conversion of Aircraft To and From Use Under a Special Agreement for
Medical Purposes. If medical aircraft are flying pursuant to an agreement, it is not necessary
that the aircraft should have been specially built and equipped for medical purposes. 363 There is
359
1976 AIR FORCE PAMPHLET 110-31 (Generally, a medical aircraft (identified as such) should not be attacked
unless under the circumstances at the time it represents an immediate military threat and other methods of control
are not available.).
360
Consider AP I art. 27(2) (A medical aircraft which flies over an area physically controlled by an adverse Party
without, or in deviation from the terms of, an agreement provided for in paragraph 1, either through navigational
error or because of an emergency affecting the safety of the flight, shall make every effort to identify itself and to
inform the adverse Party of the circumstances. As soon as such medical aircraft has been recognized by the adverse
Party, that Party shall make all reasonable efforts to give the order to land or to alight on water, referred to in Article
30, paragraph 1, or to take other measures to safeguard its own interests, and, in either case, to allow the aircraft
time for compliance, before resorting to an attack against the aircraft).
361
Cf. BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 155 (AP I art. 27, 2.2) (The question then arises whether an aircraft
which is operating without such agreement (or in deviation from the terms of such agreement) is a legitimate target,
a military objective within the meaning of Art. 52, para. 2. Article 27, para. 2, is based on the (correct) assumption
that it is, even if it is a true medical aircraft. An aircraft flying over areas controlled by an adverse Party is, in
case of doubt, a military objective. Anything else is unrealistic.).
362
Compare 7.12.2.2 (No Use for Military Purposes). For example, First Lieutenant Edward R. Cummings, The
Juridical Status of Medical Aircraft Under the Conventional Laws of War, 66 MILITARY LAW REVIEW 105, 115
(1974) (It has been said that during the Second World War Article 18 [of the 1929 GWS] was more or less a
dead letter, even though air evacuation flights were used extensively during the war. One and a half million
Americans alone were evacuated by air during the war. The United States primarily used aircraft that were not
devoted exclusively to the care or the wounded and sick. It was able to do so because of its air supremacy. Even
though these aircraft would not have been entitled to juridical protection under the 1929 Geneva Convention, none
of the aircraft used to convey casualties suffered any mishap during the war.) (ellipsis in original).
363
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 237b (It is not necessary that the aircraft should have been specially built
and equipped for medical purposes.).
467
no objection to converting ordinary aircraft into medical aircraft for use under a special
agreement or to using medical aircraft that have been used under a special agreement for other
purposes, provided the distinctive markings are removed. 364
7.14.3 Markings on Medical Aircraft. Medical aircraft shall bear, clearly marked, the
distinctive emblem (prescribed in Article 38 of the GWS and Article 41 of the GWS-Sea),
together with their national colors, on their lower, upper, and lateral surfaces. 367
They shall be provided with any other markings or means of identification that may be
agreed upon between the belligerents upon the outbreak or during the course of hostilities. 368
364
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 237b (There is no objection to converting ordinary aircraft into medical
aircraft or to using former medical aircraft for other purposes, provided the distinctive markings are removed.).
365
Compare 7.12.2.3 (No Hampering the Movement of Combatants); 4.9.2.3 (Exclusively Engaged in
Humanitarian Duties).
366
XI OFFICIAL RECORDS OF THE CDDH 503 (CDDH/II/SR.45, 10) (Mr. SOLF (United States of America)
recalled that 105 years previously, 160 wounded soldiers of France had been successfully evacuated from besieged
Paris by balloon, thus for the first time making rapid medical evacuation by air a reality. It was an undisputed
medical fact that the sooner a badly wounded person came under a surgeons care, the better were his chances of
recovery and survival. It was also recognized as an undisputed military fact that medical aircraft posed a security
threat if they were used for military reconnaissance. Accordingly, throughout the history of the development of
medical aircraft, their role in the search of the battlefield for wounded had been restricted.). Consider AP I art.
28(4) (While carrying out the flights referred to in Articles 26 and 27, medical aircraft shall not, except by prior
agreement with the adverse Party, be used to search for the wounded, sick and shipwrecked.).
367
GWS art. 36 (They shall bear, clearly marked, the distinctive emblem prescribed in Article 38, together with
their national colours, on their lower, upper and lateral surfaces.); GWS-SEA art. 39 (They shall be clearly marked
with the distinctive emblem prescribed in Article 41, together with their national colours, on their lower, upper and
lateral surfaces.).
368
GWS art. 36 (They shall be provided with any other markings or means of identification that may be agreed
upon between the belligerents upon the outbreak or during the course of hostilities.); GWS-SEA art. 39 (They shall
be provided with any other markings or means of identification which may be agreed upon between the Parties to
the conflict upon the outbreak or during the course of hostilities.).
369
GWS art. 36 (Unless agreed otherwise, flights over enemy or enemy-occupied territory are prohibited.); GWS-
SEA art. 39 (same).
468
pursuant to an agreement, however, medical aircraft are to receive protection when flying over
enemy or enemy-occupied territory. 370
7.14.5 Landing and Inspection of Military Medical Aircraft. Medical aircraft shall obey
every summons to land (including water landings if the aircraft is equipped for them). 371 In the
event of a landing thus imposed, the aircraft with its occupants may continue its flight after
examination, if any. 372
370
Consider AP I art. 27 (1) (The medical aircraft of a Party to the conflict shall continue to be protected while
flying over land or sea areas physically controlled by an adverse Party, provided that prior agreement to such flights
has been obtained from the competent authority of that adverse Party.).
371
GWS art. 36 (Medical aircraft shall obey every summons to land.); GWS-SEA art. 39 (Medical aircraft shall
obey every summons to alight on land or water.).
372
GWS art. 36 (In the event of a landing thus imposed, the aircraft with its occupants may continue its flight after
examination, if any.); GWS-SEA art. 39 (In the event of having thus to alight, the aircraft with its occupants may
continue its flight after examination, if any.).
373
GWS art. 36 (In the event of an involuntary landing in enemy or enemy-occupied territory, the wounded and
sick, as well as the crew of the aircraft shall be prisoners of war.); GWS-SEA art. 39 (In the event of alighting
involuntarily on land or water in enemy or enemy occupied territory, the wounded, sick and shipwrecked, as well as
the crew of the aircraft shall be prisoners of war.).
374
GWS art. 36 (The medical personnel shall be treated according to Article 24 and the Articles following.);
GWS-SEA art. 39 (The medical personnel shall be treated according to Articles 36 and 37.).
375
GWS art. 37 (Subject to the provisions of the second paragraph, medical aircraft of Parties to the conflict may
fly over the territory of neutral Powers, land on it in case of necessity, or use it as a port of call.); GWS-SEA art. 40
(Subject to the provisions of the second paragraph, medical aircraft of Parties to the conflict may fly over the
territory of neutral Powers, land thereon in case of necessity, or use it as a port of call.).
376
GWS art. 37 (They shall give the neutral Powers previous notice of their passage over the said territory and
obey all summons to alight, on land or water.); GWS-SEA art. 40 (They shall give neutral Powers prior notice of
their passage over the said territory, and obey every summons to alight, on land or water.).
377
GWS art. 37 (They will be immune from attack only when flying on routes, at heights and at times specifically
agreed upon between the Parties to the conflict and the neutral Power concerned.); GWS-SEA art. 40 (same).
469
7.14.6.1 Conditions Set by Neutral Powers. The neutral Powers may, however,
place conditions or restrictions on the passage or landing of medical aircraft on their territory. 378
Such possible conditions or restrictions shall be applied equally to all parties to the conflict. 379
The GWS and GWS-Sea contemplate that the distinctive emblem, usually a red cross on
a white background, will be used to facilitate the identification of the persons and objects
protected by the GWS and GWS-Sea. 382 It helps identify protected persons and objects (e.g.,
medical and religious personnel, medical transports, and medical facilities), but does not itself
confer on them, or by its absence deprive them of, legal protection. The use of the distinctive
emblem to facilitate protection is to take place under the direction of the competent military
authority. The misuse of the distinctive emblem is prohibited.
378
GWS art. 37 (The neutral Powers may, however, place conditions or restrictions on the passage or landing of
medical aircraft on their territory.); GWS-SEA art. 40 (same).
379
GWS art. 37 (Such possible conditions or restrictions shall be applied equally to all Parties to the conflict.);
GWS-SEA art. 40 (same).
380
GWS art. 37 (Unless agreed otherwise between the neutral Power and the Parties to the conflict, the wounded
and sick who are disembarked, with the consent of the local authorities, on neutral territory by medical aircraft, shall
be detained by the neutral Power, where so required by international law, in such a manner that they cannot again
take part in operations of war.); GWS-SEA art. 40 (Unless otherwise agreed between the neutral Powers and the
Parties to the conflict, the wounded, sick or shipwrecked who are disembarked with the consent of the local
authorities on neutral territory by medical aircraft shall be detained by the neutral Power, where so required by
international law, in such a manner that they cannot again take part in operations of war.).
381
GWS art. 37 (The cost of their accommodation and internment shall be borne by the Power on which they
depend.); GWS-SEA art. 40 (same).
382
See GWS-SEA COMMENTARY 235 (In principle, a red cross on a white ground should be displayed on the
buildings, persons, vehicles and objects protected by the Convention.).
470
7.15.1 The Distinctive Emblems: Red Cross, Crescent, and Crystal. To facilitate visual
identification of medical and religious personnel, and medical units, facilities, transports, and
equipment, four distinctive emblems have been recognized in treaties to which the United States
is a Party. As displayed below, they are 1) a red cross; 2) a red crescent; 3) a red crystal; and 4)
a red lion and sun. Each is displayed on a white background.
Red Cross Red Crescent Red Crystal Red Lion and Sun (withdrawn)
7.15.1.2 Red Crescent, and Red Lion and Sun. In the case of countries that
already use, in place of the red cross, the emblem of the red crescent or the emblem of the red
lion and sun on a white ground, those emblems are also recognized by the terms of the GWS and
GWS-Sea. 386
383
GWS art. 38 (As a compliment to Switzerland, the heraldic emblem of the red cross on a white ground formed
by reversing the Federal colours, is retained as the emblem and distinctive sign of the Medical Services of armed
forces.).
384
GWS COMMENTARY 303 (The phrase stating that the red cross emblem was formed, as a compliment to
Switzerland, by reversing the Federal colours was introduced into the Geneva Convention by the Diplomatic
Conference of 1906. This tribute in 1906, wrote Paul Des Gouttes, the eminent commentator on the Geneva
Convention, had also another object: to confirm officially and explicitly that the emblem had no religious
significance.). See also AP III preamble (Stressing that the distinctive emblems are not intended to have any
religious, ethnic, racial, regional or political significance,).
385
See, e.g., Convention for the Amelioration of the Wounded in Armies in the Field, art. 7, Aug. 22, 1864, 22
STAT. 940, 944 (A distinctive and uniform flag shall be adopted for hospitals, ambulances and evacuations. It
must, on every occasion, be accompanied by the national flag. An arm-badge (brassard) shall also be allowed for
individuals neutralized, but the delivery thereof shall be left to military authority. The flag and arm-badge shall bear
a red cross on a white ground.).
386
GWS art. 38 (Nevertheless, in the case of countries which already use as emblem, in place of the red cross, the
red crescent or the red lion and sun on a white ground, those emblems are also recognized by the terms of the
present Convention.); GWS-SEA art. 41 (Nevertheless, in the case of countries which already use as emblem, in
place of the red cross, the red crescent or the red lion and sun on a white ground, these emblems are also recognized
by the terms of the present Convention.).
471
7.15.1.3 Red Crystal. AP III recognizes an additional distinctive emblem in
addition to, and for the same purposes as, the distinctive emblems of the Geneva Conventions,
which, for parties to AP III, shall enjoy equal status to the other emblems. 387
This additional distinctive emblem, composed of a red frame in the shape of a square on
edge on a white ground, shall conform to the illustration in the Annex to AP III. 388
This distinctive emblem is referred to in AP III as the third Protocol emblem 389 but is
often called the red crystal.
The conditions for use of and respect for the third Protocol emblem are identical to those
for the distinctive emblems established by the 1949 Geneva Conventions and, where applicable,
AP I and AP II. 390
AP III further provides for use of the Red Crystal for indicative purposes by national
societies of the Parties to AP III. Such uses for indicative purposes by national societies are uses
of the red crystal that do not indicate protection under the AP III, the GWS, or the GWS-Sea, but
that indicate an association with the Red Cross movement. 391
7.15.1.4 State Discretion Among Emblems. Although the GWS contemplates that
the emblem of the red crescent and the emblem of the red sun and lion will be used only in States
that already used them before ratifying the 1949 Geneva Conventions, AP III provides that the
distinctive emblems of the Geneva Conventions shall enjoy equal status. 392 In addition, AP III
provides that the medical services and religious personnel of armed forces of Parties to AP III
387
AP III art. 2(1) (This Protocol recognizes an additional distinctive emblem in addition to, and for the same
purposes as, the distinctive emblems of the Geneva Conventions. The distinctive emblems shall enjoy equal
status.).
388
AP III art. 2(2) (This additional distinctive emblem, composed of a red frame in the shape of a square on edge
on a white ground, shall conform to the illustration in the Annex to this Protocol.).
389
AP III art. 2(2) (This distinctive emblem is referred to in this Protocol as the third Protocol emblem.).
390
AP III art. 2(3) (The conditions for use of and respect for the third Protocol emblem are identical to those for the
distinctive emblems established by the Geneva Conventions and, where applicable, the 1977 Additional
Protocols.).
391
AP III art. 3 (1. National Societies of those High Contracting Parties which decide to use the third Protocol
emblem may, in using the emblem in conformity with relevant national legislation, choose to incorporate within it,
for indicative purposes: a) a distinctive emblem recognized by the Geneva Conventions or a combination of these
emblems; or b) another emblem which has been in effective use by a High Contracting Party and was the subject of
a communication to the other High Contracting Parties and the International Committee of the Red Cross through
the depositary prior to the adoption of this Protocol. Incorporation shall conform to the illustration in the Annex to
this Protocol. 2. A National Society which chooses to incorporate within the third Protocol emblem another emblem
in accordance with paragraph 1 above, may, in conformity with national legislation, use the designation of that
emblem and display it within its national territory. 3. National Societies may, in accordance with national
legislation and in exceptional circumstances and to facilitate their work, make temporary use of the distinctive
emblem referred to in Article 2 of this Protocol. 4. This Article does not affect the legal status of the distinctive
emblems recognized in the Geneva Conventions and in this Protocol, nor does it affect the legal status of any
particular emblem when incorporated for indicative purposes in accordance with paragraph 1 of this Article.).
392
AP III art. 2(1) (The distinctive emblems shall enjoy equal status.).
472
may, without prejudice to their current emblems, make temporary use of any distinctive emblems
where this may enhance protection. 393
Some States have adopted the red crescent, without objection by other States Parties,
even though their use of the red crescent did not predate the adoption of the GWS. 394 Israel
ratified the 1949 Geneva Conventions with the reservation that it will use a Red Shield of David
as its distinctive sign. 395
7.15.2 Control of Display by the Competent Military Authority. Under the direction of
the competent military authority, the emblem shall be displayed on the flags, armlets, and on all
equipment employed in the Medical Service. 396 For example, under military regulations,
helmets or vehicles used by the Medical Service might bear the distinctive emblem to facilitate
the respect and protection of medical personnel by the enemy. 397
393
AP III art. 2(4) (The medical services and religious personnel of armed forces of High Contracting Parties may,
without prejudice to their current emblems, make temporary use of any distinctive emblem referred to in paragraph
1 of this Article where this may enhance protection.).
394
For example, H. Beer, Secretary General, League of Red Cross Societies, and J. Moreillon, Department of
Principles and Law, International Committee of the Red Cross, Adoption of the Red Crescent by the Islamic
Republic of Iran, Circular No. 72 (Nov. 5, 1980), reprinted in 20 INTERNATIONAL REVIEW OF THE RED CROSS, 316-
17 (1980) (On 4 July 1980 the Islamic Republic of Iran informed the International Committee of the Red Cross and
the League of Red Cross Societies of its decision to adopt the red crescent instead of the red lion and sun as the
distinctive sign of its armed forces' medical service. On 4 September the Iranian Authorities notified the Swiss
Government, the depositary of the Geneva Conventions, of the adoption by the Islamic Republic of Iran of the red
crescent, and asked it to convey its decision to the States parties to the Geneva Conventions. This the Swiss
Government did on 20 October.).
395
See Israel, Statement on Signature of the GWS, Aug. 12, 1949, 75 UNTS 436 (Subject to the reservation that,
while respecting the inviolability of the distinctive signs and emblems of the Convention, Israel will use the Red
Shield of David as the emblem and distinctive sign of the medical services of her armed forces.); Israel, Statement
on Ratification of the GWS, Jul. 6, 1952, 96 UNTS 323 (The instrument confirms the reservations made by Israel
upon signature of the Convention.); Israel, Statement on Signature of the GWS-Sea, Aug. 12, 1949, 75 UNTS 438
(Subject to the reservation that, while respecting the inviolability of the distinctive signs and emblems of the
Convention, Israel will use the Red Shield of David on the flags, armlets and on all equipment (including hospital
ships), employed in the medical service.); Israel, Statement on Ratification of the GWS-Sea, 96 UNTS 324 (Jul. 6,
1952) (The instrument confirms the reservations made by Israel upon signature of the Convention.); Israel,
Statement on Signature of the GC, Aug. 12, 1949, 75 UNTS 438 (Subject to the reservation that, while respecting
the inviolability of the distinctive signs and emblems provided for in Article 38 of the Geneva Convention for the
Amelioration of the Condition of the Wounded and Sick in Armed Forces in the Field of August 12, 1949, Israel
will use the Red Shield of David as the emblem and distinctive sign provided for in this Convention.); Israel,
Statement on Ratification of the GC, Jul. 6, 1952, 96 UNTS 326 (The instrument confirms the reservations made by
Israel upon signature of the Convention.).
396
GWS art. 39 (Under the direction of the competent military authority, the emblem shall be displayed on the
flags, armlets and on all equipment employed in the Medical Service.); GWS-SEA art. 41 (Under the direction of
the competent military authority, the emblem of the red cross on a white ground shall be displayed on the flags,
armlets and on all equipment employed in the Medical Service.).
397
Consider AP I Amended Annex I art. 5(4) (Medical and religious personnel carrying out their duties in the battle
area shall, as far as possible, wear headgear and clothing bearing the distinctive emblem.).
473
7.15.2.1 Removal or Obscuration of the Distinctive Emblem. The display of the
distinctive emblem is under the direction of the competent military authority. 398 Thus, the
military command may authorize the removal or obscuring of the distinctive emblem for tactical
purposes, such as camouflage. 399 Similarly, it would be appropriate for the distinctive emblem
to be removed if it is assessed that enemy forces will fail to respect the emblem and seek to
attack medical personnel; display of the emblem in such circumstances would not be considered
feasible because in that instance it would not result in a humanitarian benefit. 400
In the practice of the United States, removal or obscuration of the distinctive emblem has
generally been controlled by the responsible major tactical commander, such as a brigade
commander or higher. 401
398
GWS-SEA COMMENTARY 230 (The initial phrase of the present Article is most important: use of the emblem is
to be under the direction of the competent military authority. This wording shows that it is the military command
which controls the emblem and can give or withhold permission to use it. Moreover, only that command can order a
medical unit to be camouflaged.). See also Frederic de Mulinen, Head of Division, International Committee of the
Red Cross, Signalling and Identification of Medical Personnel and Material, 12 INTERNATIONAL REVIEW OF THE
RED CROSS 479, 481 (1972) (Distinctive emblems may not be displayed without the authorization of the State or of
a State authority. The State or, by the delegation of its competency, the military command therefore controls the
emblem and is free to permit or prohibit the use of the distinctive emblem. It may even prohibit its use entirely
without thereby violating the Conventions. In that event, actual protection would obviously be very small.).
399
GWS-SEA COMMENTARY 228-29 (In the first place there is no obligation on a belligerent to mark his medical
units with the emblem. Sometimes military commanders have camouflaged such unitsi.e. have abstained from
marking them and even tried to conceal themin order to conceal the presence or real strength of their forces. This
is more likely to occur on land than at sea.).
400
Refer to 5.3.3.2 (What Precautions Are Feasible).
401
For example, DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY REGULATION 750-1, Army Material Maintenance Policy, 8-9c(17)
(Sept. 2013) (Under tactical conditions, when requirements for concealment outweigh those for recognition, all
conspicuous markings may be obscured or removed by the authority and at the discretion of the major organization
commander present. Protective red cross markings may be obscured only at the direction of the responsible major
tactical commander.); DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY TECHNICAL MANUAL 43-0139, Painting Instructions for Army
Material, 1-3g (Jan. 1990) (Under tactical conditions, when requirements for concealment outweigh those for
recognition, all conspicuous markings may be obscured or removed by the authority and at the discretion of the
major organization commander present. Protective red cross markings may be obscured only at the direction of the
responsible major tactical commander.).
402
AP III preamble (Recalling that the obligation to respect persons and objects protected by the Geneva
Conventions and the Protocols additional thereto derives from their protected status under international law and is
not dependent on use of the distinctive emblems, signs or signals,). Consider AP I Amended Annex I art. 1(1)
(The regulations concerning identification in this Annex implement the relevant provisions of the Geneva
Conventions and the Protocol; they are intended to facilitate the identification of personnel, material, units,
transports and installations protected under the Geneva Conventions and the Protocol.).
474
7.15.3.2 Distinctive Emblem Does Not in and of Itself Establish the Right to
Protection. The distinctive emblem does not in and of itself establish the right to protection. 403
Rather, the right to protection is established by the fact that the units, facilities, or personnel,
have met the applicable requirements for protected status. 404
Thus, if the distinctive emblem is displayed by forces not entitled to protection, the
display of the emblem does not confer protection and those forces may be made the object of
attack. On the other hand, if personnel who are entitled to protection are recognized as such,
they remain entitled to respect and protection even if the distinctive emblem is not displayed. 405
7.15.4 Prohibitions on Unauthorized Uses of the Distinctive Emblem. With the exception
of certain cases mentioned in Article 44 of the GWS (discussed below), the emblem of the Red
Cross on a white ground and the words Red Cross or Geneva Cross may not be employed,
either in time of peace or in time of war, except to indicate or to protect the medical units and
establishments, the personnel, and material protected by the GWS and other Conventions dealing
with similar matters (e.g., the GWS-Sea). 406 The same shall apply to the emblems mentioned in
the second paragraph of Article 38 of the GWS (i.e., the emblem of red crescent and the emblem
of the red lion and sun), in respect of the countries that use them. 407
The distinguishing signs referred to in Article 43 of the GWS-Sea (i.e., certain red
crosses on white backgrounds) may only be used, whether in time of peace or war, for indicating
or protecting the ships mentioned in Article 43, except as may be provided in any other
international Convention (e.g., the GWS) or by agreement between all the parties to the conflict
concerned. 408
In particular, it is prohibited to use the distinctive emblem: (1) while engaging in attacks;
(2) in order to shield, favor, or protect ones own military operations; or (3) to impede enemy
403
See GWS COMMENTARY 307, 312, 330. Consider AP I Amended Annex I art. 1(2) (These rules do not in and of
themselves establish the right to protection. This right is governed by the relevant articles in the Conventions and
the Protocol.).
404
Refer to, e.g., 4.9.2 (Requirements for Military Medical and Religious Status); 7.12.1.1 (Military Hospital
Ships); 7.14.2 (Exclusively Employed for the Removal of the Wounded, Sick, or Shipwrecked, and for the
Transport of Medical Personnel and Equipment).
405
GWS-SEA COMMENTARY 229 (Obviously, respect for camouflaged units will be purely theoretical. The enemy
can respect a medical unit only if he knows of its presence. If the unit is exposed to long-range enemy fire, it will
thus lose a large part of its security. If however, the enemy approaches, for instance, and recognizes the the [sic]
medical unit as such, he must obviously respect it.).
406
GWS art. 44 (With the exception of the cases mentioned in the following paragraphs of the present Article, the
emblem of the Red Cross on a white ground and the words Red Cross, or Geneva Cross may not be employed,
either in time of peace or in time of war, except to indicate or to protect the medical units and establishments, the
personnel and material protected by the present Convention and other Conventions dealing with similar matters.).
407
GWS art. 44 (The same shall apply to the emblems mentioned in Article 38, second paragraph, in respect of the
countries which use them.).
408
GWS-SEA art. 44 (The distinguishing signs referred to in Article 43 can only be used, whether in time of peace
or war, for indicating or protecting the ships therein mentioned, except as may be provided in any other international
Convention or by agreement between all the Parties to the conflict concerned.).
475
military operations. 409 For example, using an ambulance marked with the Red Cross to mount a
surprise attack against enemy forces would be prohibited. 410
Certain non-military uses of the distinctive emblem are authorized under the GWS and
GWS-Sea: (1) use by National Red Cross Societies and other Authorized Voluntary Aid
Societies; (2) use by international Red Cross organizations and their duly authorized personnel;
and (3) use by ambulances and free aid stations.
7.15.4.1 Use by National Red Cross Societies and Other Authorized Voluntary
Aid Societies. The National Red Cross Societies and other Authorized Voluntary Aid Societies
designated in Article 26 of the GWS shall have the right to use the distinctive emblem conferring
the protection of the GWS only within the framework of paragraph 1 of Article 44 of the
GWS.411
Furthermore, National Red Cross (Red Crescent, Red Lion and Sun) Societies may, in
time of peace, in accordance with their national legislation, make use of the name and emblem of
the Red Cross for their other activities that are in conformity with the principles laid down by the
International Red Cross Conferences. 412 When those activities are carried out in time of war, the
conditions for the use of the emblem shall be such that it cannot be considered as conferring the
protection of the GWS; the emblem shall be comparatively small in size and may not be placed
on armlets or on the roofs of buildings. 413 This use of the emblem is simply to indicate an
association with the Red Cross movement. 414
409
Refer to 5.24 (Improper Use of Certain Signs).
410
For example, Trial of Heinz Hagendorf, XIII U.N. LAW REPORTS 146 (U.S. Intermediate Military Government
Court, Dachau, Germany, Aug. 8-9, 1946) (The accused, Heinz Hagendorf, a German soldier, was tried by a United
states Intermediate Military Government Court at Dachau, Germany, being charged with having wrongfully used
the Red Cross emblem in a combat zone by firing a weapon at American soldiers from an enemy ambulance
displaying such emblem.).
411
GWS art. 44 (With the exception of the cases mentioned in the following paragraphs of the present Article, the
emblem of the Red Cross on a white ground and the words Red Cross, or Geneva Cross may not be employed,
either in time of peace or in time of war, except to indicate or to protect the medical units and establishments, the
personnel and material protected by the present Convention and the other Conventions dealing with similar matters.
The same shall apply to the emblems mentioned in Article 38, second paragraph, in respect of the countries which
use them. The National Red Cross Societies and other Societies designated in Article 26 shall have the right to use
the distinctive emblem conferring the protection of the Convention only within the framework of the present
paragraph.).
412
GWS art. 44 (Furthermore, National Red Cross (Red Crescent, Red Lion and Sun) Societies may, in time of
peace, in accordance with their national legislation, make use of the name and emblem of the Red Cross for their
other activities which are in conformity with the principles laid down by the International Red Cross Conferences.).
413
GWS art. 44 (When those activities are carried out in time of war, the conditions for the use of the emblem shall
be such that it cannot be considered as conferring the protection of the Convention; the emblem shall be
comparatively small in size and may not be placed on armlets or on the roofs of buildings.).
414
GWS COMMENTARY 325 (In the second case, the sign is purely indicatory. It is only used to show that a person
or object is connected with the Red Cross, without implying the protection of the Convention or any intention to
invoke it. It is, for example, used in this way to draw public attention to premises or publications. The emblem
should then, as a rule, be small in size, and the conditions under which it is used should preclude all risk of its being
confused with the protective sign.).
476
7.15.4.2 Use by International Red Cross Organizations and Their Duly
Authorized Personnel. The international Red Cross organizations and their duly authorized
personnel shall be permitted to make use, at all times, of the emblem of the Red Cross on a white
ground. 415
7.16 PROTECTION OF CIVILIANS WHO ARE WOUNDED, SICK, INFIRM, OR EXPECTANT MOTHERS
Wounded and sick civilians, as well as the infirm, and expectant mothers, shall be the
object of particular protection and respect. 417 The infirm and expectant mothers are given special
consideration along with the wounded and sick because they are vulnerable and also do not take
part in hostilities.418
7.16.1 Obligation to Facilitate Efforts to Search for Civilians Who Are Wounded, Killed,
Shipwrecked, or Exposed to Grave Danger. As far as military considerations allow, each party
to the conflict shall facilitate the steps taken to search for the killed and wounded, to assist the
shipwrecked and other persons exposed to grave danger, and to protect them against pillage and
ill-treatment. 419
The obligation with respect to civilians who are killed, wounded, shipwrecked, and
exposed to grave danger is framed slightly differently from the corresponding obligation with
respect to military personnel who are wounded, sick, and shipwrecked. These differences may
be attributed to the fact that civilian authorities would often be responsible for collecting and
bringing in civilian casualties. 420 However, as a practical matter, the armed forces may be asked
415
GWS art. 44 (The international Red Cross organizations and their duly authorized personnel shall be permitted
to make use, at all times, of the emblem of the Red Cross on a white ground.).
416
GWS art. 44 (As an exceptional measure, in conformity with national legislation and with the express
permission of one of the National Red Cross (Red Crescent, Red Lion and Sun) Societies, the emblem of the
Convention may be employed in time of peace to identify vehicles used as ambulances and to mark the position of
aid stations exclusively assigned to the purpose of giving free treatment to the wounded or sick.).
417
GC art. 16 (The wounded and sick, as well as the infirm, and expectant mothers, shall be the object of particular
protection and respect.).
418
GC COMMENTARY 134-35 (In addition to the wounded and sick the Diplomatic Conference mentions the infirm
and also expectant mothers, as those persons are in a state of weakness which demands special consideration. Their
being placed on the same footing as the wounded and sick is fully justified by the fact that they belong to categories
of the population which do not take part in hostilities.).
419
GC art. 16 (As far as military considerations allow, each Party to the conflict shall facilitate the steps taken to
search for the killed and wounded, to assist the shipwrecked and other persons exposed to grave danger, and to
protect them against pillage and ill-treatment.).
420
GC COMMENTARY 135 (It is true that saving civilians is the responsibility of the civilian authorities rather than
of the military. That is why the wording of Article 16 (each Party to the conflict shall facilitate the steps ) is
477
to lead such efforts or to carry out a joint relief operation with civilian authorities. 421 For
example, the U.S. armed forces often have undertaken to care for the civilian wounded and
sick. 422
During international armed conflict, civilian hospitals organized to give care to the
wounded and sick, the infirm, and maternity cases, may in no circumstances be the object of
attack, but shall at all times be respected and protected by the parties to the conflict. 423
7.17.1 Loss of Protection for Civilian Hospitals Used to Commit Acts Harmful to the
Enemy. The protection to which civilian hospitals are entitled shall not cease unless they are
used to commit, outside their humanitarian duties, acts harmful to the enemy. 424
7.17.1.1 Acts Harmful to the Enemy. Civilian hospitals must avoid any
interference, direct or indirect, in military operations, such as the use of a hospital as a shelter for
able-bodied combatants or fugitives, as an arms or ammunition store, as a military observation
post, or as a center for liaison with combat forces. 425 However, the fact that sick or wounded
slightly different from the corresponding Article in the First Geneva Convention (Parties to the conflict shall,
without delay take all possible measures ).).
421
GC COMMENTARY 135-36 (In actual practice, however, when it is necessary to search devastated areas, the
military and civilian bodies will usually carry out a joint relief operation covering all war casualties, civilians and
members of the armed forces, friends and enemies. This is the only attitude to adopt in work of this description
which consists, in short, not in helping soldiers on the one hand and civilians on the other, but simply in assisting
human beings plunged into suffering by a common destiny-human beings among whom all distinctions have been
wiped out by suffering.).
422
For example, SANDERS MARBLE, SKILLED AND RESOLUTE: A HISTORY OF THE 12TH EVACUATION HOSPITAL AND
THE 212TH MASH, 1917-2006, 69-70 (2013) (About two-thirds of patients cared for by the 12th were US military;
the other third were mainly Vietnamese but also included nonmilitary Americans and Free World Military
Assistance Forces personnel. Staff regularly dealt with the Vietnamese, both military and civilian, enemy and
friendly. There were wards set aside for enemy prisoners (who were stabilized, then transferred to hospitals at POW
camps) and civilians. Wounded South Vietnamese Army soldiers were also stabilized and transferred to hospitals
run by the Army of the Republic of Vietnam (ARVN). Civilian patients often stayed longer because the war
swamped the available hospitals for Vietnamese civilians. Some local civilians came to the hospital for care of
conditions not related to the war.); id. at. 104 (Almost immediately after the ground fighting ended [during the
1991 Persian Gulf War], more patients arrived: civilians, enemy prisoners, and Coalition and US troops. Despite
the influx, the 12th had to staff only 104 beds of its 400-bed maximum. At first the civilians were Kuwaitis, but by
March 23 Iraqi civilians began arriving, victims of the southern Iraqi rebellion against Saddam Hussein. The
civilians arrived in large batches, Chinook loads of 30 or 40 at a time. Not all were patients; families often
accompanied an injured member.).
423
GC art. 18 (Civilian hospitals organized to give care to the wounded and sick, the infirm and maternity cases,
may in no circumstances be the object of attack, but shall at all times be respected and protected by the Parties to the
conflict.).
424
GC art. 19 (The protection to which civilian hospitals are entitled shall not cease unless they are used to commit,
outside their humanitarian duties, acts harmful to the enemy.).
425
GC COMMENTARY 155 (Such harmful acts would, for example, include the use of a hospital as a shelter for able-
bodied combatants or fugitives, as an arms or ammunition store, as a military observation post, or as a centre for
liaison with fighting troops. The sense will become still clearer when paragraph 2, below is considered, which
mentions two specific acts which are not to be regarded as being harmful to the enemy. One thing is certain.
478
members of the armed forces are nursed in these hospitals, or the presence of small arms and
ammunition taken from such combatants and not yet handed to the proper service, shall not be
considered acts harmful to the enemy. 426
The obligation to refrain from use of force against a civilian medical facility acting in
violation of its mission and protected status without due warning does not prohibit the exercise
of the right of self-defense. There may be cases in which, in the exercise of the right of self-
defense, a warning is not due or a reasonable time limit is not appropriate. For example, forces
receiving heavy fire from a hospital may exercise their right of self-defense and return fire. Such
use of force in self-defense against medical units or facilities must be proportionate. For
example, a single enemy rifleman firing from a hospital window would warrant a response
against the rifleman only, rather than the destruction of the hospital. 428
7.17.2.1 State-Issued Certificates for Civilian Hospitals. States that are parties to
a conflict shall provide all civilian hospitals with certificates showing that they are civilian
hospitals and that the buildings that they occupy are not used for any purpose that would deprive
these hospitals of protection in accordance with Article 19 of the GC. 429
Civilian hospitals must observe, towards the enemy, the neutrality which they claim for themselves and which is
their right under the Convention. Standing outside the struggle, they must steadfastly refrain from any interference,
direct or indirect, in military operations.).
426
GC art. 19 (The fact that sick or wounded members of the armed forces are nursed in these hospitals, or the
presence of small arms and ammunition taken from such combatants and not yet handed to the proper service, shall
not be considered to be acts harmful to the enemy.).
427
GC art. 19 (Protection may, however, cease only after due warning has been given, naming, in all appropriate
cases, a reasonable time limit, and after such warning has remained unheeded.).
428
Compare 7.10.3.2 (Due Warning Before Cessation of Protection).
429
GC art. 18 (States which are Parties to a conflict shall provide all civilian hospitals with certificates showing that
they are civilian hospitals and that the buildings which they occupy are not used for any purpose which would
deprive these hospitals of protection in accordance with Article 19.).
430
GC art. 18 (Civilian hospitals shall be marked by means of the emblem provided for in Article 38 of the Geneva
Convention for the Amelioration of the Condition of the Wounded and Sick in Armed Forces in the Field of August
12, 1949, but only if so authorized by the State.).
479
The parties to the conflict shall, in so far as military considerations permit, take the
necessary steps to make the distinctive emblems indicating civilian hospitals clearly visible to
the enemy land, air, and naval forces in order to obviate the possibility of any hostile action. 431
7.17.3 Location of Civilian Hospitals. In view of the dangers to which civilian hospitals
may be exposed by being close to military objectives, it is recommended that such hospitals be
situated as far as possible from such objectives. 432
This provision of the GC was drafted because the protection for civilian hospitals in the
GC does not confer immunity on military objectives situated close to the hospital or restrict the
right to make such military objectives the object of attack. 433
7.17.4.1 Civilian Hospital Personnel Who Are Regularly and Solely Engaged.
Persons regularly and solely engaged in the operation and administration of civilian hospitals,
including the personnel engaged in the search for, removal and transporting of, and caring for
wounded and sick civilians, the infirm, and maternity cases, shall be respected and protected at
all times. 434 For example, a surgeon who works regularly in a hospital, but is not exclusively
employed there, would not be engaged solely in hospital duties and would consequently not be
covered by this provision, but could fall under the category of other civilian hospital
personnel. 435
In occupied territory and in zones of military operations, civilian hospital personnel who
are regularly and solely engaged in hospital duties shall be recognizable by means of an identity
card certifying their status, bearing the photograph of the holder and embossed with the stamp of
the responsible authority, and also by means of a stamped, water-resistant armlet that they shall
431
GC art. 18 (The Parties to the conflict shall, in so far as military considerations permit, take the necessary steps
to make the distinctive emblems indicating civilian hospitals clearly visible to the enemy land, air and naval forces
in order to obviate the possibility of any hostile action.).
432
GC art. 18 (In view of the dangers to which civilian hospitals may be exposed by being close to military
objectives, it is recommended that such hospitals be situated as far as possible from such objectives.).
433
GC COMMENTARY 153 (The last paragraph shows clearly that wide as that scope is, it is not intended to confer
immunity on military objectives situated close to a hospital or to restrict the right to attack them as such. It is for
that reason that the legal protection accorded to military hospitals must be accompanied by practical measures to
ensure that they are situated as far as possible from military objectives and to protect them from the accidental
consequences of attacks on such objectives. If that is not done the protection is very likely to be illusory, even if the
hospitals are clearly marked.).
434
GC art. 20 (Persons regularly and solely engaged in the operation and administration of civilian hospitals,
including the personnel engaged in the search for, removal and transporting of and caring for wounded and sick
civilians, the infirm and maternity cases, shall be respected and protected.).
435
GC COMMENTARY 159 (For example, a surgeon who works regularly in a hospital, but is not exclusively
employed there because he devotes part of his time to his private practice, or again, voluntary laboratory assistants
or auxiliaries, who only work at the hospital for part of the day, or for one or two days a week, would not be
engaged solely in hospital duties and would consequently not be covered by paragraph 1.).
480
wear on the left arm while carrying out their duties. 436 This armlet shall be issued by the State
and shall bear the emblem provided for in Article 38 of the GWS. 437
7.17.4.2 Other Civilian Hospital Personnel. Other personnel who are engaged in
the operation and administration of civilian hospitals shall also be entitled to respect and
protection and to wear the armlet while they are employed on such duties. 438 The identity card
shall state the duties on which they are employed. 439
The vehicles in a medical convoy need not be used permanently for medical purposes,
but while they are in the convoy, they are not to be used for other purposes. 443
436
GC art. 20 (In occupied territory and in zones of military operations, the above personnel shall be recognizable
by means of an identity card certifying their status, bearing the photograph of the holder and embossed with the
stamp of the responsible authority, and also by means of a stamped, water-resistant armlet which they shall wear on
the left arm while carrying out their duties.).
437
GC art. 20 (This armlet shall be issued by the State and shall bear the emblem provided for in Article 38 of the
Geneva Convention for the Amelioration of the Condition of the Wounded and Sick in Armed Forces in the Field of
August 12, 1949.).
438
GC art. 20 (Other personnel who are engaged in the operation and administration of civilian hospitals shall be
entitled to respect and protection and to wear the armlet, as provided in and under the conditions prescribed in this
Article, while they are employed on such duties.).
439
GC art. 20 (The identity card shall state the duties on which they are employed.).
440
GC art. 20 (The management of each hospital shall at all times hold at the disposal of the competent national or
occupying authorities an up-to-date list of such personnel.).
441
GC COMMENTARY 169 (The management of every civilian hospital must keep an up-to-date nominal list of all
the hospital staff, both permanent and temporary, specifying the duties of each of them.).
442
GC art. 21 (Convoys of vehicles or hospital trains on land or specially provided vessels on sea, conveying
wounded and sick civilians, the infirm and maternity cases, shall be respected and protected in the same manner as
the hospitals provided for in Article 18, and shall be marked, with the consent of the State, by the display of the
distinctive emblem provided for in Article 38 of the Geneva Convention for the Amelioration of the Condition of the
Wounded and Sick in Armed Forces in the Field of August 12, 1949.).
443
GC COMMENTARY 170 (The word vehicle must be taken in the broadest possible sense: it covers any means
of transport by land; it need not necessarily be used solely for medical purposes. It will be enough if it is so used
481
7.18.1 Protection of Civilian Hospital Convoys on the Same Basis as That of Civilian
Hospitals. The protection to which these convoys are entitled shall not cease unless they are
used to commit, outside their humanitarian duties, acts harmful to the enemy. 444
As with civilian hospitals, medical convoys must maintain a strict abstention from any
direct or indirect participation in a hostile act in order to retain protection. 445 However, the fact
that sick or wounded members of the armed forces are transported by these convoys, or the
presence of small arms and ammunition taken from such combatants and not yet handed to the
proper service, shall not be considered acts harmful to the enemy. 446
In addition, protection for civilian medical convoys may cease only after due warning has
been given, naming, in all appropriate cases, a reasonable time limit, and after such warning has
remained unheeded. 447
Aircraft exclusively employed for the removal of wounded and sick civilians, the infirm,
and maternity cases, or for the transport of medical personnel and equipment, shall not be
attacked, but shall be respected while flying at heights, times, and on routes specifically agreed
upon between all the parties to the conflict concerned. 448
7.19.1 Civilian Medical Aircraft Not Flying at Heights and Times and on Routes
Specifically Agreed Upon by Belligerents Concerned. As with medical aircraft for military
personnel, the use of protected medical aircraft for civilians generally depends on an agreement
between the belligerents. 449
However, as with medical aircraft for military personnel, known civilian medical aircraft,
when performing their humanitarian functions, must be respected and protected, provided they
identify themselves as such and comply with the directions of the enemy State. 450
occasionally and temporarily, provided, of course, that while so employed it is not used for any other purpose. A
medical convoy composed of horse drawn vehicles normally used for transporting agricultural produce and
occasionally used in the service of the wounded, must, therefore, be protected in the same way as a convoy of
specially designed ambulances.).
444
Compare 7.17.1 (Loss of Protection for Civilian Hospitals Used to Commit Acts Harmful to the Enemy).
445
GC COMMENTARY 171 (As in the case of civilian hospitals and their staff, the protection of medical transport
depends on strict abstention from any direct or indirect participation in a hostile act.).
446
Compare 7.17.1.1 (Acts Harmful to the Enemy).
447
Compare 7.17.1.2 (Due Warning Before Cessation of Protection).
448
GC art. 22 (Aircraft exclusively employed for the removal of wounded and sick civilians, the infirm and
maternity cases, or for the transport of medical personnel and equipment, shall not be attacked, but shall be
respected while flying at heights, times and on routes specifically agreed upon between all the Parties to the conflict
concerned.).
449
Refer to 7.14 (Military Medical Aircraft).
450
Refer to 7.14.1 (Medical Aircraft Not Flying at Heights and Times and on Routes Specifically Agreed Upon by
Belligerents Concerned).
482
7.19.2 Marking of Civilian Medical Aircraft With the Distinctive Emblem. The aircraft
may be marked with the distinctive emblem provided for in Article 38 of the GWS. 451
7.19.3 Prohibition of Flight Over Enemy Territory. Unless otherwise agreed, flights over
enemy or enemy-occupied territory are prohibited. 452
7.19.4 Summons to Land. Such aircraft shall obey every summons to land. 453 If the
aircraft refuses to obey, it does so at its own risk. 454
In the event of a landing thus imposed, the aircraft with its occupants may continue its
flight after examination, if any. 455 However, if examination reveals that an act harmful to the
enemy has been committed, e.g., if the aircraft is carrying munitions or has been used for
military observation, it loses the benefit of the GC; the aircraft may be seized and the crew and
passengers detained. 456
Part II of AP I has a number of provisions regarding the wounded, sick, and shipwrecked.
These provisions have generally not been discussed in this Chapter because the United States is
not a Party to AP I. These provisions, however, are summarized in this section to familiarize
service members with them in case U.S. forces are engaged in multinational operations with, or
are engaged in armed conflict against, States that are Parties to AP I.
451
GC art. 22 (They may be marked with the distinctive emblem provided for in Article 38 of the Geneva
Convention for the Amelioration of the Condition of the Wounded and Sick in Armed Forces in the Field of August
12, 1949.).
452
GC art. 22 (Unless agreed otherwise, flights over enemy or enemy-occupied territory are prohibited.).
453
GC art. 22 (Such aircraft shall obey every summons to land.). See also GC COMMENTARY 176 (The summons
to land provides the adverse party with a safeguard; it is the one real means of defence against abuse. This
extremely important provision has also been taken from the First Geneva Convention of 1949; it states explicitly that
medical aircraft must obey every summons to land. It applies in the first place to aircraft flying over enemy or
enemy-occupied territory whether or not they are authorized to do so. It also applies to aircraft which are over their
own territory but close to the enemy lines.).
454
GC COMMENTARY 176 (If the aircraft refuses to obey, it does so at its own risk and it is lawful to open fire on it.
If the machine is already out of range, the summons obviously becomes a mere formality. It should not be forgotten
however that if the plane refuses to obey the summons and is pursued it loses the protection of the Convention,
having failed to comply with its own obligations.).
455
GC art. 22 (In the event of a landing thus imposed, the aircraft with its occupants may continue its flight after
examination, if any.).
456
GC COMMENTARY 177 (Ifand it is to be hoped that such cases will be the exceptionif examination reveals
that an act harmful to the enemy, in the sense of Article 19, has been committed, i.e. if the plane is carrying
munitions or has been used for military observation, it loses the benefit of the Convention; the enemy may seize it
and intern the crew and passengers or, should occasion arise, treat them in accordance with Article 5 of the
Convention.).
483
medical units. 457 The obligations in AP I also cover both combatants and civilians. For the
purpose of applying AP I, Article 8 of AP I defines wounded and sick to include persons
whether military or civilian and maternity cases, new-born babies and other persons who may
be in need of immediate medical assistance or care, such as the infirm or expectant mothers, and
who refrain from any act of hostility. 458 On the other hand, in the 1949 Geneva Conventions,
the protections for civilians who are wounded and sick are addressed in the GC, and the
protections for combatants who are wounded and sick are addressed in the GWS, GWS-Sea, and
GPW.459
7.20.3 AP I Provisions on Missing and Dead Persons. Section III of Part II of AP I has
three articles that are intended to help families know the fate of their relatives. 462 For example,
as soon as circumstances and the relations between adverse parties permit, the States that are
Parties to AP I in whose territories graves may be shall conclude agreements: (1) to facilitate
access to gravesites by relatives of the deceased and by representatives of official Graves
Registration Services and to regulate the practical arrangements for such access; (2) to protect
and maintain such gravesites permanently; and (3) to facilitate the return of the remains of the
457
AP I art. 12(2) (2. Paragraph 1 shall apply to civilian medical units, provided that they: a) belong to one of the
Parties to the conflict; b) are recognized and authorized by the competent authority of one of the Parties to the
conflict; or c) are authorized in conformity with Article 9, paragraph 2, of this Protocol or Article 27 of the First
Convention.).
458
AP I art. 8(a) (Wounded and sick mean persons, whether military or civilian, who, because of trauma,
disease or other physical or mental disorder or disability, are in need of medical assistance or care and who refrain
from any act of hostility. These terms also cover maternity cases, new-born babies and other persons who may be in
need of immediate medical assistance or care, such as the infirm or expectant mothers, and who refrain from any act
of hostility;).
459
Refer to 7.3.2 (Persons Entitled to Protection as Wounded, Sick, or Shipwrecked Under the GWS and GWS-
Sea); 7.16 (Protection of Civilians Who Are Wounded, Sick, Infirm, or Expectant Mothers).
460
AP I art. 25 (In and over land areas physically controlled by friendly forces, or in and over sea areas not
physically controlled by an adverse Party, the respect and protection of medical aircraft of a Party to the conflict is
not dependent on any agreement with an adverse Party. For greater safety, however, a Party to the conflict operating
its medical aircraft in these areas may notify the adverse Party, as provided in Article 29, in particular when such
aircraft are making flights bringing them within range of surface-to-air weapons systems of the adverse Party.).
461
AP I art. 22(3) (Small craft described in Article 27 of the Second Convention shall be protected even if the
notification envisaged by that Article has not been made. The Parties to the conflict are, nevertheless, invited to
inform each other of any details of such craft which will facilitate their identification and recognition.).
462
AP I art. 32 (In the implementation of this Section, the activities of the High Contracting Parties, of the Parties
to the conflict and of the international humanitarian organizations mentioned in the Conventions and in this Protocol
shall be prompted mainly by the right of families to know the fate of their relatives.).
484
deceased and of personal effects to the home country upon its request or, unless that country
objects, upon the request of the next of kin. 463
463
Consider AP I art. 34(2) (As soon as circumstances and the relations between the adverse Parties permit, the
High Contracting Parties in whose territories graves and, as the case may be, other locations of the remains of
persons who have died as a result of hostilities or during occupation or in detention are situated, shall conclude
agreements in order: (a) to facilitate access to the gravesites by relatives of the deceased and by representatives of
official graves registration services and to regulate the practical arrangements for such access; (b) to protect and
maintain such gravesites permanently; (c) to facilitate the return of the remains of the deceased and of personal
effects to the home country upon its request or, unless that country objects, upon the request of the next of kin.).
485
VIII Detention: Overview and Baseline Rules
Chapter Contents
8.1 Introduction
8.2 Humane Treatment of Detainees
8.3 Security Measures
8.4 Interrogation
8.5 Adequate Food, Drinking Water, and Clothing
8.6 General Conditions of Detention Facilities
8.7 Segregation of Detainees
8.8 Medical Attention
8.9 Administration and Discipline in Detention Facilities
8.10 Contacts With the Outside World
8.11 Religious Exercise
8.12 Intellectual, Physical, and Recreational Activities
8.13 Adequate Working Conditions
8.14 Procedures for Detention
8.15 National Accountability for Detention
8.16 Criminal Procedure and Punishment
8.1 INTRODUCTION
8.1.1 Overview of Detention Rules in This Manual and the Scope of Chapter VIII. The
internment of POWs is addressed in Chapter IX. The internment of protected persons in the
home territory of a belligerent or in occupied territory is addressed in Chapter X.
Detention may occur outside these contexts. For example, the detention of civilians may
occur outside a belligerents home territory but before the establishment of occupation.
Similarly, detention may occur in non-international armed conflict or other military operations,
such as non-combatant evacuation operations, peace operations, or humanitarian assistance
operations. There are no law-free zones in which detainees are outside the protection of the
law. Where no more specific rules apply, the rules in this Chapter apply as baseline rules
addressing the detention of persons during military operations. For example, the following
situations are covered by the rules in this Chapter:
detention of persons who have participated in hostilities or who belong to armed groups,
but who are not entitled to POW status or protected person status in international armed
conflict;
detention of persons held for reasons related to a non-international armed conflict; and
8.1.2 DoD Policies and Regulations Regarding the Treatment of Detainees. DoD policies
and regulations regarding the treatment of detainees provide authoritative guidance for DoD
486
personnel and fill an important role in implementing the requirements of Common Article 3 of
the 1949 Geneva Conventions and applicable customary international law. 1 Practitioners are
advised to consult all applicable policies and regulations, as these, in many cases, exceed the
requirements of international law, U.S. statutes, and Executive Orders.
The practice of the U.S. armed forces has been to go beyond a minimalist approach of
complying with the baseline rules of Common Article 3 of the 1949 Geneva Conventions and
instead to endeavor to enhance conditions so as to ensure that treatment of detainees exceeds the
requirements of humane treatment standards under international law, consistent with security
concerns. 2
Such legal instruments may include, for example, an international agreement between the
State conducting detention operations and the State on whose territory the operations are being
conducted. 3 As another example, a U.N. Security Council Resolution may provide a basis for
detention operations. 4
1
Refer to 18.7 (Instructions, Regulations, and Procedures to Implement and Enforce the Law of War).
2
For example, Admiral Patrick Walsh, et al., Department of Defense, Review of Department Compliance with
Presidents Executive Order on Detainee Conditions of Confinement, 4 (2009) (While we conclude that conditions
at Guantnamo are in conformity with Common Article 3, from our review, it was apparent that the chain of
command responsible for the detention mission at Guantnamo consistently seeks to go beyond a minimalist
approach to compliance with Common Article 3, and endeavors to enhance conditions in a manner as humane as
possible consistent with security concerns.).
3
For example, Agreement Between the United States and the Republic of Iraq on the Withdrawal of United States
Forces from Iraq and the Organization of their Activities during their Temporary Presence in Iraq, Nov. 17, 2008,
art. 22(1) (No detention or arrest may be carried out by the United States Forces (except with respect to detention
or arrest of members of the United States Forces and of the civilian component) except through an Iraqi decision
issued in accordance with Iraqi law and pursuant to Article 4.).
4
For example, U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 1546 (2004), U.N. Doc. S/RES/1546(2004), 10 (Jun. 8,
2004) (Decides that the multinational force shall have the authority to take all necessary measures to contribute to
the maintenance of security and stability in Iraq in accordance with the letters annexed to this resolution expressing,
inter alia, the Iraqi request for the continued presence of the multinational force and setting out its tasks, including
by preventing and deterring terrorism, so that, inter alia, the United Nations can fulfil its role in assisting the Iraqi
people as outlined in paragraph seven above and the Iraqi people can implement freely and without intimidation the
timetable and programme for the political process and benefit from reconstruction and rehabilitation activities;).
See also Colin L. Powell, Secretary of State, Letter to the Lauro L. Baja, Jr., President of the Security Council, Jun.
5, 2004, annexed to U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 1546 (2004), U.N. Doc. S/RES/1546(2004), 10, 11 (Jun.
8, 2004) (Under the agreed arrangement, the MNF stands ready to continue to undertake a broad range of tasks to
contribute to the maintenance of security and to ensure force protection. These include activities necessary to
counter ongoing security threats posed by forces seeking to influence Iraqs political future through violence. This
will include combat operations against members of these groups, internment where this is necessary for imperative
reasons of security, and the continued search for and securing of weapons that threaten Iraqs security.).
487
8.1.3.1 Detention Authority. The legal authority to detain outside the context of
the internment of POWs or protected persons may be addressed in ad hoc international
instruments. Even if not specifically addressed in an international legal instrument, the legal
authority to detain may sometimes be understood as an incident of general authorities conferred
by that instrument, such as a U.N. Security Council Resolution authorizing military operations or
an agreement authorizing one State to conduct military operations on the territory of another
State. 5
In many cases, the legal authority to detain would be understood as an exercise of the
Detaining Powers sovereign rights under international law rather than, or in addition to,
authorities arising from an international legal instrument. 6
488
operations, and provision for transfer of captured persons to coalition partners who are
conducting humane detention operations). 10
8.1.4 Sources of Baseline Standards for the Treatment of Detainees. The baseline
standards for the treatment of detainees by U.S. armed forces addressed in this Chapter are
derived from Common Article 3 of the 1949 Geneva Conventions, applicable customary
international law, and applicable U.S. law and national policy. The principle of humanity
animates the rules discussed in this Chapter. 12 In addition, analogous provisions of the GPW and
the GC may also be helpful in understanding the baseline rules for detention.
DoD policy has explicitly incorporated the standards in Common Article 3 as minimum
standards. 15
10
Refer to 5.5.7 (Prohibition Against Declaring That No Quarter Be Given).
11
Refer to 17.3 (Special Agreements Between Parties to the Conflict).
12
Refer to 2.3 (Humanity).
13
Refer to 3.1.1.2 (Applying Law of War Standards as Reflecting Minimum Legal Standards).
14
GWS art. 3; GWS-SEA art. 3 (same); GPW art. 3 (same); GC art. 3 (same). See Hamdan v. Rumsfeld, 548 U.S.
557, 630-31 (2006) (explaining that Common Article 3 provides some minimal protection in all armed conflicts);
Military and Paramilitary Activities in and Against Nicaragua (Nicaragua v. United States), Merits, Judgment, 1986
I.C.J. 14, 114 (218) (explaining that the rules in Common Article 3 of the 1949 Geneva Conventions constitute a
minimum yardstick, in all armed conflicts and reflect elementary considerations of humanity) (quoting Corfu
Channel Case (United Kingdom v. Albania), Merits, Judgment, 1949 I.C.J. 4, 22).
15
For example, DOD DIRECTIVE 2310.01E, DoD Detainee Program, 3a (Aug. 19, 2014) (Until a detainees
release, repatriation, or transfer from DoD custody or control, all persons subject to this directive will, without
regard to a detainees legal status, at a minimum apply: (1) The standards established in Common Article 3 to
References (b) through (e).); DOD DIRECTIVE 2310.01E, The Department of Defense Detainee Program, 4.1-4.2
(Sept. 5, 2006) (requiring that all detainees be treated humanely and shall receive, at a minimum, the standard of
treatment discussed in Common Article 3 of the Geneva Conventions).
489
8.1.4.2 Article 75 of AP I and Relevant AP II Provisions. Article 75 of AP I
reflects fundamental guarantees for the treatment of persons detained during international armed
conflict. Although not a Party to AP I, the United States has stated that the U.S. Government
will choose out of a sense of legal obligation to treat the principles set forth in Article 75 as
applicable to any individual it detains in an international armed conflict, and expects all other
nations to adhere to these principles as well. 16 This statement was intended to contribute to the
crystallization of the principles contained in Article 75 as rules of customary international law
applicable in international armed conflict. 17
8.1.4.3 U.S. Domestic Law and National Policy. In addition to international law,
the requirements in this Chapter are also based on the requirements of applicable U.S. statutes,
such as the Detainee Treatment Act of 2005, or national policy, such as the requirements stated
in applicable Executive Orders.
16
See The White House, Office of the Press Secretary, Fact Sheet: New Actions on Guantnamo and Detainee
Policy, Mar. 7, 2011 (Article 75 of Additional Protocol I, which sets forth fundamental guarantees for persons in
the hands of opposing forces in an international armed conflict, is similarly important to the international legal
framework. Although the Administration continues to have significant concerns with Additional Protocol I, Article
75 is a provision of the treaty that is consistent with our current policies and practice and is one that the United
States has historically supported. Our adherence to these principles is also an important safeguard against the
mistreatment of captured U.S. military personnel. The U.S. Government will therefore choose out of a sense of
legal obligation to treat the principles set forth in Article 75 as applicable to any individual it detains in an
international armed conflict, and expects all other nations to adhere to these principles as well.).
17
Harold Koh, Legal Adviser, Department of State, Responses to Questions Submitted by Senator Richard G. Lugar,
Libya and War Powers: Hearing Before the Committee on Foreign Relations, U.S. Senate, 112th Congress, First
Session, 53, 57 (Jun. 28, 2011) (As a matter of international law, the administrations statement is likely to be
received as a statement of the U.S. Governments opinio juris as well as a reaffirmation of U.S. practice in this area.
The statement is therefore also likely to be received as a significant contribution to the crystallization of the
principles contained in Article 75 as rules of customary international law applicable in international armed conflict.
The U.S. statement, coupled with a sufficient density of State practice and opinio juris, would contribute to
creation of the principles reflected in Article 75 as rules of customary international law, which all States would be
obligated to apply in international armed conflict.).
18
Refer to 19.20.2.1 (The United States and AP II).
19
For example, George W. Bush, Memorandum: Humane Treatment of Taliban and al Qaeda Detainees 5 (Feb. 7,
2002) (I hereby reaffirm the order previously issued by the Secretary of Defense to the United States Armed Forces
requiring that the detainees be treated humanely and, to the extent appropriate and consistent with military necessity,
in a manner consistent with the principles of Geneva.).
490
In addition, as a general matter, analogous provisions of the GPW and GC may be helpful
for understanding the requirements in international law for conducting detention operations
because the baseline standards for such operations during armed conflict are not more restrictive
upon States than the requirements with respect to POWs and civilian internees under the GPW
and GC, respectively. 20
20
For example, In re Guantanamo Bay Litigation, Respondents Memorandum Regarding the Governments
Detention Authority Relative to Detainees Held at Guantanamo Bay, Misc. No. 08-442, 1 (D.D.C., Mar. 13, 2009)
(The laws of war have evolved primarily in the context of international armed conflicts between the armed forces
of nation states. This body of law, however, is less well-codified with respect to our current, novel type of armed
conflict against armed groups such as al-Qaida and the Taliban. Principles derived from law-of-war rules governing
international armed conflicts, therefore, must inform the interpretation of the detention authority Congress has
authorized for the current armed conflict. The President also has the authority under the AUMF [Authorization
for the Use of Military Force] to detain in this armed conflict those persons whose relationship to al-Qaida or the
Taliban would, in appropriately analogous circumstances in a traditional international armed conflict, render them
detainable.).
21
Copenhagen Process: Principles and Guidelines I (The Copenhagen Process on the Handling of Detainees in
International Military Operations (The Copenhagen Process) was launched on 11 October 2007 and was concluded
in Copenhagen on 19 October 2012. Representatives from Argentina, Australia, Belgium, Canada, China, Denmark,
Finland, France, Germany, India, Malaysia, New Zealand, Nigeria, Norway, Pakistan, Russia, South Africa,
Sweden, Tanzania, the Netherlands, Turkey, Uganda, the United Kingdom, and the United States of America
participated in The Copenhagen Process meetings. Representatives of the African Union (AU), the European Union
(EU), the North Atlantic Treaty Organisation (NATO), the United Nations (UN), and the International Committee of
the Red Cross (ICRC) also attended The Copenhagen Process meetings as observers. Representatives of civil
society were also consulted at various stages of The Copenhagen Process;).
22
Copenhagen Process: Principles and Guidelines II (During The Copenhagen Process meetings participants
while not seeking to create new legal obligations or authorizations under international law confirmed the desire to
develop principles to guide the implementation of the existing obligations with respect to detention in international
military operations; Participants were also inspired by the good practices that States and organisations have
developed in international military operations;).
23
Chairmans Commentary to the Copenhagen Process: Principles and Guidelines, 16.2 (This savings clause
also recognises that The Copenhagen Process Principles and Guidelines is not a text of a legally binding nature and
thus, does not create new obligations or commitments. Furthermore, The Copenhagen Process Principles and
Guidelines cannot constitute a legal basis for detention. Although some language, e.g., Principle 2, may reflect legal
obligations in customary and treaty law, The Copenhagen Process Principles and Guidelines are intended to reflect
generally accepted standards. In such instances, the applicability and binding nature of those obligations is
established by treaty law or customary international law, as applicable, and not by The Copenhagen Process
Principles and Guidelines. Since The Copenhagen Process Principles and Guidelines were not written as a
491
The Copenhagen Process Principles and Guidelines are intended to apply to international
military operations in the context of non-international armed conflicts and peace operations; they
are not intended to address international armed conflicts. 24
Detainees shall in all circumstances be treated humanely and protected against any cruel,
inhuman, or degrading treatment. This requirement has been reflected in international law, 25
domestic law, 26 national policy, 27 and DoD policies. 28 Violations of the requirement to treat
detainees humanely may be violations of criminal law, although it is not a purpose of this section
to address liability under criminal law.
8.2.1 Protection Against Violence, Torture, and Cruel Treatment. Detainees must be
protected against violence to life and person, in particular murder of all kinds, mutilation, cruel
treatment, torture, and any form of corporal punishment. 29
restatement of customary international law, the mere inclusion of a practice in The Copenhagen Process Principles
and Guidelines should not be taken as evidence that States regard the practice as required out of a sense of legal
obligation.).
24
Copenhagen Process: Principles and Guidelines IX (The Copenhagen Process Principles and Guidelines are
intended to apply to international military operations in the context of non-international armed conflicts and peace
operations; they are not intended to address international armed conflicts;).
25
GWS art. 3 (requiring that [p]ersons taking no active part in the hostilities, including members of armed forces
who have laid down their arms and those placed hors de combat by sickness, wounds, detention, or any other cause,
shall in all circumstances be treated humanely); GWS-SEA art. 3 (same); GPW art. 3 (same); GC art. 3 (same).
26
42 U.S.C. 2000dd (No individual in the custody or under the physical control of the United States Government,
regardless of nationality or physical location, shall be subject to cruel, inhuman, or degrading treatment or
punishment.).
27
See, e.g., Executive Order 13491, Ensuring Lawful Interrogations, 74 FEDERAL REGISTER 4893, 4894 (Jan. 22,
2009) (Consistent with the requirements of the Federal torture statute, 18 U.S.C. 23402340A, section 1003 of the
Detainee Treatment Act of 2005, 42 U.S.C. 2000dd, the Convention Against Torture, Common Article 3, and other
laws regulating the treatment and interrogation of individuals detained in any armed conflict, such persons shall in
all circumstances be treated humanely and shall not be subjected to violence to life and person (including murder of
all kinds, mutilation, cruel treatment, and torture), nor to outrages upon personal dignity (including humiliating and
degrading treatment), whenever such individuals are in the custody or under the effective control of an officer,
employee, or other agent of the United States Government or detained within a facility owned, operated, or
controlled by a department or agency of the United States.); George W. Bush, Memorandum: Humane Treatment
of Taliban and al Qaeda Detainees 5 (Feb. 7, 2002) (I hereby reaffirm the order previously issued by the
Secretary of Defense to the United States Armed Forces requiring that the detainees be treated humanely and, to the
extent appropriate and consistent with military necessity, in a manner consistent with the principles of Geneva.).
28
For example, DOD DIRECTIVE 2310.01E, DoD Detainee Program, 3b (Aug. 19, 2014) (All detainees will be
treated humanely and with respect for their dignity, in accordance with applicable U.S. law and policy and the law
of war. The humane treatment requirements in this section apply during all military operations, however
characterized.); DOD DIRECTIVE 2310.01E, The Department of Defense Detainee Program, 4.1 (Sept. 5, 2006)
(All detainees shall be treated humanely and in accordance with U.S. law, the law of war, and applicable U.S.
policy.); 1997 MULTI-SERVICE DETENTION REGULATION 1-5.b (All prisoners will receive humane treatment
without regard to race, nationality, religion, political opinion, sex, or other criteria.).
29
See GWS art. 3 (prohibiting with respect to persons taking no active part in the hostilities violence to life and
person, in particular murder of all kinds, mutilation, cruel treatment and torture); GWS-SEA art. 3 (same); GPW art.
492
8.2.2 Protection Against Humiliating or Degrading Treatment. Detainees must be
protected against outrages upon personal dignity, in particular, humiliating and degrading
treatment. 30
3 (same); GC art. 3 (same). Consider AP I art. 75(2)(a) (prohibiting with respect to persons who are in the power of
a Party to the conflict [v]iolence to the life, health, or physical or mental well-being of persons, in particular: (i)
Murder; (ii) Torture of all kinds, whether physical or mental; (iii) Corporal punishment; and (iv) [Mutilation];)
(brackets in original); AP II art. 4(2) (prohibiting with respect to persons who do not take a direct part or who have
ceased to take part in hostilities [v]iolence to the life, health and physical or mental well-being of persons, in
particular murder as well as cruel treatment such as torture, mutilation or any form of corporal punishment;).
30
See GWS art. 3 (prohibiting with respect to persons taking no active part in the hostilities outrages upon personal
dignity, in particular, humiliating and degrading treatment;); GWS-SEA art. 3 (same); GPW art. 3 (same); GC art. 3
(same).
31
Consider AP I art. 75(2)(b) (prohibiting with respect to persons who are in the power of a Party to the conflict
[o]utrages upon personal dignity, in particular humiliating and degrading treatment, enforced prostitution and any
form of indecent assault); AP II art. 4(2)(e) (prohibiting [o]utrages upon personal dignity, in particular humiliating
and degrading treatment, rape, enforced prostitution and any form of indecent assault;). Compare 9.5.1 (Respect
for Their Persons and Honor); 10.5.1.2 (Protection for Women Against Rape or Other Indecent Assault).
32
BLACKS LAW DICTIONARY (9th ed., 2009) (indecent assault. See sexual assault (2) under assault.).
33
DOD DIRECTIVE 2310.01E, DoD Detainee Program, 3b(2) (Aug. 19, 2014) (All detainees will be respected as
human beings . They will be protected against public curiosity, .); DOD DIRECTIVE 2310.01E, The
Department of Defense Detainee Program, E4.1.1.3 (Sept. 5, 2006) (All detainees will be respected as human
beings. They will be protected against public curiosity .); Chairmans Commentary to the Copenhagen
Process: Principles and Guidelines, 2.3 (Furthermore, humane treatment implies that detainees will be protected
from insults and public curiosity.).
34
Compare 9.5.3 (Protection Against Insults and Public Curiosity).
35
For example, 1997 MULTI-SERVICE DETENTION REGULATION 1-5.d (Photographing, filming, and video taping
of individual EPW, CI and RP for other than internal Internment Facility administration or
intelligence/counterintelligence purposes is strictly prohibited. No group, wide area or aerial photographs of EPW,
CI and RP or facilities will be taken unless approved by the senior Military Police officer in the Internment Facility
commanders chain of command.).
493
8.2.3 Prohibition Against Biological or Medical Experiments. Medical or biological
experiments on detainees are prohibited. 36
8.2.4 Threats to Commit Inhumane Treatment. Threats to commit the unlawful acts
described above (i.e., violence against detainees, or humiliating or degrading treatment, or
biological or medical experiments) are also prohibited. 37 This prohibition may be understood to
arise separately (i.e., as a distinct prohibition against certain threats), or it may be understood to
result when such threats themselves constitute a form of torture or other abuse. 38
8.2.5 Duty to Protect Detainees. Detainees should be protected not only against unlawful
acts by agents of the Detaining Power, but also against unlawful acts from others, including other
detainees or the civilian population. 39
8.2.6 No Adverse Distinction. Detainees shall be treated humanely without any adverse
distinction founded on race, color, religion or faith, sex, birth or wealth, national or social origin,
political or other opinion, or any other similar criteria. 40
36
See Chairmans Commentary to the Copenhagen Process: Principles and Guidelines, 2.1 ([The principle
requiring humane treatment of detainees] also incorporates the prohibition against torture and other forms of cruel,
inhuman or degrading treatment or punishment, the prohibition against corporal and collective punishment and
medical experiments; and includes threats to commit the foregoing acts.). Compare 9.5.2.4 (No Physical
Mutilation or Medical, Scientific, or Biological Experiments); 10.5.1.1 (Measures of Physical Suffering,
Extermination, or Other Brutality).
37
Consider AP I art. 75(2)(e) (prohibiting with respect to persons who are in the power of a Party to the conflict
[t]hreats to commit any of the foregoing acts, which include (a) Violence to the life, health, or physical or mental
well-being of persons, in particular: (i) Murder; (ii) Torture of all kinds, whether physical or mental; (iii) Corporal
punishment; and (iv) [Mutilation]; (b) Outrages upon personal dignity, in particular humiliating and degrading
treatment, enforced prostitution and any form of indecent assault;); AP II art. 4(2)(h) (prohibiting with respect to
persons who do not take a direct part or who have ceased to take part in hostilities [t]hreats to commit any of the
foregoing acts, which include (a) violence to the life, health and physical or mental well-being of persons, in
particular murder as well as cruel treatment such as torture, mutilation or any form of corporal punishment and (b)
outrages upon personal dignity, in particular humiliating and degrading treatment, rape, enforced prostitution and
any form of indecent assault).
38
See, e.g., 18 U.S.C. 2340 (defining torture to include severe mental pain or suffering caused by or resulting
from (A) the intentional infliction or threatened infliction of severe physical pain or suffering; (B) the
administration or application, or threatened administration or application, of mind-altering substances or other
procedures calculated to disrupt profoundly the senses or the personality; (C) the threat of imminent death; or (D)
the threat that another person will imminently be subjected to death, severe physical pain or suffering, or the
administration or application of mind-altering substances or other procedures calculated to disrupt profoundly the
senses or personality;) (emphasis added).
39
Compare 9.5.2 (Protection Against Acts of Violence or Intimidation).
40
GWS art. 3 (Persons taking no active part in the hostilities, including members of armed forces who have laid
down their arms and those placed hors de combat by sickness, wounds, detention, or any other cause, shall in all
circumstances be treated humanely, without any adverse distinction founded on race, colour, religion or faith, sex,
birth or wealth, or any other similar criteria.); GWS-SEA art. 3 (same); GPW art. 3 (same); GC art. 3 (same).
Consider AP I art. 75(1) (In so far as they are affected by a situation referred to in Article 1 of this Protocol,
persons who are in the power of a Party to the conflict and who do not benefit from more favourable treatment under
the Conventions or under this Protocol shall be treated humanely in all circumstances and shall enjoy, as a
minimum, the protection provided by this Article without any adverse distinction based upon race, colour, sex,
language, religion or belief, political or other opinion, national or social origin, wealth, birth or other status, or on
494
Special consideration for more vulnerable categories of detainees is consistent with the
requirement that detainees must be humanely treated without adverse distinction. 41
Distinction based on the above criteria may also be made so long as it is not adverse and
it is made to advance legitimate interests, such as maintaining order in the camp. 42
8.3.1 Searches. Although detainees must always be treated humanely, detainees and their
property may be searched and secured, when necessary for security reasons and intelligence
purposes. 43
The dignity and honor of the detainee being searched should be protected to the greatest
degree possible under the circumstances. 44 The person conducting the search should avoid doing
or saying anything likely to be regarded as indecent. In some circumstances, it may be
appropriate for a witness to observe the search so as to protect both the person being searched
from abuse and the person conducting the search from unfounded accusations of abuse.
8.3.2 Search of Detainee Property. Items in the possession of detainees may be removed
and searched for security and intelligence purposes. 45
8.3.3 Securing Detainees With Handcuffs and Other Security Devices. When necessary
for security reasons, detainees may be secured temporarily with handcuffs, flex cuffs, blindfolds,
or other security devices. 46
any other similar criteria.); AP II art. 2(1) (This Protocol shall be applied without any adverse distinction founded
on race, colour, sex, language, religion or belief, political or other opinion, national or social origin, wealth, birth or
other status, or on any other similar criteria (hereinafter referred to as adverse distinction) to all persons affected by
an armed conflict as defined in Article 1.).
41
See also Chairmans Commentary to the Copenhagen Process: Principles and Guidelines, 2.4 (The principle
of humane treatment of all persons requires that special consideration be given to the treatment of detainees who
may be vulnerable in this context, such as women, children, the aged and those with disabilities. Such special
consideration is consistent with the requirement that detainees should be humanely treated without adverse
distinction.).
42
Compare 7.5.1 (Humane Treatment of the Wounded, Sick, and Shipwrecked Without Adverse Distinction);
9.5.5 (No Adverse Distinction Based on Race, Nationality, Religion, or Political Belief); 10.5.5 (No Adverse
Distinction Based on Race, Religion, or Political Opinion).
43
Compare 9.6 (Security Measures With Respect to POWs).
44
Refer to 10.5 (Humane Treatment and Other Basic Protections for Protected Persons).
45
Refer to 10.18.2 (Articles of Personal or Sentimental Value).
46
See also Copenhagen Process: Principles and Guidelines, 2.2 (Sensory deprivation of persons who are
detained may in some circumstances amount to ill-treatment if used as a form of punishment or to inflict suffering.
However, sensory deprivation may not in itself amount to ill-treatment as such if the purpose is to ensure the safety
495
8.3.4 Use of Force to Maintain Order and to Prevent Escape. Physical force is not to be
used against a detained person except in circumstances where such force is necessary and
proportionate. 47
As with POWs, the use of weapons against detainees, especially against those who are
escaping or attempting to escape, shall constitute an extreme measure, which shall always be
preceded by warnings appropriate to the circumstances. 48 For example, detainees should not be
fired upon if they are apprehended within the camp limits while making preparations to escape,
and there is no risk of escape or harm to anyone.
If the use of deadly force is warranted and authorized against detainees, there is no legal
requirement to employ non-lethal weapons before resort to deadly force. 50
8.4 INTERROGATION
The law of war does not prohibit interrogation of detainees, but interrogation must be
conducted in accordance with the requirements for humane treatment.
of the detainee or of others. For example, using earmuffs during transportation to protect a detainees hearing will
not amount to ill-treatment. Similarly, sensory deprivation undertaken as a reasonable security measure such as
blindfolding temporarily a detainee to protect the identity of another detainee or for reasons of operational safety
will not amount to ill-treatment.). Compare 9.6.2 (Securing POWs With Handcuffs and Other Security Devices).
47
See Copenhagen Process: Principles and Guidelines, 6 (Physical force is not to be used against a detained
person except in circumstances where such force is necessary and proportionate.).
48
Compare 9.22.6 (Use of Force to Maintain Order and to Prevent Escape).
49
Refer to 6.16.2 (Prohibition on Use of Riot Control Agents as a Method of Warfare).
50
Refer to 6.5.10.5 (No Requirement to Use Non-Lethal Weapons Before Using Lethal Weapons Where Deadly
Force Is Warranted).
51
Refer to 8.2 (Humane Treatment of Detainees).
52
For example, DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY FIELD MANUAL 34-52, Intelligence Interrogation, 1-8 (Sept. 28, 1992)
(Experience indicates that the use of prohibited techniques is not necessary to gain the cooperation of interrogation
sources. Use of torture and other illegal methods is a poor technique that yields unreliable results, may damage
subsequent collection efforts and can induce the source to say what he thinks the interrogator wants to hear.
Revelation of use of torture by US personnel will bring discredit upon the US and its armed forces while
undermining domestic and international support for the war effort. It also may place US and allied personnel in
enemy hands at a greater risk of abuse by their captors.).
496
8.4.2 Additional U.S. Law and Policy on Interrogation. U.S. law and policy impose
additional requirements on the interrogation of detainees.
Detainees shall be provided with adequate food, drinking water, and clothing.
8.5.1 Food for Detainees. Daily food rations for detainees shall be sufficient in quantity,
quality, and variety to keep detainees in a good state of health or in any event no worse than that
afforded the local civilian population. 55
8.5.1.1 Accounting for the Customary Diet. DoD practice has been to take
account of the customary diet of the internees. 56 For example, the detainees cultural and
religious requirements have been considered in determining and ensuring the appropriate diet.
Detainees shall be afforded, to the same extent as the local civilian population, safeguards
as regards health and hygiene and protection against the rigors of the climate and the dangers of
the armed conflict. 59
53
10 U.S.C. 801 note (No person in the custody or under the effective control of the Department of Defense or
under detention in a Department of Defense facility shall be subject to any treatment or technique of interrogation
not authorized by and listed in the United States Army Field Manual on Intelligence Interrogation.).
54
For example, DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY FIELD MANUAL 2-22.3, Human Intelligence Collector Operations (Sept.
6, 2006); DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY FIELD MANUAL 34-52, Intelligence Interrogation (Sept. 28, 1992);
DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY FIELD MANUAL 34-52, Intelligence Interrogation (May 8, 1987).
55
Consider AP II art. 5(1)(b) (The persons referred to in this paragraph shall, to the same extent as the local
civilian population, be provided with food and drinking water and be afforded safeguards as regards health and
hygiene and protection against the rigours of the climate and the dangers of the armed conflict;). Compare 9.13.1
(Food for POWs); 10.13.1 (Food for Internees).
56
Compare 9.13.1.1 (Accounting for the Habitual Diet); 10.13.1.1 (Accounting for the Customary Diet).
57
Compare 9.13.2 (Drinking Water); 10.13.2 (Drinking Water).
58
Compare 9.13.4 (Clothing for POWs); 10.13.4 (Clothing of Internees).
497
8.6.1 Safeguards as Regards Health and Hygiene. The obligation to afford safeguards as
regards health and hygiene would include taking sanitary measures necessary to ensure the
cleanliness and healthfulness of camps and to prevent epidemics. For example, the DoD practice
has been to give detainees medical examinations upon arrival at an internment facility, disinfect
them, and provide them with any necessary inoculations. In addition, quarters should be kept
free from vermin, and detainees suffering from contagious diseases should be placed in
quarantine as needed. 60
8.6.2 Protection Against the Rigors of Climate. The obligation to afford protection
against the rigors of climate would include ensuring that detention facilities are adequately
heated, lighted, and protected against dampness. 61
8.6.3 Protection From the Dangers of Armed Conflict. Detention facilities shall not be
located close to the combat zone. 62
8.6.4 No Prohibition Against Detention Aboard Ships. Provided the above requirements
are met, there is no prohibition against the humane detention of persons on ships. 63 The GPW
generally requires that POWs be interned on premises located on land. 64
8.7.1 Gender and Family Segregation. Except when men and women of a family are
accommodated together, women shall be held in quarters separated from those of men and shall
be under the immediate supervision of women. 66
59
Consider AP II art. 5(1)(b) (The persons referred to in this paragraph shall, to the same extent as the local
civilian population, be provided with food and drinking water and be afforded safeguards as regards health and
hygiene and protection against the rigours of the climate and the dangers of the armed conflict;).
60
Compare 9.11.5.1 (Necessary Sanitary Measures).
61
Compare 10.11.3 (Conditions of Buildings and Quarters).
62
Consider AP II art. 5(2)(c) (Places of internment and detention shall not be located close to the combat zone.).
Compare 9.11.4.1 (Avoidance of the Combat Zone); 10.11.1.1 (Avoidance of Particularly Dangerous Areas).
63
For example, Charlie Savage, U.S. Tests New Approach to Terrorism Cases on Somali Suspect, THE NEW YORK
TIMES, Jul. 6, 2011 (In interrogating a Somali man for months aboard a Navy ship before taking him to New York
this week for a civilian trial on terrorism charges, the Obama administration is trying out a new approach for dealing
with foreign terrorism suspects. The administration notified the International Committee of the Red Cross of his
capture, and a Red Cross representative flew out to the ship and met with him. That visit came about two months
after his capture, during a four-day break between his interrogation for intelligence purposes and separate
questioning for law-enforcement purposes.).
64
Refer to 9.11.3.1 (Location on Land).
65
Compare 9.12 (Segregation of POWs); 10.10 (Segregation of Internees).
498
8.8 MEDICAL ATTENTION
Wounded and sick detainees shall be cared for. 67 They should receive the medical care
and attention required by their condition. 68 Medical or biological experiments on detainees are
prohibited. 69
8.8.1 Consent. Medical care should, wherever possible, be undertaken with the consent
of the wounded or sick detainee. 70 However, medical actions to preserve the health of the
detainee may be justified even where the detainee refuses to provide consent. 71 For example, it
is not prohibited to administer vaccinations to detainees in order to preserve their health and to
prevent epidemics. Similarly, it is not prohibited to order detainees to be fed, if they undertake a
hunger strike. 72
8.8.2 Blood Donation and Skin Grafting. Detainees may voluntarily consent to give
blood for transfusion or skin for grafting for therapeutic purposes; such procedures should take
66
Consider AP II art. 5(2) (Except when men and women of a family are accommodated together, women shall be
held in quarters separated from those of men and shall be under the immediate supervision of women;); AP I art.
75(5) (Women whose liberty has been restricted for reasons related to the armed conflict shall be held in quarters
separated from mens quarters. They shall be under the immediate supervision of women. Nevertheless, in cases
where families are detained or interned, they shall, whenever possible, be held in the same place and accommodated
as family units.).
67
GWS art. 3 (The wounded and sick shall be collected and cared for.); GWS-SEA art. 3 (same); GPW art. 3
(same); GC art. 3 (same). Compare 7.5 (Humane Treatment and Care of Enemy Military Wounded, Sick, and
Shipwrecked in the Power of a Party to the Conflict); 7.16 (Protection of Civilians Who Are Wounded, Sick,
Infirm, or Expectant Mothers).
68
See, e.g., Copenhagen Process: Principles and Guidelines 9 (Wounded and sick detainees are to receive the
medical care and attention required by their condition.).
69
Refer to 8.2.3 (Prohibition Against Biological or Medical Experiments).
70
For example, DOD INSTRUCTION 2310.08E, Medical Program Support for Detainee Operations, 4.7 (Jun. 6,
2006) (In general, health care will be provided with the consent of the detainee. To the extent practicable,
standards and procedures for obtaining consent will be consistent with those applicable to consent from other
patients. Standard exceptions for lifesaving emergency medical care provided to a patient incapable of providing
consent or for care necessary to protect public health, such as to prevent the spread of communicable diseases, shall
apply.).
71
See Chairmans Commentary to the Copenhagen Process: Principles and Guidelines, 9.5 (Medical assistance
should, wherever possible, be undertaken with the consent of the wounded or sick detainee. However, medical
actions to preserve the health of the detainee may be justified even where the detainee refuses to provide consent.).
Compare 7.5.2.4 (Compulsory Medical Treatment).
72
For example, DOD INSTRUCTION 2310.08E, Medical Program Support for Detainee Operations, 4.7.1 (Jun. 6,
2006) (In the case of a hunger strike, attempted suicide, or other attempted serious self-harm, medical treatment or
intervention may be directed without the consent of the detainee to prevent death or serious harm. Such action must
be based on a medical determination that immediate treatment or intervention is necessary to prevent death or
serious harm, and, in addition, must be approved by the commanding officer of the detention facility or other
designated senior officer responsible for detainee operations.).
499
place under conditions consistent with generally accepted medical standards and controls
designed for the benefit of both the donor and the recipient. 73
Detention facility commanders may establish rules for detainees in the detention facility
and conduct disciplinary proceedings, subject to the requirements for humane treatment. 74
8.10.2 Correspondence. Detainees shall be allowed to send and receive letters and cards,
the number of which may be limited by a competent authority if it deems necessary. 78
73
Consider AP I art. 11 (3. Exceptions to the prohibition in paragraph 2 (c) [against removal of tissue or organs for
transplantation except where these acts are justified] may be made only in the case of donations of blood for
transfusion or of skin for grafting, provided that they are given voluntarily and without any coercion or inducement,
and then only for therapeutic purposes, under conditions consistent with generally accepted medical standards and
controls designed for the benefit of both the donor and the recipient.).
74
Compare 9.27 (Disciplinary Proceedings and Punishment); 10.28 (Disciplinary Proceedings and Punishment).
75
See Copenhagen Process: Principles and Guidelines 14 (Detainees or their representatives are to be permitted
to submit, without reprisal, oral or written complaints regarding their treatment or conditions of detention. All
complaints are to be reviewed and, if based on credible information, be investigated by the detaining authority.).
Compare 9.23.1 (POW Right to Make Requests and Complaints); 10.21.1 (Internee Right to Present Petitions
and Complaints).
76
See also Chairmans Commentary to the Copenhagen Process: Principles and Guidelines, 14.2 (The
investigation of complaints permits the detaining authority to verify the validity of the complaint and, if verified, to
rectify the situation giving rise to the complaint. Investigatory procedures and a practice of timely and effective
investigations of credible complaints also helps ensure that allegations regarding treatment or conditions of
detention that may arise years after the detention can be addressed. An independent and impartial authority should
carry out such investigations, and the results of an investigation should be reported back to the complainant and the
detaining authority. The investigator may be members of the military and should make recommendations based on
the investigation it has carried out.).
77
Consider AP II art. 5(1)(c) (They shall be allowed to receive individual or collective relief;).
500
8.10.3 Communication With Family. DoD practice has been, where practicable, to grant
detainees the means to communicate with family members (e.g., exchange of letters, phone calls,
and video teleconferences with family, family visits). 79
8.10.4 ICRC Access to Detainees. An impartial humanitarian body, such as the ICRC,
may offer its services to the parties to the conflict. 80
All departments and agencies of the Federal Government shall provide the International
Committee of the Red Cross with notification of, and timely access to, any individual detained in
any armed conflict in the custody or under the effective control of an officer, employee, or other
agent of the U.S. Government or detained within a facility owned, operated, or controlled by a
department or agency of the U.S. Government, consistent with Department of Defense
regulations and policies. 81
Detainees shall be granted free exercise of religion, consistent with the requirements of
detention. 82 Detainees religious practices shall be respected. 83 They shall be allowed to
78
Consider AP II art. 5(2)(b) (They shall be allowed to send and receive letters and cards, the number of which
may be limited by competent authority if it deems necessary;). Compare 9.20.2 (POW Correspondence Rights
and Quota); 10.23.2 (Internees Correspondence Rights and Quota).
79
For example, DOD DIRECTIVE 2310.01E, DoD Detainee Program, 3b(1) (Aug. 19, 2014) (Humane treatment
includes: (b) appropriate contacts with the outside world (including, where practicable, exchange of letters,
phone calls, and video teleconferences with immediate family or next of kin, as well as family visits).). Compare
9.20.2.3 (More Rapid Means of Correspondence in Appropriate Cases); 10.23.2.3 (More Rapid Means of
Correspondence in Appropriate Cases).
80
GWS art. 3 (An impartial humanitarian body, such as the International Committee of the Red Cross, may offer
its services to the Parties to the conflict); GWS-SEA art. 3 (same); GPW art. 3 (same); GC art. 3 (same).
81
Executive Order 13491, Ensuring Lawful Interrogations, 4(b), 74 FEDERAL REGISTER 4893, 4894 (Jan. 22, 2009)
(All departments and agencies of the Federal Government shall provide the International Committee of the Red
Cross with notification of, and timely access to, any individual detained in any armed conflict in the custody or
under the effective control of an officer, employee, or other agent of the United States Government or detained
within a facility owned, operated, or controlled by a department or agency of the United States Government,
consistent with Department of Defense regulations and policies.).
82
For example, DOD DIRECTIVE 2310.01E, DoD Detainee Program, 3b (Aug. 19, 2014) (All detainees will be
treated humanely and with respect for their dignity, in accordance with applicable U.S. law and policy and the law
of war. The humane treatment requirements in this section apply during all military operations, however
characterized. (1) Humane treatment includes: (e) Free exercise of religion, consistent with the requirements of
detention.); DOD DIRECTIVE 2310.01E, The Department of Defense Detainee Program, E4.1.1 (Sept. 5, 2006)
(All persons captured, detained, interned, or otherwise in the control of DoD personnel during the course of
military operations will be given humane care and treatment from the moment they fall into the hands of DoD
personnel until release, transfer out of DoD control, or repatriation, including: E4.1.1.2. Free exercise of religion,
consistent with the requirements of detention;). Compare 9.15 (Religious Exercise by POWs); 10.15 (Religious
Exercise by Internees).
83
Consider AP I art. 75(1) (Each Party shall respect the person, honour, convictions and religious practices of all
such persons.).
501
practice their religion and, if requested and appropriate, to receive spiritual assistance from
persons, such as chaplains, performing religious functions. 84
DoD practice has been for detainees to be provided religious materials of their faith (e.g.,
copies of religious texts) as well as time and other accommodations for religious exercise. 85
Access to additional facilities for intellectual, physical, and recreational activities may be
made contingent on compliance with camp rules. 87 Education programs may be offered to
discourage violent extremism. 88
84
Consider AP II art. 5(1)(d) (They shall be allowed to practise their religion and, if requested and appropriate, to
receive spiritual assistance from persons, such as chaplains, performing religious functions;).
85
For example, Admiral Patrick Walsh et al., Department of Defense, Review of Department Compliance with
Presidents Executive Order on Detainee Conditions of Confinement, 25 (2009) (All detainees [at Guantanamo] are
provided one Koran in the language of their choice, in addition to an Arabic Koran and TafSeer. All detainees are
provided prayer beads, cap, rug, and current prayer schedule. These items are retained by all detainees regardless of
disciplinary status, unless deliberately used for self-harm or as a weapon. Guards observe silence during all
prayer times. A monthly prayer schedule is published and call to prayer is sounded five times daily in all camps.
Prayer is led within each camp and block by a detainee-selected prayer leader. In Camps 2, 3, 5, 6, and Echo group
prayer is typically conducted by detainees from their individual cells. When this occurs, the food tray access doors
of the prayer leaders are lowered to facilitate call to prayer on each block/tier. At times when detainees are engaged
in group or communal activities and prayer call sounds, prayer is led by prayer leaders in person. In Camps 4 and
Iguana, group prayer is conducted in communal areas of the camps. At Camp 7, prayer is conducted individually in
their cells. Guard movement and activity is limited to only those actions required to maintain security. Visual
signals are placed on each block/tier signifying quiet time. Each detainee cell and common area includes an arrow
pointing towards Mecca.).
86
For example, DOD DIRECTIVE 2310.01E, DoD Detainee Program, 3b(1) (Aug. 19, 2014) (Humane treatment
includes: (b) Reasonable access to the open air, reasonable educational and intellectual activities, .);
Chairmans Commentary to the Copenhagen Process: Principles and Guidelines, 9.3 (Health and hygiene factors
that need to be addressed include ensuring that detainees are permitted to engage in exercise regimes, including
in the open air, .). Compare 9.16 (Intellectual, Physical, and Recreational Activities); 10.16 (Intellectual,
Physical, and Recreational Activities).
87
For example, Admiral Patrick Walsh et al., Department of Defense, Review of Department Compliance with
Presidents Executive Order on Detainee Conditions of Confinement, 11 (2009) (Camp 4 [at Guantanamo], first
occupied in February 2003, offers communal living, numerous recreation facilities, education and intellectual
stimulation programs, and houses detainees considered the most compliant with camp rules. Unlike other camps,
Camp 4 offers communal living in open-bay barracks with open access to fresh air in outdoor recreation and
communal facilities throughout the day. It includes additional access to large recreation areas equipped with a
basketball court, volleyball court, and soccer facility, during a specified four-hour period each day. Camp 4 has a
media center equipped with satellite television, bench seating, and a classroom used to teach literacy and art.).
88
For example, Charles A. Allen, Deputy General Counsel, Department of Defense, Alternatives to Prosecution for
War Crimes in the War on Terrorism, 17 TRANSNATIONAL LAW & CONTEMPORARY PROBLEMS 121, 137 (2008)
(For persons in detention in Iraq, MNF-I [Multi-National Force-Iraq] has a reintegration program to try to influence
detainees not to join or rejoin the insurgency, but rather to reintegrate peacefully into society. This effort focuses on
502
8.13 ADEQUATE WORKING CONDITIONS
If made to work, detainees shall have the benefit of working conditions and safeguards
similar to those enjoyed by the local civilian population. 89
8.13.1 Prohibition on Slavery. Slavery and the slave trade in all their forms are
prohibited. 90 For example, enforced prostitution is prohibited. 91
8.14.1 Informing of Reasons for Detention. Detainees shall be informed promptly of the
reasons for their detention in a language that they understand. 92
education. Detainees are provided access to moderate television, radio, and newspaper alternatives to extremist
messages. The reintegration program for adults includes instruction in reading, writing, and mathematics. The
program for juveniles includes both primary and secondary school instruction. In addition, detainees are offered
classes on democracy, the Iraqi constitution, and the Iraqi government.).
89
Consider AP II art. 5(1) (Persons deprived of their liberty for reasons related to an non-international armed
conflict shall, if made to work, have the benefit of working conditions and safeguards similar to those enjoyed by
the local civilian population.).
90
Consider AP II art. 4(2)(f) (prohibiting slavery and the slave trade in all their forms;).
91
Refer to 8.2.2.1 (Protection Against Rape, Enforced Prostitution, and Other Indecent Assault).
92
See Copenhagen Process: Principles and Guidelines, 7 (Persons detained are to be promptly informed of the
reasons for their detention in a language that they understand.). Consider AP I art. 75(3) (Any person arrested,
detained or interned for actions related to the armed conflict shall be informed promptly, in a language he
understands, of the reasons why these measures have been taken.).
93
ICRC AP COMMENTARY 876 (3072) (Promptly: unfortunately this expression is rather imprecise. [I]t is
difficult to determine a precise time limit, but ten days would seem the maximum period.).
94
See Chairmans Commentary to the Copenhagen Process: Principles and Guidelines 1.3 (A person may be
detained for a number of different reasons, including, posing a threat to the security of the military operation, for
participating in hostilities, for belonging to an enemy organised armed group, for his or her own protection, or if the
person is accused of committing a serious criminal offence.).
95
See also Chairmans Commentary to the Copenhagen Process: Principles and Guidelines, 7.1 (Informing the
detainee of the reasons for detention seeks to ensure that the detainee adequately understands the basis of detention,
and enables the detainees participation in subsequent review procedures from an informed position. To the fullest
extent feasible the reasons for detention should provide the detainee with information regarding the circumstances
that form the basis for detention. Operational necessities or resource constraints, such as force protection or the
availability of interpreters, may sometimes make it difficult to advise the detainee of the specific reasons for the
detention at the precise moment of detention. The term promptly is used to suggest that detainees should be
advised of the reasons for detention in a reasonable time, taking into account other essential tasks and resource
limitations that may affect the detaining authoritys ability to inform the detainee. When feasible, more specific
503
8.14.2 Review of Continued Detention for Security Reasons. DoD practice has been to
review periodically the detention of all persons not afforded POW status or treatment. 96 A
detainee who has been deprived of liberty for security reasons is to have, in addition to a prompt
initial review, the decision to detain reconsidered periodically by an impartial and objective
authority that is authorized to determine the lawfulness and appropriateness of continued
detention. 97
The authority conducting the review is not necessarily outside the military, and often
would be a military commander. 98
There is no fixed requirement regarding how often the review must occur, and the period
between reviews will depend on a variety of factors, including: (1) operational necessities or
resource constraints, such as force protection, the availability of interpreters, or large numbers of
detainees; (2) the thoroughness of the review process; and (3) whether there is a true prospect
that the legal or factual predicates justifying detention have changed. 99
information should be provided to the detainee so that he or she may participate in subsequent review procedures
from an informed position.).
96
For example, DOD DIRECTIVE 2310.01E, DoD Detainee Program, 3i (Aug. 19, 2014) (DoD personnel will
review periodically the detention of all individuals in DoD custody or control who do not receive the protections
afforded POWs.); DOD DIRECTIVE 2310.01E, The Department of Defense Detainee Program, 4.8 (Sept. 5, 2006)
(Detainees under DoD control who do not enjoy prisoner of war protections under the law of war shall have the
basis for their detention reviewed periodically by a competent authority.).
97
See Copenhagen Process: Principles and Guidelines 12 (A detainee whose liberty has been deprived for
security reasons is to, in addition to a prompt initial review, have the decision to detain reconsidered periodically by
an impartial and objective authority that is authorised to determine the lawfulness and appropriateness of continued
detention.). Compare 10.9.2.3 (Reconsideration and Periodic Review); 10.9.3.1 (Internment or Assigned
Residence for Imperative Reasons of Security).
98
See also Chairmans Commentary to the Copenhagen Process: Principles and Guidelines 12.2 (The authority
conducting the review must be objective and impartial but not necessarily outside the military. Although there is no
requirement for the authority to be a judge or lawyer, he or she should be supported by a legal adviser. The
authority must have sufficient information available to make an assessment of the legality and propriety of
continued detention; and must consider both the legal and factual basis for detention. The authority must also be
able to evaluate the relevant information and make relevant conclusions such as whether the detainee continues to
constitute a threat to security. Furthermore, the authority must make decisions based on the circumstances of each
specific case; and each decision must be taken with respect to the individual involved. The authority must have
sufficient freedom to make a good faith judgment without any outside interference. In order for the review to be
effective it is necessary that the reviewing authority has the power to determine the lawfulness and appropriateness
of continued detention of the detainee.).
99
See also Chairmans Commentary to the Copenhagen Process: Principles and Guidelines 12.3 (Security
detainees are to have their continued detention reviewed periodically or, where practicable, when new information
becomes available. It is, however, difficult to provide a precise time limit to indicate when the decision to detain
should be reconsidered or further reviewed. Operational necessities or resource constraints, such as force protection,
the limited availability of interpreters or large case-loads of review sometimes make it difficult to reconsider the
decision to detain frequently or at short intervals. Reviews should, however, occur as often as necessary, generally
every six months. The length of time between reviews may also depend on the thoroughness of the review process
and on whether there is a true prospect that the legal or factual predicates justifying detention have changed. More
thorough reviews may require more resources and take place over longer intervals.).
504
8.14.3 Release When the Circumstances Justifying Detention Have Ceased to Exist.
Except in cases of arrest or detention for penal offenses, such persons shall be released with the
minimum delay possible and in any event as soon as the circumstances justifying the arrest,
detention, or internment have ceased to exist. 100
However, even after hostilities have ceased, other circumstances may warrant continued
detention of such persons. For example, persons who have participated in hostilities on behalf of
non-State armed groups might be detained pending law enforcement proceedings and, after a
conviction, pursuant to a lawful sentence. 104
100
Consider AP I art. 75(3) (Except in cases of arrest or detention for penal offences, such persons shall be released
with the minimum delay possible and in any event as soon as the circumstances justifying the arrest, detention or
internment have ceased to exist.). Compare 9.37 (Release and Repatriation After Hostilities); 10.9.5 (Release
As Soon As Reasons for Internment No Longer Exist).
101
See, e.g., Hamdi v. Rumsfeld, 542 U.S. 507, 521 (2004) (plurality) (we understand Congress grant of authority
[under the AUMF] for the use of necessary and appropriate force to include the authority to detain for the duration
of the relevant conflict, and our understanding is based on longstanding law-of-war principles.); Al-Bihani v.
Obama, 590 F.3d 866, 874 (2010) (rejecting the argument that Taliban fighters must be released because the conflict
had formally concluded as a principle that would make each successful campaign of a long war but a Pyrrhic
prelude to defeat and under which the victors would be commanded to constantly refresh the ranks of the fledgling
democracys most likely saboteurs.). Cf. Stewart v. Kahn, 78 U.S. 493, 507 (1870) (In the latter case, the [war]
power is not limited to victories in the field and the dispersion of the insurgent forces. It carries with it inherently
the power to guard against the immediate renewal of the conflict and to remedy the evils which have arisen from its
rise and progress.).
102
Compare 9.37 (Release and Repatriation After Hostilities).
103
For example, DOD DIRECTIVE 2310.01E, DoD Detainee Program, 3m(2) (Aug. 19, 2014) (Unprivileged
belligerents may be released or transferred while active hostilities are ongoing if a competent authority determines
that the threat the individual poses to the security of the United States can be mitigated by other lawful means. Such
mitigation may involve credible assurances that a receiving country will take appropriate steps to mitigate any threat
the detainee poses to the security of the United States and its interests, parole agreements by the detainee, or other
agreements with the government of the receiving State.).
104
Compare 9.37.4.3 (POWs Undergoing Criminal Proceedings for an Indictable Offense).
105
Consider AP II art. 5(4) (If it is decided to release persons deprived of their liberty, necessary measures to
ensure their safety shall be taken by those so deciding.).
106
See Chairmans Commentary to the Copenhagen Process: Principles and Guidelines 4.10 (Detaining
authorities are to ensure that necessary measures are taken to ensure the safety of released detainees. For example, a
505
The obligation to release detainees in a safe and orderly manner, as well as operational
necessities (e.g., force protection) and logistical constraints (e.g., the limited availability of
transport), may make it difficult to release a detainee at the precise moment that the
circumstances justifying detention cease. 107 Continued detention in order to facilitate a safe and
orderly release may be necessary. 108
8.14.4 Transfers of Detainees. Because the transfer of a detainee from U.S. custody to
another entity or State may implicate certain U.S. legal obligations or policies, detainees should
not be transferred to another State or entity without proper authorization. 109
detainee is not to be released in a location where the conditions are such that the detainee may be threatened or
attacked by hostile or malign elements upon release.).
107
See Chairmans Commentary to the Copenhagen Process: Principles and Guidelines 4.8 (It is difficult to
provide a precise time limit to indicate how soon a detainee should be released after the circumstances justifying
detention have ceased to exist. Operational necessities, such as force protection, the safety of a detainee, or the
limited availability of transport sometimes make it difficult to release a detainee at the precise moment that the
circumstances justifying detention cease.).
108
Compare 9.37.3 (Without Delay).
109
For example, DOD DIRECTIVE 2310.01E, DoD Detainee Program, 3m (Aug. 19, 2014) (No detainee will be
released, repatriated, or transferred out of DoD custody or control except in accordance with applicable law,
regulation, policy, and other issuances.); DOD DIRECTIVE 2310.01E, The Department of Defense Detainee
Program, 4.6 (Sept. 5, 2006) (No detainee shall be released or transferred from the care, custody, or control of a
DoD Component except in accordance with applicable law, regulation, policy, and other issuances.).
110
See, e.g., Munaf v. Geren, 553 U.S. 674, 702 (2008) (Indeed, the Solicitor General states that it is the policy of
the United States not to transfer an individual in circumstances where torture is likely to result.); PUBLIC LAW 105-
277, 2242(a) (Oct. 21, 1998), codified at 8 U.S.C. 1231 note (It shall be the policy of the United States not to
expel, extradite, or otherwise effect the involuntary return of any person to a country in which there are substantial
grounds for believing the person would be in danger of being subjected to torture, regardless of whether the person
is physically present in the United States.). One of the formal understandings of the United States made upon
ratification of the Convention Against Torture provided that the United States understands the phrase, where there
are substantial grounds for believing that he would be in danger of being subjected to torture, as used in article 3 of
the Convention, to mean if it is more likely than not that he would be tortured. United States, Statement on
Ratification of the Convention Against Torture and Other Cruel, Inhuman or Degrading Treatment or Punishment,
Dec. 10, 1984, Oct. 21, 1994, 1830 UNTS 320, 322.
506
8.15.1 Registration of Detainees. The detaining authority should register detainees
promptly. 111 Detainees should be registered within a reasonable time, taking into account other
essential tasks and resource limitations that may affect the detaining authoritys ability to register
detainees. 112
Registration of detainees assists in ensuring that all detainees can be accounted for and
that allegations of illegal detention can be addressed. 113 DoD practice has been to register
detainees with the National Detainee Reporting Center that is also used to account for the
detention of POWs under the GPW and protected persons under the GC. 114
8.15.2 Records of Detainee Property. DoD practice has been for property in the
possession of detainees to be inventoried, and for records of such property to be maintained in
order to maintain accountability of it (e.g., to prevent theft) and to ensure its lawful
disposition.115
111
See Chairmans Commentary to the Copenhagen Process: Principles and Guidelines 8 (Persons detained are
to be promptly registered by the detaining authority.). For example, DOD DIRECTIVE 2310.01E, DoD Detainee
Program, 3d (Aug. 19, 2014) (Detainees will be registered, and property in their possession will be inventoried.
Records of their detention and such property will be maintained according to applicable law, regulation, policy, and
other issuances. (1) DoD Components will maintain full accountability for all detainees under DoD control.
Detainees will be assigned an Internment Serial Number (ISN) normally within 14 days after their capture by, or
transfer to, the custody or control of DoD personnel, barring exceptional circumstances.); DOD DIRECTIVE
2310.01E, The Department of Defense Detainee Program, 4.4.1 (Sept. 5, 2006) (Detainees shall be assigned an
Internment Serial Number (ISN) as soon as possible after coming under DoD control, normally within 14 days of
capture. DoD Components shall maintain full accountability for all detainees under DoD control.).
112
See also Chairmans Commentary to the Copenhagen Process: Principles and Guidelines 8.3 (It is difficult to
provide a precise time limit to indicate when a detainee should be registered. Operational necessities or resource
constraints, such as force protection, or the limited availability of interpreters sometimes make it difficult to register
a detainee at the precise moment of detention. The term promptly is used to suggest that detainees should be
registered within a reasonable time, taking into account other essential tasks and resource limitations that may affect
the detaining authoritys ability to register detainees.).
113
See Chairmans Commentary to the Copenhagen Process: Principles and Guidelines 8.1 (Registration of
detainees assists in ensuring that all detainees can be accounted for and that allegations of (illegal) detention can be
addressed.).
114
For example, Declaration of Vice Admiral Robert S. Harward, 8 (Dec. 17, 2010), attached to Hamidullah v.
Gates, Response to Order to Show Cause and Motion to Dismiss, Civil Action No. 10-CV-758 (D.D.C. Dec. 17,
2010) (DoD has registered individuals held under its control at the DFIP with the National Detainee Reporting
Center (NDRC) -- which accounts for persons who receive Internment Serial Numbers issued by DoD while in
DoDs custody -- and with the International Committee of the Red Cross (ICRC).). Compare 9.31.4 (U.S.
Practice in Reporting to the ICRC Central Tracing Agency); 10.31.4 (U.S. Practice in Reporting to the ICRC
Central Tracing Agency).
115
Compare 9.7.4 (Money and Articles of Value); 10.19.1 (Money and Valuables in the Internees Possession).
507
8.16 CRIMINAL PROCEDURE AND PUNISHMENT
The passing of sentences and the carrying out of executions without previous judgment
pronounced by a regularly constituted court affording all the judicial guarantees that are
recognized as indispensable by civilized peoples are prohibited. 116
The specific rules addressed in this section may be understood as examples of such
guarantees. 117
8.16.1 No Private Rights Created by This Section in Particular. As with all other sections
of this manual, Section 8.16 does not create any private rights. 118 The competent prosecuting
authorities shall ensure that the requirements reflected in this section are met.
116
See GWS art. 3 (prohibiting with respect to persons taking no active part in the hostilities the passing of
sentences and the carrying out of executions without previous judgment pronounced by a regularly constituted court
affording all the judicial guarantees which are recognized as indispensable by civilized peoples.); GWS-SEA art. 3
(same); GPW art. 3 (same); GC art. 3 (same). Consider AP I art. 75(4) (No sentence may be passed and no penalty
may be executed on a person found guilty of a penal offence related to the armed conflict except pursuant to a
conviction pronounced by an impartial and regularly constituted court respecting the generally recognized principles
of regular judicial procedure, which include the following:); AP II art. 6(2) (No sentence shall be passed and no
penalty shall be executed on a person found guilty of an offence except pursuant to a conviction pronounced by a
court offering the essential guarantees of independence and impartiality.).
117
ICRC AP COMMENTARY 878 (3084) (Article 3 [of the 1949 Geneva Conventions] relies on the judicial
guarantees which are recognized as indispensable by civilized peoples, while Article 75 [of AP I] rightly spells out
these guarantees. Thus this article, and to an even greater extent, Article 6 of Protocol II (Penal prosecutions), gives
valuable indications to help explain the terms of Article 3 on guarantees.).
118
Refer to 1.1.1 (Purpose).
119
Consider AP I art. 75(4)(a) (No one shall be convicted of an offence except on the basis of individual penal
responsibility;); AP II art. 6(2)(b) (No one shall be convicted of an offence except on the basis of individual penal
responsibility;).
120
Refer to 9.26.6 (Prohibited Penalties); 10.5.3.2 (Collective Penalties and Measures of Intimidation or
Terrorism); 11.6.2.2 (Prohibition Against General Penalties in Occupied Territory); 17.6.7 (Prohibition on
Collective Punishment).
121
GC COMMENTARY 225 (This paragraph then lays a prohibition on collective penalties. This does not refer to
punishments inflicted under penal law, i.e. sentences pronounced by a court after due process of law, but penalties of
any kind inflicted on persons or entire groups of persons, in defiance of the most elementary principles of humanity,
for acts that these persons have not committed.).
508
conspiracy, joint criminal enterprise, and other theories of secondary liability are not prohibited
by this rule. 122
8.16.2.4 Limitations on the Death Penalty. The death penalty shall not be
pronounced on persons who were under the age of eighteen years at the time of the offense and
shall not be carried out on pregnant women or mothers of young children. 125
8.16.3 Rights of Defense and Trial Procedure. The procedure shall provide for an
accused to be informed without delay of the particulars of the notice alleged against him or her
and shall afford the accused before and during his or her trial all necessary rights and means of
defense. 126
122
Refer to 18.23 (Theories of Individual Criminal Liability).
123
Consider AP I art. 75(4)(c) (No one shall be accused or convicted of a criminal offence on account of any act or
omission which did not constitute a criminal offence under the national or international law to which he was subject
at the time when it was committed; nor shall a heavier penalty be imposed than that which was applicable at the time
when the criminal offence was committed; if, after the commission of the offence, provision is made by law for the
imposition of a lighter penalty, the offender shall benefit thereby;); AP II art. 6(2)(c) (No one shall be accused or
convicted of a criminal offence on account of any act or omission which did not constitute a criminal offence under
the national or international law to which he was subject at the time when it was committed; nor shall a heavier
penalty be imposed than that which was applicable at the time when the criminal offence was committed; if, after
the commission of the offence, provision is made by law for the imposition of a lighter penalty, the offender shall
benefit thereby;).
124
Consider AP I art. 75(4)(h) (No one shall be prosecuted or punished by the same Party for an offence in respect
of which a final judgement acquitting or convicting that person has been previously pronounced under the same law
and judicial procedure;).
125
Consider AP II art. 6(4) (The death penalty shall not be pronounced on persons who were under the age of
eighteen years at the time of the offence and shall not be carried out on pregnant women or mothers of young
chidren [sic].).
126
Consider AP I art. 75(4)(a) (The procedure shall provide for an accused to be informed without delay of the
particulars of the offence alleged against him and shall afford the accused before and during his trial all necessary
rights and means of defence;); AP II art. 6(2)(a) (The procedure shall provide for an accused to be informed
without delay of the particulars of the offence alleged against him and shall afford the accused before and during his
trial all necessary rights and means of defence;).
509
8.16.3.1 Presumption of Innocence. Anyone charged with an offense is presumed
innocent until proved guilty according to law. 127
8.16.3.2 Right to Trial in Presence. Anyone charged with an offense shall have
the right to be tried in his or her presence. 128
127
Consider AP I art. 75(4)(d) (Anyone charged with an offence is presumed innocent until proved guilty
according to law;); AP II art. 6(2)(d) (Anyone charged with an offence is presumed innocent until proved guilty
according to law;).
128
Consider AP I art. 75(4)(e) (Anyone charged with an offence shall have the right to be tried in his presence;);
AP II art. 6(2)(e) (Anyone charged with an offence shall have the right to be tried in his presence;).
129
Consider AP I art. 75(4)(f) (No one shall be compelled to testify against himself or to confess guilt;); AP II art.
6(2)(f) (No one shall be compelled to testify against himself or to confess guilt.).
130
Consider AP I art. 75(4)(g) (Anyone charged with an offence shall have the right to examine, or have examined,
the witnesses against him and to obtain the attendance and examination of witnesses on his behalf under the same
conditions as witnesses against him;).
131
Consider AP I art. 75(4)(i) (Anyone prosecuted for an offence shall have the right to have the judgement
pronounced publicly;).
132
Consider AP I art. 75(4)(j) (A convicted person shall be advised on conviction of his judicial and other remedies
and of the time-limits within which they may be exercised.); AP II art. 6(3) (A convicted person shall be advised
on conviction of his judicial and other remedies and of the time-limits within which they may be exercised.).
510
IX Prisoners of War (POWs)
Chapter Contents
9.1 Introduction
9.2 General Principles Applicable to the Treatment of POWs
9.3 POW Status
9.4 National-Level GPW Implementation Measures
9.5 Humane Treatment and Basic Protections for POWs
9.6 Security Measures With Respect to POWs
9.7 POW Effects and Articles of Personal Use
9.8 Interrogation of POWs
9.9 Evacuation From Combat Areas
9.10 Transit or Screening Facilities
9.11 General Conditions in POW Camps: Location, Safety, Hygiene, and Living
Conditions
9.12 Segregation of POWs
9.13 Food, Water, Tobacco, and Clothing for POWs
9.14 Medical Attention for Interned POWs
9.15 Religious Exercise by POWs
9.16 Intellectual, Physical, and Recreational Activities
9.17 Canteens for POWs
9.18 Financial Resources of POWs
9.19 POW Labor
9.20 POW Correspondence and Relief Shipments
9.21 Private Legal Matters of POWs
9.22 Internal Discipline of POW Camps
9.23 POW Requests, Complaints, and Reports About Conditions of Captivity
9.24 POW Representatives
9.25 POW Escapes
9.26 General Principles Applicable to POW Discipline
9.27 Disciplinary Proceedings and Punishment
9.28 Judicial Proceedings and Punishment
9.29 Transfer of POWs From the POW Camp
9.30 Transfer of POWs to the Custody of Another Detaining Power
9.31 National Accounting of the Detention of POWs
9.32 Role of the Protecting Power in the GPW
9.33 Access to POWs by the Protecting Powers, ICRC, and Relief Organizations
9.34 Death of POWs
9.35 Exchanges and Other Release and Repatriation of POWs During Hostilities
9.36 Direct Repatriation and Accommodation in Neutral Countries During
Hostilities
9.37 Release and Repatriation After Hostilities
9.38 Procedure on Release and Repatriation After Hostilities
9.39 Code of Conduct for U.S. Armed Forces
511
9.1 INTRODUCTION
9.1.1 Brief History of POW Law. States have made significant humanitarian advances in
the international law relating to the treatment of POWs. 1 Before the modern law of war, POWs
were often put to death, held for ransom or as hostages, or sold into slavery.
Gradually, protections for POWs, such as providing for their repatriation at the end of
conflict without ransom, were concluded in treaties. 2 The United States concluded bilateral
treaties for the humane treatment and protection of POWs, written with a view towards
forbidding abuses that occurred during the Revolutionary War. 3 Eventually multilateral treaties
for the protection of POWs were concluded, which also drew from the experience of POWs
during prior conflicts. 4 War crimes trials after World War II for POW mistreatment recognized
that the humane treatment of POWs was required under customary international law. 5
After World War II, the 1949 Geneva Conventions were concluded, and more than 190
States, including the United States, are Parties to the GPW. 6
9.1.2 Interpretation and Application of the GPW. The GPW underlies most of the
international law rules applicable to the United States for the treatment of POWs.
The GPWs provisions should be interpreted in light of the principles that underlie POW
detention and, in particular, in light of the goal of advancing the humane treatment of POWs. 7
1
WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW & PRECEDENTS 788 (Modern sentiment and usage have induced in the practice of war
few changes so marked as that which affects the status of prisoners of war. The time has long passed when no
quarter was the rule on the battlefield, or when a prisoner could be put to death by virtue simply of his capture.).
2
See, e.g., Treaty of Peace Between Spain and the Netherlands, Signed at Munster, in Westphalia, on 30 January
1648, LEVIE, DOCUMENTS ON POWS 5 (LXIII. All prisoners of war shall be delivered up by both sides, without the
payment of any ransom, and without any distinction and without exception with respect to the prisoners who served
outside of the Low Countries and under other standards and flags than those of the said Sovereign States.).
3
For example, Treaty of Amity and Commerce between His Majesty the King of Prussia and the United States of
America, art. 24, Sept. 10, 1785, 18 STAT. 641, 647.
4
Refer to 19.8.1 (1899 Hague II); 19.13.2 (1929 GPW).
5
See, e.g., United States, et al. v. Gring, et al., Judgment, I TRIAL OF THE MAJOR WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE
IMT 232 (The argument in defense of the charge with regard to the murder and ill-treatment of Soviet prisoners of
war, that the U.S.S.R. was not a party to the [1929] Geneva Convention, is quite without foundation.); United
States v. von Leeb, et al. (The High Command Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 495
(quoting the International Military Tribunal at Nurembergs discussion of the murder and maltreatment of Soviet
POWs and noting: All of these unlawful acts, as well as employment under inhumane conditions and at prohibited
labor, is shown by the record in this case. They were deliberate, gross and continued violations of the customs and
usages of war as well as the Hague Regulations (1907) and the Geneva Convention (1929) and of international
common law.).
6
Refer to 19.16 (1949 Geneva Conventions).
7
See Jack L. Goldsmith III, Assistant Attorney General, Protected Person Status in Occupied Iraq Under the
Fourth Geneva Convention, Mar. 18, 2004, 28 OPINIONS OF THE OFFICE OF LEGAL COUNSEL 35, 55 (Our recourse
to fundamental principles to address an ambiguity in article 4 is not unusual. In the context of the law of armed
conflict, interpreters faced with changed or unexpected circumstances have not hesitated to resort to a treatys
512
The subsequent practice of States in applying the GPW could assist in interpreting its provisions
because States decades of experience in applying the GPW may be very helpful in
understanding its requirements. 8
In the GPW, the Detaining Power refers to the State that holds the POW.
In the GPW, the Power on which the POWs depend means the State that the POWs
served before falling into the power of the enemy. (In some cases, this State might be different
from the POWs State of nationality.)
In the GPW, the Protecting Power refers to a neutral State that helps implement the
GPW.10
9.1.2.2 Special Agreements Under the GPW. Under the GPW, States may
conclude a variety of special agreements during international armed conflict to facilitate the
protection of POWs.
to entrust to an effective and impartial organization the duties of the Protecting Powers; 11
on how to allocate the profits made by camp canteens in case of a general repatriation; 13
to establish the corresponding ranks for their medical personnel and staff of National Red
Cross Societies and other Voluntary Aid Services in order to help determine the senior
medical officer in POW camps; 14
fundamental principles to avoid a non-contextual reading of a treaty term that, wrenched from its original context,
might lead to a conclusion that does violence to the treatys object and purpose. And they have done so even when
construing treaty text far less ambiguous than article 4.). Refer to 9.2 (General Principles Applicable to the
Treatment of POWs).
8
Refer to 1.7.4 (Use of Certain Subsequent Practice in Treaty Interpretation).
9
Refer to 9.3 (POW Status).
10
Refer to 18.15.1.1 (Protecting Power Under the 1949 Geneva Conventions).
11
Refer to 18.15.2.1 (Agreement for an Impartial and Effective Organization to Perform Protecting Power Duties
Under the 1949 Geneva Conventions).
12
Refer to 9.4.2.3 (Location and Marking of POW Camps).
13
Refer to 9.17.3.2 (Disposition of Canteen Profits Upon Camp Closure).
14
Refer to 7.9.5.7 (Senior Medical Officer in the Camp).
513
for the relief of retained personnel and the procedure for relief; 15
to modify the amount of advances of pay due to POWs based on their military rank
during and at the close of hostilities; 16
to notify periodically, through the Protecting Power, the account balances of POWs; 17
to vary the required information provided for in the list of all appropriate particulars of all
POWs whose captivity has been terminated; 18
for the accommodation in neutral countries of seriously wounded and sick POWs; 20
for the direct repatriation or internment in a neutral country of able-bodied POWs who
have undergone a long period of captivity; 21
to determine the conditions that POWs who are accommodated in a neutral country must
fulfill in order to permit their repatriation, and to establish the status of POWs
accommodated in a neutral country; 22
to determine the equitable apportionment of costs of and a plan for repatriation for when
hostilities have ceased; 23
to regulate the conditions of the transport of personal effects and the payment of the costs
associated with the repatriation of POWs; 24
to establish a commission to search for dispersed POWs and to ensure their repatriation
with the least possible delay; 25 and
on the procedure, or to select an umpire who will decide the procedure, to be followed for
an inquiry concerning any alleged violation of the GPW.26
15
Refer to 7.9.5.8 (Agreements on Possible Relief of Retained Personnel).
16
Refer to 9.18.3 (Advance of Pay).
17
Refer to 9.18.6.3 (Periodic Notification of the Amount of the Accounts of POWs).
18
Refer to 9.18.6.4 (Statements of Credit Balance on Termination of Captivity).
19
Refer to 9.20.3.3 (Special Agreements Concerning Relief Shipments).
20
Refer to 9.36.2 (Accommodation in Neutral Countries).
21
Refer to 9.36.2 (Accommodation in Neutral Countries).
22
Refer to 9.36.3.1 (Repatriation From a Neutral State).
23
Refer to 9.37.6 (Costs of Repatriation at the Close of Hostilities).
24
Refer to 9.38.3 (Personal Property); 9.31.2.3 (Collection of Personal Valuables Left by POWs).
25
Refer to 9.37.5 (Commissions to Search for Dispersed POWs).
514
In addition to the agreements expressly provided for in Articles 10, 23, 28, 33, 60, 65, 66,
67, 72, 73, 75, 109, 110, 118, 119, 122, and 132 of the GPW, Parties to the GPW may conclude
other special agreements for all matters concerning which they may deem it suitable to make
separate provision. 27 No special agreement shall adversely affect the situation of POWs, as
defined by the GPW, nor restrict the rights that it confers upon them. 28
POWs shall continue to have the benefit of such agreements as long as the GPW is
applicable to them, except where express provisions to the contrary are contained in these or
subsequent agreements, or where more favorable measures have been taken with regard to them
by one or other of the parties to the conflict. 29
9.1.3 DoD Policies and Regulations for the Treatment of POWs. DoD policies and
regulations regarding the treatment of POWs provide authoritative guidance for DoD personnel
and fill an important role in implementing the complex requirements of the GPW. 30
Practitioners are advised to consult all applicable policies and regulations, as these, in many
cases, exceed the requirements of the GPW, U.S. statutes, and Executive Orders.
Certain principles provide the foundation for the rules governing the treatment of POWs.
9.2.2 Responsibility of the Detaining Power. POWs are in the hands of the enemy
Power, and not of the individuals or military units who have captured them. 33 Irrespective of the
26
Refer to 18.14.1 (Inquiry Procedure in the 1949 Geneva Conventions).
27
GPW art. 6 (In addition to the agreements expressly provided for in Articles 10, 23, 28, 33, 60, 65, 66, 67, 72,
73, 75, 109, 110, 118, 119, 122 and 132, the High Contracting Parties may conclude other special agreements for all
matters concerning which they may deem it suitable to make separate provision.).
28
GPW art. 6 (No special agreement shall adversely affect the situation of prisoners of war, as defined by the
present Convention, nor restrict the rights which it confers upon them.).
29
GPW art. 6 (Prisoners of war shall continue to have the benefit of such agreements as long as the Convention is
applicable to them, except where express provisions to the contrary are contained in the aforesaid or in subsequent
agreements, or where more favourable measures have been taken with regard to them by one or other of the Parties
to the conflict.).
30
Refer to 18.7 (Instructions, Regulations, and Procedures to Implement and Enforce the Law of War).
31
WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW & PRECEDENTS 788 (It is now recognized thatCaptivity is neither a punishment
nor an act of vengeance, but merely a temporary detention which is devoid of all penal character.); Francis
Lieber, The Status of Rebel Prisoners of War, reprinted in II THE MISCELLANEOUS WRITINGS OF FRANCIS LIEBER
293 (1881) (A belligerent is not a criminal, and the imprisonment of a captured belligerent is not a punishment. A
prisoner of war is no convict; his imprisonment is a simple war measure.).
32
United States, et al. v. Gring, et al., Judgment, I TRIAL OF THE MAJOR WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE IMT 232
(quoting approvingly a German Admiral who argued for the humane treatment of POWs during World War II, war
captivity is neither revenge nor punishment, but solely protective custody, the only purpose of which is to prevent
the prisoners of war from further participation in the war.).
515
individual responsibilities that may exist, the Detaining Power is responsible for the treatment
given POWs. 34
9.2.3 Responsibility of POWs. Just as the Detaining Power is responsible for the
treatment of POWs, POWs also have certain responsibilities related to their detention.
POWs continue to have obligations to the Power on which they depend. 35 POWs are also
obliged to obey the laws, regulations, and orders of the Detaining Power. 36 Despite this general
obligation, POWs may not be punished in respect of their successful escape, if recaptured by the
Detaining Power. 37
9.2.5 Reciprocity in the Treatment of POWs. The rules for the treatment of POWs have
long been based on the principle that POWs should be treated as the Detaining Power would
want its forces held by the enemy to be treated. 39 Aside from being legally required, the
33
GPW art. 12 (Prisoners of war are in the hands of the enemy Power, but not of the individuals or military units
who have captured them.); 1929 GPW art. 2 (Prisoners of war are in the power of the hostile Power, but not of the
individuals or corps who have captured them.); HAGUE IV REG. art. 4 (Prisoners of war are in the power of the
hostile Government, but not of the individuals or corps who capture them.); LIEBER CODE art. 74 (A prisoner of
war, being a public enemy, is the prisoner of the government, and not of the captor.).
34
GPW art. 12 (Irrespective of the individual responsibilities that may exist, the Detaining Power is responsible for
the treatment given them.).
35
Refer to 9.22.2 (POWs Status With Respect to Their Armed Forces).
36
Refer to 9.26.1 (POWs Subject to the Laws, Regulations, and Orders in Force in the Armed Forces of the
Detaining Power).
37
Refer to 9.25.1 (No Punishment for Successful Escape).
38
Refer to 9.5 (Humane Treatment and Basic Protections for POWs).
39
For example, Basic Course in the Geneva Conventions of 1949 and Hague Convention No. IV of 1907: Lesson
PlanFirst Hour, 6, Appendix A in DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY SUBJECT SCHEDULE 27-1, The Geneva
Conventions of 1949 and Hague Convention No. IV of 1907, 6 (Aug. 29, 1975) (Although we shall presently
discuss the most important of the many specific rules set out in these [1949 Geneva] Conventions, you should
always keep in mind that these rules are embodied in one general principle: treat all prisoners of war, civilians, or
other detained personnel humanely. But, you ask, what does it mean to treat someone humanely? If you treat
such people as you would like to be treated were you captured or detained, you will be treating them humanely.
Remember that a PW is in your protective custody, and you cannot harm him.); George Washington, Commander-
in-Chief of the Continental Army, Letter to Lieutenant General Thomas Gage, Head Quarters, Cambridge (Aug. 11,
1775), reprinted in JARED SPARKS, THE WRITINGS OF GEORGE WASHINGTON; PART SECOND, III 60 (1837) (My
Duty now makes it necessary to apprize you, that for the future I shall regulate my Conduct towards those
Gentlemen, who are or may be in our Possession, exactly by the Rule you shall observe towards those of ours, now
in your Custody. If severity and hardship mark the line of your conduct, painful as it may be to me, your prisoners
will feel its effects. But if kindness and humanity are shown to ours, I shall with pleasure consider those in our
hands only as unfortunate, and they shall receive from me that treatment to which the unfortunate are entitled.).
516
favorable treatment of POWs held by the U.S. armed forces can promote the favorable treatment
of members of the U.S. armed forces held by enemy States. 40
A similar concept may also be found in provisions of the GPW that provide for the
treatment of POWs with reference to the treatment of the armed forces of the Detaining Power.
For example, POWs shall be quartered under conditions as favorable as those for the forces of
the Detaining Power who are billeted in the same area. 41 Similarly, in judicial proceedings,
POWs should benefit from the same courts and same procedures as the members of the armed
forces of the Detaining Power. 42
9.3.1 POW Status Versus POW Protections. In some cases, the policy of the United
States has been to afford detainees certain POW protections even when they may not apply as a
matter of law. 43 Certain POW protections may be afforded to an individual without affecting the
legal status of that individual or the legal status of a group to which that person belongs. 44
9.3.2 Persons Entitled to POW Status. During international armed conflict, persons
entitled to POW status, if they fall into the power of the enemy, include: 45
40
For example, Martin Tollefson, Enemy Prisoners of War, 31 IOWA LAW REVIEW 51, 56 footnote 8 (1946) (The
writer of this law review article was a member of a committee of three officers sent by the Secretary of War to
inspect concentration camps, civilian internee camps, and prisoner-of-war camps in Germany immediately upon
their liberation. Testimony was frequently and freely given to these committee members by Americans held as
prisoners of war (not in concentration camps where American servicemen were not interned) to the effect that they
had been given better treatment as a result of the fair treatment given by the United States to German prisoners.
Occasionally testimony was given by interned Americans that they were of the opinion that the reason they survived
prisoner of war internment in Germany was the result of fair treatment of German prisoners.).
41
Refer to 9.11.6 (Conditions of Living Quarters).
42
Refer to 9.28.2 (Same Courts and Same Procedures).
43
For example, MAJOR GENERAL GEORGE S. PRUGH, LAW AT WAR: VIETNAM 1964-1973 66 (1975) (The
classification of Viet Cong combatants and Viet Cong suspects posed an interesting legal problem. Because it
believed the Viet Cong were traitors and criminals, the Vietnam government was reluctant to accord prisoner of war
status to Viet Cong captives. Furthermore it was certainly arguable that many Viet Cong did not meet the criteria of
guerrillas entitled to prisoner of war status under Article 4, Geneva Prisoner of War Conventions. However, civil
incarceration and criminal trial of the great number of Viet Cong was too much for the civil resources at hand. In
addition, Article 22 prohibited the mingling of civil defendants with prisoners of war. By broadly construing Article
4, so as to accord full prisoner of war status to Viet Cong Main Force and Local Force troops, as well as regular
North Vietnamese Army troops, any Viet Cong taken in combat would be detained for a prisoner of war camp rather
than a civilian jail. The MACV policy was that all combatants captured during military operations were to be
accorded prisoner of war status, irrespective of the type of unit to which they belonged. Terrorists, spies, and
saboteurs were excluded from consideration as prisoners of war. Suspected Viet Cong captured under
circumstances not warranting their treatment as prisoners of war were handled as civilian defendants.).
44
Compare 17.2.3 (Application of Humanitarian Rules and the Legal Status of the Parties to the Conflict).
45
GPW art. 4A (Prisoners of war, in the sense of the present Convention, are persons belonging to one of the
following categories, who have fallen into the power of the enemy: (1) Members of the armed forces of a Party to
the conflict, as well as members of militias or volunteer corps forming part of such armed forces. (2) Members of
other militias and members of other volunteer corps, including those of organized resistance movements, belonging
to a Party to the conflict and operating in or outside their own territory, even if this territory is occupied, provided
517
members of the armed forces of a State that is a party to the conflict, including; 46
o deserters; 47 and
o military medical and religious personnel not entitled to retained personnel status
(e.g., those not exclusively engaged in medical duties at the time of their
capture); 48
members of regular armed forces who profess allegiance to a government or authority not
recognized by Detaining Power; 50
9.3.2.1 Persons Who Are Not Entitled to POW Status. Certain categories of
persons are not entitled to POW status:
spies, saboteurs, and other persons engaging in similar acts behind enemy lines; 54 and
that such militias or volunteer corps, including such organized resistance movements, fulfil the following conditions:
(a) that of being commanded by a person responsible for his subordinates; (b) that of having a fixed distinctive sign
recognizable at a distance; (c) that of carrying arms openly; (d) that of conducting their operations in accordance
with the laws and customs of war. (3) Members of regular armed forces who profess allegiance to a government or
an authority not recognized by the Detaining Power. (4) Persons who accompany the armed forces without actually
being members thereof, such as civilian members of military aircraft crews, war correspondents, supply contractors,
members of labour units or of services responsible for the welfare of the armed forces, provided that they have
received authorization from the armed forces which they accompany, who shall provide them for that purpose with
an identity card similar to the annexed model. (5) Members of crews, including masters, pilots and apprentices, of
the merchant marine and the crews of civil aircraft of the Parties to the conflict, who do not benefit by more
favourable treatment under any other provisions of international law. (6) Inhabitants of a non-occupied territory,
who on the approach of the enemy spontaneously take up arms to resist the invading forces, without having had time
to form themselves into regular armed units, provided they carry arms openly and respect the laws and customs of
war.).
46
Refer to 4.5 (Armed Forces of a State).
47
Refer to 4.5.2.5 (Deserters).
48
Refer to 4.9.2 (Requirements for Military Medical and Religious Status).
49
Refer to 4.6 (Other Militia and Volunteer Corps).
50
Refer to 4.5.3 (Regular Armed Forces Who Profess Allegiance to a Government or an Authority Not
Recognized by the Detaining Power).
51
Refer to 4.15 (Persons Authorized to Accompany the Armed Forces).
52
Refer to 4.16 (Crews of Merchant Marine Vessels or Civil Aircraft).
53
Refer to 4.7 (Leve en Masse).
518
persons who are nationals of the Detaining Power or its co-belligerents, 55 such as a
defector who subsequently is captured by the force from which he or she defected. 56
mercenaries; 57
persons whose capture has not been acknowledged by the Power to which they belong. 60
9.3.3 Persons Entitled to POW Treatment. Certain persons, although not entitled to POW
status, shall likewise be treated as POWs under the GPW:
persons belonging to one of the categories enumerated in Article 4 of the GPW who have
been received by neutral or non-belligerent Powers on their territory and whom these
Powers are required to intern under international law. 62
9.3.4.1 Having Fallen. Persons must have fallen into the power of the enemy to
receive POW status. 63
54
Refer to 4.17 (Spies, Saboteurs, and Other Persons Engaging in Similar Acts Behind Enemy Lines).
55
Refer to 4.4.4 (Nationality and Combatant Status).
56
Refer to 4.5.2.6 (Defectors).
57
Refer to 4.21 (Mercenaries).
58
Refer to 9.26.4 (Retention of Benefits of the GPW Even if Prosecuted for Pre-Capture Acts).
59
Refer to 4.4.4.1 (Nationals of Neutral States in Enemy Forces).
60
For example, 2004 UK MANUAL 8.3 footnote 20 (During the Gulf conflict 1991, the Iraqi action in declaring
that captured aircrew would only be treated as prisoners of war (PW) if the coalition forces admitted that they had
been captured was a clear breach of GC III, Art 4.).
61
Refer to 4.5.4 (Persons Belonging, or Having Belonged, to the Armed Forces of an Occupied State).
62
Refer to 15.16.3.1 (Provision of POW Treatment and Application of the GWS and GWS-Sea by Analogy).
63
Compare 10.3.2.1 (Find Themselves).
519
The person need not have been captured to have fallen into the power of the enemy; it
may be the case that he or she became a prisoner without fighting, e.g., by surrendering. 64
Although defectors serving with their new armed force may be viewed as being in the
power of the enemy, they are not regarded as hav[ing] fallen into that condition, since they
have voluntarily chosen to switch sides. 65 Thus, defectors are not considered by their new armed
forces to be entitled to POW status. 66
9.3.4.2 Into the Power. A person is considered to have fallen into the power of
the enemy when that person has been captured by, or surrendered to, members of the military
forces, the civilian police, or local civilian defense organizations or other enemy civilians who
have taken that person into custody. 67 The person need not be captured by the armed forces of
the opposing State.
9.3.4.3 Of the Enemy. Persons who have been captured by States that are not
adversaries in the armed conflict are not technically in the hands of the enemy. 68 However,
persons who are entitled to POW status or treatment and are interned by a neutral State under its
duties under international law are generally entitled to POW treatment, as a minimum, under
Article 4B(2) of the GPW. 69 Similarly, for example, military forces engaged in peace operations
who are detained by the forces of a State that is a party to a conflict should, at a minimum, be
afforded POW treatment by analogy.
9.3.5 Treatment and Determination of POW Status in Case of Doubt. Should any doubt
arise as to whether persons, having committed a belligerent act and having fallen into the hands
of the enemy, belong to any of the categories enumerated in Article 4 of the GPW, such persons
64
GPW COMMENTARY 50 (The words fallen into the power of the enemy replace the word captured which
appeared in the 1929 Convention, the first expression having a wider significance and also covering the case of
soldiers who became prisoners without fighting, for example following a surrender.).
65
See U.N. GENERAL ASSEMBLY, Report of the Secretary-General: Respect for Human Rights in Armed Conflicts,
U.N. Doc. A/7720 88 (Nov. 20, 1969) (One of the requirements of the acquisition of prisoner of war status is that
the persons concerned must have fallen into the power of the enemy. The view has been expressed that persons
who defect from their own forces and give themselves up to the enemy and therefore do not have prisoner of war
status, are not subject to the provisions of Geneva Convention III and are therefore neither entitled to the rights nor
bound by the obligations of prisoners of war.); 1958 UK MANUAL 126 note 1 (Defectors are not considered to
have fallen into the power of the enemy within the meaning of Art. 4A. The term fallen clearly shows that it
concerns combatants who pass into enemy hands, not of their own free will but by a force beyond their control
because they are under its restraint,).
66
Refer to 4.5.2.6 (Defectors).
67
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 84b (A person is considered to have fallen into the power of the enemy
when he has been captured by, or surrendered to members of the military forces, the civilian police, or local civilian
defense organizations or enemy civilians who have taken him into custody.).
68
See GPW COMMENTARY 50 (The existence of a state of belligerence is no longer officially in question; the term
enemy covers any adversary during an armed conflict which may arise between two or more of the High
Contracting Parties pursuant to the first paragraph of Article 2.).
69
Refer to 15.16.3.1 (Provision of POW Treatment and Application of the GWS and GWS-Sea by Analogy).
520
shall enjoy the protection of the GPW until such time as their status has been determined by a
competent tribunal. 70
9.3.6 Commencement and Duration of POW Status and Treatment. The GPW applies to
persons referred to in Article 4 of the GPW from the time they fall into the power of the enemy
until their final release and repatriation. 71
This rule is intended to prevent States from evading their obligations by coercing enemy
nationals in their power to waive their rights. The prohibition on the non-renunciation of rights
is based on a recognition that: (1) POWs are in a vulnerable position; (2) it would be difficult to
establish whether a POW had voluntarily renounced his or her rights; and (3) an absolute
prohibition would best serve the interests of the majority of POWs. 74
The non-renunciation of rights by the GPW does not prohibit States from affording
POWs the right to refuse repatriation at the conclusion of the conflict. 77
70
Refer to 4.27.2 (POW Protections for Certain Persons Until Status Has Been Determined); 4.27.3 (Competent
Tribunal to Assess Entitlement to POW Status or Treatment).
71
GPW art. 5 (The present Convention shall apply to the persons referred to in Article 4 from the time they fall into
the power of the enemy and until their final release and repatriation.).
72
GPW art. 7 (Prisoners of war may in no circumstances renounce in part or in entirety the rights secured to them
by the present Convention, and by the special agreements referred to in the foregoing Article, if such there be.).
Refer to 9.1.2.2 (Special Agreements Under the GPW).
73
Refer to 10.3.6 (Non-Renunciation of Rights Secured by the GC); 7.2.2 (Non-Renunciation of Rights Secured
by the GWS or GWS-Sea).
74
See GPW COMMENTARY 89 (In the end, however, the Diplomatic Conference unanimously adopted the absolute
prohibition mainly because it is difficult, if not impossible, to prove the existence of duress or pressure [against a
POW for him or her to renounce rights]. [The Diplomatic Conference] adopted the rule because it seemed to
safeguard the interests of the majority. The Conference also accepted the view that in war-time prisoners in the
hands of the enemy are not really in a sufficiently independent and objective state of mind to realize fully the
implications of a renunciation of their rights.). See also LEVIE, POWS 91 (Obviously, prisoners of war can never
negotiate on a basis of equality with the Detaining Power.).
75
Refer to 9.19.2.3 (Labor Assignments That May Be Compelled).
76
Refer to 4.5.2.6 (Defectors).
77
Refer to 9.37.4.2 (POWs Who Resist Repatriation).
521
9.4 NATIONAL-LEVEL GPW IMPLEMENTATION MEASURES
The GPW requires a number of measures at the national level to facilitate protection for
POWs.
9.4.1 Appointment or Establishment of Entities. The GPW provides for certain bodies or
entities to be appointed or established.
9.4.2.1 Notification of Parole Policy. Upon the outbreak of hostilities, each party
to a conflict shall notify the adverse party or parties of its laws or regulations allowing or
forbidding its armed forces to accept parole. 84 U.S. policy has prohibited the acceptance of
parole. 85
78
Refer to 18.15.1.1 (Protecting Power Under the 1949 Geneva Conventions).
79
Refer to 9.32 (Role of the Protecting Power in the GPW).
80
Refer to 9.31.2 (National POW Information Bureau).
81
Refer to 9.31.3 (Central POW Information Agency).
82
Refer to 9.36.5 (Mixed Medical Commissions).
83
Refer to 9.34.4 (Maintenance and Records of Graves and Ashes).
84
Refer to 9.11.2 (Parole of POWs).
85
Refer to 9.39.1.3 (Code of Conduct Article III).
522
9.4.2.2 Notification of Offenses Punishable by Death. Information on what
offenses are punishable by death should be communicated to the Protecting Power and the
POWs.86
9.4.2.3 Location and Marking of POW Camps. The Detaining Power should
provide the Powers concerned useful information regarding the geographic location of POW
camps, and agreements on their markings may be reached. 87
9.4.3 Issue of Identification Cards to Persons Liable to Become POWs. Parties to the
GPW must provide persons under their jurisdiction who are liable to become POWs with identity
cards. 93 This card must show:
the owners surname (i.e., last name), first names (i.e., first and middle names);
86
Refer to 9.28.6 (Death Sentences).
87
Refer to 9.11.4.2 (Sharing Information on the Location of POW Camps); 9.11.4.3 (Marking of POW Camps).
88
Refer to 9.21.2.1 (Preparation of Wills).
89
Refer to 9.22.4.1 (Communication of Titles and Ranks).
90
Refer to 7.9.5.7 (Senior Medical Officer in the Camp).
91
GPW art. 69 (Immediately upon prisoners of war falling into its power, the Detaining Power shall inform them
and the Powers on which they depend, through the Protecting Power, of the measures taken to carry out the
provisions of the present Section.).
92
GPW art. 69 (They shall likewise inform the parties concerned of any subsequent modifications of such
measures.).
93
GPW art. 17 (Each Party to a conflict is required to furnish the persons under its jurisdiction who are liable to
become prisoners of war, with an identity card showing the owners surname, first names, rank, army, regimental,
personal or serial number or equivalent information, and date of birth.).
523
date of birth.
In accordance with this requirement, DoD practice has been to issue all members of the
U.S. armed forces identification cards that indicate their status under the Geneva Conventions. 94
An individuals loss of the identification card issued by a State Party is not a basis for
denial of POW status. 95
POWs must at all times be humanely treated. 96 POWs are entitled in all circumstances to
respect for their persons and their honor. 97 Likewise, POWs must at all times be protected,
particularly against acts of violence or intimidation and against insults and public curiosity. 98
Any unlawful act or omission by the Detaining Power causing death or seriously
endangering the health of a POW in its custody is prohibited, and will be regarded as a serious
breach of the GPW. 99
9.5.1 Respect for Their Persons and Honor. POWs are entitled in all circumstances to
respect for their persons and their honor. 100 For example, the rape or other indecent assault of
POWs is forbidden. 101
9.5.2 Protection Against Acts of Violence or Intimidation. POWs must at all times be
protected, particularly against acts of violence or intimidation.102 For example, the murder of
POWs is forbidden. 103
94
For example, DOD INSTRUCTION 1000.01, Identification (ID) Cards Required by the Geneva Conventions (Apr.
16, 2012); DOD INSTRUCTION 1000.1, Identity Cards Required by the Geneva Convention (Jan. 30, 1974).
95
Refer to 4.27.1 (Identification Cards Used to Help Clarify Status).
96
GPW art. 13 (Prisoners of war must at all times be humanely treated.); HAGUE IV REG. art. 4 ([Prisoners of
war] must be humanely treated.).
97
GPW art. 14 (Prisoners of war are entitled in all circumstances to respect for their persons and their honour.).
98
GPW art. 13 (Likewise, prisoners of war must at all times be protected, particularly against acts of violence or
intimidation and against insults and public curiosity.).
99
GPW art. 13 (Any unlawful act or omission by the Detaining Power causing death or seriously endangering the
health of a prisoner of war in its custody is prohibited, and will be regarded as a serious breach of the present
Convention.).
100
GPW art. 14 (Prisoners of war are entitled in all circumstances to respect for their persons and their honour.).
101
Compare 8.2.2.1 (Protection Against Rape, Enforced Prostitution, and Other Indecent Assault); 10.5.1.2
(Protection for Women Against Rape or Other Indecent Assault).
102
GPW art. 13 (Likewise, prisoners of war must at all times be protected, particularly against acts of violence or
intimidation and against insults and public curiosity.).
103
For example, Trial of the Rear-Admiral Nisuke Masuda and Four Others of the Imperial Japanese Navy (The
Jaluit Atoll Case), I U.N. LAW REPORTS 71, 72 (U.S. Military Commission, U.S. Naval Air Base, Kwajalein Island,
Kwajalein Atoll, Marshall Islands, Dec. 7-13, 1945) (The charge against the five accused, as approved by the
Convening Authority, was one of murder. The specification stated that they did, on or about 10th March, 1944, on
524
9.5.2.1 Prohibition on Killing of POWs. A commander of a force may not put
enemy prisoners to death because their presence retards the forces movements or diminishes the
forces power of resistance by necessitating a large guard, or by reason of the prisoners
consuming supplies, or because it appears certain that they will regain their liberty through the
impending success of enemy forces. It is likewise unlawful for a commander to kill enemy
prisoners in the forces custody on grounds of self-preservation, even in the case of airborne or
commando operations, although the circumstances of the operation may make necessary rigorous
supervision of and restraint upon the movement of POWs.104
Older sources that permitted commanders in dire circumstances to deny quarter do not
reflect the current law. 105
the Island of Aineman, Jaluit Atoll, Marshall Islands, at a time when a state of war existed between the United States
of America and the Japanese Empire, wilfully, feloniously, with malice aforethought without justifiable cause, and
without trial or other due process, assault and kill, by shooting and stabbing to death, three American fliers, then and
there attached to the Armed forces of the United States of America, and then and there captured and unarmed
prisoners of war in the custody of the said accused, all in violation of the dignity of the United States of America,
the International rules of warfare and the moral standards of civilised society.).
104
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 85 (A commander may not put his prisoners to death because their
presence retards his movements or diminishes his power of resistance by necessitating a large guard, or by reason of
their consuming supplies, or because it appears that they will regain their liberty through the impending success of
their forces. It is likewise unlawful for a commander to kill his prisoners on the grounds of self-preservation, even
in the case of airborne or commando operations, although the circumstances of the operation may make necessary
rigorous supervision of and restraint upon the movement of prisoners of war.); 1958 UK MANUAL 137 (A
commander may not put his prisoners of war to death because their presence retards his movements or diminishes
his power of resistance by necessitating a large guard, or by reason of their consuming supplies, or because it
appears that they will regain their liberty through the impending success of the forces to which they belong. It is
unlawful for a commander to kill prisoners of war on grounds of self-preservation. This principle admits of no
exception, even in the case of airborne or so-called commando operationsalthough the circumstances of the
operation may make necessary rigorous supervision of and restraint upon their movement.).
105
See, e.g., LIEBER CODE art. 65 ([A] commander is permitted to direct his troops to give no quarter, in great
straits, when his own salvation makes it impossible to cumber himself with prisoners.).
106
See, e.g., Trial of Erich Heyer and Six Others (The Essen Lynch Case), I U.N. LAW REPORTS 88, 89 (British
Military Court for the Trial of War Criminals, Essen, Dec. 18-19 and 21-22, 1945) ([P]risoners of war were
marched through one of the main streets of Essen, the crowd around grew bigger, started hitting them and throwing
sticks and stones at them. An unknown German corporal actually fired a revolver at one of the airmen and wounded
him in the head. When they reached the bridge, the airmen were eventually thrown over the parapet of the bridge;
one of the airmen was killed by the fall; the others were not dead when they landed, but were killed by shots from
the bridge and by members of the crowd who beat and kicked them to death.); United States, et al. v. Gring, et al.,
Judgment, I TRIAL OF THE MAJOR WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE IMT 229 (When Allied airmen were forced to land
in Germany, they were sometimes killed at once by the civilian population. The Police were instructed not to
interfere with these killings, and the Ministry of Justice was informed that no one should be prosecuted for taking
part in them.).
107
GPW COMMENTARY 143 (Respect for physical integrity generally means that it is prohibited to kill, wound or
even endanger prisoners of war. As we have seen above, Article 13 defines this obligation in a positive manner by
525
9.5.2.3 No Exposure to a Combat Zone or Use as a Human Shield. No POW may
at any time be sent to or detained in areas where he or she may be exposed to the fire of the
combat zone, nor may his or her presence be used to render certain points or areas immune from
military operations. 108
This prohibition was established in the 1949 Geneva Conventions in order to prohibit
expressly criminal practices that occurred during World War II and to prevent the wounded, sick,
or shipwrecked in captivity from being used as guinea pigs for medical experiments. 111
specifying certain acts which constitute grave breaches. It should be emphasized that this protection must be
enforced not only in regard to the agents of the Detaining Power, but also, should the occasion arise, in regard to
fellow prisoners. Any infraction should be liable to punishment.) (emphasis added).
108
GPW art. 23 (No prisoner of war may at any time be sent to, or detained in areas where he may be exposed to
the fire of the combat zone, nor may his presence be used to render certain points or areas immune from military
operations.); United States v. von Leeb, et al. (The High Command Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE
THE NMT 588 (To use prisoners of war as a shield for the troops is contrary to international law.). Refer to 5.16
(Prohibition on Using Protected Persons and Objects to Shield, Favor, or Impede Military Operations).
109
GPW art. 13 (In particular, no prisoner of war may be subjected to physical mutilation or to medical or scientific
experiments of any kind which are not justified by the medical, dental or hospital treatment of the prisoner
concerned and carried out in his interest.).
110
GWS art. 12 (Any attempts upon their lives, or violence to their persons, shall be strictly prohibited; in
particular, they shall not be murdered or exterminated, subjected to torture or to biological experiments;).
111
See GWS COMMENTARY 139 (It was intended, by prohibiting the subjection of wounded and sick to biological
experiments, to put an end for all time to criminal practices of which certain prisoners have been the victims, and
also to prevent wounded or sick in captivity from being used as guinea-pigs for medical experiments.). See, e.g.,
United States v. Karl Brandt, et. al (The Medical Case), II TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 171, 175-
78 ((A) High-Altitude Experiments. From about March 1942 to about August 1942 experiments were conducted at
the Dachau concentration camp, for the benefit of the German Air Force, to investigate the limits of human
endurance and existence at extremely high altitudes. The experiments were carried out in a low-pressure chamber in
which the atmospheric conditions and pressures prevailing at high altitude (up to 68,000 feet) could be duplicated.
The experimental subjects were placed in the low-pressure chamber and thereafter the simulated altitude therein was
raised. Many victims died as a result of these experiments and others suffered grave injury, torture, and ill-
treatment. (L) Incendiary Bomb Experiments. From about November 1943 to about January 1944 experiments
were conducted at the Buchenwald concentration camp to test the effect of various pharmaceutical preparations on
phosphorus burns. These burns were inflicted on experimental subjects with phosphorus matter taken from
incendiary bombs, and caused severe pain, suffering, and serious bodily injury.).
112
GWS COMMENTARY 139 (But the provision refers only to biological experiments. Its effect is not to prevent
the doctors in charge of wounded and sick from trying new therapeutic methods which are justified on medical
grounds and are dictated solely by a desire to improve the patients condition. Doctors must be free to resort to the
526
POWs may voluntarily consent to give blood for transfusion or skin for grafting for
therapeutic purposes; such procedures should take place under conditions consistent with
generally accepted medical standards and controls designed for the benefit of both the donor and
the recipient. 113
9.5.3 Protection Against Insults and Public Curiosity. POWs must at all times be
protected against insults and public curiosity. 114 For example, organizing a parade of POWs
through the civilian population, thereby exposing them to assault, ridicule, and insults, would be
prohibited. 115 Displaying POWs in a humiliating fashion on television or on the internet would
also be prohibited. 116 For this reason and others, DoD policy has prohibited the taking of
photographs of detainees except for authorized purposes. 117
new remedies which science offers, provided always that such remedies have first been satisfactorily proved to be
innocuous and that they are administered for purely therapeutic purposes.).
113
Consider AP I art. 11 (3. Exceptions to the prohibition in paragraph 2 (c) [against removal of tissue or organs
for transplantation except where these acts are justified] may be made only in the case of donations of blood for
transfusion or of skin for grafting, provided that they are given voluntarily and without any coercion or inducement,
and then only for therapeutic purposes, under conditions consistent with generally accepted medical standards and
controls designed for the benefit of both the donor and the recipient.).
114
GPW art. 13 (Likewise, prisoners of war must at all times be protected, particularly against acts of violence or
intimidation and against insults and public curiosity.).
115
See, e.g., Trial of Lieutenant General Kurt Maelzer, XI U.N. LAW REPORTS 53 (U.S. Military Commission,
Florence, Italy, Sept. 9-14, 1946) (Some time in January, 1944, Field Marshal Kesselring, commander-in-chief of
the German forces in Italy, ordered the accused who was commander of Rome garrison to hold a parade of several
hundreds of British and American prisoners of war in the streets of the Italian capital. This parade, emulating the
tradition of the triumphal marches of ancient Rome, was to be staged to bolster the morale of the Italian population
in view of the recent allied landings, not very far from the capital. The accused ordered the parade which took place
on 2nd February, 1944. 200 American prisoners of war were marched from the Coliseum, through the main streets
of Rome under armed German escort. ... A film was made of the parade and a great number of photographs taken
which appeared in the Italian press under the caption Anglo Americans enter Rome after all ... flanked by German
bayonettes.) (ellipses in original); United States, et al. v. Araki, et al., Majority Judgment, International Military
Tribunal for the Far East, 49,708, reprinted in NEIL BOISTER & ROBERT CRYER, DOCUMENTS ON THE TOKYO
INTERNATIONAL MILITARY TRIBUNAL: CHARTER, INDICTMENT AND JUDGMENTS 574 (2008) (About 1,000
prisoners captured in the fighting in Malaya arrived in Korea and were marched through the streets of Seoul, Fusan,
and Jinsen where they were paraded before 120,000 Koreans and 57,000 Japanese. These prisoners had previously
been subjected to malnutrition, ill-treatment and neglect so that their physical condition would elicit contempt from
those who saw them.); STUART I. ROCHESTER & FREDERICK KILEY, HONOR BOUND: THE HISTORY OF AMERICAN
PRISONERS OF WAR IN SOUTHEAST ASIA, 1961-1973 196 (1998) ([H]oping to win increased support from Hanois
patrons, [the North Vietnamese] deliberately marched the group [of POWs] past the Soviet and Chinese embassies
to impress officials there with the numbers of PWs the DRV held. As the column turned onto the main avenue, the
prisoners were met by larger and noisier crowds, in some places massed 10 deep (John McKamey estimated as many
as a hundred thousand altogether). Cued by a chanting [Northern Vietnamese POW interrogator-indoctrinator] and
incited by blaring loudspeakers and marshals with bullhorns, the throng erupted into a frenzy as the PWs filed past.
The hostile galleries cursed the prisoners, hurled bricks and bottles, and pressed close enough to pummel them with
outstretched arms while guards grabbed the men by the hair or used rifle butts to force them to lower their heads.
Scores of spectators broke through the makeshift barriers, darting in between the Americanskicking, screaming,
spitting, striking the defenseless men with clenched fists as they stumbled along dazed and now frightened.).
116
WILLIAM M. HAMMOND, THE UNITED STATES ARMY IN VIETNAM: PUBLIC AFFAIRS, THE MILITARY AND THE
MEDIA, 1962-1968, 272 (1990) (Hanoi itself diverted public attention in the United States by releasing photographs
527
9.5.4 Reprisals Prohibited. Measures of reprisal against POWs are prohibited. 118
Distinction based on nationality, political opinion, or other similar criteria may be made
so long as it is not adverse and it is made to advance legitimate interests, such as maintaining
order in the camp. 120
In some cases, the Detaining Power must make distinctions between POWs as to rank or
age, 121 state of health, 122 or professional status, 123 as well as to provide specific protection for
women.
9.5.6 Due Regard for Women POWs. Women POWs shall be treated with all the regard
due to their sex and shall in all cases benefit from treatment as favorable as that granted to
men. 124 This principle also applies under the GWS and GWS-Sea to women who are wounded,
sick, and shipwrecked. 125
The GPW provides specifically for separate dormitories for women POWs in camps with
both men and women and for separate bathroom facilities for women POWs. 126 The GPW also
showing an angry mob of North Vietnamese jeering a parade of captured American pilots-a blatant violation of the
1949 Geneva Conventions which prohibited the exposure of prisoners of war to public curiosity and abuse.).
117
Refer to 8.2.2.3 (DoD Practice of Generally Prohibiting Taking Photographs Without Authorization).
118
Refer to 18.18.3.2 (Reprisals Prohibited by the 1949 Geneva Conventions).
119
GPW art. 16 (Taking into consideration the provisions of the present Convention relating to rank and sex, and
subject to any privileged treatment which may be accorded to them by reason of their state of health, age or
professional qualifications, all prisoners of war shall be treated alike by the Detaining Power, without any adverse
distinction based on race, nationality, religious belief or political opinions, or any other distinction founded on
similar criteria.).
120
Refer to 9.12.1 (Assembling According to Nationality, Language, and Customs).
121
Refer to 9.22.4 (Rank and Age of POWs); 9.19.1.2 (Labor Assignment Officers and Persons of Equivalent
Status).
122
Refer to 9.14.2.1 (Persons Requiring Special Treatment); 9.36.1 (Direct Repatriation of Seriously Wounded,
Injured, or Sick POWs).
123
Refer to 4.5.2.2 (Members Trained as Medical Personnel, but Not Attached to the Medical Service); 4.5.2.3
(Members Who Are Ministers of Religion Without Having Officiated as Chaplains to Their Own Forces).
124
GPW art. 14 (Women shall be treated with all the regard due to their sex and shall in all cases benefit by
treatment as favourable as that granted to men.).
125
Refer to 7.5.1 (Humane Treatment of the Wounded, Sick, and Shipwrecked Without Adverse Distinction).
126
Refer to 9.11.6.1 (Separate Dormitories for Women); 9.11.5.2 (Sanitary Conveniences (e.g., latrines,
bathrooms)).
528
provides for women POWs undergoing disciplinary punishment or serving a sentence to be
confined in separate quarters under the supervision of women. 127 Although the GPW does not
specifically provide for this, female POWs should be under the immediate supervision of
women. 128
Although POWs must always be treated humanely, the confinement and mode of treating
a POW may be varied during captivity for security purposes. 129 For example, POWs and their
property may be searched and secured, when operationally necessary (e.g., immediately upon
capture). 130
9.6.1 Search of POWs. POWs may be searched for security reasons, intelligence
purposes, and other administrative reasons. For example, POWs may be searched for concealed
weapons, items of intelligence value, or contraband, such as cameras and cell phones. 131
The dignity and honor of the POW being searched should be protected to the greatest
degree possible under the circumstances. 132 The person conducting the search should avoid
doing anything unnecessary or saying anything likely to be regarded as indecent or inappropriate.
In some circumstances, it may be appropriate for a witness to observe the search so as to protect
127
Refer to 9.27.6.1 (Premises Where Disciplinary Punishments Are to Be Served); 9.28.7.2 (Confinement of
Women POWs Who Have Been Sentenced).
128
Refer to 8.7.1 (Gender and Family Segregation).
129
LIEBER CODE art. 75 (Prisoners of war are subject to confinement and imprisonment such as may be deemed
necessary on account of safety, but they are to be subjected to no other intentional suffering or indignity. The
confinement and mode of treating a prisoner may be varied during his captivity according to the demands of
safety.). See also GPW COMMENTARY 140 (The requirement of humane treatment and the prohibition of certain
acts inconsistent with it are general and absolute in character. They are valid at all times, and apply, for example, to
cases where repressive measures are legitimately imposed on a protected person, since the dictates of humanity must
be respected even if measures of security or repression are being applied.).
130
See Trial of Erich Weiss and Wilhelm Mundo, Relevance of the Plea of Self-Defence in War Crime Trials, XIII
U.N. LAW REPORTS 149, 150 (U.S. General Military Government Court, Ludwigsburg, Germany, Nov. 9-10, 1945)
(In the light of the foregoing the rules contained in Articles 2 and 3 of the Geneva Convention, 1929, would appear
to be subject to the principle that, given faithful observation of these provisions by the detaining authorities, the
latter are generally entitled to use the force reasonably necessary to secure the custody of the prisoners or to protect
themselves from an attack by the prisoners.).
131
For example, 1997 MULTI-SERVICE DETENTION REGULATION 2-1.a.(1) (The commanding officer of the
capturing unit will ensure that: (a) Each EPW/RP will be searched immediately after capture. Weapons,
ammunition, and equipment or documents with intelligence value will be confiscated and turned over to the nearest
intelligence unit. Propaganda and other Psychological Operations (PSYOP) materials will be confiscated, identified
by the EPW/RP name and ISN and turned over to the supporting EPW/CI PSYOP unit through intelligence
channels.); Office of the Provost Marshal General, World War II - A Brief History 492-93 (1946) (Each prisoner
was searched and disarmed immediately upon capture and contraband articles were taken from him, including all
equipment issued to him by his government, except clothing. He was permitted to retain his helmet and gas mask in
combat zones. Contraband included cameras, binoculars, signalling devices, compasses, and such other articles as
might be useful to him in an escape. All military papers, documents, maps, and diaries were retained for intelligence
examination.).
132
Refer to 9.5 (Humane Treatment and Basic Protections for POWs).
529
both the person being searched from abuse and the person conducting the search from unfounded
accusations of abuse.
9.6.2 Securing POWs With Handcuffs and Other Security Devices. When necessary for
security reasons (e.g., to prevent escape or destruction of documents), POWs may be secured
temporarily with handcuffs, flex cuffs, blindfolds, or other security devices. 134
9.6.3 Search of POW Property. Items in the possession of POWs may be removed and
searched for security and intelligence purposes, but certain items of personal or sentimental value
must be returned as soon as possible. 135
9.7.1 POW Effects and Articles of Personal Use. All effects and articles of personal use,
except arms, horses, military equipment, and military documents, shall remain in the possession
of POWs, likewise their metal helmets and gas masks and like articles issued for personal
protection. 136 Effects and articles used for their clothing or feeding shall likewise remain in their
possession, even if such effects and articles are part of their regulation military equipment. 137
These rules do not prohibit the search of POW effects and articles of personal use. 138
Items that may otherwise be legitimately impounded (e.g., articles of value being
withdrawn for reasons of security) are not precluded from being impounded because they may be
characterized as an effect or article of personal use or an effect or article used for clothing or
feeding. 139
133
For example, 1997 MULTI-SERVICE DETENTION REGULATION 2-1.a.(1) (The commanding officer of the
capturing unit will ensure that: (a) Each EPW/RP will be searched immediately after capture. Use males to
search males and females to search female prisoners, when possible.).
134
See Winston Churchill, Prime Minster, United Kingdom, Oral Answers to Questions, Oct. 13, 1942, HANSARD,
383 HOUSE OF COMMONS DEBATES 1500 (His Majestys Government have never countenanced any general order
for the tying up of prisoners on the field of battle. Such a process, however, may be necessary from time to time
under stress of circumstances, and may indeed be in the best interest of the safety of the prisoners themselves.).
135
Refer to 9.7.3 (Badges, Decorations, and Articles Having Above All a Personal or Sentimental Value).
136
GPW art. 18 (All effects and articles of personal use, except arms, horses, military equipment and military
documents, shall remain in the possession of prisoners of war, likewise their metal helmets and gas masks and like
articles issued for personal protection.).
137
GPW art. 18 (Effects and articles used for their clothing or feeding shall likewise remain in their possession,
even if such effects and articles belong to their regulation military equipment.).
138
Refer to 9.6.3 (Search of POW Property).
139
Refer to 9.7.4 (Money and Articles of Value).
530
9.7.2 Identity Documents. At no time should POWs be without identity documents. 140
The Detaining Power shall supply such documents to POWs who possess none. 141
Identity documents may be seized when necessary (e.g., intelligence purposes), provided
that the Detaining Power supplies a replacement identity document. 142
9.7.3 Badges, Decorations, and Articles Having Above All a Personal or Sentimental
Value. Badges of rank and nationality, decorations, and articles having above all a personal or
sentimental value may not be taken from POWs. 143 Such items might include a ring, wristwatch,
personal correspondence, or family photographs.
This rule does not prohibit the search of items, including a search in order to determine
whether the items in question have above all a personal or sentimental value. 144
Items that may otherwise be legitimately impounded (e.g., articles of value being
withdrawn for reasons of security) are not precluded from being impounded because of their
personal or sentimental value to the POW. 145
9.7.4 Money and Articles of Value. Sums of money carried by POWs may not be taken
away from them except by order of an officer, and after the amount and particulars of the owner
have been recorded in a special register and an itemized receipt has been given, legibly inscribed
with the name, rank, and unit of the person issuing this receipt. 146
Sums in the currency of the Detaining Power, or that are changed into such currency at
the POWs request, shall be placed to the credit of the POWs account as provided for in Article
64 of the GPW. 147
140
GPW art. 18 (At no time should prisoners of war be without identity documents.).
141
GPW art. 18 (The Detaining Power shall supply such documents to prisoners of war who possess none.).
142
GPW COMMENTARY 168 (It is obvious, however, that no Detaining Power would undertake not to seize the
individual service records of combatants immediately following capture, since valuable information might be
contained therein. The Convention does not, therefore, restrict the right of the Detaining Power to seize military
documents; in this respect it departs from the 1929 text but also stipulates that at no time should prisoners of war be
without identity documents. As we have already seen in connection with Article 17, the Detaining Power must
therefore supply an identity document in place of any individual service record which it impounds.).
143
GPW art. 18 (Badges of rank and nationality, decorations and articles having above all a personal or sentimental
value may not be taken from prisoners of war.).
144
Refer to 9.6.3 (Search of POW Property).
145
Refer to 9.7.4 (Money and Articles of Value).
146
GPW art. 18 (Sums of money carried by prisoners of war may not be taken away from them except by order of
an officer, and after the amount and particulars of the owner have been recorded in a special register and an itemized
receipt has been given, legibly inscribed with the name, rank and unit of the person issuing the said receipt.).
147
GPW art. 18 (Sums in the currency of the Detaining Power, or which are changed into such currency at the
prisoners request, shall be placed to the credit of the prisoners account as provided in Article 64.). Refer to
9.18.6.1 (Cash in POW Hands Taken at the Time of Capture); 9.18.6 (POW Accounts).
531
The Detaining Power may withdraw articles of value from POWs only for reasons of
security; when such articles are withdrawn, the procedure laid down for sums of money
impounded shall apply. 148 For example, an article of value may be impounded for reasons of
security, even if it constitutes an article of personal use or an article having above all a personal
or sentimental value. 149
Such objects, likewise sums taken away in any currency other than that of the Detaining
Power and the conversion of which has not been asked for by the owners, shall be kept in the
custody of the Detaining Power and shall be returned in their initial shape to POWs at the end of
their captivity. 150
9.7.5 No Bartering With POWs for Personal Effects. It is not proper for members of the
forces of the Detaining Power to engage in bartering and other transactions with POWs
concerning their personal effects. 152
The law of war does not prohibit interrogation of POWs, but specifies conditions and
limitations for conducting interrogation.
148
GPW art. 18 (The Detaining Power may withdraw articles of value from prisoners of war only for reasons of
security; when such articles are withdrawn, the procedure laid down for sums of money impounded shall apply.).
149
LEVIE, POWS 113 ([A] prisoner of war might have an antique pocket watch with a compass in the stem. Even
though such a watch falls within the category of articles of personal use [Article 18, first paragraph] or of articles
having above all a personal or sentimental value [Article 18, third paragraph], which prisoners of war may normally
retain, no Detaining Power could be censured for taking the watch and placing it in safekeeping until the owner is
repatriated.).
150
GPW art. 18 (Such objects, likewise sums taken away in any currency other than that of the Detaining Power
and the conversion of which has not been asked for by the owners, shall be kept in the custody of the Detaining
Power and shall be returned in their initial shape to prisoners of war at the end of their captivity.).
151
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 94c (The unexplained possession by a prisoner of war of a large sum of
money justifiably leads to the inference that such funds are not his own property and are in fact either property of the
enemy government or property which has been looted or otherwise stolen.).
152
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 94b (It is not proper for members of the forces of the Detaining Power to
engage in bartering and other transactions with prisoners of war concerning their personal effects.).
532
9.8.1 Humane Treatment During Interrogation. Interrogation must be carried out in a
manner consistent with the requirements for humane treatment, including the prohibition against
acts of violence or intimidation, and insults. 153
No physical or mental torture, nor any other form of coercion, may be inflicted on POWs
to secure from them information of any kind whatever. 154 POWs who refuse to answer may not
be threatened, insulted, or exposed to unpleasant or disadvantageous treatment of any kind. 155
Prohibited means include imposing inhumane conditions, 156 denial of medical treatment, or the
use of mind-altering chemicals. 157
9.8.3 Additional U.S. Law and Policy on Interrogation. U.S. law and policy impose
additional requirements on the interrogation of POWs. 159
9.8.4 Accountability Information That POWs Are Bound to Provide Upon Questioning.
Every POW, when questioned on the subject, is bound to give only his or her surname, first
names and rank, date of birth, and army, regimental, personal or serial number, or, failing this,
equivalent information. 160 If POWs willfully infringe this rule, they may render themselves
liable to a restriction of the privileges accorded to their rank or status. 161 However, POWs who
153
Refer to 9.5 (Humane Treatment and Basic Protections for POWs).
154
GPW art. 17 (No physical or mental torture, nor any other form of coercion, may be inflicted on prisoners of
war to secure from them information of any kind whatever.).
155
GPW art. 17 (Prisoners of war who refuse to answer may not be threatened, insulted, or exposed to unpleasant
or disadvantageous treatment of any kind.).
156
Trial of Erich Killinger and Four Others (The Dulag Luft Case), III U.N. Law REPORTS 67 (British Military
Court, Wuppertal, Nov. 26-Dec. 3, 1945) (The function of Dulag Luft was, shortly, to obtain information of an
operational and vital nature from the captured crews of Allied machines. The allegation was that excessive heating
of the prisoners cells took place at Dulag Luft between the dates laid in the charge for the deliberate purpose of
obtaining from prisoners of war information of a kind which under the Geneva Convention they were not bound to
give, and that the accused were concerned in that ill-treatment. The Prosecution also alleged a lack of and refusal
of required medical attention and in some cases, blows. ... Killinger, Junge and Eberhardt were found guilty and
sentenced to imprisonment for five, five and three years respectively. The remaining two accused were found not
guilty.).
157
U.S. Army, Office of The Judge Advocate General, JAGW 1961/1157, Memo re: Use of Truth Serum in
Questioning Prisoners of War, Jun. 21, 1961, LEVIE, DOCUMENTS ON POWS 708, 709 (3. In view of the foregoing,
it is the opinion of this division that the suggested use of a chemical truth serum during the questioning of
prisoners of war would be in violation of the obligations of the United States under the Geneva Convention Relative
to the Treatment of Prisoners of War.).
158
GPW art. 17 (The questioning of prisoners of war shall be carried out in a language which they understand.).
159
Refer to, e.g., 8.4.2 (Additional U.S. Law and Policy on Interrogation).
160
GPW art. 17 (Every prisoner of war, when questioned on the subject, is bound to give only his surname, first
names and rank, date of birth, and army, regimental, personal or serial number, or failing this, equivalent
information.).
161
GPW art. 17 (If he wilfully infringes this rule, he may render himself liable to a restriction of the privileges
accorded to his rank or status.).
533
refuse to provide this information may not be coerced or exposed to any other unpleasant or
disadvantageous treatment of any kind for failing to respond.
9.8.4.1 POWs Unable to State Their Identity. POWs who, owing to their physical
or mental condition, are unable to state their identity, shall be handed over to the medical
service. 164 The identity of such POWs shall be established by all possible means, subject to the
prohibition on physical or mental torture, or coercion, as well as the prohibition on threats,
insults, or exposure to unpleasant or disadvantageous treatment. 165
POWs shall be evacuated, as soon as possible after their capture, to camps situated in an
area far enough from the combat zone for them to be out of danger. 166 POWs shall not be
unnecessarily exposed to danger while awaiting evacuation from a fighting zone. 167
9.9.1 Delay in Evacuation for Medical Reasons. Only those POWs who, owing to
wounds or sickness, would run greater risks by being evacuated than by remaining where they
are, may be temporarily kept back in a danger zone. 168
162
Refer to 9.9.2 (Conditions of Evacuation).
163
Refer to 9.31.1 (Accountability Information That the Detaining Power Should Collect).
164
GPW art. 17 (Prisoners of war who, owing to their physical or mental condition, are unable to state their
identity, shall be handed over to the medical service.).
165
GPW art. 17 (The identity of such prisoners shall be established by all possible means, subject to the provisions
of the preceding paragraph.).
166
GPW art. 19 (Prisoners of war shall be evacuated, as soon as possible after their capture, to camps situated in an
area far enough from the combat zone for them to be out of danger.).
167
GPW art. 20 (Prisoners of war shall not be unnecessarily exposed to danger while awaiting evacuation from a
fighting zone.).
168
GPW art. 19 (Only those prisoners of war who, owing to wounds or sickness, would run greater risks by being
evacuated than by remaining where they are, may be temporarily kept back in a danger zone.).
169
GPW art. 20 (The evacuation of prisoners of war shall always be effected humaneIy and in conditions similar to
those for the forces of the Detaining Power in their changes of station.).
170
GPW art. 20 (The Detaining Power shall supply prisoners of war who are being evacuated with sufficient food
and potable water, and with the necessary clothing and medical attention.).
534
Detaining Power shall take all suitable precautions to ensure their safety during evacuation, and
shall establish as soon as possible a list of the POWs who are evacuated. 171
Provided that the requirements of humane treatment are met, the Detaining Power may
subject POWs to security measures while evacuating them away from the combat zone. For
example, POWs may be handcuffed, flex-cuffed, or blindfolded for security reasons. 172
9.9.3 Release Under Unusual Conditions Rather Than Evacuation. When persons
entitled to protection as POWs have fallen into the power of an adverse party under unusual
conditions of combat that prevent their evacuation as provided for in Part III, Section I, of the
GPW, they may be released, provided that feasible precautions are taken to ensure their safety. 173
Release in such circumstances is permissible, but is not required. 174 In some cases,
enemy forces may give their parole. 175
171
GPW art. 20 (The Detaining Power shall take all suitable precautions to ensure their safety during evacuation,
and shall establish as soon as possible a list of the prisoners of war who are evacuated.).
172
Refer to 9.6 (Security Measures With Respect to POWs).
173
Consider AP I art. 41(3) (When persons entitled to protection as prisoners of war have fallen into the power of
an adverse Party under unusual conditions of combat which prevent their evacuation as provided for in Part III,
Section I, of the Third Convention, they shall be released and all feasible precautions shall be taken to ensure their
safety.).
174
Cf. APPENDIX TO 1985 CJCS MEMO ON AP I, ANNEX-3 (providing a draft proposed understanding to AP I: 9. It
is the understanding of the United States that Article 41, paragraph 3 [of AP I], does not obligate a Detaining Power
to release prisoners of war simply because these individuals cannot be immediately evacuated from a combat zone.
The United States continues to recognize, however, an obligation to provide for the safety of such personnel.);
2004 UK MANUAL 8.32.1 (If, because of unusual conditions of combat, it is not possible to evacuate prisoners of
war, they are to be released and all feasible precautions taken to ensure their safety. There is no obligation to release
prisoners of war in circumstances in which safe evacuation is temporarily impossible. In such cases, prisoners of
war may be held until release or evacuation is possible. There is, however, a continuing obligation to take all
feasible measures to provide for the safety of such prisoners of war so long as they remain in the custody of the
detaining power. This principle admits of no exception even in the case of airborne, commando, or special forces
operations, although the circumstances of the operation may necessitate rigorous supervision of and restraint upon
the movement of prisoners of war.).
175
Refer to 9.11.2 (Parole of POWs).
176
BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 224 (AP I art. 41, 2.4) (Articles 19 and 20 of the Third Convention
require the prompt and humane evacuation of prisoners of war from the combat zone to places out of the danger
area. In certain types of operations, particularly airborne operations, commando raids, and long range
reconnaissance patrols, compliance with these articles is clearly impractical, and there has been dispute as to what is
required in such cases.).
177
Refer to 5.3.3.2 (What Precautions Are Feasible).
535
long-range reconnaissance patrol need not make itself militarily ineffective by handing over all
its supplies to POWs whom it has captured. 178 However, the patrol should take reasonable steps
under the circumstances to help ensure the POWs safety and survival, such as providing them
with a modicum of food and water. 179
POWs may be sent to transit or screening facilities before internment in a POW camp.
For example, special interrogation centers have been used as screening facilities to interrogate
POWs before their internment in the POW camp. 180
9.10.2 Transit or Screening Camps Near Military Operations. Facilities within a zone of
military operations are often established in order to house POWs captured during military
operations in that particular zone that, due to their proximity to the fighting, are not able to meet
178
Cf. XV OFFICIAL RECORDS OF THE CDDH 384 (Committee III Report, CDDH/236/Rev.1, 24) (Paragraph 3
dealing with the release of prisoners who could not be evacuated proved quite difficult. The phrase unusual
conditions of combat was intended to reflect the fact that that circumstance would be abnormal. What, in fact, most
representatives referred to was the situation of the long distance patrol which is not equipped to detain and evacuate
prisoners. The requirement that all feasible precautions be taken to ensure the safety of released prisoners was
intended to emphasize that the detaining power, even in those extraordinary circumstances, was expected to take all
measures that were practicable in the light of the combat situation. In the case of the long distance patrol, it need not
render itself ineffective by handing the bulk of its supplies over to the released prisoners, but it should do all that it
reasonably can do, in view of all the circumstances, to ensure their safety.).
179
1958 UK MANUAL 137 note 1 (Whether a commander may release prisoners of war in the circumstances stated
in the text [commando operations and other situations in which it is not feasible to care for POWs] is not clear. No
provision is made in the Convention [the GPW] for such release, and there may well be occasions when such a
release will deprive the prisoners of war of such maintenance and food as is available, as, for example, if they are
released in a desert or jungle or in mountainous districts. If such a release be made, it would seem clear that the
commander should supply the prisoners with that modicum of food, water, and weapons as would give them a
chance of survival.).
180
For example, John Brown Mason, German Prisoners of War in the United States, 39 AJIL 198, 203 (1945) (In
American practice [during World War II], the prisoners are questioned at special interrogation centers. Practically
no complaint has been made by the prisoners to the Swiss Legation about the treatment in these transient centers.).
181
Refer to 9.20.1 (Capture, Health, or Transfer Card).
536
all the requirements of the GPW. 182 Transit or screening facilities must, however, provide
POWs reasonable protection from the effects of combat, basic sanitation, and food and water. 183
If POWs must, during evacuation, pass through transit camps, their stay in such camps
shall be as brief as possible. 184
9.10.4 Use of Ships for Temporary Detention. POWs may be detained temporarily on
board a ship if operational or humanitarian needs dictate, pending a reasonable opportunity to
transfer them to a shore facility, or to another vessel for evacuation to a shore facility. 186 For
example, they may be temporarily detained on board naval vessels: (a) while being transported
between land facilities; or (b) if such action would appreciably improve their safety or health
prospects, such as avoidance of exposure to severe environmental or combat conditions, or
improved access to medical care for those requiring it. Such limited detention does not violate
the requirement for internment of POWs on land. 187
182
GPW COMMENTARY 176 (The camps mentioned in the present paragraph are those which the military
authorities may have to establish in a combat zone in order to house prisoners captured during military operations in
that particular zone. In view of the fact that they are near the fighting zone, it is not always possible to require that
such camps should fulfil all the material conditions specified in the Convention.).
183
Refer to 9.9.2 (Conditions of Evacuation).
184
GPW art. 20 (If prisoners of war must, during evacuation, pass through transit camps, their stay in such camps
shall be as brief as possible.).
185
GPW art. 24 (Transit or screening camps of a permanent kind shall be fitted out under conditions similar to
those described in the present Section, and the prisoners therein shall have the same treatment as in other camps.).
186
For example, 1997 MULTI-SERVICE DETENTION REGULATION 2-1.b (Special policy pertaining to the
temporary detention of EPW, CI, RP and other detained persons aboard United States Naval Vessels: (1) Detention
of EPW/RP on board naval vessels will be limited. (2) EPW recovered at sea may be temporarily held on board as
operational needs dictate, pending a reasonable opportunity to transfer them to a shore facility, or to another vessel
for transfer to a shore facility. (3) EPW/RP may be temporarily held aboard naval vessels while being transported
between land facilities. They may also be treated and temporarily quartered aboard naval vessels incidental to their
treatment, to receive necessary and appropriate medical attention if such detention would appreciably improve their
health or safety prospects. (4) Holding of EPW/RP on vessels must be temporary, limited to the minimum period
necessary to evacuate them from the combat zone or to avoid significant harm that would be faced if detained on
land. (5) Use of immobilized vessels for temporary holding of EPW/RP is not authorized without SECDEF
approval.).
187
Refer to 9.11.3.1 (Location on Land).
537
9.11 GENERAL CONDITIONS IN POW CAMPS: LOCATION, SAFETY, HYGIENE, AND LIVING
CONDITIONS
9.11.1 Internment in POW Camps. The Detaining Power may subject POWs to
internment. 188 It may impose on them the obligation of not leaving, beyond certain limits, the
camp where they are interned, or if that camp is fenced in, of not going outside its perimeter. 189
9.11.2 Parole of POWs. POWs may be partially or wholly released on parole or promise,
in so far as is allowed by the laws of the Power on which they depend. 191 Such measures shall
be taken particularly in cases where this may contribute to the improvement of their state of
health. 192 No POW shall be compelled to accept liberty on parole or promise. 193
Upon the outbreak of hostilities, each party to the conflict shall notify the adverse party
of the laws and regulations allowing or forbidding its own nationals to accept liberty on parole or
promise. 194 U.S. policy prohibits U.S. servicemembers from accepting parole or special favors
from the enemy. 195
POWs who are paroled or who have given their promise in conformity with the laws and
regulations so notified are bound on their personal honor scrupulously to fulfill, both towards the
Power on which they depend and towards the Power that has captured them, the engagements of
their paroles or promises. 196 In such cases, the Power on which they depend is bound neither to
require nor to accept from them any service incompatible with the parole or promise given. 197
188
GPW art. 21 (The Detaining Power may subject prisoners of war to internment.).
189
GPW art. 21 (It may impose on them the obligation of not leaving, beyond certain limits, the camp where they
are interned, or if the said camp is fenced in, of not going outside its perimeter.).
190
GPW art. 21 (Subject to the provisions of the present Convention relative to penal and disciplinary sanctions,
prisoners of war may not be held in close confinement except where necessary to safeguard their health and then
only during the continuation of the circumstances which make such confinement necessary.).
191
GPW art. 21 (Prisoners of war may be partially or wholly released on parole or promise, in so far as is allowed
by the laws of the Power on which they depend.).
192
GPW art. 21 (Such measures shall be taken particularly in cases where this may contribute to the improvement
of their state of health.).
193
GPW art. 21 (No prisoner of war shall be compelled to accept liberty on parole or promise.).
194
GPW art. 21 (Upon the outbreak of hostilities, each Party to the conflict shall notify the adverse Party of the
laws and regulations allowing or forbidding its own nationals to accept liberty on parole or promise.).
195
Refer to 9.39.1.3 (Code of Conduct Article III).
196
GPW art. 21 (Prisoners of war who are paroled or who have given their promise in conformity with the laws and
regulations so notified, are bound on their personal honour scrupulously to fulfil, both towards the Power on which
they depend and towards the Power which has captured them, the engagements of their paroles or promises.);
HAGUE IV REG. art. 10 (Prisoners of war may be set at liberty on parole if the laws of their country allow, and in
538
9.11.3 Location of POW Camps.
Because the purpose of the rule is to provide for the detention of POWs in a relatively
safe and healthy environment, detention aboard ship for POWs captured at sea or pending the
establishment of suitable facilities on land is nonetheless consistent with the GPW if detention on
a ship provides the most appropriate living conditions for POWs. 199 Ships may also be used to
transport POWs or for screening. 200
9.11.3.2 Use of Penitentiaries as POW Camps. Except in particular cases that are
justified by the interests of the POWs themselves, POWs shall not be interned in
penitentiaries. 201 This rule reflects the principle that POW detention is not punitive, but also
recognizes that penitentiaries may sometimes provide the most appropriate lodging. 202
such cases, they are bound, on their personal honour, scrupulously to fulfil, both towards their own Government and
the Government by whom they were made prisoners, the engagements they have contracted. In such cases their own
Government is bound neither to require of nor accept from them any service incompatible with the parole given.).
197
GPW art. 21 (In such cases, the Power on which they depend is bound neither to require nor to accept from them
any service incompatible with the parole or promise given.).
198
GPW art. 22 (Prisoners of war may be interned only in premises located on land and affording every guarantee
of hygiene and healthfulness.).
199
For example, Gregory P. Noone, Christian P. Fleming, Robert P. Morean, John V. Danner, Jr., Philip N. Fluhr,
Jr., Jonathan I. Shapiro, Sandra L. Hodgkinson, Edward J. Cook, & Dillon L. Ross IV, Prisoners of War in the 21st
Century: Issues in Modern Warfare, 50 NAVAL LAW REVIEW 1, 16 (2004) (During OIF [Operation Iraqi
Freedom], a U.S. naval vessel in the Persian Gulf served as a temporary detention facility for EPWs. EPW
internment camps in Iraq were not yet ready for prisoners. Additionally, Kuwait refused to allow Coalition forces to
build EPW camps in Kuwait and they would not allow Coalition forces to bring EPWs into Kuwait. The cavernous
hold of USS DUBUQUE (LPD-8), an amphibious assault ship, was converted into a detention facility where
prisoners were held and interrogated as EPWs until camps were operational on shore.); Joint Chiefs of Staff, Memo
re: Policy Concerning Temporary Detention of Prisoners of War, Civilian Internees, and Other Detained Persons
Aboard Naval Vessels, 2a.(3) -2b (Aug. 24, 1984) (PW/CI/DET may be temporarily held on board naval vessels
if such detention would appreciably improve the safety or health prospects for the PW/CI/DET. b. Holding of
PW/CI/DET on board vessels must be truly temporary, limited to the minimum period necessary to evacuate the
PW/CI/DET from the combat zone or to avoid the significant harm the PW/CI/DET would face if detained on
land.); 2004 UK MANUAL 8.37.1 footnote 123 ([Temporary internment on board ship for the purpose of
evacuation from the combat zone] was done during the Falklands conflict 1982, with the concurrence of the ICRC,
because there was nowhere suitable to hold PW on the Falklands Islands and the intention was to repatriate them as
quickly as possible.).
200
Refer to 9.10.4 (Use of Ships for Temporary Detention).
201
GPW art. 22 (Except in particular cases which are justified by the interest of the prisoners themselves, they shall
not be interned in penitentiaries.).
202
For example, I REPORT OF THE INTERNATIONAL COMMITTEE OF THE RED CROSS ON ITS ACTIVITIES DURING THE
SECOND WORLD WAR (SEPTEMBER 1, 1939 JUNE 30, 1947) 248 (1948) (Experience in the recent War showed that
539
9.11.3.3 Location Outside the Theater of Military Operations. The GPW does not
prohibit locating POW camps outside the theater of military operations, and there is much State
practice in conducting detention operations outside of the theater in which POWs were
captured. 203 Although the GC imposes geographic restrictions on the transfer of protected
persons held in occupied territory, the GPW does not impose such restrictions on the transfer of
POWs from the territory in which they were captured. 204
Locating POW camps outside the theater of operations may be necessary for security
(such as to discourage escape or reduce risk of enemy raids to release POWs) or other military
reasons, such as improving the safety of POWs.
a great variety of buildings and quarters were put into service. A converted penitentiary, for example, proved a
better lodging than many other buildings.).
203
For example, Martin Tollefson, Enemy Prisoners of War, 32 IOWA LAW REVIEW 51, 59 (1946) (The total
number of enemy prisoners of war interned within the United States [during World War II] was 435,788. Included
were 378,898 Germans, 51,455 Italians, and 5,435 Japanese. The number of prisoners of war in the United States
was somewhat negligible prior to January 1943. It increased rapidly beginning with May of that year, largely as a
result of the success of the African campaign. The increase continued irregularly but speedily until it reached its
peak shortly after the surrender of Germany, when the influx of prisoners of war from Europe ceased.).
204
Refer to 11.12.3 (Prohibition Against Forcible Transfers and Deportations).
205
Cf. GPW art. 19 (Prisoners of war shall be evacuated, as soon as possible after their capture, to camps situated in
an area far enough from the combat zone for them to be out of danger.).
206
GPW art. 23 (Detaining Powers shall give the Powers concerned, through the intermediary of the Protecting
Powers, all useful information regarding the geographical location of prisoner of war camps.).
207
GPW art. 23 (Whenever military considerations permit, prisoner of war camps shall be indicated in the day-time
by the letters PW or PG, placed so as to be clearly visible from the air.).
208
GPW art. 23 (The Powers concerned may, however, agree upon any other system of marking.).
209
GPW art. 23 (Only prisoner of war camps shall be marked as such.).
540
The caveat that POW camps need to be marked, as such, only when military
considerations permit was intended to allow for camps not to be marked, e.g., if marking camps
would provide landmarks that would facilitate aerial bombardment by the enemy. 210
9.11.4.4 Air-Raid Shelters and Protective Measures for POWs. POWs shall have
shelters against air bombardment and other hazards of war, to the same extent as the local
civilian population. 211 With the exception of those engaged in the protection of their quarters
against these hazards, they may enter such shelters as soon as possible after the giving of the
alarm. 212 Any other protective measure taken in favor of the population shall also apply to
POWs.213
9.11.4.5 Fire Precautions. All precautions must be taken in POW camps against
the danger of fire. 214
9.11.5 Hygiene of POW Camps. POWs may be interned only in premises affording
every guarantee of hygiene and healthfulness. 215 POWs interned in unhealthy areas, or where
the climate is injurious for them, shall be removed as soon as possible to a more favorable
climate. 216
210
II-A FINAL RECORD OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 254 (Miss BECKETT (United
Kingdom) said that her Delegation was opposed to any mandatory provision regarding the marking of prisoner of
war camps, owing to the small area of the United Kingdom. Camps so marked would provide excellent landmarks
in the event of aerial bombardment. Large countries might conclude special agreements on the matter.).
211
GPW art. 23 (Prisoners of war shall have shelters against air bombardment and other hazards of war, to the same
extent as the local civilian population.).
212
GPW art. 23 (With the exception of those engaged in the protection of their quarters against the aforesaid
hazards, they may enter such shelters as soon as possible after the giving of the alarm.).
213
GPW art. 23 (Any other protective measure taken in favour of the population shall also apply to them.).
214
GPW art. 25 (All precautions must be taken against the danger of fire.).
215
GPW art. 22 (Prisoners of war may be interned only in premises located on land and affording every guarantee
of hygiene and healthfulness.).
216
GPW art. 22 (Prisoners of war interned in unhealthy areas, or where the climate is injurious for them, shall be
removed as soon as possible to a more favourable climate.).
217
GPW art. 29 (The Detaining Power shall be bound to take all sanitary measures necessary to ensure the
cleanliness and healthfulness of camps and to prevent epidemics.).
218
GPW COMMENTARY 206 (Among the special measures which the Detaining Power must take in regard to
prisoners of war, we would mention first very strict examination upon entry into the camp, thorough disinfection and
inoculation with all necessary vaccines.).
541
In addition, quarters should be kept free from vermin, and POWs suffering from contagious
diseases should be placed in quarantine as needed. 219
Although the Detaining Power is ultimately responsible for sanitary conditions, the
Detaining Power may require POWs to assist in ensuring that POW camps are clean and healthy.
For example, POWs may be assigned cleaning duties. 220 Additionally, POWs may be required
to take baths or showers if necessary for health reasons. 221 Similarly, POWs may be required to
receive inoculations to prevent the spread of contagious diseases.
9.11.5.2 Sanitary Conveniences (e.g., latrines, bathrooms). POWs shall have for
their use, day and night, conveniences that conform to the rules of hygiene and are maintained in
a constant state of cleanliness. 222 The term sanitary conveniences should be taken to mean
primarily the latrines. Access to the latrines at night is specified in the 1949 Geneva
Conventions because lack of access was a frequent problem in POW camps in World War II. 223
In any camps in which women POWs are accommodated, separate conveniences shall be
provided for them. 224
9.11.5.3 Showers, Baths, Personal Toilet, and Laundry. Also, apart from the
baths and showers with which the camps shall be furnished, POWs shall be provided with
sufficient water and soap for their personal toilet and for washing their personal laundry; the
necessary installations, facilities, and time shall be granted them for that purpose. 225 For
219
GPW COMMENTARY 207 (Prisoners suffering from contagious diseases must be placed in quarantine. Careful
attention must also be paid to quarters, and all necessary measures taken to keep them free of vermin.). Refer to
9.14.1.1 (Camp Infirmary).
220
Refer to 9.19.2.3 (Labor Assignments That May Be Compelled).
221
GPW COMMENTARY 208 (Baths and showers may be made compulsory for prisoners of war, provided no risk to
their health is involved. This interpretation is not based on the present provision [paragraph 3 of GPW art. 29], but
on paragraph 1 of this Article, which requires the Detaining Power to take all necessary sanitary measures. If baths
and showers are considered necessary to ensure healthfulness in the camps and to prevent epidemics, they must be
compulsory.).
222
GPW art. 29 (Prisoners of war shall have for their use, day and night, conveniences which conform to the rules
of hygiene and are maintained in a constant state of cleanliness.).
223
See GPW COMMENTARY 207 (During the Second World War, prisoners of war sometimes had no access to the
conveniences during the night. The new Convention makes an express stipulation in this respect.); I REPORT OF
THE INTERNATIONAL COMMITTEE OF THE RED CROSS ON ITS ACTIVITIES DURING THE SECOND WORLD WAR
(SEPTEMBER 1, 1939 JUNE 30, 1947) 263 (1948) (Delegates of the ICRC frequently drew the attention of camp
commandants to the fact that sanitary conveniences were insufficient in number and often inaccessible to PW at
night.).
224
GPW art. 29 (In any camps in which women prisoners of war are accommodated, separate conveniences shall be
provided for them.).
225
GPW art. 29 (Also, apart from the baths and showers with which the camps shall be furnished, prisoners of war
shall be provided with sufficient water and soap for their personal toilet and for washing their personal laundry; the
necessary installations, facilities and time shall be granted them for that purpose.).
542
example, the POW camp may have camp laundry facilities that the POWs may use to wash their
clothes, or the POWs may have access to a laundry service outside the camp. 226
Although the frequency with which baths or showers may be taken is not specified, a
reasonable opportunity (e.g., considering the available resources, the POWs cultural practices,
the activities in which they are engaged) should be afforded. 227
The premises provided for the use of POWs individually or collectively shall be entirely
protected from dampness and adequately heated and lighted, in particular between dusk and
lights out. 231
9.11.6.1 Separate Dormitories for Women. In any camps in which women POWs,
as well as men, are accommodated, separate dormitories shall be provided for women POWs. 232
Although the GPW refers only to separate dormitories and the quarters as a whole need
not necessarily be separated, the Detaining Power may provide separate quarters or even camps
for men and women POWs, as appropriate. 233
226
See GPW COMMENTARY 208 (The time allowed must also be sufficient for the washing of personal laundry. In
camps where other ranks are interned, this task is usually performed by the prisoners themselves; in camps for
officers, it is usually done outside the camp against payment.).
227
See also GPW COMMENTARY 208 (In the first place, this paragraph [of article 29 of the GPW] provides that the
camps must be furnished with baths and showers. Taking into account the difficulties which the Detaining Power
may have in providing hot baths and showers for a large number of prisoners, one bath or shower per week for each
prisoner may be considered reasonable.).
228
GPW art. 25 (Prisoners of war shall be quartered under conditions as favourable as those for the forces of the
Detaining Power who are billeted in the same area.).
229
GPW art. 25 (The said conditions shall make allowance for the habits and customs of the prisoners and shall in
no case be prejudicial to their health.).
230
GPW art. 25 (The foregoing provisions shall apply in particular to the dormitories of prisoners of war as regards
both total surface and minimum cubic space, and the general installations, bedding and blankets.).
231
GPW art. 25 (The premises provided for the use of prisoners of war individually or collectively, shall be entirely
protected from dampness and adequately heated and lighted, in particular between dusk and lights out.).
232
GPW art. 25 (In any camps in which women prisoners of war, as well as men, are accommodated, separate
dormitories shall be provided for them.).
233
GPW COMMENTARY 195 (Strictly speaking, this paragraph refers only to dormitories and the quarters as a
whole need not necessarily be separated; the Detaining Power is, however, at liberty to provide separate quarters if it
deems fit and in order more easily to fulfil the other requirements of the Convention with regard to women
prisoners.).
543
9.12 SEGREGATION OF POWS
Although the Detaining Power must treat POWs without any adverse distinction based
upon race, nationality, religion, or political belief, or any other distinction based upon similar
criteria, 234 the Detaining Power shall assemble POWs in camps or camp compounds according to
their nationality, language, and customs, and may use other similar criteria to segregate detainees
in order to maintain order in the camps or to impose punishment, or for medical reasons.
The assembling of POWs on the basis of nationality, language, and customs is intended
to ameliorate the possibility of cultural conflicts within POW camps, such as those that occurred
during World War I. 236
234
Refer to 9.5.5 (No Adverse Distinction Based on Race, Nationality, Religion, or Political Belief).
235
GPW art. 22 (The Detaining Power shall assemble prisoners of war in camps or camp compounds according to
their nationality, language and customs, provided that such prisoners shall not be separated from prisoners of war
belonging to the armed forces with which they were serving at the time of their capture, except with their consent.).
236
GPW COMMENTARY 183 (The First World War was the first occasion on which soldiers of every race and
nationality fought on the same battlefields, and the very varied composition of armed forces sometimes raised
difficult problems for the Detaining Powers. It was difficult to expect men to live side by side solely because they
had belonged to the same armed forces when not only their culture and civilization were very different, but also they
had customs and habits which differed very much, for instance in matters of hygiene.).
237
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 92b (The foregoing provision [GPW art. 16] does not preclude the
segregation of prisoners of war to maintain order in camps, to impose punishment, or for medical reasons.).
238
For example, LEVIE, POWS 178 (The incidents which occurred in the prisoner-of-war camps there [during the
Korean War] demonstrated that where ideology is concerned, and where there is a major schism within the prisoner-
of-war group itself, segregation by political opinion may be an absolute requirement in order to ensure the safety of
many of the prisoners of war. Once again, it is necessary to state that there is no valid objection to this procedure as
long as there is, nevertheless, compliance with the provisions of the third paragraph of Article 22 and as long as
there is no discrimination in the treatment received by the individuals confined in different camps or compounds.).
239
For example, Gordon Risius, Prisoners of War in the United Kingdom, in PETER ROWE, THE GULF WAR 1990-91
IN INTERNATIONAL AND ENGLISH LAW 289, 298 (1993) (Four [Iraqi] prisoners [of war held in the United Kingdom]
were accommodated separately at their own request. They considered themselves to be deserters, and were
concerned that they might be attacked by the other prisoners if they were not segregated.).
544
whether they are connected with potential war crimes proceedings. 240 POWs may be segregated
according to their known or suspected security risk level. A combination of classifications may
be used to ensure an orderly and secure POW camp. 241
9.13.1 Food for POWs. The basic daily food rations shall be sufficient in quantity,
quality, and variety to keep POWs in good health and to prevent loss of weight or the
development of nutritional deficiencies. 242
9.13.1.1 Accounting for the Habitual Diet. Account shall also be taken of the
habitual diet of the POWs. 243 For example, the POWs cultural and religious requirements
should be considered in determining and ensuring the appropriate diet. 244 The preparation of the
food by the POWs themselves also helps conform the food to the POWs habitual diet. 245
240
For example, DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY PAMPHLET 20-213, History of Prisoner Of War Utilization By The
United States Army, 1776-1945, 253 (Jun. 24, 1955) (All Japanese PWs were divided into two classes after
screeningprocessed and categorized. A processed prisoner of war was one who had been questioned and found
not to be connected with any war crime. His name was recorded, a serial number assigned, and he was sent to a
branch PW labor camp pending repatriation. A categorized prisoner of war was one held as a war criminal or as a
material witness to atrocities committed by members of the Japanese forces. These were segregated from the other
prisoners, but were eligible for use as laborers under adequate security.).
241
For example, Martin Tollefson, Enemy Prisoners of War, 32 IOWA LAW REVIEW 51, 59 (1946) (The most
effective means, however, of stopping the crime wave [of murder and forced suicides in U.S.-run POW camps in
World War II] and other troubles, among prisoners of war, was the adoption of a well-planned program of
segregation. Prisoners were carefully screened and re-screened, classified, segregated, and transferred to camps
accordingly. At the one extreme were found the rabid Nazis, and at the other the confirmed anti-Nazis, with the
great mass of German prisoners falling in a middle category. In addition, there were many finer classifications and
segregations. The trouble makers, the Gestapo agents, and the SS and SA men, for instance, had to be segregated
from those who were willing to cooperate irrespective of their political views. Those who were inclined to be
particularly cooperative had to be given protection. Approximately one dozen different classes of camps were
maintained to make the segregation effective.).
242
GPW art. 26 (The basic daily food rations shall be sufficient in quantity, quality and variety to keep prisoners of
war in good health and to prevent loss of weight or the development of nutritial deficiencies.).
243
GPW art. 26 (Account shall also be taken of the habitual diet of the prisoners.).
244
For example, FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 585 (Rations for EPW were nourishing. The usual
menu consisted of: Four slices of bread w/jam, cheese, 1/4 liter milk or juice for breakfast; 1 US meal ready to eat,
North Atlantic Treaty Organization, or Saudi rations for lunch; and, beans, tomatoes, rice, meat (lamb or chicken),
and tea for supper. Items prohibited by local and regional religious beliefs were not served to EPWs. US personnel
removed these items from ration packets and replaced them with acceptable substitutes.).
245
GPW COMMENTARY 198 (The present provision, which is additional to the requirements in the first sentence,
should ensure that prisoners are provided with food corresponding to their needs, their taste and their habits.
Paragraph 4 of this same Article [Article 26 of the GPW], which provides that prisoners of war may be associated
with the preparation of their meals, will facilitate the application of this clause.).
545
9.13.1.2 Additional Food for Certain Groups. The Detaining Power shall supply
POWs who work with such additional rations as are necessary for the labor on which they are
employed. 246
9.13.1.4 Messing and Means for Preparing Additional Food. Adequate premises
shall be provided for messing. 249 Supervision of messes by the POWs themselves shall be
facilitated in every way. 250
POWs shall, as far as possible, be associated with the preparation of their meals; they
may be employed for that purpose in the kitchens. 251 Furthermore, they shall be given the means
of preparing, themselves, the additional food in their possession. 252 For example, the POWs
should have access to facilities to prepare food purchased at the canteen or received in relief
packages.
9.13.3 Use of Tobacco. The use of tobacco shall be permitted. 254 The Detaining Power
is not required to give tobacco to POWs, but should offer it for sale at the canteen. 255 The
Detaining Power may impose reasonable restrictions on smoking to ensure that the camp is a
healthful and safe environment.
246
GPW art. 26 (The Detaining Power shall supply prisoners of war who work with such additional rations as are
necessary for the labour on which they are employed.).
247
GPW art. 26 (Collective disciplinary measures affecting food are prohibited.).
248
LEVIE, POWS 130 footnote 115 (During the rioting at Koje-do in Korea in 1952 (see note V-8 infra), in order to
move recalcitrant Communist prisoners of war to smaller, more manageable, prisoner-of-war compounds where
control by the Detaining Power could be reestablished, the military authorities of the United Nations Command
made food available in the new, small compounds and refused to make it available in the old, large compounds. If
the prisoner of war wanted to eat, he had to move to the new compound. The ICRC Delegate took the position that
this was collective punishment involving food. The United Nations Command took the position that as food was
available in the new compounds, to which the prisoners of war were free to move, there was no denial of food to
them.).
249
GPW art. 26 (Adequate premises shall be provided for messing.).
250
GPW art. 44 (Supervision of the mess by the officers themselves shall be facilitated in every way.); GPW art.
45 (Supervision of the mess by the prisoners themselves shall be facilitated in every way.).
251
GPW art. 26 (Prisoners of war shall, as far as possible, be associated with the preparation of their meals; they
may be employed for that purpose in the kitchens.).
252
GPW art. 26 (Furthermore, they shall be given the means of preparing, themselves, the additional food in their
possession.).
253
GPW art. 26 (Sufficient drinking water shall be supplied to prisoners of war.).
254
GPW art. 26 (The use of tobacco shall be permitted.).
255
Refer to 9.17 (Canteens for POWs).
546
9.13.4 Clothing for POWs. Clothing, underwear, and footwear shall be supplied to
POWs in sufficient quantities by the Detaining Power, which shall make allowance for the
climate of the region where the POWs are detained. 256 The regular replacement and repair of
these articles shall be assured by the Detaining Power. 257
9.13.4.1 Uniforms for POWs. Uniforms of enemy armed forces captured by the
Detaining Power should, if suitable for the climate, be made available to clothe POWs. 258 The
Power to which the POWs belong may send uniforms to the POWs through the Protecting
Powers or ICRC. 259
The GPW does not prohibit providing POWs with uniforms of the armed forces of the
Detaining Power. If this were necessary, it would be appropriate to remove insignia or alter the
uniforms, which would reduce the risk that POWs might be mistaken for members of the armed
forces of the Detaining Power. 260
Similarly, uniforms or other clothing for POWs may contain markings denoting the
individuals as POWs because the absence of any such markings may facilitate escape. 261 Any
markings on clothing for POWs must be consistent with the principle of respect for the person
and honor of the POW and, therefore, may not be humiliating or degrading. 262
9.13.4.2 Appropriate Clothing for Work. POWs who work shall receive
appropriate clothing, wherever the nature of the work demands. 263
256
GPW art. 27 (Clothing, underwear and footwear shall be supplied to prisoners of war in sufficient quantities by
the Detaining Power, which shall make allowance for the climate of the region where the prisoners are detained.).
257
GPW art. 27 (The regular replacement and repair of the above articles shall be assured by the Detaining
Power.).
258
GPW art. 27 (Uniforms of enemy armed forces captured by the Detaining Power should, if suitable for the
climate, be made available to clothe prisoners of war.).
259
For example, I REPORT OF THE INTERNATIONAL COMMITTEE OF THE RED CROSS ON ITS ACTIVITIES DURING THE
SECOND WORLD WAR (SEPTEMBER 1, 1939 JUNE 30, 1947) 258 (1948) (As in the case of food, countries whose
economic conditions were considerably impaired by the war could not make adequate provision of the clothing of
the prisoners in their hands. The Powers to which these PW belonged thereupon sent large quantities of uniforms to
the camps through the ICRC. The object was not only to ensure that PW should have enough clothing, but also to
give them uniforms of their national forces, which in any case could not be supplied by the detaining Power.).
260
Cf. GPW COMMENTARY 201 (Prisoners may in no case be obliged to wear the uniform of the Detaining Power if
they consider that their honour does not so permit (Article 14, paragraph 1). The Detaining Power must therefore, as
a minimum, alter those uniforms, in particular by removing all badges of nationality.).
261
GPW COMMENTARY 201 (Detaining Powers have never been willing to allow prisoners of war to wear civilian
clothing, in order not to make escape easier.).
262
Refer to 9.5.3 (Protection Against Insults and Public Curiosity). Compare 10.13.4.1 (No Humiliating
Clothing).
263
GPW art. 27 (In addition, prisoners of war who work shall receive appropriate clothing, wherever the nature of
the work demands.).
547
9.14 MEDICAL ATTENTION FOR INTERNED POWS
In addition to the rules relating to the general rules applicable to the medical care of the
wounded and sick, 264 the following rules also apply to the medical care of POWs who have been
interned in POW camps.
The GPW and the GWS contemplate that POWs will benefit from the services of retained
medical personnel or POWs who are trained as medical personnel but not attached to the medical
service. 265 However, the provision in the GPW and the GWS for such personnel does not relieve
the Detaining Power of its obligations to provide for the medical care of POWs. 266
9.14.1.1 Camp Infirmary. Every camp shall have an adequate infirmary where
POWs may have the attention they require, as well as an appropriate diet. 267 Isolation wards
shall, if necessary, be set aside for cases of contagious or mental disease. 268
9.14.1.2 Right of POWs to Present Themselves for Examination. POWs may not
be prevented from presenting themselves to the medical authorities for examination. 269
The GPW contemplates that POWs would have daily sick call in which they could
present themselves for medical examination, even when undergoing disciplinary punishment. 270
The right of POWs to present themselves for examination does not mean that POWs must
necessarily be examined every day by a doctor, nor does it preclude disciplinary punishment if
POWs abusively make groundless requests for medical examination. 271
264
Refer to 7.5.2 (Medical Care of the Wounded and Sick).
265
Refer to 7.9 (Captured Medical and Religious Personnel).
266
Refer to 7.9.6 (No Relief of Obligations of the Detaining Power).
267
GPW art. 30 (Every camp shall have an adequate infirmary where prisoners of war may have the attention they
require, as well as appropriate diet.).
268
GPW art. 30 (Isolation wards shall, if necessary, be set aside for cases of contagious or mental disease.).
269
GPW art. 30 (Prisoners of war may not be prevented from presenting themselves to the medical authorities for
examination.).
270
Refer to 9.27.6.4 (Attendance at Daily Medical Inspection and Medical Attention).
271
Compare 10.14.1.2 (Right of Internees to Present Themselves for Examination).
272
GPW art. 31 (Medical inspections of prisoners of war shall be held at least once a month.).
273
GPW art. 31 (They shall include the checking and the recording of the weight of each prisoner of war.).
548
malaria, and venereal disease. 274 For this purpose, the most efficient methods available shall be
employed. 275 The GPW gives as an example periodic mass miniature radiography for early
detection of tuberculosis, but medical experts should be consulted for the best practices.
These medical personnel may be retained personnel or persons who are trained as
medical personnel but not attached to the medical service in their armed forces. 280
274
GPW art. 31 (Their purpose shall be, in particular, to supervise the general state of health, nutrition and
cleanliness of prisoners and to detect contagious diseases, especially tuberculosis, malaria and venereal disease.).
275
GPW art. 31 (For this purpose the most efficient methods available shall be employed, e. g. periodic mass
miniature radiography for the early detection of tuberculosis.).
276
GPW art. 30 (Prisoners of war suffering from serious disease, or whose condition necessitates special treatment,
a surgical operation or hospital care, must be admitted to any military or civilian medical unit where such treatment
can be given, even if their repatriation is contemplated in the near future.).
277
GPW art. 30 (Special facilities shall be afforded for the care to be given to the disabled, in particular to the
blind, and for their rehabilitation, pending repatriation.).
278
GPW art. 30 (Prisoners of war shall have the attention, preferably, of medical personnel of the Power on which
they depend and, if possible, of their nationality.).
279
Refer to 7.9.3 (Duties of Retained Personnel).
280
Refer to 4.9 (Military Medical and Religious Personnel); 4.5.2.2 (Members Trained as Medical Personnel, but
Not Attached to the Medical Service).
281
GPW art. 30 (The detaining authorities shall, upon request, issue to every prisoner who has undergone
treatment, an official certificate indicating the nature of his illness or injury, and the duration and kind of treatment
received.).
282
GPW art. 30 (A duplicate of this certificate shall be forwarded to the Central Prisoners of War Agency.).
549
9.14.2.4 Cost of Treatment. The costs of treatment, including those of any
apparatus necessary for the maintenance of POWs in good health, particularly dentures and other
artificial appliances, and eyeglasses, shall be borne by the Detaining Power. 283
9.14.3 Receipt of Medical Supplies. POWs may receive individual parcels and collective
shipments containing medical supplies. 284 However, medical supplies generally are to be sent in
collective shipments so that they may be properly administered by the camp doctors. 285
9.14.4 Inquiry in Certain Cases of Death or Serious Injury. In certain cases of death or
serious injury of a POW, an official inquiry shall be conducted by the Detaining Power. 286
POWs shall enjoy complete latitude in the exercise of their religious duties, including
attendance at the service of their faith, on condition that they comply with the disciplinary
routine prescribed by the military authorities. 287
The GPW and the GWS contemplate that POWs will benefit from the services of retained
chaplains or POWs who are ministers of religion without having officiated as chaplains to their
own forces. 288 However, the provision in the GPW and the GWS for such personnel does not
relieve the Detaining Power of its obligations to provide for the exercise of religion by POWs. 289
9.15.1 Premises for Religious Services for POWs. Adequate premises shall be provided
where religious services may be held. 290 The premises where services are held should be
sufficiently spacious and clean, and should provide effective shelter to those attending services,
but need not be set aside exclusively for religious services. 291
9.15.2 Chaplains. Chaplains who fall into the hands of the enemy Power and who remain
or are retained with a view to assisting POWs shall be allowed to minister to them and to
283
GPW art. 30 (The costs of treatment, including those of any apparatus necessary for the maintenance of
prisoners of war in good health, particularly dentures and other artificial appliances, and spectacles, shall be borne
by the Detaining Power.).
284
Refer to 9.20.3 (Receipt of Individual and Collective Relief Shipments for POWs).
285
Refer to 9.20.3.2 (Medical Supplies in Relief Shipments).
286
Refer to 9.34.5 (Inquiries Into Death or Serious Injury of POWs in Certain Cases).
287
GPW art. 34 (Prisoners of war shall enjoy complete latitude in the exercise of their religious duties, including
attendance at the service of their faith, on condition that they comply with the disciplinary routine prescribed by the
military authorities.).
288
Refer to 7.9 (Captured Medical and Religious Personnel).
289
Refer to 7.9.6 (No Relief of Obligations of the Detaining Power).
290
GPW art. 34 (Adequate premises shall be provided where religious services may be held.).
291
GC COMMENTARY 388 (It does not seem essential that these premises should be set aside exclusively for
religious services. The parallel text in the Prisoners of War Convention (Article 34, paragraph 2) speaks of
adequate premises. In both cases, it should be understood that the premises where services are held should be
sufficiently spacious and clean and so built as to give effective shelter to those attending the services.).
550
exercise freely their ministry among POWs of the same religion, in accordance with their
religious conscience. 292 They shall be allocated among the various camps and labor detachments
containing POWs belonging to the same forces, speaking the same language, or practicing the
same religion. 293
While respecting the individual preferences of every POW, the Detaining Power shall
encourage the practice of intellectual, educational, and recreational pursuits, and sports and
games, among POWs, and shall take the measures necessary to ensure the exercise thereof by
providing them with adequate premises and necessary equipment. 297 Adequate premises and
necessary equipment may include, for example, musical instruments, theatrical accessories,
books, language courses, recreation rooms, or soccer fields. 298
292
GPW art. 35 (Chaplains who fall into the hands of the enemy Power and who remain or are retained with a view
to assisting prisoners of war, shall be allowed to minister to them and to exercise freely their ministry amongst
prisoners of war of the same religion, in accordance with their religious conscience.).
293
GPW art. 35 (They shall be allocated among the various camps and labour detachments containing prisoners of
war belonging to the same forces, speaking the same language or practising the same religion.).
294
GPW art. 37 (When prisoners of war have not the assistance of a retained chaplain or of a prisoner of war
minister of their faith, a minister belonging to the prisoners or a similar denomination, or in his absence a qualified
layman, if such a course is feasible from a confessional point of view, shall be appointed, at the request of the
prisoners concerned, to fill this office.).
295
GPW art. 37 (This appointment, subject, to the approval of the Detaining Power, shall take place with the
agreement of the community of prisoners concerned and, wherever necessary, with the approval of the local
religious authorities of the same faith.).
296
GPW art. 37 (The person thus appointed shall comply with all regulations established by the Detaining Power in
the interests of discipline and military security.).
297
GPW art. 38 (While respecting the individual preferences of every prisoner, the Detaining Power shall
encourage the practice of intellectual, educational, and recreational pursuits, sports and games amongst prisoners,
and shall take the measures necessary to ensure the exercise thereof by providing them with adequate premises and
necessary equipment.).
298
For example, GPW COMMENTARY 237 (During the Second World War the problem was often solved to the
complete satisfaction of the prisoners of war. They were provided with musical instruments, theatrical accessories,
books, language courses, recreation rooms, football fields, etc. The necessary equipment was usually supplied by
relief societies or purchased by the prisoners themselves.).
551
9.16.1 Voluntariness of the Activities. The Detaining Power should seek to encourage
the POWs in engaging in these activities, while respecting their individual preferences. For
example, it would be prohibited to compel POWs to listen to propaganda or to punish them if
they do not participate. 299
9.16.2 Education. The GPW does not provide specifically for the Detaining Power to
grant facilities for POWs to continue their studies or to take up new subjects as the GC does for
internees. 302 Nonetheless, as the duration of detention increases, the Detaining Power should
make an effort to do so as part of its general obligation to encourage intellectual and educational
pursuits among POWs. 303
299
GPW COMMENTARY 237 ([W]here propaganda involves inhuman treatment, it is ipso facto contrary to the
Conventions, since such treatment is expressly prohibited. Where no inhuman treatment is involved, propaganda is
nevertheless usually dangerous for prisoners of war and contrary to the Conventions, since it may be inconsistent
with equality of treatment, respect for honour and, in particular, the present provision which affirms the right of
prisoners to use their leisure time according to their own preferences.). For example, The Secretary of Defenses
Advisory Committee on Prisoners of War, POW The Fight Continues After The Battle: The Report of the Secretary
of Defenses Advisory Committee on Prisoners of War 10-11 (Aug. 1955) ([T]he enemy had established a system
of indoctrination courses. The prisoner might start the hard wayand be punished by restricted rations and other
privations. If he began to show the proper spiritto cooperate with his captorshe was lectured and handed
Communist literature. A docile prisoner who read the literature and listened politely to the lectures, was graduated
to a better class. Finally he might be sent to Peaceful Valley. In this lenient camp the food was relatively good.
Prisoners might even have tobacco. And here they were given all sorts of Marxian propaganda. The graduates from
Peaceful Valley and others who accepted Communist schooling were called Progressives. Prisoners who refused
to go along with the program often remained in tougher circumstances. They were considered Reactionaries.).
300
For example, Office of the Provost Marshal General, World War II - A Brief History 443 (1946) (Libraries and
reading rooms were permitted to be maintained by prisoners, subject to censorship of the reading material. This
censorship was exercised largely at the camp level. As time went on, however, increasing staff supervision was
exercised by the Office of The Provost Marshal General, since quantities of reading material were available from
welfare agencies and other sources, and censorship at the camp level was often impractical. Supervision was
exercised by directives, correspondence with camps, and extensive liaison with welfare agencies and the Office of
Censorship. Publications which related to military matters or which contained anti-democratic political propaganda
were excluded.).
301
Refer to 9.20.6 (Censorship and Security Review of POW Correspondence and Shipments).
302
Refer to 10.16.2 (Education).
303
For example, Office of the Provost Marshal General, World War II - A Brief History 443 (1946) (The need of
educating prisoners became, progressively, of increasing importance and was reflected in additional coverage in the
official regulations and directives. Opportunities developed for prisoners to receive further education, subject to
certain limitations which were required because of the prisoners status. At the beginning the prisoners themselves
took the initiative, aided by relief societies. Once launched, their efforts were given all necessary aid from the War
Department, whether the courses were at elementary, secondary, or collegiate level.).
552
To advance educational opportunities for POWs, the Detaining Power may seek ways to
encourage and assist them in teaching one another. 304
9.16.3 Opportunities for Physical Exercise and for Being Outdoors. POWs shall have
opportunities for taking physical exercise, including sports and games, and for being outdoors. 305
Sufficient open spaces shall be provided for this purpose in all camps. 306
9.16.4 Contributions by Sources Apart From the Detaining Power. Apart from the
Detaining Power, POWs may receive assistance from a variety of sources that allow them to
engage in intellectual, physical, and recreational activities.
For example, relief organizations, including the ICRC, may contribute to ensuring that
POWs have opportunities for intellectual, physical, and recreational activities. 307 In addition,
POWs may receive shipments that are intended to allow them to engage in these activities. 308
Profits from the canteen may also be used for this purpose. 309
Canteens shall be established in all camps, where POWs may procure foodstuffs, soap
and tobacco, and ordinary articles for daily use. 310 The purpose is to improve the morale of
POWs by offering goods that are beyond the minimum necessities. 311
304
DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY PAMPHLET 20-213, History of Prisoner Of War Utilization By The United States
Army, 1776-1945, 160 (Jun. 24, 1955) (The War Department encouraged the PWs to organize formal study
courses and allowed them to select a director of studies from their group to organize and promote educational and
recreational activities. The PWs also selected qualified teachers and instructors who were given sufficient free time
to carry out their educational work. These were paid the standard rate for their educational duties when the work
excluded them from other paid labor. The expenses of the educational program, including the pay of the director
and teachers, came from the PW fund of the camp served.).
305
GPW art. 38 (Prisoners shall have opportunities for taking physical exercise, including sports and games, and
for being out of doors.).
306
GPW art. 38 (Sufficient open spaces shall be provided for this purpose in all camps.).
307
Refer to 9.33.2 (Access by Relief Societies and Other Organizations).
308
Refer to 9.20.3 (Receipt of Individual and Collective Relief Shipments for POWs).
309
Refer to 9.17.3 (Camp Canteen Management and Profits).
310
GPW art. 28 (Canteens shall be installed in all camps, where prisoners of war may procure foodstuffs, soap and
tobacco and ordinary articles in daily use.).
311
LEVIE, POWS 143 (The existence of the canteen and the availability for sale of canteen-type articles has an
affirmative effect on morale the extent of which is incalculable.).
553
9.17.1.1 Comfort Pack Instead of Canteen and Advance of Pay. Before
canteens can be established, the need for a canteen may be mitigated if POWs are provided a free
comfort pack. The comfort pack was developed during Operation DESERT STORM for U.S.
military personnel during the period before opening of exchanges in which such items were
available for purchase. Comfort packs were provided to enemy POWs for similar reasons. 312
9.17.2 Canteen Stock and Prices. Canteens are like a base or post exchange for POWs.
The canteen stock should include foodstuffs, soap, tobacco, and other ordinary articles for daily
use, but need not include luxury items. Ordinary articles for daily use may include, but are not
limited to, items such as correspondence materials (e.g., stationary, pencils, pens, ink, stamps),
supplies for repairing personal effects (e.g., buttons, thread, shoe laces), personal hygiene
articles, tobacco, water, soft drinks, other non-alcoholic beverages, and reading materials. 313
The prices at canteens shall never be in excess of local market prices. 315
9.17.3 Camp Canteen Management and Profits. Canteen profits shall be used for the
benefit of the POWs, and a special fund shall be created for this purpose. 316 The POW
Representative shall have the right to collaborate in the management of the canteen and of this
fund. 317 The wishes expressed by the POWs should be considered to the extent consistent with
camp regulations, and the profits should be used whenever needed to improve the conditions for
POWs.318
312
For example, W. Hays Parks, Special Assistant for Law of War Matters, Office of the Judge Advocate General of
the Army, Enemy Prisoner of War Health and Comfort Pack (Oct. 28, 1994) (In the 1991 Gulf War, the U.S. Army
issued Iraqi EPW health and comfort packs provided by the ICRC or from U.S. stocks (that is, sundry packs for U.S.
soldiers), but did not establish canteens within the EPW camps due to the short duration of the conflict and EPW
transfer to Saudi Arabian authorities. Tobacco was provided separately, gratis.).
313
GPW COMMENTARY 203 (The term ordinary articles in daily use means, in addition to soap and tobacco,
which are specifically mentioned: (a) all necessary supplies for correspondence (paper, pencils, pens, ink, stamps,
etc.); (b) all necessary toilet articles (towels, brushes, razors, combs, nail scissors, etc.); (c) all necessary supplies for
repairing personal effects (buttons, thread, needles, shoe-laces, etc.); (d) miscellaneous articles (pocket torches and
batteries, string, pen-knives, handkerchiefs, etc.).).
314
GPW COMMENTARY 203 (The camp authorities may prohibit the sale of alcoholic drinks, but must permit the
sale of all other health-giving, refreshing or fortifying beverages, hot or cold, and, if possible, milk.).
315
GPW art. 28 (The tariff shall never be in excess of local market prices.).
316
GPW art. 28 (The profits made by camp canteens shall be used for the benefit of the prisoners; a special fund
shall be created for this purpose.).
317
GPW art. 28 (The prisoners representative shall have the right to collaborate in the management of the canteen
and of this fund.).
318
GPW COMMENTARY 204 (It must be emphasized that, in accordance with the present paragraph, the fund must
be used for the benefit of the prisoners. The wishes expressed by the prisoners must therefore be taken into
consideration, to the extent that they do not run contrary to the regulations ensuring good administration and
discipline in the camp. The Detaining Power may not utilize canteen profits to make up any shortcomings for which
it is responsible. On the other hand, it is also recommended that canteen profits should not be hoarded, but should
be utilized whenever needed in order to improve the lot of the prisoners.).
554
9.17.3.1 Use of Canteen Profits for Working Pay of the POW Representative.
Canteen profits should also be used for working pay of the POW Representative, of his or her
advisers, if any, and of his or her assistants. 319
9.18.2 Purchases Outside the POW Camp. If POWs are permitted to purchase services or
commodities outside the camp against payment in cash, such payments shall be made by the
POW himself or herself or by the camp administration who will charge them to the accounts of
the POWs concerned. 324 The Detaining Power will establish the necessary rules in this
respect. 325
319
Refer to 9.24.4.5 (Working Pay of POW Representatives, Advisers, and Assistants).
320
GPW art. 28 (When a camp is closed down, the credit balance of the special fund shall be handed to an
international welfare organization, to be employed for the benefit of prisoners of war of the same nationality as those
who have contributed to the fund.).
321
GPW art. 28 (In case of a general repatriation, such profits shall be kept by the Detaining Power, subject to any
agreement to the contrary between the Powers concerned.).
322
GPW art. 58 (Upon the outbreak of hostilities, and pending an arrangement on this matter with the Protecting
Power, the Detaining Power may determine the maximum amount of money in cash or in any similar form, that
prisoners may have in their possession.).
323
GPW art. 58 (Any amount in excess, which was properly in their possession and which has been taken or
withheld from them, shall be placed to their account, together with any monies deposited by them, and shall not be
converted into any other currency without their consent.).
324
GPW art. 58 (If prisoners of war are permitted to purchase services or commodities outside the camp against
payment in cash, such payments shall be made by the prisoner himself or by the camp administration who will
charge them to the accounts of the prisoners concerned.).
325
GPW art. 58 (The Detaining Power will establish the necessary rules in this respect.).
555
9.18.3 Advance of Pay. The Detaining Power shall grant all POWs a monthly advance of
pay, the amount of which shall be fixed by conversion into the currency of the Detaining
Power. 326
This money allows POWs to purchase items at the canteen. This money may be paid in
scrip or vouchers that can be used only in the POW camp, to prevent POWs from having or
hoarding currency that might facilitate their escape.
Since the promulgation of the GPW, advances of pay to POWs by the Detaining Power
have been infrequent. 327
9.18.3.1 GPW Specified Amounts for Monthly Advances of Pay. Article 60 of the
GPW specifies the following amounts for monthly advances of pay: 328
Category III: Warrant officers and commissioned officers below the rank of major or
POWs of equivalent rank: fifty Swiss francs. 331
Category V: General officers or POWs of equivalent rank: seventy-five Swiss francs. 333
326
GPW art. 60 (The Detaining Power shall grant all prisoners of war a monthly advance of pay, the amount of
which shall be fixed by conversion, into the currency of the said Power, of the following amounts: ).
327
For example, W. Hays Parks, Special Assistant for Law of War Matters, Office of the Judge Advocate General of
the Army, Enemy Prisoner of War Health and Comfort Pack (Oct. 28, 1994) (U.S. and allied or Coalition
personnel held as prisoners of war during the Korean, Vietnam and 1991 Gulf Wars were not provided an advance
of pay by their captors. Although members of the Panamanian Defense Force were not entitled to EPW status, the
United States Army provided an advance of pay during Operation Just Cause (1989-90); the process proved
cumbersome and unnecessarily complicated, as there was no budget or budget item designated for EPW advance of
pay. The money was not recouped from the Government of Panama. No record could be found of the establishment
of an advance of pay system by any nation in any conflict since promulgation of the 1949 GPW.).
328
GPW art. 60 (The Detaining Power shall grant all prisoners of war a monthly advance of pay, the amount of
which shall be fixed by conversion, into the currency of the said Power, of the following amounts:).
329
GPW art. 60 (Category I: Prisoners ranking below sergeants: eight Swiss francs.).
330
GPW art. 60 (Category II: Sergeants and other non-commissioned officers, or prisoners of equivalent rank:
twelve Swiss francs.).
331
GPW art. 60 (Category III: Warrant officers and commissioned officers below the rank of major or prisoners of
equivalent rank: fifty Swiss francs.).
332
GPW art. 60 (Category IV: Majors, lieutenant-colonels, colonels or prisoners of equivalent rank: sixty Swiss
francs.).
333
GPW art. 60 (Category V: General officers or prisoners of war of equivalent rank: seventy-five Swiss francs.).
556
POWs of equivalent rank refers to POWs, such as persons authorized to accompany the
armed forces, who are not members of the armed forces and thus do not have a military rank. 334
9.18.3.3 Procedure for Limiting Amounts Drawn From Accounts Pending Special
Agreement. If the amounts indicated in Article 60 of the GPW would be unduly high compared
with the pay of the Detaining Powers armed forces or would, for any reason, seriously
embarrass the Detaining Power, then, pending the conclusion of a special agreement with the
Power on which the POWs depend to vary the amounts indicated above, the Detaining Power: 336
shall continue to credit the accounts of the POWs with the amounts indicated in the first
paragraph of Article 60 of the GPW; 337
may temporarily limit the amount made available from these advances of pay to POWs
for their own use, to sums that are reasonable, but that, for Category I, shall never be
inferior to the amount that the Detaining Power gives to the members of its own armed
forces. 338
The reasons for any limitations will be given without delay to the Protecting Power. 339
Such advances of pay, as well as all payments made by the Power on which the POWs
depend under the third paragraph of Article 63 of the GPW (payments made by the POW in their
own country 341) and Article 68 of the GPW (claims by POWs for compensation for personal
334
Refer to 9.22.4.1 (Communication of Titles and Ranks).
335
GC art. 60 (However, the Parties to the conflict concerned may by special agreement modify the amount of
advances of pay due to prisoners of the preceding categories.).
336
GPW art. 60 (Furthermore, if the amounts indicated in the first paragraph above would be unduly high
compared with the pay of the Detaining Powers armed forces or would, for any reason, seriously embarrass the
Detaining Power, then, pending the conclusion of a special agreement with the Power on which the prisoners depend
to vary the amounts indicated above, the Detaining Power:).
337
GPW art. 60 ((a) shall continue to credit the accounts of the prisoners with the amounts indicated in the first
paragraph above;).
338
GPW art. 60 ((b) may temporarily limit the amount made available from these advances of pay to prisoners of
war for their own use, to sums which are reasonable, but which, for Category I, shall never be inferior to the amount
that the Detaining Power gives to the members of its own armed forces.).
339
GPW art. 60 (The reasons for any limitations will be given without delay to the Protecting Power.).
340
GPW art. 67 (Advances of pay, issued to prisoners of war in conformity with Article 60, shall be considered as
made on behalf of the Power on which they depend.).
341
Refer to 9.18.5.1 (Payments Made in the POWs Own Country).
557
loss 342), shall form the subject of arrangements between the Powers concerned, at the close of
hostilities.343
9.18.4 Supplementary Pay From the Power on Which the POWs Depend. The Detaining
Power shall accept for distribution as supplementary pay to POWs sums that the Power on which
the POWs depend may forward to them, on condition that the sums to be paid shall be the same
for each POW of the same category, shall be payable to all POWs of that category depending on
that Power, and shall be placed in their separate accounts, at the earliest opportunity, in
accordance with the provisions of Article 64 of the GPW. 344 Such supplementary pay shall not
relieve the Detaining Power of any obligation under the GPW. 345
9.18.5 Remittances and Other Money Transfers. POWs shall be permitted to receive
remittances of money addressed to them individually or collectively. 346
Every POW shall have at his or her disposal the credit balance of his or her account as
provided for in the Article 64 of the GPW, within the limits fixed by the Detaining Power, which
shall make such payments as are requested. 347 Subject to financial or monetary restrictions that
the Detaining Power regards as essential, POWs may also have payments made abroad. 348 In
this case, payments addressed by POWs to dependents shall be given priority. 349
9.18.5.1 Payments Made in the POWs Own Country. In any event, and subject to
the consent of the Power on which they depend, POWs may have payments made in their own
country, as follows:
The Detaining Power shall send to the Power on which the POWs depend, through the
Protecting Power, a notification giving all the necessary particulars concerning the
342
Refer to 9.19.6.1 (Claims for Compensation From Injury or Other Disability Arising Out of Work); 9.18.7
(Claims by POWs in Respect of Personal Loss).
343
GPW art. 67 (Such advances of pay, as well as all payments made by the said Power under Article 63, third
paragraph, and Article 68, shall form the subject of arrangements between the Powers concerned, at the close of
hostilities.).
344
GPW art. 61 (The Detaining Power shall accept for distribution as supplementary pay to prisoners of war sums
which the Power on which the prisoners depend may forward to them, on condition that the sums to be paid shall be
the same for each prisoner of the same category, shall be payable to all prisoners of that category depending on that
Power, and shall be placed in their separate accounts, at the earliest opportunity, in accordance with the provisions
of Article 64.).
345
GPW art. 61 (Such supplementary pay shall not relieve the Detaining Power of any obligation under this
Convention.).
346
GPW art. 63 (Prisoners of war shall be permitted to receive remittances of money addressed to them
individually or collectively.).
347
GPW art. 63 (Every prisoner of war shall have at his disposal the credit balance of his account as provided for in
the following Article, within the limits fixed by the Detaining Power, which shall make such payments as are
requested.).
348
GPW art. 63 (Subject to financial or monetary restrictions which the Detaining Power regards as essential,
prisoners of war may also have payments made abroad.).
349
GPW art. 63 (In this case payments addressed by prisoners of war to dependents shall be given priority.).
558
POWs, the beneficiaries of the payments, and the amount of the sums to be paid,
expressed in the Detaining Powers currency. 350
This notification shall be signed by the POWs and countersigned by the camp
commander. 351
The Detaining Power shall debit the POWs accounts by a corresponding amount; the
sums thus debited shall be placed by it to the credit of the Power on which the POWs
depend. 352
To apply the foregoing provisions, the Detaining Power may usefully consult the Model
Regulations in Annex V of the GPW. 353
9.18.6 POW Accounts. The Detaining Power shall hold an account for each POW,
showing at least the following: 354
the amounts due to the POW or received by him or her as advances of pay, as working
pay or derived from any other source;
the sums in the currency of the Detaining Power that were taken from him or her;
the sums taken from the POW and converted at his or her request into the currency of that
Power;
the payments made to the POW in cash, or in any other similar form;
the sums transferred for payments made in a POWs own country under the third
paragraph of Article 63 of the GPW. 355
350
GPW art. 63 (In any event, and subject to the consent of the Power on which they depend, prisoners may have
payments made in their own country, as follows: the Detaining Power shall send to the aforesaid Power through the
Protecting Power, a notification giving all the necessary particulars concerning the prisoners of war, the
beneficiaries of the payments, and the amount of the sums to be paid, expressed in the Detaining Powers
currency.).
351
GPW art. 63 (The said notification shall be signed by the prisoners and countersigned by the camp
commander.).
352
GPW art. 63 (The Detaining Power shall debit the prisoners' account by a corresponding amount; the sums thus
debited shall be placed by it to the credit of the Power on which the prisoners depend.).
353
GPW art. 63 (To apply the foregoing provisions, the Detaining Power may usefully consult the Model
Regulations in Annex V of the present Convention.).
354
GPW art. 64 (The Detaining Power shall hold an account for each prisoner of war, showing at least the
following: (1) The amounts due to the prisoner or received by him as advances of pay, as working pay or derived
from any other source; the sums in the currency of the Detaining Power which were taken from him; the sums taken
from him and converted at his request into the currency of the said Power. (2) The payments made to the prisoner in
cash, or in any other similar form; the payments made on his behalf and at his request; the sums transferred under
Article 63, third paragraph.).
559
Every item entered in the account of a POW shall be countersigned or initialed by the
POW, or by the POW Representative acting on his or her behalf. 356
POWs shall at all times be afforded reasonable facilities for consulting and obtaining
copies of their accounts, which may likewise be inspected by the representatives of the
Protecting Powers at the time of visits to the camp. 357
9.18.6.1 Cash in POW Hands Taken at the Time of Capture. Cash that was taken
from POWs, in accordance with Article 18 of the GPW, at the time of their capture, and that is in
the currency of the Detaining Power, shall be placed to their separate accounts, in accordance
with the Article 64 of the GPW. 358
The amounts, in the currency of the Detaining Power, due to the conversion of sums in
other currencies that are taken from the POWs at the same time, shall also be credited to their
separate accounts. 359
355
Refer to 9.18.5.1 (Payments Made in the POWs Own Country).
356
GPW art. 65 (Every item entered in the account of a prisoner of war shall be countersigned or initialled by him,
or by the prisoners representative acting on his behalf.).
357
GPW art. 65 (Prisoners of war shall at all times be afforded reasonable facilities for consulting and obtaining
copies of their accounts, which may likewise be inspected by the representatives of the Protecting Powers at the time
of visits to the camp.).
358
GPW art. 59 (Cash which was taken from prisoners of war, in accordance with Article 18, at the time of their
capture, and which is in the currency of the Detaining Power, shall be placed to their separate accounts, in
accordance with the provisions of Article 64 of the present Section.). Refer to 9.7.4.1 (Unexplained Possession of
Large Sums of Money by POWs); 9.18.1 (Detaining Power Regulations on the Maximum Amount of Money in
POW Possession).
359
GPW art. 59 (The amounts, in the currency of the Detaining Power, due to the conversion of sums in other
currencies that are taken from the prisoners of war at the same time, shall also be credited to their separate
accounts.).
360
GPW art. 65 (When prisoners of war are transferred from one camp to another, their personal accounts will
follow them.).
361
GPW art. 65 (In case of transfer from one Detaining Power to another, the monies which are their property and
are not in the currency of the Detaining Power will follow them.).
362
GPW art. 65 (They shall be given certificates for any other monies standing to the credit of their accounts.).
560
9.18.6.3 Periodic Notification of the Amount of the Accounts of POWs. The
parties to the conflict concerned may agree to notify to each other at specific intervals, through
the Protecting Power, the amount of the accounts of the POWs. 363
The Detaining Power shall also send through the Protecting Power to the government
upon which the POWs depend lists giving all appropriate particulars of all POWs whose
captivity has been terminated by repatriation, release, escape, death, or any other means, and
showing the amount of their credit balances. 365 Such lists shall be certified on each sheet by an
authorized representative of the Detaining Power. 366
These rules may be varied by mutual agreement between any two parties to the
conflict. 367
9.18.6.5 Responsibility for Credit Balance Due From the Detaining Power on the
Termination of Captivity. The Power on which the POWs depend shall be responsible for
settling with each POW any credit balance due to him or her from the Detaining Power on the
termination of the POWs captivity. 368
9.18.7 Claims by POWs in Respect of Personal Loss. Any claim by a POW for
compensation in respect of personal effects, monies, or valuables impounded by the Detaining
Power under Article 18 of the GPW and not forthcoming on his or her repatriation, or in respect
of loss alleged to be due to the fault of the Detaining Power or any of its servants, shall likewise
be referred to the Power on which the POW depends. 369 Nevertheless, any such personal effects
363
GPW art. 65 (The Parties to the conflict concerned may agree to notify to each other at specific intervals
through the Protecting Power, the amount of the accounts of the prisoners of war.).
364
GPW art. 66 (On the termination of captivity, through the release of a prisoner of war or his repatriation, the
Detaining Power shall give him a statement, signed by an authorized officer of that Power, showing the credit
balance then due to him.).
365
GPW art. 66 (The Detaining Power shall also send through the Protecting Power to the government upon which
the prisoner of war depends, lists giving all appropriate particulars of all prisoners of war whose captivity has been
terminated by repatriation, release, escape, death or any other means, and showing the amount of their credit
balances.).
366
GPW art. 66 (Such lists shall be certified on each sheet by an authorized representative of the Detaining
Power.).
367
GPW art. 66 (Any of the above provisions of this Article may be varied by mutual agreement between any two
Parties to the conflict.).
368
GPW art. 66 (The Power on which the prisoner of war depends shall be responsible for settling with him any
credit balance due to him from the Detaining Power on the termination of his captivity.).
369
GPW art. 68 (Any claim by a prisoner of war for compensation in respect of personal effects, monies or
valuables impounded by the Detaining Power under Article 18 and not forthcoming on his repatriation, or in respect
of loss alleged to be due to the fault of the Detaining Power or any of its servants, shall likewise be referred to the
Power on which he depends.).
561
required for use by the POW while in captivity shall be replaced at the expense of the Detaining
Power. 370
The Detaining Power will, in all cases, provide the POW with a statement, signed by a
responsible officer, showing all available information regarding the reasons why such effects,
monies, or valuables have not been restored to him or her. 371 A copy of this statement will be
forwarded to the Power on which he or she depends through the Central POW Information
Agency provided for in Article 123 of the GPW. 372
The Detaining Power may use the labor of POWs who are physically fit, taking into
account their age, sex, rank, and physical aptitude, and with a view particularly to maintaining
them in a good state of physical and mental health. 373
370
GPW art. 68 (Nevertheless, any such personal effects required for use by the prisoners of war whilst in captivity
shall be replaced at the expense of the Detaining Power.).
371
GPW art. 68 (The Detaining Power will, in all cases, provide the prisoner of war with a statement, signed by a
responsible officer, showing all available information regarding the reasons why such effects, monies or valuables
have not been restored to him.).
372
GPW art. 68 (A copy of this statement will be forwarded to the Power on which he depends through the Central
Prisoners of War Agency provided for in Article 123.).
373
GPW art. 49 (The Detaining Power may utilize the labour of prisoners of war who are physically fit, taking into
account their age, sex, rank and physical aptitude, and with a view particularly to maintaining them in a good state
of physical and mental health.).
374
LEVIE, POWS 218-19 ([T]he Detaining Power must take into account the age, sex, and physical aptitude of each
prisoner of war as an individual. It may be assumed that these criteria are to be considered not only in determining
whether a prisoner of war should be compelled to work, but also in determining the type of work to which the
particular prisoner of war should be assigned.).
375
GPW art. 49 (Non-commissioned officers who are prisoners of war shall only be required to do supervisory
work.).
376
GPW art. 49 (Those not so required may ask for other suitable work which shall, so far as possible, be found for
them.).
562
9.19.1.2 Labor Assignment Officers and Persons of Equivalent Status. If
officers or persons of equivalent status ask for suitable work, it shall be found for them, so far as
possible, but they may in no circumstances be compelled to work. 377
POW Representatives and their assistants also shall not be required to perform any other
work, if the accomplishment of their duties is thereby made more difficult. 379
When employing POWs on dangerous or unhealthy activities, the Protecting Power or the
ICRC should assist in verifying the voluntariness of the employment, and the suitability of the
POW for such hazardous activities (e.g., any special skills or training in relation to the hazards)
should be considered. 383
377
GPW art. 49 (If officers or persons of equivalent status ask for suitable work, it shall be found for them, so far as
possible, but they may in no circumstances be compelled to work.).
378
Refer to 7.9.5.6 (No Other Compulsory Duties); 4.5.2.2 (Members Trained as Medical Personnel, but Not
Attached to the Medical Service); 4.5.2.3 (Members Who Are Ministers of Religion Without Having Officiated as
Chaplains to Their Own Forces).
379
Refer to 9.24.4.1 (Limitations on Other Work Assignments); 9.24.4.2 (Assistants for the POW
Representatives).
380
GPW art. 52 (Unless he be a volunteer, no prisoner of war may be employed on labour which is of an unhealthy
or dangerous nature.).
381
GPW art. 52 (The removal of mines or similar devices shall be considered as dangerous labour.).
382
Refer to 6.12.2 (Definition of Booby-Trap); 6.12.3 (Definition of Other Devices Similar to Mines).
383
For example, 2004 UK MANUAL 8.85 footnote 251 (Argentinian PW who were specialist engineers were used
in mine-clearance operations at the end of the Falklands conflict, but all were confirmed by the ICRC to be
volunteers.).
384
GPW art. 52 (No prisoner of war shall be assigned to labour which would be looked upon as humiliating for a
member of the Detaining Powers own forces.).
563
9.19.2.3 Labor Assignments That May Be Compelled. POWs, like other enemy
nationals, may not be compelled to take part in operations of war directed against their own
country. 385 POWs may be compelled to do only such work as is included in the following
classes:
agriculture;
industries connected with the production or the extraction of raw materials, and
manufacturing industries, with the exception of metallurgical, machinery, and chemical
industries;
Should the above provisions be infringed, POWs shall be allowed to exercise their right
of complaint, in conformity with Article 78 of the GPW.387
9.19.3 Suitable Work Conditions. POWs must be granted suitable working conditions,
especially as regards accommodation, food, clothing, and equipment. 388 For example, POWs
must be given additional rations or appropriate clothing, as necessary, for their work. 389
POWs working conditions shall not be inferior to those enjoyed by nationals of the
Detaining Power employed in similar work. 390 Account shall also be taken of climatic
conditions. 391
385
Refer to 5.27 (Prohibition Against Compelling Enemy Nationals to Take Part in the Operations of War Directed
Against Their Own Country).
386
GPW art. 50 (Besides work connected with camp administration, installation or maintenance, prisoners of war
may be compelled to do only such work as is included in the following classes: (a) agriculture; (b) industries
connected with the production or the extraction of raw materials, and manufacturing industries, with the exception
of metallurgical, machinery and chemical industries; public works and building operations which have no military
character or purpose; (c) transport and handling of stores which are not military in character or purpose; (d)
commercial business, and arts and crafts; (e) domestic service; (f) public utility services having no military character
or purpose.).
387
GPW art. 50 (Should the above provisions be infringed, prisoners of war shall be allowed to exercise their right
of complaint, in conformity with Article 78.). Refer to 9.23 (POW Requests, Complaints).
388
GPW art. 51 (providing that [p]risoners of war must be granted suitable working conditions, especially as
regards accommodation, food, clothing and equipment;).
389
Refer to 9.13.1.2 (Additional Food for Certain Groups); 9.13.4.2 (Appropriate Clothing for Work).
564
9.19.3.1 Application of National Legislation for the Protection of Labor and
Regulations for Worker Safety. The Detaining Power, in utilizing the labor of POWs, shall
ensure that in areas in which such POWs are employed, the national legislation concerning the
protection of labor, and, more particularly, the regulations for the safety of workers, are duly
applied. 392 For example, labor conditions for POWs working in the United States would be
determined by U.S. Federal labor and safety laws.
9.19.3.2 Training and Means of Protection. POWs shall receive training and be
provided with the means of protection suitable to the work they will have to do and similar to
those accorded to the nationals of the Detaining Power. 395 Subject to the provisions of Article 52
of the GPW, POWs may be submitted to the normal risks run by these civilian workers. 396
9.19.3.3 Limits on the Duration of Labor. The duration of the daily labor of
POWs, including any travel time, shall not be excessive, and must in no case exceed that
permitted for civilian workers in the district, who are nationals of the Detaining Power and
employed on the same work. 397
390
GPW art. 51 (providing that such conditions shall not be inferior to those enjoyed by nationals of the Detaining
Power employed in similar work;).
391
GPW art. 51 ([A]ccount shall also be taken of climatic conditions.).
392
GPW art. 51 (The Detaining Power, in utilizing the labour of prisoners of war, shall ensure that in areas in
which such prisoners are employed, the national legislation concerning the protection of labour, and, more
particularly, the regulations for the safety of workers, are duly applied.).
393
GPW art. 51 (Conditions of labour shall in no case be rendered more arduous by disciplinary measures.).
394
See also LEVIE, POWS 244 (Thus, a Detaining Power may not lower safety standards, disregard requirements
for protective equipment, lengthen working hours, withhold required extra rations, etc., as punishment for
misbehavior. On the other hand, fatigue details of not more than two hours a day, or a monetary fine, or the
withdrawal of extra privileges, all of which are authorized as disciplinary punishment by Article 89, undoubtedly
could be imposed, as they obviously do not fall within the ambit of the prohibition; and the extra rations to which
prisoners of war are entitled under Article 26, when they are engaged in heavy manual labor, could undoubtedly be
withheld from a prisoner of war who refuses to work, inasmuch as he would no longer meet the requirement for
entitlement to such extra rations.).
395
GPW art. 51 (Prisoners of war shall receive training and be provided with the means of protection suitable to the
work they will have to do and similar to those accorded to the nationals of the Detaining Power.).
396
GPW art. 51 (Subject to the provisions of Article 52, prisoners may be submitted to the normal risks run by
these civilian workers.). See also GPW art. 52 (Unless he be a volunteer, no prisoner of war may be employed on
labour which is of an unhealthy or dangerous nature. No prisoner of war shall be assigned to labour which would be
looked upon as humiliating for a member of the Detaining Powers own forces. The removal of mines or similar
devices shall be considered as dangerous labour.). Refer to 9.19.2.1 (Unhealthy or Dangerous Labor).
397
GPW art. 53 (The duration of the daily labour of prisoners of war, including the time of the journey to and fro,
shall not be excessive, and must in no case exceed that permitted for civilian workers in the district, who are
nationals of the Detaining Power and employed on the same work.).
565
POWs must be allowed, in the middle of the days work, a rest of not less than one
398
hour. This rest will be the same as that to which workers of the Detaining Power are entitled,
if the latter is of longer duration. 399 POWs shall be allowed, in addition, a rest of 24 consecutive
hours every week, preferably on Sunday or the day of rest in their country of origin. 400
Furthermore, every POW who has worked for one year shall be granted a rest of eight
consecutive days, during which his or her working pay shall be paid to him or her. 401
If methods of labor, such as piece work, are employed, the length of the working period
shall not be rendered excessive thereby. 402 Piece work refers to the practice of assigning and
compensating for tasks as opposed to compensating based on the amount of time worked. 403
Thus, the limits on the number of hours of daily work cannot be circumvented by assigning work
on the basis of tasks completed as opposed to requiring POWs to work a certain number of
hours. 404
9.19.4 Working Pay. The working pay due to POWs shall be fixed in accordance with
the provisions of Article 62 of the GPW. 405
POWs shall be paid a fair working rate of pay by the detaining authorities directly. 406
The rate shall be fixed by these authorities, but shall at no time be less than one-fourth of one
Swiss franc for a full working day. 407 The Detaining Power shall inform POWs, as well as the
398
GPW art. 53 (Prisoners of war must be allowed, in the middle of the days work, a rest of not less than one
hour.).
399
GPW art. 53 (This rest will be the same as that to which workers of the Detaining Power are entitled, if the latter
is of longer duration.).
400
GPW art. 53 (They shall be allowed in addition a rest of twenty-four consecutive hours every week, preferably
on Sunday or the day of rest in their country of origin.).
401
GPW art. 53 (Furthermore, every prisoner who has worked for one year shall be granted a rest of eight
consecutive days, during which his working pay shall be paid him.).
402
GPW art. 53 (If methods of labour such as piece work are employed, the length of the working period shall not
be rendered excessive thereby.).
403
DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY PAMPHLET 20-213, History of Prisoner Of War Utilization By The United States
Army, 1776-1945, 120 (Jun. 24, 1955) (On 26 April 1944, the Secretary of War approved an incentive pay plan for
piecework which compensated the PWs according to the number of units completed, up to a maximum of $1.20 per
day. The objectives of this plan were to reward hard workers; to penalize laggards; and to encourage a greater
degree of teamwork among PW laborers.).
404
LEVIE, POWS 248 (With respect to hours of daily work, it must be noted, too, that the limitations contained in
the Article cannot be circumvented by the adoption of piecework, or some other task system, in lieu of a stated
number of working hours, the third paragraph of Article 53 of the Convention specifically prohibiting the rendering
of the length of the working day excessive by the use of this method.).
405
GPW art. 54 (The working pay due to prisoners of war shall be fixed in accordance with the provisions of
Article 62 of the present Convention.).
406
GPW art. 62 (Prisoners of war shall be paid a fair working rate of pay by the detaining authorities direct.).
407
GPW art. 62 (The rate shall be fixed by the said authorities, but shall at no time be less than one-fourth of one
Swiss franc for a full working day.).
566
Power on which they depend, through the intermediary of the Protecting Power, of the rate of
daily working pay that it has fixed. 408
Working pay shall likewise be paid by the detaining authorities to POWs permanently
detailed to duties, or to a skilled or semi-skilled occupation, in connection with the
administration, installation, or maintenance of camps, and to the POWs who are required to carry
out spiritual or medical duties on behalf of their comrades. 409
9.19.5 Medical Fitness to Work. The fitness of POWs for work shall be periodically
verified by medical examinations, at least once a month. 411 The examinations shall have
particular regard to the nature of the work that the POWs are required to do. 412
9.19.6 Accidents or Disease in Connection With Work. POWs who sustain accidents in
connection with work, or who contract a disease in the course or in consequence of their work,
shall receive all the care their condition may require. 415 The Detaining Power shall furthermore
deliver to such POWs a medical certificate enabling them to submit their claims to the Power on
which they depend, and shall send a duplicate to the Central POW Information Agency provided
for in Article 123 of the GPW. 416
408
GPW art. 62 (The Detaining Power shall inform prisoners of war, as well as the Power on which they depend,
through the intermediary of the Protecting Power, of the rate of daily working pay that it has fixed.).
409
GPW art. 62 (Working pay shall likewise be paid by the detaining authorities to prisoners of war permanently
detailed to duties or to a skilled or semi-skilled occupation in connection with the administration, installation or
maintenance of camps, and to the prisoners who are required to carry out spiritual or medical duties on behalf of
their comrades.).
410
Refer to 9.24.4.5 (Working Pay of POW Representatives, Advisers, and Assistants).
411
GPW art. 55 (The fitness of prisoners of war for work shall be periodically verified by medical examinations at
least once a month.).
412
GPW art. 55 (The examinations shall have particular regard to the nature of the work which prisoners of war are
required to do.).
413
GPW art. 55 (If any prisoner of war considers himself incapable of working, he shall be permitted to appear
before the medical authorities of his camp.).
414
GPW art. 55 (Physicians or surgeons may recommend that the prisoners who are, in their opinion, unfit for
work, be exempted therefrom.).
415
GPW art. 54 (Prisoners of war who sustain accidents in connection with work, or who contract a disease in the
course, or in consequence of their work, shall receive all the care their condition may require.).
416
GPW art. 54 (The Detaining Power shall furthermore deliver to such prisoners of war a medical certificate
enabling them to submit their claims to the Power on which they depend, and shall send a duplicate to the Central
Prisoners of War Agency provided for in Article 123.).
567
In certain cases, POWs who meet with accidents in connection with work would receive
the benefit of the provisions of the GPW as regards repatriation or accommodation in a neutral
country. 417
9.19.6.1 Claims for Compensation From Injury or Other Disability Arising Out of
Work. Any claim by a POW for compensation in respect of any injury or other disability arising
out of work shall be referred to the Power on which he or she depends, through the Protecting
Power. 418 In accordance with Article 54 of the GPW, the Detaining Power will, in all cases,
provide the POW concerned with a statement showing the nature of the injury or disability, the
circumstances in which it arose, and the particulars of medical or hospital treatment given for
it. 419 This statement will be signed by a responsible officer of the Detaining Power and the
medical particulars certified by a medical officer. 420
Every labor detachment shall remain under the control of, and administratively part of, a
POW camp. 422 The military authorities and the commander of the POW camp shall be
responsible, under the direction of their government, for the observance of the provisions of the
GPW in labor detachments that are dependent upon the POW camp. 423
The camp commander shall keep an up-to-date record of the labor detachments
dependent on the camp, and shall communicate it to the delegates of the Protecting Power, of the
ICRC, or of other agencies giving relief to POWs, who may visit the camp. 424
9.19.8 POWs Working for Private Persons. The treatment of POWs who work for
private persons, even if the latter are responsible for guarding and protecting them, shall not be
417
Refer to 9.36 (Direct Repatriation and Accommodation in Neutral Countries During Hostilities).
418
GPW art. 68 (Any claim by a prisoner of war for compensation in respect of any injury or other disability
arising out of work shall be referred to the Power on which he depends, through the Protecting Power.).
419
GPW art. 68 (In accordance with Article 54, the Detaining Power will, in all cases, provide the prisoner of war
concerned with a statement showing the nature of the injury or disability, the circumstances in which it arose and
particulars of medical or hospital treatment given for it.).
420
GPW art. 68 (This statement will be signed by a responsible officer of the Detaining Power and the medical
particulars certified by a medical officer.).
421
GPW art. 56 (The organization and administration of labour detachments shall be similar to those of prisoner of
war camps.).
422
GPW art. 56 (Every labour detachment shall remain under the control of and administratively part of a prisoner
of war camp.).
423
GPW art. 56 (The military authorities and the commander of the said camp shall be responsible, under the
direction of their government, for the observance of the provisions of the present Convention in labour
detachments.).
424
GPW art. 56 (The camp commander shall keep an up-to-date record of the labour detachments dependent on his
camp, and shall communicate it to the delegates of the Protecting Power, of the International Committee of the Red
Cross, or of other agencies giving relief to prisoners of war, who may visit the camp.).
568
inferior to that which is provided for by the GPW. 425 The Detaining Power, the military
authorities, and the commander of the camp to which such POWs belong shall be entirely
responsible for the maintenance, care, treatment, and payment of the working pay of such
POWs.426
Such POWs shall have the right to remain in communication with the POW
Representatives in the camps on which they depend. 427
POWs may send and receive mail and relief shipments, subject to security requirements.
In addition, POWs benefit from certain postage exemptions.
9.20.1 Capture, Health, or Transfer Card. Immediately upon capture, or not more than
one week after arrival at a camp, even if it is a transit camp, likewise in case of sickness or
transfer to a hospital or to another camp, every POW shall be enabled to write directly to his or
her family, on the one hand, and to the Central POW Information Agency provided for in Article
123 of the GPW, on the other hand, a card similar, if possible, to the model annexed to the GPW
(GPW Annex IV B), informing his or her relatives of his or her capture, address, and state of
health. 428
These cards shall be forwarded as rapidly as possible and may not be delayed in any
manner. 429
9.20.2 POW Correspondence Rights and Quota. POWs shall be allowed to send and
receive letters and cards. 430
425
GPW art. 57 (The treatment of prisoners of war who work for private persons, even if the latter are responsible
for guarding and protecting them, shall not be inferior to that which is provided for by the present Convention.).
426
GPW art. 57 (The Detaining Power, the military authorities and the commander of the camp to which such
prisoners belong shall be entirely responsible for the maintenance, care, treatment, and payment of the working pay
of such prisoners of war.).
427
GPW art. 57 (Such prisoners of war shall have the right to remain in communication with the prisoners'
representatives in the camps on which they depend.).
428
GPW art. 70 (Immediately upon capture, or not more than one week after arrival at a camp, even if it is a transit
camp, likewise in case of sickness or transfer to hospital or to another camp, every prisoner of war shall be enabled
to write direct to his family, on the one hand, and to the Central Prisoners of War Agency provided for in Article
123, on the other hand, a card similar, if possible, to the model annexed to the present Convention, informing his
relatives of his capture, address and state of health.).
429
GPW art. 70 (The said cards shall be forwarded as rapidly as possible and may not be delayed in any manner.).
430
GPW art. 71 (Prisoners of war shall be allowed to send and receive letters and cards.).
569
GPW (GPW Annex IV C). 431 In addition, the following correspondence also does not count
toward this quota:
correspondence by the senior medical officer in a camp with the competent authorities of
the camp regarding the duties of retained medical personnel. 435
431
GPW art. 71 (If the Detaining Power deems it necessary to limit the number of letters and cards sent by each
prisoner of war, the said number shall not be less than two letters and four cards monthly, exclusive of the capture
cards provided for in Article 70, and conforming as closely as possible to the models annexed to the present
Convention.).
432
Refer to 9.23.2 (Communication of Requests and Complaints).
433
Refer to 9.24.4.6 (Facilities for Communication).
434
Refer to 7.9.5.4 (Correspondence by Chaplains).
435
Refer to 7.9.5.7 (Senior Medical Officer in the Camp).
436
GPW art. 71 (Further limitations may be imposed only if the Protecting Power is satisfied that it would be in the
interests of the prisoners of war concerned to do so owing to difficulties of translation caused by the Detaining
Powers inability to find sufficient qualified linguists to carry out the necessary censorship.).
437
GPW art. 71 (If limitations must be placed on the correspondance addressed to prisoners of war, they may be
ordered only by the Power on which the prisoners depend, possibly at the request of the Detaining Power.).
438
GPW art. 71 (Such letters and cards must be conveyed by the most rapid method at the disposal of the Detaining
Power; they may not be delayed or retained for disciplinary reasons.).
439
GPW art. 71 (Such letters and cards must be conveyed by the most rapid method at the disposal of the Detaining
Power; they may not be delayed or retained for disciplinary reasons.).
570
the POWs accounts with the Detaining Power or paid in the currency at their disposal. 440 They
shall likewise benefit from this measure in cases of urgency. 441
More modern means of communication, such as email, should be considered for POW
correspondence, as appropriate. 442
9.20.2.5 Handling of Sacks of POW Mail. Sacks containing POW mail must be
securely sealed and labeled so as clearly to indicate their contents, and must be addressed to
offices of destination. 445
9.20.3 Receipt of Individual and Collective Relief Shipments for POWs. POWs shall be
allowed to receive by post, or by any other means, individual parcels or collective shipments
containing, in particular, foodstuffs, clothing, medical supplies, and articles of a religious,
educational, or recreational character, which may meet their needs, including books, devotional
articles, scientific equipment, examination papers, musical instruments, sports outfits, and
materials allowing POWs to pursue their studies or their cultural activities. 446 Such shipments
shall in no way free the Detaining Power from the obligations imposed upon it by virtue of the
GPW.447
The only limits that may be placed on these shipments shall be those proposed by the
Protecting Power in the interest of the POWs themselves, or by the ICRC or any other
440
GPW art. 71 (Prisoners of war who have been without news for a long period, or who are unable to receive news
from their next of kin or to give them news by the ordinary postal route, as well as those who are at a great distance
from their homes, shall be permitted to send telegrams, the fees being charged against the prisoners of wars
accounts with the Detaining Power or paid in the currency at their disposal.).
441
GPW art. 71 (They shall likewise benefit by this measure in cases of urgency.).
442
Refer to 8.10.3 (Communication With Family).
443
GPW art. 71 (As a general rule, the correspondence of prisoners of war shall be written in their native
language.).
444
GPW art. 71 (The Parties to the conflict may allow correspondence in other languages.).
445
GPW art. 71 (Sacks containing prisoner of war mail must be securely sealed and labelled so as clearly to
indicate their contents, and must be addressed to offices of destination.).
446
GPW art. 72 (Prisoners of war shall be allowed to receive by post or by any other means individual parcels or
collective shipments containing, in particular, foodstuffs, clothing, medical supplies and articles of a religious,
educational or recreational character which may meet their needs, including books, devotional articles, scientific
equipment, examination papers, musical instruments, sports outfits and materials allowing prisoners of war to pursue
their studies or their cultural activities.).
447
GPW art. 72 (Such shipments shall in no way free the Detaining Power from the obligations imposed upon it by
virtue of the present Convention.).
571
organization giving assistance to the POWs, in respect of their own shipments only, on account
of exceptional strain on transport or communications. 448
9.20.3.1 Separation of Books From Other Relief Supplies. Parcels of clothing and
foodstuffs may not include books. 449 Books should be separated because the time required for
censorship of books would likely delay the distribution of other relief supplies. 450
9.20.3.3 Special Agreements Concerning Relief Shipments. The conditions for the
sending of individual parcels and collective shipments shall, if necessary, be the subject of
special agreements between the Powers concerned, which may in no case delay the receipt by the
POWs of relief supplies. 454
448
GPW art. 72 (The only limits which may be placed on these shipments shall be those proposed by the Protecting
Power in the interest of the prisoners themselves, or by the International Committee of the Red Cross or any other
organization giving assistance to the prisoners, in respect of their own shipments only, on account of exceptional
strain on transport or communications.).
449
GPW art. 72 (Books may not be included in parcels of clothing and foodstuffs.).
450
GPW COMMENTARY 377 (As in the first paragraph, it is specified here [in the second paragraph of Article 76 of
the GPW] that delivery must not be delayed under the pretext of difficulties of censorship; the conditions are usually
different, however. Except in the case of books, examination requires no linguistic ability and all delay can
therefore be avoided. This is particularly important in the case of parcels containing perishable goods.). Compare
10.23.3.1 (Separation of Books From Other Relief Supplies).
451
GPW art. 72 (Medical supplies shall, as a rule, be sent in collective parcels.).
452
See GPW COMMENTARY 356 (From the beginning of the Second World War, parcels of medical supplies
addressed by name were always sent to the chief medical officer of a camp or hospital or, if there was none, to a
head nurse, welfare officer or a representative of the local Red Cross. The question is now settled by paragraph 4 of
the present Article, which states that, as a rule, medical supplies are to be sent in collective parcels. This solution
was adopted in the interest of the prisoners of war, who should not have access to medical supplies except under
medical supervision.).
453
Compare 10.23.3.2 (Medical Supplies in Relief Shipments).
454
GPW art. 72 (The conditions for the sending of individual parcels and collective relief shall, if necessary, be the
subject of special agreements between the Powers concerned, which may in no case delay the receipt by the
prisoners of relief supplies.).
455
GPW art. 73 (In the absence of special agreements between the Powers concerned on the conditions for the
receipt and distribution of collective relief shipments, the rules and regulations concerning collective shipments,
which are annexed to the present Convention, shall be applied.).
572
The special agreements referred to above shall in no case restrict the right of POW
Representatives to take possession of collective relief shipments intended for POWs, to proceed
to their distribution, or to dispose of them in the interest of the POWs. 456 Nor shall such
agreements restrict the right of representatives of the Protecting Power, the ICRC, or any other
organization giving assistance to POWs and responsible for the forwarding of collective
shipments, to supervise their distribution to the recipients. 457
9.20.4 Exemptions From Postal and Shipping Charges. Relief shipments for POWs and
mail sent by POWs or to them benefit from certain exemptions under international law.
9.20.4.1 Exemption From Dues for Relief Shipments. All relief shipments for
POWs shall be exempt from import, customs, or other dues. 458
9.20.4.2 GPW Postal Dues Exemption. Under the GPW, correspondence, relief
shipments, and authorized remittances of money addressed to POWs or sent by them through the
post office, either directly or through the National POW Information Bureau provided for in
Article 122 of the GPW and the Central POW Information Agency provided for in Article 123 of
the GPW, shall be exempt from any postal dues, both in the countries of origin and destination,
and in intermediate countries. 459
456
GPW art. 73 (The special agreements referred to above shall in no case restrict the right of prisoners
representatives to take possession of collective relief shipments intended for prisoners of war, to proceed to their
distribution or to dispose of them in the interest of the prisoners.).
457
GPW art. 73 (Nor shall such agreements restrict the right of representatives of the Protecting Power, the
International Committee of the Red Cross or any other organization giving assistance to prisoners of war and
responsible for the forwarding of collective shipments, to supervise their distribution to the recipients.).
458
GPW art. 74 (All relief shipments for prisoners of war shall be exempt from import, customs and other dues.).
See also HAGUE IV REG. art. 16 (Presents and relief in kind for prisoners of war shall be admitted free of all import
or other duties, as well as of payments for carriage by the State railways.).
459
GPW art. 74 (Correspondence, relief shipments and authorized remittances of money addressed to prisoners of
war or despatched by them through the post office, either direct or through the Information Bureaux provided for in
Article 122 and the Central Prisoners of War Agency provided for in Article 123, shall be exempt from any postal
dues, both in the countries of origin and destination, and in intermediate countries.).
460
Universal Postal Convention, art. 17(1), Dec. 14, 1989, 1687 UNTS 241, 251-52 (Subject to article 21,
paragraph 1, letter-post items, postal parcels and monetary articles addressed to or sent by prisoners of war, either
direct or through the Information Bureaux and the Central Prisoner-of-War Information Agency provided for in
articles 122 and 123 respectively of the Geneva Convention of 12 August 1949 relative to the treatment of prisoners
of war, shall be exempt from all postal charges.). Consider Universal Postal Convention, art. 7(2.1), Oct. 11, 2012,
reprinted in INTERNATIONAL BUREAU OF THE UNIVERSAL POSTAL UNION, LETTER POST MANUAL, page C.8 (Berne
2013, Update 2 Jan. 2015) (Letter-post items, postal parcels and postal payment services items addressed to or
sent by prisoners of war, either direct or through the offices mentioned in the Regulations of the Convention and of
573
Parcels shall be admitted free of postage up to a weight of 5 kg. 462 The weight limit shall
be increased to 10 kg in the case of parcels the contents of which cannot be split up and of
parcels addressed to a camp or the POW Representatives there for distribution to the POWs. 463
Items exempt from postal charges and POW parcels shall bear Service des prisonniers
de guerre (Prisoner-of-war Service) and a translation in another language, if appropriate. 464
Postal administrations shall not be liable for the loss of, theft from, or damage to parcels
in the case of POW parcels. 465
9.20.4.4 Costs of Transporting Relief Shipments Outside the Post Office. If relief
shipments intended for POWs cannot be sent through the post office by reason of weight or for
any other cause, the cost of transportation shall be borne by the Detaining Power in all the
the Postal Payment Services Agreement, shall be exempt from all postal charges, with the exception of air
surcharges.).
461
Universal Postal Convention, art. 17, Dec. 14, 1989, 1687 UNTS 241, 251-52 (Belligerents apprehended and
interned in a neutral country shall be classed with prisoners of war proper so far as the application of the foregoing
provisions is concerned.). Consider Universal Postal Convention, art. 7(2.1), Oct. 11, 2012, reprinted in
INTERNATIONAL BUREAU OF THE UNIVERSAL POSTAL UNION, LETTER POST MANUAL, page C.8 (Berne 2013,
Update 2 Jan. 2015) (same).
462
Universal Postal Convention, art. 17(4), Dec. 14, 1989, 1687 UNTS 241, 252 (Parcels shall be admitted free of
postage up to a weight of 5 kg.). Consider Universal Postal Convention, art. 7(2.4), Oct. 11, 2012, reprinted in
INTERNATIONAL BUREAU OF THE UNIVERSAL POSTAL UNION, LETTER POST MANUAL, page C.8 (Berne 2013,
Update 2 Jan. 2015) (Parcels shall be admitted free of postage up to a weight of 5 kilogrammes.).
463
Universal Postal Convention, art. 17(4), Dec. 14, 1989, 1687 UNTS 241, 252 (The weight limit shall be
increased to 10 kg in the case of parcels the contents of which cannot be split up and of parcels addressed to a camp
or the prisoners representatives there (hommes de confiance) for distribution to the prisoners.). Consider
Universal Postal Convention, art. 7(2.4), Oct. 11, 2012, reprinted in INTERNATIONAL BUREAU OF THE UNIVERSAL
POSTAL UNION, LETTER POST MANUAL, page C.8 (Berne 2013, Update 2 Jan. 2015) (The weight limit shall be
increased to 10 kilogrammes in the case of parcels the contents of which cannot be split up and of parcels addressed
to a camp or the prisoners representatives there (hommes de confiance) for distribution to the prisoners.).
464
Consider Letter Post Regulations, Article RL 112 to Article 7 of the Universal Postal Convention of Oct. 11,
2012, reprinted in INTERNATIONAL BUREAU OF THE UNIVERSAL POSTAL UNION, LETTER POST MANUAL, page C.11
(2015) (Items exempt from postal charges shall bear, on the address side in the top right-hand corner, the following
indications, which may be followed by a translation: Service des prisonniers de guerre (Prisoners-of-war service)
or Servicedes interns civils (Civilian internees service) for the items mentioned in article 7.2 of the Convention
and article RL 111 and the forms relating to them;); Parcel Post Regulations, Article RC 112(2), reprinted in
INTERNATIONAL BUREAU OF THE UNIVERSAL POSTAL UNION, PARCEL POST MANUAL, page D.10 (2015) (Every
prisoner-of-war and civilian internee parcel and its dispatch note shall bear, the former beside the address, one of the
indications Service des prisonniers de guerre (Prisoner-of-war Service) or Service des interns civils (Civilian
Internees Service); these indications may be followed by a translation in another language.).
465
Postal Parcels Agreement, art. 41(2)(f), Dec. 14, 1989, 1687 UNTS 346, 369 (Postal administrations shall not be
liable for the loss of, theft from or damage to parcels in the case of prisoner-or-war or civilian internee parcels.).
574
territories under its control. 466 The other Parties to the GPW shall bear the cost of transport in
their respective territories. 467
In the absence of special agreements between the Parties concerned, the costs connected
with transport of such shipments, other than costs covered by the above exemption, shall be
charged to the senders. 468
9.20.4.5 Rates Charged for Telegrams. The Parties to the GPW shall endeavor to
reduce, so far as possible, the rates charged for telegrams sent by POWs, or addressed to them. 469
correspondence, lists, and reports exchanged between the Central POW Information
Agency referred to in Article 123 of the GPW and the National POW Information Bureau
referred to in Article 122 of the GPW; and
correspondence and reports relating to POWs that the Protecting Powers, the ICRC, or
any other body assisting the POWs exchange either with their own delegates or with the
parties to the conflict. 472
466
GPW art. 74 (If relief shipments intended for prisoners of war cannot be sent through the post office by reason
of weight or for any other cause, the cost of transportation shall be borne by the Detaining Power in all the territories
under its control.).
467
GPW art. 74 (The other Powers party to the Convention shall bear the cost of transport in their respective
territories.).
468
GPW art. 74 (In the absence of special agreements between the Parties concerned, the costs connected with
transport of such shipments, other than cost covered by the above exemption, shall be charged to the senders.).
469
GPW art. 74 (The High Contracting Parties shall endeavour to reduce, so far as possible, the rates charged for
telegrams sent by prisoners of war, or addressed to them.).
470
GPW art. 75 (Should military operations prevent the Powers concerned from fulfilling their obligation to assure
the transport of the shipments referred to in Articles 70, 71, 72 and 77, the Protecting Powers concerned, the
International Committee of the Red Cross or any other organization duly approved by the Parties to the conflict may
undertake to ensure the conveyance of such shipments by suitable means (railway wagons, motor vehicles, vessels
or aircraft, etc.)).
471
GPW art. 75 (For this purpose, the High Contracting Parties shall endeavour to supply them with such transport
and to allow its circulation, especially by granting the necessary safe-conducts.).
472
GPW art. 75 (Such transport may also be used to convey: (a) correspondence, lists and reports exchanged
between the Central Information Agency referred to in Article 123 and the National Bureaux referred to in Article
575
These provisions in no way detract from the right of any party to the conflict to arrange
other means of transport, if it should so prefer, nor preclude the granting of safe-conducts, under
mutually agreed conditions, to such means of transport. 473
In the absence of special agreements, the costs occasioned by the use of such means of
transport shall be borne proportionally by the parties to the conflict whose nationals are benefited
thereby. 474 Expenses in setting up the special transport system are not specifically addressed by
the GPW, and presumably would be addressed by an agreement between the body that takes the
initiative in establishing the system and the Powers concerned. 475
9.20.6 Censorship and Security Review of POW Correspondence and Shipments. The
Detaining Power may examine and censor all communications sent to or by POWs, including
correspondence, telegrams, parcels, newspapers, periodicals, and books, with a view to deleting
or confiscating matter prejudicial to its military security. 476 The Detaining Powers general right
to conduct censorship is an implicit assumption in the GPW, as it is in the GC. 477 POWs
complaints, petitions, and reports may be subject to security review and censorship to ensure that
they are not misused. 478
122; (b) correspondence and reports relating to prisoners of war which the Protecting Powers, the International
Committee of the Red Cross or any other body assisting the prisoners, exchange either with their own delegates or
with the Parties to the conflict.).
473
GPW art. 75 (These provisions in no way detract from the right of any Party to the conflict to arrange other
means of transport, if it should so prefer, nor preclude the granting of safe-conducts, under mutually agreed
conditions, to such means of transport.).
474
GPW art. 75 (In the absence of special agreements, the costs occasioned by the use of such means of transport
shall be borne proportionally by the Parties to the conflict whose nationals are benefited thereby.).
475
See GPW COMMENTARY 468 (This paragraph deals with the expenditure involved in the use of special
transport, but not the expenditure incurred in setting up the special transport system. On this latter point the
Convention says nothing and it is therefore to be supposed that such expenses will be covered by agreement between
the body which takes the initiative in the matter and the Powers concerned.).
476
Compare 10.23.6 (Censorship and Security Review of Internee Correspondence and Shipments).
477
Refer to 10.23.6 (Censorship and Security Review of Internee Correspondence and Shipments).
478
Refer to 9.23.2.1 (Review and Censorship of Requests and Complaints by the Detaining Power); 9.23.3
(Periodic Reports by the POW Representatives).
479
GPW art. 76 (The censoring of correspondence addressed to prisoners of war or despatched by them shall be
done as quickly as possible.).
480
GPW art. 76 (Mail shall be censored only by the despatching State and the receiving State, and once only by
each.).
576
in them to deterioration; except in the case of written or printed matter, it shall be done in the
presence of the addressee, or of a fellow POW duly delegated by him or her. 481
9.21.1 Civil Capacity. POWs shall retain their full civil capacity that they enjoyed at the
time of their capture. 484 Their retention of their full civil capacity at the time of capture means
that the law that applied to them before becoming a POW would continue to apply to them. 485
The Detaining Power may not restrict the exercise, either within or without its own
territory, of the rights such capacity confers, except in so far as the captivity requires. 486 Thus,
POWs may, to the extent consistent with their detention, continue to exercise the civil capacity
that they would have in their own country under that countrys law. 487 For example, to the
degree permitted by captivity, POWs may take legal steps that they were able to take before
481
GPW art. 76 (The examination of consignments intended for prisoners of war shall not be carried out under
conditions that will expose the goods contained in them to deterioration; except in the case of written or printed
matter, it shall be done in the presence of the addressee, or of a fellow-prisoner duly delegated by him.).
482
GPW art. 76 (The delivery to prisoners of individual or collective consignments shall not be delayed under the
pretext of difficulties of censorship.).
483
GPW art. 76 (Any prohibition of correspondence ordered by Parties to the conflict, either for military or
political reasons, shall be only temporary and its duration shall be as short as possible.).
484
GPW art. 14 (Prisoners of war shall retain the full civil capacity which they enjoyed at the time of their
capture.).
485
GPW COMMENTARY 149 (The 1949 Diplomatic Conference considered it necessary to clarify the 1929 text
establishing the civil capacity of prisoners of war. It was recalled that this capacity is always determined by law,
whether the legislation of the country of origin of the internee or that of his country of domicile. But the prisoner
will never be considered as resident in the country of detention solely by virtue of the fact that he is in captivity.
The legislation of his country of origin will, therefore, be applicable in most cases as that is also the country of
domicile of the majority of prisoners. There are other possibilities, however, and for that reason the Stockholm
draft, which only referred to the law of the country of origin, was amended by the Geneva Conference, so as to refer
instead to the civil capacity which they enjoyed at the time of their capture.).
486
GPW art. 14 (The Detaining Power may not restrict the exercise, either within or without its own territory, of
the rights such capacity confers except in so far as the captivity requires.).
487
II-A FINAL RECORD OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 249 (General DILLON (United States
of America) fully agreed with the United Kingdom Delegate's observations regarding the second paragraph. As
regards the third paragraph, he felt that a prisoner of war should be accorded all the civil rights that he would have in
his own country, under his own country's legislation. He could not exercise them in the country of the Detaining
Power, but could, on the other hand, exercise them in a prisoner of war camp. If he was a notary public, for
instance, he could draw up authentic documents for his fellow prisoners and transmit them through the Protecting
Power.).
577
captivity, such as disposing of property, making wills, giving consent to marriage, voting, or
executing a power of attorney. 488
9.21.2 Legal Documents and Assistance. The Detaining Powers shall provide all
facilities for the transmission, through the Protecting Power or the Central POW Information
Agency provided for in Article 123 of the GPW, of instruments, papers, or documents intended
for POWs or sent by them, especially powers of attorney and wills. 489 In all cases, the Detaining
Power shall facilitate the preparation and execution of such documents on behalf of POWs; in
particular, they shall allow them to consult a lawyer and shall take what measures are necessary
for the authentication of their signatures. 490
At the request of the POW, the will shall be transmitted without delay to the Protecting
Power; a certified copy shall be sent to the Central POW Information Agency. 492
9.22.1 POW Camp Commander. Every POW camp shall be put under the immediate
authority of a responsible commissioned officer belonging to the regular armed forces of the
Detaining Power. 493 For example, a non-commissioned officer, a contractor, a civilian, a
member of a paramilitary force, or an enemy POW may not be the camp commander. 494 The
POW camp commander has disciplinary powers over POWs. 495
488
2004 UK MANUAL 8.70 (It means that prisoners of war are free, so far as captivity permits, to take legal steps
in their state of origin, for example to dispose of property, make wills, give consent to marriage, or vote. Such
action will normally be taken by appointment of an attorney or proxy.).
489
GPW art. 77 (The Detaining Powers shall provide all facilities for the transmission, through the Protecting
Power or the Central Prisoners of War Agency provided for in Article 123, of instruments, papers or documents
intended for prisoners of war or despatched by them, especially powers of attorney and wills.).
490
GPW art. 77 (In all cases they shall facilitate the preparation and execution of such documents on behalf of
prisoners of war; in particular, they shall allow them to consult a lawyer and shall take what measures are necessary
for the authentication of their signatures.).
491
GPW art. 120 (Wills of prisoners of war shall be drawn up so as to satisfy the conditions of validity required by
the legislation of their country of origin, which will take steps to inform the Detaining Power of its requirements in
this respect.).
492
GPW art. 120 (At the request of the prisoner of war and, in all cases, after death, the will shall be transmitted
without delay to the Protecting Power; a certified copy shall be sent to the Central Agency.).
493
GPW art. 39 (Every prisoner of war camp shall be put under the immediate authority of a responsible
commissioned officer belonging to the regular armed forces of the Detaining Power.).
494
See GPW COMMENTARY 239-40 (The principle that a responsible commander should be appointed in each camp
was already set forth in the 1929 Convention, Article 18, paragraph 1: Each prisoners-of-war camp shall be placed
578
9.22.2 POWs Status With Respect to Their Armed Forces. Although POWs are not
subject to the judicial or disciplinary procedures of the Power to which they belong while they
are POWs, POWs remain subject to the law, disciplinary authority, and regulations of the Power
on which they depend. 496 For example, while they are POWs, they may not conduct disciplinary
proceedings against one another; however, they are liable to punishment for violations
committed during captivity, once they have been released and repatriated. 497
9.22.3 Saluting Between POWs and Officers of the Detaining Power. POWs, with the
exception of officers, must salute and show to all officers of the Detaining Power the external
marks of respect provided for by the regulations applying in their own forces. 498 POWs need not
salute Detaining Power non-commissioned officers or persons of equivalent status to officers
belonging to the Detaining Power. 499
The form and conditions for saluting and showing external marks of respect are to be
determined by the regulations applying in the armed forces to which the POWs belong. 500 Other
under the authority of a responsible officer. The brevity of that text led to considerable abuse of the provision
when disciplinary powers were delegated to non-commissioned officers and even to prisoners of war.).
495
Refer to 9.27.1 (POW Camp Authorities Who May Order Disciplinary Punishment).
496
See GPW COMMENTARY 408-09 (Although the legislation of the Detaining Power is applicable to him during
his captivity, he remains subject to the military law of his State of origin, as a member of its armed forces. He may
therefore be made answerable before the courts of his country for his acts, and cannot plead in defence that national
legislation is inapplicable because it is suspended by Article 82.).
497
See, e.g., 10 U.S.C. 905 (Misconduct as a prisoner. Any person subject to this chapter who, while in the
hands of the enemy in time of war-- (1) for the purpose of securing favorable treatment by his captors acts without
proper authority in a manner contrary to law, custom, or regulation, to the detriment of others of whatever
nationality held by the enemy as civilian or military prisoners; or (2) while in a position of authority over such
persons maltreats them without justifiable cause; shall be punished as a court-martial may direct.); United States v.
Dickenson 17 C.M.R. 438, 442 U.S. Army Board of Review (1954) (U.S. POW during the Korean War was found
guilty of committing offense when he for the purpose of securing favorable treatment by his captors, report[ed] to
the enemy officials in command of Prisoner of War Camp Number Five, Pyoktong, North Korea, the preparations
by Edward M. Gaither, then Private First Class Edward M. Gaither, United States Army, a prisoner of war at said
camp, to escape, as a result of which report the said Edward M. Gaither was placed by the enemy before a mock
firing squad on three occasions, placed by the enemy in solitary confinement for approximately seven months and
severely kicked and beaten with clubs by the enemy.); United States v. Garwood, 16 M.J. 863, 865 United States
Navy-Marine Corps Court of Military Review (1983) (U.S. POW during the Vietnam War was found guilty of
committing offenses of aiding enemy forces within prisoner of war camps in the Republic of South Vietnam, in
violation of Article 104, Uniform Code of Military Justice (UCMJ), 10 U.S.C. 904, and of assault of an American
prisoner of war interned in an enemy prisoner of war camp, in violation of Article 128, UCMJ, 10 U.S.C. 928.).
498
GPW art. 39 (Prisoners of war, with the exception of officers, must salute and show to all officers of the
Detaining Power the external marks of respect provided for by the regulations applying in their own forces.).
499
GPW COMMENTARY 240-41 (This provision requires prisoners of war to show the relevant external marks of
respect to all officers; at the same time, it automatically excludes from this privilege any representative of the
Detaining Power who is not an officer or does not wear officers uniform. Similarly, it excludes all non-
commissioned officers, regardless of the laws and regulations of the Detaining Power.).
500
GPW COMMENTARY 241 (The present provision does not merely state to whom prisoners of war must give the
salute and show external marks of respect; it also determines the form and conditions for doing so, by referring
explicitly to the regulations applying in the armed forces to which the prisoners belong. This provision is likely to
prevent any recurrence of incidents such as those which took place during the Second World War, when certain
579
external marks of respect may include, for example, standing at attention when an officer enters
the room. 501
Officer POWs are bound to salute only Detaining Power officers of higher rank and the
camp commander, regardless of his or her rank. 502
Although not required by the GPW, Detaining Power officers should return salutes as a
matter of courtesy. 503 Members of the armed forces of the Detaining Power are not required to
salute POWs of superior rank. 504
9.22.4 Rank and Age of POWs. POWs shall be treated with the regard due to their rank
and age. 505 POWs shall be permitted to wear their badges of rank, nationality, or decorations. 506
For example, rank insignia or similar devices may be worn by POWs.
The rank of POWs also determines the amount of the advances of pay that they are
entitled to receive. 507 In addition, POWs awarded disciplinary punishment may not be deprived
of the prerogatives of rank. 508
9.22.4.1 Communication of Titles and Ranks. Upon the outbreak of hostilities, the
parties to the conflict shall communicate to one another the titles and ranks of all the persons
mentioned in Article 4 of the GPW, in order to ensure equality of treatment between POWs of
belligerents insisted on prisoners conforming to the regulations for saluting applicable in the armed forces of the
Detaining Power.).
501
LEVIE, POWS 171, footnote 299 (Other external marks of respect would include standing when the officer enters
the room, remaining at attention while conversing with the officer, etc. These are not marks of obsequiousness, but
of disciplined training.).
502
GPW art. 39 (Officer prisoners of war are bound to salute only officers of a higher rank of the Detaining Power;
they must, however, salute the camp commander regardless of his rank.).
503
See GPW COMMENTARY 241 (There is one more question, in this connection, which gave rise to some
difficulty: that of officers of the Detaining Power returning the salute of prisoners of war. The Conference of
Government Experts considered that this was a matter of courtesy and did not call for precise ruling.).
504
LEVIE, POWS 170 (Members of the armed forces of the Detaining Power are not required to salute prisoners of
war of superior rank.).
505
GPW art. 44 (Officers and prisoners of equivalent status shall be treated with the regard due to their rank and
age.); GPW art. 45 (Prisoners of war other than officers and prisoners of equivalent status shall be treated with the
regard due to their rank and age.).
506
GPW art. 40 (The wearing of badges of rank and nationality, as well as of decorations, shall be permitted.).
507
Refer to 9.18.3.1 (GPW Specified Amounts for Monthly Advances of Pay).
508
Refer to 9.27.6.3 (Disciplinary Punishment - Retention of Prerogatives of Rank).
580
equivalent rank. 509 Titles and ranks that are subsequently created shall form the subject of
similar communications. 510
9.22.5 Posting of Convention and Camp Orders. In every POW camp the text of the
GPW and its Annexes, and the contents of any applicable special agreements, shall be posted, in
the POWs own language, in places where all may read them. 512 The POWs own language
means an official language of the State to which they belong. 513 Copies shall be supplied, on
request, to the POWs who cannot have access to the posted copy. 514
Regulations, orders, notices, and publications of every kind relating to the conduct of
POWs shall be issued to them in a language that they understand. 515 Such regulations, orders,
and publications shall be posted in the same manner as the GPW, and copies shall be handed to
the POW Representative. 516 Every order and command addressed to POWs individually must
likewise be given in a language that they understand. 517
9.22.6 Use of Force to Maintain Order and to Prevent Escape. The use of weapons
against POWs, especially against those who are escaping or attempting to escape, shall constitute
an extreme measure, which shall always be preceded by warnings appropriate to the
509
GPW art. 43 (Upon the outbreak of hostilities, the Parties to the conflict shall communicate to one another the
titles and ranks of all the persons mentioned in Article 4 of the present Convention, in order to ensure equality of
treatment between prisoners of equivalent rank.).
510
GPW art. 43 (Titles and ranks which are subsequently created shall form the subject of similar
communications.).
511
GPW art. 43 (The Detaining Power shall recognize promotions in rank which have been accorded to prisoners
of war and which have been duly notified by the Power on which these prisoners depend.).
512
GPW art. 41 (In every camp the text of the present Convention and its Annexes and the contents of any special
agreement provided for in Article 6, shall be posted, in the prisoners' own language, in places where all may read
them.).
513
See GPW COMMENTARY 244 (The 1929 Convention made the situation still more difficult by stipulating that the
text must be posted in the native language of the prisoners of war; the present Article refers merely to the
prisoners own language, this being the official language of the prisoners country of origin-the language used in
that country for official records and the publication of legislation. Where there is more than one official language in
the country of origin, the Convention should, if possible, be posted in the language actually used by the prisoners
concerned.).
514
GPW art. 41 (Copies shall be supplied, on request, to the prisoners who cannot have access to the copy which
has been posted.).
515
GPW art. 41 (Regulations, orders, notices and publications of every kind relating to the conduct of prisoners of
war shall be issued to them in a language which they understand.).
516
GPW art. 41 (Such regulations, orders and publications shall be posted in the manner described above and
copies shall be handed to the prisoners representative.).
517
GPW art. 41 (Every order and command addressed to prisoners of war individually must likewise be given in a
language which they understand.).
581
circumstances. 518 For example, POWs should not be fired upon if they are apprehended within
the camp limits while making preparations to escape and there is no risk of escape or harm to
anyone. 519
If the use of deadly force is warranted and authorized against POWs, there is no legal
requirement to employ non-lethal weapons before resort to deadly force. 522
9.23.1 POW Right to Make Requests and Complaints. POWs shall have the right to
make known, to the military authorities in whose power they are, their requests regarding the
conditions of captivity to which they are subjected. 523 The commander of a POW camp may
issue regulations that establish procedures about how POWs are to make these requests. 524
POWs shall also have the unrestricted right to apply to the representatives of the
Protecting Powers, either through their POW Representative or, if they consider it necessary,
directly, in order to draw their attention to any points on which they may have complaints to
make regarding their conditions of captivity. 525
518
GPW art. 42 (The use of weapons against prisoners of war, especially against those who are escaping or
attempting to escape, shall constitute an extreme measure, which shall always be preceded by warnings appropriate
to the circumstances.).
519
GPW COMMENTARY 246 (It is also important, however, to make a distinction between escape proper and acts or
phases preparatory thereto. If a prisoner is surprised within the camp limits while making preparations to escape,
there is no justification for opening fire on him.).
520
GPW COMMENTARY 247 (Before resorting to weapons of war, sentries can use others which do not cause fatal
injury and may even be considered as warnings--tear-gas, truncheons, etc. These measures may prove inadequate,
however, and from the moment when the guards and sentries are about to be overwhelmed, or are obliged to act in
legitimate self-defence, they are justified in opening fire.).
521
Refer to 6.16.2 (Prohibition on Use of Riot Control Agents as a Method of Warfare).
522
Refer to 6.5.10.5 (No Requirement to Use Non-Lethal Weapons Before Using Lethal Weapons Where Deadly
Force Is Warranted).
523
GPW art. 78 (Prisoners of war shall have the right to make known to the military authorities in whose power
they are, their requests regarding the conditions of captivity to which they are subjected.).
524
GPW COMMENTARY 383 (This right [under Article 78 of the GPW to make requests] must obviously be
exercised in a manner compatible with the normal requirements of discipline and camp administration and may not
be used for purposes other than those arising under the Convention. If need be, the camp commander will issue
regulations concerning the exercise of this right.).
525
GPW art. 78 (They shall also have the unrestricted right to apply to the representatives of the Protecting Powers
either through their prisoners' representative or, if they consider it necessary, direct, in order to draw their attention
to any points on which they may have complaints to make regarding their conditions of captivity.).
582
9.23.1.1 Making Requests and Complaints to the ICRC. Such complaints may
also be made to the delegates of the ICRC who enjoy the same prerogatives of access as the
representatives of the Protecting Power. 526 In the past, the ICRC has been able to take
appropriate measures besides merely forwarding the complaint to the Power on which the POWs
depend, including measures on a confidential basis that help improve the situations of POWs. 527
9.23.2 Communication of Requests and Complaints. These requests and complaints shall
neither be limited nor considered to be part of the correspondence quota referred to in Article 71
of the GPW. 528 They must be transmitted immediately. 529
526
Refer to 9.33.1.2 (ICRC Delegates Enjoying the Same Prerogatives of Access).
527
For example, I REPORT OF THE INTERNATIONAL COMMITTEE OF THE RED CROSS ON ITS ACTIVITIES DURING THE
SECOND WORLD WAR (SEPTEMBER 1, 1939 JUNE 30, 1947) 342 (1948) (On receiving a complaint [from POWs],
the ICRC sought the most appropriate means in its power to put right the matter complained of, first verifying as far
as possible the genuine foundation of the grievance. The Committee was more concerned with finding some
practical remedy for the deficiencies complained of than with bringing them to the notice of the PWs own country,
as there was always a possible risk of provoking reprisals. In some cases, it made immediate representations,
usually to the person or officials of the Detaining Power directly concerned, but sometimes also to higher authority.
In other cases it instructed its delegates to take appropriate steps on the spot to bring about an improvement. These
constant daily efforts, though often never heard of, are probably among the most useful services that the Committee
was able to render to PW.).
528
GPW art. 78 (These requests and complaints shall not be limited nor considered to be a part of the
correspondence quota referred to in Article 71.). Refer to 9.20.2 (POW Correspondence Rights and Quota).
529
GPW art. 78 (They must be transmitted immediately.).
530
GPW COMMENTARY 384 (The problem is to reconcile the Detaining Powers own security requirements with
the need to ensure that the right of complaint can be effectively exercised. For reasons of security, the Detaining
Power must obviously make sure that prisoners of war do not use it as a means of communication with the outside
world. The Conference of Government Experts therefore rejected the suggestion that the words without
amendment should be added to the obligation to transmit complaints. Such an addition would have resulted in
doing away with censorship, and the Detaining Power could not agree to that. The authors of the Convention
considered, however, that matters concerning only the conditions of captivity could be mentioned without
restriction, and the wording adopted seemed best suited to take into account both the interests of the prisoners of war
and the Detaining Powers own security requirements.).
531
Refer to 9.20.6 (Censorship and Security Review of POW Correspondence and Shipments).
532
GPW art. 78 (Even if they are recognized to be unfounded, they may not give rise to any punishment.).
583
States armed forces may be punished. 533 The GPW provision against punishment for unfounded
complaints arose after POWs were tortured for complaining to the representatives of the
Protecting Power. 534 In any event, it could be contrary to POWs interests to abuse this right by
making groundless complaints because complaints that are justified might not, as a result,
receive the appropriate attention. 535
9.23.3 Periodic Reports by the POW Representatives. POW Representatives may send
periodic reports on the situation in the camps and the needs of the POWs to the representatives of
the Protecting Powers. 536 POW Representatives have discretion about how and when to submit
their reports. 537 The Detaining Power may subject these reports to security review and
censorship to ensure that these reports are not misused. 538
The GPW contemplates that certain POWs will serve as representatives of the POWs
before the Detaining Power, the Protecting Power, and other entities. These persons have certain
prerogatives that enable them to carry out their duties to further the well-being of the POWs.
In the GPW, these persons are called prisoners representatives. This manual refers to
them as POW Representatives.
9.24.1 General Qualifications of the POW Representative. In all cases, the POW
Representative must have the same nationality, language, and customs as the POWs whom he or
533
GPW COMMENTARY 386 (Lastly, the present paragraph establishes the impunity of prisoners of war in regard to
any unfounded complaints or requests. Here the Convention departs from the regulations applied in national armed
forces, which usually punish any excessive use of the right of complaint as being an attack on authority and an act of
indiscipline.).
534
United States, et al. v. Araki, et al., Majority Judgment, International Military Tribunal for the Far East, 49,757,
reprinted in NEIL BOISTER & ROBERT CRYER, DOCUMENTS ON THE TOKYO INTERNATIONAL MILITARY TRIBUNAL:
CHARTER, INDICTMENT AND JUDGMENTS 592 (2008) (After a visit to the prisoner of war camp at Motoyama in
Japan in the spring of 1943, the senior prisoner at the camp, who had dared to complain of the working conditions to
which the prisoners had been subjected, was tortured. He was forced to kneel for five hours before a Japanese
guard. The next time this camp was visited, this senior prisoner was placed in confinement and was not allowed to
speak to the representative although that representative demanded to interview him.).
535
GPW COMMENTARY 386 (It is to be hoped that prisoners of war will realize that in their own interest they
should make judicious use of the right of complaint and request, and refrain from making complaints which they
know to be groundless so that those which are justified can receive the attention they deserve.).
536
GPW art. 78 (Prisoners representatives may send periodic reports on the situation in the camps and the needs of
the prisoners of war to the representatives of the Protecting Powers.).
537
Compare 10.21.3 (Periodic Reports by the Internee Committees).
538
Refer to 9.20.6 (Censorship and Security Review of POW Correspondence and Shipments).
584
she represents. 539 Thus, POWs distributed in different sections of a camp, according to their
nationality, language, or customs, shall have for each section their own POW Representative. 540
9.24.2 Procedure for Selecting POW Representatives, Advisers, and Assistants. The
procedure for selecting POW Representatives, and their advisers (POWs who are officers) and
assistants (POWs who are not officers), depends on the rank of the POWs in the camp.
9.24.2.1 Camps With Officer POWs. In camps for officers and persons of
equivalent status or in mixed camps, the senior officer among the POWs shall be recognized as
the camp POW Representative. 543 A mixed camp refers to camps composed of both officers and
other ranks. 544
The senior officer is the officer of highest rank, not the oldest officer. 545 The senior
officer is also a member of the armed forces, as opposed to a person of equivalent status (e.g.,
such as a person authorized to accompany the armed forces who is of senior status). 546
In camps for officers, the POW Representative shall be assisted by one or more advisers
chosen by the officers. 547 These advisers may assist the POW Representative if his or her health
539
GPW art. 79 (In all cases the prisoners representative must have the same nationality, language and customs as
the prisoners of war whom he represents.).
540
GPW art. 79 (Thus, prisoners of war distributed in different sections of a camp, according to their nationality,
language or customs, shall have for each section their own prisoners representative, in accordance with the
foregoing paragraphs.).
541
Refer to 7.9.5.7 (Senior Medical Officer in the Camp).
542
Refer to 7.9.5.6 (No Other Compulsory Duties); 9.24.4.1 (Limitations on Other Work Assignments).
543
GPW art. 79 (In camps for officers and persons of equivalent status or in mixed camps, the senior officer among
the prisoners of war shall be recognized as the camp prisoners' representative.).
544
See GPW COMMENTARY 393 (As may be seen from the record of the discussions at the Diplomatic Conference,
the expression [mixed camp] refers to camps comprising both officers and other ranks.).
545
See GPW COMMENTARY 392 (In camps for officers, the prisoners representative is appointed according to
seniority and not by election. The term the senior officer (in French, le plus ancien dans le grade le plus lev)
has sometimes been taken as meaning the oldest officer with the highest rank. If the words are to have a precise
meaning, however, as they must have, it should be what the English text says, viz. the senior officer of the highest
rank. Age will only be the determining factor where two officers of the same rank were promoted on the same
date.).
546
Refer to 4.15 (Persons Authorized to Accompany the Armed Forces).
547
GPW art. 79 (In camps for officers, he shall be assisted by one or more advisers chosen by the officers;).
585
makes it difficult to carry out the duties of the POW Representative and also may assist the POW
Representative in gauging the wishes of other POWs. 548
In mixed camps, the POW Representatives assistants shall be chosen from among the
POWs who are not officers and shall be elected by them. 549
9.24.2.2 Labor Camps With Officers Who Carry Out Camp Administration Duties
for POWs. Officer POWs of the same nationality shall be stationed in labor camps for POWs,
for the purpose of carrying out the camp administration duties for which the POWs are
responsible. 550 These officers may be elected as POW Representatives under the first paragraph
of Article 79 of the GPW. 551 In such a case, the assistants to the POW Representatives shall be
chosen from among those POWs who are not officers. 552
9.24.2.3 Places Without Officer POWs. In all places where there are POWs,
except in those where there are officers, the POWs shall freely elect POW Representatives by
secret ballot, every six months, and also in case of vacancies. 553 These POW Representatives
shall be eligible for re-election. 554
548
See GPW COMMENTARY 392 (Thus it is clearly established that, like other prisoners of war, officers have a
prisoners representative. Serious difficulties may result, however, from the fact that he is appointed according to
rank, particularly if his state of health makes it difficult for him to carry out the wide range of tasks incumbent on
the prisoners representative. The 1949 text therefore provides a possibility which did not exist in Article 43 of the
1929 Convention: the officer who is the prisoners representative will be assisted by one or more advisers chosen
by the prisoners themselves. The intention of the authors of this new provision was that such assistants should be
able to help the senior officer of the highest rank by expressing the wishes and opinions of all the prisoners.).
549
GPW art. 79 ([I]n mixed camps, his assistants shall be chosen from among the prisoners of war who are not
officers and shall be elected by them.).
550
GPW art. 79 (Officer prisoners of war of the same nationality shall be stationed in labour camps for prisoners of
war, for the purpose of carrying out the camp administration duties for which the prisoners of war are responsible.).
551
GPW art. 79 (These officers may be elected as prisoners representatives under the first paragraph of this
Article.). See also LEVIE, POWS 298 ([E]ven though the labor detachment will, to a certain extent, be a mixed
camp, the senior officer detailed to it to perform the administrative details will not automatically be the prisoners
representative, but he will be eligible for election to that office.).
552
GPW art. 79 (In such a case the assistants to the prisoners representatives shall be chosen from among those
prisoners of war who are not officers.).
553
GPW art. 79 (In all places where there are prisoners of war, except in those where there are officers, the
prisoners shall freely elect by secret ballot, every six months, and also in case of vacancies, prisoners'
representatives entrusted with representing them before the military authorities, the Protecting Powers, the
International Committee of the Red Cross and any other organization which may assist them.). See also GPW
COMMENTARY 390 (In view of the general wording of the phrase in all places where there are prisoners of war,
there is no need to wait until they are actually in a camp. If circumstances permit, prisoners of war will be able to
appoint a prisoners' representative in transit camps. The general wording of the provision therefore enables
prisoners representatives to be elected not only in the main camps which are usually situated on the outskirts of
built-up areas, but also in labour detachments.).
554
GPW art. 79 (These prisoners representatives shall be eligible for re-election.).
586
has the right to commence his or her duties. 555 Where the Detaining Power refuses to approve a
POW elected by fellow POWs, it must inform the Protecting Power of the reason for such
refusal. 556
9.24.3 Duties of POW Representatives. The POW Representatives are entrusted with
representing the POWs before the military authorities, the Protecting Powers, the ICRC, and any
other organization that may assist them. 557 POW Representatives shall further the physical,
spiritual, and intellectual well-being of POWs. 558
The POW Representatives general duties imply that the POW Representatives will
undertake a variety of activities to ensure that POWs receive proper treatment by the Detaining
Power and to advance their welfare, even activities that are not specified in the GPW as
constituting their duties.
9.24.3.2 Other Specific Duties. In addition to the general duties that the GPW
imposes on the POW Representative, the GPW also imposes specific duties on POW
Representatives in three areas: (1) relief activities; (2) relations between the POWs and the
authorities; and (3) verification that the guarantees provided under GPW are respected. 560
assisting in the transport of the POWs community property and luggage in cases of
transfers of POWs; 561
555
GPW art. 79 (Every representative elected must be approved by the Detaining Power before he has the right to
commence his duties.).
556
GPW art. 79 (Where the Detaining Power refuses to approve a prisoner of war elected by his fellow prisoners
of war, it must inform the Protecting Power of the reason for such refusal.).
557
GPW art. 80 (In all places where there are prisoners of war, except in those where there are officers, the
prisoners shall freely elect by secret ballot, every six months, and also in case of vacancies, prisoners
representatives entrusted with representing them before the military authorities, the Protecting Powers, the
International Committee of the Red Cross and any other organization which may assist them.).
558
GPW art. 80 (Prisoners representatives shall further the physical, spiritual and intellectual wellbeing of
prisoners of war.).
559
GPW art. 80 (In particular, where the prisoners decide to organize amongst themselves a system of mutual
assistance, this organization will be within the province of the prisoners' representative, in addition to the special
duties entrusted to him by other provisions of the present Convention.).
560
See GPW COMMENTARY 397 (The role of prisoners representatives falls under three main headings: relief
activities, relations with prisoners of war and the authorities, verification that the guarantees provided under the
Convention are being respected.).
561
Refer to 9.29.3.4 (Disposition of Community Property and Remaining Property).
587
managing the distribution of collective relief; 562
signing receipts for relief supplies or materials to the relief society or organization
making the shipment. 564
The POW Representatives duties in facilitating relations between the POWs and the
authorities include:
remaining in communication with POWs who work for private employers; 565
transmitting requests and complaints, and sending periodic reports on the needs of
POWs; 566 and
The POW Representatives duties in verifying that the guarantees provided under GPW
are respected include:
collaborating in the management of the canteen and its special fund; 568
receiving copies of regulations, orders, notices, and publications relating to the conduct
of POWs issued by the Detaining Power for communication to POWs; 569
countersigning for entries entered in a POWs account on his or her behalf, or for
notifications of payments sent by POWs to their own country; 570
monitoring decisions announced from any disciplinary proceeding against a POW; 571
562
Refer to 9.20.3.4 (Collective Relief for POWs).
563
Refer to 9.27.6.6 (Reading, Writing, Correspondence, and Packages).
564
Refer to 9.33.2.2 (Receipts for Relief Consignments).
565
Refer to 9.19.8 (POWs Working for Private Persons).
566
Refer to 9.23 (POW Requests, Complaints).
567
Refer to 9.33.1 (Access by Protecting Powers).
568
Refer to 9.17.3 (Camp Canteen Management and Profits).
569
Refer to 9.22.5 (Posting of Convention and Camp Orders).
570
Refer to 9.18 (Financial Resources of POWs).
571
Refer to 9.27.3 (Rights of POWs in Disciplinary Proceedings).
588
proposing repatriation for certain POWs and participating in Mixed Medical
Commissions.573
9.24.4.2 Assistants for the POW Representatives. In addition to the advisers and
assistants for the POW Representatives that are provided for in camps with officers, POW
Representatives may appoint from among the POWs such assistants as they may require. 576
Assistants, like the POW Representative, should be exempted from any other work to the extent
that the accomplishment of their duties would thereby be made more difficult. 577
9.24.4.4 Visiting Premises Where POWs Are Detained and Consultation With
POWs. POW Representatives shall be permitted to visit premises where POWs are detained, and
every POW shall have the right to consult freely with his or her POW Representative. 580 The
572
Refer to 9.28.3.1 (Notification of Proceedings); 9.28.4.6 (Notification of Trial Outcome).
573
Refer to 9.36.5 (Mixed Medical Commissions).
574
GPW art. 81 (Prisoners representatives shall not be required to perform any other work, if the accomplishment
of their duties is thereby made more difficult.).
575
Refer to 9.19.1.2 (Labor Assignment Officers and Persons of Equivalent Status).
576
GPW art. 81 (Prisoners representatives may appoint from amongst the prisoners such assistants as they may
require.). See also GPW COMMENTARY 401 (Assistants will be interpreters, legal advisers, secretaries, assistants
competent in matters of storage and handling.).
577
See GPW COMMENTARY 401 (All assistants like the prisoners' representative himself, will be exempted from
any other work to the extent that the accomplishment of their duties would thereby be made more difficult.).
578
GPW art. 81 (All material facilities shall be granted them, particularly a certain freedom of movement necessary
for the accomplishment of their duties (inspection of labour detachments, receipt of supplies, etc.).).
579
See GPW COMMENTARY 402 (The authors of GPW did not think fit to grant complete freedom, but only a
certain freedom. This freedom must be granted whenever necessary. Two cases are expressly mentioned:
inspection of labour detachments and receipt of relief supplies.). For example, GPW COMMENTARY 402 (During
the Second World War, prisoners representatives were released on parole by some Detaining Powers in order to
enable them to travel from one camp to another.).
580
GPW art. 81 (Prisoners representatives shall be permitted to visit premises where prisoners of war are detained,
and every prisoner of war shall have the right to consult freely his prisoners representative.).
589
premises that may be visited will include the kitchen, infirmary, and other annexes to the POW
Camp. 581
POW Representatives of labor detachments shall enjoy the same facilities for
communication with the POW Representatives of the principal camp. 586 Such communications
shall not be restricted, nor considered as forming a part of the quota mentioned in Article 71 of
the GPW. 587
The facilities to be granted do not, however, include freedom from censorship, but
correspondence may not be withheld. 588
581
GPW COMMENTARY 403 (The premises which may be visited will include the kitchen, infirmary and other
annexes.).
582
GPW art. 62 (The working pay of the prisoners representative, of his advisers, if any, and of his assistants, shall
be paid out of the fund maintained by canteen profits.). Refer to 9.17.3.1 (Use of Canteen Profits for Working
Pay of the POW Representative).
583
GPW art. 62 (The scale of this working pay shall be fixed by the prisoners representative and approved by the
camp commander.).
584
GPW art. 62 (If there is no such fund, the detaining authorities shall pay these prisoners a fair working rate of
pay.).
585
GPW art. 81 (All facilities shall likewise be accorded to the prisoners' representatives for communication by
post and telegraph with the detaining authorities, the Protecting Powers, the International Committee of the Red
Cross and their delegates, the Mixed Medical Commissions and the bodies which give assistance to prisoners of
war.).
586
GPW art. 81 (Prisoners representatives of labour detachments shall enjoy the same facilities for communication
with the prisoners' representatives of the principal camp.).
587
GPW art. 81 (Such communications shall not be restricted, nor considered as forming a part of the quota
mentioned in Article 71.). Refer to 9.20.2 (POW Correspondence Rights and Quota).
588
GPW COMMENTARY 404 (The facilities to be granted do not, however, include freedom from censorship, but
correspondence may not be withheld. If circumstances so demand, a special censorship service must therefore be
instituted or, at least, the correspondence of prisoners representatives must be given priority.).
590
any offenses committed by POWs. 589 For example, POW Representatives may not be held
responsible for escape attempts by other POWs, unless they personally participated in such
activities. 590
9.24.5 Dismissal of POW Representative. In case of dismissal, the reason for the
dismissal shall be communicated to the Protecting Power. 592
The GPW does not provide a procedure for POWs to dismiss POW Representatives aside
from not re-electing them. 593 However, the Detaining Power may withdraw its approval of a
POW Representative and request that POWs hold new elections. 594
POWs who escape successfully are not liable to any punishment in respect of their
previous escape. A number of rules limit the punishment of POWs who do not escape
successfully. Notifications of POW escape and recapture should also be made. POWs punished
as a result of an unsuccessful escape may be subjected to special surveillance.
9.25.1 No Punishment for Successful Escape. POWs who have made good their escape
in the sense of Article 91 of the GPW, and who are recaptured, shall not be liable to any
punishment in respect of their previous escape. 595
589
GPW art. 80 (Prisoners representatives shall not be held responsible, simply by reason of their duties, for any
offences committed by prisoners of war.).
590
See LEVIE, POWS 304 (This is particularly relevant with respect to incidents such as the construction of a tunnel
to be used for the purpose of escape. The military authorities of the Detaining Power will probably assume, and
with some justification, that this could not have occurred unknown to the prisoners representative--but whether he
knew of it or not, he is not to be held responsible if he did not personally participate in it.).
591
GPW art. 81 (Prisoners representatives who are transferred shall be allowed a reasonable time to acquaint their
successors with current affairs.).
592
GPW art. 81 (In case of dismissal, the reasons therefore shall be communicated to the Protecting Power.).
593
See GPW COMMENTARY 405 (GPW Article 79, paragraph 1, enables [POWs] to show disapproval by not re-
electing the prisoners' representative, since elections must be held every six months. The Convention provides no
procedure, however, for a case where prisoners of war have grounds to demand that their representative should
resign immediately; it makes provision only for dismissal of a prisoners' representative by the Detaining Power.).
594
See GPW COMMENTARY 405 (One solution would be for the prisoners of war to submit a request to the military
authorities for recognition to be withdrawn from the prisoners' representative. If the Detaining Power is satisfied
that that is the wish of the majority of prisoners, it may arrange for fresh elections to be held, and the results thereof
will justify or not, as the case may be, the request made by the prisoners of war. The Detaining Power may at any
time withdraw its approval and request prisoners of war to hold new elections. It must advise the Protecting Power
of the actual reasons for its decision and may not merely state that there is no longer mutual confidence between the
prisoners' representative and its own representatives.).
591
In this way, POWs who have escaped successfully are treated similarly to persons who
have engaged in espionage and returned safely to friendly lines. 596 Escaping POWs must not kill
or wound the enemy by resort to perfidy. 597
9.25.1.1 Types of Successful Escapes. Under Article 91 of the GPW, the escape
of a POW shall be deemed to have succeeded when the POW has:
joined the armed forces of the Power on which he or she depends, or those of an allied
Power;
left the territory under the control of the Detaining Power, or of an ally of the Detaining
Power; or
joined a ship flying the flag of the Power on which he or she depends, or of an allied
Power, in the territorial waters of the Detaining Power, this ship not being under the
control of the Detaining Power. 598
The general principle is that the POW must have actually gone beyond the reach of the
Detaining Power. 599 Thus, for example, a POW who escapes from the territory of the Detaining
Power to the territory of one of the Detaining Powers allies will not be deemed to have escaped
successfully. On the other hand, if the POW reaches neutral territory or the high seas, he or she
will have escaped successfully. 600
The situation of POWs who have successfully escaped into neutral territory is addressed
under the law of neutrality. 601
595
GPW art. 91 (Prisoners of war who have made good their escape in the sense of this Article and who are
recaptured, shall not be liable to any punishment in respect of their previous escape.).
596
Refer to 4.17.5.1 (Liability of Persons Not Captured While Spying for Previous Acts of Espionage).
597
Refer to 5.22 (Treachery or Perfidy Used to Kill or Wound).
598
GPW art. 91 (The escape of a prisoner of war shall be deemed to have succeeded when: (1) he has joined the
armed forces of the Power on which he depends, or those of an allied Power; (2) he has left the territory under the
control of the Detaining Power, or of an ally of the said Power; (3) he has joined a ship flying the flag of the Power
on which he depends, or of an allied Power, in the territorial waters of the Detaining Power, the said ship not being
under the control of the last named Power.).
599
GPW COMMENTARY 446 (As Scheidl has pointed out, it is not sufficient for a prisoner attempting to escape to
throw off immediate pursuit and hide among the population of the territory; he must actually succeed in escaping
beyond the reach of the Detaining Power.).
600
See 1958 UK MANUAL 238 note 3 (The effect of Art. 91 [of the GPW] is that the escape is to be considered
successful not only if the prisoner rejoins the armed forces of the State with which he was previously serving, or
those of its allies, but also if he has left the territory of or occupied by the Detaining Power, e.g., by reaching neutral
territory. If he were picked up by a ship of the Detaining Power outside its territorial waters it would seem that he
would not be liable to disciplinary punishment having already made a successful escape by leaving its territory.).
601
Refer to 15.17.1 (Escaped POWs Received by a Neutral State).
592
9.25.2 Unsuccessful Escapes. POWs who do not escape successfully retain their
entitlement to POW status upon recapture. In particular, the wearing of civilian clothes does not
deny escaping POWs their status as POWs. 602
A number of rules limit the punishment of POWs who do not escape successfully. By
limiting the punishment in respect of the act of escape, the GPW recognizes that POWs may
legitimately try to escape from their captors. 603 In some cases, POWs may even be under an
obligation to escape. 604 For example, U.S. military personnel have a duty to make every effort to
escape captivity. 605
602
GPW COMMENTARY 454 (Additional difficulties have sometimes arisen from the wearing of civilian clothing;
during the Second World War, some Detaining Powers stated their intention of considering prisoners of war in
civilian clothing as spies and no longer as prisoners of war. This matter is settled by the present provision: a
prisoner of war retains that legal status until such time as he has made good his escape.).
603
GPW COMMENTARY 445 (A prisoner of war can legitimately try to escape from his captors. It is even
considered by some that prisoners of war have a moral obligation to try to escape, and in most cases such attempts
are of course motivated by patriotism. Conversely, in its own interest, the Detaining Power will endeavour to
prevent escape whenever possible. This results in the paradox of escape to which A. R. Werner refers: an attempt
to escape is considered by the Detaining Power as a breach of discipline and therefore punishable, while the adverse
Party considers it as an act which cannot be held to be a crime. Attempted escape is therefore liable only to
disciplinary punishment, and not to judicial proceedings.).
604
Rex v. Guenther Krebs (Magistrates Court of the County of Renfrew, Ontario, Oct. 7, 1943), reprinted in 38
AJIL, 505, 507-08 (1944) (This accused owes no allegiance to the Crown. He is an open and avowed enemy of the
Crown, a man taken in war and a man who, if it is not his duty, may quite reasonably feel that it is his duty to escape
from the domains of his captor state, and, if he can, return to the state to which he owes allegiance and perform his
duty to that state. Whatever may be finally decided in this matter, my opinion is that a prisoner of war is not
punishable for anything he may reasonably do to escape, or having escaped, to preserve his liberty. My opinion also
is that what the accused did was done with a view to facilitating his escape. He, therefore is not guilty of any
crime.).
605
Refer to 9.39.1.3 (Code of Conduct Article III).
606
GPW art. 92 (A prisoner of war who is recaptured shall be handed over without delay to the competent military
authority.).
607
1958 UK MANUAL 240 note 1 (One of the purposes of these articles [of the GPW] is to render clearly unlawful
the practice resorted to by Germany during the Second World War of handing over recaptured prisoners of war to
non-military agencies such as the German Gestapo or the concentration camp service.).
593
of Article 91 of the GPW shall be liable only to a disciplinary punishment in respect of this act,
even if it is a repeated offense. 608
For example, if a POW steals food, money, or means of transport; wears civilian
clothing; or fabricates false documents in order to facilitate his or her escape and is caught before
escaping successfully, such acts may only incur disciplinary punishment.
For example, an escaping POW who kills or injures a Detaining Power guard while
escaping could be liable to judicial punishment for that offense. However, the circumstance of
escape shall not be deemed to aggravate the sentence of the POW, even if the POW is one who
frequently attempts to escape.
9.25.3 Liability of POWs for Other POWs Escape or Attempts to Escape. POWs who
aid or abet an escape or an attempt to escape are liable on this count to disciplinary punishment
only. 611
608
GPW art. 92 (A prisoner of war who attempts to escape and is recaptured before having made good his escape in
the sense of Article 91 shall be liable only to a disciplinary punishment in respect of this act, even if it is a repeated
offence.).
609
GPW art. 93 (In conformity with the principle stated in Article 83, offences committed by prisoners of war with
the sole intention of facilitating their escape and which do not entail any violence against life or limb, such as
offences against public property, theft without intention of self-enrichment, the drawing up or use of false papers, or
the wearing of civilian clothing, shall occasion disciplinary punishment only.).
610
GPW art. 93 (Escape or attempt to escape, even if it is a repeated offence, shall not be deemed an aggravating
circumstance if the prisoner of war is subjected to trial by judicial proceedings in respect of an offence committed
during his escape or attempt to escape.).
611
GPW art. 93 (Prisoners of war who aid or abet an escape or an attempt to escape shall be liable on this count to
disciplinary punishment only.). See also GPW COMMENTARY 455 (At the 1929 Conference, some delegations
maintained that accomplices should be exempt from any punishment, even disciplinary. This proposal was rightly
rejected. Furthermore, the punishment of accomplices is consistent with the principles of penal law. Escape is an
offence against the Detaining Power. The privilege of impunity which is granted to a prisoner of war who commits
this offence is based solely on the fact that captivity is interrupted and this is not so in the case of accomplices.).
594
9.25.4 Special Surveillance of POWs as a Result of Unsuccessful Escape. Despite
Article 88 of the GPW, which articulates the principle that POWs who have served disciplinary
or judicial sentences may not be treated differently from other POWs, 613 POWs punished as a
result of an unsuccessful escape may be subjected to special surveillance. 614 Such surveillance:
(1) must not affect the state of their health; (2) must be undergone in a POW camp; and (3) must
not entail the suppression of any of the safeguards granted to them by the GPW. 615
9.25.5 Notification of Escape and Recapture. If a POW escapes, the State on which the
POW depends should be notified by the Detaining Powers National POW Information Bureau
through the intermediary of the Protecting Powers and Central Tracing Agency. 616
If an escaped POW is recaptured, the Power on which the POW depends shall be notified
of the recapture in the manner prescribed in Article 122 of the GPW (i.e., by the Detaining
Powers National POW Information Bureau through the intermediary of the Protecting Powers
and Central Tracing Agency), provided notification of the POWs escape has been made. 617
In the GPW, the rules on POW discipline are provided under three sub-headings:
Disciplinary measures, which means punishment by the commander of the POW camp,
and is equivalent to summary disposal by a commanding officer. 619
Judicial proceedings, which means trial and punishment by a court having jurisdiction
to try POWs, and is equivalent to trial by court-martial. 620
This section addresses the general principles applicable to both disciplinary and judicial
proceedings against POWs.
9.26.1 POWs Subject to the Laws, Regulations, and Orders in Force in the Armed Forces
of the Detaining Power. A POW shall be subject to the laws, regulations, and orders in force in
612
Refer to 9.26.6 (Prohibited Penalties).
613
Refer to 9.26.7 (Treatment of POWs Undergoing Punishment).
614
GPW art. 92 (Article 88, fourth paragraph, notwithstanding, prisoners of war punished as a result of an
unsuccessful escape may be subjected to special surveillance.).
615
GPW art. 92 (Such surveillance must not affect the state of their health, must be undergone in a prisoner of war
camp, and must not entail the suppression of any of the safeguards granted them by the present Convention.).
616
Refer to 9.31.1 (Accountability Information That the Detaining Power Should Collect).
617
GPW art. 94 (If an escaped prisoner of war is recaptured, the Power on which he depends shall be notified
thereof in the manner defined in Article 122, provided notification of his escape has been made.).
618
GPW arts. 82-88.
619
GPW arts. 89-98. Refer to 9.27 (Disciplinary Proceedings and Punishment).
620
GPW arts. 99-108. Refer to 9.28 (Judicial Proceedings and Punishment).
595
the armed forces of the Detaining Power; the Detaining Power shall be justified in taking judicial
or disciplinary measures in respect of any offense committed by a POW against such laws,
regulations, or orders. 621 For example, POWs in custody of the U.S. armed forces are subject to
the Uniform Code of Military Justice. 622 However, no proceedings or punishments contrary to
the provisions of Chapter III of the GPW shall be allowed. 623
POWs also remain subject to the laws of the State to which they claim allegiance, and
may be prosecuted by that State following release and repatriation for misconduct committed
during their captivity. 624
This requirement does not compel the competent authorities to choose disciplinary over
judicial proceedings in any particular case.
9.26.3 Trial by Military Courts. A POW shall be tried only by a military court, unless the
existing laws of the Detaining Power expressly permit the civil courts to try a member of the
armed forces of the Detaining Power in respect of the particular offense alleged to have been
committed by the POW. 626
In no circumstances whatever shall a POW be tried by a court of any kind that does not
offer the essential guarantees of independence and impartiality as generally recognized and, in
particular, the procedure of which does not afford the accused the rights and means of defense
provided for in Article 105 of the GPW. 627
621
GPW art. 82 (A prisoner of war shall be subject to the laws, regulations and orders in force in the armed forces
of the Detaining Power; the Detaining Power shall be justified in taking judicial or disciplinary measures in respect
of any offence committed by a prisoner of war against such laws, regulations or orders.).
622
10 U.S.C. 802 ((a) The following persons are subject to this chapter [47 Uniform Code of Military Justice]:
(9) Prisoners of war in custody of the armed forces.).
623
GPW art. 82 (However, no proceedings or punishments contrary to the provisions of this Chapter shall be
allowed.).
624
Refer to 9.22.2 (POWs Status With Respect to Their Armed Forces).
625
GPW art. 83 (In deciding whether proceedings in respect of an offence alleged to have been committed by a
prisoner of war shall be judicial or disciplinary, the Detaining Power shall ensure that the competent authorities
exercise the greatest leniency and adopt, wherever possible, disciplinary rather than judicial measures.).
626
GPW art. 84 (A prisoner of war shall be tried only by a military court, unless the existing laws of the Detaining
Power expressly permit the civil courts to try a member of the armed forces of the Detaining Power in respect of the
particular offence alleged to have been committed by the prisoner of war.).
627
GPW art. 84 (In no circumstances whatever shall a prisoner of war be tried by a court of any kind which does
not offer the essential guarantees of independence and impartiality as generally recognized, and, in particular, the
procedure of which does not afford the accused the rights and means of defence provided for in Article 105.).
Refer to 9.28.4 (Rights of Defense and Trial Procedure).
596
9.26.4 Retention of Benefits of the GPW Even if Prosecuted for Pre-Capture Acts.
POWs prosecuted under the laws of the Detaining Power for acts committed prior to capture
shall retain, even if convicted, the benefits of the GPW. 628 For example, POWs prosecuted for
pre-capture acts are entitled to the fair trial protections provided by the GPW. 629 POWs fair
trial protections could not be ensured if the mere allegation of a war crime could deny them
POW status. 630
9.26.5 Repetition of Punishment. No POW may be punished more than once for the
same act, or on the same charge. 631
9.26.6 Prohibited Penalties. POWs may not be sentenced by the military authorities and
courts of the Detaining Power to any penalties except those provided for in respect of members
of the armed forces of the Detaining Power who have committed the same acts. 632 The
following punishments are expressly prohibited:
corporal punishment;
628
GPW art. 85 (Prisoners of war prosecuted under the laws of the Detaining Power for acts committed prior to
capture shall retain, even if convicted, the benefits of the present Convention.).
629
Refer to 9.28.4 (Rights of Defense and Trial Procedure).
630
George Aldrich, Assistant Legal Adviser for Far Eastern Affairs, Department of State, Entitlement of American
Military Personnel Held by North Viet-Nam to Treatment as Prisoners of War Under the Geneva Convention of
1949 Relative to the Treatment of Prisoners of War, Jul. 13, 1966, X WHITEMANS DIGEST 231, 232-33 (7) (No
nation has reserved the right to nullify its obligations under the Convention by a simple declaration that it regards
members of the armed forces of an opposing party in an international conflict as war criminals. While a number
of Communist parties to the Convention, including North Viet Nam, have indicated, by reservations, that they will
not comply with Article 85, these reservations (1) apply only to prisoners guilty of war crimes as opposed to
recognized acts of warfare and (2) apply only after a prisoner has been tried in accordance with all the judicial
guarantees which the Convention provides, and only after conviction.).
631
GPW art. 86 (No prisoner of war may be punished more than once for the same act, or on the same charge.).
632
GPW art. 87 (Prisoners of war may not be sentenced by the military authorities and courts of the Detaining
Power to any penalties except those provided for in respect of members of the armed forces of the said Power who
have committed the same acts.).
633
Refer to 8.16.2.1 (Individual Penal Responsibility and No Collective Punishment).
634
GPW art. 87 (Collective punishment for individual acts, corporal punishment, imprisonment in premises without
daylight and, in general, any form of torture or cruelty, are forbidden. No prisoner of war may be deprived of his
rank by the Detaining Power, or prevented from wearing his badges.).
597
The courts and authorities of the Detaining Power, in reaching decisions on punishment,
must at all times remember that the accused:
does not owe any allegiance to the Detaining Power and may be, for example, under a
duty to escape; 635 and
is in its power through circumstances beyond his or her control so that, for example,
depression brought on by captivity should not be regarded as self-induced.
Courts and disciplinary authorities shall have the discretion to reduce the penalty below
the minimum prescribed for members of the armed forces of the Detaining Power. 636
POWs who have served disciplinary or judicial sentences may not be treated differently
from other POWs. 639 However, POWs who have been punished as a result of an attempted
escape may nonetheless be subjected to special surveillance. 640
In addition to the general principles applicable to POW punishment, the following rules
address disciplinary proceedings and punishment.
635
Refer to 4.4.4.2 (Nationals of a State Who Join Enemy Forces).
636
GPW art. 87 (When fixing the penalty, the courts or authorities of the Detaining Power shall take into
consideration, to the widest extent possible, the fact that the accused, not being a national of the Detaining Power, is
not bound to it by any duty of allegiance, and that he is in its power as the result of circumstances independent of his
own will. The said courts or authorities shall be at liberty to reduce the penalty provided for the violation of which
the prisoner of war is accused, and shall therefore not be bound to apply the minimum penalty prescribed.).
637
GPW art. 88 (Officers, non-commissioned officers and men who are prisoners of war undergoing a disciplinary
or judicial punishment, shall not be subjected to more severe treatment than that applied in respect of the same
punishment to members of the armed forces of the Detaining Power of equivalent rank.).
638
GPW art. 88 (A woman prisoner of war shall not be awarded or sentenced to a punishment more severe, or
treated whilst undergoing punishment more severely, than a woman member of the armed forces of the Detaining
Power dealt with for a similar offence.); GPW art. 88 (In no case may a woman prisoner of war be awarded or
sentenced to a punishment more severe, or treated whilst undergoing punishment more severely, than a male
member of the armed forces of the Detaining Power dealt with for a similar offence.).
639
GPW art. 88 (Prisoners of war who have served disciplinary or judicial sentences may not be treated differently
from other prisoners of war.).
640
Refer to 9.25.4 (Special Surveillance of POWs as a Result of Unsuccessful Escape).
598
9.27.1 POW Camp Authorities Who May Order Disciplinary Punishment. Apart from
judicial authorities or superior military authorities, only the camp commander, the officer acting
in the commanders place, or an officer to whom the commander has delegated his or her
disciplinary powers, may order disciplinary punishment. 641 A camp commanders power to
order disciplinary punishment of POWs may not be delegated to POWs. 642
Any period spent in confinement awaiting disposal of an offense against discipline shall
be reduced to the absolute minimum and shall not exceed fourteen days. 644
The provisions of Articles 97 and 98 of the GPW shall apply to a POWs confinement
while awaiting the disposal of offenses against discipline. 645 Thus, the conditions of any
confinement before the hearing should be at least as good as that afforded POWs who are
confined as part of disciplinary punishment. 646
641
GPW art. 96 (Without prejudice to the competence of courts and superior military authorities, disciplinary
punishment may be ordered only by an officer having disciplinary powers in his capacity as camp commander, or by
a responsible officer who replaces him or to whom he has delegated his disciplinary powers.).
642
GPW art. 96 (In no case may such powers be delegated to a prisoner of war or be exercised by a prisoner of
war.).
643
GPW art. 95 (A prisoner of war accused of an offence against discipline shall not be kept in confinement
pending the hearing unless a member of the armed forces of the Detaining Power would be so kept if he were
accused of a similar offence, or if it is essential in the interests of camp order and discipline.).
644
GPW art. 95 (Any period spent by a prisoner of war in confinement awaiting the disposal of an offence against
discipline shall be reduced to an absolute minimum and shall not exceed fourteen days.).
645
GPW art. 95 (The provisions of Articles 97 and 98 of this Chapter shall apply to prisoners of war who are in
confinement awaiting the disposal of offences against discipline.).
646
Refer to 9.27.6 (Conditions for POWs Serving Disciplinary Punishments).
647
GPW art. 96 (Before any disciplinary award is pronounced, the accused shall be given precise information
regarding the offences of which he is accused, and given an opportunity of explaining his conduct and of defending
himself.).
648
GPW art. 96 (He shall be permitted, in particular, to call witnesses and to have recourse, if necessary, to the
services of a qualified interpreter.).
599
The decision shall be announced to the accused POW and to the POW Representative. 649
a fine that shall not exceed 50 percent of the advances of pay and working pay that the
POW would receive under Articles 60 and 62 of the GPW during a period of not more
than thirty days;
discontinuance of privileges granted over and above the treatment provided for by the
GPW;
o Fatigue duties refers to details of extra-duty chores (e.g., such as policing of the
POW camp grounds, kitchen duty). 652
o The punishment of fatigue duties shall not be applied to officers. 653 In addition,
fatigue details should meet normal standards for working conditions and must not
be made more arduous as a disciplinary measure. 654
confinement. 655
649
GPW art. 96 (The decision shall be announced to the accused prisoner of war and to the prisoners
representative.).
650
GPW art. 96 (A record of disciplinary punishments shall be maintained by the camp commander and shall be
open to inspection by representatives of the Protecting Power.).
651
GPW art. 89 (In no case shall disciplinary punishments be inhuman, brutal or dangerous to the health of
prisoners of war.).
652
LEVIE, POWS 327 (This punishment consists of extra-duty chores (beyond regular work hours and beyond
normal duty-roster assignments), such as policing of the prisoner-of-war camp grounds, kitchen police, etc. The
imposition of such extra fatigue duty as disciplinary punishment is limited to 2 hours per day; and Article 90 limits
the overall duration to 30 days.).
653
GPW art. 89 (The punishment referred to under (3) shall not be applied to officers.).
654
Refer to 9.19.3 (Suitable Work Conditions).
655
GPW art. 89 (The disciplinary punishment applicable to prisoners of war are the following: (1) A fine which
shall not exceed 50 per cent of the advances of pay and working pay which the prisoner of war would otherwise
receive under the provisions of Articles 60 and 62 during a period of not more than thirty days. (2) Discontinuance
of privileges granted over and above the treatment provided for by the present Convention. (3) Fatigue duties not
exceeding two hours daily. (4) Confinement.).
600
The duration of any single punishment shall in no case exceed thirty days. 656 The
maximum of thirty days may not be exceeded, even if the POW is answerable for several acts
when punishment is awarded, regardless of whether such acts are related. 657
Any period of confinement awaiting the hearing of a disciplinary offense or the award of
disciplinary punishment shall be deducted from an award pronounced against a POW. 658
The period between the pronouncing of an award of disciplinary punishment and its
execution shall not exceed one month. 659 When a POW is awarded a further disciplinary
punishment, a period of at least three days shall elapse between the execution of any two of the
punishments, if the duration of one of these punishments is ten days or more. 660
Officers and persons of equivalent status shall not be lodged in the same quarters as non-
commissioned officers or enlisted personnel. 663
656
GPW art. 90 (The duration of any single punishment shall in no case exceed thirty days.).
657
GPW art. 90 (The maximum of thirty days provided above may not be exceeded, even if the prisoner of war is
answerable for several acts at the same time when he is awarded punishment, whether such acts are related or not.).
658
GPW art. 90 (Any period of confinement awaiting the hearing of a disciplinary offence or the award of
disciplinary punishment shall be deducted from an award pronounced against a prisoner of war.).
659
GPW art. 90 (The period between the pronouncing of an award of disciplinary punishment and its execution
shall not exceed one month.).
660
GPW art. 90 (When a prisoner of war is awarded a further disciplinary punishment, a period of at least three
days shall elapse between the execution of any two of the punishments, if the duration of one of these is ten days or
more.).
661
Refer to 9.5 (Humane Treatment and Basic Protections for POWs).
662
GPW art. 97 (Prisoners of war shall not in any case be transferred to penitentiary establishments (prisons,
penitentiaries, convict prisons, etc.) to undergo disciplinary punishment therein.).
663
GPW art. 97 (Officers and persons of equivalent status shall not be lodged in the same quarters as non-
commissioned officers or men.).
664
GPW art. 97 (Women prisoners of war undergoing disciplinary punishment shall be confined in separate
quarters from male prisoners of war and shall be under the immediate supervision of women.).
601
receive the benefits of the GPW, except insofar as these benefits are necessarily rendered
inapplicable by the mere fact that the POW is confined. 665
9.27.6.5 Exercise and Access to the Open Air. POWs awarded disciplinary
punishment shall be allowed to exercise and to stay in the open air at least two hours daily. 672
602
entrusted to the POW Representative, who will hand over to the infirmary the perishable goods
contained in such parcels. 674
In addition to the general principles applicable to POW punishment, the following rules
address judicial proceedings and punishment.
9.28.2 Same Courts and Same Procedures. A POW can be validly sentenced only if the
sentence has been pronounced by the same courts according to the same procedure as in the case
of members of the armed forces of the Detaining Power, and if, furthermore, the provisions of
Chapter III of the GPW have been observed. 677 For example, evidence laws used in the trial of a
POW will be the same as those applicable in the trial of a member of the Detaining Powers
military forces.
674
GPW art. 98 (Parcels and remittances of money however, may be withheld from them until the completion of
the punishment; they shall meanwhile be entrusted to the prisoners representative, who will hand over to the
infirmary the perishable goods contained in such parcels.).
675
GPW art. 115 (No prisoner of war on whom a disciplinary punishment has been imposed and who is eligible for
repatriation or for accommodation in a neutral country, may be kept back on the plea that he has not undergone his
punishment.).
676
GPW art. 99 (No prisoner of war may be tried or sentenced for an act which is not forbidden by the law of the
Detaining Power or by international law, in force at the time the said act was committed.).
677
GPW art. 102 (A prisoner of war can be validly sentenced only if the sentence has been pronounced by the same
courts according to the same procedure as in the case of members of the armed forces of the Detaining Power, and
if, furthermore, the provisions of the present Chapter have been observed.).
678
See GPW art. 104 (In any case in which the Detaining Power has decided to institute judicial proceedings
against a prisoner of war, it shall notify the Protecting Power as soon as possible and at least three weeks before the
opening of the trial. The same communication shall be made by the Detaining Power to the prisoners
representative.).
603
such notification reaches the Protecting Power at the address previously indicated by the latter to
the Detaining Power. 679 This notification shall contain the following information:
surname and first names of the POW, his or her rank, his or her army, regimental,
personal or serial number, his or her date of birth, and his or her profession or trade, if
any;
specification of the charge or charges on which the POW is to be arraigned, giving the
legal provisions applicable; and
designation of the court that will try the case, and the date and place fixed for the opening
of the trial. 680
If no evidence is submitted at the opening of a trial that the notification referred to above
was received by the Protecting Power, by the POW, and by the POW Representative concerned
at least three weeks before the opening of the trial, then the trial may not take place and must be
adjourned. 681
In no circumstances, however, may a POW be confined for more than three months. 684
679
GPW art. 104 (This period of three weeks shall run as from the day on which such notification reaches the
Protecting Power at the address previously indicated by the latter to the Detaining Power.).
680
GPW art. 104 (The said notification shall contain the following information: (1) surname and first names of the
prisoner of war, his rank, his army, regimental, personal or serial number, his date of birth, and his profession or
trade, if any; (2) place of internment or confinement; (3) specification of the charge or charges on which the prisoner
of war is to be arraigned, giving the legal provisions applicable; (4) designation of the court which will try the case,
likewise the date and place fixed for the opening of the trial.).
681
GPW art. 104 (If no evidence is submitted, at the opening of a trial, that the notification referred to above was
received by the Protecting Power, by the prisoner of war and by the prisoners' representative concerned, at least
three weeks before the opening of the trial, then the latter cannot take place and must be adjourned.).
682
GPW art. 103 (Judicial investigations relating to a prisoner of war shall be conducted as rapidly as
circumstances permit and so that his trial shall take place as soon as possible.).
683
GPW art. 103 (A prisoner of war shall not be confined while awaiting trial unless a member of the armed forces
of the Detaining Power would be so confined if he were accused of a similar offence, or if it is essential to do so in
the interests of national security.).
684
GPW art. 103 (In no circumstances shall this confinement exceed three months.).
604
Any period spent by a POW in confinement awaiting trial shall be deducted from any
sentence of imprisonment passed upon him or her and taken into account in fixing any
penalty. 685
Articles 97 and 98 of the GPW apply to a POWs confinement while awaiting trial. 686
Thus, the conditions of any confinement before trial should be at least as good as that afforded
POWs who are confined as part of disciplinary punishment. 687
The POW shall be advised of these rights by the Detaining Power in due time before the
trial to enable him or her to exercise them. 691
685
GPW art. 103 (Any period spent by a prisoner of war in confinement awaiting trial shall be deducted from any
sentence of imprisonment passed upon him and taken into account in fixing any penalty.).
686
GPW art. 103 (The provisions of Articles 97 and 98 of this Chapter shall apply to a prisoner of war whilst in
confinement awaiting trial.).
687
Refer to 9.27.6 (Conditions for POWs Serving Disciplinary Punishments).
688
GPW art. 99 (No moral or physical coercion may be exerted on a prisoner of war in order to induce him to admit
himself guilty of the act of which he is accused.).
689
GPW art. 99 (No prisoner of war may be convicted without having had an opportunity to present his defence
and the assistance of a qualified advocate or counsel.).
690
GPW art. 105 (The prisoner of war shall be entitled to assistance by one of his prisoner comrades, to defence by
a qualified advocate or counsel of his own choice, to the calling of witnesses and, if he deems necessary, to the
services of a competent interpreter. He shall be advised of these rights by the Detaining Power in due time before
the trial.).
691
GPW art. 105 (The prisoner of war shall be entitled to assistance by one of his prisoner comrades, to defence by
a qualified advocate or counsel of his own choice, to the calling of witnesses and, if he deems necessary, to the
605
Failing a choice by the POW, the Protecting Power shall find him or her an advocate or
counsel, and shall have at least one week at its disposal for this purpose. 692 The Detaining Power
shall deliver to the Protecting Power, on request, a list of persons qualified to present the
defense. 693 Failing a choice of an advocate or counsel by the POW or the Protecting Power, the
Detaining Power shall appoint a competent advocate or counsel to conduct the defense. 694
9.28.4.3 Facilities for Defense Counsel. The advocate or counsel conducting the
defense on behalf of the POW shall have at his or her disposal a period of two weeks at least
before the opening of the trial, as well as the necessary facilities to prepare the defense of the
accused. 695 He or she may, in particular, freely visit the accused and interview him or her in
private. 696 He or she may also confer with any witnesses for the defense, including POWs. 697
He or she shall have the benefit of these facilities until the term of appeal or petition has
expired. 698
services of a competent interpreter. He shall be advised of these rights by the Detaining Power in due time before
the trial.).
692
GPW art. 105 (Failing a choice by the prisoner of war, the Protecting Power shall find him an advocate or
counsel, and shall have at least one week at its disposal for the purpose.).
693
GPW art. 105 (The Detaining Power shall deliver to the said Power, on request, a list of persons qualified to
present the defence.).
694
GPW art. 105 (Failing a choice of an advocate or counsel by the prisoner of war or the Protecting Power, the
Detaining Power shall appoint a competent advocate or counsel to conduct the defence.).
695
GPW art. 105 (The advocate or counsel conducting the defence on behalf of the prisoner of war shall have at his
disposal a period of two weeks at least before the opening of the trial, as well as the necessary facilities to prepare
the defence of the accused.).
696
GPW art. 105 (He may, in particular, freely visit the accused and interview him in private.).
697
GPW art. 105 (He may also confer with any witnesses for the defence, including prisoners of war.).
698
GPW art. 105 (He shall have the benefit of these facilities until the term of appeal or petition has expired.).
699
GPW art. 105 (Particulars of the charge or charges on which the prisoner of war is to be arraigned, as well as the
documents which are generally communicated to the accused by virtue of the laws in force in the armed forces of
the Detaining Power, shall be communicated to the accused prisoner of war in a language which he understands, and
in good time before the opening of the trial.).
700
GPW art. 105 (The same communication in the same circumstances shall be made to the advocate or counsel
conducting the defence on behalf of the prisoner of war.).
606
held in camera in the interest of State security. 701 In such a case, the Detaining Power shall
advise the Protecting Power accordingly. 702
9.28.5.1 Appeals. Every POW shall have, in the same manner as the members of
the armed forces of the Detaining Power, the right of appeal or petition from any sentence
pronounced upon him or her, with a view to the quashing or revising of the sentence or the
reopening of the trial. 705
He or she shall be fully informed of his or her right to appeal or petition and of the time
limit within which he or she may do so. 706
The Detaining Power shall immediately communicate to the Protecting Power the
decision of the POW to use or to waive his or her right of appeal. 707
701
GPW art. 105 (The representatives of the Protecting Power shall be entitled to attend the trial of the case, unless,
exceptionally, this is held in camera in the interest of State security.).
702
GPW art. 105 (In such a case the Detaining Power shall advise the Protecting Power accordingly.).
703
GPW art. 107 (Any judgment and sentence pronounced upon a prisoner of war shall be immediately reported to
the Protecting Power in the form of a summary communication, which shall also indicate whether he has the right of
appeal with a view to the quashing of the sentence or the reopening of the trial. This communication shall likewise
be sent to the prisoners representative concerned.).
704
GPW art. 107 (It shall also be sent to the accused prisoner of war in a language he understands, if the sentence
was not pronounced in his presence.).
705
GPW art. 106 (Every prisoner of war shall have, in the same manner as the members of the armed forces of the
Detaining Power, the right of appeal or petition from any sentence pronounced upon him, with a view to the
quashing or revising of the sentence or the reopening of the trial.).
706
GPW art. 106 (He shall be fully informed of his right to appeal or petition and of the time limit within which he
may do so.).
707
GPW art. 107 (The Detaining Power shall also immediately communicate to the Protecting Power the decision
of the prisoner of war to use or to waive his right of appeal.).
607
a summarized report of any preliminary investigation and of the trial, emphasizing in
particular the elements of the prosecution and the defense; and
notification, where applicable, of the establishment where the sentence will be served. 708
These communications shall be sent to the Protecting Power at the address previously
made known to the Detaining Power. 709
9.28.6 Death Sentences. POWs and the Protecting Powers shall be informed, as soon as
possible, of the offenses that are punishable by death sentence under the laws of the Detaining
Power. 710 Other offenses shall not thereafter be made punishable by the death penalty without
the concurrence of the Power on which the POWs depend. 711
The death sentence may not be pronounced on a POW unless the attention of the court
has, in accordance with the second paragraph of Article 87 of the GPW, been particularly called
to the fact:
that since the accused is not a national of the Detaining Power, he or she is not bound to it
by any duty of allegiance; and
that he or she is in the power of the Detaining Power as the result of circumstances
independent of his or her own will. 712
If the death penalty is pronounced on a POW, the sentence shall not be executed before
the expiration of a period of at least six months from the date when the Protecting Power
receives, at an indicated address, the detailed communication provided for in Article 107 of the
GPW.713
708
GPW art. 107 (Furthermore, if a prisoner of war is finally convicted or if a sentence pronounced on a prisoner of
war in the first instance is a death sentence, the Detaining Power shall as soon as possible address to the Protecting
Power a detailed communication containing: (1) the precise wording of the finding and sentence; (2) a summarized
report of any preliminary investigation and of the trial, emphasizing in particular the elements of the prosecution and
the defence; (3) notification, where applicable, of the establishment where the sentence will be served. The
communications provided for in the foregoing sub-paragraphs shall be sent to the Protecting Power at the address
previously made known to the Detaining Power.).
709
GPW art. 107 (The communications provided for in the foregoing sub-paragraphs shall be sent to the Protecting
Power at the address previously made known to the Detaining Power.).
710
GPW art. 100 (Prisoners of war and the Protecting Powers shall be informed as soon as possible of the offences
which are punishable by the death sentence under the laws of the Detaining Power.).
711
GPW art. 100 (Other offences shall not thereafter be made punishable by the death penalty without the
concurrence of the Power on which the prisoners of war depend.).
712
GPW art. 100 (The death sentence cannot be pronounced on a prisoner of war unless the attention of the court
has, in accordance with Article 87, second paragraph, been particularly called to the fact that since the accused is not
a national of the Detaining Power, he is not bound to it by any duty of allegiance, and that he is in its power as the
result of circumstances independent of his own will.).
713
GPW art. 101 (If the death penalty is pronounced on a prisoner of war, the sentence shall not be executed before
the expiration of a period of at least six months from the date when the Protecting Power receives, at an indicated
608
9.28.7 Conditions for POWs Serving Judicial Punishments.
9.28.7.3 Complaints and Access to ICRC and the Protecting Power During
Confinement. In any case, POWs sentenced to a penalty depriving them of their liberty shall
retain the benefit of the provisions of Articles 78 and 126 of the GPW. 717 Thus, they may make
requests and complaints and deal with representatives of the Protecting Power or the ICRC. 718
address, the detailed communication provided for in Article 107.). Refer to 9.28.5.2 (Notification of Final
Conviction or Death Sentence).
714
GPW art. 108 (Sentences pronounced on prisoners of war after a conviction has become duly enforceable, shall
be served in the same establishments and under the same conditions as in the case of members of the armed forces of
the Detaining Power.).
715
GPW art. 108 (These conditions shall in all cases conform to the requirements of health and humanity.).
716
GPW art. 108 (A woman prisoner of war on whom such a sentence has been pronounced shall be confined in
separate quarters and shall be under the supervision of women.).
717
GPW art. 108 (In any case, prisoners of war sentenced to a penalty depriving them of their liberty shall retain
the benefit of the provisions of Articles 78 and 126 of the present Convention.).
718
Refer to 9.23 (POW Requests, Complaints, and Reports About Conditions of Captivity); 9.33 (Access to
POWs by the Protecting Powers, ICRC, and Relief Organizations).
719
GPW art. 108 (Furthermore, they shall be entitled to receive and despatch correspondence, to receive at least
one relief parcel monthly, to take regular exercise in the open air, to have the medical care required by their state of
health, and the spiritual assistance they may desire.).
720
GPW art. 108 (Penalties to which they may be subjected shall be in accordance with the provisions of Article
87, third paragraph.).
609
without daylight, and, in general, any form of torture or cruelty, are forbidden for POWs serving
judicial penalties. 721
9.29.1 Determining Whether to Transfer POWs. The Detaining Power, when deciding
upon the transfer of POWs, shall take into account the interests of the POWs themselves, more
especially so as not to increase the difficulty of their repatriation. 722
Sick or wounded POWs shall not be transferred as long as their recovery may be
endangered by the journey, unless their safety imperatively demands it. 723
If the combat zone draws closer to a camp, the POWs in that camp shall not be
transferred unless their transfer can be carried out in adequate conditions of safety, or unless they
are exposed to greater risks by remaining on the spot than by being transferred. 724
9.29.2 Conditions for the Transfer of POWs. The transfer of POWs shall always be
effected humanely and in conditions not less favorable than those under which the forces of the
Detaining Power are transferred. 725 Account shall always be taken of the climatic conditions to
which the POWs are accustomed, and the conditions of transfer shall in no case be prejudicial to
their health. 726
The Detaining Power shall supply POWs during transfer with sufficient food and
drinking water to keep them in good health, and shall supply them with the necessary clothing,
shelter, and medical attention. 727 The Detaining Power shall take adequate precautions,
especially in case of transport by sea or by air, to ensure their safety during transfer, and shall
draw up a complete list of all transferred POWs before their departure. 728
721
Refer to 9.26.6 (Prohibited Penalties).
722
GPW art. 46 (The Detaining Power, when deciding upon the transfer of prisoners of war, shall take into account
the interests of the prisoners themselves, more especially so as not to increase the difficulty of their repatriation.).
723
GPW art. 47 (Sick or wounded prisoners of war shall not be transferred as long as their recovery may be
endangered by the journey, unless their safety imperatively demands it.).
724
GPW art. 47 (If the combat zone draws closer to a camp, the prisoners of war in the said camp shall not be
transferred unless their transfer can be carried out in adequate conditions of safety, or unless they are exposed to
greater risks by remaining on the spot than by being transferred.).
725
GPW art. 46 (The transfer of prisoners of war shall always be effected humanely and in conditions not less
favourable than those under which the forces of the Detaining Power are transferred.).
726
GPW art. 46 (Account shall always be taken of the climatic conditions to which the prisoners of war are
accustomed and the conditions of transfer shall in no case be prejudicial to their health.).
727
GPW art. 46 (The Detaining Power shall supply prisoners of war during transfer with sufficient food and
drinking water to keep them in good health, likewise with the necessary clothing, shelter and medical attention.).
728
GPW art. 46 (The Detaining Power shall take adequate precautions especially in case of transport by sea or by
air, to ensure their safety during transfer, and shall draw up a complete list of all transferred prisoners before their
departure.).
610
9.29.3 Procedures for Transfer of POWs From the Camp.
9.29.3.2 Baggage. POWs shall be allowed to take with them their personal
effects and the correspondence and parcels that have arrived for them. 731 The weight of such
baggage may be limited, if the conditions of transfer so require, to what each POW can
reasonably carry, which shall in no case be more than 25 kilograms (approximately 55 pounds)
per person. 732
9.29.3.3 Forwarding of Mail. Mail and parcels addressed to their former camp
shall be forwarded to POWs without delay. 733
9.29.3.5 Costs of Transfers. The costs of transfers shall be borne by the Detaining
735
Power.
The GPW specifies a number of rules that apply to the transfer of POWs by the Detaining
Power to the custody of another Detaining Power.
9.30.1 Requirements for Transfer to the Custody of Another Detaining Power. POWs
may only be transferred by the Detaining Power to a Power that is a Party to the GPW and after
729
GPW art. 48 (In the event of transfer, prisoners of war shall be officially advised of their departure and of their
new postal address.).
730
GPW art. 48 (Such notifications shall be given in time for them to pack their luggage and inform their next of
kin.).
731
GPW art. 48 (They shall be allowed to take with them their personal effects, and the correspondence and parcels
which have arrived for them.).
732
GPW art. 48 (The weight of such baggage may be limited, if the conditions of transfer so require, to what each
prisoner can reasonably carry, which shall in no case be more than twenty-five kilograms per head.).
733
GPW art. 48 (Mail and parcels addressed to their former camp shall be forwarded to them without delay.).
734
GPW art. 48 (The camp commander shall take, in agreement with the prisoners representative, any measures
needed to ensure the transport of the prisoners community property and of the luggage they are unable to take with
them in consequence of restrictions imposed by virtue of the second paragraph of this Article.).
735
GPW art. 48 (The costs of transfers shall be borne by the Detaining Power.).
611
the Detaining Power has satisfied itself of the willingness and ability of such receiving Power to
apply the GPW. 736 U.S. policy may prescribe additional requirements. 737
To ensure accountability, a POW should not be transferred before his or her formal
processing and submission of all required information to the National POW Information
Bureau. 738
Nevertheless, if that Power fails to carry out the provisions of the GPW in any important
respect, the Power by whom the POWs were transferred shall, upon being notified by the
Protecting Power, take effective measures to correct the situation or shall request the return of
the POWs. 740 Such requests must be complied with. 741
736
GPW art. 12 (Prisoners of war may only be transferred by the Detaining Power to a Power which is a party to
the Convention and after the Detaining Power has satisfied itself of the willingness and ability of such transferee
Power to apply the Convention.).
737
Refer to, e.g., 8.14.4.1 (U.S. Policy Prohibiting Transfers in Cases in Which Detainees Would Likely Be
Tortured).
738
Refer to 9.31.2 (National POW Information Bureau).
739
GPW art. 12 (When prisoners of war are transferred under such circumstances, responsibility for the application
of the Convention rests on the Power accepting them while they are in its custody.).
740
GPW art. 12 (Nevertheless, if that Power fails to carry out the provisions of the Convention in any important
respect, the Power by whom the prisoners of war were transferred shall, upon being notified by the Protecting
Power, take effective measures to correct the situation or shall request the return of the prisoners of war.).
741
GPW art. 12 (Such requests must be complied with.).
742
For example, FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 578-79 (US policy requires approval of a formal
international agreement by the Assistant Secretary of Defense for International Security Affairs (ASD/ISA) and the
State Department as a prerequisite to transferring EPWs to a Coalition partner. A government-to-government
agreement was negotiated between Saudi Arabia and the United States authorizing the transfer of EPWs to Saudi
custody. This document was signed formally on 15 January. Separate military-to-military agreements, authorized
by the ASD/ISA and the State Department, were also negotiated. These negotiations resulted in the US/UK EPW
transfer agreement of 31 January and US/French transfer agreement of 24 February. The agreements outlined the
actions to be taken by capturing forces in processing EPWs and displaced civilians through US theater camps, and
medical channels to Saudi facilities. The agreement between the United States and Saudi governments provided the
United States would transfer custody of EPW to Saudi control after EPW registration by US forces. This agreement
also was applicable to EPW captured by the French and British and processed by the US.).
743
For example, An Arrangement for the Transfer of Enemy Prisoners of War and Civilian Internees from the
Custody of British Forces to the Custody of American Forces, Jan. 31, 1991, reprinted as Appendix 1 in PETER
612
9.31 NATIONAL ACCOUNTING OF THE DETENTION OF POWS
9.31.1 Accountability Information That the Detaining Power Should Collect. The
following information regarding POWs should be collected by the Detaining Power and given to
its National POW Information Bureau for forwarding to the Powers concerned through the
intermediary of the Protecting Powers and the Central POW Information Agency. This
information shall make it possible quickly to advise the next of kin concerned. 745
surname (i.e., last name) and first names (i.e., first and middle names);
rank;
the address to which correspondence for the POW may be sent. 746
ROWE, THE GULF WAR 1990-91 IN INTERNATIONAL AND ENGLISH LAW 348 (1993) (6 The British Forces will retain
a right of access to prisoners of war and civilian internees transferred from British custody while such persons are in
the custody of the American Forces.); FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 578 (Trained Reserve
Component (RC) EPW units were activated, and camp advisory teams were sent to Saudi Arabia to establish liaison
with Saudi units to provide technical assistance, and to maintain accountability for EPWs and displaced civilians
transferred to the Saudis. (In accordance with Article 12, GPW, the United States retained residual responsibility for
EPWs transferred to the Saudi Arabian government.)).
744
Refer to 9.2.2 (Responsibility of the Detaining Power).
745
GPW art. 122 (This information shall make it possible quickly to advise the next of kin concerned.).
746
GPW art. 122 (Subject to the provisions of Article 17, the information shall include, in so far as available to the
Information Bureau, in respect of each prisoner of war, his surname, first names, rank, army, regimental, personal or
serial number, place and full date of birth, indication of the Power on which he depends, first name of the father and
maiden name of the mother, name and address of the person to be informed and the address to which
correspondence for the prisoner may be sent.).
613
In addition to this information, information regarding transfers, releases, repatriations,
escapes, admissions to a hospital, and deaths shall also be collected and transmitted. 747
Likewise, information regarding the state of health of POWs who are seriously ill or seriously
wounded shall be supplied regularly, every week if possible. 748
In addition to notices of death, wills and records of death of POWs may be forwarded in
accordance with Article 120 of the GPW. 749 Lists of graves and the particulars of POWs interred
in cemeteries and elsewhere may also be forwarded in accordance with Article 120 of the
GPW.750
9.31.2 National POW Information Bureau. Upon the outbreak of a conflict and in all
cases of occupation, each of the parties to the conflict shall institute an official National POW
Information Bureau for POWs who are in its power. 752 Neutral or non-belligerent Powers, who
may have received within their territory persons belonging to one of the categories referred to in
Article 4 of the GPW, shall take the same action with respect to such persons. 753
The Power concerned shall ensure that the National POW Information Bureau is provided
with the necessary accommodation, equipment, and staff to ensure its efficient working. 754 It
shall be at liberty to employ POWs in the National POW Information Bureau under the
conditions laid down in Section III of the GPW dealing with work by POWs. 755
747
GPW art. 122 (The Information Bureau shall receive from the various departments concerned information
regarding transfers, releases, repatriations, escapes, admissions to hospital, and deaths, and shall transmit such
information in the manner described in the third paragraph above.).
748
GPW art. 122 (Likewise, information regarding the state of health of prisoners of war who are seriously ill or
seriously wounded shall be supplied regularly, every week if possible.).
749
Refer to 9.34.1 (Transmittal of Wills); 9.34.2 (Death Certificates).
750
Refer to 9.34.4 (Maintenance and Records of Graves and Ashes).
751
Refer to 9.8.4 (Accountability Information That POWs Are Bound to Provide Upon Questioning).
752
GPW art. 122 (Upon the outbreak of a conflict and in all cases of occupation, each of the Parties to the conflict
shall institute an official Information Bureau for prisoners of war who are in its power.).
753
GPW art. 122 (Neutral or non-belligerent Powers who may have received within their territory persons
belonging to one of the categories referred to in Article 4, shall take the same action with respect to such persons.).
754
GPW art. 122 (The Power concerned shall ensure that the Prisoners of War Information Bureau is provided with
the necessary accommodation, equipment and staff to ensure its efficient working.).
755
GPW art. 122 (It shall be at liberty to employ prisoners of war in such a Bureau under the conditions laid down
in the Section of the present Convention dealing with work by prisoners of war.). Refer to 9.19 (POW Labor).
614
Within the shortest possible period, each of the parties to the conflict shall give its
National POW Information Bureau the information referred to in the fourth, fifth, and sixth
paragraphs of Article 122 of the GPW regarding any enemy person belonging to one of the
categories referred to in Article 4 who has fallen into its power. 756 Neutral or non-belligerent
Powers shall take the same action with regard to persons belonging to such categories whom
they have received within their territory. 757
All written communications made by the National POW Information Bureau shall be
authenticated by a signature or a seal. 758
The National POW Information Bureau: (1) receives and forwards certain information to
the Powers concerned through the intermediary of the Protecting Powers and the Central POW
Information Agency; (2) replies to inquiries; and (3) collects personal valuables left by POWs.
The National POW Information Bureau shall immediately forward such information by
the most rapid means to the Powers concerned through the intermediary of the Protecting Powers
and likewise of the Central POW Information Agency provided for in Article 123 of the GPW. 760
756
GPW art. 122 (Within the shortest possible period, each of the Parties to the conflict shall give its Bureau the
information referred to in the fourth, fifth and sixth paragraphs of this Article regarding any enemy person belonging
to one of the categories referred to in Article 4, who has fallen into its power.).
757
GPW art. 122 (Neutral or non-belligerent Powers shall take the same action with regard to persons belonging to
such categories whom they have received within their territory.).
758
GPW art. 122 (All written communications made by the Bureau shall be authenticated by a signature or a
seal.).
759
GPW art. 122 (Within the shortest possible period, each of the Parties to the conflict shall give its Bureau the
information referred to in the fourth, fifth and sixth paragraphs of this Article regarding any enemy person belonging
to one of the categories referred to in Article 4, who has fallen into its power. Neutral or non-belligerent Powers
shall take the same action with regard to persons belonging to such categories whom they have received within their
territory. The Information Bureau shall receive from the various departments concerned information regarding
transfers, releases, repatriations, escapes, admissions to hospital, and deaths, and shall transmit such information in
the manner described in the third paragraph above. Likewise, information regarding the state of health of prisoners
of war who are seriously ill or seriously wounded shall be supplied regularly, every week if possible.) (emphasis
added).
760
GPW art. 122 (The Bureau shall immediately forward such information by the most rapid means to the Powers
concerned, through the intermediary of the Protecting Powers and likewise of the Central Agency provided for in
Article 123.).
615
information that is asked for if the information is not in its possession.761 Responses to inquiries
must be made consistent with the protection of POWs against insults and public curiosity. 762
9.31.3 Central POW Information Agency. The GPW contemplates that a Central POW
Information Agency shall be created in a neutral country. 766 This organization may be the same
as that provided for in the GC. 767
The function of the Central POW Information Agency shall be to collect all the
information it may obtain through official or private channels respecting POWs, and to transmit
it as rapidly as possible to the country of origin of the POWs or to the Power on which they
depend. 768 The Central POW Information Agency shall receive from the parties to the conflict
all facilities for effecting such transmissions. 769 Parties to the GPW, and in particular those
761
GPW art. 122 (The Information Bureau shall also be responsible for replying to all enquiries sent to it
concerning prisoners of war, including those who have died in captivity; it will make any enquiries necessary to
obtain the information which is asked for if this is not in its possession.).
762
Refer to 9.5.3 (Protection Against Insults and Public Curiosity).
763
GPW art. 122 (The Information Bureau shall furthermore be charged with collecting all personal valuables
including sums in currencies other than that of the Detaining Power and documents of importance to the next of kin,
left by prisoners of war who have been repatriated or released, or who have escaped or died, and shall forward the
said valuables to the Powers concerned.).
764
GPW art. 122 (Such articles shall be sent by the Bureau in sealed packets which shall be accompanied by
statements giving clear and full particulars of the identity of the person to whom the articles belonged, and by a
complete list of the contents of the parcel.).
765
GPW art. 122 (Other personal effects of such prisoners of war shall be transmitted under arrangements agreed
upon between the Parties to the conflict concerned.).
766
GPW art. 123 (A Central Prisoners of War Information Agency shall be created in a neutral country. The
International Committee of the Red Cross shall, if it deems necessary, propose to the Powers concerned the
organization of such an Agency.).
767
Refer to 10.31.3 (Central Information Agency for Protected Persons).
768
GPW art. 123 (The function of the Agency shall be to collect all the information it may obtain through official
or private channels respecting prisoners of war, and to transmit it as rapidly as possible to the country of origin of
the prisoners of war or to the Power on which they depend.).
769
GPW art. 123 (It shall receive from the Parties to the conflict all facilities for effecting such transmissions.).
616
States whose nationals benefit from the services of the Central POW Information Agency, are
requested to give the Central POW Information Agency the financial aid it may require. 770
The provisions of the GPW establishing the Central POW Information Agency do not
restrict the humanitarian activities of the ICRC and of the relief societies described in Article 125
of the GPW. 771
The GPW contemplates that the ICRC shall, if it deems necessary, propose to the Powers
concerned the organization of a Central POW Information Agency. 772 The role of the Central
POW Information Agency has been performed by the ICRC Central Tracing Agency, which has
also performed this role for protected persons under the GC.
9.31.4 U.S. Practice in Reporting to the ICRC Central Tracing Agency. For the United
States, the National POW Information Bureau, which has been established and managed by the
Secretary of the Army, has been referred to at different times as the National Prisoner of War
Information Center (NPWIC) in Operation DESERT STORM in 1991, 773 and as the National
Detainee Reporting Center (NDRC) in Operation IRAQI FREEDOM in 2003. The
NPWIC/NDRC has performed the same function for certain protected persons under the GC.
In general, the Theater Prisoner of War Information Center (TPWIC) has received reports
from all subordinate POW facilities, regardless of Military Service, consolidated them and
reconciled any discrepancies, and then forwarded its report to the NPWIC/NDRC. The
NPWIC/NDRC, on behalf of the United States, has further reviewed and reconciled reports as
needed, and forwarded its report to the ICRC Central Tracing Agency, which has acted as the
Central POW Information Agency. The release of POW accountability information outside this
process (such as directly from field components to ICRC field representatives) has been avoided
so as to reduce the likelihood of erroneous, conflicting, or duplicate reporting.
9.31.5 Exemption of National POW Information Bureau and Central POW Information
Agency From Certain Charges. The National POW Information Bureau and the Central POW
Information Agency shall enjoy free postage for mail, all the exemptions provided for in Article
770
GPW art. 123 (The High Contracting Parties, and in particular those whose nationals benefit by the services of
the Central Agency, are requested to give the said Agency the financial aid it may require.).
771
GPW art. 123 (The foregoing provisions shall in no way be interpreted as restricting the humanitarian activities
of the International Committee of the Red Cross, or of the relief societies provided for in Article 125.).
772
GPW art. 123 (The International Committee of the Red Cross shall, if it deems necessary, propose to the Powers
concerned the organization of such an Agency.).
773
For example, FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 579-80 (HQDA [Headquarters, Department of the
Army] also operates the NPWIC, the central agency for all information pertaining to prisoners of war. Article 122,
GPW, and Article 136, GC, require captors to establish a national information bureau as quickly as possible after the
start of hostilities. The NPWIC, manned by Army Reserve (USAR) individual mobilization augmentees, volunteer
Reservists, and retired personnel, served as a central repository for information related to EPW and displaced
civilians captured or transferred to US forces. It also coordinated information with the ICRC pertaining to EPW
held by Coalition forces and provided information pertaining to Americans (POW) in Iraqi hands. Additionally, the
NPWIC consolidated information from the theater for dissemination to appropriate government agencies, Congress,
and the ICRC.).
617
74 of the GPW, 774 and, further, so far as possible, exemption from telegraphic charges or, at
least, greatly reduced rates. 775
In addition, the National POW Information Bureau and the Central POW Information
Agency shall also enjoy exemption from postal charges in respect of letter-post items, postal
parcels, and monetary articles that concern POWs, which they send or receive, either directly or
as intermediaries under the conditions laid down in the Universal Postal Convention. 776 Such
items exempt from postal charges should be marked appropriately. 777
The Protecting Power is an organ for ensuring implementation of the GPW. The
Protecting Power has extensive duties under the GPW. It transmits information between
belligerents, monitors Detaining Power compliance with the GPW, and takes an active role in
promoting the welfare of POWs.
notification of arrangements made for POW correspondence and relief shipments; 780
774
Refer to 9.20.4 (Exemptions From Postal and Shipping Charges).
775
GPW art. 124 (The national Information Bureaux and the Central Information Agency shall enjoy free postage
for mail, likewise all the exemptions provided for in Article 74, and further, so far as possible, exemption from
telegraphic charges or, at least, greatly reduced rates.).
776
Universal Postal Convention, art. 17(3), Dec. 14, 1989, 1687 UNTS 241, 252 (The national Information
Bureaux and the Central Information Agencies mentioned above shall also enjoy exemption from postal charges in
respect of letter-post items, postal parcels and monetary articles which concern the persons referred to in paragraphs
1 and 2, which they send or receive, either direct or as intermediaries, under the conditions laid down in those
paragraphs.). Consider Letter Post Regulations, Article RL 111 to Article 7 of the Universal Postal Convention of
Oct. 11, 2012, reprinted in INTERNATIONAL BUREAU OF THE UNIVERSAL POSTAL UNION, LETTER POST MANUAL,
page C.10, C.10-11 (Berne 2013, Update 2 Jan. 2015) (The following shall enjoy exemption from postal charges
within the meaning of article 7.2 of the Convention: 1.1 the Information Bureaux provided for in article 122 of the
Geneva Convention of 12 August 1949 relative to the treatment of prisoners of war; 1.2 the Central Prisoner-of-War
Information Agency provided for in article 123 of the same Convention;).
777
Refer to 9.20.4.3 (Exemption From Postal Charges Under the Universal Postal Convention).
778
Refer to 9.11.4.2 (Sharing Information on the Location of POW Camps).
779
Refer to 9.18 (Financial Resources of POWs).
780
Refer to 9.4.2.6 (Arrangements Made for POWs to Write Correspondence and Receive Collective Relief).
781
Refer to 9.21.2 (Legal Documents and Assistance).
618
death certificates of POWs; 782
official translations of the GPW, and laws and regulations that parties to the conflict have
adopted to implement it. 784
9.32.2 Monitoring or Inspecting Compliance With the GPW. The Protecting Power
monitors or inspects the Detaining Powers compliance with the GPW, including by:
receiving complaints and requests by POWs, and periodic reports from the POW
Representatives; 786
communicating with POW Representatives, and receiving the rationale in cases in which
the Detaining Power refuses to approve an elected POW Representative or chooses to
dismiss a POW Representative; 787
receiving the reasons for the limitations imposed by the Detaining Power on advances of
pay; 790
782
Refer to 9.34.2 (Death Certificates).
783
Refer to 9.31 (National Accounting of the Detention of POWs).
784
GPW art. 128 (The High Contracting Parties shall communicate to one another through the Swiss Federal
Council and, during hostilities, through the Protecting Powers, the official translations of the present Convention, as
well as the laws and regulations which they may adopt to ensure the application thereof.).
785
Refer to 9.33.1 (Access by Protecting Powers).
786
Refer to 9.23.1 (POW Right to Make Requests and Complaints); 9.23.3 (Periodic Reports by the POW
Representatives).
787
Refer to 9.24.2.4 (Approval of Elected POW Representatives by the Detaining Power); 9.24.5 (Dismissal of
POW Representative).
788
Refer to 9.27.4 (Record of Disciplinary Punishments).
789
Refer to 9.34.5 (Inquiries Into Death or Serious Injury of POWs in Certain Cases).
790
Refer to 9.18.3.3 (Procedure for Limiting Amounts Drawn From Accounts Pending Special Agreement).
791
Refer to 9.18.6 (POW Accounts).
619
observing trials of POWs if security permits and receiving notification of: (1) judicial
proceedings, (2) trial outcome, (3) whether the POW has decided to appeal, and (4) final
conviction or death sentence. 793
9.32.3 Actively Working to Improve the Welfare of POWs. In many other instances, the
GPW contemplates that the Protecting Power will actively work to improve the welfare of
POWs, such as by:
helping the Detaining Power determine the maximum amount of money that POWs have
in their possession; 794
approving any limitation on correspondence beyond two letters and four cards per
month; 795
notifying the transferring State in the event that a receiving State fails to carry out its
obligations; 800
792
Refer to 9.19.7 (Labor Detachments).
793
Refer to 9.28.4.5 (Right of the Protecting Power to Attend Trial); 9.28.3.1 (Notification of Proceedings);
9.28.4.6 (Notification of Trial Outcome); 9.28.5.1 (Appeals); 9.28.5.2 (Notification of Final Conviction or
Death Sentence).
794
Refer to 9.18.1 (Detaining Power Regulations on the Maximum Amount of Money in POW Possession).
795
Refer to 9.20.6 (Censorship and Security Review of POW Correspondence and Shipments).
796
Refer to 9.20.3 (Receipt of Individual and Collective Relief Shipments for POWs).
797
Refer to 9.20.3.4 (Collective Relief for POWs).
798
Refer to 9.20.5 (Special Means of Transport of Shipments to POWs).
799
Refer to 9.28.4.2 (Opportunity to Present Defense and Assistance of Counsel).
800
Refer to 9.30.2 (Responsibility When Transferred to the Custody of Another Detaining Power).
801
Refer to 9.36.5 (Mixed Medical Commissions).
802
Refer to 18.15.4 (Lending of Good Offices to Assist in Dispute Resolution).
620
9.33 ACCESS TO POWS BY THE PROTECTING POWERS, ICRC, AND RELIEF ORGANIZATIONS
Representatives and delegates of the Protecting Powers shall have full liberty to select the
places they wish to visit. 805 The duration and frequency of these visits shall not be restricted. 806
Visits may not be prohibited except for reasons of imperative military necessity, and then only as
an exceptional and temporary measure. 807
The appointment of such delegates shall be submitted to the approval of the Power
detaining the POWs to be visited. 810
9.33.2 Access by Relief Societies and Other Organizations. Subject to the measures that
the Detaining Powers may consider essential to ensure their security or to meet any other
reasonable need, the representatives of religious organizations, relief societies, or any other
organization assisting POWs shall receive from these Powers, for themselves and their duly
803
GPW art. 126 (Representatives or delegates of the Protecting Powers shall have permission to go to all places
where prisoners of war may be, particularly to places of internment, imprisonment and labour, and shall have access
to all premises occupied by prisoners of war; they shall also be allowed to go to the places of departure, passage and
arrival of prisoners who are being transferred.).
804
GPW art. 126 (They shall be able to interview the prisoners, and in particular the prisoners representatives,
without witnesses, either personally or through an interpreter.).
805
GPW art. 126 (Representatives and delegates of the Protecting Powers shall have full liberty to select the places
they wish to visit.).
806
GPW art. 126 (The duration and frequency of these visits shall not be restricted.).
807
GPW art. 126 (Visits may not be prohibited except for reasons of imperative military necessity, and then only as
an exceptional and temporary measure.).
808
GPW art. 126 (The Detaining Power and the Power on which the said prisoners of war depend may agree, if
necessary, that compatriots of these prisoners of war be permitted to participate in the visits.).
809
GPW art. 126 (The delegates of the International Committee of the Red Cross shall enjoy the same
prerogatives.).
810
GPW art. 126 (The appointment of such delegates shall be submitted to the approval of the Power detaining the
prisoners of war to be visited.).
621
accredited agents, all necessary facilities for visiting the POWs; for distributing relief supplies
and material, from any source, intended for religious, educational, or recreative purposes; and for
assisting them in organizing their leisure time within the POW camps. 811 Such societies or
organizations may be constituted in the territory of the Detaining Power or in any other country,
or they may have an international character. 812
This section addresses rules relating to the death of POWs. The GWS and GWS-Sea also
have rules relating to the treatment of the dead; however, the GWS and GWS-Sea provisions are
broader in application, e.g., they address members of the armed forces who have died on the
battlefield and thus were not held as POWs. 817
811
GPW art. 125 (Subject to the measures which the Detaining Powers may consider essential to ensure their
security or to meet any other reasonable need, the representatives of religious organizations, relief societies, or any
other organization assisting prisoners of war, shall receive from the said Powers, for themselves and their duly
accredited agents, all necessary facilities for visiting the prisoners, for distributing relief supplies and material, from
any source, intended for religious, educational or recreative purposes, and for assisting them in organizing their
leisure time within the camps.).
812
GPW art. 125 (Such societies or organizations may be constituted in the territory of the Detaining Power or in
any other country, or they may have an international character.).
813
GPW art. 125 (The Detaining Power may limit the number of societies and organizations whose delegates are
allowed to carry out their activities in its territory and under its supervision, on condition, however, that such
limitation shall not hinder the effective operation of adequate relief to all prisoners of war.).
814
GPW art. 125 (The special position of the International Committee of the Red Cross in this field shall be
recognized and respected at all times.).
815
GPW art. 125 (As soon as relief supplies or material intended for the above-mentioned purposes are handed
over to prisoners of war, or very shortly afterwards, receipts for each consignment, signed by the prisoners
representative, shall be forwarded to the relief society or organization making the shipment.).
816
GPW art. 125 (At the same time, receipts for these consignments shall be supplied by the administrative
authorities responsible for guarding the prisoners.).
817
Refer to 7.7 (Treatment and Handling of Enemy Military Dead).
622
9.34.1 Transmittal of Wills. The Detaining Power has an obligation to help POWs with
their wills. 818 In all cases, after death, POWs wills shall be transmitted without delay to the
Protecting Power, and a certified copy shall be sent to the Central POW Information Agency. 819
9.34.2 Death Certificates. Death certificates in the form given in Annex IV D to the
GPW, or lists certified by a responsible officer, of all persons who die as POWs shall be
forwarded as rapidly as possible to the National POW Information Bureau established in
accordance with Article 122 of the GPW. 820
particulars of identity, as set out in the third paragraph of Article 17 of the GPW, that are
listed on the POWs identity card;
o such as, surname; first names; rank; date of birth; and army, regimental, personal,
or serial number or equivalent information; 821
where applicable, the fact of, and reasons for, cremation; 822 and
818
Refer to 9.21.2 (Legal Documents and Assistance).
819
GPW art. 120 ([I]n all cases, after death, the will shall be transmitted without delay to the Protecting Power; a
certified copy shall be sent to the Central Agency.).
820
GPW art. 120 (Death certificates in the form annexed to the present Convention, or lists certified by a
responsible officer, of all persons who die as prisoners of war shall be forwarded as rapidly as possible to the
Prisoner of War Information Bureau established in accordance with Article 122.).
821
Refer to 9.4.3 (Issue of Identification Cards to Persons Liable to Become POWs).
822
Refer to 9.34.3.3 (Cremation).
823
GPW art. 120 (The death certificates or certified lists shall show particulars of identity as set out in the third
paragraph of Article 17, and also the date and place of death, the cause of death, the date and place of burial and all
particulars necessary to identity the graves.).
824
GPW art. 120 (The burial or cremation of a prisoner of war shall be preceded by a medical examination of the
body with a view to confirming death and enabling a report to be made and, where necessary, establishing
identity.).
623
For example, if a POWs identity was not established before death, and the identity cannot be
established, the report should include information that will enable the Power on which the POW
depended to establish his or her identity (e.g., examination of teeth, fingerprints, photograph,
DNA samples). 825
9.34.3.2 Burial. The detaining authorities shall ensure that POWs who have died
in captivity are honorably buried, if possible according to the rites of the religion to which they
belonged. 826
Wherever possible, deceased POWs who depended on the same Power shall be interred
in the same place. 827 Deceased POWs shall be buried in individual graves unless unavoidable
circumstances require the use of collective graves. 828 For example, an epidemic or military
operations may require the Detaining Power to undertake collective burials in the interest of
public health because individual graves are not possible due to lack of time and resources. 829
9.34.4 Maintenance and Records of Graves and Ashes. The detaining authorities shall
ensure that the graves of POWs who have died in captivity are respected, suitably maintained,
and marked so as to be found at any time. 832
9.34.4.1 Records Held by the Graves Registration Service. In order that graves
may always be found, all particulars of burials and graves shall be recorded with a Graves
825
GPW COMMENTARY 564-65 (If, however, a prisoners identity remains in doubt (for instance, if he has not yet
been questioned as provided in Article 17), the doctor will follow the same procedure as for those who have fallen
on the battlefield: examination of papers found in the clothing of the dead man, questioning of his comrades or, if
that is not possible, other methods must be adopted in order to enable the adverse Party to establish his identity, e.g.
measurement and description of the body and its physical features, examination of the teeth, finger-prints,
photograph, etc..).
826
GPW art. 120 (The detaining authorities shall ensure that prisoners of war who have died in captivity are
honourably buried, if possible according to the rites of the religion to which they belonged, and that their graves are
respected, suitably maintained and marked so as to be found at any time.).
827
GPW art. 120 (Wherever possible, deceased prisoners of war who depended on the same Power shall be interred
in the same place.).
828
GPW art. 120 (Deceased prisoners of war shall be buried in individual graves unless unavoidable circumstances
require the use of collective graves.).
829
Compare 10.34.3 (Burial or Cremation and Inurnment).
830
GPW art. 120 (Bodies may be cremated only for imperative reasons of hygiene, on account of the religion of the
deceased or in accordance with his express wish to this effect.).
831
GPW art. 120 (In case of cremation, the fact shall be stated and the reasons given in the death certificate of the
deceased.).
832
GPW art. 120 (The detaining authorities shall ensure that their graves are respected, suitably maintained and
marked so as to be found at any time.).
624
Registration Service established by the Detaining Power. 833 Lists of graves and particulars of the
POWs interred in cemeteries and elsewhere shall be transmitted to the Power on which such
POWs depended. 834 Responsibility for the care of these graves and for records of any
subsequent moves of the bodies shall rest on the Power controlling the territory, if that Power is a
Party to the GPW. 835
The Graves Registration Service shall also identify, record, and respectfully keep the
ashes until they can be disposed of in accordance with the wishes of the home country. 836
The GWS also provides for the Graves Registration Service to record graves of persons
belonging to enemy military forces who died but were never held as POWs. 837
9.34.5 Inquiries Into Death or Serious Injury of POWs in Certain Cases. Every death or
serious injury of a POW caused or suspected to have been caused by a sentry, another POW, or
any other person, as well as any death the cause of which is unknown, shall be immediately
followed by an official inquiry by the Detaining Power. 838 A communication on this subject
shall be sent immediately to the Protecting Power. 839
Serious injury, in many cases, may be understood to mean an injury that requires in-
patient treatment in a hospital or infirmary. 840
833
GPW art. 120 (In order that graves may always be found, all particulars of burials and graves shall be recorded
with a Graves Registration Service established by the Detaining Power.).
834
GPW art. 120 (Lists of graves and particulars of the prisoners of war interred in cemeteries and elsewhere shall
be transmitted to the Power on which such prisoners of war depended.).
835
GPW art. 120 (Responsibility for the care of these graves and for records of any subsequent moves of the bodies
shall rest on the Power controlling the territory, if a Party to the present Convention.).
836
GPW art. 120 (These provisions shall also apply to the ashes, which shall be kept by the Graves Registration
Service until proper disposal thereof in accordance with the wishes of the home country.).
837
Refer to 7.7.5 (Graves Registration Service).
838
GPW art. 121 (Every death or serious injury of a prisoner of war caused or suspected to have been caused by a
sentry, another prisoner of war, or any other person, as well as any death the cause of which is unknown, shall be
immediately followed by an official enquiry by the Detaining Power.). For example, FINAL REPORT ON THE
PERSIAN GULF WAR 578 (Eight EPW died in US custody; all as a result of injuries or sickness contracted prior to
capture. Five died from combat injuries, one from malnutrition/dehydration, and two from unknown causes. Three
US transferred prisoners died in Saudi camps due to wounds received while interned in the Saudi controlled camps.
These deaths were investigated and reported through command channels to the ICRC, as required by Articles 120,
122, and 123, GPW.); 2004 UK MANUAL 8.176, footnote 452 (In the Falklands conflict, an Argentinean PW was
shot and killed to prevent an attempt to sabotage the captured submarine Santa F. The British notified the
Argentinian authorities through the ICRC and established a board of inquiry to establish the facts.).
839
GPW art. 121 (A communication on this subject shall be sent immediately to the Protecting Power.).
840
GPW COMMENTARY 570 (What is meant by serious injury? At the 1949 Diplomatic Conference one
delegation suggested that it should be made clear that the term referred to an injury as a result of which the prisoner
requires in-patient treatment in a hospital or infirmary; this definition was not approved, however, and it might
indeed have made the application of the Article too rigid. An injury may be not at all serious and nevertheless
require treatment in the infirmary. Furthermore, it would have been dangerous to make the opening of an enquiry
depend on whether or not the patient had been admitted to hospital for treatment. The two things must remain quite
separate.). Compare 10.34.5 (Inquiries Into Death or Serious Injury of Internees in Certain Cases).
625
Statements shall be taken from witnesses, especially from those who are POWs, and a
report including such statements shall be forwarded to the Protecting Power. 841
If the inquiry indicates the guilt of one or more persons, the Detaining Power shall take
all measures for the prosecution of the person or persons responsible. 842
9.35 EXCHANGES AND OTHER RELEASE AND REPATRIATION OF POWS DURING HOSTILITIES
9.35.1 Exchange of POWs During Hostilities Through Cartel Agreements. The exchange
of POWs, other than those whose repatriation is required by the GPW, may be effected by
agreement between the belligerents. 843 Such agreements have been called cartels. 844
As a general principle, the exchange of POWs, other than those whose repatriation is
required by the GPW, is an act of convenience to both belligerents. 846
The conditions for exchange are generally prescribed in the cartel, and exchanges need
not be on the basis of number-for-number, or rank-for-rank. 847
841
GPW art. 121 (Statements shall be taken from witnesses, especially from those who are prisoners of war, and a
report including such statements shall be forwarded to the Protecting Power.).
842
GPW art. 121 (If the enquiry indicates the guilt of one or more persons, the Detaining Power shall take all
measures for the prosecution of the person or persons responsible.).
843
For example, Edward Bates, Attorney General, Construction of a Cartel, Oct. 18, 1862, 10 OPINIONS OF THE
ATTORNEY GENERAL 357 (1868) (Following your verbal direction, I have carefully examined the cartel for the
exchange of prisoners of war, agreed to by the parties on the 22d of July, 1862, at Haxalls Landing, on James river,
Virginia, and signed, respectively, by Major General Dix and Major General Hill, as the same is embodied in
General Order No. 142 issued from the War Department, September 25, 1862.).
844
Refer to 12.7 (Cartels).
845
For example, 1958 UK MANUAL 250 and note 3(b) (In modern war between civilised States, an exchange of
prisoners will rarely be carried out except by agreement between the governments concerned. In the First and
Second World War no such exchanges took place. During the latter war some measured agreement was reached
between Germany, the United Kingdom, the U.S.A. and Switzerland, whereby a number of prisoners of war of the
three belligerent States interned in Switzerland were repatriated. No formal agreement was drawn up, and the
negotiations were conducted by the diplomatic representatives of the belligerents direct with the Swiss Government.
Germany insisted on a distinction between interned aircrews and other prisoners of war so that a certain number of
German prisoners of war could be repatriated for every United States airman repatriated. Switzerland as a neutral
State refused to permit repatriation except on a basis agreeable to all the belligerents concerned. Agreement was
reached and repatriation was carried out on the basis of the German demand.).
846
LIEBER CODE art. 109 (The exchange of prisoners of war is an act of convenience to both belligerents. If no
general cartel has been concluded, it can not be demanded by either of them. No belligerent is obliged to exchange
prisoners of war.).
847
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 197 (Exchange of prisoners of war, other than those whose repatriation is
required by GPW, may be effected by agreement between the belligerents. No belligerent is obliged to exchange
prisoners of war, except if a general cartel requiring such exchange has been concluded. The conditions for
exchange are as prescribed by the parties thereto, and exchanges need not necessarily be on the basis of number for
number or rank for rank.).
626
9.35.2 Release and Repatriation of POWs Not on the Basis of Exchange. Even when not
required by the GPW or done on the basis of an exchange, a Detaining Power may release and
repatriate POWs during hostilities to the Power to which they belong. 848
Such release and repatriation of POWs during hostilities may be accomplished between
governments through agreements. In any case, POWs subject to release and repatriation should
be interviewed by representatives of the Protecting Power or the ICRC to ensure that their return
is voluntary. 849
The GPW provides for the direct repatriation or accommodation in neutral countries of
certain wounded and sick POWs during hostilities.
POWs who meet with accidents shall, unless the injury is self-inflicted, have the benefit
of the provisions of the GPW as regards repatriation or accommodation in a neutral country. 850
States may also conclude agreements with a view to the direct repatriation or internment
in a neutral country of able-bodied POWs who have undergone a long period of captivity. 851
848
For example, SYLVIE-STOYANKA JUNOD, INTERNATIONAL COMMITTEE OF THE RED CROSS, PROTECTION OF THE
VICTIMS OF ARMED CONFLICT FALKLAND-MALVINAS ISLANDS: INTERNATIONAL HUMANITARIAN LAW AND
HUMANITARIAN ACTION (1982) 31 (1984) (The Falkland-Malvinas Islands conflict provides a rare example of
prisoners being released even before the end of active hostilities. The British soldiers and the group of civilians
captured by the Argentine forces when they landed on the island of South Georgia and on the Falkland-Malvinas
archipelago were released almost immediately, via Montevideo, without the ICRCs participation. In May and June,
the ICRC took part in several release operations: . At the end of the hostilities, i.e. after 14 June 1982, a great
number of prisoners were released in several groups over one month.).
849
Compare 9.37.4.2 (POWs Who Resist Repatriation).
850
GPW art. 114 (Prisoners of war who meet with accidents shall, unless the injury is self-inflicted, have the
benefit of the provisions of this Convention as regards repatriation or accommodation in a neutral country.).
851
GPW art. 109 (They may, in addition, conclude agreements with a view to the direct repatriation or internment
in a neutral country of able-bodies prisoners of war who have undergone a long period of captivity.).
852
GPW art. 109 (Subject to the provisions of the third paragraph of this Article, Parties to the conflict are bound to
send back to their own country, regardless of number or rank, seriously wounded and seriously sick prisoners of
war, after having cared for them until they are fit to travel, in accordance with the first paragraph of the following
Article.).
853
For example, 1958 UK MANUAL 255 note 1 (In June, 1918, an agreement for the repatriation of prisoners of
war on a large scale was concluded between Lord Caves mission and a German military mission. During the
Second World War repatriation of the sick and wounded was carried out by the belligerents in western Europe in
627
No sick or injured POW who is eligible for repatriation under the first paragraph of
Article 109 of the GPW may be repatriated against his or her will during hostilities.855
incurably wounded and sick whose mental or physical fitness seems to have been gravely
diminished;
wounded and sick who, according to medical opinion, are not likely to recover within one
year, whose condition requires treatment, and whose mental or physical fitness seems to
have been gravely diminished; and
wounded and sick who have recovered, but whose mental or physical fitness seems to
have been gravely and permanently diminished. 856
accordance with the provisions of the 1929 Convention. There was no repatriation of sick and wounded between
Germany and the U.S.S.R., or between Japan and the Allies.).
854
For example, LEVIE, POWS, 409-10 (Subsequent to 1949 a number of occasions arose warranting the
implementation of the provisions of the first paragraph of Article 109. In February 1953 the United Nations
Command in Korea proposed the exchange of seriously wounded and seriously sick prisoners of war pursuant to that
Article, a proposal which the North Koreans and Chinese Communists accepted. During April and May 1953, some
6,640 North Korean and Chinese prisoners of war who had been found to be seriously wounded or seriously sick
within the meaning of those terms as used in the Convention were exchanged for 684 members of the armed forces
composing the United Nations Command. During the 1956 Middle East conflict, Israel repatriated a number of
seriously wounded Egyptian prisoners of war in the course of the hostilities. During the 1962 Sino-Indian conflict,
the People's Republic of China repatriated a number of seriously wounded or seriously sick Indian prisoners of
war.).
855
GPW art. 109 (No sick or injured prisoner of war who is eligible for repatriation under the first paragraph of this
Article, may be repatriated against his will during hostilities.).
856
GPW art. 110 (The following shall be repatriated direct: (1) Incurably wounded and sick whose mental or
physical fitness seems to have been gravely diminished. (2) Wounded and sick who, according to medical opinion,
are not likely to recover within one year, whose condition requires treatment and whose mental or physical fitness
seems to have been gravely diminished. (3) Wounded and sick who have recovered, but whose mental or physical
fitness seems to have been gravely and permanently diminished.).
857
GPW art. 109 (Throughout the duration of hostilities, Parties to the conflict shall endeavour, with the
cooperation of the neutral Powers concerned, to make arrangements for the accommodation in neutral countries of
the sick and wounded prisoners of war referred to in the second paragraph of the following Article.).
858
For example, 1958 UK MANUAL 255 note 1 (During the First World War agreements were arrived at between
the Allies and Germany early in 1916 whereby all wounded prisoners of war held by their respective Governments,
as well as those suffering from any one of twenty specified diseases or infirmities, were to be transferred to
Switzerland. Later, agreements were arrived at whereby those who had been in captivity for not less than eighteen
months and who fulfilled certain conditions as regards age and citizenship were to be repatriated or interned in a
neutral country. Some 16,000 British and German prisoners of war were interned in Holland. In March, 1918, it
628
9.36.2.1 Categories of Wounded, Injured, or Sick to Be Accommodated in a
Neutral State. The following categories of POWs may be accommodated in a neutral country:
wounded, injured, or sick whose recovery may be expected within one year of the date of
the wound or the beginning of the illness, if treatment in a neutral country might increase
the prospects of a more certain and speedy recovery; and
9.36.3 Agreements to Intern POWs in Neutral Territory. The Detaining Power, the
Power on which the POWs depend, and a neutral Power agreed upon by these two Powers, shall
endeavor to conclude agreements that will enable POWs to be interned in the territory of that
neutral Power until the close of hostilities. 860 For example, if the Detaining Power were unable
to comply with the minimum standards in the GPW for the treatment of POWs, then it would
seek to negotiate such agreements with the Power on which the POWs depend and a neutral
Power. 861
was stated that 26,000 prisoners of war of the several belligerents were being cared for in Switzerland. Of these,
16,000 were British, French and Belgian, while 10,000 were German; besides these, some 500,000 invalid and sick
prisoners of war of various nationalities had been exchanged and repatriated through Switzerland since the
beginning of the war.).
859
GPW art. 110 (The following may be accommodated in a neutral country: (1) Wounded and sick whose
recovery may be expected within one year of the date of the wound or the beginning of the illness, if treatment in a
neutral country might increase the prospects of a more certain and speedy recovery. (2) Prisoners of war whose
mental or physical health, according to medical opinion, is seriously threatened by continued captivity, but whose
accommodation in a neutral country might remove such a threat.).
860
GPW art. 111 (The Detaining Power, the Power on which the prisoners of war depend, and a neutral Power
agreed upon by these two Powers, shall endeavour to conclude agreements which will enable prisoners of war to be
interned in the territory of the said neutral Power until the close of hostilities.).
861
See II-A FINAL RECORD OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 365 (The Committee considered
that it was necessary to insert a new Article between Articles 101 and 102, in order to provide for the possibility of
agreements between the Detaining Power, the Power on which the prisoners of war depend, and a neutral Power,
permitting the internment of prisoners of war on neutral territory. This decision, which arose out of a proposal by
the Canadian Delegation, aims at ensuring a reasonable standard of living for all prisoners of war, in the event of the
Detaining Power being unable, for any reason, to comply with the minimum standards regarding the treatment of
prisoners of war laid down in the Convention.).
862
GPW art. 110 (The conditions which prisoners of war accommodated in a neutral country must fulfil in order to
permit their repatriation shall be fixed, as shall likewise their status, by agreement between the Powers concerned.).
629
those whose health has deteriorated so far as to fulfill the conditions for direct
repatriation; 863 and
those whose mental or physical powers remain, even after treatment, considerably
impaired. 864
9.36.5 Mixed Medical Commissions. Upon the outbreak of hostilities, Mixed Medical
Commissions shall be appointed to examine sick and wounded POWs, and to make all
appropriate decisions regarding them. 866 The appointment, duties, and functioning of these
Commissions shall be in conformity with the provisions of the Regulations annexed to the GPW
(GPW Annex II). 867
863
Refer to 9.36.1.1 (Categories of POWs Eligible for Direct Repatriation).
864
GPW art. 110 (In general, prisoners of war who have been accommodated in a neutral country, and who belong
to the following categories, should be repatriated: (1) those whose state of health has deteriorated so as to fulfil the
conditions laid down for direct repatriation; (2) those whose mental or physical powers remain, even after treatment,
considerably impaired.).
865
GPW art. 110 (If no special agreements are concluded between the Parties to the conflict concerned, to
determine the cases of disablement or sickness entailing direct repatriation or accommodation in a neutral country,
such cases shall be settled in accordance with the principles laid down in the Model Agreement concerning direct
repatriation and accommodation in neutral countries of wounded and sick prisoners of war and in the Regulations
concerning Mixed Medical Commissions annexed to the present Convention.).
866
GPW art. 112 (Upon the outbreak of hostilities, Mixed Medical Commissions shall be appointed to examine
sick and wounded prisoners of war, and to make all appropriate decisions regarding them.).
867
GPW art. 112 (The appointment, duties and functioning of these Commissions shall be in conformity with the
provisions of the Regulations annexed to the present Convention.).
868
GPW art. 112 (However, prisoners of war who, in the opinion of the medical authorities of the Detaining Power,
are manifestly seriously injured or seriously sick, may be repatriated without having to be examined by a Mixed
Medical Commission.).
630
present themselves for examination by the Mixed Medical Commissions provided for in Article
112 of the GPW:
Wounded and sick proposed by a physician or surgeon who is of the same nationality, or
a national of a party to the conflict allied with the Power on which these POWs depend,
and who exercises his or her functions in the camp;
Wounded and sick proposed by the Power on which they depend, or by an organization
duly recognized by this Power and giving assistance to the POWs. 869
POWs who do not belong to one of the three foregoing categories may nevertheless
present themselves for examination by Mixed Medical Commissions, but shall be examined only
after those belonging to the three foregoing categories. 870
9.36.7 Employment of Persons Who Have Been Repatriated. No repatriated person may
be employed on active military service. 873
869
GPW art. 113 (Besides those who are designated by the medical authorities of the Detaining Power, wounded or
sick prisoners of war belonging to the categories listed below shall be entitled to present themselves for examination
by the Mixed Medical Commissions provided for in the foregoing Article: (1) Wounded and sick proposed by a
physician or surgeon who is of the same nationality, or a national of a Party to the conflict allied with the Power on
which the said prisoners depend, and who exercises his functions in the camp. (2) Wounded and sick proposed by
their prisoners representative. (3) Wounded and sick proposed by the Power on which they depend, or by an
organization duly recognized by the said Power and giving assistance to the prisoners.).
870
GPW art. 113 (Prisoners of war who do not belong to one of the three foregoing categories may nevertheless
present themselves for examination by Mixed Medical Commissions, but shall be examined only after those
belonging to the said categories.).
871
GPW art. 113 (The physician or surgeon of the same nationality as the prisoners who present themselves for
examination by the Mixed Medical Commission, likewise the prisoners' representative of the said prisoners, shall
have permission to be present at the examination.).
872
GPW art. 116 (The cost of repatriating prisoners of war or of transporting them to a neutral country shall be
borne, from the frontiers of the Detaining Power, by the Power on which the said prisoners depend.).
873
GPW art. 117 (No repatriated person may be employed on active military service.).
631
110 of the GPW. 874 For example, able-bodied POWs who are voluntarily repatriated by the
unilateral decision of the Detaining Power during hostilities may be employed on active military
service. 875
9.36.7.2 Active Military Service. Not all military service is active military
service. Repatriated persons may remain employed on military service. 876 What active
military service they may engage in after repatriation may be the subject of agreements pursuant
to Articles 109 and 110 of the GPW. Absent such agreements, active military service may be
understood as broadly covering any participation, whether direct or indirect, in armed operations
against the former Detaining Power or its allies, but to exclude medical work or strictly
administrative duties. 877
POWs shall be released and repatriated without delay after the cessation of active
hostilities.878
874
See 1958 UK MANUAL 262 note 1 (This article repeats the provisions of the 1929 Convention, Art. 74, which
was considered to apply only to prisoners who were repatriated sick or wounded and not to exchanges by
agreements made outside the Convention. This would also seem to be the proper scope of Art. 117.); GPW
COMMENTARY 538 (The Article covers prisoners of war repatriated by the Detaining Power pursuant to Articles
109 and 110, that is to say seriously wounded or seriously sick prisoners of war whom the Detaining Power is
required to repatriate regardless of number or rank (Article 109, paragraph 1), prisoners of war accommodated in a
neutral country and subsequently repatriated following an agreement between the Powers concerned (Article 110,
paragraph 2), and lastly, able-bodied prisoners of war who have undergone a long period of captivity and are
repatriated by agreement between the Powers concerned (Article 109, paragraph 2).).
875
2004 UK MANUAL 8.155.1 footnote 417 (Despite its apparent general application, Art 117 is taken to apply
only to PW repatriated under the special rules laid down in Arts 109-110 (see Pictet, Commentary, vol III, 538). It
does not apply to able-bodied PW who are voluntarily repatriated by the unilateral decision of the detaining power
during hostilities. The UK sent members of the Royal Marine garrison of the Falkland Islands, who had been
captured and then repatriated by Argentina, back into combat with the Task Force that re-took the Islands in 1982.).
876
See II-A FINAL RECORD OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 573 (Articles 106 (Costs) and
107 (Activity after repatriation) reproduce the corresponding provisions of the 1929 Convention. It may be
mentioned, however, that the word active in the expression active military service in Article 107 gave rise to long
discussion. Some Delegations wished to see it deleted; others were in favour of keeping it because it is usual for
many repatriated prisoners of war to depend on the administrative service of armies. Finally, the proposal to delete
the word was rejected by the Committee by a small majority.).
877
See GPW COMMENTARY 539 (In interpreting this phrase, the spirit of the Convention rather than national
legislation should serve as a guide. It is, of course, difficult to give a precise definition, but the expression may be
considered as broadly covering any participation, whether direct or indirect, in armed operations against the former
Detaining Power or its allies. In effect, Article 117 forbids any repatriated person to serve in units which form part
of the armed forces but does not prevent their enrolment in unarmed military units engaged solely in auxiliary,
complementary or similar work. In concluding agreements pursuant to Articles 109 and 110, the Parties concerned
are at liberty to stipulate what is meant by active service in the particular case concerned.); 1956 FM 27-10
(Change No. 1 1976) 196b (Although it is not possible to frame any comprehensive rule concerning what
constitutes active military service, Article 117 does not preclude a repatriated person from performing medical or
strictly administrative duties but does foreclose service in combat against the power formerly detaining the
individual or an ally thereof.).
878
GPW art. 118 (Prisoners of war shall be released and repatriated without delay after the cessation of active
hostilities.).
632
9.37.1 Agreements on POW Release and Repatriation. The release and repatriation of
POWs generally have been addressed by peace treaties or other agreements among belligerents
at the end of the war. 879 For example, agreements may address the apportionment of costs or
commissions to search for dispersed POWs. 880
In the absence of stipulations to the above effect in any agreement concluded between the
parties to the conflict with a view to the cessation of hostilities, or failing any such agreement,
each of the Detaining Powers shall itself establish and execute without delay a plan of
repatriation in conformity with the principle laid down in paragraph 1 of the Article 118 of the
GPW.881 Thus, once active hostilities have ceased, the Detaining Powers must release and
repatriate POWs, even if there is no specific agreement regarding the release and repatriation of
POWs, or even if a formal peace agreement ending the war has not yet been concluded. 882
During the process of releasing and repatriating POWs, it is proper to expect that each
partys conduct with respect to the repatriation of POWs will be reasonable and broadly
commensurate with the conduct of the other. 883 For example, it would not be reasonable to
879
For example, FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 586 (In March [of 1991], Coalition forces and Iraq
signed a memorandum of understanding detailing administrative procedures for the repatriation of the remaining
EPW, under ICRC auspices. On 4 March, Iraq released the first group of 10 Coalition POWs, six of whom were
American. On 6 March, the US reciprocated by releasing 294 EPWs to the ICRC for repatriation to Iraq.);
Agreement between the Commander-in-Chief, United Nations Command, on the one hand, and the Supreme
Commander of the Korean Peoples Army and the Commander of the Chinese Peoples Volunteers, on the other
hand, Concerning a Military Armistice in Korea art. 51, Jul. 27, 1953, 29 DEPARTMENT OF STATE BULLETIN 132,
137 (Aug. 3, 1953) (The release and repatriation of all prisoners of war held in the custody of each side at the time
this armistice agreement becomes effective shall be effected in conformity with the following provisions agreed
upon by both sides prior to the signing of this Armistice Agreement.).
880
Refer to 9.37.6 (Costs of Repatriation at the Close of Hostilities); 9.37.5 (Commissions to Search for
Dispersed POWs).
881
GPW art. 118 (In the absence of stipulations to the above effect in any agreement concluded between the Parties
to the conflict with a view to the cessation of hostilities, or failing any such agreement, each of the Detaining Powers
shall itself establish and execute without delay a plan of repatriation in conformity with the principle laid down in
the foregoing paragraph.).
882
LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 613 (275) (That provision [of Article 118 of the GPW]
was inspired by the experience of the situation as it developed after the Second World War when, following upon
the unconditional surrender of Italy, Germany, and Japan, no treaty of peace was concluded between the principal
belligerents for some years and when public opinion in many countries viewed with disapproval the continued
detention of prisoners of war at a time when there was no longer any reasonable possibility that hostilities might be
resumed.).
883
Eritrea Ethiopia Claims Commission, Partial Award: Prisoners of War, Eritreas Claim 17, 149 (Jul. 1, 2003)
(The Commission finds that, given the character of the repatriation obligation and state practice, it is appropriate to
consider the behavior of both Parties in assessing whether or when Ethiopia failed to meet its obligations under
Article 118. In the Commissions view, Article 118 does not require precisely equivalent behavior by each Party.
However, it is proper to expect that each Partys conduct with respect to the repatriation of POWs will be reasonable
and broadly commensurate with the conduct of the other. Moreover, both Parties must continue to strive to ensure
compliance with the basic objective of Article 118 the release and repatriation of POWs as promptly as possible
following the cessation of active hostilities. Neither Party may unilaterally abandon the release and repatriation
process or refuse to work in good faith with the ICRC to resolve any impediments.).
633
expect that a State would release all of the POWs it holds without assurance that its own
personnel held by the enemy will also be released. 884
9.37.3 Without Delay. The GPW provides that release and repatriation take place
without delay. This requirement, however, does not affect the practical arrangements that must
be made to ensure that repatriation takes place in a safe and orderly manner in accordance with
the requirements of the GPW.888
884
Eritrea Ethiopia Claims Commission, Partial Award: Prisoners of War, Eritreas Claim 17, 148 (Jul. 1, 2003)
(There is also a fundamental question whether and to what extent each Partys obligation to repatriate depends
upon the others compliance with its repatriation obligations. The language of Article 118 is absolute.
Nevertheless, as a practical matter, and as indicated by state practice, any state that has not been totally defeated is
unlikely to release all the POWs it holds without assurance that its own personnel held by its enemy will also be
released, and it is unreasonable to expect otherwise. At the hearing, distinguished counsel for Eritrea suggested that
the obligation to repatriate should be seen as unconditional but acknowledged the difficulty of the question and the
contrary arguments under general law.).
885
LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 613 (275) (Probably the phrase cessation of active
hostilities in the sense of Article 118 [of the GPW] refers not to suspension of hostilities in pursuance of an
ordinary armistice which leaves open the possibility of a resumption of the struggle, but to a cessation of hostilities
as the result of total surrender or of such circumstances or conditions of an armistice as render it out of the question
for the defeated party to resume hostilities.).
886
CHRISTIANE SHIELDS DELESSERT, RELEASE AND REPATRIATION OF PRISONERS OF WAR AT THE END OF ACTIVE
HOSTILITIES: A STUDY OF ARTICLE 118, PARAGRAPH 1 OF THE THIRD GENEVA CONVENTION RELATIVE TO THE
TREATMENT OF PRISONERS OF WAR 71-72 (1977) (Is the phrase end of active hostilities to be interpreted as
referring to situations where it is clear that active hostilities have definitely stopped and will not be resumed, for
example, as the result of surrender, or can it be interpreted in a more flexible way so as to take account of situations
where the pattern has been an alternation of military operations and peaceful periods? If, once again, one refers to
the Second World War which directly influenced the specific wording of Article 118, it would seem that what was
envisaged was a situation of complete end of the war, if not in a legal sense, at least in a material one with clearly no
probability of resumption of hostilities in a near future. The end of war for the purpose of the application of Article
118, meant the end of military operations. In the light of the history of Article 118, this would seem to be the proper
interpretation to be given to it.).
887
Edward R. Cummings, Acting Assistant Legal Adviser for African Affairs, Memorandum of Law to Chester A.
Crocker, Assistant Secretary of State for African Affairs, Sept. 21, 1984, III CUMULATIVE DIGEST OF UNITED STATES
PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 1981-1988, 3471, 3474 (Under the GPW, the cessation concept describes the
point in time that belligerents feel sufficiently [at ease] about the future that they are willing to release all
prisoners of war and civilian internees.) (alterations to the quote in original).
888
GPW COMMENTARY 550 (The text as finally adopted states that the repatriation must take place without delay
after the cessation of active hostilities. This requirement does not, of course, affect the practical arrangements
634
For example, the availability of manpower and transportation to conduct the repatriation,
continuing military operations in other theaters, or the ability of countries to receive POWs in
large numbers, may all increase the time required to conduct the release and repatriation. 889 The
security situation in the country in which POWs are to be released may also be an important
factor. 890 In addition, time may be needed based on the medical condition of the POWs or in
order to conduct interviews to ensure that repatriation is voluntary.
9.37.4.2 POWs Who Resist Repatriation. The Detaining Power is not required to
repatriate forcibly POWs who do not wish to be repatriated.
Although the GPW provides that POWs may not renounce the rights secured to them by
the GPW, 892 this principle is not violated by the POW rejecting repatriation and requesting
asylum, if it is established in a satisfactory manner that the POW is making an informed,
which must be made so that repatriation may take place in conditions consistent with humanitarian rules and the
requirements of the Convention, as defined in Article 119, paragraph 1, below, which refers to Articles 46 to 48
(relating to transfer).).
889
For example, FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 586 (After the cease fire, expeditious repatriation of
EPWs was a high priority and Coalition officials promptly began talks with Iraqi representatives on EPW
exchanges. Iraq said it was anxious to return Coalition POWs, but was unwilling to accept large numbers of EPWs
in return, saying it was not prepared to receive them.); Martin Tollefson, Enemy Prisoners of War, 32 IOWA LAW
REVIEW 51, 74 (1946) (Because of manpower and transportation shortages, because the war was still being fought
against Japan, and because of the inability on the part of the European and Mediterranean theaters to receive
prisoners of war from the United States in large numbers, the prisoner-of-war repatriation program did not assume
large proportions until after V-J Day.).
890
For example, EARL F. ZIEMKE, THE U.S. ARMY IN THE OCCUPATION OF GERMANY, 1944-1946, 293 (1975)
(SHAEF could not authorize a blanket release of German forces, Eisenhower replied, because their discharge had
to be strictly controlled in order to prevent widespread disorder, or other conditions which military government
agencies will be unable to cope with; the release of the categories already approved (see below) would tax the
administrative machinery for a considerable time . . . . Until such time as indigenous resources can meet the needs,
he concluded, 12th Army Group could use imported military government food for the disarmed forces.) (ellipsis in
original).
891
GPW COMMENTARY 549 (Enemy military personnel who have been illegally enrolled in the armed forces
cannot be treated on the same basis as other prisoners of war, nor can those who go over to the other side. Although
many countries, for instance Great Britain, treated the latter as prisoners of war, this does not mean that they are
entitled to that status. The Detaining Power is under no obligation to repatriate persons who have deserted to the
other side. Similarly, their names are not usually notified to their country of origin. It should, however, be noted
that the status of a deserter who has gone over to the other side must be determined by the way in which he
surrendered or by his statements during initial questioning. A prisoner of war does not become a deserter merely
because he makes a statement in the course of captivity.).
892
Refer to 9.3.7 (Non-Renunciation of Rights Secured by the GPW).
635
voluntary, and personal choice. 893 Thus, the GPW does not itself change accepted principles of
international law under which asylum is applicable to POWs, and the Detaining Power may, but
is not required to, grant asylum. 894 The policy of the United States has been not to conduct
forcible repatriation of POWs and, in particular, not to transfer any person when torture is more
likely than not to result. 895
893
LEVIE, POWS 93 (The question of the extent of the coverage of Article 7 was directly raised during the armistice
negotiations in Korea in connection with the problem of repatriation under Article 118. Is it a violation of Article 7
to permit a prisoner of war to reject repatriation and to seek asylum either in the territory of the Detaining Power, or
elsewhere, when hostilities cease? The decision ultimately reached in that controversy, one that had the support of a
large majority of the United Nations General Assembly as then composed, was that Article 7 was not violated if it
could be established in a satisfactory manner that the prisoner of war was actually making an informed, voluntary,
and personal choice.).
894
SENATE EXECUTIVE REPORT 84-9, Geneva Conventions for the Protection of War Victims: Report of the
Committee on Foreign Relations on Executives D, E, F, and G, 82nd Congress, First Session, 5 (Jun. 27, 1955)
(Members of the committee, exploring the problem of involuntary repatriation with the executive branch, were
informed at the hearing that the United States official position continues to be that maintained in Korea and
overwhelmingly supported in the resolution of the General Assembly, and that article 118 does nothing to change
accepted principles of international law under which asylum is applicable to prisoners of war. The committee
unqualifiedly concurs. It finds nothing in the Geneva conventions of 1949 which will compel the United States
forcibly to repatriate prisoners of war who fear political persecution, personal injury, or death should they return to
their homeland. That article, being intended for the benefit and the well-being of prisoners, will permit the United
States to continue the policy of nonforceable repatriation, while at the same time leaving it free, where necessary, to
refuse requests for asylum. The interpretation which has thus prevailed gives due weight to the word release in
article 118, is faithful to precedent and legislative history, and is fully consistent with the great humanitarian
purposes which underlie all four of the conventions.).
895
Refer to 8.14.4.1 (U.S. Policy Prohibiting Transfers in Cases in Which Detainees Would Likely Be Tortured).
896
For example, FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 587 (By international convention, no EPW was
forcibly repatriated. Coalition forces identified to the ICRC Iraqi EPW not desiring repatriation. When an Iraqi
reached the exchange site, the ICRC reconfirmed willingness to be repatriated. Those who indicated they no longer
desired to return to Iraq were returned to the custody of Saudi Arabia. On 2 May 1991, the last EPW in US
custody was transferred to the Saudi Arabian government. The Coalition repatriation began on 6 March and ended
on 22 August. A total of 13,418 EPWs refused repatriation (13,227 remain at Camp Al-Artawiyah and 191 officer
EPWs remain at Camp Tabuk).); R. R. Baxter, Asylum to Prisoners of War, 30 BRITISH YEAR BOOK OF
INTERNATIONAL LAW 489, 489-90 (1953) (After hostilities had ended in Korea and those prisoners of war who
desired to be repatriated had been restored to the forces of which they were members, there remained over 22,000
prisoners of war in the custody of the United Nations Command and several hundreds in the hands of the Command
of the Korean Peoples Army and Chinese Peoples Volunteers who had not elected to return. In accordance with
the Resolution of the United Nations General Assembly of 3 December 1952, the Terms of Reference for the
Neutral Nations Repatriation Commission annexed to the Korean Armistice Agreement provided that prisoners who
had not exercised their right to be repatriated should be placed in the custody of a Neutral Nations Repatriation
Commission (N.N.R.C.), composed of members appointed by Sweden, Switzerland, Poland, Czechoslovakia, and
India. Commissions with neutral representation had in a number of previous instances been employed to
supervise the repatriation of prisoners.).
636
POWs against whom criminal proceedings for an indictable offense are pending may be
detained until the end of such proceedings, and, if necessary, until the completion of the
punishment. 898 The same shall apply to POWs already convicted for an indictable offense. 899
In fact, in most instances, as the Supreme Court has observed, the practical administration
of the system of military justice under the law of war would fail if such authority were thought to
end with the cessation of hostilities because only after their cessation could the greater number of
offenders and the principal ones be apprehended and tried. 900
Parties to the conflict shall communicate to each other the names of any POWs who are
detained until the end of the proceedings or until punishment has been completed. 901
The GPW does not prohibit the extradition of POWs to other Parties to the GPW to face
criminal charges. 902
POWs held after the cessation of active hostilities on this basis, even if they have been
convicted, remain entitled to the benefits of the GPW until they are released and repatriated. 903
9.37.5 Commissions to Search for Dispersed POWs. By agreement between the parties
to the conflict, commissions shall be established for the purpose of searching for dispersed
POWs and of ensuring their repatriation with the least possible delay. 904
897
Compare 9.27.7 (Disciplinary Punishment and Repatriation or Accommodation in a Neutral Country).
898
GPW art. 119 (Prisoners of war against whom criminal proceedings for an indictable offence are pending may
be detained until the end of such proceedings, and, if necessary, until the completion of the punishment.).
899
GPW art. 119 (The same shall apply to prisoners of war already convicted for an indictable offence.).
900
See In re Yamashita, 327 U.S. 1, 12 (1946) (We cannot say that there is no authority to convene a commission
after hostilities have ended to try violations of the law of war committed before their cessation, at least until peace
has been officially recognized by treaty or proclamation of the political branch of the Government. In fact, in most
instances the practical administration of the system of military justice under the law of war would fail if such
authority were thought to end with the cessation of hostilities. For only after their cessation could the greater
number of offenders and the principal ones be apprehended and subjected to trial.).
901
GPW art. 119 (Parties to the conflict shall communicate to each other the names of any prisoners of war who are
detained until the end of the proceedings or until punishment has been completed.).
902
See Noriega v. Pastrana, 564 F.3d 1290, 1298 (11th Cir. Fla. 2009) (As a result of Noriegas conviction in the
United States, article 119 authorized the United States to prolong his detention for the duration of his sentence
beyond the cessation of hostilities between the United States and Panama. Nowhere, however, is it suggested that a
prisoner of war may not be extradited from one party to the Convention to face criminal charges in another. Nor do
the stated purposes of articles 118 and 119, as reflected by their commentary, preclude detention in these
circumstances: article 118 is intended to prohibit prolong[ed] war captivity, while article 119 unambiguously
reflects the intention of the drafters to permit detention of prisoners of war subject to criminal proceedings.).
903
Refer to 9.3.6 (Commencement and Duration of POW Status and Treatment).
904
GPW art. 119 (By agreement between the Parties to the conflict, commissions shall be established for the
purpose of searching for dispersed prisoners of war and of assuring their repatriation with the least possible delay.).
637
9.37.6 Costs of Repatriation at the Close of Hostilities. The costs of repatriation of
POWs shall in all cases be equitably apportioned between the Detaining Power and the Power on
which the POWs depend. 905
If the two Powers are contiguous, then the Power on which the POWs depend shall bear
the costs of repatriation from the frontiers of the Detaining Power. 906
If the two Powers are not contiguous, the Detaining Power shall bear the costs of
transport of POWs over its own territory as far as its frontier or its port of embarkation nearest to
the territory of the Power on which the POWs depend. 907 The Parties concerned shall agree
between themselves on the equitable apportionment of the remaining costs of the repatriation,
but the conclusion of such agreement shall in no circumstances justify any delay in the
repatriation of the POWs. 908
9.38.2 Notification of Repatriation Plan and Departure. POWs should be informed of the
plan for their repatriation. 912 For example, this may take place through notices posted in the
camps and provided to the POW Representatives, or a public announcement. 913
905
GPW art. 118 (The costs of repatriation of prisoners of war shall in all cases be equitably apportioned between
the Detaining Power and the Power on which the prisoners depend.).
906
GPW art. 118 (If the two Powers are continguous, the Power on which the prisoners of war depend shall bear
the costs of repatriation from the frontiers of the Detaining Power.).
907
GPW art. 118 (If the two Powers are not contiguous, the Detaining Power shall bear the costs of transport of
prisoners of war over its own territory as far as its frontier or its port of embarkation nearest to the territory of the
Power on which the prisoners of war depend.).
908
GPW art. 118 (The parties concerned shall agree between themselves as to the equitable apportionment of the
remaining costs of the repatriation. The conclusion of this agreement shall in no circumstances justify any delay in
the repatriation of the prisoners of war.).
909
GPW art. 119 (Repatriation shall be effected in conditions similar to those laid down in Articles 46 to 48
inclusive of the present Convention for the transfer of prisoners of war, having regard to the provisions of Article
118 and to those of the following paragraphs.).
910
Refer to 9.29.2 (Conditions for the Transfer of POWs).
911
Refer to 9.29.2 (Conditions for the Transfer of POWs).
912
GPW art. 118 (In either case, the measures adopted shall be brought to the knowledge of the prisoners of war.).
638
POWs who are to be moved must be identified and listed before departure, and both the
National POW Information Bureau and the POWs themselves officially notified in advance, so
that they can pack their baggage and inform their next of kin. 914
9.38.3 Personal Property. On repatriation, any articles of value impounded from POWs
under Article 18 of the GPW,915 and any foreign currency that has not been converted into the
currency of the Detaining Power, shall be restored to them. 916 Articles of value and foreign
currency that, for any reason whatever, are not restored to POWs on repatriation, shall be sent to
the National POW Information Bureau set up under Article 122 of the GPW. 917
POWs shall be allowed to take with them their personal effects and any correspondence
and parcels that have arrived for them. 918 The weight of such baggage may be limited, if the
conditions of repatriation so require, to what each POW can reasonably carry. 919 Each POW
shall in all cases be authorized to carry at least 25 kilograms (approximately 55 pounds). 920 The
other personal effects of the repatriated POW shall be left in the charge of the Detaining Power,
which shall have them forwarded to him or her as soon as it has concluded an agreement to this
effect, regulating the conditions of transport and the payment of the costs involved, with the
Power on which the POW depends. 921
9.38.4 POW Accounts and Financial Matters. POW accounts should be addressed in
accordance with Article 66 of the GPW. 922
913
Refer to 9.22.5 (Posting of Convention and Camp Orders).
914
Refer to 9.29.3.1 (Notification of Transfer).
915
Refer to 9.7.4 (Money and Articles of Value).
916
GPW art. 119 (On repatriation, any articles of value impounded from prisoners of war under Article 18, and any
foreign currency which has not been converted into the currency of the Detaining Power, shall be restored to
them.).
917
GPW art. 119 (Articles of value and foreign currency which, for any reason whatever, are not restored to
prisoners of war on repatriation, shall be despatched to the Information Bureau set up under Article 122.).
918
GPW art. 119 (Prisoners of war shall be allowed to take with them their personal effects, and any
correspondence and parcels which have arrived for them.).
919
GPW art. 119 (The weight of such baggage may be limited, if the conditions of repatriation so require, to what
each prisoner can reasonably carry.).
920
GPW art. 119 (Each prisoner shall in all cases be authorized to carry at least twenty-five kilograms.).
921
GPW art. 119 (The other personal effects of the repatriated prisoner shall be left in the charge of the Detaining
Power which shall have them forwarded to him as soon as it has concluded an agreement to this effect, regulating
the conditions of transport and the payment of the costs involved, with the Power on which the prisoner depends.).
922
Refer to 9.18.6.4 (Statements of Credit Balance on Termination of Captivity).
923
GPW art. 67 (Such advances of pay, as well as all payments made by the said Power under Article 63, third
paragraph, and Article 68, shall form the subject of arrangements between the Powers concerned, at the close of
hostilities.).
639
9.38.5 Canteen Profits. The profits of the canteen should be disposed of in accordance
with Article 28 of the GPW. 924
The Code of Conduct is a moral code designed to provide U.S. military personnel with a
standard of conduct. 925 Although designed for situations in which members of the U.S. armed
forces may be held as POWs, the spirit and intent of the Code apply to service members
subjected to other types of hostile detention, such as hostage scenarios. 926
9.39.1 Text of the Code of Conduct and Discussion. The Code of Conduct was written to
be consistent with the requirements imposed by the GPW. Violations of the Code of Conduct
are not criminally punishable as such, but conduct that violates the Code of Conduct may also
violate the Uniform Code of Military Justice.
I am an American, fighting in the forces which guard my country and our way of
life. I am prepared to give my life in their defense.
I will never surrender of my own free will. If in command, I will never surrender
the members of my command while they still have the means to resist.
Under Article II of the Code of Conduct, the responsibility and authority of a commander
never extends to the surrender of command, even if isolated, cut off, or surrounded, while the
unit has a reasonable power to resist, break out, or evade to rejoin friendly forces. 927
Under the Uniform Code of Military Justice, a U.S. commander who shamefully
surrenders to the enemy any command or place that is his or her duty to defend is subject to
924
Refer to 9.17.3.2 (Disposition of Canteen Profits Upon Camp Closure).
925
See Executive Order 10631, Code of Conduct for Members of the Armed Forces of the United States, 20
FEDERAL REGISTER 6057 (Aug. 17, 1955), as amended by Executive Order 12017, Amending the Code of Conduct
for Members of the Armed Forces of the United States, 42 FEDERAL REGISTER 57941 (Nov. 3, 1977), and as
amended by Executive Order 12633, Amending the Code of Conduct for Members of the Armed Forces of the United
States, 53 FEDERAL REGISTER 10355 (Mar. 28, 1988).
926
See, e.g., DOD INSTRUCTION 1300.21, Code of Conduct (CoC) Training and Education, E2.1.1 (Jan. 8, 2001)
(Although designed for evasion and prisoner of war (POW) situations, the spirit and intent of the CoC are
applicable to Service members subjected to other hostile detention, and such Service members should conduct
themselves consistently in a manner that avoids discrediting themselves and their country.); Joint Chiefs of Staff
Memorandum 290-81, Code of Military in Hostage Situations (Aug. 5, 1981) (a. All U.S. military personnel are
subject to being taken hostage under circumstances short of war. In such situations, the conduct of military
personnel will be guided by the Code of Conduct.).
927
DOD INSTRUCTION 1300.21, Code of Conduct (CoC) Training and Education, E2.2.2.1.2 (Jan. 8, 2001) (The
responsibility and authority of a commander never extends to the surrender of command, even if isolated, cut off, or
surrounded, while the unit has a reasonable power to resist, break out, or evade to rejoin friendly forces.).
640
punishment. 928 In addition, any person subject to the Uniform Code of Military Justice who
compels or attempts to compel a commander of any place, vessel, aircraft, or other military
property, or of any body of members of the armed forces, to give it up to an enemy or to abandon
it, or who strikes the colors or flag to an enemy without proper authority, is subject to
punishment. 929
Article II of the Code of Conduct is consistent with the authority of commanders under
the law of war to conclude capitulation agreements for the surrender of forces under their
command. 930
If I am captured I will continue to resist by all means available. I will make every
effort to escape and to aid others to escape. I will accept neither parole nor
special favors from the enemy.
By limiting the punishment of POWs with respect to an unsuccessful escape, the GPW
acknowledges that POWs may have a duty to seek to escape, as reflected in Article III of the
Code of Conduct. 931
Although the GPW contemplates that POWs may accept parole, 932 U.S. policy, as
reflected in Article III of the Code of Conduct, prohibits accepting parole.
If I become a prisoner of war, I will keep faith with my fellow prisoners. I will
give no information [n]or take part in any action which might be harmful to my
comrades. If I am senior, I will take command. If not, I will obey the lawful
orders of those appointed over me and will back them up in every way.
Article IV of the Code of Conduct exemplifies the spirit of comradeship that many POWs
have exhibited in past conflicts. 933 It reflects a higher standard of conduct than that punishable
928
10 U.S.C. 899 (Any member of the armed forces who before or in the presence of the enemy (2)
shamefully abandons, surrenders, or delivers up any command, unit, place, or military property which it is his duty
to defend; shall be punished by death or such other punishment as a court-martial may direct.).
929
10 U.S.C. 900 (Any person subject to this chapter who compels or attempts to compel the commander of any
place, vessel, aircraft, or other military property, or of any body of members of the armed forces, to give it up to an
enemy or to abandon it, or who strikes the colors or flag to an enemy without proper authority, shall be punished by
death or such other punishment as a court-martial may direct.).
930
Refer to 12.8.2 (Authority of Commanders to Conclude Capitulation Agreements).
931
Refer to 9.25 (POW Escapes).
932
Refer to 9.11.2 (Parole of POWs).
933
For example, The Secretary of Defenses Advisory Committee on Prisoners of War, POW The Fight Continues
After The Battle: The Report of the Secretary of Defenses Advisory Committee on Prisoners of War, 14 (Aug.
1955) (Many servicemen exhibited pride in themselves and their units. This was particularly pronounced where
they had belonged to the same unit for years. They stood by one another like that band of brothers inspired by
Nelson. If a soldier were sick, his fellow soldiers took care of him. They washed his clothes, bathed him, and
641
under Article 105 of the Uniform Code of Military Justice regarding misconduct towards fellow
POWs.934 The senior POW in command is not necessarily the POW Representative. 935 In POW
camps containing only enlisted personnel, the POW Representative is elected. 936
Article V of the Code of Conduct reflects the obligations of the POW to provide
accountability information. 937 The Detaining Power may have further obligations to collect
additional accountability information relating to POWs. 938
Article V of the Code of Conduct also underscores one aspect of Article 104 of the
Uniform Code of Military Justice regarding aiding the enemy by specifically forbidding oral or
written statements disloyal to the United States or harmful to its cause. 939
I will never forget that I am an American, fighting for freedom, responsible for
my actions, and dedicated to the principles which made my country free. I will
trust in my God and in the United States of America.
pulled him through. They exhibited true fraternal spirit comradeship, military pride. These soldiers did not let each
other down. Nor could the Korean Reds win much cooperation from them.).
934
See DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY PAMPHLET 27-161-2, II International Law, 99-100 (Oct. 23, 1962) (The
provisions of the Code of Conduct are not as restrictive in their application as in Article 105(1), U.C.M.J. There is
no requirement that the act be motivated by the desire to secure favorable treatment or that an actual detriment be
inflicted on the other PWs as a direct result of the act.).
935
See DOD INSTRUCTION 1300.21, Code of Conduct (CoC) Training and Education, E2.2.4.1.6 (Jan. 8, 2001)
(U.S. policy on POW camp organization requires that the senior military POW assume command. The Geneva
Convention on POWs (reference (g)) provides additional guidance to the effect that in POW camps containing only
enlisted personnel, a prisoners representative shall be elected. POWs should understand that such an elected
representative is regarded by U.S. policy as only a spokesperson for the senior POW. The prisoners representative
does not have command, unless the POWs elect the senior POW to be the prisoners representative. The senior
POW shall assume and retain actual command, covertly if necessary.).
936
Refer to 9.24.2.3 (Places Without Officer POWs).
937
Refer to 9.8.4 (Accountability Information That POWs Are Bound to Provide Upon Questioning).
938
Refer to 9.31.1.1 (Difference Between the Accountability Information the Detaining Power Must Seek and the
Information the POW Must Provide).
939
DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY PAMPHLET 27-161-2, II International Law, 99 (Oct. 23, 1962) (The Uniform Code
continues to apply to an American serviceman after his capture by the enemy. A prisoner of war is often in a better
position then before capture to aid the enemy. The Code of Conduct underscores one aspect of Article 104
U.C.M.J. by specifically forbidding oral or written statements disloyal to the U.S. or harmful to its cause. Such
statements may materially aid the enemy in its propaganda efforts.).
642
9.39.2 Background on the U.S. Code of Conduct. Although misconduct by POWs was
not unique to the Korean War, the Code of Conduct was introduced after public awareness of
instances of misconduct by U.S. servicemembers during their captivity as POWs during the
Korean War. The Secretary of Defense established a committee that recommended that a unified
and purposeful standard of conduct for Americans who become POWs be promulgated. 940
President Dwight D. Eisenhower promulgated the Code of Conduct on August 17, 1955. 941 A
review of the Code of Conduct after the return of U.S. POWs from the Vietnam War confirmed
the value of the Code of Conduct. 942
940
The Secretary of Defenses Advisory Committee on Prisoners of War, POW The Fight Continues After The
Battle: The Report of the Secretary of Defense's Advisory Committee on Prisoners of War, vii (Aug. 1955) ([T]he
Committee unanimously agreed that Americans require a unified and purposeful standard of conduct for our
prisoners of war backed up by a first class training program. This position is also wholeheartedly supported by the
concensus [sic] of opinion of all those who consulted with the Committee. From no one did we receive stronger
recommendations on this point than from the former American prisoners of war in Korea-officers and enlisted
men.).
941
Executive Order 10631, Code of Conduct for Members of the Armed Forces of the United States, 20 FEDERAL
REGISTER 163 (Aug. 20, 1955).
942
DoD, Report of the Defense Review Committee for the Code of Conduct 6-7 (1976) (There was consistent
agreement throughout Committee proceedings that the Code of Conduct has served as a useful guide to the
American Serviceman through a wide spectrum of circumstances during normal service, on the battlefield and in
captivity. It represents the high standard of behavior which is expected of the individual and which he may expect
of all other members of the Armed Forces. There was never any question that the Code is needed, and some POW
returnees attributed their very survival to the inspiration provided by the Code of Conduct.).
643
X Civilians in the Hands of a Party to the Conflict
Chapter Contents
10.1 Introduction
10.2 National-Level GC Implementation Measures
10.3 Protected Person Status
10.4 Derogation for Security Reasons
10.5 Humane Treatment and Other Basic Protections for Protected Persons
10.6 Measures of Control and Security
10.7 General Treatment of Protected Persons in a Belligerents Home Territory
10.8 Expulsion From Areas Within a Belligerents Home Territory and Departure
and Transfers of Protected Persons From a Belligerents Home Territory
10.9 Internment
10.10 Segregation of Internees
10.11 Safety, Hygiene, and Living Conditions in Places of Internment
10.12 Canteens for Internees
10.13 Food, Water, Tobacco, and Clothing for Internees
10.14 Medical Attention for Internees
10.15 Religious Exercise by Internees
10.16 Intellectual, Physical, and Recreational Activities
10.17 Internee Labor
10.18 Internees Articles of Personal Use
10.19 Financial Resources of Internees
10.20 Administration of Places of Internment and Discipline
10.21 Internee Petitions, Complaints, and Reports About Conditions of
Internment
10.22 Internee Committees
10.23 Internee Correspondence and Relief Shipments
10.24 Private Legal Matters of Internees
10.25 Internees and Visits of Family and Friends
10.26 Internee Escapes
10.27 General Provisions Applicable to Both Judicial and Disciplinary Sanctions
Regarding Internees
10.28 Disciplinary Proceedings and Punishment
10.29 Judicial Proceedings Regarding Protected Persons in Occupied Territory or
Internees in a Belligerents Home Territory
10.30 Transfers of Internees From the Place of Internment
10.31 National Accounting for Protected Persons in Its Power
10.32 Role of the Protecting Power in the GC
10.33 Access to Internees by Protecting Powers, ICRC, and Other Relief
Organizations
10.34 Death of Internees
10.35 Release, Return, Repatriation of Internees After the Close of Hostilities
644
10.1 INTRODUCTION
Rules for the protection of civilians in the conduct of hostilities are addressed in Chapter
V. Rules for the protection of civilians that are specific to occupied territory are addressed in
Chapter XI, while rules that apply to both civilians in occupied territory and civilians in a
belligerents home territory are addressed in this Chapter.
10.1.1 Interpretation and Application of the GC. The GC underlies most of the
international law rules applicable to the United States for the treatment of civilians in the hands
of a party to the conflict.
As with the GPW, the GCs provisions should be interpreted in light of the principles that
underlie the treatment of civilians and, in particular, in light of the goal of advancing the humane
treatment of protected persons. 1 The subsequent practice of States in applying the GC could also
assist in interpreting its provisions because States decades of experience in applying the GC
may be very helpful in understanding its requirements. 2
In the GC, the Detaining Power refers to the State that holds the internee.
In the GC, the Protecting Power refers to a neutral State that helps implement the GC. 4
10.1.1.2 Special Agreements Under the GC. Under the GC, States may conclude
a variety of special agreements during international armed conflict to facilitate the protection of
civilians. The GC specifically provides for agreements:
to entrust to an effective and impartial organization the duties of the Protecting Powers; 5
1
Refer to 9.1.2 (Interpretation and Application of the GPW).
2
Refer to 1.7.4 (Use of Certain Subsequent Practice in Treaty Interpretation).
3
Refer to 10.3.1 (Protected Person Notes on Terminology).
4
Refer to 18.15.1.1 (Protecting Power Under the 1949 Geneva Conventions).
5
Refer to 18.15.2.1 (Agreement for an Impartial and Effective Organization to Perform Protecting Power Duties
Under the 1949 Geneva Conventions).
645
to establish and determine the conditions of neutralized zones; 7
for the removal of wounded, sick, infirm, and aged persons, children, and maternity
cases, from besieged or encircled areas or for the passage of medical and religious
personnel on their way to such areas; 8
to settle practical details regarding the departure of protected persons from a belligerents
home territory; 9
to establish the conditions for the sending of individual parcels and collective relief
shipments; 10
for the release, repatriation, the return to places of residence or the accommodation in a
neutral country of certain classes of internees, in particular children, pregnant women and
mothers with infants and young children, wounded and sick, and internees who have been
detained for a long time; 11 and
on the procedure, or to select an umpire who will decide the procedure, to be followed for
an inquiry concerning any alleged violation of the GC. 12
In addition to the agreements expressly provided for in Articles 11, 14, 15, 17, 36, 108,
109, 132, 133, and 149 of the GC, Parties to the GC may conclude other special agreements for
all matters concerning which they may deem it suitable to make separate provision. 13 No special
agreement shall adversely affect the situation of protected persons, as defined by the GC, nor
restrict the rights that it confers upon them. 14
Protected persons shall continue to have the benefit of such agreements as long as the GC
is applicable to them, except where express provisions to the contrary are contained in these
6
Refer to 5.14.3.1 (Civilian Hospital and Safety Zones and Localities).
7
Refer to 5.14.3.3 (Neutralized Zones).
8
Refer to 5.19.2 (Removal and Passage of Certain Personnel Vulnerable Civilians, Diplomatic and Consular
Personnel, the Wounded and Sick, and Medical Personnel).
9
Refer to 10.8.2 (Departures of Protected Persons From a Belligerents Home Territory).
10
Refer to 10.23.3.3 (Special Agreements Concerning Relief Shipments).
11
Refer to 10.9.6 (Agreements for the Release, Return, or Accommodation in a Neutral Country of Certain Classes
of Internees).
12
Refer to 18.14.1 (Inquiry Procedure in the 1949 Geneva Conventions).
13
GC art. 7 (In addition to the agreements expressly provided for in Articles 11, 14, 15, 17, 36, 108, 109, 132, 133
and 149, the High Contracting Parties may conclude other special agreements for all matters concerning which they
may deem it suitable to make separate provision.).
14
GC art. 7 (No special agreement shall adversely affect the situation of protected persons, as defined by the
present Convention, nor restrict the rights which it confers upon them.).
646
agreements or in subsequent agreements, or where more favorable measures have been taken
with regard to them by one or other of the parties to the conflict. 15
10.1.2 DoD Policies and Regulations for the Treatment of Internees. DoD policies and
regulations regarding the treatment of internees provide authoritative guidance for DoD
personnel and fill an important role in implementing the complex requirements of the GC. 16
Practitioners are advised to consult all applicable policies and regulations, as these, in many
cases, exceed the requirements of the GC, U.S. statutes, and Executive Orders.
The GC requires a number of measures at the national level to facilitate protection for
protected persons.
15
GC art. 7 (Protected persons shall continue to have the benefit of such agreements as long as the Convention is
applicable to them, except where express provisions to the contrary are contained in the aforesaid or in subsequent
agreements, or where more favourable measures have been taken with regard to them by one or other of the Parties
to the conflict.).
16
Refer to 18.7 (Instructions, Regulations, and Procedures to Implement and Enforce the Law of War).
17
Refer to 18.15.1.1 (Protecting Power Under the 1949 Geneva Conventions).
18
Refer to 10.32 (Role of the Protecting Power in the GC).
19
Refer to 10.31.2 (National Protected Person Information Bureau).
20
Refer to 10.31.3 (Central Information Agency for Protected Persons).
647
10.2.2.2 Notification of Measures Taken for Implementing GC Provisions That
Address Relations Between Internees and the Exterior. Immediately upon interning protected
persons, the Detaining Power shall inform them, the Power to which they owe allegiance, and
their Protecting Power of the measures taken for executing the provisions of Chapter VIII of
Section IV of the GC, which address the relations between internees and the exterior (e.g.,
correspondence, relief shipments, family visits). 22 The Detaining Power shall likewise inform
the Parties concerned of any subsequent modifications of such measures. 23
In general, the GC uses the concept of protected person to define the individuals who are
entitled to receive its protections. Principally, protected persons include persons of enemy
nationality living in the territory of a belligerent State and the inhabitants of occupied
territories. 24 Even if persons are not protected persons under the GC, other rules may be
applicable to them. For example, certain baseline rules apply to the treatment of all detainees,
including those who are not protected persons or POWs. 25
Protected persons is often understood as a term that is specific to the GC. In a few
places, however, the GPW, the GWS, and the GWS-Sea also refer to protected persons or
persons protected. 26 In such cases, protected persons and persons protected refer to
persons protected by that respective convention, as opposed to protected persons for purposes of
the GC.
21
Refer to 10.11.1.2 (Sharing Information on the Location of Places of Internment); 10.11.1.3 (Marking of
Internment Camps).
22
GC art. 105 (Immediately upon interning protected persons, the Detaining Powers shall inform them, the Power
to which they owe allegiance and their Protecting Power of the measures taken for executing the provisions of the
present Chapter.).
23
GC art. 105 (The Detaining Powers shall likewise inform the Parties concerned of any subsequent modifications
of such measures.).
24
GC COMMENTARY 45 (When work was begun on the preparation of the texts, it became clearas early as the
time of the Tokyo Draftthat there were two main classes of civilian to whom protection against arbitrary action on
the part of the enemy was essential in time of waron the one hand, persons of enemy nationality living in the
territory of a belligerent State, and on the other, the inhabitants of occupied territories. The idea that the Convention
should cover these two categories was accepted from the first and has never really been disputed. Any discussions
which have taken place on the subject have been concerned with points of detail which we shall consider later. This
Article [4 of the GC] is, in a sense, the key to the Convention; for it defines the people to whom it refers.).
25
Refer to 8.1.1 (Overview of Detention Rules in This Manual and the Scope of Chapter VIII).
26
See, e.g., GPW art. 11 (In cases where they deem it advisable in the interest of protected persons, particularly in
cases of disagreement between the Parties to the conflict as to the application or interpretation of the provisions of
the present Convention, the Protecting Powers shall lend their good offices with a view to settling the
disagreement.).
648
Although the GC addresses the protection of civilians, protected persons may include
certain unprivileged belligerents. Certain rights and privileges that protected persons who are
unprivileged belligerents receive, however, are subject to derogation for security reasons. 27
10.3.2 Persons Who Receive Protected Person Status Under the GC. Subject to certain
exceptions addressed below, persons protected by the GC are those who, at a given moment and
in any manner whatsoever, find themselves, in case of a conflict or occupation, in the hands of a
party to the conflict or Occupying Power of which they are not nationals. 28
Because the definition of protected person is framed negatively in terms of persons who
are in the hands of a State of which they are not nationals, the definition of protected person
allows for the possibility that persons without any nationality may be protected persons. 29
10.3.2.1 Find Themselves. The persons must find themselves in the hands of
a party to the conflict or Occupying Power, which suggests an element of happenstance or
coincidence. 30 For example, nationals of a neutral or non-belligerent State who travel to an
occupied State to fight the Occupying Power cannot be said to have found themselves within
that occupied territory within the meaning of Article 4 of the GC.
27
Refer to 10.4 (Derogation for Security Reasons).
28
GC art. 4 (Persons protected by the Convention are those who, at a given moment and in any manner whatsoever,
find themselves, in case of a conflict or occupation, in the hands of a Party to the conflict or Occupying Power of
which they are not nationals.).
29
GC COMMENTARY 47 (It will be observed that owing to its negative form the definition covers persons without
any nationality. The Rapporteur to Committee III pointed out that it thus complied with the recommendation made
to the Diplomatic Conference by the representative of the International Refugee Organization. In the actual course
of the discussions, however, certain speakers observed that the term nationals (ressortissants, in the French
version) did not cover all cases, in particular cases where men and women had fled from their homeland and no
longer considered themselves, or were no longer considered, to be nationals of that country. Such cases exist, it is
true, but it will be for the Power in whose hands they are to decide whether the persons concerned should or should
not be regarded as citizens of the country from which they have fled. The problem presents so many varied aspects
that it was difficult to deal with it fully in the Convention.).
30
Jack L. Goldsmith III, Assistant Attorney General, Protected Person Status in Occupied Iraq Under the Fourth
Geneva Convention, Mar. 18, 2004, 28 OPINIONS OF THE OFFICE OF LEGAL COUNSEL 35, 51 (Alternatively, the
phrase find themselves [in Article 4 of the GC] can be read more narrowly to suggest an element of happenstance
or coincidence, and to connote a lack of deliberate action relating to the circumstances that leave the persons in
question in the hands of an occupying power.).
31
See Jack L. Goldsmith III, Assistant Attorney General, Protected Person Status in Occupied Iraq Under the
Fourth Geneva Convention, Mar. 18, 2004, 28 OPINIONS OF THE OFFICE OF LEGAL COUNSEL 35, 41 (To receive the
protections provided for protected persons, one must be located in either (1) occupied territory, or (2) the
territory of a party to the conflict. This limitation does not emerge from article 4 itself, but rather from other
provisions in GC.); GC COMMENTARY 46 (Nevertheless, disregarding points of detail, it will be seen that there are
two main classes of protected person: (1) enemy nationals within the national territory of each of the Parties to the
conflict and (2) the whole population of occupied territories (excluding nationals of the Occupying Power). The
other distinctions and, exceptions extend or restrict these limits, but not to any appreciable extent.).
649
The references in the GC that limit the scope of protections for protected persons to those in the
territory of a Party to the conflict refer to the home territory of the party to the conflict in whose
hands the protected person finds himself or herself. 32 For example, Section II of Part III of the
GC, which applies to Aliens in the Territory of a Party to the Conflict, addresses the protection
of aliens present on the home territory of a party to the conflict in relation to that State.
10.3.2.3 Not Protected by the GWS, GWS-Sea, or the GPW. Persons protected by
the GWS, the GWS-Sea, or the GPW shall not be considered as protected persons within the
meaning of the GC. 33 For example, persons who receive POW status under the GPW are not
considered as protected persons within the meaning of the GC. 34
Certain rights and privileges of the GC that a protected person who has engaged in such
conduct would otherwise receive are, however, subject to derogation for security reasons. 36
32
Jack L. Goldsmith III, Assistant Attorney General, Protected Person Status in Occupied Iraq Under the Fourth
Geneva Convention, Mar. 18, 2004, 28 OPINIONS OF THE OFFICE OF LEGAL COUNSEL 35, 41 (The meaning of the
phrase territory of a Party to the conflict, considered in isolation, is not self-evident. At first glance, one might
think that the phrase includes occupied territory, because the occupied power (to whom the territory belongs) is a
party to the conflict. But in the context of the entire Convention, the phrase clearly refers to the home territory of
the party to the conflict in whose hands the protected person finds himself. This is evident from several provisions
in GC4.).
33
GC art. 4 (Persons protected by the Geneva Convention for the Amelioration of the Condition of the Wounded
and Sick in Armed Forces in the Field of August 12, 1949, or by the Geneva Convention for the Amelioration of the
Condition of Wounded, Sick and Shipwrecked Members of Armed Forces at Sea of August 12, 1949, or by the
Geneva Convention relative to the Treatment of Prisoners of War of August 12, 1949, shall not be considered as
protected persons within the meaning of the present Convention.).
34
Refer to 9.3.2 (Persons Entitled to POW Status).
35
See Jack L. Goldsmith III, Assistant Attorney General, Protected Person Status in Occupied Iraq Under the
Fourth Geneva Convention, Mar. 18, 2004, 28 OPINIONS OF THE OFFICE OF LEGAL COUNSEL 35, 48 (GC4s full
titleGeneva Convention Relative to the Protection of Civilian Persons in Time of War, (emphasis added)
suggests that [t]he main object of the Convention is to protect a strictly defined category of civilians. 4 Pictet,
Commentary at 10 (emphasis added). Consistent with this title, article 4(4) of GC expressly excludes lawful
combatants who enjoy POW status from protected person status. These factors, combined with the fact that
unlawful combatants generally receive less favorable treatment than lawful combatants under the Geneva
Convention system, see, e.g., Memorandum for Alberto R. Gonzales, Counsel to the President, from Jay S. Bybee,
Assistant Attorney General, Re: Status of Taliban Forces Under Article 4 of the Third Geneva Convention of 1949
at 1-7 (Feb. 7, 2002) (concluding that GPW withholds protections from persons who engage in hostilities but fail to
satisfy criteria for lawful combatancy), might lead one to assume that unlawful combatants are categorically
excluded from protected person status under GC. GCs text, however, contemplates that persons who find
themselves in occupied territory within the meaning of article 4 may engage in at least some forms of unlawful
belligerency without forfeiting all of the benefits of protected person status.); 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1
1976) 247b (Subject to qualifications set forth in paragraph 248 [relating to derogations], those protected by GC
also include all persons who have engaged in hostile or belligerent conduct but who are not entitled to treatment as
prisoners of war.).
36
Refer to 10.4 (Derogation for Security Reasons).
650
10.3.3 Categories of Nationals Specifically Excluded From the Definition of Protected
Person Under the GC. As discussed in this subsection, the GC specifically excludes certain
classes of persons from the definition of protected person. 37
The provisions of Part II of the GC, which address the general protection of populations
against certain consequences of war, are, however, wider in application, as defined in Article 13
of the GC. 38 These provisions cover the whole of the populations in conflict without any adverse
distinction based, in particular, on race, nationality, religion, or political opinion, and are
intended to alleviate the sufferings caused by war. 39 Thus, persons excluded by reason of their
nationality from the definition of protected person may nonetheless receive the protections of
Part II of the GC.
10.3.3.1 A States Own Nationals. In general, a States own nationals who are in
its hands are not protected persons under the GC. 40 This exclusion from the definition of
protected person in the GC is consistent with a traditional principle of international lawthe
GC does not interfere in a States relations with its own nationals. 41 However, the GC does
limit the arrest, prosecution, conviction, or deportation of nationals of any Occupying Power
who, before the outbreak of hostilities, have sought refuge in the territory of the occupied State. 42
10.3.3.2 Nationals of a State That Is Not Bound by the GC. Nationals of a State
that is not bound by the GC are not protected by it. 43 This provision of the GC reflects a legal
principle underlying the GC: a State must accept the burdens of the GC in order to receive its
benefits. 44
37
Compare 4.4.4 (Nationality and Combatant Status).
38
See GC art. 4 (The provisions of Part II are, however, wider in application, as defined in Article 13.).
39
GC art. 13 (The provisions of Part II cover the whole of the populations of the countries in conflict, without any
adverse distinction based, in particular, on race, nationality, religion or political opinion, and are intended to
alleviate the sufferings caused by war.).
40
GC art. 4 (Persons protected by the Convention are those who, at a given moment and in any manner whatsoever,
find themselves, in case of a conflict or occupation, in the hands of a Party to the conflict or Occupying Power of
which they are not nationals.) (emphasis added).
41
GC COMMENTARY 46 (The definition has been put in a negative form; as it is intended to cover anyone who is
not a national of the Party to the conflict or Occupying Power in whose hands he is. The Convention thus remains
faithful to a recognized principle of international law: it does not interfere in a States relations with its own
nationals. The only exception to this rule is the second paragraph of Article 70, which refers to nationals of the
Occupying Power who sought refuge in the territory of the occupied State before the outbreak of hostilities. This is
a very special case, based on the position such people have taken up with regard to their own country.).
42
Refer to 11.11.7 (Limitation on Criminal Jurisdiction With Respect to Pre-Occupation Acts).
43
GC art. 4 (Nationals of a State which is not bound by the Convention are not protected by it.).
44
Jack L. Goldsmith III, Assistant Attorney General, Protected Person Status in Occupied Iraq Under the Fourth
Geneva Convention, Mar. 18, 2004, 28 OPINIONS OF THE OFFICE OF LEGAL COUNSEL 35, 54 (The benefits-burdens
principle also finds expression in article 4(2), which provides: Nationals of a State which is not bound by the
Convention are not protected by it. The ICRCs Official Commentary states that article 4(2)s exception to the
definition of protected person in article 4(1) is a truism and an unnecessary addition that follows naturally from
article 2(1) even in the absence of article 4(2). See 4 Pictet, Commentary at 48. Whether or not this is true, article
4(2) makes this much clear: persons in occupied territory, including those who commit hostile acts there, are not
651
10.3.3.3 Nationals of a Neutral State or Co-Belligerent State While Normal
Diplomatic Representation Exists. Nationals of a neutral State who find themselves in the
territory of a belligerent State, and nationals of a co-belligerent State, shall not be regarded as
protected persons while the State of which they are nationals has normal diplomatic
representation in the State in whose hands they are. 45
These persons were omitted from the GCs definition of protected person in order to
avoid creating complications or inconsistencies in procedures should both the GC and the law
applicable to normal diplomatic representation apply. 46
10.3.4 Commencement and Duration of Protected Person Status. As with the general
application of the GC, protected persons shall receive their protections from the outset of any
conflict or occupation mentioned in Article 2 of the GC. 48 In general, the application of
protected person status also ceases when the GC ceases to apply.
In the territory of parties to the conflict, the application of the GC shall cease on the
general close of military operations. 49 In most cases, the general close of military operations will
be the final end of all fighting between all those concerned. 50
protected persons under GC if the State that represents them has not formally accepted the Conventions
burdens.).
45
GC art. 4 (Nationals of a neutral State who find themselves in the territory of a belligerent State, and nationals of
a co-belligerent State, shall not be regarded as protected persons while the State of which they are nationals has
normal diplomatic representation in the State in whose hands they are.).
46
See II-A FINAL RECORD OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 814 (At the first reading several
Delegates argued that the Convention should merely regulate the relations between a belligerent State and the
nationals of an enemy State, and that it should not include relations between the State and nationals of a neutral
country. Other delegates, however, argued that stateless persons should be borne in mind and that, moreover, there
might be, in the territory of a belligerent State, nationals of foreign States who did not benefit by any diplomatic
representation either because their home country had broken off diplomatic relations with the country where they
were or because they had themselves broken away from their country of origin. Our Committee gave the most
careful consideration to this problem and the majority recognized the weight of the reasons put forward by States
sheltering a large number of aliens: the superposition of normal diplomatic representation and of the protection
ensured by the Convention, would lead to complications and would be indefensible from the point of view of
consistency of procedure.).
47
Refer to 15.6.4.1 (Protected Person Status of Neutral Persons in Occupied Territory).
48
GC art. 6 (The present Convention shall apply from the outset of any conflict or occupation mentioned in Article
2.).
49
GC art. 6 (In the territory of Parties to the conflict, the application of the present Convention shall cease on the
general close of military operations.).
50
GC COMMENTARY 62 (What should be understood by the words general close of military operations? In the
opinion of the Rapporteur of Committee III, the general close of military operations was when the last shot has
been fired. There are, however, a certain number of other factors to be taken into account. When the struggle takes
place between two States the date of the close of hostilities is fairly easy to decide: it will depend either on an
armistice, a capitulation or simply on debellatio. On the other hand, when there are several States on one or both of
652
In the case of occupied territory, the application of the GC shall cease one year after the
general close of military operations; however, the Occupying Power shall be bound, for the
duration of the occupation, to the extent that such Power exercises the functions of government
in such territory, by the provisions of the following Articles of the GC: 1 through 12, 27, 29
through 34, 47, 49, 51, 52, 53, 59, 61 through 77, and 143. 51
Protected persons whose release, repatriation, or re-establishment may take place after
such dates shall meanwhile continue to benefit from the protection of the GC. 52 Re-
establishment refers to protected persons who cannot be repatriated because, for example, they
would be liable to persecution in their own country or because their homes have been
destroyed. 53
10.3.5 State Responsibility for Its Agents Treatment of Protected Persons. A party to the
conflict is responsible for the treatment accorded to protected persons by its agents, irrespective
of any individual responsibility that may be incurred. 54
the sides, the question is harder to settle. It must be agreed that in most cases the general close of military
operations will be the final end of all fighting between all those concerned.).
51
Refer to 11.3.2 (Duration of GC Obligations in the Case of Occupied Territory).
52
GC art. 6 (Protected persons whose release, repatriation or re-establishment may take place after such dates shall
meanwhile continue to benefit by the present Convention.).
53
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 249b (Reestablishment of Protected Persons. The word
reestablishment, as used in a, refers to protected persons who cannot be repatriated because, for example, they
would be liable to persecution in their own country, or because their homes have been destroyed.). See also GC
COMMENTARY 64 (The time when the Convention as a whole ceases to apply, both in the territory of the Parties to
the conflict and in occupied territory, may quite conceivably come before the protected persons have been able to
resume a normal existence, especially if they have to be repatriated or assisted to resettle. The word
resettlement is used in regard to protected persons who cannot be repatriated for one reason or another and are not
allowed to settle permanently in the country where they are living. In such cases another country must be found
where they will be received and allowed to settle. It was in particular the experience gained at the end of the Second
World War which led to the adoption of this clause.).
54
GC art. 29 (The Party to the conflict in whose hands protected persons may be, is responsible for the treatment
accorded to them by its agents, irrespective of any individual responsibility which may be incurred.). Refer to
18.9.1 (State Responsibility for Violations of the Law of War by Its Armed Forces).
55
GC art. 8 (Protected persons may in no circumstances renounce in part or in entirety the rights secured to them
by the present Convention, and by the special agreements referred to in the foregoing Article, if such there be.).
Refer to 10.1.1.2 (Special Agreements Under the GC).
56
Refer to 7.2.2 (Non-Renunciation of Rights Secured by the GWS or GWS-Sea); 9.3.7 (Non-Renunciation of
Rights Secured by the GPW).
653
10.4 DEROGATION FOR SECURITY REASONS
Certain rights and privileges of the GC that protected persons receive are subject to
derogation for security reasons.
10.4.1 Derogation in Home Territory. Where, in the territory of a party to the conflict,
the latter is satisfied that an individual protected person is definitely suspected of or engaged in
activities hostile to the security of the State, such individual person shall not be entitled to claim
such rights and privileges under the GC as would, if exercised in the favor of such individual
person, be prejudicial to the security of such State. 57
The derogation provisions relating to the home territory of a belligerent are not applicable
in occupied territory, even though the occupied territory may arguably be characterized as the
home territory of the opposing belligerent (i.e., the country being occupied).
10.4.3 Derogation in Other Areas. To the extent that the rights and privileges of
protected persons afforded by the GC are applied outside the home territory of a party to the
conflict or outside occupied territory, it would be reasonable for such rights and privileges
similarly to be subject to derogation. Thus, if a party to the conflict is satisfied that an individual
protected person is definitely suspected of or engaged in activities hostile to the security of the
State in other contexts, such individual person similarly could be deemed not entitled to claim
such rights and privileges under the GC as would, if exercised in favor of such individual person,
be prejudicial to the security of such State. 60
57
GC art. 5 (Where, in the territory of a Party to the conflict, the latter is satisfied that an individual protected
person is definitely suspected of or engaged in activities hostile to the security of the State, such individual person
shall not be entitled to claim such rights and privileges under the present Convention as would, if exercised in the
favour of such individual person, be prejudicial to the security of such State.).
58
GC art. 5 (Where in occupied territory an individual protected person is detained as a spy or saboteur, or as a
person under definite suspicion of activity hostile to the security of the Occupying Power, such person, shall, in
those cases where absolute military security so requires, be regarded as having forfeited rights of communication
under the present Convention.).
59
GC COMMENTARY 53 (There may of course be occasions when it is desirable to keep the fact of an arrest secret
in the hope of capturing a whole organization or spy ring.).
60
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 248b (Where, in territories other than those mentioned in a above, a Party
to the conflict is satisfied that an individual protected person is definitely suspected of or engaged in activities
hostile to the security of the State, such individual person is similarly not entitled to claim such rights and privileges
under GC as would, if exercised in favor of such individual person, be prejudicial to the security of such State.).
654
10.4.4 Limits on Derogation. In each case, such persons shall nevertheless be treated
with humanity, and in case of trial, shall not be deprived of the rights of fair and regular trial
prescribed by the GC. 61 No derogation from the provision of humane treatment and the rights of
fair and regular trial is permitted. 62
Such persons shall also be granted the full rights and privileges of a protected person
under the GC at the earliest date consistent with the security of the State or Occupying Power, as
the case may be. 63
10.5 HUMANE TREATMENT AND OTHER BASIC PROTECTIONS FOR PROTECTED PERSONS
Protected persons are entitled, in all circumstances, to respect for their persons, their
honor, their family rights, their religious convictions and practices, and their manners and
customs. They shall at all times be humanely treated, and shall be protected especially against
all acts of violence or threats of violence, and against insults and public curiosity. 64
10.5.1 Protection Against Violence or Threats. Protected persons must at all times be
protected, particularly against acts or threats of violence. For example, the murder of protected
persons is forbidden.
Protected persons should be protected not only against unlawful acts by the agents of the
Detaining Power, but also against violence from other protected persons, such as during
internment or, in the case of protected persons in a belligerents home territory, violence from
members of the civilian population.
655
and medical or scientific experiments not necessitated by the medical treatment of a protected
person, but also to any other measures of brutality whether applied by civilian or military
agents. 66
10.5.1.2 Protection for Women Against Rape or Other Indecent Assault. Women
shall be especially protected against any attack on their honor, in particular against rape,
enforced prostitution, or any form of indecent assault. 67
Although the GC provides special protection for women against these offenses, all
individuals, including children and men, should also be protected against these offenses.
Indecent assault is generally referred to today as sexual assault.
10.5.1.3 Presence May Not Be Used to Render Places Immune From Military
Operations. The presence of a protected person may not be used to render certain points or areas
immune from military operations. 68
10.5.2 Protection Against Insults and Public Curiosity. Internees must at all times be
protected against insults and public curiosity. For example, displaying internees in a humiliating
fashion on television or on the internet would be prohibited. 70 For this reason and others, DoD
policy has prohibited the taking of photographs of detainees except for authorized purposes. 71
66
GC art. 32 (This prohibition applies not only to murder, torture, corporal punishment, mutilation and medical or
scientific experiments not necessitated by the medical treatment of a protected person, but also to any other
measures of brutality whether applied by civilian or military agents.).
67
GC art. 27 (Women shall be especially protected against any attack on their honour, in particular against rape,
enforced prostitution, or any form of indecent assault.).
68
GC art. 28 (The presence of a protected person may not be used to render certain points or areas immune from
military operations.).
69
GC art. 34 (The taking of hostages is prohibited.).
70
Compare 9.5.3 (Protection Against Insults and Public Curiosity).
71
Refer to 8.2.2.3 (DoD Practice of Generally Prohibiting Taking Photographs Without Authorization).
72
GC art. 31 (No physical or moral coercion shall be exercised against protected persons, in particular to obtain
information from them or from third parties.).
73
Refer to 11.20.1.4 (Prohibition Against Forcing Inhabitants to Provide Information About the Opposing Army or
Its Means of Defense).
74
Refer to 10.6.2 (Interrogation of Protected Persons).
656
The GCs prohibition against the use of coercion does not apply to those measures
implicitly or explicitly authorized by the GC (such as the use of force to prevent one internee
from harming another) or other lawful measures that are otherwise consistent with the GC (such
as the use of force to prevent internees from escaping internment). 75
10.5.4 Reprisals Against Protected Persons and Their Property. Reprisals against
protected persons and their property are prohibited. 81
75
GC COMMENTARY 220 (The general nature of the new provision marks an important step forward in
international law. For its exact significance to be appreciated, it should not be considered in isolation but rather in
the light of the other provisions of the Convention. It will then be seen that there is no question of absolute
prohibition, as might be thought at first sight. The prohibition only applies in so far as the other provisions of the
Convention do not implicitly or explicitly authorize a resort to coercion. Thus, Article 31 is subject to the unspoken
reservation that force is permitted whenever it is necessary to use it in the application of measures taken under the
Convention. This power is embodied and expressed particularly in penal legislation and in the control and security
regulations enacted by the belligerents and to which protected persons are subject.).
76
GC art. 33 (No protected person may be punished for an offence he or she has not personally committed.).
77
GC art. 33 (Collective penalties and likewise all measures of intimidation or of terrorism are prohibited.).
Consider AP I art. 51(2) (Acts or threats of violence the primary purpose of which is to spread terror among the
civilian population are prohibited.).
78
Refer to 8.16.2.1 (Individual Penal Responsibility and No Collective Punishment).
79
GC art. 33 (Pillage is prohibited.).
80
Refer to 5.17.4 (Pillage Prohibited).
81
Refer to 18.18.3.2 (Reprisals Prohibited by the 1949 Geneva Conventions).
82
GC art. 27 (Without prejudice to the provisions relating to their state of health, age and sex, all protected persons
shall be treated with the same consideration by the Party to the conflict in whose power they are, without any
adverse distinction based, in particular, on race, religion or political opinion.).
657
Distinctions are permitted, and in some cases required, for humanitarian reasons. 83 For
example, the GC provides for special treatment for children during internment. 84
Distinction based on religion, political opinion, or other similar criteria may also be made
so long as it is not adverse and it is made to advance legitimate interests, such as maintaining
order in a place of internment. 85
10.5.6 Facility for Applying to the Protecting Powers and Assistance Organizations Such
as the ICRC. Protected persons shall have every facility for making application to the Protecting
Powers, the ICRC, the National Red Cross (Red Crescent, Red Lion and Sun) Society of the
country where they may be, as well as to any organization that might assist them. 86
These several organizations shall be granted all facilities for that purpose by the
authorities, within the bounds set by military or security considerations. 87
Apart from the visits of the delegates of the Protecting Powers and of the ICRC, provided
for by Article 143 of the GC, the Detaining or Occupying Powers shall facilitate as much as
possible visits to protected persons by the representatives of other organizations whose object is
to give spiritual aid or material relief to such persons. 88
83
GC COMMENTARY 426 (All discrimination contrary to Article 27 is prohibited. On the other hand implicit
authority is given for the discrimination permitted by that Article for humanitarian reasons, in order to favour classes
of people who are in particular need of help (the infirm, the sick, pregnant women, etc.). All this is an example of
the application of the principle of non-discrimination, as understood in humanitarian law--that is to say the rule
which forbids all differentiation based on race, political opinions, religion or social class, but at the same time
demands that the different degrees of suffering should be alleviated by different degrees of assistance.).
84
Refer to 4.20.4 (Protection for Children in the Context of Internment Under the GC).
85
Compare 9.5.5 (No Adverse Distinction Based on Race, Nationality, Religion, or Political Belief).
86
GC art. 30 (Protected persons shall have every facility for making application to the Protecting Powers, the
International Committee of the Red Cross, the National Red Cross (Red Crescent, Red Lion and Sun) Society of the
country where they may be, as well as to any organization that might assist them.).
87
GC art. 30 (These several organizations shall be granted all facilities for that purpose by the authorities, within
the bounds set by military or security considerations.). See also GC COMMENTARY 218 (The Convention requires
the Parties to the conflict to grant all facilities to the Protecting Powers and relief organizations. That means that it
will not be enough merely to authorize them to carry out their work; their task must be facilitated and promoted. It
is the duty of the authorities to take all necessary steps to allow approved organizations to take rapid and effective
action wherever they are asked to give assistance. Among examples of such measures can be mentioned the
provision of facilities for delegates to move about and carry on correspondence, to have free access to all places
where protected persons are living, transport facilities and facilities for distributing relief, etc. The obligation to
facilitate this work is limited however by military or security considerations, as stated in the reservation at the end of
the paragraph. It is essential, however, that the belligerents, who will be sole judges o [sic] the validity of the
reasons put forward, should show moderation in the use they make of this reservation and only apply it in cases of
real necessity).
88
GC art. 30 (Apart from the visits of the delegates of the Protecting Powers and of the International Committee of
the Red Cross, provided for by Article 143, the Detaining or Occupying Powers shall facilitate as much as possible
visits to protected persons by the representatives of other organizations whose object is to give spiritual aid or
material relief to such persons.).
658
10.6 MEASURES OF CONTROL AND SECURITY
The parties to the conflict may take such measures of control and security in regard to
protected persons as may be necessary as a result of the war. 89 For example, in a belligerents
home territory, measures of control are normally taken with respect to, at the very least, persons
known to be active or reserve members of a hostile army, persons who would be liable to service
in the enemy forces, and persons who it is expected would furnish information or other aid to a
hostile State. 90
These measures may include, for example, requiring protected persons: (1) to register
with and report periodically to the police authorities; (2) to carry identity cards or special papers;
(3) to refrain from carrying weapons; (4) to refrain from changing their place of residence
without permission; (5) to refrain from accessing certain areas; (6) to have an assigned residence;
and (7) to be interned. 91
This section addresses searches, interrogation, and general rules for measures of control
and security applied to protected persons, which must be applied consistent with humane
treatment requirements. 92
10.6.1 General Authority of a Belligerent to Search and Secure Protected Persons and
Their Property. The measures of control and security that a belligerent may take in regard to
protected persons include searching and securing protected persons and their property when
necessary as a result of the war (e.g., for security reasons and intelligence purposes). 93
10.6.1.1 Searches of Protected Persons. The dignity and honor of the protected
person being searched should be protected to the greatest degree possible under the
circumstances. 94 The person conducting the search should avoid doing or saying anything likely
to be regarded as indecent. In some circumstances, it may be appropriate for a witness to
89
GC art. 27 (However, the Parties to the conflict may take such measures of control and security in regard to
protected persons as may be necessary as a result of the war.).
90
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 26 (Measures of control are normally taken with respect to at least
persons known to be active or reserve members of a hostile army, persons who would be liable to service in the
enemy forces, and persons who it is expected would furnish information or other aid to a hostile State.).
91
GC COMMENTARY 207 (The various security measures which States might take are not specified; the Article
merely lays down a general provision. There are a great many measures, ranging from comparatively mild
restrictions such as the duty of registering with and reporting periodically to the police authorities, the carrying of
identity cards or special papers, or a ban on the carrying of arms, to harsher provisions such as a prohibition on any
change in place of residence without permission, prohibition of access to certain areas, restrictions of movement, or
even assigned residence and internment (which, according to Article 41, are the two most severe measures a
belligerent may inflict on protected persons). A great deal is thus left to the discretion of the Parties to the conflict
as regards the choice of means. What is essential is that the measures of constraint they adopt should not affect the
fundamental rights of the persons concerned.).
92
Refer to 10.5 (Humane Treatment and Other Basic Protections for Protected Persons).
93
Compare 9.6 (Security Measures With Respect to POWs).
94
Refer to 10.5 (Humane Treatment and Other Basic Protections for Protected Persons).
659
observe the search so as to protect both the person being searched from abuse and the person
conducting the search from unfounded accusations of abuse.
10.6.1.3 Securing Protected Persons With Handcuffs and Other Security Devices.
When necessary for security reasons, protected persons may be secured temporarily with
handcuffs, flex cuffs, blindfolds, or other security devices. 96
10.6.2 Interrogation of Protected Persons. The law of war does not prohibit interrogation
of protected persons, but specifies conditions and limitations for conducting interrogation.
10.6.2.2 Additional U.S. Law and Policy on Interrogation. U.S. law and policy
impose additional requirements on the interrogation of protected persons. 100
95
GC art. 97 (A woman internee shall not be searched except by a woman.).
96
Compare 9.6.2 (Securing POWs With Handcuffs and Other Security Devices).
97
Refer to 5.17 (Seizure and Destruction of Enemy Property).
98
Refer to 10.5 (Humane Treatment and Other Basic Protections for Protected Persons).
99
Refer to 10.5.3.1 (No Physical or Moral Coercion).
100
Refer to, e.g., 8.4.2 (Additional U.S. Law and Policy on Interrogation).
101
GC art. 41 (Should the Power in whose hands protected persons may be consider the measures of control
mentioned in the present Convention to be inadequate, it may not have recourse to any other measure of control
660
Similarly, if the Occupying Power considers it necessary, for imperative reasons of
security, to take safety measures concerning protected persons, it may, at the most, subject them
to assigned residence or to internment. 102
Similarly, in occupied territory, protected persons made subject to assigned residence and
thus required to leave their homes shall enjoy the full benefit of Article 39 of the GC. 104 For
example, the internment standards in the GC should also be a guide for support to protected
persons and their dependents who are subject to assigned residence in occupied territory.
10.6.5 Refugees Who Do Not Enjoy the Protection of Any Government. In applying the
measures of control mentioned in the GC to protected persons in its home territory, the Detaining
Power shall not treat as enemy aliens exclusively on the basis of their nationality de jure of an
enemy State, refugees who do not, in fact, enjoy the protection of any government. 105 For
example, a refugee who is not actually protected by his or her government should not be
automatically subject to control measures simply on the basis of enemy nationality, but may be
subject to any other recognized control measure if there are additional reasons for such action. 106
more severe than that of assigned residence or internment, in accordance with the provisions of Articles 42 and
43.).
102
GC art. 78 (If the Occupying Power considers it necessary, for imperative reasons of security, to take safety
measures concerning protected persons, it may, at the most, subject them to assigned residence or to internment.).
103
GC art. 41 (In applying the provisions of Article 39, second paragraph, to the cases of persons required to leave
their usual places of residence by virtue of a decision placing them in assigned residence elsewhere, the Detaining
Power shall be guided as closely as possible by the standards of welfare set forth in Part III, Section IV of this
Convention.).
104
GC art. 78 (Protected persons made subject to assigned residence and thus required to leave their homes shall
enjoy the full benefit of Article 39 of the present Convention.).
105
GC art. 44 (In applying the measures of control mentioned in the present Convention, the Detaining Power shall
not treat as enemy aliens exclusively on the basis of their nationality de jure of an enemy State, refugees who do not,
in fact, enjoy the protection of any government.).
106
See 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 283b (The purpose of the foregoing article [37 of the GC] is to insure
that refugees who may only technically remain enemy aliens are not on that basis automatically subject to control
measures, notwithstanding the fact they actually are not protected by their government. However, the quoted
provision does not in any way deny the right of a State to intern any such person or subject him to any other
recognized measure of control when there is any additional reason that renders necessary the taking of such action as
may be required for the security of the State in a moment of national crisis.).
661
10.7 GENERAL TREATMENT OF PROTECTED PERSONS IN A BELLIGERENTS HOME TERRITORY
They shall be enabled to receive the individual or collective relief that may be sent to
them (e.g., by their home country or national or international relief organizations, such as
the ICRC).
They shall, if their state of health so requires, receive medical attention and hospital
treatment to the same extent as the nationals of the State concerned.
They shall be allowed to practice their religion and to receive spiritual assistance from
ministers of their faith.
If they reside in an area particularly exposed to the dangers of war, they shall be
authorized to move from that area to the same extent as the nationals of the State
concerned.
Children under fifteen years, pregnant women, and mothers of children under seven years
shall benefit from any preferential treatment to the same extent as the nationals of the
State concerned. 108
10.7.2 Opportunity for Employment and Other Support. Protected persons who, as a
result of the war, have lost their gainful employment, shall be granted the opportunity to find
paid employment. 109 That opportunity shall, subject to security considerations and to the
107
GC art. 38 (With the exception of special measures authorized by the present Convention, in particular by
Articles 27 and 41 thereof, the situation of protected persons shall continue to be regulated, in principle, by the
provisions concerning aliens in time of peace.).
108
GC art. 38 (In any case, the following rights shall be granted to them: (1) They shall be enabled to receive the
individual or collective relief that may be sent to them. (2) They shall, if their state of health so requires, receive
medical attention and hospital treatment to the same extent as the nationals of the State concerned. (3) They shall be
allowed to practise their religion and to receive spiritual assistance from ministers of their faith. (4) If they reside in
an area particularly exposed to the dangers of war, they shall be authorized to move from that area to the same
extent as the nationals of the State concerned. (5) Children under fifteen years, pregnant women and mothers of
children under seven years shall benefit by any preferential treatment to the same extent as the nationals of the State
concerned.).
109
GC art. 39 (Protected persons who, as a result of the war, have lost their gainful employment, shall be granted
the opportunity to find paid employment.).
662
provisions of Article 40, be equal to that enjoyed by the nationals of the Power in whose territory
they are. 110
10.7.2.1 Support When Measures of Control Are Applied. Where a party to the
conflict applies to a protected person methods of control that result in that person being unable to
support himself or herself, and especially if such a person is prevented for reasons of security
from finding paid employment on reasonable conditions, that party shall ensure his or her
support and that of his or her dependents. 111
If protected persons are of enemy nationality, they may only be compelled to do work
that is normally necessary to ensure the feeding, sheltering, clothing, transport, and health of
human beings and that is not directly related to the conduct of military operations. 114
In the cases mentioned in the two preceding paragraphs, protected persons compelled to
work shall have the benefit of the same working conditions and of the same safeguards as
national workers, in particular as regards wages, hours of labor, clothing and equipment,
previous training, and compensation for occupational accidents and diseases. 115
110
GC art. 39 (That opportunity shall, subject to security considerations and to the provisions of Article 40, be
equal to that enjoyed by the nationals of the Power in whose territory they are.).
111
GC art. 39 (Where a Party to the conflict applies to a protected person methods of control which result in his
being unable to support himself, and especially if such a person is prevented for reasons of security from finding
paid employment on reasonable conditions, the said Party shall ensure his support and that of his dependents.).
112
GC art. 39 (Protected persons may in any case receive allowances from their home country, the Protecting
Power, or the relief societies referred to in Article 30.).
113
GC art. 40 (Protected persons may be compelled to work only to the same extent as nationals of the Party to the
conflict in whose territory they are.).
114
GC art. 40 (If protected persons are of enemy nationality, they may only be compelled to do work which is
normally necessary to ensure the feeding, sheltering, clothing, transport and health of human beings and which is not
directly related to the conduct of military operations.).
115
GC art. 40 (In the cases mentioned in the two preceding paragraphs, protected persons compelled to work shall
have the benefit of the same working conditions and of the same safeguards as national workers, in particular as
regards wages, hours of labour, clothing and equipment, previous training and compensation for occupational
accidents and diseases.).
663
If the above provisions are infringed, protected persons shall be allowed to exercise their
right of complaint in accordance with Article 30 of the GC. 116
10.7.4 Cancellation of Restrictive Measures After Hostilities. In so far as they have not
been previously withdrawn, restrictive measures taken regarding protected persons shall be
cancelled as soon as possible after the close of hostilities.117 Restrictive measures affecting their
property shall be cancelled, in accordance with the law of the Detaining Power, as soon as
possible after the close of hostilities.118
10.8 EXPULSION FROM AREAS WITHIN A BELLIGERENTS HOME TERRITORY AND DEPARTURE AND
TRANSFERS OF PROTECTED PERSONS FROM A BELLIGERENTS HOME TERRITORY
10.8.1 Expulsion From Areas Within a Belligerents Home Territory. At the outbreak of
hostilities, a State may expel or bar the citizens or subjects of the enemy State from its seaports,
the area surrounding airbases, airports, and fortified places, areas of possible attack, and the
actual or contemplated theaters of operation.
When such expulsion is decreed, the persons expelled should be given such reasonable
notice, consistent with public safety, as will enable them to arrange for the collection, disposal,
and removal of their goods and property, and for the settlement of their personal affairs. 119
Although such expulsion must be implemented in a humane manner, the provisions of the
GC addressing a States internment or assigned residence of civilians of an enemy State in its
home territory (Articles 41-45), including the transfer of internees to other countries, do not
apply to such expulsion.120
116
GC art. 40 (If the above provisions are infringed, protected persons shall be allowed to exercise their right of
complaint in accordance with Article 30.). Refer to 10.5.6 (Facility for Applying to the Protecting Powers and
Assistance Organizations Such as the ICRC).
117
GC art. 46 (In so far as they have not been previously withdrawn, restrictive measures taken regarding protected
persons shall be cancelled as soon as possible after the close of hostilities.).
118
GC art. 46 (Restrictive measures affecting their property shall be cancelled, in accordance with the law of the
Detaining Power, as soon as possible after the close of hostilities.).
119
See 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 27 (In modern practice at the outbreak of hostilities the expulsion of
the citizens or subjects of the enemy is generally decreed from seaports, the area surrounding airbases, airports, and
fortified places, areas of possible attack, and the actual or contemplated theaters of operation. When expulsion is
decreed, the persons expelled should be given such reasonable notice, consistent with public safety, as will enable
them to arrange for the collection, disposal, and removal of their goods and property and for the settlement of their
personal affairs. Such persons do not, however, benefit from the provisions of Articles 41 through 45, GC (pars.
280-284).).
120
See II-A FINAL RECORD OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 826 (The internment procedure
laid down in Article 40 is similar to that provided for in Article 32 with regard to the authorization to leave the
territory. Article 40 also empowers a court or administrative board, to be selected by the Detaining Power, to take
decisions in cases of appeal against internment or assigned residence. The term assigned residence obviously
denotes a measure applicable to one person or one family, not the prohibition to enter or reside in a specified zone
imposed upon an anonymous body of people such as all the nationals of a certain State.).
664
10.8.2 Departures of Protected Persons From a Belligerents Home Territory. All
protected persons who may desire to leave the territory at the outset of or during a conflict shall
be entitled to do so, unless their departure is contrary to the national interests of the State. 121 The
applications of such persons to leave shall be decided in accordance with regularly established
procedures, and the decision shall be taken as rapidly as possible. 122 Those persons permitted to
leave may provide themselves with the necessary funds for their journey and take with them a
reasonable amount of their effects and articles of personal use. 123
If any such person is refused permission to leave the territory, he or she shall be entitled
to have such refusal reconsidered as soon as possible by an appropriate court or administrative
board designated by the Detaining Power for that purpose. 124
Upon request, representatives of the Protecting Power shall, unless reasons of security
prevent it, or the persons concerned object, be furnished with the reasons for refusal of any
request for permission to leave the territory and be given, as expeditiously as possible, the names
of all persons who have been denied permission to leave. 125
121
GC art. 35 (All protected persons who may desire to leave the territory at the outset of, or during a conflict, shall
be entitled to do so, unless their departure is contrary to the national interests of the State.).
122
GC art. 35 (The applications of such persons to leave shall be decided in accordance with regularly established
procedures and the decision shall be taken as rapidly as possible.).
123
GC art. 35 (Those persons permitted to leave may provide themselves with the necessary funds for their journey
and take with them a reasonable amount of their effects and articles of personal use.).
124
GC art. 35 (If any such person is refused permission to leave the territory, he shall be entitled to have such
refusal reconsidered as soon as possible by an appropriate court or administrative board designated by the Detaining
Power for that purpose.).
125
GC art. 35 (Upon request, representatives of the Protecting Power shall, unless reasons of security prevent it, or
the persons concerned object, be furnished with the reasons for refusal of any request for permission to leave the
territory and be given, as expeditiously as possible, the names of all persons who have been denied permission to
leave.).
126
GC art. 36 (Departures permitted under the foregoing Article shall be carried out in satisfactory conditions as
regards safety, hygiene, sanitation and food.).
127
GC art. 36 (All costs in connection therewith, from the point of exit in the territory of the Detaining Power, shall
be borne by the country of destination, or, in the case of accommodation in a neutral country, by the Power whose
nationals are benefited.).
128
GC art. 36 (The practical details of such movements may, if necessary, be settled by special agreements between
the Powers concerned.).
665
The foregoing shall not prejudice such special agreements as may be concluded between
parties to the conflict concerning the exchange and repatriation of their nationals in enemy
hands. 129
Protected persons who are confined pending proceedings or serving a sentence involving
loss of liberty shall be treated humanely during their confinement. 130 As soon as they are
released, they may ask to leave the territory in conformity with Articles 35 and 36 of the GC. 131
Protected persons may be transferred by the Detaining Power only to a Power that is a
Party to the GC and after the Detaining Power has satisfied itself of the willingness and ability of
such receiving Power to apply the GC. 134
129
GC art. 36 (The foregoing shall not prejudice such special agreements as may be concluded between Parties to
the conflict concerning the exchange and repatriation of their nationals in enemy hands.).
130
GC art. 37 (Protected persons who are confined pending proceedings or serving a sentence involving loss of
liberty, shall during their confinement be humanely treated.).
131
GC art. 37 (As soon as they are released, they may ask to leave the territory in conformity with the foregoing
Articles.).
132
GC art. 45 (Protected persons shall not be transferred to a Power which is not a party to the Convention.).
133
GC art. 45 (This provision shall in no way constitute an obstacle to the repatriation of protected persons, or to
their return to their country of residence after the cessation of hostilities.).
134
GC art. 45 (Protected persons may be transferred by the Detaining Power only to a Power which is a party to the
present Convention and after the Detaining Power has satisfied itself of the willingness and ability of such transferee
Power to apply the present Convention.).
135
GC art. 45 (In no circumstances shall a protected person be transferred to a country where he or she may have
reason to fear persecution for his or her political opinions or religious beliefs.).
136
Refer to 8.14.4.1 (U.S. Policy Prohibiting Transfers in Cases in Which Detainees Would Likely Be Tortured).
137
GC art. 45 (The provisions of this Article do not constitute an obstacle to the extradition, in pursuance of
extradition treaties concluded before the outbreak of hostilities, of protected persons accused of offences against
ordinary criminal law.).
666
10.8.3.2 Responsibility Upon Transfer. If protected persons are transferred under
such circumstances, responsibility for the application of the GC rests on the Power accepting
them, while they are in its custody. 138 Nevertheless, if that Power fails to carry out the
provisions of the GC in any important respect, the Power by which the protected persons were
transferred shall, upon being so notified by the Protecting Power, take effective measures to
correct the situation or shall request the return of the protected persons. 139 Such request must be
complied with. 140
10.9 INTERNMENT
The parties to the conflict shall not intern protected persons, except in accordance with
the provisions of Articles 41, 42, 43, 68, and 78 of the GC. 141
However, the GC recognizes that the internment of protected persons is quite different in
character from that of POWs by requiring the separation of internees from POWs. 143 Protected
persons interned for security reasons, in theory, have not participated in hostilities.144 Thus, their
internment shall cease when the reasons that have necessitated it have ceased, which may occur
before the end of the conflict. 145 In practice, however, internment for security reasons may
involve persons who have participated in hostilities, and such persons continued detention for
the duration of the conflict may be justified in order to prevent their further participation in the
conflict.
138
GC art. 45 (If protected persons are transferred under such circumstances, responsibility for the application of
the present Convention rests on the Power accepting them, while they are in its custody.).
139
GC art. 45 (Nevertheless, if that Power fails to carry out the provisions of the present Convention in any
important respect, the Power by which the protected persons were transferred shall, upon being so notified by the
Protecting Power, take effective measures to correct the situation or shall request the return of the protected
persons.).
140
GC art. 45 (Such request must be complied with.).
141
GC art. 79 (The Parties to the conflict shall not intern protected persons, except in accordance with the
provisions of Articles 41, 42, 43, 68 and 78.).
142
Refer to 9.2 (General Principles Applicable to the Treatment of POWs).
143
Refer to 10.10.1 (Segregation From Other Types of Detainees).
144
GC COMMENTARY 368 (The persons subjected to these measures [of assigned residence or internment in
accordance with Article 78 of the GC] are not, in theory, involved in the struggle. The precautions taken with regard
to them cannot, therefore, be in the nature of a punishment.).
145
Refer to 10.9.5 (Release As Soon As Reasons for Internment No Longer Exist).
667
On the other hand, internees are not members of the armed forces and, thus, in certain
respects, have not earned the special privileges that POWs have earned. 146 For example,
although internees receive allowances, internees do not receive specified advances of pay like
POWs.147 Similarly, internees who have successfully escaped do not benefit from the immunity
from punishment applicable to POWs who have successfully escaped. 148
10.9.2.3 Reconsideration and Periodic Review. Any protected person who has
been interned or placed in assigned residence shall be entitled to have such action reconsidered
as soon as possible by an appropriate court or administrative board designated by the Detaining
Power for that purpose. 151 If the internment or placing in assigned residence is maintained, the
court or administrative board shall periodically, and at least twice yearly, give consideration to
his or her case, with a view to the favorable amendment of the initial decision, if circumstances
permit. 152
146
See, e.g., II-A FINAL RECORD OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 681 (Mr. WERSHOF
(Canada) suggested that the first paragraph should be deleted. He failed to see why the Detaining Power should
make an allowance of any kind to enemy aliens whom it considered dangerous. He was of the opinion that the
analogy between internees and prisoners of war had been carried too far. Prisoners of war had earned a standard of
treatment which had not been earned by internees.).
147
Refer to 10.19.2 (Internee Allowances); 9.18.3 (Advance of Pay).
148
Refer to 10.26 (Internee Escapes); 9.25.1 (No Punishment for Successful Escape).
149
GC art. 42 (The internment or placing in assigned residence of protected persons may be ordered only if the
security of the Detaining Power makes it absolutely necessary.).
150
GC art. 42 (If any person, acting through the representatives of the Protecting Power, voluntarily demands
internment, and if his situation renders this step necessary, he shall be interned by the Power in whose hands he may
be.).
151
GC art. 43 (Any protected person who has been interned or placed in assigned residence shall be entitled to have
such action reconsidered as soon as possible by an appropriate court or administrative board designated by the
Detaining Power for that purpose.).
152
GC art. 43 (If the internment or placing in assigned residence is maintained, the court or administrative board
shall periodically, and at least twice yearly, give consideration to his or her case, with a view to the favourable
amendment of the initial decision, if circumstances permit.).
668
or who have been released from internment or assigned residence. 153 The decisions of the courts
or boards mentioned in the first paragraph of Article 43 of the GC shall also, subject to the same
conditions, be notified as rapidly as possible to the Protecting Power. 154
153
GC art. 43 (Unless the protected persons concerned object, the Detaining Power shall, as rapidly as possible,
give the Protecting Power the names of any protected persons who have been interned or subjected to assigned
residence, or who have been released from internment or assigned residence.).
154
GC art. 43 (The decisions of the courts or boards mentioned in the first paragraph of the present Article shall
also, subject to the same conditions, be notified as rapidly as possible to the Protecting Power.).
155
See II-A FINAL RECORD OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 773 ([T]he Drafting Committee
had felt that in view of the disorder which might prevail in occupied territory, it would not be practicable to lay
down an elaborate procedure for internement, similar to that provided for the territory of a Party to the conflict.
They had felt that it would be wiser to content themselves with making the Occupying Power responsible for
establishing a regular and systematic procedure to suit the circumstances. The Occupying Power would then have
no excuse for making arbitrary decisions regarding internment.).
156
GC art. 78 (If the Occupying Power considers it necessary, for imperative reasons of security, to take safety
measures concerning protected persons, it may, at the most, subject them to assigned residence or to internment.).
157
GC art. 78 (Decisions regarding such assigned residence or internment shall be made according to a regular
procedure to be prescribed by the Occupying Power in accordance with the provisions of the present Convention.).
158
GC art. 78 (This procedure shall include the right of appeal for the parties concerned.).
159
GC art. 78 (Appeals shall be decided with the least possible delay.).
160
GC art. 78 (In the event of the decision being upheld, it shall be subject to periodical review, if possible every
six months, by a competent body set up by the said Power.).
161
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 433b (Competent bodies to review the internment or assigned residence
of protected persons may be created with advisory functions only, leaving the final decision to a high official of the
669
10.9.3.2 Internment for Minor Offenses Directed Against the Occupying Power.
Protected persons who commit an offense that is solely intended to harm the Occupying Power,
but that does not constitute an attempt on the life or limb of members of the occupying forces or
administration, nor a grave collective danger, nor seriously damage the property of the
occupying forces or administration or the installations used by them, shall be liable to internment
or simple imprisonment, provided the duration of such internment or imprisonment is
proportionate to the offense committed. 162 Furthermore, internment or imprisonment shall, for
such offenses, be the only measure adopted for depriving protected persons of liberty. 163 The
courts provided for under Article 66 of the GC may at their discretion convert a sentence of
imprisonment to one of internment for the same period. 164
10.9.4 Maintenance of Internees. Parties to the conflict who intern protected persons
shall be bound to provide free of charge for their maintenance, and to grant them also the
medical attention required by their state of health. 165 No deduction from the allowances,
salaries, or credits due to the internees shall be made for the repayment of these costs. 166 The
Detaining Power shall provide for the support of those dependent on the internees, if such
dependents are without adequate means of support or are unable to earn a living. 167
10.9.5 Release As Soon As Reasons for Internment No Longer Exist. Each interned
person shall be released by the Detaining Power as soon as the reasons that necessitated his or
her internment no longer exist.168
Government.); SENATE EXECUTIVE REPORT 84-9, Geneva Conventions for the Protection of War Victims: Report
of the Committee on Foreign Relations on Executives D, E, F, and G, 82nd Congress, First Session, 22 (Jun. 27,
1955) (In article 78 it is likewise provided that persons who have been placed in internment or assigned residence
in occupied territory, shall be entitled to review or reconsideration by a competent body. From information
furnished to the committee by the executive branch it appears that the administrative boards and the competent
bodies contemplated by the three articles to reconsider decisions in these cases may be created with advisory
functions only, leaving the final decision to a high official or officer of the government. This understanding of the
provisions appears to be a reasonable one to the committee.).
162
Refer to 11.11.4 (Limitations on Penalties for Certain, Non-Serious Offenses Solely Intended to Harm the
Occupying Power).
163
Refer to 11.11.4.1 (Internment or Imprisonment as the Only Measure Adopted for Depriving Protected Persons
of Liberty for Such Offenses).
164
Refer to 11.11.4.2 (Discretion of Non-Political, Military Courts to Convert Sentences of Imprisonment to
Sentences of Internment).
165
GC art. 81 (Parties to the conflict who intern protected persons shall be bound to provide free of charge for their
maintenance, and to grant them also the medical attention required by their state of health.).
166
GC art. 81 (No deduction from the allowances, salaries or credits due to the internees shall be made for the
repayment of these costs.).
167
GC art. 81 (The Detaining Power shall provide for the support of those dependent on the internees, if such
dependents are without adequate means of support or are unable to earn a living.).
168
GC art. 132 (Each interned person shall be released by the Detaining Power as soon as the reasons which
necessitated his internment no longer exist.).
670
hostilities to conclude agreements for the release, the repatriation, the return to places of
residence, or the accommodation in a neutral country of certain classes of internees, in particular
children, pregnant women, and mothers with infants and young children, wounded and sick, and
internees who have been detained for a long time. 169
10.10.3 Families Kept Together. Throughout the duration of their internment, members
of the same family, and in particular parents and children, shall be lodged together in the same
place of internment, except when separation of a temporary nature is necessitated for reasons of
employment or health or for the purposes of enforcement of the provisions of Chapter IX (Penal
169
GC art. 132 (The Parties to the conflict shall, moreover, endeavour during the course of hostilities, to conclude
agreements for the release, the repatriation, the return to places of residence or the accommodation in a neutral
country of certain classes of internees, in particular children, pregnant women and mothers with infants and young
children, wounded and sick, and internees who have been detained for a long time.).
170
GC art. 84 (Internees shall be accommodated and administered separately from prisoners of war and from
persons deprived of liberty for any other reason.).
171
GC COMMENTARY 384 (This provision shows once more that the detention of internees is quite different in
character from that of prisoners of war or common criminals. Internment is simply a precautionary measure and
should not be confused with the penalty of imprisonment.).
172
GC art. 82 (The Detaining Power shall, as far as possible, accommodate the internees according to their
nationality, language and customs.).
173
GC COMMENTARY 380 (This paragraph corresponds to paragraph 3 of Article 22 of the Convention relative to
the Treatment of Prisoners of War. It states, but in less mandatory form, the principIe that internees should be
grouped, adding the words as far as possible which do not occur in the Prisoners of War Convention. Indeed,
prisoners of war generally fall into groups of the same nationality as a natural consequence of being captured
together and grouping can be organized to a certain extent automatically. The grouping of civilians, on the other
hand, who are taken into custody separately and sometimes coming from places distant from one another, presents
some difficulties. It is better in certain cases to leave the internees near their families rather than to send them to a
distance, in order to reunite them with persons of the same language and nationality. It is for this reason that Article
82 of the Fourth Convention is not mandatory.). Refer to 9.12.1 (Assembling According to Nationality,
Language, and Customs).
174
GC art. 82 (Internees who are nationals of the same country shall not be separated merely because they have
different languages.).
671
and Disciplinary Sanctions) of Section IV of the GC. 175 Keeping families together during
internment is intended to improve the morale and welfare of internees. 176
Internees may request that their children who are left at liberty without parental care shall
be interned with them. 177 For example, two parents who are interned together may request that
their children be interned with them, but one of the parents would not be able to request the
internment of a child being cared for by a parent who was not being interned. 178
Wherever possible, interned members of the same family shall be housed in the same
premises and given separate accommodation from other internees, together with facilities for
leading a proper family life. 179
175
GC art. 82 (Throughout the duration of their internment, members of the same family, and in particular parents
and children, shall be lodged together in the same place of internment, except when separation of a temporary nature
is necessitated for reasons of employment or health or for the purposes of enforcement of the provisions of Chapter
IX of the present Section.).
176
See GC COMMENTARY 380-81 (The experience of the Second World War showed that internment was far less
difficult to bear whenever internees could be grouped together in families. In India, Rhodesia, Kenya, Uganda,
Tanganyika, Eritrea and France (at Vittel), such groups were successfully organized and the morale of the internees
was better in those places than in other places of internment. Children benefited from the presence of their parents
and were able to attend the school set up inside the camp. It is to the results of this experience which paragraphs 2
and 3 try to give permanent form in accordance with the recommendations of the experts.).
177
GC art. 82 (Internees may request that their children who are left at liberty without parental care shall be
interned with them.).
178
GC COMMENTARY 381 (The report of the Third Committee indicates that the addition of the words without
parental care is intended to show that if only one of the parents is interned, he or she would not have the right,
under the Convention, to demand the internment of a child being cared for by the other parent. On the other hand,
the father and mother would have the right to demand such internment if they were interned together.).
179
GC art. 82 (Wherever possible, interned members of the same family shall be housed in the same premises and
given separate accommodation from other internees, together with facilities for leading a proper family life.).
180
GC art. 83 (The Detaining Power shall not set up places of internment in areas particularly exposed to the
dangers of war.).
181
GC art. 83 (The Detaining Power shall give the enemy Powers, through the intermediary of the Protecting
Powers, all useful information regarding the geographical location of places of internment.).
672
in the daytime from the air. 182 The Powers concerned may, however, agree upon any other
system of marking. 183 No place, other than an internment camp, shall be marked as such. 184
The caveat that internment camps need to be marked, as such, only when military
considerations permit was intended to allow for camps not to be marked, e.g., if such
identification would enable an Enemy Power to instigate a revolt in the camp, provide weapons
to the internees, enable escape attempts, etc. 185
10.11.1.4 Air-Raid Shelters and Protective Measures for Internees. In all places
of internment exposed to air raids and other hazards of war, shelters adequate in number and
structure to ensure the necessary protection shall be installed. 186 In case of alarms, the internees
shall be free to enter such shelters as quickly as possible, excepting those who remain for the
protection of their quarters against these hazards. 187 Any protective measures taken in favor of
the population shall also apply to the internees. 188
182
GC art. 83 (Whenever military considerations permit, internment camps shall be indicated by the letters IC,
placed so as to be clearly visible in the daytime from the air.).
183
GC art. 83 (The Powers concerned may, however, agree upon any other system of marking.).
184
GC art. 83 (No place other than an internment camp shall be marked as such.).
185
GC COMMENTARY 383 (At the very beginning of hostilities during the Second World War, the International
Committee of the Red Cross appealed to belligerents to mark their prisoner-of-war camps to protect them against
bombing. Fearing that this would provide landmarks for the enemy air force, the Powers rejected the appeal.
However, prisoners adopted the habit of displaying markings during the day consisting of large panels bearing the
letters PG or PW. This method was approved by the Diplomatic Conference. It is, however, subject to an important
reservation drafted in the same way in the case of prisoners of war and of civilian internees: whenever military
considerations permit. This means that in the case of civilian internment camps, the daytime marking by means of
the letters IC could be discontinued if the Detaining Power feared, for example, a parachute drop of arms to help the
internees to revolt.).
186
GC art. 88 (In all places of internment exposed to air raids and other hazards of war, shelters adequate in
number and structure to ensure the necessary protection shall be installed.).
187
GC art. 88 (In case of alarms, the internees shall be free to enter such shelters as quickly as possible, excepting
those who remain for the protection of their quarters against the aforesaid hazards.).
188
GC art. 88 (Any protective measures taken in favour of the population shall also apply to them.).
189
GC art. 88 (All due precautions must be taken in places of internment against the danger of fire.).
190
GC art. 85 (In no case shall permanent places of internment be situated in unhealthy areas, or in districts the
climate of which is injurious to the internees.).
673
in an unhealthy area, or has a climate that is harmful to his or her health, he or she shall be
removed to a more suitable place of internment as rapidly as circumstances permit. 191
Showers or baths shall also be available. 197 The necessary time shall be set aside for
washing and for cleaning. 198 Although the frequency of baths or showers is not specified in the
GC, a reasonable opportunity (e.g., considering the available resources, the internees cultural
practices, the activities in which they are engaged) should be afforded. 199
10.11.3 Conditions of Buildings and Quarters. The Detaining Power is bound to take all
necessary and possible measures to ensure that protected persons shall, from the outset of their
internment, be accommodated in buildings or quarters that afford every possible safeguard in
191
GC art. 85 (In all cases where the district, in which a protected person is temporarily interned, is in an unhealthy
area or has a climate which is harmful to his health, he shall be removed to a more suitable place of internment as
rapidly as circumstances permit.).
192
GC art. 85 (Internees shall have for their use, day and night, sanitary conveniences which conform to the rules
of hygiene and are constantly maintained in a state of cleanliness.).
193
GC COMMENTARY 387 (The term sanitary conveniences should be taken to mean primarily the latrines, in
conformity with the similar provision contained in paragraph 2 of Article 29 of the Third Convention. These
conveniences should be so constructed as to preserve decency and cleanliness and must be sufficiently numerous.
They should be inspected periodically by the health authorities.).
194
See GC COMMENTARY 387 (During the Second World War prisoners of war were sometimes forbidden to leave
their quarters during the night. The Convention relative to the Protection of Civilian Persons in Time of War, like
the Prisoners of War Convention, stipulates that internees should have sanitary conveniences for their use day and
night.). Refer to 9.11.5.2 (Sanitary Conveniences (e.g., latrines, bathrooms)).
195
Refer to 10.11.3.1 (Separate Sleeping Quarters and Latrines for Women).
196
GC art. 85 (They shall be provided with sufficient water and soap for their daily personal toilet and for washing
their personal laundry; installations and facilities necessary for this purpose shall be granted to them.).
197
GC art. 85 (Showers or baths shall also be available.).
198
GC art. 85 (The necessary time shall be set aside for washing and for cleaning.).
199
GC COMMENTARY 387 (The Government Experts had wished to lay down definitely the frequency with which
baths could be taken. This idea was not accepted, but one bath or shower per week can be considered reasonable.).
674
regard to hygiene and health, and provide efficient protection against the rigors of the climate
and the effects of the war. 200
The premises shall be fully protected from dampness and adequately heated and lighted,
in particular between dusk and lights out. 201 The sleeping quarters shall be sufficiently spacious
and well ventilated, and the internees shall have suitable bedding and sufficient blankets, with
account being taken of the climate and of the age, sex, and state of health of the internees. 202
Canteens shall be installed in every place of internment, except where other suitable
facilities are available. 204 As with canteens for POWs, the purpose of the canteen is to increase
the morale and comfort of the internees. 205
10.12.1 Establishment of the Canteen. Although canteens for POWs are required,
canteens for civilian internees are not required if other suitable facilities, such as local shops, are
available. 206
If other suitable facilities are not available, and before canteens can be established, the
need for a canteen may be mitigated if internees are provided a free comfort pack. 207
200
GC art. 85 (The Detaining Power is bound to take all necessary and possible measures to ensure that protected
persons shall, from the outset of their internment, be accommodated in buildings or quarters which afford every
possible safeguard as regards hygiene and health, and provide efficient protection against the rigours of the climate
and the effects of the war.).
201
GC art. 85 (The premises shall be fully protected from dampness, adequately heated and lighted, in particular
between dusk and lights out.).
202
GC art. 85 (The sleeping quarters shall be sufficiently spacious and well ventilated, and the internees shall have
suitable bedding and sufficient blankets, account being taken of the climate, and the age, sex, and state of health of
the internees.).
203
GC art. 85 (Whenever it is necessary, as an exceptional and temporary measure, to accommodate women
internees who are not members of a family unit in the same place of internment as men, the provision of separate
sleeping quarters and sanitary conveniences for the use of such women internees shall be obligatory.).
204
GC art. 87 (Canteens shall be installed in every place of internment, except where other suitable facilities are
available.).
205
Refer to 9.17 (Canteens for POWs).
206
GC COMMENTARY 389 (Whereas the establishment of canteens for prisoners of war is obligatory (Third
Convention, Article 28, paragraph I), civilian internees will only be provided with canteens where other suitable
facilities are not available. Indeed, there could be no question of establishing canteens if, for example, the internees
were permitted to go to local shops to make purchases.).
207
Compare 9.17.1.1 (Comfort Pack Instead of Canteen and Advance of Pay).
675
10.12.2 Canteen Stock and Prices. The purpose of the canteens shall be to enable
internees to make purchases, at prices not higher than local market prices, of foodstuffs and
articles of everyday use, including soap and tobacco, such as would increase their personal well-
being and comfort. 208
Internees are not entitled to more favorable treatment than the population at large with
respect to canteen facilities, and are equally subject to regulations, such as those pertaining to
rationing, which are applied to the population generally. 209
10.12.3 Canteen Management and Profits. Canteen profits shall be credited to a welfare
fund to be set up for each place of internment, and administered for the benefit of the internees
attached to such place of internment. 210 The Internee Committee shall have the right to check
the management of the canteen and of the fund. 211
When a place of internment is closed down, the balance of the welfare fund shall be
transferred to the welfare fund of a place of internment for internees of the same nationality, or,
if such a place does not exist, to a central welfare fund that shall be administered for the benefit
of all internees remaining in the custody of the Detaining Power. 212 In case of a general release,
the profits shall be kept by the Detaining Power, subject to any agreement to the contrary
between the Powers concerned. 213
208
GC art. 87 (Their purpose shall be to enable internees to make purchases, at prices not higher than local market
prices, of foodstuffs and articles of everyday use, including soap and tobacco, such as would increase their personal
well-being and comfort.).
209
See II-A FINAL RECORD OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 837 (The general view was,
however, that Article 76 was simply a morale-sustaining Article, and that the internee was simply to be given the
chance of purchasing, for example, a particular kind of soap, of his own choice, in substitution for a corresponding
amount of the kind which the Detaining Power would normally provide under Article 75. It would be unreasonable
in any case to contend that the provision of canteens was intended to put the internee in a superior position to the
population at large.).
210
GC art. 87 (Profits made by canteens shall be credited to a welfare fund to be set up for each place of
internment, and administered for the benefit of the internees attached to such place of internment.).
211
GC art. 87 (The Internee Committee provided for in Article 102 shall have the right to check the management of
the canteen and of the said fund.).
212
GC art. 87 (When a place of internment is closed down, the balance of the welfare fund shall be transferred to
the welfare fund of a place of internment for internees of the same nationality, or, if such a place does not exist, to a
central welfare fund which shall be administered for the benefit of all internees remaining in the custody of the
Detaining Power.).
213
GC art. 87 (In case of a general release, the said profits shall be kept by the Detaining Power, subject to any
agreement to the contrary between the Powers concerned.).
676
10.13 FOOD, WATER, TOBACCO, AND CLOTHING FOR INTERNEES
10.13.1 Food for Internees. Daily food rations for internees shall be sufficient in
quantity, quality, and variety to keep internees in a good state of health and prevent the
development of nutritional deficiencies. 214
10.13.1.1 Accounting for the Customary Diet. Account shall also be taken of the
customary diet of the internees. 215 For example, the internees cultural and religious
requirements should be considered in determining and ensuring the appropriate diet.
10.13.1.2 Additional Food for Certain Groups. Internees who work shall receive
additional rations in proportion to the kind of labor that they perform. 216 Expectant and nursing
mothers, and children under fifteen years of age, shall be given additional food, in proportion to
their physiological needs. 217
10.13.1.4 Means for Preparing Additional Food. Internees shall be given the
means by which they can prepare for themselves any additional food in their possession. 219
10.13.2 Drinking Water. Sufficient drinking water shall be supplied to internees. 220
10.13.3 Use of Tobacco. The use of tobacco shall be permitted. 221 The Detaining Power
is not required to give tobacco to internees, but should offer it for sale at the canteen, if one is
established. 222 The Detaining Power may impose reasonable restrictions on smoking to ensure
that the camp is a healthful and safe environment.
10.13.4 Clothing of Internees. When taken into custody, internees shall be given all
facilities to provide themselves with the necessary clothing, footwear, and change of underwear,
214
GC art. 89 (Daily food rations for internees shall be sufficient in quantity, quality and variety to keep internees
in a good state of health and prevent the development of nutritional deficiencies.).
215
GC art. 89 (Account shall also be taken of the customary diet of the internees.).
216
GC art. 89 (Internees who work shall receive additional rations in proportion to the kind of labour which they
perform.).
217
GC art. 89 (Expectant and nursing mothers, and children under fifteen years of age, shall be given additional
food, in proportion to their physiological needs.).
218
Refer to 10.20.3.2 (Prohibition Against Prolonged Standing, Roll-Calls, Punishment Drill, Military Drill and
Manuevers, or the Reduction of Food Rations).
219
GC art. 89 (Internees shall also be given the means by which they can prepare for themselves any additional
food in their possession.).
220
GC art. 89 (Sufficient drinking water shall be supplied to internees.).
221
GC art. 89 (The use of tobacco shall be permitted.).
222
Refer to 10.12.2 (Canteen Stock and Prices).
677
and, later on, to procure further supplies, if required. 223 Should any internees not have sufficient
clothing, account being taken of the climate, and be unable to procure any, it shall be provided
free of charge to them by the Detaining Power. 224
10.13.4.2 Clothing for Work. Workers shall receive suitable working outfits,
including protective clothing, whenever the nature of their work so requires. 227
Parties to the conflict who intern protected persons shall be bound to grant them the
medical attention required by their state of health. 228
223
GC art. 90 (When taken into custody, internees shall be given all facilities to provide themselves with the
necessary clothing, footwear and change of underwear, and later on, to procure further supplies if required.).
224
GC art. 90 (Should any internees not have sufficient clothing, account being taken of the climate, and be unable
to procure any, it shall be provided free of charge to them by the Detaining Power.).
225
GC art. 90 (The clothing supplied by the Detaining Power to internees and the outward markings placed on their
own clothes shall not be ignominious nor expose them to ridicule.).
226
See GC COMMENTARY 397 (These provisos are connected with Articie 27 of the Convention stating that
protected persons are entitled, in all circumstances, to respect for their persons and their honour. It is essential to
prevent internees from being forced to wear convicts uniforms or other uniforms of a similar nature, as was the case
in certain concentration camps of hateful memory. The plenipotentiaries were unanimous in 1949 in disapproving
of such practices and although paragraph 1 had already, as it were, implied that disapproval, they felt that they
should reaffirm it explicitly at this point. It must, indeed, always be remembered that internment is not a
punishment and cannot in any way besmirch anyone's honour.).
227
GC art. 90 (Workers shall receive suitable working outfits, including protective clothing, whenever the nature of
their work so requires.).
228
GC art. 81 (Parties to the conflict who intern protected persons shall be bound to provide free of charge for their
maintenance, and to grant them also the medical attention required by their state of health.).
229
GC art. 91 (Every place of internment shall have an adequate infirmary, under the direction of a qualified
doctor, where internees may have the attention they require, as well as an appropriate diet.).
230
GC art. 91 (Isolation wards shall be set aside for cases of contagious or mental diseases.).
678
10.14.1.2 Right of Internees to Present Themselves for Examination. Internees
may not be prevented from presenting themselves to the medical authorities for examination. 231
The GC appears to contemplate that the internees would have daily sick call in which they could
present themselves for medical examination, because it provides for internees who are
undergoing disciplinary punishment to request to attend this inspection. 232 The right of internees
to present themselves for examination does not mean that the internees must necessarily be
examined every day by a doctor, nor does it preclude disciplinary punishment if internees
abusively (on the basis of the doctors report) make groundless requests for medical
examination. 233
10.14.2 Compulsory Medical Treatment. Because internees are subject to the laws in
force in the territory in which they are detained, 237 internees may be ordered to undergo medical
treatment to the extent that other persons in that territory may be so ordered.
231
GC art. 91 (Internees may not be prevented from presenting themselves to the medical authorities for
examination.).
232
GC COMMENTARY 401 (Although the fact is not mentioned in this paragraph [4 of Article 91 of the GC], a daily
medical inspection will take place in places of internment. This follows, as will be seen further on, from Article
125. Internees will thus be able to report sick when they are ill, so as to receive medical attention without delay.).
Refer to 10.28.6.3 (Attendance at Daily Medical Inspection and Medical Attention).
233
GC COMMENTARY 495-96 (It was only logical to consider that the Detaining Power should arrange in every
place of internment for a daily medical inspection and this paragraph [paragraph 2 of Article 125 of the GC] makes
this important point quite clear. This does not mean, however, that internees must necessarily be examined every
day by the doctor. The guards will not be entitled to forbid the internees to present themselves for daily medical
examination; if the request to go on sick parade turns out to be groundless and upsets the maintenance of discipline,
the offence may be considered as calling for disciplinary punishment by the commandant of the place of internment
on the basis of the doctors report.).
234
GC art. 92 (Medical inspections of internees shall be made at least once a month.).
235
GC art. 92 (Their purpose shall be, in particular, to supervise the general state of health, nutrition and
cleanliness of internees, and to detect contagious diseases, especially tuberculosis, malaria, and venereal diseases.).
236
GC art. 92 (Such inspections shall include, in particular, the checking of weight of each internee and, at least
once a year, radioscopic examination.).
237
Refer to 10.27.1 (Applicability of the Laws in Force to Internees).
679
operation, or hospital care, must be admitted to any institution where adequate treatment can be
given and shall receive care not inferior to that provided for the general population. 238
10.14.4 Receipt of Medical Shipments. Internees may receive individual parcels and
collective shipments containing medical supplies. 243 However, medical supplies are generally to
be sent in collective shipments so that they may be properly administered by the camp doctors. 244
10.14.5 Inquiry in Certain Cases of Death or Serious Injury. In certain cases of death or
serious injury of an internee, an official inquiry shall be conducted by the Detaining Power. 245
Internees shall enjoy complete latitude in the exercise of their religious duties, including
attendance at the services of their faith, on condition that they comply with the disciplinary
routine prescribed by the detaining authorities. 246
238
GC art. 91 (Maternity cases and internees suffering from serious diseases, or whose condition requires special
treatment, a surgical operation or hospital care, must be admitted to any institution where adequate treatment can be
given and shall receive care not inferior to that provided for the general population.).
239
GC art. 91 (Internees shall, for preference, have the attention of medical personnel of their own nationality.).
240
GC art. 91 (The medical authorities of the Detaining Power shall, upon request, issue to every internee who has
undergone treatment an official certificate showing the nature of his illness or injury, and the duration and nature of
the treatment given.).
241
GC art. 91 (A duplicate of this certificate shall be forwarded to the Central Agency provided for in Article
140.).
242
GC art. 91 (Treatment, including the provision of any apparatus necessary for the maintenance of internees in
good health, particularly dentures and other artificial appliances and spectacles, shall be free of charge to the
internee.).
243
Refer to 10.23.3 (Receipt of Individual and Collective Relief Shipments for Internees).
244
Refer to 10.23.3.2 (Medical Supplies in Relief Shipments).
245
Refer to 10.34.5 (Inquiries Into Death or Serious Injury of Internees in Certain Cases).
680
10.15.1 Premises for Religious Services for Internees. The Detaining Power shall place
at the disposal of interned persons, of whatever denomination, premises suitable for the holding
of their religious services. 247 The premises where services are held should be sufficiently
spacious and clean, and should provide effective shelter to those attending services, but need not
be set aside exclusively for religious services. 248
10.15.2 Interned Ministers of Religion. Ministers of religion who are interned shall be
allowed to minister freely to the members of their community. 249 For this purpose, the Detaining
Power shall ensure their equitable allocation among the various places of internment in which
there are internees speaking the same language and belonging to the same religion. 250 Should
such ministers be too few in number, the Detaining Power shall provide them with the necessary
facilities, including means of transport, for moving from one place to another, and they shall be
authorized to visit any internees who are hospitalized. 251
246
GC art. 93 (Internees shall enjoy complete latitude in the exercise of their religious duties, including attendance
at the services of their faith, on condition that they comply with the disciplinary routine prescribed by the detaining
authorities.).
247
GC art. 86 (The Detaining Power shall place at the disposal of interned persons, of whatever denomination,
premises suitable for the holding of their religious services.).
248
GC COMMENTARY 388 (It does not seem essential that these premises should be set aside exclusively for
religious services. The parallel text in the Prisoners of War Convention (Article 34, paragraph 2) speaks of
adequate premises. In both cases, it should be understood that the premises where services are held should be
sufficiently spacious and clean and so built as to give effective shelter to those attending the services.).
249
GC art. 93 (Ministers of religion who are interned shall be allowed to minister freely to the members of their
community.).
250
GC art. 93 (For this purpose, the Detaining Power shall ensure their equitable allocation amongst the various
places of internment in which there are internees speaking the same language and belonging to the same religion.).
251
GC art. 93 (Should such ministers be too few in number, the Detaining Power shall provide them with the
necessary facilities, including means of transport, for moving from one place to another, and they shall be authorized
to visit any internees who are in hospital.).
252
GC art. 93 (Ministers of religion shall be at liberty to correspond on matters concerning their ministry with the
religious authorities in the country of detention and, as far as possible, with the international religious organizations
of their faith.).
253
GC art. 93 (Such correspondence shall not be considered as forming a part of the quota mentioned in Article
107.). Refer to 10.23.2.1 (Internee Correspondence Quota).
254
GC art. 93 (It shall, however, be subject to the provisions of Article 112.).
255
Refer to 10.23.6 (Censorship and Security Review of Internee Correspondence and Shipments).
681
10.15.3 Appointment of Other Ministers or Qualified Laypersons. When internees do not
have at their disposal the assistance of ministers of their faith, or should these latter be too few in
number, the local religious authorities of the same faith may appoint, in agreement with the
Detaining Power, a minister of the internees faith or, if such a course is feasible from a
denominational point of view, a minister of a similar religion or a qualified layperson. 256 The
latter shall enjoy the facilities granted to the ministry he or she has assumed. 257 Persons so
appointed shall comply with all regulations laid down by the Detaining Power in the interests of
discipline and security. 258
The Detaining Power shall encourage intellectual, educational, and recreational pursuits,
and sports and games among internees, while leaving them free to take part in them or not. 259 It
shall take all practicable measures to ensure the exercise thereof, in particular by providing
suitable premises for such purposes. 260
10.16.1 Voluntariness of the Activities. The Detaining Power should seek to encourage
the internees in engaging in these activities, while leaving them free to take part or not. For
example, it would be prohibited to compel internees to listen to propaganda, such as by
punishing them or giving them harsher conditions of confinement if they do not participate. On
the other hand, censoring educational or intellectual materials for security reasons or to refrain
from providing internees with anti-democratic political propaganda would be permissible. 261
10.16.2 Education. All possible facilities shall be granted to internees to continue their
studies or to take up new subjects. 262 The education of children and young people shall be
ensured; they shall be allowed to attend schools either within the place of internment or
outside. 263
256
GC art. 93 (When internees do not have at their disposal the assistance of ministers of their faith, or should these
latter be too few in number, the local religious authorities of the same faith may appoint, in agreement with the
Detaining Power, a minister of the internees faith or, if such a course is feasible from a denominational point of
view, a minister of similar religion or a qualified layman.).
257
GC art. 93 (The latter shall enjoy the facilities granted to the ministry he has assumed.).
258
GC art. 93 (Persons so appointed shall comply with all regulations laid down by the Detaining Power in the
interests of discipline and security.).
259
GC art. 94 (The Detaining Power shall encourage intellectual, educational and recreational pursuits, sports and
games amongst internees, whilst leaving them free to take part in them or not.).
260
GC art. 94 (It shall take all practicable measures to ensure the exercise thereof, in particular by providing
suitable premises.).
261
Compare 9.16.1 (Voluntariness of the Activities).
262
GC art. 94 (All possible facilities shall be granted to internees to continue their studies or to take up new
subjects.).
263
GC art. 94 (The education of children and young people shall be ensured; they shall be allowed to attend schools
either within the place of internment or outside.).
682
To advance educational opportunities for internees, the Detaining Power may seek ways
to encourage and assist them in teaching one another. 264
10.16.3 Opportunities for Physical Exercise, Sports, and Outdoor Games. Internees shall
be given opportunities for physical exercise, sports, and outdoor games. 265 For this purpose,
sufficient open spaces shall be set aside in all places of internment. 266 Special playgrounds shall
be reserved for children and young people. 267
10.16.4 Contributions by Sources Apart From the Detaining Power. Apart from the
Detaining Power, internees may receive assistance from a variety of sources that allow them to
engage in intellectual, physical, and recreational activities.
For example, relief organizations, including the ICRC, may contribute to the ensuring
that internees have opportunities for intellectual, physical, and recreational activities. 268 In
addition, internees may receive shipments that are intended to allow them to engage in these
activities. 269 Lastly, the profits from the canteen may be used in this area. 270
The rules described in this section govern the use of internee labor. Additional rules
apply to the use of the labor of protected persons depending on whether they are present in a
belligerents home territory or in occupied territory. 271
10.17.1 General Rules on Internee Labor. The Detaining Power shall not employ
internees as workers, unless the internees so desire. 272
264
Compare 9.16.2 (Education).
265
GC art. 94 (Internees shall be given opportunities for physical exercise, sports and outdoor games.).
266
GC art. 94 (For this purpose, sufficient open spaces shall be set aside in all places of internment.).
267
GC art. 94 (Special playgrounds shall be reserved for children and young people.).
268
Refer to 10.33.2 (Access by Relief Societies and Other Organizations).
269
Refer to 10.23.3 (Receipt of Individual and Collective Relief Shipments for Internees).
270
Refer to 10.12.3 (Canteen Management and Profits).
271
Refer to 10.7.3 (Compulsory Work for Protected Persons in a Belligerents Home Territory); 11.20 (Labor of
Protected Persons in Occupied Territory).
272
GC art. 95 (The Detaining Power shall not employ internees as workers, unless they so desire.).
273
GC art. 95 (Employment which, if undertaken under compulsion by a protected person not in internment, would
involve a breach of Articles 40 or 51 of the present Convention, and employment on work which is of a degrading or
humiliating character are in any case prohibited.).
683
After a working period of six weeks, internees shall be free to give up work at any
moment, subject to eight days notice. 274
10.17.2 Compulsory Work for the Benefit of the Internee Community. The first two
paragraphs of Article 95 of the GC constitute no obstacle to the right of the Detaining Power to
employ interned doctors, dentists, and other medical personnel in their professional capacity on
behalf of their fellow internees, or to employ internees for administrative and maintenance work
in places of internment and to detail such persons for work in the kitchens or for other domestic
tasks, or to require such persons to undertake duties connected with the protection of internees
against aerial bombardment or other war risks. 275 Thus, although internees generally may not be
compelled to work, there is an exception for tasks that benefit the internee community as a
whole. 276
No internee may, however, be required to perform tasks for which he or she is, in the
opinion of a medical officer, physically unsuited. 277
In addition, members of the Internee Committee may not be compelled to do other work,
if the accomplishment of their duties is thereby rendered more difficult. 278
10.17.2.1 Wages and Working Conditions for Internees Permanently Detailed for
Work on Behalf of the Internee Community. Internees permanently detailed for categories of
work mentioned in the third paragraph of Article 95 of the GC shall be paid fair wages by the
Detaining Power. 279 The working conditions and the scale of compensation for occupational
accidents and diseases to internees thus detailed shall not be inferior to those applicable to work
of the same nature in the same district. 280
274
GC art. 95 (After a working period of six weeks, internees shall be free to give up work at any moment, subject
to eight days' notice.).
275
GC art. 95 (These provisions constitute no obstacle to the right of the Detaining Power to employ interned
doctors, dentists and other medical personnel in their professional capacity on behalf of their fellow internees, or to
employ internees for administrative and maintenance work in places of internment and to detail such persons for
work in the kitchens or for other domestic tasks, or to require such persons to undertake duties connected with the
protection of internees against aerial bombardment or other war risks.).
276
GC COMMENTARY 416 (The commentary on Article 91 showed that internees must for preference be treated by
medical personnel of their own nationality, and Article 88 refers to detained persons taking part in the protection of
their quarters. The fact is that nobody could work more zealously on this task than the internees themselves. Such
tasks represent work of human fellowship which they are bound to carry out on behalf of their companions. If they
sought to avoid it they would be failing in an elementary duty and it would be right to force them to do it. A similar
line of argument led to the inclusion of administrative work and domestic tasks (work in the kitchen, cleaning and
camp maintenance) among the duties which internees may be forced to carry out.).
277
GC art. 95 (No internee may, however, be required to perform tasks for which he is, in the opinion of a medical
officer, physically unsuited.).
278
Refer to 10.22.3.1 (Limitations on Other Work Assignments).
279
GC art. 95 (Internees permanently detailed for categories of work mentioned in the third paragraph of this
Article, shall be paid fair wages by the Detaining Power.).
280
GC art. 95 (The working conditions and the scale of compensation for occupational accidents and diseases to
internees thus detailed, shall not be inferior to those applicable to work of the same nature in the same district.).
684
10.17.3 Working Conditions. The Detaining Power shall take entire responsibility for all
working conditions, for medical attention, for the payment of wages, and for ensuring that all
employed internees receive compensation for occupational accidents and diseases. 281 The
standards prescribed for said working conditions and for compensation shall be in accordance
with national laws and regulations, and with existing practice; they shall in no case be inferior to
those obtaining for work of the same nature in the same district. 282
In addition, internees who work shall receive additional rations in proportion to the kind
of labor that they perform. 283
10.17.4 Wage Agreement With Internees. Wages for work done shall be determined on
an equitable basis by special agreements between the internees, the Detaining Power, and, if the
case arises, employers other than the Detaining Power, due regard being paid to the obligation of
the Detaining Power to provide for free maintenance of internees, and for the medical attention
that their state of health may require. 284
10.17.5 Labor Detachments of Internees. All labor detachments shall remain part of, and
dependent upon, a place of internment. 285 The competent authorities of the Detaining Power and
the commandant of a place of internment shall be responsible for the observance of the
provisions of the GC in a labor detachment. 286
The commandant shall keep an up-to-date list of the labor detachments subordinate to
him or her, and shall communicate it to the delegates of the Protecting Power, of the ICRC, and
of other humanitarian organizations who may visit the places of internment. 287
10.18.1 Internees Articles of Personal Use. Internees shall be permitted to retain articles
of personal use. 288
281
GC art. 95 (The Detaining Power shall take entire responsibility for all working conditions, for medical
attention, for the payment of wages, and for ensuring that all employed internees receive compensation for
occupational accidents and diseases.).
282
GC art. 95 (The standards prescribed for the said working conditions and for compensation shall be in
accordance with the national laws and regulations, and with the existing practice; they shall in no case be inferior to
those obtaining for work of the same nature in the same district.).
283
Refer to 10.13.1.2 (Additional Food for Certain Groups).
284
GC art. 95 (Wages for work done shall be determined on an equitable basis by special agreements between the
internees, the Detaining Power, and, if the case arises, employers other than the Detaining Power, due regard being
paid to the obligation of the Detaining Power to provide for free maintenance of internees and for the medical
attention which their state of health may require.).
285
GC art. 96 (All labour detachments shall remain part of and dependent upon a place of internment.).
286
GC art. 96 (The competent authorities of the Detaining Power and the commandant of a place of internment
shall be responsible for the observance in a labour detachment of the provisions of the present Convention.).
287
GC art. 96 (The commandant shall keep an up-to-date list of the labour detachments subordinate to him and
shall communicate it to the delegates of the Protecting Power, of the International Committee of the Red Cross and
of other humanitarian organizations who may visit the places of internment.).
685
Internees, however, are not entitled to retain items that could be put to a use prejudicial to
the legitimate interests of the Detaining Power, such as items that may pose a risk to security
(e.g., knives or devices that may be used as weapons) or items that may facilitate escape (e.g.,
flares, flare pistols, compasses, maps, radios, or cell phones). 289
10.18.2 Articles of Personal or Sentimental Value. Articles that have above all a
personal or sentimental value may not be taken away. 290 Items that may otherwise be
legitimately impounded (e.g., for security reasons) are not precluded from being impounded
because of their personal or sentimental value to the internee. 291
10.18.3 Family or Identity Documents for Internees. Family or identity documents in the
possession of internees may not be taken away without a receipt being given. 292 At no time shall
internees be left without identity documents. 293 If they have none, they shall be issued special
documents drawn up by the detaining authorities, which will serve as their identity papers until
the end of their internment. 294
10.19.1 Money and Valuables in the Internees Possession. Monies, checks, bonds, etc.,
and valuables in the possession of internees may not be taken from them, except in accordance
with established procedure. 295 Detailed receipts shall be given for such valuables. 296
288
GC art. 97 (Internees shall be permitted to retain articles of personal use.).
289
GC COMMENTARY 420 (Cameras should no doubt be regarded as an exception [to the permitted articles of
personal use], because of the Detaining Powers special interest in removing anything which might promote
espionage or perhaps be used for unfavourable propaganda. The Detaining Power is free, however, to protect
itself against efforts to put the resources retained by the interneesand above all their financial resourcesto a use
prejudicial to its interests.).
290
GC art. 97 (Articles which have above all a personal or sentimental value may not be taken away.).
291
GC COMMENTARY 422 (The essential part of the clause is the words above all. The clause formulates an
exception to the right of the Detaining Power to take articles of value from internees; that exception applies to
articles which have above all a personal or sentimental value. That means that the importance attached to their
possession does not depend on their commercial value, but rather on what they represent in the sentimental sphere.
A wedding ring would be one such example --a plain golden ring which costs little; its sale would not furnish the
owner with large resources with which to make preparations for an escape or to take part in subversive propaganda.
On the other hand jewels of great commercial value may be taken away, in spite of their sentimental value. It will
be for the Detaining Power to judge in all fairness the appropriate course to take. It must be in accordance with the
stipulation of paragraph 1 (in accordance with established procedure and against a receipt).).
292
GC art. 97 (Family or identity documents in the possession of internees may not be taken away without a receipt
being given.).
293
GC art. 97 (At no time shall internees be left without identity documents.).
294
GC art. 97 (If they have none, they shall be issued with special documents drawn up by the detaining authorities,
which will serve as their identity papers until the end of their internment.).
295
GC art. 97 (Monies, cheques, bonds, etc., and valuables in their possession may not be taken from them except
in accordance with established procedure.).
296
GC art. 97 (Detailed receipts shall be given therefor.).
686
The amounts shall be paid into the account of every internee, as provided for in Article
98 of the GC. 297 Such amounts may not be converted into any other currency unless legislation
in force in the territory in which the owner is interned so requires or the internee gives his or her
consent. 298
10.19.1.1 Pocket Money for Purchases. Internees may keep on their persons a
certain amount of money, in cash or in the form of purchase coupons, to enable them to make
purchases. 299 For example, internees could use this money or scrip to purchase items at the
canteen. 300
For security reasons, the amount of money retained by internees generally will be
small. 301
10.19.2 Internee Allowances. All internees shall receive regular allowances, sufficient to
enable them to purchase goods and articles, such as tobacco, toilet requisites, etc. 302 Such
allowances may take the form of credits or purchase coupons. 303
Furthermore, internees may receive allowances from the Power to which they owe
allegiance, the Protecting Powers, the organizations that may assist them, or their families, as
well as the income on their property in accordance with the law of the Detaining Power. 304
The amount of allowances granted by the Power to which an internee owes allegiance
shall be the same for each category of internees (e.g., infirm, sick, pregnant women), but may not
be allocated by that Power or distributed by the Detaining Power on the basis of discrimination
between internees that is prohibited by Article 27 of the GC. 305
297
GC art. 97 (The amounts shall be paid into the account of every internee as provided for in Article 98.).
298
GC art. 97 (Such amounts may not be converted into any other currency unless legislation in force in the
territory in which the owner is interned so requires or the internee gives his consent.).
299
GC art. 97 (Internees may keep on their persons a certain amount of money, in cash or in the shape of purchase
coupons, to enable them to make purchases.).
300
Refer to 10.12 (Canteens for Internees).
301
GC COMMENTARY 424 (It follows that the amount of money in question will be fairly small. If the Detaining
Power considers that it must for security reasons limit very strictly the amount of cash held by the internees, it
should provide them with purchase coupons of sufficient value to enable them to make purchases in the canteens it
runs.).
302
GC art. 98 (All internees shall receive regular allowances, sufficient to enable them to purchase goods and
articles, such as tobacco, toilet requisites, etc.).
303
GC art. 98 (Such allowances may take the form of credits or purchase coupons.).
304
GC art. 98 (Furthermore, internees may receive allowances from the Power to which they owe allegiance, the
Protecting Powers, the organizations which may assist them, or their families, as well as the income on their
property in accordance with the law of the Detaining Power.).
305
GC art. 98 (The amount of allowances granted by the Power to which they owe allegiance shall be the same for
each category of internees (infirm, sick, pregnant women, etc.), but may not be allocated by that Power or
distributed by the Detaining Power on the basis of discriminations between internees which are prohibited by Article
27 of the present Convention.).
687
10.19.3 Internee Accounts. The Detaining Power shall open a regular account for every
internee, to which shall be credited:
wages earned;
such sums taken from the internee as may be available under the legislation in force in
the territory in which he or she is interned. 306
10.19.3.1 Drawing Upon Accounts. Internees may draw from their accounts the
amounts necessary for their personal expenses, within the limits fixed by the Detaining Power. 307
Internees shall be granted all facilities consistent with the legislation in force in such
territory to make remittances to their families and to other dependents. 308
306
GC art. 98 (The Detaining Power shall open a regular account for every internee, to which shall be credited the
allowances named in the present Article, the wages earned and the remittances received, together with such sums
taken from him as may be available under the legislation in force in the territory in which he is interned.).
307
GC art. 98 (They may draw from their accounts the amounts necessary for their personal expenses, within the
limits fixed by the Detaining Power.).
308
GC art. 98 (Internees shall be granted all facilities consistent with the legislation in force in such territory to
make remittances to their families and to other dependants.).
309
GC art. 98 (They shall at all times be afforded reasonable facilities for consulting and obtaining copies of their
accounts.).
310
GC art. 98 (A statement of accounts shall be furnished to the Protecting Power on request, and shall accompany
the internee in case of transfer.).
311
GC art. 97 (On release or repatriation, internees shall be given all articles, monies or other valuables taken from
them during internment and shall receive in currency the balance of any credit to their accounts kept in accordance
with Article 98, with the exception of any articles or amounts withheld by the Detaining Power by virtue of its
legislation in force.).
312
GC art. 97 (If the property of an internee is so withheld, the owner shall receive a detailed receipt.).
688
10.20 ADMINISTRATION OF PLACES OF INTERNMENT AND DISCIPLINE
10.20.1 Responsible Officer and Staff. Every place of internment shall be put under the
authority of a responsible officer, chosen from the regular military forces or the regular civil
administration of the Detaining Power. 313
The officer in charge of the place of internment must have in his or her possession a copy
of the GC in the official language, or one of the official languages, of his or her country and shall
be responsible for its application. 314 The staff in control of internees shall be instructed in the
provisions of the GC and of the administrative measures adopted to ensure its application. 315
10.20.2 Posting of Convention and Camp Orders. The text of the GC and the texts of
special agreements concluded under the GC shall be posted inside the place of internment, in a
language that the internees understand, or shall be in the possession of the Internee
Committee. 316
Regulations, orders, notices, and publications of every kind shall be communicated to the
internees and posted inside the places of internment, in a language that the internees
understand. 317
Every order and command addressed to internees individually must likewise be given in a
language that they understand. 318
313
GC art. 99 (Every place of internment shall be put under the authority of a responsible officer, chosen from the
regular military forces or the regular civil administration of the Detaining Power.).
314
GC art. 99 (The officer in charge of the place of internment must have in his possession a copy of the present
Convention in the official language, or one of the official languages, of his country and shall be responsible for its
application.).
315
GC art. 99 (The staff in control of internees shall be instructed in the provisions of the present Convention and
of the administrative measures adopted to ensure its application.).
316
GC art. 99 (The text of the present Convention and the texts of special agreements concluded under the said
Convention shall be posted inside the place of internment, in a language which the internees understand, or shall be
in the possession of the Internee Committee.).
317
GC art. 99 (Regulations, orders, notices and publications of every kind shall be communicated to the internees
and posted inside the places of internment, in a language which they understand.).
318
GC art. 99 (Every order and command addressed to internees individually, must likewise be given in a language
which they understand.).
319
GC art. 100 (The disciplinary regime in places of internment shall be consistent with humanitarian principles,
and shall in no circumstances include regulations imposing on internees any physical exertion dangerous to their
health or involving physical or moral victimization.).
689
10.20.3.1 Prohibition Against Tattooing or Imprinting Signs or Markings on the
Body. Identification by tattooing or imprinting signs or markings on the body is prohibited. 320
10.20.4 Use of Force to Maintain Order and to Prevent Escape. As with POWs, the use
of weapons against protected persons, especially against those who are escaping or attempting to
escape, shall constitute an extreme measure, which shall always be preceded by warnings
appropriate to the circumstances. 322 For example, internees should not be fired upon if they are
apprehended within the camp limits while making preparations to escape, and there is no risk of
escape or harm to anyone.
If the use of deadly force is warranted and authorized against protected persons, there is
no legal requirement to employ non-lethal weapons before resort to deadly force. 324
10.21.1 Internee Right to Present Petitions and Complaints. Internees shall have the right
to present to the authorities in whose power they are, any petition with regard to the conditions of
internment to which they are subjected. 325 The commandant of an internment facility may issue
regulations that establish procedures about how internees are to exercise this right to petition. 326
320
GC art. 100 (Identification by tattooing or imprinting signs or markings on the body, is prohibited.).
321
GC art. 100 (In particular, prolonged standing and roll-calls, punishment drill, military drill and manoeuvres, or
the reduction of food rations, are prohibited.).
322
Compare 9.22.6 (Use of Force to Maintain Order and to Prevent Escape).
323
Refer to 6.16.2 (Prohibition on Use of Riot Control Agents as a Method of Warfare).
324
Refer to 6.5.10.5 (No Requirement to Use Non-Lethal Weapons Before Using Lethal Weapons Where Deadly
Force Is Warranted).
325
GC art. 101 (Internees shall have the right to present to the authorities in whose power they are, any petition
with regard to the conditions of internment to which they are subjected.).
326
GC COMMENTARY 434 (The Convention does not state in detail the procedure for submitting petitions, but
obviously it must be compatible with the normal requirements of discipline and the administration of the place of
internment and petitions must not be used for purposes other than those arising under the Convention. It will be for
690
Internees shall also have the right to apply without restriction through the Internee
Committee or, if they consider it necessary, directly to the representatives of the Protecting
Power, in order to indicate to them any points on which they may have complaints to make with
regard to the conditions of internment. 327
10.21.1.1 Making Requests and Complaints to the ICRC. Such complaints may
also be made to the delegates of the ICRC, who enjoy the same prerogatives of access to
internees as the representatives of the Protecting Power. 328 In the past, the ICRC has been able
to take appropriate measures besides merely forwarding the complaint to the Power on which the
POWs depend, including measures on a confidential basis that help to improve the situation of
internees. 329
the commandant of the place of internment to issue regulations concerning the exercise of this right, and particularly
to say whether petitions can be submitted orally or in writing and in what form.).
327
GC art. 101 (They shall also have the right to apply without restriction through the Internee Committee or, if
they consider it necessary, direct to the representatives of the Protecting Power, in order to indicate to them any
points on which they may have complaints to make with regard to the conditions of internment.).
328
Refer to 10.33.1.2 (ICRC Delegates Enjoying the Same Prerogatives of Access).
329
Compare 9.23.1.1 (Making Requests and Complaints to the ICRC).
330
GC art. 101 (Such petitions and complaints shall be transmitted forthwith and without alteration, and even if the
latter are recognized to be unfounded, they may not occasion any punishment.).
331
See 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 308b (The Detaining Power has the right to examine and censor the
complaints, petitions, and reports referred to above in the same manner as correspondence addressed to internees or
dispatched by them. It may also examine such complaints and reports to the representatives of the Protecting Power
to verify that they are what they purport to be and to delete matter not constituting either a complaint or a report
within the meaning of the foregoing provision.).
332
GC COMMENTARY 435-36 (The transmission forthwith of complaints and petitions and the absence of
punishment even when they are not well founded is in conformity with the procedure established with regard to
prisoners of war during the two world wars. The Fourth Convention of 1949 has introduced a particularly important
idea by stating that the transmission shall take place without alteration. This wording was rejected by the authors
of the Third Geneva Convention in order to respect the Detaining Powers right of censorship. The discussions at
the Diplomatic Conference concerning the Fourth Convention showed that there was a specific wish to avoid any
suggestion of censorship with regard to civilians. It was nevertheless said that some supervision by the Detaining
Power must be allowed for security reasons.).
333
Refer to 10.23.6 (Censorship and Security Review of Internee Correspondence and Shipments).
691
10.21.2.2 No Punishment for Making Complaints. Even if the petitions and
complaints are recognized to be unfounded, they may not occasion any punishment. 334 In any
event, as in the case of POWs, it could be contrary to internees interests to abuse this right by
making groundless complaints because complaints that are justified might not, as a result,
receive the appropriate attention. 335
10.21.3 Periodic Reports by the Internee Committees. Periodic reports on the situation in
places of internment and as to the needs of the internees may be sent by the Internee Committees
to the representatives of the Protecting Powers. 336 Internee Committees have discretion about
how and when to submit their reports. 337 The Detaining Power may subject these reports to
security review and censorship to ensure that these reports are not misused. 338
334
GC art. 101 (Such petitions and complaints shall be transmitted forthwith and without alteration, and even if the
latter are recognized to be unfounded, they may not occasion any punishment.).
335
Compare 9.23.2.2 (No Punishment for Making Complaints).
336
GC art. 101 (Periodic reports on the situation in places of internment and as to the needs of the internees, may be
sent by the Internee Committees to the representatives of the Protecting Powers.).
337
GC COMMENTARY 436 (Some of the Government Experts who met in 1947 had envisaged making it obligatory
to transmit periodically to the Protecting Power reports drafted on a model form. This opinion did not prevail in the
sense that it was given mandatory form; the idea of periodical reports was retained, but the Convention leaves it to
the Internee Committees to submit their reports when and how they think fit.).
338
Refer to 10.23.6 (Censorship and Security Review of Internee Correspondence and Shipments).
339
GC art. 102 (In every place of internment, the internees shall freely elect by secret ballot every six months, the
members of a Committee empowered to represent them before the Detaining and the Protecting Powers, the
International Committee of the Red Cross and any other organization which may assist them.).
340
GC art. 102 (The members of the Committee shall be eligible for re-election.).
341
GC art. 102 (Internees so elected shall enter upon their duties after their election has been approved by the
detaining authorities.).
342
GC art. 102 (The reasons for any refusals or dismissals shall be communicated to the Protecting Powers
concerned.).
692
10.22.2 Duties of Internee Committees. Internee Committees shall further the physical,
spiritual, and intellectual well-being of the internees. 343 Internee Committees have duties similar
to the duties of POW Representatives. 344
The Internee Committees general duties imply that the Internee Committee will
undertake a variety of activities to ensure that internees receive proper treatment by the
Detaining Power and to advance their welfare, even activities that are not specified in the GC as
constituting their duties.
10.22.2.2 Other Specific Duties. In addition to the general duties that the GC
imposes on the Internee Committees, the GC also imposes specific duties on the Internee
Committees in the following matters:
assisting in the transport of the internees community property and luggage in cases of
transfers of internees; 348
343
GC art. 103 (The Internee Committees shall further the physical, spiritual and intellectual well-being of the
internees.).
344
GC COMMENTARY 441 (This general clause could therefore be regarded as giving the Internee Committees the
right to take any action likely to further the internees' well-being. In the same way as the camp leader in the
prisoner-of-war camp enjoys considerable latitude in assisting his comrades and is allowed to correspond with relief
organizations, subscribe to newspapers, organize concerts and theatricals, initiate study courses, set up a legal advice
bureau, transmit legal documents and suggest the sending to hospital or repatriation of certain men, so the Internee
Committees have the general task of ensuring the application of the Convention on behalf of their fellow-
internees.). Compare 9.24.3 (Duties of POW Representatives).
345
GC art. 103 (In case the internees decide, in particular, to organize a system of mutual assistance amongst
themselves, this organization would be within the competence of the Committees in addition to the special duties
entrusted to them under other provisions of the present Convention.).
346
GC COMMENTARY 441 (The experience of two world wars has shown that the activities of the camp leaders
have made it possible for the poorest of prisoners of war to be helped by their own comrades. In some cases the
camp leader organized collections and his office became a real social welfare bureau. The second paragraph adapts
the results of this experience to the case of internees and in particular gives the Internee Committees the task of
organizing a mutual assistance scheme. In view of the variation in conditions and resources among the internees,
such a scheme can be very useful, for among them there will certainly be heads of family who, in losing their normal
work, will have left their dear ones in serious difficulty.).
347
Refer to 10.23.3.4 (Collective Relief for Internees).
348
Refer to 10.30.3.3 (Disposition of Community Property and Remaining Property).
693
receiving parcels and remittances of money for internees undergoing disciplinary
punishment, and handing over to the infirmary any perishable goods; 349
checking on the management of the canteen and its special fund; 350
transmitting complaints and petitions, and making periodic reports on the needs of
internees; 351
retaining a copy of the GC and any applicable special agreements under the GC, if a copy
is not publicly posted; 352
monitoring decisions announced from any disciplinary proceeding against an internee; 353
and
receiving information about all judicial proceedings against internees whom they
represent, and of their result. 354
349
Refer to 10.28.6.4 (Reading, Writing, Correspondence, and Packages).
350
Refer to 10.12.3 (Canteen Management and Profits).
351
Refer to 10.21 (Internee Petitions, Complaints).
352
Refer to 10.20.2 (Posting of Convention and Camp Orders).
353
Refer to 9.27.3 (Rights of POWs in Disciplinary Proceedings).
354
Refer to 10.29.1 (Information to Internee Committees).
355
GC art. 104 (Members of Internee Committees shall not be required to perform any other work, if the
accomplishment of their duties is rendered more difficult thereby.).
356
See GC COMMENTARY 442-43 (The desire to make this Convention parallel to the Prisoners of War Convention
has led in this paragraph to a somewhat illogical result, which was pointed out during the discussions in Geneva. In
the case of prisoners of war who may be made to work under the provisions of the Convention, it is reasonable that
camp leaders should be given exemption; but is a similar provision necessary in the case of civilians who are
covered by Article 95 stating that they may not be compelled to work? The reply was that Article 95 also contains a
clause exempting maintenance work in the camp, which internees may be compelled to do, so that paragraph 1
would be justified as referring to this.). Refer to 10.17 (Internee Labor).
694
10.22.3.2 Assistants for the Members of Internee Committtees. Members of
Internee Committees may appoint from among the internees such assistants as they may
require. 357
Censorship of communications with the Protecting Powers, ICRC, etc., is not prohibited,
but the Detaining Power should ensure that delays do not occur to the disadvantage of the
internees. 363
357
GC art. 104 (Members of Internee Committees may appoint from amongst the internees such assistants as they
may require.).
358
GC art. 104 (All material facilities shall be granted to them, particularly a certain freedom of movement
necessary for the accomplishment of their duties (visits to labour detachments, receipt of supplies, etc.).).
359
GC COMMENTARY 443 (It should be noted, with regard to the freedom of movement which is mentioned, that
the text says a certain freedom, not complete freedom. Article 3 of the Draft Rules concerning Collective Relief
annexed to the Convention in a way provides a commentary on this provision by stating that members of Internee
Committees shall be permitted to go to stations or other arrival points near their place of internment where the relief
supplies are sent.).
360
GC art. 104 (All facilities shall likewise be accorded to members of Internee Committees for communication by
post and telegraph with the detaining authorities, the Protecting Powers, the International Committee of the Red
Cross and their delegates, and with the organizations which give assistance to internees.).
361
GC art. 104 (Committee members in labour detachments shall enjoy similar facilities for communication with
their Internee Committee in the principal place of internment.).
362
GC art. 104 (Such communications shall not be limited, nor considered as forming a part of the quota mentioned
in Article 107.). Refer to 10.23.2 (Internees Correspondence Rights and Quota).
363
GC COMMENTARY 444 (It is not stated that these communications are free from censorship. However, the
granting of all facilities lays an obligation on the Detaining Power, if it subjects this correspondence to censorship,
to ensure that delays do not occur to the disadvantage of the internees.).
364
GC art. 104 (Members of Internee Committees who are transferred shall be allowed a reasonable time to
acquaint their successors with current affairs.).
695
10.23 INTERNEE CORRESPONDENCE AND RELIEF SHIPMENTS
Internees may send and receive mail and relief shipments, subject to security
requirements. In addition, internees benefit from certain postage exemptions.
These cards shall be forwarded as rapidly as possible and may not be delayed in any
way. 366
10.23.2 Internees Correspondence Rights and Quota. Internees shall be allowed to send
and receive letters and cards. 367
365
GC art. 106 (As soon as he is interned, or at the latest not more than one week after his arrival in a place of
internment, and likewise in cases of sickness or transfer to another place of internment or to a hospital, every
internee shall be enabled to send direct to his family, on the one hand, and to the Central Agency provided for by
Article 140, on the other, an internment card similar, if possible, to the model annexed to the present Convention,
informing his relatives of his detention, address and state of health.).
366
GC art. 106 (The said cards shall be forwarded as rapidly as possible and may not be delayed in any way.).
367
GC art. 107 (Internees shall be allowed to send and receive letters and cards.).
368
GC art. 107 (If the Detaining Power deems it necessary to limit the number of letters and cards sent by each
internee, the said number shall not be less than two letters and four cards monthly; these shall be drawn up so as to
conform as closely as possible to the models annexed to the present Convention.).
369
GC art. 107 (If limitations must be placed on the correspondence addressed to internees, they may be ordered
only by the Power to which such internees owe allegiance, possibly at the request of the Detaining Power.).
370
See GC COMMENTARY 449 (The minimum of two letters and four cards per month laid down by the Convention
seems to be best suited to the possibilities of rapid censorship. This is the minimum which, after representations by
the International Committee of the Red Cross, most of the belligerents had accepted from December 1940 onwards.
It remained the same until the end of hostilities. The results of this experience are embodied in the Convention, but
it goes without saying that these figures represent only a minimum and that if it can be done without overtaxing the
normal capacity of the postal service they can be exceeded.).
696
10.23.2.2 No Delay in Correspondence for Disciplinary Reasons. Such letters
and cards must be conveyed with reasonable dispatch; they may not be delayed or retained for
disciplinary reasons. 371
More modern means of communication, such as email, may be considered for internee
correspondence, as appropriate. 374
10.23.3 Receipt of Individual and Collective Relief Shipments for Internees. Internees
shall be allowed to receive, by post or by any other means, individual parcels or collective
shipments containing in particular foodstuffs, clothing, medical supplies, as well as books and
objects of a devotional, educational, or recreational character that may meet their needs. 377 Such
shipments shall in no way free the Detaining Power from the obligations imposed upon it by
virtue of the GC. 378
Should military necessity require the quantity of such shipments to be limited, due notice
thereof shall be given to the Protecting Power and to the ICRC, or to any other organization
giving assistance to the internees and responsible for the forwarding of such shipments. 379 Such
371
GC art. 107 (Such letters and cards must be conveyed with reasonable despatch; they may not be delayed or
retained for disciplinary reasons.).
372
GC art. 107 (Internees who have been a long time without news, or who find it impossible to receive news from
their relatives, or to give them news by the ordinary postal route, as well as those who are at a considerable distance
from their homes, shall be allowed to send telegrams, the charges being paid by them in the currency at their
disposal.).
373
GC art. 107 (They shall likewise benefit by this provision in cases which are recognized to be urgent.).
374
Refer to 8.10.3 (Communication With Family).
375
GC art. 107 (As a rule, internees mail shall be written in their own language.).
376
GC art. 107 (The Parties to the conflict may authorize correspondence in other languages.).
377
GC art. 108 (Internees shall be allowed to receive, by post or by any other means, individual parcels or
collective shipments containing in particular foodstuffs, clothing, medical supplies, as well as books and objects of a
devotional, educational or recreational character which may meet their needs.).
378
GC art. 108 (Such shipments shall in no way free the Detaining Power from the obligations imposed upon it by
virtue of the present Convention.).
379
GC art. 108 (Should military necessity require the quantity of such shipments to be limited, due notice thereof
shall be given to the Protecting Power and to the International Committee of the Red Cross, or to any other
organization giving assistance to the internees and responsible for the forwarding of such shipments.).
697
a case of military necessity may be, for example, when military operations could be hindered
through the blocking of means of communication by large consignments of relief supplies. 380
380
GC COMMENTARY 454-55 (The Detaining Power may only limit the quantity of shipments for reasons of
military necessity. This should be understood to mean cases where operations may be hindered through the
blocking of means of communication by large consignments of relief supplies. In that case, the Protecting Power
and the relief societies must be notified; the societies must indeed be able to regulate the frequency of consignments
themselves and thus avoid perishable goods being held up. In the case of the Protecting Power, the notification is to
enable it to discuss whether the restrictive measures are justified; as the military operations develop, the measures in
any case must only be temporary and can be justified only by exceptional strain on transport or communications.).
381
GC art. 108 (Parcels of clothing and foodstuffs may not include books.).
382
See GC COMMENTARY 455 (Parcels of clothing and foodstuff must not contain books, so that they will not be
delayed for censorship, .).
383
GC art. 108 (Medical relief supplies shall, as a rule, be sent in collective parcels.).
384
GC COMMENTARY 455 ([M]edical supplies, as a rule, will only be sent in collective parcels. It would, indeed,
be dangerous to let the internees themselves decide what medicaments to use. For preference they should only be
used on medical advice.).
385
GC COMMENTARY 455 footnote 2 (As a rule was inserted [into the GC] because it was not wished to prohibit,
as an exceptional case, the inclusion in a family parcel of a medicament required because of the state of health of the
recipient and which might not be included in collective medical relief.).
386
GC art. 108 (The conditions for the sending of individual parcels and collective shipments shall, if necessary, be
the subject of special agreements between the Powers concerned, which may in no case delay the receipt by the
internees of relief supplies.).
387
GC art. 109 (In the absence of special agreements between Parties to the conflict regarding the conditions for the
receipt and distribution of collective relief shipments, the regulations concerning collective relief which are annexed
to the present Convention shall be applied.).
698
The special agreements provided for above shall in no case restrict the right of Internee
Committees to take possession of collective relief shipments intended for internees, to undertake
their distribution, and to dispose of them in the interests of the recipients. 388
Nor shall such agreements restrict the right of representatives of the Protecting Powers,
the ICRC, or any other organization giving assistance to internees and responsible for the
forwarding of collective shipments, to supervise their distribution to the recipients. 389
10.23.4 Exemption From Postal and Shipping Charges for Shipments To and From
Internees. Relief shipments for internees and mail sent by internees or to them benefit from
certain exemptions in international law.
10.23.4.1 Exemption From Dues for Relief Shipments. All relief shipments for
internees shall be exempt from import, customs, and other dues. 390
10.23.4.2 GC Postal Dues Exemption. Under the GC, all matter sent by mail,
including relief parcels sent by parcel post and remittances of money, addressed from other
countries to internees or sent by them through the post office, either directly or through the
National Protected Person Information Bureau and the Central Information Agency for protected
persons, shall be exempt from all postal dues both in the countries of origin and destination, and
in intermediate countries. 391
To this end, in particular, the exemption provided by the Universal Postal Convention of
1947 and by the agreements of the Universal Postal Union in favor of civilians of enemy
nationality detained in camps or civilian prisons, shall be extended to the other interned persons
protected by the GC. 392 The countries not signatory to the above-mentioned agreements shall be
bound to grant freedom from charges in the same circumstances. 393
388
GC art. 109 (The special agreements provided for above shall in no case restrict the right of Internee
Committees to take possession of collective relief shipments intended for internees, to undertake their distribution
and to dispose of them in the interests of the recipients.).
389
GC art. 109 (Nor shall such agreements restrict the right of representatives of the Protecting Powers, the
International Committee of the Red Cross, or any other organization giving assistance to internees and responsible
for the forwarding of collective shipments, to supervise their distribution to the recipients.).
390
GC art. 110 (All relief shipments for internees shall be exempt from import, customs and other dues.).
391
GC art. 110 (All matter sent by mail, including relief parcels sent by parcel post and remittances of money,
addressed from other countries to internees or despatched by them through the post office, either direct or through
the Information Bureaux provided for in Article 136 and the Central Information Agency provided for in Article
140, shall be exempt from all postal dues both in the countries of origin and destination and in intermediate
countries.).
392
GC art. 110 (To this end, in particular, the exemption provided by the Universal Postal Convention of 1947 and
by the agreements of the Universal Postal Union in favour of civilians of enemy nationality detained in camps or
civilian prisons, shall be extended to the other interned persons protected by the present Convention.).
393
GC art. 110 (The countries not signatory to the above-mentioned agreements shall be bound to grant freedom
from charges in the same circumstances.).
699
10.23.4.3 Exemption From Postal Charges Under the Universal Postal
Convention. Under the Universal Postal Convention, with the exception of air surcharges for
airmail, letter-post items, postal parcels, and monetary articles originating in other countries and
addressed to, or sent by internees, either directly or through the National Protected Person
Information Bureau and the Central Information Agency for protected persons, shall be exempt
from all postal charges. 394
Parcels shall be admitted free of postage up to a weight of 5 kg. 395 The weight limit shall
be increased to 10 kg in the case of parcels the contents of which cannot be split up and of
parcels addressed to a camp or the Internee Committee there for distribution to the internees. 396
Items exempt from postal charges and internee parcels shall bear Service des interns
civils (Civilian internees service) and a translation in another language if appropriate. 397
Postal administrations shall not be liable for the loss of, theft from, or damage to parcels
in the case of internee parcels. 398
394
See Universal Postal Convention, art. 17(2), Dec. 14, 1989, 1687 UNTS 241, 252 (Paragraph 1 [of Article 17]
shall apply to letter-post items, postal parcels and monetary articles originating in other countries and addressed to
or sent by civilian internees as defined by the Geneva Convention of 12 August 1949 relative to the protection of
civilian persons in time of war, either direct or through the Information Bureaux and the Central Information
Agency prescribed in articles 136 and 140 respectively of that Convention.). Consider Universal Postal
Convention, art. 7(2.2), Oct. 11, 2012, reprinted in INTERNATIONAL BUREAU OF THE UNIVERSAL POSTAL UNION,
LETTER POST MANUAL, page C.8 (Berne 2013, Update 2 Jan. 2015) (The provisions set out under 2.1 shall also
apply to letter-post items, postal parcels and postal payment services items originating in other countries and
addressed to or sent by civilian internees as defined by the Geneva Convention of 12 August 1949 relative to the
protection of civilian persons in time of war, either direct or through the offices mentioned in the Regulations of the
Convention and of the Postal Payment Services Agreement.).
395
Universal Postal Convention, art. 17(4), Dec. 14, 1989, 1687 UNTS 241, 252 (Parcels shall be admitted free of
postage up to a weight of 5 kg.). Consider Universal Postal Convention, art. 7(2.4), Oct. 11, 2012, reprinted in
INTERNATIONAL BUREAU OF THE UNIVERSAL POSTAL UNION, LETTER POST MANUAL, page C.8 (Berne 2013, Update
2 Jan. 2015) (Parcels shall be admitted free of postage up to a weight of 5 kilogrammes.).
396
Universal Postal Convention, art. 17(4), Dec. 14, 1989, 1687 UNTS 241, 252 (The weight limit shall be
increased to 10 kg in the case of parcels the contents of which cannot be split up and of parcels addressed to a camp
or the prisoners representatives there (hommes de confiance) for distribution to the prisoners.). Consider
Universal Postal Convention, art. 7(2.4), Oct. 11, 2012, reprinted in INTERNATIONAL BUREAU OF THE UNIVERSAL
POSTAL UNION, LETTER POST MANUAL, page C.8 (Berne 2013, Update 2 Jan. 2015) (The weight limit shall be
increased to 10 kilogrammes in the case of parcels the contents of which cannot be split up and of parcels addressed
to a camp or the prisoners representatives there (hommes de confiance) for distribution to the prisoners.).
397
Consider Letter Post Regulations, Article RL 112 to Article 7 of the Universal Postal Convention of Oct. 11,
2012, reprinted in INTERNATIONAL BUREAU OF THE UNIVERSAL POSTAL UNION, LETTER POST MANUAL, page C.11
(2015) (Items exempt from postal charges shall bear, on the address side in the top right-hand corner, the following
indications, which may be followed by a translation: Service des prisonniers de guerre (Prisoners-of-war service)
or Service des interns civils (Civilian internees service) for the items mentioned in article 7.2 of the Convention
and article RL 111 and the forms relating to them;); Parcel Post Regulations, Article RC 112(2) to Article 8 of the
Universal Postal Convention of Oct. 11, 2012, reprinted in INTERNATIONAL BUREAU OF THE UNIVERSAL POSTAL
UNION, PARCEL POST MANUAL, page D.10 (2015) (Every prisoner-of-war and civilian internee parcel and its
dispatch note shall bear, the former beside the address, one of the indications Service des prisonniers de guerre
(Prisoner-of-war Service) or Service des interns civils (Civilian Internees Service); these indications may be
followed by a translation in another language.).
700
10.23.4.4 Costs of Transporting Relief Shipments Outside the Post Office. The
cost of transporting relief shipments that are intended for internees and that, by reason of their
weight or any other cause, cannot be sent through the post office, shall be borne by the Detaining
Power in all the territories under its control. 399 Other Powers that are Parties to the GC shall bear
the cost of transport in their respective territories. 400
Costs connected with the transport of such shipments that are not covered by the above
paragraphs shall be charged to the senders. 401
10.23.4.5 Charges for Telegrams. The Parties to the GC shall endeavor to reduce,
so far as possible, the charges for telegrams sent by internees, or addressed to them. 402
correspondence, lists, and reports exchanged between the Central Information Agency for
protected persons and the National Protected Person Information Bureau; and
398
Postal Parcels Agreement, art. 41(2)(f), Dec. 14, 1989, 1687 UNTS 346, 369 (Postal administrations shall not be
liable for the loss of, theft from or damage to parcels in the case of prisoner-of-war or civilian internee parcels.).
399
GC art. 110 (The cost of transporting relief shipments which are intended for internees and which, by reason of
their weight or any other cause, cannot be sent through the post office, shall be borne by the Detaining Power in all
the territories under its control.).
400
GC art. 110 (Other Powers which are Parties to the present Convention shall bear the cost of transport in their
respective territories.).
401
GC art. 110 (Costs connected with the transport of such shipments, which are not covered by the above
paragraphs, shall be charged to the senders.).
402
GC art. 110 (The High Contracting Parties shall endeavour to reduce, so far as possible, the charges for
telegrams sent by internees, or addressed to them.).
403
GC art. 111 (Should military operations prevent the Powers concerned from fulfilling their obligation to ensure
the conveyance of the mail and relief shipments provided for in Articles 106, 107, 108 and 113, the Protecting
Powers concerned, the International Committee of the Red Cross or any other organization duly approved by the
Parties to the conflict may undertake the conveyance of such shipments by suitable means (rail, motor vehicles,
vessels or aircraft, etc.).).
404
GC art. 111 (For this purpose, the High Contracting Parties shall endeavour to supply them with such transport,
and to allow its circulation, especially by granting the necessary safe-conducts.).
701
correspondence and reports relating to internees that the Protecting Powers, the ICRC, or
any other organization assisting the internees exchange either with their own delegates or
with the parties to the conflict. 405
These provisions in no way detract from the right of any party to the conflict to arrange
other means of transport if it should so prefer, nor preclude the granting of safe-conducts, under
mutually agreed conditions, to such means of transport. 406
The costs occasioned by the use of such means of transport shall be borne, in proportion
to the importance of the shipments, by the parties to the conflict whose nationals are benefited
thereby. 407 Expenses in setting up the special transport system are not specifically addressed by
the GC, and presumably would be addressed by an agreement between the body that takes the
initiative in establishing the system and the Powers concerned. 408
405
GC art. 111 (Such transport may also be used to convey: (a) correspondence, lists and reports exchanged
between the Central Information Agency referred to in Article 140 and the National Bureaux referred to in Article
136; (b) correspondence and reports relating to internees which the Protecting Powers, the International Committee
of the Red Cross or any other organization assisting the internees exchange either with their own delegates or with
the Parties to the conflict.).
406
GC art. 111 (These provisions in no way detract from the right of any Party to the conflict to arrange other
means of transport if it should so prefer, nor preclude the granting of safe-conducts, under mutually agreed
conditions, to such means of transport.).
407
GC art. 111 (The costs occasioned by the use of such means of transport shall be borne, in proportion to the
importance of the shipments, by the Parties to the conflict whose nationals are benefited thereby.).
408
See GC COMMENTARY 468 (This paragraph deals with the expenditure involved in the use of special transport
but not the expenditure incurred in setting up the special transport system. On this latter point, the Convention says
nothing that is not contained in paragraph 1 of this Article-i.e., that the Contracting Powers will make every effort to
procure the means of transport. It is therefore to be supposed that these expenses will be covered by agreement
between the body which takes the initiative in the matter and the Power concerned.).
409
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 319b (The Detaining Power may examine and censor all communications
sent to or by internees, including correspondence and telegrams (GC, art. 107; par. 314 herein) and relief shipments
(GC, art, 108; par. 315 herein) with a view to deleting matter prejudicial to its military security.).
410
II-A FINAL RECORD OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 839-40 (It was suggested by one
Delegation that it would be desirable specifically to reserve the right of censorship in this Article, particularly in
view of the insertion at Stockholm of the words and without alteration. The view of the Committee generally was
that to state a reservation on one Article might make it necessary to state a reserve on several others, since the first
insertion would have created doubt as to the general right of censorship which otherwise is implicit in the
Convention. It was generally accepted that a duty to transmit requests and complaints necessarily implied a right to
read the documents in question to see whether they were in fact requests and complaints. Moreover, since there was
no obligation to transmit without alteration a matter which was not a complaint and not a request, there could be no
breach of the Convention if such matter were deleted from communications to representatives, for example, of the
Protecting Power.).
702
complaints, petitions, and reports may be subject to security review and censorship to ensure that
they are not misused. 411
10.24.1 Civil Capacity. Internees shall retain their full civil capacity and shall exercise
such attendant rights as may be compatible with their status. 418 Their civil capacity continues to
411
Refer to 10.21.2.1 (Review and Censorship of Requests and Complaints by the Detaining Power); 10.21.3
(Periodic Reports by the Internee Committees).
412
GC art. 112 (The censoring of correspondence addressed to internees or despatched by them shall be done as
quickly as possible.).
413
GC art. 112 (The examination of consignments intended for internees shall not be carried out under conditions
that will expose the goods contained in them to deterioration.).
414
GC art. 112 (It shall be done in the presence of the addressee, or of a fellow-internee duly delegated by him.).
415
GC COMMENTARY 470 (Parcels which cannot be examined by the Detaining Power in the presence of the
internee, would be examined in the presence of a fellow-internee duly delegated by him. This measure is intended
to prevent any misappropriation. In general, the fellow-internee duly delegated by the addressee will be the member
of the Internee Committee entrusted with the task of receiving and distributing relief supplies in accordance with
Article 109. A reference to the competence of the Internee Committee was, however, avoided in the Convention,
because it was wished to leave the person concerned the opportunity of appointing someone as his delegate who was
not a member of the Internee Committee, to cover cases where he did not have complete confidence in any of its
members.).
416
GC art. 112 (The delivery to internees of individual or collective consignments shall not be delayed under the
pretext of difficulties of censorship.).
417
GC art. 112 (Any prohibition of correspondence ordered by the Parties to the conflict either for military or
political reasons, shall be only temporary and its duration shall be as short as possible.).
418
GC art. 80 (Internees shall retain their full civil capacity and shall exercise such attendant rights as may be
compatible with their status.).
703
be governed by the laws that applied to them before they were interned (e.g., the domestic laws
of their home country or the laws governing the place where they were detained). 419
10.24.2 Legal Documents and Assistance. The Detaining Power shall provide all
reasonable facilities for the transmission, through the Protecting Power or the Central
Information Agency for protected persons, or as otherwise required, of wills, powers of attorney,
letters of authority, or any other documents intended for internees or sent by them. 420 In all
cases, the Detaining Power shall facilitate the execution and authentication in due legal form of
such documents on behalf of internees, in particular by allowing them to consult a lawyer. 421
The Detaining Power shall afford internees all facilities to enable internees to manage
their property, provided such facilities are not incompatible with the conditions of internment
and the law that is applicable. 425 The law that is applicable may include the Detaining Powers
war regulations relating to enemy property. 426
419
GC COMMENTARY 375 (It must be realized, in fact, that the civil capacity of internees continues to be governed
by the laws which applied to them before they were interned. That means that circumstances which modify it or
cancel it in normal times (divorce, lunacy, etc.) continue to produce the same effects.).
420
GC art. 113 (The Detaining Powers shall provide all reasonable facilities for the transmission, through the
Protecting Power or the Central Agency provided for in Article 140, or as otherwise required, of wills, powers of
attorney, letters of authority, or any other documents intended for internees or despatched by them.).
421
GC art. 113 (In all cases the Detaining Powers shall facilitate the execution and authentication in due legal form
of such documents on behalf of internees, in particular by allowing them to consult a lawyer.).
422
See GC art. 129 (The wills of internees shall be received for safe-keeping by the responsible authorities;); GC
COMMENTARY 504 (It was seen in Article 113 that in every case the Detaining Power would facilitate the execution
and the authentication in due legal form of wills. These documents will be handed to the responsible authorities i.e.
to the commandant of the place of internment or, on the responsibility of the commandant, to a public notary who
will ensure their safe-keeping.).
423
Refer to 10.34.1 (Transmittal of Wills).
424
GC COMMENTARY 473 (Internment, it must be insisted, is not a punishment. It would therefore be unjust if,
through the restrictions on freedom which it imposes, it involved disastrous consequences for the internee himself
and the members of his family. In this respect, the granting of permission to internees to manage their property is of
major importance.).
425
GC art. 114 (The Detaining Power shall afford internees all facilities to enable them to manage their property,
provided this is not incompatible with the conditions of internment and the law which is applicable.).
426
GC COMMENTARY 473 (This Article, however, must not be interpreted in such a way as to give the internee a
privileged position by making him not subject to the war regulations relating to enemy property. Clearly, a person
delegated by him could not have greater power than himself and it is for this reason that the text expressly mentions
the application of the laws in force.).
704
For the purpose of enabling internees to manage their property, the Detaining Power may
give internees permission to leave the place of internment in urgent cases and if circumstances
allow. 427 In general, however, the internee would act only by delegating his or her powers. 428
10.24.4 Court Cases in Which Internees Are Parties. In all cases in which an internee is a
party to proceedings in any court, the Detaining Power shall, if the internee so requests, cause the
court to be informed of the internees detention and shall, within legal limits, ensure that all
necessary steps are taken to prevent the internee from being in any way prejudiced, by reason of
his or her internment, as regards the preparation and conduct of his or her case, or as regards the
execution of any judgment of the court. 429
Every internee shall be allowed to receive visitors, especially near relatives, at regular
intervals and as frequently as possible. 430 The frequency of the visits will depend on practical
considerations, including security needs. 431 The visitors need not be family members, but may
be, for example, close friends. 432
As far as is possible, internees shall be permitted to visit their homes in urgent cases,
particularly in cases of death or serious illness of relatives. 433
427
GC art. 114 (For this purpose, the said Power may give them permission to leave the place of internment in
urgent cases and if circumstances allow.).
428
GC COMMENTARY 473 (It, however, remains a rule that the internee may act only by delegating his powers,
since as one delegation to the Geneva Conference declared, it would not be reasonable to expect that an internee
should be enabled to conduct a whole business from his place of internment. In this case again, the Protecting
Power will often have its services in demand.).
429
GC art. 115 (In all cases where an internee is a party to proceedings in any court, the Detaining Power shall, if
he so requests, cause the court to be informed of his detention and shall, within legal limits, ensure that all necessary
steps are taken to prevent him from being in any way prejudiced, by reason of his internment, as regards the
preparation and conduct of his case or as regards the execution of any judgment of the court.).
430
GC art. 116 (Every internee shall be allowed to receive visitors, especially near relatives, at regular intervals and
as frequently as possible.).
431
See GC COMMENTARY 475 (The frequency of visits was not stated because it was important to leave the
detaining authorities discretion to appraise their security needs. Experience in the last war showed the advantage of
monthly or bi-monthly visits which, in places of internment far away from urban centres, could last from one to
three days.).
432
See GC COMMENTARY 475 (It is not only members of their families who are allowed to visit internees. In
Kenya [during World War II], for example, internees without a family had been authorized, at the request of the
delegate of the International Committee of the Red Cross, to have visits from friends to whom they were in no way
related. The results of this experience are embodied in the wording of this paragraph [of Article 116 of the GC].).
433
GC art. 116 (As far as is possible, internees shall be permitted to visit their homes in urgent cases, particularly in
cases of death or serious illness of relatives.).
705
10.26 INTERNEE ESCAPES
Similar to the rules on POW escape, 434 a number of provisions of the GC limit
punishment of internees with respect to escape. However, unlike POWs, 435 internees are not
afforded any protection from punishment for successful escapes.
10.26.1 Punishment for the Escape Itself. Internees who are recaptured after having
escaped, or when attempting to escape, shall be liable only to disciplinary punishment in respect
of this act, even if it is a repeated offense. 436
10.26.1.1 Punishment for Aiding and Abetting an Escape. Internees who aid and
abet an escape, or an attempt to escape, shall be liable on this count to disciplinary punishment
only. 437
434
Refer to 9.25 (POW Escapes).
435
Refer to 9.25.1 (No Punishment for Successful Escape).
436
GC art. 120 (Internees who are recaptured after having escaped or when attempting to escape, shall be liable
only to disciplinary punishment in respect of this act, even if it is a repeated offence.).
437
GC art. 120 (Internees who aid and abet an escape, or attempt to escape, shall be liable on this count to
disciplinary punishment only.).
438
GC art. 121 (Escape, or attempt to escape, even if it is a repeated offence, shall not be deemed an aggravating
circumstance in cases where an internee is prosecuted for offences committed during his escape.).
439
GC art. 121 (The Parties to the conflict shall ensure that the competent authorities exercise leniency in deciding
whether punishment inflicted for an offence shall be of a disciplinary or judicial nature, especially in respect of acts
committed in connection with an escape, whether successful or not.).
440
GC COMMENTARY 488 (It must be considered that whenever connected offences are not serious, they may only
be punished as breaches of discipline. If there is any doubt, the authorities should give the accused the benefit of
it.).
706
This requirement does not compel the competent authorities to choose disciplinary over
judicial proceedings in any particular case. 441
10.26.4 Notification of Escape and Recapture. If an internee escapes, the State of which
the internee was a national or in which the national resided should be notified by the Detaining
Powers National Protected Person Information Bureau through the intermediary of the
Protecting Powers and Central Information Agency for protected persons. 444
This section addresses the rules that apply to both judicial and disciplinary sanctions
regarding internees.
441
Compare 9.26.2 (Leniency in Favor of Disciplinary Rather Than Judicial Proceedings).
442
Refer to 10.27.5 (Treatment of Internees Who Have Served Sentences).
443
GC art. 120 (Article 118, paragraph 3, notwithstanding, internees punished as a result of escape or attempt to
escape, may be subjected to special surveillance, on condition that such surveillance does not affect the state of their
health, that it is exercised in a place of internment and that it does not entail the abolition of any of the safeguards
granted by the present Convention.).
444
Refer to 10.31.1 (Accountability Information That Parties to a Conflict Should Collect).
445
GC art. 117 (Subject to the provisions of the present Chapter, the laws in force in the territory in which they are
detained will continue to apply to internees who commit offences during internment.).
446
GC art. 117 (If general laws, regulations or orders declare acts committed by internees to be punishable,
whereas the same acts are not punishable when committed by persons who are not internees, such acts shall entail
disciplinary punishments only.).
707
10.27.3 No Repetition of Punishment. No internee may be punished more than once for
the same act, or on the same count. 447
10.27.5 Treatment of Internees Who Have Served Sentences. Internees who have served
disciplinary or judicial sentences shall not be treated differently from other internees. 453
708
does not absolve the commandant of his or her own responsibility and of his or her duty of
supervision. 455
10.28.2 Confinement of Internees Awaiting Trial. Acts that constitute offenses against
discipline shall be investigated immediately. 456 This rule shall be applied, in particular, in cases
of escape or attempt to escape. 457 Recaptured internees shall be handed over to the competent
authorities as soon as possible. 458 Competent authorities are those directly responsible for the
person concerned before the escape and who are entitled to direct that the internee receive a
disciplinary punishment. 459
The provisions of Articles 124 and 125 of the GC shall apply to internees who are in
confinement awaiting trial for offenses against discipline. 462 Thus, the conditions of any
confinement before the trial should be at least as good as those afforded internees who are
confined as part of disciplinary punishment. 463
455
GC COMMENTARY 490 (In very large places of internment, however, the need to place before the commandant
every case involving disciplinary punishment would lead to delays and complications. The Government Experts had
already noted this and, at their suggestion, the Stockholm Draft included a provision that disciplinary powers could
be delegated. This delegation of powers, authorized in the paragraph under discussion, does not however absolve
the commandant from his own responsibility nor his duty of supervision. Since, under Article 99, he is responsible
for the application of the Convention, he assumes responsibility for any abuses of which his subordinates might
become guilty in exercising the disciplinary power he has delegated to them.).
456
GC art. 122 (Acts which constitute offences against discipline shall be investigated immediately.).
457
GC art. 122 (This rule shall be applied, in particular, in cases of escape or attempt to escape.).
458
GC art. 122 (Recaptured internees shall be handed over to the competent authorities as soon as possible.).
459
See GC COMMENTARY 488 (With regard to handing over the recaptured internee to the competent authorities,
this text should be compared with paragraph 2 of Article 92 of the Third Convention, which provides that an
escaped prisoner of war must be handed over to the competent military authorities. In both cases the competent
authorities are those directly responsible for the person concerned before the escape-i.e. either the camp
commandant (or the commander of the labour detachment), or the commandant of the place of internment. In short,
the competent authority is the authority entitled to inflict a disciplinary punishment on the internee.).
460
GC art. 122 (In case of offences against discipline, confinement awaiting trial shall be reduced to an absolute
minimum for all internees, and shall not exceed fourteen days.).
461
See GC COMMENTARY 488 (While an investigation to establish the facts must always precede the infliction of a
punishment, it will not in this case have the complicated character of a judicial enquiry.).
462
GC art. 122 (The provisions of Articles 124 and 125 shall apply to internees who are in confinement awaiting
trial for offences against discipline.). Refer to 10.28.6 (Conditions for Internees Serving Disciplinary
Punishments).
463
See GC COMMENTARY 489 (This solution, moreover, is logical and conforms to the traditional procedure in
penal matters. Deprivation of liberty while awaiting trial indeed takes place before the guilt of the accused has been
established. Detention must not, therefore, be harsher for a man who is merely accused than for a guilty person.).
709
10.28.3 Rights of Internees in Disciplinary Proceedings. Before any disciplinary
punishment is awarded, the accused internee shall be given: (1) precise information regarding
the offenses of which he or she is accused; (2) an opportunity to explain his or her conduct; and
(3) an opportunity to defend himself or herself. 464 The internee shall be permitted, in particular,
to call witnesses and to have recourse, if necessary, to the services of a qualified interpreter. 465
The decision shall be announced in the presence of the accused and of a member of the
Internee Committee. 466
In addition, prolonged standing and roll-calls, punishment drill, military drill and
maneuvers, and the reduction of food rations are prohibited. 469
Account shall be taken of the internees age, sex, and state of health. 470 The disciplinary
punishments applicable to internees shall be the following:
a fine that shall not exceed 50 percent of the wages that the internee would otherwise
receive under Article 95 of the GC during a period of not more than thirty days;
discontinuance of privileges granted over and above the treatment provided for by the
GC;
fatigue duties, not exceeding two hours daily, in connection with the maintenance of the
place of internment; and
464
GC art. 123 (Before any disciplinary punishment is awarded, the accused internee shall be given precise
information regarding the offences of which he is accused, and given an opportunity of explaining his conduct and
of defending himself.).
465
GC art. 123 (He shall be permitted, in particular, to call witnesses and to have recourse, if necessary, to the
services of a qualified interpreter.).
466
GC art. 123 (The decision shall be announced in the presence of the accused and of a member of the Internee
Committee.).
467
GC art. 123 (A record of disciplinary punishments shall be maintained by the commandant of the place of
internment and shall be open to inspection by representatives of the Protecting Power.).
468
GC art. 119 (In no case shall disciplinary penalties be inhuman, brutal or dangerous for the health of
internees.).
469
Refer to 10.20.3.2 (Prohibition Against Prolonged Standing, Roll-Calls, Punishment Drill, Military Drill and
Manuevers, or the Reduction of Food Rations).
470
GC art. 119 (Account shall be taken of the internees age, sex and state of health.).
710
confinement. 471
The duration of any single punishment shall in no case exceed a maximum of thirty
consecutive days, even if the internee is answerable for several breaches of discipline when his
or her case is dealt with, regardless of whether such breaches are connected. 472
The duration of confinement awaiting trial shall in any case be deducted from any
sentence of confinement. 473
The period elapsing between the time of award of a disciplinary punishment and its
execution shall not exceed one month. 474 When an internee is awarded a further disciplinary
punishment, a period of at least three days shall elapse between the execution of any two of the
punishments, if the duration of one of these punishments is ten days or more. 475
471
GC art. 119 (The disciplinary punishments applicable to internees shall be the following: (1) A fine which shall
not exceed 50 per cent of the wages which the internee would otherwise receive under the provisions of Article 95
during a period of not more than thirty days. (2) Discontinuance of privileges granted over and above the treatment
provided for by the present Convention. (3) Fatigue duties, not exceeding two hours daily, in connection with the
maintenance of the place of internment. (4) Confinement.).
472
GC art. 119 (The duration of any single punishment shall in no case exceed a maximum of thirty consecutive
days, even if the internee is answerable for several breaches of discipline when his case is dealt with, whether such
breaches are connected or not.).
473
GC art. 122 (Its duration shall in any case be deducted from any sentence of confinement.).
474
GC art. 123 (The period elapsing between the time of award of a disciplinary punishment and its execution shall
not exceed one month.).
475
GC art. 123 (When an internee is awarded a further disciplinary punishment, a period of at least three days shall
elapse between the execution of any two of the punishments, if the duration of one of these is ten days or more.).
476
GC art. 124 (Internees shall not in any case be transferred to penitentiary establishments (prisons, penitentiaries,
convict prisons, etc.) to undergo disciplinary punishment therein.).
477
GC art. 124 (The premises in which disciplinary punishments are undergone shall conform to sanitary
requirements; they shall in particular be provided with adequate bedding.).
478
GC art. 124 (Internees undergoing punishment shall be enabled to keep themselves in a state of cleanliness.).
711
10.28.6.2 Exercise and Access to the Open Air. Internees awarded disciplinary
punishment shall be allowed to exercise and to stay in the open air at least two hours daily. 480
Exercising and staying in the open air should be given as an opportunity and should not be
compelled. 481
479
GC art. 124 (Women internees undergoing disciplinary punishment shall be confined in separate quarters from
male internees and shall be under the immediate supervision of women.).
480
GC art. 125 (Internees awarded disciplinary punishment shall be allowed to exercise and to stay in the open air
at least two hours daily.).
481
See GC COMMENTARY 495 (It should be made quite clear, moreover, that exercise in the open air is a possibility
offered to the internee; whether he takes advantage of it or not is according to his wishes. It would not be right,
indeed, if, under the pretext of applying this rule, certain commandants of places of internment made the punishment
more severe by compulsory exercise, keeping the internees in the full sun or the snow for two hours at a stretch as
sometimes happened during the Second World War.).
482
GC art. 125 (They shall be allowed, if they so request, to be present at the daily medical inspections.). Refer to
10.14.1.3 (Monthly Medical Inspections).
483
GC art. 125 (They shall receive the attention which their state of health requires and, if necessary, shall be
removed to the infirmary of the place of internment or to a hospital.).
484
GC art. 125 (They shall have permission to read and write, likewise to send and receive letters.). Refer to
10.23.2 (Internees Correspondence Rights and Quota).
485
GC art. 125 (Parcels and remittances of money, however, may be withheld from them until the completion of
their punishment; such consignments shall meanwhile be entrusted to the Internee Committee, who will hand over to
the infirmary the perishable goods contained in the parcels.).
486
GC art. 125 (No internee given a disciplinary punishment may be deprived of the benefit of the provisions of
Articles 107 and 143 of the present Convention.). Article 125 of the GC specifies Article 107 instead of Article
101. However, considering (1) the legislative history; (2) the parallel provision in Article 98 of the GPW that refers
to the right of making complaints; (3) the fact that the right to send or receive letters is already given in paragraph 3
of Article 125 of the GC; and (4) the principles underlying the GC; [i]t may therefore be deduced that the last
paragraph refers to Article 107 in error for Article 101. GC COMMENTARY 497.
712
representatives of the Protecting Power (including representatives of an impartial humanitarian
organization performing the functions of the Protecting Power). 487
487
Refer to 10.21 (Internee Petitions, Complaints); 10.33 (Access to Internees by Protecting Powers, ICRC, and
Other Relief Organizations).
488
GC art. 126 (The provisions of Articles 71 to 76 inclusive shall apply, by analogy, to proceedings against
internees who are in the national territory of the Detaining Power.).
489
GC art. 118 (Internee Committees shall be informed of all judicial proceedings instituted against internees
whom they represent, and of their result.).
490
GC art. 71 (Accused persons who are prosecuted by the Occupying Power shall be promptly informed, in
writing, in a language which they understand, of the particulars of the charges preferred against them, and shall be
brought to trial as rapidly as possible.).
491
GC art. 71 (The Protecting Power shall be informed of all proceedings instituted by the Occupying Power
against protected persons in respect of charges involving the death penalty or imprisonment for two years or more; it
shall be enabled, at any time, to obtain information regarding the state of such proceedings.).
713
particulars of these and of any other proceedings instituted by the Occupying or Detaining Power
against protected persons. 492
The notification to the Protecting Power, as provided for in the second paragraph of
Article 71 of the GC, shall be sent immediately, and shall in any case reach the Protecting Power
three weeks before the date of the first hearing. 493 Unless, at the opening of the trial, evidence is
submitted that the provisions of Article 71 of the GC are fully complied with, the trial shall not
proceed. 494 The notification shall include the following particulars:
specification of the charge or charges (with mention of the penal provisions under which
it is brought);
10.29.3 Right of Defense and Trial Procedure. Accused persons shall have the right to
present evidence necessary to their defense and may, in particular, call witnesses. 496 They shall
have the right to be assisted by a qualified advocate or counsel of their own choice, who shall be
able to visit them freely and shall enjoy the necessary facilities for preparing the defense. 497
492
GC art. 71 (Furthermore, the Protecting Power shall be entitled, on request, to be furnished with all particulars
of these and of any other proceedings instituted by the Occupying Power against protected persons.).
493
GC art. 71 (The notification to the Protecting Power, as provided for in the second paragraph above, shall be
sent immediately, and shall in any case reach the Protecting Power three weeks before the date of the first
hearing.).
494
GC art. 71 (Unless, at the opening of the trial, evidence is submitted that the provisions of this Article are fully
complied with, the trial shall not proceed.).
495
GC art. 71 (The notification shall include the following particulars: (a) description of the accused; (b) place of
residence or detention; (c) specification of the charge or charges (with mention of the penal provisions under which
it is brought); (d) designation of the court which will hear the case; (e) place and date of the first hearing.).
496
GC art. 72 (Accused persons shall have the right to present evidence necessary to their defence and may, in
particular, call witnesses.).
497
GC art. 72 (They shall have the right to be assisted by a qualified advocate or counsel of their own choice, who
shall be able to visit them freely and shall enjoy the necessary facilities for preparing the defence.).
498
GC art. 72 (Failing a choice by the accused, the Protecting Power may provide him with an advocate or
counsel.).
714
provide an advocate or counsel. 499 Accused persons shall, unless they freely waive such
assistance, be aided by an interpreter, both during preliminary investigation and during the
hearing in court. 500 They shall have the right at any time to object to the interpreter and to ask
for the interpreter to be replaced. 501
499
GC art. 72 (When an accused person has to meet a serious charge and the Protecting Power is not functioning,
the Occupying Power, subject to the consent of the accused, shall provide an advocate or counsel.).
500
GC art. 72 (Accused persons shall, unless they freely waive such assistance, be aided by an interpreter, both
during preliminary investigation and during the hearing in court.).
501
GC art. 72 (They shall have the right at any time to object to the interpreter and to ask for his replacement.).
502
GC art. 74 (Representatives of the Protecting Power shall have the right to attend the trial of any protected
person, unless the hearing has, as an exceptional measure, to be held in camera in the interests of the security of the
Occupying Power, which shall then notify the Protecting Power.).
503
GC art. 74 (A notification in respect of the date and place of trial shall be sent to the Protecting Power.).
504
GC art. 71 (No sentence shall be pronounced by the competent courts of the Occupying Power except after a
regular trial.).
505
GC art. 74 (Any judgment involving a sentence of death, or imprisonment for two years or more, shall be
communicated, with the relevant grounds, as rapidly as possible to the Protecting Power.).
506
GC art. 74 (The notification shall contain a reference to the notification made under Article 71, and, in the case
of sentences of imprisonment, the name of the place where the sentence is to be served.).
507
GC art. 74 (A record of judgments other than those referred to above shall be kept by the court and shall be open
to inspection by representatives of the Protecting Power.).
508
GC art. 74 (Any period allowed for appeal in the case of sentences involving the death penalty, or imprisonment
of two years or more, shall not run until notification of judgment has been received by the Protecting Power.).
715
10.29.4 Right of Appeal. A convicted person shall have the right of appeal provided for
by the laws applied by the court. 509 The convicted person shall be fully informed of his or her
right to appeal or petition, and of the time limit within which he or she may do so. 510
The penal procedure in Section III of the GC shall apply, as far as it is applicable, to
appeals. 511 Where the laws applied by the court make no provision for appeals, the convicted
person shall have the right to petition against the finding and sentence to the competent authority
of the Occupying or Detaining Power. 512
10.29.5 Death Sentences. In no case shall persons condemned to death be deprived of the
right of petition for pardon or reprieve. 513
No death sentence shall be carried out before the expiration of a period of at least six
months from the date of receipt by the Protecting Power of the notification of the final judgment
confirming such death sentence, or of an order denying pardon or reprieve. 514
The six-month period of suspension of the death sentence prescribed in Article 75 of the
GC may be reduced in individual cases in circumstances of grave emergency involving an
organized threat to the security of the Occupying or Detaining Power or its forces, provided
always that the Protecting Power is notified of such reduction and is given reasonable time and
opportunity to make representations to the competent occupying or domestic authorities in
respect of such death sentences. 515
10.29.6 Conditions for Accused or Convicted Protected Persons Who Are Detained. If
found in occupied territory, protected persons accused of offenses shall be detained in the
occupied country, and, if convicted, they shall serve their sentences therein. 516 This provision
does not preclude the appearance of convicted persons before appeal courts outside the occupied
509
GC art. 73 (A convicted person shall have the right of appeal provided for by the laws applied by the court.).
510
GC art. 73 (He shall be fully informed of his right to appeal or petition and of the time limit within which he
may do so.).
511
GC art. 73 (The penal procedure provided in the present Section shall apply, as far as it is applicable, to
appeals.).
512
GC art. 73 (Where the laws applied by the Court make no provision for appeals, the convicted person shall have
the right to petition against the finding and sentence to the competent authority of the Occupying Power.).
513
GC art. 75 (In no case shall persons condemned to death be deprived of the right of petition for pardon or
reprieve.).
514
GC art. 75 (No death sentence shall be carried out before the expiration of a period of at least six months from
the date of receipt by the Protecting Power of the notification of the final judgment confirming such death sentence,
or of an order denying pardon or reprieve.).
515
GC art. 75 (The six months period of suspension of the death sentence herein prescribed may be reduced in
individual cases in circumstances of grave emergency involving an organized threat to the security of the Occupying
Power or its forces, provided always that the Protecting Power is notified of such reduction and is given reasonable
time and opportunity to make representations to the competent occupying authorities in respect of such death
sentences.).
516
GC art. 76 (Protected persons accused of offences shall be detained in the occupied country, and if convicted
they shall serve their sentences therein.).
716
territory, or the possibility of protected persons receiving medical care outside the occupied
territory. 517
Accused or convicted protected persons who are detained shall, if possible, be separated
from other detainees and shall enjoy conditions of food and hygiene that will be sufficient to
keep them in good health, and that will be at least equal to those obtaining in prisons in that
country. 518
10.29.6.2 Separate Confinement for Women and Special Treatment for Minors.
Women shall be confined in separate quarters and shall be under the direct supervision of
women. 521 Proper regard shall be paid to the special treatment due to minors. 522
10.29.6.3 Visits by the Protecting Power and ICRC and Right to Receive Relief
Parcel. Accused or convicted protected persons who are detained shall have the right to be
visited by delegates of the Protecting Power and the ICRC, in accordance with the provisions of
Article 143 of the GC. 523 Accused or convicted protected persons who are detained also shall
have the right to receive at least one relief parcel monthly. 524
The rules in this section apply to transfers of internees from the place of internment.
517
See II-A FINAL RECORD OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 835 (A provision appeared in
Article 67 of the Stockholm text that protected persons indicted or convicted by the courts in occupied territory shall
in no case be taken outside the said territory. The Committee felt this prohibition to be too emphatic since it would
preclude the appearance of convicted persons before appeal courts outside the occupied territory, or the possibility
of their receiving health treatment outside the territory. The Committee considered that the principle behind this
provision could be preserved by including in Article 66 a provision to the effect that protected persons indicted shall
be detained in the occupied country and if convicted shall serve their sentence therein.).
518
GC art. 76 (They shall, if possible, be separated from other detainees and shall enjoy conditions of food and
hygiene which will be sufficient to keep them in good health, and which will be at least equal to those obtaining in
prisons in the occupied country.).
519
GC art. 76 (They shall receive the medical attention required by their state of health.).
520
GC art. 76 (They shall also have the right to receive any spiritual assistance which they may require.).
521
GC art. 76 (Women shall be confined in separate quarters and shall be under the direct supervision of women.).
522
GC art. 76 (Proper regard shall be paid to the special treatment due to minors.).
523
GC art. 76 (Protected persons who are detained shall have the right to be visited by delegates of the Protecting
Power and of the International Committee of the Red Cross, in accordance with the provisions of Article 143.).
524
GC art. 76 (Such persons shall have the right to receive at least one relief parcel monthly.).
717
Additional rules apply to the transfer of protected persons from the belligerents home
territory. 525 Individual or mass forcible transfers of protected persons from occupied territory are
prohibited. 526
Sick, wounded, or infirm internees, and maternity cases, shall not be transferred if the
journey would be seriously detrimental to them, unless their safety imperatively so demands. 528
If the combat zone draws close to a place of internment, the internees in that place shall
not be transferred unless their removal can be carried out in adequate conditions of safety, or
unless they are exposed to greater risks by remaining on the spot than by being transferred. 529
10.30.2 Conditions for the Transfer of Internees. The transfer of internees shall always
be effected humanely. 530 As a general rule, it shall be carried out by rail or other means of
transport, and under conditions at least equal to those obtaining for the forces of the Detaining
Power in their changes of station. 531 If, as an exceptional measure, such removals have to be
effected on foot, they may not take place unless the internees are in a fit state of health, and may
not in any case expose them to excessive fatigue. 532 This provision seeks to prevent abuses such
as the forced death marches that occurred during World War II. 533 When considering
525
Refer to 10.8.3 (Transfers of Protected Persons From a Belligerents Home Territory).
526
Refer to 11.12.3 (Prohibition Against Forcible Transfers and Deportations).
527
GC art. 127 (When making decisions regarding the transfer of internees, the Detaining Power shall take their
interests into account and, in particular, shall not do anything to increase the difficulties of repatriating them or
returning them to their own homes.).
528
GC art. 127 (Sick, wounded or infirm internees and maternity cases shall not be transferred if the journey would
be seriously detrimental to them, unless their safety imperatively so demands.).
529
GC art. 127 (If the combat zone draws close to a place of internment, the internees in the said place shall not be
transferred unless their removal can be carried out in adequate conditions of safety, or unless they are exposed to
greater risks by remaining on the spot than by being transferred.).
530
GC art. 127 (The transfer of internees shall always be effected humanely.).
531
GC art. 127 (As a general rule, it shall be carried out by rail or other means of transport, and under conditions at
least equal to those obtaining for the forces of the Detaining Power in their changes of station.).
532
GC art. 127 (If, as an exceptional measure, such removals have to be effected on foot, they may not take place
unless the internees are in a fit state of health, and may not in any case expose them to excessive fatigue.).
533
II-A FINAL RECORD OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 269 (Mr. GARDNER (United
Kingdom) submitted the three following amendments: It had been proved that during the Second World War over
ten thousand prisoners lost their lives while being transferred by sea; but a very much larger number lost their lives
while being transferred by land. He referred not only to the Bataan march, but also to a march in Borneo where
some four thousand prisoners had started out, and only six or seven survived. There were also the forced marches
carried out by prisoners in Central Europe towards the end of the war; it was certainly not due to any efforts by the
Detaining Power that the number of deaths during those marches was comparatively small.).
718
movement by foot, the Detaining Power must assess the fitness of each individual, not the
condition of the majority. 534
The Detaining Power shall supply internees during transfer with drinking water and food
sufficient in quantity, quality, and variety to maintain them in good health, and also with the
necessary clothing, adequate shelter, and the necessary medical attention. 535 The Detaining
Power shall take all suitable precautions to ensure their safety during transfer, and shall establish
before their departure a complete list of all internees transferred. 536
10.30.3 Procedures for the Transfer of Internees. In the event of transfer, internees shall
be officially advised of their departure and of their new postal address. 537 Such notification shall
be given in time for them to pack their luggage and inform their next of kin. 538
10.30.3.1 Baggage. Internees shall be allowed to take with them their personal
effects, and the correspondence and parcels that have arrived for them. 539 The weight of such
baggage may be limited if the conditions of transfer so require, but in no case may be limited to
less than 25 kilograms (approximately 55 pounds) per internee. 540
10.30.3.2 Forwarding of Mail. Mail and parcels addressed to their former place
of internment shall be forwarded to internees without delay. 541
534
GC COMMENTARY 499 (It is stated expressly that transfers on foot are only permissible in exceptional cases and
if the internees are in a fit state of health. It is not the physical fitness of the majority of the internees which is to
decide whether the transfer will be made on foot or not. The fitness of each individual must be considered and those
who cannot walk must be taken in some sort of transport.).
535
GC art. 127 (The Detaining Power shall supply internees during transfer with drinking water and food sufficient
in quantity, quality and variety to maintain them in good health, and also with the necessary clothing, adequate
shelter and the necessary medical attention.).
536
GC art. 127 (The Detaining Power shall take all suitable precautions to ensure their safety during transfer, and
shall establish before their departure a complete list of all internees transferred.).
537
GC art. 128 (In the event of transfer, internees shall be officially advised of their departure and of their new
postal address.).
538
GC art. 128 (Such notification shall be given in time for them to pack their luggage and inform their next of
kin.).
539
GC art. 128 (They shall be allowed to take with them their personal effects, and the correspondence and parcels
which have arrived for them.).
540
GC art. 128 (The weight of such baggage may be limited if the conditions of transfer so require, but in no case
to less than twenty-five kilograms per internee.).
541
GC art. 128 (Mail and parcels addressed to their former place of internment shall be forwarded to them without
delay.).
719
luggage the internees are unable to take with them in consequence of restrictions that may be
imposed on baggage that internees may take with them. 542
The information received by the National Protected Person Information Bureau and
transmitted by it shall be of such a character as to make it possible to identify the protected
person exactly and to advise his or her next of kin quickly. 544 The information in respect of each
person shall include at least:
surname (i.e., last name) and first names (i.e., first and middle names);
nationality;
last residence;
first name of the father and the maiden name of the mother;
the date, place, and nature of the action taken with regard to the individual;
542
GC art. 128 (The commandant of the place of internment shall take, in agreement with the Internee Committee,
any measures needed to ensure the transport of the internees community property and of the luggage the internees
are unable to take with them in consequence of restrictions imposed by virtue of the second paragraph.).
543
GC art. 136 (Each of the Parties to the conflict shall, within the shortest possible period, give its Bureau
information of any measure taken by it concerning any protected persons who are kept in custody for more than two
weeks, who are subjected to assigned residence or who are interned.).
544
GC art. 138 (The information received by the national Bureau and transmitted by it shall be of such a character
as to make it possible to identify the protected person exactly and to advise his next of kin quickly.).
720
the name and address of the person designated by the protected person to be informed of
information concerning him or her. 545
545
GC art. 138 (The information in respect of each person shall include at least his surname, first names, place and
date of birth, nationality, last residence and distinguishing characteristics, the first name of the father and the maiden
name of the mother, the date, place and nature of the action taken with regard to the individual, the address at which
correspondence may be sent to him and the name and address of the person to be informed.).
546
GC art. 136 (It shall, furthermore, require its various departments concerned with such matters to provide the
aforesaid Bureau promptly with information concerning all changes pertaining to these protected persons, as, for
example, transfers, releases, repatriations, escapes, admittances to hospitals, births and deaths.).
547
GC art. 138 (Likewise, information regarding the state of health of internees who are seriously ill or seriously
wounded shall be supplied regularly and if possible every week.).
548
Refer to 10.34.2 (Death Certificates).
549
Refer to 10.34.4 (Maintenance and Records of Graves and Ashes).
550
GC art. 136 (Upon the outbreak of a confict and in all cases of occupation, each of the Parties to the conflict
shall establish an official Information Bureau responsible for receiving and transmitting information in respect of the
protected persons who are in its power.).
551
GC COMMENTARY 523 ([Paragraph 1 of Article 136 of the GC] does not state in detail the nature, composition
and working methods of the Bureau, all these matters being left to the free decision of each Party, nor does it state
what authority will be responsible for establishing and conducting the Bureau. During the Second World War,
the Bureaux which had the task of transmitting information concerning civilian internees to the Central Agency were
varied in nature and origin. In some cases, they were the same as the Bureaux responsible for prisoners of war; in
others, they were established by the National Red Cross Society; most often, however, they depended directly on
government authorities, such as the Ministry of the Interior or the Ministry of Security.).
721
All communications in writing made by any National Protected Person Information
Bureau shall be authenticated by a signature or a seal. 552
The National Protected Person Information Bureau: (1) receives and forwards certain
information to the Powers concerned, through the intermediary of the Protecting Powers and the
Central Information Agency for protected persons; (2) replies to inquiries; (3) withholds certain
information from the Powers concerned, but not the Central Information Agency for protected
persons, in the interest of protected persons or their relatives; (4) collects personal valuables left
by certain protected persons; and (5) in occupied territory, has a special section that is
responsible for identifying children whose identity is in doubt.
552
GC art. 137 (All communications in writing made by any Bureau shall be authenticated by a signature or a
seal.).
553
GC art. 136 (Each of the Parties to the conflict shall, within the shortest possible period, give its Bureau
information of any measure taken by it concerning any protected persons who are kept in custody for more than two
weeks, who are subjected to assigned residence or who are interned. It shall, furthermore, require its various
departments concerned with such matters to provide the aforesaid Bureau promptly with information concerning all
changes pertaining to these protected persons, as, for example, transfers, releases, repatriations, escapes, admittances
to hospitals, births and deaths.).
554
GC art. 137 (Each national Bureau shall immediately forward information concerning protected persons by the
most rapid means to the Powers of whom the aforesaid persons are nationals, or to Powers in whose territory they
resided, through the intermediary of the Protecting Powers and likewise through the Central Agency provided for in
Article 140.).
555
GC art. 137 (The Bureaux shall also reply to all enquiries which may be received regarding protected persons.).
556
Refer to 10.5.2 (Protection Against Insults and Public Curiosity).
557
GC art. 137 (Information Bureaux shall transmit information concerning a protected person unless its
transmission might be detrimental to the person concerned or to his or her relatives.).
722
from the Central Information Agency for protected persons, which, upon being notified of the
circumstances, will take the necessary precautions indicated in Article 140 of the GC. 558 This
rule seeks to protect persons who have fled persecution from their home governments, as well as
the family members of such persons. 559
558
GC art. 137 (Even in such a case, the information may not be withheld from the Central Agency which, upon
being notified of the circumstances, will take the necessary precautions indicated in Article 140.).
559
GC COMMENTARY 531 (This paragraph contains a provision not included in the Third Convention. It seeks to
protect civilians in enemy hands and particularly their families in their country of origin, against the authorities of
that country if they should have any reason for particular animosity towards them. This exceptional provision is
based on the confused situations which occurred during the First World War. Civilians who have fled from
persecution generally have an interest in remaining unknown to the authorities of their former country. They must
therefore judge for themselves the expediency of notification to the authorities, even in the case of the forwarding of
information to members of their family.).
560
GC art. 139 (Each national Information Bureau shall, furthermore, be responsible for collecting all personal
valuables left by protected persons mentioned in Article 136, in particular those who have been repatriated or
released, or who have escaped or died;).
561
GC art. 139 ([I]t shall forward the said valuables to those concerned, either direct, or, if necessary, through the
Central Agency.).
562
GC COMMENTARY 538 (The term personal valuables should be understood to mean all the articles which
belonged to the person who is no longer there--whether he has been repatriated or has died--which are of any
commercial worth or sentimental value. It must always be remembered that an article of absolutely no intrinsic
worth may often have very great sentimental value for the next of kin of the deceased person. In practice, therefore,
almost all the articles found on the spot will be collected and forwarded. The corresponding provision of the Third
Convention (Article 122, paragraph 9) adds to the expression personal valuables the words including sums in
currencies other than that of the Detaining Power and documents of importance to the next of kin. This expression
has not been retained in the Fourth Convention mainIy because it was considered that the term valuables covered
sums of money and that since the value of papers could be judged only by the next of kin, they should be forwarded
to those persons, particularly if they seemed to be of a legal nature. It will be for the Detaining Power to decide
what foreign currency may be sent if any. Among the documents which should be carefully kept are wills, which
are particularly important.).
563
GC art. 139 (Such articles shall be sent by the Bureau in sealed packets which shall be accompanied by
statements giving clear and full identity particulars of the person to whom the articles belonged, and by a complete
list of the contents of the parcel.).
564
GC art. 139 (Detailed records shall be maintained of the receipt and despatch of all such valuables.).
723
10.31.2.5 Special Section for the Identification of Children in Occupied Territory.
In occupation, a special section of the National Protected Person Information Bureau shall be
responsible for taking all necessary steps to identify children whose identity is in doubt. 565
Particulars of their parents or other near relatives should always be recorded if available. 566
The function of the Central Information Agency for protected persons shall be to collect
all information of the type set forth in Article 136 of the GC, which it may obtain through
official or private channels, and to transmit it as rapidly as possible to the countries of origin or
of residence of the persons concerned, except in cases where such transmissions might be
detrimental to the persons whom this information concerns, or to their relatives. 569 The Central
Information Agency for protected persons shall receive from the parties to the conflict all
reasonable facilities for effecting such transmissions. 570 Parties to the GC, and in particular
those States whose nationals benefit from the services of the Central Information Agency for
protected persons, are requested to give the Central Information Agency for protected persons
the financial aid it may require. 571
The provisions of the GC establishing the Central Information Agency for protected
persons do not restrict the humanitarian activities of the ICRC and of the relief societies
described in Article 142 of the GC. 572
The GC contemplates that the ICRC shall, if it deems necessary, propose to the Powers
concerned the organization of a Central Information Agency for protected persons. 573 In fact, the
565
GC art. 50 (A special section of the Bureau set up in accordance with Article 136 shall be responsible for taking
all necessary steps to identify children whose identity is in doubt.).
566
GC art. 50 (Particulars of their parents or other near relatives should always be recorded if available.).
567
GC art. 140 (A Central Information Agency for protected persons, in particular for internees, shall be created in
a neutral country. The International Committee of the Red Cross shall, if it deems necessary, propose to the Powers
concerned the organization of such an Agency, which may be the same as that provided for in Article 123 of the
Geneva Convention relative to the Treatment of Prisoners of War of August 12, 1949.).
568
Refer to 9.31.3 (Central POW Information Agency).
569
GC art. 140 (The function of the Agency shall be to collect all information of the type set forth in Article 136
which it may obtain through official or private channels and to transmit it as rapidly as possible to the countries of
origin or of residence of the persons concerned, except in cases where such transmissions might be detrimental to
the persons whom the said information concerns, or to their relatives.).
570
GC art. 140 (It shall receive from the Parties to the conflict all reasonable facilities for effecting such
transmissions.).
571
GC art. 140 (The High Contracting Parties, and in particular those whose nationals benefit by the services of the
Central Agency, are requested to give the said Agency the financial aid it may require.).
572
GC art. 140 (The foregoing provisions shall in no way be interpreted as restricting the humanitarian activities of
the International Committee of the Red Cross and of the relief societies described in Article 142.).
724
role of the Central Information Agency for protected persons has been performed in many
conflicts by the ICRC Central Tracing Agency, which has also performed this role for POWs. 574
10.31.4 U.S. Practice in Reporting to the ICRC Central Tracing Agency. For the United
States, the functions of the National Protected Person Information Bureau have been performed
by the same entity that performs the functions of the National POW Information Bureau: the
National Prisoner of War Information Center or the National Detainee Reporting Center. 575 This
organization has provided information to the ICRC Central Tracing Agency, acting as the
Central Information Agency for protected persons under the GC.
The National Protected Person Information Bureau and the Central Information Agency
for protected persons shall also enjoy exemption from postal charges in respect of letter-post
items, postal parcels, and monetary articles that concern internees, which they send or receive,
either directly or as intermediaries, under the conditions laid down in the Universal Postal
Convention. 578 Such items exempt from postal charges should be marked appropriately. 579
The Protecting Power is an organ for ensuring implementation of the GC. The Protecting
Power has extensive duties under the GC. It transmits information between belligerents,
573
GC art. 140 (The International Committee of the Red Cross shall, if it deems necessary, propose to the Powers
concerned the organization of such an Agency, which may be the same as that provided for in Article 123 of the
Geneva Convention relative to the Treatment of Prisoners of War of August 12, 1949.).
574
Refer to 9.31.3 (Central POW Information Agency).
575
Refer to 9.31.4 (U.S. Practice in Reporting to the ICRC Central Tracing Agency).
576
Refer to 10.23.4 (Exemption From Postal and Shipping Charges for Shipments To and From Internees).
577
GC art. 141 (The national Information Bureaux and the Central Information Agency shall enjoy free postage for
all mail, likewise the exemptions provided for in Article 110, and further, so far as possible, exemption from
telegraphic charges or, at least, greatly reduced rates.).
578
Universal Postal Convention, art. 17(3), Dec. 14, 1989, 1687 UNTS 241, 252 (The national Information
Bureaux and the Central Information Agencies mentioned above shall also enjoy exemption from postal charges in
respect of letter-post items, postal parcels and monetary articles which concern the persons referred to in paragraphs
1 and 2, which they send or receive, either direct or as intermediaries, under the conditions laid down in those
paragraphs.). Consider Letter Post Regulations, Article RL 111 to Article 7 of the Universal Postal Convention of
Oct. 11, 2012, reprinted in INTERNATIONAL BUREAU OF THE UNIVERSAL POSTAL UNION, LETTER POST MANUAL,
page C.10, C.10-11 (Berne 2013, Update 2 Jan. 2015) (The following shall enjoy exemption from postal charges
within the meaning of article 7.2 of the Convention: 1.3 the Information Bureaux provided for in article 136 of
the Geneva Convention of 12 August 1949 relative to the protection of civilian persons in time of war; 1.4 the
Central Information Agency provided for in article 140 of the latter Convention.).
579
Refer to 10.23.4.3 (Exemption From Postal Charges Under the Universal Postal Convention).
725
monitors compliance with the GC, and takes an active role in promoting the welfare of protected
persons.
accountability information concerning measures that States have taken with respect to
protected persons in their power; 581
official translations of the GC and of laws and regulations that parties to the conflict have
adopted to implement it. 585
10.32.2 Monitoring or Inspecting Compliance With the GC. The Protecting Power
monitors or inspects the Detaining Powers compliance with the GC, including by:
visiting places where protected persons are and interviewing them; 586
receiving petitions and complaints from internees and periodic reports from the Internee
Committees; 587
communicating with members of the Internee Committees and receiving the reasons for
any refusal or dismissal of a member of an Internee Committee; 588
580
Refer to 10.11.1.2 (Sharing Information on the Location of Places of Internment).
581
Refer to 10.31 (National Accounting for Protected Persons in Its Power).
582
Refer to 10.24.2 (Legal Documents and Assistance).
583
Refer to 10.34.2 (Death Certificates).
584
Refer to 10.2.2.2 (Notification of Measures Taken for Implementing GC Provisions That Address Relations
Between Internees and the Exterior).
585
GC art. 145 (The High Contracting Parties shall communicate to one another through the Swiss Federal Council
and, during hostilities, through the Protecting Powers, the official translations of the present Convention, as well as
the laws and regulations which they may adopt to ensure the application thereof.).
586
Refer to 10.33.1 (Access by Protecting Powers).
587
Refer to 10.21.1 (Internee Right to Present Petitions and Complaints); 10.21.3 (Periodic Reports by the
Internee Committees).
726
receiving up-to-date lists of labor detachments so its representatives may visit them; 589
receiving notice if military necessity should require that the quantity of individual parcels
or collective shipments be limited; 591
lending its good offices with a view towards settling disagreements as to application or
interpretation of the provisions of the GC between parties to the conflict. 596
588
Refer to 10.22.1.1 (Approval of Internee Committee Members by the Detaining Authorities).
589
Refer to 10.17.5 (Labor Detachments of Internees).
590
Refer to 10.28.4 (Record of Disciplinary Punishments).
591
Refer to 10.23.3 (Receipt of Individual and Collective Relief Shipments for Internees).
592
Refer to 10.19.3.2 (Account Statement).
593
Refer to 10.34.5 (Inquiries Into Death or Serious Injury of Internees in Certain Cases).
594
Refer to 10.19.2 (Internee Allowances).
595
Refer to 10.23.5 (Special Means of Transport of Shipments to Internees).
596
Refer to 18.15.4 (Lending of Good Offices to Assist in Dispute Resolution).
597
GC art. 143 (Representatives or delegates of the Protecting Powers shall have permission to go to all places
where protected persons are, particularly to places of internment, detention and work.).
727
through an interpreter. 598 Such visits may not be prohibited except for reasons of imperative
military necessity, and then only as an exceptional and temporary measure. 599 Their duration
and frequency must not be restricted. 600
Such representatives and delegates shall have full liberty to select the places they wish to
visit. 601
The appointment of such delegates shall be submitted to the approval of the Power
governing the territories where they will carry out their duties. 604
10.33.2 Access by Relief Societies and Other Organizations. Subject to the measures that
the Detaining Powers may consider essential to ensure their security, or to meet any other
reasonable need, the representatives of religious organizations, relief societies, or any other
organizations assisting the protected persons shall receive from these Powers all facilities for
visiting the protected persons; for distributing relief supplies and material from any source
intended for educational, recreational, or religious purposes; or for assisting them in organizing
their leisure time within the places of internment. 605 Such societies or organizations may be
598
GC art. 143 (They shall have access to all premises occupied by protected persons and shall be able to interview
the latter without witnesses, personally or through an interpreter.).
599
GC art. 143 (Such visits may not be prohibited except for reasons of imperative military necessity, and then only
as an exceptional and temporary measure.).
600
GC art. 143 (Their duration and frequency shall not be restricted.).
601
GC art. 143 (Such representatives and delegates shall have full liberty to select the places they wish to visit.).
602
GC art. 143 (The Detaining or Occupying Power, the Protecting Power and when occasion arises the Power of
origin of the persons to be visited, may agree that compatriots of the internees shall be permitted to participate in the
visits.).
603
GC art. 143 (The delegates of the International Committee of the Red Cross shall also enjoy the above
prerogatives.).
604
GC art. 143 (The appointment of such delegates shall be submitted to the approval of the Power governing the
territories where they will carry out their duties.).
605
GC art. 142 (Subject to the measures which the Detaining Powers may consider essential to ensure their security
or to meet any other reasonable need, the representatives of religious organizations, relief societies, or any other
organizations assisting the protected persons, shall receive from these Powers, for themselves or their duly
accredited agents, all facilities for visiting the protected persons, for distributing relief supplies and material from
any source, intended for educational, recreational or religious purposes, or for assisting them in organizing their
leisure time within the places of internment.).
728
constituted in occupied territory, in the territory of the Detaining Power, or in any other country,
or they may have an international character. 606
10.34.1 Transmittal of Wills. The Detaining Power has an obligation to help internees
with their wills, such as by receiving them for safe-keeping. 609 In the event of the death of an
internee, his or her will shall be transmitted without delay to a person whom he or she has
previously designated. 610
An official record of the death, duly registered, shall be drawn up in accordance with the
procedure relating thereto in force in the territory where the place of internment is situated, and a
duly certified copy of such record shall be transmitted without delay to the Protecting Power and
to the Central Information Agency for protected persons. 612
606
GC art. 142 (Such societies or organizations may be constituted in the territory of the Detaining Power, or in any
other country, or they may have an international character.).
607
GC art. 142 (The Detaining Power may limit the number of societies and organizations whose delegates are
allowed to carry out their activities in its territory and under its supervision, on condition, however, that such
limitation shall not hinder the supply of effective and adequate relief to all protected persons.).
608
GC art. 142 (The special position of the International Committee of the Red Cross in this field shall be
recognized and respected at all times.).
609
Refer to 10.24.2 (Legal Documents and Assistance).
610
GC art. 129 ([I]n the event of the death of an internee his will shall be transmitted without delay to a person
whom he has previously designated.).
611
GC art. 129 (Deaths of internees shall be certified in every case by a doctor, and a death certificate shall be
made out, showing the causes of death and the conditions under which it occurred.).
612
GC art. 129 (An official record of the death, duly registered, shall be drawn up in accordance with the procedure
relating thereto in force in the territory where the place of internment is situated, and a duly certified copy of such
record shall be transmitted without delay to the Protecting Power as well as to the Central Agency referred to in
Article 140.).
729
10.34.3 Burial or Cremation and Inurnment. The detaining authorities shall ensure that
internees who die while interned are honorably buried, if possible according to the rites of the
religion to which they belonged. 613
10.34.4 Maintenance and Records of Graves and Ashes. The detaining authorities shall
ensure that the graves of internees who die while interned are respected, properly maintained,
and marked in such a way that they can always be recognized. 619 Ideally, the markings on the
graves should contain at least the surname, first name, and date of birth of the dead person in
detail and in a durable fashion. 620
As soon as circumstances permit, and not later than the close of hostilities, the Detaining
Power shall forward lists of graves of deceased internees to the Powers on whom the deceased
613
GC art. 130 (The detaining authorities shall ensure that internees who die while interned are honourably buried,
if possible according to the rites of the religion to which they belonged, .).
614
GC art. 130 (Deceased internees shall be buried in individual graves unless unavoidable circumstances require
the use of collective graves.).
615
GC COMMENTARY 507 (However desirable it may be to have individual graves properly marked, advocated as
the general practice by the Convention, the Article does allow of exceptions. These would be valid for reasons of
force majeure, during an epidemic, for example, if the death of an excessively large number of persons created a
danger of infection which did not allow time for the digging of individual graves, or again if warlike operations
obliged the Detaining Power to retreat and before retreating and from lack of time it undertook collective burials in
the interests of public health.).
616
GC art. 130 (Bodies may be cremated only for imperative reasons of hygiene, on account of the religion of the
deceased or in accordance with his expressed wish to this effect.).
617
GC art. 130 (In case of cremation, the fact shall be stated and the reasons given in the death certificate of the
deceased.).
618
GC art. 130 (The ashes shall be retained for safe-keeping by the detaining authorities and shall be transferred as
soon as possible to the next of kin on their request.).
619
GC art. 130 (The detaining authorities shall ensure that their graves are respected, properly maintained, and
marked in such a way that they can always be recognized.).
620
GC COMMENTARY 506-07 (The Convention does not state how graves should be marked. The practice of
placing individual markings on the grave showing the surname, first name and date of birth of the dead person in
detail and in a durable fashion, is, however, particularly to be recommended to belligerents wishing to fulfill their
obligations. The same applies to ashes in the case of cremation, as mentioned in the following paragraph.).
730
internees depended, through the National Protected Person Information Bureau. 621 Such lists
shall include all particulars necessary for the identification of the deceased internees, as well as
the exact location of their graves. 622
10.34.5 Inquiries Into Death or Serious Injury of Internees in Certain Cases. Every death
or serious injury of an internee, caused or suspected to have been caused by a sentry, another
internee, or any other person, as well as any death the cause of which is unknown, shall be
immediately followed by an official inquiry by the Detaining Power. 623 A communication on
this subject shall be sent immediately to the Protecting Power. 624
Serious injury, in many cases, may be understood to mean a wound that requires in-
patient treatment at a hospital or infirmary. 625
The evidence of any witnesses shall be taken, and a report including such evidence shall
be prepared and forwarded to the Protecting Power. 626
If the inquiry indicates the guilt of one or more persons, the Detaining Power shall take
all necessary steps to ensure the prosecution of the person or persons responsible. 627 For
example, depending on the circumstances, prosecutions could take place in the civil or military
courts of the Detaining Power or in accordance with the laws in force in the territory where they
happen to be interned. 628
621
GC art. 130 (As soon as circumstances permit, and not later than the close of hostilities, the Detaining Power
shall forward lists of graves of deceased internees to the Powers on whom the deceased internees depended, through
the Information Bureaux provided for in Article 136.).
622
GC art. 130 (Such lists shall include all particulars necessary for the identification of the deceased internees, as
well as the exact location of their graves.).
623
GC art. 131 (Every death or serious injury of an internee, caused or suspected to have been caused by a sentry,
another internee or any other person, as well as any death the cause of which is unknown, shall be immediately
followed by an official enquiry by the Detaining Power.).
624
GC art. 131 (A communication on this subject shall be sent immediately to the Protecting Power.).
625
GC COMMENTARY 509 (What is meant by serious injury? During the discussion of the corresponding text
concerning prisoners of war, one delegation suggested that it should be made clear that what was referred to was a
wound as a result of which a prisoner required in-patient treatment in a hospital or an infirmary. This definition was
considered too rigid and was therefore not inserted in the Convention, but it could usefully be adopted in most
cases.). Compare 9.34.5 (Inquiries Into Death or Serious Injury of POWs in Certain Cases).
626
GC art. 131 (The evidence of any witnesses shall be taken, and a report including such evidence shall be
prepared and forwarded to the said Protecting Power.).
627
GC art. 131 (If the enquiry indicates the guilt of one or more persons, the Detaining Power shall take all
necessary steps to ensure the prosecution of the person or persons responsible.).
628
GC COMMENTARY 510 (If the enquiry leads to responsibility being laid at the door of one or more persons,
whoever they may be, they must be prosecuted before a court of law. If they are nationals of the Detaining Power,
that Power will not be able to exempt them from prosecution before its own civil or military courts. In the case of
internees, they will be prosecuted in accordance with the laws in force in the teritory [sic] where they happen to be
(Article 117, paragraph 1).).
731
10.35 RELEASE, RETURN, REPATRIATION OF INTERNEES AFTER THE CLOSE OF HOSTILITIES
10.35.1 Cessation of Internment After the Close of Hostilities. Internment shall cease as
soon as possible after the close of hostilities. 629 The GC, however, does not preclude internment
after the close of hostilities. 630 For example, internment may be necessary during occupation
after hostilities have ended.
10.35.2 Return to the Last Place of Residence or Repatriation. The Parties to the GC
shall endeavor, upon the close of hostilities or occupation, to ensure the return of all internees to
their last place of residence, or to facilitate their repatriation. 634
629
GC art. 133 (Internment shall cease as soon as possible after the close of hostilities.).
630
See II-A FINAL RECORD OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 844 (The only change effected
in the Stockholm text is the deletion of the words and, in occupied territories, at the close of occupation in the first
paragraph. The reason for the deletion was that the close of occupation necessarily means that internment by the
Occupying Power comes to an end. The Committee did not accept the view that the retention of the remainder of
the paragraph, i.e. the phrase Internment shall cease as soon as possible after the close of hostilities bore the
implication that no person could be interned after the close of hostilities.).
631
GC COMMENTARY 514-15 (The expression the close of hostilities should be taken to mean a state of fact rather
than the legal situation covered by laws or decrees fixing the date of cessation of hostilities. The similar provision
concerning prisoners of war speaks of the cessation of active hostilities and the wording of the paragraph here
should be understood in the same sense.). Refer to 9.37.2 (Cessation of Active Hostilities).
632
GC art. 133 (Internees in the territory of a Party to the conflict, against whom penal proceedings are pending for
offences not exclusively subject to disciplinary penalties, may be detained until the close of such proceedings and, if
circumstances require, until the completion of the penalty.).
633
GC art. 133 (The same shall apply to internees who have been previously sentenced to a punishment depriving
them of liberty.).
634
GC art. 134 (The High Contracting Parties shall endeavour, upon the close of hostilities or occupation, to ensure
the return of all internees to their last place of residence, or to facilitate their repatriation.).
635
GC COMMENTARY 519 ([I]t would be contrary to the spirit of the Convention if an internee could be forcibly
repatriated when he feared persecution in his country of origin for his political opinions or his religious beliefs. In
such a case he would become a refugee, obliged to seek a new domicile in a country different from the one in which
he is living.).
636
Refer to 9.37.4.2 (POWs Who Resist Repatriation).
732
no person shall be transferred to another State if it is more likely than not that the person would
be tortured in the receiving country. 637
10.35.4 Costs of Returning Internees. The Detaining Power shall bear the expense of
returning released internees to the places where they were residing when interned, or, if it took
them into custody while they were in transit or on the high seas, the cost of completing their
journey or of their return to their point of departure. 639
The Detaining Power need not pay the costs of repatriation of an internee who was
interned at his or her own request. 642
If internees are transferred in accordance with Article 45 of the GC, the transferring and
receiving Powers shall agree on the portion of the above costs to be borne by each. 643
The foregoing discussion shall not prejudice such special agreements as may be
concluded between parties to the conflict concerning the exchange and repatriation of their
637
Refer to 8.14.4.1 (U.S. Policy Prohibiting Transfers in Cases in Which Detainees Would Likely Be Tortured).
638
GC art. 133 (By agreement between the Detaining Power and the Powers concerned, committees may be set up
after the close of hostilities, or of the occupation of territories, to search for dispersed internees.).
639
GPW art. 135 (The Detaining Power shall bear the expense of returning released internees to the places where
they were residing when interned, or, if it took them into custody while they were in transit or on the high seas, the
cost of completing their journey or of their return to their point of departure.).
640
GPW art. 135 (Where a Detaining Power refuses permission to reside in its territory to a released internee who
previously had his permanent domicile therein, such Detaining Power shall pay the cost of the said internees
repatriation.).
641
GPW art. 135 (If, however, the internee elects to return to his country on his own responsibility or in obedience
to the Government of the Power to which he owes allegiance, the Detaining Power need not pay the expenses of his
journey beyond the point of his departure from its territory.).
642
GPW art. 135 (The Detaining Power need not pay the costs of repatriation of an internee who was interned at his
own request.).
643
GPW art. 135 (If internees are transferred in accordance with Article 45, the transferring and receiving Powers
shall agree on the portion of the above costs to be borne by each.).
733
nationals in enemy hands. 644
644
GC art. 135 (The foregoing shall not prejudice such special agreements as may be concluded between Parties to
the conflict concerning the exchange and repatriation of their nationals in enemy hands.).
734
XI Military Occupation
Chapter Contents
11.1 Introduction
11.2 When Military Occupation Law Applies
11.3 End of Occupation and Duration of GC Obligations
11.4 Legal Position of the Occupying Power
11.5 Duty of the Occupying Power to Ensure Public Order and Safety
11.6 Protection of the Population of an Occupied Territory
11.7 Authority of the Occupying Power Over Inhabitants
11.8 Administration of Occupied Territory
11.9 Local Law and Legislation
11.10 Ordinary Courts in Occupied Territory
11.11 Criminal Law in Occupied Territory
11.12 Movement of Persons in Occupied Territory
11.13 Protection of Children in Occupied Territory
11.14 Food and Medical Supplies for the Civilian Population
11.15 Public Health and Hygiene
11.16 Spiritual Assistance
11.17 Relief Efforts and Consignments
11.18 Enemy Property During Occupation
11.19 Protection of Cultural Property During Occupation
11.20 Labor of Protected Persons in Occupied Territory
11.21 Judges and Other Public Officials
11.22 Public Finances and Taxes
11.23 Other Economic Regulation of Occupied Territory
11.1 INTRODUCTION
This Chapter addresses military occupation. The GC provides specific rules for the
internment of protected persons in occupation, which are addressed in Chapter X.
Military occupation is a temporary measure for administering territory under the control
of invading forces, and involves a complicated, trilateral set of legal relations between the
Occupying Power, the temporarily ousted sovereign authority, and the inhabitants of occupied
territory. 1
The law of belligerent occupation seeks to account for both military and humanitarian
imperatives. The Occupying Powers primary objective in conducting military occupation is to
further the purpose of the war in which the occupying forces are engaged and to ensure the
maintenance and security of those forces, but the Occupying Power is also bound to provide for
1
Refer to 11.4 (Legal Position of the Occupying Power).
735
the interests and welfare of the civilian population of the occupied territory. 2 The Occupying
Power has obligations related to the maintenance of public order and safety, and the protection of
civilians and property in occupied territory. 3
2
GREENSPAN, THE MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 213 (In considering the law on military occupation the dual
nature of such an occupation must be borne in mind. Its primary objective is to further the purpose of the war in
which the occupying forces are engaged and to ensure the maintenance and security of those forces; yet at the same
time the occupant is bound to provide for the interests and welfare of the civilian population of the occupied
territory.).
3
Refer to 11.5 (Duty of the Occupying Power to Ensure Public Order and Safety).
4
See, e.g., American Ins. Co. v. 356 Bales of Cotton, 26 U.S. 511, 542 (1828) (Marshall, C.J.) (The usage of the
world is, if a nation be not entirely subdued, to consider the holding of conquered territory as a mere military
occupation, until its fate shall be determined at the treaty of peace.); Thirty Hogsheads of Sugar v. Boyle, 13 U.S.
191, 195 (1815) (Marshall, C.J.) (Some doubt has been suggested whether Santa Cruz, while in the possession of
Great Britain, could properly be considered as a British island. But for this doubt there can be no foundation.
Although acquisitions made during war are not considered as permanent until confirmed by treaty, yet to every
commercial and belligerent purpose, they are considered as a part of the domain of the conqueror, so long as he
retains the possession and government of them. The island of Santa Cruz, after its capitulation, remained a British
island until it was restored to Denmark.). See also WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW & PRECEDENTS 800-01 (Instances
in our history of military government are presented in our Revolutionary war during the occupancy by the British of
Boston, New York and Philadelphia; at Castine, Maine, when taken and held by the British in 1814-15; and in the
provinces of Mexico in the course of the conquest of the same by our forces in 1846-7. It was however during the
late civil war, which, by reasons of its exceptional proportions, was assimilated to an international war, that Military
Government was more generally and variously exercised, and its nature more fully illustrated than at any previous
period of our history.).
5
WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW & PRECEDENTS 799 (By military government is meant that dominion exercised in war
by a belligerent power over territory of the enemy invaded and occupied by him and over the inhabitants thereof.
By most writers, prior to the appearance of the dissenting opinion of Chase, C.J., in Ex parte Milligan, this species
of government was designated in general terms as martial law, and thus was confused with or not properly
distinguished from the martial law proper exerted at home under circumstances of emergency, and yet to be
considered.); Ex parte Milligan, 71 U.S. 2, 141-42 (1866) (Chase, C.J., separate opinion) (There are under the
Constitution three kinds of military jurisdiction: one to be exercised both in peace and war; another to be exercised
in time of foreign war without the boundaries of the United States, or in time of rebellion and civil war within states
or districts occupied by rebels treated as belligerents; and a third to be exercised in time of invasion or insurrection
within the limits of the United States, or during rebellion within the limits of states maintaining adhesion to the
National Government, when the public danger requires its exercise. The first of these may be called jurisdiction
under MILITARY LAW, and is found in acts of Congress prescribing rules and articles of war, or otherwise
providing for the government of the national forces; the second may be distinguished as MILITARY
GOVERNMENT, superseding, as far as may be deemed expedient, the local law, and exercised by the military
commander under the direction of the President, with the express or implied sanction of Congress; while the third
may be denominated MARTIAL LAW PROPER, and is called into action by Congress, or temporarily, when the
action of Congress cannot be invited, and in the case of justifying or excusing peril, by the President, in times of
736
This manual uses the terms military occupation, belligerent occupation, and
occupation to refer to situations governed by the law of belligerent occupation.
In some cases, multiple States may conduct an occupation together, and each State may
be considered an Occupying Power. 7
11.1.2.1 Military Occupation and Other Law of War Rules. In general, the law of
war rules that are not specific to the occupation of enemy territory continue to apply to situations
that are addressed by those rules that may arise during occupation. For example, the rules for the
conduct of hostilities and the humane treatment of detainees apply also to combat operations and
detention operations, respectively, during occupation.
However, the fact of occupation triggers the application of additional rules specific to
occupation. 8
When the GC and the Hague IV Regulations are both applicable, the provisions of the
GC regarding occupation supplement the provisions of the Hague IV Regulations regarding
occupation. 9
insurrection or invasion, or of civil or foreign war, within districts or localities where ordinary law no longer
adequately secures public safety and private rights.).
6
LIEBER CODE art. 1 (A place, district, or country occupied by an enemy stands, in consequence of the occupation,
under the Martial Law of the invading or occupying army, whether any proclamation declaring Martial Law, or any
public warning to the inhabitants, has been issued or not. Martial Law is the immediate and direct effect and
consequence of occupation or conquest. The presence of a hostile army proclaims its Martial Law.).
7
For example, Supplemental Brief of the United States, Apr. 22, 2005, United States of America ex rel. DR, Inc. v.
Custer Battles, LLC, 376 F. Supp. 2d 617 (E.D. Va. 2005), 2005 DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN
INTERNATIONAL LAW 228, 232 (The United States and the United Kingdom, and other member states of the
Coalition were the occupying powers in Iraq under the laws and usages of war. The CPA was the administrative
device that the Coalition created under the laws and usages of war to perform civil government functions in liberated
Iraq during the brief period of occupation. As an active member of the Coalition, the United States played an
important role in, and had certain responsibilities for, the occupation, which it chose to fulfill through creation of
and participation in the CPA.).
8
Refer to 11.2 (When Military Occupation Law Applies).
9
Refer to 19.16.5.2 (Relationship Between the GC and the 1899 Hague II and the 1907 Hague IV Conventions).
737
When the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention and the Hague IV Regulations are
both applicable, the provisions of the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention regarding
occupation supplement the provisions of the Hague IV Regulations regarding occupation. 10
Although in some cases the Hague IV Regulations would not be applicable as a matter of
treaty law because belligerent States might not be Parties to Hague IV, many of the provisions in
Articles 42 through 56 of the Hague IV Regulations reflect customary international law. 11 For
example, Article 42 of the Hague IV Regulations, which provides a standard for when the law of
belligerent occupation applies, is regarded as customary international law. 12
11.1.2.4 Occupation and the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention. The
1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention applies to all cases of partial or total occupation of the
territory of a High Contracting Party, even if this occupation meets with no armed resistance. 16
10
Refer to 19.17.1.1 (Relationship Between the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention and Certain 1899 and
1907 Hague Conventions).
11
See, e.g., United States, et al. v. Gring, et al., Judgment, I TRIAL OF THE MAJOR WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE
IMT 253-54 (With respect to War Crimes, however, as has already been pointed out, the crimes defined by Article
6, Section (b), of the Charter were already recognized as War Crimes under international law. They were covered
by Articles 46, 50, 52, and 56 of the Hague Convention of 1907, and Articles 2, 3, 4, 46, and 51 of the Geneva
Convention of 1929. But it is argued that the Hague Convention does not apply in this case, because of the
general participation clause in Article 2 of the Hague Convention of 1907. The rules of land warfare expressed
in the Convention undoubtedly represented an advance over existing international law at the time of their adoption.
But the convention expressly stated that it was an attempt to revise the general laws and customs of war, which it
thus recognized to be then existing, but by 1939 these rules laid down in the Convention were recognized by all
civilized nations, and were regarded as being declaratory of the laws and customs of war which are referred to in
Article 6 (b) of the Charter.).
12
Refer to 11.2.2 (Standard for Determining When Territory Is Considered Occupied).
13
GWS art. 2; GWS-SEA art. 2; GPW art. 2; GC art. 2.
14
Refer to 19.16.5.1 (Application of Different Parts of the GC).
15
Refer to 19.16.5.1 (Application of Different Parts of the GC).
16
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 18 (The Convention shall also apply to all cases of partial
or total occupation of the territory of a High Contracting Party, even if the said occupation meets with no armed
resistance.).
738
The 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention and the Regulations for the Execution of
the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention also have provisions that explicitly address
occupation. 17
11.1.2.5 Occupation and U.N. Security Council Resolutions. The U.N. Security
Council may call upon Occupying Powers to comply with existing international law. 18
Acting under the Charter of the United Nations, the U.N. Security Council may also
establish authorities or limitations that might interact with those otherwise applicable under
occupation law. 19 For example, a U.N. Security Council authorization may provide additional
authority for an Occupying Power to govern occupied territory. 20
11.1.2.6 Occupation and the ICCPR and Other Human Rights Treaties. It has
been the U.S. view that the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights (ICCPR) does
not create obligations for an Occupying Power with respect to occupied territory because a
contracting States obligations under the ICCPR only extend to persons within its territory and
17
Refer to 11.19 (Protection of Cultural Property During Occupation).
18
For example, U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 1483, U.N. Doc. S/RES/1483, 5 (May 22, 2003) (Calls
upon all concerned to comply fully with their obligations under international law including in particular the Geneva
Conventions of 1949 and the Hague Regulations of 1907;).
19
For example, John B. Bellinger, III, Legal Adviser, Department of State, United Nations Security Council
Resolutions and the Application of International Humanitarian Law, Human Rights and Refugee Law, Sept. 9, 2005,
2005 DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 957-58 (Prior to the Iraq intervention, lawyers
for the United States and its Coalition partners thoroughly analyzed a complex range of issues related to the
expected occupation of Iraq. This review involved developing an understanding of how the law of occupationin
particular the Hague Regulations and Geneva Conventionwould likely apply to Coalition activities. At the same
time, there already existed a broad and complex range of Chapter VII Security Council resolutions addressing a
number of issues, including Iraqi requirements to disarm, economic and arms embargos, and restrictions related to
the production and sale of Iraqi petroleum products. As the Coalition analyzed the principles of occupation law, we
were careful also to analyze the extent to which pre-existing Chapter VII resolutions included provisions that might
themselves establish authorities or limitations that might interact with those otherwise applicable under occupation
law.).
20
For example, U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 1483, U.N. Doc. S/RES/1483, 4 (May 22, 2003) (Calls
upon the Authority, consistent with the Charter of the United Nations and other relevant international law, to
promote the welfare of the Iraqi people through the effective administration of the territory, including in particular
working towards the restoration of conditions of security and stability and the creation of conditions in which the
Iraqi people can freely determine their own political future;); Coalition Provisional Authority Regulation No. 1,
1(1) (May 16, 2003) (The CPA is vested with all executive, legislative and judicial authority necessary to achieve
its objectives, to be exercised under relevant U.N. Security Council resolutions, including Resolution 1483 (2003),
and the laws and usages of war. This authority shall be exercised by the CPA Administrator.).
21
Refer to 1.11.2.1 (U.N. Member State Obligations With Respect to U.N. Security Council Decisions); 3.5.4
(U.N. Security Council Decisions and Jus in Bello).
739
subject to its jurisdiction.22 Although persons within occupied territory are subject to the
jurisdiction of the Occupying Power for certain purposes, they are not within the Occupying
Powers national territory. This limit to the scope of the ICCPRs obligations was proposed by
the United States to preclude the creation of obligations for States with respect to territories that
they occupied, such as post-World War II Germany and Japan. 23
In addition, the law of belligerent occupation is specially crafted to address the situation
of belligerent occupation. Thus, in cases of apparent conflict with other provisions of law that
are not intended to address the situation of belligerent occupation, there might be a presumption
that such provisions would not conflict with occupation law, or that occupation law likely would
prevail when addressing the situation of belligerent occupation. 24
Other States, such as some coalition partners, may interpret their human rights treaty
obligations to create obligations for their military operations outside their home territory in the
context of belligerent occupation. 25
Subject to the Occupying Powers authority to change local law, 26 an occupied States
domestic law that has been enacted pursuant to its human rights treaty obligations or that meets
the requirements of the occupied States human rights treaty obligations may continue to apply
during an occupation.
22
Refer to 1.6.3.3 (International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights (ICCPR)).
23
Eleanor Roosevelt, Chairman, U.N. Economic and Social Council, Commission on Human Rights, Sixth Session,
Summary Record of the Hundred and Thirty-Eighth Meeting, U.N. Doc. E/CN.4/SR.138 34 (Apr. 6, 1950) (The
purpose of the proposed addition was to make it clear that the draft Covenant would apply only to persons within the
territory and subject to the jurisdiction of contracting States. The United States was afraid that without such an
addition the draft Covenant might be construed as obliging the contracting States to enact legislation concerning
persons who, although outside its territory were technically within its jurisdiction for certain purposes. An
illustration would be the occupied territories of Germany, Austria and Japan: persons within those countries were
subject to the jurisdiction of the occupying States in certain respects, but were outside the scope of the legislation of
those States. Another illustration would be the case of leased territories: some countries leased certain territories
from others for limited purposes, and there might be questions of conflicting authority between the lessor nation and
the lessee nation.). See also Eleanor Roosevelt, Chairman, U.N. Economic and Social Council, Commission on
Human Rights, Sixth Session, Summary Record of the Hundred and Ninety-Fourth Meeting, U.N. Doc.
E/CN.4/SR.194 14 (May 16, 1950) (That [insertion of language] would limit the application of the covenant only
to persons within its territory and subject to its jurisdiction. By this amendment the United States Government
would not, by ratifying the covenant, be assuming an obligation to ensure the rights recognized in it to the citizens of
countries under United States occupation.).
24
Refer to 1.3.2 (The Law of Wars Relationship to Other Bodies of Law).
25
Refer to 1.6.3.2 (Different Views on the Applicability of Human Rights Treaties).
26
Refer to 11.9 (Local Law and Legislation).
27
Refer to 11.2 (When Military Occupation Law Applies).
740
post-war situations (except for certain provisions of the GC). Nonetheless, it may be appropriate
to apply rules from the law of belligerent occupation in such situations.
Guidance for the U.S. armed forces has sought, to the extent possible, to apply the rules
of the law of occupation as a matter of policy to areas through which U.S. forces are passing, and
even on the battlefield. 29
28
Refer to 11.2.2.1 (Actually Placed Effectiveness of Occupation); 11.2.2.2 (Under the Authority
Suspension and Substitution of Governmental Authority).
29
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 352 (b. Application of Law of Occupation. The rules set forth in this
chapter apply of their own force only to belligerently occupied areas, but they should, as a matter of policy, be
observed as far as possible in areas through which troops are passing and even on the battlefield.).
30
See FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 354 (Civil affairs administration is that form of administration established
in friendly territory whereby a foreign government pursuant to an agreement, expressed or implied, with the
government of the area concerned, may exercise certain authority normally the function of the local government.
Such administration is often established in areas which are freed from enemy occupation. It is normally required
when the government of the area concerned is unable or unwilling to assume full responsibility for its
administration. Territory subject to civil affairs administration is not considered to be occupied.); Raymund T.
Yingling and Robert W. Ginnane, The Geneva Conventions of 1949, 46 AJIL 393, 417 (1953) (While the Civilian
Convention contains no definition of occupation, probably nothing could be added to the principle in Hague
Article 42 that Territory is considered occupied when it is actually placed under the authority of the hostile army.
The convention will not apply in liberated territory of an allied country such as France in 1944 in relation to the
United States and the United Kingdom.).
31
Refer to 11.2.2.3 (Of the Hostile Army Belligerent Occupation Applies to Enemy Territory).
32
For example, Directives and Agreements in Civil Affairs in France, Aug. 25, 1944, reprinted in U.S. ARMY,
JUDGE ADVOCATE GENERAL SCHOOL, CIVIL AFFAIRS MILITARY GOVERNMENT: SELECTED CASES AND MATERIALS
10 (1958) (As a result of discussions between American, British, and French representatives, agreement has been
reached on the practical arrangements for civil affairs administration in Continental France.).
33
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 354 (If circumstances have precluded the conclusion of a civil affairs
agreement with the lawful government of allied territory recovered from enemy occupation or of other territory
liberated from the enemy, military government may be established in the area as a provisional and interim measure
(see par. 12b and c). A civil affairs agreement should, however, be concluded with the lawful government at the
earliest possible opportunity.).
741
law of belligerent occupation may provide appropriate rules to apply by analogy, pending an
agreement with the lawful government. 34
11.1.3.4 Occupation and Post-War Situations. Before the GC was adopted and
entered into force, the law of belligerent occupation was not applicable when a state of hostilities
had completely ceased. 39 The general inapplicability of the law of belligerent occupation to
post-war situations may be viewed as resulting from the law of belligerent occupation
presupposing that a hostile relationship exists between the invading forces State and the State of
34
1958 UK MANUAL 499 note 3(b) (Where it is not possible to conclude Civil Affairs agreement before the
liberation of allied territory, there may be an interregnum between invasion of such territory and the assumption of
authority on the part of the domestic civilian government. In such a situation the powers and restraints applicable to
an occupant by international law ought to apply as a minimum standard until such time as a Civil Affairs
agreement can be concluded.).
35
Refer to 17.1.3.1 (Nationality and Territoriality Exclusions in the Law of International Armed Conflict).
36
Refer to 11.2.2.3 (Of the Hostile Army Belligerent Occupation Applies to Enemy Territory).
37
Refer to 3.3.3.1 (Recognition by Outside States of a Rebel Faction as a Belligerent in a Civil War).
38
For example, Jack L. Goldsmith III, Assistant Attorney General, Protected Person Status in Occupied Iraq
Under the Fourth Geneva Convention, Mar. 18, 2004, 28 OPINIONS OF THE OFFICE OF LEGAL COUNSEL 35, 36 (The
United States is currently involved in two armed conflicts that are relevant to our analysis: the armed conflict with
and occupation of Iraq, and the armed conflict with al Qaeda. In this Part we analyze how article 2 applies to each
conflict considered independently. This analysis is not conclusive as to how GC applies when the two conflicts
become intertwined, as they may when al Qaeda operatives carry on their armed conflict against the United States in
occupied Iraq. This latter issue is addressed in Part III, infra.). Compare 3.3.1.2 (Mixed Conflicts Between
Opposing States and Non-State Armed Groups).
39
For example, Forrest Hannaman, Chief of the Legal Service Division of the Office of the United States High
Commissioner for Germany, Letter to the Judge Advocate Division of EUCOM (Jan. 28, 1952), X WHITEMANS
DIGEST 595-96 (The position of the United States that the Hague Regulations do not apply to the post-capitulation
period of the present occupation of German [was noted by] the Military Governor in a First Indorsement to the
Commander-in-Chief, European Command, dated January 7, 1948 (AG 386.3LD), [which] stated inter alia: it
appears that the French authorities are interested in the policy of the United States in regard to the treatment of
property owned or used by the Wehrmacht and in the applicability of the Annex to Hague Convention IV of 1907 to
that question With respect to the applicability at the present time of the Annex ... the Legal Division of this
Headquarters has expressed the view ... that since the period of hostilities has ended, the provisions of Section III of
the Annex to Hague Convention IV of 1907 do not literally apply to the present occupation of Germany )
(amendments shown in Digest).
742
the occupied territory. 40 For example, if the State of the occupied territory unconditionally
surrendered and any international armed conflict completely ended, the law of belligerent
occupation was not applicable. 41
The GC, however, continues to apply in occupied territory until one year after the general
close of military operations, and the Occupying Power is bound, for the duration of the
occupation, to the extent that such State exercises the functions of government in such territory,
by the provisions of certain articles of the GC. 42 Additionally, protected persons under the GC
who remain in the custody of the Occupying Power following the end of occupation retain that
protection until their release, repatriation, or re-establishment. 43
40
Refer to 11.2.2.3 (Of the Hostile Army Belligerent Occupation Applies to Enemy Territory).
41
For example, United States v. Altstoetter, et al., III TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 960 (It is this
fact of the complete disintegration of the government in Germany, followed by unconditional surrender and by
occupation of the territory, which explains and justifies the assumption and exercise of supreme governmental
power by the Allies. The same fact distinguishes the present occupation of Germany from the type of occupation
which occurs when, in the course of actual warfare, an invading army enters and occupies the territory of another
state, whose government is still in existence and is in receipt of international recognition, and whose armies, with
those of its allies, are still in the field. In the latter case the occupying power is subject to the limitations imposed
upon it by the Hague Convention and by the laws and customs of war. In the former case (the occupation of
Germany) the Allied Powers were not subject to those limitations. By reason of the complete breakdown of
government, industry, agriculture, and supply, they were under an imperative humanitarian duty of far wider scope
to reorganize government and industry and to foster local democratic governmental agencies throughout the
territory.).
42
Refer to 11.3.2 (Duration of GC Obligations in the Case of Occupied Territory).
43
Refer to 10.3.4 (Commencement and Duration of Protected Person Status).
44
For example, Forrest Hannaman, Chief Legal Advice Division, Memorandum to Office of Economic Affairs
Finance Division on Revenues from Laender-Owned Property (Mar. 30, 1951), reprinted in XX SELECTED
OPINIONS JANUARY 1, 1951 APRIL 30, 1951 OF OFFICE OF THE UNITED STATES HIGH COMMISSIONER FOR
GERMANY, OFFICE OF GENERAL COUNSEL, FRANKFURT, GERMANY, 57-58 (The Hague Regulations were designed
to define the powers of a belligerent occupant of enemy territory during, or shortly after, hostilities. As such, they
cannot be considered literally applicable to the situation in Germany today, and we cannot consider without
reflection that the occupying powers may exercise to their full extent powers which a belligerent occupant might
rightfully exercise under the Regulations. Insofar as there exists an accepted custom and practice of nations relevant
to our situation it is largely our own practice, since our present situation is without international precedent. In
determining any concrete problem of this nature it has consistently been the position of the legal advisors to
OMGUS and HICOG that whenever, in light of the actual problem and all of the relevant factors, the Hague
Regulations may be considered as expressing principles of international law which are pertinent to our situation,
those principles should be observed by us.); Major G.B. Crook and Major W.G. Downey, Memorandum for the
Judge Advocate General, Present Applicability of Hague and Geneva Conventions in Germany, reprinted in Ernst
H. Feilchenfeld and Members of the Institute of World Polity, Status of Germany, 1 WORLD POLITY 182, 196 (1958)
(We conclude, therefore, that: a. The authority of the Allied Control Council and of the United States zone
commander in occupied Germany is not limited by the provisions of Section III of the Regulations annexed to the
Hague Convention IV (I 907) and such Regulations have not been applicable to the occupation of Germany since 5
743
11.2 WHEN MILITARY OCCUPATION LAW APPLIES
The law of military occupation applies when a military occupation exists in fact.
Even if the requirements of the law of belligerent occupation do not apply as a matter of
law, general law of war principles and rules, such as those for the conduct of hostilities, continue
to apply. 46
The fact of occupation is the basis for the Occupying Power to exercise authority over the
occupied territory. 49 The fact of occupation, as a requirement for the exercise of authority over
the occupied territory, prevents a State from simply claiming the authorities of military
government over an enemy territory without actually controlling such territory. 50
June I945. The general rules expressed in the Hague Regulations will be considered as guiding principles unless
and until specific U.S. or Allied occupation policies require deviation.).
45
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 10 (However, certain designated provisions of the Geneva Conventions of
1949 (see GC, art. 6; par 249 herein) continue to be operative, notwithstanding the termination of any antecedent
hostilities, during the continuance of a military occupation. Insofar as the unwritten law of war and the Hague
Regulations extend certain fundamental safeguards to the persons and property of the populations of occupied
territory, their protection continues until the termination of any occupation having its origin in the military
supremacy of the occupant, notwithstanding the fact the Geneva Convention relative to the Protection of Civilian
Persons may have ceased to be applicable.).
46
Eritrea-Ethiopia Claims Commission, Partial Award Western Front, Aerial Bombardment and Related Claims,
Eritreas Claims 1, 3, 5, 9-13, 14, 21, 25 & 26, 27 (Dec. 19, 2005) (The Commission agrees that the Ethiopian
military presence was more transitory in most towns and villages on the Western Front than it was on the Central
Front, where the Commission found Ethiopia to be an occupying power. The Commission also recognizes that not
all of the obligations of Section III of Part III of Geneva Convention IV (the section that deals with occupied
territories) can reasonably be applied to an armed force anticipating combat and present in an area for only a few
days. Nevertheless, a State is obligated by the remainder of that Convention and by customary international
humanitarian law to take appropriate measures to protect enemy civilians and civilian property present within areas
under the control of its armed forces. Even in areas where combat is occurring, civilians and civilian objects cannot
lawfully be made objects of attack.).
47
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 355 (Military occupation is a question of fact.).
48
Refer to 1.3.3 (Restrictive and Permissive Character of the Law of War).
49
See, e.g., WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW & PRECEDENTS 799 (The authority for military government is the fact of
occupation. Not a mere temporary occupation of enemys country on the march, but a settled and established one.
Mere invasion, the presence of the hostile army in the country, is not sufficient. There must be a full possession, a
firm holding, a government de facto.); MacLeod v. United States, 229 U.S. 416, 425 (1913) (There has been
considerable discussion in the cases and in works of authoritative writers upon the subject of what constitutes an
occupation which will give the right to exercise governmental authority. Such occupation is not merely invasion,
but is invasion plus possession of the enemys country for the purpose of holding it temporarily at least.); United
States v. Rice, 17 U.S. 246, 254 (1819) (Story, J.) (By the conquest and military occupation of Castine, the enemy
acquired that firm possession which enabled him to exercise the fullest rights of sovereignty over that place.).
50
Compare 13.10.2.3 (Effectiveness of the Blockade).
744
The fact of occupation also imposes certain duties on the Occupying Power with respect
to occupied territory. 51 The fact of occupation, as a requirement for triggering the duties of an
Occupying Power, means that a State that does not, in fact, occupy an area, does not incur the
obligations of an Occupying Power.
Once an occupation exists in fact, regardless of whether the invasion was lawful or
unlawful under jus ad bellum, the rights and duties of the Occupying Power and the population
in relation to each other apply. 52 This application of the law of belligerent occupation is an
example of how jus in bello rules and jus ad bellum rules generally operate independently of one
another. 53
This standard for when the law of belligerent occupation applies is reflected in Article 42
of the Hague IV Regulations and is regarded as customary international law. 55
It is sufficient that the occupying force can, within a reasonable time, send detachments
of forces to enforce its authority within the occupied district. Military occupation does not
51
Refer to 11.5 (Duty of the Occupying Power to Ensure Public Order and Safety).
52
See, e.g., United States v. List, et al. (The Hostage Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 1247
(At the outset, we desire to point out that international law makes no distinction between a lawful and an unlawful
occupant in dealing with the respective duties of occupant and population in occupied territory. There is no
reciprocal connection between the manner of the military occupation of territory and the rights and duties of the
occupant and population to each other after the relationship has in fact been established. Whether the invasion was
lawful or criminal is not an important factor in the consideration of this subject.).
53
Refer to 3.5.2 (Jus in Bello and Jus ad Bellum Generally Operate Independently of One Another).
54
HAGUE IV REG. art. 42 (Territory is considered occupied when it is actually placed under the authority of the
hostile army. The occupation extends only to the territory where such authority has been established and can be
exercised.).
55
See, e.g., Jack L. Goldsmith III, Assistant Attorney General, Protected Person Status in Occupied Iraq Under
the Fourth Geneva Convention, Mar. 18, 2004, 28 OPINIONS OF THE OFFICE OF LEGAL COUNSEL 35, 37 footnote 1
(The Hague Regulations do not apply to the United States conflict with and occupation of Iraq as a matter of
treaty law because Iraq is not a party to the Hague Convention. But as the citations in the text make clear, article
42(1) of the Hague Regulations, which provides that occupation begins when [territory] is actually placed under the
authority of the hostile army, reflects customary international law.); Armed Activities on the Territory of the
Congo (Democratic Republic of the Congo v. Uganda), Judgment, 2005 I.C.J. 168, 229 (172) ([U]nder customary
international law, as reflected in Article 42 of the Hague Regulations of 1907, territory is considered to be occupied
when it is actually placed under the authority of the hostile army, and the occupation extends only to the territory
where such authority has been established and can be exercised .).
56
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 356 (It follows from the definition that belligerent occupation must be
both actual and effective, that is, the organized resistance must have been overcome and the force in possession must
have taken measures to establish its authority.).
745
require the presence of military forces in every populated area, although the occupying force
must, inter alia, control the most important places. 57
The type of forces used to maintain the authority of the Occupying Power is not material.
For example, the occupation might be maintained by permanently based units or mobile forces,
either of which would be able to send detachments of forces to enforce the authority of the
Occupying Power within the occupied district. 58 However, air superiority alone would not
constitute an effective occupation.
Similarly, as long as the occupation is effective, there is no precise number of forces that
are considered necessary to constitute an effective occupation. The number of forces necessary
to maintain effective occupation will depend on various considerations, such as the disposition of
the inhabitants, the number and density of the population, the nature of the terrain, and similar
factors. 59
An occupation may be effective despite the existence of areas in the enemy State that are
temporarily controlled by enemy forces or pockets of resistance. For example, the fact that a
defended location (such as a city or town) still controlled by enemy forces exists within an area
declared occupied by the Occupying Power does not render the occupation of the remainder of
the area invalid, provided that continued resistance in such place or defended zone does not
render the occupier unable to exercise control over the remainder of the occupied territory. 60
Similarly, an occupation may continue to be effective despite intermittent insurgent attacks or
temporary seizures of territory by resistance forces. 61
57
Keely v. Sanders, 99 U.S. 441, 447 (1878) (No conquering army occupies the entire territory conquered. Its
authority is established when it occupies and holds securely the most important places, and when there is no
opposing governmental authority within the territory. The inability of any other power to establish and maintain
governmental authority therein is the test.).
58
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 356 (It is sufficient that the occupying force can, within a reasonable time,
send detachments of troops to make its authority felt within the occupied district. It is immaterial whether the
authority of the occupant is maintained by fixed garrisons or flying columns, whether by small or large forces, so
long as the occupation is effective.).
59
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 356 (The number of troops necessary to maintain effective occupation
will depend on various considerations such as the disposition of the inhabitants, the number and density of the
population, the nature of the terrain, and similar factors. The mere existence of a fort or defended area within the
occupied district, provided the fort or defended area is under attack, does not render the occupation of the remainder
of the district ineffective. Similarly, the mere existence of local resistance groups does not render the occupation
ineffective.).
60
1958 UK MANUAL 502 (The fact that there is a defended place or zone still in possession of the national forces
within an occupied district does not make the occupation of the remainder invalid, provided that such place or
defended zone is surrounded and effectively cut off from the rest of the occupied district.).
61
United States v. List, et al. (The Hostage Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 1243 (It is
clear that the German armed forces were able to maintain control of Greece and Yugoslavia until they evacuated
them in the fall of 1944. While it is true that the partisans were able to control sections of these countries at various
times, it is established that the Germans could at any time they desired assume physical control of any part of the
country. The control of the resistance forces was temporary only and not such as would deprive the German armed
forces of its status of an occupant.).
746
11.2.2.2 Under the Authority Suspension and Substitution of Governmental
Authority. Occupation also requires the suspension of the territorial States authority and the
substitution of the Occupying Powers authority for the territorial States authority. 62
The territorial State must be rendered incapable of publicly exercising its authority in the
territory, and the Occupying Power must substitute its authority for that of the territorial State. 63
Invading forces in possession of the territory must have taken measures to establish their
authority. 64 For example, such measures may include establishing its own governmental
authority for that area and making regulations for the conduct of temporary government. 65 The
suspension and substitution of authority may take place with local authorities continuing to
administer territory subject to the paramount authority of the Occupying Power. 66 On the other
hand, routine measures necessary to provide for unit security (e.g., warning private persons not
to threaten or interfere with military operations) would not necessarily constitute measures to
establish authority over enemy territory.
62
LIEBER CODE art. 3 (Martial Law in a hostile country consists in the suspension, by the occupying military
authority, of the criminal and civil law, and of the domestic administration and government in the occupied place or
territory, and in the substitution of military rule and force for the same, as well as in the dictation of general laws, as
far as military necessity requires this suspension, substitution, or dictation.).
63
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 355 (Military occupation is a question of fact. It presupposes a hostile
invasion, resisted or unresisted, as a result of which the invader has rendered the invaded government incapable of
publicly exercising its authority, and that the invader has successfully substituted its own authority for that of the
legitimate government in the territory invaded.). See also Armed Activities on the Territory of the Congo
(Democratic Republic of the Congo v. Uganda), Judgment, 2005 I.C.J. 165, 230 (173-74) (In order to reach a
conclusion as to whether a State, the military forces of which are present on the territory of another State as a result
of an intervention, is an occupying Power in the meaning of the term as understood in jus in bello, the Court must
examine whether there is sufficient evidence to demonstrate that the said authority was in fact established and
exercised by the intervening State in the areas in question. In the present case the Court will need to satisfy itself
that the Ugandan armed forces in the DRC were not only stationed in particular locations, but also that they had
substituted their own authority for that of the Congolese Government . [T]he territorial limits of any zone of
occupation by Uganda in the DRC cannot be determined by simply drawing a line connecting the geographical
locations where Ugandan troops were present as has been done on the sketch-map presented by the DRC (see
paragraphs 55 and 73 above).).
64
GREENSPAN, THE MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 213-14 (An occupant sets up some form of administration
in the territory, an invader merely passing through it does not.).
65
For example, MacLeod v. United States, 229 U.S. 416, 424-25 (1913) (When the Spanish fleet was destroyed at
Manila, May 1, 1898, it became apparent that the Government of the United States might be required to take the
necessary steps to make provision for the government and control of such part of the Philippines as might come into
the military occupation of the forces of the United States. The right to thus occupy an enemys country and
temporarily provide for its government has been recognized by previous action of the executive authority and
sanctioned by frequent decisions of this court. The local government being destroyed, the conqueror may set up its
own authority and make rules and regulations for the conduct of temporary government, and to that end may collect
taxes and duties to support the military authority and carry on operations incident to the occupation. Such was the
course of the Government with respect to the territory acquired by conquest and afterwards ceded by the Mexican
Government to the United States.).
66
Refer to 11.8.2 (Continued Performance of Duties by Civil Servants and Other Officials of Local Governments).
747
The substitution of authority by the Occupying Power may be shown by a proclamation
of occupation, although such a proclamation is not required. 67
For example, the law of belligerent occupation would not apply to the use of military
forces to control a States own territory, such as in cases of domestic emergency, insurrection, or
non-international armed conflict. 69
Similarly, the law of belligerent occupation would not apply to the liberation of friendly
territory that was previously occupied by the enemy. 70
The requirement of a hostile relationship between the invading forces State and the State
of the occupied territory also prevents the law of belligerent occupation from applying to post-
conflict situations (except for certain provisions of the GC). 71
11.2.3 Scope of Occupied Territory. The occupation extends only to the territory where
such authority has been established and can be exercised. 72
For example, a State may remain in control of part of its territory while the remainder of
its territory is under occupation. The 1949 Geneva Conventions apply in cases of partial or total
occupation of a State. 73
The end of occupation in one part of occupied territory does not end the occupation in
other parts of the occupied territory where the Occupying Power maintains its authority.
11.2.4 Proclamation of Occupation. Due to the special relations established between the
civilian population of the occupied territory and the Occupying Power, the fact of military
occupation and the territory over which it extends should be made known to the citizens of the
occupied territory and to other States.
67
Refer to 11.2.4 (Proclamation of Occupation).
68
GWS art. 2 (The Convention shall also apply to all cases of partial or total occupation of the territory of a High
Contracting Party, even if the said occupation meets with no armed resistance.); GWS-SEA art. 2 (same); GPW art.
2 (same); GC art. 2 (same).
69
Refer to 11.1.3.3 (Occupation and Non-International Armed Conflict).
70
Refer to 11.1.3.2 (Liberation of Friendly Territory).
71
Refer to 11.1.3.4 (Occupation and Post-War Situations).
72
HAGUE IV REG. art. 42 (Territory is considered occupied when it is actually placed under the authority of the
hostile army. The occupation extends only to the territory where such authority has been established and can be
exercised.).
73
Refer to 11.1.2.3 (Occupation and the 1949 Geneva Conventions).
748
However, there is no specific legal requirement that the Occupying Power issue a
proclamation of military occupation. 74
The question of whether territory is occupied does not depend upon the issuance of any
particular proclamation or other instrument. Territory may be occupied even though no
proclamation of occupation has been issued. Conversely, the issuance of proclamation of
occupation does not empower a State with the rights of an Occupying Power if it does not
control such territory in fact.
A proclamation may help fix the date of the beginning of the occupation. 75 The
proclamation may also advise inhabitants of occupied territory of the rules with which they must
comply. 76 In particular, the proclamation may be used to advise inhabitants of changes to law,
including penal law. 77
74
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 357 (In a strict legal sense no proclamation of military occupation is
necessary. However, on account of the special relations established between the inhabitants of the occupied territory
and the occupant by virtue of the presence of occupying forces, the fact of military occupation, with the extent of
territory affected, should be made known. The practice of the United States is to make this fact known by
proclamation.); 1914 RULES OF LAND WARFARE 292 (In a strict legal sense no proclamation of military
occupation is necessary. On account of the special relations established between the inhabitants of the occupied
territory and the occupant, by virtue of the presence of the invading force, the fact of military occupation, with the
extent of terrritorry [sic] affected by the same, should be made known. The practice in this country is to make this
fact known by proclamation.); LIEBER CODE art. 1 (A place, district, or country occupied by an enemy stands, in
consequence of the occupation, under the Martial Law of the invading or occupying army, whether any
proclamation declaring Martial Law, or any public warning to the inhabitants, has been issued or not. Martial Law
is the immediate and direct effect and consequence of occupation or conquest. The presence of a hostile army
proclaims its Martial Law.).
75
For example, Jack L. Goldsmith III, Assistant Attorney General, Protected Person Status in Occupied Iraq
Under the Fourth Geneva Convention, Mar. 18, 2004, 28 OPINIONS OF THE OFFICE OF LEGAL COUNSEL 35, 37
(Applying this standard, the United States became an occupying power no later than April 16, 2003, the date on
which General Tommy Franks announced the creation of the Coalition Provisional Authority to exercise powers of
government temporarily, and as necessary, especially to provide security, to allow the delivery of humanitarian aid
and to eliminate weapons of mass destruction. See Tommy R. Franks, Freedom Message to the Iraqi People (Apr.
16, 2003)); The Venice, 69 U.S. 258, 276 (1865) (The transports conveying the troops under the command of
Major-General Butler, commanding the Department of the Gulf, arrived on the 1st of May, and the actual
occupation of the city was begun. There was no armed resistance, but abundant manifestations of hostile spirit and
temper both by the people and the authorities. The landing of the troops was completed on the 2d of May, and on
the 6th a proclamation of General Butler, which had been prepared and dated on the 1st, and the next day printed by
some soldiers, in an office seized for the purpose, was published in the newspapers of the city. Some copies of the
proclamation had been previously distributed to individuals, but it was not made known to the population generally
until thus published. There was no hostile demonstration, and no disturbance afterwards; and we think that the
military occupation of the city of New Orleans may be considered as substantially complete from the date of this
publication; and that all the rights and obligations resulting from such occupation, or from the terms of the
proclamation, may be properly regarded as existing from that time. This proclamation declared the city to be under
martial law, and announced the principles by which the commanding general would be guided in its
administration.).
76
For example, 1958 UK MANUAL 504 note 1 (The practice in this matter in past wars appears to have been
variable. Frequently the inhabitants were only warned to behave peaceably, not to communicate with the enemy,
and to comply with requisitions; as for instance when the British troops entered France in 1813 and 1815. In 1870,
in France, the Germans generally, but not always, proclaimed military jurisdiction directly[;] they took possession of
749
The general practice of the United States has been to make the fact of occupation known
by proclamation or similar notice. 78 In addition to giving notice to the inhabitants of occupied
territory, notice may be given to other governments. 79 In some cases, the U.N. Security Council
has recognized the fact of occupation. 80
The status of belligerent occupation ends when the conditions for its application are no
longer met. Certain GC obligations with respect to occupied territory continue for the duration
of the occupation after the general close of military operations.
11.3.1 End of Occupation. Belligerent occupation ceases when the conditions for its
application are no longer met. 81 In particular, as discussed below, the status of belligerent
occupation ceases when the invader no longer factually governs the occupied territory or when a
hostile relationship no longer exists between the State of the occupied territory and the
Occupying Power. 82
Belligerent occupation ends when the Occupying Power no longer has effectively placed
the occupied territory under its control. 83 For example, an uprising by the local population may
a locality, by posting a notice which gave a list of offences against the troops for which the penalty of death would
be inflicted.).
77
Refer to 11.9.3 (Procedural Obligation Notification to the Population of Changes in Law); 11.11.2.1
(Publication of Penal Provisions Before Coming Into Force).
78
For example, Coalition Provisional Authority Regulation No. 1, 1(1) (May 16, 2003) (The CPA shall exercise
powers of government temporarily in order to provide for the effective administration of Iraq during the period of
transitional administration .).
79
For example, John D. Negroponte & Jeremy Greenstock, Letter Dated 8 May 2003 from the Permanent
Representatives of the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Northern Ireland and the United States of America to
the United Nations Addressed to the President of the Security Council, U.N. Doc. S/2003/538 (the United States,
the United Kingdom, and Coalition partners, acting under existing command and control arrangements through the
Commander of Coalition Forces, have created the Coalition Provisional Authority, which includes the Office of
Reconstruction and Humanitarian Assistance, to exercise the powers of government temporarily, and, as necessary,
especially to provide security, to allow the delivery of humanitarian aid, and to eliminate weapons of mass
destruction. The United States, the United Kingdom and Coalition partners, working through the Coalition
Provisional Authority, shall inter alia, provide for security in and for the provisional administration of Iraq .).
80
For example, U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 1483, U.N. Doc. S/RES/1483, 2 (May 22, 2003) (Noting the
letter of 8 May 2003 from the Permanent Representatives of the United States of America and the United Kingdom
of Great Britain and Northern Ireland to the President of the Security Council (S/2003/538) and recognizing the
specific authorities, responsibilities, and obligations under applicable international law of these states as occupying
powers under unified command (the Authority),); U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 661, U.N. Doc.
S/RES/661 (1990) (Aug. 6, 1990) (Determined to bring the invasion and occupation of Kuwait by Iraq to an end
and to restore the sovereignty, independence and territorial integrity of Kuwait,).
81
Refer to 11.2.2 (Standard for Determining When Territory Is Considered Occupied).
82
WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW & PRECEDENTS 801 (The status of military government continues from the inception
of the actual occupation till the invader is expelled by force of arms, or himself abandons the conquest, or till, under
a treaty of peace, the country is restored to its original allegiance or becomes incorporated with the domain of the
prevailing belligerent.).
83
Refer to 11.2.2.1 (Actually Placed Effectiveness of Occupation).
750
prevent the Occupying Power from actually enforcing its authority over occupied territory.
Similarly, the Occupying Powers expulsion or complete withdrawal from the territory would
also suffice because the former Occupying Power generally would not be able to control
sufficiently the occupied territory.
Belligerent occupation also may end when a hostile relationship no longer exists between
the Occupying Power and the State of the occupied territory (although, as discussed in the
following subsection, certain GC obligations may continue to apply). 84 For example, if a new,
independent government of the previously occupied territory assumes control of the territory and
consents to the presence of the previously occupying forces, then such a situation would no
longer be considered a belligerent occupation. Similarly, if a peace treaty legitimately transfers
the territory to the sovereignty of the Occupying Power, then the Occupying Power would no
longer be characterized as such. However, an Occupying Power is not permitted, under the law
of belligerent occupation, to annex occupied territory. 85
In the case of occupied territory, the application of the GC shall cease one year after the
general close of military operations; however, the Occupying Power shall be bound, for the
duration of the occupation, to the extent that such State exercises the functions of government in
such territory, by the provisions of the following Articles of the GC:
1 through 12 (general provisions and common articles, e.g., the Protecting Power
continues to function, and the derogation for security reasons continues to apply);
84
Refer to 11.2.2.3 (Of the Hostile Army Belligerent Occupation Applies to Enemy Territory).
85
Refer to 11.4.2 (Limitations on the Power of the Occupying Power Stemming From Its Lack of Sovereignty
Over Occupied Territory).
86
Refer to 10.3.4 (Commencement and Duration of Protected Person Status).
751
143 (access by Protecting Powers and the ICRC). 87
The one-year time limit for the cessation of the application of the GC (apart from the
provisions that continue to apply to the extent that the Occupying Power exercises the functions
of government in occupied territory) was proposed to account for situations like those of
Germany and Japan after World War II. 88 AP I provides that the 1949 Geneva Conventions and
AP I shall cease to apply, in the case of occupied territories, on the termination of the
occupation; 89 coalition partners that are Occupying Powers and Parties to AP I would be bound
by this rule.
In any case, individuals entitled to GC protection who remain in the custody of the
Occupying Power following the end of occupation retain that protection until their release,
repatriation, or re-establishment. 90 In addition, it may be appropriate following the end of
occupation to continue to apply by analogy certain rules from the law of belligerent occupation,
even if such rules do not apply as a matter of law. 91
87
GC art. 6 (In the case of occupied territory, the application of the present Convention shall cease one year after
the general close of military operations; however, the Occupying Power shall be bound, for the duration of the
occupation, to the extent that such Power exercises the functions of government in such territory, by the provisions
of the following Articles of the present Convention: 1 to 12, 27, 29 to 34, 47, 49, 51, 52, 53, 59, 61 to 77, 143.).
88
II-A FINAL RECORD OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 623 (Mr. CLATTENBURG (United
States of America) said that his Delegation would propose an amendment to Article 4 to provide that the Civilians
Convention should cease to apply not earlier than one year after the termination of hostilities. It would be noted that
the Convention did not define the terms occupied territory or military occupation. It was the view of the United
States Delegation that the obligations imposed by the Convention on an Occupying Power should be applicable to
the period of hostilities and to the period of disorganization following on the hostilities; these obligations would vary
according to the nature and duration of the occupation. Experience had shown that an Occupying Power did, in fact,
exercise the majority of the governmental functions in occupied territory. A prolonged military occupation was,
however, also characterized by a progressive return of governmental responsibility to local authorities. The
Occupying Power should be bound by the obligations of the Convention only during such time as the institutions of
the occupied territory were unable to provide for the needs of the inhabitants. The ultimate solution of such
problems as revictualling, sanitation and war damage was not the responsibility of the Occupying Power. He quoted
the case of the Allied occupation of Germany and Japan to show that the responsibility of the Occupying Powers for
the welfare of the local populations was far less at present than during the period immediately following
hostilities.).
89
AP I art. 3 (Without prejudice to the provisions which are applicable at all times: (a) The Conventions and this
Protocol shall apply from the beginning of any situation referred to in Article 1 of this Protocol; (b) The application
of the Conventions and of this Protocol shall cease, in the territory of Parties to the conflict, on the general close of
military operations and, in the case of occupied territories, on the termination of the occupation, except, in either
circumstance, for those persons whose final release, repatriation or reestablishment takes place thereafter. These
persons shall continue to benefit from the relevant provisions of the Conventions and of this Protocol until their final
release, repatriation or re-establishment.).
90
Refer to 10.3.4 (Commencement and Duration of Protected Person Status).
91
Refer to 11.1.3.4 (Occupation and Post-War Situations).
752
inhabitants of occupied territory. 92 The fact of occupation gives the Occupying Power the right
to govern enemy territory temporarily, but does not transfer sovereignty over occupied territory
to the Occupying Power.
11.4.1 Right of the Occupying Power to Govern the Enemy Territory Temporarily. The
right to govern the territory of the enemy during its military occupation is one of the incidents of
war. 93 By the fact of occupation (i.e., the Occupying Powers established power over occupied
territory), the Occupying Power is conferred the authority to exercise some of the rights of
sovereignty. 94 The exercise of these sovereign rights also results from the necessity of
maintaining law and order, indispensable both to the inhabitants and to the occupying force, and
the failure or inability of the legitimate government to exercise its functions, or the undesirability
of allowing it to do so. 95
11.4.2 Limitations on the Power of the Occupying Power Stemming From Its Lack of
Sovereignty Over Occupied Territory. Belligerent occupation in a foreign war, being based upon
the possession of enemy territory, necessarily implies that the sovereignty of the occupied
territory is not vested in the Occupying Power. 96 Occupation is essentially provisional. 97
92
JULIUS STONE, LEGAL CONTROLS ON INTERNATIONAL CONFLICT 694 (1954) (Whether belligerent occupation has
been established depends not merely on the will of the belligerent, but whether his actual control satisfies the
standards of range and stability laid down by international law. If it does not, he is a mere invader enjoying a
comparatively narrow legal authority. If it does, international law attributes to him legal powers which merely as a
belligerent he does not have, touching almost all aspects of the government of the territory and the lives of its
inhabitants. Since, moreover, the ousted sovereign still retains all the residue of legal authority not attributed to the
Occupant, it is apparent that belligerent occupation involves at its core a complicated trilateral set of legal relations
between the Occupant, the temporarily ousted sovereign and the inhabitants.).
93
Coleman v. Tennessee, 97 U.S. 509, 517 (1879) (The doctrine of international law on the effect of military
occupation of enemy's territory upon its former laws is well established. Though the late war was not between
independent nations, but between different portions of the same nation, yet having taken the proportions of a
territorial war, the insurgents having become formidable enough to be recognized as belligerents, the same doctrine
must be held to apply. The right to govern the territory of the enemy during its military occupation is one of the
incidents of war, being a consequence of its acquisition; and the character and form of the government to be
established depend entirely upon the laws of the conquering State or the orders of its military commander.).
94
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 358 (Being an incident of war, military occupation confers upon the
invading force the means of exercising control for the period of occupation. It does not transfer the sovereignty to
the occupant, but simply the authority or power to exercise some of the rights of sovereignty. The exercise of these
rights results from the established power of the occupant and from the necessity of maintaining law and order,
indispensable both to the inhabitants and to the occupying force.).
95
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 362 (Military government is the form of administration by which an
occupying power exercises governmental authority over occupied territory. The necessity for such government
arises from the failure or inability of the legitimate government to exercise its functions on account of the military
occupation, or the undesirability of allowing it to do so.).
96
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 353 (Belligerent occupation in a foreign war, being based upon the
possession of enemy territory, necessarily implies that the sovereignty of the occupied territory is not vested in the
occupying power. Occupation is essentially provisional.).
97
See, e.g., VON GLAHN, THE OCCUPATION OF ENEMY TERRITORY 31 (The consensus of the opinions of writers on
international law is that the legitimate government of the territory retains its sovereignty but that the latter is
suspended during the period of belligerent occupation.); EYAL BENVENISTI, THE INTERNATIONAL LAW OF
OCCUPATION 6 (2004) (The power exercising effective control within anothers sovereign territory has only
753
Because sovereignty is not vested in the Occupying Power, the fact of military
occupation does not authorize the Occupying Power to take certain actions. For example, the
Occupying Power is not authorized by the fact of belligerent occupation to annex occupied
territory or to create a new State. 98 In addition, the Occupying Power may not compel the
inhabitants of occupied territory to become its nationals or otherwise to swear allegiance to it. 99
Similarly, in view of the provisional nature of belligerent occupation, the authority of the
Occupying Power under occupation law has been interpreted as being subject to limitations on
the ability of the Occupying Power to alter institutions of government permanently or change the
constitution of a country. 100
11.5 DUTY OF THE OCCUPYING POWER TO ENSURE PUBLIC ORDER AND SAFETY
The authority of the legitimate power having in fact passed into the hands of the
Occupying Power, the latter shall take all the measures in its power to restore, and ensure, as far
temporary managerial powers, for the period until a peaceful solution is reached. During that limited period, the
occupant administers the territory on behalf of the sovereign. Thus the occupants status is conceived to be that of a
trustee.).
98
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 358 (It is therefore unlawful for a belligerent occupant to annex occupied
territory or to create a new State therein while hostilities are still in progress.). Refer to 11.6.3 (Occupying
Powers Duty to Respect the Rights of Protected Persons Secured by the GC).
99
Refer to 11.6.2.1 (Prohibition on Compelling Inhabitants of Occupied Territory to Swear Allegiance to the
Hostile State).
100
John B. Bellinger, III, Legal Adviser, Department of State, United Nations Security Council Resolutions and the
Application of International Humanitarian Law, Human Rights and Refugee Law, Sept. 9, 2005, 2005 DIGEST OF
UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 958-59 (Some commentators take the position that occupation
law establishes limitations on the ability of the occupying power to alter institutions of government permanently or
change the constitution of a country.). See also 2004 UK MANUAL 11.25.1 (Since the occupying power has a
duty to look after the welfare of the inhabitants, regulations, for example, fixing prices and securing the equitable
distribution of food and other commodities, are permissible. The occupying power should make no more changes to
the law than are absolutely necessary, particularly where the occupied territory already has an adequate legal
system.); 2001 CANADIAN MANUAL 1205(1) (During occupation by the enemy, the sovereignty of the legitimate
government continues to exist but it is temporarily latent. The powers of the occupant are of a provisional nature
and it should only take measures, which are necessary for the purposes of the armed conflict, the maintenance of
order and safety and the proper administration of the occupied territory. Generally speaking, the occupant is not
entitled to alter the existing form of government, to upset the constitution and domestic laws of the occupied
territory, or to set aside the rights of the inhabitants.); JULIUS STONE, LEGAL CONTROLS OF INTERNATIONAL
CONFLICT 698 (1954) (The limits on the legislative and regulatory power are as vague as the authority is general.
The Occupants authority is military authority. Clearly this is not full sovereignty, but equally clearly it extends
under the regulations to civil matters. His authority, of course, is limited like all his other powers to the occupied
territory, under Article 42, paragraph 2; and by Article 43 the Occupant must respect the laws in force unless
absolutely prevented. But this last limitation has never been taken literally; and unless it is so taken, the
boundaries of the Occupants legislative power are still to be drawn. The most widely approved line of distinction is
that the Occupant, in view of his merely provisional position, cannot make permanent changes in regard to
fundamental institutions, for instance, change a republic into a monarchy. It becomes, however, increasingly
difficult to say with confidence what is a fundamental institution.).
754
as possible, public order and safety, while respecting, unless absolutely prevented, the laws in
force in the country. 101 This principle has been recognized as customary international law. 102
The Occupying Power has a general duty to maintain public order and to provide for the
preservation of rights of the inhabitants, including rights to their private property. 103
11.5.1 Authority Conferred by the Occupying Powers Duty to Ensure Public Order and
Safety. The Occupying Powers duty to take all the measures in its power to restore and ensure,
as far as possible, public order and safety also provides it authority take such actions. For
example, the Occupying Power may enact provisions to maintain the orderly government of the
territory. 104
11.5.2 Duty to Respect, Unless Absolutely Prevented, the Laws in Force in the Country.
The duty to respect, unless absolutely prevented, the laws in force in the country prohibits the
Occupying Power from arbitrarily exercising its authority to suspend, repeal, or change the
municipal law applicable to occupied territory. 105
101
HAGUE IV REG. art. 43 (The authority of the legitimate power having in fact passed into the hands of the
occupant, the latter shall take all the measures in his power to restore, and ensure, as far as possible, public order and
safety, while respecting, unless absolutely prevented, the laws in force in the country.).
102
Opinion on the Legality of the Issuance of AMG (Allied Military Government) Currency in Sicily, Sept. 23, 1943,
reprinted in Occupation Currency Transactions: Hearings Before the Committees on Appropriations Armed
Services and Banking and Currency, U.S. Senate, 80th Congress, First Session, 73, 75 (Jun. 17-18, 1947) (The
Hague Convention clearly enunciated the principle that the laws applicable in an occupied territory remain in effect
during the occupation, subject to change by the military authorities within the limitations of the Convention. Article
43 provides: This declaration of the Hague Convention amounts only to a reaffirmation of the recognized
international law prior to that time.).
103
Aboitiz & Co. v. Price, 99 F. Supp. 602, 610 (D. Utah 1951) ([I]international law has recognized the right of the
protection of [the Occupying Powers] military interests and the exercise of police powers. However, such law also
imposes upon the occupant the duty to maintain public order and to provide for the preservation of the rights of the
inhabitants. The emphasis is upon public order and safety, and the welfare of the inhabitants.). See also Ochoa v.
Hernandez y Morales, 230 U.S. 139, 159 (1913) (The protocol of August 12, 1898 (30 Stat. 1742), the purport of
which has already been given, left our Government, by its military forces, in the occupation and control of Porto
Rico as a colony of Spain, and bound by the principles of international law to do whatever was necessary to secure
public safety, social order, and the guaranties of private property.).
104
Refer to 11.9.2 (Authority for the Occupying Power to Suspend, Repeal, or Change the Municipal Law
Applicable to Occupied Territory).
105
See GC COMMENTARY 335-36 (Article 64 expresses, in a more precise and detailed form, the terms of Article 43
of the Hague Regulations, which lays down that the Occupying Power is to respect the laws in force in the country
unless absolutely prevented. The principle that the penal laws in force in the occupied territory must be
maintained is subject to two reservations. The first relates to the security of the Occupying Power, which must
obviously be permitted to cancel provisions such as those concerning recruiting or urging the population to resist the
enemy. The second reservation is in the interests of the population and makes it possible to abrogate any
discriminatory measures incompatible with humane requirements. These two exceptions are of a strictly
limitative nature. The occupation authorities cannot abrogate or suspend the penal laws for any other reasonand
not, in particular, merely to make it accord with their own legal conceptions.).
755
The duty to respect, unless absolutely prevented, the laws in force in the country has been
interpreted not to apply to local administrative laws, such as regulations, executive orders,
ordinances, and decrees. 106
Under the law of belligerent occupation, the Occupying Power has certain duties with
respect to the population of an occupied territory, including protected persons under the GC.
Other provisions for the humane treatment of protected persons set forth in Articles 27
through 34 of the GC apply to the population of an occupied territory. For example, women
must be especially protected against any attack on their honor, in particular against rape,
enforced prostitution, or any form of indecent assault. 108 Reprisals against protected persons and
their property are prohibited. 109 The taking of hostages is prohibited. 110
In addition, protected persons in occupied territory shall have every facility for making
application to the Protecting Powers, the ICRC, the National Red Cross (Red Crescent, Red Lion
and Sun) Society of the country where they may be, as well as to any organization that might
assist them. 111
11.6.2 Overview of Additional Protections for the Population That Are Specific to
Occupation. There are a number of protections for the population of occupied territory that are
specific to occupation. For example, specific provision exists for the protection of children in
106
VON GLAHN, THE OCCUPATION OF ENEMY TERRITORY 99 (In sharp contrast to the restricted view concerning
civil laws, the occupant is generally conceded very extensive powers to change, alter, or suspend the ordinances and
decrees (as distinct from laws) of the legitimate sovereign of an occupied territory. It is held that administrative
regulations and executive orders are quite sharply distinct from the constitutional and statute law of a country and
that they do not constitute as important or vital a part of the latters legal structure. Hence the occupant is held to
have the power to interfere and to enact such regulations and ordinances as are deemed fitting and proper in his
interests and in the interests of his armed forces.).
107
Refer to 10.5 (Humane Treatment and Other Basic Protections for Protected Persons). See also HAGUE IV REG.
art. 46 (Family honour and rights, the lives of persons, and private property, as well as religious convictions and
practice, must be respected.).
108
Refer to 10.5.1.2 (Protection for Women Against Rape or Other Indecent Assault).
109
Refer to 10.5.4 (Reprisals Against Protected Persons and Their Property).
110
Refer to 10.5.1.4 (Taking of Hostages).
111
Refer to 10.5.6 (Facility for Applying to the Protecting Powers and Assistance Organizations Such as the
ICRC).
756
occupied territory. 112 Specific constraints exist on the authority of the Occupying Power to
punish protected persons, direct their movement, or compel them to perform labor. 113 Provision
also is made with respect to: (1) food and medical supplies of the population; (2) public health
and hygiene; (3) spiritual assistance; and (4) relief efforts and consignments. 114
The following prohibitions also apply with respect to the inhabitants of occupied
territory:
11.6.3 Occupying Powers Duty to Respect the Rights of Protected Persons Secured by
the GC. The Occupying Power has certain obligations to respect the rights of protected persons
secured by the GC.
Protected persons who are in occupied territory shall not be deprived, in any case or in
any manner whatsoever, of the benefits of the GC by any change introduced, as the result of the
occupation of a territory, into the institutions or government of the occupied territory, nor by any
agreement concluded between the authorities of the occupied territories and the Occupying
Power, nor by any annexation by the latter of the whole or part of the occupied territory. 118 For
112
Refer to 11.13 (Protection of Children in Occupied Territory).
113
Refer to 11.11 (Criminal Law in Occupied Territory); 11.12 (Movement of Persons in Occupied Territory);
11.20.1 (Types of Labor That May Not Be Compelled).
114
Refer to 11.14 (Food and Medical Supplies for the Civilian Population); 11.15 (Public Health and Hygiene);
11.16 (Spiritual Assistance); 11.17 (Relief Efforts and Consignments).
115
HAGUE IV REG. art. 45 (It is forbidden to compel the inhabitants of occupied territory to swear allegiance to the
hostile Power.); 1899 HAGUE II REG. art. 45 (Any pressure on the population of occupied territory to take the oath
to the hostile Power is prohibited.).
116
HAGUE IV REG. art. 50 (No general penalty, pecuniary or otherwise, shall be inflicted upon the population on
account of the acts of individuals for which they cannot be regarded as jointly and severally responsible.).
117
Refer to 8.16.2.1 (Individual Penal Responsibility and No Collective Punishment).
118
GC art. 47 (Protected persons who are in occupied territory shall not be deprived, in any case or in any manner
whatsoever, of the benefits of the present Convention by any change introduced, as the result of the occupation of a
territory, into the institutions or government of the said territory, nor by any agreement concluded between the
authorities of the occupied territories and the Occupying Power, nor by any annexation by the latter of the whole or
part of the occupied territory.).
757
example, an Occupying Power may not purport to annex occupied territory in order to avoid its
responsibilities as an Occupying Power. 119
The Occupying Power may not enter into any special agreements that would adversely
affect the situation of protected persons, as defined by the GC, nor restrict the rights that the GC
confers upon them. 120
The Occupying Power may also not evade its responsibilities through the purported
renunciation by protected persons of the rights secured to them by the GC and by any special
agreements referred to in Article 7 of the GC. 121
The Occupying Powers authority over inhabitants of occupied territory derives from its
war powers and from its duty to ensure public order and safety in occupied territory. The
Occupying Power, as a belligerent State, may take such measures of control and security in
regard to protected persons as may be necessary as a result of the war. 124 In addition, the
Occupying Power may take measures necessary to fulfill its duty to ensure public order and
safety. 125
11.7.1 Inhabitants Obedience to the Occupying Power. It is the duty of the inhabitants
to carry on their ordinary peaceful pursuits, to behave in an absolutely peaceful manner, to take
119
See Trial of Robert Wagner, Gauleiter and Head of the Civil Government of Alsace during the Occupation, and
Six Others, III U.N. LAW REPORTS 23, 45 (Permanent Military Tribunal at Strasbourg, Apr. 23-May 3, 1946, and
Court of Appeal, Jul. 24, 1946) (Wagner put forward a plea based upon an alleged violation by false application of
the Ordinance of 28th August, 1944, claiming that the acts alleged were committed in Alsace, which was annexed
by Germany, and on territory over which French sovereignty had ceased to operate. The purported declaration of
annexation of Alsace by Germany on which reliance was placed in the plea was deemed by the Court of Appeal to
be nothing more than a unilateral act which could not legally modify the clauses of the treaty signed at Versailles on
28th June, 1919, by the representatives of Germany. Therefore the acts alleged to have been committed by Wagner
were committed in Alsace, French territory, and constituted war crimes in the sense of Art. 1 of the Ordinance of
28th August, 1944.).
120
Refer to 10.1.1.2 (Special Agreements Under the GC).
121
Refer to 10.3.6 (Non-Renunciation of Rights Secured by the GC).
122
Refer to 10.4.2 (Derogation in Occupied Territory).
123
Refer to 15.6.4 (Neutral Persons Resident in Occupied Territory).
124
Refer to 10.6 (Measures of Control and Security).
125
Refer to 11.5.1 (Authority Conferred by the Occupying Powers Duty to Ensure Public Order and Safety).
758
no part whatever in the hostilities carried on, to refrain from all injurious acts toward the forces
or in respect to their operations, and to render strict obedience to the orders of the occupant. 126
Subject to the restrictions imposed by international law, the Occupying Power may
demand and enforce from the inhabitants of occupied territory such obedience as may be
necessary for the security of its forces, for the maintenance of law and order, and for the proper
administration of the country. 127
11.7.2 Censorship and Other Regulation of the Media. Under the law of belligerent
occupation, 131 for the purposes of security, an Occupying Power may establish censorship or
126
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 432 (It is the duty of the inhabitants to carry on their ordinary peaceful
pursuits, to behave in an absolutely peaceful manner, to take no part whatever in the hostilities carried on, to refrain
from all injurious acts toward the troops or in respect to their operations, and to render strict obedience to the orders
of the occupant.).
127
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 432 (Subject to the restrictions imposed by international law, the
occupant can demand and enforce from the inhabitants of occupied territory such obedience as may be necessary for
the security of its forces, for the maintenance of law and order, and for the proper administration of the country.).
128
Brigadier General George B. Davis, Working Memoranda (Confidential for the United States Delegates): The
Second Peace Conference (Paragraph 2 of Programme), The Rules of War on Land, 37 (1907) (But the control
which the commanding general exercises over the inhabitants of occupied territory is not based upon any theory of
allegiance, their relation to him being out of constrained obedience to his commands. As the allegiance of the
population has not been changed, the occupying commander can not compel the individuals composing it to commit
acts of treason; that is, to take part in acts of hostility against their own government.).
129
GC COMMENTARY 346 (The words duty of allegiance [in Article 68 of the GC] constitute an acknowledgment
of the fundamental principle according to which the occupation does not sever the bond existing between the
inhabitants and the conquered State. Protected persons must nevertheless obey legitimate orders issued by the
Occupying Power.); GC COMMENTARY 305 (It may be mentioned in this connection that public officials and
judges act under the superintendence and control of the occupant to whom legal power has passed in actual practice
and to whom they, like any other protected person, owe obedience. But this duty of obedience does not cancel out
the duty of allegiance which subsists during the period of occupation.).
130
United States v. Rice, 17 U.S. 246, 254 (1819) (Story, J.) (By the conquest and military occupation of Castine,
the enemy acquired that firm possession which enabled him to exercise the fullest rights of sovereignty over that
place. The sovereignty of the United States over the territory was, of course, suspended, and the laws of the United
States could no longer be rightfully enforced there, or be obligatory upon the inhabitants who remained and
submitted to the conquerors. By the surrender, the inhabitants passed under a temporary allegiance to the British
government, and were bound by such laws, and such only, as it chose to recognise and impose. From the nature of
the case, no other laws could be obligatory upon them, for where there is no protection or allegiance or sovereignty,
there can be no claim to obedience. Castine was, therefore, during this period, so far as respected our revenue laws,
to be deemed a foreign port; and goods imported into it by the inhabitants, were subject to such duties only as the
British government chose to require. Such goods were in no correct sense imported into the United States.).
759
regulation of any or all forms of media (e.g., press, radio, television) and entertainment (e.g.,
theater, movies), of correspondence, and of other means of communication. 132 For example, an
Occupying Power may prohibit entirely the publication of newspapers that pose a threat to
security, or it may prescribe regulations for the publication or circulation of newspapers of other
media for the purpose of fulfilling its obligations to restore public order. 133
The Occupying Power is not required to furnish facilities for postal service, but may take
charge of them itself, especially if the officials of the occupied district fail to act or to obey its
orders. 134
11.7.4 Limits on Safety Measures. If the Occupying Power considers it necessary, for
imperative reasons of security, to take safety measures concerning protected persons, it may, at
the most, subject them to assigned residence or to internment. 136 The Occupying Power must
comply with certain procedural requirements (e.g., appeal, periodic review) when conducting
assigned residence or internment of protected persons in occupied territory based on imperative
reasons of security. 137 The Occupying Power also has an obligation to support persons who are
assigned residence and thus are required to leave their homes, consistent with the standards for
the treatment of internees. 138
131
The discussion in this sub-section focuses solely on what is permitted under the law of war and does not address
possible implications of censorship under the First Amendment of the Constitution.
132
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 377 (The belligerent occupant may establish censorship of the press,
radio, theater, motion pictures, and television, of correspondence, and of all other means of communication. It may
prohibit entirely the publication of newspapers or prescribe regulations for their publication and circulation.).
133
For example, Coalition Provisional Authority Public Notice, Towards a Responsible Iraqi Media, Jun. 10, 2003
(Disseminating material that incites violence, however poses a direct threat to personal freedoms, and is therefore
banned under the terms of this order, as it is in any civilized society. Equally, advocating the return to power of the
repressive and criminal Baathist regime would undermine civil order and the freedom from fear of political
repression, both of which are necessary for the development of a free and democratic Iraq. Thus the CPA is issuing
an Order that prohibits Iraqi media organizations from broadcasting or publishing material that would seriously
undermine security and civil order in Iraq.).
134
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 377 (The occupant is not required to furnish facilities for postal service,
but may take charge of them itself, especially if the officials of the occupied district fail to act or to obey its
orders.).
135
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 378 (The belligerent occupant exercises authority over all means of
transportation, both public and private, within the occupied district, and may seize them and regulate their
operation.).
136
Refer to 10.6.3 (No Measures of Control More Severe Than Assigned Residence or Internment).
137
Refer to 10.9.3 (Procedure for Internment or Assigned Residence in Occupied Territory).
138
Refer to 10.6.4 (Support to Persons Who Are Assigned Residence Should Be Guided by Internment Standards).
760
11.8 ADMINISTRATION OF OCCUPIED TERRITORY
11.8.2 Continued Performance of Duties by Civil Servants and Other Officials of Local
Governments. The Occupying Power may, while retaining its paramount authority, permit the
government of the country to perform some or all of its normal functions. 140 It may, for
example, call upon the local authorities to administer designated rear areas, subject to the
guidance and direction of the Occupying Power. 141 Such action is consistent with the status of
occupation, so long as there exists the firm possession of territory and the purpose to maintain
paramount authority. 142 Similarly, for example, courts are generally to continue the ordinary
administration of justice during occupation. 143
The compulsion of civil servants and other officials of local governments to continue to
perform their duties must be justified by military necessity and consistent with applicable
provisions of the GC. 144
139
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 367a (The functions of the hostile governmentwhether of a general,
provincial, or local charactercontinue only to the extent they are sanctioned by the occupant.). For example,
Coalition Provisional Authority Regulation No. 1, 2 (May 16, 2003) (Unless suspended or replaced by the CPA or
superseded by legislation issued by democratic institutions of Iraq, laws in force in Iraq as of April 16, 2003 shall
continue to apply in Iraq insofar as the laws do not prevent the CPA from exercising its rights and fulfilling its
obligations, or conflict with the present or any other Regulation or Order issued by the CPA.).
140
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 367b (The occupant may, while retaining its paramount authority, permit
the government of the country to perform some or all of its normal functions. It may, for example, call upon the
local authorities to administer designated rear areas, subject to the guidance and direction of the occupying power.
Such action is consistent with the status of occupation, so long as there exists the firm possession and the purpose to
maintain paramount authority.).
141
For example, Reports of General MacArthur, in I Supplement MacArthur in Japan: The Occupation: Military
Phase 25-26 (1966) (While the air lift of the main initial force was in progress on 30 August, GHQ, AFPAC, issued
an amendment to Operations Instructions No. 4, which materially altered the missions assigned to the Army
commanders who soon would be arriving on the Nippon homeland. Instead of actually instituting military
government, Army commanders were to supervise the execution of the policies relative to government functions
which GHQ, AFPAC, was to issue directly to the Japanese Government;).
142
Refer to 11.2.2.2 (Under the Authority Suspension and Substitution of Governmental Authority).
143
Refer to 11.10 (Ordinary Courts in Occupied Territory).
144
Refer to 11.21.1 (Continued Service of Judges and Other Public Officials).
145
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 366 (The restrictions placed upon the authority of a belligerent
government cannot be avoided by a system of using a puppet government, central or local, to carry out acts which
761
11.8.4 Responsibility of the Occupying Power for Treatment Accorded to Protected
Persons by Its Agents. An Occupying Power, like belligerent States, is responsible for the
treatment accorded to protected persons by its agents, irrespective of any individual
responsibility that may be incurred. 146 The responsibility of the Occupying Power for its agents
includes those agents that are not its nationals, such as locally recruited agents of the nationality
of the State whose territory is occupied. 147
11.8.5 Immunity of Occupation Personnel From Local Law. Military and civilian
personnel of the occupying forces and occupation administration and persons accompanying
them are not subject to the local law or to the jurisdiction of the local civil or criminal courts of
the occupied territory, unless expressly made subject thereto by a competent officer of the
Occupying Power. 148
would be unlawful if performed directly by the occupant. Acts induced or compelled by the occupant are
nonetheless its acts.).
146
Refer to 10.3.5 (State Responsibility for Its Agents Treatment of Protected Persons); 18.9.1 (State
Responsibility for Violations of the Law of War by Its Armed Forces).
147
GC COMMENTARY 212 (The nationality of the agents does not affect the issue. That is of particular importance
in occupied territories, as it means that the occupying authorities are responsible for acts committed by their locally
recruited agents of the nationality of the occupied country.).
148
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 374 (Military and civilian personnel of the occupying forces and
occupation administration and persons accompanying them are not subject to the local law or to the jurisdiction of
the local courts of the occupied territory unless expressly made subject thereto by a competent officer of the
occupying forces or occupation administration.). For example, Coleman v. Tennessee, 97 U.S. 509, 518-19 (1878)
(The laws of Tennessee with regard to offenses and their punishment, which were allowed to remain in force
during its military occupation, did not apply to the defendant, as he was at the time a soldier in the army of the
United States and subject to the Articles of War. He was responsible for his conduct to the laws of his own
government only as enforced by the commander of its army in that state, without whose consent he could not even
go beyond its lines. Had he been caught by the forces of the enemy after committing the offense, he might have
been subjected to a summary trial and punishment by order of their commander, and there would have been no just
ground of complaint, for the marauder and the assassin are not protected by any usages of civilized warfare. But the
courts of the state, whose regular government was superseded and whose laws were tolerated from motives of
convenience, were without jurisdiction to deal with him.).
149
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 374 (The occupant should see to it that an appropriate system of
substantive law applies to such persons and that tribunals are in existence to deal with civil litigation to which they
are parties and with offenses committed by them.).
150
Refer to 11.11.3.1 (U.S. Practice for Properly Constituted, Non-Political Military Courts).
151
Refer to 18.19.3.1 (Uniform Code of Military Justice Offenses); 18.19.3.5 (Extraterritorial Application of
Certain Federal Offenses Through MEJA).
762
11.8.6 Civilian or Military Nature of the Occupation Government. It is immaterial
whether the government over an enemys territory consists in a military or civil or mixed
administration. Its character is the same and the source of its authority the same. It is a
government imposed by force, and the legality of its acts is determined by the law of war. 152
For example, the governing authority established by the Occupying Power may be
composed of civilian personnel. 153
As a foreign State and as the paramount authority in the occupied territory, the
Occupying Power is not bound by the municipal law of the occupied territory. 156 For example,
the Occupying Power would not be bound by a municipal law that had been enacted by the State
of the occupied territory to prevent trading with the enemy. 157 Similarly, the Occupying Powers
personnel are immune from the application of local law. 158
152
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 368 (It is immaterial whether the government over an enemys territory
consists in a military or civil or mixed administration. Its character is the same and the source of its authority the
same. It is a government imposed by force, and the legality of its acts is determined by the law of war.).
153
For example, E. ZIEMKE, THE U.S. ARMY IN THE OCCUPATION OF GERMANY 1944-1946 404 (1975) (From the
beginning the US Group Control Council had been considered more a vehicle for future civilian authority than an
element of Army-administered military government. In April 1945, in his first outline for military government
organization, Clay proposed also to bring civilians into the theater G-5 so that both it and the US Group Control
Council could be carved out of the military command when the shift to civilian responsibility occurred. A month
later, in the organizational directive for military government, Clay stated, This organization must become civilian in
character as rapidly as consistent with efficient performance so that it may become at the earliest possible date a
framework for the administration of political control in Germany by the appropriate US civil agencies.).
154
Coleman v. Tennessee, 97 U.S. 509, 517 (1879) (By such occupation the political relations between the people
of the hostile country and their former government or sovereign are for the time severed; but the municipal laws --
that is, the laws which regulate private rights, enforce contracts, punish crime, and regulate the transfer of property -
- remain in full force, so far as they affect the inhabitants of the country among themselves, unless suspended or
superseded by the conqueror. And the tribunals by which the laws are enforced continue as before, unless thus
changed. In other words, the municipal laws of the State, and their administration, remain in full force so far as the
inhabitants of the country are concerned, unless changed by the occupying belligerent.). See also Ho Tung & Co.
v. United States, 42 Ct. Cl. 213, 227 (Ct. Cl. 1907) (It is unquestioned that upon the occupation by our military
forces of the port of Manila it was their duty to respect and assist in enforcing the municipal laws then in force there
until the same might be changed by order of the military commander, called for by the necessities of war.).
155
Refer to 11.11.1 (General Continuation of Penal Laws of the Occupied Territory).
156
Refer to 11.8.1 (Paramount Authority of the Occupying Power Over Government Functions in Occupied
Territory).
157
For example, N.V. De Bataafsche Petroleum Maatschappli & Ors. v. The War Damage Commission (Court of
Appeal, Singapore, April 13, 1956), reprinted in 51 AJIL 802, 807 (1957) (The provisions of the [Netherlands
763
11.9.2 Authority for the Occupying Power to Suspend, Repeal, or Change the Municipal
Law Applicable to Occupied Territory. The duty of the Occupying Power to respect, unless
absolutely prevented, the laws in force in the country prohibits it from arbitrarily exercising its
authority to suspend, repeal, or change the municipal law applicable to occupied territory. 159 As
with other authorities under the law of war, the Occupying Power must use its power with
respect to the municipal law of occupied territory in good faith and not for the purpose of
oppressing the population. 160
The Occupying Power may subject the population of the occupied territory to provisions:
(1) that are essential to enable the Occupying Power to fulfill its obligations under the GC; (2) to
maintain the orderly government of the territory; and (3) to ensure the security of the Occupying
Power, of the members and property of the occupying forces or administration, and likewise of
the establishments and lines of communication used by them. 161
Broader authority for the Occupying Power to change the laws of the occupied territory
may be provided by the U.N. Security Council. 162
After the Occupying Powers occupation has ended, its changes to the municipal law of
the occupied territory may be changed, subject to the requirements of applicable international
law.
Implicit in the authority to enact new laws is the authority to suspend or repeal existing
laws. Thus, the repeal or suspension of a law may be accomplished by the Occupying Power
subjecting the population of the occupied territory to additional provisions of law that are
Indies] Wartime Legal Relations Ordinance were, no doubt, very appropriate when applied to persons, as defined
in section 1 of the Ordinance, but to contend that they apply to a belligerent occupant, that is to say, to an
International Person, who is thereby placed under a statutory obligation to seek the permission of the Director of
Economic Affairs before doing any act which might benefit the enemy (which is, of course, himself) is, to my mind,
an untenable proposition.).
158
Refer to 11.8.5 (Immunity of Occupation Personnel From Local Law).
159
Refer to 11.5.2 (Duty to Respect, Unless Absolutely Prevented, the Laws in Force in the Country).
160
GC COMMENTARY 337 (It will be seen that the powers which the Occupying Power is recognized to have are
very extensive and complex, but these varied measures must not under any circumstances serve as a means of
oppressing the population. The legislative and penal jurisdiction exercised by the occupation authorities, as holder
of public power, is therefore hedged about with numerous safeguards set forth in the following Articles.).
161
GC art. 64 (The Occupying Power may, however, subject the population of the occupied territory to provisions
which are essential to enable the Occupying Power to fulfil its obligations under the present Convention, to maintain
the orderly government of the territory, and to ensure the security of the Occupying Power, of the members and
property of the occupying forces or administration, and likewise of the establishments and lines of communication
used by them.).
162
Refer to 11.1.2.5 (Occupation and U.N. Security Council Resolutions).
764
inconsistent with the earlier law. For example, a law permitting discrimination may be
effectively suspended by the Occupying Power requiring officials to apply the law impartially. 163
The power to suspend or repeal laws may also include the power to amend laws. For
example, the partial suspension of a tax imposed on the population may also be viewed as a
change in the tax rate. 164
However, new penal provisions may not come into force before they have been
published. 165
relating to serious offenses that pose a threat to public order, such as kidnapping, rape,
and forcible vehicle larceny; 166
relating to the sale or possession of weapons by members of the civilian population; 167
relating to measures for the protection of the Occupying Powers forces or administration
(e.g., laws relating to the recruitment of persons into the occupied States armed forces or
insurgent groups, relating to curfews or restricted areas); 168
163
For example, Coalition Provisional Authority Order No. 7, Penal Code, 4 (Jun. 10, 2003) (In exercising their
official functions, all persons undertaking public duties or holding public office, including all police, prosecutors,
and judges, must apply the law impartially. No person will be discriminated against on the basis of sex, race, color,
language, religion, political opinion, national, ethnic or social origin, or birth.).
164
Refer to 11.22.1.2 (Changes in Taxes or New Taxes).
165
Refer to 11.11.2.1 (Publication of Penal Provisions Before Coming Into Force).
166
For example, Coalition Provisional Authority Order No. 31, Modifications of Penal Code and Criminal
Proceedings Law, preamble, 2-3, 5 (Sept. 10, 2003) (modifying sentences for certain offenses in the Iraqi Penal
Code based on the recognition that instances of kidnapping, rape, and forcible vehicle larceny represent a serious
threat to the security and stability of the Iraqi population).
167
For example, COLONEL I. L. HUNT, AMERICAN MILITARY GOVERNMENT OF OCCUPIED GERMANY, 1918-1920:
REPORT OF THE OFFICER IN CHARGE OF CIVIL AFFAIRS, THIRD ARMY AND AMERICAN FORCES IN GERMANY 107
(1943) (The carrying of arms or deadly weapons is forbidden except by the local police. Every person in
possession of arms and ammunition of any kind must deliver them to the American authorities at such time or place
as may be appointed. A receipt for each weapon will be given at the time of delivery and the weapon tagged with
the name of the owner. Precedents for forbidding the civil population to carry arms and ammunition during a
military occupation are so numerous that the publication of such regulations by the American army in this instance
cannot be considered a severe restriction. During the march to the Rhine, the Commanding General of the Third
Army had recognized the necessity of a regulation of this nature, and in Memorandum No. 4 had instructed unit
commanders to forbid civilians to carry deadly weapons.).
168
GC COMMENTARY 337 ((c) It is, lastly, authorized to promulgate penal provisions for its own protection. This
power has long been recognized by international law. The provision is sufficiently comprehensive to cover all
civilian and military organizations which an Occupying Power normally maintains in occupied territory. The
Convention mentions the Occupying Power itself besides referring to the members and property of the occupying
765
relating to political process, such as laws regarding the rights of suffrage and of
assembly; 169
relating to the supply of food and other items essential to the survival of the civilian
population, and the prevention of illicit trade in, or hoarding of, such items; 170
relating to the administration of the law, such as repealing laws establishing racial
discrimination or promulgating laws requiring the impartial application of the law by
local officials; 171 and
relating to the Occupying Powers obligations under the GC, such as legislation to help
provide for child welfare, labor, food, hygiene, and public health of the occupied
territory. 172
forces or administration, so that general activities such as activities on behalf of enemy armed forces are covered.
The Occupying Power is entitled to use establishments and lines of communication for its own needs; it is therefore
entitled to take appropriate measures to ensure their security.).
169
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 371 (The occupant may alter, repeal, or suspend laws of the following
types: a. Legislation constituting a threat to its security, such as laws relating to recruitment and the bearing of
arms. b. Legislation dealing with political process, such as laws regarding the rights of suffrage and of assembly. c.
Legislation the enforcement of which would be inconsistent with the duties of the occupant, such as laws
establishing racial discrimination.).
170
For example, COLONEL I. L. HUNT, AMERICAN MILITARY GOVERNMENT OF OCCUPIED GERMANY, 1918-1920:
REPORT OF THE OFFICER IN CHARGE OF CIVIL AFFAIRS, THIRD ARMY AND AMERICAN FORCES IN GERMANY 164-65
(1943) (Sale of American foodstuffs was by the ticket system. The method of using the food tickets, was, in
brief, as follows. Each person or head of family was issued the number of coupons to which he was entitled, each
coupon authorizing him to buy a certain quantity of a certain food, within a certain period of time. There were also
coupons, not bearing the name of any particular food, but numbered, to be used for foods not regularly issued. The
coupons entitled the holder to register with some merchant of his own choice, who in turn registered his total
requirements with the local Food Office. When the food arrived, each merchant was allotted the amount necessary
to provide for the persons registered with him. Announcements of distribution were made in the daily papers. The
merchant kept the coupons to indicate the amounts and regularity of his sales. Any allotment not entirely sold,
might be returned to the food authorities or debited against the next allotment. The system seemed simple enough,
but there was considerable traffic in tickets. Well-to-do people seldom suffered for lack of food, though they may
often not have been able to get the variety they wanted.).
171
For example, Coalition Provisional Authority Order No. 7, Penal Code, 4 (Jun. 10, 2003) (In exercising their
official functions, all persons undertaking public duties or holding public office, including all police, prosecutors,
and judges, must apply the law impartially. No person will be discriminated against on the basis of sex, race, color,
language, religion, political opinion, national, ethnic or social origin, or birth.).
172
GC COMMENTARY 337 (The legislative power of the occupant as the Power responsible for applying the
Convention and the temporary holder of authority is limited to the matters set out in a limitative list below. (a) It
may promulgate provisions required for the application of the Convention in accordance with the obligations
imposed on it by the latter in a number of spheres: child welfare, labour, food, hygiene and public health etc.).
766
or repeal of existing laws, and of the enactment of new laws. In particular, penal provisions must
be published before entering into force. 173
In practice, to ensure that all inhabitants are on notice of what is expected, the Occupying
Power is to publish a decree or order at, or immediately after, the beginning of the occupation, in
order to clarify the applicable laws and orders, and the punishments that can be imposed if the
inhabitants fail to comply. Such notification may be provided as part of a proclamation of
occupation. 174
In general, the courts and other tribunals of the occupied territory, like other
governmental functions, should continue to operate. 175 For example, ordinary crimes that do not
affect the security of the Occupying Power or its personnel should continue to be administered
by the courts in the occupied territory. 176
However, the administration of justice in the occupied territory, like the performance of
other governmental functions, is subject to the direction of the Occupying Power. 177
11.10.1 Authority to Suspend Ordinary Courts. The ordinary courts in occupied territory
should be suspended only if: (1) judges and magistrates are unable or unwilling to perform their
duties; (2) the courts are corrupt or unfairly constituted; or (3) the local judicial administration
has collapsed due to the hostilities preceding the occupation. 178
In such cases, the Occupying Power may use its own properly constituted, non-political
military courts to ensure that offenses against the local laws are properly tried. 179 The
173
Refer to 11.11.2.1 (Publication of Penal Provisions Before Coming Into Force).
174
Refer to 11.2.4 (Proclamation of Occupation).
175
LIEBER CODE art. 6 (All civil and penal law shall continue to take its usual course in the enemys places and
territories under Martial Law, unless interrupted or stopped by order of the occupying military power; but all the
functions of the hostile government legislative, executive, or administrative whether of a general, provincial, or
local character, cease under Martial Law, or continue only with the sanction, or, if deemed necessary, the
participation of the occupier or invader.).
176
Refer to 11.11.1.4 (Continued Administration of Penal Law by Courts in the Occupied Territory).
177
For example, Coalition Provisional Authority Order No. 7, Penal Code, 1 (Jun. 10, 2003) (All judges, police
and prosecutors shall perform their duties in accordance with CPA Regulation No. 1 (CPA/REG/23 May 2003/01)
and in accordance with any other Regulations, Orders, Memoranda or instructions issued by the CPA.).
178
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 373 (The ordinary courts of justice should be suspended only if: a.
Judges and magistrates abstain from fulfilling their functions (see GC, art. 54; par. 422 herein); or b. The courts are
corrupt or unfairly constituted; or c. Local judicial administration has collapsed during the hostilities preceding the
occupation and the occupant must set up its own courts to ensure that offenses against the local laws are properly
tried. In such cases, the occupant may establish courts of its own and make this measure known to the
inhabitants.).
179
Refer to 11.11.3 (Properly Constituted, Non-Political Military Courts in Occupied Territory).
767
Occupying Power may also reform local courts, including by establishing new criminal courts
under the law of the occupied State. 180
This rule has been interpreted to apply solely to enemy areas occupied by a belligerent. 186
It has been interpreted to prohibit a military commander from arbitrarily annulling the results of
civil proceedings between private parties. 187
180
Refer to 11.11.1.4 (Continued Administration of Penal Law by Courts in the Occupied Territory).
181
Refer to 11.21.1 (Continued Service of Judges and Other Public Officials).
182
Refer to 11.5 (Duty of the Occupying Power to Ensure Public Order and Safety); 10.29 (Judicial Proceedings
Regarding Protected Persons in Occupied Territory or Internees in a Belligerents Home Territory).
183
For example, Coalition Provisional Authority Order No. 15, Establishment of the Judicial Review Committee,
4(1) (Jun. 23, 2003) (The Committee shall investigate and gather information on the suitability of Judges and
Prosecutors to hold office. It shall have the power to remove judges and prosecutors from office, confirm their
continued holding of office, appoint replacements for judges and prosecutors removed from office and resolve the
claims of judges and prosecutors who assert that they were improperly removed from office.).
184
For example, Coalition Provisional Authority Regulation No. 4, Establishment of the Iraqi Property
Reconciliation Facility, 1(1) (Jun. 26, 2003) (There shall be established an Iraqi Property Reconciliation Facility
(IPRF) that shall commence operation at a time to be fixed by the Administrator, for the purpose of collecting real
property claims and promptly resolving such claims on a voluntary basis in a fair and judicious manner.).
185
HAGUE IV REG. art. 23 ([I]t is especially forbidden (h) To declare abolished, suspended, or inadmissible in a
court of law the rights and actions of the nationals of a hostile party.).
186
Ex parte Kumezo Kawato, 317 U.S. 69, 72 footnote 1 (1942) (Petitioner argues that his case is covered by
article 23 h of the Annex to the IVth Hague Convention of 1907: It is especially prohibited . . . to declare
abolished, suspended, or inadmissible in a Court of law the rights and action of the nationals of the hostile party.
This clause, which was added to the convention of 1899 without substantial discussion either by the Delegates in
General Assembly or by the committee and sub-committee which dealt with it, III Proceedings of the Hague
Convention of 1907, 12, 107, 136, 240; and I ibid. 83, was construed by an English Court to apply solely in enemy
areas occupied by a belligerent. Porter v. Freudenberg, [1915] 1 K. B. 857. The question has not been raised in the
courts in this country, but the English interpretation was repeated with approval by Representative Montague of the
768
11.11 CRIMINAL LAW IN OCCUPIED TERRITORY
This section addresses criminal law in occupied territory. Additional rules apply to
judicial proceedings against protected persons in occupied territory, which are also applied by
analogy to judicial proceedings against internees in a belligerents home territory. 188
11.11.1 General Continuation of Penal Laws of the Occupied Territory. The general
principle that the Occupying Power must respect, unless absolutely prevented, the laws in force
in the occupied territory also applies to the penal laws of the occupied territory. 189
In particular, the penal laws of the occupied territory shall remain in force during the
occupation, with the exception that they may be repealed or suspended by the Occupying Power
where they constitute a threat to its security or an obstacle to the application of the GC. 190
Subject to the latter consideration and to the necessity of ensuring the effective administration of
justice, the courts of the occupied territory shall continue to function in respect of all offenses
covered by these laws. 191
Interstate Commerce Committee in his address to the House when he presented to it the Trading with the Enemy
Act. 55 Cong. Rec. 4842 (1917).).
187
For example, 1958 UK MANUAL 524 note 1 (Hague Rules 23 (h). The following example of the relevance of
that article may be mentioned: during the British occupation of Cyrenaica in the course of the Second World War,
in order to avoid disturbances, pressure was put upon the British administration to prevent the execution of a local
judgment restoring to its Italian owner a mill in the occupation of an Arab trustee. The legal adviser of the
Administration expressed the view that a failure to enforce the judgment would be contrary to this article, see Watts
in Grotius Society, vol. 37, pp. 69-82.). Cf. Ochoa v. Hernandez y Morales, 230 U.S. 139, 154-61 (1912) (In
order to determine the extent of the authority of General Henry, and the limitations upon it, we must look to the
orders under which the military government was established and maintained. Under all the circumstances we
deem it clear that the Governor was without authority from the President to make any order, judicial in its nature,
that would have the effect of depriving any person of his property without due process of law. Whatever else may
be uncertain about the definition of the term due process of law, all authorities agree that it inhibits the taking of
one man's property and giving it to another, contrary to settled usages and modes of procedure, and without notice or
an opportunity for a hearing.); Raymond v. Thomas, 91 U.S. 712, 715-16 (1876) (We have looked carefully
through the acts of March 2, 1867, and July 19, 1867. They give very large governmental powers to the military
commanders designated, within the States committed respectively to their jurisdiction; but we have found nothing to
warrant the order here in question. It was not an order for mere delay. It did not prescribe that the proceeding
should stop until credit and confidence were restored, and business should resume its wonted channels. It wholly
annulled a decree in equity regularly made by a competent judicial officer in a plain case clearly within his
jurisdiction, and where there was no pretense of any unfairness, of any purpose to wrong or oppress, or of any
indirection whatsoever. It was an arbitrary stretch of authority, needful to no good end that can be imagined.).
188
Refer to 10.29 (Judicial Proceedings Regarding Protected Persons in Occupied Territory or Internees in a
Belligerents Home Territory).
189
Refer to 11.9.1 (General Continuation of Municipal Law of the Occupied Territory as Between Inhabitants).
190
GC art. 64 (The penal laws of the occupied territory shall remain in force, with the exception that they may be
repealed or suspended by the Occupying Power in cases where they constitute a threat to its security or an obstacle
to the application of the present Convention.).
191
GC art. 64 (Subject to the latter consideration and to the necessity for ensuring the effective administration of
justice, the tribunals of the occupied territory shall continue to function in respect of all offences covered by the said
laws.).
769
11.11.1.1 Types of Laws That Are Considered Penal Laws. Penal laws addressed
by this rule may be understood to include all laws, regulations, decrees, orders, and similar
measures intended to repress offenses, including the rules of criminal procedure. 192
The continued administration of local and national penal law by the courts in occupied
territory is subject to certain modifications by the Occupying Power, such as modifications
necessary for ensuring the effective administration of justice. 198
192
GC COMMENTARY 335 (The words penal laws mean all legal provisions in connection with the repression of
offenses: the penal code and rules of procedure proper, subsidiary penal laws, laws in the strict sense of the term,
decrees, orders, the penal clauses of administrative regulations, penal clauses of financial laws, etc.).
193
GC COMMENTARY 335 (The second reservation is in the interests of the population and makes it possible to
abrogate any discriminatory measures incompatible with humane requirements. It refers in particular, to provisions
which adversely affect racial or religious minorities, such provisions being contrary to the spirit of the Convention
(Article 27), which forbids all adverse distinction based, in particular, on race, religion, and political opinion.).
194
For example, Coalition Provisional Authority Order No. 7, Penal Code, 2(1) (Jun. 10, 2003) (Without
prejudice to the continuing review of Iraqi laws, the Third Edition of the 1969 Iraqi Penal Code with amendments,
registered in Baghdad on the fifth day of Jumada I 1389 or the nineteenth day of July 1969, shall apply, with the
exception that i) Part Two, Chapter Two, Paragraph 200, and ii) Part Two, Chapter Three, Section One, Paragraph
225 are hereby suspended.).
195
For example, Coalition Provisional Authority Order No. 7, Penal Code, 2(2) (Jun. 10, 2003) (Legal
proceedings may be brought with respect to the following offenses only with the written permission of the
Administrator of the CPA: a) Part One, Chapter Four, Paragraphs 81-84, publication offenses. b) Part Two, Chapter
One, Paragraphs 156-189, offenses against the external security of the state. c) Part Two, Chapter Two, Paragraphs
190-195; 198-199; 201-219, offenses against the internal security of the state. d) Part Two, Chapter Three, Section
One, Paragraphs 223-224; 226-228, offenses against public authorities. e) Part Two, Chapter Three, Section Two,
Paragraph 229, offense of insulting a public official.).
196
Refer to 11.9.2.1 (Distinction Between Suspension, Repeal, Change, or Enactment of Municipal Laws).
197
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 370 (Crimes not of a military nature and not affecting the occupant's
security are normally left to the jurisdiction of the local courts.).
770
The Occupying Power may reform or establish new criminal courts in occupied territory
as part of its authority to subject the population of the occupied territory to additional provisions
of law and its duty to restore and maintain public order. 199 In addition, the Occupying Power
may use its properly constituted, non-political military courts in occupied territory for certain
types of offenses. 200
11.11.2 Penal Provisions Enacted by the Occupying Power. As with other types of legal
provisions, the Occupying Power may subject the population of the occupied territory to penal
provisions: (1) that are essential to enable the Occupying Power to fulfill its obligations under
the GC; (2) to maintain the orderly government of the territory; and (3) to ensure the security of
the Occupying Power, of the members and property of the occupying forces or administration,
and likewise of the establishments and lines of communication used by them. 201
11.11.2.1 Publication of Penal Provisions Before Coming Into Force. The penal
provisions enacted by the Occupying Power shall not come into force before they have been
published and brought to the knowledge of the inhabitants in their own language. 202 When more
than one language is used by the local population, the Occupying Power may adhere to the local
practice regarding official publication of legislation. 203
198
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 370 (In restoring public order and safety, the occupant will continue in
force the ordinary civil and penal (criminal) laws of the occupied territory except to the extent it may be authorized
by Article 64, GC (par 369), and Article 43, HR (par. 363), to alter, suspend, or repeal such laws (see also HR art. 23
(h); par. 372 herein; and GC, art. 51; par. 418 herein). These laws will be administered by the local officials as far
as practicable.).
199
For example, Coalition Provisional Authority Order No. 13, The Central Criminal Court of Iraq (Revised),
(Amended), 1(1) (Apr. 22, 2004) (There shall be established a Central Criminal Court of Iraq (hereinafter the
CCCI), which shall sit in the city of Baghdad and in such sessions in other locations in Iraq as provided for in this
Order. The CCCI shall have national jurisdiction over all matters set forth in Section 18.).
200
Refer to 11.11.3 (Properly Constituted, Non-Political Military Courts in Occupied Territory).
201
Refer to 11.9.2 (Authority for the Occupying Power to Suspend, Repeal, or Change the Municipal Law
Applicable to Occupied Territory).
202
GC art. 65 (The penal provisions enacted by the Occupying Power shall not come into force before they have
been published and brought to the knowledge of the inhabitants in their own language.).
203
GC COMMENTARY 338 footnote 3 (In countries which have more than one official language the Occupying
Power will follow local practice and publish the penal provisions it enacts, in either one or more than one language,
according to whether the countrys legislation was published in one or in more than one language before the
occupation.).
204
GC art. 65 (The effect of these penal provisions shall not be retroactive.).
771
its properly constituted, non-political military courts, on condition that these courts sit in the
occupied country. Courts of appeals shall preferably sit in the occupied country. 205
These courts must be regularly constituted courts affording all the judicial guarantees that
are recognized as indispensable by civilized peoples. 206 These courts must also comply with
requirements for judicial proceedings regarding protected persons in occupied territory. 207
205
GC art. 66 (In case of a breach of the penal provisions promulgated by it by virtue of the second paragraph of
Article 64, the Occupying Power may hand over the accused to its properly constituted, non-political military courts,
on condition that the said courts sit in the occupied country. Courts of appeal shall preferably sit in the occupied
country.).
206
Refer to 8.16 (Criminal Procedure and Punishment).
207
Refer to 10.29 (Judicial Proceedings Regarding Protected Persons in Occupied Territory or Internees in a
Belligerents Home Territory).
208
For example, EARL F. ZIEMKE, THE U.S. ARMY IN THE OCCUPATION OF GERMANY, 1944-1946, 144 (1975) (As
instruments for shaping relations between the population and the occupation forces, military government courts were
regarded as most important. They were expected, on the one hand, to enforce sternly the authority claimed in the
proclamation and ordinances and, on the other, to point up for the Germans the difference between nazism and
democracy by giving fair and impartial trials to all accused. Modeled after Army courts martial, the military
government courts convened on three levels: summary (one officer), intermediate (one or more officers), and
general (not less than three officers). Summary courts could impose up to one year in prison and fines in marks up
to $1,000; intermediate courts, ten years in prison and fines to $10,000; and general courts, the death penalty and
unlimited fines.); WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW & PRECEDENTS 803-04 (In the late civil war there was established at
New Orleans by the President, by an order of October 20, 1862, a civil court entitled the Provisional Court of
Louisiana, with both civil and criminal jurisdiction. As to its jurisdiction of crimes, this appears maintained in an
extended opinion of its judge, Hon. C.A. Peabody, in the cases of U.S. v. Reiter and Louis, charged with murder and
arson. Other Provost Courts, with a jurisdiction assimilated in general to that of justices or police courts, were
established from time to time by military commanders during the war;).
209
See, e.g., DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY PAMPHLET 27-9-2, Military Judges Benchbook for Provost Courts (Oct. 4,
2004).
210
GC art. 67 (The courts shall apply only those provisions of law which were applicable prior to the offence, and
which are in accordance with general principles of law, in particular the principle that the penalty shall be
proportionate to the offence.); GC COMMENTARY 341 (Article 67 relates to the military courts before which the
Occupying Power may bring accused persons under the terms of the preceding Article.).
772
punishable under the law in force at the time the act was committed. 211 The requirement that
properly constituted, non-political military courts shall apply only those provisions of law that
are in accordance with general principles of law includes the rule that punishments must be
based on individual responsibility. 212
These courts shall also take into consideration the fact that the accused is not a national of
the Occupying Power. 213
These courts also may, at their discretion, convert a sentence of imprisonment to one of
internment for the same period. 214
The minor offense must have been solely intended to harm the Occupying Power in order
to trigger these restrictions. 216 For example, offenses such as traveling without a permit or
violating exchange control regulations would not fall under this restriction, but, nonetheless, may
result in internment or simple imprisonment.
211
GC COMMENTARY 341 (The objet [sic] of the provision is to limit the possibility of arbitrary action by the
Occupying Power by ensuring that penal jurisdiction is exercised on a sound basis of universally recognized legal
principles. The rule that penal laws cannot be retroactive, which is stated here in general terms, had already been
mentioned at the end of Article 65. Nullum crimen, nulla poena sine lege is a traditional principle of penal law.
There can be no offence, and consequently no penalty, if the act in question is not referred to in a law in force at the
time it was committed and subject to punishment under that law.). Refer to 8.16.2.2 (No Crime or Punishment
Without Prior Law); 11.11.2.1 (Publication of Penal Provisions Before Coming Into Force).
212
GC COMMENTARY 342 (The general principles of law, which are not set out individually here but are referred
to as a whole, include the rule concerning the personal nature of punishments, under which nobody may be punished
for an offence committed by someone else. This rule is also laid down in Article 33 mentioned above.). Refer to
8.16.2.1 (Individual Penal Responsibility and No Collective Punishment); 10.5.3.2 (Collective Penalties and
Measures of Intimidation or Terrorism).
213
GC art. 67 (They shall take into consideration the fact that the accused is not a national of the Occupying
Power.).
214
Refer to 11.11.4.2 (Discretion of Non-Political, Military Courts to Convert Sentences of Imprisonment to
Sentences of Internment).
215
GC art. 68 (Protected persons who commit an offence which is solely intended to harm the Occupying Power,
but which does not constitute an attempt on the life or limb of members of the occupying forces or administration,
nor a grave collective danger, nor seriously damage the property of the occupying forces or administration or the
installations used by them, shall be liable to internment or simple imprisonment, provided the duration of such
internment or imprisonment is proportionate to the offence committed.).
216
GC COMMENTARY 343 (The minor offences must have been solely intended to harm the Occupying Power.
The inclusion of the word solely excludes acts which harm the Occupying Power indirectly.).
773
11.11.4.1 Internment or Imprisonment as the Only Measure Adopted for
Depriving Protected Persons of Liberty for Such Offenses. Furthermore, internment or
imprisonment shall, for such offenses, be the only measure adopted for depriving protected
persons of liberty. 217
Penalties that do not deprive the protected person of liberty, such as fines, or less severe
measures, such as arrest, are not addressed by this rule. 218
11.11.5 Imposing the Death Penalty for Offenses Committed by Protected Persons in
Occupied Territory. The GC provides that the penal provisions promulgated by the Occupying
Power in accordance with Articles 64 and 65 of the GC may impose the death penalty against a
protected person only in cases where the person is guilty of espionage, or serious acts of
sabotage against the military installations of the Occupying Power, or of intentional offenses that
have caused the death of one or more persons, provided that such offenses were punishable by
death under the law of the occupied territory in force before the occupation began. 220
However, the United States has reserved the right to impose the death penalty in
accordance with the provisions of Article 68, paragraph 2, of the GC without regard to whether
the offenses referred to in that paragraph are punishable by death under the law of the occupied
territory at the time the occupation begins. 221 The United States expressed the position that an
Occupying Power would be unable to protect its own forces adequately against the activities of
illegal combatants unless it retained the authority to apply the death penalty, and the rule in
Article 68 of the GC would be subject to manipulation in that an adversary on the verge of being
217
GC art. 68 (Furthermore, internment or imprisonment shall, for such offences, be the only measure adopted for
depriving protected persons of liberty.).
218
GC COMMENTARY 344 (It should be noted that internment and imprisonment are only mentioned as maximum
penalties, and less severe penalties still, such as placing under arrest or fines, may be applied in the case of persons
accused of minor offences.).
219
GC art. 68 (The courts provided for under Article 66 of the present Convention may at their discretion convert a
sentence of imprisonment to one of internment for the same period.).
220
GC art. 68 (The penal provisions promulgated by the Occupying Power in accordance with Articles 64 and 65
may impose the death penalty on a protected person only in cases where the person is guilty of espionage, of serious
acts of sabotage against the military installations of the Occupying Power or of intentional offences which have
caused the death of one or more persons, provided that such offences were punishable by death under the law of the
occupied territory in force before the occupation began.).
221
United States, Statement on Ratification of the GC, Aug. 2, 1955, 213 UNTS 384 (The United States reserves
the right to impose the death penalty in accordance with the provisions of Article 68, paragraph 2, without regard to
whether the offenses referred to therein are punishable by death under the law of the occupied territory at the time
the occupation begins.).
774
occupied might repeal the death penalty to encourage subversive activities against an Occupying
Power. 222
The death penalty may not be pronounced against a protected person unless the attention
of the court has been particularly called to the fact that since the accused is not a national of the
Occupying Power, he or she is not bound to it by any duty of allegiance. 223
In any case, the death penalty may not be pronounced against a protected person who was
under eighteen years of age at the time of the offense. 224
In practice, if an occupation is undertaken with coalition partners, the death penalty may
be suspended in order to address requests of these States. 225
11.11.6 Deduction From Sentences of Period Under Arrest. In all cases, the duration of
the period during which a protected person accused of an offense is under arrest awaiting trial or
punishment shall be deducted from any period of imprisonment awarded. 226
222
SENATE EXECUTIVE REPORT 84-9, Geneva Conventions for the Protection of War Victims: Report of the
Committee on Foreign Relations on Executives D, E, F, and G, 82nd Congress, First Session, 23 (Jun. 27, 1955)
(Adoption of this limitation upon the death penalty was due to the efforts of a number of countries, some of which
had experienced whole-sale imposition of this extreme measure under military occupation, and others of which have
abolished the death penalty in their legal systems. Our own Government, while willing to agree not to impose it
except in the three categories of cases listed in article 68, was unable to accept the proviso further limiting its use.
Along with the United Kingdom, we took the position that an occupying power would be unable to protect its own
forces adequately against the activities of illegal combatants unless it retained the power to take drastic legal action
to meet the situation. From a practical standpoint, moreover, the limitation in article 68 would permit an enemy on
the point of being dislodged from the national territory to repeal a death penalty law previously applicable, thus
opening the way to all kinds of subversive activities against the occupant which would not be punishable by
death.).
223
GC art. 68 (The death penalty may not be pronounced against a protected person unless the attention of the court
has been particularly called to the fact that since the accused is not a national of the Occupying Power, he is not
bound to it by any duty of allegiance.). Compare 9.28.6 (Death Sentences); 10.29.5 (Death Sentences).
224
GC art. 68 (In any case, the death penalty may not be pronounced against a protected person who was under
eighteen years of age at the time of the offense.).
225
For example, Coalition Provision Authority Order No. 7, Penal Code, 3(1) (Jun. 10, 2003) (Capital
punishment is suspended. In each case where the death penalty is the only available penalty prescribed for an
offense, the court may substitute the lesser penalty of life imprisonment, or such other lesser penalty as provided for
in the Penal Code.).
226
GC art. 69 (In all cases, the duration of the period during which a protected person accused of an offence is
under arrest awaiting trial or punishment shall be deducted from any period of imprisonment awarded.).
775
expressed before the occupation, or during a temporary interruption thereof, with the exception
of breaches of the laws and customs of war. 227
Thus, although protected persons may not be forcibly transferred or deported to another
country, 229 nationals of the Occupying Power may be involuntarily removed under certain
circumstances. 230
This rule is an exception to the general principle that a States own nationals are excluded
from the protection of the GC. 231
11.11.8 Disposition of Accused and Convicted Protected Persons Upon the Close of
Occupation. Protected persons who have been accused of offenses or convicted by courts in
occupied territory shall be handed over at the close of occupation, with the relevant records, to
the authorities of the liberated territory. 232
Pending their transfer to such authorities, such protected persons continue to be protected
by the GC because protected persons whose release, repatriation, or re-establishment may take
place after such dates continue to benefit from the protections of the GC. 233
227
GC art. 70 (Protected persons shall not be arrested, prosecuted or convicted by the Occupying Power for acts
committed or for opinions expressed before the occupation, or during a temporary interruption thereof, with the
exception of breaches of the laws and customs of war.).
228
GC art. 70 (Nationals of the Occupying Power who, before the outbreak of hostilities, have sought refuge in the
territory of the occupied State, shall not be arrested, prosecuted, convicted or deported from the occupied territory,
except for offences committed after the outbreak of hostilities, or for offences under common law committed before
the outbreak of hostilities which, according to the law of the occupied State, would have justified extradition in time
of peace.).
229
Refer to 11.12.3 (Prohibition Against Forcible Transfers and Deportations).
230
GC COMMENTARY 351-52 (When criminals again fall into the hands of their State of origin, as a result of the
occupation of the territory in which they are living, they must answer for their actions; the occupying authorities
may therefore arrest them, take them back to their home country and bring them before its courts, provided the law
of the occupied State would have justified their extradition in time of peace.).
231
Refer to 10.3.3.1 (A States Own Nationals).
232
GC art. 77 (Protected persons who have been accused of offenses or convicted by the courts in occupied
territory, shall be handed over at the close of occupation, with the relevant records, to the authorities of the liberated
territory.).
233
Refer to 10.3.4 (Commencement and Duration of Protected Person Status).
776
The practical arrangements for the handing over of such protected persons will depend on
the circumstances, including whether the liberation of occupied territory is accompanied by
fighting and whether the local administration is able to function. 234
If occupying forces will remain in occupied territory after the end of occupation, it is
permissible, with the consent of the formerly occupied State, for the occupying forces to retain
custody, in the formerly occupied territory, of protected persons accused or convicted of
offenses.
The Occupying Power may withdraw from individuals the right to change their residence,
restrict freedom of internal movement, forbid visits to certain districts, prohibit emigration and
immigration by protected persons who are nationals of the State whose territory is occupied, and
require that all individuals carry identification documents. 235
11.12.2 Departure of Protected Persons Who Are Not Nationals of the State Whose
Territory Is Occupied. Protected persons who are not nationals of the State whose territory is
occupied may avail themselves of the right to leave occupied territory subject to the provisions
of Article 35 of the GC, and decisions thereon shall be taken according to the procedure that the
Occupying Power shall establish in accordance with the Article 35 of the GC. 236
Article 35 of the GC sets forth rules regarding the departure of protected persons from the
home territory of a belligerent State and provides protected persons with a right to depart. But,
Article 35 allows a belligerent to prevent such departure if such departure is contrary to the
belligerents national interests, and Article 35 specifies certain procedural requirements. 237
234
GC COMMENTARY 367 (The Convention does not lay down any rules concerning the practical arrangements for
handing over detainees, because they will depend on circumstances and on whether the liberation of the occupied
territory is accompanied by fighting or not, and whether the local administration has been able to continue to
function or not.).
235
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 375 (The occupant may withdraw from individuals the right to change
their residence, restrict freedom of internal movement, forbid visits to certain districts, prohibit emigration and
immigration (but see GC art. 48; par. 381 herein), and require that all individuals carry identification documents.).
236
GC art. 48 (Protected persons who are not nationals of the Power whose territory is occupied, may avail
themselves of the right to leave the territory subject to the provisions of Article 35, and decisions thereon shall be
taken according to the procedure which the Occupying Power shall establish in accordance with the said Article.).
237
Refer to 10.8.2 (Departures of Protected Persons From a Belligerents Home Territory).
777
Thus, for example, an Occupying Power may prevent the departure of protected persons
who are not nationals of the State whose territory is occupied if such departure is contrary to the
Occupying Powers national interests. The Occupying Power must comply with the
requirements of Article 35 of the GC if it does so (e.g., providing for the reconsideration of its
refusal of permission to depart by an appropriate court or administrative board). 238
For example, in some cases, the whole of occupied territory, such as an island, may be
dangerous, and it may be safer for the protected person to be transferred from occupied
territory. 242
The Occupying Power undertaking such transfers or evacuations shall ensure, to the
greatest practicable extent: (1) that proper accommodation is provided to receive the protected
238
GC COMMENTARY 277 (For the procedure to be followed, Article 48 refers expressly to Article 35. Persons
who wish to leave the occupied territory therefore enjoy the same safeguards as protected persons living in the
territory of a party to the conflict, i.e. they will have the right to appeal to a court or administrative board and to ask
for a Protecting Power to intervene. On the other hand, under paragraph 1 of Article 35, the Occupying Power is
entitled to object to the departure of a protected person when its national interests make this absolutely necessary.).
239
GC art. 49 (Individual or mass forcible transfers, as well as deportations of protected persons from occupied
territory to the territory of the Occupying Power or to that of any other country, occupied or not, are prohibited,
regardless of their motive.).
240
Refer to 18.9.3.1 (Acts Constituting Grave Breaches).
241
GC art. 49 (Nevertheless, the Occupying Power may undertake total or partial evacuation of a given area if the
security of the population or imperative military reasons so demand. Such evacuations may not involve the
displacement of protected persons outside the bounds of the occupied territory except when for material reasons it is
impossible to avoid such displacement. Persons thus evacuated shall be transferred back to their homes as soon as
hostilities in the area in question have ceased.).
242
II-A FINAL RECORD OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 759 (As regards the proposed
suppression of the words except in cases of physical necessity, there were cases where, owing to the limited size of
the territory, it was physically impossible to evacuate the population otherwise than to places outside the occupied
territory. That was the case, for example, in the islands of Wake and Guam, where the whole of the territory could
be considered as dangerous.).
778
persons; (2) that evacuations or transfers are effected with satisfactory conditions of hygiene,
health, safety, and nutrition; and (3) that members of the same family are not separated. 243
243
GC art. 49 (The Occupying Power undertaking such transfers or evacuations shall ensure, to the greatest
practicable extent, that proper accommodation is provided to receive the protected persons, that the removals are
effected in satisfactory conditions of hygiene, health, safety and nutrition, and that members of the same family are
not separated.).
244
Refer to 10.3.2 (Persons Who Receive Protected Person Status Under the GC); 10.3.3 (Categories of
Nationals Specifically Excluded From the Definition of Protected Person Under the GC).
245
Refer to 9.11.3.3 (Location Outside the Theater of Military Operations).
246
Refer to 10.3.2.1 (Find Themselves).
247
GC art. 49 (The Protecting Power shall be informed of any transfers and evacuations as soon as they have taken
place.). Consider AP I art. 78 (Any such evacuation [of children] shall be supervised by the Protecting Power in
agreement with the Parties concerned, namely the Party arranging the evacuation, the Party receiving the children
and any Parties whose nationals are being evacuated.).
248
II-A FINAL RECORD OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 827 (Although there was general
unanimity in condemning such deportations as took place during the recent war, the phrase at the beginning of
Article 45 caused some trouble in view of the difficulty in reconciling exactly the ideas expressed with the various
terms in French, English and Russian. In the end the Committee have decided on a wording which prohibits
individual or mass forcible removals as well as deportations of protected persons from occupied territory to any
other country, but which permits voluntary transfers.). See also id. at 759 (Mr. CLATTENBURG (United States of
America) believed that the addition (suggested by the Soviet Delegation) of the words any other transfer would
have hampered the evacuation of the religious and political minorities which the Allies, on entering Germany, had
discovered in labour and concentration camps.).
249
GC art. 49 (The Occupying Power shall not detain protected persons in an area particularly exposed to the
dangers of war unless the security of the population or imperative military reasons so demand.). Consider AP I art.
779
11.12.5 Prohibition Against Deporting or Transferring the Occupied States Civilian
Population Into Occupied Territory. The Occupying Power shall not deport or transfer parts of
its own civilian population into the territory it occupies. 250
Article 50 of the GC provides for certain duties of an Occupying Power with respect to
children in occupied territory. Children for the purposes of Article 50 of the GC and its
obligations with respect to the protection of children in occupied territory may be understood
generally to refer to children under fifteen years of age. 251
Other duties that are not specific to occupied territory exist with regard to children. 252
11.13.1 Obligation With Respect to the Care and Education of Children. The Occupying
Power shall, with the cooperation of the national and local authorities, facilitate the proper
working of all institutions devoted to the care and education of children. 253 This obligation goes
beyond merely not interfering with such institutions, but also includes the affirmative duty to
support them when the responsible authorities of the country fail to do so. 254
Should the local institutions be inadequate for the purpose, the Occupying Power shall
make arrangements for the maintenance and education if possible, by persons of their own
78 (In each case [of the evacuation of children], all Parties to the conflict shall take all feasible precautions to avoid
endangering the evacuation.).
250
GC art. 49 (The Occupying Power shall not deport or transfer parts of its own civilian populations into the
territory it occupies.).
251
GC COMMENTARY 285 (What should the word children be considered to mean for the purposes of Article 50?
Although the conception of children has an important place in the Convention there is, as has already been pointed
out, no general definition of the word. On the other hand the Convention has fixed various age limits in the
provisions prescribing preferential treatment for children: fifteen years of age, in Articles 14 (hospital and safety
zones), 23 (consignment of relief supplies), 24 and 38 (5) (measures relating to child welfare); twelve years of age in
Article 24, paragraph 3 (identification); and, as will be seen, eighteen years of age in Articles 51, paragraph 2
(compulsory labour) and 68, paragraph 4 (death penalty). Article 50, unlike those just mentioned, does not specify
any age limit for the children to whom it refers, except in the last paragraph. Since, however, the establishments and
institutions which paragraph 1 is intended to protect are generally for children and young people up to the age of
fifteen, that appears to be a reasonable upper limit and might therefore serve here as a criterion. The application of
Article 50, however, cannot depend on any formal and often too rigid rule; its application must be governed by the
degree of development of the physical and mental faculties of the persons concerned; it may therefore be applied to
young people until such time as they attain their majority. The meaning given to the term children will also, of
course, depend on the legislation of the occupied country, particularly in respect of identification.).
252
Refer to 4.20 (Children).
253
GC art. 50 (The Occupying Power shall, with the cooperation of the national and local authorities, facilitate the
proper working of all institutions devoted to the care and education of children.).
254
GC COMMENTARY 286 (The Occupying Powers must, with the co-operation of the national and local
authorities, facilitate the proper working of children's institutions. That means that the occupying authorities are
bound not only to avoid interfering with their activities, but also to support them actively and even encourage them
if the responsible authorities of the country fail in their duty.).
780
nationality, language, and religion of children who are orphaned or separated from their parents
as a result of the war, and who cannot be adequately cared for by a near relative or friend. 255
11.13.2 Obligation With Respect to the Identification of Children. The Occupying Power
shall take all necessary steps to facilitate the identification of children and the registration of
their parentage. 256
11.13.3 Prohibition Against Changing the Personal Status of Children or Enlisting Them.
The Occupying Power may not, in any case, change the personal status of children, nor enlist
them in formations or organizations subordinate to it. 258
11.13.4 Obligation Not to Hinder Preferential Measures for Children and Mothers. The
Occupying Power shall not hinder the application of any preferential measures in regard to food,
medical care, and protection against the effects of war that may have been adopted prior to the
occupation in favor of children under fifteen years, expectant mothers, and mothers of children
under seven years. 259
11.14.1 Duty of Ensuring the Food and Medical Supplies for the Population. To the
fullest extent of the means available to it, the Occupying Power has the duty of ensuring the
sufficiency of food and medical supplies for the population; it should, in particular, bring in the
necessary foodstuffs, medical stores, and other articles if the resources of the occupied territory
255
GC art. 50 (Should the local institutions be inadequate for the purpose, the Occupying Power shall make
arrangements for the maintenance and education, if possible by persons of their own nationality, language and
religion, of children who are orphaned or separated from their parents as a result of the war and who cannot be
adequately cared for by a near relative or friend.).
256
GC art. 50 (The Occupying Power shall take all necessary steps to facilitate the identification of children and the
registration of their parentage.).
257
Refer to 10.31.2.5 (Special Section for the Identification of Children in Occupied Territory).
258
GC art. 50 (The Occupying Power shall take all necessary steps to facilitate the identification of children and the
registration of their parentage. It may not, in any case, change their personal status, nor enlist them in formations or
organizations subordinate to it.).
259
GC art. 50 (The Occupying Power shall not hinder the application of any preferential measures in regard to
food, medical care and protection against the effects of war, which may have been adopted prior to the occupation in
favour of children under fifteen years, expectant mothers, and mothers of children under seven years.).
781
are inadequate. 260 Other articles may be understood to include all urgently required goods that
may be essential to the life of the territory. 261
11.14.2 Limitation on Requisition of Food and Medical Supplies. The Occupying Power
may not requisition foodstuffs, articles, or medical supplies available in the occupied territory,
except for use by the occupation forces and administration personnel, and then only if the
requirements of the civilian population have been taken into account. 262 Subject to the
provisions of other international conventions, the Occupying Power shall make arrangements to
ensure that fair value is paid for any requisitioned goods. 263
11.14.3 Verification of the State of Food and Medical Supplies by the Protecting Power.
The Protecting Power shall, at any time, be at liberty to verify the state of the food and medical
supplies in occupied territories, except where temporary restrictions are made necessary by
imperative military requirements. 264
11.15.1 General Duty With Respect to Public Health. To the fullest extent of the means
available to it, the Occupying Power has the duty of ensuring and maintaining, with the
cooperation of national and local authorities, medical and hospital establishments, medical
services, and public health and hygiene in the occupied territory, with particular reference to the
adoption and application of the prophylactic and preventive measures necessary to combat the
260
GC art. 55 (To the fullest extent of the means available to it, the Occupying Power has the duty of ensuring the
food and medical supplies of the population; it should, in particular, bring in the necessary foodstuffs, medical stores
and other articles if the resources of the occupied territory are inadequate.).
261
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 384 (b. Other Articles To Be Supplied. The other articles which the
occupant is required to provide under the above provision include all urgently required, goods which may be
essential to the life of the territory.). See also GC COMMENTARY 309-10 (Article 55 is concerned exclusively with
the question of food and medical supplies for the population of an occupied territory. Supplies for the population
are not limited to food, but include medical supplies and any article necessary to support life.).
262
GC art. 55 (The Occupying Power may not requisition foodstuffs, articles or medical supplies available in the
occupied territory, except for use by the occupation forces and administration personnel, and then only if the
requirements of the civilian population have been taken into account.). Consider AP I art. 14 (Limitations on
requisition of civilian medical units 2. The Occupying Power shall not, therefore, requisition civilian medical
units, their equipment, their materiel or the services of their personnel, so long as these resources are necessary for
the provision of adequate medical services for the civilian population and for the continuing medical care of any
wounded and sick already under treatment. 3. Provided that the general rule in paragraph 2 continues to be observed,
the Occupying Power may requisition the said resources, subject to the following particular conditions: (a) that the
resources necessary for the adequate and immediate medical treatment of the wounded and sick members of the
armed forces of the Occupying Power or of prisoners of war; (b) that the requisition continues only while such
necessity exists; and (c) that immediate arrangements are made to ensure that the medical needs of the civilian
population, as well as those of any wounded and sick under treatment who are affected by the requisition, continue
to be satisfied.).
263
GC art. 55 (Subject to the provisions of other international Conventions, the Occupying Power shall make
arrangements to ensure that fair value is paid for any requisitioned goods.).
264
GC art. 55 (The Protecting Power shall, at any time, be at liberty to verify the state of the food and medical
supplies in occupied territories, except where temporary restrictions are made necessary by imperative military
requirements.).
782
spread of contagious diseases and epidemics. 265 The responsibility for providing and
maintaining health services falls primarily on the national and local authorities, but where such
authorities are unable to provide adequately for the health needs of the civilian population, the
Occupying Power then has the duty described above. 266
11.15.2 Respect for the Work of Civilian Medical Personnel. Medical personnel of all
categories must be allowed to carry out their duties. 267 Medical personnel of all categories
includes a wide range of persons engaged in medical work. 268 It includes even those who are not
affiliated with civilian hospitals who qualify for protection under Article 20 of the GC. 269
265
GC art. 56 (To the fullest extent of the means available to it, the Occupying Power has the duty of ensuring and
maintaining, with the cooperation of national and local authorities, the medical and hospital establishments and
services, public health and hygiene in the occupied territory, with particular reference to the adoption and
application of the prophylactic and preventive measures necessary to combat the spread of contagious diseases and
epidemics.).
266
GC COMMENTARY 313-14 ([T]here can be no question of making the Occupying Power alone responsible for
the whole burden of organizing hospitals and health services and taking measures to control epidemics. The task is
above all one for the competent services of the occupied country itself. It is possible that in certain cases the
national authorities will be perfectly well able to look after the health of the population; in such cases the Occupying
Power will not have to intervene; it will merely avoid hampering the work of the organizations responsible for the
task. In most cases, however, the invading forces will be occupying a country suffering severely from the effects of
war; hospitals and medical services will be disorganized, without the necessary supplies and quite unable to meet the
needs of the population. The Occupying Power must then, with the co-operation of the authorities and to the fullest
extent of the means available to it, ensure that hospital and medical services can work properly and continue to do
so.).
267
GC art. 56 (Medical personnel of all categories shall be allowed to carry out their duties.).
268
GC COMMENTARY 314 (Medical personnel of all categories should be taken to mean all people engaged in a
branch of medical work: doctors, surgeons, dentists, pharmacists, midwives, medical orderlies and nurses, stretcher
bearers, ambulance drivers, etc., whether such persons are or are not attached to a hospital. On that point the
provision differs from Article 20 of the Convention, which refers only to hospital staff, who are alone authorized to
wear the armlet bearing the red cross emblem.).
269
Refer to 7.17.4 (Protection of Civilian Hospital Personnel).
270
GC art. 56 (If new hospitals are set up in occupied territory and if the competent organs of the occupied State
are not operating there, the occupying authorities shall, if necessary, grant them the recognition provided for in
Article 18. In similar circumstances, the occupying authorities shall also grant recognition to hospital personnel and
transport vehicles under the provisions of Articles 20 and 21.).
271
Refer to 7.17.2.1 (State-Issued Certificates for Civilian Hospitals).
783
under the provisions of Articles 20 and 21 of the GC. 272 This recognition also allows such
personnel and vehicles to display their entitlement to protection. 273
11.15.5 Requisition of Civilian Hospitals. The Occupying Power may requisition civilian
hospitals only temporarily and only in cases of urgent necessity for the care of military wounded
and sick, and then on the condition that suitable arrangements are made in due time for the care
and treatment of the hospitals current patients, and for the future needs of the civilian population
for hospital accommodation. The material and stores of civilian hospitals cannot be
requisitioned so long as they are necessary for the needs of the civilian population. 276
If the requisition of medical supplies is required for the occupying force, they must take
the needs of the civilian population into account and resupply the materials as soon as
possible. 277
The Occupying Power shall permit ministers of religion to give spiritual assistance to the
members of their religious communities. The Occupying Power shall also accept consignments
of books and articles required for religious needs and shall facilitate their distribution in occupied
territory. 278
272
GC art. 56 (In similar circumstances, the occupying authorities shall also grant recognition to hospital personnel
and transport vehicles under the provisions of Articles 20 and 21.).
273
Refer to 7.17.4 (Protection of Civilian Hospital Personnel); 7.18 (Land and Sea Civilian Hospital Convoys).
274
GC art. 56 (In adopting measures of health and hygiene and in their implementation, the Occupying Power shall
take into consideration the moral and ethical susceptibilities of the population of the occupied territory.).
275
GC COMMENTARY 315 (The purpose of this provision is to ensure respect for sentiments and traditions, which
must not be disregarded. The occupation must not involve the sudden introduction of new methods, if they are
liable to cause deep disquiet among the population.).
276
GC art. 57 (The Occupying Power may requisition civilian hospitals only temporarily and only in cases of
urgent necessity for the care of military wounded and sick, and then on condition that suitable arrangements are
made in due time for the care and treatment of patients and the needs of the civilian population for hospital
accommodation. The material and stores of civilian hospitals cannot be requisitioned so long as they are necessary
for the needs of the civilian population.).
277
GC COMMENTARY 318 (When so doing, it will take the needs of the population into account and it will replace
the material used as soon as possible, usually by importing medical supplies in accordance with Article 55.).
278
GC art. 58 (The Occupying Power shall permit ministers of religion to give spiritual assistance to the members
of their religious communities. The Occupying Power shall also accept consignments of books and articles required
for religious needs and shall facilitate their distribution in occupied territory.).
784
Religious assistance addressed by the GC, however, does not include activities that are a
pretext for political agitation against the Occupying Power. 279
Special rules address relief efforts in occupied territory. Other rules address relief efforts
outside the context of occupation. 280
11.17.1 Collective Relief. If the whole or part of the population of an occupied territory
is inadequately supplied, the Occupying Power shall agree to relief schemes on behalf of the
affected population, and shall facilitate them by all the means at its disposal. Such schemes,
which may be undertaken either by States or by impartial humanitarian organizations such as the
ICRC, shall consist, in particular, of the provision of consignments of foodstuffs, medical
supplies, and clothing. 281
All Parties to the GC shall permit the free passage of these consignments and shall
guarantee their protection. 282
279
GC COMMENTARY 318 ([R]eligious assistance must in no case serve as a pretext for political agitation against
the Occupying Power. Should occasion arise, the Occupying Power would be entitled to take appropriate action,
since the provision under discussion authorizes only spiritual assistance, and not activities which have nothing to do
with religion.).
280
Refer to 5.19.3 (Passage of Relief Consignments); 8.10.1 (Receipt of Individual or Collective Relief); 9.20
(POW Correspondence and Relief Shipments); 10.23 (Internee Correspondence and Relief Shipments).
281
GC art. 59 (If the whole or part of the population of an occupied territory is inadequately supplied, the
Occupying Power shall agree to relief schemes on behalf of the said population, and shall facilitate them by all the
means at its disposal. Such schemes, which may be undertaken either by States or by impartial humanitarian
organizations such as the International Committee of the Red Cross, shall consist, in particular, of the provision of
consignments of foodstuffs, medical supplies and clothing. All Contracting Parties shall permit the free passage of
these consignments and shall guarantee their protection.).
282
GC art. 59 (All Contracting Parties shall permit the free passage of these consignments and shall guarantee their
protection.).
283
GC art. 59 (A Power granting free passage to consignments on their way to territory occupied by an adverse
Party to the conflict shall, however, have the right to search the consignments, to regulate their passage according to
prescribed times and routes, and to be reasonably satisfied through the Protecting Power that these consignments are
to be used for the relief of the needy population and are not to be used for the benefit of the Occupying Power.).
785
in cases of urgent necessity, in the interests of the population of the occupied territory, and with
the consent of the Protecting Power. 284
The Occupying Power shall facilitate the rapid distribution of these consignments. 286 For
example, it may be necessary for the occupation authorities to remove administrative
impediments (e.g., granting permits) to relief organizations distributing consignments. 287
284
GC art. 60 (The Occupying Power shall in no way whatsoever divert relief consignments from the purpose for
which they are intended, except in cases of urgent necessity, in the interests of the population of the occupied
territory and with the consent of the Protecting Power.).
285
GC art. 61 (The distribution of the relief consignments referred to in the foregoing Articles shall be carried out
with the cooperation and under the supervision of the Protecting Power. This duty may also be delegated, by
agreement between the Occupying Power and the Protecting Power, to a neutral Power, to the International
Committee of the Red Cross or to any other impartial humanitarian body.).
286
GC art. 61 (The Occupying Power shall facilitate the rapid distribution of these consignments.).
287
GC COMMENTARY 328 (The second sentence in paragraph 2 says that the Occupying Power is to facilitate the
rapid distribution of the consignments. The effect of a relief scheme will depend above all on the time the
consignments take to reach the recipients; it is therefore important for the occupation authorities to take all necessary
steps to facilitate their despatch and distribution (cutting out red tape, making transport available, granting permits
allowing freedom of movement, facilities of all kinds for the staff of the distributing and supervising bodies, etc.).).
288
GC art. 61 (Such consignments shall be exempt in occupied territory from all charges, taxes or customs duties
unless these are necessary in the interests of the economy of the territory.).
289
GC art. 61 (All Contracting Parties shall endeavour to permit the transit and transport, free of charge, of such
relief consignments on their way to occupied territories.).
290
GC art. 62 (Subject to imperative reasons of security, protected persons in occupied territories shall be permitted
to receive the individual relief consignments sent to them.).
786
The occupation authorities may limit or temporarily forbid the entry of individual relief
supplies for imperative reasons of security, such as if the volume of relief consignments prevents
security screening. 292
11.17.4 National Red Cross or Red Crescent Societies and Other Relief Organizations.
Subject to temporary and exceptional measures imposed for urgent reasons of security by the
Occupying Power:
recognized National Red Cross (Red Crescent, Red Lion and Sun) Societies shall be able
to pursue their activities in accordance with Red Cross principles, as prescribed by the
International Red Cross Conferences. Other relief societies shall be permitted to continue
their humanitarian activities under similar conditions;
the Occupying Power may not require any changes in the personnel or structure of these
societies that would prejudice these activities. 295
The same principles shall apply to the activities and personnel of special organizations of
a non-military character that already exist or that may be established for the purpose of ensuring
291
GC COMMENTARY 329 (Unlike the three previous Articles which refer to relief supplies for a group of protected
persons (collective consignments), Article 62 deals with consignments addressed to individuals (individual
consignments).).
292
GC COMMENTARY 329 ([T]he occupation authorities have the right to refuse to receive individual relief
consignments if imperative reasons of security so demand. A similar reservation in regard to collective relief was
put forward during the preparatory work on Article 59, but was not adopted. The reservation was kept in Article 62
in order that efficient verification should not be rendered impossible by the arrival of huge quantities of individual
parcels. Under such circumstances the Occupying Power could avoid importing articles detrimental to its security
by limiting or temporarily forbidding the entry of individual relief supplies.).
293
GC art. 60 (Relief consignments shall in no way relieve the Occupying Power of any of its responsibilities under
Articles 55, 56 and 59.).
294
Refer to 11.14 (Food and Medical Supplies for the Civilian Population); 11.15 (Public Health and Hygiene);
11.17.1 (Collective Relief).
295
GC art. 63 (Subject to temporary and exceptional measures imposed for urgent reasons of security by the
Occupying Power: (a) recognized National Red Cross (Red Crescent, Red Lion and Sun) Societies shall be able to
pursue their activities in accordance with Red Cross principles, as defined by the International Red Cross
Conferences. Other relief societies shall be permitted to continue their humanitarian activities under similar
conditions; (b) the Occupying Power may not require any changes in the personnel or structure of these societies,
which would prejudice the aforesaid activities.).
787
the living conditions of the civilian population by the maintenance of the essential public utility
services, by the distribution of relief, and by the organization of rescues. 296
788
However, such assessment must be made in good faith based on the information available at the
time. 303
11.18.2.3 Capture or Seizure and Vesting of Title in the Occupying Power. In the
case of real (immovable) property that is captured or seized, the Occupying Power may use such
property for the duration of the occupation but does not take title to the property. 305
Public property captured or seized from the enemy, as well as private property validly
captured on the battlefield and abandoned property, is the property of the capturing State. 306
Valid capture or seizure of property requires both an intent to take such action and a
physical act of capture or seizure. The mere presence within occupied territory of property that
is subject to appropriation under international law does not operate to vest title thereto in the
Occupying Power. 307
This rule applies only to activities on land and does not deal with seizure or destruction of
cables in the open sea. 309
303
Refer to 5.4.2 (Decisions Must Be Made in Good Faith and Based on Information Available at the Time).
304
Refer to 11.18.7 (Requisitions of Private Enemy Property).
305
Refer to 11.18.5.1 (Public Real (Immovable) Property Susceptible of Direct Military Use); 11.18.5.2 (Public
Real (Immovable) Property That Is Essentially of a Non-Military Nature).
306
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 396 (Public property captured or seized from the enemy, as well as
private property validly captured on the battlefield and abandoned property, is property of the United States (see
U.S. Const., Art. I, sec. 8, cl. 11), and failure to turn over such property to the proper authorities or disposal thereof
for personal profit is a violation of Article 103 of the Uniform Code of Military Justice.). Refer to 5.17.3.2
(Ownership of Captured or Found Property on the Battlefield).
307
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 395 (Valid capture or seizure of property requires both an intent to take
such action and a physical act of capture or seizure. The mere presence within occupied territory of property which
is subject to appropriation under international law does not operate to vest title thereto in the occupant.).
308
HAGUE IV REG. art. 54 (Submarine cables connecting an occupied territory with a neutral territory shall not be
seized or destroyed except in the case of absolute necessity. They must likewise be restored and compensation fixed
when peace is made.).
309
JAMES BROWN SCOTT, THE PROCEEDINGS OF THE HAGUE PEACE CONFERENCES: III THE CONFERENCE OF 1907
13 (1921) (Mr. Louis Renault observes that this amendment has reference only to what takes place on land, without
789
11.18.3 Property Control Measures. Public and private property within occupied territory
may be controlled by the Occupying Power to the degree necessary to prevent its use by or for
the benefit of hostile forces, or in a manner harmful to the Occupying Power. 310 For example, in
the case of persons who have acted against the security of the Occupying Power, the Occupying
Power may freeze their accounts to prevent such funds from being used against the interests of
the Occupying Power. 311
Measures of property control must not extend to confiscation of private property. 313 For
example, if the Occupying Power controls a private business and earns a profit, the owner must
be indemnified. 314
However, the authority of the Occupying Power to impose such controls does not limit its
power to seize or requisition property or take such other action with respect to it as may be
authorized by other provisions of law. 315
11.18.4 Determination Whether Property Is Public or Private. The rules for the treatment
of enemy property may depend on whether the property is public or private.
touching the question of seizure or destruction of submarine cables in the open sea. The President thanks him for
having given the text an interpretation that leaves no room for doubt.).
310
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 399 (Property within occupied territory may be controlled by the
occupant to the degree necessary to prevent its use by or for the benefit of the hostile forces or in a manner harmful
to the occupant.).
311
VON GLAHN, THE OCCUPATION OF ENEMY TERRITORY 207 (This control includes not only the steps mentioned
above in connection with central banks and commercial banks but covers such things as the freezing of accounts
where the owner of the funds in question has acted against the interests of the occupying power, control of large
cash deposits, control over safe deposit boxes, and, of course, the removal of personnel held to be undesirable from
the viewpoint of the occupant.).
312
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 399 (Conservators may be appointed to manage the property of absent
persons (including nationals of the United States and of friendly States) and of internees, property managed by such
persons, and property of persons whose activities are deemed to be prejudicial to the occupant. However, when the
owners or managers of such property are again able to resume control of their property and the risk of its hostile use
no longer exists, it must be returned to them.).
313
Refer to 11.18.6.1 (Prohibition on Confiscation of Private Property in Occupied Territory).
314
Refer to 11.23.3 (Control of Business in Occupied Territory).
315
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 399 (Measures of property control must not extend to confiscation.
However, the authority of the occupant to impose such controls does not limit its power to seize or requisition
property or take such other action with respect to it as may be authorized by other provisions of law.).
790
For example, private property may not be confiscated, and there is an obligation to pay
compensation for requisitions of private property. 316 On the other hand, public property
generally may be seized or captured without any obligation to pay compensation. 317
316
Refer to 11.18.6.1 (Prohibition on Confiscation of Private Property in Occupied Territory); 11.18.7.3 (Prices
and Compensation for Requisitioned Articles and Services).
317
Refer to 11.18.5 (Treatment of Enemy Public Property).
318
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 394a (Beneficial Ownership. Under modern conditions, the distinction
between public and private property is not always easy to draw. For the purpose of treatment of property under
belligerent occupation, it is often necessary to look beyond strict legal title and to ascertain the character of the
property on the basis of the beneficial ownership thereof. Thus, for example, trust funds, pension funds, and bank
deposits generated by private persons are not to be regarded as public property simply by reason of their being held
by a State-owned bank.).
319
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 394b (Property of Mixed Ownership. For the purpose of determining
what type of control the occupant may exercise over property (by way of confiscation, seizure, requisition, etc.), the
most cogent evidence of public character is such a complete or partial assumption by the State of the economic risk
involved in the holding and management of the property in question that the State, rather than private individuals or
corporation, would be subjected to a substantial portion of the loss were the property to be appropriated for the use
of the occupant.).
320
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 394b (Should property which is ostensibly private be subjected to a large
measure of governmental control and management or perform functions which are essentially public, these facts
would tend to indicate that the property should be regarded in practice as public.).
791
owned. The Occupying Power may take those measures it deems necessary to ensure that no
portion of the compensation paid on account of private interests accrues to the enemy State. 321
321
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 394b (If property which is appropriated by the occupant is beneficially
owned in part by the State and in part by private interests, the occupation authorities should compensate the private
owners to the extent of their interest. Such compensation should bear the same relationship to the full compensation
which would be paid if the property were entirely privately owned as their interest bears to the total value of the
property concerned. The occupant may take what measures it deems necessary to assure that no portion of the
compensation paid on account of private interests accrues to the State.).
322
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 394c (Property of Unknown Ownership. If it is unknown whether certain
property is public or private, it should be treated as public property until its ownership is ascertained.).
323
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 401 (Real property of a State which is of direct military use, such as
forts, arsenals, dockyards, magazines, barracks, railways, bridges, piers, wharves, airfields, and other military
facilities, remains in the hands of the occupant until the close of the war, and may be destroyed or damaged, if
deemed necessary to military operations.).
324
HAGUE IV REG. art. 55 (The occupying State shall be regarded only as administrator and usufructuary of public
buildings, real estate, forests, and agricultural estates belonging to the hostile State, and situated in the occupied
country. It must safeguard the capital of these properties, and administer them in accordance with the rules of
usufruct.).
325
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 402 (Real property of the enemy State which is essentially of a non-
military nature, such as public buildings and offices, land, forests, parks, farms, and mines, may not be damaged or
destroyed unless such destruction is rendered absolutely necessary by military operations (see Art. 63, GC; par. 393
herein).). Refer to 11.18.2 (Seizure or Destruction of Property During Occupation Application of the Military
Necessity Standard).
792
The term usufruct means literally to use the fruit. 326 The Occupying Power may use
and enjoy the benefits of public real (immovable) property belonging to an enemy State, but does
not have the right of sale or unqualified use of such property. As administrator or usufructuary,
the Occupying Power should not exercise its rights in such a wasteful and negligent manner as
seriously to impair the propertys value. 327
The Occupying Power may, however, lease or utilize public lands or buildings, sell the
crops, cut and sell timber, and work the mines. The term of a lease or contract should not extend
beyond the conclusion of the war. 328
Thus, all personal (movable) property belonging to an enemy State susceptible of military
use may be taken possession of, and utilized for, the benefit of the Occupying Power. Under
modern conditions of warfare, a large proportion of State property may be regarded as capable of
being used for military purposes. However, personal (movable) property that is not susceptible
of military use must be respected and may not be appropriated. 330
326
See DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY PAMPHLET 27-161-2, II International Law, 183 (Oct. 23, 1962) (The term
usufruct means literally to use the fruit. The occupant can therefore enjoy the benefits of public real property,
but he cannot interfere with the substantive rights still possessed by the displaced sovereign.); Brigadier General
George B. Davis, Working Memoranda (Confidential for the United States Delegates): The Second Peace
Conference (Paragraph 2 of Programme), The Rules of War on Land, 43 (1907) (In the meaning which has been
assigned to the term usufruct in both the common and civil law, the usufructuary is entitled to the enjoyment of the
revenue so long as he preserves the substance or capital of which he appropriates and uses the usufruct. In its
application to the commanding general of occupied territory this means that, so long as he maintains the properties
thus unimpaired, he may apply the usufructuary revenue to the necessary expenses of the military occupation.).
327
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 402 (The occupant does not have the right of sale or unqualified use of
such property. As administrator or usufructuary he should not exercise his rights in such a wasteful, and negligent
manner as seriously to impair its value.).
328
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 402 (He may, however, lease or utilize public lands or buildings, sell the
crops, cut and sell timber, and work the mines. The term of a lease or contract should not extend beyond the
conclusion of the war.).
329
HAGUE IV REG. art. 53 (An army of occupation can only take possession of cash, funds, and realizable securities
which are strictly the property of the State, depots of arms, means of transport, stores and supplies, and, generally,
all movable property belonging to the State which may be used for military operations.).
330
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 404 (All movable property belonging to the State susceptible of military
use may be taken possession of and utilized for the benefit of the occupants government. Under modern conditions
of warfare, a large proportion of State property may be regarded as capable of being used for military purposes.
However, movable property which is not susceptible of military use must be respected and cannot be
appropriated.).
331
Refer to 11.18.6.1 (Prohibition on Confiscation of Private Property in Occupied Territory).
793
Private personal (movable) property susceptible to direct military use may be seized, with
a receipt to be given to allow for compensation to be paid at the conclusion of the war. 332
Other private property may be subject to requisition, with payment in cash given as soon
as possible. 333
Private property may be forfeited to the Occupying Power as a result of the valid
imposition of penalties. 334 For example, a regulation closing a road for security reasons could
specify that, as a penalty, unauthorized private vehicles found on the road would be subject to
forfeiture without any compensation. 335
The prohibition against confiscation of private property extends not only to outright
taking in violation of the law of war, but also to any acts that, through the use of threats,
intimidation, or pressure, or by actual exploitation of the power of the Occupying Power,
permanently or temporarily deprive the owner of the use of such property without the owners
consent, or without authority under international law. 337
The prohibition against confiscation of private property does not extend to takings by
way of contribution, requisition, or the valid imposition of penalties. 338
332
Refer to 11.18.6.2 (Seizure of Private Property Susceptible to Direct Military Use).
333
Refer to 11.18.7 (Requisitions of Private Enemy Property).
334
See Philip C. Jessup, A Belligerent Occupants Power over Property, 38 AJIL 457, 459 (1944) (3) Seizure and
confiscation. This case is not spelled out in the Hague Regulations but it is important. Private property of any kind
may be forfeited as a penalty. For example, a military regulation may forbid civilian carts to cross a certain bridge
under penalty of forfeiture of the cart and its contents and the draft animal. A regulation may forbid the sale of
intoxicating liquors under penalty of forfeiture of all stocks on hand. Especially in agrarian communities of rather
primitive economy, fines may be imposed in terms of farm produce, articles of native manufacture, or any other
commodities. Property taken by the occupant in this way is acquired with a clear title and may be used in any way
the occupant sees fit.).
335
VON GLAHN, THE OCCUPATION OF ENEMY TERRITORY 188 (Private property may also have to be forfeited to an
occupant as a penalty: fines for a great number of minor offenses may be lawfully exacted in terms of products or
goods. For instance, vehicles found on closed roads may be confiscated, clothing over and above a stated maximum
might well be seized, and so on. A lawful occupant could utilize all property thus acquired in any manner he saw fit,
since he would have a clear title to the goods without having paid any compensation.).
336
HAGUE IV REG. art. 46 (Private property cannot be confiscated.).
337
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 406b (Prohibited Acts. The foregoing prohibition extends not only to
outright taking in violation of the law of war but also to any acts which, through the use of threats, intimidation, or
pressure or by actual exploitation of the power of the occupant, permanently or temporarily deprive the owner of the
use of his property without his consent or without authority under international law.).
338
Brigadier General George B. Davis, Working Memoranda (Confidential for the United States Delegates): The
Second Peace Conference (Paragraph 2 of Programme), The Rules of War on Land, 38 (1907) (Article XVLI.
Private property may be taken by way of contribution or requisition, in order to compel the enemy to bear his share
of the burdens and hardships of war, but it can not be confiscatedthat is, it can not be seized by way of
punishment for a breach of allegiance, for no tie of allegiance exists between the inhabitants of the occupied territory
794
11.18.6.2 Seizure of Private Property Susceptible to Direct Military Use. All
appliances, whether on land, at sea, or in the air, adapted for the transmission of news, or for the
transport of persons or things, exclusive of cases governed by naval law, depots of arms, and,
generally, all kinds of ammunition of war, may be seized, even if they belong to private
individuals, but must be restored and compensation fixed when peace is made. 339
Private property susceptible of direct military use includes cables, telephone and
telegraph facilities, radio, television, telecommunications and computer networks and equipment,
motor vehicles, railways, railway plants, port facilities, ships in port, barges and other watercraft,
airfields, aircraft, depots of arms (whether military or sporting), documents connected with the
conflict, all varieties of military equipment (including that in the hands of manufacturers),
component parts of, or material suitable only for use in, the foregoing, and, in general, all kinds
of war material. 340
If private property is seized on the grounds that is it susceptible to direct military use, a
receipt should be given the owner, or a record made of the nature and quantity of the property
and the name of the owner or person in possession of it, in order that restoration and
compensation may be made at the conclusion of the war. 341
and the invading enemy. It is not understood that in the operation of a penalty which may be imposed by a military
commission or other tribunal with jurisdiction to try cases in occupied territory the private property of an individual
may not be taken. It is rather a taking without compensationa taking which is not in conformity to the laws of war
which is here made the subject of the express prohibition.).
339
HAGUE IV REG. art. 53 (All appliances, whether on land, at sea, or in the air, adapted for the transmission of
news, or for the transport of persons or things, exclusive of cases governed by naval law, depots of arms, and,
generally, all kinds of ammunition of war, may be seized, even if they belong to private individuals, but must be
restored and compensation fixed when peace is made.).
340
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 410a (Seizure. The rule stated in the foregoing paragraph includes
everything susceptible of direct military use, such as cables, telephone and telegraph plants, radio, television, and
telecommunications equipment, motor vehicles, railways, railway plants, port facilities, ships in port, barges and
other watercraft, airfields, aircraft, depots of arms, whether military or sporting, documents connected with the war,
all varieties of military equipment, including that in the hands of manufacturers, component parts of or material
suitable only for use in the foregoing, and in general all kinds of war material.).
341
See 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 409 (If private property is seized in conformity with the preceding
paragraph, a receipt therefor should be given the owner or a record made of the nature and quantity of the property
and the name of the owner or person in possession in order that restoration and compensation may be made at the
conclusion of the war.).
342
Refer to 11.18.7 (Requisitions of Private Enemy Property).
795
destruction of, or willful damage done to institutions of this character, historic monuments,
works of art, and science, is forbidden, and should be made the subject of legal proceedings. 343
The reference to property of municipalities above has been interpreted as not granting
preferential treatment for all types of property owned by municipalities, but as referring to
communal property, such as poor houses, asylums, park buildings, museums, and public records,
whether owned by a parish, a town, or a province. 344
Just as private property may be subject to requisitions and contribution and certain other
purposes during a military occupation, the types of property referred to in Article 56 of the
Hague IV Regulations may also be subject to such demands. 345 For example, such property may
be requisitioned in case of necessity for quartering the forces and the sick and wounded, storage
of supplies and material, housing of vehicles and equipment, and generally as prescribed for
private property. 346 Such property must, however, be secured against all avoidable injury, even
when located in fortified places that are subject to seizure or bombardment. 347
In the practice of the United States, religious buildings, shrines, and consecrated places
employed for worship are used only for aid stations, for medical installations, or for the housing
343
HAGUE IV REG. art. 56 (The property of municipalities, that of institutions dedicated to religion, charity and
education, the arts and sciences, even when State property, shall be treated as private property. All seizure of,
destruction or willful damage done to institutions of this character, historic monuments, works of art, and science, is
forbidden, and should be made the subject of legal proceedings.).
344
William M. Franklin, Municipal Property Under Belligerent Occupation, 28 AJIL 383, 395-96 (1944) (3. It was
not the intention of the drafters of the article to grant the highly preferential treatment of Article 56 to all types of
property owned by municipalities, simply on the basis of their ownership. Military installations maintained by
municipalities and all other types of property owned by municipalities which would be susceptible of direct military
use and were not dedicated to humanitarian, educational, scientific or artistic purposes do not enjoy the protection of
Article 56. 4. For this reason it was never thought necessary to define the word communes in terms of any specific
unit of local government. The expression was intended to include communal property, such as poor houses,
asylums, park buildings, museums and public records, whether owned by a parish, a town or a province.).
345
VON GLAHN, THE OCCUPATION OF ENEMY TERRITORY 192 (It has to be remembered, in this connection, that
municipal property is subject to requisitions and contributions. While an occupant is prevented from confiscating
the various kinds of property listed in Article 56, the rules of international law do not prevent him, on the other
hand, from utilizing these properties for certain purposes during military occupation. He is entitled to lodge troops,
animals, stores, supplies, and the like in buildings belonging to exempt or immune institutions, and may convert
such buildings into hospitals for the care of this wounded. In other words, municipal and other exempt property may
be used by the occupying forces in the same manner and to the same extent as in the case of private property.).
346
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 405 (b. Use of Such Premises. The property included in the foregoing
rule may be requisitioned in case of necessity for quartering the troops and the sick and wounded, storage of
supplies and material, housing of vehicles and equipment, and generally as prescribed for private property. Such
property must, however, be secured against all avoidable injury, even when located in fortified places which are
subject to seizure or bombardment.).
347
Refer to 5.17.5 (Feasible Precautions Should Be Taken to Mitigate the Burden on Civilians).
348
Refer to 11.19 (Protection of Cultural Property During Occupation).
796
of wounded personnel awaiting evacuation, provided in each case that a situation of emergency
requires such use. 349
11.18.7 Requisitions of Private Enemy Property. Although private enemy property may
not be confiscated, it may be subject to requisition, which is the method of taking private enemy
real (immovable) and personal (movable) property for the needs of the army of occupation. 350
11.18.7.2 Types of Property That May Be Requisitioned. Goods and services that
are necessary for the maintenance of the occupation army (e.g., fuel, food, clothing, building
materials, machinery, tools, vehicles, furnishings for quarters) may be requisitioned. Billeting of
forces in occupied areas is also authorized. 354
349
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 405c (Religious Buildings, Shrines, and Consecrated Places. In the
practice of the United States, religious buildings, shrines, and consecrated places employed for worship are used
only for aid stations, medical installations, or for the housing of wounded personnel awaiting evacuation, provided
in each case that a situation of emergency requires such use.).
350
DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY PAMPHLET 27-161-2, II International Law, 181 (Oct. 23, 1962) (Requisition is the
method of taking private enemy movable and immovable property for the needs of the army of occupation.); VON
GLAHN, THE OCCUPATION OF ENEMY TERRITORY 165 (Requisition is the term used for the demand of a supply of
all kinds of articles needed by an army such as foodstuffs, clothing, horses, transportation and means of
transportation, and buildings.).
351
HAGUE IV REG. art. 52 (Requisitions in kind and services shall not be demanded from municipalities or
inhabitants except for the needs of the army of occupation. They shall be in proportion to the resources of the
country, and of such a nature as not to involve the inhabitants in the obligation of taking part in military operations
against their own country.).
352
HAGUE IV REG. art. 52 (Such requisitions and services shall only be demanded on the authority of the
commander in the locality occupied.).
353
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 415 (Requisitions must be made under the authority of the commander in
the locality. No prescribed method is fixed, but if practicable requisitions should be accomplished through the local
authorities by systematic collection in bulk. They may be made direct by detachments if local authorities fail or if
circumstances preclude resort to such authorities.).
354
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 412b (What May Be Requisitioned. Practically everything may be
requisitioned under this article that is necessary for the maintenance of the army, such as fuel, food, clothing,
building materials, machinery, tools, vehicles, furnishings for quarters, etc. Billeting of troops in occupied areas is
also authorized.).
797
Special additional rules apply to the requisition of foodstuffs, articles necessary to
support life, or medical supplies available in the occupied territory. 355 Similarly, additional rules
apply to the requisition of civilian hospitals and their supplies. 356
The prices of articles and services requisitioned will be fixed by agreement if possible,
otherwise by military authority. 358
The following rules address the protection of cultural property during occupation. The
general rules for the protection of cultural property during hostilities also apply during
occupation. 360 For example, military commanders have an obligation to take reasonable
measures to prevent or stop any form of theft, pillage, or misappropriation of, and any acts of
vandalism directed against, cultural property. 361
355
Refer to 11.14.2 (Limitation on Requisition of Food and Medical Supplies).
356
Refer to 11.15.5 (Requisition of Civilian Hospitals).
357
HAGUE IV REG. art. 52 (Contributions in kind shall as far as possible be paid for in cash; if not, a receipt shall be
given and the payment of the amount due shall be made as soon as possible.).
358
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 416 (The prices of articles and services requisitioned will be fixed by
agreement if possible, otherwise by military authority. Receipts should be taken up and compensation paid
promptly.).
359
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 417 (Coercive measures will be limited to the amount and kind necessary
to secure the articles requisitioned.).
360
Refer to 5.18 (Protection of Cultural Property During Hostilities).
361
Refer to 5.18.6.1 (Obligation to Stop or Prevent Theft, Pillage, or Misappropriation of, and Acts of Vandalism
Against, Cultural Property).
362
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 5(1) (Any High Contracting Party in occupation of the
whole or part of the territory of another High Contracting Party shall as far as possible support the competent
national authorities of the occupied country in safeguarding and preserving its cultural property.).
798
Should it prove necessary to take measures to preserve cultural property situated in
occupied territory and damaged by military operations, and should the competent national
authorities be unable to take such measures, the Occupying Power shall, as far as possible, and in
close co-operation with such authorities, take the most necessary measures of preservation. 363
11.19.4 Transfers of Cultural Property From and Within Occupied Territory. The
requisition of movable cultural property situated in the territory of another Party to the 1954
Hague Cultural Property Convention is prohibited.367
If necessary under its obligation to take measures to preserve damaged cultural property,
the Occupying Power may arrange for the transport of cultural property to a refuge within
occupied territory in accordance with other provisions of the 1954 Hague Cultural Property
363
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 5(2) (Should it prove necessary to take measures to
preserve cultural property situated in occupied territory and damaged by military operations, and should the
competent national authorities be unable to take such measures, the Occupying Power shall, as far as possible, and in
close co-operation with such authorities, take the most necessary measures of preservation.).
364
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 5(3) (Any High Contracting Party whose government is
considered their legitimate government by members of a resistance movement, shall, if possible, draw their attention
to the obligation to comply with those provisions of the Conventions dealing with respect for cultural property.).
365
REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 2 (As soon as
any High Contracting Party is engaged in an armed conflict to which Article 18 of the Convention applies: (a) It
shall appoint a representative for cultural property situated in its territory; if it is in occupation of another territory, it
shall appoint a special representative for cultural property situated in that territory;).
366
REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 13 (1. Any
High Contracting Party may submit to the Director General of the United Nations Educational, Scientific and
Cultural Organization an application for the entry in the Register of certain refuges, centres containing monuments
or other immovable cultural property situated within its territory. Such application shall contain a description of the
location of such property and shall certify that the property complies with the provisions of Article 8 of the
Convention. 2. ln the event of occupation, the Occupying Power shall be competent to make such application.).
Refer to 5.18.8 (Special Protection for Certain Cultural Property).
367
Refer to 5.18.6.2 (Prohibition Against Requisition of Movable Cultural Property Situated in the Territory of
Another Party to the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention).
799
Convention. 368 Whenever a High Contracting Party occupying territory of another High
Contracting Party transfers cultural property to a refuge situated elsewhere in that territory,
without being able to follow the procedure for the transport of cultural property under special
protection provided for in Article 17 of the Regulations, the transfer in question shall not be
regarded as misappropriation within the meaning of Article 4 of the Convention, provided that
the Commissioner-General for Cultural Property certifies in writing, after having consulted the
usual custodians, that such transfer was rendered necessary by circumstances. 369
11.20.1 Types of Labor That May Not Be Compelled. The Occupying Power may not
compel protected persons to perform certain types of labor.
Compelling protected persons to serve in its armed or auxiliary forces would in most
cases also violate the prohibition against compelling inhabitants of occupied territory to swear
allegiance to the hostile State. 371 Compelling a protected person to serve in the forces of a
hostile Power is a grave breach of the GC. 372
368
Refer to 5.18.9.1 (Transport Under Special Protection).
369
REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 19 (Whenever
a High Contracting Party occupying territory of another High Contracting Party transfers cultural property to a
refuge situated elsewhere in that territory, without being able to follow the procedure provided for in Article 17 of
the Regulations, the transfer in question shall not be regarded as misappropriation within the meaning of Article 4 of
the Convention, provided that the Commissioner-General for Cultural Property certifies in writing, after having
consulted the usual custodians, that such transfer was rendered necessary by circumstances.).
370
GC art. 51 (The Occupying Power may not compel protected persons to serve in its armed or auxiliary forces.
No pressure or propaganda which aims at securing voluntary enlistment is permitted.).
371
Refer to 11.6.2.1 (Prohibition on Compelling Inhabitants of Occupied Territory to Swear Allegiance to the
Hostile State).
372
Refer to 18.9.3.1 (Acts Constituting Grave Breaches).
373
GC art. 51 (The Occupying Power may not compel protected persons to employ forcible means to ensure the
security of the installations where they are performing compulsory labour.).
800
11.20.1.3 Prohibition Against Requisition Labor Such That Workers Are
Mobilized in a Military or Semi-Military Organization. In no case shall requisition of labor lead
to a mobilization of workers in an organization of a military or semi-military character. 374
11.20.1.5 Prohibition Against Other Work That Would Involve Protected Persons
in the Obligation of Taking Part in Military Operations. Protected persons may not be
compelled to undertake any work that would involve them in the obligation of taking part in
military operations. 377 This rule is formulated more broadly than the general rule against
compelling a national to take part in operations against his or her own country 378 because it
prohibits compulsory service in any military operation. 379
374
GC art. 51 (In no case shall requisition of labour lead to a mobilization of workers in an organization of a
military or semi-military character.).
375
HAGUE IV REG. art. 44 (A belligerent is forbidden to force the inhabitants of territory occupied by it to furnish
information about the army of the other belligerent, or about its means of defence.).
376
GC COMMENTARY 220 (Furthermore, coercion is forbidden for any purpose or motive whatever. The authors of
the Convention had mainly in mind coercion aimed at obtaining information, work or support for an ideological or
political idea. The scope of the text is more general than that of Article 44 of the Hague Regulations of 1907, under
which a belligerent is forbidden to force the inhabitants of a territory occupied by it to furnish information about the
army of the other belligerent, or about its means of defence; Article 31 prohibits coercion for any purpose or reason
and the obtaining of information is only given as an example. Thus, the custom, hitherto accepted in practice but
disputed in theory, that an invasion army may force the inhabitants of an occupied territory to serve as guides is
now forbidden.). Refer to 10.5.3.1 (No Physical or Moral Coercion).
377
GC art. 51 (Protected persons may not be compelled to undertake any work which would involve them in the
obligation of taking part in military operations.). See also HAGUE IV REG. art. 52 (Requisitions in kind and
services shall not be demanded from municipalities or inhabitants except for the needs of the army of occupation.
They shall be in proportion to the resources of the country, and of such a nature as not to involve the inhabitants in
the obligation of taking part in military operations against their own country.).
378
Refer to 5.27 (Prohibition Against Compelling Enemy Nationals to Take Part in the Operations of War Directed
Against Their Own Country).
379
GC COMMENTARY 296-97 (The prohibition in this sentence is even more general than that contained in Article
52 of the Hague Regulations; for it does not only embrace work involving the participation of the inhabitants in
military operations against their own country, but refers in a general way to any work which would involve them
in the obligation of taking part in military operations. The importance of the distinction will be realised if the mind
is cast back to cases when the occupying authorities have tried to circumvent the law of war by pretending that they
are no longer engaged in military operations against the home country of the persons whose services they are
requisitioning.).
801
The purpose of this rule, at least in part, is to ensure that civilians in occupied territory
are not required to engage in activities that would forfeit their protections as civilians under the
law of war. 380
The prohibition against forcing the inhabitants of an occupied territory to take part in
military operations against their own country precludes requisitioning their services in work
directly promoting the ends of the war, such as construction of fortifications, entrenchments, and
military airfields, or the transportation of supplies or ammunition in the zone of operations. 381
11.20.2 Types of Work That May Be Compelled. The Occupying Power may not compel
protected persons to work unless they are over eighteen years of age, and then only on work that
is necessary for: (1) the needs of the army of occupation; (2) the public utility services; or (3)
the feeding, sheltering, clothing, transportation, or health of the population of the occupied
country. 382
Thus, the Occupying Power may compel protected persons to engage in these three types
of work, provided that such work is consistent with the other prohibitions against employing
protected persons. 383 For example, even if it is permitted to compel civilian engineers in
occupied territory to provide information about the telecommunications system of an occupied
country in order to facilitate restoration of service, they may not be required to provide such
information where it will be used to locate and attack the armed forces of the occupied territory.
railways, trucking companies, airlines, canals, and river or coastal steamship companies;
380
GC COMMENTARY 297 (One point must not be forgotten: the Fourth Convention applies to civilians and
civilians are by definition outside the fighting. Any action on the part of the Occupying Power which had the effect
of involving them, directly or indirectly, in the fighting and so preventing them from benefiting by special protection
under the Convention must be regarded as unlawful. The application of this clause depends very largely on the good
faith of the occupant, who must judge in each individual case, with a full sense of his responsibility in the matter,
whether or not the work demanded is compatible with the conditions here laid down.).
381
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 420 (The prohibition against forcing the inhabitants to take part in
military operations against their own country precludes requisitioning their services upon works directly promoting
the ends of the war, such as construction of fortifications, entrenchments, and military airfields or the transportation
of supplies or ammunition in the zone of operations.).
382
GC art. 51 (The Occupying Power may not compel protected persons to work unless they are over eighteen
years of age, and then only on work which is necessary either for the needs of the army of occupation, or for the
public utility services, or for the feeding, sheltering, clothing, transportation or health of the population of the
occupied country.).
383
Refer to 11.20.1 (Types of Labor That May Not Be Compelled).
802
sanitary authorities;
whether employed by the State or private companies, may be requisitioned to perform their
duties only so long as the duties required do not directly concern the operations of war against
their own country. 384
The Occupying Power may also requisition labor to restore the general condition of the
public works to that of peace, including the repair of roads, bridges, railways, and
telecommunication networks, and to perform services on behalf of the local population, such as
the care of the wounded and sick, and the burial of the dead. 385
In addition, inhabitants over eighteen years of age may be compelled to perform work
necessary to meet the maintenance needs of the occupation forces (as opposed to its strategic or
tactical needs), such as providing telephone, water, or electricity services to the facilities of the
occupation army from which the occupied territory is administered, or providing support to
prisons, police stations, and other facilities necessary for the maintenance of order among the
civilian population. 386
384
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 419 (The services which may be obtained from inhabitants by requisition
include those of professional men, such as engineers, physicians and nurses and of artisans and laborers, such as
clerks, carpenters, butchers, bakers, and truck drivers. The officials and employees of railways, trucklines, airlines,
canals, river or coastwise steamship companies, telegraph, telephone, radio, postal and similar services, gas, electric,
and water works, and sanitary authorities, whether employed by the State or private companies, may be
requisitioned to perform their professional duties only so long as the duties required do not directly concern the
operations of war against their own country.).
385
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 419 (The occupant may also requisition labor to restore the general
condition of the public works to that of peace, including the repair of roads, bridges, and railways, and to perform
services on behalf of the local population, such as the care of the wounded and sick and the burial of the dead.).
386
GC COMMENTARY 294 (The wording work which is necessary for the needs of the army of occupation is very
comprehensive and its interpretation is open to discussion. It will be enough to note here that the clause covers a
wide variety of servicesthose connected with billeting and the provision of fodder, transport services, the repairing
of roads, bridges, ports and railways and laying telephone and telegraph lines. On the other hand it is generally
agreed that the inhabitants of the occupied territory cannot be requisitioned for such work as the construction of
fortifications, trenches or aerial bases. It is the maintenance needs of the army of occupation and not its strategic or
tactical requirements which are referred to here. The distinction is essential and should be emphasized. It is
confirmed by a provision, to be examined further on, laying down that the Occupying Power cannot compel
protected persons to do work which would involve their participation in military operations.).
387
See VON GLAHN, THE OCCUPATION OF ENEMY TERRITORY 68 ([I]n fact, all able-bodied native inhabitants may
be called upon to perform police duties, to assist the regular native police in the maintenance of public order, to help
in fire-fighting organizations, or to perform any other duty for the public good.).
388
Refer to 11.5 (Duty of the Occupying Power to Ensure Public Order and Safety).
803
These officials may not be required to participate in military operations or other measures
aimed at countering belligerent acts against the Occupying Power that are performed by
privileged combatants under the law of war. 389 For example, civilian police forces in occupied
territory may not be compelled to provide security for an occupying force against attacks in
compliance with the law of war launched by lawful combatants, including resistance fighters
who, if captured, would be entitled to POW status under GPW Article 4.
On the other hand, such police forces may be required to continue to perform their
normal policing functions with respect to actual or threatened criminal acts, even where the
victim of such acts is the Occupying Power. 390 Similarly, civilian firefighters may be required to
extinguish fires endangering the Occupying Powers military property that result from attacks by
unprivileged combatants.
Workers shall be paid a fair wage, and the work shall be proportionate to their physical
and intellectual capacities. 392
The legislation in force in the occupied country concerning working conditions, and
safeguards as regards, in particular, such matters as wages, hours of work, equipment,
preliminary training, and compensation for occupational accidents and diseases, shall be
applicable to the protected persons assigned to the work. 393
389
Refer to 11.20.1.5 (Prohibition Against Other Work That Would Involve Protected Persons in the Obligation of
Taking Part in Military Operations).
390
See GC COMMENTARY 307 (The reference to Article 51 relates not only to the list of different types of work, but
also to the conditions and safeguards contained in that Article, in particular the prohibition on the use of compulsion
to make protected persons take part in military operations. This is particularly important in the case of police
officers, who cannot under any circumstances be required to participate in measures aimed at opposing legitimate
belligerent acts, whether committed by armed forces hostile to the Occupying Power, by corps of volunteers or by
organized resistance movements. On the other hand it would certainly appear that the Occupying Power is entitled
to require the local police to take part in tracing and punishing hostile acts committed under circumstances other
than those laid down in Article 4 of the Third Geneva Convention. Such acts may in fact be regarded as offences
under common law, whatever ideas may have inspired their authors, and the occupation authorities, being
responsible for maintaining law and order, are within their rights in claiming the co-operation of the police.).
391
GC art. 51 (The work shall be carried out only in the occupied territory where the person whose services have
been requisitioned are. Every such person shall, so far as possible, be kept in his usual place of employment.).
392
GC art. 51 (Workers shall be paid a fair wage and the work shall be proportionate to their physical and
intellectual capacities.).
393
GC art. 51 (The legislation in force in the occupied country concerning working conditions, and safeguards as
regards, in particular, such matters as wages, hours of work, equipment, preliminary training and compensation for
occupational accidents and diseases, shall be applicable to the protected persons assigned to the work referred to in
this Article.).
804
11.20.4 Voluntary Work Not Prohibited by the GC. Although the GC prohibits protected
persons from being compelled to provide certain types of work related to military operations,
there is no prohibition in the law of war to such persons being employed voluntarily and for pay
in such work. 394 For example, there is no law of war prohibition against civilian firefighters
putting out fires endangering civilian property resulting from attacks by lawful combatants
against the Occupying Powers military property.
For example, it would be prohibited to forbid workers who are protected persons from
applying to the Protecting Power. It would also be prohibited to require any protected persons
who are workers, as a condition of work, to renounce their right to apply for assistance to the
Protecting Power concerning work conditions or any other matter. 398
394
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 420 (The prohibition against forcing the inhabitants to take part in
military operations against their own country precludes requisitioning their services upon works directly promoting
the ends of the war, such as construction of fortifications, entrenchments, and military airfields or the transportation
of supplies or ammunition in the zone of operations. There is no objection in law to their being employed
voluntarily and for pay in such work.).
395
Refer to 11.20.1.1 (Prohibition on Compulsory Service in an Occupying Powers Armed Forces).
396
Refer to 7.4.5 (Collection and Care of the Wounded, Sick, and Shipwrecked by Civilians).
397
GC art. 52 (No contract, agreement or regulation shall impair the right of any worker, whether voluntary or not
and wherever he may be, to apply to the representatives of the Protecting Power in order to request the said Powers
intervention.).
398
Refer to 10.5.6 (Facility for Applying to the Protecting Powers and Assistance Organizations Such as the
ICRC).
399
GC art. 52 (All measures aiming at creating unemployment or at restricting the opportunities offered to workers
in an occupied territory, in order to induce them to work for the Occupying Power, are prohibited.).
805
Measures intended to reduce unemployment would not be prohibited by this rule. 400
11.21.1 Continued Service of Judges and Other Public Officials. The Occupying Power
may not alter the status of public officials or judges in the occupied territories, or in any way
apply sanctions to or take any measures of coercion or discrimination against them, should they
abstain from fulfilling their functions for reasons of conscience. 401
Public officials may be understood to include officials at both the national and local
levels who fulfill public duties. 402
This prohibition does not prejudice the application of the second paragraph of Article 51
of the GC. 403 Thus, a public official may be compelled to work to meet the needs of the army of
occupation or for the public utility services, such as water, electricity, or sanitation. 404 Similarly,
a public official may be compelled to provide certain police services. 405
This prohibition does not affect the right of the Occupying Power to remove public
officials from their posts. 406 For example, the Occupying Power may remove the political
leadership and other political agents from their posts to prevent them from undermining the
Occupying Powers administration. 407
11.21.2 Oath of Public Officials. An Occupying Power may not require the inhabitants
of occupied territory, including officials, to swear allegiance to it. 408 However, the Occupying
Power may require such officials as are continued in their offices to take an oath to perform their
400
For example, Coalition Provisional Authority Order No. 39, Foreign Investment, preamble (Sept. 19, 2003)
(Determined to improve the conditions of life, technical skills, and opportunities for all Iraqis and to fight
unemployment with its associated deleterious effect on public security,).
401
GC art. 54 (The Occupying Power may not alter the status of public officials or judges in the occupied
territories, or in any way apply sanctions to or take any measures of coercion or discrimination against them, should
they abstain from fulfilling their function for reasons of conscience.).
402
GC COMMENTARY 304 ([T]he term public official generally designates people in State or local government
service, who fulfill public duties.).
403
GC art. 54 (This prohibition does not prejudice the application of the second paragraph of Article 51.).
404
Refer to 11.20.2 (Types of Work That May Be Compelled).
405
Refer to 11.20.2.2 (Requisition of Police and Other Services Essential to Good Order).
406
GC art. 54 (It does not affect the right of the Occupying Power to remove public officials from their posts.).
407
GC COMMENTARY 308 (The provision refers primarily to government officials and other political agents who
are generally removed from their posts by the occupation authorities.). For example, Coalition Provisional
Authority Order No. 1, De-Ba`athification of Iraqi Society, 1(1) (May 16, 2003) (On April 16, 2003 the Coalition
Provisional Authority disestablished the Ba`ath Party of Iraq. This order implements the declaration by eliminating
the partys structures and removing its leadership from positions of authority and responsibility in Iraqi society.).
408
Refer to 11.6.2.1 (Prohibition on Compelling Inhabitants of Occupied Territory to Swear Allegiance to the
Hostile State).
806
duties conscientiously and not to act to its prejudice. 409 Any official who declines to take the
oath may be removed; but, regardless of whether the official takes the oath, the official is
required to obey the legitimate orders of the Occupying Power. 410
11.21.3 Salaries of Public Officials. The salaries of civil officials of the hostile
government who remain in the occupied territory and continue the work of their offices,
especially those who can properly continue it under the circumstances arising out of the war
such as judges, administrative or police officers, and officers of city or communal governments
are paid from the public revenues of the occupied territory, until the military government has
reason wholly or partially to dispense with their services. 411
Based on consistent practice, salaries or incomes connected with purely honorary titles
would be suspended. 412 Similarly, the Occupying Power need not continue to pay salaries that
are rewards for loyalty to the prior regime, and may reform the pay system of public servants to
increase transparency and fairness, as well as to create incentives for meritorious service. 413
807
During the occupation, the fiscal laws of the enemy State remain in effect, but may be changed
or suspended by the Occupying Power under certain circumstances, as discussed below.
11.22.1 Taxes. If, in the occupied territory, the Occupying Power collects the taxes,
dues, and tolls imposed for the benefit of the State, it shall do so, as far as is possible, in
accordance with the rules of assessment and incidence in force, and shall in consequence be
bound to defray the expenses of the administration of the occupied territory to the same extent as
the legitimate Government was so bound. 414
11.22.1.2 Changes in Taxes or New Taxes. The Occupying Power shall collect
taxes, as far as is possible, in accordance with the rules of assessment and incidence in force.
This is an example of the general rule that the Occupying Power shall respect the laws in force in
the occupied territory unless absolutely prevented. 417 Modifications to the tax laws may be
justified by practical considerations and considerations of public order and safety.
414
HAGUE IV REG. art. 48 (If, in the territory occupied, the occupant collects the taxes, dues, and tolls imposed for
the benefit of the State, he shall do so, as far as is possible, in accordance with the rules of assessment and incidence
in force, and shall in consequence be bound to defray the expenses of the administration of the occupied territory to
the same extent as the legitimate Government was so bound.).
415
J.A.G.S. TEXT NO. 11, LAW OF BELLIGERENT OCCUPATION 185 (Taxes raised by local authorities for local
purposes may not be diverted by the occupant from the purpose for which they were raised although the occupant
may supervise their collection. It would seem that state taxes collected by local bodies and not used for local
purposes but transmitted to the state treasury are taxes imposed for the benefit of the state.). See also SPAIGHT,
WAR RIGHTS ON LAND 378 (The words imposed for the benefit of the State in Article XLVIII are intended to
exclude provincial and parochial taxes, or rates as they are called in England. The latter the occupant must not
intercept; he can only supervise the expenditure of such revenue, to see that it is not devoted to a hostile purpose.).
416
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 427 (The words for the benefit of the State were inserted in the
foregoing article (HR, art. 48; par. 425 herein) to exclude local taxes, dues, and tolls collected by local authorities.
The occupant may supervise the expenditure of such revenue and prevent its hostile use.). See also JAMES BROWN
SCOTT, THE PROCEEDINGS OF THE HAGUE PEACE CONFERENCES: THE CONFERENCE OF 1899 523 (1920) (Jonkheer
van Karnebeek remarks that as the fundamental purport of this article is that the authority of the occupant is
substituted for that of the invaded State, it cannot be admitted that the occupant, by assuming a right which the
occupied State does not possess, may take possession of the municipal taxes, which the invaded State itself would
not think of appropriating in normal circumstances. Mr. Veljkovitch remarks that in this eventuality the municipal
authorities, being no longer able to discharge their duties, can likewise not collect the municipal taxes and especially
the county rate; it is therefore proper for the occupant, whose power is substituted for that of the authorities, to take
possession of the said taxes.).
417
J.A.G.S. TEXT NO. 11, LAW OF BELLIGERENT OCCUPATION 186 (The occupant in collecting taxes must follow
the rules of procedure as well as the law of the country with regard to the distribution of the tax burden. This is an
instance of the general rule that the occupant shall respect the laws in force in the occupied territory unless
absolutely prevented.).
808
If, due to the flight or unwillingness of local officials, it is impracticable to follow the
rules of incidence and assessment in force, then the total amount of taxes to be paid may be
allotted among the districts, towns, etc., and the local authorities may be required to collect it. 418
The Occupying Power may suspend the tax laws of the occupied territory. 419 Similarly,
the Occupying Power may also reduce the rate of taxes under the existing tax laws.
U.N. Security Council resolutions may provide additional authority for the Occupying
Power to amend the tax laws. 422
11.22.1.3 Spending of Tax Revenue. The first charge upon such taxes is for the
cost of the administration of the occupied territory. The balance may be used for the purposes of
the Occupying Power. 423
418
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 426a (When Existing Rules May Be Disregarded. If, due to the flight or
unwillingness of the local officials, it is impracticable to follow the rules of incidence and assessment in force, then
the total amount of taxes to be paid may be allotted among the districts, towns, etc., and the local authorities
required to collect it.).
419
VON GLAHN, THE OCCUPATION OF ENEMY TERRITORY 151-52 (Just as an occupant may collect taxes, so he may
suspend existing taxes if the unaffected levies are sufficient to cover administrative expenses and if he does not
desire to enrich himself out of possible surplus revenues.). For example, Coalition Provisional Authority Order
No. 37, Tax Strategy for 2003, 2 (Sept. 19, 2003) (Subject to Section 6 of this Order, the following taxes are
suspended from April 16, 2003 to the end of calendar year 2003:).
420
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 426b (New Taxes. Unless required to do so by considerations of public
order and safety, the occupant must not create new taxes.); Bassil Abu Aita et al. v. The Regional Commander of
Judea and Samaria and Staff Officer in Charge of Matters of Custom and Excise, HCJ 69/81; Omar Abdu Kadar
Kanzil, et al. v. Officer in Charge of Customs, Gaza Strip Region and the Regional Commander of the Gaza Strip,
HCJ 493/81, Israel Supreme Court Sitting as the High Court of Justice, 200, 270-71 (Apr. 5, 1983) (Since the
power of imposing ordinary taxes are within the domain of the sovereign alone, accordingly, it is argued, it does not
pertain to anyone whose authority is temporary and military, as described. However, while no one disputes the
theoretical base of this doctrine, it does not of necessity create a limitation on the power to impose taxation if the
benefit and requirements of the territory deem it necessary, since the maintenance of proper balance between them
and the requirements of the ruling army is a constant central guiding principle of military government. This
character of military government indeed explains why taxes may be imposed only for the requirements of the
territory (or requirements of the army when army contributions are involved), but it does not necessarily lead to the
conclusion that the limitation on the imposition of taxes also takes precedence over the obligation to satisfy the
needs of the territory and its inhabitants, and as far as possible, to restore normal life, including the economic aspect
thereof.).
421
Refer to 11.22.2 (Contributions); 11.22.3 (Customs Duties).
422
Refer to 11.1.2.5 (Occupation and U.N. Security Council Resolutions).
423
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 425b (Surplus. The first charge upon such taxes is for the cost of the
administration of the occupied territory. The balance may be used for the purposes of the occupant.).
809
The Occupying Power may use tax revenue to defray the costs of maintaining order in the
occupied territory or for expenditures that benefit the local population (e.g., infrastructure
improvements). 424
The Occupying Power may refrain from spending money for the support of any activity
opposed to its military interests or to the restoration of order in the occupied territory, even if the
State whose territory is occupied formerly allocated tax revenues to such activity. 425
In practice, the Occupying Power often issues an order specifying that no direct taxes of
any kind may be levied or assessed within the occupied territory on the persons, agencies,
property, instrumentalities, or transactions of the Occupying Power. 429
11.22.1.5 Scope of the Occupying Powers Power to Collect Taxes. The power of
the Occupying Power to collect taxes extends only to persons or property under its actual
control. 430 For example, persons and property wholly outside occupied territory generally may
424
See also VON GLAHN, THE OCCUPATION OF ENEMY TERRITORY 151 (It should be pointed out in this connection
that as long as it is a duty of the occupant to restore order and public safety in the territory, the expenditures incurred
by him as administrator for the benefit of the territory and its inhabitants should be paid for by the beneficiaries.
This appears to be particularly true in the case of capital expenditures. Normally an occupant would be unwilling to
permit heavy capital outlays in occupied enemy territory (such as the construction of dams, power stations, canals,
and public buildings), but if, in rare instances, permission would be granted for such extraordinary outlays over and
above normal operating expenses of the native administration, then the necessary funds should come from any
excess revenues collected by the indigenous agencies, not from the occupants own reserves.).
425
VON GLAHN, THE OCCUPATION OF ENEMY TERRITORY 150 (Obviously no occupant need spend money for the
support of any activity opposed to his military interests or to the restoration of order in the area, even if the absent
legitimate sovereign formerly allocated tax revenues to such activity.).
426
Refer to 11.8.1 (Paramount Authority of the Occupying Power Over Government Functions in Occupied
Territory).
427
VON GLAHN, THE OCCUPATION OF ENEMY TERRITORY 153-54 ([A]n occupant is virtually exempt from
indigenous taxation in an occupied territory unless he takes the rather unlikely step of waiving his sovereign
immunity and consents to be taxed. In actual practice the occupation authorities normally issue an order to the
effect that no direct taxes of any kind may be levied within the occupied area on the persons, agencies, or property
of the armed forces of the invader and that no direct taxes may be assessed against the property, instrumentalities or
transactions of the occupying authorities themselves.).
428
Refer to 11.8.5 (Immunity of Occupation Personnel From Local Law).
429
For example, Coalition Provisional Authority Order No. 17, Status of the Coalition Provisional Authority, MNF-
Iraq, Certain Missions and Personnel in Iraq, 10(1) (Jun. 27, 2004) (The MNF, Sending States and Contractors
shall be exempt from general sales taxes, Value Added Tax (VAT), and any similar taxes in respect of all local
purchases for official use or for the performance of Contracts in Iraq.).
430
J.A.G.S. TEXT NO. 11, LAW OF BELLIGERENT OCCUPATION 197 (It must be remembered that the power of the
occupant to collect taxes is purely de facto and territorial, i.e., it extends only to persons or property under his actual
control.).
810
not be taxed, 431 but the property of the absent inhabitants that is within the occupied territory
may be taxed.
11.22.2 Contributions. If, in addition to continuing to collect taxes under the existing law
of the occupied territory as permitted by Article 48 of the Hague IV Regulations, the Occupying
Power levies other money contributions in the occupied territory, this shall only be for the needs
of the army or the administration of the territory in question. 433
for the purposes of impoverishing the population in order to pressure the enemy to sue for
peace. 436
431
Cf. MacLeod v. United States, 229 U.S. 416, 432-33 (1913) (A state of war as to third persons continued until
the exchange of treaty ratifications, and, although rice, not being contraband of war, might have been imported, the
authority of the military commander, until the exchange of ratifications, may have included the right to control
vessels sailing from Manila to trade in the enemys country and to penalize violations of orders in that respect. But
whatever the authority of the commander at Manila or those acting under his direction to control shipments by
persons trading at Manila and in vessels sailing from there of American registration, such authority did not extend to
the second collection of duties upon a cargo from a foreign port to a port occupied by a de facto government which
had compulsorily required the payment of like duties.).
432
VON GLAHN, THE OCCUPATION OF ENEMY TERRITORY 153 (An inhabitant of the occupied territory will retain
his obligation to pay such contributions out of his remuneration as approved local law demands, but must pay the
amounts due from his take-home pay to whatever native agency is responsible for the collection of the funds.).
433
HAGUE IV REG. art. 49 (If, in addition to the taxes mentioned in the above article, the occupant levies other
money contributions in the occupied territory, this shall only be for the needs of the army or the administration of
the territory in question.).
434
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 428b (Prohibited Purposes. Contributions may not be levied for the
enrichment of the occupant, for the payment of war expenses generally, or for other than the needs of the occupying
forces and the administration of the occupied territory.).
435
Refer to 11.6.2.2 (Prohibition Against General Penalties in Occupied Territory).
811
11.22.2.2 Methods of Levying Contributions. No contribution shall be collected
except under a written order, and on the responsibility of a Commander-in-chief. 437 The term
Commander-in-chief may be understood to refer to the highest military officer charged with
the administration of the occupied territory. 438 Commanders of small units or detachments may
not order the collection of contributions. 439
For every contribution, a receipt shall be given to the contributors. 441 The receipt is
intended to secure for the contributors the possibility of being indemnified afterward by their
own government, and does not imply a promise of reimbursement by the Occupying Power. 442
11.22.2.3 Forced Loans. The Occupying Power may seek contributions from the
inhabitants of an occupied territory in the form of forced loans. The Occupying Power is
required to repay such loans. As forced loans are viewed as a form of contribution, they are
governed by the rules applicable to contributions. 443
436
J.A.G.S. TEXT NO. 11, LAW OF BELLIGERENT OCCUPATION 177 (They may not be imposed for the purpose of
enriching the occupant or for impoverishing the population and thus exerting pressure on it to sue for peace.).
437
HAGUE IV REG. art. 51 (No contribution shall be collected except under a written order, and on the
responsibility of a Commander-in-chief.).
438
J.A.G.S. TEXT NO. 11, LAW OF BELLIGERENT OCCUPATION 182 (Seemingly the term commander in chief' refers
to the highest military officer charged with the administration of the occupied territory.).
439
J.A.G.S. TEXT NO. 11, LAW OF BELLIGERENT OCCUPATION 181 (Levies of contributions by commanders of
small units or detachments are prohibited.).
440
HAGUE IV REG. art. 51 (The collection of the said contribution shall only be effected as far as possible in
accordance with the rules of assessment and incidence of the taxes in force.). Compare 11.22.1.2 (Changes in
Taxes or New Taxes).
441
HAGUE IV REG. art. 51 (For every contribution a receipt shall be given to the contributors.).
442
J.A.G.S. TEXT NO. 11, LAW OF BELLIGERENT OCCUPATION 183-84 (There is no obligation imposed by the
Hague Regulations for the reimbursement of contributions. The receipt required to be given the contributors is
evidence that money has been exacted but implies no promise to pay by the occupant. The receipt is intended to
secure to the contributors the possibility of being indemnified afterwards by their own government.).
443
J.A.G.S. TEXT NO. 11, LAW OF BELLIGERENT OCCUPATION 184 (A forced loan is an involuntary exaction of
money imposed on the inhabitants by the occupant which the latter is bound to repay. It is a form of contribution
and differs from the latter only in that there is a duty of returning the money exacted. The same rules that govern
contributions apply to forced loans.).
812
permissible. 444 Additionally, if the Occupying Power finds it difficult to secure prompt money
payment, it may accept securities and bills of exchange from contributors in lieu of money. 445
11.22.3 Customs Duties. The Occupying Power has the right to continue to exact
existing duties, as part of its right to collect existing taxes. 446 Such collection must comply with
the rules for the collection of existing taxes. 447
The Occupying Power may also exact new duties as a form of contributions levied
against the enemy or its trade. 448 Such new duties must comply with the rules for
contributions. 449
11.22.3.1 Exemptions for Certain Relief Shipments. Relief shipments for POWs,
relief shipments for internees, and other relief consignments intended for occupied territory are
exempt from customs duties. 450
444
J.A.G.S. TEXT NO. 11, LAW OF BELLIGERENT OCCUPATION 182-83 (In primitive communities some
commodities may be the medium of exchange and receivable in payment of tax obligations. In such circumstances
contributions in kind limited to such commodities would seemingly be permissible as being contributions in
money.).
445
J.A.G.S. TEXT NO. 11, LAW OF BELLIGERENT OCCUPATION 183 (An occupant who finds it difficult to secure
prompt money payments may accept securities and bills of exchange from the contributors in lieu of money. This
practice was used by the Germans in the Franco-German War of 1870.).
446
Dooley v. United States, 182 U.S. 222, 230 (1901) (Upon the occupation of the country by the military forces of
the United States, the authority of the Spanish Government was superseded, but the necessity for a revenue did not
cease. The government must be carried on, and there was no one left to administer its functions but the military
forces of the United States. Money is requisite for that purpose, and money could only be raised by order of the
military commander. The most natural method was by the continuation of existing duties. In adopting this method,
General Miles was fully justified by the laws of war.).
447
Refer to 11.22.1 (Taxes).
448
For example, Coalition Provisional Authority Order No. 38, Reconstruction Levy, 1 (Sept. 19, 2003) (1)
Notwithstanding CPA Order Number 12 or any other CPA Order suspending a tax, levy, duty, charge, withholding,
fee or tariff, there shall be created a levy known as the Reconstruction Levy. 2) For the purpose of calculating the
Reconstruction Levy, the taxable value of goods shall consist of their total customs value assessed in accordance
with international practice. 3) The Reconstruction Levy shall be imposed at a rate of 5% of the taxable value of
goods. The revenues from the Reconstruction Levy shall be used only to assist the Iraqi people and support the
reconstruction of Iraq. It shall expire two years from the date that this Order enters into force. 4) Unless exempted
under this Order, the Reconstruction Levy shall be imposed on all goods imported into Iraq from all countries
beginning 1 January 2004.); Fleming v. Page, 50 U.S. 603, 616 (1850) (The person who acted in the character of
collector in this instance, acted as such under the authority of the military commander, and in obedience to his
orders; and the duties he exacted, and the regulations he adopted, were not those prescribed by law, but by the
President in his character of commander-in-chief. The custom-house was established in an enemys country, as one
of the weapons of war. The duties required to be paid were regulated with this view, and were nothing more than
contributions levied upon the enemy, which the usages of war justify when an army is operating in the enemys
country.).
449
Refer to 11.22.2 (Contributions).
450
Refer to 9.20.4.1 (Exemption From Dues for Relief Shipments): 10.23.4.1 (Exemption From Dues for Relief
Shipments); 11.17.1.3 (Charges, Taxes, and Customs Duties on Collective Relief Consignments for Occupied
Territories).
813
11.22.3.2 Power to Suspend Customs Duties and Tariffs or Exempt Certain
Goods. The Occupying Power may suspend customs duties and tariffs for shipment of goods
into the occupied territory. 451 It may also exempt certain types of goods (e.g., humanitarian
goods, goods for its forces) from customs duties and tariffs. 452
11.22.4.1 Debts Owed to Occupied Territory. Many jurists have taken the view
that the Occupying Power is generally not permitted to collect pre-occupation debts owed to the
sovereign of the occupied territory, as it is not a party to the agreement originating the debt. 453
However, the Occupying Power may collect the debts owed to the sovereign, provided that the
debts may be legitimately characterized as realizable securities that are strictly the property of
the State (e.g., bearer instruments). 454 In addition, the Occupying Power may seize debts owed
to insurgent forces. 455
451
For example, Coalition Provisional Authority Order No. 12, Trade Liberalization Policy, 1 (Jun. 8, 2003) (All
tariffs, customs duties, import taxes, licensing fees and similar surcharges for goods entering or leaving Iraq, and all
other trade restrictions that may apply to such goods, are suspended until December 31, 2003.); Coalition
Provisional Authority Order No. 54, Trade Liberalization Policy 2004, 1 (Feb. 26, 2004) (All customs tariffs,
duties, import taxes (not including the Reconstruction Levy imposed by CPA Order Number 38), and similar
surcharges for goods entering or leaving Iraq are suspended until the sovereign transitional Iraqi administration
imposes such charges following the CPAs transfer of full governance authority to that administration.).
452
Coalition Provisional Authority Order No. 38, Reconstruction Levy, 2 (Sept. 19, 2003) (1) The following
humanitarian goods shall be exempt from the Reconstruction Levy: e. Goods imported to be delivered as
humanitarian assistance to the people of Iraq or in support of reconstruction of Iraq. 2) The Reconstruction Levy
shall not apply to the following persons or entities: b) Coalition Forces;).
453
See VON GLAHN, THE OCCUPATION OF ENEMY TERRITORY 156 ([T]he majority of jurists concur in the view that
the occupant cannot legally collect pre-occupation debts owed to the legitimate sovereign of the territory and at the
same time act in accordance with the prevailing rules of international law.); U.S. ARMY, THE JUDGE ADVOCATE
GENERALS SCHOOL, CIVIL AFFAIRS MILITARY GOVERNMENT: SELECTED CASES AND MATERIALS 108 (1958) (The
first paragraph of Article 53, HR (par. 403, FM 27-10), raises, rather than answers, the question whether the
occupant may collect debts due the ousted sovereign. The question is complicated by the argument that as state
debts constitute obligations between the debtors and the ousted sovereign and as occupation does not transfer
sovereignty, the occupant does not succeed to the privity enjoyed by the ousted sovereign. Some authorities accept
this rationale and take the position that the occupant cannot legally collect any debts due the state. See, Von Glahn,
The Occupation of Enemy Territory 156-159 (1957). Other authorities, resorting to Article 48 HR (par. 425a, FM
27-10), contend that as the occupant is obliged to defray the expenses of administration of the territory, he ought to
be authorized to collect those debts falling due during the period of his occupation. See, Stone, Legal Controls of
International Conflict 717 (1954).).
454
Refer to 11.18.5.3 (Public Personal (Movable) Property).
455
For example, In Re, Order of Major-General Otis Requiring Smith, Bell & Co., A Banking House at Manila, to
Turn Over to the American Authorities One Hundred Thousand Dollars, Held by Said House as the Property of the
Insurgent Forces in the Philippines, Submitted October 10, 1899, Case No. 738, Division of Insular Affairs, War
Department in CHARLES E. MAGOON, LAW OFFICER, BUREAU OF INSULAR AFFAIRS, WAR DEPARTMENT, REPORTS
ON THE LAW OF CIVIL GOVERNMENT IN TERRITORY SUBJECT TO MILITARY OCCUPATION BY THE MILITARY FORCES
OF THE UNITED STATES 261, 262 (2nd ed., 1902) (It is conceded that the fund seized was intended to be used for
promoting the insurrection and that the insurgents sought to utilize the bank as a means of transfer for said funds.
Under the laws and usages of war the United States may lawfully seize and retain such funds, and to that end may
compel the person having such funds, in his possession to pay over the same to the military authorities. The most
favorable view of the conduct of the bank in attempting to perform the service rendered the insurgents herein, is to
814
11.22.4.2 Existing Debts Owed by the Occupied Territory. The Occupying Power
is under no obligation to pay the debts owed by the occupied territory, although it may choose to
do so as a matter of policy. 456
The Occupying Power may prevent payments from being made from occupied territory to
a hostile belligerent. 457
However, new debt may be undertaken on behalf of the occupied territory if immediately
necessary for the welfare of the inhabitants of occupied territory, and if undertaking such debt
constitutes a fair and reasonable transaction. 459
consider the obligation assumed by the bank as creating an indebtedness to the persons associated in the insurrection
and the draft as an evidence thereof. Such indebtedness may properly be collected by the United States as a military
measure calculated to weaken the insurrection.).
456
VON GLAHN, THE OCCUPATION OF ENEMY TERRITORY 158-59 (Most authorities concur in the belief that an
occupant is under no obligation to pay interest on or the principal of any public debt owed by the territory, that is, by
the lawful sovereign. The occupant may, of course, choose to do so, as a matter of public policy, just as he may
decide to pay pensions hitherto charged against the absent sovereign, but ordinarily all such payments are not
considered to constitute proper administrative expenses obligating the occupying power.).
457
VON GLAHN, THE OCCUPATION OF ENEMY TERRITORY 156 (The occupant may rightfully prevent all payments
from the area under his control to the hostile government.).
458
VON GLAHN, THE OCCUPATION OF ENEMY TERRITORY 159 (Second, it is generally accepted that an occupant
may not contract new debts on behalf of the occupied territory or collect taxes to pay interest on such unlawful debt.
Some authorities differ with this conclusion and maintain that there exists an exception, based on necessity and on
the occupants obligation to restore and maintain order and public safety. This latter view appears reasonable,
provided that it could be demonstrated convincingly that the new indebtedness was not only required by the welfare
of the native population but also constituted a fair and reasonable transaction.). For example, Coalition Provisional
Authority Order No. 95, Financial Management Law and Public Debt Law, 4(2) (Jun. 4, 2004) (Until such time as
the Iraqi Interim Government assumes full governance authority in accordance with Article (2)(B)(1) of the Law of
the Administration for the State of Iraq for the Transitional Period, the Ministry of Finance is prohibited from
issuing new debt securities if the issuance of such securities would increase the total level of Iraqs public debt,
including obligations to the Central Bank, beyond the current level of such debt.).
459
John W. Griggs, Attorney General, CubaClaimsContracts, Jan. 19, 1899, 22 OPINIONS OF THE ATTORNEY
GENERAL 310, 311 (1900) (The completion of the proposed contract between Dady & Co. and the city of Havana
would involve an expenditure for the benefit of that city of $14,000,000, to be secured by an issue of municipal
bonds. It is manifest that a matter of such great importance to the city of Havana, its citizens and taxpayers, ought
not to be determined without a full and complete understanding of all the facts and a thorough knowledge of the
civil law applicable thereto under the system prevailing in Cuba. The administration of the United States in Cuba
is of a military nature, and merely temporary. No action binding the island or any of its municipalities to large
expenditures and continuing debt ought to be made, except upon grounds of immediate necessity, which in this case
do not appear to be present.).
815
clearly in the interest of sound financial administration of that territory, and therefore of direct
benefit to the inhabitants. 460
11.22.5 Currency and Exchange Rates. The Occupying Power may leave the local
currency of the occupied area in circulation. The Occupying Power may also authorize domestic
authorities to re-issue currency if necessary for ensuring public order and safety. 461
The Occupying Power may introduce its own currency into the occupied area or issue
special currency for use in the occupied area territory, should the introduction or issuance of such
currency be necessary. 462 There is a long history of issuing such war currency. 463 The issuance
of occupation currency may be necessary to counteract the enemy States practice of engaging in
economic sabotage. 464
460
For example, Coalition Provisional Authority Order No. 95, Financial Management Law and Public Debt Law,
1(2) (Jun. 4, 2004) (This Order promulgates the Public Debt Law, which authorizes the Ministry of Finance to
issue and pay debt securities guaranteed by the Government, and establishes certain related authorities and duties,
for the purposes of financing Government operations and promoting a stable Iraqi economy.). See also VON
GLAHN, THE OCCUPATION OF ENEMY TERRITORY 159 ([A]n occupant appears to be entitled to refinance or to
consolidate already existing public debts of an occupied territory if such a step is clearly in the interest of sound
financial administration and thus for the direct benefit of the inhabitants of the area.); J.A.G.S. TEXT NO. 11, LAW
OF BELLIGERENT OCCUPATION 232 (Seemingly, the occupant acting as administrator of the occupied territory may
refinance or consolidate the existing indebtedness of the occupied state in the interest of sound public
administration.).
461
For example, Coalition Provisional Authority Order No. 43, New Iraqi Dinar Banknotes, 3(1) (Oct. 14, 2003)
(The CBI [Central Bank of Iraq] is, pursuant to Article 34 of the Central Bank of Iraq Law No. 64 of 1976, as
amended, the sole authority in the Republic of Iraq vested with the power to issue legal tender currency. The CBI,
under the supervision of the CPA, shall issue New Iraqi dinar banknotes and determine the denominations, designs,
technical specifications, and other characteristics of New Iraqi dinar banknotes.).
462
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 430 (The occupying power may leave the local currency of the occupied
area in circulation. It is also authorized to introduce its own currency or to issue special currency for use only in the
occupied area, should the introduction or issuance of such currency become necessary.); Abotiz & Co. v. Price, 99
F. Supp. 602, 611-12 (D. Utah 1951) (Some recognized medium of exchange was necessary to keep the economic
life of the community going. And, the power of a military government in occupied enemy territory to issue military
currency cannot seriously be questioned.).
463
Aboitiz & Co. v. Price, 99 F. Supp. 602, 614-15 (D. Utah 1951) (The validity of such war currency is not only
supported by these principles of international law, to which our own country has given its assent, but, it is supported
by the dictates of a sound public policy, and, there is back of it a long history of the use of war money by many
nations. During our own Revolutionary War, the Continental Congress issued currency for use in British territory
occupied by the colonial troops before the Declaration of Independence. The rebel government of the Confederate
States issued a war currency which, as we have seen, was held valid by the Supreme Court of the United States.
Moreover, the United States and her allies in World War II issued occupation currency in Sicily, Germany, and
Austria. The Combined Chief of Staffs of the Supreme Allied Commander issued a directive June 24, 1943, that the
task forces use, besides regular United States coins, yellow seal dollars and besides regular British coins, British
Military Authority (BMA) notes, to supplement lire currency. The Combined Directive for Military Government in
Germany, April 28, 1944, directed the Allied forces to use yellow seal dollars and British Military Authority notes
(BMA), if the Reichs mark currency became inadequate. The American Directive on Military Government of
Austria, June 27, 1945, ordered our forces to use for military purposes only Allied Military Schillings.).
464
For example, Opinion on the Legality of the Issuance of AMG (Allied Military Government) Currency in Sicily,
Sept. 23, 1943, reprinted in Occupation Currency Transactions: Hearings Before the Committees on
Appropriations Armed Services and Banking and Currency, U.S. Senate, 80th Congress, First Session, 73, 81-82
816
The Occupying Power may also set exchange rates for currency in occupied territory. 465
The Occupying Powers powers to regulate currency must not be used to confiscate
private property. 466 For example, intentional debasement of currency by the establishment of
fictitious valuation or exchange rates, or like devices, as well as failure to take reasonable steps
to prevent inflation, with the result of enrichment of the Occupying Power, would violate
international law. 467
(Jun. 17-18, 1947) (The currency policies deliberately followed by the Axis in retreat were designed to make the
maintenance of public order and safety by the Allied powers as difficult as possible. The variety of forms of
economic sabotage which the Germans might use is illustrated by the seemingly opposite practices followed in
Tunisia and in Sicily. In Tunisia, the Germans distributed Bank of France notes on a grand scale, increasing wage
rates to some classes of employees manifold, patronizing the black market freely, and paying collaborationists
lavishly. In Sicily, Mussolini went even further [than in Italy] and ordered the banks to be substantially depleted
to the point where additional new currency was urgently needed for immediate use to permit the resumption of
normal commercial activity. Thus, the Axis practices made a ready supply of new currency even more essential
than otherwise, and provide a complete justification for the use of such currency under the test of the Hague
Convention.).
465
For example, Coalition Provisional Authority Order No. 43, New Iraqi Dinar Banknotes, 5 (Oct. 14, 2003)
(The 1990 dinar banknotes and the Swiss dinar banknotes and coins shall be exchanged against New Iraqi dinar
banknotes at the official conversion rates of one (1) 1990 dinar to one (1) New Iraqi dinar, and of one (1) Swiss
dinar to one-hundred-and-fifty (150) New Iraqi dinars.).
466
Refer to 11.18.6.1 (Prohibition on Confiscation of Private Property in Occupied Territory).
467
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 430 (Intentional debasement of currency by the establishment of
fictitious valuation or exchange rates, or like devices, as well as failure to take reasonable steps to prevent inflation,
are violative of international law.). See also Opinion on the Legality of the Issuance of AMG (Allied Military
Government) Currency in Sicily, Sept. 23, 1943, reprinted in Occupation Currency Transactions: Hearings Before
the Committees on Appropriations Armed Services and Banking and Currency, U.S. Senate, 80th Congress, First
Session, 73, 82 (Jun. 17-18, 1947) (The Germans were roundly criticized during the First World War, and again in
this war, for introducing occupation marks and similar currency devices. The vice of the German practice is not
in the use of currency, but in the excessive issue of valueless currency as a device for stripping the occupied area of
its good and its labor for the benefit of Germany.).
468
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 376 (The occupant has the right to regulate commercial intercourse in the
occupied territory. It may subject such intercourse to such prohibitions and restrictions as are essential to the
purposes of the occupation.). See also WILLIAM E. BIRKHIMER, MILITARY GOVERNMENT AND MARTIAL LAW 268
(1914) (One of the most important incidents of military government is the regulation of trade with the subjugated
state. The Occupying State has an unquestioned right to regulate commercial intercourse with conquered territory.
It may be absolutely prohibited, or permitted to be unrestricted, or such limitations may be imposed thereon as either
policy or a proper attention to military measures may justify.).
817
commercial restrictions or regulations when essential to the purposes of the occupation. 469 For
example, the Occupying Power may suspend existing customs tariffs. 470
The purposes of the occupation that justify economic regulation may include the military
interest of the Occupying Power, the needs of the inhabitants of occupied territory, and
applicable law of war obligations.
For example, for its military purposes, the Occupying Power may impose a moratorium
on business payments until an effective occupation government is in place in order to safeguard
financial institutions, to preserve records, and to ensure that funds and other assets of the enemy
government are not transferred without the knowledge and approval of the Occupying Power.
Similarly, for purposes of security and restoration of public order, the Occupying Power may
also take steps to prevent hoarding of supplies, to curb or prevent black markets, and to regulate
labor conditions, including strikes. 471 As another case in point, in order to fulfill its obligations
with respect to the preservation of cultural property in occupied territory, the Occupying Power
may issue commercial regulations intended to prevent illegal traffic in, and looting of, such
property. 472
11.23.2 Limit on the Overall Burdens Placed on the Economy of the Occupied Territory.
The economy of an occupied territory can only be required to bear the expenses of the
occupation, and these should not be greater than the economy of the occupied territory can
reasonably be expected to bear. 474 For example, requisitions must be in proportion to the
resources of the occupied territory. 475
469
2004 UK MANUAL 11.32 (The occupying power may place on the occupied territory such restrictions and
conditions in respect of commercial dealings as may be necessary for military purposes. For the same reasons it
may remove existing restrictions, such as current customs tariffs.); 1958 UK MANUAL 530 (The Occupant may
place such restrictions and conditions upon all commercial intercourse with the occupied territory as he may deem
suitable for his military purpose. He may likewise remove existing restrictions; for instance, he may suspend the
customs tariff in force.).
470
Refer to 11.22.3.2 (Power to Suspend Customs Duties and Tariffs or Exempt Certain Goods).
471
VON GLAHN, THE OCCUPATION OF ENEMY TERRITORY 208 (The occupant also appears to possess other powers
over private business, including the right to prevent hoarding of supplies and raw materials, the prevention of black
markets, the regulation of labor conditions, including strikes, and, in general, the power to return business conditions
in the territory to nearly normal conditions as speedily as possible.).
472
Refer to 11.19.1 (Obligation With Respect to the Safeguarding and Preservation of Cultural Property).
473
Refer to 11.1.2.5 (Occupation and U.N. Security Council Resolutions).
474
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 364 (The economy of an occupied country can only be required to bear
the expenses of the occupation, and these should not be greater than the economy of the country can reasonably be
expected to bear.). See also United States, et al. v. Gring, et al., Judgment, I TRIAL OF THE MAJOR WAR
CRIMINALS BEFORE THE IMT 239 (The evidence in this case has established, however, that the territories occupied
by Germany were exploited for the German war effort in the most ruthless way, without consideration of the local
economy, and in consequence of a deliberate design and policy. There was in truth a systematic plunder of public
818
11.23.3 Control of Business in Occupied Territory. The Occupying Power may exercise
controls over private business for the purpose of addressing the needs of the inhabitants of the
occupied territory or for military purposes, including by: (1) compelling the continued operation
of a business; (2) granting of business subsidies; (3) closing down a business; or (4) assuming
control and management of a business.
The Occupying Power may take steps to increase production from private business, such
as by granting subsidies out of available governmental revenues from the occupied territory. 478
The Occupying Power may assume control and management of such a business if
necessary to serve the needs of the local population or for military purposes. 480 Title to the
business in such circumstances remains with the legal owner, and if the Occupying Power earns
a profit from the operation of the business, the legal owner must be indemnified, to avoid a
prohibited confiscation of private property. 481
or private property, which was criminal under Article 6(b) of the Charter . Raw materials and finished products
alike were confiscated for the needs of the German industry.).
475
Refer to 11.18.7 (Requisitions of Private Enemy Property).
476
VON GLAHN, THE OCCUPATION OF ENEMY TERRITORY 207 (If the operations of a given enterprise appear
necessary to the occupant, he may compel the continuation of such operations.).
477
Refer to 11.20 (Labor of Protected Persons in Occupied Territory).
478
VON GLAHN, THE OCCUPATION OF ENEMY TERRITORY 207-08 (If existing private industries fail to supply in
required quantities such commodities as may be urgently needed by the native inhabitants or by occupants own
forces in the occupied territory, it appears to be permissible for him to undertake steps to increase production, if
necessary by subsidization out of available government revenues of the occupied area.).
479
VON GLAHN, THE OCCUPATION OF ENEMY TERRITORY 207 (If, on the other hand, such continued operations
appear to be against the interests of the population or of the occupying power, the latter may close down the
enterprise in question.).
480
Refer to 11.18.3 (Property Control Measures).
481
VON GLAHN, THE OCCUPATION OF ENEMY TERRITORY 207 (An occupant apparently may also lawfully place
under his direct control and management any enterprise which is held by him to be vital for his needs or the needs of
the indigenous population. Such an assumption of management is not expropriation, for title to the property in
question remains vested in its former owner-operator; the occupant merely assumes a temporary control and has to
return the firm when the need for his control has passed. If the occupant earns a profit during his operation of a
private enterprise seized by him he should indemnify the owner in full for the amount of the profit, since the Hague
regulations prohibit the confiscation of private property.).
819
11.23.4 Regulation of External Trade. The Occupying Power may also regulate foreign
trade, including completely suspending such trade. 482 For example, the Occupying Power may
halt the export of precious metals and other valuable items that are readily converted or
exchanged on the international market, including metals such as copper, jewels, and securities. 483
Commercial relations between the occupied territory and the remaining territory of the
enemy and its allies are also normally suspended. 484 Such suspension may be relaxed through
licenses to trade. 485
11.23.5 Exchange Controls, Including Clearing Arrangements, and Asset Controls. The
Occupying Power may also institute exchange controls, including clearing arrangements, and, if
necessary, the freezing or blocking of certain assets, in order to conserve the monetary assets of
the occupied territory, as well as for security purposes. 486 For example, the Occupying Power
may regulate, or even prohibit, the flow of funds between the occupied territory and other
countries, under the theory that preventing flight of capital assets is critical to maintaining order
and stability. 487 Such measures must not, however, be used to enrich the Occupying Power or
482
VON GLAHN, THE OCCUPATION OF ENEMY TERRITORY 211-12 (The occupant possesses a right, based on logic,
to regulate all trade between an occupied area and the outside world. ... [N]ormally, also, all commercial relations
between the area and its allies as well as the remainder of the sovereigns territory are suspended as soon as
occupation becomes effective.).
483
For example, Coalition Provisional Authority Order No. 12, Trade Liberalization Policy, Annex Prohibited
Exports (Jun. 8, 2003); Coalition Provisional Authority Order No. 54, Trade Liberalization Policy 2004, Annex
Restricted Exports (Feb. 26, 2004); Coalition Provisional Authority Memorandum No. 8, Exportation of Scrap
Metal Under Order Number 12, Trade Liberalization Policy (CPA/ORD/7 June2003/12), 3 (Jan. 25, 2004)
(Effective February 1, 2004, metal, including scrap metal, shall not be exported without authorization from the
Ministry of Trade. Prior to February 1, 2004, scrap metal, excluding copper and lead, may be exported without a
license.).
484
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 376 (The commander of the occupying forces will usually find it
advisable to forbid intercourse between the occupied territory and the territory still in the possession of the
enemy.). Refer to 12.1.1 (Traditional Rule of Non-Intercourse During War).
485
Refer to 12.6.3.2 (Licenses to Trade).
486
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 430 (The occupant may also institute exchange controls, including
clearing arrangements, in order to conserve the monetary assets of the occupied territory.). For example, Coalition
Provisional Authority Order No. 93, Anti-Money Laundering Act of 2004, 1 (Jun. 3, 2004) (The purpose of the
Anti-Money Laundering Law is to secure financial institutions and combat instability by criminalizing the acts of
laundering money, financing crime, financing terrorism, and structuring certain transactions.); Haw Pia v. China
Banking Corp. (Supreme Ct., Philippines 1949), Annual Digest, 1951, Case No. 203, reprinted in 43 AJIL 821-23
(1949) (As to the first question, we hold, that the Japanese military authorities had power, under the
international law, to order the liquidation of the China Banking Corporation and to appoint and authorize the Bank
of Taiwan as liquidator to accept the payment in question, because such liquidation is not a confiscation of the
properties of the bank appellee, but a mere sequestration of its assets which require the liquidation or winding up of
the business of said bank.) (amendment in AJIL).
487
VON GLAHN, THE OCCUPATION OF ENEMY TERRITORY 203-04 (Thus an occupant would appear to possess the
right to regulate and even to prohibit a flow of funds between an occupied territory and other countries, in view of
the likely possibility that a capital flight would disrupt the monetary system and hence the order and safety to be
preserved by the occupant.).
820
otherwise circumvent the restrictions placed on requisitions, contributions, seizures, and other
measures dealing with property. 488
11.23.6 Price Controls in Occupied Territory. The Occupying Power may regulate prices
in the occupied territory. For example, shortages of commodities and increased demand for
certain commodities in the occupied territory may result in a rise in price fluctuations requiring
the Occupying Power to resort to measures designed to maintain prices at a reasonable maximum
level. 489 However, the Occupying Power may not use its power over price controls for the
purpose of exploiting the occupied territory to its own illegal advantage. 490
488
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 430 (Such measures must not, however, be utilized to enrich the
occupant or otherwise circumvent the restrictions place on requisitions, contributions, seizures, and other measures
dealing with property.). For example, JUDGMENT OF THE INTERNATIONAL MILITARY TRIBUNAL FOR THE TRIAL OF
THE GERMAN MAJOR WAR CRIMINALS (Indictment Count 3(E)(6) (By a variety of financial mechanisms, they
despoiled all of the occupied countries of essential commodities and accumulated wealth, debased the local currency
systems and disrupted the local economies. They financed extensive purchases in occupied countries through
clearing arrangements by which they exacted loans from the occupied countries. They imposed occupation levies,
exacted financial contributions, and issued occupation currency, far in excess of occupation costs. They used these
excess funds to finance the purchase of business properties and supplies in the occupied countries.).
489
VON GLAHN, THE OCCUPATION OF ENEMY TERRITORY 209 (A majority of jurists writing on the law of
occupation and most military manuals on the subject approve the right of an occupant to regulate prices in occupied
territory. Shortages of every kind of commodity, ruined or damaged crops, lack of imported goods, increased
demands through requisitions or purchases by occupation forces all these contribute to a rise in the general price
level unless the occupant resorts to measures designed to maintain prices at a reasonable maximum.).
490
VON GLAHN, THE OCCUPATION OF ENEMY TERRITORY 209-10 (Yet an unscrupulous occupant may easily
misuse his power over price controls to exploit the occupied territory to his own illegal advantageas shown
repeatedly during the Second World War.).
821
XII Non-Hostile Relations Between Belligerents
Chapter Contents
12.1 Introduction
12.2 Principle of Good Faith in Non-Hostile Relations
12.3 Methods for Communication Between Belligerents
12.4 The White Flag of Truce to Initiate Negotiations
12.5 Rules for Parlementaires
12.6 Military Passports, Safe-Conducts, and Safeguards
12.7 Cartels
12.8 Capitulations Negotiated Instruments of Surrender
12.9 Capitulations Subjects Usually Addressed
12.10 Capitulations Violations and Denunciation
12.11 Armistices and Other Cease-Fire Agreements
12.12 Armistices Subjects Usually Addressed
12.13 Armistices Violations and Denunciation
12.14 U.N. Security Council Cease-Fires
12.1 INTRODUCTION
This Chapter addresses the legal principles for non-hostile relations between belligerents
and the basic mechanisms for implementing them.
More specifically, this Chapter addresses the rules for the protection of certain personnel
engaged in non-hostile relations, such as parlementaires, and persons protected by military
passports, safe-conducts, or safeguards. In addition, this Chapter addresses certain agreements
between opposing belligerents, such as cartels, capitulations, and armistices.
12.1.1 Traditional Rule of Non-Intercourse During War. The traditional rule during
international armed conflict is that, even without any special proclamation, all intercourse
between the territories occupied by belligerent forces, including communication, transportation,
and commerce, would cease. 1
The traditional rule of non-intercourse reflects a belligerents authority under the law of
war to limit and regulate intercourse between persons and territory controlled by or belonging to
that belligerent and persons and territory controlled by or belonging to the enemy. 2 For example,
1
See 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 449 (All intercourse between the territories occupied by belligerent
armies, whether by traffic, communication, travel, or in any other way, ceases. This is the general rule to be
observed without special proclamation.); LIEBER CODE art. 86 (All intercourse between the territories occupied by
belligerent armies, whether by traffic, by letter, by travel, or in any other way, ceases. This is the general rule, to be
observed without special proclamation.).
2
See Hamilton v. Dillin, 88 U.S. 73, 97 (1874) (As before stated, the power of the government to impose such
conditions upon commercial intercourse with an enemy in time of war as it sees fit is undoubted. It is a power
which every other government in the world claims and exercises, and which belongs to the government of the
United States as incident to the power to declare war and to carry it on to a successful termination. We regard the
822
States may authorize their military commanders to limit travel and trade within their areas of
operations for security purposes. During armed conflict, States have exercised their authority to
limit intercourse with the enemy in order to avoid supporting the enemys war effort and in order
to speak with one voice in communications with the enemy State.
In particular, the traditional rule of non-intercourse notifies a States nationals and other
persons subject to its jurisdiction that they may be liable to punishment by that State under its
domestic law and war powers if they communicate with or support the States enemies in war
without proper authorization. 3
Insofar as restrictions on travel and trade imposed by a belligerent affect neutral rights,
such restrictions may be limited by the law of neutrality. An Occupying Powers authority to
control travel and trade during belligerent occupation is addressed by the law of occupation. 5
regulations in question as nothing more than the exercise of this power. It does not belong to the same category as
the power to levy and collect taxes, duties, and excises. It belongs to the war powers of the government, just as
much so as the power to levy military contributions, or to perform any other belligerent act.).
3
For example, 10 U.S.C. 904 (Any person who-- (1) aids, or attempts to aid, the enemy with arms, ammunition,
supplies, money, or other things; or (2) without proper authority, knowingly harbors or protects or gives intelligence
to, or communicates or corresponds with or holds any intercourse with the enemy, either directly or indirectly; shall
suffer death or such other punishment as a court-martial or military commission may direct. This section does not
apply to a military commission established under chapter 47A of this title.); Amos T. Akerman, Attorney General,
Unlawful Traffic with Indians, Jul. 19, 1871, 13 OPINIONS OF THE ATTORNEY GENERAL 470, 471-72 (1873) (But I
observe that General Sherman, in his letter, refers to the parties apprehended by the military as having been captured
while engaged in unlawful traffic with hostile Indians; and the papers submitted show that a portion of the property
employed in this trade consisted of ammunition. Now, if the Indians to whom the captured persons were thus
supplying ammunition, &c., were in open and notorious hostility to the United States at the time, and, therefore,
properly came within the description of public enemies, the parties apprehended would seem to be amenable to trial
and punishment by court-martial under the 56th article of war, which applies to persons who are not, as well as to
persons who are, in the military service.); LIEBER CODE art. 86 (Contraventions of this rule [of non-intercourse]
are highly punishable.).
4
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 450 (Exceptions to this rule, whether by safe-conduct, license to trade,
exchange of mails, or travel from one territory into the other, are made on behalf of individuals only with the
approval of the Government or the highest military authority.); LIEBER CODE art. 86 (Exceptions to this rule,
whether by safe-conduct, or permission to trade on a small or large scale, or by exchanging mails, or by travel from
one territory into the other, can take place only according to agreement approved by the government, or by the
highest military authority.).
5
Refer to 11.12 (Movement of Persons in Occupied Territory); 11.23.4 (Regulation of External Trade).
823
Under the GC, however, protected persons in a belligerents home country, or in territory
occupied by a belligerent, are entitled to leave unless such departure is contrary to the interests of
the State. 6
12.1.2 Necessity for Non-Hostile Relations. Despite the general rule of non-intercourse
during war, the conduct of war and the restoration of peace require certain non-hostile relations
between belligerents. 7
special agreements to facilitate the protection of the wounded, sick, shipwrecked, and
medical personnel, 8 such as
o agreements to establish areas where civilians or the wounded and sick are
protected. 13
6
Refer to 10.8.2 (Departures of Protected Persons From a Belligerents Home Territory); 11.12.2 (Departure of
Protected Persons Who Are Not Nationals of the State Whose Territory Is Occupied).
7
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 451 (The conduct of war and the restoration of peace require certain
nonhostile relations between belligerents.).
8
Refer to 7.1.1.2 (Special Agreements Under the GWS and GWS-Sea).
9
Refer to 7.4.3.1 (Armistices and Local Arrangements to Permit the Removal, Exchange, or Transport of the
Wounded).
10
Refer to 9.1.2.2 (Special Agreements Under the GPW).
11
Refer to 9.36 (Direct Repatriation and Accommodation in Neutral Countries During Hostilities).
12
Refer to 10.1.1.2 (Special Agreements Under the GC).
13
Refer to 5.14.3 (Establishing Areas Where Civilians or the Wounded and Sick Are Protected).
824
to establish safe-conduct protections for certain persons or property under the 1949
Geneva Conventions; 15 and
measures to protect civilians from the effects of minefields, mined areas, mines, booby-
traps, and other devices, such as information sharing with another party or parties to the
conflict; 19 and
the provision of certain assistance to facilitate the marking and clearance, removal, or
destruction of explosive remnants of war, in cases where a user of explosive ordnance
that has become explosive remnants of war does not exercise control of the territory. 20
Absolute good faith with the enemy must be observed as a rule of conduct, including in
non-hostile relations between opposing belligerents. 21 In particular, in the context of non-hostile
relations, the principle of good faith requires that:
14
Refer to 18.15.2 (Appointment of a Protecting Power).
15
Refer to 12.6.3.3 (Safe-Conducts Contemplated by the 1949 Geneva Conventions).
16
Refer to 17.3 (Special Agreements Between Parties to the Conflict).
17
Refer to 12.11.1.2 (Armistice as a Suspension of Hostilities and Not a Peace Treaty).
18
Refer to 9.37.1 (Agreements on POW Release and Repatriation).
19
Refer to 6.12.12 (Obligations Arising After the Cessation of Active Hostilities).
20
Refer to 6.20.8 (Providing Assistance to Facilitate the Removal of Explosive Remnants of War From a Partys
Military Operations in Areas Outside Its Control).
21
Refer to 5.21 (Overview of Good Faith, Perfidy, and Ruses).
825
compacts between enemies, such as truces and capitulations, shall be faithfully adhered
to; 22
the means of conducting non-hostile relations (such as flags of truce) must not be
misused. 24
On the other hand, the principle of good faith does not prohibit belligerents from:
Belligerents may communicate with one another through a variety of methods, including:
directly by telecommunications; 27
22
Daniel Webster, Secretary of State, Letter to Waddy Thompson, Esq., Envoy Extraordinary and Minister
Plenipotentiary of the United States to the Mexican Republic, Apr. 15, 1842, reprinted in THE DIPLOMATIC AND
OFFICIAL PAPERS OF DANIEL WEBSTER, WHILE SECRETARY OF STATE 321, 331 (1848) (If there is one rule of the
law of war more clear and peremptory than another, it is that compacts between enemies, such as truces and
capitulations, shall be faithfully adhered to; and their non-observance is denounced as being manifestly at variance
with the true interest and duty; not only of the immediate parties, but of all mankind.).
23
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 453 (It is absolutely essential in all nonhostile relations that the most
scrupulous good faith shall be observed by both parties, and that no advantage not intended to be given by the
adversary shall be taken.).
24
2004 UK MANUAL 10.2 (Whenever there are non-hostile relations between parties to an armed conflict, those
relations must be conducted with the utmost good faith and any agreement reached scrupulously observed. In
particular, there should be no abuse of a flag of truce or emblems of identification in dealings between
belligerents.).
25
For example, Donald W. Boose, Jr., Fighting While Talking: The Korean War Truce Talks, OAH MAGAZINE OF
HISTORY, 25, 27 (Spring 2000) (The truce talks resumed on 26 April [1953], and the two sides quickly agreed on
the broad outlines of a plan to deal with the POW issue through a Neutral Nations Repatriation Commission
composed of the same members as the Neutral Nations Supervisory Commission, in addition to India. There were
still unresolved issues, however. The U.S. leadership, losing patience with the slow pace of negotiations, now
attempted to use military action to pressure the Chinese and North Koreans. In May U.S. aircraft attacked irrigation
dams near Pyongyang, disrupting rail lines and roads and further straining the North Korean infrastructure. Then on
20 May Eisenhower and his advisors decided that if no progress were made, the UNC would initiate a military
offensive that might include attacks on China and the use of nuclear weapons.).
26
Refer to 12.5.2 (Refusal or Reception of a Parlementaire).
27
For example, James Reston, Ridgway in Offer; Key Figure in Truce Plan Receives a Visitor U.S. Asks Command
of Reds to Parley, THE NEW YORK TIMES, Jun. 30, 1951 (In accordance with Presidential instructions
recommended by the National Security Council and dispatched from the Pentagon at 1:27 oclock this afternoon,
Gen. Matthew B. Ridgway of the United States broadcast the following message at 6 P.M. to The Commander in
Chief, Communist Forces in Korea:).
826
through the traditional mechanism of a display of a flag of truce and the sending of
parlementaires; 28
In the past, the normal means of initiating negotiations between belligerents has been the
display of the white flag of truce. 32
12.4.1 Meaning of the White Flaga Desire to Communicate. As a legal matter, the
white flag, when used by military forces, indicates a desire to communicate with the enemy. The
hoisting of a white flag has no other legal meaning in the law of war. 33
The hoisting of a white flag may indicate that the party hoisting it desires to open
communication with a view to an armistice (e.g., to enable forces to collect the wounded) or a
surrender. 34 If hoisted during a military action by an individual combatant or a small party of
combatants, it may signify merely that those persons or forces wish to surrender. 35 Although the
white flag has been used with this intent, the display of the white flag does not necessarily mean
that the person or forces displaying it are prepared to surrender. Moreover, enemy forces in the
immediate area might not have the same intent as the individual or forces displaying the white
28
Refer to 12.4 (The White Flag of Truce to Initiate Negotiations); 12.5 (Rules for Parlementaires).
29
Refer to 12.5.5 (Neutral Zone and Other Appropriate Measures to Facilitate Negotiations).
30
For example, Acceptance of Germanys Offer Concerning Prisoners of War, Apr. 23, 1945, 12 DEPARTMENT OF
STATE BULLETIN 810 (Apr. 29, 1945) (The Department of State and the War Department announced on April 23
that the Government of the United States has accepted an offer of the German Government to leave in camps all
prisoners of war as the Allies advance. The proposal of the German Government was made to the United States
through the Swiss Government as protecting power.).
31
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 452 (One belligerent may communicate with another directly by radio,
through parlementaires, or in a conference, and indirectly through a Protecting Power, a third State other than a
Protecting Power, or the International Committee of the Red Cross.).
32
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 458 (In the past, the normal means of initiating negotiations between
belligerents has been the display of a white flag.).
33
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 458 (The white flag, when used by troops, indicates a desire to
communicate with the enemy. The hoisting of a white flag has no other signification in international law.).
34
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 458 (It may indicate that the party hoisting it desires to open
communication with a view to an armistice or a surrender.).
35
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 458 (If hoisted in action by an individual soldier or a small party, it may
signify merely the surrender of that soldier or party.).
827
flag, especially where the display of the white flag was not authorized by the individual or
forces commander.
12.4.2 Rules for the Party Displaying the White Flag. Forces displaying a flag of truce
must show clearly that they intend to engage in non-hostile relations. They bear the burden of
communicating their intent to the adversary.
To indicate that the hoisting of the white flag is authorized by its commander, the
appearance of the flag should be accompanied or followed promptly by a complete cessation of
fire from that side. 36
The commander authorizing the hoisting of the flag should also promptly send a
parlementaire to communicate the commanders intent. 37
It is an abuse of the flag of truce if the force that sends a parlementaire does not halt and
cease fire while the parlementaire is approaching, or is being received by, the other party. 40
Improper use of a flag of truce also includes its use while engaging in attacks or in order
to shield, favor, or protect ones own military operations, or otherwise to impede enemy military
operations. 41 For example, flags of truce may not be used surreptitiously to obtain military
36
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 458 (To indicate that the hoisting is authorized by its commander, the
appearance of the flag should be accompanied or followed promptly by a complete cessation of fire from that
side.); 1958 UK MANUAL 395 (It is essential, however, that the troops who hoist the white flag to indicate a wish
to enter into communication with the enemy, should halt and cease firing, for otherwise the enemy cannot be certain
that the hoisting of the white flag is authorised.).
37
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 458 (The commander authorizing the hoisting of the flag should also
promptly send a parlementaire or parlementaires.).
38
HAGUE IV REG. art. 23(f) (it is especially forbidden [t]o make improper use of a flag of truce). Consider AP I
art. 38(1)(a) (It is also prohibited to misuse deliberately in an armed conflict other internationally recognized
protective emblems, signs or signals, including the flag of truce, and the protective emblem of cultural property.).
39
Cf. 10 U.S.C. 950t (18) (Any person subject to this chapter who uses a flag of truce to feign an intention to
negotiate, surrender, or otherwise suspend hostilities when there is no such intention shall be punished as a military
commission under this chapter may direct.).
40
1958 UK MANUAL 415 (The improper use of a flag of truce is forbidden. It is an abuse of the flag of truce if the
force which sends a parlementaire does not halt and cease fire whilst the parlementaire is approaching, or is being
received by, the other party.); 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 467 (It is an abuse of the flag of truce,
forbidden as an improper ruse under Article 23 (f), HR (par. 52), for an enemy not to halt and cease firing while the
parlementaire sent by him is advancing and being received by the other party;).
41
Refer to 5.16 (Prohibition on Using Protected Persons and Objects to Shield, Favor, or Impede Military
Operations).
828
information, or with the purpose of obtaining time to effect a withdrawal, secure reinforcements,
resupply, or conduct other operations. 42
12.4.3 Rules for the Party to Whom the White Flag Is Displayed. A party is not required
to cease firing or other military operations when a white flag is raised by the other side. 43
It is essential to determine with reasonable certainty that the flag is shown by actual
authority of the enemy commander before basing important action upon that assumption. 44 For
example, forces should not assume that all enemy forces in the locality intend to surrender and
expose themselves to hostile fire based on the enemys display of a white flag. 45
Fire must not be directed intentionally on the person carrying the white flag or on persons
near him or her unless there is a clear manifestation of hostile intent by those persons. 46
After the display of the white flag, a parlementaire would be sent to conduct
negotiations, traveling under the display and protection of the white flag of truce.
12.5.1 The Parlementaire and Party. Parlementaires ordinarily are agents employed by
commanders of belligerent forces in the field, to go in person within the enemy lines, for the
purpose of communicating or negotiating openly and directly with the enemy commander. 47
42
LIEBER CODE art. 114 (If it be discovered, and fairly proved, that a flag of truce has been abused for
surreptitiously obtaining military knowledge, the bearer of the flag thus abusing his sacred character is deemed a
spy. So sacred is the character of a flag of truce, and so necessary is its sacredness, that while its abuse is an
especially heinous offense, great caution is requisite, on the other hand, in convicting the bearer of a flag of truce as
a spy.); 1958 UK MANUAL 416 (It is also an abuse of the flag of truce to use a white flag for the purpose of
making the enemy believe that a parlementaire is about to be sent when there is no such intention, and to carry out
operations under the protection granted by the enemy to the pretended flag of truce.).
43
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 458 (The enemy is not required to cease firing when a white flag is
raised.); LIEBER CODE art. 112 (Firing is not required to cease on the appearance of a flag of truce in battle.).
44
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 458 (It is essential, therefore, to determine with reasonable certainty that
the flag is shown by actual authority of the enemy commander before basing important action upon that
assumption.).
45
For example, 2004 UK MANUAL 10.5.2 footnote 10 (A British officer was killed at Goose Green during the
Falklands conflict 1982 when moving towards a white flag. The shots were not fired by those displaying the white
flag, but by others in the vicinity.); SPAIGHT, WAR RIGHTS ON LAND 92-93 (At Spion-Kop, some of the British
troops in an advanced trench on the mountain held up handkerchiefs in token of surrender, and the Boers came
forward to take them prisoners; they were fired upon by the other British soldiers, and some of them and also some
of the prisoners were shot. Presidents Kruger and Steyn protested against this abuse of the white flag, but the
protest cannot be upheld. For the particular men who put up the signal of surrender to have fired on their captors
would have been treachery, but their comrades were not bound by their action; the surrender was not authorised and
the main body of the British troops on the hill were perfectly entitled to disregard it and to fire both on their own
men who surrendered and on the enemy disarming them.).
46
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 461 (Fire should not be intentionally directed on parlementaires or those
accompanying them.); 1958 UK MANUAL 396 (Fire must not be directed intentionally on the person carrying the
white flag or on persons near him.).
829
12.5.1.1 Parlementaire Notes on Terminology. The term parlementaire is
derived from parley and was adopted by governments at the First Hague Peace Conference in
1899. 48 These provisions were repeated in the 1907 Hague IV Regulations.
47
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 459 (Parlementaires are agents employed by commanders of belligerent
forces in the field, to go in person within the enemy lines, for the purpose of communicating or negotiating openly
and directly with the enemy commander.).
48
1958 UK MANUAL 389 (The usual agents in the non-hostile intercourse of belligerent armies are known as
parlementaires.); 1958 UK MANUAL 389 note 1 (It has been thought desirable to adopt this term, for which the
ancient verb to parley would seem good authority, from the Hague Rules; it is current in other armies, in addition
to the expression flag of truce. The use of the latter term by British manuals in the past to mean sometimes both
the envoy and the emblem, sometimes only the envoy, and at other times the envoy and his attendants, has given rise
to some confusion. The use of the expression bearer of a flag of truce to signify the principal agent is also
misleading, as he is seldom the actual bearer of the flag.).
49
HAGUE IV REG. art. 32.
50
1914 RULES OF LAND WARFARE 235 note 1 (The adoption of the word parlementaire to designate and
distinguish the agent or envoy seems absolutely essential in order to avoid confusion and because all other nations,
including Great Britain, utilize the word. In the past this word has been translated at times to mean the agent or
envoy only, at other times the agent and emblem, or both. To call the parlementaire the bearer of a flag of truce is
not in reality correct, because he seldom, if ever, actually carries it.).
51
HAGUE IV REG. art. 32 (A person is regarded as bearing a flag of truce who has been authorized by one of the
belligerents to enter into communication with the other, and who advances bearing a white flag.).
52
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 462 (Parlementaires must be duly authorized in a written instrument
signed by the commander of the forces.).
53
HAGUE IV REG. art. 32 (A person is regarded as bearing a flag of truce who has been authorized by one of the
belligerents to enter into communication with the other, and who advances bearing a white flag. He has a right to
inviolability, as well as the trumpeter, bugler or drummer, the flag-bearer and interpreter who may accompany
him.).
830
include, for example, a driver and communications personnel, and they would take similar
measures to make their status and purpose clear to the other side. 54
A commander may declare the formalities and conditions upon which he or she will
receive a parlementaire and fix the hour and place at which the parlementaire must appear. 58
The receiving commander may set the details of the meeting, such as the time, place, number of
persons accompanying the parlementaire, authorized method of transport (e.g., foot or vehicle),
and the frequency of meetings if more than one will take place. For example, the receiving
commander may limit the size of the parlementaires party and need not allow an unnecessary
repetition of parlementaire visits. 59
Although commanders may refuse to receive parlementaires and other enemy envoys
seeking to negotiate, commanders may not refuse the unconditional surrender of the adversary or
declare that they will refuse unconditional surrender. 60
12.5.3 Duties and Liabilities of the Parlementaire. Persons who display a white flag
during combat accept the risk that they might be inadvertently wounded or killed while
attempting to communicate with opposing forces. 61 Parlementaires bear the burden of
54
See also 2004 UK MANUAL 10.4 footnote 5 (Although the reference here is to trumpeter, bugler or drummer,
the flag bearer and interpreter who may accompany him, in modern warfare, the party is more likely to consist of a
driver and radio operator, together with an interpreter. The interpreter will not necessarily be a member of the
armed forces and may be a civilian. The white flag will most likely be attached to the vehicle conveying the
party.).
55
HAGUE IV REG. art. 33 (The commander to whom a flag of truce is sent is not in all cases obliged to receive it.).
See also LIEBER CODE art. 111 (The bearer of a flag of truce cannot insist upon being admitted. He must always be
admitted with great caution. Unnecessary frequency is carefully to be avoided.).
56
1958 UK MANUAL 398 (The commander to whom a parlementaire is sent is not obliged to receive him in every
case. There may be a movement in progress the success of which depends on secrecy, or owing to the state of the
defences, it may be considered undesirable to allow an envoy to approach a besieged locality.).
57
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 464 (The present rule is that a belligerent may not declare beforehand,
even for a specified period -- except in case of reprisal for abuses of the flag of truce -- that he will not receive
parlementaires.).
58
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 464 (A commander may declare the formalities and conditions upon
which he will receive a parlementaire and fix the hour and place at which he must appear.).
59
See, e.g., 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 464 (An unnecessary repetition of visits need not be allowed.);
LIEBER CODE art. 111 (Unnecessary frequency is carefully to be avoided.).
60
Refer to 5.5.7 (Prohibition Against Declaring That No Quarter Be Given); 5.10.3 (Persons Who Have
Surrendered).
61
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 461 (If, however, the parlementaires or those near them present
themselves during an engagement and are killed or wounded, it furnishes no ground for complaint.); LIEBER CODE
831
communicating their status to the enemy. 62 They should take appropriate measures to help
clarify their status to enemy forces. For example, the parlementaires party should move slowly
and deliberately so that it is not inadvertently attacked. 63
While within the lines of the enemy, the parlementaire must obey all instructions given
to him or her. The parlementaire may be required to deliver his or her message to a subordinate
of the commander. 64
art. 113 (If the bearer of a flag of truce, presenting himself during an engagement, is killed or wounded, it furnishes
no ground of complaint whatever.). Refer to 5.12.3.2 (Harm to Certain Individuals Who May Be Employed In or
On Military Objectives).
62
See 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 461 (It is the duty of the parlementaire to select a propitious moment
for displaying his flag, such as during the intervals of active operations, and to avoid dangerous zones by making a
detour.); 1958 UK MANUAL 396 (It is for the parlementaire to wait until there is a propitious moment, or to make
a detour to avoid a dangerous zone.).
63
See 1958 UK MANUAL 402 note 1 (Unfortunate incidents may occur if the parlementaire arrives at or leaves the
enemy lines at speed as he may draw fire before he is recognised.).
64
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 464 (While within the lines of the enemy, the parlementaire must obey all
instructions given him. He may be required to deliver his message to a subordinate of the commander.).
65
HAGUE IV REG. art. 32 (A person is regarded as bearing a flag of truce who has been authorized by one of the
belligerents to enter into communication with the other, and who advances bearing a white flag. He has a right to
inviolability, as well as the trumpeter, bugler or drummer, the flag-bearer and interpreter who may accompany
him.).
66
George H. Williams, Attorney General, The Modoc Indian Prisoners, Jun. 7, 1873, 14 OPINIONS OF THE
ATTORNEY GENERAL 249, 250 (1875) (According to the laws of war there is nothing more sacred than a flag of
truce dispatched in good faith, and there can be no greater act of perfidy and treachery than the assassination of its
bearers after they have been acknowledged and received by those to whom they are sent.).
67
HAGUE IV REG. art. 33 ([The commander to whom a flag of truce is sent] may take all the necessary steps to
prevent the envoy taking advantage of his mission to obtain information.).
68
SPAIGHT, WAR RIGHTS ON LAND 217-18 ([I]t is no indignity for a parlementaire, however high his rank, to have
his eyes bandaged.).
69
HAGUE IV REG. art. 34 (The envoy loses his rights of inviolability if it is proved in a clear and incontestable
manner that he has taken advantage of his privileged position to provoke or commit an act of treachery.).
832
Such acts of treachery include sabotage or the secret gathering of information about the
adversary while under the adversarys protection. 70
A parlementaire does not commit an act of treachery if he or she reports what he or she
observed in plain sight during his or her mission. 71
In addition to the right of detention for abuse of his or her position, a parlementaire may
be detained for other imperative security reasons. For example, a parlementaire admitted during
an engagement may be detained pending the conclusion of the immediate fighting. 73 In addition,
a parlementaire may be detained in case he or she has seen anything that may be detrimental to
the enemy, or otherwise obtained such knowledge, or if the envoys departure would reveal
information on the movement of forces. 74
70
1958 UK MANUAL 410 note 1 (Examples of a parlementaire abusing his position are the making of sketch maps
or taking photographs of defense positions and the secret gathering of information.).
71
1958 UK MANUAL 408 (A parlementaire is not, however, forbidden to observe, and afterwards report, what his
enemy does not hide.); SPAIGHT, WAR RIGHTS ON LAND 219 (It is for the commander who receives the flag of
truce to ensure that the bearer gains no information, whether by sight or speech, and if he fails to take the requisite
precautions, it is palpably unjust to treat the envoys offense, for which his (the commanders) contributory
negligence is partly to blame, as the very grave offence of spying.).
72
HAGUE IV REG. art. 33 (The commander to whom a flag of truce is sent is not in all cases obliged to receive it.
He may take all the necessary steps to prevent the envoy taking advantage of his mission to obtain information. In
case of abuse, he has the right to detain the envoy temporarily.).
73
LIEBER CODE art. 112 (If the bearer of a flag of truce offer himself during an engagement, he can be admitted as
a very rare exception only. It is no breach of good faith to retain such flag of truce, if admitted during the
engagement.).
74
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 465 (In addition to the right of detention for abuse of his position, a
parlementaire may be detained in case he has seen anything or obtained knowledge which may be detrimental to the
enemy, or if his departure would reveal information on the movement of troops.); 1958 UK MANUAL 412
(According to the Hague Rules a commander has the right to detain a parlementaire temporarily if the latter abuses
his position. In addition, a commander has, by a customary rule of international law, the right to retain a
parlementaire so long as circumstances require, if the latter has seen anything, knowledge of which might have
adverse consequences for the receiving forces, or if his departure would coincide with movements of forces whose
destination or employment he might guess. See Hague Rules 33.).
75
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 465 (He should be detained only so long as circumstances imperatively
demand, and information should be sent at once to his commander as to such detention, as well as of any other
action taken against him or against his party.).
833
agreement of the parties be set aside for the site of the negotiations. 76 The belligerents may
agree that no combat activity will take place within or over the area, and that forces will be
detailed to maintain the security of the area. 77 The area designated as neutral on maps
interchanged by representatives of the belligerents may be marked with searchlights, balloons,
and other devices to ensure that it will not be attacked. 78
Other appropriate measures may also be agreed upon to facilitate negotiations. For
example, special signals that the parlementaires party should give or routes that the
parlementaires party must take may be agreed upon to help identify the parlementaires party to
the opposing forces.
76
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 468 (If it is anticipated that negotiations between belligerents may be
prolonged, a neutralized area may by agreement of the parties be set aside for the site of the negotiations.). For
example, Howard S. Levie, How it All Started and How it Ended: A Legal Study of the Korean War, 35 AKRON
LAW REVIEW 205, 223 (2002) (Negotiations for an armistice began at Kaesong on July 10, 1951. Shortly
thereafter, the negotiations were moved to Panmunjom at the insistence of the UNC because Kaesong, which had
been between the two lines at the time of the negotiations of the liaison officers, had been occupied by the
Communists and they presumed to dictate who could enter the area, while Panmunjom was located in a zone
between territories occupied by the two sides. It was declared a neutral zone as were Kaesong (the Communist
Armistice Delegation headquarters), Munsan-ni (the UNC Armistice Delegation headquarters), and the roads
leading from each Delegation headquarters to Panmunjom.).
77
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 468 (The belligerents may agree that no combat activity will take place
within or over the area and that forces will be detailed to maintain the security of the area.).
78
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 468 (The area designated as neutral on maps interchanged by
representatives of the belligerents may be marked with searchlights, balloons, and other devices to insure that it will
not be attacked.).
79
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 454 (Persons within an area occupied by a belligerent may be protected
from molestation or interference through military passports, safe-conducts, and safeguards. These devices are a
matter of international law only when granted or posted by arrangement with the enemy.); 1958 UK MANUAL 495
(Safeguards, like passports and safe-conducts, fall within the scope of international law only when posted by
arrangement with the enemy.).
80
1958 UK MANUAL 490 (The expressions pass and permit have in recent years been employed in the place of
the older terms passport and safe-conduct, with, as a rule, the same distinction, although pass has sometimes
meant a general permission to do certain things, while permit has been confined to permission to do a particular
act.).
834
The terms military passport and safe-conduct have to some degree been used
interchangeably, but military passport generally has been used in a broader sense than safe-
conduct. 81
Ultimately, however, the purpose of the document will be more important than the
nomenclature in deciding the nature of the document issued. 82
Unlike a passport for peacetime travel, such as a passport issued by the U.S. State
Department, a military passport would be issued under a commanders authority to regulate
commerce and travel within territory controlled by his or her forces. 84
12.6.3 Safe Conduct. Documents like passports, issued by the same authority and for
similar purposes to persons residing or traveling outside of the occupied areas who desire to
enter and remain within or pass through such areas, are called safe-conducts. 85 Similar
documents issued by the same authority to persons residing within or without the occupied areas
to permit them to carry specified goods to or from designated places within those areas, and to
engage in trade otherwise forbidden by the general rule of non-intercourse, are also called safe-
conducts. 86 Safe-conducts for goods in which the grantee is given a continuing right for a
81
SPAIGHT WAR RIGHTS ON LAND 230 (A safe-conduct or passport is a written authority issued by a
commander to one or more individuals, allowing him or them to pass through districts occupied by his forces. The
terms appear to be convertible, though some would make the passport confer a more extended liberty of movement
than the safe-conduct, which they would confine to an authority to come to a specified place for a specified
object.).
82
2004 UK MANUAL 10.35.1 (Arrangements are sometimes made between a military commander and an
individual national or group of nationals belonging to the adverse party or to a neutral state. Such arrangements may
be in the form of passports or safe conducts. Nomenclature is not significant in deciding the nature of the document
issued. In fact, occasionally, the term pass or permit has been used. The decisive factor is the purpose for which
the document has been issued, and not its terminology.).
83
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 455 (A military passport is a document issued by order of a commander
of belligerent forces, authorizing a person or persons named therein, residing or sojourning within territory occupied
by such forces, to travel unmolested within such territory, with or without permission to pass, or to pass and return,
by designated routes, through the lines, subject to such further conditions and limitations as the commander may
prescribe.).
84
Refer to 5.19.1.1 (Belligerent Authority to Exercise Control in the Immediate Vicinity of Military Operations);
11.4.1 (Right of the Occupying Power to Govern the Enemy Territory Temporarily).
85
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 456 (Documents like passports, issued by the same authority and for
similar purposes, to persons residing or sojourning outside of the occupied areas, who desire to enter and remain
within or pass through such areas, are called safe-conducts.).
86
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 456 (Similar documents, issued by the same authority, to persons residing
within or without the occupied areas, to permit them to carry specified goods to or from designated places within
those areas, and to engage in trade otherwise forbidden by the general rule of nonintercourse, are also called safe-
conducts.).
835
prescribed period, or until further orders, to engage in the specified trade, are sometimes called
licenses to trade. 87
87
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 456 (Safe-conducts for goods in which the grantee is given a continuing
right for a prescribed period, or until further orders, to engage in the specified trade, are sometimes called licenses to
trade.); 1958 UK MANUAL 489 (A safe-conduct may, however, also be given for goods, and it then comprises
permission for such good to be carried unmolested from or to a certain place, for instance from or into a besieged
town.).
88
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 456 (Ambassadors and other diplomatic agents of neutral powers,
accredited to the enemy, may receive safe-conducts through the territories occupied by the belligerents, unless there
are military reasons to the contrary and unless they may reach the place of their destination conveniently by another
route.); LIEBER CODE art. 87 (Ambassadors, and all other diplomatic agents of neutral powers, accredited to the
enemy, may receive safe-conducts through the territories occupied by the belligerents, unless there are military
reasons to the contrary, and unless they may reach the place of their destination conveniently by another route.).
89
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 456 (There is, however, no legal requirement that such safe-conducts be
issued. Safe-conducts of this nature are usually given by the supreme authority of the State and not by subordinate
officers.); LIEBER CODE art. 87 (It implies no international affront if the safe-conduct is declined. Such passes are
usually given by the supreme authority of the State, and not by subordinate officers.).
90
1914 RULES OF LAND WARFARE 281 note 1 (Licenses to trade must, as a general rule, emanate from the
supreme authority of the State.).
91
Refer to 12.1.1 (Traditional Rule of Non-Intercourse During War).
92
1914 RULES OF LAND WARFARE 281 (A general license relaxes the exercise of the rights of war, generally or
partially, in relation to any community or individuals liable to be affected by their operation.).
93
1914 RULES OF LAND WARFARE 281 (A special license is one given to individuals for a particular voyage or
journey for the importation or exportation of particular goods.).
836
12.6.3.3 Safe-Conducts Contemplated by the 1949 Geneva Conventions. Certain
safe-conduct protection may be granted by special agreements contemplated in the 1949 Geneva
Conventions. Such agreements include:
agreements for the removal and passage of certain personnel, such as vulnerable civilians,
from besieged areas; 94
agreements for the passage of medical aircraft for the transport of the military or civilian
wounded and sick; 97
agreements for the safe passage of chartered medical transport ships; 98 and
agreements for the special transport of relief shipments for POWs or civilian internees. 99
12.6.4 Safeguard. A safeguard may refer to a detachment of forces posted for the
protection of, or a written instrument affording protection by a belligerent to, enemy or neutral
persons or property.
A safeguard falls within the law of war, however, only when granted and posted by
arrangement with the enemy or a neutral. For example, guards or written orders posted by a
belligerent for the protection of its own personnel or property would not be governed by the law
of war. 100
The effect of a safeguard is to pledge the honor of the nation that the person or property
will be respected by its armed forces. 101 It does not commit the government to its protection or
defense against attacks by enemy armed forces or other hostile elements.
94
Refer to 5.19.2 (Removal and Passage of Certain Personnel Vulnerable Civilians, Diplomatic and Consular
Personnel, the Wounded and Sick, and Medical Personnel).
95
Refer to 5.19.3 (Passage of Relief Consignments).
96
Refer to 7.4.3.1 (Armistices and Local Arrangements to Permit the Removal, Exchange, or Transport of the
Wounded).
97
Refer to 7.14 (Military Medical Aircraft); 7.19 (Civilian Medical Aircraft).
98
Refer to 7.13 (Chartered Medical Transport Ships).
99
Refer to 9.20.5 (Special Means of Transport of Shipments to POWs); 10.23.5 (Special Means of Transport of
Shipments to Internees).
100
MANUAL FOR COURTS-MARTIAL IV-39 (26.c.(1)) (2012) (A safeguard is not a device adopted by a belligerent
to protect its own property or nationals or to ensure order within its own forces, even if those forces are in a theater
of combat operations, and the posting of guards or of off-limits signs does not establish a safeguard unless a
commander takes those actions to protect enemy or neutral persons or property.).
101
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 457 (The effect of a safeguard is to pledge the honor of the nation that
the person or property shall be respected by the national armed forces.).
837
Safeguards have been used to protect cultural property or other civilian property or
personnel meriting special protection. 102
Combatants serving as safeguards occupy a protected status. 104 They may not be
attacked, and it is customary to send them back, together with their equipment and arms, to their
own armed forces when the locality is occupied by the enemy and as soon as military exigencies
permit. 105
12.6.4.2 Written Safeguard. The term safeguard also refers to a written order left
by a commander with an enemy subject, or posted upon enemy property, for the protection of
that person or property. 106 It is usually directed to the succeeding commander and requests a
grant of protection. 107
102
For example, SPAIGHT, WAR RIGHTS ON LAND 231 (The object of a safeguard is generally to protect museums,
historic monuments or the like; occasionally to show respect for a distinguished enemy, as in the case of the
safeguard which McClellan placed over Mrs. R. E. Lees residence, White House, Virginia, in 1862. When allies
invaded France in 1814, the Emperor Alexander of Russia honoured himself and Poland by his graceful act in
assigning a guard of honour of Polish soldiers to protect the house of Kosciusko -- then living, almost as a peasant,
near Troyes -- from pillage and contribution.).
103
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 457 (A safeguard is a detachment, guard, or detail posted by a
commander for the protection of persons, places, or property of the enemy, or of a neutral.).
104
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 457 (Soldiers on duty as safeguards occupy a protected status.).
105
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 457 (They may not be attacked, and it is customary to send them back,
together with their equipment and arms, to their own army when the locality is occupied by the enemy and as soon
as military exigencies permit.).
106
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 457 (The term also includes a written order left by a commander with an
enemy subject or posted upon enemy property for the protection of the individual or property concerned.).
107
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 457 (It is usually directed to the succeeding commander and requests the
grant of protection.).
108
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 457 (The violation of a safeguard is a grave violation of the law of war
and, if committed by a person subject to the Uniform Code of Military Justice, is punishable under Article 102
thereof with death or such other punishment as a court-martial may direct.).
109
See 10 U.S.C. 902 (Any person subject to this chapter who forces a safeguard shall suffer death or such other
punishment as a court-martial may direct.).
110
MANUAL FOR COURTS-MARTIAL IV-39 (26.c.(2)) (2012) (Forcing a safeguard means to perform an act or acts
in violation of the protection of the safeguard.).
838
12.6.5 Revocation of Passports, Safe-Conducts, and Similar Documents. In general,
passports, as well as safe-conducts, may be revoked for good reasons of military expediency by
the person who issued them or that persons superior officer. Revocation must never be used as
a means of detaining the holder, who is always allowed to withdraw in safety. 111
In addition, if the holder commits any wrongful act, such as using the opportunity given
by a passport or safe-conduct to obtain military information or if the holder exceeds its terms, the
privilege may be withdrawn. 112
12.7 CARTELS
In its narrower sense, a cartel is an agreement entered into by opposing belligerents for
the exchange of POWs. 113 In its broader sense, it is any convention concluded between
belligerents for the purpose of arranging or regulating certain kinds of non-hostile intercourse
that would otherwise be prohibited by reason of the existence of the armed conflict (e.g., postal
communication or trade in certain goods or commodities). 114
Both parties to a cartel are honor bound to observe its provisions scrupulously. A cartel
is voidable by a party upon definite proof that it has been intentionally violated in an important
particular by the other party. 115
111
1958 UK MANUAL 493 (Passports, as well as safe-conducts, may be revoked for good reasons of military
expediency by the person who issued them or his superior officer. Until revoked, however, they are binding not
only upon the person who granted them, but also upon his successors. The reasons for revocation need not be given,
but revocation must never be used as a means of detaining the holder, who is always allowed to withdraw in safety.
Such passports and safe-conducts as have been granted only for a limited time cease to be valid with the expiration
of the period designated.).
112
1958 UK MANUAL 494 (If the holder commits any wrongful act, such as using the opportunity given by a
passport or safe-conduct to obtain military information or if he exceeds its terms, the privilege may be withdrawn.).
113
Refer to 9.35.1 (Exchange of POWs During Hostilities Through Cartel Agreements).
114
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 469 (In its narrower sense, a cartel is an agreement entered into by
belligerents for the exchange of prisoners of war. In its broader sense, it is any convention concluded between
belligerents for the purpose of arranging or regulating certain kinds of nonhostile intercourse otherwise prohibited
by reason of the existence of the war.).
115
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 469 (Both parties to a cartel are in honor bound to observe its provisions
with the most scrupulous care, but it is voidable by either party upon definite proof that it has been intentionally
violated in an important particular by the other party.).
116
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 470 (A capitulation is an agreement entered into between commanders of
belligerent forces for the surrender of a body of troops, a fortress, or other defended locality, or of a district of the
theater of operations.); 1958 UK MANUAL 462 (Capitulations are agreements entered into between the
commanders of armed forces or belligerents concerning the terms of surrender of a body of troops, of a defended
town or place, or of a particular district of the theatre of war. Surrenders of territory are sometimes designated as
839
example, a capitulation agreement could involve the surrender of a small unit, such as a squad,
platoon, company, or battalion, or the surrender of larger forces, such as a division or corps. 117
The surrender of military forces also may be arranged between belligerents at national
levels without the involvement of military commanders, and possibly through third parties. A
capitulation agreement may be negotiated between opposing military forces in local
implementation of a surrender negotiated at national levels.
evacuations.); SPAIGHT, WAR RIGHTS ON LAND 249 (A capitulation is a military convention which puts an end,
with or without conditions, to the resistance of a body of troops shut up in a fortress or surrounded in the field.).
117
For example, Captain M. Scott Holcomb, View from the Legal Frontlines, 4 CHICAGO JOURNAL OF
INTERNATIONAL LAW 561, 568 (2003) (As of this writing, at the end of April 2003, only a few capitulation
agreements have been signed. All of them were entered into after combat began, instead of before. Most
noteworthy, Colonel Curtis Potts, Commander of the Fourth Brigade of the Third Infantry Division, entered into a
capitulation agreement with Iraqi General Mohamad Jarawi for the surrender of the Iraqi Armys Anbar sector
command, which encompassed sixteen thousand soldiers.).
118
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 470 (A surrender may be effected without resort to a capitulation.).
119
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 478 (An unconditional surrender is one in which a body of troops gives
itself up to its enemy without condition. It need not be effected on the basis of an instrument signed by both parties.
Subject to the restrictions of the law of war, the surrendered troops are governed by the directions of the State to
which they surrender.).
120
For example, Japan, Instrument of Surrender, Sept. 2, 1945, 59 STAT. 1733, 1734 (We hereby proclaim the
unconditional surrender to the Allied Powers of the Japanese Imperial General Headquarters and of all Japanese
armed forces and all armed forces under Japanese control wherever situated.); German High Command, Act of
Military Surrender, May 7, 1945, 59 STAT. 1857, 1858 (1. We the undersigned, acting by authority of the German
High Command, hereby surrender unconditionally to the Supreme Commander, Allied Expeditionary Force and
simultaneously to the Soviet High Command all forces on land, sea, and in the air who are at this date under German
control.).
121
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 472 (Subject to the limitations hereinafter indicated, the commander of
troops is presumed to be duly authorized to enter into capitulations.).
840
communicate with his or her superiors, under the law of war he or she may assume that he or she
has authority to surrender his or her forces or position. 122
However, a commanding officers powers generally do not extend beyond the forces and
territory under his or her command. 123 Thus, a commander may not surrender forces that are not
under his or her command. Similarly, unless so authorized by his or her government, a
commander lacks the authority to bind his or her government to a permanent cession of the place
or places under his or her command, to surrender sovereignty over territory, or to agree to other
terms of a political nature or such as will take effect after the termination of hostilities. 124
However, capitulation agreements that have been concluded by political authorities may include
such terms. 125
A State is not bound by the terms of a capitulation agreement that it has not authorized its
commanders to conclude and may repudiate such terms. 126 For example, a State would not be
bound to honor political conditions accepted by a capitulating commander or by a commander
accepting capitulation, if those commanders lack such authority. 127
12.8.2.1 Surrenders Contrary to Domestic Law or Superior Orders. The fact that
a commander surrenders in violation of orders or the law of his or her own State does not impair
122
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 472 (In the case of a commander of a military force of the United States,
if continued battle has become impossible and he cannot communicate with his superiors, these facts will constitute
proper authority to surrender.).
123
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 472 (A commanding officers powers do not extend beyond the forces
and territory under his command.); 1958 UK MANUAL 466 (The competence of a commander to accept
conditions of capitulation is limited to the troops immediately under his command and does not necessarily extend to
detached forces.).
124
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 472 (Unless so authorized by his government, he does not possess power
to bind his government to a permanent cession of the place or places under his command, or to any surrender of
sovereignty over territory, or to any cessation of hostilities in a district beyond his command, or to agree to terms of
a political nature or such as will take effect after the termination of hostilities.); Trial of Hans Albin Rauter,
Judgment, XIV U.N. LAW REPORTS 89, 125 (Netherlands Special Court in S-Gravenhage (The Hague), May 4,
1948) (According to international law a capitulation treaty is a pact between commanders of belligerent forces for
the surrender of certain troops or certain parts of the country, towns or fortresses, and as such must be scrupulously
fulfilled; the commander who concludes such a pact cannot, however, be considered empowered to bind his
government to a permanent cession of territory, to a cessation of hostilities in territories which do not come under
his command or, in general, to provisions of a political nature; such provisions are binding in a capitulation treaty
only if they are ratified by the governments of both belligerents.).
125
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 473 (The surrender of a place or force may also be arranged by the
political authorities of the belligerents without the intervention of the military authorities. In this case the
capitulation may contain other than military stipulations.).
126
1958 UK MANUAL 467 (Similarly, the competence of a commander to grant conditions of capitulation is
limited to those the fulfilment of which depends entirely upon the forces under his command. If he agrees, without
the instruction of his government, to conditions the granting of which is not implied in his powers, or the fulfilment
of which depends upon forces other than his own, and upon superior officers, the conditions may be repudiated.).
127
WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW & PRECEDENTS 787 (A capitulation is of course subject to be disapproved and
annulled by the Government of either commander. Thus the Sherman-Johnston capitulation of April, 1865, was
repudiated by the Government at Washington because of its assuming to deal with political issues.).
841
the validity of the surrender. 128 Commanders who surrender in violation of orders or the law of
their own State may be punished by their State.
Under the Code of Conduct for U.S. armed forces, a commander must never surrender
the members of his or her command while they still have the means to resist. 129 Under the
Uniform Code of Military Justice, shameful surrenders are punishable. In addition, compelling
or attempting to compel a commander to surrender or striking colors or flag to an enemy without
proper authority is punishable. 130
12.8.3 Rules of Military Honor. Capitulations agreed upon between belligerents must
take into account the rules of military honor. 131
Conditions involving unnecessary disgrace or ignominy should not be insisted upon. 132
Capitulations may include the right of the capitulating forces to surrender with colors displayed
or other indications of professional respect for the capitulating forces. 133 For example, it may be
appropriate to allow surrendering officers to keep their side arms. 134
Even if the capitulation does not explicitly have such provisions, the capitulation
agreement should be executed with honor and respect for the adversary. Treating the adversary
honorably diminishes psychological stigma from capitulation and thereby provides an incentive
for the adversary to capitulate rather than fight on without any chance of success.
128
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 472 (The fact that any commander surrenders in violation of orders or the
law of his own State does not impair the validity of the surrender.).
129
Refer to 9.39.1.2 (Code of Conduct Article II).
130
Refer to 9.39.1.2 (Code of Conduct Article II).
131
HAGUE IV REG. art. 35 (Capitulations agreed upon between the contracting parties must take into account the
rules of military honour.).
132
WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW & PRECEDENTS 786 (Capitulation. This is an agreement for the surrender of an
army, or of a fortified place, of which the terms are settled by the belligerent commanders. In the Project of the
Brussels Conference it is prescribed that these conditions should not be contrary to military honor. That is to say,
conditions involving unnecessary disgrace or ignominy should not be insisted upon.).
133
1958 UK MANUAL 475 (The expression with the honors of war, which is sometimes used in capitulations, is
usually construed to include the right to march out with colors displayed, bayonets fixed, etc., but the details of such
arrangements should be precisely stated in the articles [of capitulation].).
134
Refer to 12.9.2.2 (Disarmament of Surrendered Forces).
135
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 474 (There is no specified form for capitulations. They may be
concluded either orally or in writing, but in order to avoid disputes, they should be reduced to writing. The
842
12.8.5 General Effect of Capitulation. The general effect of concluding a capitulation
agreement is that of an unconditional surrender. In other words, absent specific terms in the
capitulation agreement to the contrary, the capitulation agreement should be understood to create
the effect of an unconditional surrender by the capitulating party. 136
The capitulating party must generally cease operations and maintain the military status
quo at the time in which the capitulation becomes effective. 137 For example, the capitulating
forces must not engage in offensive operations against opposing forces. 138 Similarly, although
forces may destroy their own weapons and intelligence information to prevent them from falling
into the hands of the enemy before they capitulate, after the capitulation is effective, the
capitulating forces must abstain from all destruction and damage to their own facilities and
equipment, unless expressly permitted by the capitulation agreement. 139 The capturing side is
free to confiscate as war booty or, at its discretion, destroy the weapons, ammunition, and
military equipment of the capitulating side. 140
12.9.1 Scope of Surrendered Forces and Territory and Time of Surrender. The
capitulation agreement may specify the force or territory that is surrendered and the exact time
when the surrender is to take effect. If a place or area is surrendered, provisions relative to the
withdrawal of the defenders from it and the entering into possession of it by the victorious forces
may also be specified in the agreement.
agreement should contain in precise terms every condition to be observed on either side, excepting such conditions
as are clearly imposed by the laws of war. Details of time and procedure should be prescribed in the most exact and
unequivocal language. Even in case of an unconditional surrender, when the terms are dictated by the victor, they
should nevertheless be embodied in a written capitulation as soon as practicable.).
136
Refer to 5.10.3 (Persons Who Have Surrendered).
137
SPAIGHT, WAR RIGHTS ON LAND 253-54 (The same principles which apply to the matriel of a fortress which
has capitulated are applicable also in the case of the personnel. Once the capitulation is signed, the position is
stereotyped and fixed; the status quo of the moment of signature must be honourably maintained. The victorious
belligerent is justified in expecting that not only the matriel but the personnel of the capitulating force shall be
handed over to him in accordance with the terms of the convention.).
138
Refer to 5.10.3.2 (Clear and Unconditional).
139
SPAIGHT, WAR RIGHTS ON LAND 251-52 (A commander who has brought a fortress to the point of capitulating,
may make the non-destruction of property during the negotiations a condition for granting better terms, and it may
suit the besiegeds interests to meet him in the matter. In the absence of such a special arrangement, the
commandant has a perfect right to dispose as he chooses of his matriel up to the moment of the signing of the act of
capitulation.).
140
Refer to 5.17.3 (Enemy Movable Property on the Battlefield (War Booty)).
843
A commanders competence to capitulate is limited to forces under his or her
command. 141 To avoid misunderstandings, capitulation should state the forces to be surrendered
and to what extent detached forces and personnel are included in the surrender of the main
body. 142
12.9.2 Disposition of Surrendered Forces. The capitulation instrument may specify the
movements and administration of the surrendered forces after the surrender.
In general, surrendering military forces and others entitled to POW status who fall into
the power of the enemy during international armed conflict become POWs under the GPW.
Similarly, the disposition of surrendered medical personnel and the wounded and sick belonging
to the surrendered party would be addressed by the GWS and GWS-Sea. Insofar as matters are
addressed by those treaties, there is little need for similar provisions in a capitulation instrument.
However, special circumstances, such as inability of the victor to guard, evacuate, and
maintain large numbers of POWs or to occupy the area in which enemy military forces are
present, may justify the victorious commander in allowing the defeated force to remain in its
present positions, to withdraw, or to disperse after having been disarmed and having given their
paroles, provided that the giving of paroles is not forbidden by the laws of their own country and
that they are willing to give their paroles. 143
12.9.2.1 Orders Given by the Victor. It is normally stipulated that the orders of
the victorious commander will be scrupulously carried out by the surrendered forces and that
those who fail to comply with such orders or with the terms of the surrender itself may be
punished. 144
141
Refer to 12.8.2 (Authority of Commanders to Conclude Capitulation Agreements).
142
1958 UK MANUAL 466 (To avoid misunderstandings, capitulations should invariably state to what extent
detached forces and outlying defences are included in the surrender of the main body.).
143
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 475b (However, special circumstances, such as inability of the victor to
guard, evacuate, and maintain large numbers of prisoners of war or to occupy the area in which enemy military
forces are present, may justify the victorious commander in allowing the defeated force to remain in its present
positions, to withdraw, or to disperse after having been disarmed and having given their paroles, provided that the
giving of paroles is not forbidden by the laws of their own country and that they are willing to give their paroles (see
par. 185).).
144
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 475j (Orders given by the victor. It is normally stipulated that the orders
of the victorious commander will be scrupulously carried out by the surrendered forces and that those who fail to
comply with such orders or with the terms of the surrender itself will be severely punished.). For example,
Instrument of Surrender of all German armed forces in Holland, in North West Germany, including all islands, and
in Denmark, May 4, 1945, 3-4, reprinted in The Scuttled U-Boats Case, Trial of Oberleutnant Gerhard Grumpelt,
I U.N. LAW REPORTS 55, 57 (British Military Court Held at Hamburg, Germany, Feb. 12-13, 1946) (3. The German
Command to carry out at once, and without argument or comment, all further orders that will be issued by the Allied
Powers on any subject. 4. Disobedience of orders, or failure to comply with them, will be regarded as a breach of
these surrender terms and will be dealt with by the Allied Powers in accordance with the accepted laws and usages
of war.).
844
that has surrendered. Officers have sometimes been allowed to retain their side arms. 145 In
addition, POWs are allowed to keep certain articles under the GPW. 146
12.9.4 Minefields and Other Defensive Measures. The provision of facilities and of
information on such matters as minefields and other defensive measures may be addressed in a
capitulation. 148
12.9.5 Civil Administration of the Area Concerned. The civil administration of the area
concerned, if a place or area is surrendered, may also be addressed in a capitulation.
Once capitulation agreements have been made, they must be scrupulously observed by all
149
parties.
145
For example, WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW & PRECEDENTS 787 (In the capitulation between Gens. Grant and Lee,
of April, 1865, in providing for the surrender of military property, it is addedThis will not embrace the side arms
of the officers, nor their private horses nor baggage.).
146
Refer to 9.7 (POW Effects and Articles of Personal Use).
147
For example, Japan, Instrument of Surrender, Sept. 2, 1945, 59 STAT. 1733, 1734 (We hereby command the
Japanese Imperial Government and the Japanese Imperial General Headquarters at once to liberate all allied
prisoners of war and civilian internees now under Japanese control and to provide for their protection, care,
maintenance and immediate transportation to places as directed.).
148
For example, Instrument of Surrender of Italy, Sept. 29, 1943, 61 STAT. 2742, 2743-44 (10. The Italian Supreme
Command will make available all information about naval, military and air devices, installations, and defences,
about all transport and inter-communication systems established by Italy or her allies on Italian territory or in the
approaches thereto, about minefields or other obstacles to movement by land, sea or air and such other particulars as
the United Nations may require in connection with the use of Italian bases, or with the operations, security, or
welfare of the United Nations Land, Sea or Air Forces. Italian forces and equipment will be made available as
required by the United Nations for the removal of the above mentioned obstacles.).
149
HAGUE IV REG. art. 35 (Capitulations agreed upon between the contracting parties must take into account the
rules of military honour. Once settled, they must be scrupulously observed by both parties.).
845
by higher authority, the other belligerent may denounce the capitulation and resume hostilities. 150
Like action may also be taken if the capitulation was obtained through a breach of faith. 151
A capitulation may not, however, be denounced because one of the parties has been
induced to agree to it by a means consistent with the law of war, such as a ruse, or by that partys
own incapacity, such as through mistake of fact. 152
150
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 477 (If the violation is directed by the commander who capitulated or by
higher authority, the other belligerent may denounce the capitulation and resume hostilities.).
151
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 477 (Like action may also be taken if the capitulation was obtained
through a breach of faith.).
152
1958 UK MANUAL 484 (A capitulation may be denounced if a party to it formally refuses to execute a clause
which has been agreed upon, and it may be cancelled if it was obtained by a breach of faith. It may not, however, be
annulled because one of the parties has been induced to agree to it by ruse, or from motives for which there is no
justification, or by his own incapacity or feebleness.).
153
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 477 (Violation of the terms of a capitulation by individuals is punishable
as a war crime.); Johnson v. Eisentrager, 339 U.S. 763, 787 (1950) (Breach of the terms of an act of surrender is
no novelty among war crimes.).
154
For example, The Scuttled U-Boats Case, Trial of Oberleutnant Gerhard Grumpelt, I U.N. LAW REPORTS 55-70
(British Military Court, Hamburg, Germany, Feb. 12-13, 1946) (First Lieutenant Grumpelt was convicted of having
scuttled two U-boats which had been surrendered by the German Command to the Allies in violation of the
Instrument of Surrender of 4th May, 1945.).
155
Refer to 9.26.4 (Retention of Benefits of the GPW Even if Prosecuted for Pre-Capture Acts).
156
Refer to 9.26.1 (POWs Subject to the Laws, Regulations, and Orders in Force in the Armed Forces of the
Detaining Power); 9.22.2 (POWs Status With Respect to Their Armed Forces).
846
12.11 ARMISTICES AND OTHER CEASE-FIRE AGREEMENTS
157
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 479 (An armistice (or truce, as it is sometimes called) is the cessation of
active hostilities for a period agreed upon by the belligerents.); LIEBER CODE art. 135 (An armistice is the
cessation of active hostilities for a period agreed between belligerents.).
158
HAGUE IV REG. art. 36 (An armistice suspends military operations by mutual agreement between the belligerent
parties.).
159
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 479 (It is not a partial or temporary peace; it is only the suspension of
military operations to the extent agreed upon by the parties.); LIEBER CODE art. 142 (An armistice is not a partial
or a temporary peace; it is only the suspension of military operations to the extent agreed upon by the parties.).
160
See, e.g., Kahn v. Anderson, 255 U.S. 1, 9 (1921) (That complete peace, in the legal sense, had not come to pass
by the effect of the Armistice and the cessation of hostilities, is not disputable.); Commercial Cable Co. v.
Burleson, 255 F. 99, 104-05 (S.D.N.Y. 1919) (Hand, J.) (It is the treaty which terminates the war. An armistice
effects nothing but a suspension of hostilities; the war still continues. It is true that a war may end by the cessation
of hostilities, or by subjugation; but that is not the normal course, and neither had hostilities ceased, nor had the
enemy been subjugated in the sense in which that term is used.) (citations omitted) reversed on other grounds and
vacated as moot, Commercial Cable Co. v. Burleson, 250 U.S. 360 (1919).
161
For example, Protocol of Agreement Between the United States and Spain, art. V, Aug. 12, 1898, 30 STAT. 1742,
1743 (The United States and Spain will each appoint not more than five commissioners to treat of peace, and the
commissioners so appointed shall meet at Paris not later than October 1, 1898, and proceed to the negotiation and
conclusion of a treaty of peace, which treaty shall be subject to ratification according to the respective constitutional
forms of the two countries.).
162
For example, DEPARTMENT OF STATE, Treaties in Force: A List of Treaties and Other International Agreements
of the United States in Force on January 1, 2013, 411 (2013) (Agreement concerning a military armistice in Korea,
with annex. Signed at Panmunjon July 27, 1953, by the Commander-in-Chief, United Nations Command; the
Supreme Commander of the Korean Peoples Army; and the Commander of the Chinese Peoples Volunteers.
Entered into force July 27, 1953. 4 UST 346; TIAS 2782.).
163
See, e.g., Richard Baxter, Armistices and Other Forms of Suspension of Hostilities, in HUMANIZING THE LAWS OF
WAR: SELECTED WRITINGS OF RICHARD BAXTER 310 (2013) (In military usage, as reflected in particular in
847
Although in some cases distinctions may be drawn between these different terms,
armistice may also be used in a general sense to encompass these terms. 164
An armistice may be general or local. The first suspends the military operations of the
belligerent States everywhere; the second only between certain fractions of the belligerent armies
and within a fixed radius. 165
The degree to which the parties wish to suspend hostilities affects what authorities are
needed to conclude the armistice agreement. An armistice agreement must be concluded by
authorities who are competent to agree to and to enforce its terms. Thus, armistices that include
more substantive and expansive terms must be approved by more senior authorities. For
example, a commander would not have the authority to conclude an armistice agreement that
binds units or areas that are not under his or her command. Similarly, if an armistice contains
political terms, it must be made under authorization from the governments concerned or subject
to approval by them. 166
manuals on the law of war, the older expression armistice seems to be used quite generally to describe agreements
which in these days go under the name of cease-fires or truces or suspensions of arms. Very often when we
speak today of cease-fire, our predecessors, at least up to the Second World War, would have been inclined to use
the term general armistice or local armistice. These are largely terminological differences and the employment
of one expression or another does not normally of itself have operative legal consequences.); 1958 UK MANUAL
418 note 1 (Six expressions have in the past been used in the British army to signify a cessation of hostilities
falling short of peace: truce, local truce, armistice, cessation of hostilities (as in the Convention made after Majuba
in 1881), cessation of arms (as in the negotiations preceding the surrender at Saratoga in 1777), and suspension of
arms. Yet they do not appear to have been employed with any exactitude. Moreover, other expressions, such as a
cease fire for three hours, have not been unknown. Neither do other languages follow an exact terminology in the
matter; the Germans speak of Waffenruhe and Waffenstillstand, without distinguishing precisely between them. The
French instructions distinguish between amistices and suspensions darmes. It has been found advisable to follow
the practice of the more authoritative writers in distinguishing three different kinds of armistice as in the text
above.).
164
See, e.g., WALTER G. HERMES, UNITED STATES ARMY IN THE KOREAN WAR: TRUCE TENT AND FIGHTING FRONT
15 footnote 1 (1992) (For literary reasons, the terms armistice, truce, and cease-fire have been used
interchangeably throughout this volume. According to the Office of the Judge Advocate General, truce signifies a
temporary interruption of fighting between local forces for some reason such as the collection of the dead and
wounded. The word armistice has a similar connotation, but is utilized to cover a temporary cessation of hostilities
on a broader scale. Cease-fire applies when all acts of war are halted, bringing about an informal end to the war
and stabilizing the situation until formal negotiations can be completed.).
165
HAGUE IV REG. art. 37 (An armistice may be general or local. The first suspends the military operations of the
belligerent States everywhere; the second only between certain fractions of the belligerent armies and within a fixed
radius.); LIEBER CODE art. 137 (An armistice may be general, and valid for all points and lines of the belligerents,
or special, that is, referring to certain troops or certain localities only.).
166
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 483 (If an armistice contains political terms, it must be made under
authorization from the governments concerned or subject to approval by them.).
848
General armistices are usually of a combined political and military character. They
usually precede the negotiations for peace, but may be concluded for other purposes. Due to its
political importance and the fact that it would be binding on all of a belligerents forces, a
general armistice is normally negotiated by senior officials and is subject to approval by each
State. 167 For example, an armistice agreement may be negotiated by senior military commanders
and be subject to approval of each State. 168
Commanders are presumed to have the authority to conclude suspensions of arms for
forces and areas within their control.
167
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 483 (General armistices are usually of a combined political and military
character. They usually precede the negotiations for peace, but may be concluded for other purposes. Due to its
political importance, a general armistice is normally concluded by senior military officers or by diplomatic
representatives or other high civilian officials.).
168
For example, Barbara Salazar Torreon, U.S. Periods of War and Dates of Current Conflicts, 5-6 (Congressional
Research Service, Dec. 28, 2012) (Cease-fire terms [of the 1991 Persian Gulf War] negotiated at Safwan, Iraq,
March 1, 1991. Iraq officially accepted cease-fire terms, April 6, 1991. Cease-fire took effect April 11, 1991.); id.
at footnote 8 (This agreement is actually a transcript of the discussion held at Safwan Airfield, Iraq, between
Coalition participants, U.S. Gen. M. Norman Schwarzkopf and Lt. Gen. Khalid of the Joint Arab Forces, and Iraqi
participants, Lt. Gen. Sultan Kasim Ahmad, Chief of Staff of the Ministry of Defense, and Lt. Gen. Sala Abud
Mahmud, III Corps Commander.).
169
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 484 (A local armistice suspends operations between certain portions of
the belligerent forces or within a designated district of the theater of operations.).
170
1958 UK MANUAL 425 (It is, however, always a condition of the [partial] armistice that a considerable part of
the forces and of the region of war must be included, and that the cause for which it has been concluded is not only
some pressing local interests, as in the case of a suspension of arms, but one of a more general character, such as a
general exhaustion of the opposing belligerent forces in one part of the theatre of war; the outbreak of a virulent
infectious disease in the opposing camps; or any other cause the requirements of which cannot be satisfied by a mere
suspension of arms, but do not demand a general armistice.).
171
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 485 (A suspension of arms is a form of armistice concluded between
commanders of military forces for some local military purpose, such as to bury the dead, to collect the wounded, to
arrange for exchange of prisoners, or to enable a commander to communicate with his government or superior
officer.).
849
for the purpose of reference should differences of opinion arise. Armistice agreements should be
drafted with the greatest possible precision and clarity. 172
An armistice for the parties commences at the moment it is signed, in the absence of
specific provision to the contrary. 174 For example, an armistice agreement may specify that
hostilities are suspended for the parties upon receipt of notification by their commanders, rather
than upon signing. 175
Although an armistice is binding upon the belligerents from the time agreed for
commencement of the armistice (or the time of signature if the time of commencement is not
specified), officers of the armed forces are responsible for adhering to the armistice only from
the time when they receive official information of its existence from their State. 176
172
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 486 (No special form for an armistice is prescribed. It should, if
possible, be reduced to writing, in order to avoid misunderstandings and for the purpose of reference should
differences of opinion arise. It should be drafted with the greatest precision and with absolute clearness.).
173
HAGUE IV REG. art. 38 (An armistice must be notified officially and in good time to the competent authorities
and to the troops. Hostilities are suspended immediately after the notification, or on the date fixed.).
174
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 487a (An armistice commences, in the absence of express mention to the
contrary, at the moment it is signed.).
175
For example, 1958 UK MANUAL 485 note 1 (The capitulation of Manila was signed by the local commanders-
in-chief on 4 August 1898, but a general armistice had been agreed to by the Governments of Spain and the U.S.A.
on 12 August. Notice of this, however, did not reach the Philippines until 16 August, owing to a breakdown in
signal communications. The Spaniards contended that the capitulation had become void, but the United States
Government denied, maintaining that the protocol concerning the armistice had stipulated suspension of hostilities,
not from the date of signature, but from the date of receipt of notification on the part of the respective
commanders.).
176
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 491 (An armistice is binding upon the belligerents from the time of the
agreed commencement, but the officers of the armies are responsible only from the time when they receive official
information of its existence.); LIEBER CODE art. 139 (An armistice is binding upon the belligerents from the day of
the agreed commencement; but the officers of the armies are responsible from the day only when they receive
official information of its existence.).
850
provided always that the enemy is warned within the time agreed upon, in accordance with the
terms of the armistice. 177
If the duration is for a definite period of time and there is no positive agreement to the
contrary, hostilities may be resumed without notice after the prescribed period of time.
177
HAGUE IV REG. art. 36 (If [an armistices] duration is not defined, the belligerent parties may resume operations
at any time, provided always that the enemy is warned within the time agreed upon, in accordance with the terms of
the armistice.); LIEBER CODE art. 137 (An armistice may be concluded for a definite time; or for an indefinite
time, during which either belligerent may resume hostilities on giving the notice agreed upon to the other.).
178
See 1958 UK MANUAL 446 (If an armistice is declared without conditions, nothing more than a total cessation
of hostilities along the front of both positions is required.) (emphasis added); LIEBER CODE art. 136 (If an
armistice be declared, without conditions, it extends no further than to require a total cessation of hostilities along
the front of both belligerents.) (emphasis added); 1914 RULES OF LAND WARFARE 261 (What may be done during
an armistice.An armistice need not in terms prohibit actual hostilities [in order to have the effect of prohibiting
actual hostilities]. Anything else [beyond conducting actual hostilities] may be done during an armistice that is not
in express terms prohibited by the agreement.). See also 1914 RULES OF LAND WARFARE 261 note 1 (Actual
hostilities will provide, of course, that firing shall cease; that the belligerents must not gain ground to the front; and,
during siege operations, that the besieger must cease all extension, perfection, or advance of his attack works, as
much so as from attacks by main force. (G.O. 100, 1863, art. 142.)).
179
Refer to 12.13.1.1 (Examples of Serious Violations of an Armistice).
180
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 481 (The existence of an armistice does not warrant relaxation of
vigilance in the service of security and protection, or in the preparedness of troops for action, or exposing positions
to the enemy.); 1958 UK MANUAL 460 (The existence of an armistice is no reason for relaxing either vigilance or
the readiness of troops for action, or for exhibiting positions to the enemy which he could not detect during
combat.).
181
For example, 1914 RULES OF LAND WARFARE 273 note 1 (At the second battle of Fredericksburg, May 5,
1863, the Federals discovered the weakness of Gen. Barksdales force during a suspension of hostilities to collect
the wounded after the second repulse. Memoirs, Alexander, p. 351. In the suspension of arms at Wynnes Hill,
during the relief of Ladysmith, many of the burghers stood up and disclosed the position of their trenches, which
until then had not been located by the enemy. South African War, Vol. II, p. 602.).
851
to receive reinforcements;
in general, to take advantage of the time and means at its disposal to prepare for resuming
hostilities.182
Belligerents are not bound to discontinue espionage during an armistice, but the risks
incurred by spies are the same as at other times. 183 For example, spies may be punished by an
opposing belligerent if captured. 184
The following topics are often addressed in an armistice agreement: (1) the scope of the
armistice, including start time and duration; (2) what military activities are prohibited by the
182
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 487e (In the absence of stipulations to the contrary, each belligerent is
authorized to make movements of troops within his own lines, to receive reinforcements, to construct new
fortifications, installations, and bases, to build and repair transportation and communications facilities, to seek
information about the enemy, to bring up supplies and equipment, and, in general, to take advantage of the time and
means at his disposal to prepare for resuming hostilities.).
183
1958 UK MANUAL 449 (Belligerents are not bound to discontinue espionage during an armistice, but the risks
incurred by spies are the same as at other times.).
184
Refer to 4.17 (Spies, Saboteurs, and Other Persons Engaging in Similar Acts Behind Enemy Lines).
185
1958 UK MANUAL 445 (The conclusion of an armistice gives the authorities of a besieged place no right to
introduce provisions either for the garrison or for the civil population. Arrangements may, however, be made to
supply them so that at the end of the armistice the forces are in the same position as at the beginning.).
186
Refer to 5.19.2 (Removal and Passage of Certain Personnel Vulnerable Civilians, Diplomatic and Consular
Personnel, the Wounded and Sick, and Medical Personnel).
187
Refer to 5.19.3 (Passage of Relief Consignments).
852
armistice; (3) the relations between forces and the local populations during the armistice; (4)
humanitarian activities to occur during the armistice; and (5) mechanisms for implementing the
armistice.
Armistice provisions may address a range of political and military issues, provided that
belligerents agree upon the terms and provided that the approving authorities are competent to
address them. 188
12.12.1 Scope of an Armistice, Including Start Time and Duration. The armistice should
specify its scopewhen and where it applies. The start time and duration of an armistice should
be specified as precisely as possible (e.g., date, time, and applicable time zone) to avoid
misunderstanding and an unintentional resumption of hostilities. 189
It may be appropriate for the armistice to specify that it starts at a later time to allow all
forces to receive notification of the armistice before it becomes effective. 190
If the armistice is of an indefinite duration, the terms and manner of giving notice that
that armistice is to be ended (including the length of time between the delivery of the notice and
when combat operations may recommence) should be specified in the armistice agreement. 191
12.12.3 Relations Between Forces and the Local Population During an Armistice. It rests
with the Contracting Parties to settle, in the terms of the armistice, what intercourse may be held
in the theater of war with the inhabitants of one belligerent State and those of the other. 193
188
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 488 (In addition to the provisions set forth in the preceding paragraph,
general armistices normally contain a number of political and military stipulations concerning such matters as the
evacuation of territory; disposition of aircraft and shipping; cooperation in the punishment of war crimes; restitution
of captured or looted property; communications facilities and public utilities; civil administration; displaced persons;
and the dissolution of organizations which may subvert public order.).
189
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 487a (The precise date, day, and hour for the suspension of hostilities
should also be stipulated. The effective times may be different in different geographical areas. An armistice
commences, in the absence of express mention to the contrary, at the moment it is signed.).
190
For example, Treaty of Armistice with Germany, Nov. 11, 1918, 2 BEVANS 9 (An armistice has been concluded
on the following conditions: (A) CLAUSES RELATING TO THE WESTERN FRONT I. Cessation of hostilities by land
and in the air six hours after the signing of the armistice.).
191
Refer to 12.11.4.2 (Duration of an Armistice and the Resumption of Operations).
192
Refer to 12.11.4.3 (General Prohibition on Offensive Military Operations).
193
HAGUE IV REG. art. 39 (It rests with the Contracting Parties to settle, in the terms of the armistice, what
communications may be held in the theater of war with the inhabitants of one belligerent State and those of the
other.); LIEBER CODE art. 141 (It is incumbent upon the contracting parties of an armistice to stipulate what
intercourse of persons or traffic between the inhabitants of the territories occupied by the hostile armies shall be
allowed, if any.). See also 1914 RULES OF LAND WARFARE 268 note 1 (Of course, what is intended [by Article
853
If nothing is stipulated, intercourse (e.g., communication, movement, or commerce)
remains suspended, as during actual hostilities. 194 For example, absent explicit agreement, a
belligerent retains the right to control all communications or movement of members of the
civilian population between its lines and enemy lines (e.g., denying movement to reduce the risk
of enemy espionage activities, denying trade to avoid strengthening enemy armed forces). 195
The armistice agreement may also stipulate responsibilities of each party for civil
administration of areas under its respective control (e.g., public safety and public health needs,
maintenance of public utilities including communications facilities). The armistice agreement
may also specify the responsibilities of each belligerent for civil administration of neutral areas
or areas where control is shared. 196
search for and collection of the sick and wounded from the battlefield, by, for example,
medical personnel or authorized civilians (such as non-governmental organizations); and
the provision or transport of medical care or food supplies intended for the civilian
population, including displaced persons.
29 of the Hague IV Regulations] to be regulated is the intercourse of the population of the occupied territory with
the population of the country still held by the enemy (in both cases nationals of the State), and also between each
belligerent force and the inhabitants of the localities held by the other.).
194
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 487d (If it is desired to make any change during the armistice in the
relations between the opposing forces and the peaceable inhabitants, this must be accomplished by express
provision. Otherwise these relations remain unchanged, each belligerent continuing to exercise the same rights as
before, including the right to prevent or control all intercourse between the inhabitants within his lines and persons
within the enemy lines.); LIEBER CODE art. 141 (If nothing is stipulated the intercourse remains suspended, as
during actual hostilities.).
195
Refer to 5.19.1.1 (Belligerent Authority to Exercise Control in the Immediate Vicinity of Military Operations);
11.4.1 (Right of the Occupying Power to Govern the Enemy Territory Temporarily).
196
For example, Agreement Between the Governments of the United States of America, the Soviet Union, and the
United Kingdom on the One Hand and the Government of Rumania on the Other Concerning an Armistice, Sept. 12,
1944, 59 STAT. 1712, 1715 (17. Rumanian civil administration is restored in the whole area of Rumania separated
by not less than 50-100 kilometres (depending upon conditions of terrain) from the front line, Rumanian
administrative bodies undertaking to carry out, in the interests of the reestablishment of peace and security,
instructions and orders of the Allied (Soviet) High Command issued by them for the purpose of securing the
execution of these armistice terms.).
197
Refer to 9.37 (Release and Repatriation After Hostilities).
854
released or exchanged, specific provisions in this regard should be made in the armistice
agreement. 198
12.12.5.2 Consultative Mechanism. The armistice agreement may provide for the
establishment of a commission composed of representatives of the opposing forces to supervise
the implementation of the armistice agreement. 202 The agreement may specify that other
representatives, such as representatives from neutral States or representatives from local
authorities, are included on the commission. 203
198
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 487f (If it is desired that prisoners of war and civilian internees should be
released or exchanged, specific provisions in this regard should be made.). For example, Agreement between the
Commander-in-Chief, United Nations Command, on the one hand, and the Supreme Commander of the Korean
Peoples Army and the Commander of the Chinese Peoples Volunteers, on the other hand, Concerning a Military
Armistice in Korea art. 52, Jul. 27, 1953, 29 DEPARTMENT OF STATE BULLETIN 132, 137 (Aug. 3, 1953) (Each side
insures [sic] that it will not employ in acts of war in the Korean conflict any prisoner of war released and repatriated
incident to the coming into effect of this Armistice Agreement.).
199
For example, Protocol of Armistice between Japan and Russia, Sept. 1, 1905, reprinted in I TREATIES AND
AGREEMENTS WITH AND CONCERNING CHINA 1894-1919, 527 (1921) (The undersigned Plenipotentiaries of Japan
and Russia duly authorised to that effect by their Governments have agreed upon the following terms of armistice
between the belligerents, pending the coming into force of the Treaty of Peace: -- 1. A certain distance (zone of
demarcation) shall be fixed between the fronts of the armies of the two Powers in Manchuria as well as in the region
of the Tomamko (Tumen).).
200
For example, Dayton Accords, Annex 1A, art. IV (OHR Doc. 14/12/1995) (The Parties immediately after this
Annex enters into force shall begin promptly and proceed steadily to withdraw all Forces behind a Zone of
Separation which shall be established on either side of the Agreed Cease-Fire Line that represents a clear and
distinct demarcation between any and all opposing Forces.).
201
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 487c (Provision may be included for a neutral zone between the two
armies. It is usually agreed that these lines are not to be crossed or the neutral zone entered except by
parlementaires or other parties by special agreement for specified purposes, such as to bury the dead and collect the
wounded.).
202
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 487g (It is generally desirable to provide for the establishment of a
commission, composed of representatives of the opposing forces, to supervise the implementation of the armistice
agreement.).
203
For example, Egyptian-Israeli General Armistice Agreement, art. 10(1) Feb. 24, 1949, 42 UNTS 251, 264 (The
execution of the provisions of this Agreement shall be supervised by a Mixed Armistice Commission composed of
seven members, of whom each Party to this Agreement shall designate three, and whose Chairman shall be the
United Nations Chief of Staff of the Truce Supervision Organization or a senior officer from the Observer personnel
of that Organization designated by him following consultation with both Parties to this Agreement.).
855
12.12.5.3 Signals. The belligerents may agree to use certain signals to help
implement the armistice. For example, signals may be agreed upon to indicate the passage of
parlementaires, the start or end of the armistice, or for other reasons.
An armistice, like other formal arrangements between belligerents, engages the honor of
all parties for the exact and complete fulfillment of every obligation thereby imposed. 205 Serious
violations of the armistice by one of the parties gives an opposing party the right of denouncing
the armistice, and deliberate violations of the armistice by individuals are punishable.
204
For example, Egyptian-Israeli Agreement on Disengagement of Forces in Pursuance of the Geneva Peace
Conference, Annex to Kurt Waldheim, Letter Dated 18 January 1974 From the Secretary-General Addressed to
President of the Security Council, U.N. Doc. S/11198, 2 (Jan. 18, 1974) (A. Egypt and Israel will scrupulously
observe the cease-fire on land, sea and air called for by the United Nations Security Council and will refrain from
the time of the signing of this document from all military or para-military actions against each other. B. The
military forces of Egypt and Israel will be separated in accordance with the following principles: 1. All Egyptian
forces on the east side of the canal will be deployed west of the line designated as line A on the attached map. All
Israeli forces, including those west of the Suez Canal and the Bitter Lakes, will be deployed east of the line
designated as line B on the attached map.).
205
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 493 (An armistice, like other formal agreements between belligerents,
engages the honor of both parties for the exact and complete fulfillment of every obligation thereby imposed.).
206
HAGUE IV REG. art. 40 (Any serious violation of the armistice by one of the parties gives the other party the
right of denouncing it, and even, in cases of urgency, of recommencing hostilities immediately.).
207
Cf. WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW & PRECEDENTS 787 (The offence of violation of an armistice may consist in an
act in contravention of the terms of the agreement, or in an act wholly inconsistent with the status of suspension.).
856
the utilization of the occasion to withdraw forces from an unfavorable position
commanded by the enemy. 208
It would be dishonorable and perfidious for either party, without warning, to resume
hostilities during the period of an armistice, with or without a formal denunciation thereof,
except in case of urgency and upon convincing proof of intentional and serious violation of its
terms by the other party. 210
Nevertheless, under Article 40 of the Hague IV Regulations, upon definite proof of such
a violation of an armistice, if the delay incident to formal denunciation and warning seems likely
to give the violator a substantial advantage of any kind, the other party is free to resume
hostilities without warning and with or without a formal denunciation. 211 For example, the law
of war does not prohibit armed forces that reasonably believe an adversary is committing
armistice violations from taking necessary and proportionate action in self-defense immediately
in response.
208
1958 UK MANUAL 456 (A deliberate advance or construction of works beyond the line agreed upon, the
seizure of any point outside the lines, or the utilization of the occasion to withdraw troops from an unfavourable
position commanded by the enemy, or any violation of an express condition would, as a rule, constitute a grave
breach [of an armistice].).
209
1958 UK MANUAL 458 (Unless there be great urgency, there should always be a delay between denunciation of
the armistice and resumption of hostilities.).
210
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 493 (It would be an outrageous act of perfidy for either party, without
warning, to resume hostilities during the period of an armistice, with or without a formal denunciation thereof,
except in case of urgency and upon convincing proof of intentional and serious violation of its terms by the other
party.).
211
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 493 (Nevertheless, under the article last above quoted, upon definite
proof of such a violation of the armistice, if the delay incident to formal denunciation and warning seems likely to
give the violator a substantial advantage of any kind, the other party is free to resume hostilities without warning and
with or without a formal denunciation.).
212
For example, Jay S. Bybee, Assistant Attorney General, Authority of the President Under Domestic and
International Law to Use Military Force Against Iraq, 26 OPINIONS OF THE OFFICE OF LEGAL COUNSEL 143, 174-75
(Oct. 23, 2002) (The missile strikes in 1993 and 1998 serve as clear examples of the suspension of a cease-fire and
a resumption of hostilities due to serious violations by Iraq. It is our understanding based on information supplied
by the Department of Defense that in neither case did the United States obtain the express agreement of all of the
other members of the Persian Gulf War coalition before suspending the cease-fire and using force.).
857
12.13.2 Violations of an Armistice by Individuals. A violation of the terms of an
armistice by private persons acting on their own initiative only entitles the injured party to
demand the punishment of the offenders or, if necessary, compensation for the losses
sustained. 213
12.13.2.1 Private Persons Defined for the Purposes Article 41 of the Hague IV
Regulations. A private person, in the sense of Article 41 of the Hague IV Regulations, refers to
any person, including a member of the armed forces, who acts on his or her own
responsibility. 214
The U.N. Security Council may call upon or demand that hostilities be ceased. 217 In
addition, the U.N. Security Council may call upon or demand that members of the United
213
HAGUE IV REG. art. 41 (A violation of the terms of the armistice by private persons acting on their own
initiative only entitles the injured party to demand the punishment of the offenders or, if necessary, compensation for
the losses sustained.).
214
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 494b (A private individual, in the sense of the foregoing article, refers to
any person, including a member of the armed forces, who acts on his own responsibility.).
215
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 494c (Violation of the terms of an armistice by individuals is punishable
as a war crime. Such violations by individual soldiers or subordinate officers do not justify denunciation of the
armistice unless they are proved to have been committed with the knowledge and actual or tacit consent of their own
government or commander. Consent may be inferred in the event of a persistent failure to punish such offenders.).
216
Refer to 9.26.4 (Retention of Benefits of the GPW Even if Prosecuted for Pre-Capture Acts).
217
For example, U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 1199, U.N. Doc S/RES/1199, 1 (Sept. 23, 1998) (Acting
under Chapter VII of the Charter of the United Nations, 1. Demands that all parties, groups and individuals
immediately cease hostilities and maintain a ceasefire in Kosovo, Federal Republic of Yugoslavia, which would
enhance the prospects for a meaningful dialogue between the authorities of the Federal Republic of Yugoslavia and
the Kosovo Albanian leadership and reduce the risks of a humanitarian catastrophe;); U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL
RESOLUTION 338, U.N. Doc. S/RES/338 (Oct. 22, 1973) (Calls upon all parties to the present fighting to cease all
firing and terminate all military activity immediately, no later than 12 hours after the moment of the adoption of this
decision, in the positions they now occupy.).
858
Nations conclude cease-fire or armistice agreements. 218 The U.N. Security Council may also
establish a formal cease-fire. 219
218
For example, U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 27, U.N. Doc S/RES/27 (Aug. 1, 1947) (The Security
Council, Noting with concern the hostilities in progress between the armed forces of the Netherlands and the
Republic of Indonesia, Calls upon the parties: (a) To cease hostilities forthwith, and (b) To settle their dispute by
arbitration or by other peaceful means and keep the Security Council informed about the progress of the
settlement.).
219
For example, U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 687, U.N. Doc S/RES/687 33 (Apr. 3, 1991) (Declares
that, upon official notification by Iraq to the Secretary-General and to the Security Council of its acceptance of the
above provisions, a formal cease-fire is effective between Iraq and Kuwait and the Member States cooperating with
Kuwait in accordance with resolution 678 (1990);).
220
For example, Jay S. Bybee, Assistant Attorney General, Authority of the President Under Domestic and
International Law to Use Military Force Against Iraq, 26 OPINIONS OF THE OFFICE OF LEGAL COUNSEL 143, 175
(Oct. 23, 2002) (Under general principles of armistice law, therefore, because the initial use of force in response to
the invasion of KuwaitOperation Desert Stormwas authorized under UNSCR 678, subsequent uses of force
against Iraq in response to serious violations of the terms of the cease-fire established by UNSCR 687 would be
authorized as well, provided either that Iraq has been warned, or that such a warning may be avoided because it
would be likely to give Saddam Hussein a substantial advantage.).
859
XIII Naval Warfare
Chapter Contents
13.1 Introduction
13.2 Legal Boundaries of the Oceans
13.3 Overview of Rules for Naval Engagements
13.4 Enemy Warships
13.5 Enemy Merchant Vessels
13.6 Enemy Vessels Exempt From Capture or Destruction
13.7 Submarine Warfare
13.8 Belligerent Control of the Immediate Area of Naval Operations
13.9 Maritime and Airspace Zones: Exclusion, War, Operational, Warning, and
Safety
13.10 Blockade
13.11 Naval Mines
13.12 Torpedoes
13.13 Deception by Naval Forces, Including the Use of Enemy or Neutral Flags
13.1 INTRODUCTION
This Chapter addresses the law of war rules that apply to naval operations, especially
those aspects of naval warfare that differ from warfare on land or in the air. This Chapter also
briefly addresses the legal boundaries of the ocean, which may be relevant to the application of
the law of war.
Navy publications have provided discussion of other public international law relating to
naval operations, including discussion of the law of the sea applicable during peacetime. 1
Some topics that are related to neutrality law and that are relevant to the conduct of both
naval and air warfare, such as the conduct of visit and search and neutral commerce, are
addressed in Chapter XV, the Law of Neutrality. 2
13.1.1 The Law of the Sea During Armed Conflict. The law of the sea is a body of treaty
and customary international law. Its rules have been developed principally with peacetime
situations in mind. Nothing in the law of the sea impairs a States inherent right of individual or
collective self-defense, or rights during armed conflict. 3
1
See, e.g., 2007 NWP 1-14M; 1997 NWP 9; 1989 NWP 9.
2
Refer to 15.13 (Belligerent Right of Visit and Search of Merchant Vessels and Civil Aircraft); 15.12 (Neutral
Commerce and Carriage of Contraband).
3
Responses of Rear Admiral John E. Crowley, Chief Counsel and Judge Advocate General, U.S. Coast Guard, to
Additional Questions for the Record Submitted by Senator Joseph R. Biden, Jr., SENATE EXECUTIVE REPORT 108-
10, United Nations Convention on the Law of the Sea, 108th Congress, Second Session, 170, 172 (Mar. 11, 2004)
(It should also be noted that nothing in the Convention restricts the inherent right of individual or collective self-
defense or rights during armed conflict, and the administration is recommending that the United States express such
860
For example, the law of the sea provides that the high seas are reserved for peaceful
purposes. 4 However, the use of the high seas for peaceful purposes is understood not to impose
restraints upon military operations that would otherwise be consistent with international law, or
to impair a States inherent right of self-defense. 5 The use of outer space for peaceful purposes
also has been interpreted in this way. 6
As another example, certain rights under the law of the sea (e.g., certain rights of
navigation of vessels, or rights of States with respect to exclusive economic zones) must be
exercised with due regard for the rights and duties of other States. 7 To the extent this obligation
applies during armed conflict, what regard would be due would depend on military necessity and
other principles and rules of the law of war, which are specially adapted to the circumstances of
armed conflict. 8
13.1.2 The United States and the LOS Convention. The U.N. Convention on the Law of
the Sea (LOS Convention) was opened for signature on December 10, 1982. 9
The United States is not a Party to the LOS Convention. The United States did not sign
the LOS Convention when it opened for signature because of several major problems in the
Conventions deep seabed mining provisions. 10 However, in 1983, the United States announced
that it was prepared to accept and act in accordance with the balance of interests reflected in the
LOS Convention relating to traditional uses of the oceans such as navigation and overflight
and that the United States would exercise and assert its navigation and overflight rights and
an understanding.); William H. Taft, Legal Adviser, Department of State, Response to an Additional Question from
Senator Inhofe, United Nations Convention on the Law of the Sea: Hearing Before the Committee on Environment
and Public Works, U.S. Senate, 108th Congress, Second Session, 77 (Mar. 23, 2004) (As stated in the resolution of
advice and consent now before the Senate, nothing in the Convention impairs the inherent right of individual or
collective self-defense or rights during armed conflict.).
4
Consider LOS CONVENTION art. 88 (The high seas shall be reserved for peaceful purposes.).
5
CommentaryThe 1982 United Nations Convention on the Law of the Sea and the Agreement on Implementation
of Part XI, 94 in MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING LOS CONVENTION (Article 88 reserves the high
seas for peaceful purposes, while articles 141 and 155(2) reserves the Area [which is defined in the LOS Convention
art. 1(1) as the seabed and ocean floor and subsoil thereof, beyond the limits of national jurisdiction;] for peaceful
purposes. None of these provisions creates new rights or obligations, imposes restraints upon military operations,
or impairs the inherent right of self-defense, enshrined in article 51 of the United Nations Charter. More generally,
military activities which are consistent with principles of international law are not prohibited by these, or any other
provisions of the Convention.).
6
Refer to 14.10.4 (General Use of Outer Space for Peaceful Purposes).
7
Refer to 13.2.3.3 (Exclusive Economic Zones (EEZs)); 13.2.3.4 (High Seas).
8
Refer to 1.3.2 (The Law of Wars Relationship to Other Bodies of Law).
9
United Nations Convention on the Law of the Sea, Dec. 10, 1982, 1833 UNTS 397.
10
Ronald Reagan, Statement on United States Oceans Policy, Mar. 10, 1983, 1983-I PUBLIC PAPERS OF THE
PRESIDENTS 378 (Last July, I announced that the United States will not sign the United Nations Law of the Sea
Convention that was opened for signature on December 10. We have taken this step because several major
problems in the Convention's deep seabed mining provisions are contrary to the interests and principles of
industrialized nations and would not help attain the aspirations of developing countries. However, the convention
also contains provisions with respect to traditional uses of the oceans which generally confirm existing maritime law
and practice and fairly balance the interests of all states.).
861
freedoms on a worldwide basis in a manner that is consistent with the balance of interests
reflected in the LOS Convention. 11 For example, consistent with the LOS Convention, the
United States has claimed a 12-nautical mile territorial sea. 12 Similarly, the United States has
established a contiguous zone extending 24 nautical miles from the baselines of the United States
determined in accordance with international law, but in no case within the territorial sea of
another nation. 13
The Agreement on the Implementation of Part XI of the LOS Convention was adopted on
August 17, 1994. 14 Because this agreement addressed the objections that the United States
previously expressed to Part XI of the LOS Convention, President Clinton recommended that the
Senate give its advice and consent to accession to the LOS Convention and to ratification of the
Agreement on the Implementation of Part XI. 15 Subsequent administrations have also supported
U.S. accession to the LOS Convention and the ratification of the Agreement on the
Implementation of Part XI of the LOS Convention. 16
The legal classifications of ocean areas may be relevant to the application of the law of
war and therefore affect military operations during armed conflict by, for example:
11
Ronald Reagan, Statement on United States Oceans Policy, Mar. 10, 1983, 1983-I PUBLIC PAPERS OF THE
PRESIDENTS 378, 379 (First, the United States is prepared to accept and act in accordance with the balance of
interests relating to traditional uses of the oceans - such as navigation and overflight. In this respect, the United
States will recognize the rights of other States in the waters off their coasts, as reflected in the Convention, so long
as the rights and freedoms of the United States and others under international law are recognized by such coastal
states. Second, the United States will exercise and assert its navigation and overflight rights and freedoms on a
worldwide basis in a manner that is consistent with the balance of interests reflected in the Convention. The United
States will not, however, acquiesce in unilateral acts of other States designed to restrict the rights and freedoms of
the international community in navigation and overflight and other related high seas uses.).
12
Refer to 13.2.2.2 (Territorial Seas).
13
Refer to 13.2.3.2 (Contiguous Zones).
14
Agreement relating to the implementation of Part XI of the United Nations Convention on the Law of the Sea of
10 December 1982, annex to U.N. General Assembly Resolution 48/263, U.N. Doc. A/RES/48/263 (Aug. 17, 1994).
15
William J. Clinton, Letter of Transmittal, Oct. 7, 1994, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING LOS
CONVENTION 1 (As described in the report by the Secretary of State, the Agreement meets the objections the
United States and other industrialized nations previously expressed to Part XI. It promises to provide a stable and
internationally recognized framework for mining to proceed in response to future demand for minerals. I therefore
recommend that the Senate give early and favorable consideration to the Convention and to the Agreement and give
its advice and consent to accession to the Convention and to ratification of the Agreement.).
16
See, e.g., George W. Bush, Statement on the Advancement of United States Maritime Interests, May 15, 2007,
2007-I PUBLIC PAPERS OF THE PRESIDENTS 583 (First, I urge the Senate to act favorably on U.S. accession to the
United Nations Convention on the Law of the Sea during this session of Congress. Joining will serve the national
security interests of the United States, including the maritime mobility of our armed forces worldwide. It will secure
U.S. sovereign rights over extensive marine areas, including the valuable natural resources they contain. Accession
will promote U.S. interests in the environmental health of the oceans. And it will give the United States a seat at the
table when the rights that are vital to our interests are debated and interpreted.); Barack Obama, National Security
Strategy 50 (May 2010) (As one key effort in the sea domain, for example, we will pursue ratification of the United
Nations Convention on the Law of the Sea.).
862
determining the legal boundaries of airspace above those waters; 17
determining the authority that a belligerent State has with respect to neutral vessels in an
area; 19 or
determining the authority that a neutral State has with respect to belligerent vessels in an
area. 20
Waters are often divided analytically between national waters (i.e., internal waters,
territorial seas, and archipelagic waters), which are subject to the sovereignty of a State, and
international waters, which are not subject to the sovereignty of any State. 21 In addition, special
rules apply to international straits and archipelagic sea lanes. 22
13.2.1 Territory Notes on Terminology. In some cases, the word territory is used to
describe the land, waters, and airspace subject to the sovereignty of a State. 23 In other cases, the
word territory is used to describe only the land that is subject to the sovereignty of a State. 24
Thus, in describing waters that are not subject to the sovereignty of a State (e.g., the
exclusive economic zone and continental shelf, and high seas), the word territory should not be
used. Coastal States may exercise limited sovereign rights over specific functional areas in the
exclusive economic zone and on the continental shelf, but these rights do not imply sovereignty
over these areas. 25
17
Refer to 14.2 (Legal Boundaries of Airspace).
18
Refer to 15.7.1 (Waters That Are Considered Neutral).
19
Refer to, e.g., 13.11.3.5 (Restrictions on Where Naval Mines May Be Placed); 13.10.2.5 (Limitations on the
Scope of the Blockade).
20
Refer to, e.g., 15.8 (Passage of Belligerent Vessels and Aircraft Through International Straits and Archipelagic
Sea Lanes).
21
Refer to 13.2.2 (National Waters); 13.2.3 (International Waters).
22
Refer to 15.8 (Passage of Belligerent Vessels and Aircraft Through International Straits and Archipelagic Sea
Lanes).
23
See, e.g., The Ann, 1 F. Cas. 926, 926-27 (C.C.D. Mass. 1812) (Story, J.) (As the Ann arrived off Newburyport,
and within three miles of the shore, it is clear that she was within the acknowledged jurisdiction of the United States.
All the writers upon public law agree that every nation has exclusive jurisdiction to the distance of a cannon shot, or
marine league, over the waters adjacent to its shores, and this doctrine has been recognized by the supreme court of
the United States. Indeed such waters are considered as a part of the territory of the sovereign.) (internal citations
omitted).
24
See, e.g., 1955 NWIP 10-2 421 (According to established international law, each State has exclusive legal
control (jurisdiction) in the air space above its territory, internal waters, and territorial sea.).
25
See CommentaryThe 1982 United Nations Convention on the Law of the Sea and the Agreement on
Implementation of Part XI, 24, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING LOS CONVENTION (Article 56
enumerates the rights of the coastal State in the EEZ. Article 56(1)(a) establishes the sovereign rights of the coastal
State. Article 56(1)(b) sets forth the nature and scope of coastal State jurisdiction with respect to specific matters.
863
13.2.2 National Waters. National waters, which are subject to the sovereignty of a State,
include internal waters, territorial seas, and archipelagic waters.
13.2.2.1 Internal Waters. A State has sovereignty over its internal waters. 26
Internal waters are generally understood to be those waters on the landward side of the baseline
of the territorial sea. 27 The coastal baseline must be defined in accordance with specific rules of
international law as reflected in the LOS Convention. 28
13.2.2.2 Territorial Seas. The sovereignty of a State extends, beyond its land
territory and its internal waters, to a belt of sea adjacent to its coast, described as the territorial
sea. 29
The United States has claimed a 12-nautical mile territorial sea and recognizes territorial
sea claims of other nations up to a maximum breadth of 12 nautical miles. 30 Previously, the
The terms sovereign rights and jurisdiction are used to denote functional rights over these matters and do not
imply sovereignty. A claim of sovereignty in the EEZ would be contradicted by the language of articles 55 and 56
and precluded by article 58 and the provisions it incorporates by reference.); id. at 55 (Article 77 reiterates that the
coastal State has sovereign rights over the continental shelf for the purpose of exploring it and exploiting its natural
resources. The sovereign rights of the coastal State are balanced with provisions protecting the freedom of
navigation and the other rights and freedoms of other States from infringement or unjustifiable interference by the
coastal State. Under article 78, rights of the coastal State over the continental shelf do not affect the legal status of
the superjacent waters or of the airspace above those waters.).
26
Convention on the Territorial Sea and Contiguous Zone, art. 1, Apr. 29, 1958, 516 UNTS 205, 207-08 (1. The
sovereignty of a State extends, beyond its land territory and its internal waters, to a belt of sea adjacent to its coast,
described as the territorial sea. 2. This sovereignty is exercised subject to the provisions of these articles and to
other rules of international law.). Consider LOS CONVENTION art. 2 (1. The sovereignty of a coastal State
extends, beyond its land territory and internal waters and, in the case of an archipelagic State, its archipelagic
waters, to an adjacent belt of sea, described as the territorial sea. 2. This sovereignty extends to the air space over
the territorial sea as well as to its bed and subsoil. 3. The sovereignty over the territorial sea is exercised subject to
this Convention and to other rules of international law.).
27
Convention on the Territorial Sea and Contiguous Zone, art. 5, Apr. 29, 1958, 516 UNTS 205, 210 (1.Waters on
the landward side of the baseline of the territorial sea form part of the internal waters of the State.). Consider LOS
CONVENTION art. 8(1) (Except as provided in Part IV, waters on the landward side of the baseline of the territorial
sea form part of the internal waters of the State.).
28
Consider LOS CONVENTION art. 5 (Except where otherwise provided in this Convention, the normal baseline for
measuring the breadth of the territorial sea is the low-water line along the coast as marked on large-scale charts
officially recognized by the coastal State.).
29
Convention on the Territorial Sea and Contiguous Zone, art. 1, Apr. 29, 1958, 516 UNTS 205, 207-08 (1. The
sovereignty of a State extends, beyond its land territory and its internal waters, to a belt of sea adjacent to its coast,
described as the territorial sea. 2. This sovereignty is exercised subject to the provisions of these articles and to
other rules of international law.). Consider LOS CONVENTION art. 2 (1. The sovereignty of a coastal State
extends, beyond its land territory and internal waters and, in the case of an archipelagic State, its archipelagic
waters, to an adjacent belt of sea, described as the territorial sea. 2. This sovereignty extends to the air space over
the territorial sea as well as to its bed and subsoil. 3. The sovereignty over the territorial sea is exercised subject to
this Convention and to other rules of international law.).
30
See Ronald Reagan, Proclamation 5928: Territorial Sea of the United States of America, Dec. 27, 1988, 54
FEDERAL REGISTER 777 (Jan. 9, 1989) (The territorial sea of the United States henceforth extends to 12 nautical
miles from the baselines of the United States determined in accordance with international law.). Consider LOS
CONVENTION art. 3 (Every State has the right to establish the breadth of its territorial sea up to a limit not
exceeding 12 nautical miles, measured from baselines determined in accordance with this Convention.).
864
United States claimed a three-nautical mile territorial sea. 31 This claim was made in the context
of asserting the rights of the United States as a neutral State. 32
Coastal States often make specific maritime claims, but the United States does not
recognize those maritime claims that are not in conformity with customary international law, as
reflected in the LOS Convention. 33
31
Thomas Jefferson, Secretary of State, Letter to the British Minister Mr. Hammond (Nov. 8, 1793), I MOORES
DIGEST 702-03 (The President of the United States thinking that before it shall be finally decided to what distance
from our sea shores the territorial protection of the United States shall be exercised, it will be proper to enter into
friendly conferences and explanations with the powers chiefly interested in the navigation of the seas on our coasts,
and relying that convenient occasions may be taken for these hereafter, finds it necessary in the mean time, to fix
provisionally on some distance for the present government of these questions. Reserving, however, the ultimate
extent of this for future deliberation, the President gives instructions to the officers acting under his authority to
consider those heretofore given them as restrained for the present to the distance of one sea league or three
geographical miles from the sea-shores. This distance can admit of no opposition, as it is recognized by treaties
between some of the powers with whom we are connected in commerce and navigation, and is as little, or less, than
is claimed by any of them on their own coasts.).
32
See, e.g., Douglas W. Kmiec, Acting Assistant Attorney General, Legal Issues Raised by the Proposed
Presidential Proclamation to Extend the Territorial Sea, Oct. 4, 1988, 12 OPINIONS OF THE OFFICE OF LEGAL
COUNSEL 238, 244 (1988) (The primary example, of course, is the first claim of a three-mile territorial sea made on
behalf of the United States by then-Secretary of State Jefferson in 1793. France, Great Britain, and Spain -- all of
which held territory in North America -- were engaged in maritime hostilities off our Atlantic coast, an extension of
wars ongoing in Europe. As part of an effort to undermine our policy of neutrality, France pressured us to state the
extent of our territorial sea.); United States v. California, 332 U.S. 19, 33 note 16 (1947) ([S]hortly after we
became a nation our statesmen became interested in establishing national dominion over a definite marginal zone to
protect our neutrality. Largely as a result of their efforts, the idea of a definite three-mile belt in which an adjacent
nation can, if it chooses, exercise broad, if not complete dominion, has apparently at last been generally accepted
throughout the world, although as late as 1876 there was still considerable doubt in England about its scope and
even its existence.).
33
DEPARTMENT OF DEFENSE MANUAL 2005.1-M, Maritime Claims Reference, 2 (Jun. 23, 2005) (The maritime
claims references in this Manual represent claims made by the coastal nations. Some of the claims are inconsistent
with international law. The United States does not recognize those maritime claims that are not in conformity with
customary international law, as reflected in the 1982 United Nations Law of the Sea Convention. Examples include
excessive straight baseline claims, territorial sea claims in excess of 12 nautical miles (nm), and other claims that
unlawfully impede freedom of navigation and overflight.).
34
Consider LOS CONVENTION art. 49(1) (The sovereignty of an archipelagic State extends to the waters enclosed
by the archipelagic baselines drawn in accordance with article 47, described as archipelagic waters, regardless of
their depth and distance from the coast.); LOS CONVENTION art. 47 (An archipelagic State may draw straight
archipelagic baselines joining the outermost posts of the outermost islands and drying reefs of the archipelago
provided that within such baselines are included the main islands and an area in which the ratio of the area of the
water to the area of the land, including atolls, is between 1 to 1 and 9 to 1.).
865
geographic, economic, and political entity or that historically have been regarded as such. 35 An
archipelagic State means a State constituted wholly by one or more archipelagos and may
include other islands. 36 The Philippines and Indonesia are examples of archipelagic States. 37
During armed conflict, the right of innocent passage would not apply between belligerent
States. During armed conflict, belligerent States may restrict the right of neutral vessels to
conduct innocent passage through territorial seas and archipelagic waters belonging to a
belligerent State, such as by establishing maritime zones. 40 During armed conflict, neutral States
may regulate, and even prohibit, belligerent warships and prizes from entering their territorial
seas and archipelagic waters. 41
13.2.3 International Waters. International waters, which are not subject to the
sovereignty of any State, include contiguous zones, exclusive economic zones (EEZs), and the
high seas. These waters, which are seaward of the territorial sea, are waters in which States have
certain freedoms, such as freedom of navigation and overflight.
35
Consider LOS CONVENTION art. 46(b) (archipelago means a group of islands, including parts of islands,
interconnecting water and other natural features which are so closely interrelated that [they] form an intrinsic
geographic, economic, and political entity or which historically have been regarded as such.).
36
Consider LOS CONVENTION art. 46(a) (archipelagic State means a State constituted wholly by one or more
archipelagos and may include other islands;).
37
CommentaryThe 1982 United Nations Convention on the Law of the Sea and the Agreement on Implementation
of Part XI, 22, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING LOS CONVENTION (A State may enclose
archipelagic waters within archipelagic baselines that satisfy the criteria specified in Article 47. Depending on how
the archipelagic baseline system is established, the following 20 States could legitimately claim archipelagic waters:
Antigua & Barbuda, The Bahamas, Cape Verde, Comoros, Fiji, Grenada, Indonesia, Jamaica, Kiribati (in part),
Maldives, Marshall Islands (in part), Papua New Guinea, Philippines, Saint Vincent and the Grenadines, Sao Tome
& Principe, Seychelles, Solomon Islands (five archipelagos), Tonga, Trinidad & Tobago, and Vanuatu.).
38
Consider LOS CONVENTION art. 17 (Subject to this Convention, ships of all States, whether coastal or land-
locked, enjoy the right of innocent passage through the territorial sea.); LOS CONVENTION art. 52 (1. Subject to
article 53 and without prejudice to article 50, ships of all States enjoy the right of innocent passage through
archipelagic waters, in accordance with Part II, section 3.).
39
Consider LOS CONVENTION art. 25(3) (The coastal State may, without discrimination in form or in fact among
foreign ships, suspend temporarily in specified areas of its territorial sea the innocent passage of foreign ships if
such suspension is essential for the protection of its security, including weapons exercises. Such suspension shall
take effect only after having been duly published.).
40
Refer to 13.9.4 (Use of Zones to Prevent Movement Exclusion Zones).
41
Refer to 15.7.2 (A Neutral States Regulations Concerning Belligerent Warships and Prizes in Its Waters).
866
13.2.3.1 High Seas Freedoms. States may exercise certain freedoms on the high
seas, such as freedom of navigation and freedom of overflight. 42 For example, the high seas
freedoms that warships may exercise include: task force maneuvering, flight operations, military
exercises, surveillance, intelligence gathering activities, and ordnance testing and firing. 43 These
rights and freedoms must be exercised with due regard for the interests of other States in their
exercise of the freedom of the high seas and other applicable rights. 44
Within a States EEZ, other States enjoy high seas freedoms of navigation and overflight,
and other rights, but must exercise those rights with due regard for the rights and duties of the
coastal State. 45
42
Convention on the High Seas, art. 2, Apr. 29, 1958, 450 UNTS 82, 83-84 (Freedom of the high seas is exercised
under the conditions laid down by these articles and by the other rules of international law. It comprises, inter alia,
both for coastal and non coastal states: (1) Freedom of navigation; (2) Freedom of fishing; (3) Freedom to lay
submarine cables and pipelines; (4) Freedom to fly over the high seas.). Consider LOS CONVENTION art. 87(1)
(The high seas are open to all States, whether coastal or land-locked. Freedom of the high seas is exercised under
the conditions laid down by this Convention and by other rules of international law. It comprises, inter alia, both for
coastal and land-locked States: (a) freedom of navigation; (b) freedom of overflight; (c) freedom to lay submarine
cables and pipelines, subject to Part VI; (d) freedom to construct artificial islands and other installations permitted
under international law, subject to Part VI; (e) freedom of fishing, subject to the conditions laid down in section 2;
(f) freedom of scientific research, subject to Parts VI and XIII.).
43
2007 NWP 1-14M 2.6.3 (All ships and aircraft, including warship and military aircraft, enjoy complete freedom
of movement and operation on and over the high seas. For warships, this includes task force maneuvering, flight
operations, military exercises, surveillance, intelligence gathering activities, and ordnance testing and firing.); 1997
NWP 9 2.4.3 (same); 1989 NWP 9 2.4.3 (same).
44
Convention on the High Seas, art. 2, Apr. 29, 1958, 450 UNTS 82, 84 (These freedoms, and others which are
recognized by the general principles of international law, shall be exercised by all States with reasonable regard to
the interests of other States in their exercise of the freedom of the high seas.). Consider LOS CONVENTION art.
87(2) (These freedoms shall be exercised by all States with due regard for the interests of other States in their
exercise of the freedom of the high seas, and also with due regard for the rights under this Convention with respect
to activities in the Area.).
45
Consider LOS CONVENTION art. 58 (1. In the exclusive economic zone, all States, whether coastal or land-
locked, enjoy, subject to the relevant provisions of this Convention, the freedoms referred to in article 87 of
navigation and overflight and of the laying of submarine cables and pipelines, and other internationally lawful uses
of the sea related to these freedoms, such as those associated with the operation of ships, aircraft and submarine
cables and pipelines, and compatible with the other provisions of this Convention. 2. Articles 88 to 115 and other
pertinent rules of international law apply to the exclusive economic zone in so far as they are not incompatible with
this Part. 3. In exercising their rights and performing their duties under this Convention in the exclusive economic
zone, States shall have due regard to the rights and duties of the coastal State and shall comply with the laws and
regulations adopted by the coastal State in accordance with the provisions of this Convention and other rules of
international law in so far as they are not incompatible with this Part.).
46
Convention on the Territorial Sea and Contiguous Zone, art. 24, Apr. 29, 1958, 516 UNTS 205, 220 (1. In a zone
of the high seas contiguous to its territorial sea, the coastal State may exercise the control necessary to: (a) Prevent
infringement of its customs, fiscal, immigration or sanitary regulations within its territory or territorial sea; (b)
867
The United States has established a contiguous zone extending 24 nautical miles from the
baselines of the United States determined in accordance with international law, but in no case
within the territorial sea of another nation. 47
Although a coastal State does not have sovereignty over its EEZ, it has certain, generally
economic rights over these areas that must be exercised with due regard for the rights and duties
of other States, such as the high seas freedoms of other States. 50
13.2.3.4 High Seas. International law regarding the high seas applies to all parts
of the sea that are not included in the EEZ, territorial sea, internal waters, or archipelagic waters
Punish infringement of the above regulations committed within its territory or territorial sea.). Consider LOS
CONVENTION art. 33 (1. In a zone contiguous to its territorial sea, described as the contiguous zone, the coastal
State may exercise the control necessary to: (a) prevent infringement of its customs, fiscal, immigration or sanitary
laws and regulations within its territory or territorial sea; (b) punish infringement of the above laws and regulations
committed within its territory or territorial sea. 2. The contiguous zone may not extend beyond 24 nautical miles
from the baselines from which the breadth of the territorial sea is measured.).
47
William J. Clinton, Proclamation 7219: Contiguous Zone of the United States, Aug. 2, 1999, 64 FEDERAL
REGISTER 48701 (Aug. 8, 1999) (The contiguous zone of the United States extends to 24 nautical miles from the
baselines of the United States determined in accordance with international law, but in no case within the territorial
sea of another nation.).
48
Consider LOS CONVENTION art. 55 (The exclusive economic zone is an area beyond and adjacent to the
territorial sea, subject to the specific legal regime established in this Part, under which the rights and jurisdiction of
the coastal State and the rights and freedoms of other States are governed by the relevant provisions of this
Convention.); LOS CONVENTION art. 57 (The exclusive economic zone shall not extend beyond 200 nautical miles
from the baselines from which the breadth of the territorial sea is measured.).
49
Ronald Reagan, Proclamation 5030: Exclusive Economic Zone of the United States of America, Mar. 10, 1983,
97 STAT. 1557 (The Exclusive Economic Zone of the United States is a zone contiguous to the territorial sea,
including zones contiguous to the territorial sea of the United States, the Commonwealth of Puerto Rico, the
Commonwealth of the Northern Mariana Islands (to the extent consistent with the Covenant and the United Nations
Trusteeship Agreement), and United States overseas territories and possessions. The Exclusive Economic Zone
extends to a distance 200 nautical miles from the baseline from which the breadth of the territorial sea is measured.
In cases where the maritime boundary with a neighboring State remains to be determined, the boundary of the
Exclusive Economic Zone shall be determined by the United States and other State concerned in accordance with
equitable principles.).
50
Consider LOS CONVENTION art. 56 (1. In the exclusive economic zone, the coastal State has: (a) sovereign
rights for the purpose of exploring and exploiting, conserving and managing the natural resources, whether living or
non-living, of the waters superjacent to the seabed and of the seabed and its subsoil, and with regard to other
activities for the economic exploitation and exploration of the zone, such as the production of energy from the water,
currents and winds; (b) jurisdiction as provided for in the relevant provisions of this Convention with regard to: (i)
the establishment and use of artificial islands, installations and structures; (ii) marine scientific research; (iii) the
protection and preservation of the marine environment; (c) other rights and duties provided for in this Convention.
2. In exercising its rights and performing its duties under this Convention in the exclusive economic zone, the
coastal State shall have due regard to the rights and duties of other States and shall act in a manner compatible with
the provisions of this Convention. 3. The rights set out in this article with respect to the seabed and subsoil shall be
exercised in accordance with Part VI.).
868
of an archipelagic State. 51 No State may validly purport to subject any part of the high seas to its
sovereignty. 52 States may exercise certain freedoms on the high seas, such as freedom of
navigation and freedom of overflight. 53
13.2.4 Chart Illustrating the Legal Boundaries of the Oceans and Airspace. This chart,
reproduced from the 2007 Commanders Handbook on the Law of Naval Operations, seeks to
summarize the maximum permissible claims of States with respect to the boundaries of the
oceans and airspace, as reflected in the LOS Convention. 54
51
Convention on the High Seas, art. 1, Apr. 29, 1958, 450 UNTS 82 (The term high seas means all parts of the
sea that are not included in the territorial sea or in the internal waters of a State.). Consider LOS CONVENTION art.
86 (The provisions of this Part apply to all parts of the sea that are not included in the exclusive economic zone, in
the territorial sea or in the internal waters of a State, or in the archipelagic waters of an archipelagic State. This
article does not entail any abridgement of the freedoms enjoyed by all States in the exclusive economic zone in
accordance with article 58.).
52
Convention on the High Seas, art. 2, Apr. 29, 1958, 450 UNTS 82 (The high seas being open to all nations, no
State may validly purport to subject any part of them to its sovereignty.). Consider LOS CONVENTION art. 89 (No
State may validly purport to subject any part of the high seas to its sovereignty.).
53
Refer to 13.2.3.1 (High Seas Freedoms).
54
2007 NWP 1-14M 1.3, Figure 1-1. See also CommentaryThe 1982 United Nations Convention on the Law of
the Sea and the Agreement on Implementation of Part XI, 4, Figure 1, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT
TRANSMITTING LOS CONVENTION; JOINT PUBLICATION 3-32, Command and Control for Joint Maritime Operations,
I-7, Figure I-1 (Aug. 7, 2013); JUDGE ADVOCATE GENERALS LEGAL CENTER & SCHOOL, INTERNATIONAL AND
OPERATIONAL LAW DEPARTMENT, OPERATIONAL LAW HANDBOOK 160 (2013).
869
13.3 OVERVIEW OF RULES FOR NAVAL ENGAGEMENTS
In general, the rules for conducting attacks, such as bombardments, by naval forces are
the same as those for land or air forces. 55
13.3.1 Areas of Naval Warfare. As a general rule, naval forces may attack military
objectives wherever located outside neutral territory. 56 In certain cases (e.g., involving
belligerent use of neutral territory as a base of operations), hostilities may be conducted in
neutral territory to redress violations of neutrality. 57
13.3.2 Classification of Vessels. The law of land warfare has divided enemy nationals
into different categories in order to facilitate the protection of the civilian population from
hostilities.58 Similarly, the law of naval warfare has sought to classify enemy vessels to protect
those that are civilian or non-combatant in character.
In general, all vessels of an enemy State may be understood to fall into one of three
classes: (1) warships and naval and military auxiliaries; (2) merchant vessels; and (3) exempt
vessels.
Warships and naval and military auxiliaries are generally liable to attack and capture. 59
Merchant vessels are generally liable to capture, but are liable to attack if they forfeit their
protection. 60 Exempt vessels are not liable to capture or attack, unless they forfeit their
protection. 61
13.3.3 Vessels Entitled to Conduct Attacks. During international armed conflict at sea,
warships are the only vessels that are entitled to conduct attacks. 62
Other vessels, such as auxiliary vessels and merchant vessels, are not entitled to conduct
attacks in offensive combat operations. 63 All vessels, however, may defend themselves
(including resisting attacks by enemy forces). 64
55
Refer to 5.5 (Rules on Conducting Assaults, Bombardments, and Other Attacks).
56
Refer to 15.3.1.2 (Inviolability of Neutral Territory - Prohibition on Hostile Acts or Other Violations of
Neutrality).
57
Refer to 15.4.2 (Belligerent Use of Self-Help When Neutral States Are Unable or Unwilling to Prevent
Violations of Neutrality).
58
Refer to 4.2 (The Armed Forces and the Civilian Population).
59
Refer to 13.4 (Enemy Warships).
60
Refer to 13.5 (Enemy Merchant Vessels).
61
Refer to 13.6 (Enemy Vessels Exempt From Capture or Destruction).
62
See 1955 NWIP 10-2 500e (At sea, only warships and military aircraft may exercise belligerent rights.).
63
2013 GERMAN MANUAL 1020 (The following vessels and persons may not perform acts of naval warfare: -
state ships other than warships, even when carrying out support services for the naval forces, - merchant ships, -
870
13.3.3.1 Entitlement of Vessels to Conduct Attacks During Non-International
Armed Conflict. The United States is not a Party to any treaties that would prohibit the use of
warships and auxiliaries in non-international armed conflict, nor has the United States
recognized such a prohibition in customary international law. Accordingly, State vessels other
than warships may be used to conduct attacks against non-State armed groups during non-
international armed conflict. 65 For example, international law does not prohibit auxiliaries from
conducting attacks in a non-international armed conflict. Similarly, a State may use its law
enforcement authorities to address insurgent groups, and there would be no objection to using a
law enforcement vessel as part of operations against insurgents. 66
In some cases, the acts of hostility by insurgents on the high seas may be regarded as
67
piracy.
13.3.4 Shipwrecked Persons. Shipwrecked persons are hors de combat, and may not be
made the object of attack. 68 Shipwrecked persons include personnel involved in forced landings
fishing vessels and other civilian ships, - prize crews of captured ships, - state aircraft other than military aircraft
and - civilian aircraft. The crews of all ships and aircraft are, however, entitled to defend themselves against attacks
by enemy armed forces.); 1992 GERMAN MANUAL 1016 (The following vessels and persons may not perform
acts of naval warfare: - state ships other than warships, even when carrying out support Services for the naval
forces, - state aircraft other than military aircraft, - merchant ships, - fishing boats and other civil ships, - civil
aircraft, and - prize crews of captured ships. The crews of all ships and aircraft are, however, entitled to defend
themselves against attacks by enemy forces.).
64
See Institute of International Law, Manual of the Laws of Naval War, art. 12 (1913) (Apart from the conditions
laid down in Articles 3 [regarding the conversion of public and private vessels into war-ships] and following, neither
public nor private vessels, nor their personnel, may commit acts of hostility against the enemy. Both may, however,
use force to defend themselves against the attack of an enemy vessel.). Refer to 4.16.1 (Merchant or Civil Crews
- Conduct of Hostilities).
65
Wolff Heintschel von Heinegg, Methods and Means of Naval Warfare in Non-International Armed Conflicts, 88
U.S. NAVAL WAR COLLEGE INTERNATIONAL LAW STUDIES 211, 219 (2012) (Under the law of international armed
conflict, only warships are entitled to exercise belligerent rights. This rule goes back to the prohibition of
privateering under the 1856 Paris Declaration. Warships are those vessels that meet the criteria set forth in Articles
2-5 of the 1907 Hague Convention VII, Article 8(2) of the 1958 High Seas Convention and Article 29 of the LOS
Convention. Limitations on the exercise of belligerent rights are most important with regard to interference with
neutral navigation and aviation; thus, neutral vessels and aircraft must accede to such interference only if the
measures are taken by warships. No such limitation applies to non-international armed conflicts vis--vis the
parties. It follows from the object and purpose of the rule limiting the exercise of belligerent rights under the law of
naval warfarei.e., the transparent entitlement of the warshipthat the non-State actor will obviously not have
ships that meet the criteria for classification as a warship since one of the criteria is that it be a State vessel. The
government forces may make use of any vessel or aircraft, including, for example, those used for law enforcement
and customs enforcement, in the conduct of hostilities.).
66
Refer to 17.4.1 (Ability of a State to Use Its Domestic Law Against Non-State Armed Groups).
67
The Three Friends, 166 U.S. 1 (1897) (Belligerency is recognized when a political struggle has attained a certain
magnitude and affects the interests of the recognizing power; and in the instance of maritime operations, recognition
may be compelled, or the vessels of the insurgents, if molesting third parties, may be pursued as pirates.).
68
Refer to 5.10.4 (Persons Rendered Unconscious or Otherwise Incapacitated by Wounds, Sickness, or
Shipwreck).
871
at sea by or from aircraft, but do not include, for example, combatant personnel engaged in
attacks. 69
As far as military exigencies permit, after each naval engagement, all possible measures
should be taken without delay to search for and collect the wounded, sick, and shipwrecked, and
to recover the dead. 70
13.3.5 Surrender by Enemy Vessels. The general rules on the protection of persons hors
de combat, including the rule prohibiting the attack of persons who have surrendered, also apply
to enemy vessels. 71 In particular, it is forbidden to make an enemy vessel the object of attack if
it has genuinely, clearly, and unconditionally surrendered, in circumstances in which it is feasible
to accept such surrender. 72
Once an enemy vessel has clearly indicated a readiness to surrender, the attack must be
discontinued. 73 Indicia of surrender by vessels may include:
69
Refer to 7.3.1.2 (Shipwrecked).
70
Refer to 7.4.1 (GWS-Sea Obligation Regarding the Search, Collection, and Affirmative Protection of the
Wounded, Sick, Shipwrecked, and Dead).
71
Refer to 5.10.3 (Persons Who Have Surrendered).
72
2007 NWP 8.6.1 (It is forbidden, however, to target an enemy warship or military aircraft that in good faith
unambiguously and effectively conveys a timely offer of surrender.); 1955 NWIP 511c (It is forbidden to refuse
quarter to any enemy who has surrendered in good faith. In particular, it is forbidden either to continue to attack
enemy warships and military aircraft which have clearly indicated a readiness to surrender or to fire upon the
survivors of such vessels and aircraft who no longer have the means to defend themselves.).
73
2007 NWP 1-14M 8.6.1 (Once an enemy warship has clearly indicated a readiness to surrender, such as by
hauling down her flag, by hoisting a white flag, by surfacing (in the case of submarines), by stopping engines and
responding to the attackers signals, or by taking to lifeboats, the attack must be discontinued.).
74
Refer to 12.4 (The White Flag of Truce to Initiate Negotiations).
75
W.T. MALLISON, JR., STUDIES IN THE LAW OF NAVAL WARFARE: SUBMARINES IN GENERAL AND LIMITED WARS
134 (1968) (The duty to give quarter is, of course, the same in submarine warfare as it is in other naval warfare.
There are undoubtedly unusual problems which occur concerning manifestations of surrender in submarine warfare.
A submarine even when fully surfaced lies low in the water. There may be, consequently, particular difficulties in
observing a submarine's manifestation of surrender. Where a submarine is forced to the surface following depth
charging, it seems reasonable that the submarine's commander should be given an opportunity to surrender unless an
unequivocal intention of fighting it out on the surface is manifested. The attempt of a surface ship to indicate
surrender to a submerged submarine also raises problems. For example, it is clear that the submerged submarine at
periscope depth has only limited visibility.).
872
taking to lifeboats.
Enemy warships and naval and military auxiliaries are subject to attack, destruction, or
capture anywhere beyond neutral territory.
Warships are generally understood to possess certain privileges and immunities from the
jurisdiction of other States. 78
13.4.2 Attacks Against Enemy Warships. In general, enemy warships are military
objectives. 79 However, warships that have surrendered or that are exempt vessels may not be
made the object of attack. 80
13.4.3 Captured Enemy Warships No Prize Procedure. Prize procedures are not used
for captured enemy warships because their ownership vests immediately in the captors
76
Trial of Helmuth von Ruchteschell, Outline of the Proceedings, IX U.N. LAW REPORTS 82 (British Military Court,
Hamburg, May 5-21, 1947) (The captain of the Davisian stopped his engines, hoisted an answering pennant and
acknowledged the signal. In spite of this, the raiders firing continued for 15 minutes, wounding 8 or 10 of the crew
of the Davisian, whilst they were trying to abandon ship [by taking to lifeboats].).
77
Convention on the High Seas, art. 8, Apr. 29, 1958, 450 UNTS 82, 86 (1. Warships on the high seas have
complete immunity from the jurisdiction of any State other than the flag State. 2. For the purposes of these articles,
the term warship means a ship belonging to the naval forces of a State and bearing the external marks
distinguishing warships of its nationality, under the command of an officer duly commissioned by the government
and whose name appears in the Navy List, and manned by a crew who are under regular naval discipline.).
Consider LOS CONVENTION art. 29 (For the purposes of this Convention, warship means a ship belonging to the
armed forces of a State bearing the external marks distinguishing such ships of its nationality, under the command of
an officer duly commissioned by the government of the State and whose name appears in the appropriate service list
or its equivalent, and manned by a crew which is under regular armed forces discipline.).
78
See, e.g., The Schooner Exch. v. McFaddon, 11 U.S. 116, 144 (1812) (But in all respects different is the situation
of a public armed ship. She constitutes a part of the military force of her nation; acts under the immediate and direct
command of the sovereign; is employed by him in national objects. He has many and powerful motives for
preventing those objects from being defeated by the interference of a foreign state. Such interference cannot take
place without affecting his power and his dignity. The implied license therefore under which such vessel enters a
friendly port, may reasonably be construed, and it seems to the Court, ought to be construed, as containing an
exemption from the jurisdiction of the sovereign, within whose territory she claims the rites of hospitality.).
Consider LOS CONVENTION art. 95 (Warships on the high seas have complete immunity from the jurisdiction of
any State other than the flag State.).
79
Refer to 5.7.4 (Objects Categorically Recognized as Military Objectives).
80
Refer to 13.3.5 (Surrender by Enemy Vessels); 13.6 (Enemy Vessels Exempt From Capture or Destruction).
873
government by the fact of capture. 81 As public movable property, warships are seizable as war
booty. 82 Similarly, prize procedures are not used for captured enemy military aircraft. 83
13.5.1 Capture of Enemy Merchant Vessels. Enemy merchant vessels may be captured
wherever located beyond neutral territory. Prior exercise of visit and search is not required,
provided positive determination of enemy status can be made by other means. 84
81
1955 NWIP 10-2 503a(2) (Enemy warships and military aircraft may be captured outside neutral jurisdiction.
Prize procedure is not used for such captured vessels and aircraft because their ownership immediately vests in the
captors government by the fact of capture.).
82
Refer to 5.17.3 (Enemy Movable Property on the Battlefield (War Booty)).
83
Refer to 14.5.3 (Capture of Aircraft and Goods on Board Aircraft).
84
2007 NWP 1-14M 8.6.2.1 (Enemy merchant vessels and civil aircraft may be captured wherever located beyond
neutral territory. Prior exercise of visit and search is not required, provided positive determination of enemy status
can be made by other means.).
85
See, e.g., LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 482 (192) (It has already been stated above that
the capture of a private enemy vessel has to be confirmed by a Prize Court, and that it is only through its
adjudication that the vessel becomes finally appropriated.); Oakes v. United States, 174 U.S. 778, 786-87 (1899)
(By the law of nations, recognized and administered in this country, when movable property in the hands of the
enemy, used, or intended to be used, for hostile purposes, is captured by land forces, the title passes to the captors as
soon as they have reduced the property to firm possession; but when such property is captured by naval forces, a
judicial decree of condemnation is usually necessary to complete the title of the captors.).
86
2007 NWP 1-14M 8.6.2.1 (When military circumstances preclude sending or taking in such vessel or aircraft
for adjudication as an enemy prize, it may be destroyed after all possible measures are taken to provide for the safety
of passengers and crew.); 1955 NWIP 10-2 503b(2) (Enemy merchant vessels and aircraft which have been
captured may, in case of military necessity, be destroyed by the capturing officer when they cannot be sent or
escorted in for adjudication. Should the necessity for the destruction of an enemy prize arise, it is the duty of the
capturing officer to take all possible measures to provide for the safety of passengers and crew.).
874
practicable, the personal effects of passengers should be saved. 87 Every case of destruction of a
captured enemy prize should be reported promptly to higher command. 88
The destruction of neutral prizes involves similar procedures, but a more serious
responsibility. 89
13.5.2 Attack of Enemy Merchant Vessels. Enemy merchant vessels may be made the
object of attack, outside neutral territory, if they constitute a military objective. 90
In particular, enemy merchant vessels may be attacked and destroyed by warships, either
with or without prior warning, in any of the following circumstances: 91
armed with systems or weapons beyond that required for self-defense against terrorist,
piracy, or like threats;
875
under the circumstances of the specific encounter, subject the warship to imminent
danger or would otherwise preclude mission accomplishment.
The 1936 London Protocol provides that except in the case of persistent refusal to stop
on being duly summoned, or of active resistance to visit or search, a warship, whether surface
vessel or submarine, may not sink or render incapable of navigation a merchant vessel without
having first placed passengers, crew and ships papers in a place of safety. 92 Merchant vessels
in the sense of this rule, however, do not include merchant vessels that constitute military
objectives. 93
In particular, attacks against civilian passenger vessels engaged in passenger service must
comply with the requirement that the expected loss of life or injury to civilians, and damage to
civilian objects incidental to the attack, must not be excessive in relation to the concrete and
direct military advantage expected to be gained. 95
13.5.3 Detention of Personnel From Enemy Merchant Vessels. Officers and crews of
captured enemy merchant ships may be detained. 96 If detained, such persons are POWs. 97
92
Procs-Verbal Relating to the Rules of Submarine Warfare Set Forth in Part IV of the Treaty of London of April
22, 1930, Nov. 6, 1936, 173 LNTS 353, 357. See Treaty for the Limitation and Reduction of Naval Armament, art.
22, Apr. 22, 1930, 46 STAT. 2858, 2881-82 (In particular, except in the case of persistent refusal to stop on being
duly summoned, or of active resistance to visit or search, a warship, whether surface vessel or submarine, may not
sink or render incapable of navigation a merchant vessel without having first placed passengers, crew and ships
papers in a place of safety. For this purpose the ships boats are not regarded as a place of safety unless the safety of
the passengers and crew is assured, in the existing sea and weather conditions, by the proximity of land, or the
presence of another vessel which is in a position to take them on board.).
93
Wolff Heintschel von Heinegg, The Law of Armed Conflict at Sea, in DIETER FLECK, THE HANDBOOK OF
HUMANITARIAN LAW IN ARMED CONFLICTS 428-29 (1025) (1999) (The rules laid down in that document formed
part of the 1922 Washington Treaty and were reaffirmed by the 1930 London Conference. During that conference a
committee of legal experts presented a report in which the matter was clarified as follows: The Committee wish to
place it on record that the expression merchant vessel, where it is employed in the declaration, is not to be
understood as including a merchant vessel which is at the moment participating in hostilities in such a manner as to
cause her to lose her right to the immunities of a merchant vessel. Whereas it remains unclear what is meant by
participating in hostilities it is obvious that merchant vessels are not in all circumstances protected by the 1936
London Protocol. This was confirmed by the judgment of the Nuremberg Tribunal. Hence, enemy merchant vessels
that, by their conduct, qualify as legitimate military objectives are not protected by the 1936 London Protocol and
mayas an exceptional measurebe attacked and sunk.).
94
Refer to 5.5 (Rules on Conducting Assaults, Bombardments, and Other Attacks).
95
Refer to 5.12 (Proportionality in Conducting Attacks).
96
2007 NWP 1-14M 8.6.2.1 (Officers and crews of captured enemy merchant ships and civilian aircraft may be
detained.); 1955 NWIP 10-2 512 (The officers and crews of captured enemy merchant vessels and aircraft may
be made prisoners of war.).
97
Refer to 4.16.2 (Merchant or Civil Crews Detention).
876
Other civilian enemy nationals on board such captured ships as private passengers are
subject to the discipline of the captor. 98 If detained, such persons must, at a minimum, be
afforded certain fundamental guarantees of humane treatment. 99
Nationals of a neutral State on board captured enemy merchant vessels should not be
detained unless they have participated in acts of hostility or resistance against the captor, or are
otherwise in the service of the enemy. 100
Certain classes of enemy vessels are exempt from capture or destruction, provided they
are innocently and solely employed in the activities that enjoy exempted status.
Exempt vessels may not be used for purposes outside their innocent role while taking
advantage of their harmless appearance. Warships may not be disguised as exempt vessels. 101
13.6.1 Duties of Exempt Vessels. These specially protected vessels must not take part in
hostilities or assist the enemys military effort in any manner.
Such vessels and boats are subject to the regulations of a belligerent naval commander
operating in the area. 102 They must not hamper the movement of combatants, must submit to
identification and inspection procedures, and may be ordered out of harms way. Refusal to
provide immediate identification upon demand is ordinarily sufficient legal justification for
capture or destruction.
13.6.2 Classes of Exempt Vessels. Specifically exempt vessels include: (1) cartel
vessels; (2) hospital ships; (3) vessels charged with religious, non-military scientific, or
philanthropic missions; (4) vessels granted safe conduct; and (5) small fishing and trade
vessels. 103
98
2007 NWP 1-14M 8.6.2.1 (Other enemy nationals on board such captured ships and aircraft as private
passengers are subject to the discipline of the captor.); 1955 NWIP 10-2 512 (Other enemy nationals on board
captured enemy merchant vessels and aircraft as private passengers are subject to the discipline of a captor.).
99
Refer to 8.1.1 (Overview of Detention Rules in This Manual and the Scope of Chapter VIII).
100
2007 NWP 1-14M 8.6.2.1 (Nationals of a neutral nation on board captured enemy merchant vessels and
civilian aircraft should not be detained unless they have participated in acts of hostility or resistance against the
captor or are otherwise in the service of the enemy.); 1955 NWIP 10-2 512 (The nationals of a neutral state on
board captured enemy merchant vessels and aircraft as private passengers should not be made prisoners of war.).
Refer to 15.6.2 (Forfeiture of Protections of Neutral Status by a Neutral Person).
101
Refer to 13.13 (Deception by Naval Forces, Including the Use of Enemy or Neutral Flags).
102
Refer to 13.8 (Belligerent Control of the Immediate Area of Naval Operations).
103
1955 NWIP 10-2 503c (The following enemy vessels and aircraft, when innocently employed, are exempt from
destruction or capture: 1. Cartel vessels and aircraft, i.e., vessels and aircraft designated for and engaged in the
exchange of prisoners. 2. Properly designated hospital ships, medical transports, and medical aircraft. 3. Vessels
charged with religious, scientific, or philanthropic missions. 4. Vessels and aircraft guaranteed safe conduct by prior
arrangement between the belligerents. 5. Vessels and aircraft exempt by proclamation, operation plan, order, or
other directive. 6. Small costal (not deep-sea) fishing vessels and small boats engaged in local coastal trade and not
877
13.6.2.1 Cartel Vessels. Vessels and aircraft designated for, and engaged in, the
exchange of POWs are privileged from capture. 104
13.6.2.2 Hospital Ships That Meet the Requirements of the GWS-Sea. Hospital
ships, including military hospital ships, commissioned civilian hospital ships, and authorized
neutral hospital ships, that meet the requirements of the GWS-Sea are exempt from capture. 105
Hospital ships do not forfeit their exempt status if they are armed for self-defense purposes or if
they possess or use communications equipment with encryption.
Hospital ships may be armed with defensive weapon systems, including when necessary
certain crew-served weapons, as a prudent anti-terrorism/force protection (AT/FP) measure to
defend against small boat attacks. 106 The 1949 Geneva Conventions do not directly address
weapons systems for hospital ships, but they do expressly provide for the arming of crew
members with small arms for the maintenance of order and for the self-defense of the crew or the
sick and wounded. 107 The arming of the ship with crew-served weapons for self-defense of the
ship is not prohibited and is consistent with the ships humanitarian purpose and the crews duty
to safeguard the wounded and sick.
The GWS-Sea provides that hospital ships may not use or possess secret codes as
means of communication; however, state practice has evolved to accept that modern
communications systems (e.g., satellite communications and video teleconference systems) and
taking part in hostilities. Such vessels and boats are subject to the regulations of a belligerent naval commander
operating in the area.).
104
See, e.g., The Brig Betsey, 49 Ct. Cl. 125, 132 (Ct. Cl. 1913) (What is a cartel in warfare of the nations? An
agreement between belligerents for the exchange of prisoners. What is a cartel ship except a vessel of belligerents
duly commissioned for the carriage by sea of exchanged prisoners from enemy country to their own country or for
the carriage of official communications to and from enemies?); The Adula, 176 U.S. 361, 379-80 (1900) (While
the mission of the Adula was not an unfriendly one to this Government, she was not a cartel ship, privileged from
capture as such, but one employed in a commercial enterprise for the personal profit of the charterer, and only
secondarily, if at all, for the purpose of humanity.); Crawford v. The William Penn., 6 F. Cas. 778, 780-81
(C.C.D.N.J. 1815) (What is the character of a cartel vessel, and of the persons concerned in her navigation? The
flag of truce which she carries, throws over her and them the mantle of peace. She is, pro hac vice, a neutral
licensed vessel; and all persons concerned in her navigation, upon the particular service in which both belligerents
have employed her, are neutral, in respect to both, and under the protection of both. She cannot carry on commerce
under the protection of her flag, because this was not the business for which she was employed, and for which the
immunities of that flag were granted to her. She is engaged in a special service, to carry prisoners from one place to
another; and, whilst so engaged, she is under the protection of both belligerents, in relation to every act necessarily
connected with that service.).
105
Refer to 7.12.1.1 (Military Hospital Ships); 7.12.1.2 (Commissioned Civilian Hospital Ships); 7.12.1.3
(Authorized Neutral Civilian Hospital Ships).
106
Refer to 7.12.6.2 (Conditions That Do Not Deprive Hospital Ships and Sick-Bays of Vessels of Their
Protection).
107
Refer to 7.12.6.3 (Arming of Hospital Ships and Equipping Them With Defensive Devices).
878
navigational technology (e.g., global positioning systems) require encryption. 108 Such systems
must not be used for military purposes or in any way that is harmful to an adversary. 109
13.6.2.4 Vessels Granted Safe Conduct. Vessels and aircraft guaranteed safe
conduct by prior arrangement between the belligerents are exempt from capture. 111
13.6.2.5 Small Coastal Fishing Vessels and Small Boats Engaged in Local
Coastal Trade. Small coastal (not deep-sea) fishing vessels and small boats engaged in local
coastal trade are exempt from capture. 112
13.7.1 General Principle Same Rules Applicable to Both Submarine and Surface
Warships. Submarine warships must comply with the same law of war rules that apply to
surface warships. 113 For example, in their action with regard to merchant ships, submarines must
conform to the law of war rules to which surface vessels are subject. 114 In general, submarines
must provide for the safety of passengers, crew, and ships papers before destruction of an
108
Refer to 7.12.2.7 (Use of Secret Codes for Communication).
109
Refer to 7.12.2.2 (No Use for Military Purposes); 7.10.3.1 (Acts Harmful to the Enemy).
110
HAGUE XI art. 4 (Vessels charged with religious, scientific, or philanthropic missions are likewise exempt from
capture.).
111
Refer to 12.6.3 (Safe Conduct).
112
HAGUE XI art. 3 (Vessels used exclusively for fishing along the coast or small boats employed in local trade are
exempt from capture, as well as their appliances, rigging, tackle, and cargo. They cease to be exempt as soon as
they take any part whatever in hostilities. The Contracting Powers agree not to take advantage of the harmless
character of the said vessels in order to use them for military purposes while preserving their peaceful appearance.);
The Paquete Habana, 175 U.S. 677, 708 (1900) (This review of the precedents and authorities on the subject
appears to us abundantly to demonstrate that at the present day, by the general consent of the civilized nations of the
world, and independently of any express treaty or other public act, it is an established rule of international law,
founded on considerations of humanity to a poor and industrious order of men, and of the mutual convenience of
belligerent States, that coast fishing vessels, with their implements and supplies, cargoes and crews, unarmed, and
honestly pursuing their peaceful calling of catching and bringing in fresh fish, are exempt from capture as prize of
war. The exemption, of course, does not apply to coast fishermen or their vessels, if employed for a warlike
purpose, or in such a way as to give aid or information to the enemy; nor when military or naval operations create a
necessity to which all private interests must give way. Nor has the exemption been extended to ships or vessels
employed on the high sea in taking whales or seals, or cod or other fish which are not brought fresh to market, but
are salted or otherwise cured and made a regular article of commerce.).
113
2007 NWP 1-14M 8.7 (The law of armed conflict imposes essentially the same rules on submarines as apply to
surface warships.); 1997 NWP 9 8.3 (same); 1989 NWP 9 8.3 (same).
114
Treaty for the Limitation and Reduction of Naval Armament, art. 22, Apr. 22, 1930, 46 STAT. 2858, 2881 (In
their action with regard to merchant ships, submarines must conform to the rules of International Law to which
surface vessels are subject.). Consider Procs-Verbal Relating to the Rules of Submarine Warfare Set Forth in Part
IV of the Treaty of London of April 22, 1930, Nov. 6, 1936, 173 LNTS 353, 357 (same).
879
enemy merchant vessel. 115 However, the same exceptions to this rule that permit surface ships to
attack enemy merchant vessels that are military objectives also permit submarines to conduct
such attacks. 116
13.7.2 Different Application of Law of War Rules in the Context of Submarine Warfare.
Although submarines must comply with the same law of war rules as surface ships, a law of war
rule may apply differently in the context of submarine warfare because of the different
circumstances of submarine warfare as compared to surface warfare.
For example, like surface warships, submarine warships also have an obligation to search
for and collect the shipwrecked, wounded, and sick after an engagement. 117 This obligation,
however, is subject to certain practical limitations, and the practical limitations faced by
submarines may be different than those faced by surface vessels. 118 For example, although a
surface warship might be able to take on board survivors after an engagement, a submarine may
have limited passenger carrying capabilities. Thus, it may be necessary to rely on other
measures (e.g., such as passing the location of possible survivors to a surface ship, aircraft, or
shore facility capable of rendering assistance) to comply with the law of war obligation. 119
13.8.1 Belligerent Right to Establish Special Restrictions in the Immediate Area of Naval
Operations. Within the immediate area or vicinity of naval operations, to ensure proper battle
space management and self-defense objectives, a belligerent State may establish special
restrictions upon the activities of neutral vessels and aircraft, and may prohibit altogether such
vessels and aircraft from entering the area. 120
115
Refer to 13.5.1.3 (Destruction of Captured Enemy Merchant Vessels).
116
Refer to 13.5.2 (Attack of Enemy Merchant Vessels).
117
Refer to 7.4.1 (GWS-Sea Obligation Regarding the Search, Collection, and Affirmative Protection of the
Wounded, Sick, Shipwrecked, and Dead).
118
Refer to 7.4.4 (Practical Limitations on the Obligation to Search for, Collect, and Take Measures to Protect the
Wounded, Sick, and Shipwrecked).
119
Affidavit subscribed by Chester W. Nimitz, Fleet Admiral, Chief of Naval Operations, U.S. Navy from Joseph L.
Broderick, Lieutenant Commander, U.S. Naval Reserve, of the International Law Section, Office of the Judge
Advocate General, Navy Department (11 May 1946), in XVII TRIAL OF THE MAJOR WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE
IMT 379-80 (13. Q: Were, by order or on general principles, the U.S. submarines prohibited from carrying out
rescue measures toward passengers and crews of ships sunk without warning in those cases where by doing so the
safety of their own boat was endangered? A: On general principles, the U.S. submarines did not rescue enemy
survivors if undue additional hazard to the submarine resulted or the submarine would thereby be prevented from
accomplishing its further mission. U.S. submarines were limited in rescue measures by small passenger-carrying
facilities combined with the known desperate and suicidal character of the enemy. Therefore, it was unsafe to pick
up many survivors. Frequently survivors were given rubber boats and/or provisions. Almost invariably survivors
did not come aboard the submarine voluntarily, and it was necessary to take them prisoner by force.).
120
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.8 (Within the immediate area or vicinity of naval operations, to ensure proper battle space
management and self-defense objectives, a belligerent may establish special restrictions upon the activities of neutral
vessels and aircraft and may prohibit altogether such vessels and aircraft from entering the area.); 1955 NWIP
430b (Within the immediate area or vicinity of naval operations, a belligerent may establish special restrictions
(see, for example, paragraph 520a) upon the activities of neutral vessels and aircraft and may prohibit altogether
880
The immediate area or vicinity of naval operations is that area within which hostilities are
taking place, or belligerent State forces are actually operating. 121
Belligerent State control over neutral vessels and aircraft within the immediate area of
naval operations is based upon a belligerent States right to ensure the security of its forces and
its right to conduct hostilities without interference from neutrals. 122
A belligerent State may not purport to deny access to neutral States, or to close an
international strait to neutral shipping, pursuant to this authority unless another route of similar
convenience remains open to neutral traffic. 123
A neutral merchant ship or civil aircraft within that area that fails to conform to a
belligerent warships directions concerning communications may thereby assume enemy
character and risk being fired upon or captured. 125 Any transmission to an opposing belligerent
such vessels and aircraft from entering the area.); 2006 AUSTRALIAN MANUAL 6.16 (Within the immediate area
or vicinity of naval operations, a belligerent may establish special restrictions upon the activities of neutral vessels
and aircraft and may prohibit altogether such vessels and aircraft from entering the area.); 2004 UK MANUAL
13.80 ( Nothing in paragraphs 13.65 to 13.79 [on blockades and security zones] should be deemed to derogate
from the customary belligerent right to control neutral vessels and aircraft in the immediate vicinity of naval
operations.).
121
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.8 (The immediate area or vicinity of naval operations is that area within which hostilities
are taking place or belligerent forces are actually operating.); 1997 NWP 9 7.8 (same); 1989 NWP 9 7.8
(substantially similar); TUCKER, THE LAW OF WAR AND NEUTRALITY AT SEA 300 (It should be emphasized, though,
that the immediate area of naval operations refers to an area within which naval hostilities are taking place or within
which belligerent forces are actually operating.).
122
TUCKER, THE LAW OF WAR AND NEUTRALITY AT SEA 301 (The claim to control neutral vessels and aircraft
within the immediate vicinity of operating forces is essentially a limited and transient one and is based not only upon
the right of a belligerent to insure the security of his forces but upon the right to attack and to defend himself without
interference from neutrals.).
123
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.8 (A belligerent may not, however, purport to deny access to neutral nations, or to close
an international strait to neutral shipping, pursuant to this authority unless another route of similar convenience
remains open to neutral traffic.); 1997 NWP 9 7.8 (same); 1989 NWP 9 7.8 (same). Compare 13.10.2.5
(Limitations on the Scope of the Blockade).
124
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.8 (The commanding officer of a belligerent warship may exercise control over the
communication of any neutral merchant vessel or civil aircraft whose presence in the immediate area of naval
operations might otherwise endanger or jeopardize those operations.); 1955 NWIP 10-2 520a (Within the
immediate vicinity of his forces, a belligerent commanding officer may exercise control over the communications of
any neutral merchant vessel or aircraft whose presence might otherwise endanger the success of the operations.);
2006 AUSTRALIAN MANUAL 6.17 (Within the immediate area or vicinity of naval operations, a commanding
officer of a belligerent warship may exercise control over the communications of any neutral merchant vessel or
aircraft whose presence might otherwise endanger the success of the belligerent operation.).
125
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.8 (A neutral merchant ship or civil aircraft within that area that fails to conform to a
belligerents directions concerning communications may thereby assume enemy character and risk being fired upon
or captured.); 1955 NWIP 10-2 430b (Neutral vessels and aircraft which fail to comply with a belligerents
881
State of information concerning military operations or military forces is inconsistent with the
neutral States duties of abstention and impartiality, and renders the neutral States vessel or
aircraft making such a communication liable to capture or destruction. 126
Legitimate distress communications should be permitted to the extent that the success of
the operation is not prejudiced thereby. 127
13.9 MARITIME AND AIRSPACE ZONES: EXCLUSION, WAR, OPERATIONAL, WARNING, AND
SAFETY
Belligerent States may establish various maritime and airspace zones during armed
conflict. The legal rules that apply to the establishment and enforcement of a zone may depend
on the function of the zone and, in particular, whether additional belligerent rights are asserted as
a consequence of vessels entering the zone.
13.9.1 Authority to Establish Zones. The authority necessary to establish a zone may
depend on the location of the zone and the belligerent rights that are asserted as a consequence of
vessels entering the zone.
The establishment of a zone in a States waters may rely on its sovereignty over those
waters. 129 Similarly, the establishment of a zone in a States airspace may rely on its sovereignty
orders expose themselves to the risk of being fired upon. Such vessels and aircraft are also liable to capture (see
subparagraph 503d7).).
126
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.8 (Any transmission to an opposing belligerent of information concerning military
operations or military forces is inconsistent with the neutral duties of abstention and impartiality and renders the
neutral vessel or aircraft liable to capture or destruction.). Consider Commission of Jurists to Consider and Report
Upon the Revision of the Rules of Warfare, General Report, Part I: Rules for the Control of Radio in Time of War,
art. 6, Feb. 19, 1923, reprinted in 32 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL DOCUMENTS 2, 7-8 (1938) (1. The transmission
by radio by a vessel or an aircraft, whether enemy or neutral, when on or over the high seas of military intelligence
for the immediate use of a belligerent is to be deemed a hostile act and will render the vessel or aircraft liable to be
fired upon. 2. A neutral vessel or neutral aircraft which transmits when on or over the high seas information
destined for a belligerent concerning military operations or military forces shall be liable to capture. The prize court
may condemn the vessel or aircraft if it considers that the circumstances justify condemnation.).
127
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.8 (Legitimate distress communications should be permitted to the extent that the success
of the operation is not prejudiced thereby.); 1955 NWIP 10-2 520a (Legitimate distress communications by
neutral vessels and aircraft should be permitted if they do not prejudice the success of such operations.).
128
For example, The Nyon Arrangement Between the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Northern Ireland,
Bulgaria, Egypt, France, Greece, Roumania, Turkey, the Union of Soviet Socialist Republics and Yugoslavia,
Sept.14, 1937, 181 LNTS 135.
129
Refer to 13.2.2 (National Waters). For example, L.F.E. Goldie, Maritime War Zones & Exclusion Zones, 64
U.S. NAVAL WAR COLLEGE INTERNATIONAL LAW STUDIES 156, 189-90 (1991) (At this point it may be noted in
passing that Operation Market Time, which was enforced by the United States Navy during the Vietnamese War
was legally valid since it was a law-enforcement operation limited to a distance of twelve miles from the low water
mark of South Vietnam (it did not extend north beyond the DMZ) and so within the domestic competence of South
Vietnam, which legislated to empower the activity. Since that operation was conducted entirely within the territorial
sea and contiguous zone of South Vietnam, it does not come within the perspective of the present paper.).
882
over that airspace. 130 The right of a belligerent State to establish a zone outside its territory may
rely on the belligerent States: (1) right to interdict contraband; (2) right to control the
immediate area of operations; or (3) right of blockade. 131
13.9.2 Use of Zones to Warn Vessels or Aircraft War, Operational, Warning, and
Safety Zones. A zone may be issued to advise vessels or aircraft to remain clear of an area of
naval operations. Such a zone may also provide procedures to reduce the risk of neutral vessels
being mistakenly attacked. 132
Such zones have been used: (1) to identify a particularly dangerous operational area; 133
(2) to assist in the defense of a particular area; 134 or (3) to assist in the defense of particular naval
forces (i.e., a defensive bubble). 135
130
Refer to 14.2.1.1 (National Airspace).
131
Refer to 15.12 (Neutral Commerce and Carriage of Contraband); 13.8 (Belligerent Control of the Immediate
Area of Naval Operations); 13.10 (Blockade).
132
For example, HYDROLANT 597/03 (54,56) EASTERN MEDITERRANEAN SEA (202135Z MAR 2003),
reprinted in 2007 NWP 1-14M, Appendix A (2. ALL VESSELS SHOULD MAINTAIN A SAFE DISTANCE
FROM U.S. FORCES SO THAT INTENTIONS ARE CLEAR AND UNDERSTOOD BY U.S. FORCES.
VESSELS THAT ENTER THE MARITIME SAFETY ZONE WHICH ARE APPROACHING U.S. FORCES, OR
VESSELS WHOSE INTENTIONS ARE UNCLEAR ARE SUBJECT TO BOARDING AND VISIT BY U.S.
FORCES. ALL VESSELS APPROACHING U.S. FORCES ARE REQUESTED TO MAINTAIN RADIO
CONTACT WITH U.S. FORCES ON BRIDGE-TO-BRIDGE CHANNEL 16. 3. U.S. FORCES WILL EXERCISE
APPROPRIATE MEASURES IN SELF-DEFENSE IF WARRANTED BY THE CIRCUMSTANCES. VESSELS
APPROACHING U.S. FORCES WILL HELP MAKE THEIR INTENTIONS CLEAR AND AVOID
UNNECESSARY INITIATION OF SUCH DEFENSIVE MEASURES BY MAKING PRIOR CONTACT AS
DESCRIBED ABOVE.).
133
For example, HYDROLANT 597/03 (54,56) EASTERN MEDITERRANEAN SEA (202135Z MAR 2003),
reprinted in 2007 NWP 1-14M, Appendix A (U.S. FORCES IN THE EASTERN MEDITERRANEAN HAVE
ESTABLISHED A MARITIME SAFETY ZONE AND ARE CONDUCTING COMBAT OPERATIONS IN
INTERNATIONAL WATERS THAT POSE A HAZARD TO NAVIGATION. ALL VESSELS ARE ADVISED
TO EXERCISE EXTREME CAUTION AND TO REMAIN CLEAR OF THE FOLLOWING DESIGNATED
OPERATION AREA BOUND BY 32-28.0N 033-22.0E, 31-40.0N 033-22.0E, 31-55.0N 032-20.0E, 32-46.8N 032-
20.0E.).
134
For example, Woodrow Wilson, Executive Order Establishing Defensive Sea Areas, No. 2584, Apr. 5, 1917,
reprinted in 12 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL DOCUMENTS 13, 16 (1918) (I, WOODROW WILSON, President of the
United States of America, do order that defensive sea areas are hereby established, to be maintained until further
notification, at the places and within the limits prescribed as follows, The responsibility of the United States of
America for any damage inflicted by force of arms with the object of detaining any person or vessel proceeding in
contravention to Regulations duly promulgated in accordance with this Executive order shall cease from this date.).
135
For example, A.D. Parsons, Letter Dated 24 April 1982 from the Permanent Representative of the United
Kingdom of Great Britain and Northern Ireland to the United Nations Addressed to the President of the Security
Council, U.N. Doc. S/14997 (Further to Mr. Whytes letter dated 9 April 1982 (S/14963), I have the honour, on
instructions from my Government, to inform you that the following communication was conveyed to the
Government of Argentina on 23 April 1982: In announcing the establishment of a maritime exclusion zone around
the Falkland Islands, Her Majestys Government made it clear that this measure was without prejudice to the right of
883
The establishment of such a zone does not relieve the proclaiming belligerent State of its
obligation under the law of war to refrain from attacking vessels and aircraft that do not
constitute military objectives. Thus, a vessel or aircraft that is otherwise protected does not
forfeit its protection from being made the object of attack simply by entering a zone of the ocean
on the high seas established by a belligerent State. 136
In some cases, however, the fact that a vessel or aircraft enters a zone without
authorization may be probative in assessing whether it is entitled to protection (e.g., whether it is
an enemy military vessel or aircraft, or whether it has acquired the character of enemy military
vessels or aircraft). 137 For example, the notification of the zone in advance may mean that most
neutral or protected vessels and aircraft have departed the area. Similarly, the entry into the zone
of an unidentified vessel without authorization may be probative of whether the vessel
constitutes a military objective.
13.9.3 Use of Zones to Counter Enemy Logistics. Zones may be used to assist in the
implementation of the belligerents strategy to counter the adversarys logistics. 138 For example,
zones may be established to facilitate the interdiction of contraband. 139 As a case in point, a
zone may be established to warn neutral vessels and aircraft that they will be subject to visit and
search if they attempt to enter the zone without authorization.
the United Kingdom to take whatever additional measures may be needed in the exercise of its right of self-defence
under Article 51 of the United Nations Charter. In this connection, Her Majestys Government now wishes to make
clear that any approach on the part of Argentine warships, including submarines, naval auxiliaries, or military
aircraft which could amount to a threat to interfere with the mission of the British forces in the South Atlantic, will
encounter the appropriate response. All Argentine aircraft including civil aircraft engaging in surveillance of these
British forces will be regarded as hostile and are liable to be dealt with accordingly.).
136
John H. McNeil, Neutral Rights and Maritime Sanctions: The Effects of Two Gulf Wars, 31 VIRGINIA JOURNAL
OF INTERNATIONAL LAW 631, 635-36 (1991) (Iraq replied to these Iranian declarations by proclaiming a series of
escalating exclusion zones, beginning with a prohibited war zone; Iraq declared that it would attack all vessels
appearing within these zones, and stated that all tankers, regardless of nationality, docking at Kharg Island are
targets for the Iraqi Air Force. As noted earlier, Iraq launched the Tanker War in 1984 in an apparent bid to
internationalize the war. During the first months of this new offensive, some seventy ships were hit, many of which
were neutral-flag tankers bound to or from the massive Iranian oil terminal at Kharg Island. But international law
has never legitimized attacks upon neutral merchant vessels simply because they ventured into a specified area of
the high seas.).
137
Refer to 15.14.2.1 (Acquiring the Character of an Enemy Warship or Military Aircraft).
138
For example, L.F.E. Goldie, Maritime War Zones & Exclusion Zones, 64 U.S. NAVAL WAR COLLEGE
INTERNATIONAL LAW STUDIES 156, 185-86 (1991) ((a) The Exclusion Zone of the Skaggerak The Skaggerak is an
arm of the North Sea on its eastern side and lies between Denmark and Norway. It is some 150 nautical miles in
length and 85 miles in width. The argument vindicating the British proclamation of the Skaggerak as a maritime
exclusion zone under emerging customary international law may be accepted, since the strategy for enforcing the
exclusion of the adversary from the zone was an apparently successful one. It was a persisting logistical strategy
enforced by both aircraft and submarines providing an adequate ratio of force to space. This proposition can be
analyzed out into the following elements. (i) The zone was reasonable in area, and despite German surface naval
power, the logistical strategy was persistently maintained and was made effective through submarine and aerial
warfare; (ii) The object, while not primarily one of self-defense, was for the related purposes of: (b) encumbering
Germanys reinforcements and supplies destined for its oppressive occupation of Norwaya victim of Nazi
aggression; (c) the target shipping had military objectives and purposes and could not be viewed as carrying supplies
which had the object of benefitting the civilian population of Norway;).
139
Refer to 15.12 (Neutral Commerce and Carriage of Contraband).
884
Zones may not be employed for the purpose of starving the civilian population. 140 Such
zones must not impose an unreasonable burden on neutral commerce in free goods. 141
The extent, location, and duration of the exclusion zone and the measures imposed should
not exceed what is required by military necessity. 144
Belligerents establishing such zones must provide safe passage through the zone for
neutral vessels and aircraft where the geographical extent of the zone significantly impedes free
140
Refer to 5.20 (Starvation).
141
See 2007 NWP 1-14M 7.9 (To the extent that such zones serve to warn neutral vessels and aircraft away from
belligerent activities and thereby reduce their exposure to collateral damage and incidental injury (see paragraph
8.3.1), and to the extent that they do not unreasonably interfere with legitimate neutral commerce, they are
undoubtedly lawful.).
142
For example, 2004 UK MANUAL 12.58 footnote 76 (During the Falklands conflict 1982, a total exclusion zone
of 200 nautical miles was established around the Islands. It applied, inter alia, to any aircraft, military or civil,
operating in support of the illegal occupation by the Argentine forces, and any aircraft (military or civil) found
within the zone without authority from the Ministry of Defence would be regarded as operating in support of the
illegal occupation and thus hostile and liable to be attacked by the British forces.).
143
For example, HYDROPAC 795/2004 (62) PERSIAN GULF (030850Z MAY 2004), reprinted in 2007 NWP 1-
14M, Appendix C (8. ADDITIONALLY, EFFECTIVE IMMEDIATELY, EXCLUSION ZONES ARE
ESTABLISHED AND THE RIGHT OF INNOCENT PASSAGE IS TEMPORARILY SUSPENDED IN
ACCORDANCE WITH INTERNATIONAL LAW AROUND THE KAAOT AND ABOT OIL TERMINALS
WITHIN IRAQI TERRITORIAL WATERS. THE EXCLUSION ZONES EXTEND 2000 METERS FROM THE
OUTER EDGES OF THE TERMINAL STRUCTURES IN ALL DIRECTIONS. 9. ONLY TANKERS AND
SUPPORT VESSELS AUTHORIZED BY TERMINAL OPERATORS OR COALITION MARITIME SECURITY
FORCES ARE ALLOWED TO ENTER THE EXCLUSION ZONES. VESSELS ATTEMPTING TO ENTER THE
ZONES WITHOUT AUTHORIZATION MAY BE SUBJECT TO DEFENSIVE MEASURES, INCLUDING
WHEN NECESSARY, THE USE OF DEADLY FORCE. ALL REASONABLE EFFORTS WILL BE TAKEN TO
WARN VESSELS AWAY BEFORE EMPLOYING DEADLY FORCE. HOWEVER, DEADLY FORCE WILL
BE EMPLOYED WHEN NECESSARY TO PROTECT COALITION MARITIME SECURITY FORCES,
LEGITIMATE SHIPPING PRESENT IN THE EXCLUSION ZONES AND THE OIL TERMINALS.).
144
For example, Wolff Heintschel von Heinegg, The Law of Armed Conflict at Sea, in DIETER FLECK, THE
HANDBOOK OF HUMANITARIAN LAW IN ARMED CONFLICTS 467 (1049) (On 28 April 1982 Great Britain
proclaimed a Total Exclusion Zone (TEZ) in the South Atlantic. Beside deterring the Argentine naval forces from
leaving their ports, its main purpose was to facilitate the early identification of military objectives and to prevent
vessels flying neutral flags from conveying information to Argentina. On one hand, the British TEZ covered an
area of 200 nautical miles measured from the centre of the main island. On the other hand, the TEZ was situated far
from any main shipping lanes. Moreover, its duration was comparatively short. It did not serve economic warfare
purposes but was aimed at facilitating military operations, including identification. Vessels and aircraft flying flags
of states not parties to the conflict suffered no damage whatsoever. For these reasons, only the former USSR
officially protested against the British TEZ.).
885
and safe access to the ports and coasts of a neutral State and, unless military requirements do not
permit, in other cases where normal navigation routes are affected. 145
13.9.5 Procedures for Declaring a Zone. As a matter of practice, maritime and/or aerial
warnings (e.g., HYDROLANT, HYDROPAC, Notice to Airmen (NOTAM)) would ordinarily be
promulgated as part of the establishment of a maritime or airspace zone.
13.10 BLOCKADE
13.10.1 Purpose of Blockade and Belligerent Rights Associated With Blockade. The
purpose of a blockade is to deprive the adversary of supplies needed to conduct hostilities. 147
A blockade enables the blockading State to control traffic in the blockaded area. A
blockade also enables the blockading State to take measures on the high seas to deny supplies to
a blockaded area. 148 For example, a blockading State has the right to visit and search vessels on
the high seas to enforce its blockade. 149
13.10.2 Criteria for Blockades. In order to be binding, a blockade must meet certain
criteria.
145
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.9 (Belligerents creating such zones must provide safe passage through the zone for neutral
vessels and aircraft where the geographical extent of the zone significantly impedes free and safe access to the ports
and coasts of a neutral state and, unless military requirements do not permit, in other cases where normal navigation
routes are affected.).
146
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.7.1 (Blockade is a belligerent operation to prevent vessels and/or aircraft of all nations,
enemy as well as neutral, from entering or exiting specified ports, airfields, or coastal areas belonging to, occupied
by, or under the control of an enemy nation.); 1997 NWP 9 7.7.1 (same); 1989 NWP 9 7.7.1 (same); 1955 NWIP
10-2 632a (A blockade is a belligerent operation intended to prevent vessels of all States from entering or leaving
specified coastal areas which are under the sovereignty, under the occupation, or under the control of an enemy.).
147
ICRC AP COMMENTARY 654 (2095) (It should be emphasized that the object of a blockade is to deprive the
adversary of supplies needed to conduct hostilities, and not to starve civilians.).
148
John Reese Stevenson, Department of State, Legal Adviser, Letter dated June 6, 1972, reprinted in Steven C.
Nelson, Contemporary Practice of the United States Relating to International Law, 66 AJIL 836, 837 (1972) (To
have declared a blockade could have implied, under traditional international law, a whole range of actions which
would have extended the area of hostilities and risked grave dangers of widening the conflict. The traditional law of
blockade requires a formal declaration of the establishment of the blockade and notification of it to all states. A
blockade must be effective in preventing all ingress or egressincluding commercial trade and activitiesfrom or
to the enemy's coast. The blockading state would have the right to stop vessels of any nation anywhere on the high
seas, to inspect and search such vessels, to seize them if they are bound to or from the blockaded ports, and
eventually to condemn them and their cargos in a prize court. Ships attempting to violate the blockade could be
taken under fire should they fail to stop on order.).
149
Refer to 15.13.1 (Purposes of Visit and Search).
886
by a declaration of the belligerent State, or by the commander of the blockading force acting on
behalf of the belligerent State. 150
The U.N. Security Council is also expressly given the authority by the Charter of the
United Nations to authorize blockades. 151 A blockade of the ports or coasts of a State is
generally regarded as a measure involving force against that State for the purposes of the Charter
of the United Nations. 152
Notification should include, as a minimum, the date the blockade is to begin, its
geographic limits, and the grace period granted neutral vessels and aircraft to leave the area to be
blockaded. 155
150
Consider DECLARATION OF LONDON art. 9 (1909) (A declaration of a blockade is made either by the blockading
Power or by the naval authorities acting in its name.).
151
Refer to 1.11.4.2 (Use of Force Authorized by the U.N. Security Council Acting Under Chapter VII of the
Charter of the United Nations).
152
See, e.g., Legal and Practical Consequences of a Blockade of Cuba, Oct. 19, 1962, 1 SUPPLEMENTAL OPINIONS
OF THE OFFICE OF LEGAL COUNSEL 486, 490 (2013) (The legality today of a blockade unilaterally imposed by one
state upon another depends upon its compatibility with the language and principles of the Charter. Ordinarily it, like
other measures involving force, is reserved to the United Nations or to regional organizations such as the OAS. If
imposed unilaterally without prior approval it must be considered a reasonable measure under the circumstances,
proportional to the threat posed, and limited to a legitimate purpose. It does not become more or less lawful on the
basis of declaration of war or a failure to declare war.); Definition of Aggression, arts. 1, 3, Annex to U.N.
GENERAL ASSEMBLY RESOLUTION 3314 (XXIX), Definition of Aggression, U.N. Doc. A/RES/3314 (XXIX) (Dec.
14, 1974) (Aggression is the use of armed force by a State against the sovereignty, territorial integrity or political
independence of another State, or in any other manner inconsistent with the Charter of the United Nations, as set out
in this Definition. Any of the following acts, regardless of a declaration of war, shall, subject to and in
accordance with the provisions of article 2, qualify as an act of aggression: ... (c) The blockade of the ports or coasts
of a State by the armed forces of another State.).
153
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.7.2.2 (It is customary for the belligerent nation establishing the blockade to notify all
affected nations of its imposition.); 1955 NWIP 10-2 632b (It is customary for the blockade to be notified in a
suitable manner to the governments of all States.). Consider 1909 DECLARATION OF LONDON art. 11 (A
declaration of blockade is notified (1) to neutral Powers, by the blockading Power, by means of a communication
addressed to the Governments direct, or to their representatives accredited to it.).
154
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.7.2.2 (The commander of the blockading forces will usually also notify local authorities in
the blockaded area.); 1955 NWIP 10-2 632b (The commander of the blockading force usually makes notification
to local authorities in the blockaded area.). Consider 1909 DECLARATION OF LONDON art. 11 (A declaration of
blockade is notified (2) to the local authorities, by the officer commanding the blockading force. The local
authorities will, in turn, inform the foreign consular officers at the port or on the coastline under blockade as soon as
possible.).
155
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.7.2.1 (The declaration should include, as a minimum, the date the blockade is to begin, its
geographic limits, and the grace period granted neutral vessels and aircraft to leave the area to be blockaded.); 1955
NWIP 10-2 632b (The declaration should include the date the blockade begins, the geographical limits of the
blockade, and the period granted neutral vessels and aircraft to leave the blockaded area.). Consider 1909
DECLARATION OF LONDON art. 9 (A declaration of blockade is made either by the blockading Power or by the naval
887
The form of the notification is not material so long as it is effective, and a variety of
methods may be used. 156
The requirement of effectiveness means that the blockade must be maintained by forces
that are sufficient to render ingress or egress of the blockaded area dangerous. 160 The
authorities acting in its name. It specifies (1) The date when the blockade begins; (2) The geographical limits of
the coastline under blockade; (3) The period within which neutral vessels may come out.).
156
For example, The Public Commission to Examine the Maritime Incident of 31 May 2010, et. al (The Turkel
Commission), Report: Part one, 162-63 (58) (Jan. 2010) (In the case at hand, the State of Israel took the following
steps in order to give notice of the naval blockade: from the testimony of the Military Advocate-General, Major-
General Avichai Mendelblit, it can be seen that the Military Advocate-Generals Office asked the Ministry of
Transport to transmit information regarding the imposition of the naval blockade by all methods at its disposal, in
order to ensure that the notice would reach all vessels in the Mediterranean Sea. This was also done. The notice
was also published on the Internet sites of the IDF, the Shipping Authority, the Military Advocate-General, and the
Ministry of Transport, and, as noted above, via several international channels. The announcement was also
transmitted twice a day via the emergency channel for maritime communication to all ships within a distance of up
to 300 kilometers from the Israeli coast. In addition, notices were also sent to the flag States and the States that
Israel knew intended to send ships to the area. These steps clearly satisfy the requirement of notice.).
157
Refer to 13.10.4.2 (Knowledge of the Existence of Blockade).
158
Consider 1909 DECLARATION OF LONDON art. 2 (In accordance with the Declaration of Paris of 1856, a
blockade, in order to be binding must be effective that is to say, it must be maintained by a force sufficient really
to prevent access to the enemy coastline.); Declaration respecting maritime law signed by the Plenipotentiaries of
Great Britain, Austria, France, Prussia, Russia, Sardinia, and Turkey, assembled in Congress at Paris, Apr. 16, 1856,
reprinted in 1 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL DOCUMENTS 89 (1907) (4. Blockades, in order to be binding, must be
effective, that is to say, maintained by a force sufficient really to prevent access to the coast of the enemy.).
159
The Peterhoff, 72 U.S. 28, 50 (1867) (It must be premised that no paper or constructive blockade is allowed by
international law. When such blockades have been attempted by other nations, the United States have ever protested
against them and denied their validity. Their illegality is now confessed on all hands. It was solemnly proclaimed
in the Declaration of Paris of 1856, to which most of the civilized nations of the world have since adhered; and this
principle is nowhere more fully recognized than in our own country, though not a party to that declaration.); The
Olinde Rodrigues, 174 U.S. 510, 513-14 (1899) (The fourth maxim of the Declaration of Paris (April 16, 1856)
was: Blockades, in order to be binding, must be effective, that is to say, maintained by a force sufficient really to
prevent access to the coast of the enemy. Manifestly this broad definition was not intended to be literally applied.
The object was to correct the abuse, in the early part of the century, of paper blockades, where extensive coasts were
put under blockade by proclamation, without the presence of any force, or an inadequate force; and the question of
what might be sufficient force was necessarily left to be determined according to the particular circumstances.).
160
See 2007 NWP 1-14M 7.7.2.3 (To be valid, a blockade must be effectivethat is, it must be maintained by a
surface, air, or subsurface force or other legitimate methods and means of warfare that is sufficient to render ingress
or egress of the blockaded area dangerous.); 1955 NWIP 10-2 632d (A blockade, in order to be binding, must be
effective. This means that a blockade must be maintained by a force sufficient to render ingress and egress to or
from the blockaded area dangerous.); The Olinde Rodrigues, 174 U.S. 510, 515 (1899) (Such is the settled
doctrine of the English and American courts and publicists, and it is embodied in the second of the instructions
issued by the Secretary of the Navy, June 20, 1898, General Order No. 492: A blockade to be effective and binding
must be maintained by a force sufficient to render ingress to or egress from the port dangerous.);
888
requirement of effectiveness does not preclude temporary absence of the blockading force, if
such absence is due to stress of weather or to some other reason connected with the blockade
(e.g., pursuit of a blockade runner). 161
The forces that are necessary to make a blockade effective depend on the specific military
circumstances. 162 The blockade may be maintained by forces that are some distance from the
shore. 163
13.10.2.5 Limitations on the Scope of the Blockade. A blockade must not bar
access to, or departure from, neutral ports and coasts. 166
A blockade may not be used for the purpose of starving the civilian population, and the
expected incidental harm to the civilian population may not be excessive in relation to the
expected military advantage to be gained from employing the blockade. 167
161
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.7.2.3 (The requirement of effectiveness does not preclude temporary absence of the
blockading force, if such absence is due to stress of weather or to some other reason connected with the blockade
(e.g., pursuit of a blockade runner).). Consider 1909 DECLARATION OF LONDON art. 4 (A blockade is not regarded
as raised if the blockading force is temporarily withdrawn on account of stress of weather.).
162
See The Olinde Rodrigues, 174 U.S. 510, 516-18 (1899) (As we hold that an effective blockade is a blockade so
effective as to make it dangerous in fact for vessels to attempt to enter the blockaded port, it follows that the
question of effectiveness is not controlled by the number of the blockading force. In other words, the position
cannot be maintained that one modern cruiser though sufficient in fact is not sufficient as matter of law. The
question of effectiveness must necessarily depend on the circumstances. We agree that the fact of a single capture is
not decisive of the effectiveness of a blockade, but the case made on this record does not rest on that ground. We
are of opinion that if a single modern cruiser blockading a port renders it in fact dangerous for other craft to enter the
port, that is sufficient, since thereby the blockade is made practically effective.).
163
2013 GERMAN MANUAL 1062 (A blockade, in order to be binding, must be effective (25 Principle 4). It must
be maintained by armed forces sufficient to prevent access to the blockaded coast. Long distance blockades are
also permissible, i.e. the blockade and control of an enemy coast by armed forces at a greater distance from the
blockaded coast as a result of military requirements.); 2004 UK MANUAL 13.68 (The force maintaining the
blockade may be stationed at a distance determined by military requirements.).
164
1955 NWIP 10-2 632f (A blockade must be applied equally (impartially) to the vessels and aircraft of all
states.). Consider 1909 DECLARATION OF LONDON art. 5 (A blockade must be applied impartially to the ships of
all nations.).
165
1955 NWIP 10-2 632f note 35 (The requirement that a belligerent must apply a blockade impartially to the
vessels and aircraft of all states is intended to prevent measures of discrimination by the blockading belligerent in
favor of or against the vessels and aircraft of particular states, including its own or allied vessels and aircraft.).
166
1955 NWIP 10-2 632e (A blockade must not bar access or departure from neutral ports or coasts.). Consider
1909 DECLARATION OF LONDON art. 18 (The blockading forces must not bar access to neutral ports or coasts.).
167
Refer to 5.20 (Starvation).
889
13.10.3 Special Entry and Exit Authorization. In certain cases, vessels or aircraft may
enter or exit a blockaded area.
13.10.3.1 Neutral Warships and Military Aircraft. Although neutral warships and
military aircraft enjoy no positive right of access to blockaded areas, the belligerent State
imposing the blockade may authorize their entry and exit. Such special authorization may be
made subject to such conditions as the blockading force considers necessary and expedient. 168
13.10.3.2 Neutral Vessels and Aircraft in Evident Distress. Neutral vessels and
aircraft in evident distress should be authorized entry into a blockaded area, and subsequently
authorized to depart, under conditions prescribed by the officer in command of the blockading
force or responsible for maintenance of the blockading instrumentality (e.g., mines). 169
168
See 2007 NWP 1-14M 7.7.3 (Although neutral warships and military aircraft enjoy no positive right of access
to blockaded areas, the belligerent imposing the blockade may authorize their entry and exit. Such special
authorization may be made subject to such conditions as the blockading force considers to be necessary and
expedient.); 1955 NWIP 10-2 632h(1) (Neutral warships and neutral military aircraft have no positive right of
entry to a blockaded area. However, they may be allowed to enter or leave a blockaded area as a matter of courtesy.
Permission to visit a blockaded area is subject to any conditions, such as the length of stay, that the senior officer of
the blockading force may deem necessary and expedient.). Consider 1909 DECLARATION OF LONDON art. 6 (The
commander of a blockading force may give permission to a warship to enter, and subsequently leave, a blockaded
port.).
169
See 2007 NWP 1-14M 7.7.3 (Neutral vessels and aircraft in evident distress should be authorized entry into a
blockaded area, and subsequently authorized to depart, under conditions prescribed by the officer in command of the
blockading force or responsible for maintenance of the blockading instrumentality (e.g., mines).); 1955 NWIP 10-2
632h(2) (Neutral vessels and aircraft in urgent distress may be permitted to enter a blockaded area, and
subsequently to leave it, under conditions prescribed by the commander of the blockading force.). Consider 1909
DECLARATION OF LONDON art. 7 (In circumstances of distress, acknowledged by an officer of the blockading force,
a neutral vessel may enter a place under blockade and subsequently leave it, provided that she has neither discharged
nor shipped any cargo there.).
170
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.7.3 (Similarly, neutral vessels and aircraft engaged in the carriage of qualifying relief
supplies for the civilian population and the sick and wounded should be authorized to pass through the blockade
cordon, subject to the right of the blockading force to prescribe the technical arrangements, including search, under
which passage is permitted.). Refer to 5.19.3 (Passage of Relief Consignments).
171
Refer to 15.15.1 (Grounds for the Capture of Neutral Vessels and Aircraft).
890
Attempted breach of a blockade occurs from the time a vessel or aircraft leaves a port or
airfield with the intention of evading the blockade and, for vessels exiting the blockaded area,
continues until the voyage is completed. 173 A temporary anchorage in waters occupied by the
blockading vessels does not justify capture, in the absence of other grounds. 174
A presumption arises that certain merchant vessels or aircraft are attempting to breach a
blockade where those vessels or aircraft are bound for a neutral port or airfield serving as a point
of transit to the blockaded area. 175
Knowledge may be presumed once a blockade has been declared and appropriate
notification provided to affected governments. 177 For example, a vessel in a blockaded port is
presumed to have notice of the blockade as soon as it commences. 178
172
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.7.4 (Breach of blockade is the passage of a vessel or aircraft through a blockade without
special entry or exit authorization from the blockading belligerent.); 1997 NWP 9 7.7.4 (same); 1989 NWP 9
7.7.4 (same); 1955 NWIP 10-2 632g (Breach of blockade is the passage of a vessel or aircraft through the
blockade.).
173
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.7.4 (Attempted breach of blockade occurs from the time a vessel or aircraft leaves a port
or airfield with the intention of evading the blockade, and for vessels exiting the blockaded area, continues until the
voyage is completed.); 1997 NWP 9 7.7.4 (same); 1989 NWP 9 7.7.4 (substantially similar); 1955 NWIP 10-2
632g(2) (Attempted breach of blockade occurs from the time a vessel or aircraft leaves a port or air take-off point
with the intent of evading the blockade.).
174
The Teresita, 72 U.S. 180, 182 (1867) (We are of opinion that, under such circumstances, temporary anchorage
in waters occupied by the blockading vessels, does not justify capture, in the absence of other grounds.).
175
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.7.4 (There is a presumption of attempted breach of blockade where vessels or aircraft are
bound for a neutral port or airfield serving as a point of transit to the blockaded area.); 1955 NWIP 10-2 632g(1)
(There is a presumption of attempted breach of blockade where vessels and aircraft are bound to a neutral port or
airfield serving as a point of transit to the blockaded area.); The Peterhoff, 72 U.S. 28, 55 (1867) (It is an
undoubted general principle, recognized by this court in the case of The Bermuda, and in several other cases, that an
ulterior destination to a blockaded port will infect the primary voyage to a neutral port with liability for intended
violation of blockade.). Compare 15.12.2 (Requirement of Enemy Destination).
176
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.7.4 (Knowledge of the existence of the blockade is essential to the offenses of breach of
blockade and attempted breach of blockade.); 1997 NWP 9 7.7.4 (same); 1989 NWP 9 7.7.4 (same); 1955 NWIP
10-2 632g (Knowledge of the existence of a blockade is essential to the offenses of breach of blockade and
attempted breach of blockade; presumed knowledge is sufficient.). Consider 1909 DECLARATION OF LONDON art.
14 (The liability of a neutral vessel to capture for breach of blockade is contingent on her knowledge, actual or
presumptive, of the blockade.).
177
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.7.4 (Knowledge may be presumed once a blockade has been declared and appropriate
notification provided to affected governments.); 1997 NWP 9 7.7.4 (same); 1989 NWP 9 7.7.4 (same). Consider
1909 DECLARATION OF LONDON art. 15 (Failing proof to the contrary, knowledge of the blockade is presumed if
the vessel left a neutral port subsequently to the notification of the blockade to the Power to which such port
belongs, provided that such notification was made in sufficient time.).
178
The Prize Cases, 67 U.S. 635, 677 (1863) (A vessel being in a blockaded port is presumed to have notice of the
blockade as soon as it commences. This is a settled rule in the law of nations.).
891
A vessel sailing ignorantly (i.e., with neither presumptive nor actual knowledge) to a
blockaded port is not liable to capture, although it may be turned away from the blockaded
area. 179
Naval mines are lawful weapons, i.e., they are not illegal per se. 180 However, specific
rules apply to their use. These rules have developed largely to mitigate the risk these mines pose
to neutral vessels. 181 Different rules apply to landmines. 182
13.11.1 Background on Naval Mines. Naval mines have been used for area denial,
coastal and harbor defense, anti-surface and anti-submarine warfare, and blockade.
Naval mines are sometimes classified as either armed or controlled mines, with
controlled mines having no destructive capability until affirmatively activated by an arming
order (thereby becoming armed mines). 183
179
Yeaton v. Fry, 9 U.S. 335, 342-43 (1809) (Marshall, C.J.) (Hispaniola is excepted absolutely from the policy;
but other ports are within the terms of the voyage insured, if they be not blockaded. It is their character, as
blockaded ports, which excludes them from the insurance. Their being excepted by this character is thought to
justify the opinion, that it is the risk attending this character which produces the exception, and which is the risk
excepted. The risk of a blockaded port, as a blockaded port, is the risk incurred by breaking the blockade. This is
defined by public law. Sailing from Tobago for Curracoa, knowing Curracoa to be blockaded, would have incurred
this risk, but sailing for that port, without such knowledge, did not incur it.).
180
Refer to 6.5 (Lawful Weapons).
181
For example, A. PEARCE HIGGINS, THE HAGUE PEACE CONFERENCES AND OTHER INTERNATIONAL CONFERENCES
CONCERNING THE LAWS AND USAGES OF WAR. TEXT OF CONVENTIONS WITH COMMENTARIES 328-29 (1909) (The
Russo-Japanese War drew the attention of the world to the deadly results produced by floating mines. Though not
expressly mentioned in Count Benckendorffs Circular, the laying of torpedoes, etc. (pose de torpilles, etc.) was
included among the subjects for consideration. Mines were employed in the Russo-Japanese War by both
belligerents, and hundreds either broke adrift from their moorings or, not be anchored at all, floated into the high
seas and caused serious loss of life to neutrals long after the conclusion of the war. In the course of the discussion of
the British proposal in Committee, the Chinese delegate made the following declaration which brings out strongly
the dangers to which neutral shipping is exposed by their employment: At the same time, the Delegation [of China]
desires to bring to the knowledge of the delegates certain facts which it ventures to hope will suggest the
examination of this important proposition in a widely humanitarian sense. The Chinese Government is even to-day
obliged to furnish vessels engaged in coastal navigation with special apparatus to raise and destroy floating mines
which are found not only on the open sea but even in its territorial waters. In spite of the precautions which have
been taken a very considerable number of coasting vessels, fishing boats, junks and sampans have been lost with all
hands without the details of these disasters being known to the western world. It is calculated from five to six
hundred of our countrymen engaged in their peaceful occupations have there met a cruel death in consequence of
these dangerous engines of war.) (amendment in original).
182
Refer to 6.12 (Landmines, Booby-Traps, and Other Devices).
183
2007 NWP 1-14M 9.2.1 (For purposes of this publication, naval mines are classified as armed or controlled
mines. Armed mines are either emplaced with all safety devices withdrawn, or are armed following emplacement,
so as to detonate when preset parameters (if any) are satisfied. Controlled mines have no destructive capability until
affirmatively activated by some form of arming order (whereupon they become armed mines).); 1989 NWP 9
9.2.1 (For purposes of this publication, naval mines are classified as armed or controlled mines. Armed mines are
either emplaced with all safety devices withdrawn, or are armed following emplacement, so as to detonate when
892
13.11.2 Peacetime Mining. Naval mines may not be emplaced in internal waters, the
territorial sea, or archipelagic waters of another State in peacetime without that States
consent. 184
If armed mines are emplaced in a States own archipelagic waters or territorial sea,
appropriate international notification of the existence and location of such mines is required. 186
Because the right of innocent passage may be suspended only temporarily, 187 armed mines must
be removed or rendered harmless as soon as the security threat that prompted their emplacement
has terminated. 188
Armed mines may not be emplaced in international straits or archipelagic sea lanes
during peacetime. 189
preset parameters (if any) are satisfied. Controlled mines have no destructive capability until affirmatively activated
by some form of controlled arming order (whereupon they become armed mines).).
184
2007 NWP 1-14M 9.2.2 (Naval mines may not be emplaced in internal waters, territorial seas, or archipelagic
waters of another nation in peacetime without that nations consent.). See also Military and Paramilitary Activities
in and Against Nicaragua (Nicaragua v. United States), Merits, Judgment, 1986 I.C.J. 14, 111-12 (213-15) (The
legal rules in the light of which these acts of mining should be judged depend upon where they took place. The
laying of mines within the ports of another State is governed by the law relating to internal waters, which are subject
to the sovereignty of the coastal State. The position is similar as regards mines placed in the territorial sea. It is
therefore the sovereignty of the coastal State which is affected in such cases. It has already been made clear
above that in peacetime for one State to lay mines in the internal or territorial waters of another is an unlawful act;).
185
Refer to 13.2.2.4 (Innocent Passage of Foreign Vessels Through Territorial Seas and Archipelagic Waters).
186
Corfu Channel Case (United Kingdom v. Albania), Merits, Judgment, 1949 I.C.J. 4, 22 (The obligations
incumbent upon the Albanian authorities consisted in notifying, for the benefit of shipping in general, the existence
of a minefield in Albanian territorial waters and in warning the approaching British warships of the imminent danger
to which the minefield exposed them. Such obligations are based, not on the Hague Convention of 1907, No. VIII,
which is applicable in time of war, but on certain general and well-recognized principles, namely: elementary
considerations of humanity, even more exacting in peace than in war; the principle of the freedom of maritime
communication; and every States obligation not to allow knowingly its territory to be used for acts contrary to the
rights of other States.).
187
Refer to 13.2.2.4 (Innocent Passage of Foreign Vessels Through Territorial Seas and Archipelagic Waters).
188
2007 NWP 1-14M 9.2.2 (Because the right of innocent passage can be suspended only temporarily, armed
mines must be removed or rendered harmless as soon as the security threat that prompted their emplacement has
terminated.); 1997 NWP 9 9.2.2 (same); 1989 NWP 9 9.2.2 (same).
189
2007 NWP 1-14M 9.2.2 (Armed mines may not be emplaced in international straits or archipelagic sea lanes
during peacetime.); 1997 NWP 9 9.2.2 (same).
190
2007 NWP 1-14M 9.2.2 (Emplacement of controlled mines in a nations own archipelagic waters or territorial
sea is not subject to such notification or removal requirements.); 1997 NWP 9 9.2.2 (same); 1989 NWP 9 9.2.2
(same).
893
13.11.2.2 International Waters. Controlled mines may be emplaced in
international waters (i.e., beyond the territorial sea of any State) if they do not unreasonably
interfere with other lawful uses of the oceans. What constitutes an unreasonable interference
may involve a number of factors, including:
the rationale for their emplacement (e.g., the self-defense requirements of the emplacing
State);
Armed mines may not be emplaced in international waters prior to the outbreak of armed
conflict, except under the most demanding requirements of individual or collective self-defense.
Should armed mines be emplaced in international waters under such circumstances, prior
notification of their location must be provided. A State emplacing armed mines in international
waters during peacetime must maintain an on-scene presence in the area sufficient to ensure that
appropriate warning is provided to ships approaching the danger area. All armed mines must be
expeditiously removed or rendered harmless when the imminent danger that prompted their
emplacement has passed. 193
13.11.3 Naval Mining During Armed Conflict. Belligerent States may lawfully employ
naval mines subject to certain restrictions.
Neutral States that lay automatic contact mines off their coasts must observe the same
rules and take the same precautions as those that are imposed on belligerents. 194 In addition, a
neutral State must inform ship owners, by a notice issued in advance, where automatic contact
191
2007 NWP 1-14M 9.2.2 (The determination of what constitutes an unreasonable interference involves a
balancing of a number of factors, including the rationale for their emplacement (i.e., the self-defense requirements of
the emplacing nation), the extent of the area to be mined, the hazard (if any) to other lawful ocean uses, and the
duration of their emplacement.).
192
2007 NWP 1-14M 9.2.2 (Because controlled mines do not constitute a hazard to navigation, international
notice of their emplacement is not required.); 1997 NWP 9 9.2.2 (same); 1989 NWP 9 9.2.2 (same).
193
2007 NWP 1-14M 9.2.2 (Armed mines may not be emplaced in international waters prior to the outbreak of
armed conflict, except under the most demanding requirements of individual or collective self-defense. Should
armed mines be emplaced in international waters under such circumstances, prior notification of their location must
be provided. A nation emplacing armed mines in international waters during peacetime must maintain an on-scene
presence in the area sufficient to ensure that appropriate warning is provided to ships approaching the danger area.
All armed mines must be expeditiously removed or rendered harmless when the imminent danger that prompted
their emplacement has passed.).
194
HAGUE VIII art. 4 (Neutral Powers which lay automatic contact mines off their coasts must observe the same
rules and take the same precautions as are imposed on belligerents.).
894
mines have been laid. This notice must be communicated at once to the Governments through
the diplomatic channel. 195
195
HAGUE VIII art. 4 (The neutral Power must inform ship-owners, by a notice issued in advance, where automatic
contact mines have been laid. This notice must be communicated at once to the Governments through the
diplomatic channel.).
196
Refer to 5.3.3 (Affirmative Duties to Take Feasible Precautions for the Protection of Civilians and Other
Protected Persons and Objects).
197
HAGUE VIII art. 3 (When anchored automatic contact mines are employed, every possible precaution must be
taken for the security of peaceful shipping.).
198
2007 NWP 1-14M 9.2.3 (International notification of the location of emplaced mines must be made as soon as
military exigencies permit.); 1997 NWP 9 9.2.3 (same); 1989 NWP 9 9.2.3 (International notification of the
location of emplaced armed mines must be made as soon as military exigencies permit.).
199
For example, HOWARD S. LEVIE, MINE WARFARE AT SEA 146-47 (1992) (The mining was announced by
President Nixon on radio and television on the evening of 8 May 1972. Appropriate notification was also given to
all other nations concerned, both by a letter to the President of the United Nations Security Council, and by direct
bilateral diplomatic notification, as well as by notices to mariners. That same day (9 May 1972, in Hanoi), mines
were dropped by aircraft in Haiphong harbor (and in Cam Pha and Hon Gai harbors), three days in advance of the
mines becoming armed, thus permitting the ships in the harbor three periods of daylight in which to leave if they so
desired.).
200
HAGUE VIII art. 3 (The belligerents undertake to do their utmost to render these mines harmless within a limited
time, and, should they cease to be under surveillance, to notify the danger zones as soon as military exigencies
permit, by a notice addressed to ship owners, which must also be communicated to the Governments through the
diplomatic channel.).
201
Compare 6.12.7 (Rules for Using Non-Remotely Delivered Anti-Personnel Mines Without Compliant SD/SDA
Mechanisms).
895
13.11.3.4 Recording of Minefield Locations. The location of minefields must be
carefully recorded to ensure accurate notification and to facilitate subsequent removal and/or
deactivation. 202
13.11.3.5 Restrictions on Where Naval Mines May Be Placed. Mines may not be
emplaced by belligerents in neutral waters. 203
Naval mines may be employed to channelize neutral shipping, but not in a manner to
deny transit passage of international straits or archipelagic sea lanes passage of archipelagic
waters by such shipping. 204
13.11.3.6 Prohibition Against Mining Off Enemy Coasts and Ports Solely to
Intercept Commercial Shipping. Naval mines may not be emplaced off the coasts and ports of
the enemy with the sole objective of intercepting commercial shipping. 206 Mining for some
other purpose would not violate this rule. 207 For example, mines may otherwise be used in the
strategic blockade of enemy ports, coasts, and waterways, even if commercial shipping is
incidentally affected. 208
202
2007 NWP 1-14M 9.2.3 (The location of minefields must be carefully recorded to ensure accurate notification
and to facilitate subsequent removal and/or deactivation.); 1997 NWP 9 9.2.3 (same); 1989 NWP 9 9.2.3 (same).
203
2007 NWP 1-14M 9.2.3 (Mines may not be emplaced by belligerents in neutral waters.). Refer to 15.7
(Neutral Waters).
204
2007 NWP 1-14M 9.2.3 (Naval mines may be employed to channelize neutral shipping, but not in a manner to
deny transit passage of international straits or archipelagic sea lanes passage of archipelagic waters by such
shipping.); 1997 NWP 9 9.2.3 (same); 1989 NWP 9 9.2.3 (Naval mines may be employed to channelize neutral
shipping, but not in a manner to impede the transit passage of international straits or archipelagic sea lanes passage
of archipelagic waters by such shipping.).
205
2007 NWP 1-14M 9.2.3 (Mining of areas of indefinite extent in international waters is prohibited. Reasonably
limited barred areas may be established by naval mines, provided neutral shipping retains an alternate route around
or through such an area with reasonable assurance of safety.); 1997 NWP 9 9.2.3 (same); 1989 NWP 9 9.2.3
(same).
206
HAGUE VIII art. 2 (It is forbidden to lay automatic contact mines off the coast and ports of the enemy, with the
sole object of intercepting commercial shipping.); 2007 NWP 1-14M 9.2.3 (Naval mines may not be emplaced
off the coasts and ports of the enemy with the sole objective of intercepting commercial shipping, but may otherwise
be employed in the strategic blockade of enemy ports, coasts, and waterways.); 1997 NWP 9 9.2.3 (same); 1989
NWP 9 9.2.3 (same).
207
WILLIAM H. BOOTHBY, WEAPONS AND THE LAW OF ARMED CONFLICT 283 (2009) (If there is some other
purpose to the laying of the mines, their use in these localities is lawful. Thus, if the purpose was to intercept all
shipping, both commercial and military, the laying of the weapons would not breach this provision.).
208
For example, Richard Nixon, Address to the Nation on the Situation in Southeast Asia, May 8, 1972, 1972
PUBLIC PAPERS OF THE PRESIDENTS 583, 585 (I therefore concluded that Hanoi must be denied the weapons and
supplies it needs to continue the aggression. In full coordination with the Republic of Vietnam, I have ordered the
following measures which are being implemented as I am speaking to you. All entrances to North Vietnamese ports
will be mined to prevent access to these ports and North Vietnamese naval operations from these ports. Countries
896
13.11.3.7 Neutralization of Naval Mines. Anchored mines must become harmless
as soon as they have broken their moorings. 209 In particular, it is forbidden to lay anchored
automatic contact mines that do not become harmless as soon as they have broken loose from
their moorings. 210
Unanchored mines not otherwise affixed or imbedded on the ocean floor must become
harmless within an hour after loss of control over them. 211 In particular, it is forbidden to lay
unanchored (i.e., free-floating) automatic contact mines, except when they are so constructed as
to become harmless one hour at most after the person who laid them ceases to control them. 212
13.11.4 Post-Conflict Naval Demining Obligations. The removal of naval mines at the
end of the conflict may be the subject of specific agreements among States. 213
At the close of a war to which Hague VIII is applicable, Parties to Hague VIII have an
obligation to remove the naval mines that they had laid, each State removing its own mines. 214
As regards anchored automatic contact mines laid by one of the belligerents off the coast of the
other, their position must be notified to the other party by the State that laid them, and each State
must proceed with the least possible delay to remove the mines in its own waters. 215
with ships presently in North Vietnamese ports have already been notified that their ships will have three daylight
periods to leave in safety. After that time, the mines will become active and any ships attempting to leave or enter
these ports will do so at their own risk.).
209
2007 NWP 9.2.3 (Anchored mines must become harmless as soon as they have broken their moorings.); 1997
NWP 9 9.2.3 (same); 1989 NWP 9 9.2.3 (same).
210
HAGUE VIII art. 1 (It is forbidden 2. To lay anchored automatic contact mines which do not become harmless
as soon as they have broken loose from their moorings;).
211
2007 NWP 9.2.3 (Unanchored mines not otherwise affixed or imbedded in the bottom must become harmless
within an hour after loss of control over them.); 1997 NWP 9 9.2.3 (same); 1989 NWP 9 9.2.3 (same).
212
HAGUE VIII art. 1 (It is forbidden 1. To lay unanchored automatic contact mines, except when they are so
constructed as to become harmless one hour at most after the person who laid them ceases to control them;).
213
For example, Protocol to the Agreement on Ending the War and Restoring Peace in Vietnam Concerning the
Removal, Permanent Deactivation, or Destruction of Mines in the Territorial Waters, Ports, Harbors, and Waterways
of the Democratic Republic of Vietnam, Jan. 27, 1973, 24 U.S.T. 1, art. 1 (The United States shall clear all the
mines it has placed in the territorial waters, ports, harbors, and waterways of the Democratic Republic of Vietnam.
This mine clearing operation shall be accomplished by rendering the mines harmless through removal, permanent
deactivation, or destruction.).
214
HAGUE VIII art. 5 (At the close of the war, the Contracting Powers undertake to do their utmost to remove the
mines which they had laid, each Power removing its own mines.).
215
HAGUE VIII art. 5 (As regards anchored automatic contact mines laid by one of the belligerents off the coast of
the other, their position must be notified to the other party by the Power which laid them, and each Power must
proceed with the least possible delay to remove the mines in its own waters.).
897
13.12 TORPEDOES
It is forbidden to use torpedoes that do not become harmless when they miss their
mark. 216 Such torpedoes may become a hazard to innocent shipping, and therefore torpedoes
must be designed to become harmless when they have missed their mark.
For example, torpedoes have been designed to become harmless upon completion of their
propulsion run, such as by sinking to the bottom.
13.12.1 Torpedoes Notes on Terminology. In the 19th century, the term torpedo was
used to refer to any explosive munition that operated by contact against the hull of a ship,
including relatively stationary munitions that, in modern parlance, would be called mines. 217
However, by the time of the 1907 Hague VIII Convention, the term torpedo was used in the
modern sense to refer to munitions that propelled through the water. 218
13.13 DECEPTION BY NAVAL FORCES, INCLUDING THE USE OF ENEMY OR NEUTRAL FLAGS
In general, the rules concerning good faith, ruses, and perfidy also apply to naval
warfare. 219 For example, it would be prohibited for a belligerent warship to convey falsely the
appearance of a hospital ship. 220 On the other hand, a variety of deceptions are not prohibited,
including camouflage, deceptive lighting, disguised electronic signatures, and dummy ships,
among others. 221
216
HAGUE VIII art. 1 (It is forbidden 3. To use torpedoes which do not become harmless when they have missed
their mark.).
217
For example, TAMARA MOSER MELIA, DAMN THE TORPEDOES: A SHORT HISTORY OF U.S. NAVAL MINE
COUNTERMEASURES, 1777-1991, 3 (1991) (At high tide on the morning of 5 August Farragut entered the bay.
Farraguts officers had persuaded him to allow the sloop Brooklyn, hastily rigged with a rudimentary torpedo catcher
on the bowsprit, to lead the advance in place of Farraguts flagship, Hartford. Contrary to Farraguts orders,
monitor Tecumseh moved west of the red buoy where it struck and detonated one of the newly placed mines. As
Tecumseh quickly went down, Brooklyn suddenly stopped and backed, stalling the fleets advance. High in
Hartfords rigging Farragut watched Tecumseh sink and Brooklyn hesitate. From Hartfords poop deck Lieutenant
Watson heard the admirals exchange with Brooklyn: Farragut hailed again and all that could be distinguished of
her reply was something about torpedoes. Damn the torpedoes! he instantly shouted, ordering Hartfords captain
Full speed ahead, Drayton.).
218
A. PEARCE HIGGINS, THE HAGUE PEACE CONFERENCES AND OTHER INTERNATIONAL CONFERENCES CONCERNING
THE LAWS AND USAGES OF WAR. TEXT OF CONVENTIONS WITH COMMENTARIES 328 (1909) (The word torpille
until recently appears to have meant any sort of receptacle containing an explosive intended to operate against the
hull of a ship by contact either on or below the water line. Thus, there were torpilles fizes, torpilles mouillees,
torpilles mobiles, and finally torpilles automobiles. It would appear that latterly the word has come to mean only
automobile torpedo, e.g. in the Convention now under consideration the word mine is used when an automatic
torpedo is not implied.).
219
Refer to 5.21 (Overview of Good Faith, Perfidy, and Ruses).
220
Refer to 5.24.2 (Distinctive Emblems of the Geneva Conventions (e.g., Red Cross)); 7.12.3 (Distinctive
Marking and Other Identification of Hospital Ships and Coastal Rescue Craft).
221
Refer to 5.25.2 (Examples of Ruses).
898
The rules concerning deception by belligerent warships, especially with respect to the
flying of neutral flags or with respect to disguise as merchant vessels, may be considered more
permissive than similar situations in land warfare. 222
13.13.1 Belligerent Warships Use of False Colors and Other Disguises. In particular,
according to custom, it is permissible for a belligerent warship to use false colors and to disguise
her outward appearance in other ways in order to deceive an enemy, provided that before going
into action such warship shows her true colors. 223
For example, a belligerent warship may fly enemy or neutral colors and display enemy or
neutral markings in order to deceive the enemy into believing the vessel is of enemy or neutral
nationality or is not a warship. 224 Such deceptions may be used in order to facilitate the
approach of enemy vessels or to escape enemy vessels. 225
Warships, however, may not seek to claim falsely the status of vessels that are exempt
from capture or destruction. These vessels include: (1) cartel vessels; (2) hospital ships; (3)
vessels charged with religious, non-military scientific, or philanthropic missions; (4) vessels
granted safe conduct; and (5) small coastal fishing vessels and small boats engaged in local
coastal trade. 226
222
Refer to 5.24.1 (Signs, Emblems, or Uniforms of a Neutral or Non-Belligerent State).
223
See, e.g., 2007 NWP 1-14M 12.3.1 (Under the customary international law of naval warfare, it is permissible
for a belligerent warship to fly false colors and disguise its outward appearance in other ways in order to deceive the
enemy into believing the vessel is of neutral nationality or is other than a warship. However, it is unlawful for a
warship to go into action without first showing her true colors.); 2007 NWP 1-14M 12.5.1 (Naval surface and
subsurface forces may fly enemy colors and display enemy markings to deceive the enemy. Warships must,
however, display their true colors prior to an actual armed engagement.); 1955 NWIP 10-2 640a (In particular,
according to custom, it is permissible for a belligerent warship to use false colors and to disguise her outward
appearance in other ways in order to deceive an enemy, provided that prior to going into action such warship shows
her true colors.).
224
For example, TUCKER, THE LAW OF WAR AND NEUTRALITY AT SEA 140 footnote 37 (During World War II the
Germans enjoyed a measurable degree of success through the skillful disguise they provided for their armed raiders.
The tactics of the armed raiders were to reveal their true identity only after having come within close enough
range to overwhelm the victim (usually armed enemy merchant vessels) by surprise. One of the most notable
actions involving these armed raiders took place in November 1941 between the Australian cruiser Sydney and the
German armed raider Kormoran. The disguised raider, when approached by the Sydney, identified herself as a
Dutch merchant vessel. Before the Sydney could establish the truth or falsity of her claimed identity the Kormoran
cast off her disguise and opened fire at a distance of 2,000 yards. As a result of the action the Sydney was destroyed
with complete loss of officers and crew.); LAUTERPACT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 510 (211) (On the
other hand, the following is a perfectly legitimate ruse which is reported to have occurred during the World War: at
the end of October 1914, the German cruiser Emden, hiding her identity by rigging up a dummy fourth funnel and
flying the Japanese flag, passed the guardship of the harbor Penang in the Malay States, made no reply to its signals,
came down at full speed on the Russian cruiser Zhemshug, and then, after lowering the Japanese flag and hoisting
the German flag, opened fire and torpedoed her.).
225
LAUTERPACT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 509 (211) (As regards the use of a false flag, it is by most
writers considered perfectly lawful for a man-of-war to use a neutral or enemy flag (1) when chasing an enemy
vessel, (2) when trying to escape, and (3) for the purpose of drawing an enemy vessel into action. On the other
hand, it is universally agreed that, immediately before an attack, a vessel must fly her national flag.).
226
Refer to 13.6 (Enemy Vessels Exempt From Capture or Destruction).
899
XIV Air and Space Warfare
Chapter Contents
14.1 Introduction
14.2 Legal Boundaries of Airspace
14.3 Aircraft Status
14.4 Status of Aircrew on Military Aircraft
14.5 Measures Short of Attack: Interception, Diversion, and Capture
14.6 Belligerent Control of Aviation in the Immediate Vicinity of Hostilities
14.7 Airspace Zones
14.8 Attacks Against Military Objectives in the Air
14.9 Air Attacks Against Military Objectives on the Ground
14.10 International Law And Warfare in Outer Space
14.1 INTRODUCTION
This Chapter addresses the international law applicable to U.S. air and space operations
during international armed conflict. This Chapter also discusses the application to air operations
of some of the law of war rules discussed elsewhere in this manual.
Air Force publications have provided discussion of other aspects of public international
law relating to air operations, including discussion of rules applicable during peacetime. 1
14.1.1 Application of the 1944 Chicago Convention With Respect to Military Aircraft
and With Respect to States Rights During Armed Conflict. The 1944 Chicago Convention
primarily addresses States obligations regarding international civil aviation. 2 The 1944 Chicago
Convention does not restrict State action during war. 3 In addition, the 1944 Chicago Convention
generally is not applicable to State aircraft. 4 However, the 1944 Chicago Convention imposes
requirements with respect to entry by State aircraft into foreign airspace and with respect to the
issue of due regard for the safety of navigation of civil aircraft. 5
900
States affected, whether as belligerents or as neutrals. 6 Article 89 may be understood as an
example, reflected in this case in the Convention, of the application of the general principle that
the law of war, as a body of law specially adapted to the circumstances of armed conflict, is the
controlling body of law with respect to armed conflict. 7 Under Article 89, a States rights under
the law of war (and the law of neutrality) would prevail in the event of conflict with obligations
under the 1944 Chicago Convention.
The provisions of the 1944 Chicago Convention may be relevant during armed conflict
insofar as they articulate restrictions that continue to apply to civil aircraft. For example, neutral
civil aircraft engaged in international navigation would still be required to seek permission from
a foreign neutral State before carrying munitions of war or implements of war through that
neutral States airspace. 8
The 1944 Chicago Conventions requirements with respect to entry by State aircraft into
foreign airspace and with respect to the issue of due regard for the safety of navigation of civil
aircraft are discussed below. 9
14.1.1.2 1944 Chicago Convention and Military Aircraft or Other State Aircraft.
The 1944 Chicago Convention provides generally that the Convention shall be applicable only
to civil aircraft, and shall not be applicable to state aircraft. 10 State aircraft include aircraft used
in military service. 11 The United States has made statements interpreting this provision of the
1944 Chicago Convention. 12
6
1944 CHICAGO CONVENTION art. 89 (In case of war, the provisions of this Convention shall not affect the freedom
of action of any of the contracting States affected, whether as belligerents or as neutrals.).
7
Refer to 1.3.2 (The Law of Wars Relationship to Other Bodies of Law).
8
See, e.g., 1944 CHICAGO CONVENTION art. 35(a) ((a) No munitions of war or implements of war may be carried in
or above the territory of a State in aircraft engaged in international navigation, except by permission of such State.
Each State shall determine by regulations what constitutes munitions of war or implements of war for the purposes
of this Article, giving due consideration, for the purposes of uniformity, to such recommendations as the
International Civil Aviation Organization may from time to time make.).
9
Refer to 14.1.1.3 (Requirement for State Consent Prior to Entry by Foreign State Aircraft); 14.1.1.4 (Due
Regard for the Safety of Navigation of Civil Aircraft).
10
1944 CHICAGO CONVENTION art. 3(a) (This Convention shall be applicable only to civil aircraft, and shall not be
applicable to state aircraft.).
11
Refer to 14.3.1 (State Versus Civil Aircraft).
12
See, e.g., Department of State Airgram CA-8085, Feb. 13, 1964, quoting U.S. Inter-Agency Group on
International Aviation (IGIA) Doc. 88/1/1C, MS, Department of State, file POL 31 U.S., IX WHITEMANS DIGEST
430-31 (The Chicago Convention expressly excludes state aircraft from its scope and thus from the scope of ICAO
[International Civil Aviation Organization] responsibility. The United States intends that its state aircraft will
follow the ICAO procedures set forth in Annex 2 [Rules of the Air] to the greatest extent practicable; however, the
United States considers that state aircraft of any nation are subject to control and regulation exclusively by that
nation (unless operating within airspace over which another nation has sovereignty). With respect to State aircraft,
contracting States need not undertake any commitment, and the United States does not undertake any commitment,
to other nations as to the rules and regulations which any specific state aircraft or class of state aircraft will follow,
except when issuing regulations for their state aircraft, that they will have due regard for the safety of navigation of
civil aircraft (Article 3(d), Chicago Convention).).
901
The 1944 Chicago Convention, however, imposes obligations with respect to entry into
foreign airspace by State aircraft and an obligation with respect to State aircraft and the safety of
navigation of civil aircraft. 13
14.1.1.3 Requirement for State Consent Prior to Entry by Foreign State Aircraft.
The 1944 Chicago Convention provides that State aircraft (which include military aircraft) are
not permitted to enter the airspace of another State without that States consent. 14
During armed conflict, the requirement for a States consent to entry into its airspace
would generally continue to apply with respect to neutral military aircraft seeking to enter the
airspace of foreign States.
This requirement, however, clearly would not apply to belligerent military aircraft
conducting operations in enemy airspace.
The requirement for a States consent to entry into its airspace may be characterized as
applicable with respect to belligerent military aircraft and a neutral States airspace; however,
even if belligerent military aircraft enter neutral airspace with that neutral States consent, such
entry may involve violations of neutrality. 15
There are exceptions to the requirement for State consent to entry into its airspace by
State aircraft in certain cases of violations of neutrality. 16
There is an exception during peacetime to the requirement for a States consent to entry
into its airspace by foreign State aircraft when such entry is due to distress and there is no
reasonable safe alternative. 17
14.1.1.4 Due Regard for the Safety of Navigation of Civil Aircraft. The 1944
Chicago Convention also provides that [t]he contracting States undertake, when issuing
regulations for their state aircraft, that they will have due regard for the safety of navigation of
13
Refer to 14.1.1.3 (Requirement for State Consent Prior to Entry by Foreign State Aircraft); 14.1.1.4 (Due
Regard for the Safety of Navigation of Civil Aircraft).
14
1944 CHICAGO CONVENTION art. 3(c) (No state aircraft of a contracting State shall fly over the territory of
another State or land thereon without authorization by special agreement or otherwise, and in accordance with the
terms thereof.).
15
Refer to 15.10.2 (Prohibition on Entry by Belligerent Military Aircraft Into Neutral Airspace).
16
Refer to 15.4.2 (Belligerent Use of Self-Help When Neutral States Are Unable or Unwilling to Prevent
Violations of Neutrality).
17
U.S. Response to Chinese Legal Views, 2001 DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 703,
708 (Although we recognize that military aircraft normally require permission to enter the territorial airspace of
another nation, international law recognizes a right of entry for foreign aircraft, state or civil, in circumstances such
as these when such entry is due to distress and there is no reasonable safe alternative (Footnote 3 below).
Notwithstanding the ordinary rules requiring consent, a peacetime right to enter in distress for military aircraft is
consistent with established international practice. Such a right is clearly inferable both from analogous situations
in which such a right exists (e.g., for civil aircraft under Article 25 of the Chicago Convention) and from basic
humanitarian considerations.).
902
civil aircraft. 18 Assuming that an obligation to exercise due regard would be applicable during
armed conflict, what regard would be due in any particular set of circumstances would depend on
military necessity, and other principles and rules of the law of war, which are specially adapted
to the circumstances of armed conflict. For example, the use of force against enemy civil aircraft
that constitute military objectives and thus may be made the object of attack under the law of war
would not be prohibited. 19
As reflected in Article 89 of the 1944 Chicago Convention, the Convention does not
restrict the freedom of action of States as belligerents or neutrals. 20 Nonetheless, as a practical
matter, modern air warfare is often conducted in complex airspace, and U.S. forces have
routinely and intensively coordinated flight operations with national civil aviation authorities.
This coordination is important for a variety of purposes, including ensuring mission
accomplishment, avoiding fratricide and mid-air collisions, and ensuring the safety of
international civil aviation. DoD policy has required that, in the event of combat operations
during armed conflict, aircraft commanders, consistent with military necessity, take measures to
minimize hazards to civil air or surface traffic. 21
Similarly, under the law of the sea, military operations must be conducted with due
regard for the high seas freedom of overflight in international airspace. 22
14.1.2 Past Attempts to Conclude Treaties About Air Warfare. Initial attempts to
conclude agreements on the law of war governing means and methods in the air context were
made during the 1899 and 1907 Hague Peace Conferences, before air power had become a
significant factor in warfare. Extensive efforts were made in 1922-23 to adopt a code of laws
specifically applicable only to air warfare; however, the proposed rules were not ratified by any
State. 23 The United States has not ratified a treaty applicable solely to air operations during
armed conflict, although the United States has ratified treaties that have included specific
18
1944 CHICAGO CONVENTION art. 3(d) (The contracting States undertake, when issuing regulations for their state
aircraft, that they will have due regard for the safety of navigation of civil aircraft.).
19
Refer to 14.8.3 (Attacks Against Civil Aircraft).
20
Refer to 14.1.1.1 (1944 Chicago Convention and Freedom of Action of States During Armed Conflict).
21
DOD INSTRUCTION 4540.01, Use of International Airspace by U.S. Military Aircraft and for Missile/Projectile
Firings, 4.2.3 (Mar. 28, 2007) (In the event of combat operations in time of war, armed conflict, national
emergency, situations requiring self-defense, or similar military contingencies, aircraft commanders shall, consistent
with military necessity, take measures to minimize hazards to civil air or surface traffic. Such actions shall be of no
greater extent or duration than required by military necessity.); DOD DIRECTIVE 4540.1, Use of Airspace by U.S.
Military Aircraft and Firings Over the High Seas, 6b (Jan. 13, 1981) (In the event of combat operations in time of
war, armed conflict, national emergency, situations requiring self-defense, or similar military contingencies,
departure from the operating procedures in this Directive may be required. In all such instances, however, all
possible precautions shall be taken to minimize any hazard to the safety of other air and surface traffic and departure
from procedures set forth in this Directive shall be of no greater extent or duration than is required to meet the
contingency.).
22
Refer to 13.1.1 (The Law of the Sea During Armed Conflict).
23
Refer to 19.11 (1923 Hague Air and Radio Rules).
903
references to aspects of war in the air, such as protection for medical aircraft in the 1949 Geneva
Conventions. 24
The legal classifications of airspace may be relevant to the application of the law of war
and therefore may affect military operations during armed conflict by:
determining the authority that a belligerent State has with respect to neutral aircraft in an
area; or
determining the authority that a neutral State has with respect to belligerent aircraft in an
area.
14.2.1 Lateral Boundaries of Airspace. The lateral boundaries of the airspace are
determined by the status of the land or water directly beneath them.
Airspace is often divided between national airspace (i.e., airspace over a States land
territory, internal waters, territorial seas, and archipelagic waters), which is subject to the
sovereignty of a State, and international airspace, which is not subject to the sovereignty of any
State. 26 In addition, special rules apply to international straits and archipelagic sea lanes. 27
The division between national airspace and international airspace is similar to the
division between national waters and international waters. 28 One notable distinction, however,
is that aircraft do not enjoy the same right of innocent passage over territorial seas that ships
enjoy through territorial seas. 29
14.2.1.1 National Airspace. Every State has complete and exclusive sovereignty
over the airspace above its territory. 30 In other words, a State has sovereignty over the airspace
that is above land or waters that are subject to its sovereignty. 31 Thus, a States national airspace
includes:
24
Refer to 7.14 (Military Medical Aircraft); 7.19 (Civilian Medical Aircraft).
25
Refer to 15.10 (Neutral Airspace).
26
Refer to 14.2.1.1 (National Airspace); 14.2.1.2 (International Airspace).
27
Refer to 15.8 (Passage of Belligerent Vessels and Aircraft Through International Straits and Archipelagic Sea
Lanes).
28
Refer to 13.2.2 (National Waters); 13.2.3 (International Waters).
29
Refer to 13.2.2.4 (Innocent Passage of Foreign Vessels Through Territorial Seas and Archipelagic Waters).
30
1944 CHICAGO CONVENTION art. 1 (The contracting States recognize that every State has complete and exclusive
sovereignty over the airspace above its territory.). Cf. 49 U.S.C. 40103 (a)(1) (The United States Government
has exclusive sovereignty of airspace of the United States.).
31
See, e.g., 1944 CHICAGO CONVENTION art. 2 (For the purposes of this Convention the territory of a State shall be
deemed to be the land areas and territorial waters adjacent thereto under the sovereignty, suzerainty, protection or
904
airspace over that States land territory, including its internal waters; 32
14.2.2 Vertical Boundary Between Airspace and Outer Space. A States sovereignty over
its airspace does not extend to outer space, which is not subject to the sovereignty of any State. 39
It is generally accepted that orbiting objects are in outer space. 40 The United States has
expressed the view that there is no legal or practical need to delimit or otherwise define a
specific boundary between airspace and outer space. 41
mandate of such State.); Convention on the Territorial Sea and Contiguous Zone, art. 2, Apr. 29, 1958, 516 UNTS
205, 208 (The sovereignty of a coastal State extends to the air space over the territorial sea as well as to its bed and
subsoil.). Consider LOS CONVENTION art. 2(2) (This sovereignty extends to the air space over the territorial sea
as well as to its bed and subsoil.); LOS CONVENTION art. 49(2) (This sovereignty extends to the air space over the
archipelagic waters, as well as to their bed and subsoil, and the resources contained therein.).
32
Refer to 13.2.2.1 (Internal Waters).
33
Refer to 13.2.2.2 (Territorial Seas).
34
Refer to 13.2.2.3 (Archipelagic Waters).
35
See, e.g., DOD DIRECTIVE 4500.54E, DoD Foreign Clearance Program (FCP), Glossary (Dec. 28, 2009)
(international airspace. All airspace seaward of coastal states national airspace, including airspace over
contiguous zones, exclusive economic zones, and the high seas. International airspace is open to all aircraft of all
nations. Military aircraft may operate in such areas free of interference or control by the coastal state.).
36
Refer to 13.2.3.2 (Contiguous Zones).
37
Refer to 13.2.3.3 (Exclusive Economic Zones (EEZs)).
38
Refer to 13.2.3.4 (High Seas).
39
Refer to 14.10.1 (Classification of Outer Space).
40
See, e.g., Department of the Air Force, The Judge Advocate Generals School, Air Force Operations and The
Law, 85 (3rd ed., 2014) (According to this approach, the upper limit to airspace is above the highest altitude at
which an aircraft can fly and below the lowest possible perigee of an earth satellite in orbit. The result is that
anything in orbit or beyond can safely be regarded as being in outer space.); 2007 NWP 1-14M 1.10, 2.11.1
(The upper limit of airspace subject to national jurisdiction has not been authoritatively defined by international
law. International practice has established that airspace terminates at some point below the point at which artificial
satellites can be placed in orbit without free-falling to earth. Outer space begins at that undefined point.
Although there is no legally defined boundary between the upper limit of national airspace and the lower limit of
outer space, international law recognizes freedom of transit by man-made space objects at earth orbiting altitude and
905
14.2.3 Flight Information Regions. Flight Information Regions (FIRs) are areas of
airspace allocated by the International Civil Aviation Organization (ICAO). Every portion of
airspace belongs to a defined flight information region. Within each flight information region, a
flight information service and an alerting service are provided by the national authorities
responsible for air traffic control. These services are the most basic levels of air traffic service,
and they provide information to aviators necessary for the safe and efficient conduct of flights. 42
beyond. A generally acceptable definition is that outer space begins at the undefined upper limit of the earths
airspace and extends to infinity.); 2006 AUSTRALIAN MANUAL 8-2 (While views differ as to the precise vertical
and horizontal extent of airspace, for practical purposes, it can be said that the upper limit to a states rights in
airspace is above the highest altitude at which an aircraft can fly and below the lowest possible perigee of an earth
satellite in orbit. The result is that anything in orbit or beyond can safely be regarded as in outer space.); 2004 UK
MANUAL 12.13 (Views differ as to the precise vertical and horizontal extent of airspace. For practical purposes, it
can be said that the upper limit to a states rights in airspace is above the highest altitude of what an aircraft can fly
and below the lowest possible perigee of an earth satellite in orbit. The result is that anything in orbit or beyond can
safely be regarded as in outer space.).
41
Kenneth Hodgkins, U.S. Advisor to the United Nations, Legal Subcommittee (LSC) of the United Nations
Committee on the Peaceful Uses of Outer Space (COPUOS) 719th Meeting [unedited transcript] (Apr. 8, 2005) (As
we have stated on previous occasions, the United States is firmly of the view that there is no need to seek a legal
definition or delimitation for outer space. The current framework has presented no practical difficulties and, indeed,
activities in outer space are flourishing. Given this situation, an attempt to define or delimit outer space would be an
unnecessary theoretical exercise that could potentially complicate existing activities and that might not be able to
anticipate continuing technological developments. The current framework has served us well and we should
continue to operate under this framework until there is a demonstrated need and a practical basis for developing a
definition or delimitation.); Stephen Mathias, U.S. Advisor to the United Nations, U.S. Statements on Specific
Agenda Items before the Legal Subcommittee of the Committee on the Peaceful Uses of Outer Space (2003) (At this
time, the United States remains convinced that there is no need to seek a legal definition of delimitation for outer
space. Activities in outer space and in airspace are flourishing and have raised no practical need for a definition or
limitation between the spheres. In the absence of a real need, any attempt to develop a definition would be ill-
advised as there would be no experience to call upon in agreeing upon any particular definition or delimitation.);
U.S. Statement before the Legal Subcommittee of the United Nations Committee on the Peaceful Uses of Outer
Space regarding the Definition and Delimitation of Outer Space and the Character and Utilization of the
Geostationary Orbit, Apr. 4, 2001, 2001 DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 721 (Our
position continues to be that defining or delimiting outer space is not necessary. No legal or practical problems have
arisen in the absence of such a definition. On the contrary, the differing legal regimes applicable in respect of
airspace and outer space have operated well in their respective spheres. The lack of a definition or delimitation of
outer space has not impeded the development of activities in either sphere. It would be dangerous for the Legal
Subcommittee to agree to an artificial line between air space and outer space, when it cannot predict the
consequences of such a line.).
42
Information Provided to U.S. Embassies in Rangoon and New Delhi Regarding Transit Through Flight
Information Regions and International Airspace, May 2007, 2007 DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN
INTERNATIONAL LAW 635, 636 (A Flight Information Region, or FIR, is simply an area over which a civil aviation
authority has responsibility for provision of flight information services. FIRs are allocated to coastal states by the
International Civil Aviation Organization (ICAO) to facilitate the safety of civil aviation. Some FIRs encompass
both national and international airspace. Civil aviation authorities may confuse responsibility for and authority over
civil aviation in a FIR for sovereignty over the area.).
43
DOD DIRECTIVE 4500.54E, DoD Foreign Clearance Program (FCP), Glossary (Dec. 28, 2009) (flight
information region. An airspace of defined dimensions within which flight information service and alerting service
906
Under Article 3 of the 1944 Chicago Convention, flight information region rules do not
apply to State aircraft, including military aircraft, and military aircraft are free to operate in
international airspace without the consent of or notice to coastal State authorities. 44 Thus, for
example, a flight information region could not limit the rights of belligerent military aircraft
during armed conflict.
14.2.4 Air Defense Identification Zone (ADIZ). In general terms, an ADIZ is an area of
airspace over land or water in which the ready identification, location, and control of aircraft
may be required in the interests of national security. 45 The United States has established
ADIZs. 46
are provided. A flight information region normally encompasses substantial areas of international airspace and does
not reflect international or national airspace borders. Responsibility for flight information region management is not
the same as territorial authority; therefore, state aircraft are not to request aircraft diplomatic clearance to enter a
flight information region if the aircraft will not enter national airspace. The International Civil Aviation
Organization establishes flight information regions in accordance with the Convention on International Civil
Aviation. Civil aviation authorities of designated nations administer them pursuant to International Civil Aviation
Organization authority, rules, and procedures.).
44
Information Provided to U.S. Embassies in Rangoon and New Delhi Regarding Transit Through Flight
Information Regions and International Airspace, May 2007, 2007 DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN
INTERNATIONAL LAW 635-36 (A coastal state may establish a FIR in international airspace consistent with the
requirements of the 1944 Convention on International Civil Aviation (Chicago Convention), to which your country
is a party; however, under Article 3 of that convention, FIR rules do not apply to state aircraft, including military
aircraft. State aircraft, including military aircraft, operating in international airspace (whether within or outside a
FIR) are free to operate without the consent of or notice to coastal state authorities and are not subject to the
jurisdiction or control of the ATC authorities of those states. No notice to, clearance from, or approval of a coastal
state is required to exercise such freedoms of navigation and overflight. The United States reaffirms its navigation
and overflight rights in international airspace.).
45
14 CODE OF FEDERAL REGULATIONS 99.3 (Air defense identification zone (ADIZ) means an area of airspace
over land or water in which the ready identification, location, and control of all aircraft (except for Department of
Defense and law enforcement aircraft) is required in the interest of national security.).
46
See, e.g., Ian E. Rinehart & Bart Elias, Chinas Air Defense Identification Zone (ADIZ), 2 (Congressional
Research Service, Jan. 30, 2015) (In 1948, the U.S. Air Force designated several offshore areas as active defense
areas or defense zones. From these, the first ADIZs in the world were established in 1950, under an Executive
order directing the Secretary of Commerce to exercise security control over aircraft. Various defense zones were
redesignated as ADIZs (over Atlantic, Pacific, and Gulf of Mexico waters[)] the Alaska ADIZ, the Guam ADIZ, and
the Hawaii ADIZ, are codified in Title 14, Part 99, of the Code of Federal Regulations, along with the procedural
requirements for flights operating in these designated areas. They are predominantly located over water and
typically do not extend to the shore, leaving a narrow strip of sovereign airspace parallel to the coastline that is not
within the ADIZ.); 1955 NWIP 10-2 422c endnote 16 (It is apparent that the potential threat to the security of
states presented by aircraft is considerably greater than the potential threat presented by vessels. However, there has
not yet emerged a recognized practice of contiguous air space zones, analogous to contiguous zones established on
the high seas (see paragraph 413d), enabling states to exercise certain legal controls over aircraft flying outside
territorial air space. The present system of Air Defense Identification Zones (ADIZ) employed by the United States
extends to the air space above the open sea, and is limited to the purpose of identifying aircraft.).
47
See, e.g., 2007 NWP 1-14M 2.7.2.3 (International law does not prohibit nations from establishing air defense
identification zones (ADIZ) in the international airspace adjacent to their territorial airspace. The legal basis for
907
The establishment of an ADIZ by a State does not constitute a claim to international
airspace as its own. The ADIZ is merely a reference point for the initiation of identification
procedures for aircraft on a course to enter national airspace. 48
The United States does not recognize the right of a State to apply its ADIZ laws and
regulations to foreign aircraft, either civil aircraft or State aircraft, if those aircraft do not intend
to enter the national airspace of that State. 49
Establishment of an ADIZ, like other warning zones, does not relieve the proclaiming
State of its obligations under applicable international law, such as its obligation under the law of
war to refrain from attacking aircraft that do not constitute lawful military objectives, or its
obligation to refrain from attacks against civil aircraft under peacetime international law. 52
ADIZ regulations is the right of a nation to establish reasonable conditions of entry into its territory. Accordingly,
an aircraft approaching national airspace can be required to identify itself while in international airspace as a
condition of entry approval.); 1976 AIR FORCE PAMPHLET 110-31 2-1g (Civil aircraft on a course to penetrate
United States airspace are required to identify themselves upon entry into the [Air Defense Identification] zone.
This requirement is based on the right of every state to establish conditions and procedures for entry into its
airspace.). See also 1944 CHICAGO CONVENTION art. 11 (Subject to the provisions of this Convention, the laws
and regulations of a contracting State relating to the admission to or departure from its territory of aircraft engaged
in international air navigation, or to the operation and navigation of such aircraft while within its territory, shall be
applied to the aircraft of all contracting States without distinction as to nationality, and shall be complied with by
such aircraft upon entering or departing from or while within the territory of that State.).
48
1976 AIR FORCE PAMPHLET 110-31 2-1g (An air defense identification zone does not constitute a claim of
sovereignty over airspace above the high seas. Such a zone is merely a reference point for initiation of identification
procedures for aircraft on a course to penetrate national airspace.).
49
See, e.g., John Kerry, Secretary of State, Press Statement (Nov. 23, 2013) (We dont support efforts by any State
to apply its ADIZ procedures to foreign aircraft not intending to enter its national airspace. The United States does
not apply its ADIZ procedures to foreign aircraft not intending to enter U.S. national airspace.); U.S. Response to
Chinese Legal Views, 2001 DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 703, 707 (The U.S. does
not recognize the right of a coastal nation to apply its ADIZ procedures to foreign aircraft not intending to enter
national airspace, and does not apply its ADIZ procedures to foreign aircraft not intending to enter U.S. airspace.).
50
1976 AIR FORCE PAMPHLET 110-31 2-1g (State aircraft on a course to penetrate United States airspace may be
requested to identify themselves, and failing voluntary identification may be identified by intercept aircraft or
otherwise as appropriate.).
51
Compare 14.5.2.1 (Failure to Comply by Civil Aircraft).
52
Refer to 13.9.2 (Use of Zones to Warn Vessels or Aircraft War, Operational, Warning, and Safety Zones);
14.8.3.1 (Protection of Civil Aircraft in Peacetime).
908
14.3 AIRCRAFT STATUS
14.3.1 State Versus Civil Aircraft. The 1944 Chicago Convention distinguishes between
State aircraft and civil aircraft. 53
Aircraft used in military, customs, and police services are deemed to be State aircraft for
the purposes of the 1944 Chicago Convention. 54 More generally, State aircraft may be
understood to include other aircraft operated by a government for sovereign, non-commercial
purposes. 55 In U.S. practice, DoD contract aircraft have not qualified as State aircraft, unless
specifically designated as such by the United States. 56
The distinction between State aircraft and civil aircraft may be important for a variety of
reasons. For example, the 1944 Chicago Convention generally does not apply to State aircraft. 57
In addition, enemy State aircraft are subject to seizure as war booty. 58 As another example,
neutral State aircraft are not subject to visit and search or diversion. 59 And, although not
53
1944 CHICAGO CONVENTION art. 3(a) (This Convention shall be applicable only to civil aircraft, and shall not be
applicable to state aircraft.). Consider Commission of Jurists to Consider and Report Upon the Revision of the
Rules of Warfare, General Report, Part II: Rules of Arial Warfare, art. 2, Feb. 19, 1923, reprinted in 32 AJIL
SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL DOCUMENTS 12, 12 (1938) (The following shall be deemed to be public aircraft: (a)
Military aircraft. (b) Non-military aircraft exclusively employed in the public service. All other aircraft shall be
deemed to be private aircraft.).
54
1944 CHICAGO CONVENTION art. 3(b) (Aircraft used in military, customs and police services shall be deemed to
be state aircraft.).
55
DOD DIRECTIVE 4500.54E, DoD Foreign Clearance Program (FCP), Glossary (Dec. 28, 2009) (state aircraft.
Aircraft, including U.S. military aircraft, operated by a government for sovereign, non-commercial purposes.).
56
See, e.g., Secretary of State Cable 22631, USG Policy Regarding Status of DOD Commercial Contract Aircraft
(Mar. 10, 2010) (The U.S. Government has consistently taken the position that Department of Defense (DoD)
commercial contract aircraft and other USG contract aircraft are not state aircraft unless the particular aircraft is
specifically designated as such by the USG. The normal practice of the USG is not to designate contract aircraft as
state aircraft.); 2007 NWP 1-14M 2.4.3 (Auxiliary aircraft are State aircraft, other than military aircraft, that are
owned by or under the exclusive control of the armed forces. Civilian owned and operated aircraft, the full capacity
of which has been contracted by the DOD and used in the military service of the United States, qualify as auxiliary
aircraft if they are designated as State aircraft by the United States. In those circumstances they too enjoy
sovereign immunity from foreign search and inspection. As a matter of policy, however, the United States normally
does not designate Air Mobility Command-charter aircraft as State aircraft.); Department of the Army, Office of
the Judge Advocate General, International and Operations Law: Payment of Fees Charged to State Aircraft, 21
THE REPORTER 19, 20 (June 1994) (The US government consistently has taken the position that Department of
Defense contract aircraft do not qualify as state aircraft unless the particular aircraft is specifically designated as
such by the US government. Although many SOFAs, base rights, and other agreements grant DoD contract aircraft
the same rights of access, exit, and freedom from landing fees and similar charges enjoyed by US military aircraft,
such agreements do not have the effect of declaring DoD contract aircraft to be military aircraft or any form of state
aircraft.).
57
Refer to 14.1.1.2 (1944 Chicago Convention and Military Aircraft or Other State Aircraft).
58
Refer to 14.5.3 (Capture of Aircraft and Goods on Board Aircraft).
59
Refer to 15.13 (Belligerent Right of Visit and Search of Merchant Vessels and Civil Aircraft); 14.5.2 (Diversion
of Aircraft).
909
necessary for an aircraft to constitute a military objective, the status of an aircraft as State aircraft
may also be an important factor in determining that an aircraft constitutes a military objective. 60
14.3.2 Nationality of Aircraft. State aircraft possess the nationality of the State that
operates them. Civil aircraft possess the nationality of the State in which they are registered. 61
14.3.3 Status of Military Aircraft. Military aircraft may be understood as aircraft that are
designated as such by a State that operates them. The United States has not ratified a treaty that
requires certain qualifications before an aircraft may be designated as military aircraft.
In general, military aircraft are operated by commissioned units of the armed forces of a
State, bearing the military markings of that State, and commanded by a member of the armed
forces of that State.
In addition to combat aircraft such as fighters and bombers, other types of aircraft
operated by the armed forces of a State may also be designated as military aircraft, such as
transport, reconnaissance, and meteorological aircraft. Unmanned aircraft, i.e., aircraft that are
remotely piloted or controlled, may also be designated as military aircraft.
14.3.3.1 Military Aircraft Rights and Liabilities. Of all aircraft, only military
aircraft are entitled to engage in attacks in armed conflict. 63 Likewise, during armed conflict,
enemy military aircraft generally constitute military objectives and, thus, may be made the object
of attack, whether in the air or on the ground. 64 There may be exceptions to the general rule that
enemy military aircraft are liable to being made the object of attack, such as in the case of enemy
military medical aircraft or enemy military aircraft that have surrendered. 65
60
Refer to 14.8.3 (Attacks Against Civil Aircraft); 5.7 (Military Objectives).
61
1944 CHICAGO CONVENTION art. 17 (Aircraft have the nationality of the State in which they are registered.).
62
Refer to 15.14 (Acquisition of Enemy Character by Neutral-Flagged Merchant Vessels and Neutral-Marked
Civil Aircraft).
63
See, e.g., 2013 GERMAN MANUAL 1103 (Only military aircraft are entitled to exercise belligerent rights and use
military force in fighting military objectives of an adversary (14 13, 16 para.1).); 2006 AUSTRALIAN MANUAL 8-
14 ([O]nly military aircraft can exercise the combat rights of a belligerent. Examples of such rights include
attacking military objectives and overflying enemy territory.); 2004 UK MANUAL 12.34 (Only military aircraft
may carry out attacks.); 2001 CANADIAN MANUAL 704(3) (Civil aircraft and state aircraft that are not military
aircraft (for example, police or customs officials) may not engage in hostilities ... .); 1976 AIR FORCE PAMPHLET
110-31 2-6d (Only military aircraft may exercise such rights of belligerents as attacking and destroying military
objectives or transporting troops in the adversarys national airspace or behind its lines.). Consider Commission of
Jurists to Consider and Report Upon the Revision of the Rules of Warfare, General Report, Part II: Rules of Arial
Warfare, art. 16, Feb. 19, 1923, reprinted in 32 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL DOCUMENTS 12, 19 (1938) (No
aircraft other than a belligerent military aircraft shall engage in hostilities in any form.).
64
Refer to 5.7.4.1 (Military Equipment and Bases).
65
Refer to 7.14 (Military Medical Aircraft); 14.8.2 (Protection of Persons Who Surrender or Who Are Otherwise
Hors De Combat on Board Enemy Aircraft).
910
Belligerent military aircraft generally may not enter neutral airspace. 66
As State aircraft, military aircraft, like warships, are customarily accorded certain
privileges and immunities by friendly foreign States. 67
A single marking may be used to signify both an aircrafts nationality and its military
character. 71
66
Refer to 15.10.2 (Prohibition on Entry by Belligerent Military Aircraft Into Neutral Airspace).
67
DOD DIRECTIVE 4500.54E, DoD Foreign Clearance Program (FCP), 4 (Dec. 28, 2009) (b. Consistent with
U.S. Government policy, DoD aircraft shall not be subject to air navigation, overflight, or similar fees for transit
through the national airspace of another country or through Flight Information Regions in international airspace.
This policy is based upon the unique status of state aircraft, including U.S. military aircraft, in international law as
instruments of a sovereign, and is consistent with international custom and practice. c. DoD aircraft shall not be
subject to search, seizure, and inspection (including customs, safety, and agriculture inspections) or any other
exercise of jurisdiction by a foreign government over such aircraft, or the personnel, equipment, or cargo on board.
DoD aircraft commanders shall not consent to the exercise of jurisdiction by foreign government authorities over
U.S. military aircraft, except at the direction of the appropriate DoD Component headquarters.). Consider
Convention Relating to the Regulation of Aerial Navigation, art. 32, Oct. 13, 1919, 11 LNTS 173, 195 (No military
aircraft of a contracting State shall fly over the territory of another contracting State nor land thereon without special
authorisation. In case of such authorisation the military aircraft shall enjoy, in principle, in the absence of special
stipulation, the privileges which are customarily accorded to foreign ships of war. A military aircraft which is
forced to land or which is requested or summoned to land shall by reason thereof acquire no right to the privileges
referred to in the above paragraph.); John Cobb Cooper, A Study on the Legal Status of Aircraft, in IVAN A.
VLASIC, EXPLORATIONS IN AEROSPACE LAW 205, 243 (1968) (It is felt that the rule stated in the Paris Convention
that aircraft engaged in military services should, in the absence of stipulation to the contrary, be given the privileges
of foreign warships when in national port is sound and may be considered as still part of international air law even
though not restated in the Chicago Convention.).
68
Consider Commission of Jurists to Consider and Report Upon the Revision of the Rules of Warfare, General
Report, Part II: Rules of Arial Warfare, art. 3, Feb. 19, 1923, reprinted in 32 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL
DOCUMENTS 12, 13 (1938) (A military aircraft shall bear an external mark indicating its nationality and military
character.).
69
For example, SPAIGHT, AIR POWER AND WAR RIGHTS 82 (Again and again one finds the fighting airmen of
1914-18 stating in their memoirs or diaries that they have been saved from attacking a friend or have been put on
guard against a foe by seeing the distinguishing marks on the wings of the machines.).
70
1976 AIR FORCE PAMPHLET 110-31 7-4 (Military aircraft, as entities of combat in aerial warfare, are also
required to be marked with appropriate signs of their nationality and military character. However, circumstances
may exist where such markings are superfluous and are not required. An example is when no other aircraft except
those belonging to a single state are flown. Such markings serve to distinguish friend from foe and serve to preclude
misidentification as neutral or civilian aircraft. Accordingly, military aircraft may not bear markings of the enemy
or markings of neutral aircraft while engaging in combat. Combatant markings should be prominently affixed to the
exterior aircraft surfaces and be recognizable at a reasonable distance from any direction.).
71
For example, 2004 UK MANUAL 12.10.4 (In most air forces, the same marking indicates both nationality and
military character, for example, the Royal Air Force roundel.).
911
14.3.3.3 Military Aircraft Command and Crew. Military aircraft are
commanded by members of the armed forces of that State. 72 The crew, however, may include
civilian members, and such personnel are expressly entitled to POW status under the GPW. 73
14.4.1 Military Aircrew. Aircrew who are members of the armed forces of a State have
the rights, duties, and liabilities of combatants. 74 For example, they are entitled to POW status if
they fall into the power of the enemy during international armed conflict, and they have legal
immunity from domestic law for acts done under military authority and in accordance with the
law of war.
72
Consider Commission of Jurists to Consider and Report Upon the Revision of the Rules of Warfare, General
Report, Part II: Rules of Arial Warfare, art. 14, Feb. 19, 1923, reprinted in 32 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL
DOCUMENTS 12, 18 (1938) (A military aircraft shall be under the command of a person duly commissioned or
enlisted in the military service of the state;).
73
Refer to 4.15 (Persons Authorized to Accompany the Armed Forces).
74
Refer to 4.5 (Armed Forces of a State); 4.4 (Rights, Duties, and Liabilities of Combatants).
75
Refer to 5.14.5 (Carrying Arms Openly and Wearing of Distinctive Emblems by the Armed Forces to
Distinguish Themselves From the Civilian Population).
76
Consider Commission of Jurists to Consider and Report Upon the Revision of the Rules of Warfare, General
Report, Part II: Rules of Arial Warfare, art. 15, Feb. 19, 1923, reprinted in 32 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL
DOCUMENTS 12, 18 (1938) (Members of the crew of a military aircraft shall wear a fixed distinctive emblem of
such character as to be recognizable at a distance in case they become separated from their aircraft.).
77
Refer to 4.15 (Persons Authorized to Accompany the Armed Forces).
78
Refer to 5.12.3.2 (Harm to Certain Individuals Who May Be Employed In or On Military Objectives).
912
14.4.3 Downed Aircrew. There are a number of law of war issues related to downed
aircrew.
The United States has understood the prohibition against the use of riot control agents as
a method of warfare not to prohibit the use of riot control agents to rescue downed aircrew in
certain circumstances. 85
14.4.3.4 Downed Aircrew Evasion From, and Capture by, the Enemy. Downed
aircrew may use enemy uniforms to evade capture by the enemy, but, in some cases, such use
may risk liability to treatment as a spy. 86 Likewise, downed aircrew may use civilian clothes to
evade capture by the enemy. 87
79
Refer to 5.10.5 (Persons Parachuting From an Aircraft in Distress).
80
Refer to 5.10.5.1 (No Hostile Acts or Attempts to Evade Capture).
81
Refer to 7.3.1.2 (Shipwrecked).
82
Refer to 7.3.3 (Meaning of Respect and Protection of the Wounded, Sick, and Shipwrecked); 7.4.1 (GWS-
Sea Obligation Regarding the Search, Collection, and Affirmative Protection of the Wounded, Sick, Shipwrecked,
and Dead).
83
2004 UK MANUAL 12.70.1 (The use of, for example, military assets to rescue aircrew who have been downed
on territory under the control of the enemy is a combat activity. It is therefore legitimate for an enemy in such
circumstances to attack the rescuers or by some other means to impede or prevent the rescue activity.).
84
Refer to 4.9.2.3 (Exclusively Engaged in Humanitarian Duties); 7.12.2.3 (No Hampering the Movement of
Combatants ); 7.14.2.2 (Search, Rescue, or Other Recovery Excluded).
85
Refer to 6.16.2 (Prohibition on Use of Riot Control Agents as a Method of Warfare).
86
Refer to 5.23.1.4 (Use of Enemy Uniforms to Evade Capture or Escape).
87
Refer to 5.25.3 (Examples of Other Deceptions That Are Not Prohibited). Compare 9.25.2.2 (Only
Disciplinary Punishments in Respect of an Act of Escape).
913
If downed aircrew fall into the power of the enemy during international armed conflict,
they are entitled to POW status. 88 Downed aircrew remain entitled to POW status even if they
unsuccessfully attempt to escape capture by enemy forces or if they attack enemy forces upon
reaching the ground. As POWs, downed aircrew are entitled to protection from violence from
the civilian population and others. 89
14.5.1 Interception. During armed conflict, a party may choose to intercept an aircraft
through a variety of ways, including closing to visual range or to a distance where the target
aircraft is within the range of weapons systems. Interception of civil aircraft that are not military
objectives should be exercised with due regard for the safety of such aircraft. 91
to assist in the obligation to distinguish between military objectives and civilian objects
and the obligation to protect the civilian population, 92 such as by
as part of the belligerent right of visit and search, including the belligerent right to
enforce a blockade, 93 such as by
o forcing an aircraft to divert and land at a specific airfield for search or capture; or
88
Refer to 9.3 (POW Status).
89
Refer to 9.5.2.2 (Protection Against Violence by the Civilian Population or Others).
90
Refer to 15.16 (Belligerent Forces Taking Refuge in Neutral Territory).
91
Refer to 14.1.1.4 (Due Regard for the Safety of Navigation of Civil Aircraft).
92
Refer to 2.5 (Distinction).
93
Refer to 15.13 (Belligerent Right of Visit and Search of Merchant Vessels and Civil Aircraft).
94
Refer to 15.10 (Neutral Airspace).
914
In addition, interception may not be conducted during passage through neutral
international straits or neutral archipelagic sea lanes. 95
14.5.2 Diversion of Aircraft. Diversion and search of civil aircraft may be conducted
outside neutral airspace as part of the belligerent right of visit and search (e.g., to help determine
whether aircraft are liable to capture for carriage of contraband or for breach of blockade). 96
Interference with civil aircraft of neutral States must be justified by military necessity.
If, upon interception outside of neutral airspace, reasonable grounds exist for suspecting
that the intercepted civil aircraft, its cargo, or its personnel are liable to capture, 97 then it may be
directed to proceed to a belligerent airfield that is both reasonably accessible and suitable for the
type of aircraft involved for visit and search. 98 Should such an airfield not be available, the
intercepted civil aircraft may be diverted from its declared destination. 99
Certain aircraft are exempt from the belligerent right to divert aircraft for purposes of
visit and search: (1) neutral military aircraft; and (2) neutral civil aircraft accompanied by
neutral military aircraft of the same nationality. 100
Failure to comply with military instructions from intercepting aircraft does not in itself
render a neutral or non-belligerent civil aircraft a military objective. However, it may provide
strong evidence that the civil aircraft is in fact being used for a military or hostile purpose.
14.5.3 Capture of Aircraft and Goods on Board Aircraft. Enemy civil aircraft and goods
on board such aircraft may be captured outside neutral airspace. 102
95
Refer to 15.8 (Passage of Belligerent Vessels and Aircraft Through International Straits and Archipelagic Sea
Lanes).
96
Refer to 15.13.4.3 (Visit and Search of Civil Aircraft by Military Aircraft).
97
Refer to 15.15.1 (Grounds for the Capture of Neutral Vessels and Aircraft).
98
Consider Commission of Jurists to Consider and Report Upon the Revision of the Rules of Warfare, General
Report, Part II: Rules of Arial Warfare, art. 50, Feb. 19, 1923, reprinted in 32 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL
DOCUMENTS 12, 44 (1938) (Belligerent military aircraft have the right to order public non-military and private
aircraft to alight in or proceed for visit and search to a suitable locality reasonably accessible. Refusal, after
warning, to obey such orders to alight or to proceed to such a locality for examination exposes an aircraft to the risk
of being fired upon.).
99
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.6.3 (If, upon interception outside of neutral airspace, reasonable grounds exist for
suspecting that the intercepted civilian aircraft is carrying contraband cargo or that, despite its neutral markings, it is,
in fact, enemy, it may be directed to proceed for visit and search to a belligerent airfield that is both reasonably
accessible and suitable for the type of aircraft involved. Should such an airfield not be available, the intercepted
civilian aircraft may be diverted from its declared destination.).
100
Refer to 15.13.2 (Types of Neutral Vessels and Aircraft That Are Exempt From Visit and Search).
101
Refer to 14.8.3.2 (Forfeiture of Protection From Being Made the Object of Attack During Armed Conflict).
915
Any enemy State aircraft (including military, law enforcement, and customs aircraft), as
public movable property, is subject to capture as war booty with ownership passing immediately
to the captor government. 103 Similarly, prize procedure is not used for captured enemy
warships. 104
Neutral civil aircraft engaged in certain activity in violation of their neutral status are
liable to capture. 105 Even if not liable to capture, neutral civil aircraft are subject to visit and
search. 106
Belligerents may prohibit or establish special restrictions upon flight activities in the
immediate vicinity of hostilities to prevent such activities from jeopardizing military operations.
In some cases, this right may be distinct from a belligerent States right to establish airspace
zones during armed conflict. 107
As with the belligerent right to control the immediate area of naval operations, this right
is based on a belligerent States right to ensure the security of its forces and its right to conduct
hostilities without interference from neutrals. 108 However, belligerent control of aviation in the
immediate vicinity of hostilities may be applicable in the national airspace of belligerents. 109
During armed conflict, States may establish airspace zones and associated procedures
intended to prohibit aircraft from entering or flying in designated areas, including areas in
102
Consider Commission of Jurists to Consider and Report Upon the Revision of the Rules of Warfare, General
Report, Part II: Rules of Arial Warfare, art. 49, Feb. 19, 1923, reprinted in 32 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL
DOCUMENTS 12, 40 (1938) (Private aircraft are liable to visit and search and to capture by belligerent military
aircraft.); Commission of Jurists to Consider and Report Upon the Revision of the Rules of Warfare, General
Report, Part II: Rules of Arial Warfare, art. 52, Feb. 19, 1923, reprinted in 32 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL
DOCUMENTS 12, 45 (1938) (Enemy private aircraft are liable to capture in all circumstances.).
103
Refer to 5.17.3 (Enemy Movable Property on the Battlefield (War Booty)). Consider Commission of Jurists to
Consider and Report Upon the Revision of the Rules of Warfare, General Report, Part II: Rules of Arial Warfare,
art. 32, Feb. 19, 1923, reprinted in 32 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL DOCUMENTS 12, 30 (1938) (Enemy public
aircraft, other than those treated on the same footing as private aircraft, shall be subject to confiscation without prize
proceedings.); Program on Humanitarian Policy and Conflict Research at Harvard University, Commentary on the
HPCR Manual on International Law Applicable to Air and Missile Warfare, 275 (U.I.136(a)) (2010) (Enemy
military, law-enforcement and customs aircraft are booty of war. Prize procedures do not apply to captured enemy
military aircraft and other State aircraft, inasmuch as their ownership immediately passes to the captor government
by virtue of capture.).
104
Refer to 13.4.3 (Captured Enemy Warships No Prize Procedure).
105
Refer to 15.15.1 (Grounds for the Capture of Neutral Vessels and Aircraft).
106
Refer to 15.13 (Belligerent Right of Visit and Search of Merchant Vessels and Civil Aircraft).
107
Refer to 14.7 (Airspace Zones).
108
Refer to 13.8 (Belligerent Control of the Immediate Area of Naval Operations).
109
Refer to 14.2.1.1 (National Airspace).
916
international airspace. Such zones may be established for a variety of purposes, including to
decrease the risk of inadvertent attack of civil or neutral aircraft, to control the scope of the
conflict, or to enhance the predictability and effectiveness of ongoing operations.
The legal rules that apply to the establishment and enforcement of a zone are discussed in
connection with the establishment and enforcement of maritime zones. 110
In some cases, such as with Air Defense Identification Zones, the zone may be
established during peacetime. 111
The general rules on conducting attacks also apply to attacks against military objectives
in the air. 112 In general, enemy military aircraft may be made the object of attack.
14.8.1 Medical Aircraft. Specific rules found in the 1949 Geneva Conventions address
the protection of aircraft that are engaged exclusively in specified medical functions. 113
14.8.2 Protection of Persons Who Surrender or Who Are Otherwise Hors De Combat on
Board Enemy Aircraft. The general rules on the protection of persons who are hors de combat
(such as those who have been incapacitated and those who have effectively surrendered) also
apply to persons on board enemy aircraft. 114
Although the capture of enemy military aircraft and aircrew may be of significant
intelligence value, there are often significant practical obstacles to identifying when persons on
board an aircraft are hors de combat and to accepting their surrender. Despite these practical
difficulties, if surrender is offered in good faith and circumstances do not preclude enforcement,
then surrender must be respected. 115 Persons who are conducting attacks against enemy military
aircraft must assess in good faith whether surrender is offered in good faith and can feasibly be
accepted based on the information that is available to them at the time. 116
First, it is very difficult, if not impossible, to assess whether the enemy aircraft has
actually been disabled and does not pose any threat. For example, aircraft may feign symptoms
110
Refer to 13.9 (Maritime and Airspace Zones: Exclusion, War, Operational, Warning, and Safety).
111
Refer to 14.2.4 (Air Defense Identification Zone (ADIZ)).
112
Refer to 5.5.2 (Overview of Rules in Conducting Attacks).
113
Refer to 7.14 (Military Medical Aircraft); 7.19 (Civilian Medical Aircraft).
114
Refer to 5.10 (Persons Placed Hors de Combat).
115
1976 AIR FORCE PAMPHLET 110-31 4-2d (If surrender is offered in good faith so that circumstances do not
preclude enforcement, then surrender must be respected.).
116
Refer to 5.4.2 (Decisions Must Be Made in Good Faith and Based on Information Available at the Time).
917
of distress to evade enemy attacks. 117 Moreover, even if an aircraft has been disabled in some
respects, the aircraft may not have lost its means of combat, and weapons on board the aircraft
may still pose a threat.
As a practical matter, it may also be difficult for the pilot of an attacking aircraft to know
when an adversary is attempting to surrender or has surrendered. Broadcasting on the
international GUARD frequency (aircraft emergency frequency), rocking the aircrafts wings,
lowering the landing gear, and other signals (such as the flashing of navigational lights) are
sometimes cited as indications of a pilot or aircrews desire to surrender, but they are not
recognized in law as signals of surrender. Consequently, absent an explicit message of offering
surrender, an intention to surrender cannot be presumed from the conduct of the aircraft.
14.8.3 Attacks Against Civil Aircraft. During armed conflict, civil aircraft are generally
considered civilian objects, but may be made the object of attack, outside neutral territory, if they
constitute a military objective.
117
Refer to 5.25.3 (Examples of Other Deceptions That Are Not Prohibited).
118
1976 AIR FORCE PAMPHLET 110-31 4-2d (Surrenders in air combat are generally not offered. If surrender is
offered, usually no way exists to enforce the surrender.).
119
2004 UK MANUAL 12.64 (Although it is forbidden to kill or wound an enemy who, having laid down his arms,
or having no longer means of defence, has surrendered at discretion in air-to-air combat, surrender is usually
impracticable and occurs very infrequently.); 2004 UK MANUAL 12.64.1 (In the special circumstances of air-to-
air combat the continuation of an attack after an indication by the opponent of a wish to surrender is not inconsistent
with the rule in paragraph 12.64, as the enemy pilot who remains in his aircraft cannot be said to have laid down his
arms or to have no longer a means of defence. However, if the surrender is offered in good faith and in
circumstances that do not prevent enforcement, for example, when the engagement has not taken place over enemy
territory, it must be respected and accepted.).
120
See, e.g., Walter Dellinger, Assistant Attorney General, United States Assistance to Countries that Shoot Down
Civil Aircraft Involved in Drug Trafficking, Jul. 14, 1994, 18 OPINIONS OF THE OFFICE OF LEGAL COUNSEL 148, 149-
50 ([T]he United States argued that the Soviet Union had violated both Article 3(d) and customary international
legal norms in shooting down KAL 007. We understand that the United States has not yet ratified Article 3 bis.
There is, however, support for the view that the principle it announced is declaratory of customary international
law.); U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 1067, U.N. Doc. S/RES/1067 (1996) (6. Condemns the use of
weapons against civil aircraft in flight as being incompatible with elementary considerations of humanity, the rules
of customary international law as codified in article 3 bis of the Chicago Convention, .). Consider Protocol
Relating to an Amendment to the Convention on International Civil Aviation (Article 3 bis), May 10, 1984, 2122
UNTS 346-47 (The contracting States recognize that every State must refrain from resorting to the use of weapons
against civil aircraft in flight and that, in case of interception, the lives of persons on board and the safety of aircraft
must not be endangered. This provision shall not be interpreted as modifying in any way the rights and obligations
of States set forth in the Charter of the United Nations.).
918
the rights and obligations of States set forth in the Charter of the United Nations. 121 Thus, a
States use of force against civil aircraft in the exercise of the inherent right of self-defense
would be permitted.
14.8.3.2 Forfeiture of Protection From Being Made the Object of Attack During
Armed Conflict. Civil aircraft may be made the object of attack, outside neutral territory, if the
aircraft constitutes a military objective. 122
In particular, civil aircraft forfeit any protection from being made the object of attack if
they acquire the character of enemy military aircraft by:
acting in any capacity as a naval or military auxiliary to the enemys armed forces. 123
In addition, enemy civil aircraft forfeit protection from being made the object of
124
attack:
when persistently refusing to comply with directions from intercepting aircraft; 125
when armed with systems or weapons beyond that required for self-defense against
terrorism, piracy, or like threats;
when incorporated into or assisting the enemys military intelligence system; 126 or
121
Consider Protocol Relating to an Amendment to the Convention on International Civil Aviation (Article 3 bis),
May 10, 1984, 2122 UNTS 346-47 (The contracting States recognize that every State must refrain from resorting to
the use of weapons against civil aircraft in flight and that, in case of interception, the lives of persons on board and
the safety of aircraft must not be endangered. This provision shall not be interpreted as modifying in any way the
rights and obligations of States set forth in the Charter of the United Nations.) (emphasis added). Compare
13.1.1 (The Law of the Sea During Armed Conflict).
122
Refer to 5.7 (Military Objectives).
123
Refer to 15.14.2.1 (Acquiring the Character of an Enemy Warship or Military Aircraft).
124
2007 NWP 1-14M 8.8 (Enemy merchant vessels and civil aircraft may be attacked and destroyed by military
aircraft only under the following circumstances: 1. When persistently refusing to comply with directions from the
intercepting aircraft 2. When sailing under convoy of enemy warships or military aircraft 3. When armed with
systems or weapons beyond that required for self-defense against terrorism, piracy, or like threats 4. When
incorporated into or assisting in any way the enemys military intelligence system 5. When acting in any capacity as
a naval or military auxiliary to an enemys armed forces 6. When otherwise integrated into the enemys war-fighting
or war-sustaining effort.); 1989 NWP 9 8.4 (Enemy merchant vessels and civil aircraft may be attacked and
destroyed by military aircraft only under the following circumstances: 1. When refusing to comply with directions
from the intercepting aircraft 2. When assisting in any way the enemys military intelligence system or acting in any
capacity as auxiliaries to the enemys armed forces 3. When sailing under convoy of enemy warships, escorted by
enemy military aircraft, or armed 4. When otherwise integrated into the enemys war-fighting or war-sustaining
effort.).
125
Refer to 14.5.2.1 (Failure to Comply by Civil Aircraft).
919
when otherwise integrated into the enemys war-fighting or war-sustaining effort.
In particular, attacks against civilian passenger aircraft engaged in passenger service must
comply with the requirement that the expected loss of life or injury to civilians, and damage to
civilian objects incidental to the attack, must not be excessive in relation to the concrete and
direct military advantage expected to be gained. 128
The general rules on conducting attacks also apply to air attacks against military
objectives on the ground. 129
An undefended city, town, or village in this sense is a term of art. For example, a city
may only be declared undefended if it is open for immediate physical occupation by opposing
military ground forces. 132
14.9.2 Selection of Weapons in Conducting Attacks From the Air Against Ground
Military Objectives. It may be the case that commanders will have a variety of weapons with
which to conduct a potential aerial bombardment.
Certain weapons are prohibited per se, and it is specifically provided that feasible
precautions be taken in connection with certain weapons. 133 It must be emphasized, however,
that the selection of the appropriate weapon for conducting an aerial bombardment remains
primarily a military judgment rather than a legal one. In particular, there is no law of war
126
Consider Commission of Jurists to Consider and Report Upon the Revision of the Rules of Warfare, General
Report, Part I: Rules for the Control of Radio in Time of War, art. 6, Feb. 19, 1923, reprinted in 32 AJIL
SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL DOCUMENTS 2, 7-8 (1938) (1. The transmission by radio by a vessel or an aircraft, whether
enemy or neutral, when on or over the high seas of military intelligence for the immediate use of a belligerent is to
be deemed a hostile act and will render the vessel or aircraft liable to be fired upon.).
127
Refer to 5.5 (Rules on Conducting Assaults, Bombardments, and Other Attacks).
128
Refer to 5.12 (Proportionality in Conducting Attacks).
129
Refer to 5.5.2 (Overview of Rules in Conducting Attacks).
130
Refer to 5.15 (Undefended Cities, Towns, and Villages).
131
Refer to 5.15.2 (By Whatever Means).
132
Refer to 5.15.3 (Declaration of a City as Undefended).
133
Refer to 6.4 (Prohibited Weapons); 5.3.3.3 (Requirements to Take Precautions Regarding Specific Weapons).
920
requirement to use precision-guided weapons when non-precision-guided weapons may be used
in compliance with the law of war. 134
14.9.3 Protection of Enemy Ground Forces Who Are Hors de Combat. When aircrew or
aircraft operators assess that an enemy combatant has been placed hors de combat, they must
refrain from making such persons the object of attack. 136
In order to place a person hors de combat, the persons surrender must be (1) genuine; (2)
clear and unconditional; and (3) under circumstances where it is feasible for the opposing party
to accept the surrender. 137
In many cases, it would not be feasible for a party that is conducting air operations to
accept the surrender of an enemy person. In some cases, however, it may be appropriate, in
order to facilitate such surrender, to communicate steps for enemy units to take to communicate
clearly their intention to surrender. 138
921
communicate clearly to aircraft that they wish genuinely to surrender unconditionally or that they
have been incapacitated.
Aircrew or aircraft operators must assess in good faith whether persons have been placed
hors de combat based on the information that is available to them at the time. 140
14.9.3.2 Feasibility of Air Units to Accept the Surrender of Ground Forces. For a
communication of surrender to place a person hors de combat, the person must make the
surrender under circumstances where it is feasible for the opposing party to accept the
surrender. 141 For example, it must be possible for the opposing party to take that person into
custody. 142
In many cases, it would not be feasible for the aircraft to land and take the person into
custody or for nearby ground forces to take the person into custody. 143
140
Refer to 5.4.2 (Decisions Must Be Made in Good Faith and Based on Information Available at the Time).
141
Refer to 5.10.3.3 (Under Circumstances in Which It Is Feasible to Accept).
142
For example, FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 381 (During this attack, the two companies of 3/1
Attack Helicopter Battalion encountered minimal resistance in the form of T-55 tanks and BMPs, which they
destroyed. The surprising aspect of this operation was that it was the first of many instances where hundreds of Iraqi
soldiers ran out of their bunkers and attempted to surrender after seeing Army helicopters in their midst. Without
the means to hold them, the aeroscout pilots played cowboys to the herd of Iraqi soldiers, hovering them into a
tight circle until the lead ground elements of the Division's 1st Brigade arrived and secured them.); FINAL REPORT
ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 212 (In addition to direct support of NGFS missions, UAVs also were used to gather
intelligence on Faylaka Island when national sensors were not available and weather prevented aircraft
reconnaissance. Over Faylaka Island, USS Wisconsins UAV recorded hundreds of Iraqi soldiers waving white flags
the first-ever surrender of enemy troops to an unmanned aircraft. After the cease-fire, UAVs monitored the
coastline and outlying islands in reconnaissance support of occupying Coalition forces. Because UAVs were under
direct tactical control of combat forces, they could respond quickly in dynamic situations. On one occasion, USS
Wisconsins UAV located two Iraqi patrol boats, which were sunk by aircraft directed to investigate.).
143
For example, 101st Airborne ROE Card, Iraq (2003), reprinted in CENTER FOR LAW AND MILITARY OPERATIONS,
THE JUDGE ADVOCATE GENERALS LEGAL CENTER & SCHOOL, U.S. ARMY, I LEGAL LESSONS LEARNED FROM
AFGHANISTAN AND IRAQ: MAJOR COMBAT OPERATIONS (11 SEPTEMBER 2001 - 1 MAY 2003) 315, 316 (2004) (3.
Facts: An armed soldier sees you and throws his hands up to surrender. Response: Take the soldier prisoner, and
treat as an EPW. (Note: aircraft are not in the position to accept surrender, in the foregoing scenario, a 101st ABD
aircraft could fire upon the enemy soldier).); SPAIGHT, AIR POWER AND WAR RIGHTS 131-32 (Usually it is
impossible for attacking airmen to take ground troops prisoners, and such a situation as that described by Lieut.-Col.
Tennant as arising in Iraq in February, 1917, is probably more typical and normal than the cases quoted above.
Lieut.-Col. Tennant describes how in the Turkish retreat towards Azizieh, after the forcing by General Maudes
army of the Shumran Bend in the Tigris on 23 February, 1917, many of the waggons had hoisted the white flag,
while some of the flying Turks waved in token of surrender, when the British aeroplanes attacked them with
machine-guns. Flying along about 10 feet from the road I mowed down seven with one burst of machine-gun fire.
In such circumstances it is impossible to recognise the white flag. To try to do so would be to sacrifice the
advantage of the destruction of a routed and demoralised foe.).
144
Refer to 14.2.2 (Vertical Boundary Between Airspace and Outer Space).
922
Outer space may be viewed as analogous to the high seas in certain respects. 145 For
example, no State may claim sovereignty over outer space. 146 In addition, the space systems of
all nations have rights of passage through space without interference. 147
Agreement on the Rescue of Astronauts, the Return of Astronauts, and the Return of
Objects Launched into Outer Space; 150
Convention on International Liability for Damage Caused by Space Objects; 151 and
145
Arthur J. Goldberg, U.S. Ambassador to the United Nations, Treaty on Outer Space: Hearings Before the
Committee on Foreign Relations, U.S. Senate, 90th Congress, First Session, 63 (Mar. 13, 1967) (This is an attempt,
once we leave airspace, and get to outer space, however you define the limits, this is an attempt to create in outer
space the closest analogy and that is the high seas.).
146
OUTER SPACE TREATY art. II (Outer space, including the moon and other celestial bodies, is not subject to
national appropriation by claim of sovereignty, by means of use or occupation, or by any other means.).
147
See, e.g., OUTER SPACE TREATY art. I (Outer space, including the moon and other celestial bodies, shall be free
for exploration and use by all States without discrimination of any kind, on a basis of equality and in accordance
with international law, and there shall be free access to all areas of celestial bodies.); National Space Policy of the
United States of America, 3 (Jun. 28, 2010) (The United States considers the space systems of all nations to have
the rights of passage through, and conduct of operations in, space without interference. Purposeful interference with
space systems, including supporting infrastructure, will be considered an infringement of a nations rights.);
Presidential Directive/NSC-37, National Space Policy, 1.d (May 11, 1978) (The space systems of any nation are
national property and have the right of passage through and operations in space without interference. Purposeful
interference with operational space systems shall be viewed as an infringement upon sovereign rights.).
148
Refer to 14.10.3 (Outer Space Treaty Restrictions on Military Activities).
149
OUTER SPACE TREATY art. VI (States Parties to the Treaty shall bear international responsibility for national
activities in outer space, including the moon and other celestial bodies, whether such activities are carried on by
governmental agencies or by non-governmental entities, and for assuring that national activities are carried out in
conformity with the provisions set forth in the present Treaty. The activities of non-governmental entities in outer
space, including the moon and other celestial bodies, shall require authorization and continuing supervision by the
appropriate State Party to the Treaty.).
150
Agreement on the Rescue of Astronauts, the Return of Astronauts, and the Return of Objects Launched into
Outer Space, Apr. 22, 1968, 672 UNTS 119.
151
Convention on International Liability for Damage Caused by Space Objects, Mar. 29, 1972, 961 UNTS 187.
923
Certain provisions of these treaties may not be applicable as between belligerents during
international armed conflict. 153
Although existing international law, such as the Charter of the United Nations, generally
applies to States Parties activities in outer space, international law that prescribes certain
conditions for national claims of sovereignty does not apply to outer space because outer space is
not subject to national appropriation. 155
Certain treaties apply only in certain geographical locations (such as a States own
territory), and thus might not create obligations applicable to a States activities in outer space.
However, law of war treaties and the customary law of war are understood to regulate the
conduct of hostilities, regardless of where they are conducted, which would include the conduct
of hostilities in outer space. In this way, the application of the law of war to activities in outer
152
Convention on Registration of Objects Launched into Outer Space, Nov. 12, 1974, 1023 UNTS 15.
153
Department of Defense, Office of the General Counsel, An Assessment of International Legal Issues in
Information Operations (2nd ed., Nov. 1999), reprinted in 76 U.S. NAVAL WAR COLLEGE INTERNATIONAL LAW
STUDIES 459, 494 (2002) (During an international armed conflict between the two nations concerned, however, the
law of armed conflict would apply unless it was trumped by the principle of noninterference with space systems.
Resolution of this issue depends largely on whether the four space treaties will be considered to apply during an
armed conflict. None of them has any specific provision that indicates whether the parties intended that the
agreement apply in wartime. There appears to be a strong argument that the principle of noninterference established
by these agreements is inconsistent with a state of hostilities, at least where the systems concerned are of such high
military value that there is a strong military imperative for the adversary to be free to interfere with them, even to the
extent of destroying the satellites in the system. As indicated in the discussion of treaty law in the introduction to
this paper, the outcome of this debate may depend on the circumstances in which it first arises in practice.).
154
OUTER SPACE TREATY art. III. See also Staff Report prepared for the use of the Committee on Aeronautical and
Space Sciences, United States Senate, Treaty on Principles Governing the Activities of States in the Exploration and
Use of Outer Space, Including the Moon and Other Celestial Bodies: Analysis and Background Data, 24 (Mar.
1967) (This article makes clear that those nations which ratify the treaty will observe international lawand this
includes the Charter of the United Nationsin order to promote international cooperation and peace. Thus that
body of law, which has developed on the Earth in order to bring about harmonious relations between nations and
settle disputes without resort to violence, would become applicable to outer space, the Moon, and other celestial
bodies.).
155
Staff Report prepared for the use of the Committee on Aeronautical and Space Sciences, United States Senate,
Treaty on Principles Governing the Activities of States in the Exploration and Use of Outer Space, Including the
Moon and Other Celestial Bodies: Analysis and Background Data, 24 (Mar. 1967) (An exception would be
international law which provides certain conditions for national claims of sovereignty, this exception having been
set forth in Article II.); OUTER SPACE TREATY art. II (Outer space, including the moon and other celestial bodies,
is not subject to national appropriation by claim of sovereignty, by means of use or occupation, or by any other
means.).
924
space is the same as its application to activities in other environments, such as the land, sea, air,
or cyber domains.
14.10.3 Outer Space Treaty Restrictions on Military Activities. The Outer Space Treaty
imposes restrictions on certain military operations in outer space.
Other treaties may also impose restrictions on military activities in outer space. For
example, the Treaty Banning Nuclear Testing in the Atmosphere, Oceans, and Outer Space
(Limited Test Ban Treaty) prohibits nuclear weapon test explosions in outer space. 156
The prohibition on placing weapons of mass destruction in orbit around the earth refers
only to their placement in full orbit around the Earth; thus, the Outer Space Treaty does not ban
the use of nuclear or other weapons of mass destruction that go into a fractional orbit or engage
in suborbital flight. 158 For example, intercontinental ballistic missiles (ICBMs) will travel a
portion of their trajectory in outer space; but because ICBMs would enter outer space only
temporarily, their entry into outer space with nuclear warheads would not violate this
prohibition. 159 By contrast, some arms control treaties have prohibited the production, testing, or
deployment of systems, including missiles, that place nuclear weapons or other weapons of mass
destruction into either full earth orbit or a fraction of an earth orbit. 160
156
Treaty Banning Nuclear Weapon Tests in the Atmosphere, in Outer Space and Under Water, art. 1, Aug. 5, 1963,
480 UNTS 43, 45 (Each of the Parties to this Treaty undertakes to prohibit, to prevent, and not to carry out any
nuclear weapon test explosion, or any other nuclear explosion, at any place under its jurisdiction or control: (a) in
the atmosphere; beyond its limits, including outer space; or under water, including territorial waters or high seas;).
157
OUTER SPACE TREATY art. IV (States Parties to the Treaty undertake not to place in orbit around the Earth any
objects carrying nuclear weapons or any other kinds of weapons of mass destruction, install such weapons on
celestial bodies, or station such weapons in outer space in any other manner.).
158
See I NANDASIRI JASENTULIYANA & ROY S. LEE, MANUAL ON SPACE LAW 13-14 (1979) (The phrase orbit
around the earth in the first paragraph of this Article means that an object must be placed in a full orbit around the
earth before it comes within the prohibition of the Treaty. Therefore an object in a fractional orbit or suborbital
flight is not intended to be covered. This was the clear intention of the drafters of this Article.).
159
Staff Report prepared for the use of the Committee on Aeronautical and Space Sciences, United States Senate,
Treaty on Principles Governing the Activities of States in the Exploration and Use of Outer Space, Including the
Moon and Other Celestial Bodies: Analysis and Background Data, 26 (Mar. 1967) (The treaty does not change the
earthly situation with regard to ICBMs, but seeks to achieve on celestial bodies a form of demilitarization which is
deemed feasible from military and political viewpoints.).
160
For example, Treaty Between the United States of America and the Union of Soviet Socialist Republics on the
Reduction and Limitation of Strategic Offensive Arms, Jul. 31, 1991, U.S.-USSR, Article V(18)(c), S. TREATY DOC.
NO. 102-20, which expired December 5, 2009.
925
In addition, this rule in Article IV of the Outer Space Treaty does not establish any
prohibitions with respect to weapons that are not weapons of mass destruction (e.g., anti-satellite
laser weapons or other conventional weapons). 161
These activities are prohibited only on the moon and other celestial bodies, not in outer
space itself.
Article IV also recognizes the unimpeded right to: (1) the use of military personnel for
scientific research or other peaceful purposes on outer space missions; and (2) the use of any
equipment or facility necessary for the peaceful exploration of the moon and other celestial
bodies. 163
14.10.4 General Use of Outer Space for Peaceful Purposes. The United States has
expressed the view that outer space should be used only for peaceful purposes. 164 This view is
consistent with the Preamble to the Outer Space Treaty. 165
The United States has interpreted use of outer space for peaceful purposes to mean
non-aggressive and beneficial purposes consistent with the Charter of the United Nations and
161
David A. Koplow, ASAT-isfaction: Customary International Law and the Regulation of Anti-Satellite Weapons,
30 MICHIGAN JOURNAL OF INTERNATIONAL LAW 1187, 1198 (2009) (This provision does not impede the stationing
of non-nuclear weapons (including conventional ASAT weapons) in space, nor does it affect a nuclear weapon that
makes only a temporary transit of outer space, as when propelled by an intercontinental ballistic missile (ICBM)
toward its target, rather than being stationed in space.).
162
OUTER SPACE TREATY art. IV (The moon and other celestial bodies shall be used by all States Parties to the
Treaty exclusively for peaceful purposes. The establishment of military bases, installations and fortifications, the
testing of any type of weapons and the conduct of military maneuvers on celestial bodies shall be forbidden.).
163
OUTER SPACE TREATY art. IV (The use of military personnel for scientific research or for any other peaceful
purposes shall not be prohibited. The use of any equipment or facility necessary for peaceful exploration of the
moon and other celestial bodies shall also not be prohibited.).
164
See, e.g., National Space Policy of the United States of America 3 (Jun. 28, 2010) (All nations have the right to
explore and use space for peaceful purposes, and for the benefit of all humanity, in accordance with international
law. Consistent with this principle, peaceful purposes allows for space to be used for national and homeland
security activities.); Albert Gore, Sr., U.S. Representative to the United Nations, U.N. General Assembly, 17th
Sess., 1289th Mtg., U.N. Doc. A/C.1/PV.1289 (1962) (It is the view of the United States that outer space should be
used only for peaceful that is non-aggressive and beneficial purposes. The question of military activities in
space cannot be divorced from the question of military activities on Earth. To banish these activities in both
environments we must continue our efforts for general and complete disarmament with adequate safeguards. Until
this is achieved, the test of any space activities must not be whether it is military or non-military, but whether or not
it is consistent with the United Nations Charter and other obligations of law.).
165
OUTER SPACE TREATY preamble (Recognizing the common interest of all mankind in the progress of the
exploration and use of outer space for peaceful purposes,).
926
other international law. 166 This interpretation of peaceful purposes is similar to the
interpretation given to the reservation of the high seas for peaceful purposes in the LOS
Convention. 167
Article IV of the Outer Space Treaty provides that [t]he moon and other celestial bodies
shall be used by all States Parties to the Treaty exclusively for peaceful purposes. 170 Article IV
specifies restrictions on military operations on the moon and other celestial bodies. 171
166
Senator Albert Gore, Sr., Treaty on Outer Space: Hearings Before the Committee on Foreign Relations, U.S.
Senate, 90th Congress, First Session, 59 (Mar. 13, 1967) (We interpret peaceful purposes as being non-aggressive
and beneficial.). See also Staff Report prepared for the use of the Committee on Aeronautical and Space Sciences,
United States Senate, Treaty on Principles Governing the Activities of States in the Exploration and Use of Outer
Space, Including the Moon and Other Celestial Bodies: Analysis and Background Data, 11 (Mar. 1967) (In
Russian, the word for military essentially means warlike rather than pertaining to the armed services of a country;
in the United States, peaceful is not regarded as the opposite of militarywe think of peaceful as not
aggressive.); CARL Q. CHRISTOL, THE MODERN INTERNATIONAL LAW OF OUTER SPACE 22 (1982) (The
expression peaceful purposes is a legal term of art. At the beginning of the Space age several views were
advanced as to its meaning, with one view being that military activities in the space environment could not be and
were not peaceful. The opposing position, which today has gained general acceptance, is that nonaggressive
military uses are peaceful. Thus, peaceful has come to mean general space activity that is beneficial to and in the
interests of all countries.).
167
Refer to 13.1.1 (The Law of the Sea During Armed Conflict).
168
See Albert Gore, Sr., U.S. Representative to the United Nations, U.N. General Assembly, 17th Sess., 1289th
Mtg., U.N. Doc. A/C.1/PV.1289 13 (1962) ([A]ny nation may use space satellites for such purposes as observation
and information-gathering. Observation from space is consistent with international law, just as is observation from
the high seas.); Report by the Committee on Satellite Reconnaissance Policy, attached to Jul. 2, 1962 memorandum
from Secretary Rusk to President Kennedy, excerpted in XXV FOREIGN RELATIONS OF THE UNITED STATES (1961-
1963), 951-59 (2001) ((b) It is well established that areas subject to the jurisdiction of a state may be observed from
points outside that jurisdiction, e.g., from a ship on the high seas. Observation from outer space, which is not
subject to territorial claims, also cannot be considered to constitute a violation of international law.).
169
CARL Q. CHRISTOL, THE INTERNATIONAL LAW OF OUTER SPACE 114 (1966) (It may be concluded that both
ballistic missiles, directly, and satellites, indirectly, have military utility. This does not automatically exclude them
from the category of peaceful uses, since defensive and deterrent capabilities serve the cause of peace. It is only
when such devices are intentionally used for aggressive purposes that they lose their peaceful status.).
170
OUTER SPACE TREATY art. IV (The moon and other celestial bodies shall be used by all States Parties to the
Treaty exclusively for peaceful purposes.).
171
Refer to 14.10.3.2 (Restrictions on Military Activities on the Moon and Other Celestial Bodies).
927
corresponding interests of all other States Parties. 172 For example, States should conduct their
activities in space with due regard for the rights of other States to have their space systems pass
through, and conduct operations in, space without interference.
Article IX of the Outer Space Treaty also requires States Parties to undertake
appropriate international consultations before proceeding with any activity or experiment
planned by it or its nationals in outer space if that State Party has reason to believe that its
activity or experiment would cause potentially harmful interference with the activities of other
States Parties in the peaceful exploration and use of outer space. 173 Conversely, a State Party
that has reason to believe that an activity or experiment planned by another State Party in outer
space would cause potentially harmful interference with its activities in the peaceful exploration
and use of outer space may request consultation concerning the activity or experiment. 174
172
OUTER SPACE TREATY art. IX (In the exploration and use of outer space, including the moon and other celestial
bodies, States Parties to the Treaty shall be guided by the principle of cooperation and mutual assistance and shall
conduct all their activities in outer space, including the moon and other celestial bodies, with due regard to the
corresponding interests of all other States Parties to the Treaty.).
173
OUTER SPACE TREATY art. IX (If a State Party to the Treaty has reason to believe that an activity or experiment
planned by it or its nationals in outer space, including the moon and other celestial bodies, would cause potentially
harmful interference with activities of other States Parties in the peaceful exploration and use of outer space,
including the moon and other celestial bodies, it shall undertake appropriate international consultations before
proceeding with any such activity or experiment.).
174
OUTER SPACE TREATY art. IX (A State Party to the Treaty which has reason to believe that an activity or
experiment planned by another State Party in outer space, including the moon and other celestial bodies, would
cause potentially harmful interference with activities in the peaceful exploration and use of outer space, including
the moon and other celestial bodies, may request consultation concerning the activity or experiment.).
928
XV The Law of Neutrality
Chapter Contents
15.1 Introduction
15.2 Application of the Law of Neutrality
15.3 Overview of the Neutrality Laws Framework of Reciprocal Rights and
Duties
15.4 Remedies for Violations of Neutrality Law
15.5 Prohibition on the Use of Neutral Territory as a Base of Operations
15.6 Neutral Persons
15.7 Neutral Waters
15.8 Passage of Belligerent Vessels and Aircraft Through International Straits and
Archipelagic Sea Lanes
15.9 Additional Rules Applicable to Neutral Ports, Roadsteads, and Internal
Waters
15.10 Neutral Airspace
15.11 Belligerent Right of Angary
15.12 Neutral Commerce and Carriage of Contraband
15.13 Belligerent Right of Visit and Search of Merchant Vessels and Civil
Aircraft
15.14 Acquisition of Enemy Character by Neutral-Flagged Merchant Vessels and
Neutral-Marked Civil Aircraft
15.15 Capture of Neutral Vessels and Aircraft
15.16 Belligerent Forces Taking Refuge in Neutral Territory
15.17 POWs or Internees Brought to, or Received by, a Neutral State
15.18 Authorized Passage of Wounded and Sick Combatants Through Neutral
Territory
15.1 INTRODUCTION
Issues of neutrality law can raise questions of national policy regarding an armed
conflict. 1 In U.S. practice, such national policies would be developed through the National
Security Council (NSC) process by the Department of State and other departments and agencies
represented on the National Security Council. 2
Some of the rules described in this Chapter were formulated long ago. Moreover, treaties
concerning the law of neutrality might, by their terms, apply only to a limited set of international
1
Refer to 15.2.1.1 (Application of the Law of Neutrality and the National Policies of States Towards an Armed
Conflict).
2
See, e.g., Barack Obama, Presidential Policy Directive 1, Organization of the National Security Council System,
Feb. 13, 2009.
929
armed conflicts, and the rules prescribed in those treaties might not reflect customary
international law. 3 In addition, it may be important to consider the implications of more recent
treaties that might be applicable to a specific legal issue. In particular, the Charter of the United
Nations may, in certain respects, be understood to be consistent with, and, in other respects, to
modify, rules reflected in the law of neutrality. 4
15.1.1 Matters Addressed by the Law of Neutrality. The law of neutrality prescribes the
legal relationship between belligerent States and neutral States. The law of neutrality regulates
relations between: (1) belligerent States, vessels, aircraft, and persons; and (2) neutral States,
vessels, aircraft, and persons. Under the law of neutrality, these categories of belligerents and
neutrals have corresponding rights, duties, and liabilities. Special rules have been developed to
address situations on land, at sea, and in the air.
Certain rules found in the law of neutrality have also been applied in other contexts that
are closely analogous, such as a States duties to prevent a non-State armed groups use of its
territory for hostile expeditions against another State. 5
15.1.2.2 Neutral State. Neutral State refers to a State that is not taking part in the
armed conflict. 7 In some cases, States formally state their neutral status in relation to an armed
conflict. 8
In addition, the term non-belligerent has been used to refer to States that sought to
refrain from active participation in hostilities, but that did not adhere to the duties of strict
3
Refer to 15.1.4 (Application of Treaties on Neutrality and Customary International Law).
4
Refer to 15.2.3 (The Law of Neutrality Under the Charter of the United Nations).
5
Refer to 17.18 (Non-Intervention and Neutral Duties in NIAC).
6
Refer to 3.4.2.1 (Reasons for States to Seek to Deny the Existence of Hostilities).
7
1928 PAN AMERICAN MARITIME NEUTRALITY CONVENTION preamble (Considering that neutrality is the juridical
situation of states which do not take part in the hostilities, and that it creates rights and imposes obligations of
impartiality, which should be regulated;).
8
Refer to 15.2.1.4 (Proclamations of Neutrality and Other Notifications of Neutral Status).
9
Refer to 15.16.3.1 (Provision of POW Treatment and Application of the GWS and GWS-Sea by Analogy).
930
impartiality to which neutrals have traditionally been required to adhere. 10 Such departure from
the traditional duties of impartiality has, at times, been controversial. 11
15.1.3 Purpose of the Law of Neutrality. The law of neutrality seeks to preserve friendly
relations between belligerent and neutral States by permitting States to avoid taking sides in an
armed conflict. 12 The law of neutrality also seeks to prevent additional States from being drawn
into an armed conflict by establishing a clear distinction between belligerent and neutral States. 13
In particular, the law of neutrality seeks to minimize the effects of armed conflict on States that
are not party to the conflict, including by lessening the effect of war on neutral commerce.
For example, many of the treaties that address the law of neutrality were concluded
before World War II, and have not been universally ratified by States. 14 Moreover, certain
treaties only apply between the Parties to the treaty and, in some cases, only if all the belligerent
States are also Parties to the treaty. 15 The principles reflected in those treaties, however, may
still be applicable insofar as they reflect customary international law, even if they do not apply as
a matter of treaty law. 16 However, if the factual circumstances of the current context are quite
different from those underlying the formulation of the original treaty rule, it may be incorrect to
10
TUCKER, THE LAW OF WAR AND NEUTRALITY AT SEA 192 (Thus one of the marked developments of the second
World War was the emergence of so-called nonbelligerency, a term used to indicate the position of states that
refrained from active participation in hostilities while at the same time abandoning the duties heretofore imposed
upon non-participants.); id. at 198 (It has already been observed that to the extent that this term has not been used
merely as a synonym for the usual position occupied by non-participants it has served to indicate varying degrees of
departure from the duties traditionally consequent upon a status of non-participation in war.).
11
Refer to 15.2.2 (Qualified Neutrality).
12
Carl Salans, Deputy Legal Adviser, Department of State, comment to R.R. Baxter, The Legal Consequences of the
Unlawful Use of Force under the Charter, 62 PROCEEDINGS OF THE AMERICAN SOCIETY OF INTERNATIONAL LAW AT
ITS ANNUAL MEETING 68, 76 (1968) (When armed conflict occurs, the purpose of international law ought to be to
limit the scope of the conflict. This is also a purpose of the Charter. The law of neutrality serves that purpose.
Small states, like Cambodia, would find themselves quickly engulfed in conflict if they had to act on a determination
that one side or the other in hostilities was acting unlawfully. And nuclear states run another kind of risk if they
have to take sides in every conflict.).
13
Michael Bothe, The Law of Neutrality, in DIETER FLECK, THE HANDBOOK OF HUMANITARIAN LAW IN ARMED
CONFLICTS 486 (1101) (1999) (By establishing a clear distinction between neutral states and states parties to the
conflict, international law prevents more states from being drawn into the conflict.).
14
See, e.g., 1928 PAN AMERICAN NEUTRALITY CONVENTION; HAGUE V; HAGUE XIII.
15
See, e.g., HAGUE V art. 20 (The provisions of the present Convention do not apply except between Contracting
Powers and then only if all the belligerents are parties to the Convention.); HAGUE XIII art. 28 (The provisions of
the present Convention do not apply except to the contracting Powers, and then only if all the belligerents are parties
to the Convention.). Consider Declaration respecting maritime law signed by the Plenipotentiaries of Great
Britain, Austria, France, Prussia, Russia, Sardinia, and Turkey, assembled in Congress at Paris, Apr. 16, 1856,
reprinted in 1 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL DOCUMENTS 89, 90 (1907) (The present Declaration is not and shall
not be binding, except between those Powers who have acceded, or shall accede to it.).
16
Refer to 1.8.1 (Relationship Between Treaties and Customary International Law).
931
assume that the particular treaty rule reflects (or should reflect) a rule of customary international
law applicable to the current factual circumstances.
15.1.5 Domestic Neutrality Laws. States may have domestic legislation relating to the
law of neutrality.
In some cases, these statutes implement a States obligations under the law of neutrality,
such as its obligations as a neutral to prevent the arming of belligerent warships in neutral
ports. 17 These statutes may also serve to implement a States international obligations outside
the context of international armed conflict, such as its peacetime obligations to prevent its
territory from being used as a base of operations for hostile expeditions against friendly States. 18
Domestic statutes may also implement the rights of States under the law of neutrality,
such as the right of belligerents to conduct captures. 19
Domestic neutrality statutes may also help implement a States national policy with
respect to neutrality. The law of neutrality permits neutral States a degree of policy discretion
with respect to an armed conflict. 20 Some neutrality treaties recognize such domestic
legislation. 21 Such legislation, however, must be applied impartially among belligerents. 22 In
17
For example, 18 U.S.C. 961 (Whoever, within the United States, increases or augments the force of any ship of
war, cruiser, or other armed vessel which, at the time of her arrival within the United States, was a ship of war,
cruiser, or armed vessel, in the service of any foreign prince or state, or of any colony, district, or people, or
belonging to the subjects or citizens of any such prince or state, or of any colony, district, or people, the same being
at war with any foreign prince or state, or of any colony, district, or people, with whom the United States is at peace,
by adding to the number of guns of such vessel, or by changing those on board of her for guns of a larger caliber, or
by adding thereto any equipment solely applicable to war, shall be fined under this title or imprisoned not more than
one year, or both.).
18
For example, 18 U.S.C. 960 (Whoever, within the United States, knowingly begins or sets on foot or provides
or prepares a means for or furnishes the money for, or takes part in, any military or naval expedition or enterprise to
be carried on from thence against the territory or dominion of any foreign prince or state, or of any colony, district,
or people with whom the United States is at peace, shall be fined under this title or imprisoned for not more than
three years, or both.). Refer to 17.18 (Non-Intervention and Neutral Duties in NIAC).
19
For example, 10 U.S.C. 7651 ((a) This chapter applies to all captures of vessels as prize during war by
authority of the United States or adopted and ratified by the President. However, this chapter does not affect the
right of the Army or the Air Force, while engaged in hostilities, to capture wherever found and without prize
procedures--(1) enemy property; or (2) neutral property used or transported in violation of the obligations of neutrals
under international law.).
20
Cordell Hull, Secretary of State, Statement at Department of State Press Conference, Sept. 21, 1939, 1
DEPARTMENT OF STATE BULLETIN 280 (Sept. 23, 1939) (I think that you will find from a careful analysis of the
underlying principles of the law of neutrality that this Nation, or any neutral nation, has a right during a war to
change its national policies whenever experience shows the necessity for such change for the protection of its
interests and safety. I do not mean to be understood as saying that such action may be taken at the behest or in the
interests of one of the contending belligerents, it being understood, of course, that any measures taken shall apply
impartially to all belligerents.).
21
For example, 1928 PAN AMERICAN MARITIME NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 5 (When, according to the
domestic law of the neutral state, the ship may not receive fuel until twenty-four hours after its arrival in port, the
period of its stay may be extended an equal length of time.).
932
addition, a State may have an obligation to notify other States of its domestic neutrality
statutes. 23
The application of the law of neutrality may depend on a States national policy towards
an armed conflict. A States obligations under jus ad bellum, including its obligations under the
Charter of the United Nations, may alter significantly its rights and duties under the law of
neutrality.
15.2.1.1 Application of the Law of Neutrality and the National Policies of States
Towards an Armed Conflict. Whether the law of neutrality governs a States relations with
belligerents in an armed conflict may depend on that States national policy towards that armed
conflict. 24 For example, if an armed conflict occurs, a State may choose to join the armed
conflict, in which case it would no longer be neutral and the law of war rather than the law of
neutrality would govern its relations with opposing belligerents. 25 Similarly, if two States
conduct hostilities against one another, but refuse to recognize a state of armed conflict, third
States may reject this position and invoke the law of neutrality to protect their rights in relation
to the armed conflict. 26 In addition, outside States that recognize the belligerency of a rebel
faction in a civil war may choose to apply the law of neutrality in their relations with the rebel
faction and with the government. 27
22
HAGUE XIII preamble (Seeing that it is desirable that the Powers should issue detailed enactments to regulate the
results of the attitude of neutrality when adopted by them; Seeing that it is, for neutral Powers, an admitted duty to
apply these rules impartially to the several belligerents;).
23
HAGUE XIII art. 27 (The Contracting Powers shall communicate to each other in due course all Laws,
Proclamations, and other enactments regulating in their respective countries the status of belligerent warships in
their ports and waters, by means of a communication addressed to the Government of the Netherlands, and
forwarded immediately by that Government to the other Contracting Powers.).
24
Compare 3.4.1 (Intent-Based Test for Applying Jus in Bello Rules).
25
Michael Bothe, The Law of Neutrality, in DIETER FLECK, THE HANDBOOK OF HUMANITARIAN LAW IN ARMED
CONFLICTS 489 (1104) (1999) (Traditional international law left to each state the sovereign decision of whether, at
the outbreak of a conflict between other states, it would participate or remain neutral. The distinction between
participation and neutrality is a political, not military, decision. Where the law of neutrality requires decisions to be
taken by military command, the government concerned must give political guidance and clarify the position which it
takes in relation to a particular conflict.).
26
TUCKER, THE LAW OF WAR AND NEUTRALITY AT SEA 199-200 (Unlike the law governing the mutual behavior of
combatants, a large part of which may be considered operative in any international armed conflict, the rules
regulating the behavior of neutrals and belligerents remain strictly dependent for their operation upon the existence
of a state of war. It may be, however, that states engaged in armed conflict are unwilling to issue a declaration of
war or even to acknowledge the existence of a state of war. In such situations it would appear that the decision as to
whether or not to recognize the existence of a state of war, and thereby to bring into force the law of neutrality, must
rest principally with third states. The attitude of the parties engaged in armed conflict need not prove decisive for
third states, the latter being at liberty either to accept the position of the contestants (i.e., the position that war does
not exist) or to reject this position and to invoke the law of neutrality.).
27
Refer to 3.3.3.1 (Recognition by Outside States of a Rebel Faction as a Belligerent in a Civil War).
933
15.2.1.2 Application of Certain Duties of Neutral States Only in Certain
International Armed Conflicts. The duties of neutral States to refrain from certain types of
support to belligerent States do not apply to all armed conflicts to which jus in bello rules apply;
rather, such duties are only triggered in armed conflicts of a certain duration and intensity. 28
However, belligerent States have fundamental duties to respect the sovereignty of neutral States
in all international armed conflicts. 29
15.2.1.3 Application of Certain Rules in the Law of Neutrality Outside the Context
of International Armed Conflict. Certain parts of the law of neutrality may be viewed as
applicable outside the context of international armed conflict because certain duties that the law
of neutrality imposes are also found in international law applicable in peacetime. For example,
under the Charter of the United Nations, States must respect the sovereignty of other States. 30
Thus, States have duties of non-intervention and neutrality in relation to a non-international
armed conflict against a friendly State. 31
28
See Michael Bothe, The Law of Neutrality, in DIETER FLECK, THE HANDBOOK OF HUMANITARIAN LAW IN ARMED
CONFLICTS 490-91 (1106) (1999) (The law of neutrality leads to considerable modifications in the relationships
between the neutral and the belligerent states, for instance as to the admissibility of exports, the sojurn of warships
of the parties to the conflict in neutral waters, and the control of neutral trade. These fundamental changes are not
triggered by every armed incident, but require an armed conflict of a certain duration and intensity. Thus, the
threshold of application of the law of neutrality is probably higher than that for the rules of the law of war relating to
the conduct of hostilities and the treatment of prisoners, which are applicable also in conflicts of less intensity.).
29
See Legality of the Threat or Use of Nuclear Weapons, Advisory Opinion, 1996 I.C.J. (88-89) (The Court will
now turn to the principle of neutrality which was raised by several States. In the context of the advisory proceedings
brought before the Court by the WHO concerning the Legality of the Use by a State of Nuclear Weapons in Armed
Conflict, the position was put as follows by one State: The principle of neutrality, in its classic sense, was aimed at
preventing the incursion of belligerent forces into neutral territory, or attacks on the persons or ships of neutrals.
Thus: the territory of neutral powers is inviolable; belligerents are bound to respect the sovereign rights of neutral
powers neutral states have equal interest in having their rights respected by belligerents . It is clear,
however, that the principle of neutrality applies with equal force to transborder incursions of armed forces and to the
transborder damage caused to a neutral State by the use of a weapon in a belligerent State. The principle so
circumscribed is presented as an established part of the customary international law. The Court finds that as in the
case of the principles of humanitarian law applicable in armed conflict, international law leaves no doubt that the
principle of neutrality, whatever its content, which is of a fundamental character similar to that of the humanitarian
principles and rules, is applicable (subject to the relevant provisions of the United Nations Charter), to all
international armed conflict, whatever type of weapons might be used.) (citations omitted) (amendments in
original).
30
Refer to 1.11.3 (Prohibition on Certain Uses of Force).
31
Refer to 17.18 (Non-Intervention and Neutral Duties in NIAC).
32
Compare 3.4.2.1 (Reasons for States to Seek to Deny the Existence of Hostilities).
33
For example, Franklin D. Roosevelt, Proclamation: Proclaiming the Neutrality of the United States in the War
Between Germany and France; Poland; and The United Kingdom, India, Australia and New Zealand, Sept. 5, 1939,
934
State to observe the duties of neutrality and warn its nationals of the penalties they would incur
for joining or assisting a belligerent State. 34
Although the practice of issuing formal proclamations of neutrality has declined, States
have continued to make public statements of neutrality to indicate their national policy and legal
status in relation to an armed conflict. 35 States may also communicate their neutral status
through diplomatic channels or use other means they deem appropriate.
15.2.2 Qualified Neutrality. The United States has taken the position that certain duties
of neutral States may be inapplicable under the doctrine of qualified neutrality.
54 STAT. 2629 (AND I do hereby give notice that all nationals of the United States and others who may claim the
protection of this government, who may misconduct themselves in the premises, will do so at their peril, and that
they can in no wise obtain any protection from the government of the United States against the consequences of their
misconduct.); Woodrow Wilson, Proclamation, Aug. 18, 1914, 38 STAT. 2015 (Whereas the United States is in
fact aware of the existence of a state of war between Belgium and Germany; And Whereas the United States is on
terms of friendship and amity with the contending powers, and with the persons inhabiting their several
dominions;); George Washington, Proclamation of Neutrality, Apr. 22, 1793, reprinted in 32 THE WRITINGS OF
GEORGE WASHINGTON FROM THE ORIGINAL MANUSCRIPT SOURCES 1745-1799, 430-31 (1939) (Whereas it appears
that a state of war exists between Austria, Prussia, Sardinia, Great Britain, and the United Netherlands, on the one
part, and France on the other; and the duty and interest of the United States require, that they should with sincerity
and good faith adopt and pursue a conduct friendly and impartial towards the belligerent powers: I have therefore
thought fit by these presents, to declare the disposition of the United States to observe the conduct aforesaid towards
those powers respectively; and to exhort and warn the citizens of the United States carefully to avoid all acts and
proceedings whatsoever, which may in any manner tend to contravene such disposition. And I do hereby also make
known, that whosoever of the citizens of the United States shall render himself liable to punishment or forfeiture
under the law of nations, by committing, aiding or abetting hostilities against any of the said powers, or by carrying
to any of them, those articles which are deemed contraband by the modern usage of nations, will not receive the
protection of the United States against such punishment or forfeiture; and further that I have given instructions to
those officers to whom it belongs, to cause prosecutions to be instituted against all persons, who shall, within the
cognizance of the Courts of the United States, violate the law of nations, with respect to the powers at war, or any of
them.).
34
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 514 (When war occurs, neutral States usually issue proclamations of
neutrality, in which they state their determination to observe the duties of neutrality and warn their nationals of the
penalties they incur for joining or assisting a belligerent.).
35
For example, FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 626 (Iran and Jordan each issued proclamations of
neutrality during the Persian Gulf crisis and, as described, refrained from active participation in the war.); Ronald
Reagan, Written Responses to Questions Submitted by Al-Qabas of Kuwait, May 12, 1987, 1987-I PUBLIC PAPERS
OF THE PRESIDENTS 529 (The United States is neutral in the Iran-Iraq war.); Jimmy Carter, Situation in Iraq and
Iran: Remarks Concerning the Conflict, Sept. 24, 1980, 1980-81-II PUBLIC PAPERS OF THE PRESIDENTS 1921, 1922
(Let me repeat that we have not been and we will not become involved in the conflict between Iran and Iraq.);
Royal Government of Laos, Statement of Jul. 9, 1962, reprinted in Burma, Cambodia Canada, Peoples Republic of
China, Democratic Republic of Viet-Nam, etc., Declaration on the Neutrality of Laos, Jul. 23, 1962, 456 UNTS 301,
302-03 (The Royal Government of Laos, Being resolved to follow the path of peace and neutrality in conformity
with the interests and aspirations of the Laotian people, as well as the principles of the Joint Communiqu of Zurich
dated June 22, 1961, and of the Geneva Agreements of 1954, in order to build a peaceful, neutral, independent,
democratic, unified and prosperous Laos, Solemnly declares that: (4) It will not enter into any military alliance or
into any agreement, whether military or otherwise, which is inconsistent with the neutrality of the Kingdom of Laos;
it will not allow the establishment of any foreign military base on Laotian territory, nor allow any country to use
Laotian territory for military purposes or for the purposes of interference in the internal affairs of other countries,
nor recognise the protection of any alliance or military coalition, including SEATO;).
935
The law of neutrality has traditionally required neutral States to observe a strict
impartiality between parties to a conflict, regardless of which State was viewed as the aggressor
in the armed conflict. 36 However, after treaties outlawed war as a matter of national policy, it
was argued that neutral States could discriminate in favor of States that were victims of wars of
aggression. 37 Thus, before its entry into World War II, the United States adopted a position of
qualified neutrality in which neutral States had the right to support belligerent States that had
been the victim of flagrant and illegal wars of aggression. 38 This position was controversial. 39
15.2.3 The Law of Neutrality Under the Charter of the United Nations. The Charter of
the United Nations may, in certain respects, be understood to be consistent with, and, in other
respects, to modify, rules reflected in the law of neutrality.
36
Refer to 15.3.2 (Neutral Duties -- Abstention From Participation in Hostilities and Impartial Conduct Toward
Contending Parties).
37
LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 221 (61) (Similarly, it is open to neutral States as a matter
of legal right to give effect to their moral obligation to discriminate against the aggressor and to deny him, in their
discretion, the right to exact from neutrals a full measure of impartiality. In some cases neutral States may, having
regard to their own safety and the desire not to be involved in the war, continue to accord impartial treatment to the
aggressor. But they need not do so wherever they feel in the position actively to assert the principle, as did the
United States and other States before entering the Second World War, that the historic foundation of neutrality as an
attitude of absolute impartiality has disappeared with the renunciation and the abolition of war as an instrument of
national policy. With regard to States bound by the obligations of the Charter of the United Nations that legal
faculty and that moral obligation assume the clear complexion of a legal duty.).
38
Address of Robert H. Jackson, Attorney General of the United States, Inter-American Bar Association, Havana,
Cuba, March 27, 1941, 35 AJIL 348, 353-54 (1941) (Present aggressive wars are civil wars against the
international community. Accordingly, as responsible members of that community, we can treat victims of
aggression in the same way we treat legitimate governments when there is civil strife and a state of insurgencythat
is to say, we are permitted to give to defending governments all the aid we choose. In the light of the flagrancy of
current aggressions, which are apparent on their face, and which all right thinking people recognize for what they
are, the United States and other states are entitled to assert a right of discriminatory action by reason of the fact that,
since 1928 so far as it is concerned, the place of war and with it the place of neutrality in the international legal
system have no longer been the same as they were prior to that date.).
39
See, e.g., Edwin Borchard, War, Neutrality and Non-Belligerency, 35 AJIL 618 (1941) (At Havana on March 27,
1941, Attorney General Jackson delivered an address designed to prove that as a matter of law the United States was
now obliged to render to England (and presumably others) all aid short of war, while at the same time it is the
declared determination of the government to avoid entry into the war as a belligerent. Apparently convinced that
United States military aid to one belligerent alone cannot be justified by the traditional international law, the
Attorney General feels obliged first to explode as obsolete the international law conceptions of war and neutrality of
the past two centuries, culminating in The Hague Conventions, and to maintain that a new international law has now
been revealed in the Covenant of the League of Nations, the Kellogg Pact, the Budapest Articles of Interpretation
of 1934, and the Argentine Anti-War Treaty of 1933, all of which are alleged to make discrimination the new way of
life for neutrals. The legislation of Congress requiring impartiality is not accorded even honorable mention. The
new international law is thus found in the vague and illusory monuments to the myth called collective security,
which crumbled under the impact of the first European crisis. It should be no surprise to the Attorney General that
many international lawyers do not share his views on international law or how international law is created, or follow
his unique construction of documents.).
936
15.2.3.1 Consistency Between the Rules in the Law of Neutrality and the Charter
of the United Nations. In certain cases, the rules on the use of force prescribed in the Charter of
the United Nations would be understood to be consistent with rules in the law of neutrality. 40
For example, a neutral States acts of participation in a war of aggression against another
member of the United Nations would likely violate not only its duties under the law of
neutrality, 41 but also the Charters prohibition on the unlawful use of force. 42
In the past, the law of neutrality was often viewed as not regulating a States decision as
to whether to adopt a position of neutrality or hostility towards another State. 43 Thus, under this
view, the requirements of the law of neutrality could have been avoided by neutral States if they
decided to enter the war or by belligerent States if they chose to declare war on a neutral. 44 The
Charter of the United Nations clarifies that such decisions to resort to force may not be made
without a proper legal basis. 45 Thus, insofar as provisions of the Charter are coincident with
certain rules in the law of neutrality, such requirements of the Charter may not be evaded in the
40
See, e.g., BRUNO SIMMA, THE CHARTER OF THE UNITED NATIONS: A COMMENTARY 673 (1994) (For the purpose
of responding to an armed attack, the state acting in self-defence is allowed to trespass on foreign territory, even
when the attack cannot be attributed to the state from whose territory it is proceeding. It does not follow from the
fact that the right of self-defence pursuant to Art. 51 is restricted to the case of an armed attack that defensive
measures may only affect the attacker. Thus it is compatible with Art. 51 and the laws of neutrality when a
warring state fights hostile armed forces undertaking an attack from neutral territory on the territory of the neutral
state, provided that the state concerned is either unwilling or unable to curb the ongoing violation of its neutrality.).
41
Refer to 15.3.2 (Neutral Duties -- Abstention From Participation in Hostilities and Impartial Conduct Toward
Contending Parties).
42
Refer to 1.11.3 (Prohibition on Certain Uses of Force).
43
See Editorial Comment: The Hague Conventions and the Neutrality of Belgium and Luxemburg, 9 AJIL 959
(1915) ([Articles of the Hague V] do not, however, guarantee neutrality, nor do they prevent a state from declaring
war against a state wishing to remain neutral, which thus becomes a belligerent and loses the benefit of the
convention. If the Hague conventions were violated by Germany in this matter it would appear to be a violation of
the spirit, not of the letter, and indeed it is difficult to maintain that there was a violation even of the spirit, because
international law in its present development apparently allows nations to go to war whenever they please, and the
Hague conventions do not modify or abridge this provision of the law of nations.).
44
See John Delatre Falconbridge, The Right of a Belligerent to Make War Upon a Neutral, 4 TRANSACTIONS OF THE
GROTIUS SOCIETY 204, 209-11 (1918) (The fifth [Hague] convention [of 1907] does not relate to the question of
the right to convert the relation of belligerent and neutral into that of belligerent and belligerent, but simply defines
the rights and obligations incidental to the former relation. The fundamental proposition which has been left
untouched by The Hague Conventions is that by the existing rules of international law one State may declare war
against another State without any justifiable casus belli, and it commits no breach of law in so doing if it complies
with the requirements relating to the declaration of war. Its action may be immoral, but it is not illegal unless there
is a treaty forbidding such action (as there was in the case of Belgium).).
45
See Michael Bothe, The Law of Neutrality, in DIETER FLECK, THE HANDBOOK OF HUMANITARIAN LAW IN ARMED
CONFLICTS 489 (1104) (1999) (Traditional international law left to each state the sovereign decision of whether, at
the outbreak of a conflict between other states, it would participate or remain neutral. At the outbreak of a
conflict between two other states, a state is still free to participate or to remain neutral. Modern international law,
however, limits the freedom of decision as to which side on which a state may become involved. Support granted to
an aggressor is illegal, participation on the side of the victim of aggression, being collective self-defence, is
permissible.).
937
way that arguably certain requirements of the law of neutrality previously could have been
evaded.
For example, under the Charter of the United Nations, States may have obligations to
support military operations that have been authorized by the U.N. Security Council. 47 In such
circumstances, the obligations under the Charter would prevail over the obligations under the law
of neutrality. 48 For example, a State that is not participating in the conflict that received in its
territory military forces operating pursuant to a U.N. Security Council resolution might be
required to return them, rather than to intern them under the law of neutrality. 49 Moreover, U.N.
Security Council resolutions may obligate States to take measures that would not be required by
neutrality law. For example, the U.N. Security Council may require States to impose restrictions
on private conduct within their jurisdiction, such as to prevent private individuals from selling
weapons to certain States or non-State armed groups. 50
46
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 513 (Although these provisions of the Charter have not made it
impossible for a State to remain neutral, the obligations which the Charter imposes have to a certain extent qualified
the rights of States in this respect.).
47
Refer to 1.11.2.1 (U.N. Member State Obligations With Respect to U.N. Security Council Decisions).
48
For example, FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 626 (Neutrality in the Persian Gulf War was controlled
in part by the 1907 Hague V Convention; but traditional concepts of neutral rights and duties are substantially
modified when, as in this case, the United Nations authorizes collective action against an aggressor nation. It was
the US position during the Persian Gulf crisis that, regardless of assertions of neutrality, all nations were obligated to
avoid hindrance of Coalition operations undertaken pursuant to, or in conjunction with, UNSC decisions, and to
provide whatever assistance possible. By virtue of UNSC Resolution 678 (29 November), members were requested
to provide appropriate support for the actions undertaken by nations pursuant to its authorization of use of all
necessary means to uphold and implement prior resolutions. The language of UNSC Resolution 678 is consistent
with Articles 2(5), 2(6), 25, and 49 of the UN Charter.).
49
FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 628 (Although the situation never arose, the United States advised
Iran that, in light of UNSC Resolution 678, Iran would be obligated to return downed Coalition aircraft and aircrew,
rather than intern them. This illustrates the modified nature of neutrality in these circumstances. It also was the US
position that entry into Iranian (or Jordanian) airspace to rescue downed aviators would be consistent with its
international obligations as a belligerent, particularly in light of Resolution 678.).
50
For example, U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 1970, U.N. Doc. S/RES/1970, 9 (Feb. 26, 2011) (Decides
that all Member States shall immediately take the necessary measures to prevent the direct or indirect supply, sale or
transfer to the Libyan Arab Jamahiriya, from or through their territories or by their nationals, or using their flag
vessels or aircraft, of arms and related materiel of all types, including weapons and ammunition, military vehicles
and equipment, paramilitary equipment, and spare parts for the aforementioned, and technical assistance, training,
financial or other assistance, related to military activities or the provision, maintenance or use of any arms and
related materiel, including the provision of armed mercenary personnel whether or not originating in their
territories,); U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 713, U.N. Doc S/RES/713 6 (Sept. 25, 1991) (Decides, under
Chapter VII of the Charter of the United Nations, that all States shall, for the purposes of establishing peace and
stability in Yugoslavia, immediately implement a general and complete embargo on all deliveries of weapons and
military equipment to Yugoslavia until the Council decides otherwise following consultation between the Secretary-
General and the Government of Yugoslavia;).
938
15.2.4 Neutrality Under Regional and Collective Self-Defense Arrangements. Regional
and collective self-defense agreements may affect States rights to maintain a neutral status
because the States may be required to provide assistance or take military action in collective self-
defense until the U.N. Security Council has taken measures necessary to maintain international
peace and security. 51 The obligations by a State under such an agreement may prevail over the
States right under the customary law of neutrality to be impartial among the belligerents and to
abstain from the armed conflict.
15.3 OVERVIEW OF THE NEUTRALITY LAWS FRAMEWORK OF RECIPROCAL RIGHTS AND DUTIES
The law of neutrality establishes a framework of reciprocal rights and duties for neutrals
and belligerents.
15.3.1 Neutral Rights. Belligerent States are bound to respect the sovereign rights of
neutral States (e.g., the inviolability of a neutral States territory). 52 The exercise by a neutral
State of its rights under the law of neutrality may not be considered an unfriendly act by either of
the belligerents. 53
51
Refer to 1.11.5.5 (Right of Collective Self-Defense).
52
HAGUE XIII art. 1 (Belligerents are bound to respect the sovereign rights of neutral Powers and to abstain, in
neutral territory or neutral waters, from any act which would, if knowingly permitted by any Power, constitute a
violation of neutrality.); 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 512 (It is the duty of belligerents to respect the
territory and rights of neutral States.).
53
HAGUE XIII art. 26 (The exercise by a neutral Power of the rights laid down in the present convention can under
no circumstances be considered as an unfriendly act by one or other belligerent who has accepted the Articles
relating thereto.).
54
HAGUE V art. 1 (The territory of neutral Powers is inviolable.).
55
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 515 (b. Application of Rule. The foregoing rule prohibits any
unauthorized entry into the territory of a neutral State, its territorial waters, or the airspace over such areas by troops
or instrumentalities of war.).
939
waters, and neutral airspace). 56 For example, belligerent warships may not exercise the
belligerent right of visit and search, and may not capture vessels in neutral waters. 57
Certain other duties may be viewed as a consequence of these principal duties, but
different publicists have categorized these duties differently. For example, the duty of a neutral
State to refrain from supporting one side in the conflict may be viewed as a function of its duty
to abstain from participation in hostilities. 60 On the other hand, the duty of a neutral State to
refrain from supporting one side in the conflict may also be viewed as a result of its duty of
impartiality. 61
The duties of a neutral State may also be classified in terms of: (1) abstention
(obligations to refrain from taking certain actions); (2) prevention (obligations to take certain
actions); and (3) acquiescence (obligations to accept certain actions by belligerents). 62
56
1928 PAN AMERICAN MARITIME NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 3 (Belligerent states are obligated to refrain from
performing acts of war in neutral waters or other acts which may constitute on the part of the State that tolerates
them, a violation of neutrality.); HAGUE XIII art. 1 (Belligerents are bound to respect the sovereign rights of
neutral Powers and to abstain, in neutral territory or neutral waters, from any act which would, if knowingly
permitted by any Power, constitute a violation of neutrality.).
57
Refer to 15.13.3 (Where Belligerents May Not Exercise the Right of Visit and Search); 15.15 (Capture of
Neutral Vessels and Aircraft).
58
Refer to 15.4.2 (Belligerent Use of Self-Help When Neutral States Are Unable or Unwilling to Prevent
Violations of Neutrality).
59
The Three Friends, 166 U.S. 1, 52 (1897) (Neutrality, strictly speaking, consists in abstinence from any
participation in a public, private or civil war, and in impartiality of conduct toward both parties, .).
60
Michael Bothe, The Law of Neutrality, in DIETER FLECK, THE HANDBOOK OF HUMANITARIAN LAW IN ARMED
CONFLICTS 485 (1101) (1999) (The duty of non-participation means, above all, that the state must abstain from
supporting a party to the conflict. This duty not to support also means that the neutral state is under a duty not to
allow one party to the conflict to use the resources of the neutral state against the will of the opponent. Therefore,
the defence of neutrality is part of the duty of non-participation.).
61
LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 654 (294) (Since neutrality is an attitude of impartiality, it
excludes such assistance and succor to one of the belligerents as is detrimental to the other, and, further, such
injuries to the one as benefit the other. But it requires, on the other hand, active measures from neutral States. For
neutrals must prevent belligerents from making use of their neutral territories, and of their resources, for military and
naval purposes during the war.).
62
TUCKER, THE LAW OF WAR AND NEUTRALITY AT SEA 203 footnote 14 (The duties of a neutral state may also be
classifiedand frequently are so classifiedas duties of abstention, prevention and acquiesence [sic] (or toleration).
Duties of abstention refer to acts the neutral state itself must refrain from performing; duties of prevention refer to
acts the commission of which within its jurisdiction the neutral is obligated to prevent; and, finally, duties of
940
15.3.2.1 Duty to Refrain From Providing War-Related Goods and Services to
Belligerents. Neutral States have an obligation to refrain from providing war-related goods and
services to belligerents. 63 A neutral State is prohibited from supplying a belligerent State in any
manner, either directly or indirectly, with warships, ammunition, or war material of any kind. 64
The neutral State is also prohibited from providing money or loans to a belligerent State. 65
A neutral State also has a duty to refrain from placing its various governmental agencies
at the disposal of a belligerent in such a way as to aid it directly or indirectly in the prosecution
of the war. 66
Although a neutral State may not supply war-related goods and services to belligerents, a
neutral State is not called upon to prevent the export or transport, on behalf of one or other of the
belligerents, of arms, munitions, or anything that can be of use to an armed force. 67 Commercial
transactions between belligerent States and neutral corporations, companies, citizens, or persons
resident in a neutral State are not prohibited. 68 A belligerent State may purchase from such
corporations, companies, citizens, or persons supplies, munitions, or anything that may be of use
to an armed force, which can be exported or transported without involving the neutral State. 69
acquiescence have reference to neutral obligations to permit belligerent measures of repression against neutral
subjects found rendering certain acts of assistance to an enemy.).
63
Philander C. Knox, Attorney General, NeutralityMilitary SuppliesHorses, Apr. 4, 1902, 24 OPINIONS OF THE
ATTORNEY GENERAL 15, 18 (1903) (One of the rules of international law which seems to be now fully agreed upon
is that a neutral nation shall not give aid to one of the belligerents in the carrying on of the war.).
64
HAGUE XIII art. 6 (The supply, in any manner, directly or indirectly, by a neutral Power to a belligerent Power,
of war-ships, ammunition, or war material of any kind whatever, is forbidden.).
65
1928 PAN AMERICAN NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 16 (The neutral state is forbidden: a) To deliver to the
belligerent, directly or indirectly, or for any reason whatever, ships of war, munitions or any other war material; b)
To grant it loans, or to open credits for it during the duration of war. Credits that a neutral state may give to
facilitate the sale or exportation of its food products and raw materials are not included in this prohibition.).
66
TUCKER, THE LAW OF WAR AND NEUTRALITY AT SEA 208 (As Hyde has observed, the duty to abstain from
giving aid is a broad one and covers a vast field of governmental activities; for in addition to the prohibition against
supplying belligerents with war materials of any kind the neutral is obligated, in general, to abstain from placing its
various governmental agencies at the disposal of a belligerent in such a way as to aid it directly or indirectly in the
prosecution of the war. Thus in naval warfare, the public vessels of a neutral state must refrain from rendering
services of any kind to belligerent naval units at sea.).
67
1928 PAN AMERICAN MARITIME NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 22 (Neutral states are not obligated to prevent
the export or transit at the expense of any one of the belligerents of arms, munitions and in general of anything
which may be useful to their military forces.); HAGUE V art. 7 (A neutral Power is not called upon to prevent the
export or transport, on behalf of one or other of the belligerents, of arms, munitions of war, or, in general, of
anything which can be of use to an army or a fleet.); HAGUE XIII art. 7 (A neutral Power is not bound to prevent
the export or transit, for the use of either belligerent, of arms, ammunitions, or, in general, of anything which could
be of use to an army or fleet.).
68
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 527 (Commercial transactions with belligerents by neutral corporations,
companies, citizens, or persons resident in neutral territory are not prohibited.); 1928 PAN AMERICAN MARITIME
NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 15 (Of the acts of assistance coming from the neutral states, and the acts of
commerce on the part of individuals, only the first are contrary to neutrality.).
69
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 527 (A belligerent may purchase from such persons supplies, munitions,
or anything that may be of use to an army or fleet, which can be exported or transported without involving the
neutral State.).
941
The supply of services and goods to a belligerent State, however, must not convert neutral
territory into a base of operations. 70
If a neutral State prohibits the export or transport of arms, munitions, or anything that can
be of use to an armed force, every measure of restriction or prohibition taken by a neutral State
in regard to the provision of such supplies or munitions must be impartially applied by it to all
belligerent States. 71
70
Refer to 15.5.1 (Prohibition on Outfitting Hostile Expeditions With Supplies and Services for a Belligerent From
Neutral Territory).
71
HAGUE V art. 9 (Every measure of restriction or prohibition taken by a neutral Power in regard to the matters
referred to in Articles 7 and 8 must be impartially applied by it to both belligerents.).
72
HAGUE XIII art. 25 (A neutral Power is bound to exercise such surveillance as the means at its disposal allow to
prevent any violation of the provisions of the above Articles occurring in its ports or roadsteads or in its waters.);
HAGUE V art. 5 (A neutral Power must not allow any of the acts referred to in Articles 2 to 4 to occur on its
territory. It is not called upon to punish acts in violation of its neutrality unless the said acts have been committed
on its own territory.).
73
See, e.g., Consultative Meeting of Foreign Ministers of the American Republics, Final Act of the Meeting: V
General Declaration of Neutrality of the American Republics, 3, Oct. 3, 1939, 1 DEPARTMENT OF STATE BULLETIN
326, 327 (Oct. 7, 1939) (The American Republics resolve [t]o declare that with regard to their status as neutrals,
there exist certain standards recognized by the American Republics applicable in these circumstances and that in
accordance with them they: ... (b) Shall prevent, in accordance with their internal legislations, the inhabitants of their
territories from engaging in activities capable of affecting the neutral status of the American Republics.); Treaty
between the United States and Great Britain, art. 6, May 8, 1871, 17 STAT. 863, 865 (A neutral Government is
bound Thirdly, to exercise due diligence in its own ports and waters, and, as to all persons within its
jurisdiction, to prevent any violation of the foregoing obligations and duties.).
74
LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 655 (294) (The required attitude of impartiality is not
incompatible with sympathy with one belligerent, and disapproval of the other, so long as these feelings do not find
expression in actions violating impartiality. Thus, not only public opinion and the press of a neutral State, but also
its Government, may show their sympathy to one party or another without violating neutrality.).
75
LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 655 (294) (Moreover, acts of humanity on the part of
neutrals and their subjects, such as the sending to military hospitals of doctors, medicine, provisions, dressing
942
15.3.3 Correlative or Reciprocal Nature of Rights and Duties Under the Law of
Neutrality. The rights and duties of belligerents and neutrals under the law of neutrality may be
understood as correlative or reciprocal.
The duties of neutrals often correspond to rights of belligerents, and rights of neutrals
often correspond to the duties of belligerents. 77 For example, the duty of a neutral to abstain
from hostilities is also a right of a belligerent not to have its adversary aided in hostilities by the
neutral State. The right of a neutral State to have its territory be inviolable is also a duty of
belligerent States to avoid conducting hostilities in neutral territory.
Similarly, the ability of a neutral to assert its rights may depend on whether it has
fulfilled its corresponding neutral duties. 78 For example, the right of a neutral State to have its
territory be inviolable may not be asserted to the extent it has failed in its duty to ensure that its
territory is not used as a base of operations by a belligerent.
In light of the correlative nature of the rights and duties of belligerents and neutrals under
the law of neutrality, a single rule in the law of neutrality may reflect multiple rights and duties
of both belligerents and neutrals. For example, hostile acts are not to be committed on neutral
territory. This rule involves the right of the neutral State for its territory to be inviolable, and
involves a duty on the part of the neutral State to prevent such acts. This rule also reflects a duty
of the belligerent State to refrain from such acts, and a right of the belligerent State not to have
such acts conducted by an opposing belligerent.
15.4.1 Distinction Between Violations of Neutral Duties and the End of Neutral Status.
Violations of neutrality by belligerent or neutral States should be distinguished from the end of a
material, and the like, and the sending of clothes and money to prisoners of war, can never be construed as acts of
partiality, even if these comforts are provided for the wounded and the prisoners of one belligerent only.).
76
LESLIE C. GREEN, THE CONTEMPORARY LAW OF ARMED CONFLICT 269 (2nd ed., 2000) (Frequently, as has been
seen in the discussion concerning protecting powers, a neutral power is appointed to represent the interests of one
belligerent in the territory of the adverse party or for some of its nationals to be appointed to the Fact Finding
Commission called for in Protocol I in relation to the investigation of alleged breaches of the law of armed conflict.
In neither case can a belligerent suggest that such action is in breach of the obligations of neutrality.).
77
TUCKER, THE LAW OF WAR AND NEUTRALITY AT SEA 203 footnote 14 (It is also helpful to observe that the duties
of a neutral correspond to the rights of a belligerent, and that the rights of a neutral correspond to the duties of a
belligerent. The neutrals duty to observe a strict impartiality corresponds to the belligerents right to demand
impartiality on the part of the neutral. At the same time, the neutral has a right to demand that the belligerent will
act toward it in such a manner as to respect its position of impartiality, and there is no question but that the
belligerent is under a duty to do so.).
78
G. SHERSTON BAKER, II HALLECKS INTERNATIONAL LAW 305 (28.1) (1908) (The rights and duties of neutrality
are correlative, and the former cannot be claimed, unless the latter are faithfully performed. If the neutral State fail
to fulfil the obligations of neutrality, it cannot claim the privileges and exemptions incident to that condition. The
rule is equally applicable to the citizens and subjects of a neutral State. So long as they faithfully perform the duties
of neutrality, they are entitled to the rights and immunities of that condition. But for every violation of neutral
duties, they are liable to the punishment of being treated in their persons or property as public enemies of the
offended belligerent.).
943
States neutral status. Rather, whether violations of neutrality result in the end of the neutral
status of a State may depend on the national policies of that State and the belligerent States. 79
Acts that are incompatible with the relationship between the neutral State and a
belligerent State under the law of neutrality need not end the neutral States neutrality and bring
that State into the conflict as a belligerent. For example, despite Vichy Frances violations of its
neutral duties during World War II and despite the Allied invasion of French North Africa,
diplomatic relations persisted between the United States and France during World War II. 80
15.4.2 Belligerent Use of Self-Help When Neutral States Are Unable or Unwilling to
Prevent Violations of Neutrality. Should the neutral State be unable, or fail for any reason, to
prevent violations of its neutrality by the forces of one belligerent entering or passing through its
territory (including its lands, waters, and airspace), the other belligerent State may be justified in
attacking the enemy forces on the neutral States territory. 81 This view has been reflected in the
military manuals of other States. 82 For example, consistent with the jus ad bellum requirements
79
Refer to 15.2.1.1 (Application of the Law of Neutrality and the National Policies of States Towards an Armed
Conflict).
80
DWIGHT D. EISENHOWER, CRUSADE IN EUROPE 86-88 (1997) (Vichy France was a neutral country and during the
entire period of the war the United States had maintained diplomatic connection with the French Government.
Never, in all its history, had the United States been a party to an unprovoked attack upon a neutral country and even
though Vichy was avowedly collaborating with Hitler, there is no doubt that American political leaders regarded the
projected operation, from this viewpoint, with considerable distaste. The Allied invasion of Africa was a most
peculiar venture of armed forces in the field of international politics; we were invading a neutral country to create a
friend.).
81
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 520 (Should the neutral State be unable, or fail for any reason, to prevent
violations of its neutrality by the troops of one belligerent entering or passing through its territory, the other
belligerent State may be justified in attacking the enemy forces on this territory.).
82
2004 UK MANUAL 1.43a (Neutral states must refrain from allowing their territory to be used by belligerent
states for the purposes of military operations. If a neutral state is unable or unwilling to prevent the use of its
territory for the purposes of such military operations, a belligerent state may become entitled to use force in self-
defence against enemy forces operating from the territory of that neutral state. Whether or not they are so entitled
will depend on the ordinary rules of the jus ad bellum.); 2006 AUSTRALIAN MANUAL 11.8 (As a general rule of
international law, all acts of hostility in neutral territory, including neutral land, neutral waters and neutral airspace
are prohibited. A neutral state has a duty to prevent the use of its territory as a sanctuary or a base of operations by
the belligerent forces of any side. If the neutral state is unable or unwilling to enforce effectively its right of
inviolability, an aggrieved belligerent may resort to acts of hostility in neutral territory against enemy forces,
including warships and military aircraft, making unlawful use of that territory. Belligerents are also authorised to
act in self-defence when attacked or threatened with attack while in neutral territory or when attacked or threatened
from neutral territory); 2001 CANADIAN MANUAL 1304(3) (A neutral state is permitted to resist any attempted
violation of its borders by force and such resistance does not make the neutral a party to the conflict. If enemy
forces enter neutral such territory and the neutral state is unwilling or unable to intern or expel them, the opposing
party is entitled to attack them there, or to demand compensation from the neutral for this breach of neutrality.);
2002 GERMAN COMMANDERS HANDBOOK: LEGAL BASES FOR THE OPERATIONS OF NAVAL FORCES 232 (On the
one hand, the parties to the conflict are obliged to respect the inviolability of neural [sic] territory, neutral
internal waters, neutral territorial seas and the neutral airspace above these areas. Within and above these areas
all hostilities, that is the use of armed force and of other measures of maritime war (including measures based on the
law of prize) are prohibited. There is one exception to this principle which applies to measures of self-defence,
that is the event that one of the parties to the conflict is attacked or endangered to be attacked in these areas. On the
other hand, a neutral state is obliged to prevent the parties to the conflict from misusing these areas as sanctuary or
944
for self-defense, belligerent forces may act in self-defense when attacked or threatened with
attack from enemy forces unlawfully present in neutral territory, 83 including by taking
appropriate action to counter the use of neutral territory as a base of enemy operations when the
neutral State is unwilling or unable to prevent such violations. 84
15.4.3 Neutral States Use of Force to Defend Its Neutrality. A neutral State may also
engage in self-help to prevent violations of neutrality on its territory. Such self-help is also an
obligation of the neutral State. 85
The fact that a neutral State resists, even by force, attempts to violate its neutrality cannot
be regarded as a hostile act. 86 For example, a State whose territory is adjacent to a theater of war
normally mobilizes a portion of its forces to prevent the forces of either belligerent from entering
its territory, to intern such persons as may be permitted to enter, and generally to carry out its
base of operations. If it is unwilling or unable to do so, the other party to the conflict is entitled to take all
measures necessary to terminate the misuse of neutral territory or neutral waters.).
83
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.3 (If the neutral nation is unable or unwilling to enforce effectively its right of
inviolability, an aggrieved belligerent may take such acts as are necessary in neutral territory to counter the activities
of enemy forces, including warships and military aircraft, making unlawful use of that territory. Belligerents are
also authorized to act in self-defense when attacked or threatened with attack while in neutral territory or when
attacked or threatened from neutral territory.).
84
For example, Richard Nixon, Address to the Nation on the Situation in Southeast Asia, Apr. 30, 1970, 1970
PUBLIC PAPERS OF THE PRESIDENTS 405, 406-08 (American policy since then has been to scrupulously respect the
neutrality of the Cambodian people. North Vietnam, however, has not respected that neutrality. For the past 5
yearsas indicated on this map that you see hereNorth Vietnam has occupied military sanctuaries all along the
Cambodian frontier with South Vietnam. Some of these extend up to 20 miles into Cambodia. The sanctuaries are
in red and, as you note, they are on both sides of the border. They are used for hit and run attacks on American and
South Vietnamese forces in South Vietnam. These Communist occupied territories contain major base camps,
training sites, logistics facilities, weapons and ammunition factories, airstrips, and prisoner-of-war compounds.
[T]his is the decision I have made. In cooperation with the armed forces of South Vietnam, attacks are being
launched this week to clean out major enemy sanctuaries on the Cambodian-Vietnam border. This is not an
invasion of Cambodia. The areas in which these attacks will be launched are completely occupied and controlled by
North Vietnamese forces. Our purpose is not to occupy the areas. Once enemy forces are driven out of these
sanctuaries and once their military supplies are destroyed, we will withdraw.); SPAIGHT, AIR POWER AND WAR
RIGHTS 434 (Justifiable entry of neutral jurisdiction.The international law of neutrality is based on the
principle that neutral States exclude both belligerent parties from entry into or passage through their territory. If that
condition is not fulfilled, to advantage of one party and the detriment of the other, the latter is entitled, after protest,
to take the action necessary to protect his interests. He is entitled to follow his enemy into neutral jurisdiction and to
attack him there. It was for this reasons that Japan was able to justify her action in 1904 in cutting out the Russian
cruiser Reshitelni from the Chinese harbor of Chifu when it became apparent that China was unable or unwilling to
disarm the vessel in accordance with the requirements of international law. It was on the same principle that the
British intervention in Syria in 1941 was justifiable. The Vichy authorities there were allowing German aircraft to
use the Syrian airfields, and such use was particularly damaging to British interests at that time, in view of the revolt
in Iraq.).
85
Refer to 15.3.2.2 (Duty to Prevent Violations of Neutrality Within Its Jurisdiction).
86
HAGUE V art. 10 (The fact of a neutral Power resisting, even by force, attempts to violate its neutrality cannot be
regarded as a hostile act.).
945
duties of neutrality. 87 Such military operations are not regarded as hostile acts against the
belligerent State.
For example, violations of the law of neutrality may result in liability for payment of
damages in certain cases. 88 As a case in point, if harm is caused in a neutral State by the
unauthorized entry of belligerent forces, the offending State may be required, according to the
circumstances, to respond in damages. 89
Similarly, when a ship has been captured in the territorial waters of a neutral State, the
neutral State must employ, if the prize is still within its jurisdiction, the means at its disposal to
release the prize with its officers and crew, and to intern the prize crew. 90 If the prize is no
longer in the jurisdiction of the neutral power, the captor State, on the demand of the neutral
State, must liberate the prize with its officers and crew. 91 The neutral State has a duty to make
this demand. 92
Neutral territory (including neutral lands, waters, and airspace) may not be used as a base
of operations against belligerent forces. 93 For example, belligerent States are forbidden to use a
87
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 519 (In order to protect its neutrality, a State whose territory is adjacent to
a theater of war normally mobilizes a portion of its forces to prevent troops of either belligerent from entering its
territory, to intern such as may be permitted to enter, and generally to carry out its duties of neutrality.).
88
Refer to 18.16 (Compensation for Violations of the Law of War).
89
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 515 (If harm is caused in a neutral State by the unauthorized entry of a
belligerent, the offending State may be required, according to the circumstances, to respond in damages.).
90
HAGUE XIII art. 3 (When a ship has been captured in the territorial waters of a neutral Power, this Power must
employ, if the prize is still within its jurisdiction, the means at its disposal to release the prize with its officers and
crew, and to intern the prize crew.).
91
HAGUE XIII art. 3 (If the prize is not in the jurisdiction of the neutral power, the captor Government, on the
demand of that Power, must liberate the prize with its officers and crew.).
92
William H. Taft, Proclamation Regarding the Hague XIII, Feb. 28, 1910, 36 STAT. 2415, 2438 (And whereas the
Senate of the United States of America by its resolution of April 17, 1908, (two-thirds of the Senators present
concurring therein) did advise and consent to the adherence by the United States to the said Convention with the
reservation and exclusion of its Article 23 and with the understanding that the last clause of Article 3 of the said
Convention implies the duty of a neutral power to make the demand therein mentioned for the return of a ship
captured within the neutral jurisdiction and no longer within that jurisdiction; And whereas the President of the
United States of America, in pursuance of and in conformity with the aforesaid advice and consent of the Senate,
did, on the 23rd day of February, 1909, declare the adherence of the United States to the said Convention;).
93
Consultative Meeting of Foreign Ministers of the American Republics, Final Act of the Meeting: V General
Declaration of Neutrality of the American Republics, 3, Oct. 3, 1939, 1 DEPARTMENT OF STATE BULLETIN 326, 327
(Oct. 7, 1939) (The American Republics resolve [t]o declare that with regard to their status as neutrals, there exist
certain standards recognized by the American Republics applicable in these circumstances and that in accordance
with them they: (a) Shall prevent their respective terrestrial, maritime and aerial territories from being utilized as
946
neutral States ports and waters as a base of naval operations against their adversaries, 94 and a
neutral State has a corresponding obligation to prevent such use. 95
The prohibition against the use of neutral territory as a base of operations extends to any
hostile expeditions against a belligerent State, and thus includes such expeditions by non-State
actors. 96 For example, a neutral State has an obligation to prevent the arming of any vessel
within its jurisdiction that is intended to engage in hostile operations against a State with which it
is at peace and to prevent the departure from its jurisdiction of any vessel intended to engage in
hostile operations that has been adapted entirely or partly within such jurisdiction for use in
war. 97
15.5.1 Prohibition on Outfitting Hostile Expeditions With Supplies and Services for a
Belligerent From Neutral Territory. It is forbidden to permit the use of the neutral States
territory for the fitting out of hostile expeditions.98 As a case in point, a belligerent States
warships may not make use of a neutral States ports, roadsteads, and territorial waters to
bases of belligerent operations.); 1955 NWIP 10-2 442 (Belligerents are forbidden to use neutral territory,
territorial sea, or air space as a base for hostile operations.).
94
1928 PAN AMERICAN MARITIME NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 4 (Under the terms of the preceding article, a
belligerent state is forbidden: a) To make use of neutral waters as a base of naval operations against the enemy, or
to renew or augment military supplies or the armament of its ships, or to complete the equipment of the latter;);
HAGUE XIII art. 5 (Belligerents are forbidden to use neutral ports and waters as a base of naval operations against
their adversaries, and in particular to erect wireless telegraphy stations or any apparatus for the purpose of
communicating with the belligerent forces on land or sea.).
95
See, e.g., Treaty between the United States and Great Britain, art. 6, May 8, 1871, 17 STAT. 863, 865 (A neutral
Government is bound Secondly, not to permit or suffer either belligerent to make use of its ports or waters as the
base of naval operations against the other, or for the purpose of the renewal or augmentation of military supplies or
arms, or the recruitment of men.). Refer to 15.3.2.2 (Duty to Prevent Violations of Neutrality Within Its
Jurisdiction).
96
Refer to 17.18.1 (Duty of Non-Belligerent States to Refrain From Supporting Hostilities by Non-State Armed
Groups Against Other States).
97
HAGUE XIII art. 8 (A neutral Government is bound to employ the means at its disposal to prevent the fitting out
or arming of any vessel within its jurisdiction which it has reason to believe is intended to cruise, or engage in
hostile operations, against a Power with which that Government is at peace. It is also bound to display the same
vigilance to prevent the departure from its jurisdiction of any vessel intended to cruise, or engage in hostile
operations, which has been adapted entirely or partly within the said jurisdiction for use in war.); Treaty between
the United States and Great Britain, art. 6, May 8, 1871, 17 STAT. 863, 865 (A neutral Government is bound First,
to use due diligence to prevent the fitting out, arming, or equipping, within its jurisdiction, of any vessel which it has
reasonable ground to believe is intended to cruise or to carry on war against a power with which it is at peace; and
also to use like diligence to prevent the departure from its jurisdiction of any vessel intended to cruise or carry on
war as above, such vessel having been specially adapted, in whole or in part, within such jurisdiction, to warlike
use.).
98
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 526 (It is also forbidden to permit the use of its territory for the fitting out
of hostile expeditions.).
947
replenish or increase their supplies of war materials or their armaments, or for completing their
crews. 99
15.5.2.1 Exception for Authorized Medical Personnel. This prohibition does not
extend to medical personnel and units of voluntary aid societies of a neutral State who are duly
authorized to provide medical assistance to a belligerent State. 102 In no circumstance shall such
assistance by medical personnel and units of voluntary aid societies of the neutral State be
considered as interference in the conflict. 103
99
HAGUE XIII art. 18 (Belligerent war-ships may not make use of neutral ports, roadsteads, or territorial waters for
replenishing or increasing their supplies of war material or their armament, or for completing their crews.).
100
HAGUE V art. 4 (Corps of combatants cannot be formed nor recruiting agencies opened on the territory of a
neutral Power to assist the belligerents.).
101
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 522b (Application of Rule. The establishment of recruiting agencies, the
enlistment of men, the formation and organization of hostile expeditions on neutral territory, and the passage across
its frontiers of organized bodies of men intending to enlist are prohibited.); Consultative Meeting of Foreign
Ministers of the American Republics, Final Act of the Meeting: V General Declaration of Neutrality of the
American Republics, 3, Oct. 3, 1939, 1 DEPARTMENT OF STATE BULLETIN 326, 327 (Oct. 7, 1939) (The American
Republics resolve [t]o declare that with regard to their status as neutrals, there exist certain standards recognized by
the American Republics applicable in these circumstances and that in accordance with them they: ... (c) Shall
prevent on their respective territories the enlistment of persons to serve in the military, naval, or air forces of the
belligerents;).
102
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 522c (This prohibition does not extend to medical personnel and units of
a voluntary aid society duly authorized to join one of the belligerents. (See GWS, art. 27; par. 229 herein.)).
103
Refer to 4.12 (Staff of a Recognized Aid Society of a Neutral Country).
104
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 524a (The prohibition in Article 4, H. V (par. 522), is directed against
organized bodies which only require to be armed to become an immediate fighting force.).
105
HAGUE V art. 6 (The responsibility of a neutral Power is not engaged by the fact of persons crossing the frontier
separately to offer their services to one of the belligerents.).
106
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 524a (Individuals crossing the frontier singly or in small bands that are
unorganized create no obligation on the neutral State.).
948
Neutral States shall not oppose the voluntary departure of nationals of belligerent States
even though they leave simultaneously in great numbers; but they may oppose the voluntary
departure of their own nationals going to enlist in the armed forces of belligerent States. 107
Neutral States are not required to enact legislation forbidding their nationals to join the armed
forces of belligerent States. 108
Neutral States, however, may not send regularly constituted military units across the
frontier in the guise of volunteers or small unorganized bands. 109
107
1928 PAN AMERICAN MARITIME NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 23 (Neutral states shall not oppose the voluntary
departure of nationals of belligerent States even though they leave simultaneously in great numbers; but they may
oppose the voluntary departure of their own nationals going to enlist in the armed forces.).
108
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 524a (Neutral States are not required to enact legislation forbidding their
nationals to join the armed forces of the belligerents.).
109
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 524a (The foregoing rules do not, however, permit a State professing to
be neutral to send regularly constituted military units across the frontier in the guise of volunteers or small
unorganized bands.).
110
HAGUE V art. 3 (Belligerents are likewise forbidden to: (a.) Erect on the territory of a neutral Power a wireless
telegraphy station or other apparatus for the purpose of communicating with belligerent forces on land or sea;);
HAGUE XIII art. 5 (Belligerents are forbidden to use neutral ports and waters as a base of naval operations against
their adversaries, and in particular to erect wireless telegraphy stations or any apparatus for the purpose of
communicating with the belligerent forces on land or sea.); 1928 PAN AMERICAN MARITIME NEUTRALITY
CONVENTION art. 4 (Under the terms of the preceding article, a belligerent state is forbidden: b) To install in
neutral waters radio-telegraph stations or any other apparatus which may serve as a means of communication with
its military forces, or to make use of installations of this kind it may have established before the war and which may
not have been opened to the public.).
111
HAGUE V art. 3 (Belligerents are likewise forbidden to: ... (b.) Use any installation of this kind established by
them before the war on the territory of a neutral Power for purely military purposes, and which has not been opened
for the service of public messages.).
112
HAGUE V art. 8 (A neutral Power is not called upon to forbid or restrict the use on behalf of the belligerents of
telegraph or telephone cables or of wireless telegraphy apparatus belonging to it or to companies or private
individuals.).
949
their use to lend assistance to the belligerents on one side only. 113 Every measure of restriction
or prohibition taken by a neutral State in regard to the use of its communications facilities and
equipment must be impartially applied by it to all belligerent States. 114 It also must see to the
same obligation being observed by companies or private individuals owning such
communication equipment and facilities. 115
15.5.4 Movement of Belligerent Forces and Convoys of Supplies Through Neutral Land
Territory. Belligerent States are forbidden to move forces or convoys of either munitions of war
or supplies across the land territory of a neutral State. 116 This rule only prohibits the official acts
of a belligerent State in convoying or shipping munitions and supplies through a neutral State as
part of an expedition; it does not prohibit the shipment of such supplies by private persons. 117
However, a neutral State may authorize passage through its territory of the wounded and
sick, including the overflight of its territory by certain medical aircraft. 118
15.6.1 Definition of Neutral Person. The nationals of a State that is not taking part in the
war are considered neutral persons. 119
acts in favor of a belligerent State, particularly if that person voluntarily enlists in the
ranks of the armed forces of one of the parties to the armed conflict. 120
113
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 530 (The liberty of a neutral State, if it so desires, to transmit messages
by means of its telegraph, telephone, cable, radio, or other communications facilities does not imply the power so to
use them or to permit their use as to lend assistance to the belligerents on one side only.).
114
HAGUE V art. 9 (Every measure of restriction or prohibition taken by a neutral Power in regard to the matters
referred to in Articles 7 and 8 must be impartially applied by it to both belligerents.).
115
HAGUE V art. 9 (A neutral Power must see to the same obligations being observed by companies or private
individuals owning telegraph or telephone cables or wireless telegraphy apparatus.).
116
HAGUE V art. 2 (Belligerents are forbidden to move troops or convoys of either munitions of war or supplies
across the territory of a neutral Power.).
117
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 517 (A distinction must be drawn between the official acts of the
belligerent State in convoying or shipping munitions and supplies through neutral territory as part of an expedition
and the shipment of such supplies by private persons. The former is forbidden while the latter is not.).
118
Refer to 15.18 (Authorized Passage of Wounded and Sick Combatants Through Neutral Territory).
119
HAGUE V art. 16 (The nationals of a State which is not taking part in the war are considered as neutrals.).
120
HAGUE V art. 17 (A neutral cannot avail himself of his neutrality: (a.) If he commits hostile acts against a
belligerent; (b.) If he commits acts in favor of a belligerent, particularly if he voluntarily enlists in the ranks of the
armed force of one of the parties.).
950
For example, neutral persons who materially support one belligerent generally forfeit
their neutral character or assume certain liabilities with respect to the other belligerent. 121
Although a neutral person who takes certain actions may be liable to treatment as an
unprivileged belligerent, the forfeiture of neutral protections does not necessarily result in that
person being regarded as an unprivileged belligerent.
furnishing supplies or making loans to a belligerent State, provided that the person who
furnishes the supplies or who makes the loans lives neither in the territory of the
belligerent State nor in the territory occupied by it, and that the supplies do not come
from these territories; or
In addition, merely expressing sympathy for a belligerents cause would not cause a
person to forfeit ones neutral character, although incitement or recruitment would be treated
differently.
121
See also LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 656 (296) (International Law is primarily a law
between States. For this reason the rights and duties of neutrality are principally those of neutral States as such.
At the same time, International Law renders unlawful certain activities of nationals of neutral States, like carriage of
contraband or breach of blockade, without, however, imposing upon these States the duty to prevent or penalise such
acts. These are punished by the belligerent against whom they are directed.); GREENSPAN, THE MODERN LAW OF
LAND WARFARE 571 (A neutral subject who indulges in partisan activity in favor of a belligerent usually loses the
benefit of his neutral character in relation to the belligerent on the other side, as will be seen shortly. Therefore,
while a neutral person is free to assist a belligerent, he generally does so at his own risk.).
122
HAGUE V art. 17 (In such a case, the neutral shall not be more severely treated by the belligerent as against
whom he has abandoned his neutrality than a national of the other belligerent State could be for the same act.).
123
Refer to 4.4.4.1 (Nationals of Neutral States in Enemy Forces).
124
HAGUE V art. 18 (The following acts shall not be considered as committed in favour of one belligerent in the
sense of Article 17, letter (b): (a.) Supplies furnished or loans made to one of the belligerents, provided that the
person who furnishes the supplies or who makes the loans lives neither in the territory of the other party nor in the
territory occupied by him, and that the supplies do not come from these territories; (b.) Services rendered in matters
of police or civil administration.).
951
Certain types of humanitarian assistance under the 1949 Geneva Conventions would also
not be regarded as a violation of neutrality by the persons engaging in those activities. 125
15.6.3 Neutral Persons in the Home Territory of a Belligerent. Neutral persons in the
home territory of a belligerent State are not protected persons under the GC while their State of
nationality has normal diplomatic relations with the belligerent State. 126
125
Refer to 4.12 (Staff of a Recognized Aid Society of a Neutral Country); 7.12.1.3 (Authorized Neutral Civilian
Hospital Ships).
126
Refer to 10.3.3.3 (Nationals of a Neutral State or Co-Belligerent State While Normal Diplomatic
Representation Exists).
127
GREENSPAN, THE MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 575 (In general, neutrals residing permanently in the
territory of a belligerent, whether protected persons or not, are to a great extent regarded, both by that belligerent
and the opposing side, as sharing the lot and character of the people among whom they reside, so long as they
continue there.).
128
GREENSPAN, THE MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 577-78 (The neutral who is merely a transient visitor in the
territory of a belligerent falls into a different category from the resident neutral; provided, of course, that his actions
are consistent with his neutral character. Both his person and his property are entitled to particular respect from the
belligerents, so far as the hazards of war permit.).
129
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 548 (Neutral persons resident in occupied territory are not entitled to
claim different treatment, in general, from that accorded the other inhabitants.).
130
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 548 (They must refrain from all participation in the war, from all hostile
acts, and observe strictly the rules of the occupant.).
131
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 550 (All nationals of neutral powers, whether resident or temporarily
visiting an occupied territory, may be punished for offenses committed by them to the same extent and in the same
manner as enemy nationals.).
132
1958 UK MANUAL 691 note 1 (If such neutrals are not protected persons then they may be expelled or
deported for just cause by the military or civil authorities of the Occupant.).
952
In the event that such a person is arrested, suspicions must be verified by a serious
inquiry, and the arrested neutral person must be given an opportunity to present a defense, and to
communicate with his or her national consul if requested. 133 In addition, the minimum standards
for humane treatment and for detention procedures would be applicable. 134
133
In the Matter of the Claim of Madame Chevreau Against the United Kingdom, Arbitral Award, reprinted in 27
AJIL 153, 160 (1933) (The principles involved in the present case which, among others, have been applied by
different international commissions, may be briefly stated as follows: (1) The arbitrary arrest, detention or
deportation of a foreigner may give rise to a claim in international law. But the claim is not justified if these
measures were taken in good faith and upon reasonable suspicion, especially if a zone of military operations is
involved. (2) In cases of arrest, suspicions must be verified by a serious inquiry, and the arrested person given an
opportunity to defend himself against the suspicions directed against him, and particularly to communicate with the
consul of his country if he requests it. If there is no inquiry, or if it is unnecessarily delayed, or, in general, if the
detention is unnecessarily prolonged, there is ground for a claim.).
134
Refer to 8.2 (Humane Treatment of Detainees); 8.14 (Procedures for Detention).
135
See Jack L. Goldsmith III, Assistant Attorney General, Protected Person Status in Occupied Iraq Under the
Fourth Geneva Convention, Mar. 18, 2004, 28 OPINIONS OF THE OFFICE OF LEGAL COUNSEL 35, 45 (Second,
territory of a belligerent State might refer to the home territory of the party to the conflict in whose hands the
citizen of the neutral State finds himself. As applied to the armed conflict with Iraq, this interpretation would deny
protected person[] status to citizens of neutral States who find themselves in the territory of the United States, but
not to those who find themselves in occupied Iraq. We conclude that the second interpretation is correct.)
(amendment in original). See also II-A FINAL RECORD OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 793
(A particularly delicate question was that of the position of the nationals of neutral States. The Drafting Committee
had made a distinction between the position of neutrals in the home territory of belligerents and that of neutrals in
occupied territory. In the former case, neutrals were protected by normal diplomatic representation; in the latter
case, on the other hand, the diplomatic representatives concerned were only accredited to the Government of the
occupied States, whereas authority rested with the Occupying Power. It followed that all neutrals in occupied
territory must enjoy protection under the Convention, while neutrals in the home territory of a belligerent only
required such protection if the State whose nationals they were had no normal diplomatic representation in the
territory in question. The text drawn up by the Drafting Committee had taken account of the above
considerations.).
136
Refer to 10.3.2.1 (Find Themselves).
137
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 549 (Diplomatic agents of neutral States must be treated with all courtesy
and must be permitted such freedom of action as it is possible to allow, with due regard to the necessities of the war.
The same is true of consular personnel of neutral States, except those who are enemy nationals.).
953
15.7 NEUTRAL WATERS
Belligerent States are forbidden to use a neutral States ports and waters as a base of
naval operations against their adversaries, and in particular to erect or employ any apparatus for
communicating with belligerent forces on land or sea. 138 For example, a belligerent States
warships may not make use of a neutral States ports, roadsteads, and territorial waters to
replenish or increase their supplies of war materials or their armaments, or for completing their
crews. 139
Belligerent State forces must refrain from acts of hostility in neutral waters, including the
exercise of visit and search. 140
The neutral State has an affirmative duty to police its waters to prevent violations of
neutrality in its waters. 141 If a neutral State is unable or unwilling to detect and expel belligerent
forces unlawfully present in its waters, the opposing belligerent State may undertake such self-
help enforcement actions as may be necessary to terminate the violation of neutrality.
15.7.1 Waters That Are Considered Neutral. The waters that are subject to the
sovereignty of a neutral State are considered neutral. Neutral waters may be understood to
include the following waters belonging to a neutral State:
For the purpose of applying the law of neutrality, all ocean areas not subject to the
territorial sovereignty of any State (i.e., all waters seaward of neutral States territorial seas) are
not considered neutral waters. The following waters are not considered neutral waters:
138
HAGUE XIII art. 5 (Belligerents are forbidden to use neutral ports and waters as a base of naval operations
against their adversaries, and in particular to erect wireless telegraphy stations or any apparatus for the purpose of
communicating with the belligerent forces on land or sea.).
139
HAGUE XIII art. 18 (Belligerent war-ships may not make use of neutral ports, roadsteads, or territorial waters for
replenishing or increasing their supplies of war material or their armament, or for completing their crews.).
140
Refer to 15.13.3 (Where Belligerents May Not Exercise the Right of Visit and Search).
141
Hague XIII art. 25 (A neutral Power is bound to exercise such surveillance as the means at its disposal allow to
prevent any violation of the provisions of the above Articles occurring in its ports or roadsteads or in its waters.).
142
Refer to 13.2.2.2 (Territorial Seas).
143
Refer to 13.2.2.3 (Archipelagic Waters).
144
Refer to 13.2.2.1 (Internal Waters).
145
Refer to 13.2.3.2 (Contiguous Zones).
954
a neutral States exclusive economic zone; 146 and
15.7.2 A Neutral States Regulations Concerning Belligerent Warships and Prizes in Its
Waters. A neutral State may adopt laws or regulations governing the presence of belligerent
warships and their prizes in its waters.
15.7.3 24-Hour Limit on Stay of Belligerent Warships in Neutral Waters. In the absence
of special provisions to the contrary in the legislation of a neutral State, a belligerent States
warships are generally prohibited from remaining in that neutral States ports, roadsteads, or
territorial waters for more than 24 hours. 150
A belligerent warship may not prolong its stay in a neutral port beyond the permissible
time except on account of damage or stress of weather. It must depart as soon as the cause of the
delay is at an end. 151
The regulations as to the question of the length of time that these vessels may remain in
neutral ports, roadsteads, or waters, do not apply to warships devoted exclusively to religious,
146
Refer to 13.2.3.3 (Exclusive Economic Zones (EEZs)).
147
Refer to 13.2.3.4 (High Seas).
148
HAGUE XIII art. 9 (A neutral Power must apply impartially to the two belligerents the conditions, restrictions, or
prohibitions made by it in regard to the admission into its ports, roadsteads, or territorial waters, of belligerent war-
ships or of their prizes.).
149
HAGUE XIII art. 9 (Nevertheless, a neutral Power may forbid a belligerent vessel which has failed to conform to
the orders and regulations made by it, or which has violated neutrality, to enter its ports or roadsteads.).
150
HAGUE XIII art. 12 (In the absence of special provisions to the contrary in the legislation of a neutral Power,
belligerent war-ships are not permitted to remain in the ports, roadsteads, or territorial waters of the said Power for
more than twenty-four hours, except in cases covered by the present Convention.); 1928 PAN AMERICAN
NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 5 (Belligerent warships are forbidden to remain in the ports or waters of a neutral
state more than twenty-four hours. This provision will be communicated to the ship as soon as it arrives in port or in
the territorial waters, and if already there at the time of the declaration of war, as soon as the neutral state becomes
aware of this declaration.).
151
HAGUE XIII art. 14 (A belligerent war-ship may not prolong its stay in a neutral port beyond the permissible
time except on account of damage or stress of weather. It must depart as soon as the cause of the delay is at an
end.). See also 1928 PAN AMERICAN NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 5 (A ship may extend its stay in port more
than twenty-four hours in case of damage or bad conditions at sea, but must depart as soon as the cause of the delay
has ceased. When, according to the domestic law of the neutral state, the ship may not receive fuel until twenty-four
hours after its arrival in port, the period of its stay may be extended an equal length of time.).
955
scientific, or philanthropic purposes. 152 Warships engaged in the collection of scientific data of
potential military application would not be considered to be devoted exclusively to scientific
purposes and would not be exempt. 153
15.7.4 Passage of Belligerent Warships and Prizes Through a Neutral States Waters. A
neutral State may allow the passage of belligerent warships and prizes through its waters. The
neutrality of a State is not affected by the mere passage through its territorial waters of warships
or prizes belonging to belligerents. 155
Although the general practice has been to close neutral territorial seas to belligerent
submarines, a neutral State may elect to allow passage of submarines provided they do not
engage in hostile acts while in territorial waters. 157
Neutral States customarily authorize passage through their territorial sea of ships carrying
the wounded, sick, and shipwrecked, whether or not those waters are otherwise closed to
belligerent vessels. 158
152
HAGUE XIII art. 14 (The regulations as to the question of the length of time which these vessels may remain in
neutral ports, roadsteads, or waters, do not apply to war-ships devoted exclusively to religious, scientific, or
philanthropic purposes.); 1928 PAN AMERICAN MARITIME NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 5 (Vessels used
exclusively for scientific, religious, or philanthropic purposes are exempted from the foregoing provisions.).
153
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.3.2.1 (Warships engaged in the collection of scientific data of potential military
application are not exempt.); 1997 NWP 9 7.3.2.1 (same); 1989 NWP 9 7.3.2.1 (Vessels engaged in the
collection of scientific data of potential military application are not exempt).
154
HAGUE XIII art. 13 (If a Power which has been informed of the outbreak of hostilities learns that a belligerent
war-ship is in one of its ports or roadsteads, or in its territorial waters, it must notify the said ship to depart within
twenty-four hours or within the time prescribed by local regulations.).
155
HAGUE XIII art. 10 (The neutrality of a Power is not affected by the mere passage through its territorial waters
of war-ships or prizes belonging to belligerents.).
156
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.3.4 (A neutral nation may, on a nondiscriminatory basis, suspend passage of belligerent
warships and prizes through its territorial seas, except in international straits.); 1997 NWP 9 7.3.4 (same); 1989
NWP 9 7.3.4.1 (A neutral nation may, on a nondiscriminatory basis, close its territorial waters, except in
international straits, to belligerent vessels.).
157
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.3.4 (Although the general practice has been to close neutral territorial seas to belligerent
submarines, a neutral nation may elect to allow passage of submarines.); 1997 NWP 9 7.3.4 (same); 1989 NWP 9
7.3.4.1 (Although the general practice has been to close neutral territorial waters to belligerent submarines, a
neutral nation may elect to allow passage of submarines, either surfaced or submerged.).
956
15.7.4.1 Right of Entry in Distress for Belligerent Vessels. Belligerent vessels,
including warships, have a right of entry in distress whether caused by force majeure or damage
resulting from enemy action. 159 The right of entry in distress does not prejudice the measures
that a neutral State may take after entry has been granted, such as measures to intern the ship if it
remains when it is not entitled to remain. 160
15.8 PASSAGE OF BELLIGERENT VESSELS AND AIRCRAFT THROUGH INTERNATIONAL STRAITS AND
ARCHIPELAGIC SEA LANES
Although a neutral State may suspend the passage of belligerent warships through its
waters, a neutral State may not suspend, hamper, or otherwise impede the access of belligerent
vessels and aircraft through international straits overlapped by neutral waters or archipelagic sea
lanes of a neutral State.
158
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.3.4 (Neutral nations customarily authorize passage through their territorial sea of ships
carrying the wounded, sick, and shipwrecked, whether or not those waters are otherwise closed to belligerent
vessels.); 1997 NWP 9 7.3.4 (same); 1989 NWP 9 7.3.4.1 (same).
159
TUCKER, THE LAW OF WAR AND NEUTRALITY AT SEA 240 (It is generally recognized, however, that
international practice requires that exception be made in the neutrality regulations of states to permit the entry of
belligerent warships in distress. Entry in distress may result from weather or sea conditions, but it may also result
from damage incurred in battle. Even pursuit by the enemy appears to give belligerent warships a right of entry.
But this right of entry in distress cannot be held to prejudice the measures a neutral state may take once admission
into its waters and ports has been granted.).
160
Refer to 15.9.2 (Detention of Belligerent Ships That, and Personnel Who, Are Not Entitled to Remain in a
Neutral Port).
161
See 2007 NWP 1-14M 7.3.6 (Customary international law as reflected in the 1982 LOS Convention provides
that belligerent and neutral surface ships, submarines, and aircraft have a right of transit passage through, over, and
under all straits used for international navigation.). Consider LOS CONVENTION art. 38(1) (In straits referred to in
article 37 [i.e., straits that are used for international navigation between one part of the high seas or an exclusive
economic zone and another part of the high seas or an exclusive economic zone], all ships and aircraft enjoy the
right of transit passage, which shall not be impeded.).
162
The S.S. Wimbledon, (United Kingdom, France, Japan v. Germany) (Judgment), 1923 P.C.I.J. (series A) No. 1,
at 28 (The precedents therefore afforded by the Suez and Panama Canals invalidate in advance the argument that
Germany's neutrality would have necessarily been imperilled [sic] if her authorities had allowed the passage of the
Wimbledon through the Kiel Canal, because that vessel was carrying contraband of war consigned to a state then
engaged in an armed conflict. Moreover they are merely illustrations of the general opinion according to which
when an artificial waterway connecting two open seas has been permanently dedicated to the use of the whole
957
Belligerent forces transiting through international straits overlapped by neutral waters
must proceed without delay, must refrain from the threat or use of force against the neutral State,
and must otherwise refrain from acts of hostility and other activities not incident to their
transit. 164 For example, belligerent forces must refrain from exercising the right of visit and
search while transiting through international straits that are overlapped by neutral waters. 165
Belligerent forces in transit may, however, take defensive measures consistent with their
security, including the launching and recovery of military devices, screen formation steaming,
and acoustic and electronic surveillance, and may respond in self-defense to a hostile act or a
demonstration of hostile intent. 166
15.8.2 Passage of Belligerent Vessels and Aircraft Through Archipelagic Sea Lanes of a
Neutral State. Belligerent ships or aircraft, including surface warships, submarines, and military
aircraft, retain the right of unimpeded archipelagic sea 167 lanes passage through, under, and over
neutral archipelagic sea lanes. 168 Neutral archipelagic States shall not suspend or hamper the
right of transit passage through their archipelagic sea lanes. 169
world, such waterway is assimilated to natural straits in the sense that even the passage of a belligerent man-of-war
does not compromise the neutrality of the sovereign State under whose jurisdiction the waters in question lie.).
163
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.3.6 (Neutral nations cannot suspend, hamper, or otherwise impede this right of transit
passage through international straits.). Consider LOS CONVENTION art. 44 (States bordering straits shall not
hamper transit passage and shall give appropriate publicity to any danger to navigation or overflight within or over
the strait of which they have knowledge. There shall be no suspension of transit passage.).
164
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.3.6 (Belligerent forces transiting through international straits overlapped by neutral waters
must proceed without delay, must refrain from the threat or use of force against the neutral nation, and must
otherwise refrain from acts of hostility and other activities not incident to their transit.). Consider LOS
CONVENTION art. 39(1) (Ships and aircraft, while exercising the right of transit passage, shall: (a) proceed without
delay through or over the strait; (b) refrain from any threat or use of force against the sovereignty, territorial
integrity or political independence of States bordering the strait, or in any other manner in violation of the principles
of international law embodied in the Charter of the United Nations; (c) refrain from any activities other than those
incident to their normal modes of continuous and expeditious transit unless rendered necessary by force majeure or
by distress.).
165
Refer to 15.13.3 (Where Belligerents May Not Exercise the Right of Visit and Search).
166
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.3.6 (Belligerent forces in transit may, however, take defensive measures consistent with
their security, including the launching and recovery of military devices, screen formation steaming, and acoustic and
electronic surveillance, and may respond in self-defense to a hostile act or hostile intent.).
167
Refer to 13.2.2.3 (Archipelagic Waters).
168
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.3.7 (Belligerent ships or aircraft, including surface warships, submarines and military
aircraft, retain the right of unimpeded archipelagic sea lanes passage through, under, and over neutral archipelagic
sea lanes.). Consider LOS CONVENTION art. 53(2) (All ships and aircraft enjoy the right of archipelagic sea lanes
passage in such sea lanes and air routes.).
169
Consider LOS CONVENTION art. 54 (Articles 39, 40, 42 and 44 apply mutatis mutandis to archipelagic sea lanes
passage.); LOS CONVENTION art. 44 (States bordering straits shall not hamper transit passage and shall give
appropriate publicity to any danger to navigation or overflight within or over the strait of which they have
knowledge. There shall be no suspension of transit passage.).
958
Belligerent State forces exercising the right of archipelagic sea lanes passage must refrain
from acts of hostility and other activities not incident to their transit. 170 For example, belligerent
State forces must refrain from exercising the right of visit and search while exercising the right
of archipelagic sea lanes passage. 171 Belligerent State forces exercising the right of archipelagic
sea lanes passage may, however, engage in those activities that are incident to their normal mode
of continuous and expeditious passage, and that are consistent with their security, including
formation steaming, acoustic and electronic surveillance, and the launching and recovery of
military devices. 172
In addition to the general rules applicable to neutral waters, 173 certain other rules apply to
neutral ports, roadsteads, and internal waters.
170
Consider LOS CONVENTION art. 54 (Articles 39, 40, 42 and 44 apply mutatis mutandis to archipelagic sea lanes
passage.); LOS CONVENTION art. 39 (Ships and aircraft, while exercising the right of transit passage, shall: (a)
proceed without delay through or over the strait; (b) refrain from any threat or use of force against the sovereignty,
territorial integrity or political independence of States bordering the strait, or in any other manner in violation of the
principles of international law embodied in the Charter of the United Nations; (c) refrain from any activities other
than those incident to their normal modes of continuous and expeditious transit unless rendered necessary by force
majeure or by distress.).
171
Refer to 15.13.3 (Where Belligerents May Not Exercise the Right of Visit and Search).
172
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.3.7 (Belligerent forces exercising the right of archipelagic sea lanes passage may engage
in those activities that are incident to their normal mode of continuous and expeditious passage and are consistent
with their security, including formation steaming, acoustic and electronic surveillance, and the launching and
recovery of military devices.). Consider LOS CONVENTION art. 53(3) (Archipelagic sea lanes passage means the
exercise in accordance with this Convention of the rights of navigation and overflight in the normal mode solely for
the purpose of continuous, expeditious and unobstructed transit between one part of the high seas or an exclusive
economic zone and another part of the high seas or an exclusive economic zone.).
173
Refer to 15.7 (Neutral Waters).
174
See Consultative Meeting of Foreign Ministers of the American Republics, Final Act of the Meeting: V General
Declaration of Neutrality of the American Republics, 3, Oct. 3, 1939, 1 DEPARTMENT OF STATE BULLETIN 326, 327
(Oct. 7, 1939) (The American Republics resolve [t]o declare that with regard to their status as neutrals, there exist
certain standards recognized by the American Republics applicable in these circumstances and that in accordance
with them they: ... (d) May determine, with regard to belligerent warships, that not more than three at a time be
admitted in their own ports or waters and in any case they shall not be allowed to remain for more than twenty-four
hours. Vessels engaged exclusively in scientific, religious or philanthropic missions may be exempted from this
provision, as well as those which arrive in distress.); 1928 PAN AMERICAN NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 7 (In the
absence of a special provision of the local legislation, the maximum number of ships of war of a belligerent which
may be in a neutral port at the same time shall be three.); HAGUE XIII art. 15 (In the absence of special provisions
to the contrary in the legislation of a neutral Power, the maximum number of war-ships belonging to a belligerent
which may be in one of the ports or roadsteads of that Power simultaneously shall be three.).
959
15.9.2 Detention of Belligerent Ships That, and Personnel Who, Are Not Entitled to
Remain in a Neutral Port. If, notwithstanding the notification of the neutral State, a belligerent
ship of war does not leave a port where it is not entitled to remain, the neutral State is entitled to
take such measures as it considers necessary to render the ship incapable of taking to sea during
the war, and the commanding officer of the ship must facilitate the execution of such
measures. 175
When a belligerent ship is detained by a neutral Power, the officers and crew are likewise
detained. 176
The officers and crew thus detained may be left in the ship or kept either on another
vessel or on land, and may be subjected to the measures of restriction that may appear necessary
to impose upon them. A sufficient number of persons for looking after the vessel must, however,
always be left on board. The officers may be left at liberty on giving their word not to quit the
neutral territory without permission. 177
175
HAGUE XIII art. 24 (If, notwithstanding the notification of the neutral Power, a belligerent ship of war does not
leave a port where it is not entitled to remain, the neutral Power is entitled to take such measures as it considers
necessary to render the ship incapable of taking the sea during the war, and the commanding officer of the ship must
facilitate the execution of such measures.); 1928 PAN AMERICAN NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 6 (The ship
which does not conform to the foregoing rules may be interned by order of the neutral government. A ship shall be
considered as interned from the moment it receives notice to that effect from the local neutral authority, even though
a petition for reconsideration of the order has been interposed by the transgressing vessel, which shall remain under
custody from the moment it receives the order.).
176
HAGUE XIII art. 24 (When a belligerent ship is detained by a neutral Power, the officers and crew are likewise
detained.).
177
HAGUE XIII art. 24 (The officers and crew thus detained may be left in the ship or kept either on another vessel
or on land, and may be subjected to the measures of restriction which it may appear necessary to impose upon them.
A sufficient number of men for looking after the vessel must, however, be always left on board. The officers may
be left at liberty on giving their word not to quit the neutral territory without permission.). Refer to 15.16.4
(Parole of Belligerent Personnel Interned in Neutral Territory).
178
See 1928 PAN AMERICAN NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 8 (A ship of war may not depart from a neutral port
within less than twenty-four hours after the departure of an enemy warship.); HAGUE XIII art. 16 (When war-ships
belonging to both belligerents are present simultaneously in a neutral port or roadstead, a period of not less than
twenty-four hours must elapse between the departure of the ship belonging to one belligerent and the departure of
the ship belonging to the other.).
179
1928 PAN AMERICAN NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 8 (The one entering first shall depart first, unless it is in
such condition as to warrant extending its stay.); HAGUE XIII art. 16 (The order of departure is determined by the
order of arrival, unless the ship which arrived first is so circumstanced that an extension of its stay is permissible.).
960
A belligerent warship may not leave a neutral port or roadstead until 24 hours after the
departure of a merchant ship flying the flag of its adversary. 180
15.9.4 Supplies and Repairs of Belligerent Warships in Neutral Ports and Roadsteads.
15.9.4.1 Food and Fuel for Belligerent Warships in Neutral Ports and
Roadsteads. A neutral State has discretion to issue and implement regulations regarding the
supply of food and supplies for belligerent warships in its territory. 181 However, such
regulations must be applied impartially among belligerent States. 182
A belligerent States warships may take on food supplies and provisions in a neutral
States ports and roadsteads, but only to bring up their supplies to the peacetime standard. 183
Similarly, a belligerent States warship may only take on sufficient fuel to enable it to
reach the nearest port in its own country. 184 The belligerent States warship may, however, fill
up its bunkers built to carry fuel when the neutral State has adopted this method of determining
the amount of fuel to be supplied. 185
180
HAGUE XIII art. 16 (A belligerent war-ship may not leave a neutral port or roadstead until twenty-four hours
after the departure of a merchant-ship flying the flag of its adversary.).
181
1928 PAN AMERICAN MARITIME NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 10 (Belligerent warships may supply
themselves with fuel and stores in neutral ports, under the conditions especially established by the local authority
and in case there are no special provisions to that effect, they may supply themselves in the manner prescribed for
provisioning in time of peace.).
182
Refer to 15.7.2 (A Neutral States Regulations Concerning Belligerent Warships and Prizes in Its Waters).
183
HAGUE XIII art. 19 (Belligerent war-ships may only revictual in neutral ports or roadsteads to bring up their
supplies to the peace standard.).
184
HAGUE XIII art. 19 (Similarly these vessels may only ship sufficient fuel to enable them to reach the nearest port
in their own country.).
185
HAGUE XIII art. 19 (They may, on the other hand, fill up their bunkers built to carry fuel, when in neutral
countries which have adopted this method of determining the amount of fuel to be supplied.).
186
HAGUE XIII art. 17 (In neutral ports and roadsteads belligerent war-ships may only carry out such repairs as are
absolutely necessary to render them seaworthy, and may not add in any manner whatsoever to their fighting force.);
1928 PAN AMERICAN MARITIME NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 9 (Damaged belligerent ships shall not be
permitted to make repairs in neutral ports beyond those that are essential to the continuance of the voyage and which
in no degree constitute an increase in its military strength.).
187
HAGUE XIII art. 17 (The local authorities of the neutral Power shall decide what repairs are necessary, and these
must be carried out with the least possible delay.); 1928 PAN AMERICAN MARITIME NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art.
9 (The neutral state shall ascertain the nature of the repairs to be made and will see that they are made as rapidly as
possible.).
961
If the 1928 Pan American Maritime Neutrality Convention is applicable, then damage
found to have been produced by the enemys fire must not be repaired. 188 However, whether
such repairs are prohibited by customary international law is less clear. 189 Some States have
allowed such repairs provided they are limited to rendering the ship sufficiently seaworthy to
continue its voyage safely. 190
A belligerent warship damaged by enemy fire that will not (or cannot) be put to sea once
the lawful period of stay has expired must be interned. 191
15.9.5 Prizes in Neutral Ports or Roadsteads. A prize (i.e., a captured neutral or enemy
merchant ship) may only be brought into a neutral port or roadstead because of unseaworthiness,
stress of weather, or want of fuel or provisions. 192 It must leave as soon as such circumstances
that justified its entry cease. 193 Neutral ports may not be used as harbors of safety in which
prizes may be kept indefinitely. 194
188
1928 PAN AMERICAN MARITIME NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 9 (Damages which are found to have been
produced by the enemys fire shall in no case be repaired.).
189
See TUCKER, THE LAW OF WAR AND NEUTRALITY AT SEA 244-45 (But it is more than doubtful that the law
presently forbids the repair of battle damage in neutral ports, and, in fact, some states when neutral still allow such
repairs.).
190
For example, TUCKER, THE LAW OF WAR AND NEUTRALITY AT SEA 245 footnote 2 (As illustrated by the
incident involving the German battleship Admiral Graf Spee. See Hackworth, op. cit., Vol. VII, pp. 450-1. On
December 13, 1939, the Graf Spee entered the Uruguayan port of Montevideo, following an engagement with
British naval forces. A request was made to the Uruguayan authorities to permit the Graf Spee to remain fifteen
days in port in order to repair damages suffered in battle and to restore the vessel's navigability. The Uruguayan
authorities granted a seventy-two hour period of stay. Shortly before the expiration of this period the Graf Spee left
Montevideo and was destroyed by its own crew in the Rio de la Plata. The British Government, while not insisting
that Article 17 of Hague XIII clearly prohibited the repair of battle damage, did point to the widespread practice of
states when neutral in forbidding the repair of battle damage in their ports. In accordance with this practice it was
suggested that the Graf Spees period of stay be limited to twenty-four hours. Uruguay maintained, however, that
the scope of the neutral's duty required it only to prevent those repairs that would serve to augment the fighting force
of a vessel but not repairs necessary for safety of navigation.The incident is noteworthy as an example of the
extent to which belligerents seemingly can make use of neutral ports without violating the prohibition against using
neutral territory as a base of naval operations.).
191
Refer to 15.9.2 (Detention of Belligerent Ships That, and Personnel Who, Are Not Entitled to Remain in a
Neutral Port).
192
1928 PAN AMERICAN MARITIME NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 17 (Prizes cannot be taken to a neutral port
except in case of unseaworthiness, stress of weather, or want of fuel or provisions.); HAGUE XIII art. 21 (A prize
may only be brought into a neutral port on account of unseaworthiness, stress of weather, or want of fuel or
provisions.).
193
1928 PAN AMERICAN MARITIME NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 17 (When the cause has disappeared, the prizes
must leave immediately;); HAGUE XIII art. 21 (It must leave as soon as the circumstances which justified its entry
are at an end.).
194
The S.S. Appam, 243 U.S. 124, 148-49 (1917) (It is familiar international law that the usual course after the
capture of the Appam would have been to take her into a German port, where a prize court of that nation might have
adjudicated her status, and, if it so determined, condemned the vessel as a prize of war. Instead of that, the vessel
was neither taken to a German port nor to the nearest port accessible of a neutral power, but was ordered to, and did,
proceed over a distance of more than 3,000 miles, with a view to laying up the captured ship in an American port. It
was not the purpose to bring the vessel here within the privileges universally recognized in international law -- i.e.,
962
If the prize does not leave as soon as such circumstances that justified it entry cease, the
neutral State must order the prize to leave at once, and should it fail to do so, the neutral State
must employ the means at its disposal to release it with its previous officers and crew, and to
intern the prize crew. 195
If a prize is brought into a neutral States port under circumstances other than because of
unseaworthiness, stress of weather, or want of fuel or provisions, the neutral State must release
the prize. 196 The prize crew should be interned and the vessel restored to its former crew. 197
for necessary fuel or provisions, or because of stress of weather or necessity of repairs, and to leave as soon as the
cause of such entry was satisfied or removed. The principles of international law recognized by this government,
leaving the treaty aside, will not permit the ports of the United States to be thus used by belligerents. If such use
were permitted, it would constitute of the ports of a neutral country harbors of safety into which prizes, captured by
one of the belligerents, might be safely brought and indefinitely kept.).
195
HAGUE XIII art. 21 (If it does not [leave], the neutral Power must order it to leave at once; should it fail to obey,
the neutral Power must employ the means at its disposal to release it with its officers and crew and to intern the prize
crew.); 1928 PAN AMERICAN MARITIME NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 17 (if none of the indicated conditions
exist, the state shall suggest to them that they depart, and if not obeyed shall have recourse to the means at its
disposal to disarm them with their officers and crew, or to intern the prize crew placed on board by the captor.).
196
HAGUE XIII art. 22 (A neutral Power must, similarly, release a prize brought into one of its ports under
circumstances other than those referred to in Article 21.); 1928 PAN AMERICAN NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 18
(Outside of the cases provided for in Article 17, the neutral state must release the prizes which may have been
brought into its territorial waters.).
197
Press Release, Oct. 28, 1939, German Capture of the American Steamer City of Flint, 1 DEPARTMENT OF STATE
BULLETIN 429, 432 (A prize crew may take a captured ship into a neutral port without internment only in case of
stress of weather, want of fuel and provisions, or necessity of repairs. In all other cases, the neutral is obligated to
intern the prize crew and restore the vessel to her former crew.).
198
HAGUE XIII art. 23 (A neutral Power may allow prizes to enter its ports and roadsteads, whether under convoy
or not, when they are brought there to be sequestrated pending the decision of a Prize Court. It may have the prize
taken to another of its ports. If the prize is convoyed by a war-ship, the prize crew may go on board the convoying
ship. If the prize is not under convoy, the prize crew are left at liberty.).
199
William H. Taft, Proclamation Regarding the Hague XIII, Feb. 28, 1910, 36 STAT. 2415, 2438 (And whereas
the Senate of the United States of America by its resolution of April 17, 1908, (two-thirds of the Senators present
concurring therein) did advise and consent to the adherence by the United States to the said Convention with the
reservation and exclusion of its Article 23 and with the understanding that the last clause of Article 3 of the said
Convention implies the duty of a neutral power to make the demand therein mentioned for the return of a ship
captured within the neutral jurisdiction and no longer within that jurisdiction; And whereas the President of the
United States of America, in pursuance of and in conformity with the aforesaid advice and consent of the Senate,
did, on the 23rd day of February, 1909, declare the adherence of the United States to the said Convention;).
963
15.10 NEUTRAL AIRSPACE
In general, belligerent military aircraft may not enter neutral airspace except to address
violations of neutrality by enemy forces when the neutral State is unwilling or unable to address
such violations.
15.10.1 Airspace That Is Considered Neutral. The airspace over a neutral States land
territory and the neutral States territorial and archipelagic waters is subject to the sovereignty of
the neutral State and, thus, is considered neutral. 200
The airspace over international waters, including the airspace over a neutral States
contiguous zone and exclusive economic zone, is not considered neutral airspace. 201
Belligerent military aircraft have the right to pass through international straits overlapped
by neutral waters and archipelagic sea lanes of a neutral State. 203
Belligerent States medical aircraft may enter neutral airspace subject to certain
conditions. 204
Belligerent aircraft in evident distress may be permitted to enter neutral airspace and to
land in neutral territory under such safeguards as the neutral State may wish to impose. The
neutral State must require such aircraft to land and must intern both aircraft and crew. 205 This
200
Refer to 14.2.1.1 (National Airspace).
201
Refer to 14.2.1.2 (International Airspace).
202
Consultative Meeting of Foreign Ministers of the American Republics, Final Act of the Meeting: V General
Declaration of Neutrality of the American Republics, 3, Oct. 3, 1939, 1 DEPARTMENT OF STATE BULLETIN 326, 327
(Oct. 7, 1939) (The American Republics resolve [t]o declare that with regard to their status as neutrals, there exist
certain standards recognized by the American Republics applicable in these circumstances and that in accordance
with them they: ... (f) Shall regard as a contravention of their neutrality any flight by the military aircraft of a
belligerent state over their own territory.).
203
Refer to 15.8 (Passage of Belligerent Vessels and Aircraft Through International Straits and Archipelagic Sea
Lanes).
204
Refer to 15.18.2 (Medical Aircraft and Neutral Territory).
205
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.3.9 (Belligerent aircraft in evident distress may be permitted to enter neutral airspace and
to land in neutral territory under such safeguards as the neutral nation may wish to impose. The neutral nation must
require such aircraft to land and must intern both aircraft and crew.). See also SPAIGHT, AIR POWER AND WAR
RIGHTS 436 (The case of distress.It was agreed by the Commission of Jurists of 1922-23 that the obligation to
prevent the entry of belligerent military aircraft was to be regarded as being subject to the neutral States moral duty
to grant succor to airmen in distress. As already explained, there is, in practice, some difficulty in differentiating
between cases in which the reason for entry is genuine distress, or some similar cause such as engine failure or
exhaustion of fuel which might lead to disaster, and those in which there is a deliberate attempt to penetrate in order
to secure some military advantage or to escape from superior forces. The highest that one can put the neutral
obligation is that asylum should be granted in all cases of evident distress, so far as the circumstances allow this
obvious concession to humanitarian claims to be made.).
964
situation would fall under the general duty of a neutral State with respect to the treatment of
belligerent State forces that enter, or seek to enter, its territory. 206
15.10.3 Duties of Neutral States With Respect to Their Airspace. As with other neutral
territory, neutral States have an affirmative duty to prevent the violation of their airspace by
belligerent military aircraft. 207 For example, if a belligerent military aircraft enters neutral
airspace, the neutral State is obliged to use the means at its disposal to require the belligerent
military aircraft to land within its territory. 208 After the aircraft lands, the neutral State must
intern the aircraft and its crew for the duration of the armed conflict.
If a neutral State is unable or unwilling to prevent the unlawful entry or use of its airspace
by a belligerent State, the opposing belligerent States forces may undertake such self-help
enforcement measures as the circumstances may require. 209 For example, belligerents with
missile defense capabilities may be justified in intercepting enemy missiles transiting neutral
airspace if the neutral state cannot, or will not, prevent such airspace incursions.
The right of angary recognizes the right of belligerents to requisition (upon payment of
just compensation) neutral property transiently within their territory, or in territory that they have
occupied, where the property is urgently required for the conduct of the war. 210
206
Refer to 15.16 (Belligerent Forces Taking Refuge in Neutral Territory).
207
See, e.g., TUCKER, THE LAW OF WAR AND NEUTRALITY AT SEA 251 (The practices of states during World Wars
I and II may be regarded as having firmly established both the right as well as the duty of the neutral state to forbid
the entrance of belligerent military aircraft into its air space.); SPAIGHT, AIR POWER AND WAR RIGHTS 420 (The
important question whether the laws of neutrality allow belligerent military aircraft to come and go in neutral
jurisdiction was answered by the practice of 1914-18 with a firm and unmistakable negative. The unanimity of the
answer was remarkable. All the neutral States who had occasion to decide the question decided it in the same
general way, and their decision gave rise to no protest on the part of the belligerents concerned, with one single
exception, which the subsequent action and compliance of the State making it deprived of all its force.).
208
Consider Commission of Jurists to Consider and Report Upon the Revision of the Rules of Warfare, General
Report, Part II: Rules of Arial Warfare, art. 42, Feb. 19, 1923, reprinted in 32 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL
DOCUMENTS 12, 36 (1938) (A neutral government must use the means at its disposal to prevent the entry within its
jurisdiction of belligerent military aircraft and to compel them to alight if they have entered such jurisdiction. A
neutral government shall use the means at its disposal to intern any belligerent military aircraft which is within its
jurisdiction after having alighted for any reason whatsoever, together with its crew and the passengers, if any.).
209
Refer to 15.4.2 (Belligerent Use of Self-Help When Neutral States Are Unable or Unwilling to Prevent
Violations of Neutrality).
210
GREENSPAN, MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 581 (The right of angary, an ancient rule of international law, in
its modern application recognizes the right of belligerents to requisition (upon payment of just compensation)
neutral ships and other neutral property transiently within their territory, or in territory which they have occupied,
where the property is urgently required for the conduct of the war.).
965
The right of angary does not apply to property of neutral ownership that has acquired
enemy character. 212
15.11.2 Railway Material Coming From the Territory of a Neutral State. Railway
material coming from the territory of a neutral State, whether it be the property of that State or of
companies or private persons, and recognizable as such, shall not be requisitioned or utilized by
a belligerent State except where and to the extent that it is absolutely necessary. 213 It shall be
sent back as soon as possible to the country of origin. 214 A neutral State may likewise, in case of
necessity, retain and utilize to an equal extent railway material coming from the territory of a
belligerent State. 215 Compensation shall be paid by one party or the other in proportion to the
railway material used, and to the period of usage. 216
Railway materials would include, for example, railroad cars and locomotives.
211
For example, Press Release: Swedish Motorship Kungsholm, 5 DEPARTMENT OF STATE BULLETIN 519 (Dec.
13, 1941) (The United States Government has exercised its right of angary to take over the Swedish motorship
Kungsholm.); Woodrow Wilson, Proclamation Concerning the Possession and Utilization of Netherlands Vessels,
Mar. 20, 1918, reprinted in 12 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL DOCUMENTS 259-60 (1918) (Whereas the law and
practice of nations accords to a belligerent Power the right in time of military exigency and for purposes essential to
the prosecution of the war, to take over and utilize neutral vessels lying within its jurisdiction: Now therefore I,
Woodrow Wilson, President of the United States of America, in accordance with international law and practice, and
by virtue of the Act of Congress aforesaid, and as Commander-in-Chief of the Army and Navy of the United States,
do hereby find and proclaim that the imperative military needs of the United States require the immediate utilization
of vessels of Netherlands registry, now lying within the territorial waters of the United States; and I do therefore
authorize and empower the Secretary of the Navy to take over on behalf of the United States the possession of and to
employ all such vessels of Netherlands registry as may be necessary for essential purposes connected with the
prosecution of the war against the Imperial German Government. The vessels shall be manned, equipped, and
operated by the Navy Department and the United States Shipping Board, as may be deemed expedient; and the
United States Shipping Board shall make to the owners thereof full compensation, in accordance with the principles
of international law.).
212
LAUTERPACHT, II OPPENHEIMS INTERNATIONAL LAW 761-62 (365) (In case property of subjects of neutral
States is vested with enemy character, it is not neutral property in the strict sense of the term neutral, and all rules
respecting appropriation, utilization, and destruction of enemy property obviously apply to it. The object of the right
of angary is, therefore, either such property of subjects of neutral States as retains its neutral character from its
temporary position on belligerent territory, and which therefore is not vested with enemy character, or such neutral
property on the open sea as has not acquired enemy character.).
213
HAGUE V art. 19 (Railway material coming from the territory of neutral Powers, whether it be the property of
the said Powers or of Companies or private persons, and recognizable as such, shall not be requisitioned or utilized
by a belligerent except where and to the extent that it is absolutely necessary.).
214
HAGUE V art. 19 (It shall be sent back as soon as possible to the country of origin.).
215
HAGUE V art. 19 (A neutral Power may likewise, in case of necessity, retain and utilize to an equal extent
material coming from the territory of the belligerent Power.).
216
HAGUE V art. 19 (Compensation shall be paid by one party or the other in proportion to the material used, and to
the period of usage.).
966
This rule on railway material has sought to balance between the necessities of war (i.e.,
that such material might be of great military utility) and the interests and rights of neutrals. 217
This rule also reflects a compromise between the different views of States. 218
Although neutral States must not provide war-related goods and services to belligerents,
neutral persons are not prohibited from such activity by the law of neutrality. 219 The law of
neutralitys rules on neutral commerce and the carriage of contraband have sought to balance the
right of neutral persons to conduct commerce free from unreasonable interference against the
right of belligerent States to interdict the passage of war materials to the enemy. 220
Neutral merchant vessels and civil aircraft engaged in legitimate neutral commerce are
subject to visit and search, but generally may not be captured or destroyed by belligerent
forces. 221 On the other hand, neutral merchant vessels and civil aircraft are subject to capture
and other penalties if they engage in certain conduct. 222
217
Antonio S. de Bustamante, The Hague Convention Concerning the Rights and Duties of Neutral Powers and
Persons in Land Warfare, 2 AJIL, 95, 119 (1908) (The article in regard to railways the only article saved in the
chapter relating to foreign property is useful to nations with land boundaries and is based on just terms, making the
best equivalent for the necessities of war and in the interest and right of neutrals. Therefore, its acceptance brings
great credit upon the delegation of Luxemburg. It is to be observed that the final redaction only relates to railway
material coming from neutral states, belonging to the said states or to companies or private persons. It has no other
purpose than to facilitate the return of the compensation or the payment for the use of the cars and locomotives of a
country which may accidentally enter the other state through the occasions of ordinary traffic.).
218
See A. PEARCE HIGGINS, THE HAGUE PEACE CONFERENCES AND OTHER INTERNATIONAL CONFERENCES
CONCERNING THE LAWS AND USAGES OF WAR: TEXTS OF CONVENTIONS WITH COMMENTARIES 294 (1909) (Article
19 replaces Article 54 of the Regulations of 1899 and is a compromise between contradictory views. Luxemburg
and Belgium denied the right of belligerents to requisition and make use of neutral railway materials within their
territory. Germany and Austria desired to have the right to use it admitted, on the understanding that an indemnity
was paid for its use after the close of the war. France and Luxemburg as an alternative claimed both an indemnity
and the right, in case of need, to retain and make use of a corresponding quantity of railway material coming from
the territory of a belligerent state. The Conference took the middle course, allowing belligerents to requisition and
use neutral railway material only when absolutely necessary, on condition that it be returned as soon as possible, the
neutral being given the corresponding right over belligerent material within its territory, compensation to be paid by
one party to the other in proportion to the material used and the period of use.).
219
Refer to 15.3.2.1 (Duty to Refrain From Providing War-Related Goods and Services to Belligerents).
220
TUCKER, THE LAW OF WAR AND NEUTRALITY AT SEA 182 (It has long been customary to characterize the
problems arising with respect to neutral commerce in terms of two conflicting rights: the right of the neutral state to
insist upon continued freedom of commerce for its subjects despite the existence of war and the right of the
belligerent to prevent neutral subjects from affording assistance to the military effort of an enemy. More accurate,
perhaps, is the characterization of these problems in terms of conflicting interests rather than in terms of conflicting
rights. Whereas the neutrals interest has been to suffer the least amount of belligerent interference in the trading
activities of its subjects, the belligerents interest has been to prevent neutrals from compensating for an enemy's
weakness at sea.).
221
Refer to 15.13 (Belligerent Right of Visit and Search of Merchant Vessels and Civil Aircraft).
222
Refer to 15.15.1 (Grounds for the Capture of Neutral Vessels and Aircraft).
967
Contraband goods are liable to capture at any place beyond neutral territory, if their
destination is the territory belonging to, or occupied by, an opposing belligerent State. 223
223
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.4.1.2 (Contraband goods are liable to capture at any place beyond neutral territory, if their
destination is the territory belonging to or occupied by the enemy.); 1998 NWP 9 7.4.1.1 (same).
224
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.4.1 (Contraband consists of goods destined for the enemy of a belligerent and that may be
susceptible to use in armed conflict.); 1955 NWIP 10-2 631a (Contraband consists of all goods which are
destined for an enemy and which may be susceptible of use in war.).
225
See 2007 NWP 1-14M 7.4 (For purposes of this publication, neutral commerce comprises all commerce
between one neutral nation and another not involving materials of war or armaments ultimately destined for a
belligerent nation, and all commerce between a neutral nation and a belligerent that does not involve the carriage of
contraband or otherwise contribute to the belligerents war-fighting/war-sustaining capability.); 1998 NWP 9 7.4
footnote 88 (Although war-sustaining commerce is not subject to precise definition, commerce that indirectly but
effectively supports and sustains the belligerent's war-fighting capability properly falls within the scope of the term.
Examples of war-sustaining commerce include imports of raw materials used for the production of armaments and
exports of products the proceeds of which are used by the belligerent to purchase arms and armaments.) (internal
citations omitted).
226
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.4.1 (Contraband consists of goods destined for the enemy of a belligerent and that may be
susceptible to use in armed conflict. Traditionally, contraband has been divided into two categories: absolute and
conditional. Absolute contraband consisted of goods the character of which made it obvious that they were destined
for use in armed conflict, such as munitions, weapons, uniforms, and the like. Conditional contraband consisted of
goods equally susceptible to either peaceful or warlike purposes, such as foodstuffs, construction materials, and
fuel.). See also The Peterhoff, 72 U.S. 28, 52-53 (1867) (The classification of goods as contraband or not
contraband has much perplexed text writers and jurists. A strictly accurate and satisfactory classification is perhaps
impracticable; but that which is best supported by American and English decisions may be said to divide all
merchandise into three classes. Of these classes, the first consists of articles manufactured and primarily and
ordinarily used for military purposes in time of war; the second, of articles which may be and are used for purposes
of war or peace, according to circumstances; and the third, of articles exclusively used for peaceful purposes.
Merchandise of the first class, destined to a belligerent country or places occupied by the army or navy of a
belligerent, is always contraband; merchandise of the second class is contraband only when actually destined to the
military or naval use of a belligerent; while merchandise of the third class is not contraband at all, though liable to
seizure and condemnation for violation of blockade or siege.).
968
Whether it is possible to distinguish between absolute contraband and conditional
contraband may depend on the extent to which the enemy government controls imports and the
scale of the conflict. For example, during World War II, belligerent States largely did not
distinguish between absolute and conditional contraband because of the involvement of virtually
the entire population in support of the war effort and because the belligerent States exercised
governmental control over all imports. 227
15.12.1.2 Free Goods That Are Exempt From Capture as Contraband. Certain
goods qualify as free goods, meaning that they are exempt from capture by belligerent States
as contraband even though they are destined for enemy territory. Free goods include the
following:
equipment exclusively intended for the treatment of wounded and sick members of armed
forces or for the prevention of disease, provided that the particulars regarding the voyage
of such equipment have been notified to and approved by the opposing belligerent
State; 228
consignments of certain types of relief goods (e.g., medical supplies and religious
materials for civilians; clothing and medicine for children under fifteen, expectant
mothers, and maternity cases), under certain conditions; 229
certain types of relief consignments intended for the benefit of the population of occupied
territory; 230
items destined for POWs, including individual parcels and collective relief shipments
containing food, clothing, medical supplies, religious objects, and educational, cultural,
and athletic articles; 231 and
other goods that are specifically exempted from capture by an applicable treaty or by a
special arrangement between belligerent States. 232
227
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.4.1 (The practice of belligerents during the Second World War collapsed the traditional
distinction between absolute and conditional contraband. Because of the involvement of virtually the entire
population in support of the war effort, the belligerents of both sides tended to exercise governmental control over
all imports. Consequently, it became increasingly difficult to draw a meaningful distinction between goods destined
for an enemy government and its armed forces and goods destined for consumption by the civilian populace. As a
result, belligerents treated all imports directly or indirectly sustaining the war effort as contraband without making a
distinction between absolute and conditional contraband.).
228
Refer to 7.13 (Chartered Medical Transport Ships).
229
Refer to 5.19.3 (Passage of Relief Consignments).
230
Refer to 11.17 (Relief).
231
Refer to 9.20.3 (Receipt of Individual and Collective Relief Shipments for POWs).
232
For example, HAGUE XI art. 1 (The postal correspondence of neutrals or belligerents, whatever its official or
private character may be, found on the high seas on board a neutral or enemy ship, is inviolable. If the ship is
detained, the correspondence is forwarded by the captor with the least possible delay.). See also TUCKER, THE
LAW OF WAR AND NEUTRALITY AT SEA 91 (From a formal point of view it must probably be concluded that these
provisions remain binding today upon the parties to Hague Convention XI. On the other hand, it is difficult to avoid
969
In practice, neutral States have provided belligerent States of both sides with information
regarding the nature, timing, and route of shipments of goods constituting exceptions to
contraband, and obtained approval for their safe conduct and entry into belligerent owned or
occupied territory. 233
15.12.1.3 Contraband Lists. Belligerent States may declare contraband lists at the
initiation of hostilities to notify neutral States of the type of goods considered to be absolute or
conditional contraband, as well as those not considered to be contraband at all (i.e., exempt or
free goods). The precise nature of a belligerent States contraband list may vary according to
the circumstances of the conflict. 234
Although there has been no conflict of a similar scale and magnitude to World War II, in
the years following the conclusion of that conflict State practice indicates that, to the extent
international law may continue to require publication of contraband lists, the requirement may be
satisfied by a listing of exempt goods. 235
the conclusion that the events of the two World Wars have reduced the significance of these provisions almost to a
vanishing point.).
233
1989 NWP 9 7.4.1.2 (It is customary for neutral nations to provide belligerents of both sides with information
regarding the nature, timing, and route of shipments of goods constituting exceptions to contraband and to obtain
approval for their safe conduct and entry into belligerent owned or occupied territory.). Compare 5.19.3.1
(Technical Arrangements for the Passage and Distribution of Relief Consignments).
234
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.4.1 (Belligerents may declare contraband lists at the initiation of hostilities to notify
neutral nations of the type of goods considered to be absolute or conditional contraband, as well as those not
considered to be contraband at all (i.e., exempt or free goods). The precise nature of a belligerents contraband list
may vary according to the circumstances of the conflict.); 1955 NWIP 10-2 631b (BELLIGERENT
CONTRABAND DECLARATIONS. Upon the initiation of armed conflict, belligerents may declare contraband
lists, setting forth therein the classification of articles to be regarded as contraband, as well as the distinction to be
made between goods considered as absolute contraband and goods considered as conditional contraband. The
precise nature of a belligerents contraband list may vary according to the particular circumstances of the armed
conflict.).
235
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.4.1 (Though there has been no conflict of similar scale and magnitude since the Second
World War, postWorld War II-practice indicates that, to the extent international law may continue to require
publication of contraband lists, the requirement may be satisfied by a listing of exempt goods.).
236
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.4.1.2 (It is immaterial whether the carriage of contraband is direct, involves
transshipment, or requires overland transport.); 1998 NWP 9 7.4.1.1 (same). Consider 1909 DECLARATION OF
LONDON art. 30 (Absolute contraband is liable to capture if it is shown to be destined to territory belonging to or
occupied by the enemy, or to the armed forces of the enemy. It is immaterial whether the carriage of the goods is
direct or entails transhipment or a subsequent transport by land.).
970
and contraband goods may be captured, even if there are neutral ports that are intended to be
visited between the point of capture and the ultimate destination. 237
the neutral vessel is to call at an enemy port before arriving at a neutral port for which the
goods are documented;
the goods are documented to a neutral port serving as a port of transit to an enemy, even
though they are consigned to a neutral; or
the goods are consigned to order or to an unnamed consignee, but are destined for a
neutral State in the vicinity of enemy territory. 238
237
The Pedro, 175 U.S. 354, 365-66 (1899) (In The Circassian, it was ruled that the intent to violate a blockade,
found as a fact, was not disproved by evidence of a purpose to call at a neutral port, not reached at time of capture,
with ulterior destination to the blockaded port. In The Bermuda, the actual destination to a belligerent port, whether
ulterior or direct, was held to determine, the character of the transaction as a whole; that transhipment could not
change the effect of the pursuit of a common object by a common plan; and that if the cargo was contraband its
condemnation was justified, whether the voyage was to ports blockaded or to ports not blockaded; and so as to the
vessel in the former case. And in The Springbok, it was held that an intention to tranship cargo at a neutral port did
not save it when destined for a blockaded port; that as to cargo, both in law and intent, the voyage from London to
the blockaded port was one voyage, and that the liability attached from the time of sailing if captured during any part
of that voyage.).
238
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.4.1.2 (When contraband is involved, a destination of enemy owned or occupied territory
may be presumed when: 1. The neutral vessel is to call at an enemy port before arriving at a neutral port for which
the goods are documented; 2. The goods are documented to a neutral port serving as a port of transit to an enemy,
even though they are consigned to a neutral; or 3. The goods are consigned to order or to an unnamed consignee,
but are destined for a neutral nation in the vicinity of enemy territory.); 1998 NWP 9 7.4.1.1 (substantially the
same).
239
1955 NWIP 10-2 631c(1) note 21 (The circumstances creating a presumption of ultimate enemy destination
enumerated in subparagraphs 631c 1 and 2 are of concern to operating naval commanders for the reason that
circumstances held to create a presumption of enemy destination constitute sufficient cause for capture. Before a
prize court each of these presumptions is rebuttable and whether or not a prize court will, in fact, condemn the
captured cargo, and vessel (or aircraft), will depend upon a number of complex considerations with which an
operating naval commander need not be concerned.).
240
See TUCKER, THE LAW OF WAR AND NEUTRALITY AT SEA 272-73 (In this connection the belligerents task has
been facilitated still further by the creation of a detailed set of presumptions governing hostile destination. Thus a
presumption of enemy destination has been held to arise where goods are consigned to order, or if the ships papers
do not indicate the real consignee of the goods, or if goods are merely consigned to a dealer or agent and the
ultimate buyer is unknown, or if the parties engaged in the transactionthough knownhave or are suspected of
having enemy connections. In any of the foregoing circumstances the inference of an ultimate enemy destination
has been strong and could be displaced only by a positive showing that the goods in question had an innocent
destination.).
971
These presumptions of the destination of enemy territory are not sufficient to establish
that the property is destined for use by an enemy government or its armed forces, which would
be necessary to establish a basis for the forfeiture of the property if the property is classified as
conditional contraband. 241
The certificate is not a guarantee that the vessel or aircraft will not be subject to visit and
search or that cargo will not be seized. (Changed circumstances, such as a change in status of the
neutral vessel, between the time of issuance of the certificate and the time of interception at sea
may cause it to be invalidated.) Conversely, the absence of a navicert or aircert is not, in itself, a
valid ground for seizure of cargo. 244
Navicerts and aircerts issued by one belligerent State do not limit the visit and search
rights of an opposing belligerent State. When a neutral ship or aircraft accepts a navicert or
aircert from one belligerent State, this may affect how the other belligerent State views the
neutrality of that aircraft or vessel. 245
241
Refer to 15.12.1.1 (Distinction Between Absolute and Conditional Contraband).
242
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.4.2 (A certificate of noncontraband carriage is a document issued by a belligerent consular
or other designated official to a neutral vessel (navicert) or neutral aircraft (aircert) certifying that the cargo being
carried has been examined, usually at the initial place of departure, and has been found to be free of contraband.
The purpose of such a navicert or aircert is to facilitate belligerent control of contraband goods with minimal
interference and delay of neutral commerce.); 1998 NWP 9 7.4.2 (same).
243
See Malcolm Moos, The Navicert in World War II, 38 AJIL 115 (1944) (In view of their favorable experience
with the navicert during World War I, its revival by the British in December 1939, occasioned no surprise. The
term navicert is derived from the code word navicert, and in essence is a commercial passport designed to
facilitated the passage of consignments through the British blockade.). Refer to 12.6 (Military Passports, Safe-
Conducts, and Safeguards).
244
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.4.2 (The certificate is not a guarantee that the vessel or aircraft will not be subject to visit
and search or that cargo will not be seized. (Changed circumstances, such as a change in status of the neutral vessel,
between the time of issuance of the certificate and the time of interception at sea may cause it to be invalidated.)
Conversely, absence of a navicert or aircert is not, in itself, a valid ground for seizure of cargo.); 1998 NWP 7.4.2
(same).
245
See TUCKER, THE LAW OF WAR AND NEUTRALITY AT SEA 322-23 (In this connection a problem of considerable
importance arises as a result of the attempt by belligerents to institute a system of passes for neutral shipping. In
principle, it is clear that such devices as the navicert and ships warrant are intended to establish an effective control
over the activities of neutral merchant vessels. Neutral merchant vessels by submitting to such a system thereby
ease the belligerent's task of patrolling the high seas in search either of contraband carriers or of blockade runners.
It seems reasonably well-established that a neutral merchant vessel in accepting a safe-conduct pass from a
belligerent subjects itself to the control of the latter and performs an act of unneutral service. The same conclusion
972
A similar procedure was used during the Cuban Missile Crisis, when the United States
issued clearance certificates (clearcerts). 246
15.13 BELLIGERENT RIGHT OF VISIT AND SEARCH OF MERCHANT VESSELS AND CIVIL AIRCRAFT
Belligerent warships and military aircraft have a right of visit and search of merchant
vessels and civil aircraft outside of neutral territory.
15.13.1 Purposes of Visit and Search. The belligerent right of visit and search may be
viewed as a necessary part of the belligerents right to capture enemy merchant vessels and civil
aircraft, and to capture neutral merchant vessels and civil aircraft that have engaged in violations
of neutrality. 247 Thus, for example, visit and search has been conducted with the object of: 248
ascertaining the character of the vessel or aircraft and nationality (including assessing
whether a vessel or aircraft that is flagged to a neutral State has acquired enemy character
by engaging in service to the enemy); 249
verifying whether the vessel or aircraft has committed another violation of neutrality
making it liable to capture. 252
would appear warranted in the case of a neutral vessel that cooperates with a belligerent by voluntarily applying for,
and accepting, a navicert or ships warrant.).
246
Press Release: U.S. Acts To Avoid Delays for Ships Transiting Waters in Vicinity of Cuba, Oct. 27, 1962, 47
DEPARTMENT OF STATE BULLETIN 747 (Nov. 12, 1962) (The Department of State announced on October 27 the
institution of a system of clearances to assist vessels which transit waters in the vicinity of Cuba and vessels destined
for Cuban ports with cargoes containing no offensive weapons or associated materiel. The system, developed by the
State, Defense, and Treasury Departments, is designed to avoid unnecessary delays and other difficulties arising out
of the stoppage, inspection, or possible diversion of ships. The system is for the convenience of shipping, and
clearances are obtainable upon application by ships owners, agents, or officers. A vessel departing a United States
port may obtain a special clearance from customs authorities at the port of departure. A vessel departing a foreign
port may obtain the clearance from an American consulate.).
247
See, e.g., The Nereide, 13 U.S. 388, 427-28 (1815) (Belligerents have a full and perfect right to capture enemy
goods and articles going to their enemy which are contraband of war. To the exercise of that right the right of search
is essential. It is a mean justified by the end. It has been truely denominated a right growing out of, and ancillary to
the greater right of capture. Where this greater right may be legally exercised without search, the right of search can
never arise or come into question.).
248
1928 PAN AMERICAN MARITIME NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 1(1) (Warships of the belligerents have the right
to stop and visit on the high seas and in territorial waters that are not neutral any merchant ship with the object of
ascertaining its character and nationality and of verifying whether it conveys cargo prohibited by international law
or has committed any violation of blockade.).
249
Refer to 15.14 (Acquisition of Enemy Character by Neutral-Flagged Merchant Vessels and Neutral-Marked
Civil Aircraft).
250
Refer to 15.12 (Neutral Commerce and Carriage of Contraband).
251
Refer to 13.10 (Blockade).
973
15.13.2 Types of Neutral Vessels and Aircraft That Are Exempt From Visit and Search.
Certain neutral vessels and aircraft are exempt from the belligerent right of visit and search: (1)
neutral warships; (2) neutral State aircraft (including military aircraft); (3) ships of neutral States
used only on government non-commercial service; and (4) neutral merchant vessels under
convoy of neutral warships of the same nationality, and neutral aircraft accompanied by neutral
military aircraft of the same nationality.
15.13.2.1 Neutral Warships. Neutral warships may not be subjected to visit and
search because they have complete immunity from the jurisdiction of any State other than the
flag State. 253
252
Refer to 15.15.1 (Grounds for the Capture of Neutral Vessels and Aircraft).
253
Consider LOS CONVENTION art. 95 (Warships on the high seas have complete immunity from the jurisdiction of
any State other than the flag State.).
254
Refer to 14.3.1 (State Versus Civil Aircraft); 14.3.3.1 (Military Aircraft Rights and Liabilities).
255
Consider LOS CONVENTION art. 96 (Ships owned or operated by a State and used only on government non-
commercial service shall, on the high seas, have complete immunity from the jurisdiction of any State other than the
flag State.).
256
For example, John H. McNeill, Neutral Rights and Maritime Sanctions: The Effects of Two Gulf Wars, 31
VIRGINIA JOURNAL OF INTERNATIONAL LAW 631, 635 (1991) (And in July 1987, eleven Kuwaiti-owned tankers
were registered under the U.S. flag and escorted by the U.S. Navy. To many, this reflagging procedure appeared to
be a logical expedient, not for repudiating the rules concerning contraband, but rather for protecting these vessels
against the attack-on-sight of neutral shipping, in addition to whatever U.S. foreign policy objectives the reflagging
served. In effect, the U.S. relied upon the ancient doctrine of right of convoy under which belligerents cannot visit
and search convoyed ships and are to be satisfied with the declaration of the commander of the convoy that no cargo
which can be considered contraband is on board the convoyed ships.).
257
Consider 1909 DECLARATION OF LONDON art. 61 (Neutral vessels under national convoy are exempt from
search. The commander of a convoy gives, in writing, at the request of the commander of a belligerent warship, all
information as to the character of the vessels and their cargoes, which could be obtained by search.).
974
nationality are exempt from visit and search because the neutral State has provided an assurance
that the neutral vessel is not engaged in violations of neutrality. 258
If a convoy commander determines that a vessel under his or her charge possesses enemy
character or carries contraband cargo, the commander is obliged to withdraw his or her
protection from the offending vessel, making it liable to visit and search, and possible capture, by
opposing belligerent warships. 259
Neutral civil aircraft accompanied by neutral military aircraft of the same flag may also
be exempt from visit and search if the following two elements are met:
the flag State of a neutral military aircraft warrants that the neutral civil aircraft is not
carrying contraband cargo; and
the commander of the neutral military aircraft provides to the intercepting belligerent
military aircraft upon request all information as to the character and cargo of the neutral
civil aircraft that would otherwise be obtained by a visit and search. 260
15.13.3 Where Belligerents May Not Exercise the Right of Visit and Search. As an act of
hostility, the belligerent right of visit and search may not be conducted within neutral territory
(e.g., a neutral States territorial seas and neutral airspace). 261 This prohibition on the exercise of
the belligerent right of visit and search extends to international straits overlapped by neutral
territorial seas and to archipelagic sea lanes. 262
258
See General Report to the Conference, reprinted in JAMES BROWN SCOTT, THE DECLARATION OF LONDON
FEBRUARY 26, 1909 177-78 (1920) (The principle laid down is simple; a neutral vessel under the convoy of a war-
ship of her own nationality is exempt from search. The reason for this rule is that the belligerent cruiser ought to be
able to find in the assurances of the commander of the convoy as good a guaranty as would be afforded by the
exercise of the right of search itself; in fact, she can not call in question the assurances given by the official
representative of a neutral Government without displaying a lack of international courtesy.).
259
Consider 1909 DECLARATION OF LONDON art. 62 (If the commander of the belligerent warship has reason to
suspect that the confidence of the commander of the convoy has been abused, he communicates his suspicions to
him. In such a case it is for the commander of the convoy alone to investigate the matter. He must record the result
of such investigation in a report, of which a copy is handed to the officer of the warship. If, in the opinion of the
commander of the convoy, the facts shown in the report justify the capture of one or more vessels, the protection of
the convoy must be withdrawn from such vessels.).
260
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.6.3 (Neutral civilian aircraft accompanied by neutral military aircraft of the same flag are
exempt from visit and search if the neutral military aircraft (1) warrants that the neutral civilian aircraft is not
carrying contraband cargo and (2) provides to the intercepting belligerent military aircraft upon request such
information as to the character and cargo of the neutral civilian aircraft as would otherwise be obtained in visit and
search.).
261
See HAGUE XIII art. 2 (Any act of hostility, including capture and the exercise of the right of search, committed
by belligerent war-ships in the territorial waters of a neutral Power, constitutes a violation of neutrality and is strictly
forbidden.); 1928 PAN AMERICAN MARITIME NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 1(1) (Warships of the belligerents
have the right to stop and visit on the high seas and in territorial waters that are not neutral any merchant ship with
the object of ascertaining its character and nationality and of verifying whether it conveys cargo prohibited by
international law or has committed any violation of blockade.).
262
Refer to 15.8 (Passage of Belligerent Vessels and Aircraft Through International Straits and Archipelagic Sea
Lanes).
975
15.13.4 Procedure for Visit and Search of Merchant Vessels and Aircraft. Belligerent
States have discretion in formulating their procedures for conducting the visit and search of
neutral merchant vessels and aircraft. 263 Generally, the belligerent warship or aircraft visits or
intercepts the vessel or aircraft, shows its true colors, and provides a clear signal to the merchant
vessel or civil aircraft that it is expected to submit to visit and search. 264
During armed conflict, specific rules of engagement or other special instructions may be
issued by the operational chain of command to provide guidance on the visit and search
procedure to be carried out by U.S. warships and military aircraft when exercising the belligerent
States right of visit and search of merchant vessels and civil aircraft. For example, the issuance
of certificates of non-contraband carriage may be part of such procedures. 265 In the absence of
specific guidance from the operational chain of command, Military Department or Service
regulations or guidance may provide the applicable procedures. 266
15.13.4.1 Use of Force During Visit and Search. Merchant vessels or civil
aircraft that comply with instructions given to them may not be made the object of attack;
merchant ships or civil aircraft that refuse to comply may be stopped by force. 267 Merchant
ships or civil aircraft that resist visit and search assume the risk of resulting damage. 268 Such
263
TUCKER, THE LAW OF WAR AND NEUTRALITY AT SEA 336 (Customary international law does not lay down
detailed rules governing the mode of conducting visit and search and belligerents have always enjoyed a certain
discretion in this regard. In general, however, a substantial measure of uniformity came to characterize the
traditional practices of states, and this uniformity was reflected in the special instructions issued by maritime powers
to their naval forces.).
264
TUCKER, THE LAW OF WAR AND NEUTRALITY AT SEA 336 (Before calling upon a neutral merchantman to
submit to visitation a belligerent warship is required to show its true colors. In addition, visitation must be preceded
by a clear signal on the part of the warship that the merchant vessel is expected to stop and bring to. The
notification of intention to visit may be accomplished by any of several means, e. g., by firing a blank charge, by
international flag signal, or even by radio. Nor does international law prescribe the distance a belligerent warship
must keep from the vessel being visited, which may vary according to the conditions of the sea, the size and
character of the visiting warship, and many other factors.).
265
Refer to 15.12.3 (Certificate of Noncontraband Carriage).
266
See, e.g., 2007 NWP 1-14M 7.6.1 (In the absence of specific rules of engagement or other special instructions
issued by the operational chain of command during a period of armed conflict, the following procedure should be
carried out by U.S. warships exercising the belligerent right of visit and search of merchant vessels:).
267
1928 PAN AMERICAN MARITIME NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 1(1) (If the merchant ship does not heed the
signal to stop, it may be pursued by the warship and stopped by force; outside of such a case the ship cannot be
attacked unless, after being hailed, it fails to observe the instructions given it.).
268
See Eleanor, 15 U.S. 345, 358 (1817) (To detain for examination is a right which a belligerant may exercise over
every vessel, not a national vessel, that he meets with on the ocean. And whatever may be the injury that casually
results to an individual from the act of another while pursuing the reasonable exercise of an established right, it is his
misfortune. The law pronounces it damnum absque injuria, and the individual from whose act it proceeds is liable
neither at law nor in the forum of conscience. And the principal right necessarily carries with it also all the means
essential to its exercise. Thus, in the present case, a vessel must be pursued in order to be detained for examination.
But if in the pursuit she had been dismasted, and upset or stranded, or run on shore and lost, it would have been an
unfortunate case, but the pursuing vessel would have stood acquitted.).
976
vessels or aircraft also may be deemed to acquire the character of enemy merchant ships or civil
aircraft. 269
All vessels operating under an enemy flag, and all aircraft bearing enemy markings,
possess enemy character. However, the fact that a ship flies a neutral flag, or that an aircraft
bears neutral markings, does not necessarily establish the neutral character of the vessel or
aircraft. Vessels or aircraft may acquire enemy character from (1) the ownership or control of
the vessel or aircraft, or (2) their conduct.
977
subject to treatment as enemy merchant vessels or civil aircraft, including being subject to
capture. 276
acting in any capacity as a naval or military auxiliary to the enemys armed forces. 279
For example, such vessels and aircraft may be made the object of attack outside of neutral
territory. 280
276
Refer to 13.5 (Enemy Merchant Vessels).
277
Refer to 7.4.6 (Collection and Care of the Wounded, Sick, and Shipwrecked by Neutral Vessels); 7.12.1.3
(Authorized Neutral Civilian Hospital Ships).
278
See, e.g., 2007 NWP 1-14M 7.5.1 (Neutral merchant vessels and civil aircraft acquire enemy character and
may be treated by a belligerent as enemy warships and military aircraft when engaged in either of the following acts:
1. Taking a direct part in the hostilities on the side of the enemy 2. Acting in any capacity as a naval or military
auxiliary to the enemys armed forces.); 1955 NWIP 10-2 501a (Neutral merchant vessels and aircraft acquire
enemy character and are liable to the same treatment as enemy warships and military aircraft (see paragraph 503a)
when engaging in the following acts: 1. Taking a direct part in the hostilities on the side of an enemy; 2. Acting in
any capacity as a naval or military auxiliary to an enemys armed forces.).
279
See also TUCKER, THE LAW OF WAR AND NEUTRALITY AT SEA 321 (The general principle involved is
reasonably clear, and no attempt need be made to enumerate all of the acts that may result in this assimilation to an
enemys armed forces. It is not the mere fact of assisting a belligerent that permits this severe treatment. Nor is it
simply the consideration that the belligerent exercises a close control and direction over the neutral merchant vessel.
The decisive consideration is rather that the services rendered are in direct support of the belligerents military
operations. It is this support, leading as it does to the identification of the neutral merchant vessel (or aircraft) with
the belligerents naval or military forces, that permits a treatment similar to that meted out to these forces.).
280
Refer to 13.4 (Enemy Warships).
978
by a belligerent as enemy merchant vessels or civil aircraft when engaged in either of the
following acts: 281
resisting an attempt to establish identity, including resisting visit and search. 282
For example, such vessels and aircraft may be captured and, under certain circumstances,
destroyed. 283
Certain neutral merchant vessels and civil aircraft may be captured outside neutral
territory.
15.15.1 Grounds for the Capture of Neutral Vessels and Aircraft. Neutral-flagged
merchant vessels or neutral-marked civil aircraft that have acquired enemy character are liable to
capture. 284 In addition, neutral merchant vessels and civil aircraft are, in general, liable to
capture by a belligerent States warships and military aircraft if performing any of the following
acts: 285
281
See, e.g., 2007 NWP 1-14M 7.5.2 (Neutral merchant vessels and civil aircraft acquire enemy character and
may be treated by a belligerent as enemy merchant vessels or civil aircraft when engaged in either of the following
acts: 1. Operating directly under enemy control, orders, charter, employment, or direction 2. Resisting an attempt to
establish identity, including resisting visit and search.); 1955 NWIP 10-2 501b (Neutral merchant vessel and
aircraft acquire enemy character and are liable to the same treatment as enemy merchant vessels and aircraft (see
paragraph 503b), when engaging in the following acts: 1. Operating directly under enemy control, orders, charter,
employment, or direction; 2. Resisting an attempt to establish identity, including visit and search.).
282
Refer to 15.13.4.1 (Use of Force During Visit and Search).
283
Refer to 13.5 (Enemy Merchant Vessels).
284
Refer to 15.14 (Acquisition of Enemy Character by Neutral-Flagged Merchant Vessels and Neutral-Marked
Civil Aircraft).
285
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.10 (Neutral merchant vessels and civil aircraft are liable to capture by belligerent
warships and military aircraft if engaged in any of the following activities: 1. Avoiding an attempt to establish
identity 2. Resisting visit and search 3. Carrying contraband 4. Breaching or attempting to breach blockade 5.
Presenting irregular or fraudulent papers; lacking necessary papers; or destroying, defacing, or concealing papers 6.
Violating regulations established by a belligerent within the immediate area of naval operations 7. Carrying
personnel in the military or public service of the enemy 8. Communicating information in the interest of the
enemy.); 1955 NWIP 10-2 503d (NEUTRAL MERCHANT VESSELS AND AIRCRAFT are in general liable to capture if
performing any of the following acts: 1. Carrying contraband (see paragraph 631d). 2. Breaking, or attempting to
break, blockade (see paragraph 632g). 3. Carrying personnel in the military or public service of an enemy. 4.
Transmitting information in the interest of an enemy. 5. Avoiding an attempt to establish identity, including visit
and search. 6. Presenting irregular or fraudulent papers; lacking necessary papers; destroying, defacing, or
concealing papers. 7. Violating regulations established by a belligerent within the immediate area of naval
operations (see paragraph 430b).).
286
Refer to 15.12 (Neutral Commerce and Carriage of Contraband).
979
carrying personnel in the military or public service of the enemy; 287
15.15.2 Procedure for Capture and Condemnation. Belligerent States have discretion in
formulating their procedures for conducting the capture and condemnation of neutral merchant
vessels and aircraft. 293 Prior exercise of the right of visit and search is not required for the
287
Cf. 1928 PAN AMERICAN MARITIME NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 12 (The neutral vessel shall be seized and in
general subjected to the same treatment as enemy merchantmen: ... d) When actually and exclusively destined for
transporting enemy troops ... .). Consider 1909 DECLARATION OF LONDON art. 45 (A neutral vessel will be
condemned and will, in a general way, receive the same treatment as a neutral vessel liable to condemnation for
carriage of contraband: (1) If she is on a voyage specially undertaken with a view to the transport of individual
passengers who are embodied in the armed forces of the enemy, . (2) If, to the knowledge of either the owner,
the charterer, or the master, she is transporting a military detachment of the enemy, or one or more persons who, in
the course of the voyage, directly assist the operations of the enemy.).
288
Cf. 1928 PAN AMERICAN MARITIME NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 12 (The neutral vessel shall be seized and in
general subjected to the same treatment as enemy merchantmen: ... d) When actually and exclusively destined ... for
the transmission of information on behalf of the enemy.). Consider 1909 DECLARATION OF LONDON art. 45 (A
neutral vessel will be condemned and will, in a general way, receive the same treatment as a neutral vessel liable to
condemnation for carriage of contraband: (1) If she is on a voyage especially undertaken with a view to the
transmission of intelligence in the interest of the enemy.).
289
Refer to 13.10.4 (Breach and Attempted Breach of Blockade).
290
Refer to 13.8 (Belligerent Control of the Immediate Area of Naval Operations).
291
Refer to 15.13.4 (Procedure for Visit and Search of Merchant Vessels and Aircraft).
292
See Carrington v. Merchants Ins. Co., 33 U.S. 495, 521-22 (1834) (Story, J.) (The belligerent has a right to
require a frank and bona fide conduct on the part of neutrals, in the course of their commerce in times of war; and if
the latter will make use of fraud, and false papers, to elude the just rights of the belligerents, and to cloak their own
illegal purposes, there is no injustice in applying to them the penalty of confiscation. The taint of the fraud travels
with the party and his offending instrument during the whole course of the voyage, and until the enterprise has, in
the understanding of the party himself, completely terminated. There are many analogous cases in the prize law,
where fraud is followed by similar penalties. Thus, if a neutral will cover up enemys property under false papers,
which also cover his own property, prize courts will not disentangle the one from the other, but condemn the whole
as good prize.).
293
See 1928 PAN AMERICAN MARITIME NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 2 (Both the detention of the vessel and its
crew for violation of neutrality shall be made in accordance with the procedure which best suits the state effecting it
and at the expense of the transgressing ship. Said state, except in the case of grave fault on its part, is not
responsible for damages which the vessel may suffer.).
980
capture of neutral-flagged vessels or neutral-marked aircraft that have acquired enemy status, if
positive determination of status can be obtained by other means. 294
Captured neutral merchant vessels and civil aircraft are sent to a port or airfield under a
belligerent States jurisdiction as a prize for adjudication by a prize court. Ordinarily, a
belligerent States warship will place a prize master and prize crew on board a captured vessel
for this purpose. Should that be impracticable, the prize may be escorted into port by a
belligerent States warship or military aircraft. In the latter circumstances, the prize must obey
the instructions of its escort or risk forcible measures. 295
A prize may not be brought into a neutral port, except under emergency circumstances. 296
A prize court cannot be set up by a belligerent on neutral territory or on a vessel in neutral
waters. 297
15.15.3 Destruction of Neutral Prizes. Although the destruction of a neutral prize is not
absolutely forbidden, it involves a much more serious responsibility than the destruction of an
enemy prize. 300 Thus, a higher standard is applicable than for the destruction of enemy prizes. 301
294
1955 NWIP 10-2 502a (Historically, visit and search was considered the only legally acceptable method for
determining whether or not a merchant vessel was subject to capture. It is now recognized that changes in warfare
have rendered this method either hazardous or impracticable in many situations. In the case of enemy merchant
vessels and aircraft and neutral merchant vessels and aircraft acquiring enemy character as described in the
preceding article, the belligerent right of capture (and, exceptionally, destruction as described in paragraph 503b)
need not be preceded by visit and search, provided that a positive determination of status can be obtained by other
methods.).
295
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.10 (Captured vessels and aircraft are sent to a port or airfield under belligerent jurisdiction
as a prize for adjudication by a prize court. Ordinarily, a belligerent warship will place a prize master and prize
crew on board a captured vessel for this purpose. Should that be impracticable, the prize may be escorted into port
by a belligerent warship or military aircraft. In the latter circumstances, the prize must obey the instructions of its
escort or risk forcible measures.); 1998 NWP 9 7.10 (substantially the same).
296
Refer to 15.9.5 (Prizes in Neutral Ports or Roadsteads).
297
HAGUE XIII art. 4 (A Prize Court cannot be set up by a belligerent on neutral territory or on a vessel in neutral
waters.).
298
See, e.g., 2007 NWP 1-14M 7.10 (Neutral vessels or aircraft attempting to resist proper capture lay themselves
open to forcible measures by belligerent warships and military aircraft and assume all risk of resulting damage.);
1989 NWP 9 7.9 (same).
299
Refer to 15.13.4.1 (Use of Force During Visit and Search).
300
1955 NWIP 10-2 509e (Although the destruction of a neutral prize is not absolutely forbidden, it involves a
much more serious responsibility than the destruction of an enemy prize.).
301
Refer to 13.5.1.3 (Destruction of Captured Enemy Merchant Vessels).
981
Every reasonable effort should be made to avoid destruction of captured neutral vessels
and aircraft. 302 A capturing officer, therefore, should not order such destruction without being
entirely satisfied that the prize can neither be sent to a belligerent State port or airfield nor, in his
or her opinion, properly be released. 303
Should it become necessary that the prize be destroyed, the capturing officer must
provide for the safety of the passengers and crew. 304 In that event, all documents and papers
relating to the prize should be preserved. If practicable, the personal effects of passengers should
also be safeguarded. 305
15.15.4.1 Officers and Crews of Captured Neutral Merchant Vessels and Civil
Aircraft. The officers and crews of captured neutral merchant vessels and civil aircraft who are
nationals of a neutral State should not be made POWs, 306 even if the vessel or aircraft has
acquired the character of enemy merchant vessels or aircraft. 307 However, if the vessel or
aircraft has acquired the character of an enemy warship or military aircraft, 308 the officers and
crew may be held as POWs. 309
302
2006 AUSTRALIAN MANUAL 6.59 (Every effort should be made to avoid destruction of a captured neutral
vessel.).
303
1955 NWIP 10-2 509e (A capturing officer, therefore, should never order such destruction without being
entirely satisfied that the military reasons therefore justify it, i.e. under circumstances such that a prize can neither be
sent in nor, in his opinion, properly released.).
304
1928 PAN AMERICAN MARITIME NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 1(1) (The ship shall not be rendered incapable
of navigation before the crew and passengers have been placed in safety.); Treaty for the Limitation and Reduction
of Naval Armament, art. 22, Apr. 22, 1930, 46 STAT. 2858, 2881-82 (In particular, except in the case of persistent
refusal to stop on being duly summoned, or of active resistance to visit or search, a warship, whether surface vessel
or submarine, may not sink or render incapable of navigation a merchant vessel without having first placed
passengers, crew and ships papers in a place of safety. For this purpose the ship's boats are not regarded as a place
of safety unless the safety of the passengers and crew is assured, in the existing sea and weather conditions, by the
proximity of land, or the presence of another vessel which is in a position to take them on board.). Consider
Procs-Verbal Relating to the Rules of Submarine Warfare Set Forth in Part IV of the Treaty of London of April 22,
1930, Nov. 6, 1936, 173 LNTS 353, 357 (same).
305
1955 NWIP 10-2 509e (Should the necessity for the destruction of a neutral prize arise, it is the duty of the
capturing officer to provide for the safety of the passengers and crew. All documents and papers relating to a neutral
prize should be saved. If practicable, the personal effects of passengers should be saved. Every case of destruction
of a neutral prize should be reported promptly to a higher command.).
306
1955 NWIP 10-2 513a (The officers and crews of captured neutral merchant vessels and aircraft who are
nationals of a neutral State should not be made prisoners of war.). See also TUCKER, THE LAW OF WAR AND
NEUTRALITY AT SEA 347 (In seizing neutral vessels the belligerent incurs certain duties that have long enjoyed the
sanction of state practice. Unless the neutral nationals serving as officers and crew of neutral vessels have taken a
direct part in the hostilities they may not be treated as prisoners of war.).
307
Refer to 15.14.2.2 (Acquiring the Character of an Enemy Merchant Vessel or Civil Aircraft).
308
Refer to 15.14.2.1 (Acquiring the Character of an Enemy Warship or Military Aircraft).
309
See 2007 NWP 1-14M 7.10.2 (This rule applies equally to the officers and crews of neutral vessels and aircraft
that assumed the character of enemy merchant vessels or aircraft by operating under enemy control or resisting visit
and search. If, however, the neutral vessels or aircraft had taken a direct part in the hostilities on the side of the
982
15.15.4.2 Enemy Nationals Found Onboard Neutral Merchant Vessels and Civil
Aircraft. Belligerents have a right to remove certain enemy persons from neutral vessels or
aircraft, even if there are no grounds for the capture of the vessel or aircraft as prize. 310 Enemy
nationals found onboard a neutral States merchant vessels or civil aircraft as passengers who
are:
engaged in, or suspected of engagement in, service in the interests of the enemy State; 312
also may be interned until a determination of their status has been made. 313
enemy or had served in any way as a naval or military auxiliary for the enemy, they thereby assumed the character
of enemy warships or military aircraft and, upon capture, their officers and crew may be interned as prisoners of
war.); 1955 NWIP 10-2 513a endnote 41 (This paragraph is applicable as well to the officers and crews,
nationals of a neutral state, of captured neutral merchant vessels and aircraft which have acquired enemy character
and which are liable to the same treatment as enemy merchant vessels and aircraft, as described in paragraph 501b.
Hence, a distinction must be made between the treatment accorded to neutral merchant vessels acquiring enemy
character, and the treatment accorded to the personnel of such vessels. There is a clear exception, however, in the
case of personnel of neutral vessels and aircraft which take a direct part in the hostilities on the side of an enemy or
which serve in any way as a naval or military auxiliary for an enemy.).
310
TUCKER, THE LAW OF WAR AND NEUTRALITY AT SEA 328 (Despite neutral opposition during World War I to
conceding any belligerent right to remove enemy persons from neutral merchant vessels at sea, it would now seem
thatin principlethe practice of states may be regarded as having sanctioned this belligerent measure.).
311
Consider DECLARATION OF LONDON art. 47 (Any individual embodied in the armed forces of the enemy who is
found on board a neutral merchant vessel, may be made a prisoner of war, even though there be no ground for the
capture of the vessel.).
312
CDR Joe Munster, Removal of Persons from Neutral Shipping, THE JAG JOURNAL: THE OFFICE OF THE JUDGE
ADVOCATE JOURNAL OF THE NAVY 3, 18 (Oct. 1952) (It appears unlikely that the old rules concerning the removal
of persons from neutral shipping can much longer survive, even extended to include reservists. With the increasing
development of science it would appear foolhardly for a nation to permit an Oppenheimer, a Millikan, a Fermi, an
Einstein, or any accomplished atomic or neuclear [sic] physicist to return to his own country, if that country be an
opposing belligerent. An expert in guided missiles would be more important to a belligerent country than an
ordinary soldier; and notwithstanding the expert is not embodied in the armed services it would appear that the
rules and regulations of international law must be amended to bring them into line with the requirements of
belligerent necessity. It does not appear that neutrals can properly maintain that no persons other than those
connected with the military, either entirely or in a reserve status, may be removed from neutral shipping.).
313
2007 NWP 1-14M 7.10.2 (Enemy nationals found on board neutral merchant vessels and civil aircraft as
passengers who are actually embodied in the military forces of the enemy, who are en route to serve in the enemys
armed forces, who are employed in the public service of the enemy, or who may be engaged in or suspected of
service in the interests of the enemy may be made prisoners of war. All such enemy nationals may be removed from
the neutral vessel or aircraft whether or not there is reason for its capture as a neutral prize.); 1955 NWIP 10-2
513b (Enemy nationals found on board neutral merchant vessels and aircraft as passengers who are actually
embodied in the military forces of an enemy, or who are en route to serve in an enemys military forces, or who are
employed in the public service of an enemy, or who may be engaged in or suspected of service in the interests of an
enemy may be made prisoners of war.).
983
15.16 BELLIGERENT FORCES TAKING REFUGE IN NEUTRAL TERRITORY
Neutral States have rights and duties with respect to the treatment of belligerent State
forces that enter, or seek to enter, their territory. Generally, a neutral State is required to intern a
belligerent States forces to ensure that they do not return to the armed conflict. 314
15.16.1 Discretion of the Neutral State in Offering Asylum to Belligerent Forces Seeking
Refuge. A neutral State has discretion in whether to permit belligerent forces seeking refuge to
enter its territory.
15.16.1.2 Neutral Duty to Disarm and Intern the Belligerent Forces. If the
belligerent forces are permitted to seek refuge in neutral territory, the neutral State must take
appropriate measures to ensure that these forces will no longer participate in the armed conflict.
314
For example, I REPORT OF THE INTERNATIONAL COMMITTEE OF THE RED CROSS ON ITS ACTIVITIES DURING THE
SECOND WORLD WAR (SEPTEMBER 1, 1939 - JUNE 30, 1947) 557 (1948) (Neutral States. The Swiss Government
agreed, in June 1940, to receive on their territory and to intern 32,000 men of the 45th French Army Corps and
13,000 men of the 2nd Polish Division. After the repatriation of the French internees in January 1941, the Polish
Division remained, and in 1943, the authorities interned 23,000 men of the Italian forces. In addition, individual
internments during hostilities amounted to 7,000 combatants belonging to 37 different nationalities. In September
1939, Rumania received 20,000 men of the Polish forces, who were interned. Hungary received 36,000, Lithuania
14,000 and Latvia 1,600. Other neutral countries gave refuge to a limited number of military internees of various
nationalities.); Ex parte Toscano, 208 F. 938, 939 (S.D. CA 1913) (That for several days prior to April 13, 1913,
an armed force of the Constitutionalist army attacked the same town of Naco, and on April 13, 1913, the petitioners
and other Federalist troops occupying the said town were defeated and driven out of said town of Naco, and were
pursued by the victorious Constitutionalist troops, and to avoid surrendering to the Constitutionalist force, the
Federalist troops fled with their arms across the boundary line between the United States and Mexico, and sought
refuge and asylum from the pursuing enemy in the United States. That immediately upon crossing the said neutral
boundary and reaching United States soil, the said petitioners and other Federalist troops belonging to said
belligerent army voluntarily surrendered themselves to the armed forces of the United States, which said armed
forces of the United States, acting under authority of the President of the United States, thereupon disarmed said
belligerent troops and detained and interned them pending the removal of said belligerent troops to a point within
the territory of the United States at a distance from the theater of said civil war.).
315
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 533 (A neutral is not bound to permit belligerent troops to enter its
territory.).
316
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 534 (If troops or soldiers of a belligerent are permitted to seek refuge in
neutral territory, the neutral is authorized to impose the terms upon which they may do so.).
317
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 534 (In cases of large bodies of troops seeking refuge in neutral territory,
these conditions will usually be stipulated in a convention drawn up by the representatives of the neutral power and
the senior officer of the troops.).
984
If such measures were not taken, then the neutral States territory might serve as an unlawful
sanctuary or base of operations for the belligerent. 318
Thus, belligerent forces received in neutral territory must be disarmed, and appropriate
measures must be taken to prevent their leaving the neutral State. 319 In particular, a neutral State
that receives on its territory personnel belonging to the belligerent forces shall intern them, as far
as possible, at a distance from the theater of war. 320 For example, if belligerent military aircraft
land in a neutral State, that State must intern the aircraft, aircrew, and accompanying military
personnel for the duration of the war. 321
15.16.2 Neutral Reception of the Wounded, Sick, and Shipwrecked. Like other
belligerent personnel received in neutral land territory, the wounded, sick, and shipwrecked who
are received within a neutral jurisdiction are also generally to be guarded so that they can no
longer participate in hostilities.
The costs of hospital accommodation and internment shall be borne by the belligerent
State on whom the wounded, sick, or shipwrecked persons depend. 324
318
Refer to 15.5 (Prohibition on the Use of Neutral Territory as a Base of Operations).
319
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 533 (On the other hand, it may permit them to do so without violating its
neutrality, but the troops must be interned or confined in places designated by the neutral. They must be disarmed
and appropriate measures must be taken to prevent their leaving the neutral country.).
320
HAGUE V art. 11 (A neutral Power which receives on its territory troops belonging to the belligerent armies shall
intern them, as far as possible, at a distance from the theatre of war.).
321
FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 627 (Under Article 11 of Hague V and traditional law of war
principles regarding neutral rights and obligations, when belligerent military aircraft land in a nation not party to a
conflict, the neutral must intern the aircraft, aircrew, and accompanying military personnel for the duration of the
war.).
322
Refer to 15.18.1 (Authorized Ground Transports of Wounded and Sick Combatants Through Neutral Territory).
323
GWS-SEA art. 17 (Wounded, sick or shipwrecked persons who are landed in neutral ports with the consent of
the local authorities, shall, failing arrangements to the contrary between the neutral and the belligerent Powers, be so
guarded by the neutral Power, where so required by international law, that the said persons cannot again take part in
operations of war.).
324
GWS-SEA art. 17 (The costs of hospital accommodation and internment shall be borne by the Power on whom
the wounded, sick or shipwrecked persons depend.).
985
States warship or a neutral States military aircraft, it shall be ensured, where so required by
international law, that they can take no further part in operations of war. 325
The cost of their accommodation and internment shall be borne by the State on which
they depend. 327
15.16.3 Conditions of Internment in a Neutral State. The neutral State may keep
belligerent forces in camps and even confine them in military compounds or in places set apart
for the purpose of internment. 328 Belligerent forces should be interned, as far as possible, at a
distance from the theater of war. 329
15.16.3.1 Provision of POW Treatment and Application of the GWS and GWS-
Sea by Analogy. Under Article 4B(2) of the GPW, persons who are entitled to POW status if
they fall into the power of the enemy during international armed conflict are generally entitled to
POW treatment, as a minimum, if they are interned by a neutral State under its duties under
international law. 330
325
GWS-SEA art. 15 (If wounded, sick, or shipwrecked persons are taken on board a neutral warship or a neutral
military aircraft, it shall be ensured, where so required by international law, that they can take no further part in
operations of war.).
326
GWS art. 37 (Unless otherwise agreed between the neutral Power and the Parties to the conflict, the wounded
and sick who are disembarked, with the consent of the local authorities, on neutral territory by medical aircraft, shall
be detained by the neutral Power, where so required by international law, in such a manner that they cannot again
take part in operations of war.); GWS-SEA art. 40 (same).
327
GWS art. 37 (The cost of their accommodation and internment shall be borne by the Power on which they
depend.); GWS-SEA art. 40 (same).
328
HAGUE V art. 11 (It may keep them in camps and even confine them in fortresses or in places set apart for this
purpose.).
329
HAGUE V art. 11 (A neutral Power which receives on its territory troops belonging to the belligerent armies shall
intern them, as far as possible, at a distance from the theatre of war.). Refer to 9.11.4.1 (Avoidance of the
Combat Zone); 9.11.3 (Location of POW Camps).
330
GPW art. 4B (The following shall likewise be treated as prisoners of war under the present Convention: (2)
The persons belonging to one of the categories enumerated in the present Article, who have been received by neutral
or non-belligerent Powers on their territory and whom these Powers are required to intern under international law,
without prejudice to any more favourable treatment which these Powers may choose to give and with the exception
of Articles 8, 10, 15, 30, fifth paragraph, 58-67, 92, 126 and, where diplomatic relations exist between the Parties to
the conflict and the neutral or non-belligerent Power concerned, those Articles concerning the Protecting Power.
Where such diplomatic relations exist, the Parties to a conflict on whom these persons depend shall be allowed to
perform towards them the functions of a Protecting Power as provided in the present Convention, without prejudice
to the functions which these Parties normally exercise in conformity with diplomatic and consular usage and
treaties.). Refer to 9.3.3 (Persons Entitled to POW Treatment).
986
Provisions of the GWS and GWS-Sea apply by analogy to wounded and sick, to
members of the medical personnel, and to chaplains of the armed forces of the parties to the
conflict, who are received or interned in neutral territory, as well as to deceased persons of a
State that is a party to a conflict found there. 331
The provisions of the GPW regarding the costs of POW internment and the financial
resources of POWs are not applicable to the situation of persons treated as POWs who have been
interned by a neutral State. 335
331
GWS art. 4 (Neutral Powers shall apply by analogy the provisions of the present Convention to the wounded
and sick, and to members of the medical personnel, and to chaplains of the armed forces of the Parties to the
conflict, received or interned in their territory, as well as to dead persons found.); GWS-SEA art. 5 (Neutral
Powers shall apply by analogy the provisions of the present Convention to the wounded, sick and shipwrecked, and
to members of the medical personnel and to chaplains of the armed forces of the Parties to the conflict received or
interned in their territory, as well as to dead persons found.).
332
GPW art. 4B(2) (Where such diplomatic relations exist, the Parties to a conflict on whom these persons depend
shall be allowed to perform towards them the functions of a Protecting Power as provided in the present Convention,
without prejudice to the functions which these Parties normally exercise in conformity with diplomatic and consular
usage and treaties.).
333
HAGUE V art. 12 (In the absence of a special convention to the contrary, the neutral Power shall supply the
interned with the food, clothing, and relief required by humanity. At the conclusion of peace the expenses caused by
the internment shall be made good.).
334
For example, A. PEARCE HIGGINS, THE HAGUE PEACE CONFERENCES AND OTHER INTERNATIONAL CONFERENCES
CONCERNING THE LAWS AND USAGES OF WAR: TEXTS OF CONVENTIONS WITH COMMENTARIES 293 footnote 2
(1909) (The most striking example of internment occurred in 1871 during the Franco-Prussian war when over
80,000 French troops under General Clinchant entered Swiss territory and were interned for the remainder of the
war; France at the conclusion of the war paid to Switzerland some 11 million francs for their maintenance.).
335
See GPW art. 4B (The following shall likewise be treated as prisoners of war under the present Convention:
(2) The persons belonging to one of the categories enumerated in the present Article, who have been received by
neutral or non-belligerent Powers on their territory and whom these Powers are required to intern under international
law, without prejudice to any more favourable treatment which these Powers may choose to give and with the
exception of Articles 8, 10, 15, 30, fifth paragraph, 58-67, 92, 126 and, where diplomatic relations exist between the
Parties to the conflict and the neutral or non-belligerent Power concerned, those Articles concerning the Protecting
Power.) (emphasis added).
987
15.16.4 Parole of Belligerent Personnel Interned in Neutral Territory. The neutral State
shall decide whether interned officers can be left at liberty on giving their parole not to leave the
neutral territory without permission. 336
Neutral States may release enlisted personnel on parole, prescribe penalties for violations
of parole, and authorize personnel to depart neutral territory temporarily so long as these actions
remain consistent with its obligations as a neutral State. 337 The granting of leave to an interned
officer to return to his or her own country, however, would be considered an exceptional
measure, and a neutral State inclined to grant such permission would be prudent in the first
instance to obtain the consent of the opposing belligerent State.
A neutral State may demand the return of persons who have been released on parole but
have left the neutral State in violation of their parole. 338 If such persons return to the State in
whose armed forces they serve, that State is obliged to return them to the neutral State at its
request. 339
15.16.5 Military Equipment and Supplies of Belligerent Forces Taking Refuge. The
munitions, arms, vehicles, equipment, and other supplies that the interned forces are allowed to
bring with them into a neutral State are likewise detained by the neutral State. A belligerent
States military equipment and supplies, whether its own or captured, which are brought on to
neutral territory must be returned at the end of the armed conflict to the State to which the items
336
HAGUE V art. 11 (It shall decide whether officers can be left at liberty on giving their parole not to leave the
neutral territory without permission.).
337
Cf. JAMES BROWN SCOTT, THE PROCEEDINGS OF THE HAGUE PEACE CONFERENCES: I THE CONFERENCE OF 1907
147-48 (1920) (Article 57, paragraph 3, of the [1899 Hague] Regulations leaves it to the neutral State to decide
whether interned officers may be left at liberty on giving their parole not to leave the neutral territory without
permission. It does not say upon what conditions a permission to leave this territory should be predicated; neither
does it provide any penalty for violation of the parole. Finally, it does not mention either non-commissioned
officers or private soldiers. The Japanese delegation proposed to fill this gap by deciding: (1) that the interned men,
without distinction of rank, cannot be liberated nor permitted to reenter their country except with the consent of the
adverse party under conditions fixed by it; (2) that the parole given in such cases to the neutral State would be
equivalent to a parole given to the adverse party. Without ignoring the merits of this proposal, the Commission
preferred to continue the existing text of the Regulations. It considered that permission given to an interned man to
return temporarily to his country is something too exceptional to require regulation in express terms. There was no
difficulty, moreover, in recognizing that the Japanese proposal conforms to recent precedents and contains a useful
hint for a neutral State desirous of remaining entirely free from responsibility.).
338
For example, Robert Lansing, The Secretary of State to the German Ambassador, Nov. 16, 1915, reprinted in
JAMES BROWN SCOTT, DIPLOMATIC CORRESPONDENCE BETWEEN THE UNITED STATES AND GERMANY AUGUST 1,
1914 - APRIL 6, 1917, 163 (1918) (It will be recalled that during the Russo-Japanese War, when the Russian Ship
Lena was interned by the United States Authorities on the Pacific coast, three officers of that ship escaped and
returned to Russia; and that upon the Government of the United States calling the matter to the attention of the
Russian Government it immediately caused the escaped officers to return to American jurisdiction where they were
interned for the remainder of the war. This precedent this Government regards as in accord with the best practice of
nations and applicable to the cases which I have had the honor to present in this note.).
339
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 535 (Officers and men interned in a neutral State may in the discretion of
that State be released on their parole under conditions to be prescribed by the neutral State. If such persons leave the
neutral State in violation of their parole, the State in whose armed forces they serve is obliged to return them to the
neutral State at its request.).
988
belong. Similarly, captured war material found in the possession of the belligerent forces that
take refuge on neutral territory is the property of their State, regardless of its origin. 340
15.16.6 Retention of Medical Personnel and Chaplains in a Neutral State. Medical and
religious personnel serving with belligerent forces that are interned in neutral territory may be
retained only in so far as the health and the numbers of such forces so require. 341 Subject to
these requirements, they must be returned as soon as possible to the State to which they
belong. 342 Chaplains are in the same position, their retention being dependent upon the spiritual
needs of the interned forces. 343 Medical personnel and chaplains who are retained must be
accorded similar treatment to those retained under the GPW. 344
15.17.1 Escaped POWs Received by a Neutral State. POWs who have escaped to neutral
territory are deemed to have successfully escaped from the Detaining Power. 345
A neutral State may deny the admission of escaped POWs or receive them. A neutral
State that receives escaped POWs shall leave them at liberty. If it allows them to remain in its
territory, it may assign them a place of residence. 346
15.17.2 POWs Brought Into a Neutral State by Belligerent Forces Taking Refuge. POWs
brought into a neutral State by belligerent forces that take refuge in the neutral State are treated
like POWs who have escaped to neutral territory. 347 This means that the POWs regain their
340
See JAMES BROWN SCOTT, THE PROCEEDINGS OF THE HAGUE PEACE CONFERENCES: I THE CONFERENCE OF 1907
145 (1920) (What becomes of the war material captured by troops and brought with them into the territory of a
neutral State? This question was put by the Dutch delegation, which made the following motion: War material
captured from the enemy by an armed force and brought with it while taking refuge on neutral territory shall be
restored by the Government thereof to the State from which it was taken after the conclusion of peace. But the
Netherland delegation did not insist on its motion in the face of the objection made to it. On the one hand, the case
of war material captured from the enemy cannot be assimilated to the case of prisoners of war. The capture of
matriel creates for the captor an immediate right of ownership, which places this matriel on the same footing as
the captors own matriel. On the other hand, even if the captors right to the property should become uncertain,
owing to his taking refuge in the neutral territory, there would be no reason for making the neutral State the judge of
the question and for imposing on it the invidious duty of examining the matriel brought into its territory by a
belligerent force to see what has been taken from the enemy and what belongs to the force under some other title.).
341
Refer to 7.9.1.2 (Medical and Religious Personnel Who May Be Retained).
342
Refer to 7.9.4 (Return of Personnel Whose Retention Is Not Indispensable).
343
Refer to 4.9.1.3 (Chaplains Attached to the Armed Forces).
344
Refer to 7.9.5 (Rights and Privileges of Retained Personnel).
345
Refer to 9.25.1.1 (Types of Successful Escapes).
346
HAGUE V art. 13 (A neutral Power which receives escaped prisoners of war shall leave them at liberty. If it
allows them to remain in its territory it may assign them a place of residence.).
347
HAGUE V art. 13 (A neutral Power which receives escaped prisoners of war shall leave them at liberty. If it
allows them to remain in its territory it may assign them a place of residence. The same rule applies to prisoners of
war brought by troops taking refuge in the territory of a neutral Power.).
989
liberty from the belligerent forces that previously held them captive, and that if the neutral State
allows them to remain on its territory, it may assign them a place of residence.
POWs brought into a neutral State by belligerent forces taking refuge are released from
their captivity by the belligerent forces that previously held them because of a concern that the
detention operations by the belligerent forces would constitute a form of continuation of
hostilities on neutral territory and because the POWs probably would have been freed had the
belligerent forces not taken refuge in neutral territory. 348
15.17.3 POWs Brought to a Neutral State by Special Agreement Among the Neutral State
and the Parties to a Conflict. POWs may be brought to a neutral State for internment by a special
agreement among the neutral State and the parties to the conflict. 349 Wounded and sick POWs
may also be brought to neutral countries for accommodation by a special agreement among the
neutral State and the parties to the conflict. 350
Such special agreements must not adversely affect the situation of POWs, nor restrict the
rights that the GPW confers upon them. 351
348
See JAMES BROWN SCOTT, THE PROCEEDINGS OF THE HAGUE PEACE CONFERENCES: I THE CONFERENCE OF 1907
144 (1920) (Ought prisoners of war brought into the territory of a neutral State by belligerent troops who take
refuge there, to become free, or should they be interned like the troops? Upon the motion of the Netherland
delegation the Commission declared for the first solution. The only obstacle to the freedom of the prisoners here
referred to lies in the actual power that the belligerent forces which captured them are exercising over them, and this
actual power vanishes the moment the captor takes refuge in the territory of a neutral State. Moreover, troops taking
this extreme step, do so in order to escape from an enemy who is pressing them, and from a capitulation whose
effect would of course be to free the prisoners in their power.); Caleb Cushing, Attorney General, Belligerent
Asylum, Apr. 28, 1855, 7 OPINIONS OF THE ATTORNEY GENERAL 122, 131 (1856) (From all these premises, the
consequences are inevitable in regard to the prisoners on board the Sitka. So long as they remained on board that
ship, they were in the territory and jurisdiction of her sovereign. There, the neutral has no right to meddle with
them. If, indeed, they be landed, then they pass from the jurisdiction of the belligerent to that of the neutral; they
become practically free, because their detention is forcible, and force cannot be exercised on the neutral territory;).
349
Refer to 9.36.3 (Agreements to Intern POWs in Neutral Territory).
350
Refer to 9.36.2 (Accommodation in Neutral Countries).
351
Refer to 9.1.2.2 (Special Agreements Under the GPW).
352
Refer to 10.9.6 (Agreements for the Release, Return, or Accommodation in a Neutral Country of Certain
Classes of Internees).
353
Refer to 4.20.1.1 (Children Under Fifteen Who Are Orphaned or Separated).
990
Such special agreements must not adversely affect the situation of protected persons nor
restrict the rights that the GC confers upon them. 354
Ground transports of wounded and sick combatants may pass through a neutral States
land territory with the permission of the neutral State. Subject to rules established by the neutral
State, medical aircraft of belligerent States may fly over the territory of neutral States, land on it
in case of necessity, or use it as a port of call.
However, if any such persons are committed to the care of the neutral State or remain in
the neutral States territory, they must be guarded so as to ensure they do not take part again in
the war. 357
15.18.1.1 Discretion of the Neutral State to Authorize Such Passage. The neutral
State has the right, but not the obligation, to permit such passage; if provided, such passage
should be provided on an impartial basis to all belligerent States. 358
It is not necessary to obtain the consent of the other belligerent States before permitting
the passage of sick and wounded personnel, but it would be advisable to do so if considerable
numbers are involved. 359
354
Refer to 10.1.1.2 (Special Agreements Under the GC).
355
HAGUE V art. 14 (A neutral Power may authorize the passage into its territory of wounded or sick belonging to
the belligerent armies, on condition that the trains bringing them shall carry neither personnel or material of war.).
356
HAGUE V art. 14 (In such a case, the neutral Power is bound to take whatever measures of safety and control are
necessary for the purpose.).
357
Refer to 15.16.1.2 (Neutral Duty to Disarm and Intern the Belligerent Forces).
358
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 541 (The neutral power is under no obligation to permit the passage of a
convoy of sick and wounded through its territory, but when such a convoy is permitted to pass, the neutral must
exercise control, must see that neither personnel nor material other than that necessary for the care of the sick and
wounded is carried, and generally must accord impartiality of treatment to the belligerents.); 2004 UK MANUAL
8.162 (It is under no obligation to do so but if the privilege is accorded, it must be given to all belligerent states
impartially.).
359
For example, 2004 UK MANUAL 8.162.1 footnote 427 (After the battle of Sedan in the Franco-German war of
187071, the German General Staff wished to send railway trains conveying wounded to Germany through Belgium
and Luxembourg. The French Minister of War protested. He argued, rightly, that this would free lines to bring
forward fresh soldiers and ammunition. Belgium, after consulting the British government, decided that, if one of the
belligerents objected, the giving of permission would be a breach of neutrality, and therefore refused it.
991
15.18.1.2 Personnel or Material of War Accompanying the Wounded or Sick. A
neutral State permitting the passage of sick and wounded into and through its territory must take
measures of safety and control to ensure that combatants or military supplies do not accompany
them. If combatants accompany the passage of the wounded and sick, they should be
interned. 360 Similarly, any military supplies must be seized and placed in safe custody until the
end of the conflict. 361
Medical personnel and materials necessary for the care of the wounded and sick of a
convoy of evacuation may be permitted to accompany the convoy. 362
15.18.1.3 Wounded and Sick POWs Brought Into Neutral Territory Under
Authorized Ground Transports. Wounded and sick POWs brought by one of the belligerents as
part of a convoy of evacuation that is granted passage through neutral territory, and belonging to
the hostile party, must be guarded by the neutral State so as to ensure they do not take part again
in the operations of the war. 363
Thus, wounded and sick and POWs brought into neutral territory by the Detaining Power
as part of a convoy of evacuation granted right of passage through neutral territory are not treated
like escaping POWs or POWs brought by belligerent forces seeking asylum in neutral territory
(i.e., transported to their own country or liberated). 364 Instead, they are treated like other
wounded, sick, and shipwrecked combatants who are received within neutral territory, and they
must be guarded by the neutral State. 365
15.18.1.4 Wounded and Sick Combatants Committed to the Care of the Neutral
State. Wounded and sick combatants brought under these conditions into neutral territory by one
of the belligerents, and who do not simply pass through neutral territory but are committed to the
Luxembourg took the opposite view and granted it. Under international law, Luxembourg was correct in its
reasoning but, in view of the cogent arguments put forward by France, Belgium was right in its decision.).
360
Refer to 15.16.1.2 (Neutral Duty to Disarm and Intern the Belligerent Forces).
361
Refer to 15.16.5 (Military Equipment and Supplies of Belligerent Forces Taking Refuge).
362
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 545 (Medical personnel and materials necessary for the care of the sick
and wounded of a convoy of evacuation, permitted to pass through neutral territory under Article 14, H. V (par.
539), may be permitted to accompany the convoy.).
363
HAGUE V art. 14 (The wounded and sick brought under these conditions into neutral territory by one of the
belligerents, and belonging to the hostile party, must be guarded by the neutral Power so as to ensure their not taking
part again in the operations of the war.).
364
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 543 (Sick and wounded prisoners of war brought into neutral territory by
the Detaining Power as part of a convoy of evacuation granted right of passage through neutral territory may not be
transported to their own country or liberated, as are prisoners of war escaping into, or brought by troops seeking
asylum in neutral territory, but must be detained by the neutral power, subject to the provisions contained in
paragraphs 188 through 196.).
365
Refer to 15.16.2 (Neutral Reception of the Wounded, Sick, and Shipwrecked).
992
care of the neutral State, must be guarded by the neutral State so as to ensure they do not take
part again in the operations of the war. 366
15.18.2 Medical Aircraft and Neutral Territory. Subject to conditions and restrictions
established by the neutral State, medical aircraft of belligerent States may fly over the territory of
neutral States, land on it in case of necessity, or use it as a port of call. 367 Belligerent States shall
give the neutral States previous notice of their passage over the neutral State and obey all
summons to alight, on land or water. 368
The neutral State may place conditions or restrictions on the passage or landing of
medical aircraft on its territory. 369 Such conditions or restrictions shall be applied equally to all
belligerent States. 370 Belligerent States medical aircraft would be immune from attack only
when flying on routes, at heights, and at times specifically agreed upon between the belligerent
States and the neutral State concerned. 371
As a general matter, the wounded and sick who are disembarked, with the consent of the
local authorities, on neutral territory by medical aircraft, shall be detained by the neutral State,
where so required by international law, in such a manner that they cannot again take part in
military operations. 372
366
HAGUE V art. 14 (The wounded and sick brought under these conditions into neutral territory by one of the
belligerents, and belonging to the hostile party, must be guarded by the neutral Power so as to ensure their not taking
part again in the operations of the war. The same duty shall devolve on the neutral State with regard to wounded or
sick of the other army who may be committed to its care.).
367
GWS art. 37 (Subject to the provisions of the second paragraph, medical aircraft of Parties to the conflict may
fly over the territory of neutral Powers, land on it in case of necessity, or use it as a port of call.); GWS-SEA art. 40
(same).
368
GWS art. 37 (They shall give the neutral Powers previous notice of their passage over the said territory and
obey all summons to alight, on land or water.); GWS-SEA art. 40 (same).
369
GWS art. 37 (The neutral Powers may, however, place conditions or restrictions on the passage or landing of
medical aircraft on their territory.); GWS-SEA art. 40 (same).
370
GWS art. 37 (Such possible conditions or restrictions shall be applied equally to all Parties to the conflict.);
GWS-SEA art. 40 (same).
371
GWS art. 37 (They will be immune from attack only when flying on routes, at heights and at times specifically
agreed upon between the Parties to the conflict and the neutral Power concerned.); GWS-SEA art. 40 (same).
372
Refer to 15.16.2.3 (Wounded and Sick Disembarked From Belligerent Medical Aircraft).
993
XVI Cyber Operations
Chapter Contents
16.1 Introduction
16.2 Application of the Law of War to Cyber Operations
16.3 Cyber Operations and Jus ad Bellum
16.4 Cyber Operations and the Law of Neutrality
16.5 Cyber Operations and Jus in Bello
16.6 Legal Review of Weapons That Employ Cyber Capabilities
16.1 INTRODUCTION
This Chapter addresses the law of war and cyber operations. It addresses how law of war
principles and rules apply to relatively novel cyber capabilities and the cyber domain.
As a matter of U.S. policy, the United States has sought to work internationally to clarify
how existing international law and norms, including law of war principles, apply to cyber
operations. 1
Precisely how the law of war applies to cyber operations is not well-settled, and aspects
of the law in this area are likely to continue to develop, especially as new cyber capabilities are
developed and States determine their views in response to such developments. 2
1
See, e.g., United States Submission to the U.N. Group of Governmental Experts on Developments in the Field of
Information and Telecommunications in the Context of International Security (201415), 1 (But the challenge is
not whether existing international law applies to State behavior in cyberspace. As the 201213 GGE affirmed,
international law does apply, and such law is essential to regulating State conduct in this domain. The challenge is
providing decision-makers with considerations that may be taken into account when determining how existing
international law applies to cyber activities. Despite this challenge, history has shown that States, through
consultation and cooperation, have repeatedly and successfully applied existing bodies of law to new technologies.
It continues to be the U.S. view that all States will benefit from a stable international ICT [information and
communication technologies] environment in which existing international law is the foundation for responsible State
behavior in cyberspace.); Barack Obama, International Strategy for Cyberspace: Prosperity, Security, and
Openness in a Networked World, 9 (May 2011) (The development of norms for state conduct in cyberspace does
not require a reinvention of customary international law, nor does it render existing international norms obsolete.
Long-standing international norms guiding state behaviorin times of peace and conflictalso apply in
cyberspace. Nonetheless, unique attributes of networked technology require additional work to clarify how these
norms apply and what additional understandings might be necessary to supplement them. We will continue to work
internationally to forge consensus regarding how norms of behavior apply to cyberspace, with the understanding that
an important first step in such efforts is applying the broad expectations of peaceful and just interstate conduct to
cyberspace.); DEPARTMENT OF DEFENSE, Department of Defense Cyberspace Policy Report: A Report to Congress
Pursuant to the National Defense Authorization Act for Fiscal Year 2011, Section 934, 7-8 (Nov. 2011) (The
United States is actively engaged in the continuing development of norms of responsible state behavior in
cyberspace, making clear that as a matter of U.S. policy, long-standing international norms guiding state behavior
also apply equally in cyberspace. Among these, applying the tenets of the law of armed conflict are critical to this
vision, although cyberspaces unique aspects may require clarifications in certain areas.).
2
Department of Defense, Office of the General Counsel, An Assessment of International Legal Issues in Information
Operations (2nd ed., Nov. 1999), reprinted in 76 U.S. NAVAL WAR COLLEGE INTERNATIONAL LAW STUDIES 459,
994
16.1.1 Cyberspace as a Domain. As a doctrinal matter, DoD has recognized cyberspace
as an operational domain in which the armed forces must be able to defend and operate, just like
the land, sea, air, and space domains. 3
Cyberspace may be defined as [a] global domain within the information environment
consisting of interdependent networks of information technology infrastructures and resident
data, including the Internet, telecommunications networks, computer systems, and embedded
processors and controllers. 4
464-65 (2002) (The international community ordinarily does not negotiate treaties to deal with problems until their
consequences have begun to be felt. This is not all bad, since the solution can be tailored to the actual problems that
have occurred, rather than to a range of hypothetical possibilities. One consequence, however, is that the resulting
law, whether domestic or international, may be sharply influenced by the nature of the events that precipitate legal
developments, together with all their attendant policy and political considerations. Similarly, we can make some
educated guesses as to how the international legal system will respond to information operations, but the direction
that response actually ends up taking may depend a great deal on the nature of the events that draw the nations
attention to the issue. If information operations techniques are seen as just another new technology that does not
greatly threaten the nations interests, no dramatic legal developments may occur. If they are seen as a revolutionary
threat to the security of nations and the welfare of their citizens, it will be much more likely that efforts will be made
to restrict or prohibit information operations by legal means. These are considerations that national leaders should
understand in making decisions on using information operations techniques in the current formative period, but it
should also be understood that the course of future events is often beyond the control of statesmen.).
3
William J. Lynn III, Deputy Secretary of Defense, Defending a New Domain: The Pentagons Cyberstrategy, 89
FOREIGN AFFAIRS 97, 101 (Sept./Oct. 2010) (As a doctrinal matter, the Pentagon has formally recognized
cyberspace as a new domain of warfare. Although cyberspace is a man-made domain, it has become just as critical
to military operations as land, sea, air, and space. As such, the military must be able to defend and operate within
it.).
4
JOINT PUBLICATION 3-12, Cyberspace Operations, GL-4 (Feb. 5, 2013) ((U) Cyberspace. A global domain within
the information environment consisting of interdependent networks of information technology infrastructures and
resident data, including the Internet, telecommunications networks, computer systems, and embedded processors
and controllers.).
5
JOINT PUBLICATION 3-0, Joint Operations (Aug. 11, 2011) (cyberspace operations. The employment of
cyberspace capabilities where the primary purpose is to achieve objectives in or through cyberspace.).
995
technological developments or gaining information about an adversarys military capabilities and
intent.
Operations that target an adversarys cyberspace capabilities, but that are not achieved in
or through cyberspace, would not be considered cyber operations. For example, the
bombardment of a network hub, or the jamming of wireless communications, would not be
considered cyber operations, even though they may achieve military objectives in cyberspace.
16.1.3 Cyber Operations Notes on Terminology. DoD doctrine and terminology for
cyber operations continue to develop.
16.1.3.2 Cyber Attacks or Computer Network Attacks. The term attack often
has been used in a colloquial sense in discussing cyber operations to refer to many different types
of hostile or malicious cyber activities, such as the defacement of websites, network intrusions,
the theft of private information, or the disruption of the provision of internet services.
Operations described as cyber attacks or computer network attacks, therefore, are not
necessarily attacks for the purposes of applying rules on conducting attacks during the conduct
of hostilities. 6 Similarly, operations described as cyber attacks or computer network attacks
are not necessarily armed attacks for the purposes of triggering a States inherent right of self-
defense under jus ad bellum. 7
Specific law of war rules may apply to cyber operations, even though those rules were
developed before cyber operations were possible. When no more specific law of war rule or
other applicable rule applies, law of war principles provide a general guide for conduct during
cyber operations in armed conflict.
16.2.1 Application of Specific Law of War Rules to Cyber Operations. Specific law of
war rules may be applicable to cyber operations, even though these rules were developed long
before cyber operations were possible.
6
Refer to 16.5.1 (Cyber Operations That Constitute Attacks for the Purpose of Applying Rules on Conducting
Attacks).
7
Refer to 16.3.3 (Responding to Hostile or Malicious Cyber Operations).
996
The law of war affirmatively anticipates technological innovation and contemplates that
its existing rules will apply to such innovation, including cyber operations. 8 Law of war rules
may apply to new technologies because the rules often are not framed in terms of specific
technological means. For example, the rules on conducting attacks do not depend on what type
of weapon is used to conduct the attack. Thus, cyber operations may be subject to a variety of
law of war rules depending on the rule and the nature of the cyber operation. For example, if the
physical consequences of a cyber attack constitute the kind of physical damage that would be
caused by dropping a bomb or firing a missile, that cyber attack would equally be subject to the
same rules that apply to attacks using bombs or missiles. 9
Cyber operations may pose challenging legal questions because of the variety of effects
they can produce. For example, cyber operations could be a non-forcible means or method of
conducting hostilities (such as information gathering), and would be regulated as such under
rules applicable to non-forcible means and methods of warfare. 10 Other cyber operations could
be used to create effects that amount to an attack and would be regulated under the rules on
conducting attacks. 11 Moreover, another set of challenging issues may arise when considering
whether a particular cyber operation might be regarded as a seizure or destruction of enemy
property and should be assessed as such. 12
8
Harold Hongju Koh, Legal Adviser, Department of State, International Law in Cyberspace: Remarks as Prepared
for Delivery to the USCYBERCOM Inter-Agency Legal Conference (Sept. 18, 2012), reprinted in 54 HARVARD
INTERNATIONAL LAW JOURNAL ONLINE, 3 (Dec. 2012) (Cyberspace is not a law-free zone where anyone can
conduct hostile activities without rules or restraint. Think of it this way. This is not the first time that
technology has changed and that international law has been asked to deal with those changes. In particular, because
the tools of conflict are constantly evolving, one relevant body of lawinternational humanitarian law, or the law of
armed conflictaffirmatively anticipates technological innovation, and contemplates that its existing rules will
apply to such innovation.).
9
Harold Hongju Koh, Legal Adviser, Department of State, International Law in Cyberspace: Remarks as Prepared
for Delivery to the USCYBERCOM Inter-Agency Legal Conference (Sept. 18, 2012), reprinted in 54 HARVARD
INTERNATIONAL LAW JOURNAL ONLINE, 3-4 (Dec. 2012) (In analyzing whether a cyber operation would constitute
a use of force, most commentators focus on whether the direct physical injury and property damage resulting from
the cyber event looks like that which would be considered a use of force if produced by kinetic weapons. For
example, cyber activities that proximately result in death, injury, or significant destruction would likely be viewed as
a use of force. Only a moments reflection makes you realize that this is common sense: if the physical
consequences of a cyber attack work the kind of physical damage that dropping a bomb or firing a missile would,
that cyber attack should equally be considered a use of force.).
10
Refer to 5.26 (Non-Forcible Means and Methods of Warfare).
11
Refer to 5.5 (Rules on Conducting Assaults, Bombardments, and Other Attacks).
12
Refer to 5.17 (Seizure and Destruction of Enemy Property).
13
Refer to 2.1.2.2 (Law of War Principles as a General Guide).
14
Refer to 2.3 (Humanity).
997
Certain cyber operations may not have a clear kinetic parallel in terms of their
capabilities and the effects they create. 15 Such operations may have implications that are quite
different from those presented by attacks using traditional weapons, and those different
implications may well yield different conclusions. 16
Cyber operations may present issues under the law of war governing the resort to force
(i.e., jus ad bellum). 17
16.3.1 Prohibition on Cyber Operations That Constitute Illegal Uses of Force Under
Article 2(4) of the Charter of the United Nations. Article 2(4) of the Charter of the United
Nations states that [a]ll Members shall refrain in their international relations from the threat or
use of force against the territorial integrity or political independence of any state, or in any other
manner inconsistent with the Purposes of the United Nations. 18
Cyber operations may in certain circumstances constitute uses of force within the
meaning of Article 2(4) of the Charter of the United Nations and customary international law. 19
For example, if cyber operations cause effects that, if caused by traditional physical means,
would be regarded as a use of force under jus ad bellum, then such cyber operations would likely
also be regarded as a use of force. Such operations may include cyber operations that: (1)
trigger a nuclear plant meltdown; (2) open a dam above a populated area, causing destruction; or
(3) disable air traffic control services, resulting in airplane crashes. 20 Similarly, cyber operations
15
Harold Hongju Koh, Legal Adviser, Department of State, International Law in Cyberspace: Remarks as
Prepared for Delivery to the USCYBERCOM Inter-Agency Legal Conference (Sept. 18, 2012), reprinted in 54
HARVARD INTERNATIONAL LAW JOURNAL ONLINE, 7 (Dec. 2012) (I have also noted some clear-cut cases where the
physical effects of a hostile cyber action would be comparable to what a kinetic action could achieve: for example,
a bomb might break a dam and flood a civilian population, but insertion of a line of malicious code from a distant
computer might just as easily achieve that same result. As you all know, however, there are other types of cyber
actions that do not have a clear kinetic parallel, which raise profound questions about exactly what we mean by
force.).
16
Department of Defense, Office of the General Counsel, An Assessment of International Legal Issues in
Information Operations (2nd ed., Nov. 1999), reprinted in 76 U.S. NAVAL WAR COLLEGE INTERNATIONAL LAW
STUDIES 459, 490 (2002) (In the process of reasoning by analogy to the law applicable to traditional weapons, it
must always be kept in mind that computer network attacks are likely to present implications that are quite different
from the implications presented by attacks with traditional weapons. These different implications may well yield
different conclusions.).
17
Refer to 1.11 (Jus ad Bellum).
18
U.N. CHARTER art. 2(4).
19
Harold Hongju Koh, Legal Adviser, Department of State, International Law in Cyberspace: Remarks as
Prepared for Delivery to the USCYBERCOM Inter-Agency Legal Conference (Sept. 18, 2012), reprinted in 54
HARVARD INTERNATIONAL LAW JOURNAL ONLINE, 3 (Dec. 2012) (Cyber activities may in certain circumstances
constitute uses of force within the meaning of Article 2(4) of the UN Charter and customary international law.).
20
Harold Hongju Koh, Legal Adviser, Department of State, International Law in Cyberspace: Remarks as
Prepared for Delivery to the USCYBERCOM Inter-Agency Legal Conference (Sept. 18, 2012), reprinted in 54
HARVARD INTERNATIONAL LAW JOURNAL ONLINE, 4 (Dec. 2012) (Commonly cited examples of cyber activity that
998
that cripple a militarys logistics systems, and thus its ability to conduct and sustain military
operations, might also be considered a use of force under jus ad bellum. 21 Other factors, besides
the effects of the cyber operation, may also be relevant to whether the cyber operation constitutes
a use of force under jus ad bellum. 22
Cyber operations that constitute uses of force within the meaning of Article 2(4) of the
Charter of the United Nations and customary international law must have a proper legal basis in
order not to violate jus ad bellum prohibitions on the resort to force. 23
would constitute a use of force include, for example, (1) operations that trigger a nuclear plant meltdown, (2)
operations that open a dam above a populated area causing destruction, or (3) operations that disable air traffic
control resulting in airplane crashes.).
21
Department of Defense, Office of the General Counsel, An Assessment of International Legal Issues in
Information Operations (2nd ed., Nov. 1999), reprinted in 76 U.S. NAVAL WAR COLLEGE INTERNATIONAL LAW
STUDIES 459, 483 (2002) (Even if the systems attacked were unclassified military logistics systems, an attack on
such systems might seriously threaten a nations security. For example, corrupting the data in a nations
computerized systems for managing its military fuel, spare parts, transportation, troop mobilization, or medical
supplies may seriously interfere with its ability to conduct military operations. In short, the consequences are likely
to be more important than the means used.).
22
Harold Hongju Koh, Legal Adviser, Department of State, International Law in Cyberspace: Remarks as
Prepared for Delivery to the USCYBERCOM Inter-Agency Legal Conference (Sept. 18, 2012), reprinted in 54
HARVARD INTERNATIONAL LAW JOURNAL ONLINE, 4 (Dec. 2012) (In assessing whether an event constituted a use
of force in or through cyberspace, we must evaluate factors including the context of the event, the actor perpetrating
the action (recognizing challenging issues of attribution in cyberspace), the target and location, effects and intent,
among other possible issues.).
23
Refer to 1.11.3 (Prohibition on Certain Uses of Force).
24
Refer to 16.1 (Introduction).
25
Department of Defense, Office of the General Counsel, An Assessment of International Legal Issues in
Information Operations (2nd ed., Nov. 1999), reprinted in 76 U.S. NAVAL WAR COLLEGE INTERNATIONAL LAW
STUDIES 459, 518 (2002).
26
DEPARTMENT OF DEFENSE, Department of Defense Cyberspace Policy Report: A Report to Congress Pursuant to
the National Defense Authorization Act for Fiscal Year 2011, Section 934, 6-7 (Nov. 2011).
999
cyber operations that amount to an armed attack or imminent threat thereof. 27 As a matter of
national policy, the United States has expressed the view that when warranted, it will respond to
hostile acts in cyberspace as it would to any other threat to the country. 28
16.3.3.1 Use of Force Versus Armed Attack. The United States has long taken the
position that the inherent right of self-defense potentially applies against any illegal use of
force. 30 Thus, any cyber operation that constitutes an illegal use of force against a State
potentially gives rise to a right to take necessary and proportionate action in self-defense. 31
27
Harold Hongju Koh, Legal Adviser, Department of State, International Law in Cyberspace: Remarks as
Prepared for Delivery to the USCYBERCOM Inter-Agency Legal Conference (Sept. 18, 2012), reprinted in 54
HARVARD INTERNATIONAL LAW JOURNAL ONLINE, 4 (Dec. 2012) (Question 4: May a state ever respond to a
computer network attack by exercising a right of national self-defense? Answer 4: Yes. A states national right
of self-defense, recognized in Article 51 of the UN Charter, may be triggered by computer network activities
that amount to an armed attack or imminent threat thereof.); Barack Obama, International Strategy for
Cyberspace: Prosperity, Security, and Openness in a Networked World, 10 (May 2011) (Right of Self-Defense:
Consistent with the United Nations Charter, states have an inherent right to self-defense that may be triggered by
certain aggressive acts in cyberspace.).
28
Barack Obama, International Strategy for Cyberspace: Prosperity, Security, and Openness in a Networked
World, 14 (May 2011) (When warranted, the United States will respond to hostile acts in cyberspace as we would
to any other threat to our country. All states possess an inherent right to self-defense, and we recognize that certain
hostile acts conducted through cyberspace could compel actions under the commitments we have with our military
treaty partners. We reserve the right to use all necessary meansdiplomatic, informational, military, and
economicas appropriate and consistent with applicable international law, in order to defend our Nation, our allies,
our partners, and our interests. In so doing, we will exhaust all options before military force whenever we can; will
carefully weigh the costs and risks of action against the costs of inaction; and will act in a way that reflects our
values and strengthens our legitimacy, seeking broad international support whenever possible.).
29
Refer to 1.11.5.6 (Reporting to the U.N. Security Council).
30
Refer to 1.11.5.2 (Use of Force Versus Armed Attack).
31
Harold Hongju Koh, Legal Adviser, Department of State, International Law in Cyberspace: Remarks as
Prepared for Delivery to the USCYBERCOM Inter-Agency Legal Conference (Sept. 18, 2012), reprinted in 54
HARVARD INTERNATIONAL LAW JOURNAL ONLINE, 7 (Dec. 2012) (To cite just one example of this, the United
States has for a long time taken the position that the inherent right of self-defense potentially applies against any
illegal use of force. In our view, there is no threshold for a use of deadly force to qualify as an armed attack that
may warrant a forcible response. But that is not to say that any illegal use of force triggers the right to use any and
all force in responsesuch responses must still be necessary and of course proportionate.).
32
Harold Hongju Koh, Legal Adviser, Department of State, International Law in Cyberspace: Remarks as
Prepared for Delivery to the USCYBERCOM Inter-Agency Legal Conference (Sept. 18, 2012), reprinted in 54
HARVARD INTERNATIONAL LAW JOURNAL ONLINE, 4 (Dec. 2012) (There is no legal requirement that the response
to a cyber armed attack take the form of a cyber action, as long as the response meets the requirements of necessity
and proportionality.).
1000
16.3.3.3 Responses to Hostile or Malicious Cyber Acts That Do Not Constitute
Uses of Force. Although cyber operations that do not constitute uses of force under jus ad
bellum would not permit injured States to use force in self-defense, those injured States may be
justified in taking necessary and appropriate actions in response that do not constitute a use of
force. 33 Such actions might include, for example, a diplomatic protest, an economic embargo, or
other acts of retorsion. 34
16.3.3.5 Authorities Under U.S. Law to Respond to Hostile Cyber Acts. Decisions
about whether to invoke a States inherent right of self-defense would be made at the national
level because they involve the States rights and responsibilities under international law. For
example, in the United States, such decisions would generally be made by the President.
33
Department of Defense, Office of the General Counsel, An Assessment of International Legal Issues in
Information Operations (2nd ed., Nov. 1999), reprinted in 76 U.S. NAVAL WAR COLLEGE INTERNATIONAL LAW
STUDIES 459, 482 (2002) (There is also a general recognition of the right of a nation whose rights under
international law have been violated to take countermeasures against the offending state, in circumstances where
neither the provocation nor the response involves the use of armed force. For example, an arbitral tribunal in 1978
ruled that the United States was entitled to suspend French commercial air flights into Los Angeles after the French
had suspended U.S. commercial air flights into Paris. Discussions of the doctrine of countermeasures generally
distinguish between countermeasures that would otherwise be violations of treaty obligations or of general
principles of international law (in effect, reprisals not involving the use of armed force) and retorsions actions that
may be unfriendly or even damaging, but which do not violate any international legal obligation. The use of
countermeasures is subject to the same requirements of necessity and proportionality as apply to self-defense.).
34
Refer to 18.17 (Retorsion).
35
DEPARTMENT OF DEFENSE, Department of Defense Cyberspace Policy Report: A Report to Congress Pursuant to
the National Defense Authorization Act for Fiscal Year 2011, Section 934, 4 (Nov. 2011) (The same technical
protocols of the Internet that have facilitated the explosive growth of cyberspace also provide some measure of
anonymity. Our potential adversaries, both nations and non-state actors, clearly understand this dynamic and seek to
use the challenge of attribution to their strategic advantage. The Department recognizes that deterring malicious
actors from conducting cyber attacks is complicated by the difficulty of verifying the location from which an attack
was launched and by the need to identify the attacker among a wide variety and high number of potential actors.).
36
United States Submission to the U.N. Group of Governmental Experts on Developments in the Field of
Information and Telecommunications in the Context of International Security 2012-2013, 2 (As the United States
noted in its 2010 submission to the GGE, the following established principles would apply in the context of an
armed attack, whether it originated through cyberspace or not: The right of self-defense against an imminent or
actual armed attack applies whether the attacker is a State actor or a non-State actor.). Refer to 1.11.5.4 (Right of
Self-Defense Against Non-State Actors).
1001
The Standing Rules of Engagement for U.S. forces have addressed the authority of the
U.S. armed forces to take action in self-defense in response to hostile acts or hostile intent,
including such acts perpetrated in or through cyberspace. 37
The law of neutrality may be important in certain cyber operations. For example, under
the law of neutrality, belligerent States are bound to respect the sovereign rights of neutral
States. 38 Because of the interconnected nature of cyberspace, cyber operations targeting
networked information infrastructures in one State may create effects in another State that is not
a party to the armed conflict. 39
16.4.1 Cyber Operations That Use Communications Infrastructure in Neutral States. The
law of neutrality has addressed the use of communications infrastructure in neutral States, and in
certain circumstances, these rules would apply to cyber operations.
The use of communications infrastructure in neutral States may be implicated under the
general rule that neutral territory may not serve as a base of operations for one belligerent against
another. 40 In particular, belligerent States are prohibited from erecting on the territory of a
neutral State any apparatus for the purpose of communicating with belligerent forces on land or
sea, or from using any installation of this kind established by them before the armed conflict on
the territory of a neutral State for purely military purposes, and which has not been opened for
the service of public messages. 41
37
See, e.g., CHAIRMAN OF THE JOINT CHIEFS OF STAFF INSTRUCTION 3121.01B, Standing Rules of
Engagement/Standing Rules for the Use of Force for U.S. Forces, 6b(1) (June 13, 2005), reprinted in
INTERNATIONAL AND OPERATIONAL LAW DEPARTMENT, THE JUDGE ADVOCATE GENERALS LEGAL CENTER &
SCHOOL, U.S. ARMY, OPERATIONAL LAW HANDBOOK 95 (2007) (Unit commanders always retain the inherent right
and obligation to exercise unit self-defense in response to a hostile act or demonstrated hostile intent. Unless
otherwise directed by a unit commander as detailed below, military members may exercise individual self-defense in
response to a hostile act or demonstrated hostile intent.).
38
Refer to 15.3.1 (Neutral Rights).
39
Harold Hongju Koh, Legal Adviser, Department of State, International Law in Cyberspace: Remarks as
Prepared for Delivery to the USCYBERCOM Inter-Agency Legal Conference (Sept. 18, 2012), reprinted in 54
HARVARD INTERNATIONAL LAW JOURNAL ONLINE, 6 (Dec. 2012) (States conducting activities in cyberspace must
take into account the sovereignty of other states, including outside the context of armed conflict. The physical
infrastructure that supports the Internet and cyber activities is generally located in sovereign territory and subject to
the jurisdiction of the territorial state. Because of the interconnected, interoperable nature of cyberspace, operations
targeting networked information infrastructures in one country may create effects in another country. Whenever a
state contemplates conducting activities in cyberspace, the sovereignty of other states needs to be considered.).
40
Refer to 15.5 (Prohibition on the Use of Neutral Territory as a Base of Operations).
41
Refer to 15.5.3 (Prohibition Against Establishment or Use of Belligerent Communications Facilities in Neutral
Territory).
1002
and that a neutral State would have an obligation to prevent. 42 This rule was developed because
it was viewed as impractical for neutral States to censor or screen their publicly available
communications infrastructure for belligerent traffic. 43 Thus, for example, it would not be
prohibited for a belligerent State to route information through cyber infrastructure in a neutral
State that is open for the service of public messages, and that neutral State would have no
obligation to forbid such traffic. This rule would appear to be applicable even if the information
that is being routed through neutral communications infrastructure may be characterized as a
cyber weapon or otherwise could cause destructive effects in a belligerent State (but no
destructive effects within the neutral State or States). 44
16.5.1 Cyber Operations That Constitute Attacks for the Purpose of Applying Rules on
Conducting Attacks. If a cyber operation constitutes an attack, then the law of war rules on
42
Refer to 15.5.3.1 (Use of Neutral Facilities by Belligerents Not Prohibited).
43
Colonel Borel, Report to the Conference from the Second Commission on Rights and Duties of Neutral States on
Land, in JAMES BROWN SCOTT, THE REPORTS TO THE HAGUE CONFERENCES OF 1899 AND 1907, 543 (1917) (We
are here dealing with cables or apparatus belonging either to a neutral State or to a company or individuals, the
operation of which, for the transmission of news, has the character of a public service. There is no reason to compel
the neutral State to restrict or prohibit the use by the belligerents of these means of communication. Were it
otherwise, objections of a practical kind would be encountered, arising out of the considerable difficulties in
exercising control, not to mention the confidential character of telegraphic correspondence and the rapidity
necessary to this service. Through his Excellency Lord Reay, the British delegation requested that it be specified
that the liberty of a neutral State to transmit messages, by means of its telegraph lines on land, its submarine cables
or its wireless apparatus, does not imply that it has any right to use them or permit their use in order to render
manifest assistance to one of the belligerents. The justice of the idea thus stated was so great as to receive the
unanimous approval of the Commission.).
44
See DEPARTMENT OF DEFENSE, Department of Defense Cyberspace Policy Report: A Report to Congress
Pursuant to the National Defense Authorization Act for Fiscal Year 2011, Section 934, 8 (Nov. 2011) (The issue of
the legality of transporting cyber weapons across the Internet through the infrastructure owned and/or located
in neutral third countries without obtaining the equivalent of overflight rights. There is currently no
international consensus regarding the definition of a cyber weapon. The often low cost of developing malicious
code and the high number and variety of actors in cyberspace make the discovery and tracking of malicious cyber
tools difficult. Most of the technology used in this context is inherently dual-use, and even software might be
minimally repurposed for malicious action.); Department of Defense, Office of the General Counsel, An
Assessment of International Legal Issues in Information Operations (2nd ed., Nov. 1999), reprinted in 76 U.S.
NAVAL WAR COLLEGE INTERNATIONAL LAW STUDIES 459, 489 (2002) (There need be less concern for the reaction
of nations through whose territory or communications systems a destructive message may be routed. If only the
nations public communications systems are involved, the transited nation will normally not be aware of the routing
such a message has taken. Even if it becomes aware of the transit of such a message and attributes it to the United
States, there would be no established principle of international law that it could point to as being violated. As
discussed above, even during an international armed conflict international law does not require a neutral nation to
restrict the use of its public communications networks by belligerents. Nations generally consent to the free use of
their communications networks on a commercial or reciprocal basis. Accordingly, use of a nations communications
networks as a conduit for an electronic attack would not be a violation of its sovereignty in the same way that would
be a flight through its airspace by a military aircraft.).
1003
conducting attacks must be applied to those cyber operations. 45 For example, such operations
must comport with the requirements of distinction and proportionality. 46
For example, a cyber attack that would destroy enemy computer systems could not be
directed against ostensibly civilian infrastructure, such as computer systems belonging to stock
exchanges, banking systems, and universities, unless those computer systems met the test for
being a military objective under the circumstances. 47 A cyber operation that would not
constitute an attack, but would nonetheless seize or destroy enemy property, would have to be
imperatively demanded by the necessities of war. 48
1004
addition, the economic harms in the belligerent State resulting from such disruptions, such as
civilian businesses in the belligerent State being unable to conduct e-commerce, generally would
not need to be considered in a proportionality analysis. 53
Even if cyber operations that constitute attacks are not expected to result in excessive
incidental loss of life or injury or damage such that the operation would be prohibited by the
proportionality rule, the party to the conflict nonetheless would be required to take feasible
precautions to limit such loss of life or injury and damage in conducting those cyber
operations. 54
16.5.2 Cyber Operations That Do Not Amount to an Attack Under the Law of War. A
cyber operation that does not constitute an attack is not restricted by the rules that apply to
attacks. 55 Factors that would suggest that a cyber operation is not an attack include whether
the operation causes only reversible effects or only temporary effects. Cyber operations that
generally would not constitute attacks include:
disseminating propaganda.
Since such operations generally would not be considered attacks under the law of war,
they generally would not need to be directed at military objectives, and may be directed at
civilians or civilian objects. Nonetheless, such operations must not be directed against enemy
civilians or civilian objects unless the operations are militarily necessary. 56 Moreover, such
operations should comport with the general principles of the law of war. 57 For example, even if
a cyber operation is not an attack or does not cause any injury or damage that would need to be
considered under the proportionality rule, that cyber operation still should not be conducted in a
way that unnecessarily causes inconvenience to civilians or neutral persons.
16.5.3 Duty to Take Feasible Precautions and Cyber Operations. Parties to a conflict
must take feasible precautions to reduce the risk of incidental harm to the civilian population and
law of international armed conflict is a controversial issue. There was agreement among the Group of Experts that
the term attack does not encompass CNAs that result in an inconvenience (such as temporary denial of internet
access).).
53
Refer to 5.12.2 (Types of Harm Loss of Life, Injury, and Damage).
54
Refer to 16.5.3 (Duty to Take Feasible Precautions and Cyber Operations).
55
Refer to 5.5 (Rules on Conducting Assaults, Bombardments, and Other Attacks).
56
Refer to 5.3.2.1 (Non-Violent Measures That Are Militarily Necessary).
57
Refer to 16.2.2 (Application of Law of War Principles as a General Guide to Cyber Operations).
1005
other protected persons and objects. 58 Parties to the conflict that employ cyber operations should
take precautions to minimize the harm of their cyber activities on civilian infrastructure and
users. 59
As with other precautions, the decision of which weapon to use will be subject to many
practical considerations, including effectiveness, cost, and fragility, i.e., the possibility that
once used an adversary may be able to devise defenses that will render a cyber tool ineffective in
the future. 64 Thus, as with special kinetic weapons, such as precision-guided munitions that have
58
Refer to 5.3.3 (Affirmative Duties to Take Feasible Precautions for the Protection of Civilians and Other
Protected Persons and Objects).
59
United States Submission to the U.N. Group of Governmental Experts on Developments in the Field of
Information and Telecommunications in the Context of International Security 2012-2013, 4 (The law of war also
requires warring States to take all practicable precautions, taking into account military and humanitarian
considerations, to avoid and minimize incidental death, injury, and damage to civilians and civilian objects. In the
context of hostilities involving information technologies in armed conflict, parties to the conflict should take
precautions to minimize the harm of such cyber activities on civilian infrastructure and users.).
60
Refer to 5.11 (Feasible Precautions in Conducting Attacks to Reduce the Risk of Harm to Protected Persons and
Objects).
61
Refer to 5.14 (Feasible Precautions to Reduce the Risk of Harm to Protected Persons and Objects by the Party
Subject to Attack).
62
Refer to 5.11.3 (Selecting Weapons (Weaponeering)).
63
United States Submission to the U.N. Group of Governmental Experts on Developments in the Field of
Information and Telecommunications in the Context of International Security 2012-2013, 4 (Cyber operations that
result in non-kinetic or reversible effects can be an important tool in creating options that minimize unnecessary
harm to civilians. In this regard, cyber capabilities may in some circumstances be preferable, as a matter of policy,
to kinetic weapons because their effects may be reversible, and they may hold the potential to accomplish military
goals without any destructive kinetic effect at all.).
64
Department of Defense, Office of the General Counsel, An Assessment of International Legal Issues in
Information Operations (2nd ed., Nov. 1999), reprinted in 76 U.S. NAVAL WAR COLLEGE INTERNATIONAL LAW
STUDIES 459, 490 (2002) (Another possible implication of a defenders technological prowess may arise when a
nation has the capacity for graduated self-defense measures. Some may argue that a nation having such capabilities
must select a response that will do minimal damage. This is a variant of the argument that a nation possessing
1006
the potential to produce less incidental damage than other kinetic weapons, cyber capabilities
usually will not be the only type of weapon that is legally permitted.
16.5.4 Prohibition on Improper Use of Signs During Cyber Operations. Under the law of
war, certain signs may not be used improperly. 65 These prohibitions may also be applicable
during cyber operations. For example, it would not be permissible to conduct a cyber attack or
to attempt to disable enemy internal communications by making use of communications that
initiate non-hostile relations, such as prisoner exchanges or ceasefires. 66 Similarly, it would be
prohibited to fabricate messages from an enemys Head of State falsely informing that States
forces that an armistice or cease-fire had been signed. 67
On the other hand, the restriction on the use of enemy flags, insignia, and uniforms only
applies to concrete visual objects; it does not restrict the use of enemy codes, passwords, and
countersigns. 68 Thus, for example, it would not be prohibited to disguise network traffic as
though it came from enemy computers or to use enemy codes during cyber operations.
Under the GPW, persons who are not members of the armed forces, but who are
authorized to accompany them, are entitled to POW status.70 This category was intended to
include, inter alia, civilian personnel with special skills in operating military equipment who
precision-guided munitions must always use them whenever there is a potential for collateral damage. That position
has garnered little support among nations and has been strongly rejected by the United States. There is broad
recognition that the risk of collateral damage is only one of many military considerations that must be balanced by
military authorities planning an attack. One obvious consideration is that a military force that goes into a protracted
conflict with a policy of always using precision-guided munitions whenever there is any potential for collateral
damage will soon exhaust its supply of such munitions. Similarly, military authorities must be able to weigh all
relevant military considerations in choosing a response in self-defense against computer network attacks. These
considerations will include the probable effectiveness of the means at their disposal, the ability to assess their
effects, and the fragility of electronic means of attack (i.e., once they are used, an adversary may be able to devise
defenses that will render them ineffective in the future).).
65
Refer to 5.24 (Improper Use of Certain Signs).
66
Refer to 12.2 (Principle of Good Faith in Non-Hostile Relations).
67
Department of Defense, Office of the General Counsel, An Assessment of International Legal Issues in
Information Operations (2nd ed., Nov. 1999), reprinted in 76 U.S. NAVAL WAR COLLEGE INTERNATIONAL LAW
STUDIES 459, 473 (2002) (Perfidy: It may seem attractive for a combatant vessel or aircraft to avoid being attacked
by broadcasting the agreed identification signals for a medical vessel or aircraft, but such actions would be a war
crime. Similarly, it might be possible to use computer morphing techniques to create an image of the enemys
chief of state informing his troops that an armistice or cease-fire agreement had been signed. If false, this would
also be a war crime.).
68
Refer to 5.23.1.5 (Use of Enemy Codes, Passwords, and Countersigns Not Restricted).
69
Refer to 4.15.2.2 (Employment in Hostilities).
70
Refer to 4.15 (Persons Authorized to Accompany the Armed Forces).
1007
support and participate in military operations, such as civilian members of military aircrews. 71 It
would include civilian cyber specialists who have been authorized to accompany the armed
forces.
Civilians who take a direct part in hostilities forfeit protection from being made the object
of attack. 72
DoD policy requires the legal review of the acquisition of weapons or weapon systems. 73
This policy would include the review of weapons that employ cyber capabilities to ensure that
they are not per se prohibited by the law of war. 74 Not all cyber capabilities, however, constitute
a weapon or weapons system. Military Department regulations address what cyber capabilities
require legal review. 75
The law of war does not prohibit the development of novel cyber weapons. The
customary law of war prohibitions on specific types of weapons result from State practice and
opinio juris demonstrating that a type of weapon is illegal; the mere fact that a weapon is novel
or employs new technology does not mean that the weapon is illegal. 76
Although which issues may warrant legal analysis would depend on the characteristics of
the weapon being assessed, a legal review of the acquisition or procurement of a weapon that
employs cyber capabilities likely would assess whether the weapon is inherently
indiscriminate. 77 For example, a destructive computer virus that was programmed to spread and
destroy uncontrollably within civilian internet systems would be prohibited as an inherently
71
Refer to 4.15 (Persons Authorized to Accompany the Armed Forces).
72
Refer to 5.9 (Civilians Taking a Direct Part in Hostilities).
73
Refer to 6.2 (DoD Policy of Reviewing the Legality of Weapons).
74
Harold Hongju Koh, Legal Adviser, Department of State, International Law in Cyberspace: Remarks as
Prepared for Delivery to the USCYBERCOM Inter-Agency Legal Conference (Sept. 18, 2012), reprinted in 54
HARVARD INTERNATIONAL LAW JOURNAL ONLINE, 6 (Dec. 2012) (States should undertake a legal review of
weapons, including those that employ a cyber capability. Such a review should entail an analysis, for example, of
whether a particular capability would be inherently indiscriminate, i.e., that it could not be used consistent with the
principles of distinction and proportionality. The U.S. Government undertakes at least two stages of legal review of
the use of weapons in the context of armed conflict: first, an evaluation of new weapons to determine whether their
use would be per se prohibited by the law of war; and second, specific operations employing weapons are always
reviewed to ensure that each particular operation is also compliant with the law of war.).
75
See, e.g., DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY REGULATION 27-53, Review of Legality of Weapons Under International
Law (Jan. 1, 1979); SECRETARY OF THE NAVY INSTRUCTION 5000.2E, Department of the Navy Implementation and
Operation of the Defense Acquisition System and the Joint Capabilities Integration and Development System (Sept.
1, 2011); DEPARTMENT OF THE AIR FORCE INSTRUCTION 51-402, Legal Reviews of Weapons and Cyber Capabilities
(Jul. 27, 2011).
76
Refer to 6.2.1 (Review of New Types of Weapons).
77
Refer to 6.7 (Inherently Indiscriminate Weapons).
1008
indiscriminate weapon. 78
78
United States Submission to the U.N. Group of Governmental Experts on Developments in the Field of
Information and Telecommunications in the Context of International Security 2012-2013, 3 (Weapons that cannot
be directed at a specific military objective or whose effects cannot be controlled would be inherently indiscriminate,
and per se unlawful under the law of armed conflict. In the traditional kinetic context, such inherently
indiscriminate and unlawful weapons include, for example, biological weapons. Certain cyber tools could, in light
of the interconnected nature of the network, be inherently indiscriminate in the sense that their effects cannot be
predicted or controlled; a destructive virus that could spread uncontrollably within civilian internet systems might
fall into this category. Attacks using such tools would be prohibited by the law of war.).
1009
XVII Non-International Armed Conflict (NIAC)
Chapter Contents
17.1 Introduction
17.2 Application of International Law to NIACs
17.3 Special Agreements Between Parties to the Conflict
17.4 A States Use of Its Domestic Law and NIAC
17.5 Principle of Distinction in NIAC
17.6 Respect and Humane Treatment of Persons Taking No Active Part in
Hostilities in NIAC
17.7 Rules on Conducting Attacks in NIAC
17.8 Impartial Humanitarian Organizations and Humanitarian Activities During
NIAC
17.9 Protection of the Civilian Population in NIAC
17.10 Protection of Children in NIAC
17.11 Protection of Cultural Property in NIAC
17.12 Use of Captured or Surrendered Enemy Personnel in NIAC
17.13 Weapons in NIAC
17.14 Protection of the Wounded, Sick, Shipwrecked, and Dead in NIAC
17.15 Protection of Medical and Religious Personnel and Medical Transports in
NIAC
17.16 Display of the Distinctive Emblem in NIAC
17.17 Detention in NIAC
17.18 Non-Intervention and Neutral Duties in NIAC
17.1 INTRODUCTION
This Chapter addresses the law of war rules applicable to armed conflict not of an
international character, or non-international armed conflict (NIAC). Non-international armed
conflicts are those armed conflicts that are not between States. 1 In particular, this Chapter
addresses the rules applicable to State armed forces conducting military operations against non-
State armed groups.
The application of the law of war to non-international armed conflict may be complex. 2
In U.S. practice, in certain cases, the rules applicable in international armed conflict have been
applied as a matter of policy to military operations in non-international armed conflict.
1
Refer to 3.3.1 (International Armed Conflict and Non-International Armed Conflict).
2
Refer to 17.2 (Application of International Law to NIACs).
1010
between non-international armed conflict and internal disturbances and tensions, such as riots,
isolated and sporadic acts of violence, and other acts of a similar nature. 3
A variety of terms have been used to describe factual situations that often may be
characterized as non-international armed conflict.
17.1.1.1 NIAC and Civil War. Civil war is a classic example of a non-
international armed conflict. For example, a non-international armed conflict could involve the
open rebellion of segments of a nations armed forces (sometimes called dissident armed forces)
against the incumbent regime, each claiming to be the legitimate government. 4
In some cases of civil war, the insurgent party has been recognized as a belligerent, and,
at least in some respects, the law of international armed conflict would be applied by the States
choosing to recognize the insurgent party as a belligerent. 5
17.1.1.2 NIAC and Internal Armed Conflict. In some cases, the term internal
armed conflict is used as a synonym for non-international armed conflict. Such usage may
reflect a traditional definition of non-international armed conflict as only those armed conflicts
occurring within the borders of a single State. 6 Non-international armed conflicts, however, are
classified as such simply based on the status of the parties to the conflict, and sometimes occur in
more than one State. 7 The mere fact that an armed conflict occurs in more than one State and
thus may be characterized as international in scope does not render it international in
character. 8
Transnational has been used to indicate that the non-international armed conflict takes
place in more than one State.
3
Refer to 3.4.2.2 (Distinguishing Armed Conflict From Internal Disturbances and Tensions).
4
See, e.g., LIEBER CODE art. 150 (Civil war is war between two or more portions of a country or state, each
contending for the mastery of the whole, and each claiming to be the legitimate government. The term is also
sometimes applied to war of rebellion, when the rebellious provinces or portions of the state are contiguous to those
containing the seat of government.).
5
Refer to 3.3.3 (State Recognition of Armed Groups as Belligerents).
6
See, e.g., GC COMMENTARY 36 (Speaking generally, it must be recognized that the conflicts referred to in Article
3 [of the GC] are armed conflicts, with armed forces on either side engaged in hostilitiesconflicts, in short, which
are in many respects similar to an international war, but take place within the confines of a single country.).
7
Refer to 3.3.1 (International Armed Conflict and Non-International Armed Conflict).
8
Hamdan v. Rumsfeld, 548 U.S. 557, 630 (2006) (The Court of Appeals thought, and the Government asserts, that
Common Article 3 [of the 1949 Geneva Conventions] does not apply to Hamdan because the conflict with al Qaeda,
being international in scope, does not qualify as a conflict not of an international character. 415 F. 3d, at 41.
That reasoning is erroneous. The term conflict not of an international character is used here in contradistinction to
a conflict between nations.).
1011
Internationalized has been used to indicate that multiple States may be involved in a
non-international armed conflict.
17.1.1.6 NIAC and Terrorism. Issues surrounding terrorism and the activities of
terrorist groups can arise in the contexts of non-international armed conflict, international armed
conflict, and, of course, can arise outside the context of armed conflict altogether. Acts of
terrorism are prohibited during international armed conflict and during non-international armed
conflict. 11
9
JOINT PUBLICATION 3-05.1, Joint Special Operations Task Force Operations, GL-11 (Apr. 26, 2007) (guerrilla
warfare. Military and paramilitary operations conducted in enemy-held or hostile territory by irregular,
predominantly indigenous forces. Also called GW. (JP 3-05.1)). See also FRANCIS LIEBER, GUERRILLA PARTIES
CONSIDERED WITH REFERENCE TO THE LAWS AND USAGES OF WAR 7-8 (1862) ([B]ut it may be stated here that
whatever may be our final definition, it is universally understood in this country at the present time that a guerrilla
party means an irregular band of armed men, carrying on an irregular war, not being able, according to their
character as a guerrilla party, to carry on what the law terms a regular war. The irregularity of the guerrilla party
consists in its origin, for it is either self-constituted or constituted by the call of a single individual, not according to
the general law of levy, conscription, or volunteering; it consists in its disconnection with the army, as to its pay,
provision, and movements, and it is irregular as to the permanency of the band, which may be dismissed and called
again together at any time.).
10
See, e.g., LIEBER CODE art. 151 (The term rebellion is applied to an insurrection of large extent, and is usually a
war between the legitimate government of a country and portions of provinces of the same who seek to throw off
their allegiance to it and set up a government of their own.).
11
Refer to 10.5.3.2 (Collective Penalties and Measures of Intimidation or Terrorism); 17.6.5 (Prohibition on
Acts of Terrorism).
12
John M. Collins, U.S. Low Intensity Conflicts, 1899-1990, 4 (Congressional Research Service, Sept. 10, 1990)
(This survey locates LIC [Low-Intensity Conflict] on the conflict spectrum just above normal peacetime
competition and just below any kind of armed combat that depletes U.S. forces slightly, if at all (Figures 1 and 2
graphically contrast LIC with mid- and high-intensity conflicts). Limitations on violence, rather than force levels
and arsenals, determine the indistinct upper boundary of LIC. Large military formations conceivably could conduct
low-intensity operations for limited objectives using the most lethal weapons (perhaps for signalling), provided few
U.S. casualties and little U.S. damage ensued. The lower boundary, where nonviolent LICs abut normal peacetime
competition, is equally inexact. Political, economic, technological, and psychological warfare, waged for deterrent,
offensive, or defensive purposes, occupy prominent places. So do nonviolent military operations, typified by shows
of force and peacekeeping. Insurgencies, counterinsurgencies, coups detat, transnational terrorism,
1012
small wars has also been used in military doctrine to describe situations that may be
characterized as non-international armed conflicts. 13 Low-intensity conflict and small wars
are not synonymous with non-international armed conflict, but there is a high degree of overlap
between those categories and non-international armed conflict.
anti/counterterrorism, minor conventional wars, and narco conflict lie between those poles. Variations within each
category, overlaps, and interlocks are virtually endless.).
13
MARINE CORPS, Small Wars Manual, 1-1-1-2 (1940), reprinted as FLEET MARINE FORCE REFERENCE
PUBLICATION 12-15 (1990) (The ordinary expedition of the Marine Corps which does not involve a major effort in
regular warfare against a first-rate power may be termed a small war. It is this type of routine active foreign duty of
the Marine Corps in which this manual is primarily interested. Small wars represent the normal and frequent
operations of the Marine Corps. During about 85 of the last 100 years, the Marine Corps has been engaged in small
wars in different parts of the world. The Marine Corps has landed troops 180 times in 37 countries from 1800 to
1934. Every year during the past 36 years since the Spanish-American War, the Marine Corps has been engaged in
active operations in the field. Most of the small wars of the United States have resulted from the obligation of the
Government under the spirit of the Monroe Doctrine and have been undertaken to suppress lawlessness or
insurrection. Punitive expeditions may be resorted to in some instances, but campaigns of conquest are contrary to
the policy of the Government of the United States.).
14
Military and Paramilitary Activities in and Against Nicaragua (Nicaragua v. United States), Merits, Judgment,
1986 I.C.J. 14, 114 (219) (Because the minimum rules applicable to international and to non-international
conflicts are identical, there is no need to address the question whether those actions must be looked at in the context
of the rules which operate for the one or for the other category of conflict. The relevant principles are to be looked
for in the provisions of Article 3 of each of the four Conventions of 12 August 1949, the text of which, identical in
each Convention, expressly refers to conflicts not having an international character.).
15
See Prosecutor v. Tadi, ICTY Appeals Chamber, IT-94-1-AR72, Decision on the Defence Motion for
Interlocutory Appeal on Jurisdiction, 119 (Oct. 2, 1995) (Indeed, elementary considerations of humanity and
common sense make it preposterous that the use by States of weapons prohibited in armed conflicts between
themselves be allowed when States try to put down rebellion by their own nationals on their own territory. What is
inhumane, and consequently proscribed, in international wars, cannot but be inhumane and inadmissible in civil
strife.). Refer to 2.1 (Introduction).
16
Refer to 17.2.2.1 (Use of Law of War Principles to Discern Rules Applicable to NIAC).
1013
conflict. 17 The rules for States conducting military operations against unprivileged belligerents
in international armed conflict are not significantly different from the rules for States conducting
military operations against non-State armed groups during non-international armed conflict.
Certain non-international armed conflicts, however, are not internal armed conflicts. 21
17
Refer to 4.3 (Lawful Combatants and Unprivileged Belligerents).
18
Refer to 4.4.4.2 (Nationals of a State Who Join Enemy Forces); 10.3.3.1 (A States Own Nationals).
19
Refer to 11.2.2.3 (Of the Hostile Army Belligerent Occupation Applies to Enemy Territory).
20
See Richard A. Baxter, Ius in Bello Interno: The Present and Future Law, in JOHN NORTON MOORE, LAW AND
CIVIL WAR IN THE MODERN WORLD 518, 531 (1974) (Other provisions of the [Fourth Geneva] Convention apply to
territory of a party to the conflict and to occupied territory. In internal conflict, the lawful government and the
insurgents will both maintain that there is only territory of a party to the conflict. Territory cannot be belligerently
occupied by the lawful government or the rebels. There is no starting point which divides territory into friendly and
enemy areas, so that, when the latter type of area is occupied, it will be belligerently occupied. It surely cannot be
maintained that the insurgents should be required to treat all territory over which they exercise control as being
belligerently occupied or that the lawful government should be forced to treat territory liberated from the control of
rebels as belligerently occupied. It is of the essence of belligerent occupation that it should be exercised over
foreign, enemy territory. Such requirements as that of Article 43 of the Hague Regulations that the occupant must
respect, unless absolutely prevented, the laws in force in the country are simply unworkable in domestic
conflict.).
21
Refer to 17.1.1.2 (NIAC and Internal Armed Conflict); 17.1.1.3 (Transnational or Internationalized NIACs).
22
Refer to 17.2.1 (Treaties That Apply to NIAC).
1014
international armed conflict. Certain guidelines may be helpful in assessing customary
international law applicable to non-international armed conflict. 23
First, the different circumstances that typically arise in non-international armed conflicts
as compared to international armed conflicts may need to be considered in applying the principle
of distinction. 24
Second, States have greater latitude to compel enemy persons to switch allegiance or to
serve the State in hostilities during non-international armed conflict than States have to compel
enemy nationals during international armed conflict. 25
Third, States have greater latitude to use their domestic law against enemy armed groups
in non-international armed conflict than States have to use their domestic law against enemy
forces or enemy nationals in international armed conflict. 26
In some cases, there may be important substantive differences between the rules
applicable in international armed conflict and the rules applicable in non-international armed
conflict. 27 In some cases, only the general essence of a rule that applies during international
armed conflict applies during non-international armed conflict, as opposed to the detailed
provisions in some treaties relating to many aspects of international armed conflict. 28
The extent to which the law of war rules that apply during international armed conflict
must or should apply during non-international armed conflict has not been clearly defined as the
23
Refer to 17.2.2 (Assessing Customary International Law Applicable to NIAC).
24
Refer to 17.5 (Principle of Distinction in NIAC).
25
Refer to 17.12.1 (Compelling Captured or Surrendered Enemy Personnel to Take Part in the Conflict).
26
Refer to 17.4.1 (Ability of a State to Use Its Domestic Law Against Non-State Armed Groups).
27
Refer to 17.1.3.3 (Important Substantive Differences Between the Law Applicable to International Armed
Conflict and the Law Applicable to Non-International Armed Conflict).
28
See, e.g., Prosecutor v. Tadi, ICTY Appeals Chamber, IT-94-1-AR72, Decision on the Defence Motion for
Interlocutory Appeal on Jurisdiction, 126-127 (Oct. 2, 1995) (The emergence of the aforementioned general
rules on internal armed conflicts does not imply that internal strife is regulated by general international law in all its
aspects. Two particular limitations may be noted: (i) only a number of rules and principles governing international
armed conflicts have gradually been extended to apply to internal conflicts; and (ii) this extension has not taken
place in the form of a full and mechanical transplant of those rules to internal conflicts; rather, the general essence of
those rules, and not the detailed regulation they may contain, has become applicable to internal conflicts.).
1015
law of war has developed. 29 The discretion afforded States in applying law of war rules to non-
international armed conflicts results, in part, because treaty provisions applicable to international
armed conflict have been presumed not to apply to non-international armed conflict unless
explicitly made applicable. For example, in the 1949 Geneva Conventions, only Common
Article 3 applies to non-international armed conflict. 30 The discretion afforded States in this
regard may also be understood to result from the wide range of circumstances that constitute
non-international armed conflict. The United States has objected to efforts to make the
applicability of the rules of international armed conflict turn on subjective and politicized criteria
that would eliminate the distinction between international and non-international conflicts. 31
In the sections that follow, which reflect the practice of the U.S. armed forces in applying
the law of war to non-international armed conflict, the rules articulated may exceed the
requirements of applicable customary international law and treaty law.
17.2.1 Treaties That Apply to NIAC. Relatively few treaties have provisions that
expressly apply to non-international armed conflicts. Some treaties, however, may apply
implicitly to non-international armed conflict.
17.2.1.1 Treaties That Have Provisions That Explicitly Apply to NIAC. Certain
treaties to which the United States is a Party have provisions that explicitly apply to non-
international armed conflict. These treaties include:
29
See, e.g., FRANCIS LIEBER, GUERRILLA PARTIES CONSIDERED WITH REFERENCE TO THE LAWS AND USAGES OF
WAR 21 (1862) (The application of the laws and usages of war to wars of insurrection or rebellion is always
undefined, and depends on relaxations of municipal law, suggested by humanity or necessitated by the numbers
engaged in the insurrection. The law of war, as acknowledged between independent belligerents, is, at times, not
allowed to interfere with the municipal law of rebellion, or is allowed to do so only very partially, as was the case in
Great Britain during the Stuart rebellion, in the middle of last century; at other times, again, measures are adopted in
rebellions, by the victorious party or the legitimate government, more lenient even than the international law of
war.).
30
GC COMMENTARY 34 (To borrow the phrase of one of the delegates, Article 3 is like a Convention in
miniature. It applies to non-international conflicts only, and will be the only Article applicable to them until such
time as a special agreement between the Parties has brought into force between them all or part of the other
provisions of the Convention.).
31
Refer to 3.3.4 (AP I Provision on National Liberation Movements).
32
GPW art. 3 (In the case of armed conflict not of an international character occurring in the territory of one of the
High Contracting Parties .); GWS (same); GWS Sea (same); GC (same).
33
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 19(1) (In the event of an armed conflict not of an
international character occurring within the territory of one of the High Contracting Parties, each party to the
conflict shall be bound to apply, as a minimum, the provisions of the present Convention which relate to respect for
cultural property.).
1016
the Amended CCW, including Protocols I, III, and IV; 35
AP III. 37
Treaties to which the United States is not a Party that have provisions applicable to
armed conflict not of an international character include:
AP II; 38 and
34
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 1 (2. This Protocol shall apply, in addition to situations referred to in
Article I of this Convention, to situations referred to in Article 3 common to the Geneva Conventions of 12 August
1949. This Protocol shall not apply to situations of internal disturbances and tensions, such as riots, isolated and
sporadic acts of violence and other acts of a similar nature, as not being armed conflicts. 3. In case of armed
conflicts not of an international character occurring in the territory of one of the High Contracting Parties, each party
to the conflict shall be bound to apply the prohibitions and restrictions of this Protocol.).
35
CCW AMENDED art. 1 (2. This Convention and its annexed Protocols shall also apply, in addition to situations
referred to in paragraph 1 of this Article, to situations referred to in Article 3 common to the Geneva Conventions of
12 August 1949. This Convention and its annexed Protocols shall not apply to situations of internal disturbances
and tensions, such as riots, isolated and sporadic acts of violence, and other acts of a similar nature, as not being
armed conflicts. 3. In case of armed conflicts not of an international character occurring in the territory of one of the
High Contracting Parties, each party to the conflict shall be bound to apply the prohibitions and restrictions of this
Convention and its annexed Protocols.).
36
CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 1(3) (This Protocol shall apply to situations resulting
from conflicts referred to in Article 1, paragraphs 1 to 6, of the Convention, as amended on 21 December 2001.).
37
AP III art. 1 (2. This Protocol reaffirms and supplements the provisions of the four Geneva Conventions of 12
August 1949 (the Geneva Conventions) and, where applicable, of their two Additional Protocols of 8 June 1977
(the 1977 Additional Protocols) relating to the distinctive emblems, namely the red cross, the red crescent and the
red lion and sun, and shall apply in the same situations as those referred to in these provisions.).
38
AP II art. 1(1) (This Protocol, which develops and supplements Article 3 common to the Geneva Conventions of
12 August 1949 without modifying its existing conditions of applications, shall apply to all armed conflicts which
are not covered by Article 1 of the Protocol Additional to the Geneva Conventions of 12 August 1949, and relating
to the Protection of Victims of International Armed Conflicts (Protocol I) and which take place in the territory of a
High Contracting Party between its armed forces and dissident armed forces or other organized armed groups which,
under responsible command, exercise such control over a part of its territory as to enable them to carry out sustained
and concerted military operations and to implement this Protocol.).
39
ROME STATUTE art. 8(2)(c) (In the case of an armed conflict not of an international character, serious violations
of article 3 common to the four Geneva Conventions , namely, any of the following acts committed against
persons taking no active part in the hostilities); ROME STATUTE art. 8(2)(f) (Paragraph 2(e) applies to armed
conflicts not of an international character .).
1017
private individuals. 40 Similarly, the Convention Against Torture recognizes that No
exceptional circumstances whatsoever, whether a state of war or a threat of war, internal political
instability or any other public emergency, may be invoked as a justification of torture; thus, the
state of non-international armed conflict could not be justification for torture. 41
The prohibitions in Article 1 of the Chemical Weapons Convention have been interpreted
to apply to non-international armed conflict. 42
Further, the obligations in the Child Soldiers Protocol relate implicitly to non-
international armed conflict. 44
40
Convention on the Prevention and Punishment of the Crime of Genocide, art. 1, Dec. 9, 1948, 78 UNTS 277, 280
(The Contracting Parties confirm that genocide, whether committed in time of peace or in time of war, is a crime
under international law which they undertake to prevent and to punish.); id. at art. 4 (Persons committing genocide
or any of the other acts enumerated in article III shall be punished, whether they are constitutionally responsible
rulers, public officials or private individuals.).
41
Convention against Torture and Other Cruel, Inhuman or Degrading Treatment or Punishment, art. 2(2), Dec. 10,
1984, 1465 UNTS 85, 114. Refer to 1.6.3.4 (Convention Against Torture).
42
Refer to 6.8.3.2 (Prohibitions With Respect to Chemical Weapons).
43
Refer to 6.9.1 (Biological Weapons Prohibition on Use as a Method of Warfare).
44
Refer to 4.20.5.2 (Child Soldiers Protocol).
45
Refer to 1.6.3 (Human Rights Treaties).
46
Refer to 1.6.3.3 (International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights (ICCPR)).
47
Refer to 1.3.2 (The Law of Wars Relationship to Other Bodies of Law).
1018
following guidelines may be helpful in assessing the customary international law applicable to
non-international armed conflict.
17.2.2.1 Use of Law of War Principles to Discern Rules Applicable to NIAC. The
fundamental principles of the law of war also provide the foundation for the rules applicable
during non-international armed conflict. 48 As during international armed conflict, the principles
of the law of war form the general guide for conduct during non-international armed conflict,
when no specific rule applies. 49
However, the application of law of war principles may differ insofar as the circumstances
in international armed conflicts may often be quite different from the circumstances in non-
international armed conflicts. 50
Thus, if a treaty addresses both international armed conflict and non-international armed
conflict, and provides for a restriction in international armed conflict but does not provide for
that restriction in non-international armed conflict, then this omission may, to some extent,
reflect States views that such restrictions were not applicable in non-international armed
48
Refer to 17.1.2.2 (Foundational Principles of the Law of War).
49
Refer to 2.1.2.2 (Law of War Principles as a General Guide).
50
Refer to 17.5 (Principle of Distinction in NIAC).
51
See, e.g., Tucker v. Alexandroff, 183 U.S. 424, 436 (1902) (But whatever view might be taken of the question of
delivering over foreign seamen in the absence of a treaty, we are of opinion that the treaty with Russia having
contained a convention upon this subject, that convention must alone be looked to in determining the rights of the
Russian authorities to the reclamation of the relator. Where the signatory powers have themselves fixed the terms
upon which deserting seamen shall be surrendered, we have no right to enlarge those powers upon the principles of
comity so as to embrace cases not contemplated by the treaty. Upon general principles applicable to the
construction of written instruments, the enumeration of certain powers with respect to a particular subject-matter is a
negation of all other analogous powers with respect to the same subject-matter. As observed by Lord Denham in
Aspdin v. Austin, where parties have entered into written engagements with express stipulations, it is manifestly not
desirable to extend them by any implications; the presumption is that, having expressed some, they have expressed
all the conditions by which they intend to be bound under that instrument. The rule is curtly stated in the familiar
legal maxim, Expressio unius est exclusio alterius.) (internal citations omitted); The S.S. Wimbledon, (United
Kingdom, France, Japan v. Germany) (Judgment), 1923 P.C.I.J. (series A) No. 1, at 23-24 (Although the Kiel
Canal, having been constructed by Germany in German territory, was, until 1919, an internal waterway of the state
holding both banks, the Treaty has taken care not to assimilate it to the other internal navigable waterways of the
German Empire. A special section has been created at the end of Part XII, dealing with ports, waterways and
railways, and in this special section rules exclusively designed for the Kiel Canal have been inserted; these rules
differ on more than one point from those to which other internal navigable waterways of the Empire are subjected by
Articles 321 to 327. The provisions relating to the Kiel Canal in the Treaty of Versailles are therefore self-
contained; if they had to be supplemented and interpreted by the aid of those referring to the inland navigable
waterways of Germany in the previous Sections of Part XII, they would lose their raison dtre, such repetitions as
are found in them would be superfluous and there would be every justification for surprise at the fact that, in certain
cases, when the provisions of Articles 321 to 327 might be applicable to the canal, the authors of the Treaty should
have taken the trouble to repeat their terms or re-produce their substance.).
1019
conflict. 52 Similarly, States negotiated and adopted AP I and AP II at the same diplomatic
conference, and the omission from AP II of restrictions present in AP I may, to some extent,
reflect States views that such restrictions were not applicable in non-international armed
conflict. 53
For example, analogous provisions of the GPW and GC may be helpful for understanding
the baseline standards in international law for detention because the baseline standards applicable
to all detainees during armed conflict (e.g., Common Article 3 of the 1949 Geneva Conventions)
are not more favorable than the treatment and protections applicable to POWs and civilian
52
See, e.g., II OFFICIAL RECORDS OF THE UNITED NATIONS DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF PLENIPOTENTIARIES ON
THE ESTABLISHMENT OF AN INTERNATIONAL CRIMINAL COURT 157-58 (A/CONF.183/C.1/SR.4, 33-34) (2002)
(33. Mr. van der Wind (Netherlands), acting as Coordinator of part 2 of the draft Statute, said that the definition
of war crimes was divided into four sections, of which sections A and B concerned norms applicable in international
armed conflict and sections C and D those applicable in internal armed conflict. 41. Under section D,
subparagraph (f), the options were very similar to those proposed in section B, subparagraph (t), the differences in
wording stemming from the fact that the norms applicable to international armed conflict and the sources used were
somewhat different, as could be seen, for example, in options 2 and 3 which referred to armed forces or groups, and
in the reference to allowing children to take part.).
53
See, e.g., XIV OFFICIAL RECORDS OF THE CDDH 67 (CDDH/III/SR.8, 67-72) (Mr. ALDRICH (United States
of America) said that article 46 was important for giving general guidance to military commanders in the conduct of
their operations. His delegation supported the amendments to article 26 of draft Protocol II in document
CDDH/III/36. It was inappropriate to include the same detailed provisions in a protocol on non-international armed
conflicts as in one on international armed conflicts.); XIV OFFICIAL RECORDS OF THE CDDH 179
(CDDH/III/SR.20, 53) (Mrs. DARIIMAA (Mongolia) said that the Working Group should consider the differences
between article 28 of draft Protocol II and the corresponding article of draft Protocol I, since the practices and rules
current in international and internal law were not the same. Unless that was taken into account, the Protocol would
be inapplicable and might open the way to various forms of interference in the internal affairs of State.); XIV
OFFICIAL RECORDS OF THE CDDH 73 (CDDH/III/SR.9, 14) (Mr. BLISHCHENKO (Union of Soviet Socialist
Republics) said that he wished to reply to certain delegations which had expressed the desire to see the same
revisions in article 26 of draft Protocol II and in article 46 of draft Protocol I. He pointed out that there were
differences between international and internal conflicts. With regard to the latter, it was essential to make rules that
everyone could accept.); XV OFFICIAL RECORDS OF THE CDDH 460 (Committee III Report, CDDH/407/Rev.1,
40) (The Committee was also aided in its task by the somewhat similar word done at the third session of the
Conference by Committee I with respect to draft Protocol II. As a matter of drafting, the Committee adopted the
texts of those parts of Articles 6 and 10 of draft Protocol II which it decided to include in Article 65. The rule
applied was that the same text would be used unless there was reason for changing it inherent in the differences
between international and non-international armed conflicts.); XI OFFICIAL RECORDS OF THE CDDH 248
(CDDH/II/SR.25, 16-18) (Mr. IJAS (Indonesia) said that his delegation understood the concern of those who
objected to draft Protocol II on the grounds that some of its provisions interfered in the internal affairs of States and
were contrary to the principle of national sovereignty. The provisions of Part III of draft Protocol II should not
reproduce automatically those of the corresponding part of draft Protocol I, since they are concerned with different
type of armed conflict. For example, article 16, paragraph 3 could give rise to serious problems if it was left as it
stood.); XIV OFFICIAL RECORDS OF THE CDDH 312 (CDDH/III/SR.32, 15) (Mr. WOLFE (Canada), referring to
his delegations amendment (CDDH/III/221), said that he thought it was dangerous to try to introduce in draft
Protocol II a notion of perfidy which was only valid in international conflicts and very difficult to apply in internal
conflicts.).
1020
internees under the GPW and GC, respectively. 54 Thus, in some instances it may be appropriate
to implement measures during detention of persons during non-international armed conflict by
analogy to the internment of POWs during international armed conflict or by analogy to the
internment of protected persons in occupied territory. 55
17.2.3 Application of Humanitarian Rules and the Legal Status of the Parties to the
Conflict. The application of humanitarian rules to enemy non-State armed groups does not affect
the legal status of such groups. 57 For example, a States decision to apply humanitarian rules in
military operations against a non-State armed group would not constitute an implicit recognition
of a government that such an armed group has purported to establish nor an implicit recognition
of the legitimacy of the armed groups cause. Such application also would not implicitly provide
the members of the armed group with any legal immunity from prosecution.
The principle that the application of humanitarian rules to an armed group does not affect
the legal status of that armed group has been recognized in a number of treaties. For example, by
its express terms, the application of Common Article 3 of the 1949 Geneva Conventions shall not
affect the legal status of the parties to the conflict. 58 Also by express treaty terms, the
application of the provisions of the CCW and its annexed Protocols to parties to a conflict that
are not High Contracting Parties that have accepted the CCW or its annexed Protocols shall not
change their legal status or the legal status of a disputed territory, either explicitly or implicitly. 59
54
Refer to 8.1.4.4 (Analogous GPW and GC Provisions).
55
Refer to 17.17.1.1 (Non-Punitive Detention in Non-International Armed Conflict).
56
See, e.g., GWS COMMENTARY 50 (What Government would dare to claim before the world, in a case of civil
disturbances which could justly be described as mere acts of banditry, that, Article 3 not being applicable, it was
entitled to leave the wounded uncared for, to inflict torture and mutilations and to take hostages? However useful,
therefore, the various conditions stated above may be, they are not indispensable, since no Government can object to
respecting, in its dealings with internal enemies, whatever the nature of the conflict between it and them, a few
essential rules which it in fact respects daily, under its own laws, even when dealing with common criminals.).
57
See LIEBER CODE art. 152 (When humanity induces the adoption of the rules of regular war toward rebels,
whether the adoption is partial or entire, it does in no way whatever imply a partial or complete acknowledgement of
their government, if they have set up one, or of them, as an independent and sovereign power. Neutrals have no
right to make the adoption of the rules of war by the assailed government toward rebels the ground of their own
acknowledgment of the revolted people as an independent power.).
58
GWS art. 3 (The application of the preceding provisions [in Article 3] shall not affect the legal status of the
Parties to the conflict.); GWS-SEA art. 3 (same); GPW art. 3 (same); GC art. 3 (same).
59
CCW AMENDED art. 1(6) (The application of the provisions of this Convention and its annexed Protocols to
parties to a conflict which are not High Contracting Parties that have accepted this Convention or its annexed
Protocols, shall not change their legal status or the legal status of a disputed territory, either explicitly or
implicitly.); CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 1(6) (The application of the provisions of this Protocol to
parties to a conflict, which are not High Contracting Parties that have accepted this Protocol, shall not change their
legal status or the legal status of a disputed territory, either explicitly or implicitly.); CCW AMENDED MINES
1021
Further, by the express terms of the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention, its provisions
that relate to non-international armed conflict shall not affect the legal status of the parties to the
conflict. 60
17.2.4 Binding Force of the Law of War on Insurgents and Other Non-State Armed
Groups. The law of war applicable in a non-international armed conflict is binding upon all
parties to the armed conflict, including State armed forces and non-State armed groups. A
variety of explanations have been offered for this principle.
Customary law of war rules are binding on a State, even if it is not a Party to a treaty
containing the rule. 61 Similarly, customary law of war rules are binding on those parties to the
armed conflict that intend to make war and to claim the rights of a belligerent, even if they are
not States. 62
Treaty provisions that address non-international armed conflict provide that they apply
not only to the State, but to each party to the conflict. 63 In many cases, these treaty provisions
would also be binding on non-State armed groups as a matter of customary international law. 64
PROTOCOL art. 12(1)(b) (The application of the provisions of this Article to parties to a conflict which are not High
Contracting Parties shall not change their legal status or the legal status of a disputed territory, either explicitly or
implicitly.).
60
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 19(4) (The application of the preceding provisions shall not
affect the legal status of the parties to the conflict.).
61
Refer to 1.8 (Customary International Law).
62
See Trial of Henry Wirz, Argument of the Judge Advocate (Special Military Commission, Washington D.C., Oct.
20, 1865), reprinted in 40th Congress, House Executive Document No. 23, A Congressionally Mandated Report
Summarizing the Military Commissions Proceedings, 722, 764 (Dec. 7, 1867) (Whatever the form of government
may have been to which the leaders of the confederacy, so-called, aspired; whatever of wrong and injustice they
sought to embody in their system; with whatever of oppression and tyranny they sought to grind down their subjects,
the moment they asked a place among nations they were bound to recognize and obey those laws international
which are and of necessity must be applicable alike to all.); Chacon v. Eighty-Nine Bales of Cochineal, 5 F. Cas.
390, 394 (C.C.D. Va. 1821) (Marshall, C.J.) (whether an entity be a state or not, if she is in a condition to make
war, and to claim the character and rights of a belligerent, she is bound to respect the laws of war;). Refer to
3.4.1.2 (Non-State Armed Groups With the Intention of Conducting Hostilities).
63
See, e.g., GWS art. 3 (In the case of armed conflict not of an international character occurring in the territory of
one of the High Contracting Parties, each Party to the conflict shall be bound to apply, as a minimum, .); 1954
HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION ART. 19(1) (In the event of an armed conflict not of an international
character occurring within the territory of one of the High Contracting Parties, each party to the conflict shall be
bound to apply, as a minimum, the provisions of the present Convention which relate to respect for cultural
property.); CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 1(3) (In case of armed conflicts not of an international
character occurring in the territory of one of the High Contracting Parties, each party to the conflict shall be bound
to apply the prohibitions and restrictions of this Protocol.); CCW AMENDED art. 1(3) (In case of armed conflicts
not of an international character occurring in the territory of one of the High Contracting Parties, each party to the
conflict shall be bound to apply the prohibitions and restrictions of this Convention and its annexed Protocols.).
64
Special Court for Sierra Leone Appeals Chamber, Decision on Challenge to Jurisdiction: Lom Accord Amnesty,
SCSL-2004-15-AR72(E) and SCSL-2004-16-AR72(E), 47 (Mar. 13, 2004) (It suffices to say, for the purpose of the
present case, that no one has suggested that insurgents are bound because they have been vested with personality in
international law of such a nature as to make it impossible for them to be a party to the Geneva Conventions.
1022
As a practical matter, non-State armed groups would often be bound by their States
treaty obligations due to the very fact that the leaders of those non-State armed groups would
claim to be the States legitimate representatives. 65 Other practical considerations, such as the
desire to be seen as legitimate, may also contribute to their compliance with the law of war. 66
Parties to a conflict may enter into agreements to bring into force law of war rules. 67 For
example, pursuant to Common Article 3 of the 1949 Geneva Conventions, the parties to the
conflict should further endeavor to bring into force, by means of special agreements, all or part
of the other provisions of the 1949 Geneva Conventions. 68 Similarly, pursuant to the 1954
Rather, a convincing theory is that they are bound as a matter of international customary law to observe the
obligations by common Article 3 which is aimed at the protection of humanity.).
65
GWS COMMENTARY 51-52 (On the other hand, what justification is there for the obligation on the adverse Party
in revolt against the established authority? At the Diplomatic Conference doubt was expressed as to whether
insurgents could be legally bound by a Convention which they had not themselves signed. But if the responsible
authority at their head exercises effective sovereignty, it is bound by the very fact that it claims to represent the
country, or part of the country. The authority in question can only free itself from its obligations under the
Convention by following the procedure for denunciation laid down in Article 63. But the denunciation would not be
valid, and could not in point of fact be effected, unless the denouncing authority was recognized internationally as a
competent Government. It should, moreover, be noted that under Article 63 denunciation does not take effect
immediately.).
66
GWS COMMENTARY 52 (If an insurgent party applies Article 3, so much the better for the victims of the conflict.
No one will complain. If it does not apply it, it will prove that those who regard its actions as mere acts of anarchy
or brigandage are right.). Refer to 18.2 (Prudential Reasons Supporting the Implementation and Enforcement of
the Law of War).
67
For example, Letter from James Robertson to George Washington (May 1, 1782) (Sir, A Commission from the
King appointing me Commander in Chief of his forces in this country having arrived by a late conveyance, I make it
one of my first cares, to convince you of my wish to carry on the war agreeable to the rules which humanity formed,
and the example of the politest nations recommended. I make this declaration of my resolution, in hope that I may
find a similar inclination in you. To effect this, let us agree to prevent or punish every breach of the rules of war
within the spheres of our command.) and, Letter from George Washington to James Robertson (May 5, 1782)
(Sincerely lamenting the cruel necessity, which alone can induce so distressing a measure in the present instance, I
do assure your Excellency, I am as earnestly desirous as you can be, that the war may be carried on agreeable to the
rules which humanity formed, and the example of the politest nations recommends, and shall be extremely happy in
agreeing with you to prevent or punish every breach of the rules of war within the sphere of our respective
commands.), reprinted in THE REMEMBRANCER; OR, IMPARTIAL REPOSITORY OF PUBLIC EVENTS FOR THE YEAR
1782, PART II, 156-57.
68
GWS art. 3 (The Parties to the conflict should further endeavour to bring into force, by means of special
agreements, all or part of the other provisions of the present Convention.); GWS-SEA art. 3 (same); GPW art. 3
(same); GC art. 3 (same). For example, Bosnia and Herzegovina, Agreement No. 1 of May 22, 1992, reprinted in
Marco Sassli, Antoine A. Bouvier, Anne Quintin, III How Does Law Protect In War? Cases and Documents, Case
No. 204: Former Yugoslavia, Special Agreements Between Parties to the Conflicts, 116-17 2 (Mar. 2011) (In
accordance with the Article 3 of the four Geneva Conventions of August 12, 1949, the Parties agree to bring into
force the following provisions . Captured combatants shall enjoy the treatment provided for by the Third Geneva
Convention.); U.N. COMMISSION ON HUMAN RIGHTS, Report on the situation of human rights in Afghanistan
prepared by the Special Rapporteur, Mr. Felix Ermacora, in accordance with Commission on Human Rights
resolution 1984/55, U.N. Doc. E/CN.4/1985/21, 28-29 104 (Feb. 19, 1985) (Apparently in 1982 an agreement on
conditions for the internment of foreign prisoners was signed between the Afghan resistance movement and the
International Committee of the Red Cross (ICRC) under which the resistance expressed its intention to respect the
spirit of the provisions of the Geneva Convention relative to the Treatment of Prisoners of War. This involves the
1023
Hague Cultural Property Convention, the parties to the conflict shall endeavor to bring into force,
by means of special agreements, all or part of the other provisions of that Convention. 69
agreements to permit passage of medical or other relief supplies for the civilian
population;
17.3.1 Communications Between Parties to the Conflict. The procedures that are used
for non-hostile relations between belligerents during international armed conflict may also be
applied by parties to a non-international armed conflict. 72
application of article 3 of the Geneva Conventions under which the parties to armed conflict can conclude
agreements or make statements specifying that they will apply all or part of the other provisions of the Conventions.
Analysing this agreement as calculated to set an example for better treatment of prisoners of war, witnesses stated
that since then the resistance movements had endeavoured to ensure that foreign prisoners were not tortured or
assassinated.).
69
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 19(2) (The parties to the Conflict shall endeavour to bring
into force, by means of special agreements, all or part of the other provisions of the present Convention.).
70
For example, International Committee of the Red Cross, External Activities: AfricaLatin AmericanAsia
Middle EastEurope, 24 INTERNATIONAL REVIEW OF THE RED CROSS 230, 239-40 (Jul.-Aug. 1984) (Negotiations
carried out by the ICRC with, successively, the USSR, the Afghan opposition movement, Pakistan and Switzerland
led to partial success. The parties agreed to the transfer and internment in a neutral country of Soviet soldiers
detained by the Afghan opposition movements, in application, by analogy, of the Third Geneva Convention, relative
to the treatment of prisoners of war. On the basis of this agreement, the ICRC has had access to some of the Soviet
prisoners in the hands of the Afghan movements and has informed them, in the course of interviews without witness,
of the possibility for transfer by the ICRC to Switzerland, where they would spend two years under the
responsibility and watch of the Swiss government before returning to their country of origin. To date, eleven
Soviet soldiers have accepted the proposal. The first three were transferred to Switzerland on 28 May 1982. Eight
others arrived in August and October 1982, January and October 1983, and February and April 1984. One of them
escaped to the Federal Republic of Germany in July 1983.).
71
Refer to 6.20.5 (Obligations Under the CCW Protocol V on Explosive Remnants of War That Are Triggered by
the Cessation of Active Hostilities).
72
Refer to 12.3 (Methods for Communication Between Belligerents).
1024
17.4 A STATES USE OF ITS DOMESTIC LAW AND NIAC
17.4.1 Ability of a State to Use Its Domestic Law Against Non-State Armed Groups. A
fundamental principle of the international legal order is the sovereign equality of States, which
generally prohibits States from exercising sovereignty over one another. 73 However, the
principle of the sovereign equality of States is not applicable in armed conflicts between a State
and a non-State armed group. A State may exercise both sovereign and belligerent rights over
non-State armed groups. 74 This means that a State may use not only its war powers to combat
non-State armed groups, but it may also use its domestic law, including its ordinary criminal law,
to combat non-State armed groups.
The limits imposed by international law on a States action against non-State armed
groups do not alter the basic principle that the State may exercise its sovereign powers against
the non-State armed group. 75
Although, during international armed conflict, lawful combatants are afforded certain
immunities from the enemy States jurisdiction, 76 persons belonging to non-State armed groups
lack any legal privilege or immunity from prosecution by a State that is engaged in hostilities
against that group.
On the other hand, the non-State armed group lacks authority to prosecute members of
the State armed forces. In addition, the non-State status of the armed group would not render
inapplicable the privileges and immunities afforded lawful combatants and other State officials.
Thus, for example, members of the armed forces of a State would continue to benefit from any
privileges or immunities from the jurisdiction of foreign States that sought to exercise
73
See Jurisdictional Immunities of the State (Germany v. Italy: Greece intervening), Judgment, 2012 I.C.J. 99, 123
(57) (The Court considers that the rule of State immunity occupies an important place in international law and
international relations. It derives from the principle of sovereign equality of States, which, as Article 2, paragraph 1,
of the Charter of the United Nations makes clear, is one of the fundamental principles of the international legal
order.).
74
The Prize Cases, 67 U.S. 635, 673 (1863) (Now, it is a proposition never doubted, that the belligerent party who
claims to be sovereign, may exercise both belligerent and sovereign rights, .).
75
CCW AMENDED art. 1(4) (Nothing in this Convention or its annexed Protocols shall be invoked for the purpose
of affecting the sovereignty of a State or the responsibility of the Government, by all legitimate means, to maintain
or re-establish law and order in the State or to defend the national unity and territorial integrity of the State.).
Consider AP II art. 3(1) (Nothing in this Protocol shall be invoked for the purpose of affecting the sovereignty of a
State or the responsibility of the government, by all legitimate means, to maintain or re-establish law and order in
the State or to defend the national unity and territorial integrity of the State.).
76
Refer to 4.4.3 (Combatants - Legal Immunity From a Foreign States Domestic Law).
1025
jurisdiction with respect to the actions of such State armed forces in a non-international armed
conflict. 77
17.4.1.2 Range of Activities Subject to Prosecution. A State may also use its
domestic law to make punishable a wide range of activity that extend beyond the activities that
constitute actual fighting against the State. For example, joining the non-State armed group,
providing material support to the armed group, failing to report the treasonous activities of the
armed group, and other conduct may be punishable under a States domestic law. 78
For example, the State could use its authority to tax, regulate, seize, or destroy property
(e.g., weapons, vehicles, food, and medical equipment) within its jurisdiction as part of its effort
against the non-State armed group. 79 The use of these sovereign powers would be subject to
domestic law restrictions, and might not depend on whether such action would be imperatively
required by the necessities of war the standard for the seizure of destruction of enemy property
during international armed conflict. 80 In any event, however, it would not be permissible for the
State to seek to starve civilians as a method of combat. 81
77
For example, Daniel Webster, Letter to Mr. Fox, Apr. 24, 1841, reprinted in THE DIPLOMATIC AND OFFICIAL
PAPERS OF DANIEL WEBSTER, WHILE SECRETARY OF STATE 124 (1848) (This doubt has occasioned the President
some hesitation; but he inclines to take it for granted that the main purpose of the instruction was, to cause it to be
signified to the government of the United States that the attack upon the steamboat Caroline was an act of public
force, done by the British colonial authorities [intended to address insurgents], and fully recognized by the queens
government at home; and that, consequently, no individual concerned in that transaction can, according to the just
principles of the laws of nations, be held personally answerable in the ordinary courts of law as for a private offense;
and that upon this avowal of her majestys government, Alexander McLeod, now imprisoned on an indictment for
murder alleged to have committed in that attack, ought to be released by such proceedings as are usual and are
suitable to the case.).
78
For example, 18 U.S.C. 2339B(a)(1) (Whoever knowingly provides material support or resources to a foreign
terrorist organization, or attempts or conspires to do so, shall be fined under this title or imprisoned not more than 15
years, or both, and, if the death of any person results, shall be imprisoned for any term of years or for life. To
violate this paragraph, a person must have knowledge that the organization is a designated terrorist organization (as
defined in subsection (g)(6)), that the organization has engaged or engages in terrorist activity (as defined in section
212(a)(3)(B) of the Immigration and Nationality Act), or that the organization has engaged or engages in terrorism
(as defined in section 140(d)(2) of the Foreign Relations Authorization Act, Fiscal Years 1988 and 1989).); 18
U.S.C. 2382 (Whoever, owing allegiance to the United States and having knowledge of the commission of any
treason against them, conceals and does not, as soon as may be, disclose and make known the same to the President
or to some judge of the United States, or to the governor or to some judge or justice of a particular State, is guilty of
misprision of treason and shall be fined under this title or imprisoned not more than seven years, or both.).
79
For example, DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY FIELD MANUAL 3-24.2, Tactics in Counterinsurgency, 3-170 (Apr.
2009) (Resource control measures include control of select resources to include foodstuffs, medical supplies, and
key equipment through: Rationing or purchase permits Registration of firearms. Registration of automobiles
and trucks. Export and import restrictions.).
80
Refer to 5.17.2 (Enemy Property Military Necessity Standard).
81
Refer to 17.9.2 (Prohibition on Starvation of Civilians as a Method of Combat).
1026
17.4.2 Emergency Laws and Regulations. Many States have laws permitting the
government to alter or suspend laws (such as a declaration of martial law, and the establishment
of curfews and other controls on the movement of persons and traffic), to enact emergency
regulations (such as the establishment of monetary or trade regulations, or the rationing of food,
fuel, and other critical materials), and to take other steps to protect the public (such as the
issuance of identification cards, the development of detention rules for members of non-State
armed groups, and the establishment of special emergency courts). 82
The full range of actions that a State may take under its domestic law during non-
international armed conflict would depend on the content of that law, including applicable
constitutional restrictions. 83
17.4.3 Special Courts. As part of its emergency regulations, a State may establish special
or emergency courts for cases involving unprivileged belligerents or other persons suspected of
committing offenses related to the non-international armed conflict.
Such courts must be regularly constituted and afford all the judicial guarantees that are
recognized as indispensable by civilized peoples. 84 Such courts may distinguish based on
82
For example, David Galula, Pacification in Algeria, 1956-1958, 21 (RAND Corporation, 2006) (In the existing
legal framework, proclamation of martial law was the only provision in case of disturbances endangering the
security of the state. It would have entailed handing over all powers to the military authority and suspending private
and public liberties. Government and Parliament considered this step too extreme. Hence they devised a new
contingency, the so-called state of emergency, which was declared for the first time for the Constantine area and
for Kabylia in April 1955, and was extended to all Algeria in August 1955. Parliament voted a Special Powers Act
(with the support of the Communists!), which gave the government a free hand for conducting its policy in Algeria
by decree, notably in matters pertaining to economic development, economic and social reforms, territorial
reorganization, public order, security of persons and property, and protection of the integrity of the territory. These
special powers were vested in the existing government and would lapse with the end of its incumbency; the
succeeding government would have to request an extension from the Parliament. The government in turn gave
authority to the Minister-Resident (who by then had replaced the Governor General in Algiers) to regulate
movements of persons and goods, assign places of residence, create forbidden zones, order searches, ban meetings,
control the press, dissolve associations, collect reparations for willful damage and for aid given to the rebels,
suspend or transfer civil servants, deprive elected representatives of their seats, postpone by-elections, and delegate
certain civil powers to the military. Travel between France and Algeria was made subject to strict control (at least in
theory).); FRANK KITSON, GANGS AND COUNTER-GANGS 44 (1960) (The legal code in Kenya in October 1952 was
not very different from that in England. Certain acts such as theft or murder were illegal and if you committed them
you were prosecuted. When the Emergency started some extra laws were made to fit the special circumstances. For
example, it became illegal to administer the Mau Mau oath or to carry arms and certain areas of the forest were
placed out of bounds. These extra laws, and there were many of them, were known as Emergency Regulations.).
83
For example, FRANK KITSON, GANGS AND COUNTER-GANGS 289 (1960) (No country which relies on the law of
the land to regulate the lives of its citizens can afford to see that law flouted by its own government, even in an
insurgency situation. In other words everything done by a government and its agents in combating insurgency must
be legal. But this does not mean that the government must work within exactly the same set of laws during an
insurgency as existed beforehand, because it is a function of a government when necessary. It does not mean that
the law must be administered in exactly the same way during an uprising as it was in more peaceful times, because
once again a government has the power to modify the way in which the law is administered if necessary, for the
wellbeing of the people, although the exercise of such power is usually and rightly subject to considerable
constitutional restraint.).
84
Refer to 8.16 (Criminal Procedure and Punishment).
1027
nationality. 85 The procedures of such courts may deviate from those applicable during ordinary
proceedings, but deviations should be warranted by practical need. 86
17.4.4 Reintegration Programs and Amnesty. States have used reconciliation and
reintegration programs during hostilities as alternatives to prosecution to seek to de-radicalize
and rehabilitate violent extremists.87
Although amnesty is normally left to the discretion of the State, AP II provides that, at
the end of hostilities, the authorities in power shall endeavor to grant the broadest possible
amnesty to persons who have participated in the armed conflict, or those deprived of their liberty
for reasons related to the armed conflict, whether they are interned or detained. 88
85
For example, 10 U.S.C. 948b ((a) Purpose. This chapter establishes procedures governing the use of military
commissions to try alien unprivileged enemy belligerents for violations of the law of war and other offenses triable
by military commission.) (emphasis added).
86
See Hamdan v. Rumsfeld, 548 U.S. 557, 632-33 (2006) (The Government offers only a cursory defense of
Hamdan's military commission in light of Common Article 3. As Justice Kennedy explains, that defense fails
because [t]he regular military courts in our system are the courts-martial established by congressional statutes. At
a minimum, a military commission can be regularly constituted by the standards of our military justice system
only if some practical need explains deviations from court-martial practice. As we have explained, no such need
has been demonstrated here.) (internal citations omitted); id. at 645-46 (Kennedy, J., concurring) (At a minimum a
military commission like the one at issue--a commission specially convened by the President to try specific persons
without express congressional authorization--can be regularly constituted by the standards of our military justice
system only if some practical need explains deviations from court-martial practice. Relevant concerns, as noted
earlier, relate to logistical constraints, accommodation of witnesses, security of the proceedings, and the like, not
mere expedience or convenience. This determination, of course, must be made with due regard for the constitutional
principle that congressional statutes can be controlling, including the congressional direction that the law of war has
a bearing on the determination.).
87
For example, Charles A. Allen, Deputy General Counsel, Department of Defense, Alternatives to Prosecution for
War Crimes in the War on Terrorism, 17 TRANSNATIONAL LAW & CONTEMPORARY PROBLEMS 121, 131-34 (2008)
(In Pakistan, there is a reintegration program akin to the idea of it takes a village. Village loyalties are
paramount, and Pakistani leaders have found that returning a former combatant to his village and holding the village
responsible for his conduct is a successful way to ensure that the person does not return to violence. Under this
program, a village must agree to accept the return of the person and must pay the Government of Pakistan a
retainer equal to about $5000 that it forfeits if the individual returns to hostilities. The Kingdom of Saudi
Arabia uses a similar program, referred to as a counseling program, to de-radicalize and reintegrate former
security prisoners back into society. Prisoners who have not committed capital crimes or killings enter the
program immediately after they are captured. Upon release, the former prisoners are then reconnected with their
families and given psychological evaluation and counseling. After a few months of rehabilitation, they are brought
into contact with moderate Islamic scholars and encouraged to enter into discussions about their beliefs. The
moderate scholars are able to counter extremist views with the Koran and other authoritative texts to explain
alternative interpretations that the former prisoner may not have heard before. Along with the counseling program,
the Saudis try to convince the former combatants that they have a stake in a peaceful and stable government by
encouraging them to marry, paying for their weddings and subsequent education for their children, and helping them
to find suitable employment and housing.).
88
Consider AP II art. 6(5) (At the end of hostilities, the authorities in power shall endeavour to grant the broadest
possible amnesty to persons who have participated in the armed conflict, or those deprived of their liberty for
reasons related to the armed conflict, whether they are interned or detained.).
1028
17.5 PRINCIPLE OF DISTINCTION IN NIAC
89
Refer to 17.7 (Rules on Conducting Attacks in NIAC).
90
Refer to 5.5.4 (Failure by the Defender to Separate or Distinguish Does Not Relieve the Attacker of the Duty to
Discriminate in Conducting Attacks).
91
For example, SYLVIE-STOYANKA JUNOD, INTERNATIONAL COMMITTEE OF THE RED CROSS, PROTECTION OF THE
VICTIMS OF ARMED CONFLICT FALKLAND-MALVINAS ISLANDS: INTERNATIONAL HUMANITARIAN LAW AND
HUMANITARIAN ACTION (1982) 26 (1984) (The Falkland-Malvinas Islands' conflict provides a rare example of
hostilities conducted by both sides with particular concern for the safety of the civilian population, as there were
three civilian casualties. The instructions received both by the Argentine armed forces when disembarking on the
island of South Georgia and on the archipelago, and by the British pilots and soldiers emanated from the desire to
respect the civilian population. However, mention must also be made of the precautionary measures which were
taken by the Parties to the civilian population in accordance with Part II of the Fourth Convention.).
92
For example, Harold Hongju Koh, Legal Adviser, Department of State, Address at the Annual Meeting of the
American Society of International Law: The Obama Administration and International Law, Mar. 25, 2010, 2010
DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 717 (As recent events have shown, al-Qaeda has not
abandoned its intent to attack the United States, and indeed continues to attack us. As you know, this is a conflict
with an organized terrorist enemy that does not have conventional forces, but that plans and executes its attacks
against us and our allies while hiding among civilian populations. That behavior simultaneously makes the
application of international law more difficult and more critical for the protection of innocent civilians.).
1029
non-State armed groups often do not use military infrastructure (e.g., military bases, logistics
facilities) to conduct and sustain their operations. Rather, non-State armed groups may seek to
use ostensibly civilian buildings and resources to conduct and sustain their operations. Denying
non-State armed groups such support may be particularly important to the success of military
operations and justifiable under the law of war. 93
The sympathy and support of the civilian population are frequently important objectives
in non-international armed conflict. 94 In order to ensure such support, commanders and their
forces may operate under rules of engagement that are more restrictive than what the law of war
requires. 95
93
Christopher Paul, Colin P. Clarke, and Beth Grill, Victory Has a Thousand Fathers: Sources of Success in
Counterinsurgency, 98 (RAND Corporation, 2010) (The ability of insurgents to replenish and obtain personnel,
materiel, financing, intelligence, and sanctuary (tangible support) perfectly predicts success or failure in the 30
COIN cases considered here. In all eight cases in which the COIN force prevailed, it also disrupted at least three
insurgent support factors, while none of the COIN forces in the 22 losing cases managed to disrupt more than
two.); Robert Wayne Gehring, Protection of Civilian Infrastructures, 42 LAW AND CONTEMPORARY PROBLEMS 86,
95 (1978) (The importance of those who collect funds for the insurgent organizations operations, gather and
analyze information about government forces, procure the necessary supplies from within or without the country,
organize the delivery of the supplies to the military forces of the insurgency, and organize the recruitment of
members of the local population cannot be overestimated. While these functions may be performed by military
members of the movement, in many cases military training is not required or is not even an asset in their
performance. One experienced observer, Sir Robert Thompson, believes that so long as the supporting organization
remains intact, killing insurgents in the field is largely useless: the casualties will be replaced by new recruits. A
study of characteristics that determined the outcome in forty-four revolutions of this century found the single most
important factor was not battlefield success but whether the government was successful in interdicting the
insurgents supply of arms and ammunition. The government cannot rely upon success on the field of battle to bring
its ultimate victory. It must starve the insurgent military forces by uncovering and neutralizing the civilian
infrastructure supporting those military forces.).
94
FRANK KITSON, BUNCH OF FIVE 59, 282, 289 (1977) (The first aim of a government in an Emergency is to retain
or regain the allegiance of the population. [] There has never been much doubt that the main characteristic which
distinguishes campaigns of insurgency from other forms of war is that they are primarily concerned with the struggle
for mens minds, since only by succeeding in such a struggle with a large enough number of people can the rule of
law be undermined and constitutional institutions overthrown.).
95
For example, General Petraeus, Unclassified Excerpts from Tactical Directive, Aug. 1, 2010, reprinted in
International Security Assistance Force Afghanistan, Headquarters, General Petraeus Issues Updated Tactical
Directive: Emphasizes Disciplined Use of Force, Aug. 4, 2010 (We must continue indeed, redouble our
efforts to reduce the loss of innocent civilian life to an absolute minimum. Every Afghan civilian death diminishes
our cause. If we use excessive force or operate contrary to our counterinsurgency principles, tactical victories may
prove to be strategic setbacks. We must never forget that the center of gravity in this struggle is the Afghan people;
it is they who will ultimately determine the future of Afghanistan ... Prior to the use of fires, the commander
approving the strike must determine that no civilians are present. If unable to assess the risk of civilian presence,
fires are prohibited, except under of the following two conditions (specific conditions deleted due to operational
security; however, they have to do with the risk to ISAF and Afghan forces). (NOTE) This directive, as with the
previous version, does not prevent commanders from protecting the lives of their men and women as a matter of
1030
17.5.2 Distinguishing State Forces From the Civilian Population in NIAC. During non-
international armed conflict, as during international armed conflict, the principle of distinction
prohibits the use of protected persons or objects to shield, favor, or impede military operations. 96
However, it may be important to consider certain differences in the circumstances arising in non-
international armed conflict.
17.5.2.1 Positioning Military Forces Near the Civilian Population to Win Their
Support and to Protect Them. During non-international armed conflict, insurgents or terrorists
may seek to attack the civilian population, and the use of the States forces to protect the civilian
population from such attacks may be a key objective of State operations in non-international
armed conflict. 97 Thus, positioning military forces near the civilian population may be essential
to the protection of the civilian population, and States have not interpreted such practices to be
inconsistent with the principle of distinction. 98
self-defense where it is determined no other options are available to effectively counter the threat.).) (ellipsis in
original).
96
Refer to 17.6.3 (Prohibition on Using Protected Persons and Objects to Shield, Favor, or Impede Military
Operations).
97
For example, General David Petraeus, Multi-National Force Iraq Counterinsurgency Guidance, 1 (Jun. 13,
2007) (1. Secure the people where they sleep. Population security is our primary mission. And achieving
population security promises to be an extremely long-term endeavor a marathon, not a sprint so focusing on this
mission now is essential. Most extra-judicial killings occur at night and in peoples homes, while most spectacular
terrorist attacks occur during the day, where people shop, work and play anywhere they gather publicly. These
key areas must be secured. Once secured, an area cannot be abandoned; it must be permanently controlled and
protected, 24 hours a day, or else the enemy will re-infiltrate and kill or intimidate those who have supported us.
This protection must be kept up until the area can be effectively garrisoned and controlled by Iraqi police (ideally
from the area being secured) and other security services. We cant be everywhere therefore you must assess your
AOR, identify priority areas, work to secure them first, and then expand into other areas.).
98
For example, General David Petraeus, International Security Assistance Force/United States Forces-Afghanistan
Headquarters, COMISAFs Counterinsurgency Guidance, 1 (Aug. 1, 2010) (Live among the people. We cant
commute to the fight. Position joint bases and combat outposts as close to those we're seeking to secure as is
feasible. Decide on locations with input from our partners and after consultation with local citizens and informed by
intelligence and security assessments.).
99
For example, A.H. Peterson, G.C. Reinhardt and E.E. Conger, Symposium on the Role of Airpower in
Counterinsurgency and Unconventional Warfare: The Malayan Emergency, 13 (RAND Corporation, Jul. 1963)
(COMMODORE GARRISSON: This Malayan campaign was run basically as a civilian operation by the civilian
power. The first line of defense was the civilian Police, who received more equipment than the normal police. Any
military operation had to be cleared with the civilian authority, who in effect called for military operations of a
specific nature. I think this is the first thing to bear in mind. Police provided protection of the local population
wherever possible. The true military forces went out to try to get the bandits.).
1031
17.6 RESPECT AND HUMANE TREATMENT OF PERSONS TAKING NO ACTIVE PART IN HOSTILITIES
IN NIAC
All persons who do not take a direct part or who have ceased to take part in hostilities,
whether or not their liberty has been restricted, are entitled to respect for their person, honor and
convictions, and religious practices. They shall in all circumstances be treated humanely,
without any adverse distinction. 100
17.6.2 Prohibition on the Taking of Hostages. The taking of hostages is prohibited. 102
17.6.3 Prohibition on Using Protected Persons and Objects to Shield, Favor, or Impede
Military Operations. It is prohibited to use civilians, persons placed hors de combat, or other
protected persons to shield, favor, or impede military operations. 103
100
Consider AP II art. 4(1) (All persons who do not take a direct part or who have ceased to take part in hostilities,
whether or not their liberty has been restricted, are entitled to respect for their person, honour and convictions and
religious practices. They shall in all circumstances be treated humanely, without any adverse distinction.).
101
Consider AP II art. 4(1) (It is prohibited to order that there shall be no survivors.). Refer to 5.5.7 (Prohibition
Against Declaring That No Quarter Be Given).
102
See GWS art. 3 (prohibiting taking of hostages;); GWS-SEA art. 3 (same); GPW art. 3 (same); GC art. 3
(same). Consider AP II art. 2 (prohibiting taking of hostages;). Refer to 5.16.3 (Prohibition on Taking
Hostages).
103
Refer to 5.16 (Prohibition on Using Protected Persons and Objects to Shield, Favor, or Impede Military
Operations).
104
Consider AP II art. 4(2)(g) (prohibiting pillage at any time and in any place whatsoever against [a]ll persons
who do not take a direct part or who have ceased to take part in hostilities, whether or not their liberty has been
restricted). Refer to 5.17.4 (Pillage Prohibited).
105
Refer to 17.14.3 (Search, Collection, and Protection of the Wounded, Sick, Shipwrecked, and Dead).
106
Consider AP II art. 4(2) (prohibiting with respect to all persons who do not take a direct part or who have ceased
to take part in hostilities, whether or not their liberty has been restricted, d) acts of terrorism and h) threats to
commit any of the foregoing acts). Refer to 10.5.3.2 (Collective Penalties and Measures of Intimidation or
Terrorism).
1032
17.6.6 Prohibition on Offering of Rewards for Persons Dead or Alive. As during
international armed conflict, it is prohibited to offer a reward for enemy persons to be turned
over dead or alive. 107 On the other hand, as in international armed conflict, there is no
prohibition against offering rewards for the apprehension of insurgents or for giving information
leading to the apprehension or killing of insurgents in combat. 108
Parties to a conflict must conduct attacks in accordance with the principles of distinction
and proportionality. In particular, the following rules must be observed:
Combatants may not direct attacks against civilians, civilian objects, or other protected
persons and objects. 111
The distinctive emblem must not be used while engaging in attacks. 112
Combatants must refrain from attacks in which the expected loss of life or injury to
civilians, and damage to civilian objects incidental to the attack, would be excessive in
relation to the concrete and direct military advantage expected to be gained. 113
Combatants must take feasible precautions in conducting attacks to avoid incidental harm
to civilians and civilian objects. 114
107
Refer to 5.26.3.1 (Prohibition on Offering Rewards for Enemy Persons Dead or Alive).
108
See 1958 UK MANUAL 116 note 1(b) (If a government or military commander offers rewards for all or
individual armed insurgents killed or wounded by the forces engaged in quelling the insurrection, such offers are
open to the same objection as those set out above in respect of hostilities between belligerents, and are probable
unlawful. On the other hand, there is no objection to offering rewards for the apprehension of insurgents or for
giving information leading to the apprehension or killing of insurgents in combat. A State is entitled to secure the
capture of armed rebels in order that they may be tried as such, or to kill or wound them in combat. However, the
probable effect of the common Art. 3, when applicable, is to prohibit inducements being given to troops, police or
civilians, to take the law into their own hands.).
109
Consider AP II art. 4(2) (Without prejudice to the generality of the foregoing, the following acts against the
persons referred to in paragraph 1 [i.e., all persons who do not take a direct part or who have ceased to take part in
hostilities, whether or not their liberty has been restricted,] are and shall remain prohibited at any time and in any
place whatsoever: b) collective punishments;); BOTHE, PARTSCH & SOLF, NEW RULES 642 (AP II art. 4, 2.5)
(Paragraph 2 (b) prohibits collective punishments. The Committee had proposed collective penalties. The
change of this wording was accepted in order to include not only penalties imposed by a court but also penalties
imposed by administrative measures.).
110
Refer to 8.16.2.1 (Individual Penal Responsibility and No Collective Punishment).
111
Refer to 5.6 (Discrimination in Conducting Attacks).
112
Refer to 17.16.2 (Improper Use of the Distinctive Emblem).
113
Refer to 5.12 (Proportionality in Conducting Attacks).
1033
In conducting attacks, combatants must assess in good faith the information that is
available to them. 115
These rules apply to all parties to a non-international armed conflict, including persons
belonging to non-State armed groups, and persons who decide to participate in hostilities of their
own initiative. However, persons who belong to non-State armed groups, or who decide to
participate in hostilities of their own initiative, may also be subject to the States domestic
law. 117
However, the Executive, in submitting AP II to the Senate for its advice and consent to
ratification in 1987, did not recommend a reservation from or an understanding applicable to this
provision of AP II based on an assessment that preserving the option to attack works or
installations containing dangerous forces would not be as important in internal conflicts as
preserving that option would be in international armed conflicts. 120
114
Refer to 5.11 (Feasible Precautions in Conducting Attacks to Reduce the Risk of Harm to Protected Persons and
Objects).
115
Refer to 5.4 (Assessing Information Under the Law of War).
116
Refer to 17.13.2 (Certain Types of Weapons With Specific Rules on Use in NIAC).
117
Refer to 17.4 (A States Use of Its Domestic Law and NIAC).
118
Consider AP II art. 15 (Works or installations containing dangerous forces, namely dams, dykes and nuclear
electrical generating stations, shall not be made the object of attack, even where these objects are military objectives,
if such attack may cause the release of dangerous forces and consequent severe losses among the civilian
population.).
119
Refer to 5.13.1 (AP I Provisions on Works and Installations Containing Dangerous Forces).
120
Michael J. Matheson, Deputy Legal Adviser, Department of State, Remarks on the United States Position on the
Relation of Customary International Law to the 1977 Protocols Additional to the 1949 Geneva Conventions at the
Sixth Annual American Red Cross-Washington College of Law Conference on International Humanitarian Law
(Jan. 22, 1987), 2 AMERICAN UNIVERSITY JOURNAL OF INTERNATIONAL LAW AND POLICY 419, 434 (1987)
(Professor HAMILTON DESAUSSURE asked for an explanation of the apparent inconsistency between the United
States rejection of the provisions in article 56 of Protocol I, relating to dams and dykes, and the simultaneous
acceptance of article 15 of Protocol II, which contains similar provisions. Mr. MATHESON replied that the United
States military based its objections on a pragmatic, real-world estimation of the difference between the two
situations. The military perceives that in international conflicts, many situations may arise where it is important to
attack and destroy parts of an electric power grid, such as a nuclear or hydroelectric generating station. In internal
conflicts, on the other hand, such a significant real-world need will not exist. Preserving the military option in
1034
17.8 IMPARTIAL HUMANITARIAN ORGANIZATIONS AND HUMANITARIAN ACTIVITIES DURING
NIAC
An impartial humanitarian body, such as the International Committee of the Red Cross,
may offer its services to the parties to the conflict. 121 The civilian population may, even on its
own initiative, offer to collect and care for the wounded, sick, and shipwrecked. 122 Similarly, the
United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization may offer its services to the
parties to the conflict. 123
States may withhold consent for, inter alia, legitimate military reasons, but should not
arbitrarily withhold consent. 125 The safety of personnel of humanitarian organizations is a
legitimate consideration for a government in consenting to their operations.
international conflicts where such facilities are more likely to become an object of military attack, therefore, is very
important.).
121
GWS art. 3 (An impartial humanitarian body, such as the International Committee of the Red Cross, may offer
its services to the Parties to the conflict); GWS-SEA art. 3 (same); GPW art. 3 (same); GC art. 3 (same). Consider
AP II art. 18 (Relief societies located in the territory of the High Contracting Party, such as Red Cross (Red
Crescent, Red Lion and Sun) organizations, may offer their services for the performance of their traditional
functions in relation to the victims of the armed conflict.).
122
Consider AP II art. 18(1) (The civilian population may, even on its own initiative, offer to collect and care for
the wounded, sick and shipwrecked.).
123
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 19(3) (The United Nations Educational, Scientific and
Cultural Organization may offer its services to the parties to the conflict.).
124
Consider AP II art. 18(2) (If the civilian population is suffering undue hardship owing to a lack of the supplies
essential for its survival, such as foodstuffs and medical supplies, relief actions for the civilian population which are
of an exclusively humanitarian and impartial nature and which are conducted without any adverse distinction shall
be undertaken subject to the consent of the High Contracting Party concerned.).
125
Detailed Analysis of Provisions, Attachment 1 to George P. Shultz, Letter of Submittal, Dec. 13, 1986, MESSAGE
FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING AP II 6 (For its part, the United States would expect that the requirement of
consent [in article 18 of AP II] by the party concerned would not be implemented in an arbitrary manner, and that
essential relief shipments would only be restricted or denied for the most compelling and legitimate reasons.).
126
Consider AP II art. 17(1) (The displacement of the civilian population shall not be ordered for reasons related to
the conflict unless the security of the civilians involved or imperative military reasons so demand.).
1035
to be carried out, all possible measures shall be taken in order that the civilian population may be
received under satisfactory conditions of shelter, hygiene, health, safety, and nutrition. 127
Civilians shall not be compelled to leave their own territory for reasons connected with
the conflict. 128 A State must not compel civilians to leave its territory for reasons connected to
the conflict, while insurgents that control territory must not compel civilians to leave the area
under their authority. 129
reducing the support provided to insurgents from elements of the civilian population. 130
Legitimate reasons to order the movement of civilians do not include the use of individuals or
groups of civilians around military objectives as involuntary human shields. 131
127
Consider AP II art. 17(1) (Should such displacements have to be carried out, all possible measures shall be
taken in order that the civilian population may be received under satisfactory conditions of shelter, hygiene, health,
safety and nutrition.).
128
Consider AP II art. 17(2) (Civilians shall not be compelled to leave their own territory for reasons connected
with the conflict.).
129
Cf. ICRC AP COMMENTARY 1475 (4859) (First, there is a question whether, within the meaning of this
provision [in article 17 of AP II], the term territory is equivalent to country. The ICRC draft referred to national
territory. Some amendments proposed substituting the formula across the frontiers of the country of origin. It is
clear that there was never any doubt in anyone's mind that the phrase was intended to refer to the whole of the
territory of a country. However, the text states that it is prohibited to compel civilians to leave their own territory.
In fact, this formula appears to be better suited to all the possible cases which might arise in a situation covered by
Protocol II, and to take into account, in particular, situations where the insurgent party is in control of an extensive
part of the territory. In this case the insurgents, too, should respect the obligation laid down here, and not compel
civilians to leave the area under their authority.).
130
For example, Lt. Col. Jerome F. Bierly and Timothy W. Pleasant, MalayaA Case Study, MARINE CORPS
GAZETTE 46, 48 (Jul. 1990) (The Briggs Plan called for the movement of the general population into protected
areas. In all, a total of 410 villages were eventually moved into areas fortified against guerrilla attacks. This served
two purposes: It helped to protect the populace from the attacks, and at the same time it cut off the majority of the
food supply to the guerillas. Also, the Chinese population, from which the guerillas drew most of their support, was
provided a situation in which they could participate in the local government and establish a degree of economic
prosperity they had not previously enjoyed.).
131
Refer to 5.16 (Prohibition on Using Protected Persons and Objects to Shield, Favor, or Impede Military
Operations).
1036
population, such as foodstuffs, agricultural areas for the production of foodstuffs, crops,
livestock, drinking water installations and supplies, and irrigation works. 132
17.9.2.1 Starvation of Enemy Forces Not Prohibited. It is only actions that are for
the purpose of starving civilians as a method of combat that are prohibited under this rule;
measures to starve enemy forces are not prohibited. 133 For example, States may institute general
food control programs that involve the destruction of crops and the adequate provision of the
civilian population with food. 134
Military action intended to starve enemy forces, however, must not be taken where it is
expected to result in incidental harm to the civilian population that is excessive in relation to the
military advantage anticipated to be gained. 135
Feasible precautions to reduce the risk of harm to the civilian population or other
reasonable measures to mitigate the burden to the civilian population may also be warranted
when seeking to starve enemy forces. 136
17.10.1 General Protection and Care of Children. Children shall be provided with the
care and aid they require. 137
Children shall receive an education, including religious and moral education, in keeping
with the wishes of their parents, or in the absence of parents, of those responsible for their
care. 138
All appropriate steps shall be taken to facilitate the reunion of families temporarily
separated. 139
132
Consider AP II art. 14 (Starvation of civilians as a method of combat is prohibited. It is therefore prohibited to
attack, destroy, remove or render useless, for that purpose, objects indispensable to the survival of the civilian
population, such as food stuffs, agricultural areas for the production of foodstuffs, crops, livestock, drinking water
installations and supplies and irrigation works.).
133
Refer to 5.20.1 (Starvation Distinction).
134
For example, R.W. Komer, The Malayan Emergency in Retrospect: Organization of A Successful
Counterinsurgency Effort, 59 (RAND Corporation, Feb. 1972) (In order to force the insurgents to make supply
their major concern, the GOM turned to sizable food denial campaigns as the preferred form of security force
operations. By July 1953 no less than 77 such operations had been mounted in the state of Negri Sembilan alone.
It did not take much seepage to feed a guerrilla who could subsist on a daily ration of a handful of rice. But he
could store without detection only about six to eight weeks supply, and the number of people, time, and effort
involved in a food lift from village to jungle edge to deep jungle was such as to make the lift vulnerable to
discovery.).
135
Refer to 5.20.2 (Starvation Proportionality).
136
Refer to 5.20.2 (Starvation Proportionality).
137
Consider AP II art. 4(3) (Children shall be provided with the care and aid they require, .).
138
Consider AP II art. 4(3)(a) (they shall receive an education, including religious and moral education, in keeping
with the wishes of their parents, or in the absence of parents, of those responsible for their care;).
1037
Measures shall be taken, if necessary, and whenever possible with the consent of their
parents or persons who by law or custom are primarily responsible for their care, to remove
children temporarily from the area in which hostilities are taking place to a safer area within the
country and ensure that they are accompanied by persons responsible for their safety and well-
being. 140
The death penalty shall not be pronounced on persons who were under the age of
eighteen years at the time of the offense and shall not be carried out on pregnant women or
mothers of young children. 141
The use or recruitment of child soldiers is an offense in U.S. law. 144 The United States
has additional obligations as a Party to the Child Soldiers Protocol. 145
139
Consider AP II art. 4(3)(b) (all appropriate steps shall be taken to facilitate the reunion of families temporarily
separated;).
140
Consider AP II art. 4(3)(e) ([M]easures shall be taken, if necessary, and whenever possible with the consent of
their parents or persons who by law or custom are primarily responsible for their care, to remove children
temporarily from the area in which hostilities are taking place to a safer area within the country and ensure that they
are accompanied by persons responsible for their safety and well-being.).
141
Refer to 8.16.2.4 (Limitations on the Death Penalty).
142
Consider AP II art. 4(3)(c) ([C]hildren who have not attained the age of fifteen years shall neither be recruited in
the armed forces or groups nor allowed to take part in hostilities;); ROME STATUTE art. 8(2)(e)(vii) (defining war
crime to include [c]onscripting or enlisting children under the age of fifteen years into armed forces or groups or
using them to participate actively in hostilities in non-international armed conflict).
143
Consider AP II art. 4(3)(d) (the special protection provided by this Article to children who have not attained the
age of fifteen years shall remain applicable to them if they take a direct part in hostilities despite the provisions of
sub-paragraph c) and are captured;).
144
Refer to 4.20.5.1 (U.S. Offense of Recruiting or Using Child Soldiers).
145
Refer to 4.20.5 (Child Soldiers); 17.2.1.2 (Implicit Application of Treaty Provisions to Situations in NIAC).
146
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 19(1) (In the event of an armed conflict not of an
international character occurring within the territory of one of the High Contracting Parties, each party to the
conflict shall be bound to apply, as a minimum, the provisions of the present Convention which relate to respect for
cultural property.).
1038
17.11.2 Obligations to Respect Cultural Property. The obligation to respect cultural
property includes essentially negative duties, i.e., duties to refrain from acts of hostility directed
against cultural property and duties to refrain from the use of cultural property in support of
military operations where such use is not imperatively necessary. 147
For example, parties to a conflict must not direct acts of hostility against cultural
property, its immediate surroundings, or appliances in use for its protection, unless such action is
required by imperative military necessity. 148
In contrast to the rules during international armed conflict, State forces may use captured
or surrendered enemy personnel in operations against enemy non-State armed groups. The
cooperation of enemy personnel may not, however, be procured through illegal methods.
These rules, however, do not apply during non-international armed conflict. Under
international law, a State may compel its nationals to serve in its armed forces and to fight
against non-State armed groups. 152 For example, in contrast to POWs, captured insurgents who
147
Refer to 5.18.2 (Respect and Safeguarding of Cultural Property). Consider AP II art. 16 (Without prejudice to
the provisions of the Hague Convention for the Protection of Cultural Property in the Event of Armed Conflict of 14
May 1954, it is prohibited to commit any acts of hostility directed against historic monuments, works of art or places
of worship which constitute the cultural or spiritual heritage of peoples, and to use them in support of the military
effort.).
148
Refer to 5.18.5 (Refraining From Any Act of Hostility).
149
Refer to 5.18.3 (Refraining From Any Use for Purposes That Are Likely to Expose It to Destruction or
Damage).
150
Refer to 5.27 (Prohibition Against Compelling Enemy Nationals to Take Part in the Operations of War Directed
Against Their Own Country).
151
Refer to 9.19.2.3 (Labor Assignments That May Be Compelled); 7.9.5.6 (No Other Compulsory Duties);
10.7.3 (Compulsory Work for Protected Persons in a Belligerents Home Territory); 11.20.1.1 (Prohibition on
Compulsory Service in an Occupying Powers Armed Forces).
152
Refer to 4.5.2.4 (Draftees).
1039
are nationals of that State could be required to serve in that States armed forces or to take part in
operations directed against their former comrades. 153
153
For example, Donald A. MacCuish and Spencer C. Tucker, Pseudoforces, in ENCYCLOPEDIA OF INSURGENCY
AND COUNTERINSURGENCY: A NEW ERA OF MODERN WARFARE 452 (2013) (Pseudoforces are military units made
up of former insurgents who have been turned to work with counterinsurgency forces against their former
colleagues. This is possible because insurgent rank and filers are generally not as committed as their ideologically
bound leaders. Pseudoforces are a tremendous advantage in counterinsurgency operations. They can identify
certain of the insurgents, are well familiar with the operational terrain and the villagers, and understand what
motivates the insurgents and their supporters. They are of immense importance. Pseudoforces have played a role in
virtually every insurgency since World War II (1939-1945). During the Dhofar campaigns in Oman (1970-1975),
the British made extensive use of pseudoforces, employing some 1,600 in 21 different units based on tribal
affiliations. The Portuguese also made extensive use of pseudoforces during the insurgencies in their African
territories. Notable among these were the Flechas (Arrows) in Angola.); MAJOR LAWRENCE M. GREENBERG, THE
HUKBALAHAP INSURRECTION: A CASE STUDY OF A SUCCESSFUL ANTI-INSURGENCY OPERATION IN THE PHILIPPINES
1946-1955 125 (1986) (On the island of Panay, the Philippine Army tried a variation of the Force X concept to
break the local guerrilla structure. Accompanied by three military intelligence agents, a group of twenty former
Huks were infiltrated into the islands interior. After three months of gathering information, establishing their cover
as a bona fide Huk unit, and gaining the confidence of the islands Huk leadership, they hosted a by invitation only
barbecue for the Panay High Command. Between the ribs and potato salad, the covert government force sprang an
ambush that killed or captured nearly all the Panay commanders and crippled the organization on the island for the
duration of the campaign.).
154
Refer to 8.2 (Humane Treatment of Detainees); 8.2.4 (Threats to Commit Inhumane Treatment).
155
For example, DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY FIELD MANUAL 3-24, Counterinsurgency, 1-19 (1-104) (Dec. 2006)
(Nothing is more demoralizing to insurgents than realizing that people inside their movement or trusted supporters
among the public are deserting or providing information to government authorities. Counterinsurgents may attract
deserters or informants by arousing fear of prosecution or by offering rewards.).
156
For example, Benjamin Weiser, Terrorist Has Cooperated With U.S. Since Secret Guilty Plea in 2011, Papers
Show, THE NEW YORK TIMES, Mar. 25, 2013 (A Somali terrorist with ties to Al Qaeda whose capture and
interrogation aboard a United States naval ship in 2011 fueled debate about the Obama administrations
counterterrorism tactics secretly pleaded guilty in Manhattan and has been cooperating with the authorities, court
documents released on Monday show. The terrorist, Ahmed Abdulkadir Warsame, served as a military commander
with the Shabab in Somalia and worked as a liaison with Al Qaedas branch in Yemen, including brokering a deal
for the Shabab to buy weapons directly from the Qaeda group, the government has said. The newly unsealed court
papers show Mr. Warsame pleaded guilty in a closed court proceeding in Manhattan in December 2011, about five
months after he was brought to New York. After the plea, he met weekly with the government for hours at a time,
disclosing intelligence information about his Shabab and Qaeda co-conspirators, who included high-level
international terrorist operatives, prosecutors said in one highly redacted letter dated March 2012.).
1040
17.13 WEAPONS IN NIAC
17.13.1 Prohibited Weapons in NIAC. The use of the following types of weapons is
prohibited during non-international armed conflict:
poison, poisoned weapons, poisonous gases, and other chemical weapons; 159
17.13.2 Certain Types of Weapons With Specific Rules on Use in NIAC. Certain types
of weapons are subject to specific rules that apply to their use by the U.S. armed forces in non-
international armed conflict. These weapons include:
mines, booby-traps, and other devices (except certain specific classes of prohibited
mines, booby-traps, and other devices); 164
157
Refer to 6.6 (Weapons Calculated to Cause Superfluous Injury).
158
Refer to 6.7 (Inherently Indiscriminate Weapons).
159
Refer to 6.8 (Poison, Poisoned Weapons, Poisonous Gases, and Other Chemical Weapons).
160
Refer to 6.9 (Biological Weapons).
161
Refer to 6.11 (Weapons Injuring by Fragments Not Detectable by X-Rays).
162
Refer to 6.12.4 (Prohibited Classes of Mines, Booby-Traps, and Other Devices).
163
Refer to 6.15.1 (Prohibition on Blinding Laser Weapons).
164
Refer to 6.12 (Landmines, Booby-Traps, and Other Devices).
165
Refer to 6.14 (Incendiary Weapons).
166
Refer to 6.15.2 (Feasible Precautions in the Employment of Laser Systems to Avoid the Incident of Permanent
Blindness).
167
Refer to 6.19 (Explosive Ordnance).
1041
17.14 PROTECTION OF THE WOUNDED, SICK, SHIPWRECKED, AND DEAD IN NIAC
17.14.1 Respect, Protection, Humane Treatment, and Medical Care of the Wounded,
Sick, and Shipwrecked. All the wounded, sick, and shipwrecked, whether or not they have taken
part in the armed conflict, shall be respected and protected. 168
persons who have been rendered unconscious or otherwise have been incapacitated
because of their wounds, sickness, or shipwreck; 169
persons who have been shipwrecked (i.e., helpless persons in distress at sea or stranded
on the coast) from any cause, including forced landings at sea by or from aircraft. 171
Of course, any person who commits hostile acts or attempts to evade capture forfeits
protection as someone who is placed hors de combat. 172
Certain persons, however, are deemed to have accepted the risk of harm due to deliberate
proximity to military objectives; thus, expected incidental harm to such persons would be
understood not to prohibit attacks under the proportionality rule, even if such persons become
wounded, sick, or shipwrecked. 174
168
Consider AP II art. 7(1) (All the wounded, sick and shipwrecked, whether or not they have taken part in the
armed conflict, shall be respected and protected.).
169
Refer to 5.10.4 (Persons Rendered Unconscious or Otherwise Incapacitated by Wounds, Sickness, or
Shipwreck).
170
Refer to 5.10.3 (Persons Who Have Surrendered).
171
Compare 7.3.1.2 (Shipwrecked).
172
Refer to 5.10 (Persons Placed Hors de Combat).
173
Compare 7.3.3 (Meaning of Respect and Protection of the Wounded, Sick, and Shipwrecked).
174
Compare 5.12.3.2 (Harm to Certain Individuals Who May Be Employed In or On Military Objectives);
7.12.2.5 (Acceptance of the Risk From Proximity to Combat Operations).
1042
The respect and protection afforded the wounded, sick, and shipwrecked do not
immunize them from search, or other necessary security measures, or capture and detention, even
if they are receiving medical care. 175
17.14.2 Humane Treatment and Practicable Medical Care and Attention. In all
circumstances, the wounded, sick, and shipwrecked shall be treated humanely and shall receive,
to the fullest extent practicable and with the least possible delay, the medical care and attention
required by their condition. 177 There shall be no distinction among them founded on any
grounds other than medical ones. 178
17.14.3 Search, Collection, and Protection of the Wounded, Sick, Shipwrecked, and
Dead. Whenever circumstances permit, and particularly after an engagement, all possible
measures shall be taken, without delay, to search for and collect the wounded, sick, and
shipwrecked, to protect them against pillage and ill-treatment, to ensure their adequate care, and
to search for the dead, prevent their being despoiled, and decently dispose of them. 179
The obligations to search for, collect, and take affirmative steps to protect the wounded,
sick, and shipwrecked are subject to practical limitations; military commanders are to judge what
is possible, and to what extent they can commit their personnel to these duties. 180
175
Compare 7.3.3.2 (Search and Other Security Measures Not Prohibited); 7.3.3.3 (Capture of Wounded, Sick,
and Shipwrecked Not Prohibited).
176
Refer to 6.12.4.9 (Certain Types of Prohibited Booby-Traps and Other Devices).
177
Consider AP II art. 7(2) (In all circumstances they shall be treated humanely and shall receive, to the fullest
extent practicable and with the least possible delay, the medical care and attention required by their condition.).
178
Consider AP II art. 7(2) (There shall be no distinction among them founded on any grounds other than medical
ones.).
179
Consider AP II art. 8 (Whenever circumstances permit, and particularly after an engagement, all possible
measures shall be taken, without delay, to search for and collect the wounded, sick and shipwrecked, to protect them
against pillage and ill-treatment, to ensure their adequate care, and to search for the dead, prevent their being
despoiled, and decently dispose of them.).
180
Compare 7.4.4 (Practical Limitations on the Obligation to Search for, Collect, and Take Measures to Protect the
Wounded, Sick, and Shipwrecked).
181
For example, Karen Parrish, Panetta Orders Investigation of Video, Vows Accountability, AMERICAN FORCES
PRESS SERVICE, Jan. 12, 2012 (Defense Secretary Leon E. Panetta released a statement today strongly condemning
the actions of a small group of Marines depicted in a video that began circulating online yesterday. The video shows
four Marines apparently urinating over three enemy corpses in Afghanistan. The secretarys statement said he has
seen the footage and finds the behavior depicted in it utterly deplorable. I condemn it in the strongest possible
terms, Panetta said. I have ordered the Marine Corps and ISAF commander [Marine Corps] Gen. John Allen to
immediately and fully investigate the incident. This conduct is entirely inappropriate for members of the United
States military and does not reflect the standards or values our armed forces are sworn to uphold. Those found to
1043
17.15 PROTECTION OF MEDICAL AND RELIGIOUS PERSONNEL AND MEDICAL TRANSPORTS IN
NIAC
17.15.1 Protection of Medical and Religious Personnel. Medical and religious personnel
shall be respected and protected and shall be granted all available help for the performance of
their duties. They shall not be compelled to carry out tasks that are not compatible with their
humanitarian mission. 183
Certain medical and religious personnel, however, are deemed to have accepted the risk
of harm due to their deliberate proximity to military objectives; thus, expected incidental harm to
such persons would be understood not to prohibit attacks under the proportionality rule. 187
The respect and protection afforded medical and religious personnel do not immunize
them from search, or from other necessary security measures, or from capture and detention. 188
AP II and applicable treaties to which the United States is a Party (such as the 1949 Geneva
Conventions) do not afford medical and religious personnel belonging to non-State armed groups
retained personnel status if captured.
17.15.2 Protection of Medical Units and Transports. Medical units and transports shall
be respected and protected at all times and shall not be the object of attack. 189 The protection to
which medical units and transports are entitled shall not cease unless they are used to commit
have engaged in such conduct will be held accountable to the fullest extent.). Compare 7.7.1.1 (No
Disrespectful or Degrading Treatment of the Dead).
182
Refer to 6.12.4.9 (Certain Types of Prohibited Booby-Traps and Other Devices).
183
Consider AP II art. 9(1) (Medical and religious personnel shall be respected and protected and shall be granted
all available help for the performance of their duties. They shall not be compelled to carry out tasks which are not
compatible with their humanitarian mission.).
184
Refer to 4.9.2.3 (Exclusively Engaged in Humanitarian Duties).
185
Refer to 5.9.3 (Taking a Direct Part in in Hostilities).
186
Compare 7.8.2 (Meaning of Respect and Protection of Medical and Religious Personnel).
187
Compare 5.12.3.2 (Harm to Certain Individuals Who May Be Employed In or On Military Objectives);
7.12.2.5 (Acceptance of the Risk From Proximity to Combat Operations).
188
Compare 7.8.2.2 (Search and Other Security Measures Not Prohibited); 7.8.2.3 (Capture Not Prohibited).
189
Consider AP II art. 11(1) (Medical units and transports shall be respected and protected at all times and shall not
be the object of attack.).
1044
hostile acts, outside their humanitarian function. Protection may, however, cease only after a
warning has been given setting, whenever appropriate, a reasonable time-limit, and after such
warning has remained unheeded. 190
17.15.2.1 Types of Units and Vehicles That Are Considered Medical Units and
Transports. Medical units and transports include those units and vehicles that are exclusively
(e.g., permanently) engaged in those activities. 191 For example, units and transports that
intermittently are used in hostilities are not considered medical units and transports.
Certain medical units and transports, however, are deemed to have accepted the risk of
harm due to their deliberate proximity to military objectives; thus, expected incidental harm to
such medical units and transports would be understood not to prohibit attacks under the
proportionality rule. 193
The respect and protection afforded medical units and facilities does not immunize them
from search or capture. 194
Under the direction of the competent authority concerned, the distinctive emblem of the
red cross, red crescent, or red lion and sun on a white ground shall be displayed by medical and
religious personnel and medical units, and on medical transports. It shall be respected in all
circumstances. It shall not be used improperly. 195
These rules also apply to the distinctive emblem of the red crystal. 196
190
Consider AP II art. 11(2) (The protection to which medical units and transports are entitled shall not cease
unless they are used to commit hostile acts, outside their humanitarian function. Protection may, however, cease
only after a warning has been given setting, whenever appropriate, a reasonable time-limit, and after such warning
has remained unheeded.).
191
Refer to 4.9.2.3 (Exclusively Engaged in Humanitarian Duties).
192
Compare 7.10.1 (Meaning of Respect and Protection of Military Medical Units and Facilities).
193
Compare 5.12.3.2 (Harm to Certain Individuals Who May Be Employed In or On Military Objectives);
7.12.2.5 (Acceptance of the Risk From Proximity to Combat Operations).
194
Compare 7.10.1.2 (Search Not Prohibited); 7.10.1.3 (Capture Not Prohibited).
195
Consider AP II art. 12 (Under the direction of the competent authority concerned, the distinctive emblem of the
red cross, red crescent or red lion and sun on a white ground shall be displayed by medical and religious personnel
and medical units, and on medical transports. It shall be respected in all circumstances. It shall not be used
improperly.).
196
Refer to 7.15.1.3 (Red Crystal); 17.2.1.1 (Treaties That Have Provisions That Explicitly Apply to NIAC).
1045
17.16.1 Display of the Emblem Under the Direction of the Competent Authority
Concerned. The display of the distinctive emblem is under the direction of the competent
authority concerned, which authority may authorize the removal or obscuring of the distinctive
emblem for tactical purposes, such as camouflage. 197 Similarly, it would be appropriate for the
distinctive emblem to be removed if it is assessed that enemy forces will fail to respect the
emblem and seek to attack medical personnel; display of the emblem in such circumstances
would be deemed not to be feasible. 198
17.16.2 Improper Use of the Distinctive Emblem. Improper use of the distinctive
emblem includes use: (1) while engaging in attacks; (2) in order to shield, favor, or protect ones
own military operations; or (3) to impede enemy military operations. 199
17.17.1 State Authority to Detain. Law of war treaties have not limited the scope of
whom a State may detain for reasons related to a non-international armed conflict, but have
prescribed humane treatment for such persons. 200 A States authority to conduct detention
operations has often been understood as incident to the legal basis of the State to engage in
operations against the non-State armed group. 201
The precise legal requirements for a detention regime established by a State in non-
international armed conflict would likely depend a great deal on its domestic law.
1046
detention of protected persons in international armed conflict or occupation. Other legal
rationales for the detention of persons in non-international armed conflict also may be available.
17.17.3 Humane Treatment and Other Applicable Requirements. All persons (including
those belonging to the State or those belonging to non-State armed groups) who are detained by
the adverse party are entitled to the protections of Common Article 3 of the 1949 Geneva
Conventions, including humane treatment. 203 Although detainees are afforded humane
treatment, they do not receive POW status. 204
Chapter VIII addresses the baseline rules for the humane treatment of detainees that
apply to all U.S. military operations, including those in non-international armed conflict. 205
203
Refer to 8.1.4.1 (Common Article 3 of the 1949 Geneva Conventions).
204
See, e.g., BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 646 (AP II art. 5, 2.3) (It must be emphasized in this
connection that Protocol II does not confer a special status on members of the armed forces of either side captured
by the adverse party similar to the status of a prisoner of war in an international armed conflict. The rebel does not
enjoy any privilege with regard to acts committed during the rebellion.); ICRC AP COMMENTARY 1386 (4570)
(Protocol II, following the example of common Article 3, does not grant a special status to members of the armed
forces or armed groups who have fallen into enemy hands. They are not legally prisoners of war entitled to special
protection; this is why it is so important that the rules laid down in this article [5 of AP II] establish minimum
guarantees.).
205
Refer to 8.1.1 (Overview of Detention Rules in This Manual and the Scope of Chapter VIII).
206
See, e.g., Declaration on Principles of International Law concerning Friendly Relations and Co-operation
among States in accordance with the Charter of the United Nations, annex to U.N. GENERAL ASSEMBLY
RESOLUTION 2625 (XXV), U.N. Doc. A/RES/2625(XXV) (1970) (Every State has the duty to refrain from
organizing or encouraging the organization of irregular forces or armed bands, including mercenaries, for incursion
into the territory of another State. Every State has the duty to refrain from organizing, instigating, assisting or
1047
These are closely analogous to the duties that neutral States have under the law of
neutrality to refrain from supporting military operations against belligerents. 207
In particular, States are required to take all reasonable steps to ensure that their territory is
not used by non-State armed groups for purposes of armed activitiesincluding planning,
threatening, perpetrating, or providing material support for armed attacksagainst other States
and their interests. 208 The failure to fulfill this duty may have consequences in regard to whether
other States that are threatened by these armed activities must seek the consent of that State
before taking action in self-defense in that States territory. 209
17.18.2 Duty of Belligerent States to Respect the Sovereignty of Other States. States that
are engaged in hostilities against non-State armed groups must respect the sovereignty of other
States. 211 In general, States must obtain the consent of a territorial State before conducting
military operations against a non-State armed group in that States territory. 212
participating in acts of civil strife or terrorist acts in another State or acquiescing in organized activities within its
territory directed towards the commission of such acts, when the acts referred to in the present paragraph involve a
threat or use of force.).
207
See, e.g., Christopher Greenwood, International law and the war on terrorism, 78 INTERNATIONAL AFFAIRS
301, 313 (2002) (By allowing Al-Qaida to operate from the territory which it controlled, the Talibanand thus
Afghanistanviolated the general duty of a state under international law not to allow its territory to be used as a
base for attacks on other states. At the very least, its position was analogous to that of a neutral state which
allows a belligerent to mount military operations from its territory: even though it is not responsible for those
operations, it exposes itself to the risk of lawful military action to put a stop to them. Similarly, where a state allows
terrorist organizations to mount concerted operations against other states from its territory and refuses to take the
action required by international law to put a stop to such operations, the victims of those operations are entitled to
take action against those terrorists.); H. Lauterpacht, Revolutionary Activities by Private Persons Against Foreign
States, 22 AJIL 105, 127 (1928) (The nearest approach to what is believed to be the true juridical construction of
the states duty to prevent organized hostile expeditions from proceeding in times of peace against a friendly state
will be found in the law of neutrality. The two situations being closely analogous, it is only natural that they are
regulated in Great Britain and in the United States in the same legal enactments. The law of hostile expeditions is
nothing else than the law of neutrality in relation to an actual or impending civil war.).
208
Daniel Bethlehem, Principles Relevant to the Scope of a States Right of Self-Defense Against an Imminent or
Actual Armed Attack by Nonstate Actors, 106 AJIL 1, 7 (2012) (9. States are required to take all reasonable steps
to ensure that their territory is not used by nonstate actors for purposes of armed activitiesincluding planning,
threatening, perpetrating, or providing material support for armed attacksagainst other states and their interests.).
209
Refer to 17.18.2 (Duty of Belligerent States to Respect the Sovereignty of Other States).
210
See, e.g., CCW AMENDED art. 1(5) (Nothing in this Convention or its annexed Protocols shall be invoked as a
justification for intervening, directly or indirectly, for any reason whatever, in the armed conflict or in the internal or
external affairs of the High Contracting Party in the territory of which that conflict occurs.). Consider AP II art.
2(2) (Nothing in this Protocol shall be invoked as a justification for intervening, directly or indirectly, for any
reason whatever, in the armed conflict or in the internal or external affairs of the High Contracting Party in the
territory of which that conflict occurs.). Refer to 1.11.4.4 (Humanitarian Intervention).
211
See, e.g., Jeh Charles Johnson, General Counsel, Department of Defense, National Security Law, Lawyers, and
Lawyering in the Obama Administration, Feb. 22, 2012, 2012 DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN
1048
The consent of the territorial State, however, is not necessary when the U.N. Security
Council has authorized the military operations. 213
In addition, the United States has expressed the view that consent is not required when
the territorial State is unwilling or unable to prevent its territory from being used by non-State
armed groups as a base for launching attacks. 214 Other States have also expressed this view. 215
INTERNATIONAL LAW 575, 577 (Third: there is nothing in the wording of the 2001 AUMF or its legislative history
that restricts this statutory authority to the hot battlefields of Afghanistan. The legal point is important because,
in fact, over the last 10 years al Qaeda has not only become more decentralized, it has also, for the most part,
migrated away from Afghanistan to other places where it can find safe haven. However, this legal conclusion too
has its limits. It should not be interpreted to mean that we believe we are in any Global War on Terror, or that we
can use military force whenever we want, wherever we want. International legal principles, including respect for a
states sovereignty and the laws of war, impose important limits on our ability to act unilaterally, and on the way in
which we can use force in foreign territories.); Harold Hongju Koh, Legal Adviser, Department of State, Address at
the Annual Meeting of the American Society of International Law: The Obama Administration and International
Law Mar. 25, 2010, 2010 DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 717-18 (As recent events
have shown, al-Qaeda has not abandoned its intent to attack the United States, and indeed continues to attack us.
Thus, in this ongoing armed conflict, the United States has the authority under international law, and the
responsibility to its citizens, to use force, including lethal force, to defend itself, including by targeting persons such
as high-level al-Qaeda leaders who are planning attacks. Of course, whether a particular individual will be
targeted in a particular location will depend upon considerations specific to each case, including those related to the
imminence of the threat, the sovereignty of the other states involved, and the willingness and ability of those states
to suppress the threat the target poses.).
212
Daniel Bethlehem, Principles Relevant to the Scope of a States Right of Self-Defense Against an Imminent or
Actual Armed Attack by Nonstate Actors, 106 AJIL 1, 7 (2012) (Subject to the following paragraphs, a state may
not take armed action in self-defense against a nonstate actor in the territory or within the jurisdiction of another
state (the third state) without the consent of that state. The requirement for consent does not operate in
circumstances in which there is an applicable resolution of the UN Security Council authorizing the use of armed
force under Chapter VII of the Charter or other relevant and applicable legal provision of similar effect.).
213
Daniel Bethlehem, Principles Relevant to the Scope of a States Right of Self-Defense Against an Imminent or
Actual Armed Attack by Nonstate Actors, 106 AJIL 1, 7 (2012) (The requirement for consent does not operate in
circumstances in which there is an applicable resolution of the UN Security Council authorizing the use of armed
force under Chapter VII of the Charter or other relevant and applicable legal provision of similar effect.). Refer to
1.11.4.2 (Use of Force Authorized by the U.N. Security Council Acting Under Chapter VII of the Charter of the
United Nations).
214
See, e.g., Samantha J. Power, Letter dated 23 September 2014 from the Permanent Representative of the United
States of America to the United Nations addressed to the Secretary-General, U.N. Doc. S/2014/695 (Sept. 23, 2014)
(ISIL and other terrorist groups in Syria are a threat not only to Iraq, but also to many other countries, including the
United States and our partners in the region and beyond. States must be able to defend themselves, in accordance
with the inherent right of individual and collective self-defence, as reflected in Article 51 of the Charter of the
United Nations, when, as is the case here, the government of the State where the threat is located is unwilling or
unable to prevent the use of its territory for such attacks. The Syrian regime has shown that it cannot and will not
confront these safe havens effectively itself.); John B. Bellinger, III, Department of State Legal Adviser, Legal
Issues in the War on Terrorism, Oct. 31, 2006, 2006 DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW
1104, 1109-10 (Let me be very clear here: I am not suggesting that, because we remain in a state of armed conflict
with al Qaida, the United States is free to use military force against al Qaida in any state where an al Qaida terrorist
may seek shelter. The U.S. military does not plan to shoot terrorists on the streets of London. As a practical matter,
though, a state must be responsible for preventing terrorists from using its territory as a base for launching attacks.
And, as a legal matter, where a state is unwilling or unable to do so, it may be lawful for the targeted state to use
military force in self-defense to address that threat.); Abraham Sofaer, The Sixth Annual Waldemar A. Solf Lecture
in International Law: Terrorism, the Law, and the National Defense, 126 MILITARY LAW REVIEW 89, 108 (1989)
1049
It may be unnecessary for a belligerent State to seek consent when there is a strong,
reasonable, and objective basis for concluding that the seeking of consent would be likely to
undermine materially the effectiveness of the action against the non-State armed group (e.g.,
reasons of disclosure, delay, incapacity to act) or would increase the risk of armed attack,
vulnerability to future attacks, or other development that would give rise to an independent
imperative to act in self-defense. 216
(The United States in fact supported the legality of a nation attacking a terrorist base from which attack on its
citizens are being launched, if the host country is either unwilling or unable to stop the terrorists from using its
territory for that purpose.).
215
For example, Michael Grant, Letter dated 31 March 2015 from the Charg daffaires a.i. of the Permanent
Mission of Canada to the United Nations addressed to the President of the Security Council, U.N. Doc. S/2015/221
(Mar. 31, 2015) (ISIL also continues to pose a threat not only to Iraq, but also to Canada and Canadians, as well as
to other countries in the region and beyond. In accordance with the inherent rights of individual and collective self-
defence reflected in Article 51 of the United Nations Charter, States must be able to act in self-defence when the
government of the State where a threat is located is unwilling or unable to prevent attacks emanating from its
territory.); Russian Federation President V.V. Putin, Statement of Sept. 11, 2002, annexed to Sergey Lavrov, Letter
dated 11 September 2002 from the Permanent Representative of the Russian Federation to the United Nations
addressed to the Secretary-General, U.N. Doc. S/2002/1012 (Sept. 11, 2002) (The Russian Federation firmly
adheres to its international obligations and respects the sovereignty and integrity of other States, but it demands the
same attitude towards itself. If the Georgian leadership is unable to establish a security zone in the area of the
Georgian-Russian border, continues to ignore United Nations Security Council resolution 1373 (2001) of 28
September 2001, and does not put an end to the bandit sorties and attacks on adjoining areas in the Russian
Federation, we reserve the right to act in accordance with Article 51 of the Charter of the United Nations, which lays
down every Member States inalienable right of individual or collective self-defence. None of this will be
necessary, no measures or special operations will be needed if the Georgian leadership actually controls its own
territory, carries out international obligations in combating international terrorism and prevents possible attacks by
international terrorists from its territory against the territory of the Russian Federation.); Hayati Gven, Letter
Dated 24 July 1995 from the Charge Daffaires A.I. of the Permanent Mission of Turkey to the United Nations
Addressed to the President of the Security Council, U.N. Doc. S/1995/605 (Jul. 24, 1995) (As Iraq has not been
able to exercise its authority over the northern part of its country since 1991 for reasons well known, Turkey cannot
ask the Government of Iraq to fulfil its obligation, under international law, to prevent the use of its territory for the
staging of terrorist acts against Turkey. Under these circumstances, Turkeys resorting to legitimate measures which
are imperative to its own security cannot be regarded as a violation of Iraqs sovereignty. No country could be
expected to stand idle when its own territorial integrity is incessantly threatened by blatant cross-border attacks of a
terrorist organization based and operating from a neighbouring country, if that country is unable to put an end to
such attacks. The recent operations of limited time and scope were carried out within this framework, as explained
to the world public.); Statement of Mr. Blum, representative of Israel, in U.N. Doc. S/PV.2292 54-56 (Members
of the [Security] Council need scarcely be reminded that under international law, if a State is unwilling or unable to
prevent the use of its territory to attack another State, that latter state is entitled to take all necessary measures in its
own defence. The Government of Israel is in fact exercising the inherent right of self-defence enjoyed by every
sovereign State, a right also preserved under Article 51 of the Charter of the United Nations. Israels response to
PLO terror is what any self-respecting sovereign State would do in similar circumstances. I must stress that Israels
actions are specifically directed against concentrations of PLO terrorists in Lebanon.).
216
Daniel Bethlehem, Principles Relevant to the Scope of a States Right of Self-Defense Against an Imminent or
Actual Armed Attack by Nonstate Actors, 106 AJIL 1, 7 (2012) (In such circumstances, in addition to the preceding
requirements, there must also be a strong, reasonable, and objective basis for concluding that the seeking of consent
would be likely to materially undermine the effectiveness of action in self-defense, whether for reasons of
disclosure, delay, incapacity to act, or otherwise, or would increase the risk of armed attack, vulnerability to future
attacks, or other development that would give rise to an independent imperative to act in self-defense.).
1050
17.18.3 States Support to Other States in Hostilities Against Non-State Armed Groups.
International law does not prohibit States from assisting other States in their armed conflicts
against non-State armed groups. To the extent those States intend to conduct hostilities or
actually do so, they may incur obligations under the law of war. 217 For example, a State that is
conducting detention operations would have obligations to treat detainees (e.g., persons
belonging to non-State armed groups) humanely regardless of whether it considers itself a party
to the non-international armed conflict.
17.18.4 Liability of Private Individuals for Supporting Non-State Armed Groups. Private
individuals who support non-State armed groups that are preparing for, or engaged in, hostilities
against a State may be subject to prosecution. Such conduct may be criminalized under a variety
of domestic laws relating to treason, hostile expeditions against other States, material support to
terrorism, or piracy. 218
The State that is threatened by such activities may prosecute such individuals for treason
or other offenses against the State.
States in which such conduct occurs may seek to prosecute such conduct for a variety of
reasons, including its duties under international law to refrain from materially supporting
hostilities against another State, and to repress terrorism or piracy.
217
Refer to 3.4 (When Jus in Bello Rules Apply).
218
Refer to 4.18.5 (Private Persons Who Engage in Hostilities and the Law of War).
1051
XVIII Implementation and Enforcement of the Law of War
Chapter Contents
18.1 Introduction
18.2 Prudential Reasons Supporting the Implementation and Enforcement of the
Law of War
18.3 Duties of Individual Members of the Armed Forces
18.4 Commanders Duty to Implement and Enforce the Law of War
18.5 Role of Judge Advocates and Legal Advisers
18.6 Dissemination, Study, and Other Measures to Facilitate Understanding of
Duties Under the Law of War
18.7 Instructions, Regulations, and Procedures to Implement and Enforce the Law
of War
18.8 Considering Law of War Obligations in the Planning of Military Operations
18.9 States Obligations With Respect to Violations of the Law of War
18.10 Methods for Responding to Violations of the Law of War by the Enemy
18.11 Protests and Demands to the Offending Party
18.12 U.N. Security Council and Enforcement of the Law of War
18.13 National Investigations of Alleged Violations of the Law of War
18.14 International Mechanisms to Investigate Alleged Law of War Violations
18.15 Protecting Power and Other Neutral Intermediaries
18.16 Compensation for Violations of the Law of War
18.17 Retorsion
18.18 Reprisals
18.19 Discipline in National Jurisdictions of Individuals for Violations of the Law
of War
18.20 Prosecution in International and Hybrid Courts
18.21 Limits on the Punishment of Individuals Under the Law of War
18.22 Principles of Individual Criminal Responsibility for Crimes Under
International Law
18.23 Theories of Individual Criminal Liability
18.1 INTRODUCTION
This Chapter addresses the implementation and enforcement of the law of war. It
discusses activities that are undertaken in order to prevent violations of the law of war (such as
training and the promulgation of policies, regulations, and orders). It discusses activities to
respond to alleged violations, such as reporting, investigation, and corrective or punitive
measures.
1052
18.1.1 DoD Policy on Implementing and Enforcing the Law of War. DoD policy has
addressed the policies and responsibilities for ensuring DoD compliance with the law of war
obligations of the United States. 1 It has been DoD policy that:
Members of the DoD Components comply with the law of war during all armed conflicts,
however such conflicts are characterized, and in all other military operations; 2
The law of war obligations of the United States are observed and enforced by the DoD
Components and DoD contractors assigned to, or accompanying, deployed armed
forces; 3
An effective program to prevent violations of the law of war is implemented by the DoD
Components. 4
These policies follow a longer tradition of compliance with the law of war by U.S. armed
5
forces.
1
See, e.g., DOD DIRECTIVE 2311.01E, DoD Law of War Program, 1 (May 9, 2006, Certified Current as of Feb. 22,
2011) (This Directive: 1.1. Reissues Reference (a) to update the policies and responsibilities ensuring DoD
compliance with the law of war obligations of the United States.); DOD DIRECTIVE 5100.77, DoD Program for the
Implementation of the Law of War, I (Nov. 5, 1974) (This Directive provides policy guidance and assigns
responsibilities within the Department of Defense for a program to insure implementation of the law of war.).
2
See, e.g., DOD DIRECTIVE 2311.01E, DoD Law of War Program, 4.1 (May 9, 2006, Certified Current as of Feb.
22, 2011) (Members of the DoD Components comply with the law of war during all armed conflicts, however such
conflicts are characterized, and in all other military operations.); DOD DIRECTIVE 5100.77, DoD Law of War
Program, 5.3 (Dec. 9, 1998) (The Heads of the DoD Components shall: 5.3.1. Ensure that the members of their
DoD Components comply with the law of war during all armed conflicts, however such conflicts are characterized,
and with the principles and spirit of the law of war during all other operations.); DOD DIRECTIVE 5100.77, DoD
Law of War Program, E(1)(a) (Jul. 10, 1979) (The Armed Forces of the United States shall comply with the law
of war in the conduct of military operations and related activities in armed conflict, however such conflicts are
characterized.); DOD DIRECTIVE 5100.77, DoD Program for the Implementation of the Law of War, V(A) (Nov. 5,
1974) (The Armed Forces of the United States will comply with the law of war in the conduct of military
operations and related activities in armed conflict however such conflicts are characterized.).
3
DOD DIRECTIVE 2311.01E, DoD Law of War Program, 4.2 (May 9, 2006, Certified Current as of Feb. 22, 2011)
(The law of war obligations of the United States are observed and enforced by the DoD Components and DoD
contractors assigned to or accompanying deployed Armed Forces.).
4
DOD DIRECTIVE 2311.01E, DoD Law of War Program, 4.3 (May 9, 2006, Certified Current as of Feb. 22, 2011)
(An effective program to prevent violations of the law of war is implemented by the DoD Components.).
5
See, e.g., 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 7 (In consequence, treaties relating to the law of war have a force
equal to that of laws enacted by the Congress. Their provisions must be observed by both military and civilian
personnel with the same strict regard for both the letter and spirit of the law which is required with respect to the
Constitution and statutes enacted in pursuance thereof. The unwritten or customary law of war is binding upon all
nations. It will be strictly observed by United States forces, subject only to such exceptions as shall have been
directed by competent authority by way of legitimate reprisals for illegal conduct of the enemy (see par. 497).);
U.S. Navy Regulations Article 0505 (1948) (Observance of International Law. 1. In the event of war between
nations with which the United States is at peace, a commander shall observe, and require his command to observe,
the principles of international law. He shall make every effort consistent with those principles to preserve and
protect the lives and property of citizens of the United States wherever situated. 2. When the United States is at war,
he shall observe, and require his command to observe, the principles of international law and the rules of humane
1053
18.1.2 National Obligations to Implement and Enforce the Law of War. States, as Parties
to treaties, have certain obligations to implement and enforce those treaties. These obligations
may be written as a general obligation to undertake to respect and to ensure respect for the treaty.
In addition, treaties may provide for more specific obligations to help implement and
enforce their provisions, such as obligations with respect to violations of the treaty or
dissemination of the text of the treaty.
Different treaties may have different mechanisms to implement and to ensure compliance
with that treaty.
warfare. He shall respect the rights of neutrals as prescribed by international law and by pertinent provisions of
treaties, and shall exact a like observance from neutrals.).
6
GWS art. 1 (The High Contracting Parties undertake to respect and to ensure respect for the present Convention
in all circumstances.); GWS-SEA art. 1 (same); GPW art. 1 (same); GC art. 1 (same).
7
AP III art. 1(1) (The High Contracting Parties undertake to respect and to ensure respect for this Protocol in all
circumstances.).
8
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 14 (1. Each High Contracting Party shall take all appropriate steps,
including legislative and other measures, to prevent and suppress violations of this Protocol by persons or on
territory under its jurisdiction or control. 2. The measures envisaged in paragraph I of this Article include
appropriate measures to ensure the imposition of penal sanctions against persons who, in relation to an armed
conflict and contrary to the provisions of this Protocol, wilfully kill or cause serious injury to civilians and to bring
such persons to justice.).
9
Optional Protocol to the Convention on the Rights of the Child on the Involvement of Children in Armed Conflict,
art. 6(1), May 25, 2000, 2173 UNTS 222, 238 (Each State Party shall take all necessary legal, administrative and
other measures to ensure the effective implementation and enforcement of the provisions of this Protocol within its
jurisdiction.).
1054
18.1.3 International or Multi-National Actions to Implement and Enforce the Law of
War. States sometimes take actions on the international or multinational level to implement and
enforce the law of war.
Nonetheless, many of the domestic law, policies, and regulations that are used to
implement and enforce the law of war are applicable outside the context of international armed
conflict. Thus, for example, many of the provisions of the Uniform Code of Military Justice may
be used to punish crimes that have been committed in the context of a non-international armed
conflict or a military operation other than war.
18.2 PRUDENTIAL REASONS SUPPORTING THE IMPLEMENTATION AND ENFORCEMENT OF THE LAW
OF WAR
The implementation and enforcement of the law of war have been supported by strong
practical considerations. Compliance with the law of war is not only legally required but also in
the strong self-interest of everyone subject to the law of war. 12
10
Refer to 18.14 (International Mechanisms to Investigate Alleged Law of War Violations).
11
Refer to 18.20.1 (Post-World War II International Military Tribunals).
12
1976 AIR FORCE PAMPHLET 110-31 1-6 (The law of armed conflict developed from an amalgam of social,
political and military considerations. The primary basis for the law, and the principal reason for its respect, is that it
generally serves the self-interest of everyone subject to its commands.).
1055
principles and rules are consistent with military doctrines for a profession of arms that are the
basis for effective combat operations. 13
Similarly, the necessity of discipline for an effective armed force reinforces the
implementation and enforcement of the law of war. An undisciplined force is more likely to
commit law of war violations, such as pillaging, detainee abuse, or atrocities against the civilian
population. 15
Nevertheless, reciprocity may be a critical factor in the actual observance of the law of
war. Adherence to law of war rules in conducting military operations can encourage an
adversary also to comply with those law of war rules. 17 For example, humane treatment of
enemy persons detained by U.S. forces can encourage enemy forces to treat detained U.S.
persons humanely. 18 Conversely, the maltreatment of detained personnel by U.S. forces may
have a dramatic and negative effect on how U.S. personnel in the hands of the enemy are treated
and the degree to which the law of war is respected generally. 19
13
Christopher Greenwood, Historical Development and Legal Basis, in DIETER FLECK, THE HANDBOOK OF
HUMANITARIAN LAW IN ARMED CONFLICTS 33 (132) (1999) (It should not be assumed, however, that
humanitarian law and military requirements will necessarily be opposed to one another. On the contrary, most rules
of humanitarian law reflect good military practice, and adherence by armed forces to those rules is likely to reinforce
discipline and good order within the forces concerned.).
14
1976 AIR FORCE PAMPHLET 110-31 1-6b (More importantly, various military doctrines, such as accuracy of
targeting, concentration of effort, maximization of military advantage, conservation of resources, avoidance of
excessive collateral damage, and economy of force are not only fully consistent with compliance with the law of
armed conflict but reinforce its observance. Use of excessive force is not only costly and highly inefficientand to
be avoided for those reasonsit may also be a waste of scarce resources.).
15
Compare 4.18.3 (Private Persons Who Engage in Hostilities Lack of the Privileges of Combatant Status).
16
Refer to 3.6 (Reciprocity and Law of War Rules).
17
1976 AIR FORCE PAMPHLET 110-31 10-1b (The most important relevant treaties, the 1949 Geneva Conventions
for the Protection of War Victims, are not formally conditioned on reciprocity. Yet reciprocity is an implied
condition in other rules and obligations including generally the law of armed conflict. It is moreover a critical factor
in actual observance of the law of armed conflict. Reciprocity is also explicitly the basis for the doctrine of
reprisals.).
18
Refer to 9.2.5 (Reciprocity in the Treatment of POWs).
19
United States v. List, et al. (The Hostage Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 1274 (It is
almost inevitable that the murder of innocent members of the population, including the relatives and friends of the
franc-tireurs, would generate a hatred that was bound to express itself in counterreprisals and acts of atrocity.).
1056
18.2.3 Maintaining Public Support and Political Legitimacy. The implementation and
enforcement of the law of war are also supported by the fact that violations of the law of war are
counterproductive to the political goals sought to be achieved by military operations. 20 For
example, violations of the law of war in counter-insurgency operations may diminish the support
of the local population. Violations of the law of war may also diminish the support of the
populace in democratic States, including the United States and other States that would otherwise
support or participate in coalition operations. Violations of the law of war committed by one
side may encourage third parties to support the opposing side.
Each member of the armed services has a duty to: (1) comply with the law of war in
good faith; and (2) refuse to comply with clearly illegal orders to commit violations of the law of
war.
18.3.1 Comply With the Law of War in Good Faith. Each member of the armed forces
has a duty to comply with the law of war in good faith. 21 This duty of individual service
members rests within a broader framework of law of war implementation by the U.S. armed
forces.
For example, certain law of war obligations only apply to commanders or to specialized
units, such as units providing medical care, conducting detention operations, or engaging in the
protection of cultural property.
Similarly, individual service members are not expected to be experts in the law of war;
service members should ask questions through appropriate channels and consult with the
command legal adviser on issues relating to the law of war.
In addition, law of war requirements have also been incorporated into domestic law,
policy, regulations, and orders. 22 Moreover, in most cases, the requirements and standards in
applicable policies, regulations, and orders will exceed the requirements of the law of war. 23
Thus, in practice, the obligation of individual service members to comply with the law of
war in good faith is met when service members: (1) perform their duties as they have been
trained and directed; and (2) apply the training on the law of war that they have received. 24
20
1976 AIR FORCE PAMPHLET 110-31 1-6a (However, the application of military force has never been an end in
itself. In many respects, the overall political context has increased in importance in recent years although that
political context has always influenced the means of destruction or tactics used in warfare. Violations of the law of
armed conflict have been recognized as counterproductive to the political goals sought to be achieved. For example,
they may arouse public opinion and induce neutrals to become involved in the conflict on the adversarys side, such
as the entry of the United States into World War I.).
21
Refer to 1.10.2 (Force of the Law of War Under U.S. Domestic Law).
22
Refer to 18.7 (Instructions, Regulations, and Procedures to Implement and Enforce the Law of War).
23
Refer to 18.7.2.3 (Setting Higher Standards as a Matter of Policy).
24
Refer to 18.6.2 (Special Instruction or Training).
1057
18.3.2 Refuse to Comply With Clearly Illegal Orders to Commit Law of War Violations.
Members of the armed forces must refuse to comply with clearly illegal orders to commit law of
war violations. In addition, orders should not be construed to authorize implicitly violations of
law of war.
Subordinates are not required to screen the orders of superiors for questionable points of
legality, and may, absent specific knowledge to the contrary, presume that orders have been
lawfully issued. 27
25
Judgement in Case of Lieutenants Dithmar and Boldt, Hospital Ship Llandovery Castle (Second Criminal
Senate of the Imperial Court of Justice, Germany, Jul. 16, 1921), reprinted in 16 AJIL, 708, 721-22 (1922) (It is
certainly to be urged in favor of the military subordinates, that they are under no obligation to question the order of
their superior officer, and they can count upon its legality. But no such confidence can be held to exist, if such an
order is universally known to everybody, including also the accused, to be without any doubt whatever against the
law. This happens only in rare and exceptional cases. But this case was precisely one of them, for in the present
instance, it was perfectly clear to the accused that killing defenceless people in the life-boats could be nothing else
but a breach of the law. As naval officers by profession they were well aware, as the naval expert Saalwiachter has
strikingly stated, that one is not legally authorized to kill defenceless people. They well knew that this was the case
here. They quickly found out the facts by questioning the occupants in the boats when these were stopped. They
could only have gathered, from the order given by Patzig, that he wished to make use of his subordinates to carry out
a breach of the law. They should, therefore, have refused to obey.).
26
United States v. Calley, 22 U.S.C.M.A. 534, 543-44 (C.M.A. 1973) (In the stress of combat, a member of the
armed forces cannot reasonably be expected to make a refined legal judgment and be held criminally responsible if
he guesses wrong on a question as to which there may be considerable disagreement. But there is no disagreement
as to the illegality of the order to kill in this case. For 100 years, it has been a settled rule of American law that even
in war the summary killing of an enemy, who has submitted to, and is under, effective physical control, is murder.).
27
United States v. von Leeb, et al. (The High Command Case), XI TRIAL OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT
510-11 (Orders are the basis upon which any army operates. It is basic to the discipline of an army that orders are
issued to be carried out. Its discipline is built upon its principle. Without it, no army can be effective and it is
certainly not incumbent upon a soldier in a subordinate position to screen the orders of superiors for questionable
points of legality. Within certain limitations, he has the right to assume that the orders of his superiors and the state
which he serves and which are issued to him are in conformity with international law. He has the right to
presume, in the absence of specific knowledge to the contrary, that the legality of such orders has been properly
determined before their issuance. He cannot be held criminally responsible for a mere error in judgment as to
disputable legal questions.); WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW & PRECEDENTS 296-97 (But for the inferior to assume to
determine the question of the lawfulness of an order given him by a superior would of itself, as a general rule,
amount to insubordination, and such an assumption carried into practice would subvert military discipline. Where
the order is apparently regular and lawful on its face, he is not to go behind it to satisfy himself that his superior has
proceeded with authority, but is to obey it according to its terms, the only exceptions recognized to the rule of
obedience being cases of orders so manifestly beyond the legal power or discretion of the commander as to admit of
no rational doubt of their unlawfulness. Except in such instances of palpable illegality, which must be of rare
occurrence, the inferior should presume that the order was lawful and authorized and obey it accordingly, and in
obeying it can scarcely fail to be held justified by a military court .).
1058
18.3.2.2 Commands and Orders Should Not Be Understood as Implicitly
Authorizing Violations of the Law of War. Commands and orders should not be understood as
implicitly authorizing violations of the law of war where other interpretations are reasonably
available. 28
For example, if a commander issues an order to attack a town, one should assume that the
order directs attacks on military objectives located in that area. 29 Similarly, speeches by
commanders before combat operations to rally members of their command should not be
understood to authorize implicitly law of war violations against the enemy. 30
Military commanders have a duty to take appropriate measures as are within their power
to control the forces under their command for the prevention of violations of the law of war. 31
28
See Basic Course in the Geneva Conventions of 1949 and Hague Convention No. IV of 1907: Lesson Plan
Second Hour, 5b, Appendix A in DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY SUBJECT SCHEDULE 27-1, The Geneva Conventions
of 1949 and Hague Convention No. IV of 1907, 11 (Aug. 29, 1975) (You should not presume that an order is
criminal. If you think it is criminal, it is probably because the order is unclear. For example, while on patrol we
capture a prisoner. On our return the patrol leader questions him. When the patrol leader finishes the questioning he
tells you get rid of that man. That order is not clear. The patrol leader undoubtedly means to take the man to the
Detainee Collection Point. Rather than presume that an unclear order directs you to commit a crime, ask your
superior for a clarification of the order. Above all, remember that if you are the leader, make your order clear and
understandable. Dont put your subordinates in the position where they may think you are giving a criminal
order.).
29
For example, Prosecutor v. Gotovina and Marka, ICTY Appellate Chamber, IT-06-09-A, Judgment, 77 (Nov.
16, 2012) (More specifically, the Trial Chamber relied on the Impact Analysis to discount Witness Rajis
assertion that the 2 August Order called for shelling only lawful military targets. In addition, neither Witness
Konings nor Witness Corn suggested that the only interpretation of the 2 August Order was as an instruction to
commence indiscriminate attacks on the Four Towns. Given that the relevant portion of the 2 August Order was
relatively short, and did not explicitly call for unlawful attacks on the Four Towns, the text of the 2 August Order
could not, alone, reasonably be relied upon to support a finding that unlawful artillery attacks took place.).
30
For example, L.C. GREEN, SUPERIOR ORDERS IN NATIONAL AND INTERNATIONAL LAW 131-32 (1976) (The
controversy arose over Pattons prepared remarks, which included these statements: The fact we are operating in
enemy country does not permit us to forget our American tradition of respect for private property, non-combatants,
and women. Attack rapidly, ruthlessly, viciously and without rest, and kill even civilians who have the stupidity to
fight us. Several days after the operation began, during which time the fighting was extremely fierce, a Captain
Compton, who had lost several of his men, lined up forty-three captured Germans, some of whom were wearing
civilian clothes, and had them executed by machine gun. At about the same time and in the same general location, a
Sergeant West (of another company) shot and killed thirty-six Germans whom he was escorting to the prisoner-of-
war cage in the rear. When General Patton learned of these incidents, he ordered both men court-martialed on
charges of premeditated murder. At their trials, the two men asserted as a defence the orders issued by General
Patton on June 27, 1943 in his preparatory speech. The defences assertions prompted a subsequent inquiry into
the speech given by Patton in which he was ultimately exonerated after producing the prepared text of the speech
and delivering it orally to a board of investigating officers. Captain Compton and Sergeant West, however, were
convicted as charged.) (first ellipsis in original).
31
See In re Yamashita, 327 U.S. 1, 16 (1946) (The question, then, is whether the law of war imposes on an army
commander a duty to take such appropriate measures as are within his power to control the troops under his
command for the prevention of the specified acts which are violations of the law of war and which are likely to
attend the occupation of hostile territory by an uncontrolled soldiery, and whether he may be charged with personal
responsibility for his failure to take such measures when violations result. These provisions [of the Hague IV
Reg., the Hague X, and the 1929 GWS] plainly imposed on petitioner, who at the time specified was military
1059
For example, commanders have obligations to take appropriate measures to prevent pillage and
to protect the wounded, sick, and shipwrecked within their control. 32
18.4.1 Background on Commanders Duties to Implement and Enforce the Law of War.
The law of war presupposes that its violation is to be avoided through the control of the
operations of war by commanders who are to some extent responsible for their subordinates. 33
One of the requirements for armed forces to receive the privileges of combatant status is that
they operate under a responsible command. 34 In addition, law of war treaties have specified that
commanders must take appropriate measures to ensure that the provisions of those treaties are
observed. 35
18.4.2 Discipline of Subordinates. In carrying out their duties to implement and enforce
the law of war, commanders may use disciplinary or penal measures. 36 Under international law,
commanders have discretion about how to implement and enforce their law of war obligations;
governor of the Philippines as well as commander of the Japanese forces, an affirmative duty to take such measures
as were within his power and appropriate in the circumstances to protect prisoners of war and the civilian
population. This duty of a commanding officer has heretofore been recognized, and its breach penalized by our own
military tribunals.); Elihu Root, Secretary of War, Memorandum Transmitting the Record and Proceedings of the
Trial of Brigadier General Jacob H. Smith, Jul. 12, 1902, reprinted in H.C. Corbin, Adjutant General, Major
General, U.S. Army, General Orders, No. 80, 2, 3 Jul. 16, 1902, GENERAL ORDERS AND CIRCULARS OF THE
ADJUTANT GENERALS OFFICE, 1902 (1903) (It is the duty of a general officer whose age and experience have
brought him to high command not to incite his subordinates to acts of lawless violence, but to so explain to them the
application of the laws of war and the limitations upon their conduct as to prevent transgressions upon their part and
supplement their comparative inexperience by his wise control. In this General Smith has signally failed, and for
this he has been justly convicted.).
32
Refer to 5.17.4 (Pillage Prohibited); 7.4 (Search, Collection, and Affirmative Protection of the Wounded, Sick,
Shipwrecked, and Dead).
33
In re Yamashita, 327 U.S. 1, 15 (1946) (It is evident that the conduct of military operations by troops whose
excesses are unrestrained by the orders or efforts of their commander would almost certainly result in violations
which it is the purpose of the law of war to prevent. Its purpose to protect civilian populations and prisoners of war
from brutality would largely be defeated if the commander of an invading army could, with impunity, neglect to take
reasonable measures for their protection. Hence, the law of war presupposes that its violation is to be avoided
through the control of the operations of war by commanders who are to some extent responsible for their
subordinates.). Consider AP I art. 87(1) (The High Contracting Parties and the Parties to the conflict shall require
military commanders, with respect to members of the armed forces under their command and other persons under
their control, to prevent and, where necessary, to suppress and to report to competent authorities breaches of the
[Geneva] Conventions and of this Protocol.).
34
Refer to 4.6.3 (Being Commanded by a Person Responsible for His or Her Subordinates).
35
See, e.g., GWS art. 45 (Each Party to the conflict, acting through its Commanders-in-Chief, shall ensure the
detailed execution of the preceding Articles and provide for unforeseen cases, in conformity with the general
principles of the present Convention.); GWS-SEA art. 46 (same). Consider HAGUE X art. 19 (The Commanders-
in-chief of the belligerent fleets must see that the above Articles are properly carried out; they will have also to see
to cases not covered thereby, in accordance with the instructions of their respective Governments and in conformity
with the general principles of the present Convention.).
36
Consider AP I art. 87(3) (The High Contracting Parties and Parties to the conflict shall require any commander
who is aware that subordinates or other persons under his control are going to commit or have committed a breach
of the Conventions or of this Protocol, to initiate such steps as are necessary to prevent such violations of the
Conventions or this Protocol, and, where appropriate, to initiate disciplinary or penal action against violators
thereof.). Refer to 18.19 (Discipline in National Jurisdictions of Individuals for Violations of the Law of War).
1060
there is no absolute or automatic requirement under international law to punish particular
offenders within their armed forces in a specific way. 37
18.5.1 Legal Advisers. The United States has provided for legal advisers to advise
military commanders on the law of war. 40 For example, DoD policy has required that each head
of a DoD component make qualified legal advisers available at all levels of command to provide
advice about law of war compliance during planning and execution of exercises and operations. 41
37
United States v. von Leeb, et al. (The High Command Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT
524 (With regard to the second aspect of this order, that is the obligation to prosecute soldiers who commit
offences against the indigenous population, this obligation as a matter of International Law is considered doubtful.
The duty imposed upon a military commander is the protection of the civilian population. Whether this protection
be assured by the prosecution of soldiers charged with offences against the civilian population, or whether it be
assured by disciplinary measures or otherwise, is immaterial from an international standpoint.).
38
Refer to 18.13 (National Investigations of Alleged Violations of the Law of War).
39
Consider AP I art. 87(2) (In order to prevent and suppress breaches, High Contracting Parties and Parties to the
conflict shall require that, commensurate with their level of responsibility, commanders ensure that members of the
armed forces under their command are aware of their obligations under the Conventions and this Protocol.).
40
Consider AP I art. 82 (The High Contracting Parties at all times, and the Parties to the conflict in time of armed
conflict, shall ensure that legal advisers are available, when necessary, to advise military commanders at the
appropriate level on the application of the Conventions and this Protocol and on the appropriate instruction to be
given to the armed forces on this subject.).
41
DOD DIRECTIVE 2311.01E, DoD Law of War Program, 5.1 (May 9, 2006, Certified Current as of Feb. 22, 2011)
(The Heads of the DoD Components shall: [5.7.3] Make qualified legal advisers at all levels of command
available to provide advice about law of war compliance during planning and execution of exercises and operations;
and institute and implement programs to comply with the reporting requirements established in section 6.); DOD
DIRECTIVE 5100.77, DoD Law of War Program, 5.3 (Dec. 9, 1998) (The Heads of the DoD Components shall:
[5.3.3] Ensure that qualified legal advisers are immediately available at all levels of command to provide advice
about law of war compliance during planning and execution of exercises and operations; and institute and
implement programs to comply with the reporting requirements established in section 6., below.).
1061
components, are reviewed by legal advisers to ensure their consistency with the law of war and
DoD policy on the law of war. 42
18.5.1.3 Review of the Acquisition of Weapons. DoD policy has required the legal
review of the intended acquisition of weapons. 44
18.5.2 Law of War Questions During Military Operations. During military operations,
questions on the law of war from U.S. forces or coalition partners related to a specific issue
should be referred through the operational chain of command for resolution. It may also be
appropriate to refer questions to either the office of the Judge Advocate General of a Military
Department, the Staff Judge Advocate to the Commandant of the Marines Corps, the General
Counsel of a Military Department, the Legal Counsel to the Chairman of the Joint Chiefs of
Staff, or the DoD General Counsel.
18.5.3 Role of the DoD Law of War Working Group. The DoD Law of War Working
Group is a DoD internal mechanism for coordination on law of war issues. It consists of
representatives of the General Counsel, Department of Defense; representatives, at the election
of each, of the General Counsel of each Military Department, the Judge Advocate General of
each Military Department, the Staff Judge Advocate to the Commandant of the Marine Corps,
and the Legal Counsel to the Chairman of the Joint Chiefs of Staff. 45 The DoD Law of War
42
DOD DIRECTIVE 2311.01E, DoD Law of War Program, 5.11 (May 9, 2006, Certified Current as of Feb. 22,
2011) (The Commanders of the Combatant Commands shall: [5.11.8] Ensure all plans, policies, directives, and
rules of engagement issued by the command and its subordinate commands and components are reviewed by legal
advisers to ensure their consistency with this Directive and the law of war.); DOD DIRECTIVE 5100.77, DoD Law of
War Program, 5.8 (Dec. 9, 1998) (The Commanders of the Combatant Commands shall: [5.8.6] Ensure all
plans, policies, directives, and rules of engagement issued by the command and its subordinate commands and
components are reviewed by legal advisers to ensure their consistency with this Directive and the law of war.).
43
DOD DIRECTIVE 2311.01E, DoD Law of War Program, 5.11 (May 9, 2006, Certified Current as of Feb. 22,
2011) (The Commanders of the Combatant Commands shall: [5.11.5] Designate the command legal adviser to
supervise the administration of those aspects of this program dealing with possible, suspected, or alleged enemy
violations of the law of war.); DOD DIRECTIVE 5100.77, DoD Law of War Program, 5.8 (Dec. 9, 1998) (The
Commanders of the Combatant Commands shall: [5.8.3] Designate the command legal adviser to supervise the
administration of those aspects of this program dealing with possible, suspected, or alleged enemy violations of the
law of war.).
44
Refer to 6.2 (DoD Policy of Reviewing the Legality of Weapons).
45
DOD DIRECTIVE 2311.01E, DoD Law of War Program, 5.1.4 (May 9, 2006, Certified Current as of Feb. 22,
2011) (The General Counsel of the Department of Defense (GC, DoD) shall: Supervise and assign a chair for the
DoD Law of War Working Group, consisting of representatives, at the election by each of the GC, DoD; the General
Counsel of each Military Department; the Counsel to the Commandant of the Marine Corps; the Judge Advocate
General of each Military Department; the Staff Judge Advocate to the Commandant of the Marine Corps; and the
Legal Counsel to the Chairman of the Joint Chiefs of Staff.); DOD DIRECTIVE 5100.77, DoD Law of War Program,
5.1.2 (Dec. 9, 1998) (The General Counsel of the Department of Defense shall: Establish a DoD Law of War
Working Group consisting of representatives from the General Counsel of the Department of Defense (GC, DoD),
1062
Working Group develops and coordinates law of war initiatives and issues, manages other law of
war matters as they arise, and provides advice to the DoD General Counsel on legal matters
covered by DoD Directive 2311.01E. 46 This includes the preparation, review, and updating of
this manual.
A basic step in implementing and enforcing the law of war is to ensure that people
understand its requirements. Certain treaties require that Parties disseminate the text of that
treaty and promote its study, especially by those personnel who are assigned to implement its
obligations.
18.6.1 General Dissemination and Study of Treaties. Certain treaties require that Parties
disseminate the treaty and promote study of that treaty by the armed forces and the civilian
population.
the Legal Counsel to the Chairman of the Joint Chiefs of Staff, the International and Operational Law Division of
the Office of the Judge Advocate General of each Military Department, and the Operational Law Branch of the
Office of the Staff Judge Advocate to the Commandant of the Marine Corps.).
46
DOD DIRECTIVE 2311.01E, DoD Law of War Program, 5.1.4 (May 9, 2006, Certified Current as of Feb. 22,
2011) (The DoD Law of War Working Group shall develop and coordinate law of war initiatives and issues;
support the research, preparation, review, and updating of the DoD Law of War Manual; manage other law of war
matters as they arise; and provide advice to the General Counsel on legal matters covered by this Directive.); DOD
DIRECTIVE 5100.77, DoD Law of War Program, 5.1.2 (Dec. 9, 1998) (The DoD Law of War Working Group shall
develop and coordinate law of war initiatives and issues, manage other law of war matters as they arise, and provide
advice to the General Counsel on legal matters covered by this Directive.).
47
GC art. 144 (The High Contracting Parties undertake, in time of peace as in time of war, to disseminate the text
of the present Convention as widely as possible in their respective countries, and, in particular, to include the study
thereof in their programmes of military and, if possible, civil instruction, so that the principles thereof may become
known to the entire population.).
48
GPW art. 127 (The High Contracting Parties undertake, in time of peace as in time of war, to disseminate the text
of the present Convention as widely as possible in their respective countries, and, in particular, to include the study
thereof in their programmes of military and, if possible, civil instruction, so that the principles thereof may become
known to all their armed forces and to the entire population.).
49
GWS art. 47 (The High Contracting Parties undertake, in time of peace as in time of war, to disseminate the text
of the present Convention as widely as possible in their respective countries, and, in particular, to include the study
thereof in their programmes of military and, if possible, civil instruction, so that the principles thereof may become
1063
18.6.1.2 Dissemination and Study - CCW and Protocols. Parties to the CCW also
undertake, in time of peace as in time of armed conflict, to disseminate the CCW and those of its
annexed Protocols by which they are bound as widely as possible in their respective countries
and, in particular, to include the study of these instruments in their program of military
instruction, so that those instruments may become known to their armed forces. 50
18.6.1.5 Dissemination and Study Child Soldiers Protocol. Parties to the Child
Soldiers Protocol undertake to make the principles and provisions of the Child Soldiers Protocol
widely known and promoted by appropriate means, to adults and children alike. 53
known to the entire population, in particular to the armed fighting forces, the medical personnel and the chaplains.);
GWS-SEA art. 48 (same).
50
CCW art. 6 (The High Contracting Parties undertake, in time of peace as in time of armed conflict, to
disseminate this Convention and those of its annexed Protocols by which they are bound as widely as possible in
their respective countries and, in particular, to include the study thereof in their programmes of military instruction,
so that those instruments may become known to their armed forces.).
51
AP III art. 7 (The High Contracting Parties undertake, in time of peace as in time of armed conflict, to
disseminate this Protocol as widely as possible in their respective countries and, in particular, to include the study
thereof in their programmes of military instruction and to encourage the study thereof by the civilian population, so
that this instrument may become known to the armed forces and to the civilian population.).
52
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 25 (The High Contracting Parties undertake, in time of
peace as in time of armed conflict, to disseminate the text of the present Convention and the Regulations for its
execution as widely as possible in their respective countries. They undertake, in particular, to include the study
thereof in their programmes of military and, if possible, civilian training, so that its principles are made known to the
whole population, especially the armed forces and personnel engaged in the protection of cultural property.).
53
Optional Protocol to the Convention on the Rights of the Child on the Involvement of Children in Armed Conflict,
art. 6(2), May 25, 2000, 2173 UNTS 222, 238 (States Parties undertake to make the principles and provisions of the
present Protocol widely known and promoted by appropriate means, to adults and children alike.).
1064
policy has required, as a general matter, that personnel are trained in the law of war
commensurate with their duties. 54
Training may involve not only classroom instruction or individualized study, but also, for
example, unit training exercises. 55
In many cases, training on law of war requirements may not be classified as law of war
training, or may be conducted without acknowledgment that the requirements are law of war
requirements. 56 Rather, it may be the case that military forces would be trained according to
military doctrines or regulations, which have incorporated law of war requirements and have
been reviewed for consistency with the law of war. 57
54
DOD DIRECTIVE 2311.01E, DoD Law of War Program, 5.8 (May 9, 2006, Certified Current as of Feb. 22, 2011)
(The Secretaries of the Military Departments shall develop internal policies and procedures consistent with this
Directive in support of the DoD Law of War Program to: 5.8.1. Provide directives, publications, instructions, and
training so the principles and rules of the law of war will be known to members of their respective Departments.
Such knowledge will be commensurate with each individual's duties and responsibilities.).
55
For example, W. Hays Parks, The United States Military and the Law of War: Inculcating an Ethos, 69 SOCIAL
RESEARCH 981, 995-96 (2002) (The Army also maintains four permanent Combat Training Centers (CTCs). The
CTCs-at Ft. Irwin, California; Ft. Polk, Louisiana; Ft. Leavenworth, Kansas; and Hohenfels, Germany-offer a
variety of combat and peace operations training for Army units. Three of the CTCs are staffed with a full-time
opposing force (the OPFOR), which engages the training unit, as well as an observer-controller (OC) contingent.
The OCs observe the mission, mentor the training unit's commanders and soldiers, and direct some of the activity
that occurs during the training exercise. The Army Judge Advocate General's Corps has assigned Army judge
advocates to serve as OCs at each of the CTCs. As part of their duties, these judge advocate OCs script events
involving civilians, who, in turn, interact with the personnel of the unit being trained. These civilians, or role-
players, serve critical training functions. For example, they may play the part of ICRC personnel who visit a
training unit for the purpose of inspecting the unit's EPW holding facilities. They may also live in full-scale
villages on the battlefield, playing the role of civilians who find themselves caught up in the context of an ongoing
conflict. The judge advocate observer-controllers monitor the training unit's interaction with these civilians,
ensuring that commanders, staff, and individual soldiers understand and meet their law of war obligations. These
villages also include such structures as churches and historic sites. Thus, the unit also is tested on law of war
compliance as it relates to targeting and weaponeering considerations. Experience has shown this type of hands-on,
realistic law of war training to be exceptionally effective.).
56
For example, W. Hays Parks, The United States Military and the Law of War: Inculcating an Ethos, 69 SOCIAL
RESEARCH 981, 982-83 (2002) (Other training may cover law of war topics, or address law of war obligations,
without necessarily referring to the law of war. An example is teaching a soldier how to handle an enemy prisoner
of war (EPW). Once the prisoner of war has reached an EPW collection point, or a theater EPW camp, military
police personnel working in each will go about their assigned duties to process and care for the prisoner of war. In
all likelihood each soldier handling an EPW will have received training relative to his or her assigned duties. But
the training of each will not necessarily be listed or categorized as law of war training, since it is based on doctrine
or regulations. Similarly, military medical personnel are trained to treat battlefield wounded and sick solely on the
basis of medical priority. This training may be done without acknowledgment that it is a treaty requirement. The
same may be said for training provided to combat engineers in laying minefields. The doctrine will have been
reviewed for compliance with treaty requirements, and the mines employed will have been reviewed in compliance
with the countrys treaty obligations. The combat engineer will employ lawful mines in a manner consistent with
his or her doctrine. It is unlikely this will be classified as law of war training.).
57
Refer to 18.7.2 (Reasons for Implementation Through Instructions, Regulations, and Procedures).
1065
The 1949 Geneva Conventions, the CCW Amended Mines Protocol, and the CCW
Protocol V on Explosive Remnants of War each have specific provisions relating to special
instruction or training.
18.7 INSTRUCTIONS, REGULATIONS, AND PROCEDURES TO IMPLEMENT AND ENFORCE THE LAW OF
WAR
The law of war has traditionally been implemented through military instructions,
regulations, and procedures. For example, the Lieber Code, one of the first codifications of the
law of war, was called Instructions for the Government of Armies of the United States in the
Field, and was issued as a General Order. 61 Similarly, directives and regulations have been
issued to implement law of war obligations relating to detainees and to establish higher standards
as a matter of policy. 62
58
GPW art. 127 (Any military or other authorities, who in time of war assume responsibilities in respect of
prisoners of war, must possess the text of the Convention and be specially instructed as to its provisions.); GC art.
144 (Any civilian, military, police or other authorities, who in time of war assume responsibilities in respect of
protected persons, must possess the text of the Convention and be specially instructed as to its provisions.).
59
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 14(3) (Each High Contracting Party shall also require that its armed
forces issue relevant military instructions and operating procedures and that armed forces personnel receive training
commensurate with their duties and responsibilities to comply with the provisions of this Protocol.).
60
CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 11(1) (Each High Contracting Party shall require that
its armed forces and relevant agencies or departments issue appropriate instructions and operating procedures and
that its personnel receive training consistent with the relevant provisions of this Protocol.).
61
Refer to 19.3 (Lieber Code).
62
For example, DOD DIRECTIVE 2310.01E, DoD Detainee Program (Aug. 19, 2014); DOD DIRECTIVE 2310.01E,
The Department of Defense Detainee Program (Sept. 5, 2006); 1997 MULTI-SERVICE DETENTION REGULATION 1-
1.b (This regulation implements international law, both customary and codified, relating to EPW, RP, CI, and ODs
which includes those persons held during military operations other than war. The principal treaties relevant to this
regulation are: (1) The 1949 Geneva Convention Relative to the Amelioration of the Condition of the Wounded and
Sick in Armed Forces in the Field (GWS). (2) The 1949 Geneva Convention Relative to the Amelioration of the
Condition of the Wounded, Sick and Shipwrecked Members of the Armed Forces at Sea (GWS Sea). (3) The 1949
Geneva Convention Relative to the Treatment of Prisoners of War (GPW). (4) The 1949 Geneva Convention
1066
18.7.1 Treaty Provisions Specifically Contemplating or Requiring Military Instructions,
Regulations, and Procedures. Law of war treaties contemplate or in some cases require that such
instructions will be issued. In some cases, the implementation of a treaty through military
instructions or regulations may be understood as a part of the general requirements for States to
take appropriate actions to implement and enforce their obligations under that treaty. 63
Relative to the Protection of Civilian Persons in Time of War (GC), and In the event of conflicts or discrepancies
between this regulation and the Geneva Conventions, the provisions of the Geneva Conventions take precedence.).
Refer to 8.1.2 (DoD Policies and Regulations Regarding the Treatment of Detainees); 9.1.3 (DoD Policies and
Regulations for the Treatment of POWs); 10.1.2 (DoD Policies and Regulations for the Treatment of Internees).
63
Refer to 18.1.2 (National Obligations to Implement and Enforce the Law of War).
64
HAGUE IV art. 1 (The Contracting Powers shall issue instructions to their armed land forces which shall be in
conformity with the Regulations respecting the laws and customs of war on land, annexed to the present
Convention.). Cf. 1899 HAGUE II art. 1 (The High Contracting Parties shall issue instructions to their armed land
forces, which shall be in conformity with the Regulations respecting the Laws and Customs of War on Land
annexed to the present Convention.).
65
GWS art. 48 (The High Contracting Parties shall communicate to one another through the Swiss Federal Council
and, during hostilities, through the Protecting Powers, the official translations of the present Convention, as well as
the laws and regulations which they may adopt to ensure the application thereof.); GWS-SEA art. 49 (same); GPW
art. 128 (same); GC art. 145 (same).
66
Refer to 18.1.2.1 (General Treaty Obligations to Take Appropriate Actions to Implement and Enforce the Treaty
1949 Geneva Conventions).
67
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 14(3) (Each High Contracting Party shall also require that its armed
forces issue relevant military instructions and operating procedures and that armed forces personnel receive training
commensurate with their duties and responsibilities to comply with the provisions of this Protocol.).
1067
ensure observance of that Convention, and to foster in the members of their armed forces a spirit
of respect for the culture and cultural property of all peoples. 68
However, a State may adopt instructions, regulations, or procedures that are enforceable
under its domestic law and that implement the rules reflected in a treaty. Thus, because such
instructions, regulations, or procedures are enforceable domestically, the State can enforce the
rules in the treaty, even though the treaty remains non-self-executing.
18.7.2.4 Clarifying Ambiguities in the Law. States may choose to implement law
of war obligations through instructions, regulations, and procedures because they wish to clarify
68
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 7 (The High Contracting Parties undertake to introduce in
time of peace into their military regulations or instructions such provisions as may ensure observance of the present
Convention, and to foster in the members of their armed forces a spirit of respect for the culture and cultural
property of all peoples.).
69
CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE REMNANTS OF WAR art. 11(1) (Each High Contracting Party shall require that
its armed forces and relevant agencies or departments issue appropriate instructions and operating procedures and
that its personnel receive training consistent with the relevant provisions of this Protocol.).
70
Refer to 1.10.1.3 (Predominately Inter-State Nature of International Obligations).
71
Refer to 1.10.2.1 (Force of Self-Executing and Non-Self-Executing Treaties Under U.S. Domestic Law).
72
Refer to 1.6.5 (Rules of Engagement (ROE)).
1068
their interpretation of the obligations, which otherwise may not be clear because a treaty
provision is ambiguous or because the obligation is reflected in customary international law.
Military commanders and planners should consider law of war obligations in the planning
of military operations. DoD policy has required the review of plans by legal advisers to ensure
their consistency with the law of war. 76
73
Refer to 18.6.2 (Special Instruction or Training).
74
Refer to 18.19.3.1 (Uniform Code of Military Justice Offenses).
75
For example, United States v. Harman, 68 M.J. 325, 326 (C.A.A.F. 2010) (Contrary to her pleas, Appellant was
convicted at a general court-martial, with officer and enlisted members, of conspiracy to maltreat subordinates;
dereliction of duty by failing to protect Iraqi detainees from abuse, cruelty, and maltreatment; and four specifications
of maltreatment under Articles 81, 92, and 93, Uniform Code of Military Justice (UCMJ), 10 U.S.C. 881, 892,
893 (2006).); Rear Admiral Richard G. Voge, Too Much Accuracy, PROCEEDINGS OF THE U.S. NAVAL INSTITUTE
257-59 (1950) ([O]n April 9, 1945, to be exact, the Japanese government indignantly announced that the Awa
Maru, on her return trip to Japan after carrying Red Cross supplies to Singapore and the Dutch East Indies, and
travelling under a guarantee of safe conduct from the United States government, had been sunk by a U.S. submarine.
[T]he Navy announced that the Awa Maru had been sunk by the U.S.S. Queenfish, commanded by Commander
Charles Elliot Loughlin, U.S. Navy, of North Wales, Pennsylvania. Loughlin was brought to trial on three
charges: Charge I. Culpable inefficiency in the performance of duty. Charge II. Disobeying the lawful order of his
superior officer. Charge III. Negligence in obeying orders.).
76
Refer to 18.5.1.1 (Review of Plans, Policies, Directives, and Rules of Engagement by Legal Advisers).
1069
18.9 STATES OBLIGATIONS WITH RESPECT TO VIOLATIONS OF THE LAW OF WAR
States have certain obligations with respect to alleged violations of the law of war within
their jurisdiction. In some cases, these obligations to address alleged violations of particular
treaties may be understood as part of the general obligations to implement and enforce those
treaties. In other cases, law of war treaties impose specific requirements on States with respect
to alleged violations of obligations in those treaties.
18.9.1 State Responsibility for Violations of the Law of War by Its Armed Forces. A
State may be responsible for violations of the law of war committed by persons forming part of
its armed forces. 77 In particular, States are responsible for the treatment accorded protected
persons under the GC by their agents. 78 State responsibility for violations of the law of war
committed by its armed forces or other agents results from principles of State responsibility in
international law that are not specific to the law of war. 79
State responsibility for violations of the law of war results in obligations to compensate
other States for violations. 80
18.9.2 Breaches of the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention. Parties to the 1954
Hague Cultural Property Convention undertake to take, within the framework of their ordinary
criminal jurisdiction, all necessary steps to prosecute and impose penal or disciplinary sanctions
upon those persons, of whatever nationality, who commit or order to be committed a breach of
the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention. 81
18.9.3 Grave Breaches of the 1949 Geneva Conventions. Parties to the 1949 Geneva
Conventions have certain obligations relating to grave breaches of the 1949 Geneva
Conventions. These obligations have been interpreted as declaratory of the obligations of
belligerents under customary international law to take measures for the punishment of war
77
HAGUE IV art. 3 (A belligerent party which violates the provisions of the said Regulations shall, if the case
demands, be liable to pay compensation. It shall be responsible for all acts committed by persons forming part of its
armed forces.); 1928 PAN AMERICAN NEUTRALITY CONVENTION art. 27 (A belligerent shall indemnify the damage
caused by its violation of the foregoing provisions. It shall likewise be responsible for the acts of persons who may
belong to its armed forces.). Consider AP I art. 91 (A Party to the conflict which violates the provisions of the
Conventions or of this Protocol shall, if the case demands, be liable to pay compensation. It shall be responsible for
all acts committed by persons forming part of its armed forces.).
78
Refer to 10.3.5 (State Responsibility for Its Agents Treatment of Protected Persons).
79
See, e.g., I RESTATEMENT (THIRD) OF FOREIGN RELATIONS LAW OF THE UNITED STATES 96 (207) (1987) (A
state is responsible for any violation of its obligations under international law resulting from action or inaction by (a)
the government of the state, (b) the government or authorities of any political subdivision of the state, or (c) any
organ, agency, official, employee, or other agent of a government or of any political subdivision, acting within the
scope of authority or under color of such authority.).
80
Refer to 18.16 (Compensation for Violations of the Law of War).
81
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 28 (The High Contracting Parties undertake to take, within
the framework of their ordinary criminal jurisdiction, all necessary steps to prosecute and impose penal or
disciplinary sanctions upon those persons, of whatever nationality, who commit or order to be committed a breach of
the present Convention.).
1070
crimes committed by all persons, including members of a belligerents armed forces. 82 These
obligations do not affect the right of a belligerent, under customary international law, to try
enemy personnel for war crimes other than grave breaches of the 1949 Geneva Conventions. 83
Parties to the 1949 Geneva Conventions undertake to enact any legislation necessary to
provide effective penal sanctions for persons committing, or ordering to be committed, any of the
grave breaches of the 1949 Geneva Conventions. 84
Each Party to the 1949 Geneva Conventions shall be under the obligation to search for
persons alleged to have committed, or to have ordered to be committed, such grave breaches, and
shall bring such persons, regardless of their nationality, before its own courts. 85 It may also, if it
prefers, and in accordance with the provisions of its own legislation, hand such persons over for
trial to another High Contracting Party concerned, provided such High Contracting Party has
made out a prima facie case. 86
No Party to the 1949 Geneva Conventions shall be allowed to absolve itself or any other
Party of any liability incurred by itself or by another Party in respect of grave breaches of the
1949 Geneva Conventions. 87
82
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 506 (b. Declaratory Character of Above Principles. The principles
quoted in a [provisions of GWS art. 49, GWS-Sea art. 50, GPW art. 129, and GC art. 146], above, are declaratory of
the obligations of belligerents under customary international law to take measures for the punishment of war crimes
committed by all persons, including members of a belligerent's own armed forces.). See also Joyce A.C.
Gutteridge, The Geneva Conventions of 1949, 26 BRITISH YEAR BOOK OF INTERNATIONAL LAW 294, 305 (1949)
(In accordance with the decision that there should be no attempt in the Geneva Conventions to embark, in however
rudimentary a fashion, on the settlement of a procedure for dealing with war crimes, the Conventions do not attempt
to provide for the trial of grave breaches thereof by any international tribunal, but contemplate only trial and
sentence by the regularly constituted courts of parties to the conflict.).
83
Richard R. Baxter, The Geneva Conventions of 1949, 62 U.S. NAVAL WAR COLLEGE INTERNATIONAL LAW
STUDIES 220, 223 (1980) (It may cheer some of you to hear that the Conventions make no reference to war
crimesby that name. There was much controversy about this point at the Conference in 1949, and the upshot of it
was that each of the four Conventions contains an article specifying certain atrocious acts, such as the torturing of
prisoners and civilians, as grave breaches of the Conventions. Judicial safeguards are provided for persons
charged with such acts. Of course, these specific provisions do not affect the right of a belligerent, under customary
international law, to try enemy personnel for war crimes other than grave breaches of the treaties.).
84
GWS art. 49 (The High Contracting Parties undertake to enact any legislation necessary to provide effective
penal sanctions for persons committing, or ordering to be committed, any of the grave breaches of the present
Convention defined in the following Article.); GWS-SEA art. 50 (same); GPW art. 129 (same); GC art. 146 (same).
85
GWS art. 49 (Each High Contracting Party shall be under the obligation to search for persons alleged to have
committed, or to have ordered to be committed, such grave breaches, and shall bring such persons, regardless of
their nationality, before its own courts.); GWS-SEA art. 50 (same); GPW art. 129 (same); GC art. 146 (same).
86
GWS art. 49 (It may also, if it prefers, and in accordance with the provisions of its own legislation, hand such
persons over for trial to another High Contracting Party concerned, provided such High Contracting Party has made
out a prima facie case.); GWS-SEA art. 50 (same); GPW art. 129 (same); GC art. 146 (same).
87
GWS art. 51 (No High Contracting Party shall be allowed to absolve itself or any other High Contracting Party
of any liability incurred by itself or by another High Contracting Party in respect of breaches referred to in the
preceding Article.); GWS-SEA art. 52 (same); GPW art. 131 (same); GC art. 148 (same).
1071
18.9.3.1 Acts Constituting Grave Breaches. The acts constituting grave
breaches for the purpose of triggering these obligations are defined differently depending on the
particular Geneva Convention. However, all of the Conventions include as grave breaches the
following acts against persons protected by the respective Convention:
willful killing;
The term grave breaches was deliberately chosen so as not to indicate that violations of
those provisions of the 1949 Geneva Conventions were themselves crimes or that the 1949
Geneva Conventions created an international penal code. 88
Grave breaches of the GWS and GWS-Sea are those involving any of the following acts,
if committed against persons or property protected by the GWS or GWS-Sea:
Grave breaches of the GPW are those involving any of the following acts, if committed
against persons or property protected by the GPW:
willful killing;
88
See II-B FINAL RECORD OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 356-57 (Mr. SINCLAIR (United
Kingdom): The Soviet proposal to substitute in these Articles the word crime for the words grave breaches has
been very fully thrashed out both in the Special Committee and in the Joint Committee, and you will all have read
the results in the Reports of those Committees and in particular in the Special Report on penal sanctions. It is not a
question as to whether or not these grave breaches are crimes, it is simply a question of finding appropriate words
for carrying out the intention behind these Articles which all the delegations who were responsible for framing those
Articles were attempting to secure. That intention was to ensure that any persons who committed breaches of these
Conventions would be suitably dealt with and punished according to the seriousness of the offences that they
committed, and therefore it would have been quite inappropriate to have gone into the question of establishing a new
penal code in these Articles. For that reason the proposal in the present Soviet amendment has been rejected
throughout this Conference. Mr. YINGLING (United States of America): I associate myself with the remarks
which have been made by the Delegate of the United Kingdom. I see no need for repeating the arguments. This
Convention is clearly not a penal statute, and the term crimes is clearly inappropriate to express violations of this
Convention, which will not be crimes until they are so made by domestic penal legislation.).
89
GWS art. 50 (Grave breaches to which the preceding Article relates shall be those involving any of the following
acts, if committed against persons or property protected by the Convention: wilful killing, torture or inhuman
treatment, including biological experiments, wilfully causing great suffering or serious injury to body or health, and
extensive destruction and appropriation of property, not justified by military necessity and carried out unlawfully
and wantonly.); GWS-SEA art. 51 (same).
1072
torture or inhuman treatment, including biological experiments;
willfully depriving a POW of the rights of fair and regular trial prescribed in the GPW. 90
Grave breaches of the GC are those involving any of the following acts, if committed
against persons or property protected by the GC:
willful killing;
willfully depriving a protected person of the rights of fair and regular trial prescribed in
the GC;
90
GPW art. 130 (Grave breaches to which the preceding Article relates shall be those involving any of the
following acts, if committed against persons or property protected by the Convention: wilful killing, torture or
inhuman treatment, including biological experiments, wilfully causing great suffering or serious injury to body or
health, compelling a prisoner of war to serve in the forces of the hostile Power, or wilfully depriving a prisoner of
war of the rights of fair and regular trial prescribed in this Convention.).
91
GC art. 147 (Grave breaches to which the preceding Article relates shall be those involving any of the following
acts, if committed against persons or property protected by the present Convention: wilful killing, torture or
inhuman treatment, including biological experiments, wilfully causing great suffering or serious injury to body or
health, unlawful deportation or transfer or unlawful confinement of a protected person, compelling a protected
person to serve in the forces of a hostile Power, or wilfully depriving a protected person of the rights of fair and
regular trial prescribed in the present Convention, taking of hostages and extensive destruction and appropriation of
property, not justified by military necessity and carried out unlawfully and wantonly.).
1073
of the 1949 Geneva Conventions could apply also to violations of Common Article 3. 92 An
Appeals Chamber of the ICTY did not accept this view, and understood the grave breaches
provisions of the 1949 Geneva Conventions only to create obligations applicable in international
armed conflicts. 93 U.S. law makes punishable certain conduct that constitutes a grave breach of
common article 3. 94
Regardless of whether the obligations in the grave breaches provisions apply with respect
to violations of Common Article 3, serious violations of Common Article 3 may nonetheless be
punishable.
18.9.3.3 Suppression of All Acts Contrary to the Provisions of the 1949 Geneva
Conventions. Each High Contracting Party shall take measures necessary for the suppression of
all acts contrary to the provisions of the 1949 Geneva Conventions other than the grave
breaches. 95
Such measures could include punishment of offenders. For example, if a U.S. Soldier
steals the money that has been impounded from POWs and appropriates it for his or her own use,
the theft would not constitute a grave breach of the 1949 Geneva Conventions, but would be an
offense under the Uniform Code of Military Justice. 96
92
D. Stephen Mathias, Legal Counselor, Embassy of the United States, The Hague, The Netherlands, Submission of
the Government of the United States of America Concerning Certain Arguments Made by Counsel for the Accused in
the Case of The Prosecutor of the Tribunal v. Dusan Tadic, 35-36 (Jul. 17, 1995) (For example, Article 130 of the
1949 Geneva Convention Relative to the Treatment of Prisoners of War defines grave breaches as any of a series
of specified acts if committed against persons or property protected by the Convention. (This definition is
included almost verbatim in Article 2 of the Tribunal Statute.) There is no special definition or usage in the Third
Geneva Convention of the phrase persons protected by the Convention. Insofar as Common Article 3 prohibits
certain acts with respect to [p]ersons taking no active part in hostilities in cases of armed conflict not of an
international character, it is consistent with the ordinary meaning of the Geneva Conventions to treat such persons as
persons protected by the Conventions.).
93
See, e.g., Prosecutor v. Tadi, ICTY Appeals Chamber, IT-94-1-AR72, Decision on the Defence Motion for
Interlocutory Appeal on Jurisdiction, 71 (Oct. 2, 1995) (Article 2 refers to grave breaches of the Geneva
Conventions of 1949, which are widely understood to be committed only in international armed conflicts, so the
reference in Article 2 would seem to suggest that the Article is limited to international armed conflicts.).
94
18 U.S.C. 2441 ((c) Definition. As used in this section the term war crime means any conduct (3)
which constitutes a grave breach of common Article 3 (as defined in subsection (d)) when committed in the context
of and in association with an armed conflict not of an international character;).
95
GWS art. 49 (Each High Contracting Party shall take measures necessary for the suppression of all acts contrary
to the provisions of the present Convention other than the grave breaches defined in the following Article.); GWS-
SEA art. 50 (same); GPW art. 129 (same); GC art. 146 (same).
96
See, e.g., 10 U.S.C. 903 ((a) All persons subject to this chapter shall secure all public property taken from the
enemy for the service of the United States, and shall give notice and turn over to the proper authority without delay
all captured or abandoned property in their possession, custody, or control. (b) Any person subject to this chapter
who(1) fails to carry out the duties prescribed in subsection (a); (2) buys, sells, trades, or in any way deals in or
disposes of captured or abandoned property, whereby he receives or expects any profit, benefit, or advantage to
himself or another directly or indirectly connected with himself; or (3) engages in looting or pillaging; shall be
punished as a court-martial may direct.).
1074
Such measures may also be understood to include a wide range of measures, such as the
promulgation or revision of policies and regulations, administrative or corrective measures, or
retraining of personnel. 97
18.9.4 CCW Amended Mines Protocol. Each Party to the CCW Amended Mines
Protocol shall take all appropriate steps, including legislative and other measures, to prevent and
suppress violations of the CCW Amended Mines Protocol by persons or on territory under its
jurisdiction or control. 98 Such measures include appropriate measures to ensure the imposition
of penal sanctions against persons who, in relation to an armed conflict and contrary to the
provisions of the CCW Amended Mines Protocol, willfully kill or cause serious injury to
civilians and to bring such persons to justice. 99
Penal sanctions under Article 14 of the CCW Amended Mines Protocol only apply in a
situation in which an individual: (1) knew, or should have known, that his or her action was
prohibited under the CCW Amended Mines Protocol; (2) intended to kill or cause serious injury
to a civilian; and (3) knew, or should have known, that the person he or she intended to kill or
cause serious injury was a civilian. 100
18.9.5 War Crimes Notes on Terminology. The term war crime has been used in
different ways in different contexts. In contemporary parlance, the term war crime is most
often used to mean serious violations of the law of war.
97
Refer to 18.4.4 (Issuance of Guidance, Training of Subordinates, and Other Preventive or Corrective Measures);
18.19.1 (Non-Judicial Punishment and Adverse or Corrective Administrative Actions); 18.7 (Instructions,
Regulations, and Procedures to Implement and Enforce the Law of War).
98
Refer to 18.1.2.3 (General Treaty Obligations to Take Appropriate Actions to Implement and Enforce the Treaty
CCW Amended Mines Protocol).
99
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 14 (1. Each High Contracting Party shall take all appropriate steps,
including legislative and other measures, to prevent and suppress violations of this Protocol by persons or on
territory under its jurisdiction or control. 2. The measures envisaged in paragraph I of this Article include
appropriate measures to ensure the imposition of penal sanctions against persons who, in relation to an armed
conflict and contrary to the provisions of this Protocol, wilfully kill or cause serious injury to civilians and to bring
such persons to justice.).
100
United States, Statement on Consent to Be Bound by the CCW Amended Mines Protocol, May 24, 1999, 2065
UNTS 128, 129 (The United States understands that - (B) Article 14 of the Amended Mines Protocol (insofar as
it relates to penal sanctions) shall apply only in a situation in which an individual (i) knew, or should have known,
that his action was prohibited under the Amended Mines Protocol; (ii) intended to kill or cause serious injury to a
civilian; and (iii) knew or should have known, that the person he intended to kill or cause serious injury was a
civilian.).
101
18 U.S.C. 2441 ((a) Offense. Whoever, whether inside or outside the United States, commits a war crime, in
any of the circumstances described in subsection (b), shall be fined under this title or imprisoned for life or any term
of years, or both, and if death results to the victim, shall also be subject to the penalty of death. (c) Definition.
As used in this section the term war crime means any conduct (4) of a person who, in relation to an armed
conflict and contrary to the provisions of the Protocol on Prohibitions or Restrictions on the Use of Mines, Booby-
Traps and Other Devices as amended at Geneva on 3 May 1996 (Protocol II as amended on 3 May 1996), when the
United States is a party to such Protocol, willfully kills or causes serious injury to civilians.).
1075
18.9.5.1 War Crimes Any Violation of the Law of War. In some cases, the term
war crime has been used as a technical expression for a violation of the law of war by any
person; i.e., under this usage, any violation of the law of war is a war crime. 102 This has been
longstanding U.S. military doctrine. 103
Any violation of the law of war by members of the armed forces of a State could be made
punishable by that State through its domestic law, including military law applicable to its armed
forces. For example, under military law, violations of the law of war may be made punishable
through military orders to comply with law of war requirements. 104 Commanders may also
impose non-judicial punishment or take adverse administrative action to address minor
violations. 105
18.9.5.2 War Crimes Serious Violations of the Law of War. Sometimes the term
war crime is used to refer to particularly serious violations of the law of war. For example,
this is generally the usage when the term war crime is defined for the purposes of a particular
criminal statute. 106
This usage of war crime is understood to exclude minor violations of the law of war.
For example, if during an international armed conflict, military medical personnel perform their
duties while wearing an armlet displaying the distinctive emblem affixed to their right arm
rather than to their left arm, as specified by Article 40 of the GWS, these personnel may be said
to be violating the law of war. However, under this usage of war crime, such violations
generally would not be regarded as a war crime.
102
See, e.g., Charter of the International Military Tribunal, art. 6, annexed to Agreement by the Government of the
United Kingdom of Great Britain and Northern Ireland, the Government of the United States of America, the
Provisional Government of the French Republic and the Government of the Union of Soviet Socialist Republics for
the Prosecution and Punishment of the Major War Criminals of the European Axis, Aug. 8, 1945, 82 UNTS 280,
288 (The following acts, or any of them, are crimes coming within the jurisdiction of the Tribunal for which there
shall be individual responsibility: (b) War crimes: namely, violations of the laws or customs of war. Such
violations shall include, but not be limited to, murder, ill-treatment or deportation to slave labour or for any other
purpose of civilian population of or in occupied territory, murder or ill-treatment of prisoners of war or persons on
the seas, killing of hostages, plunder of public or private property, wanton destruction of cities, towns or villages, or
devastation not justified by military necessity;).
103
See, e.g., U.S. MILITARY ASSISTANCE COMMAND VIETNAM DIRECTIVE 20-4, Inspections and Investigations:
War Crimes 3.a (May 18, 1968) (Every violation of the law of war is a war crime); 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No.
1 1976) 499 (The term war crime is the technical expression for a violation of the law of war by any person or
persons, military or civilian. Every violation of the law of war is a war crime.). Cf. 1958 UK MANUAL 624
(The term war crime is the technical expression for violations of the laws of warfare, whether committed by
members of the armed forces or by civilians.).
104
Refer to 18.7.3 (Enforcement of Law of War Obligations Through Military Instructions, Regulations, and
Procedures).
105
Refer to 18.19.1 (Non-Judicial Punishment and Adverse or Corrective Administrative Actions).
106
See, e.g., 18 U.S.C. 2441 ((a) Offense. Whoever, whether inside or outside the United States, commits a war
crime, in any of the circumstances described in subsection (b), shall be fined under this title or imprisoned for life or
any term of years, or both, and if death results to the victim, shall also be subject to the penalty of death. (c)
Definition. As used in this section the term war crime means any conduct .).
1076
18.9.5.3 War Crimes Serious Violations of Domestic Law Applicable During
Armed Conflict. The term war crime has also been used to describe offenses, such as
espionage and unprivileged belligerency, that although not prohibited by international law, are
properly liable to punishment by the belligerent against which they are directed. 107 Generally,
this usage does not prevail today, although practitioners may find this usage in older sources.
18.10 METHODS FOR RESPONDING TO VIOLATIONS OF THE LAW OF WAR BY THE ENEMY
In the event of violation of the law of war, it may be possible for the injured State to
resort to remedial action of the following types:
publication of the facts, with a view to influencing public opinion against the offending
belligerent;
protests and demands to the offending party, 108 including demands for compensation or
the punishment of enemy persons who have violated the law; 109
solicitation of the good offices, mediation, or intervention of neutral States for the
purpose of making the enemy observe the law of war; 110
reprisals. 114
107
1958 UK MANUAL 624 (The term war crime is the technical expression for violations of the laws of warfare,
whether committed by members of the armed forces or by civilians. It has also been customary to describe as war
crimes such acts as espionage and so-called war treason which, although not prohibited by international law, are
properly liable to punishment by the belligerent against which they are directed. However, the accuracy of the
description of such acts as war crimes is doubtful.). Refer to 4.19.4.1 (Unprivileged Belligerency and the Law of
War Notes on Terminology).
108
Refer to 18.11 (Protests and Demands to the Offending Party).
109
Refer to 18.11.2 (Demands for Redress).
110
Refer to 18.15 (Protecting Power and Other Neutral Intermediaries).
111
Refer to 18.12 (U.N. Security Council and Enforcement of the Law of War).
112
Refer to 18.19 (Discipline in National Jurisdictions of Individuals for Violations of the Law of War); 18.20
(Prosecution in International and Hybrid Courts).
113
Refer to 18.17 (Retorsion).
114
Refer to 18.18 (Reprisals).
1077
18.11 PROTESTS AND DEMANDS TO THE OFFENDING PARTY
An initial step in responding to law of war violations by the enemy is to issue a formal or
informal complaint to the offending party.
18.11.1 Method of Transmitting Protests and Demands. In view of the lack of diplomatic
relations between States involved in an armed conflict, complaints cannot normally be made
through the usual diplomatic channels. However, other methods are available, depending on the
degree of publicity required. The traditional method of complaining by parlementaire directly to
the commander of the offending forces remains, although modern communications have meant
that the message is more likely now to be transmitted through electronic means. 115
Complaints also may be made through the Protecting Power, an impartial humanitarian
organization performing the duties of a Protecting Power, or a Neutral State. 116
In some cases, the U.N. Security Council has determined that situations involving
violations of the law of war constitute a threat to international peace and security. 120 The U.N.
Security Council may take a variety actions to respond to such threats.
115
2004 UK MANUAL 16.6 (In view of the lack of diplomatic relations between states involved in an armed
conflict, complaints cannot normally be made through the usual diplomatic channels. However, other methods are
available, depending on the degree of publicity required. The traditional method of complaining under the
protection of a flag of truce remains, although modern communications have meant that the message is more likely
now to be transmitted by radio or television. Complaints may be made also through neutral states, whether or not
the complainant also seeks their good offices to mediate with a view to making the adverse party observe the law of
armed conflict.); 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 495b (In the event of violation of the law of war, the
injured party may legally resort to remedial action of the following types: b. Protest and demand for
compensation and/or punishment of the individual offenders. Such communications may be sent through the
protecting power, a humanitarian organization performing the duties of a protecting power, or a neutral state, or by
parlementaire direct to the commander of the offending forces.).
116
Refer to 18.15 (Protecting Power and Other Neutral Intermediaries).
117
Refer to 18.13 (National Investigations of Alleged Violations of the Law of War); 18.14 (International
Mechanisms to Investigate Alleged Law of War Violations).
118
Refer to 18.16 (Compensation for Violations of the Law of War).
119
Refer to 18.19 (Discipline in National Jurisdictions of Individuals for Violations of the Law of War).
120
U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 808, U.N. Doc S/RES/808 (Feb. 22, 1993) (Expressing once again its
grave alarm at continuing reports of widespread violations of international humanitarian law occurring within the
territory of the former Yugoslavia, including reports of mass killings and the continuance of the practice of ethnic
cleansing, Determining that this situation constitutes a threat to international peace and security.); U.N. SECURITY
1078
18.12.1 Investigation by the U.N. Security Council Under the Charter of the United
Nations. Under the Charter of the United Nations, the U.N. Security Council may investigate
any dispute, or any situation that might lead to international friction or give rise to a dispute, in
order to determine whether the continuance of the dispute or situation is likely to endanger the
maintenance of international peace and security. 121 This authority of the U.N. Security Council
to investigate situations includes any such situations that involve violations of the law of war.
The U.N. Security Council has provided for the establishment of commissions of inquiry
or commissions of experts to report on violations of the law of war. 122
18.12.2 Determining Liability and Determining That Compensation Should Be Paid. The
U.N. Security Council may, in appropriate cases, affirm that States are liable for violations of
international law and establish mechanisms to facilitate the payment of compensation for such
violations. 123
COUNCIL RESOLUTION 955, U.N. Doc S/RES/955 (Nov. 8, 1994) (Expressing once again its grave concern at the
reports indicating that genocide and other systematic, widespread and flagrant violations of international
humanitarian law have been committed in Rwanda, Determining that this situation continues to constitute a threat to
international peace and security,).
121
U.N. CHARTER art. 34 (The Security Council may investigate any dispute, or any situation which might lead to
international friction or give rise to a dispute, in order to determine whether the continuance of the dispute or
situation is likely to endanger the maintenance of international peace and security.).
122
For example, U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 780, U.N. Doc S/RES/780 (Oct. 6, 1992) (Requests the
Secretary-General to establish, as a matter of urgency, an impartial Commission of Experts to examine and analyse
the information submitted pursuant to resolution 771 (1992) and the present resolution, together with such further
information as the Commission of Experts may obtain through its own investigations or efforts, of other persons or
bodies pursuant to resolution 771 (1992), with a view to providing the Secretary-General with its conclusions on the
evidence of grave breaches of the Geneva Conventions and other violations of international humanitarian law
committed in the territory of the former Yugoslavia.); U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 935, U.N. Doc
S/RES/935 (Jul. 1, 1994) (Requests the Secretary-General to establish, as a matter of urgency, an impartial
Commission of Experts to examine and analyse information submitted pursuant to the present resolution, together
with such further information as the Commission of Experts may obtain through its own investigations or the efforts
of other persons or bodies, including the information made available by the Special Rapporteur for Rwanda, with a
view to providing the Secretary-General with its conclusions on the evidence of grave violations of international
humanitarian law committed in the territory of Rwanda, including the evidence of possible acts of genocide.); U.N.
SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 1564, U.N. Doc S/RES/1564 (Sept. 18, 2004) (Requests that the Secretary-
General rapidly establish an international commission of inquiry in order immediately to investigate reports of
violations of international humanitarian law and human rights law in Darfur by all parties, to determine also whether
or not acts of genocide have occurred, and to identify the perpetrators of such violations with a view to ensuring that
those responsible are held accountable, calls on all parties to cooperate fully with such a commission, and further
requests the Secretary-General, in conjunction with the Office of the High Commissioner for Human Rights, to take
appropriate steps to increase the number of human rights monitors deployed to Darfur.).
123
See, e.g., U.N. COMPENSATIONS COMMISSION GOVERNING COUNCIL, Report and Recommendations Made by the
Panel of Commissioners Appointed to Review the Well Blowout Control Claim (the WBC Claim), U.N. Doc.
S/AC.26/1996/R.27/Annex, 22 68 (Dec. 18, 1996) (The Security Council having determined, under Chapter VII
of the Charter, that compensation in accordance with international law should be provided to foreign Governments,
nationals and corporations for any direct loss, damage or injury sustained by them as a result of Iraqs unlawful
invasion and occupation of Kuwait, in order to restore international peace and security, the issue of Iraqs liability
has been resolved by the Security Council and constitutes part of the law applicable before the Commission.); id. at
67 (According to paragraph 16 of Security Council resolution 687 (1991), which under article 31 of the Rules
forms part of the law applicable before the Commission, Iraq . . . is liable under international law for any direct
1079
18.12.3 Authorizing the Use of Force. The U.N. Security Council has authorized the use
of force in order to protect civilians who are being attacked in violation of the law of war. 124
18.12.4 Authorizing International Criminal Tribunals. The U.N. Security Council has
established international criminal tribunals for the purpose of prosecuting serious violations of
international humanitarian law. The U.N. Security Council has exercised this authority to create
the International Criminal Tribunal for the Former Yugoslavia and the International Criminal
Tribunal for Rwanda. 125
The Rome Statute of the International Criminal Court provides that the International
Criminal Court may exercise its jurisdiction with respect to crimes when a situation is referred to
the Prosecutor by the Security Council acting under Chapter VII of the Charter of the United
Nations. 126 The U.N. Security Council has referred situations in Darfur and Libya to the
Prosecutor of the International Criminal Court. 127 The United States has objected to certain
loss, damage, including environmental damage and the depletion of natural resources, or injury to foreign
Governments, nationals and corporations, as a result of Iraqs unlawful invasion and occupation of Kuwait. The
Panel notes that, when making resolution 687 (1991), the Security Council acted under Chapter VII of the United
Nations Charter, i.e., it exercised its powers under that Chapter to maintain and restore international peace and
security.).
124
U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 1973, U.N. Doc S/RES/1973 4 (Mar. 17, 2011) (Authorizes Member
States that have notified the Secretary-General, acting nationally or through regional organizations or arrangements,
and acting in cooperation with the Secretary-General, to take all necessary measures, notwithstanding paragraph 9 of
resolution 1970 (2011), to protect civilians and civilian populated areas under threat of attack in the Libyan Arab
Jamahiriya, including Benghazi, while excluding a foreign occupation force of any form on any part of Libyan
territory, and requests the Member States concerned to inform the Secretary-General immediately of the measures
they take pursuant to the authorization conferred by this paragraph which shall be immediately reported to the
Security Council.); U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 1270, U.N. Doc S/RES/1270 14 (Oct. 22, 1999)
(Acting under Chapter VII of the Charter of the United Nations, decides that in the discharge of its mandate
UNAMSIL may take the necessary action to ensure the security and freedom of movement of its personnel and,
within its capabilities and areas of deployment, to afford protection to civilians under imminent threat of physical
violence, taking into account the responsibilities of the Government of Sierra Leone and ECOMOG;).
125
U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 827, U.N. Doc S/RES/827 (May 25, 1993) (Acting under Chapter VII of
the Charter of the United Nations, ... 2. Decides hereby to establish an international tribunal for the sole purpose of
prosecuting persons responsible for serious violations of international humanitarian law committed in the territory of
the former Yugoslavia between 1 January 1991 and a date to be determined by the Security Council upon the
restoration of peace and to this end to adopt the Statute of the International Tribunal annexed to the above-
mentioned report;); U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 955, U.N. Doc S/RES/955 (Nov. 8, 1994) (Acting
under Chapter VII of the Charter of the United Nations, 1. Decides hereby, having received the request of the
Government of Rwanda (S/1994/1115), to establish an international tribunal for the sole purpose of prosecuting
persons responsible for genocide and other serious violations of international humanitarian law committed in the
territory of Rwanda and Rwandan citizens responsible for genocide and other such violations committed in the
territory of neighbouring States, between 1 January 1994 and 31 December 1994 and to this end to adopt the Statute
of the International Criminal Tribunal for Rwanda annexed hereto;).
126
ROME STATUTE art. 13(b) (The Court may exercise its jurisdiction with respect to a crime referred to in article 5
in accordance with the provisions of this Statute if: A situation in which one or more of such crimes appears to have
been committed is referred to the Prosecutor by the Security Council acting under Chapter VII of the Charter of the
United Nations;).
127
U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 1593, U.N. Doc S/RES/1593 (Mar. 31, 2005) (Decides to refer the
situation in Darfur since 1 July 2002 to the Prosecutor of the International Criminal Court.); U.N. SECURITY
1080
aspects of the jurisdiction of the International Criminal Court, and there are certain restrictions in
U.S. domestic law on support to the International Criminal Court. 128
18.12.5.1 U.N. Security Council Role in the Biological Weapons Convention and
ENMOD Convention. The Biological Weapons Convention and the ENMOD Convention
provide that Parties to the treaties may lodge a complaint with the Security Council, when a
Party believes that another Party is in breach of its obligations deriving from the provisions of
that treaty. 129 These treaties provide that each Party undertakes to cooperate with any
investigation that the Security Council may initiate. 130 In addition, these treaties impose an
additional obligation on Parties to provide or support assistance to Parties that request assistance
if the Security Council has made an appropriate decision. 131
18.12.5.2 U.N. Security Council and the Chemical Weapons Convention. The
Chemical Weapons Convention provides that the Conference of the States Parties shall, in cases
of particular gravity, bring the issue, including relevant information and conclusions, to the
attention of the U.N. General Assembly and the U.N. Security Council. 132
COUNCIL RESOLUTION 1970, U.N. Doc S/RES/1970 (Feb. 26, 2011) (Decides to refer the situation in the Libyan
Arab Jamahiriya since 15 February 2011 to the Prosecutor of the International Criminal Court;).
128
Refer to 18.20.3 (The International Criminal Court (ICC) Created by the Rome Statute).
129
BIOLOGICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION art. 6(1) (Any State Party to this Convention which finds that any other
State Party is acting in breach of obligations deriving from the provisions of the Convention may lodge a complaint
with the Security Council of the United Nations. Such a complaint should include all possible evidence confirming
its validity, as well as a request for its consideration by the Security Council.); ENMOD Convention art. 5(3) (Any
State Party to this Convention which has reason to believe that any other State Party is acting in breach of
obligations deriving from the provisions of the Convention may lodge a complaint with the Security Council of the
United Nations. Such a complaint should include all relevant information as well as all possible evidence
supporting its validity.).
130
BIOLOGICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION art. 6(2) (Each State Party to this Convention undertakes to co-operate in
carrying out any investigation which the Security Council may initiate, in accordance with the provisions of the
Charter of the United Nations, on the basis of the complaint received by the Council. The Security Council shall
inform the States Parties to the Convention of the results of the investigation.); ENMOD CONVENTION art. 5(4)
(Each State Party to this Convention undertakes to co-operate in carrying out any investigation which the Security
Council may initiate, in accordance with the provisions of the Charter of the United Nations, on the basis of the
complaint received by the Council. The Security Council shall inform the States Parties of the results of the
investigation.).
131
BIOLOGICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION art. 7 (Each State Party to this Convention undertakes to provide or
support assistance, in accordance with the United Nations Charter, to any Party to the Convention which so requests,
if the Security Council decides that such Party has been exposed to danger as a result of violation of the
Convention.); ENMOD CONVENTION art. 5(5) (Each State Party to this Convention undertakes to provide or
support assistance, in accordance with the provisions of the Charter of the United Nations, to any State Party which
so requests, if the Security Council decides that such Party has been harmed or is likely to be harmed as a result of
violation of the Convention.).
132
CHEMICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION art. 12(4) (The Conference shall, in cases of particular gravity, bring the
issue, including relevant information and conclusions, to the attention of the United Nations General Assembly and
the United Nations Security Council.).
1081
18.12.5.3 U.N. Security Council Role in the Statute of the International Court of
Justice. Under the Statute of the International Court of Justice, a party to a case may have
recourse to the Security Council if an opposing party fails to perform the obligations incumbent
upon it under a judgment rendered by the Court. 133
The duties to implement and enforce the law of war also imply duties to investigate
reports of alleged violations of the law of war. 134 In addition to taking measures to meet the
requirements of DoD policy, commanders may also take other measures they deem appropriate
to ensure appropriate investigation and reporting of alleged violations of the law of war within
their command. 135
18.13.1 DoD Policy on Reporting Law of War Violations. DoD policy has required the
reporting of possible, suspected, or alleged violations of the law of war for which there is
credible information, or conduct during military operations other than war that would constitute a
violation of the law of war if it occurred during armed conflict (reportable incidents). 136 Such
133
ICJ STATUTE art. 94(2) (If any party to a case fails to perform the obligations incumbent upon it under a
judgment rendered by the Court, the other party may have recourse to the Security Council, which may, if it deems
necessary, make recommendations or decide upon measures to be taken to give effect to the judgment.).
134
See United States v. List, et al. (The Hostage Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 1271 (A
commanding general of occupied territory is charged with the duty of maintaining peace and order, punishing crime,
and protecting lives and property within the area of his command. His responsibility is coextensive with his area of
command. He is charged with notice of occurrences taking place within that territory. He may require adequate
reports of all occurrences that come within the scope of his power and, if such reports are incomplete or otherwise
inadequate, he is obliged to require supplementary reports to apprize him of all the pertinent facts. If he fails to
require and obtain complete information, the dereliction of duty rests upon him and he is in no position to plead his
own dereliction as a defense. Want of knowledge of the contents of reports made to him is not a defense. Reports
to commanding generals are made for their special benefit. Any failure to acquaint themselves with the contents of
such reports, or a failure to require additional reports where inadequacy appears on their face, constitutes a
dereliction of duty which he cannot use in his own behalf.).
135
For example, Defense Legal Policy Board, Report of the Subcommittee on Military Justice in Combat Zones, 54
(May 30, 2013) (In 2009, USCENTCOM issued two fragmentary orders (FRAGOs) related to LOAC incident
reports and legal reporting. USCENTCOM issued the FRAGOs because of perceived lack of timely notifications
and spotty recurring reports. The FRAGOs established timeline requirements for reports and described the
information expected to be included in LOAC reports. For example, the FRAGOs required reporting units with
knowledge of a suspected LOAC violation to transmit information to USCENTCOM within two hours through the
Service component and operational chains of command, irrespective of accuracy or detail. Follow-up was also
required within 24-48 hours with expanded information. The FRAGOs also required formal and informal
investigations to be forwarded to the USCENTCOM Staff Judge Advocate as soon as available and before
submission to organizations outside the USCENTCOM area of responsibility (AOR). The FRAGOs mandated that
initial and subsequent reports contain the 5 Ws of the incident and additional, operationally relevant data.
Further, the FRAGOs clarified the USCENTCOM requirement for weekly Judge Advocate activity reports, and
mandated that ARCENT (Army Central) maintain a generic email address to receive LOAC reports.).
136
DOD DIRECTIVE 2311.01E, DoD Law of War Program, 3.2 (May 9, 2006, Certified Current as of Feb. 22, 2011)
(Reportable Incident. A possible, suspected, or alleged violation of the law of war, for which there is credible
information, or conduct during military operations other than war that would constitute a violation of the law of war
if it occurred during an armed conflict.); DOD DIRECTIVE 5100.77, DoD Law of War Program, 3.2 (Dec. 9, 1998)
(Reportable Incident. A possible, suspected, or alleged violation of the law of war.).
1082
policy has been in addition to other DoD policies that address the reporting of criminal
incidents. 137 Individual Military Services have implemented procedures to ensure that incidents,
including war crimes, are promptly reported. 138
18.13.1.1 Requirement for All Military and U.S. Civilian Employees, Contractor
Personnel, and Subcontractors Assigned to or Accompanying a DoD Component. DoD policy
has required that all military and U.S. civilian employees, contractor personnel, and
subcontractors assigned to or accompanying a DoD Component shall report reportable incidents
through their chain of command. Contracts shall require contractor employees to report
reportable incidents to the commander of the unit they are accompanying or the installation to
which they are assigned, or to the Combatant Commander. 139
18.13.1.2 Requirement for Unit Commanders. DoD policy has required that the
commander of any unit that obtains information about a reportable incident shall immediately
report the incident through the applicable operational command and Military Department. 140
18.13.2 DoD Policy on Investigating Law of War Violations. DoD policy has required
that all reportable incidents be thoroughly investigated. 141 All the Military Departments and
137
See, e.g., DOD DIRECTIVE 7730.47, Defense Incident-Based Reporting System (DIBRS) (Oct. 15, 1996); DOD
INSTRUCTION 5240.4, Reporting of Counterintelligence and Criminal Violations (Sept. 22, 1992).
138
See, e.g., DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY REGULATION 190-45, Law Enforcement Reporting (Mar. 30, 2007),
Chapters 8 and 9.
139
DOD DIRECTIVE 2311.01E, DoD Law of War Program, 6.3 (May 9, 2006, Certified Current as of Feb. 22, 2011)
(All military and U.S. civilian employees, contractor personnel, and subcontractors assigned to or accompanying a
DoD Component shall report reportable incidents through their chain of command. Contracts shall require
contractor employees to report reportable incidents to the commander of the unit they are accompanying or the
installation to which they are assigned, or to the Combatant Commander. Such reports may be made through other
channels, such as the military police, a judge advocate, or an inspector general. Reports made to officials other than
those specified in this paragraph shall, nonetheless, be accepted and immediately forwarded through the recipient's
chain of command.).
140
DOD DIRECTIVE 2311.01E, DoD Law of War Program, 6.4 (May 9, 2006, Certified Current as of Feb. 22, 2011)
(Initial Report. The commander of any unit that obtains information about a reportable incident shall immediately
report the incident through the applicable operational command and Military Department. Reporting requirements
are concurrent. The initial report shall be made through the most expeditious means available.).
141
DOD DIRECTIVE 2311.01E, DoD Law of War Program, 4.4 (May 9, 2006, Certified Current as of Feb. 22, 2011)
(All reportable incidents committed by or against U.S. personnel, enemy persons, or any other individual are
reported promptly, investigated thoroughly, and, where appropriate, remedied by corrective action.); DOD
DIRECTIVE 5100.77, DoD Law of War Program, 4.3 (Dec. 9, 1998) (All reportable incidents committed by or
against U.S. or enemy persons are promptly reported, thoroughly investigated, and, where appropriate, remedied by
corrective action.); DOD DIRECTIVE 5100.77, DoD Law of War Program, C(2) (Jul. 10, 1979) (Alleged
violations of the law of war, whether committed by or against U.S. or enemy personnel, are promptly reported,
thoroughly investigated, and, whether appropriate, remedied by corrective action.); DOD DIRECTIVE 5100.77, DoD
Program for the Implementation of the Law of War, II(C) (Nov. 5, 1974) (Ensure that alleged violations of the law
of war, whether committed by U. S. personnel or enemy personnel, are promptly reported, thoroughly investigated,
and, where appropriate, remedied by corrective action.).
1083
Services have regulations for the conduct of both formal and informal administrative
investigations. 142
In addition, DoD policy has required that higher authorities receiving an initial report
request a formal investigation by the cognizant military criminal investigative organization. 143
18.14.1 Inquiry Procedure in the 1949 Geneva Conventions. At the request of a party to
the conflict, an inquiry shall be instituted, in a manner to be decided between the interested
Parties, concerning any alleged violation of the 1949 Geneva Conventions. 146 If agreement has
not been reached concerning the procedure for the inquiry, the Parties should agree on the choice
of an umpire who will decide upon the procedure to be followed. 147 Once the violation has
142
See, e.g., DEPARTMENT OF THE NAVY JUDGE ADVOCATE GENERAL INSTRUCTION 5800.7D, Manual of the Judge
Advocate General (JAGMAN), Chapter II (Mar. 15, 2004); DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY REGULATION 15-6,
Procedures for Investigating Officers and Boards of Officers (Nov. 2, 2006).
143
DOD DIRECTIVE 2311.01E, DoD Law of War Program, 6.4 (May 9, 2006, Certified Current as of Feb. 22,
2011). Such organizations include U.S. Army Criminal Investigation Command (USACIDC/CID), Air Force
Special Investigations Command (AFOSI/OSI), or the Naval Criminal Investigative Service (NCIS).
144
For example, Treaty for the Settlement of disputes that may occur between the United States of America and
Chile, art. 1, Jul. 24, 1914, 39 STAT. 1645, 1646 (The High Contracting Parties agree that all disputes that may
arise in the future between them, shall, when diplomatic methods of adjustment have failed, be submitted for
investigation and report to an International Commission to be constituted in the manner prescribed in the next
succeeding article; and they agree not to declare war or begin hostilities during such investigation, nor before all
resources stipulated in this treaty have proved unsuccessful.); Convention for the Pacific Settlement of International
Disputes, art. 9, Oct. 18, 1907, 36 STAT. 2199, 2214 (In disputes of an international nature involving neither honour
nor vital interests, and arising from a difference of opinion on points of fact, the Contracting Powers deem it
expedient and desirable that the parties who have not been able to come to an agreement by means of diplomacy,
should, as far as circumstances allow, institute an International Commission of Inquiry, to facilitate a solution of
these disputes by elucidating the facts by means of an impartial and conscientious investigation.); Convention for
the Pacific Settlement of International Disputes, art. 9, Jul. 29, 1899, 32 STAT. 1779, 1787 (In differences of an
international nature involving neither honour nor vital interests, and arising from a difference of opinion on points of
fact, the Signatory Powers recommend that the parties, who have not been able to come to an agreement by means
of diplomacy, should as far as circumstances allow, institute an International Commission of Inquiry, to facilitate a
solution of these differences by elucidating the facts by means of an impartial and conscientious investigation.).
145
Refer to 18.12.1 (Investigation by the U.N. Security Council Under the Charter of the United Nations).
146
GWS art. 52 (At the request of a Party to the conflict, an enquiry shall be instituted, in a manner to be decided
between the interested Parties, concerning any alleged violation of the Convention.); GWS-SEA art. 53 (same);
GPW art. 132 (same); GC art. 149 (same).
147
GWS art. 52 (If agreement has not been reached concerning the procedure for the enquiry, the Parties should
agree on the choice of an umpire who will decide upon the procedure to be followed.); GWS-SEA art. 53 (same);
GPW art. 132 (same); GC art. 149 (same).
1084
been established, the parties to the conflict shall put an end to it and shall repress it with the
least possible delay. 148
The commission operates on the basis of mutual consent. Any party to a conflict may ask
the commission to conduct an inquiry; but, unless the States involved previously declared that
they recognize ipso facto and without special agreement, in relation to any other Party to AP I
accepting the same obligation, the competence of the Commission, the Commission will only
investigate with the consent of the States involved. 151
Although the IHFFC was officially constituted in 1991, it has not been used in its first
two decades. 152
The United States has not ratified AP I, and has not recognized the competence of the
IHFFC.
The Protecting Power is an organ for the implementation of the 1949 Geneva
Conventions and the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention.
148
GWS art. 52 (Once the violation has been established, the Parties to the conflict shall put an end to it and shall
repress it with the least possible delay.); GWS-SEA art. 53 (same); GPW art. 132 (same); GC art. 149 (same).
149
AP I art. 90 (An International Fact-Finding Commission 443 (hereinafter referred to as the Commission)
consisting of fifteen members of high moral standing and acknowledged impartiality shall be established.).
150
AP I art. 90(2)(c)(i-ii) (The Commission shall be competent to: (i) Enquire into any facts alleged to be a grave
breach as defined in the Conventions and this Protocol or other serious violation of the Conventions or of this
Protocol; (ii) Facilitate, through its good offices, the restoration of an attitude of respect for the Conventions and this
Protocol.).
151
AP I art. 90(2) ((a) The High Contracting Parties may at the time of signing, ratifying or acceding to the
Protocol, or at any other subsequent time, declare that they recognize ipso facto and without special agreement, in
relation to any other High Contracting Party accepting the same obligation, the competence of the Commission to
inquire into allegations by such other Party, as authorized by this Article; (d) In other situations, the Commission
shall institute an inquiry at the request of a Party to the conflict only with the consent of the other Party or Parties
concerned;).
152
Charles Garraway, Fact-Finding and the International Humanitarian Fact-Finding Commission, in MORTEN
BERGSMO, QUALITY CONTROL IN FACT-FINDING 443 (Nov. 16, 2013) (It is regrettable that in the two decades that
the Commission has been established, it has never been called into action. In the early days, little was known of the
Commission, but in recent years, a series of promotional activities have been undertaken to raise consciousness
amongst States. In the view of the Commission, it has an important role to play in the modern world and is anxious
to fulfil this.).
1085
18.15.1 Background on the Protecting Power. Under international law, a State that lacks
normal diplomatic relations with a second State may, with the consent of the second State,
designate a third State act to protect the first States interests as they relate to the second State. 153
This third State is often called a Protecting Power. A State could be a Protecting Power for the
purposes of more than one treaty.
18.15.1.1 Protecting Power Under the 1949 Geneva Conventions. Under the
1949 Geneva Conventions, belligerents may designate neutral States as Protecting Powers to
help implement the Geneva Conventions. Specifically, the 1949 Geneva Conventions provide
that the Conventions shall be applied with the cooperation and under the scrutiny of the
Protecting Powers whose duty it is to safeguard the interests of the parties to the conflict. 154
The Detaining Power has an obligation to seek a Protecting Power if the wounded and
sick, shipwrecked, medical personnel and chaplains, POWs, or protected persons under the GC
in its custody do not benefit from one. 155 If such protection cannot be arranged, the 1949
Geneva Conventions contemplate that States will use the ICRC or another impartial
humanitarian organization to assume the humanitarian functions performed by Protecting
Powers. 156
153
Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations, art. 45, Apr. 18, 1961, 500 UNTS 95, 122 (If diplomatic relations
are broken off between two States, or if a mission is permanently or temporarily recalled: (c) The sending State
may entrust the protection of its interests and those of its nationals to a third State acceptable to the receiving
State.).
154
GWS art. 8 (The present Convention shall be applied with the cooperation and under the scrutiny of the
Protecting Powers whose duty it is to safeguard the interests of the Parties to the conflict.); GWS-SEA art. 8 (same);
GPW art. 8 (same); GC art. 9 (same).
155
Refer to 18.15.2.2 (Obligation on the Detaining Power to Seek a Protecting Power if Persons Protected by the
1949 Geneva Conventions Do Not Benefit From One).
156
Refer to 18.15.2.3 (Impartial Humanitarian Organizations Assuming Humanitarian Functions Performed by
Protecting Powers Under the 1949 Geneva Conventions).
157
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 21 (The present Convention and the Regulations for its
execution shall be applied with the co-operation of the Protecting Powers responsible for safeguarding the interests
of the Parties to the conflict.).
1086
The State appointed to be a Protecting Power must be able to fulfill the Protecting
Powers responsibilities. 158 This State should be neutral or non-belligerent with respect to the
conflict in question. 159 However, the State need not be a traditionally neutral power, such as
Sweden or Switzerland. 160 In cases where a State serving as a Protecting Power enters the armed
conflict, another State may assume the responsibilities of the Protecting Power. 161 A State may
serve as the Protecting Power for more than one side in an armed conflict. 162
158
See GWS art. 10 (States and organizations fulfilling the duties of a Protecting Power shall be required to act
with a sense of responsibility towards the Party to the conflict on which persons protected by the present Convention
depend, and shall be required to furnish sufficient assurances that it is in a position to undertake the appropriate
functions and to discharge them impartially.); GWS-SEA art. 10 (same); GPW art. 10 (same); GC art. 11 (same).
159
See GWS art. 10 (When persons protected by the Convention do not benefit from a Protecting Power, the
Detaining Power shall request a neutral State, or such an organization, to undertake the functions performed under
the present Convention by a Protecting Power designated by the Parties to a conflict.); GWS-SEA art. 10 (same);
GPW art. 10 (same); GC art. 11 (same). Cf. GWS art. 8 (contemplating that Protecting Powers may appoint, apart
from their diplomatic or consular staff, delegates from amongst their own nationals or the nationals of other neutral
Powers) (emphasis added); GWS-SEA art. 8 (same); GPW art. 8 (same); GC art. 9 (same).
160
For example, during the Franco-Prussian War (1870-71), Great Britain was charged with the protection of the
French in Germany; and the United States, Russia, and Switzerland acted as Protecting Powers in France for the
various German States. LEVIE, POWS 256. At various times during World War II, Spain acted as the Protecting
Power for Japan in the continental United States, while Sweden acted for her in Hawaii, and Switzerland in
American Samoa. LEVIE, POWS 257.
161
See LEVIE, POWS 259 (The practice was adopted that when a neutral which had been acting as a Protecting
Power itself became embroiled in the conflict, a successor Protecting Power would be designated to fill the
vacuum.).
162
For example, during the Sino-Japanese War (1894-95) each side requested the United States to act as its
Protecting Power, and so we find the same State acting as the Protecting Power for each belligerent within the
territory of the other. LEVIE, POWS 257.
163
GWS art. 10 (The High Contracting Parties may at any time agree to entrust to an organization which offers all
guarantees of impartiality and efficacy the duties incumbent on the Protecting Powers by virtue of the present
Convention.); GWS-SEA art. 11 (same); GPW art. 10 (same); GC art. 11 (same).
164
GWS art. 10 (When wounded and sick, or medical personnel and chaplains do not benefit or cease to benefit, no
matter for what reason, by the activities of a Protecting Power or of an organization provided for in the first
1087
18.15.2.3 Impartial Humanitarian Organizations Assuming Humanitarian
Functions Performed by Protecting Powers Under the 1949 Geneva Conventions. If the
protection of a Protecting Power or an impartial and effective organization that the performs the
duties of the Protecting Power cannot be arranged, the 1949 Geneva Conventions contemplate
that States will use the ICRC or another impartial humanitarian organization to assume the
humanitarian functions performed by Protecting Powers. 165
The ICRC has often performed such a role during armed conflict. 166
18.15.3 Activities of the Protecting Power. A Protecting Power assists and verifies
compliance with the 1949 Geneva Conventions. For example, under the GPW and GC, the
Protecting Power transmits information between belligerents, monitors compliance by the
Detaining Power, and takes an active role in promoting the welfare of POWs and protected
persons. 167
The Protecting Powers activities are conducted with the consent of the State on whose
territory it serves and the State whose facilities it visits. For example, the delegates of the
Protecting Power are subject to the approval of the Power with which they are to carry out their
duties. 168 In addition, a Protecting Power must ensure that its delegation does not exceed its
humanitarian responsibilities and takes into account the imperative necessities of security of the
State wherein they carry out their duties. 169
paragraph above, the Detaining Power shall request a neutral State, or such an organization, to undertake the
functions performed under the present Convention by a Protecting Power designated by the Parties to a conflict.);
GWS-SEA art. 10 (When wounded, sick and shipwrecked, or medical personnel and chaplains do not benefit or
cease to benefit, no matter for what reason, by the activities of a Protecting Power or of an organization provided for
in the first paragraph above, the Detaining Power shall request a neutral State, or such an organization, to undertake
the functions performed under the present Convention by a Protecting Power designated by the Parties to a
conflict.); GPW art. 10 (When prisoners of war do not benefit or cease to benefit, no matter for what reason, by
the activities of a Protecting Power or of an organization provided for in the first paragraph above, the Detaining
Power shall request a neutral State, or such an organization, to undertake the functions performed under the present
Convention by a Protecting Power designated by the Parties to a conflict.); GC art. 11 (When persons protected by
the present Convention do not benefit or cease to benefit, no matter for what reason, by the activities of a Protecting
Power or of an organization provided for in the first paragraph above, the Detaining Power shall request a neutral
State, or such an organization, to undertake the functions performed under the present Convention by a Protecting
Power designated by the Parties to a conflict.).
165
See GWS art. 10 (If protection cannot be arranged accordingly, the Detaining Power shall request or shall
accept, subject to the provisions of this Article, the offer of the services of a humanitarian organization, such as the
International Committee of the Red Cross, to assume the humanitarian functions performed by Protecting Powers
under the present Convention.); GWS-SEA art. 10 (same); GPW art. 10 (same); GC art. 11 (same).
166
For example, FINAL REPORT ON THE PERSIAN GULF WAR 617 (During the 1991 Persian Gulf War, [t]he
International Committee of the Red Cross (ICRC) was provided access to Coalition EPW facilities and reviewed
their findings with Coalition representatives in periodic meetings in Riyadh, Saudi Arabia.).
167
Refer to 9.32 (Role of the Protecting Power in the GPW); 10.32 (Role of the Protecting Power in the GC).
168
Refer to 4.25.1 (Appointment of Delegates of the Protecting Powers).
169
Refer to 4.25.2 (Duties of the Representatives or Delegates of the Protecting Power).
1088
18.15.4 Lending of Good Offices to Assist in Dispute Resolution. The 1949 Geneva
Conventions contemplate that Protecting Powers shall lend their good offices with a view to
settling disagreements between the parties to the conflict regarding protected persons,
particularly in cases regarding the application or interpretation of the 1949 Geneva
Conventions. 170 Protecting Powers may propose to the parties to the conflict a representative of
a neutral Power or the ICRC to participate in the meeting. 171 This mechanism developed from
State practice during World War I. 172
The 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention also contemplates that Protecting Powers
shall lend their good offices in all cases where they may deem it useful in the interests of cultural
property, particularly if there is disagreement between the parties to the conflict as to the
application or interpretation of the provisions of the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention
or the Regulations for its execution. 173 The Director-General of the United Nations Educational,
Scientific, and Cultural Organization can also have a role in this process. 174
170
See GWS art. 11 (In cases where they deem it advisable in the interest of protected persons, particularly in cases
of disagreement between the Parties to the conflict as to the application or interpretation of the provisions of the
present Convention, the Protecting Powers shall lend their good offices with a view to settling the disagreement.);
GWS-SEA art. 11 (same); GPW art. 11 (same); GC art. 12 (same).
171
See GWS art. 11 (The Protecting Powers may, if necessary, propose for approval by the Parties to the conflict a
person belonging to a neutral Power, or delegated by the International Committee of the Red Cross, who shall be
invited to take part in such a meeting.); GWS-SEA art. 11 (same); GPW art. 11 (same); GC art. 12 (same).
172
See GPW COMMENTARY 125 (This idea of arranging a meeting of the representatives of the Parties to the
conflict on neutral territory suitably chosen is very largely the result of experience gained during the First World
War, when such meetings, which were fairly frequent, led to the conclusion of special agreements on the treatment
of prisoners of war and on other problems of a humanitarian nature.).
173
REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 22(1) (The
Protecting Powers shall lend their good offices in all cases where they may deem it useful in the interests of cultural
property, particularly if there is disagreement between the Parties to the conflict as to the application or
interpretation of the provisions of the present Convention or the Regulations for its execution.).
174
REGULATIONS FOR THE EXECUTION OF THE 1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 22(2) (For this
purpose, each of the Protecting Powers may, either at the invitation of one Party, of the Director-General of the
United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization, or on its own initiative, propose to the Parties to
the conflict a meeting of their representatives, and in particular of the authorities responsible for the protection of
cultural property, if considered appropriate on suitably chosen neutral territory. The Parties to the conflict shall be
bound to give effect to the proposals for meeting made to them. The Protecting Powers shall propose for approval
by the Parties to the conflict a person belonging to a neutral Power or a person presented by the Director-General of
the United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization, which person shall be invited to take part in
such a meeting in the capacity of Chairman.).
175
U.N. International Law Commission, Draft articles on Responsibility of States for Internationally Wrongful Acts,
with commentaries, art. 1 (2001) (Every internationally wrongful act of a State entails the international
responsibility of that State.); id. at art. 31(1) (The responsible State is under an obligation to make full reparation
for the injury caused by the internationally wrongful act.).
1089
war in that a State that violates the law of war shall, if the case demands, be liable to pay
compensation. 176
176
HAGUE IV art. 3 (A belligerent party which violates the provisions of the said Regulations shall, if the case
demands, be liable to pay compensation. It shall be responsible for all acts committed by persons forming part of its
armed forces.).
177
For example, GREENSPAN, MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 405 (A recent example of the obligation of a state
to pay compensation for war crimes for which it is responsible is the agreement on reparations signed at
Luxembourg on September 10, 1952, between the Federal Republic of Germany (West Germany) and Israel. This
agreement, together with the appended protocols, provides for the payment by Western Germany to Israel of
3,450,000,000 marks ($822,000,000 or 287,000,000) to make good, within the limits of its capacity, the material
damage caused by the unspeakable criminal acts [which] were perpetrated against the Jewish people during the
National Socialist rgime of terror.) (amendment in original); Dean Acheson, The Secretary of State to the Swiss
Minister, Oct. 21, 1949, 64 STAT. B1097 (I have the honor to refer to previous correspondence, and also to oral
discussions between officials of your Government and the Government of the United States concerning claims
asserted by your Government for compensation for losses and damages inflicted on persons and property in
Switzerland during World War II by units of the United States armed forces in violation of neutral rights. On behalf
of the United States Government, I wish to offer to your Government in full and final settlement of the balance due
on all claims of the character referred to in the preceding paragraph the sum of 62,176,433.06 Swiss francs, which
includes interest through October 21, 1949. The offer is made with the understanding that the Swiss Government
accepts responsibility for making payment of the individual claims involved.).
178
GREENSPAN, MODERN LAW OF LAND WARFARE 592 (Even apart from express provision in the peace treaty for
payment of indemnities or reparations, it will be recalled that compensation is payable in a proper case for violation
of the rules of warfare. In general, although this last obligation extends beyond the termination of the war, a state
may provide in the peace treaty for the extinguishment or restriction of its liability in this connection.).
179
Refer to 18.9.3 (Grave Breaches of the 1949 Geneva Conventions).
180
For example, Agreement Between the Government of the State of Eritrea and the Government of the Federal
Democratic Republic of Ethiopia, art. 5(1), Dec. 12, 2000, 2138 UNTS 93, 97 (Consistent with the Framework
Agreement, in which the parties commit themselves to addressing the negative socio-economic impact of the crisis
on the civilian population, including the impact on those persons who have been deported, a neutral Claims
Commission shall be established. The mandate of the Commission is to decide through binding arbitration all
claims for loss, damage or injury by one Government against the other, and by nationals (including both natural and
juridical persons) of one party against the Government of the other party or entities owned or controlled by the other
party that are (a) related to the conflict that was the subject of the Framework Agreement, the Modalities for its
Implementation and the Cessation of Hostilities Agreement, and (b) result from violations of international
humanitarian law, including the 1949 Geneva Conventions, or other violations of international law. The
Commission shall not hear claims arising from the cost of military operations, preparing for military operations, or
the use of force, except to the extent that such claims involve violations of international humanitarian law.); Treaty
1090
18.16.3 Payment or Other Compensation Ex Gratia. In some cases, States may provide
money or other compensation to other States where not legally required (or without an admission
of legal liability or fault). 182 For example, although indemnification is not required for injuries
or damage incidental to the lawful use of armed force, compensation may be provided as a
humanitarian gesture. 183 Similarly, a State may institute mechanisms to make payments to
foreign persons who have suffered loss from combat operations, even when no violation of law
of war has occurred.
between the United States and Great Britain, art. 1, May 8, 1871, 17 STAT. 863, 863-64 (Whereas differences have
arisen between the Government of the United States and the Government of Her Britannic Majesty, and still exist,
growing out of the Acts committed by the several vessels which have given rise to the claims generically known as
the Alabama Claims. And whereas Her Britannic Majesty has authorized Her High Commissioners and
Plenipotentiaries to express, in a friendly spirit, the regret felt by Her Majestys Government for the escape, under
whatever circumstances, of the Alabama and other vessels from British ports, and for the depredations committed by
those vessels: Now, in order to remove and adjust all complaints and claims on the part of the United States, and to
provide for the speedy settlement of such claims, which are not admitted by Her Britannic Majestys Government,
the High Contracting Parties agree that all the said claims, growing out of acts committed by the aforesaid vessels
and generically known as the Alabama Claims, shall be referred to a Tribunal of Arbitration to be composed of
five Arbitrators, .).
181
U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 687, U.N. Doc S/RES/687, 16-18 (Apr. 3, 1991) (establishing authority
for the U.N. Compensation Commission to provide a reparation mechanism for violations of international law and
any direct loss, damage, including environmental damage and the depletion of natural resources, or injury to
foreign governments, national and corporations, as a result of Iraqs unlawful invasion and occupation of Kuwait.).
182
For example, Communication of the United States Government, Jul. 31, 1945, reprinted in Offer of Ship to
Replace Awa Maru, 13 DEPARTMENT OF STATE BULLETIN 249, 249-50 (Aug. 12, 1945) (The United States
Government realizes that the deplorable accidental sinking of the Awa Maru prevented the Japanese Government
from giving immediate effect to its announced intention to continue to facilitate the shipment and distribution of
relief supplies for Allied nationals. In order, therefore, to assist in overcoming this difficulty the United States
Government makes the following offer to the Japanese Government, not as present indemnification for the Awa
Maru (the suggestion having previously been made that owing to the complex nature of the question of indemnity,
that matter might be deferred until the termination of hostilities) but as a replacement for the Awa Maru in its
humanitarian service. The United States Government is prepared immediately to transfer to the Japanese
Government a vessel described below of approximately the same size and characteristics as the Awa Maru,
conditioned upon the express agreement by the Japanese Government to use the vessel so transferred for the
following purposes and no others .).
183
For example, Abraham Sofaer, Legal Adviser, Department of State, Compensation for Iranian Airbus Tragedy,
88 DEPARTMENT OF STATE BULLETIN 58 (Oct. 1988) (Principles of international law that govern potential liability
for injuries and property damage arising out of military operations are generally well-established. First,
indemnification is not required for injuries or damage incidental to the lawful use of armed force. Second,
indemnification is required where the exercise of armed force is unlawful. Third, states may, nevertheless, pay
compensation ex gratia without acknowledging, and irrespective of, legal liability. In the case of the Iran Air
incident, the damage caused in firing upon #655 was incidental to the lawful use of force. The Government of Iran
should not have allowed gunboats to attack our vessels and aircraft. That government also should not have allowed
a passenger airline to fly over a battle zoneespecially not unless it was equipped and prepared to respond to our
Navys repeated warnings. The commander of the U.S.S. Vincennes evidently believed that his ship was under
imminent threat of attack from a hostile aircraft, and he attempted repeatedly to identify or contact the aircraft before
taking defensive action. Therefore, the United States does not accept legal responsibility for this incident and is not
paying reparations, a word which implies wrongdoing and is often associated with wartime activities. Instead, the
President has decided to make an ex gratia payment as a humanitarian gesture to the families of the individuals who
were on #655.).
1091
18.16.4 No Private Right to Compensation Under Customary International Law or the
1949 Geneva Conventions. The responsibility of States for violations of the law of war
committed by their agents is owed to other States. 184 The fact that such responsibility is owed to
other States reflects the predominately inter-State nature of international obligations. 185
Customary international law and the 1949 Geneva Conventions do not provide a private right for
individuals to claim compensation directly from a State; rather, such claims are made by other
States. 186
18.17 RETORSION
Retorsion is one of the measures that an injured party may use to seek to persuade an
adversary to cease violations of the law of war.
Retorsion may be understood to mean unfriendly conduct, (1) which is not inconsistent
with any international obligation of the State engaging in it, and (2) which is done in response to
an internationally wrongful act. 187 Retorsion is frequently contrasted with reprisal, which
involves measures that would otherwise be unlawful. 188
184
See, e.g., Johnson v. Eisentrager, 339 U.S. 763, 789 footnote 14 (1950) (We are not holding that these prisoners
have no right which the military authorities are bound to respect. The United States, by the Geneva Convention of
July 27, 1929, 47 Stat. 2021, concluded with forty-six other countries, including the German Reich, an agreement
upon the treatment to be accorded captives. These prisoners claim to be and are entitled to its protection. It is,
however, the obvious scheme of the Agreement that responsibility for observance and enforcement of these rights is
upon political and military authorities. Rights of alien enemies are vindicated under it only through protests and
intervention of protecting powers as the rights of our citizens against foreign governments are vindicated only by
Presidential intervention.); Juragua Iron Co. v. United States, 212 U.S. 297, 308 (1909) (It is true that the army,
under General Miles, was under a duty to observe the rules governing the conduct of independent nations when
engaged in war a duty for the proper performance of which the United States may have been responsible in its
political capacity to the enemy government.).
185
Refer to 1.10.1.3 (Predominately Inter-State Nature of International Obligations).
186
GC COMMENTARY 211 (One other point should be made clear. The Convention does not give individual men
and women the right to claim compensation. The State is answerable to another contracting State and not to the
individual. On that point the recognized system was not in any way modified in 1949.); GC COMMENTARY 603
(As regards material compensation for breaches of the Convention, it is inconceivable, at least as the law stands
today, that claimants should be able to bring a direct action for damages against the State in whose service the
person committing the breach was working. Only a State can make such claims on another State, and they form
part, in general, of what is called war reparations.).
187
See U.N. International Law Commission, Draft articles on Responsibility of States for Internationally Wrongful
Acts, with commentaries, 128 (2001) (Countermeasures are to be contrasted with retorsion, i.e. unfriendly conduct
which is not inconsistent with any international obligation of the State engaging in it even though it may be a
response to an internationally wrongful act. Acts of retorsion may include the prohibition of or limitations upon
normal diplomatic relations or other contacts, embargoes of various kinds or withdrawal of voluntary aid
programmes.); GWS COMMENTARY 342 (A distinction is generally made between reprisals and retortion; the
latter is also a form of retaliation, but the measures taken do not break the law, and are in reply to acts which are
themselves generally admitted to be lawful. The acts in question on both sides are matters within the competence of
the States concerned. A case of retortion would, for example, be the withdrawal by one belligerent from retained
personnel of privileges accorded over and above those accorded under the convention, where the adverse Party had
withdrawn privileges, whether in the same or in another connection, from the corresponding personnel in his
hands.).
188
Refer to 18.18.1.2 (Acts That Would Otherwise Be Unlawful).
1092
Because retorsion, by definition, does not involve the resort to actions that would
ordinarily be characterized as illegal, the stringent conditions that apply to reprisal do not apply
to retorsion. 189
Retorsion is a general remedy available to States under international law and is not
specific to the law of war. Retorsion might be used by States before, or in connection with,
military operations (e.g., an economic embargo). Retorsion, however, could also be used to seek
to compel an adversary to adhere to the law of war.
18.18 REPRISALS
Reprisals are extreme measures of coercion used to help enforce the law of war by
seeking to persuade an adversary to cease violations.
States may resort to reprisals only when certain conditions are met. In addition, there are
certain treaty prohibitions on reprisal, and practical considerations may counsel against their use.
18.18.1 Definition of Reprisal. Reprisals are acts taken against a party: (1) that would
otherwise be unlawful; (2) in order to persuade that party to cease violating the law. 190
For example, during the Civil War, the United States authorized reprisals against
Confederate forces for murdering and enslaving captured Union soldiers. 191 Reprisals against
POWs are now prohibited. 192
189
Refer to 18.18.2 (Conditions for Lawful Reprisals).
190
See GC COMMENTARY 227 (Reprisals are measures contrary to law, but which, when taken by one State with
regard to another State to ensure the cessation of certain acts or to obtain compensation for them, are considered as
lawful in the particular conditions under which they are carried out.); United States v. Ohlendorf, et al.
(Einsatzgruppen Case), IV TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 493 (Reprisals in war are the
commission of acts which, although illegal in themselves, may, under the specific circumstances of the given case,
become justified because the guilty adversary has himself behaved illegally, and the action is taken in last resort, in
order to prevent the adversary from behaving illegally in the future.).
191
Abraham Lincoln, General Order No. 252, Jul. 31, 1863, reprinted in Thos. M. OBrien & Oliver Diefendorf,
UNITED STATES WAR DEPARTMENT, II GENERAL ORDERS OF THE WAR DEPARTMENT, EMBRACING THE YEARS 1861,
1862 & 1863, 323 (1864) (It is the duty of every government to give protection to its citizens, of whatever class,
color, or condition, and especially to those who are duly organized as soldiers in the public service. The law of
nations and the usages and customs of war, as carried on by civilized powers, permit no distinction as to color in the
treatment of prisoners of war as public enemies. To sell or enslave any captured person on account of his color, and
for no offense against the laws of war, is a relapse into barbarism and a crime against the civilization of the age. The
Government of the United States will give the same protection to all its soldiers, and if the enemy shall sell or
enslave anyone because of his color the offense shall be punished by retaliation upon the enemys prisoners in our
possession. It is therefore ordered, That for every soldier of the United States killed in violation of the laws of war a
rebel soldier shall be executed, and for every one enslaved by the enemy or sold into slavery a rebel soldier shall be
placed at hard labor on the public works and continued at such labor until the other shall be released and receive the
treatment due to a prisoner of war.).
192
Refer to 18.18.3.2 (Reprisals Prohibited by the 1949 Geneva Conventions).
1093
violations of the law of war. 193 Some older sources used the term retaliation to describe what
is now commonly understood to be reprisal. 194
The term countermeasures is sometimes used to cover that part of the subject of
reprisals not associated with armed conflict, with the term reprisals or belligerent reprisals
sometimes reserved for action taken during international armed conflict. 195
18.18.1.2 Acts That Would Otherwise Be Unlawful. Reprisals involve acts that
would otherwise be unlawful. For example, responding to illegal enemy action by withdrawing
benefits extended to the enemy where such benefits are not legally required would not be
characterized as a reprisal. Rather, such action would be characterized as retorsion, i.e.,
unfriendly conduct that is not inconsistent with any international obligation of the State engaging
in it even though it may be a response to an internationally wrongful act. 196
18.18.1.3 In Order to Persuade a Party to Cease Violating the Law. Reprisals are
intended to influence a party to cease committing violations at present and in the future.
Reprisals are not revenge or collective punishment.
18.18.2 Conditions for Lawful Reprisals. Customary international law permits reprisals,
subject to certain conditions.
18.18.2.1 Careful Inquiry That Reprisals Are Justified. Reprisals shall be resorted
to only after a careful inquiry into the facts to determine that the enemy has, in fact, violated the
law. 197 In many cases, whether a law of war rule has been violated will not be apparent to the
opposing side or outside observers. For example, a bombardment that results in the death of
civilians may be the result of good faith, reasonable, mistake or may have been justified by the
importance of destroying the military objective against which the bombardment was directed.
193
See, e.g., WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW & PRECEDENTS 798 (Reprisal. This further method, above specified,
consists in the taking possession of property of the enemy or of his subjects, to be held as indemnity for injury
inflicted in violation of the laws of war, or as security till a pecuniary indemnity be duly rendered.).
194
LIEBER CODE art. 27 (The law of war can no more wholly dispense with retaliation than can the law of nations,
of which it is a branch. Yet civilized nations acknowledge retaliation as the sternest feature of war. A reckless
enemy often leaves to his opponent no other means of securing himself against the repetition of barbarous
outrage.).
195
U.N. International Law Commission, Draft articles on Responsibility of States for Internationally Wrongful Acts,
with commentaries, 128 (2001) (As to terminology, traditionally the term reprisals was used to cover otherwise
unlawful action, including forcible action, taken by way of self-help in response to a breach. More recently, the
term reprisals has been limited to action taken in time of international armed conflict; i.e. it has been taken as
equivalent to belligerent reprisals. The term countermeasures covers that part of the subject of reprisals not
associated with armed conflict, and in accordance with modern practice and judicial decisions the term is used in
that sense in this chapter.).
196
Refer to 18.17 (Retorsion).
197
LIEBER CODE art. 28 (Retaliation will therefore never be resorted to as a measure of mere revenge, but only as a
means of protective retribution, and moreover cautiously and unavoidably -- that is to say, retaliation shall only be
resorted to after careful inquiry into the real occurrence and the character of the misdeeds that may demand
retribution. Unjust or inconsiderate retaliation removes the belligerents farther and farther from the mitigating rules
of regular war, and by rapid steps leads them nearer to the internecine wars of savages.).
1094
18.18.2.2 Exhaustion of Other Means of Securing the Adversarys Compliance
With the Law of War. Other means of securing compliance with the law of war should be
exhausted before resorting to reprisals. 198 For example, consideration should be given to using
protests and demands, retorsion, or reasonable notice of the threat to use reprisals before
resorting to reprisals. 199
198
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 497b (Priority of Other Remedies. Other means of securing compliance
with the law of war should normally be exhausted before resort is had to reprisals. This course should be pursued
unless the safety of the troops requires immediate drastic action and the persons who actually committed the
offenses cannot be secured.).
199
Refer to 18.10 (Methods for Responding to Violations of the Law of War by the Enemy).
200
See Trial of Hans Albin Rauter, Judgment, XIV U.N. LAW REPORTS 89, 132 (Netherlands Special Court of
Cassation, Jan. 12, 1949) (In the proper sense one can speak of reprisals only when a State resorts, by means of its
organs, to measures at variance with International Law, on account of the fact that its opponentin this case the
State with which it is at warhad begun, by means of one or more of its organs, to commit acts contrary to
International Law, quite irrespective of the question as to what organ this may have been, Government or legislator,
Commander of the Fleet, Commander of Land Forces, or of the Air Force, diplomat or colonial governor. The
measures which the appellant describes ... as reprisals bear an entirely different character, they are indeed
retaliatory measures taken in time of war by the occupant of enemy territory as a retaliation not of unlawful acts of
the State with which he is at war, but of hostile acts of the population of the territory in question or of individual
members thereof, which, in accordance with the rights of occupation, he is not bound to suffer. Both types of
reprisals have this in common, that the right to take genuine reprisals as well as the alleged competence to take so
called reprisals may in principle belong only to the State which applies them, .) (first ellipsis in original).
201
For example, 2004 UK MANUAL 16.19.2 (This means that reprisals taken in accordance with the statement are
permissible by and against the United Kingdom. However, commanders and commanders-in-chief are not to take
reprisal action on their own initiative. Requests for authority to take reprisal action must be submitted to the
Ministry of Defence and require clearance at Cabinet level.).
202
Refer to 2.4 (Proportionality).
203
Larry A. Hammond, Deputy Assistant Attorney General, Possible Participation by the United States in Islamic
Republic of Iran v. Pahlavi, 4A OPINIONS OF THE OFFICE OF LEGAL COUNSEL 160, 163 (1980) (Customary
international law allows reprisals, which are breaches of a treatys terms in response to a breach by another party.
To be legal, reprisals must respond in a proportionate manner to a preceding illegal act by the party against whom
they are taken. Identical reprisals are the easiest to justify as proportionate, because subjective comparisons are not
involved. Thus, in the current crisis, the taking of Iranian diplomats as hostages (or a lesser restriction on their
freedom of movement that approaches imprisonment) would clearly be a proportionate response; reducing the
immunity of Iranian diplomats from criminal prosecution would be more difficult to justify.).
1095
However, the acts resorted to by way of reprisal need not be identical nor of the same
type as the violations committed by the enemy. A reprisal should not be unreasonable or
excessive compared to the adversarys violation. 204
204
See Naulilaa Incident Arbitration, Portuguese-German Arbitral Tribunal, 1928, reprinted and translated in
WILLIAM W. BISHOP, INTERNATIONAL LAW: CASES AND MATERIALS 904 (1971) (The necessity of a proportion
between the reprisals and the offense would appear to be recognized in the German answer. Even if one admitted
that international law does not require that the reprisal be approximately measured by the offense, one should
certainly consider as excessive, and thus illegal, reprisals out of all proportion with the act which motivated them.
Now in this case ... there has been evident disproportion between the incident of Naulilaa and the six acts of reprisals
which followed it. The arbiters conclude that the German aggressions of October, November and December, 1914,
on the Angola frontier, cannot be considered as lawful reprisals for the Naulilaa incident ... , in view of the lack of
sufficient occasion, of previous demand and of admissible proportion between the alleged offense and the reprisals
taken.) (ellipses in original).
205
Trial of Richard Wilhem Hermann Bruns and two others, III U.N. LAW REPORTS 15, 19 (By the Eidsivating
Lagmannstrett and The Supreme Court of Norway, Mar. 20-Jul. 3, 1946) (Reprisals were generally understood to
aim at changing the adversarys conduct and forcing him to keep the general accepted rules of lawful warfare. If
this aim were to be achieved, the reprisals must be made public and announced as such.).
206
CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL art. 3(7) (It is prohibited in all circumstances to direct weapons to which this
Article applies, either in offence, defence or by way of reprisals, against the civilian population as such or against
individual civilians or civilian objects.).
207
GWS art. 46 (Reprisals against the wounded, sick, personnel, buildings or equipment protected by the
Convention are prohibited.); GWS-SEA art. 47 (Reprisals against the wounded, sick and shipwrecked persons, the
personnel, the vessels or the equipment protected by the Convention are prohibited.).
208
Refer to 7.3.1 (Definitions of Wounded, Sick, and Shipwrecked).
209
Refer to 7.8 (Respect and Protection of Categories of Medical and Religious Personnel).
1096
hospital ships. 211
Reprisals against protected persons under the GC and their property are prohibited. 213
objects indispensable to the survival of the civilian population such as foodstuffs, crops,
livestock, drinking water installations and supplies, and irrigation works; 218
210
Refer to 7.10 (Military Medical Units and Facilities).
211
Refer to 7.12.1 (Types of Hospital Ships and Coastal Rescue Craft).
212
GPW art. 13 (Measures of reprisal against prisoners of war are prohibited.); The Dostler Case, Trial of General
Anton Dostler, I U.N. LAW REPORTS 22, 31 (U.S. Military Commission, Rome, Oct. 8-12, 1945) (under the law as
codified by the 1929 Convention there can be no legitimate reprisals against prisoners of war. No soldier, and still
less a Commanding General, can be heard to say that he considered the summary shooting of prisoners of war
legitimate even as a reprisal.); Winston Churchill, Prime Minster, United Kingdom, Oral Answers to Questions,
Oct. 13, 1942, HANSARD, 383 HOUSE OF COMMONS DEBATES 1501 (The Geneva Convention upon the treatment
of prisoners of war does not attempt to regulate what happens in the actual fighting. It is confined solely to the
treatment of prisoners who have been securely captured and are in the responsible charge of the hostile Government.
Both His Majestys Government and the German Government are bound by this Convention. The German
Government by throwing into chains 1,370 British prisoners of war for whose proper treatment they are responsible
have violated Article 2 of the aforesaid Convention. They are thus attempting to use prisoners of war as if they were
hostages upon whom reprisals can be taken for occurrences on the field of battle with which the said prisoners can
have had nothing to do. This action of the German Government affronts the sanctity of the Geneva Convention
which His Majestys Government have always been anxious to observe punctiliously.). Refer to 9.3.2 (Persons
Entitled to POW Status).
213
GC art. 33 (Reprisals against protected persons and their property are prohibited.). Refer to 10.3 (Protected
Person Status).
214
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 4(4) (They [High Contracting Parties] shall refrain from
any act directed by way of reprisals against cultural property.).
215
Refer to 5.18.1 (Definition of Cultural Property).
216
AP I art. 51(6) (Attacks against the civilian population or civilians by way of reprisals are prohibited.).
217
AP I art. 52 (1. Civilian objects shall not be the object of attack or of reprisals. Civilian objects are all objects
which are not military objectives as defined in paragraph 2.).
1097
the natural environment; 219 and
works and installations containing dangerous forces, namely dams, dykes, and nuclear
electrical generating systems. 220
The United States has expressed the view that AP Is provisions on reprisal are counter-
productive and that they remove a significant deterrent that protects civilians and war victims on
all sides of a conflict. 221 The United Kingdom has taken a reservation to AP Is prohibition on
certain attacks by way of reprisal. 222 Egypt, Germany, and Italy also reserved the right to react
to serious violations of AP I with any means permitted by international law to prevent further
violations. 223 France has declared that it will apply the provisions of paragraph 8 of Article 51
218
AP I art. 54 (2. objects indispensable to the survival of the civilian population, such as foodstuffs, agricultural
areas for the production of foodstuffs, crops, livestock, drinking water installations and supplies and irrigation
works 4. These objects shall not be made the object of reprisals.).
219
AP I art. 55(2) (Attacks against the natural environment by way of reprisals are prohibited.).
220
AP I art. 56(1) (Works or installations containing dangerous forces, namely dams, dykes and nuclear energy
generating stations, shall not be made the object of attack, even where these objects are military objectives, if such
attack may cause the release of dangerous forces and consequent severe losses among the civilian population.); AP
I art. 56(4) (It is prohibited to make any of the works, installations or military objects mentioned in paragraph 1 the
object of reprisals.).
221
The Position of the United States on Current Law of War Agreements: Remarks of Judge Abraham D. Sofaer,
Legal Adviser, United States Department of State, January 22, 1987, 2 AMERICAN UNIVERSITY JOURNAL OF
INTERNATIONAL LAW AND POLICY 460, 469 (1987) (To take another example, article 51 of Protocol I prohibits any
reprisal attacks against the civilian population, that is, attacks that would otherwise be forbidden but that are in
response to the enemy's own violations of the law and are intended to deter future violations. Historically,
reciprocity has been the major sanction underlying the laws of war. If article 51 were to come into force for the
United States, an enemy could deliberately carry out attacks against friendly civilian populations, and the United
States would be legally forbidden to reply in kind. As a practical matter, the United States might, for political or
humanitarian reasons, decide in a particular case not to carry out retaliatory or reprisal attacks involving unfriendly
civilian populations. To formally renounce even the option of such attacks, however, removes a significant deterrent
that presently protects civilians and other war victims on all sides of a conflict.).
222
United Kingdom, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Jan. 28, 1998, 2020 UNTS 75, 77-78 ((m) Re: Articles 51-
55 The obligations of Article 51 and 55 are accepted on the basis that any adverse party against which the United
Kingdom might be engaged will itself scrupulously observe those obligations. If an adverse party makes serious and
deliberate attacks, in violation of Article 51 or Article 52 against the civilian population or civilians or against
civilian objects, or, in violation of Articles 53, 54 and 55, on objects or items protected by those articles, the United
Kingdom will regard itself as entitled to take measures otherwise prohibited by the Articles in question to the extent
that it considers such measures necessary for the sole purpose of compelling the adverse party to cease committing
violations under those Articles, but only after formal warning to the adverse party requiring cessation of the
violations has been disregarded and then only after a decision taken at the highest level of government. Any
measures thus taken by the United Kingdom will not be disproportionate to the violations giving rise thereto and
will not involve any action prohibited by the Geneva Conventions of 1949, nor will such measures be continued
after the violations have ceased. The United Kingdom will notify the Protecting Powers of any such formal warning
given to an adverse party, and if that warning has been disregarded, of any measures taken as a result.).
223
Egypt, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Oct. 9, 1992, 1712 UNTS 435, 439 (The Arab Republic of Egypt,
while declaring its commitment to respecting all the provisions of Protocols Additional I and II, wishes to
emphasize, on the basis of reciprocity, that it upholds the right to react against any violation by any party of the
obligations imposed by Protocols Additional I and II with all means admissible under international law in order to
prevent any further violation.); Germany, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Feb. 14, 1991, 1607 UNTS 526, 529
(The Federal Republic of Germany will react against serious and systematic violations of the obligations imposed
1098
insofar as their interpretation does not constitute an obstacle to the use, according to international
law, of the means which it considers indispensable for the protection of its civilian population
against grave, clear and deliberate violations of the 1949 Geneva Conventions and of AP I by the
enemy. 224
18.18.4 Practical Considerations in the Use of Reprisals. Apart from the strict legal
requirements for the resort to reprisal, it will be important to consider the potential practical
consequences of the use of reprisals that may counsel strongly against taking such measures.
Practical considerations, including longer-term military or political consequences, may include
the following factors:
Taking reprisals may divert valuable and scarce military resources from the military
struggle and may not be as effective militarily as steady adherence to the law.
Reprisals will usually have an adverse impact on the attitudes of governments not
participating in the conflict.
by Additional Protocol I and in particular its Articles 51 and 52 with all means admissible under international law in
order to prevent any further violation.); Italy, Statement on Ratification of AP I, Feb. 27, 1986, 1425 UNTS 438,
440 (Italy will react to serious and systematic violations by an enemy of the obligations imposed by Additional
Protocol I and in particular its Articles 51 and 52 with all means admissible under international law in order to
prevent any further violation.).
224
France, Statement on Ratification of AP I, translated in SCHINDLER & TOMAN, THE LAWS OF ARMED CONFLICTS:
A COLLECTION OF CONVENTIONS, RESOLUTIONS, AND OTHER DOCUMENTS 800, 801 (2004) (The Government of
the French Republic declares that it will apply the provisions of paragraph 8 of Article 51 insofar as their
interpretation does not constitute an obstacle to the use, according to international law, of the means which it
considers indispensable for the protection of its civilian population against grave, clear and deliberate violations of
the Geneva Conventions and of the Protocol by the enemy.).
225
1976 AIR FORCE PAMPHLET 110-31 10-7d (In addition to the legal requirements which regulate resort to
reprisals, there are various practical factors which governments will consider before taking reprisals. The relative
importance of these factors depends upon the degree and kind of armed conflict, the character of the adversary and
its resources, and the importance of states not participating in hostilities. These considerations including the
following: (1) Taking reprisals may divert valuable and scarce military resources from the military struggle and
may not be as effective militarily as steady adherence to the law. (2) Reprisals will usually have an adverse impact
on the attitudes of governments not participating in the conflict. (3) Reprisals may only strengthen enemy morale
and will to resist. (4) Reprisals frequently lead only to further unwanted escalation of the conflict by an adversary.
Accordingly, an adversarys ability to retaliate is an important factor. (5) Reprisals may render resources of an
adversary less able to contribute to the rehabilitation of an area after the cessation of hostilities. (6) The threat of
reprisals is usually more effective than their actual use. (7) Reprisals, to be effective, should be carried out speedily
and must be kept under control. They will be ineffective if random, excessive or prolonged. (8) In any event, the
decision to employ reprisals would be reached only as a matter of specific national policy. The immediate
1099
18.19 DISCIPLINE IN NATIONAL JURISDICTIONS OF INDIVIDUALS FOR VIOLATIONS OF THE LAW OF
WAR
In most cases, individuals are disciplined in national jurisdictions for violations of the law
of war. Corrective action may take the form of adverse or corrective administrative actions.
Punishment may take the form of non-judicial punishment or judicial actions in military or
civilian courts, depending on the circumstances. In some cases, prosecutions in national courts
are carried out by charging violations of domestic law, but in other cases, prosecutions are
carried out by charging violations of international law.
The United States has no international law obligation to prosecute an offense as a war
crime as opposed to an ordinary criminal offense.
advantage sought, which is to stop current and deter future violations of the law by an adversary, must be weighed
against the long range military and political consequences.).
226
10 U.S.C. 815.
227
See, e.g., MARINE CORPS ORDER P1900.16F, Change 2, Marine Corps Separation and Retirement Manual (Jun.
6, 2007) (providing general and specific bases, and procedures for involuntary administrative separations);
DEPARTMENT OF THE NAVY JUDGE ADVOCATE GENERAL INSTRUCTION 5800.7F, Manual of the Judge Advocate
General, 0102-0105 (Jun. 26, 2012) (providing regulations for non-punitive administrative measures).
228
Refer to 18.19.3.8 (War Crimes Act).
1100
members of a States armed forces or other personnel violate the law of war, that State generally
prosecutes those persons for offenses under ordinary domestic law or military law. 229
18.19.3 U.S. Law That Can Be Used to Punish Violations of the Law of War. A number
of U.S. statutes may be used to punish acts that constitute violations of the law of war. When
violations of the law of war are committed within the United States, such acts usually constitute
violations of Federal and State law and generally may be prosecuted under ordinary criminal
statutes. However, a number of other Federal statutes may be used to prosecute conduct that
violates the law of war, even though that conduct does not occur within the United States. The
application of any particular statute depends on the terms of that statute and the facts of a
particular case.
18.19.3.1 Uniform Code of Military Justice Offenses. The principal way for the
United States to punish members of the U.S. armed forces for violations of the law of war is
through the Uniform Code of Military Justice.
Certain persons may be tried for violations of the Uniform Code of Military Justice,
including, among others:
individuals belonging to one of the eight categories enumerated in Article 4 of the GPW
who violate the law of war. 230
229
For example, GARY SOLIS, MARINES AND MILITARY LAW IN VIETNAM: TRIAL BY FIRE 32-33 (1989) (No
Marine was charged with the commission of a war crime, as such, in Vietnam. Rather, any violation of the law of
war committed by a Marine against a Vietnamese was charged as a violation of the UCMJ. For example, the
murder of a civilian noncombatant was charged as a violation of Article 118, murder, rather than as a war crime in
violation of the Geneva or Hague conventions.); 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 507b (The United States
normally punishes war crimes as such only if they are committed by enemy nationals or by persons serving the
interests of the enemy State. Violations of the law of war committed by persons subject to the military law of the
United States will usually constitute violations of the Uniform Code of Military Justice and, if so, will be prosecuted
under that Code. Violations of the law of war committed within the United States by other persons will usually
constitute violations of federal or state criminal law and preferably will be prosecuted under such law (see pars. 505
and 506).); The Public Commission to Examine the Maritime Incident of 31 May 2010, et. al (The Turkel
Commission), Second Report, Israels Mechanisms for Examining and Investigating Complaints and Claims of
Violations of the Laws of Armed Conflict According to International Law, 171 (Feb. 2013) (As in the US, the
charging practice in Canada appears to be to prosecute violations of the law of armed conflict by members of the
armed forces as general criminal law offenses or military offenses under the Code of Service Discipline, rather than
as specific offenses relating to the law of armed conflict.). Compare 18.7.3 (Enforcement of Law of War
Obligations Through Military Instructions, Regulations, and Procedures).
230
10 U.S.C. 802 ((a) The following persons are subject to this chapter: (1) Members of a regular component of
the armed forces, including those awaiting discharge after expiration of their terms of enlistment; volunteers from
the time of their muster or acceptance into the armed forces; inductees from the time of their actual induction into
1101
Offenses under the Uniform Code of Military Justice that may be used to punish conduct
that constitutes a violation of the law of war include, among others:
murder; 232
the armed forces; and other persons lawfully called or ordered into, or to duty in or for training in, the armed forces,
from the dates when they are required by the terms of the call or order to obey it. (9) Prisoners of war in custody
of the armed forces. (10) In time of declared war or a contingency operation, persons serving with or accompanying
an armed force in the field. (13) Individuals belonging to one of the eight categories enumerated in Article 4 of
the Convention Relative to the Treatment of Prisoners of War, done at Geneva August 12, 1949 (6 UST 3316), who
violate the law of war.).
231
10 U.S.C. 893 (Any person subject to this chapter who is guilty of cruelty toward, or oppression or
maltreatment of, any person subject to his orders shall be punished as a court-martial may direct.).
232
10 U.S.C. 918.
233
10 U.S.C. 920.
234
See 10 U.S.C. 892 (Any person subject to this chapter who(1) violates or fails to obey any lawful general
order or regulation; (2) having knowledge of any other lawful order issued by a member of the armed forces, which
it is his duty to obey, fails to obey the order; or (3) is derelict in the performance of his duties; shall be punished as a
court-martial may direct.); 10 U.S.C. 890 (Any person subject to this chapter who (2) willfully disobeys a
lawful command of his superior commissioned officer; shall be punished, if the offense is committed in time of war,
by death or such other punishment as a court-martial may direct, and if the offense is committed at any other time,
by such punishment, other than death, as a court-martial may direct.).
235
10 U.S.C. 934 (Though not specifically mentioned in this chapter, all disorders and neglects to the prejudice of
good order and discipline in the armed forces, all conduct of a nature to bring discredit upon the armed forces, and
crimes and offenses not capital, of which persons subject to this chapter may be guilty, shall be taken cognizance of
by a general, special, or summary court-martial, according to the nature and degree of the offense, and shall be
punished at the discretion of that court.).
236
10 U.S.C. 934 (Though not specifically mentioned in this chapter, all disorders and neglects to the prejudice of
good order and discipline in the armed forces, all conduct of a nature to bring discredit upon the armed forces, and
crimes and offenses not capital, of which persons subject to this chapter may be guilty, shall be taken cognizance of
by a general, special, or summary court-martial, according to the nature and degree of the offense, and shall be
punished at the discretion of that court.).
1102
This provision may also be used to prosecute conduct that violates the law of war.
However, the preemption doctrine prohibits application of this provision to conduct already
covered by specific offenses in the Uniform Code of Military Justice. 237
18.19.3.4 Title 18 Federal Crimes Punishing Conduct Outside the United States.
Certain Federal statutes specify that they apply to conduct outside the United States and could be
used to prosecute conduct that, in some circumstances, would constitute a violation of the law of
war. These statutes may specify in detail the circumstances in which they authorize prosecution,
which may vary from statute to statute.
torture; 239
genocide; 240
piracy; 242
237
MANUAL FOR COURTS-MARTIAL IV-102 (60.c.(5)(a)) (2012) (The preemption doctrine prohibits application of
Article 134 to conduct covered by Articles 80 through 132. For example, larceny is covered in Article 121, and if an
element of that offense is lackingfor example, intent there can be no larceny or larceny-type offense, either
under Article 121 or, because of preemption, under Article 134. Article 134 cannot be used to create a new kind of
larceny offense, one without the required intent, where Congress has already set the minimum requirements for such
an offense in Article 121.).
238
10 U.S.C. 818 (General courts-martial also have jurisdiction to try any person who by the law of war is subject
to trial by a military tribunal and may adjudge any punishment permitted by the law of war.).
239
See 18 U.S.C. 2340A(a) (Whoever outside the United States commits or attempts to commit torture shall be
fined under this title or imprisoned not more than 20 years, or both, and if death results to any person from conduct
prohibited by this subsection, shall be punished by death or imprisoned for any term of years or for life.).
240
18 U.S.C. 1091.
241
18 U.S.C. 1116.
242
18 U.S.C. 1651 (Whoever, on the high seas, commits the crime of piracy as defined by the law of nations, and
is afterwards brought into or found in the United States, shall be imprisoned for life.).
243
18 U.S.C. 2332b, 2339A, 2339B.
1103
certain acts involving biological weapons; 244
U.S. law, under the Military Extraterritorial Jurisdiction Act (MEJA), permits the United
States to prosecute individuals who committed certain offenses outside the United States (i)
while employed by or accompanying the U.S. armed forces overseas; or (ii) while a member of
the U.S. armed forces subject to the Uniform Code of Military Justice. 247 MEJA cannot be used
against a member of the Armed Forces who is subject to the Uniform Code of Military Justice
unless (i) such member ceases to be subject to the Uniform Code of Military Justice; or (ii) an
indictment or information charges that the member committed the offense with one or more other
defendants, at least one of whom is not subject to the Uniform Code of Military Justice. 248
Provisions of MEJA have been implemented through DoD regulations. 249
Among other things, MEJA provides a way for U.S. domestic law to be used to punish
conduct that violates the law of war. For example, under MEJA, a former service member could
be prosecuted for a murder committed while a member of the armed forces during armed conflict
244
18 U.S.C. 175.
245
18 U.S.C. 229.
246
18 U.S.C. 831.
247
18 U.S.C. 3261(a) (Whoever engages in conduct outside the United States that would constitute an offense
punishable by imprisonment for more than 1 year if the conduct had been engaged in within the special maritime
and territorial jurisdiction of the United States(1) while employed by or accompanying the Armed Forces outside
the United States; or (2) while a member of the Armed Forces subject to chapter 47 of title 10 (the Uniform Code of
Military Justice), shall be punished as provided for that offense.).
248
18 U.S.C. 3261(d) (No prosecution may be commenced against a member of the Armed Forces subject to
chapter 47 of title 10 (the Uniform Code of Military Justice) under this section unless(1) such member ceases to
be subject to such chapter; or (2) an indictment or information charges that the member committed the offense with
one or more other defendants, at least one of whom is not subject to such chapter.).
249
DOD INSTRUCTION 5525.11, Criminal Jurisdiction Over Civilians Employed By or Accompanying the Armed
Forces Outside the United States, Certain Service Members, and Former Service Members, 2.5 (Mar. 3, 2005)
(This Instruction: 1.1. Implements policies and procedures, and assigns responsibilities, under the Military
Extraterritorial Jurisdiction Act of 2000, as amended by Section 1088 of the Ronald W. Reagan National Defense
Authorization Act for Fiscal Year 2005 (reference (a)) (hereinafter the Act) for exercising extraterritorial
criminal jurisdiction over certain current and former members of the U.S. Armed Forces, and over civilians
employed by or accompanying the U.S. Armed Forces outside the United States. 1.2. Implements Section 3266 of
the Act.).
1104
abroad, even though Uniform Code of Military Justice jurisdiction over that person has
ceased. 250
250
See, e.g., United States v. Green, 654 F.3d 637, 640-41 (6th Cir. 2011) (Steven D. Green was convicted and
sentenced to life in prison for participating in a sexual assault and multiple murders while stationed in Iraq as an
infantryman in the United States Army. Before senior Army officials became aware that Green and three fellow
servicemembers were involved in these crimes, Green was discharged due to a personality disorder. When officials
discovered Greens involvement in the crimes, his three coconspirators were still on active duty in the Army and
thus subject to the Uniform Code of Military Justice. They were tried by courts-martial and each sentenced to
between 90 and 110 years imprisonment, which rendered them eligible for parole in ten years. However, the Army
had no authority to court-martial Green because he had already been discharged. Thus, civilian prosecutors charged
Green under the Military Extraterritorial Jurisdiction Act, which extends federal criminal jurisdiction to persons who
commit criminal acts while a member of the Armed Forces but later cease to be subject to military jurisdiction. A
federal court jury convicted Green of a number of crimes, including murder and sexual assault, and the district court
sentenced him to five consecutive life sentences.).
251
See, e.g., 18 U.S.C. 1111 ((b) Within the special maritime and territorial jurisdiction of the United States,
Whoever is guilty of murder in the first degree shall be punished by death or by imprisonment for life; Whoever is
guilty of murder in the second degree, shall be imprisoned for any term of years or for life.).
252
18 U.S.C. 7 (The term special maritime and territorial jurisdiction of the United States, as used in this title,
includes: (9) With respect to offenses committed by or against a national of the United States as that term is used
in section 101 of the Immigration and Nationality Act(A) the premises of United States diplomatic, consular,
military or other United States Government missions or entities in foreign States, including the buildings, parts of
buildings, and land appurtenant or ancillary thereto or used for purposes of those missions or entities, irrespective of
ownership;).
253
See, e.g., United States v. Passaro, 577 F.3d 207, 210-12 (4th Cir. 2009) (This case arises from the conviction in
a United States federal court of an American citizen for the brutal assault on an Afghan national in Afghanistan. A
jury in the Eastern District of North Carolina found David A. Passaro, a Central Intelligence Agency civilian
contractor, guilty of assault on Abdul Wali. The assault occurred in 2003 at Asadabad Firebase, a United States
Army outpost in Afghanistan. The Government predicated federal criminal jurisdiction in this case on the special
maritime and territorial jurisdiction statute.).
254
10 U.S.C. 948c (Any alien unprivileged enemy belligerent is subject to trial by military commission as set
forth in this chapter.).
255
DEPARTMENT OF DEFENSE, Manual for Military Commissions (Aug. 14, 2012); DEPARTMENT OF DEFENSE,
Manual for Military Commissions (Apr. 27, 2010).
1105
In the past, military commissions have been used by the United States and other States to
prosecute enemy belligerents for violations of the law of war and for acts of unprivileged
belligerency. Military commissions have also been used for the trial of offenses under U.S. law
where local courts were not open and acting (i.e., where martial law applies), and for the trial of
violations of occupation ordinances. These military commissions have been regarded as
instrumentalities for the more efficient execution of the war powers vested in Congress and the
power vested in the President as Commander-in-chief in war. 256 Military commissions have
been used instead of courts-martial because U.S. courts-martial have been adapted to the
circumstances of disciplining members of the armed forces and have not been crafted with a
view towards certain other offenses that are also committed during armed conflict. 257
18.19.3.8 War Crimes Act. The War Crimes Act authorizes the prosecution of
individuals for certain war crimes if the victim or the perpetrator is either a U.S. national or a
256
WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW & PRECEDENTS 839 (But, in general, it is those provisions of the Constitution which
empower Congress to declare war and raise armies, and which, in authorizing the initiation of war, authorize the
employment of all necessary and proper agencies for its due prosecution, from which this tribunal derives its
original sanction. Its authority is thus the same as the authority for the making and waging of war and for the
exercise of military government and martial law. The commission is simply an instrumentality for the more
efficient execution of the war powers vested in Congress and the power vested in the President as Commander-in-
chief in war.).
257
WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW & PRECEDENTS 839 (The occasion for the military commission arises principally
from the fact that the jurisdiction of the court-martial proper, in our law, is restricted by statute almost exclusively to
members of the military force and to certain specific offences defined in a written code. It does not extend to many
criminal acts, especially of civilians, peculiar to time of war; and for the trial of these a different tribunal is required.
A commander indeed, where authorized to constitute a purely war-court, may designate it by any convenient name;
he may style it a court-martial, and, though not a court-martial proper, it will still be a legal body under the laws of
war. But to employ the same name for the two kinds of court could scarcely but result in confusion and in questions
as to jurisdiction and power of punishment.).
258
Eric Holder, Attorney General, Remarks at Northwestern University School of Law, Mar. 5, 2012, 2012 DIGEST
OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 577, 579-80 (Military commissions are also appropriate in
proper circumstances, and we can use them as well to convict terrorists and disrupt their plots. Its important to
note that the reformed commissions draw from the same fundamental protections of a fair trial that underlie our
civilian courts. They provide a presumption of innocence and require proof of guilt beyond a reasonable doubt.
They afford the accused the right to counsel as well as the right to present evidence and cross-examine witnesses.
They prohibit the use of statements obtained through torture or cruel, inhuman, or degrading treatment. And they
secure the right to appeal to Article III judges all the way to the United States Supreme Court. In addition, like our
federal civilian courts, reformed commissions allow for the protection of sensitive sources and methods of
intelligence gathering, and for the safety and security of participants. A key difference is that, in military
commissions, evidentiary rules reflect the realities of the battlefield and of conducting investigations in a war zone.
For example, statements may be admissible even in the absence of Miranda warnings, because we cannot expect
military personnel to administer warnings to an enemy captured in battle. But instead, a military judge must make
other findings for instance, that the statement is reliable and that it was made voluntarily.).
1106
member of the U.S. Armed Forces, whether inside or outside the United States. 259 Under this
statute, an individual may be prosecuted for conduct:
defined as a grave breach in any of the 1949 Geneva Conventions, or any protocol to
such convention to which the United States is a Party;
prohibited by Article 23, 25, 27, or 28 of the Annex to the Hague Convention IV,
Respecting the Laws and Customs of War on Land, signed 18 October 1907;
that constitutes a grave breach of common Article 3 (as defined in the statute) when
committed in the context of and in association with an armed conflict not of an
international character; or
of a person who, in relation to an armed conflict and contrary to the provisions of the
CCW Amended Mines Protocol, when the United States is a Party to such Protocol,
willfully kills or causes serious injury to civilians. 260
18.19.4.1 Limits on Military Jurisdiction Over U.S. Citizens Who Are Not
Members of the Armed Forces. As a matter of U.S. domestic law, the U.S. Constitution places
certain limits on the use of military tribunals to punish U.S. citizens who are not members of the
armed forces. 261 DoD policy addresses the use of the Uniform Code of Military Justice to try
civilians serving with or accompanying the U.S. armed forces. 262 Such law and policy may
dictate the forum for prosecution. For example, a person who has been discharged from the U.S.
armed forces and is no longer subject to the Uniform Code of Military Justice would be
259
18 U.S.C. 2441 ((a) Offense. Whoever, whether inside or outside the United States, commits a war crime, in
any of the circumstances described in subsection (b), shall be fined under this title or imprisoned for life or any term
of years, or both, and if death results to the victim, shall also be subject to the penalty of death. (b)
Circumstances. The circumstances referred to in subsection (a) are that the person committing such war crime or
the victim of such war crime is a member of the Armed Forces of the United States or a national of the United States
(as defined in section 101 of the Immigration and Nationality Act).).
260
18 U.S.C. 2441(c) (c) Definition. As used in this section the term war crime means any conduct (1)
defined as a grave breach in any of the international conventions signed at Geneva 12 August 1949, or any protocol
to such convention to which the United States is a party; (2) prohibited by Article 23, 25, 27, or 28 of the Annex to
the Hague Convention IV, Respecting the Laws and Customs of War on Land, signed 18 October 1907; (3) which
constitutes a grave breach of common Article 3 (as defined in subsection (d)) when committed in the context of and
in association with an armed conflict not of an international character; or (4) of a person who, in relation to an armed
conflict and contrary to the provisions of the Protocol on Prohibitions or Restrictions on the Use of Mines, Booby-
Traps and Other Devices as amended at Geneva on 3 May 1996 (Protocol II as amended on 3 May 1996), when the
United States is a party to such Protocol, willfully kills or causes serious injury to civilians.).
261
See, e.g., Reid v. Covert, 354 U.S. 1 (1956); Toth v. Quarles. 350 U.S. 11 (1955); Duncan v. Kahanamoku, 327
U.S. 304 (1946); Ex parte Milligan, 71 U.S. 2 (1866).
262
See, e.g., Robert Gates, Secretary of Defense, Memorandum re: UCMJ Jurisdiction Over DoD Civilian
Employees, DoD Contractor Personnel, and Other Persons Serving With or Accompanying the Armed Forces
Overseas During Declared War and in Contingency Operations (Mar. 10, 2008 incorporating Change 1 Sept. 23,
2010).
1107
prosecuted under the MEJA or the War Crimes Act rather than the Uniform Code of Military
Justice.
In some cases, the prosecution of individuals for violations of the law of war has been
undertaken in international tribunals or hybrid tribunals that mix elements of national and
international law.
The jurisdiction and procedures of these tribunals vary from tribunal to tribunal, and may
depend on applicable treaties and customary international law. In general, the decisions of these
tribunals are not binding as precedent on the United States, including U.S. courts. 264 However,
in some cases, it may be appropriate to consider their decisions as persuasive authority.
18.20.1 Post-World War II International Military Tribunals. After World War II, the
United Kingdom, France, the United States, and the Union of Soviet Socialist Republics sought
to try the major European Axis war criminals. Established by the London Agreement of August
8, 1945, the International Military Tribunal at Nuremberg conducted the landmark Trial of Major
War Criminals, with 21 defendants, in Nuremberg, Germany from November 1945 - October
1946. 265 A similar tribunal was established in Tokyo by U.S. General MacArthur in his role as
Supreme Allied Commander to try major Japanese war criminals in the Far East. 266
263
For example, MANUAL FOR COURTS-MARTIAL II-10 (Discussion of R.C.M. 201(d)) (2012) (As a matter of
policy, efforts should be made to maximize the exercise of court-martial jurisdiction over persons subject to the code
to the extent possible under applicable agreements.). See also DOD DIRECTIVE 5525.1, DoD Status of Forces
Policy and Information, 3 (Aug. 7, 1979, Certified Current as of Nov. 21, 2003) (It is the policy of the Department
of Defense to protect, to the maximum extent possible, the rights of United States personnel who may be subject to
criminal trial by foreign courts and imprisonment in foreign prisons.).
264
See, e.g., 18 U.S.C. 2441 note (No foreign or international source of law shall supply a basis for a rule of
decision in the courts of the United States in interpreting the prohibitions enumerated in subsection (d) of such
section 2441.).
265
Agreement by the Government of the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Northern Ireland, the Government of
the United States of America, the Provisional Government of the French Republic and the Government of the Union
of Soviet Socialist Republics for the Prosecution and Punishment of the Major War Criminals of the European Axis,
art. 2, Aug. 8, 1945, 82 UNTS 280, 282 (The constitution, jurisdiction and functions of the International Military
Tribunal shall be those set out in the Charter annexed to this agreement, which Charter shall form an integral part of
this Agreement.).
266
See Douglas MacArthur, Supreme Commander for the Allied Powers, Special Proclamation: Establishment of
an International Military Tribunal for the Far East, Jan. 19, 1946, 4 BEVANS 20, 21 (Now, therefore, I, Douglas
MacArthur, as Supreme Commander for the Allied Powers, by virtue of the authority so conferred upon me, in order
to implement the Term of Surrender which requires the meting out of stern justice to war criminals, do order and
provide as follows: ARTICLE 1. There shall be established an International Military Tribunal for the Far East for the
1108
18.20.2 International Criminal Tribunal for the Former Yugoslavia (ICTY) and
International Criminal Tribunal for Rwanda (ICTR). The U.N. Security Council has used its
authority under Chapter VII of the Charter of the United Nations to establish international
criminal tribunals to prosecute persons responsible for serious violations of international
humanitarian law committed in the territory of the former Yugoslavia since 1991, and in the
territory of Rwanda, as well as Rwandan citizens responsible for genocide and other such
violations committed in the territory of neighboring States, between January 1, 1994, and
December 31, 1994. 267
The United States has, through its membership in the U.N. Security Council, supported
both the efforts of the ICTR and (also acting through NATO) the efforts of the ICTY. 268
18.20.3 The International Criminal Court (ICC) Created by the Rome Statute. The Rome
Statute of the ICC established the ICC, which sits in The Hague in the Netherlands. 269 The
United States is not a Party to the Rome Statute.
The Rome Statute provides that the ICC shall have the power to exercise its jurisdiction
over persons for the most serious crimes of international concern and shall be complementary
to national criminal jurisdictions. 270 The Rome Statute provides that the ICC has jurisdiction in
accordance with the Statute with respect to: 271
trial of those persons charged individually, or as members of organizations, or in both capacities, with offenses
which include crimes against peace.).
267
Refer to 18.12.4 (Authorizing International Criminal Tribunals).
268
For example, since the mid-1990s, as part of NATOs Operation JOINT ENDEAVOR, Operation JOINT
GUARD and Operation JOINT FORGE, and as part of NATOs support to the European Unions Operation
ALTHEA, the United States has conducted operations to apprehend, transfer, and support the prosecution of Persons
Indicted for War Crimes (PIFWC) in the ICTY.
269
Refer to 19.23 (Rome Statute of the International Criminal Court).
270
ROME STATUTE art. 1 (An International Criminal Court (the Court) is hereby established. It shall be a
permanent institution and shall have the power to exercise its jurisdiction over persons for the most serious crimes of
international concern, as referred to in this Statute, and shall be complementary to national criminal jurisdictions.
The jurisdiction and functioning of the Court shall be governed by the provisions of this Statute.).
271
ROME STATUTE art. 5 (The jurisdiction of the Court shall be limited to the most serious crimes of concern to the
international community as a whole. The Court has jurisdiction in accordance with this Statute with respect to the
following crimes: (a) The crime of genocide; (b) Crimes against humanity; (c) War crimes; (d) The crime of
aggression.).
1109
18.20.3.1 Attempt to Assert Jurisdiction With Respect to Nationals of Non-Party
States. The ICC may exercise jurisdiction if a situation has been referred to it by the U.N.
Security Council acting under Chapter VII of the Charter of the United Nations. 272 The Rome
Statute also provides that the ICC may exercise its jurisdiction if one or more of the following
States are Parties to the Rome Statute or have accepted the jurisdiction of the ICC on an ad hoc
basis:
the State on the territory of which the conduct in question occurred or, if the crime was
committed on board a vessel or aircraft, the State of registration of that vessel or aircraft;
or
the State of which the person accused of the crime is a national. 273
The first of these provisions creates the possibility that the ICC would seek to exercise
jurisdiction with respect to the actions of nationals of States that have not ratified the Rome
Statute, even if the U.N. Security Council has not referred the situation. The United States has a
longstanding and continuing objection to any assertion of jurisdiction by the ICC with respect to
nationals of States not Party to the Rome Statute in the absence of consent from such States or a
referral by the Security Council. 274
18.20.3.2 Article 98 Agreements. The Rome Statute provides that the ICC may
not proceed with a request for surrender or assistance that would require the requested State to
act inconsistently with its obligations under international law with respect to the State or
diplomatic immunity of a person or property of a third State, unless the Court can first obtain the
cooperation of that third State for the waiver of the immunity. 275 The Rome Statute also
272
Refer to 18.12.4 (Authorizing International Criminal Tribunals).
273
ROME STATUTE art. 12 (In the case of article 13, paragraph (a) or (c), the Court may exercise its jurisdiction if
one or more of the following States are Parties to this Statute or have accepted the jurisdiction of the Court in
accordance with paragraph 3: (a) The State on the territory of which the conduct in question occurred or, if the
crime was committed on board a vessel or aircraft, the State of registration of that vessel or aircraft; (b) The State of
which the person accused of the crime is a national.).
274
See, e.g., 22 U.S.C. 7421(11) (It is a fundamental principle of international law that a treaty is binding upon its
parties only and that it does not create obligations for nonparties without their consent to be bound. The United
States is not a party to the Rome Statute and will not be bound by any of its terms. The United States will not
recognize the jurisdiction of the International Criminal Court over United States nationals.); William J. Clinton,
Statement on the Rome Treaty on the International Criminal Court, Dec. 31, 2000, 2000-III PUBLIC PAPERS OF THE
PRESIDENTS 2816 (In particular, we are concerned that when the court comes into existence, it will not only
exercise authority over personnel of states that have ratified the treaty, but also claim jurisdiction over personnel of
states that have not.). Cf. Extracts from Comments by Governments on the Draft Convention on Genocide
Prepared by the Secretary-General, reprinted in U.N. SECRETARY-GENERAL, Historical Survey of the Question of
International Criminal Jurisdiction, U.N. Doc. A/CN.4/7/Rev.1, 137 (1949) (1. United States of America This
article contains a broad jurisdictional provision. A third reason for opposing the provision is that it would
apparently seek to establish a rule of law applicable to nationals of States which have not consented to it, namely,
such States as may not ratify the Convention.).
275
ROME STATUTE art. 98(1) (The Court may not proceed with a request for surrender or assistance which would
require the requested State to act inconsistently with its obligations under international law with respect to the State
or diplomatic immunity of a person or property of a third State, unless the Court can first obtain the cooperation of
that third State for the waiver of the immunity.).
1110
provides that the ICC may not proceed with a request for surrender that would require the
requested State to act inconsistently with its obligations under international agreements pursuant
to which the consent of a sending State is required to surrender a person of that State to the ICC,
unless the ICC can first obtain the cooperation of the sending State for the giving of consent for
the surrender. 276
The United States has entered into agreements with numerous States, including Parties to
the Rome Statute, that require U.S. consent before U.S. personnel may be surrendered by that
State to the ICC. 277
18.20.3.3 U.S. Law and Policy on Support to the ICC. U.S. law contains certain
restrictions on support to the ICC or ICC activities within the United States. 278 U.S. policy is to
work with the international community to prevent and call to account those responsible for the
worst human rights abuses, including through support to the International Criminal Court,
consistent with U.S. law and our commitment to protecting our personnel. 279
18.20.3.4 ICC and the Crime of Aggression. As adopted in 1998, the Rome
Statute does not define the crime of aggression, but provides that the ICC shall exercise
jurisdiction over the crime of aggression once a provision is adopted in accordance with articles
276
ROME STATUTE art. 98(2) (The Court may not proceed with a request for surrender which would require the
requested State to act inconsistently with its obligations under international agreements pursuant to which the
consent of a sending State is required to surrender a person of that State to the Court, unless the Court can first
obtain the cooperation of the sending State for the giving of consent for the surrender.).
277
Such agreements have been cited in certifications required under U.S. law before U.S. personnel are authorized to
participate in certain U.N. peacekeeping and peace enforcement operations. For example, Barack Obama,
Certification Concerning U.S. Participation in the United Nations Multidimensional Integrated Stabilization
Mission in Mali Consistent with Section 2005 of the American Servicemembers Protection Act, Jan. 31, 2014, 79
FEDERAL REGISTER 8079 (Feb. 10, 2014) (By the authority vested in me as President by the Constitution and the
laws of the United States of America, and consistent with section 2005 of the American Servicemembers Protection
Act of 2002 (22 U.S.C. 7424), concerning the participation of members of the Armed Forces of the United States in
certain United Nations peacekeeping and peace enforcement operations, I hereby certify that members of the U.S.
Armed Forces participating in the United Nations Multidimensional Integrated Stabilization Mission in Mali are
without risk of criminal prosecution or other assertion of jurisdiction by the International Criminal Court (ICC)
because the Republic of Mali has entered into an agreement in accordance with Article 98 of the Rome Statute
preventing the ICC from proceeding against members of the Armed Forces of the United States present in that
country.).
278
See, e.g., 22 U.S.C. 7421-7433; 22 U.S.C. 7401(b).
279
Barak Obama, National Security Strategy of the United States, 22 (Feb. 2015) (We will work with the
international community to prevent and call to account those responsible for the worst human rights abuses,
including through support to the International Criminal Court, consistent with U.S. law and our commitment to
protecting our personnel.); Barak Obama, National Security Strategy of the United States, 48 (May 2010)
(Although the United States is not at present a party to the Rome Statute of the International Criminal Court (ICC),
and will always protect U.S. personnel, we are engaging with State Parties to the Rome Statute on issues of concern
and are supporting the ICCs prosecution of those cases that advance U.S. interests and values, consistent with the
requirements of U.S. law.); Harold Hongju Koh, Legal Adviser, Department of State, Remarks on international
criminal justice at the Vera Institute of Justice in New York and at Leiden University, Campus The Hague, 2012
DIGEST OF UNITED STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 61, 67 (So, while the United States will always
protect U.S. personnel, we are engaging with States parties to the Rome Statute on issues of concern, and we have
applied a pragmatic, case-by-case approach towards ICC issues.).
1111
121 and 123 of the Rome Statute defining the crime and setting out the conditions under which
the ICC shall exercise jurisdiction with respect to this crime. 280 A 2010 Review Conference in
Kampala, Uganda adopted amendments concerning the crime of aggression, but the amendments
are subject to ratification or acceptance, 281 and certain conditions must be fulfilled before the
ICC will be able to exercise jurisdiction with respect to the crime of aggression. 282 The United
States has expressed the view that the definitions of act of aggression and crime of
aggression in the Kampala amendments do not reflect customary international law. 283 The
United States has expressed a broad range of other concerns about the Kampala amendments,
including concerns regarding the possibility of the ICC exercising jurisdiction over the crime of
aggression without a prior determination by the Security Council that a State has committed an
act of aggression. 284
18.20.4 Hybrid or Mixed Tribunals. In some cases, an international tribunal may mix
elements of domestic and international law. For example, war crimes trials by national tribunals
were conducted after World War II under the military government formed by the Allies to
govern occupied Germany. 285
280
ROME STATUTE art. 5(2) (The Court shall exercise jurisdiction over the crime of aggression once a provision is
adopted in accordance with articles 121 and 123 defining the crime and setting out the conditions under which the
Court shall exercise jurisdiction with respect to this crime. Such a provision shall be consistent with the relevant
provisions of the Charter of the United Nations.).
281
See Resolution RC/Res.6, Review Conference of the Rome Statute of the International Criminal Court, Kampala,
Uganda, Jun. 11, 2010 (1. Decides to adopt, in accordance with article 5, paragraph 2, of the Rome Statute of the
International Criminal Court (hereinafter: the Statute) the amendments to the Statute contained in annex I of the
present resolution, which are subject to ratification or acceptance and shall enter into force in accordance with article
121, paragraph 5; and notes that any State Party may lodge a declaration referred to in article 15 bis prior to
ratification or acceptance;).
282
See, e.g., Article 15 bis, Amendments to the Rome Statute of the International Criminal Court on the Crime of
Aggression, Annex I to Resolution RC/Res.6, Review Conference of the Rome Statute of the International Criminal
Court, Kampala, Uganda, Jun. 11, 2010 (2. The Court may exercise jurisdiction only with respect to crimes of
aggression committed one year after the ratification or acceptance of the amendments by thirty States Parties. 3.
The Court shall exercise jurisdiction over the crime of aggression in accordance with this article, subject to a
decision to be taken after 1 January 2017 by the same majority of States Parties as is required for the adoption of an
amendment to the Statute.).
283
Harold Hongju Koh, Legal Adviser, Department of State, Statement at the Review Conference of the
International Criminal Court, Jun. 4, 2010 ([T]he definition of aggression does not truly reflect customary
international law, i.e., widespread and consistent state practice followed out of a sense of legal obligation.).
284
Sarah Sewall, Under Secretary for Civilian Security, Democracy, and Human Rights, Remarks at the Annual
Meeting of the American Society of International Law: The ICC Crime of Aggression and the Changing
International Security Landscape, Apr. 9, 2015 (Many of our concerns and many of the means of mitigating them
are linked to the uncertainty that still surrounds crucial aspects of the amendments and how they may be
interpreted and applied. The definition of the crime itself, as adopted in Kampala, was ostensibly based on an earlier
UN resolution that gave guidance to the Security Council on identifying acts of aggression. But the definition that
the parties adopted stripped away the critical requirement that the assessment of a use of force must be considered
in light of all the circumstances of each particular case, and it shifted the role of applying this guidance and making
these judgments which inevitably involve political judgments from the Security Council to a judicial body meant
to remain above politics.).
285
See generally DEPARTMENT OF THE ARMY PAMPHLET 27-161-2, II International Law, 224-33 (Oct. 23, 1962).
1112
More recently, hybrid tribunals have been established in Sierra Leone, Cambodia, and
Lebanon. The Special Court for Sierra Leone was established by a treaty between Sierra Leone
and the United Nations. 286 The Special Court applies both international and Sierra Leonean
law. 287 Similarly, in Cambodia, the Extraordinary Chambers in the Courts of Cambodia (ECCC)
was established under Cambodian domestic law, but regulated by an agreement between
Cambodia and the United Nations. 288 The Special Tribunal for Lebanon was established
following an agreement between the United Nations and Lebanon to prosecute, inter alia,
persons responsible for the February 2005 attack resulting in the death of former Lebanese Prime
Minister Rafiq Hariri. 289
International law places certain limits on the authority of States, whether acting
individually, or together with other States, to punish individuals for violations committed during
armed conflict.
286
See Agreement between the United Nations and the Government of Sierra Leone on the Establishment of a
Special Court for Sierra Leone, in Appendix II to Letter dated 6 March 2002 from the Secretary-General addressed
to the President of the Security Council, U.N. Doc S/2002/246, 17 (Mar. 8, 2002). See also U.N. SECURITY
COUNCIL RESOLUTION 1315, U.N. Doc S/RES/1315 (Aug. 14, 2000) (Requests the Secretary-General to negotiate
an agreement with the Government of Sierra Leone to create an independent special court consistent with this
resolution,).
287
Statute of the Special Court for Sierra Leone, art. 1(1) Attachment to Agreement between the United Nations and
the Government of Sierra Leone on the Establishment of a Special Court for Sierra Leone, in Appendix II to Letter
dated 6 March 2002 from the Secretary-General addressed to the President of the Security Council, U.N. Doc
S/2002/246, 17 (Mar. 8, 2002) (There is hereby established a Special Court for Sierra Leone to prosecute persons
who bear the greatest responsibility for serious violations of international humanitarian law and Sierra Leonean law
committed in the territory of Sierra Leone since 30 November 1996.).
288
See Harold Hongju Koh, Legal Adviser, Department of State, Remarks on international criminal justice at the
Vera Institute of Justice in New York and at Leiden University, Campus The Hague, 2012 DIGEST OF UNITED
STATES PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 61, 66 (Similarly, in Cambodia, the international community worked
long and hard with domestic authorities to pursue accountability for atrocity crimes that took place decades ago.
The Khmer Rouge Tribunal formally, the Extraordinary Chambers in the Courts of Cambodia (ECCC) was a
different type of hybrid, established under domestic law but regulated by a UN-Cambodia agreement.). See also
U.N. GENERAL ASSEMBLY, Report of the Secretary-General on Khmer Rouge trials, U.N. Doc A/60/565 (Nov. 25,
2005) (On 28 April 2005 a notification was sent to the Government of Cambodia indicating that the legal
requirements on the United Nations side for the entry into force of the Agreement between the United Nations and
the Royal Government of Cambodia concerning the Prosecution under Cambodian Law of Crimes Committed
during the Period of Democratic Kampuchea, done at Phnom Penh on 6 June 2003, had been complied with. The
Agreement accordingly entered into force on 29 April 2005, the day after the notification, in accordance with its
article 32. The Government of Cambodia had previously provided its notification under that article, on 16
November 2004.).
289
Agreement between the United Nations and the Lebanese Republic on the establishment of a Special Tribunal for
Lebanon, art. 1, Annex to U.N. SECURITY COUNCIL RESOLUTION 1757, U.N. Doc S/RES/1757 (2007) (There is
hereby established a Special Tribunal for Lebanon to prosecute persons responsible for the attack of 14 February
2005 resulting in the death of former Lebanese Prime Minister Rafiq Hariri and in the death or injury of other
persons.).
1113
18.21.1 Jurisdiction Over War Crimes. States must have jurisdiction over an alleged
offense to prosecute a person for committing war crimes or other punishable offenses committed
during armed conflict. 290
Jurisdiction over war crimes has traditionally been exercised by belligerents with respect
to offenses committed by or against their nationals. 291 In addition, belligerents have also
prosecuted war crimes committed by enemy nationals against nationals of allies and of co-
belligerents, and stateless persons. 292 Because jurisdiction over war crimes has sometimes been
exercised by belligerents against enemy nationals without regard to the territorial location of the
offense, it has sometimes been characterized as universal in character. 293
290
See, e.g., United States v. Josef Altstoetter, et al. (Justice Case), III TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE
NMT 969-70 (We are empowered to determine the guilt or innocence of persons accused of acts described as war
crimes and crimes against humanity under rules of international law. At this point, in connection with cherished
doctrines of national sovereignty, it is important to distinguish between the rules of common international law which
are of universal and superior authority on the one hand, and the provisions for enforcement of those rules which are
by no means universal on the other. This universality and superiority of international law does not necessarily
imply universality of its enforcement.).
291
United States v. Josef Altstoetter, et al. (Justice Case), III TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 1189-90
(Separate Opinion of Judge Blair) ([D]uring hostilities and before their formal termination belligerents have
concurrent jurisdiction over war crimes committed by the captured enemy persons in their territory or against their
nationals in time of war. After armistice or peace agreement the matter of punishment of war crimes is
determined by the terms thereof.); United States v. Ohlendorf, et al. (Einsatzgruppen Case), IV TRIALS OF WAR
CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 460 (rejecting the defense counsels argument that Russias could not participate in
the Tribunal instead explaining that Russia's participation in the formulation of Control Council Law No. 10 is in
accordance with every recognized principle of international law, because [t]here is no authority which denies any
belligerent nation jurisdiction over individuals in its actual custody charged with violation of international law and
no one would be so bold as to suggest that what occurred between Germany and Russia from June 1941 to May
1945 was anything but war, and, being war, that Russia would not have the right to try the alleged violators of the
rules of war on her territory and against her people.).
292
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 507a (The jurisdiction of United States military tribunals in connection
with war crimes is not limited to offenses committed against nationals of the United States but extends also to all
offenses of this nature committed against nationals of allies and of cobelligerents and stateless persons.).
293
See, e.g., TUCKER, THE LAW OF WAR AND NEUTRALITY AT SEA 155 footnote 12 (It is generally agreed that post
World War II practice has firmly established the so-called principle of universality of jurisdiction over war crimes,
thereby permitting belligerents to exercise jurisdiction over individuals accused of war crimes without regard to the
place where an offense was committed or to the nationality of the victims. In its most general form this principle
might well be interpreted to permit neutral states to try and punish war criminals who fall under their control. But
there is no record of neutral states making such an attempt, and the right of neutrals to do so remains doubtful.); G.
Brand, The War Crimes Trials and the Laws of War, 28 BRITISH YEAR BOOK OF INTERNATIONAL LAW 414, 416
(1951) (Thus the doctrine of universality of war crimes is now generally accepted. Account has been taken of the
crime itself rather than of (a) the nationality of the victim, provided that he has been, from the point of view of the
court, an Allied national or could be treated as such; (b) the nationality of the accused, provided that he can be
regarded as having identified himself with the enemy; or (c) the place of the offence.); Willard B. Cowles,
Universality of Jurisdiction over War Crimes, 33 CALIFORNIA LAW REVIEW 177, 178 (1945) (describing the
question of whether the jurisdiction principle of universality is applicable to the punishment of war crimes as the
question whether, under international law, a belligerent State has jurisdiction to punish an enemy war criminal in its
custody when the victim of the war crime was a national of another State and the offense took place outside of
territory under control of the punishing State.).
1114
In the past, neutral States generally did not exercise jurisdiction with respect to alleged
law of war violations between belligerents. 294 For example, States have declined to exercise
jurisdiction with respect to offenses committed by enemy nationals before those States became
involved in an armed conflict with that State. 295
Some have argued that States may exercise purely universal jurisdiction over war crimes,
i.e., jurisdiction to define and prescribe punishment based simply on the character of the offense
as a war crime. 296 Until the 1990s, no such attempts were made by States to exercise jurisdiction
on this basis. 297 Congress declined to authorize prosecutions for war crimes based on this
294
La Amistad De Rues, 18 U.S. 385, 390 (1820) (consider[ing] it no part of the duty of a neutral nation to
interpose, upon the mere footing of the law of nations, to settle all the rights and wrongs which may grow out of a
capture between belligerents and noting that alleged law of war violations between belligerents have never been
held within the cognizance of the prize tribunals of neutral nations.); Juando v. Taylor, 13 F. Cas. 1179, 1189
(S.D.N.Y. 1818) (No. 7558) (explaining that no suit or proceeding of any sort can be maintained in the courts of a
neutral nation, by the subjects of one belligerent against the subjects of the other, for acts growing out of the war).
295
See James Brown Scott and Robert Lansing, Memorandum of Reservations Presented by the Representatives of
the United States to the Report of the Commission on Responsibilities, Annex II to the Report Presented to the
Preliminary Peace Conference, Mar. 29, 1919, by the Commission on the Responsibility of the Authors of the War
and on Enforcement of Penalties, reprinted in 14 AJIL 95, 147 (1920) (It seemed elementary to the American
representatives that a country could not take part in the trial and punishment of a violation of the laws and customs
of war committed by Germany and her Allies before the particular country in question had become a party to the
war against Germany and her Allies; that consequently the United States could not institute a military tribunal within
its own jurisdiction to pass upon violations of the laws and customs of war, unless such violations were committed
upon American persons or American property, and that the United States could not properly take part in the trial and
punishment of persons accused of violations of the laws and customs of war committed by the military or civil
authorities of Bulgaria or Turkey.). Cf. United States, et al. v. Gring, et al., Judgment, I TRIAL OF THE MAJOR
WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE IMT 254 (To constitute Crimes against Humanity, the acts relied on before the
outbreak of war must have been in execution of, or in connection with, any crime within the jurisdiction of the
Tribunal. The Tribunal is of the opinion that revolting and horrible as many of these crimes were, it has not been
satisfactorily proved that they were done in execution of, or in connection with, any such crime. The Tribunal
therefore cannot make a general declaration that the acts before 1939 were Crimes against Humanity within the
meaning of the Charter, but from the beginning of the war in 1939 War Crimes were committed on a vast scale,
which were also Crimes against Humanity; and insofar as the inhumane acts charged in the Indictment, and
committed after the beginning of the war, did not constitute War Crimes, they were all committed in execution of, or
in connection with, the aggressive war, and therefore constituted Crimes against Humanity.).
296
I RESTATEMENT (THIRD) OF FOREIGN RELATIONS LAW OF THE UNITED STATES 254 (404, Reporters Note 1)
(1987) (A state has jurisdiction to define and prescribe punishment for certain offenses recognized by the
community of nations as of universal concern, such as piracy, slave trade, attacks on or hijacking of aircraft,
genocide, war crimes, and perhaps certain acts of terrorism, even where none of the bases of jurisdiction indicated in
402 is present.); but see I RESTATEMENT (THIRD) OF FOREIGN RELATIONS LAW OF THE UNITED STATES 257-58
(404, Reporters Note 3) (1987) (The previous Restatement cited only piracy as an offense subject to universal
jurisdiction. See 34. Reporters Note 2 of that section listed other crimes of universal interest but indicated they
were not yet subject to universal jurisdiction as a matter of international law.).
297
I RESTATEMENT (THIRD) OF FOREIGN RELATIONS LAW OF THE UNITED STATES 256 (1987) (apparently no state
has exercised such jurisdiction [over war crimes and genocide] in circumstances where no other basis for
jurisdiction under 402 was present.); Committee on the Judiciary, House of Representatives Report No. 104-698,
8 (Jul. 24, 1996) (The Committee has been informed that there has never been a single case of a signatory country
to the Geneva conventions exercising its own criminal jurisdiction over an alleged war criminal on the basis of
universal jurisdiction.).
1115
principle. 298 Efforts by certain States to undertake prosecutions on the basis of this principle
have been controversial. 299 Such prosecutions have generally not been successful unless the
State concerned has consented. 300
For example, it would seem unfair for a State to punish members of opposing military
forces for committing acts that it considered lawful for members of its armed forces to
298
See Committee on the Judiciary, House of Representatives Report No. 104-698, 8 (Jul. 24, 1996) (The
Committee decided that the expansion of H.R. 3680 to include universal jurisdiction would be an unwise [sic] at
present. Domestic prosecution based on universal jurisdiction could draw the United States into conflicts in which
this country has no place and where our national interests are slight. In addition, problems involving witnesses and
evidence would likely be daunting. This does not mean that war criminals should go unpunished. There are ample
alternative venues available which are more appropriate. Prosecutions can be handled by the nations involved or by
international tribunal. If a war criminal is discovered in the United States, the federal government can extradite the
individual upon request in order to facilitate prosecution overseas. The Committee is not presently aware that these
alternative venues are inadequate to meet the task.).
299
See, e.g., Arrest Warrant of 11 April 2000 (Democratic Republic of the Congo v. Belgium), Judgment, 2002
I.C.J. 35, 43 (15) (Separate Opinion of President Guillaume) (International criminal law has itself undergone
considerable development and constitutes today an impressive legal corpus. It recognizes in many situations the
possibility, or indeed the obligation, for a State other than that on whose territory the offence was committed to
confer jurisdiction on its courts to prosecute the authors of certain crimes where they are present on its territory.
International criminal courts have been created. But at no time has it been envisaged that jurisdiction should be
conferred upon the courts of every State in the world to prosecute such crimes, whoever their authors and victims
and irrespective of the place where the offender is to be found. To do this would, moreover, risk creating total
judicial chaos. It would also be to encourage the arbitrary, for the benefit of the powerful, purportedly acting as
agent for an ill-defined international community. Contrary to what is advocated by certain publicists, such a
development would represent not an advance in the law but a step backward.).
300
Roman Anatolevich Kolodkin, Special Rapporteur, U.N. International Law Commission, Second report on
immunity of State officials from foreign criminal jurisdiction, U.N. Doc A/CN.4/631, 16 (Jun. 10, 2010) (It is
noted that until now attempts to exercise universal jurisdiction that have been successful have just taken place in
cases where the State concerned consented. In other cases, States usually react negatively to attempts to exercise
foreign criminal jurisdiction even over their former Heads of State and Government, as they also do, however, in
respect of other high-ranking officials. In the absence of cooperation with the State whose official a case concerns,
the proper and legally correct criminal prosecution of such a person is practically impossible. On the whole,
therefore, such attempts end up merely complicating relations between States.).
301
Department of Defense, Office of the General Counsel, An Assessment of International Legal Issues in
Information Operations 46 (May 1999) (The lack of strong international legal sanctions for peacetime espionage
may also constitute an implicit application of the international law doctrine called tu quoque (roughly, a nation has
no standing to complain about a practice in which it itself engages). Whatever the reasons, the international legal
system generally imposes no sanctions upon nations for acts of espionage except for the political costs of public
denunciation, which dont seem very onerous.). See also FRITS KALSHOVEN, BELLIGERENT REPRISALS 364 (There
is, however, another possible view of tu quoque, according to which this does not so much constitute a substantive
justificatory ground as an argument of a procedural order, to the effect that a belligerent cannot charge his enemy
with a particular form of illegal warfare if he has himself violated the same rule or rules, without this being justified
as a reprisal. For this argument, it is not important whether the belligerent was the first to commit that violation, nor
even whether he was aware that the enemy was guilty of the same illegal conduct: the contention is that the mere
fact of his having infringed the identical norm precludes him from charging that particular illegality against the
enemy.).
1116
perform. 302 On the other hand, as a general matter, the fact that criminal acts have been
committed by opposing armed forces does not constitute a defense to criminal liability. In
addition, as a general matter, the fact that members of its armed forces have committed a
violation does not preclude a State from punishing captured members of opposing armed forces
for such violations. 303 Similarly, the authority of a State to punish its own citizens, in
accordance with municipal criminal law, for violations of international law is not affected by this
rule. 304
18.21.3.1 Fair Trial Requirements. Any person charged with a crime under
international law has the right to a fair trial on the facts and law. 305
In all circumstances, persons who are accused of grave breaches of the 1949 Geneva
Conventions shall benefit from safeguards of proper trial and defense, which shall not be less
favorable than those provided by Article 105 and those following of the GPW. 306 In addition,
other fundamental fair trial guarantees should be afforded. 307
302
United States, et al. v. Gring, et al., Judgment, I TRIAL OF THE MAJOR WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE IMT 313
(In view of all of the facts proved, and in particular of an order of the British Admiralty announced on 8 May 1940,
according to which all vessels should be sunk at night in the Skagerrak, and the answer to interrogatories by Admiral
Nimitz that unrestricted submarine warfare was carried on in the Pacific Ocean by the United States from the first
day that nation entered the war, the sentence of Donitz is not assessed on the ground of his breaches of the
international law of submarine warfare.).
303
See United States v. von Leeb, et al. (The High Command Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE
NMT 482 (Under general principles of law, an accused does not exculpate himself from a crime by showing that
another committed a similar crime, either before or after the alleged commission of the crime by the accused.).
304
Sentence of the Bundesgerichtshof of Sept. 30, 1960, reprinted in FRITS KALSHOVEN, BELLIGERENT REPRISALS
365 footnote 15 (2005) (citing 32 International Law Reports 564) (The rule of tu quoque merely means that no
State may accuse another State of violations of international law and exercise criminal jurisdiction over the latters
citizens in respect of such violations if it is itself guilty of similar violations against the other State or its allies. The
right and duty of a State to hold its own citizens responsible, in accordance with municipal criminal law, for
violations of international law is not affected by this rule.).
305
U.N. International Law Commission, Principles of International Law Recognized in the Charter of the Nrnberg
Tribunal and in the Judgment of the Tribunal, in Report of the International Law Commission on its Second Session,
5 June to 29 July 1950, (Document A/1316), reprinted in II YEARBOOK OF INTERNATIONAL LAW COMMISSION 1950,
374, 375 U.N. Doc. A/CN. 4/SER.A/1950/Add. 1 (Jun. 6, 1957) (PRINCIPLE V Any person charged with a crime
under international law has the right to a fair trial on the facts and law.).
306
GWS art. 49 (In all circumstances, the accused persons shall benefit by safeguards of proper trial and defence,
which shall not be less favourable than those provided by Article 105 and those following of the Geneva Convention
relative to the Treatment of Prisoners of War of August 12, 1949.); GWS-SEA art. 50 (same); GC art. 146 (same);
GPW art. 129 (In all circumstances, the accused persons shall benefit by safeguards of proper trial and defence,
which shall not be less favourable than those provided by Article 105 and those following of the present
Convention.). Refer to 9.28.4 (Rights of Defense and Trial Procedure).
307
Refer to 8.16 (Criminal Procedure and Punishment).
1117
of an international criminal tribunal. In addition, special rules address the punishment of POWs
and protected persons. However, the following principles apply, as a matter of international law,
to the punishment of violations of the law of war:
The punishment imposed for a violation of the law of war must be proportionate to the
gravity of the offense.
The death penalty may be imposed for grave breaches of the law.
18.21.4.1 Limitations on the Trial and Punishment of POWs. The trial and
punishment of POWs must comport with the rules prescribed by the GPW. 309
Individual criminal responsibility exists for certain violations of the international law.
308
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 508 (The punishment imposed for a violation of the law of war must be
proportionate to the gravity of the offense. The death penalty may be imposed for grave breaches of the law.
Corporal punishment is excluded. Punishments should be deterrent, and in imposing a sentence of imprisonment it
is not necessary to take into consideration the end of the war, which does not of itself limit the imprisonment to be
imposed.).
309
Refer to 9.26 (General Principles Applicable to POW Discipline); 9.28 (Judicial Proceedings and
Punishment).
310
Refer to 10.27 (General Provisions Applicable to Both Judicial and Disciplinary Sanctions Regarding
Internees); 10.29 (Judicial Proceedings Regarding Protected Persons in Occupied Territory or Internees in a
Belligerents Home Territory).
311
Refer to 4.4.3 (Combatants - Legal Immunity From a Foreign States Domestic Law).
1118
law is responsible therefor and liable to punishment. 312 International law imposes duties and
liabilities on individuals as well as States, and individuals may be punished for violations of
international law. 313
18.22.2 Absence of Penalty Under Domestic Law Does Not Relieve a Person of
Responsibility. The fact that internal law does not impose a penalty for an act that constitutes a
crime under international law does not relieve the person who committed the act from
responsibility under international law. 314
For example, a State may lack domestic legislation that imposes any penalty for an act
that violates international law. Nonetheless, just as a States municipal law cannot excuse its
failure to comply with its international legal obligations, a person is not relieved of responsibility
for an act constituting a crime under international law because his or her States municipal law
does not impose any penalty for the offense. 315
18.22.3 Official Position Does Not Relieve a Person of Responsibility. The fact that a
person who committed an act which constitutes a crime under international law acted as Head of
State or responsible Government official does not relieve him or her of responsibility under
international law. 316
312
See U.N. International Law Commission, Principles of International Law Recognized in the Charter of the
Nrnberg Tribunal and in the Judgment of the Tribunal, in Report of the International Law Commission on its
Second Session, 5 June to 29 July 1950, (Document A/1316), reprinted in II YEARBOOK OF INTERNATIONAL LAW
COMMISSION 1950, 374 U.N. Doc. A/CN. 4/SER.A/1950/Add. 1 (Jun. 6, 1957) (PRINCIPLE I Any person who
commits an act which constitutes a crime under international law is responsible therefor and liable to punishment.).
313
United States, et al. v. Gring, et al., Judgment, I TRIAL OF THE MAJOR WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE IMT 223
(That international law imposes duties and liabilities upon individuals as well as upon States has long been
recognized. Many other authorities could be cited, but enough has been said to show that individuals can be
punished for violations of international law. Crimes against international law are committed by men, not by abstract
entities, and only by punishing individuals who commit such crimes can the provisions of international law be
enforced.) (citing Ex parte Quirin, 317 U.S. 1 (1942)). Compare 10.3.5 (State Responsibility for Its Agents
Treatment of Protected Persons).
314
U.N. International Law Commission, Principles of International Law Recognized in the Charter of the Nrnberg
Tribunal and in the Judgment of the Tribunal, in Report of the International Law Commission on its Second Session,
5 June to 29 July 1950, (Document A/1316), reprinted in II YEARBOOK OF INTERNATIONAL LAW COMMISSION 1950,
374 U.N. Doc. A/CN. 4/SER.A/1950/Add. 1 (Jun. 6, 1957) (PRINCIPLE II The fact that internal law does not impose
a penalty for an act which constitutes a crime under international law does not relieve the person who committed the
act from responsibility under international law.).
315
Refer to 1.10.1.4 (Force of International Law Notwithstanding a States Domestic Law).
316
U.N. International Law Commission, Principles of International Law Recognized in the Charter of the Nrnberg
Tribunal and in the Judgment of the Tribunal, in Report of the International Law Commission on its Second Session,
5 June to 29 July 1950, (Document A/1316), reprinted in II YEARBOOK OF INTERNATIONAL LAW COMMISSION 1950,
374, 375 U.N. Doc. A/CN. 4/SER.A/1950/Add. 1 (Jun. 6, 1957) (PRINCIPLE III The fact that a person who
committed an act which constitutes a crime under international law acted as Head of State or responsible
Government official does not relieve him from responsibility under international law.).
1119
This principle has been reflected in the statutes of international criminal tribunals. 317
18.22.4 Acting Pursuant to Orders Does Not Relieve a Person of Responsibility. The fact
that a person acted pursuant to orders of his or her Government or of a superior does not relieve
that person from responsibility under international law, provided it was possible in fact for that
person to make a moral choice. 318 This principle has been reflected in the statutes of
international criminal tribunals. 319 It may also be understood as part of a broader principle that
military personnel cannot justify committing unlawful acts by producing the order of their
superior. 320
Although it is clear that merely the fact that the act at issue was committed pursuant to
superior orders does not constitute a defense to criminal responsibility under international law,
the precise extent to which superior orders may constitute a defense or excuse may vary
according to the forum in which a violation is tried. 321
317
Charter of the International Military Tribunal, art. 7, annexed to Agreement by the Government of the United
Kingdom of Great Britain and Northern Ireland, the Government of the United States of America, the Provisional
Government of the French Republic and the Government of the Union of Soviet Socialist Republics for the
Prosecution and Punishment of the Major War Criminals of the European Axis, Aug. 8, 1945, 82 UNTS 280, 288
(The official position of defendants, whether as Heads of State or responsible officials in Government Departments,
shall not be considered as freeing them from responsibility or mitigating punishment.); ICTY STATUTE art. 7(2)
(The official position of any accused person, whether as Head of State or Government or as a responsible
Government official, shall not relieve such person of criminal responsibility nor mitigate punishment.).
318
See U.N. International Law Commission, Principles of International Law Recognized in the Charter of the
Nrnberg Tribunal and in the Judgment of the Tribunal, in Report of the International Law Commission on its
Second Session, 5 June to 29 July 1950, (Document A/1316), reprinted in II YEARBOOK OF INTERNATIONAL LAW
COMMISSION 1950, 374, 375 U.N. Doc. A/CN. 4/SER.A/1950/Add. 1 (Jun. 6, 1957) (PRINCIPLE IV The fact that a
person acted pursuant to order of his Government or of a superior does not relieve him from responsibility under
international law, provided a moral choice was in fact possible to him.).
319
Charter of the International Military Tribunal, art. 8, annexed to Agreement by the Government of the United
Kingdom of Great Britain and Northern Ireland, the Government of the United States of America, the Provisional
Government of the French Republic and the Government of the Union of Soviet Socialist Republics for the
Prosecution and Punishment of the Major War Criminals of the European Axis, Aug. 8, 1945, 82 UNTS 280, 288
(The fact that the Defendant acted pursuant to order of his Government or of a superior shall not free him from
responsibility, but may be considered in mitigation of punishment if the Tribunal determines that justice so
requires.); ICTY STATUTE art. 7(4) (The fact that an accused person acted pursuant to an order of a Government or
of a superior shall not relieve him of criminal responsibility, .); ICTR STATUTE art. 6(4) (The fact that an
accused person acted pursuant to an order of a Government or of a superior shall not relieve him [or her] of criminal
responsibility .).
320
See Mitchell v. Harmony, 54 U.S. 115, 137 (1851) (Consequently the order given was an order to do an illegal
act; to commit a trespass upon the property of another; and can afford no justification to the person by whom it was
executed. . . . And upon principle, independent of the weight of judicial decision, it can never be maintained that a
military officer can justify himself for doing an unlawful act, by producing the order of his superior. The order may
palliate, but it cannot justify.).
321
LEVIE, POWS 389 (The Commission of Experts convened by the ICRC in December 1948 in connection with
the grave-breaches provisions which had been approved and the Resolution which had been adopted by the 1948
Stockholm Conference, drafted a proposed article relating solely to the defense of superior orders. The 1949
Diplomatic Conference did not include such a provision in the Convention as finally approved. Accordingly, this
problem will once again have to be resolved on a national basis. Efforts to solve it on an international basis in
related areas have been undertaken by various organs of the United Nations, but those efforts have complicated,
1120
In cases in which the illegality of the order is not apparent, the subordinate might lack the
wrongful intent necessary to the commission of the crime. 322 Subordinates, absent specific
knowledge to the contrary, may presume orders to be lawful. 323 The acts of a subordinate done
in compliance with an unlawful order given by a superior are generally excused unless the
superiors order is one that a person of ordinary sense and understanding would, under the
circumstances, know to be unlawful (e.g., to torture or murder a detainee), or if the order in
question is actually known to the accused to be unlawful. 324
On the other hand, subordinates must refuse to comply with clearly illegal orders to
commit violations of the law of war. 325
rather than clarified, the problem. It is obvious that there is no clear and well-defined rule which will be applied to
the defense of superior orders when it is advanced, as it undoubtedly will be, in future trials for violations of the
grave breaches and other provisions of the 1949 Convention. However, it is believed that it may be safely stated
that, as after World War II, the mere fact that the act complained of was committed pursuant to superior orders will
not suffice as a defense.).
322
United States v. List, et al. (The Hostage Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 1236 (We are
of the view, however, that if the illegality of the order was not known to the inferior, and he could not reasonably
have been expected to know of its illegality, no wrongful intent necessary to the commission of a crime exists and
the interior [sic] will be protected. But the general rule is that members of the armed forces are bound to obey only
the lawful orders of their commanding officers and they cannot escape criminal liability by obeying a command
which violates international law and outrages fundamental concepts of justice.).
323
Refer to 18.3.2.1 (Clearly Illegal Orders to Commit Law of War Violations).
324
United States v. Calley, 22 U.S.C.M.A. 534, 542 (C.M.A. 1973) (The acts of a subordinate done in compliance
with an unlawful order given him by his superior are excused and impose no criminal liability upon him unless the
superiors order is one which a man of ordinary sense and understanding would, under the circumstances, know to
be unlawful, or if the order in question is actually know to the accused to be unlawful.).
325
Refer to 18.3.2 (Refuse to Comply With Clearly Illegal Orders to Commit Law of War Violations).
326
See, e.g., 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 509a (In all cases where the order is held not to constitute a
defense to an allegation of war crime, the fact that the individual was acting pursuant to orders may be considered in
mitigation of punishment.); ICTY STATUTE art. 7(4) (The fact that an accused person acted pursuant to an order of
a Government or of a superior shall not relieve him of criminal responsibility, but may be considered in mitigation
of punishment if the International Tribunal determines that justice so requires.); ICTR STATUTE art. 6(4).
327
For example, Trial of Lieutenant-General Shigeru Sawada and Three Others, V U.N. LAW REPORTS 1, 7 (U.S.
Military Commission, Shanghai, Feb. 27-Apr. 15, 1946) (The offences of each of the accused resulted largely from
obedience to the laws and instructions of their Government and their Military Superiors. They exercised no
initiative to any marked degree. The preponderance of evidence shows beyond reasonable doubt that other officers,
including high governmental and military officials, were responsible for the enactment of the Ex Post Facto Enemy
Airmens Law and the issuance of special instructions as to how these American prisoners were to be treated, tried,
sentenced and punished. The circumstances set forth above do not entirely absolve the accused from guilt.
However, they do compel unusually strong mitigating consideration, applicable to each accused in various
degrees.).
1121
18.23 THEORIES OF INDIVIDUAL CRIMINAL LIABILITY
Individuals may be held liable for violations of the law of war whether they have
committed them directly or are complicit in the commission of such crimes. 328
The theories of liability that apply to a law of war violation may vary depending on the
particular forum (e.g., U.S. Federal court, U.S. military commission, International Criminal
Tribunal for the Former Yugoslavia) in which the violation is being adjudicated. Modes of
liability for law of war offenses may include ordering, instigating or directly inciting, command
responsibility, aiding and abetting, conspiracy, and joint criminal enterprise.
In some cases, these theories of liability may be viewed as ways of attributing an offense
that is committed by one person to another person. In other cases, these theories of liability may
be viewed as distinct offenses; for example, a first offense is committed by one person and a
second offense is committed by another person that is somehow related to the first offense.
18.23.1 Ordering. A person who orders another person to commit an offense is generally
punishable as though that person had committed the offense directly.
This principle is reflected in the Uniform Code of Military Justice. 329 Statutes of
international criminal tribunals have also reflected this mode of liability. 330
328
U.N. International Law Commission, Principles of International Law Recognized in the Charter of the Nrnberg
Tribunal and in the Judgment of the Tribunal, in Report of the International Law Commission on its Second Session,
5 June to 29 July 1950, (Document A/1316), reprinted in II YEARBOOK OF INTERNATIONAL LAW COMMISSION 1950,
374, 377 U.N. Doc. A/CN. 4/SER.A/1950/Add. 1 (Jun. 6, 1957) (PRINCIPLE VII Complicity in the commission of a
crime against peace, a war crime, or a crime against humanity as set forth in Principle VI is a crime under
international law.).
329
10 U.S.C. 877 (Any person punishable under this chapter who (1) commits an offense punishable by this
chapter, or aids, abets, counsels, commands, or procures its commission; or (2) causes an act to be done which if
directly performed by him would be punishable by this chapter; is a principal.).
330
See ICTY STATUTE art. 7(1) (A person who planned, instigated, ordered, committed or otherwise aided and
abetted in the planning, preparation or execution of a crime referred to in articles 2 to 5 of the present Statute, shall
be individually responsible for the crime.); ICTR STATUTE art. 6(1) (A person who planned, instigated, ordered,
committed or otherwise aided and abetted in the planning, preparation or execution of a crime referred to in Articles
2 to 4 of the present Statute, shall be individually responsible for the crime.).
331
1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 500 (Conspiracy, direct incitement, and attempts to commit, as well as
complicity in the commission of, crimes against peace, crimes against humanity, and war crimes are punishable.).
332
See ICTY STATUTE art. 7(1) (A person who planned, instigated, ordered, committed or otherwise aided and
abetted in the planning, preparation or execution of a crime referred to in articles 2 to 5 of the present Statute, shall
be individually responsible for the crime.); ICTR STATUTE art. 6(1) (A person who planned, instigated, ordered,
committed or otherwise aided and abetted in the planning, preparation or execution of a crime referred to in Articles
2 to 4 of the present Statute, shall be individually responsible for the crime.).
1122
18.23.3 Command Responsibility. Commanders have duties to take necessary and
reasonable measures to ensure that their subordinates do not commit violations of the law of
war. 333 Failures by commanders of their duties to take necessary and reasonable measures to
ensure that their subordinates do not commit violations of the law of war can result in criminal
responsibility. 334
333
Refer to 18.4 (Commanders Duty to Implement and Enforce the Law of War).
334
See also 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 501 (In some cases, military commanders may be responsible
for war crimes committed by subordinate members of the armed forces, or other persons subject to their control.
Thus, for instance, when troops commit massacres and atrocities against the civilian population of occupied territory
or against prisoners of war, the responsibility may rest not only with the actual perpetrators but also with the
commander. Such a responsibility arises directly when the acts in question have been committed in pursuance of an
order of the commander concerned. The commander is also responsible if he has actual knowledge, or should have
knowledge, through reports received by him or through other means, that troops or other persons subject to his
control are about to commit or have committed a war crime and he fails to take the necessary and reasonable steps to
insure compliance with the law of war or to punish violators thereof.). Consider AP I art. 86(2) (The fact that a
breach of the Conventions or of this Protocol was committed by a subordinate does not absolve his superiors from
penal or disciplinary responsibility, as the case may be, if they knew, or had information which should have enabled
them to conclude in the circumstances at the time, that he was committing or was going to commit such a breach and
if they did not take all feasible measures within their power to prevent or repress the breach.).
335
Refer to 18.19.3.1 (Uniform Code of Military Justice Offenses).
336
10 U.S.C. 950q (Any person is punishable under this chapter who (3) is a superior commander who, with
regard to acts punishable under this chapter, knew, had reason to know, or should have known, that a subordinate
was about to commit such acts or had done so and who failed to take the necessary and reasonable measures to
prevent such acts or to punish the perpetrators thereof, is a principal.).
1123
command responsibility as a mode of liability. 337 In some cases, this theory of superior
responsibility has been applied to civilian superiors. 338
Command responsibility, as a mode of liability, is not a form of strict liability. 339 The
commanders personal dereliction must have contributed to or failed to prevent the offense; there
must be a personal neglect amounting to a wanton, immoral disregard of the action of his or her
subordinates amounting to acquiescence in the crimes. 340
18.23.4 Aiding and Abetting. The theory of aiding and abetting holds an individual liable
for an offense committed by another based on certain assistance that the individual gave in
relation to the crime. Aiding and abetting liability for a crime can be usefully analyzed as
consisting of three elements: (1) knowledge of the illegal activity that is being aided and abetted;
(2) a desire to help the activity succeed; and (3) some act of helping. 341
This theory of liability is applicable in prosecutions in Federal court under title 18, 342
prosecutions under the Uniform Code of Military Justice, 343 and prosecutions by U.S. military
337
See ICTY STATUTE art. 7(3) (The fact that any of the acts referred to in articles 2 to 5 of the present Statute was
committed by a subordinate does not relieve his superior of criminal responsibility if he knew or had reason to know
that the subordinate was about to commit such acts or had done so and the superior failed to take the necessary and
reasonable measures to prevent such acts or to punish the perpetrators thereof.); ICTR STATUTE art. 6(3) (same);
ROME STATUTE art. 28.
338
See Prosecutor v. Musema, ICTR Trial Chamber I, ICTR-96-13-A, Judgment and Sentence, 132 (Jan. 27, 2000)
(As to whether the form of individual criminal responsibility referred to under Article 6(3) of the Statute also
applies to persons in both military and civilian authority, it is important to note that during the Tokyo Trials, civilian
authorities were convicted of war crimes under this principle.).
339
See also Prosecutor v. Kordic and Cerkez, ICTY Trial Chamber, IT-95-14/2-T, Judgment, 369 (Feb. 26, 2001)
(It should be emphasised that the doctrine of command responsibility does not hold a superior responsible merely
because he is in a position of authority as, for a superior to be held liable, it is necessary to prove that he knew or
had reason to know of the offences and failed to act to prevent or punish their occurrence. Superior responsibility,
which is a type of imputed responsibility, is therefore not a form of strict liability.).
340
United States v. von Leeb, et al. (High Command Case), XI TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 543
(A high commander cannot keep completely informed of the details of military operations of subordinates and most
assuredly not of every administrative measure. He has the right to assume that details entrusted to responsible
subordinates will be legally executed. The President of the United States is Commander in Chief of its military
forces. Criminal acts committed by those forces cannot in themselves be charged to him on the theory of
subordination. The same is true of other high commanders in the chain of command. Criminality does not attach to
every individual in this chain of command from that fact alone. There must be a personal dereliction. That can
occur only where the act is directly traceable to him or where his failure to properly supervise his subordinates
constitutes criminal negligence on his part. In the latter case it must be a personal neglect amounting to a wanton,
immoral disregard of the action of his subordinates amounting to acquiescence. Any other interpretation of
international law would go far beyond the basic principles of criminal law as known to civilized nations.).
341
Walter Dellinger, Assistant Attorney General, United States Assistance to Countries that Shoot Down Civil
Aircraft Involved in Drug Trafficking, Jul. 14, 1994, 18 OPINIONS OF THE OFFICE OF LEGAL COUNSEL 148, 156
(Aiding and abetting liability for a crime can be usefully analyzed as consisting of three elements: [1] knowledge
of the illegal activity that is being aided and abetted, [2] a desire to help the activity succeed, and [3] some act of
helping. All three elements must be present for aiding and abetting liability to attach.) (changes in original)
(citation omitted).
342
18 U.S.C. 2 ((a) Whoever commits an offense against the United States or aids, abets, counsels, commands,
induces or procures its commission, is punishable as a principal. (b) Whoever willfully causes an act to be done
1124
commission. 344 This theory of liability has also been reflected in the statutes of international
criminal tribunals. 345
which if directly performed by him or another would be an offense against the United States, is punishable as a
principal.).
343
10 U.S.C. 877 (Principals. Any person punishable under this chapter who- (1) commits an offense punishable
by this chapter, or aids, abets, counsels, commands, or procures its commission; or (2) causes an act to be done
which if directly performed by him would be punishable by this chapter; is a principal.).
344
10 U.S.C 950q (Any person punishable under this chapter who(1) commits an offense punishable by this
chapter, or aids, abets, counsels, commands, or procures its commission; (2) causes an act to be done which if
directly performed by him would be punishable by this chapter;).
345
ICTY STATUTE art. 7(1) (A person who planned, instigated, ordered, committed or otherwise aided and abetted
in the planning, preparation or execution of a crime referred to in articles 2 to 5 of the present Statute, shall be
individually responsible for the crime.); ICTR STATUTE art. 6(1) (A person who planned, instigated, ordered,
committed or otherwise aided and abetted in the planning, preparation or execution of a crime referred to in articles
2 to 4 of the present Statute, shall be individually responsible for the crime.); ROME STATUTE art. 25 (In
accordance with this Statute, a person shall be criminally responsible and liable for punishment for a crime within
the jurisdiction of the Court if that person: [3(c)] For the purpose of facilitating the commission of such a crime,
aids, abets or otherwise assists in its commission or its attempted commission, including providing the means for its
commission;).
346
U.N. International Law Commission, Draft articles on Responsibility of States for Internationally Wrongful Acts,
with commentaries, art. 16 (2001) (A State which aids or assists another State in the commission of an
internationally wrongful act by the latter is internationally responsible for doing so if: (a) that State does so with
knowledge of the circumstances of the internationally wrongful act; and (b) the act would be internationally
wrongful if committed by that State.).
347
U.N. International Law Commission, Draft articles on Responsibility of States for Internationally Wrongful Acts,
with commentaries, 66 (2001) (The second requirement is that the aid or assistance must be given with a view to
facilitating the commission of the wrongful act, and must actually do so. This limits the application of article 16 to
those cases where the aid or assistance given is clearly linked to the subsequent wrongful conduct. A State is not
responsible for aid or assistance under article 16 unless the relevant State organ intended, by the aid or assistance
given, to facilitate the occurrence of the wrongful conduct and the internationally wrongful conduct is actually
committed by the aided or assisted State. There is no requirement that the aid or assistance should have been
essential to the performance of the internationally wrongful act; it is sufficient if it contributed significantly to that
act.).
348
See, e.g.,10 U.S.C. 904 (making punishable aiding the enemy); 10 U.S.C. 950t(25) (making punishable by
military commission providing material support to terrorism); 10 U.S.C. 950t(26) (making punishable by
military commission wrongfully aiding the enemy); 18 U.S.C. 2339A (making punishable [p]roviding material
1125
18.23.5 Conspiracy. The essence of conspiracy is the combination of minds in an
unlawful purpose. 349
The United States has taken the position that conspiracy to violate the law of war is
punishable. 350 The United States has used military tribunals to punish unprivileged belligerents
for the offense of conspiracy to violate the law of war. 351
Conspiracy is an offense under the Uniform Code of Military Justice. 352 Conspiracy is an
support to terrorists); 18 U.S.C. 2339B (making punishable [p]roviding material support or resources to
designated foreign terrorist organizations).
349
Smith v. United States, 133 S. Ct. 714, 719 (2013) (The essence of conspiracy is the combination of minds in
an unlawful purpose.) (quoting United States v. Hirsch, 100 U.S. 33, 34 (1879)).
350
See, e.g., 1956 FM 27-10 (Change No. 1 1976) 500 (Conspiracy, direct incitement, and attempts to commit, as
well as complicity in the commission of, crimes against peace, crimes against humanity, and war crimes are
punishable.); Memorandum of Law from Tom C. Clark, Assistant Attorney General, to Major General Myron C.
Kramer, Judge Advocate General, 6 (Mar. 12, 1945) (In view of the statements of the authorities on military law set
forth above, and the precedents established in the proceedings referred to above, it may be said to be well
established that a conspiracy to commit an offense against the laws of war is itself an offense cognizable by a
commission administering military judgment.).
351
See, e.g., Hamdan v. Rumsfeld, 548 U.S. 1, 23 (2006) (Thomas, J., dissenting) (The Civil War experience
provides further support for the Presidents conclusion that conspiracy to violate the laws of war is an offense
cognizable before law-of-war military commissions. Indeed, in the highest profile case to be tried before a military
commission relating to that war, namely, the trial of the men involved in the assassination of President Lincoln, the
charge provided that those men had combin[ed], confederat[ed], and conspir[ed]to kill and murder President
Lincoln.); Colepaugh v. Looney, 235 F.2d 429, 431 (10th Cir. 1956) (January 11, 1945, by executive order, the
President charged the petitioner with violation of the law of war andto convene a military commission for trial of
such offenses. The first charge specified: (1) the petitioner and one Gimpel, acting for the German Reich,
secretly passed through, in civilian dress, contrary to the law of war, the military and naval lines of the United States
for the purpose of committing espionage, sabotage and other hostile acts; and (2) that the accused appeared and
remained in civil dress, contrary to the law of war behind the military lines of the United States for the purpose of
committing espionage, sabotage and other hostile acts. The second charge alleged the petitioner and one Gimpel,
acting for the German Reich, were, in time of war, found lurking and acting as spies in and about the fortifications,
posts and encampments of the United States , for the purpose of obtaining intelligence and communicating it to
the German Reich. The third charge alleged a conspiracy to commit the above substantive offenses.); Ex Parte
Quirin, 317 U.S. 1, 23 (1942) (On July 3, 1942, the Judge Advocate Generals Department of the Army prepared
and lodged with the Commission the following charges against petitioners, supported by specifications: 1. Violation
of the law of war. 2. Violation of Article 81 of the Articles of War, defining the offense of relieving or attempting to
relieve, or corresponding with or giving intelligence to, the enemy. 3. Violation of Article 82, defining the offense of
spying. 4. Conspiracy to commit the offenses alleged in charges 1, 2 and 3.); but see Hamdan v. Rumsfeld, 548
U.S., 40-41 (2006) (Stevens, J., plurality) (The crime of conspiracy has rarely if ever been tried as such in this
country by any law-of-war military commission not exercising some other form of jurisdiction, and does not appear
in either the Geneva Conventions or the Hague Conventionsthe major treaties on the law of war.).
352
See 10 U.S.C. 881 ((a) Any person subject to this chapter who conspires with any other person to commit an
offense under this chapter shall, if one or more of the conspirators does an act to effect the object of the conspiracy,
be punished as a court-martial may direct. (b) Any person subject to this chapter who conspires with any other
person to commit an offense under the law of war, and who knowingly does an overt act to effect the object of the
conspiracy, shall be punished, if death results to one or more of the victims, by death or such other punishment as a
court-martial or military commission may direct, and, if death does not result to any of the victims, by such
punishment, other than death, as a court-martial or military commission may direct.).
1126
offense under the Military Commissions Act of 2009. 353 Conspiracy to commit an offense is an
offense under Title 18. 354
The use of conspiracy may vary according the forum in which charges are brought.
However, as a general matter, charges of conspiracy for violations of the law of war by persons
belonging to the enemy should be restricted to cases of offenses in which an overt act has been
committed because non-punitive measures, such as security detention, may be available to
address threats. 355
353
10 U.S.C. 950t(29) (Any person subject to this chapter who conspires to commit one or more substantive
offenses triable by military commission under this subchapter, and who knowingly does any overt act to effect the
object of the conspiracy, shall be punished, if death results to one or more of the victims, by death or such other
punishment as a military commission under this chapter may direct, and, if death does not result to any of the
victims, by such punishment, other than death, as a military commission under this chapter may direct.).
354
See, e.g., 18 U.S.C. 371 (If two or more persons conspire either to commit any offense against the United
States, or to defraud the United States, or any agency thereof in any manner or for any purpose, and one or more of
such persons do any act to effect the object of the conspiracy, each shall be fined under this title or imprisoned not
more than five years, or both. If, however, the offense, the commission of which is the object of the conspiracy, is a
misdemeanor only, the punishment for such conspiracy shall not exceed the maximum punishment provided for
such misdemeanor.); 18 U.S.C. 2441 (including the act of conspiring to commit certain acts as punishable); 18
U.S.C. 2442 (b) (Whoever violates, or attempts or conspires to violate, subsection (a) shall be fined under this
title or imprisoned not more than 20 years, or both and, if death of any person results, shall be fined under this title
and imprisoned for any term of years or for life.).
355
WINTHROP, MILITARY LAW & PRECEDENTS 841 (It may be added that the jurisdiction of the military
commission should be restricted to cases of offence consisting in overt acts, i.e. in unlawful commissions or actual
attempts to commit, and not in intentions merely. Thus what would justify in war a precautionary arrest might not
always justify a trial as for a specific offence.).
356
Convention on the Prevention and Punishment of the Crime of Genocide, art. 3, Dec. 9, 1948, 78 UNTS 277, 280
(The following acts shall be punishable: (b) Conspiracy to commit genocide;).
357
See Prosecutor v. Musema, ICTR Trial Chamber I, ICTR-96-13-A, Judgment and Sentence, 185 (Jan. 27, 2000)
(The Chamber notes that the crime of conspiracy to commit genocide covered in the Statute is taken from the
Genocide Convention. The Travaux Prparatoires of the Genocide Convention suggest that the rationale for
including such an offence was to ensure, in view of the serious nature of the crime of genocide, that the mere
agreement to commit genocide should be punishable even if no preparatory act has taken place.); Ferdinand
Nahimana, Jean-Bosco Barayagwiza, Hassan Ngeze v. The Prosecutor, ICTR Appeals Chamber, ICTR-99-52-A,
Judgment, 894 (Nov. 28, 2007) (Conspiracy to commit genocide under Article 2(3)(b) of the Statute has been
defined as an agreement between two or more persons to commit the crime of genocide. The existence of such an
agreement between individuals to commit genocide (or concerted agreement to act) is its material element (actus
reus); furthermore, the individuals involved in the agreement must have the intent to destroy in whole or in part a
national, ethnical, racial or religious group as such (mens rea).).
358
Charter of the International Military Tribunal, art. 6, annexed to Agreement by the Government of the United
Kingdom of Great Britain and Northern Ireland, the Government of the United States of America, the Provisional
1127
its Charter to authorize prosecutions for conspiracy to commit war crimes and crimes against
humanity. 359
Government of the French Republic and the Government of the Union of Soviet Socialist Republics for the
Prosecution and Punishment of the Major War Criminals of the European Axis, Aug. 8, 1945, 82 UNTS 280, 288
(The following acts, or any of them, are crimes coming within the jurisdiction of the Tribunal for which there shall
be individual responsibility: (a) Crimes against peace: namely, planning, preparation, initiation or waging of a
war of aggression, or a war in violation of international treaties, agreements or assurances, or participation in a
common plan or conspiracy for the accomplishment of any of the foregoing;).
359
United States, et al. v. Gring, et al., Judgment, I TRIAL OF THE MAJOR WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE IMT 226
(Count One, however, charges not only the conspiracy to commit aggressive war, but also to commit War Crimes
and Crimes against Humanity. But the Charter does not define as a separate crime any conspiracy except the one to
commit acts of aggressive war.).
360
See, e.g., United States, et al. v. Gring, et al., Judgment, I TRIAL OF THE MAJOR WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE
IMT 256 (If satisfied of the criminal guilt of any organisation or group, this Tribunal should not hesitate to declare
it to be criminal because the theory of group criminality is new, or because it might be unjustly applied by some
subsequent tribunals. On the other hand, the Tribunal should make such declaration of criminality so far as possible
in a manner to insure that innocent persons will not be punished. A criminal organisation is analogous to a criminal
conspiracy in that the essence of both is cooperation for criminal purposes. There must be a group bound together
and organized for a common purpose. The group must be formed or used in connection with the commission of
crimes denounced by the Charter. Since the declaration with respect to the organisations and groups will, as has
been pointed out, fix the criminality of its members, that definition should exclude persons who had no knowledge
of the criminal purposes or acts of the organisation and those who were drafted by the State for membership, unless
they were personally implicated in the commission of acts declared criminal by Article 6 of the Charter as members
of the organisation. Membership alone is not enough to come within the scope of these declarations.).
361
See, e.g., United States v. Ohlendorf, et al. (Einsatzgruppen Case), IV TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE
NMT 372 (In line with recognized principles common to all civilized legal systems, 2 of Article II of Control
Council Law No. 10 specifies a number of types of connection with crime which are sufficient to establish guilt.
Thus, not only are principals guilty but also accessories, those who take a consenting part in the commission of
crime or are connected with plans or enterprises involved in its commission, those who order or abet crime, and
those who belong to an organization or group engaged in the commission of crime.).
362
James Speed, Attorney General, Military Commissions, July 1865, 11 OPINIONS OF THE ATTORNEY GENERAL
297, 312, 314 (1869) (noting that to unite with banditti, jayhawkers, guerillas, or any other unauthorized marauders
is a high offence against the laws of war; the offence is complete when the band is organized or joined. The
atrocities committed by such a band do not constitute the offence, but make the reasons, and sufficient reasons they
are, why such banditti are denounced by the laws of war.).
363
Prosecutor v. Tadi, ICTY Appeals Chamber, IT-94-1-A, Judgment, 195 (Jul. 15, 1999) (Many post-World
War II cases concerning war crimes proceed upon the principle that when two or more persons act together to
1128
cases of co-perpetration where all participants in the common design possess the same
criminal intent to commit a crime (and one or more of them actually perpetrate the crime,
with intent); 364
cases where the requisite mens rea comprises knowledge of the nature of the system of
ill-treatment (e.g., a German concentration camp) and intent to further the common
design of ill-treatment (such intent may be proved either directly or as a matter of
inference from the nature of the accuseds authority within the camp or organizational
hierarchy); 365 and
further a common criminal purpose, offences perpetrated by any of them may entail the criminal liability of all the
members of the group. Close scrutiny of the relevant case law shows that broadly speaking, the notion of common
purpose encompasses three distinct categories of collective criminality.).
364
Prosecutor v. Tadi, ICTY Appeals Chamber, IT-94-1-A, Judgment, 220 (Jul. 15, 1999) (In sum, the Appeals
Chamber holds that the notion of common design as a form of accomplice liability is firmly established in
customary international law and in addition is upheld, albeit implicitly, in the Statute of the International Tribunal.
As for the objective and subjective elements of the crime, the case law shows that the notion has been applied to
three distinct categories of cases. First, in cases of co-perpetration, where all participants in the common design
possess the same criminal intent to commit a crime (and one or more of them actually perpetrate the crime, with
intent).).
365
Prosecutor v. Tadi, ICTY Appeals Chamber, IT-94-1-A, Judgment, 220 (Jul. 15, 1999) (Secondly, in the so-
called concentration camp cases, where the requisite mens rea comprises knowledge of the nature of the system of
ill-treatment and intent to further the common design of ill-treatment. Such intent may be proved either directly or
as a matter of inference from the nature of the accuseds authority within the camp or organisational hierarchy.).
See also Prosecutor v. Krnojelac, ICTY Appeals Chamber, IT-97-25-A, Judgment, 96 (Sept. 17, 2003) (The
Appeals Chamber notes that, with regard to the crimes considered within a systemic form of joint criminal
enterprise, the intent of the participants other than the principal offenders presupposes personal knowledge of the
system of ill-treatment (whether proven by express testimony or a matter of reasonable inference from the accuseds
position of authority) and the intent to further the concerted system of ill-treatment. Using these criteria, it is less
important to prove that there was a more or less formal agreement between all the participants than to prove their
involvement in the system. As the Appeals Chamber recalled in the Tadic Appeals Judgement, in his summary of
the Belsen case the Judge Advocate summed up and approved the Prosecutions legal submissions in the following
terms: The case for the Prosecution is that all the accused employed on the staff at Auschwitz knew that a system
and a course of conduct was in force, and that, in one way or another, in furtherance of a common agreement to run
the camp in a brutal way, all those people were taking part in that course of conduct.).
366
Prosecutor v. Tadi, ICTY Appeals Chamber, IT-94-1-A, Judgment, 220 (Jul. 15, 1999) (With regard to the
third category of cases, it is appropriate to apply the notion of common purpose only where the following
requirements concerning mens rea are fulfilled: (i) the intention to take part in a joint criminal enterprise and to
further individually and jointly the criminal purposes of that enterprise; and (ii) the foreseeability of the possible
commission by other members of the group of offences that do not constitute the object of the common criminal
purpose. Hence, the participants must have had in mind the intent, for instance, to ill-treat prisoners of war (even if
such a plan arose extemporaneously) and one or some members of the group must have actually killed them. In
order for responsibility for the deaths to be imputable to the others, however, everyone in the group must have been
able to predict this result. It should be noted that more than negligence is required. What is required is a state of
1129
mind in which a person, although he did not intend to bring about a certain result, was aware that the actions of the
group were most likely to lead to that result but nevertheless willingly took that risk. In other words, the so-called
dolus eventualis is required (also called advertent recklessness in some national legal systems).). Cf. Pinkerton v.
United States, 328 U.S. 640, 647 (1946) (A scheme to use the mails to defraud, which is joined in by more than one
person, is a conspiracy. Yet all members are responsible, though only one did the mailing. The governing principle
is the same when the substantive offense is committed by one of the conspirators in furtherance of the unlawful
project. The criminal intent to do the act is established by the formation of the conspiracy. Each conspirator
instigated the commission of the crime. The unlawful agreement contemplated precisely what was done. It was
formed for the purpose. The act done was in execution of the enterprise. The rule which holds responsible one who
counsels, procures, or commands another to commit a crime is founded on the same principle. That principle is
recognized in the law of conspiracy when the overt act of one partner in crime is attributable to all.).
1130
XIX Documentary Appendix Notes on Treaties and Other Relevant Documents
Chapter Contents
19.1 Introduction
19.2 Lists of Treaties and Other Documents
19.3 Lieber Code
19.4 1856 Paris Declaration Respecting Maritime Law
19.5 1864 GWS
19.6 1868 St. Petersburg Declaration
19.7 1899 and 1907 Hague Declarations on Weapons
19.8 1899 Hague II and 1907 Hague IV Conventions and Annexed Regulations
Regarding Land Warfare
19.9 1907 Hague X
19.10 1922 Washington Treaty on Submarines and Noxious Gases
19.11 1923 Hague Air and Radio Rules
19.12 1925 Geneva Gas and Bacteriological Protocol
19.13 1929 Geneva Conventions
19.14 1930 London Treaty for the Limitation and Reduction of Naval Armament
and 1936 London Protocol
19.15 1935 Roerich Pact
19.16 1949 Geneva Conventions
19.17 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention
19.18 Vienna Convention on the Law of Treaties
19.19 Biological Weapons Convention
19.20 1977 Additional Protocols to the 1949 Geneva Conventions
19.21 CCW, CCW Amended Article 1, and CCW Protocols
19.22 Chemical Weapons Convention
19.23 Rome Statute of the International Criminal Court
19.24 1999 U.N. Secretary Generals Bulletin for U.N. Forces
19.25 2005 ICRC Study on Customary International Humanitarian Law
19.26 AP III
19.1 INTRODUCTION
This appendix provides background information about certain treaties and other
documents.
This appendix is intended to describe DoD views and practice relating to those
documents as of the date of publication of this manual.
This section lists: (1) law of war treaties to which the United States is a Party; (2) arms
control agreements to which the United States is a Party that are of direct relevance to the law of
war; (3) examples of treaties signed but not ratified by the United States; (4) examples of treaties
1131
that the United States has neither signed nor ratified; and (5) examples of treaties or documents
of mainly historical value.
Bold type within this section indicates an abbreviation used in this manual; a full list of
abbreviations is provided at the beginning of the manual. 2
19.2.1 Law of War Treaties to Which the United States Is a Party. Law of war treaties to
which the United States is a Party include:
Washington Convention Regarding the Rights of Neutrals at Sea of October 31, 1854. 3
Hague Convention for the Exemption of Hospital Ships, in Time of War, from the
Payment of all Dues and Taxes Imposed for the Benefit of the State of December 21,
1904. 4
Hague Convention III of October 18, 1907, Relative to the Opening of Hostilities. 5
Hague Convention IV of October 18, 1907, Respecting the Laws and Customs of War on
Land (Hague IV), and the Annex thereto, entitled Regulations Respecting the Laws and
Customs of War on Land (Hague IV Regulations). 6
Hague Convention V of October 18, 1907, Respecting the Rights and Duties of Neutral
Powers and Persons in Case of War on Land (Hague V). 7
Hague Convention VIII of October 18, 1907, Relative to the Laying of Automatic
Submarine Contact Mines (Hague VIII). 8
1
Refer to 1.6.2 (Arms Control).
2
Refer to List of Abbreviations.
3
Convention with Russia, Jul. 22, 1854, 10 STAT. 1105.
4
Refer to 7.12.4.3 (Relief From Taxation in Time of War).
5
Convention Relative to the Opening of Hostilities, Oct. 18, 1907, 36 STAT. 2259.
6
Refer to 19.8.2 (Hague IV).
7
Convention Respecting the Rights and Duties of Neutral Powers and Persons in Case of War on Land, Oct. 18,
1907, 36 STAT. 2310.
8
Refer to 13.11 (Naval Mines); 13.12 (Torpedoes).
1132
Hague Convention IX of October 18, 1907, Concerning Bombardment by Naval Forces
in Time of War (Hague IX). 9
Hague Convention XI of October 18, 1907, Relative to Certain Restrictions with Regard
to the Exercise of the Right of Capture in Naval War (Hague XI). 10
Hague Convention XIII of October 18, 1907, Concerning the Rights and Duties of
Neutral Powers in Naval War (Hague XIII). 11
1930 London Treaty for the Limitation and Reduction of Naval Armament. 13
Treaty on the Protection of Artistic and Scientific Institutions and Historic Monuments of
April 15, 1935 (Roerich Pact). 14
o Geneva Convention for the Amelioration of the Condition of the Wounded and
Sick in Armed Forces in the Field of August 12, 1949 (GWS); 17
o Geneva Convention for the Amelioration of the Condition of Wounded, Sick and
Shipwrecked Members of Armed Forces at Sea of August 12, 1949 (GWS-Sea); 18
9
Convention Concerning Bombardment by Naval Forces in Time of War, Oct. 18, 1907, 36 STAT. 2351.
10
Convention Relative to Certain Restrictions With Regard to the Exercise of the Right of Capture in Naval War,
Oct. 18, 1907, 36 STAT. 2396.
11
Convention Concerning the Rights and Duties of Neutral Powers in Naval War, Oct. 18, 1907, 36 STAT. 2415.
12
Pan American Maritime Neutrality Convention, Feb. 20, 1928, 47 STAT. 1989.
13
Refer to 19.14 (1930 London Treaty for the Limitation and Reduction of Naval Armament and 1936 London
Protocol).
14
Refer to 19.15 (1935 Roerich Pact).
15
Refer to 1.11.2 (U.N. Charter Framework and the U.N. Security Council).
16
Refer to 19.16 (1949 Geneva Conventions).
17
Refer to 19.16.2 (GWS).
18
Refer to 19.16.3 (GWS-Sea).
19
Refer to 19.16.4 (GPW).
1133
Hague Convention for the Protection of Cultural Property in the Event of Armed Conflict
of May 14, 1954 (1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention). 21
Optional Protocol to the Convention on the Rights of the Child on the involvement of
Children in Armed Conflict, May 25, 2000 (Child Soldiers Protocol). 29
Protocol Additional to the Geneva Conventions of 12 August 1949, and Relating to the
Adoption of an Additional Distinctive Emblem (Protocol III), December 8, 2005 (AP
III). 30
20
Refer to 19.16.5 (GC).
21
Refer to 19.17 (1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention).
22
Refer to 19.21 (CCW, CCW Amended Article 1, and CCW Protocols).
23
Refer to 19.21.1.1 (CCW Amended Scope of Application).
24
Refer to 19.21.2 (CCW Protocol I).
25
Refer to 19.21.3 (CCW Amended Mines Protocol).
26
Refer to 19.21.4 (CCW Protocol III on Incendiary Weapons).
27
Refer to 19.21.5 (CCW Protocol IV on Blinding Laser Weapons).
28
Refer to 19.21.6 (CCW Protocol V on Explosive Remnants of War).
29
Refer to 4.20.5.2 (Child Soldiers Protocol).
1134
19.2.2 Arms Control Agreements to Which the United States Is a Party That Are of
Direct Relevance to the Law of War. The United States is a Party to the following treaties that
contain restrictions on the use of weapons during armed conflict:
Geneva Protocol for the Prohibition of the Use in War of Asphyxiating, Poisonous or
Other Gases, and of Bacteriological Methods of Warfare of June 17, 1925 (1925 Geneva
Gas and Bacteriological Protocol). 31
19.2.3 Examples of Treaties Signed but Not Ratified by the United States. This section is
not comprehensive. It lists examples of treaties that the United States has signed, but not
ratified.
A State that has signed a treaty is obliged to refrain from acts that would defeat the object
and purpose of a treaty, until it shall have made its intention clear not to become a Party to the
treaty. 35
Procs-Verbal Relating to the Rules of Submarine Warfare set forth in Part IV of the
Treaty of London of April 22, 1930 (1936 London Protocol). 36
30
Refer to 19.26 (AP III).
31
Refer to 19.12 (1925 Geneva Gas and Bacteriological Protocol).
32
Refer to 19.19 (Biological Weapons Convention).
33
Refer to 6.10 (Certain Environmental Modification Techniques).
34
Refer to 19.22 (Chemical Weapons Convention).
35
Consider VCLT art. 18 (A State is obliged to refrain from acts which would defeat the object and purpose of a
treaty when: (a) It has signed the treaty or has exchanged instruments constituting the treaty subject to ratification,
acceptance or approval, until it shall have made its intention clear not to become a party to the treaty; or (b) It has
expressed its consent to be bound by the treaty, pending the entry into force of the treaty and provided that such
entry into force is not unduly delayed.). See also William P. Rogers, Letter of Submittal, Oct. 18, 1971, MESSAGE
FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE VCLT 2 (Article 18 sets forth rules governing the obligation of States not
to defeat the object and purpose of a treaty prior to its entry into force. That obligation is limited to (a) States that
have signed a treaty or exchanged ad referendum instruments constituting a treaty, until such time as they make
clear their intention not to become a party, and (b) States that have expressed consent to be bound, pending entry
into force and provided such entry into force is not unduly delayed. This rule is widely recognized in customary
international law.).
1135
Vienna Convention on the Law of Treaties (VCLT). 37
Protocol (I) Additional to the Geneva Conventions of August 12, 1949, and Relating to
the Protection of Victims of International Armed Conflicts of June 8, 1977 (AP I). 38
Protocol (II) Additional to the Geneva Conventions of August 12, 1949, and Relating to
the Protection of Victims of Non-International Armed Conflicts of June 8, 1977 (AP
II). 39
Rome Statute of the International Criminal Court of July 17, 1998 (Rome Statute). 41
19.2.4 Examples of Treaties That the United States Has Neither Signed Nor Ratified.
This section is not comprehensive. It lists examples of law of war and arms control treaties that
the United States has neither signed nor ratified:
Hague Convention VI Relating to the Status of Enemy Merchant Ships at the Outbreak of
Hostilities of October 18, 1907.
Hague Convention VII Relating to the Conversion of Merchant Ships into Warships of
October 18, 1907.
First Protocol to the Hague Convention of 1954 for the Protection of Cultural Property in
the Event of Armed Conflict of May 14, 1954.
Ottawa Convention on the Prohibition of the Use, Stockpiling, Production and Transfer
of Anti-Personnel Mines and on Their Destruction of September 18, 1997. 44
36
Refer to 19.14 (1930 London Treaty for the Limitation and Reduction of Naval Armament and 1936 London
Protocol).
37
Refer to 19.18 (Vienna Convention on the Law of Treaties).
38
Refer to 19.20.1 (AP I).
39
Refer to 19.20.2 (AP II).
40
Refer to 13.1.2 (The United States and the LOS Convention).
41
Refer to 19.23 (Rome Statute of the International Criminal Court).
42
Refer to 19.4 (1856 Paris Declaration Respecting Maritime Law).
43
Refer to 19.7.1 (1899 Declaration on Expanding Bullets).
44
Refer to 6.12.14 (Ottawa Convention on Anti-Personnel Landmines).
1136
Second Protocol to the Hague Convention of 1954 for the Protection of Cultural Property
in the Event of Armed Conflict of March 26, 1999.
General Order No. 100, Instructions for the Government of Armies of the United States
in the Field, 1863 (Lieber Code). 46
Geneva Convention for the Amelioration of the Wounded in Armies in the Field of
August 22, 1864 (1864 GWS). 47
St. Petersburg Declaration Renouncing the Use, in Time of War, of Explosive Projectiles
under 400 Grams Weight of December 11, 1868 (1868 St. Petersburg Declaration). 48
Hague Declaration (IV, 1) to Prohibit for the Term of Five Years the Launching of
Projectiles and Explosives from Balloons, and Other Methods of a Similar Nature of July
29, 1899. 49
Hague Convention II with Respect to the Laws and Customs of War on Land, with
Annex of Regulations of July 29, 1899 (1899 Hague II). 51
Hague Convention X for the Adaptation to Maritime Warfare of the Principles of the
Geneva Convention of October 18, 1907 (Hague X). 52
Hague Declaration XIV Prohibiting the Discharge of Projectiles and Explosives from
Balloons of October 18, 1907. 53
Washington Treaty Relating to the Use of Submarines and Noxious Gases in Warfare of
February 6, 1922. 54
45
Refer to 6.13.4 (Convention on Cluster Munitions).
46
Refer to 19.3 (Lieber Code).
47
Refer to 19.5 (1864 GWS).
48
Refer to 19.6 (1868 St. Petersburg Declaration).
49
Refer to 19.7.3 (1899 and 1907 Declarations on the Discharge of Projectiles and Explosives From Balloons).
50
Refer to 19.7.2 (1899 Declaration on Asphyxiating Gases).
51
Refer to 19.8.1 (1899 Hague II).
52
Refer to 19.9 (1907 Hague X).
53
Refer to 19.7.3 (1899 and 1907 Declarations on the Discharge of Projectiles and Explosives From Balloons).
1137
General Report of the Commission of Jurists to Consider and Report upon the Revision
of the Rules of Warfare, Feb. 19, 1923 (1923 Hague Air and Radio Rules). 55
Geneva Convention Amelioration of the Condition of the Wounded and Sick of Armies
in the Field of July 27, 1929 (1929 GWS). 56
Geneva Convention Relative to the Treatment of Prisoners of War of July 27, 1929 (1929
GPW). 57
General Order No. 100, Instructions for the Government of Armies of the United States
in the Field, 1863, issued on April 24, 1863, is often called the Lieber Code because it was
prepared by Francis Lieber. 58 It is an early example of the law of war being implemented
through military instructions or regulations. 59
The Lieber Code was the first comprehensive publication on the law of war for U.S.
armed forces and is regarded as an important work of historical significance in the law of war. 60
The Lieber Code established rules governing martial law, military jurisdiction, the
treatment of spies and deserters, and the treatment of POWs. Many key law of war principles,
such as the principle of military necessity, were codified in the Lieber Code. 61 However, parts of
54
Refer to 19.10 (1922 Washington Treaty on Submarines and Noxious Gases).
55
Refer to 19.11 (1923 Hague Air and Radio Rules).
56
Refer to 19.13.1 (1929 GWS).
57
Refer to 19.13.2 (1929 GPW).
58
E. D. Townsend, Assistant Adjutant General, General Orders No. 100, Instructions for the Government of Armies
of the United States in the Field, Apr. 24, 1863, reprinted in INSTRUCTIONS FOR THE GOVERNMENT OF ARMIES OF
THE UNITED STATES IN THE FIELD, 2 (Government Printing Office, 1898) (The following Instructions for the
Government of Armies of the United States in the Field, prepared by Francis Lieber, L.L.D., and revised by a Board
of Officers, of which Major General E.A. Hitchcock is president, having been approved by the President of the
United States, he commands that they be published for the information of all concerned.).
59
Refer to 18.7 (Instructions, Regulations, and Procedures to Implement and Enforce the Law of War).
60
See, e.g., Kononov v. Latvia, European Court of Human Rights, App. No. 36376/04, 63 (May 17, 2010) (The
Lieber Code 1863 is regarded as the first attempt to codify the laws and customs of war. Although only applicable
to American forces, it represented a summary of the laws and customs of war existing at the time and was influential
in later codifications.); Elihu Root, Francis Lieber, 7 AJIL 453, 457 (1913) (In the Brussels Conference of 1874,
convened at the instance of the Emperor of Russia for the purpose of codifying the laws and customs of war, the
Russian delegate, Baron Jomini, as president of the conference, declared that the project of an international
convention then presented had its origin in the rules of President Lincoln. The convention agreed upon at Brussels
was not ratified, but in 1880 the Institute of International Law made the work of the Brussels Conference and the
work of Lieber, which so far as it was of general application was incorporated in that convention, the basis of a
manual of the laws of war upon land; and finally, in The Hague Conferences of 1899 and 1907, the conventions with
respect to the laws and customs of war on land gave the adherence of the whole civilized world in substance and
effect to those international rules which President Lincoln made binding upon the American armies fifty years
ago.).
61
Refer to 2.2 (Military Necessity).
1138
the Lieber Code reflect 19th century understandings of the law of war that have been modified
by treaties that the United States has ratified or by subsequent customary international law. For
example, the Lieber Code permitted the denial of quarter in certain circumstances. 62 However,
denying quarter in those circumstances is no longer acceptable. 63
The Lieber Code was prepared during the Civil War. The Confederate forces agreed with
some provisions of the Lieber Code, but disagreed with others. 64
The Lieber Code reflected rules for regular war or what today would be classified as
international armed conflict. Such rules were applied to the Confederate forces for humanitarian
reasons, even though the United States did not recognize the Confederacy as a legitimate
government or State. 65 In this way, the Lieber Code is an example of the application of the
doctrine of recognition of belligerency. 66
The 1856 Paris Declaration respecting Maritime Law is an early multilateral law of war
treaty that was intended to be open to accession by all States, including States that did not
participate in its negotiation. 67 This treaty illustrates how law of war treaties may be written
with a view towards being able to be accepted and applied by all States.
The United States is not a Party to the 1856 Paris Declaration. The 1856 Paris
Declarations provision that blockades must be effective in order to be binding reflects
customary international law. 68
62
LIEBER CODE art. 61 (All troops of the enemy known or discovered to give no quarter in general, or to any
portion of the army, receive none.).
63
Refer to 5.5.7 (Prohibition Against Declaring That No Quarter Be Given).
64
James A. Seddon, Letter to Robert Ould, Jun. 24, 1863, reprinted in FRED C. AINSWORTH & JOSEPH W. KIRKLEY,
VI THE WAR OF THE REBELLION: A COMPILATION OF THE OFFICIAL RECORDS OF THE UNION AND CONFEDERATE
ARMIES, SERIES II, 41 (1899) (Order No. 100 is a confused, unassorted, and undiscriminating compilation from the
opinion of the publicists of the last two centuries, some of which are obsolete, others repudiated; and a military
commander under this code may pursue a line of conduct in accordance with principles of justice, faith, and honor,
or he may justify conduct correspondent with the warfare of the barbarous hordes who overran the Roman Empire,
or who, in the Middle Ages, devastated the continent of Asia and menaced the civilization of Europe.).
65
Refer to 17.2.3 (Application of Humanitarian Rules and the Legal Status of the Parties to the Conflict).
66
Refer to 3.3.3.2 (Assertion of War Powers by a State Engaged in Hostilities Against a Non-State Armed Group).
67
Declaration respecting maritime law signed by the Plenipotentiaries of Great Britain, Austria, France, Prussia,
Russia, Sardinia, and Turkey, assembled in Congress at Paris, Apr. 16, 1856, reprinted in 1 AJIL SUPPLEMENT:
OFFICIAL DOCUMENTS 89 (1907) (The Governments of the undersigned Plenipotentiaries engage to bring the
present Declaration to the knowledge of the states which have not taken part in the Congress of Paris, and to invite
them to accede to it. Convinced that the maxims which they now proclaim cannot but be received with gratitude by
the whole world, the undersigned Plenipotentiaries doubt not that the efforts of their governments to obtain the
general adoption thereof will be crowned with full success.).
68
Refer to 13.10.2.3 (Effectiveness of the Blockade).
1139
19.5 1864 GWS
The Geneva Convention for the Amelioration of the Wounded in Armies in the Field of
August 22, 1864 (1864 GWS) was one of the earliest multilateral law of war treaties. 69
The 1864 GWS provided for the use of the red cross as a distinctive emblem to help
identify medical personnel. 70 It also provided for wounded and sick combatants to be collected
and cared for regardless of the nation of their armed forces. 71
The United States acceded to the 1864 GWS on March 1, 1882. 72 The 1864 GWS was
replaced by the GWS in relations between the Parties to the GWS. 73
The Declaration Renouncing the Use, in Time of War, of Explosive Projectiles Weighing
Under 400 Grams Weight (1868 St. Petersburg Declaration) was promulgated by an international
conference held in St. Petersburg, Russia on December 11, 1868. The 1868 St. Petersburg
Declaration prohibits Parties from, in case of war among themselves, the employment, by their
military or naval forces, of any projectile of less weight than four hundred grammes, which is
explosive, or is charged with fulminating or inflammable substances. 74
The United States is not a Party to the 1868 St. Petersburg Declaration.
The language in the Preamble of the 1868 St. Petersburg Declaration that notes that the
employment of arms which uselessly aggravate the sufferings of disabled men would be
contrary to the laws of humanity is an early statement of the prohibition against weapons
69
Convention for the Amelioration of the Wounded in Armies in the Field, Aug. 22, 1864, 22 STAT. 940.
70
Refer to 7.15.1.1 (Red Cross).
71
Refer to 7.5.2.2 (Affirmative Obligation to Provide Adequate Care).
72
Chester A. Arthur, Proclamation Regarding the 1864 GWS, Jul. 26, 1882, 22 STAT. 940, 950-51 (And whereas
the President of the United States of America, by and with the advice and consent of the Senate, did, on the first day
of March, one thousand eight hundred and eighty-two, declare that the United States accede to the said Convention
of the 22d of August, 1864, and also accede to the said Convention of October 20, 1868; And whereas on the ninth
day of June, one thousand eight hundred and eighty-two, the Federal Council of the Swiss Confederation, in virtue
of the final provision of a certain minute of the exchange of the ratifications of the said Convention at Berne,
December 22, 1864, did, by a formal declaration, accept the said adhesion of the United States of America, as well
in the name of the Swiss Confederation as in that of the other contracting States; And whereas, furthermore, the
government of the Swiss Confederation has informed the Government of the United States that the exchange of the
ratifications of the aforesaid additional articles of 20th October, 1868, to which the United States of America have in
like manner adhered as aforesaid, has not yet taken place between the contracting parties, and that these articles
cannot be regarded as a treaty in full force and effect:).
73
Refer to 19.16.2.1 (Relationship Between the GWS and Earlier Conventions).
74
The Declaration of St. Petersburg, 1868, reprinted in 1 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL DOCUMENTS 95, 96 (1907)
(The contracting parties engage, mutually, to renounce, in case of war among themselves, the employment, by their
military or naval forces, of any projectile of less weight than four hundred grammes, which is explosive, or is
charged with fulminating or inflammable substances.).
1140
calculated to cause unnecessary suffering, which is a principle that is found in treaties to which
the United States is a Party and in customary international law. 75
The prohibition in the Declaration against any projectile of less weight than four
hundred grammes, which is explosive, or is charged with fulminating or inflammable
substances does not reflect customary international law. 76 For example, for many decades
without legal controversy, States have used, and continue to use, tracer ammunition, grenades,
explosive bullets, or other projectiles of less weight than four hundred grams with a burning or
explosive capability. 77
The United States is not a Party to the 1899 Declaration on Expanding Bullets and does
not regard the 1899 Declaration on Expanding Bullets as customary international law applicable
in either international or non-international armed conflicts. 80
75
Refer to 6.6 (Weapons Calculated to Cause Superfluous Injury).
76
U.S. RESPONSE TO ICRC CIHL STUDY 524 (Since the St. Petersburg Declaration, there has been considerable
State practice involving the anti-personnel use of exploding bullets, despite the ICRCs statement that governments
have adhered to the Declaration. Two participants in the ICRC-hosted 1974 Lucerne Meeting of Experts on
certain weapons conventional weapons concluded: At present it is widely held that in view of the development in
weapons technology and state practice the St. Petersburg Declaration cannot be interpreted literally, or in any case
that it has not as such become declaratory of customary international law.... [T]he prohibition contained in it serves
to illustrate the principle prohibiting the causing of unnecessary suffering, at least as it was contemplated in 1868.
U.S. legal reviews have detailed State practice contrary to the ICRCs statement and consistent with the conclusion
contained in the above quotation.) (amendments to internal quote shown in U.S. Response to ICRC CIHL Study).
77
Consider Commission of Jurists to Consider and Report Upon the Revision of the Rules of Warfare, General
Report, Part II: Rules of Arial Warfare, art. 18, Feb. 19, 1923, reprinted in 32 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL
DOCUMENTS 12, 21 (1938) (The use of tracer, incendiary or explosive projectiles by or against an aircraft is not
prohibited. This provision applies equally to states which are parties to the Declaration of St. Petersburg, 1868, and
to those which are not.). Refer to 6.5.4.3 (Exploding Bullets).
78
Declaration to Abstain From the Use of Bullets Which Expand or Flatten Easily in the Human Body, Jul. 29,
1899, reprinted in 1 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL DOCUMENTS 155, 155-56 (1907) (The Contracting Parties agree
to abstain from the use of bullets which expand or flatten easily in the human body, such as bullets with a hard
envelope which does not entirely cover the core, or is pierced with incisions.).
79
Declaration to Abstain From the Use of Bullets Which Expand or Flatten Easily in the Human Body, Jul. 29,
1899, reprinted in 1 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL DOCUMENTS 155, 156 (1907) (The present Declaration is only
binding for the Contracting Powers in the case of a war between two or more of them. It shall cease to be binding
from the time when, in a war between the Contracting Powers, one of the belligerents is joined by a non-Contracting
Power.).
80
Refer to 6.5.4.4 (Expanding Bullets).
1141
19.7.2 1899 Declaration on Asphyxiating Gases. The 1899 Declaration on Asphyxiating
Gases was concluded at The Hague on July 29, 1899. 81 This 1899 Declaration prohibits the use
of projectiles the object of which is the diffusion of asphyxiating or deleterious gases. 82
This declaration was followed by the 1922 Washington Treaty on Submarines and
Noxious Gases, and the 1925 Geneva Gas and Bacteriological Protocol. 83 The United States is a
Party to the 1925 Geneva Gas and Bacteriological Protocol and applies the broader prohibition in
it on the use of asphyxiating, poisonous, or other gases, and all analogous liquids, materials, or
devices. 84
19.7.3 1899 and 1907 Declarations on the Discharge of Projectiles and Explosives From
Balloons. In the 1899 Hague (IV, 1), Parties agreed to prohibit, for a term of five years, the
launching of projectiles and explosives from balloons, or by other new methods of similar
nature. 85 The United States deposited its instrument of ratification to the 1899 Hague
Declaration (IV, 1) on September 4, 1900. 86
The 1907 Hague Declaration (XIV) Prohibiting the Discharge of Projectiles and
Explosives from Balloons sought to renew the expired 1899 Hague Declaration (IV, 1). 87 The
United States deposited its instrument of ratification to the 1907 Hague Declaration (XIV) on
81
Declaration to Abstain From the Use of Projectiles the Object of Which Is the Diffusion of Asphyxiating or
Deleterious Gases, Jul. 29, 1899, reprinted in 1 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL DOCUMENTS 157, 158 (1907).
82
Declaration to Abstain From the Use of Projectiles the Object of Which Is the Diffusion of Asphyxiating or
Deleterious Gases, Jul. 29, 1899, reprinted in 1 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL DOCUMENTS 157 (1907) (The
Contracting Powers agree to abstain from the use of projectiles the object of which is the diffusion of asphyxiating
or deleterious gases.).
83
Refer to 19.10 (1922 Washington Treaty on Submarines and Noxious Gases); 19.12 (1925 Geneva Gas and
Bacteriological Protocol).
84
Refer to 6.8.2 (Asphyxiating, Poisonous, or Other Gases, and All Analogous Liquids, Materials, or Devices).
85
Declaration Prohibiting for a Term of Five Years the Launching of Projectiles or Explosives from Balloons, or By
Any Other New Methods of Similar Nature, Jul. 29, 1899, 32 STAT. 1839 (The Contracting Powers agree to
prohibit, for a term of five years, the launching of projectiles and explosives from balloons, or by other new methods
of similar nature.).
86
Theodore Roosevelt, Proclamation Regarding the 1899 Declaration Prohibiting the Launching of Projectiles or
Explosives from Balloons, Nov. 1, 1901, 32 STAT. 1839, 1842 (And Whereas, the said Declaration was duly ratified
by the Government of the United States of America, by and with the advice and consent of the Senate thereof, and
by the Governments of the other Powers aforesaid, with the exception of those of China and Turkey; And Whereas,
in pursuance of a stipulation of the said Declaration, the ratifications thereof were deposited at the Hague on the 4th
day of September, 1900, by the Plenipotentiaries of the Governments of the United States of America, Austria-
Hungary, Belgium, Denmark, Spain, France, Italy, the Netherlands, Persia, Portugal, Roumania, Russia, Siam,
Sweden and Norway, and Bulgaria .).
87
Declaration (XIV) Prohibiting the Discharge of Projectiles and Explosives from Balloons, Oct. 18, 1907, 36 STAT.
2439 (The Undersigned, Plenipotentiaries of the Powers invited to the Second International Peace Conference at
The Hague, duly authorized to that effect by their Governments, inspired by the sentiments which found expression
in the Declaration of St. Petersburg of the 29th November (11th December), 1868, and being desirous of renewing
the declaration of The Hague of the 29th July, 1899, which was now expired,).
1142
November 27, 1909. 88 This treaty was intended to have effect until the end of the Third Hague
Peace Conference. 89 The Third Hague Peace Conference never met due to the outbreak of
World War I. 90 The application of the 1907 Hague Declaration (XIV) is limited, inter alia, due
to its general participation clause providing that it only applies if all the parties to the conflict are
also Parties to the Declaration. 91 During World War II, the War Department took the position
that the 1907 Hague Declaration (XIV) is not binding and will not be observed. 92
19.8 1899 HAGUE II AND 1907 HAGUE IV CONVENTIONS AND ANNEXED REGULATIONS
REGARDING LAND WARFARE
19.8.1 1899 Hague II. The Hague Convention II with Respect to the Laws and Customs
of War on Land of July 29, 1899 (1899 Hague II), with its annexed Regulations, was an early
multilateral law of war treaty that contains provisions that were incorporated into later law of
war treaties.
Article 1 of the 1899 Hague II Regulations addressed the criteria for militia and volunteer
corps to qualify as lawful belligerents and for their members to be entitled to POW status if
captured; these criteria are repeated in Article 4 of the GPW. 93 In addition, Articles 4-20 of the
1899 Hague II Regulations provide basic rules for the care and protection of POWs.
The United States deposited its instrument of ratification to the 1899 Hague II on April 5,
94
1902.
88
William H. Taft, Proclamation Regarding the 1907 Declaration Prohibiting the Discharge of Projectiles and
Explosives from Balloons, Feb. 28, 1910, 36 STAT. 2439, 2442-43 (And whereas the said Declaration has been duly
ratified by the Government of the United States of America, by and with the advice and consent of the Senate
thereof, and by the Governments of China, Great Britain, the Netherlands, Bolivia, and Salvador, and the
ratifications of the said Governments were, as provided for by the said Declaration, deposited by their respective
plenipotentiaries with the Netherlands Government on November 27, 1909.).
89
Declaration (XIV) Prohibiting the Discharge of Projectiles and Explosives from Balloons, Oct. 18, 1907, 36 STAT.
2439 (The Contracting Powers agree to prohibit, for a period extending to the close of the Third Peace Conference,
the discharge of projectiles and explosives from balloons or by other new methods of a similar nature.).
90
SCHINDLER & TOMAN, THE LAWS OF ARMED CONFLICTS: A COLLECTION OF CONVENTIONS, RESOLUTIONS, AND
OTHER DOCUMENTS 309 (2004) (The Declaration of 1907 was to remain in force until the projected Third Peace
Conference. This Conference never having met, the Declaration of 1907 is still formally in force today.).
91
Declaration (XIV) Prohibiting the Discharge of Projectiles and Explosives from Balloons, Oct. 18, 1907, 36 STAT.
2439, 2440 (The present Declaration is only binding on the Contracting Powers in a case of war between two or
more of them. It shall cease to be binding from the time when, in a war between the Contracting Powers, one of the
belligerents is joined by a non-Contracting Power.).
92
WAR DEPARTMENT CIRCULAR NO. 136, 1 (May 7, 1942) (The Hague Declaration Number XIV, October 18,
1907, prohibiting the discharge of projectiles and explosives from balloons (H.D. XIV), is not binding and will not
be observed.).
93
Refer to 4.6.1 (GPW 4A(2) Conditions in General).
94
Theodore Roosevelt, Proclamation Regarding the 1899 Hague II, Apr. 11, 1902, 32 STAT. 1803, 1825 (And
whereas the said Convention was duly ratified by the Government of the United States of America, by and with the
advice and consent of the Senate thereof, and by the Governments of the other Powers aforesaid with the exception
of Sweden and Norway and Turkey; And whereas, in pursuance of the stipulations of Article III of the said
1143
The 1899 Hague II was followed by Hague IV, which replaces the 1899 Hague II as
between Parties to Hague IV. 95 Not all the States that ratified the 1899 Hague II have also
ratified Hague IV. 96
19.8.2 Hague IV. States sought to expand upon and clarify provisions of 1899 Hague II
and the 1899 Hague II Regulations through the Hague Convention IV Respecting the Laws and
Customs of War on Land of October 18, 1907 (Hague IV), and annexed Regulations (Hague IV
Regulations). 97
The United States deposited its instrument of ratification to Hague IV on November 27,
98
1909.
For example, Article 42 of the Hague IV Regulations, which provides a standard for
when the law of belligerent occupation applies, is regarded as customary international law. 100
Convention the ratifications of the said Convention were deposited at the Hague on the 5th Day of April, 1902,
by the Plenipotentiary of the Government of the United States of America:).
95
Refer to 19.8.2.2 (Relationship Between the 1907 Hague IV and the 1899 Hague II).
96
ADAM ROBERTS & RICHARD GUELFF, DOCUMENTS ON THE LAWS OF WAR 68-70 (3rd ed., 2000) ([The 1907
Hague Convention] was intended to replace 1899 Hague Convention II as between states parties to both agreements.
However, of the forty-six states which had become parties to the 1899 Convention, eighteen did not become parties
to the 1907 Convention . They or their successor states remained formally bound by the 1899 Convention.).
97
Convention (IV) Respecting the Laws and Customs of War on Land, Oct. 18, 1907, 36 STAT. 2277, 2279 (The
Contracting Parties [h]ave deemed it necessary to complete and explain in certain particulars the work of the First
Peace Conference, which, following on the Brussels Conference of 1874, and inspired by the ideas dictated by a
wise and generous forethought, adopted provisions intended to define and govern the usages of war on land.).
98
William H. Taft, Proclamation Regarding the Hague IV, Feb. 28, 1907, 36 STAT. 2277, 2309 (And whereas the
said Convention has been duly ratified by the Government of the United States of America, by and with the advice
and consent of the Senate thereof, and by the Governments of Austria-Hungary, Bolivia, Denmark, Germany, Great
Britain, Mexico, the Netherlands, Russia, Salvador, and Sweden, and the ratifications of the said Governments were,
under the provisions of Article 5 of the said Convention, deposited by their respective plenipotentiaries with the
Netherlands Government on November 27, 1909;).
99
See, e.g., United States, et al. v. Gring, et al., Judgment, I TRIAL OF THE MAJOR WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE
IMT 253-54 (concluding that by 1939 these rules laid down in [Hague IV] were recognized by all civilized nations,
and were regarded as being declaratory of the laws and customs of war); United States v. Krupp et al., IX TRIALS
OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 1340 (concurring in judgment that the Hague Convention No. IV of 1907 to
which Germany was a party had, by 1939, become customary law and was, therefore, binding on Germany not only
as treaty law but also as customary law.); United States v. von Leeb, et al. (The High Command Case), XI TRIALS
OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 535-38 (concluding that provisions of Hague IV Reg and 1929 GPW
reflected customary international law relating to the treatment of prisoners of war); United States, et al. v. Araki, et
al., Majority Judgment, International Military Tribunal for the Far East, 48,491, reprinted in NEIL BOISTER &
ROBERT CRYER, DOCUMENTS ON THE TOKYO INTERNATIONAL MILITARY TRIBUNAL: CHARTER, INDICTMENT AND
JUDGMENTS 102 (2008) (explaining that although certain treaties, such as Hague IV and Hague V, might not be
applicable by their terms, the Convention remains as good evidence of the customary law of nations, to be
considered by the Tribunal along with all other available evidence in determining the customary law to be applied in
any given situation.).
1144
19.8.2.2 Relationship Between the 1907 Hague IV and the 1899 Hague II. The
Hague IV, duly ratified, shall as between its Parties be substituted for the 1899 Hague II. The
1899 Hague II remains in force as between its Parties that do not also ratify Hague IV. 101
19.8.3 Martens Clause. The Preamble to the 1899 Hague II contains a clause known as
the Martens Clause because of its association with a delegate to the Hague Peace Conference,
F.F. de Martens: 102
Until a more complete code of the laws of war is issued, the High Contracting
Parties think it right to declare that in cases not included in the Regulations
adopted by them, populations and belligerents remain under the protection and
empire of the principles of international law, as they result from the usages
established between civilized nations, from the laws of humanity, and the
requirements of the public conscience. 103
A similar formulation was included in subsequent treaties, such as the Hague IV, the 1949
Geneva Conventions, and the CCW. 104
The Martens Clause was a compromise following difficult and unresolved debates at the
1899 Hague Peace Conference about the status of resistance fighters in occupied territory. 105
100
Refer to 11.2.2 (Standard for Determining When Territory Is Considered Occupied).
101
HAGUE IV art. 4 (The present Convention, duly ratified, shall as between the Contracting Powers, be substituted
for the Convention of the 29th July, 1899, respecting the Laws and Customs of War on Land. The Convention of
1899 remains in force as between the Powers which signed it, and which do not also ratify the present
Convention.).
102
Theodor Meron, The Martens Clause, Principles of Humanity, and Dictates of Public Conscience, 94 AJIL 78,
79 (2000) (Proposed by the Russian delegate to the Hague Peace Conference, the eminent jurist F.F. de Martens,
the clause has ancient antecedents rooted in natural law and chivalry.).
103
1899 HAGUE II preamble (Until a more complete code of the laws of war is issued, the High Contracting Parties
think it right to declare that in cases not included in the Regulations adopted by them, populations and belligerents
remain under the protection and empire of the principles of international law, as they result from the usages
established between civilized nations, from the laws of humanity, and the requirements of the public conscience).
104
See, e.g., HAGUE IV preamble (Until a more complete code of the laws of war has been issued, the High
Contracting Parties deem it expedient to declare that in cases not included in the Regulations adopted by them, the
inhabitants and the belligerents remain under the protection and the rule of the principles of the law of nations, as
they result from the usages established among civilized peoples, from the laws of humanity, and the dictates of the
public conscience.); GWS art. 63 (providing that denunciation of the Convention shall in no way impair the
obligations which Parties to the conflict shall remain bound to fulfil by virtue of the principles of the law of nations,
as they result from the usages established among civilized peoples, from the laws of humanity and the dictates of
public conscience.); GWS-SEA art. 62 (same); GPW art. 142 (same); GC art. 158 (same); CCW preamble (in
cases not covered by this Convention and its annexed Protocols or by other international agreements, the civilian
population and the combatants shall at all times remain under the protection and authority of the principles of
international law derived from established custom, from the principles of humanity and from the dictates of public
conscience,). Consider AP I art. 1(2) (In cases not covered by this Protocol or by other international agreements,
civilians and combatants remain under the protection and authority of the principles of international law derived
from established custom, from the principles of humanity and from the dictates of public conscience.); AP II
preamble (Recalling that, in cases not covered by the law in force, the human person remains under the protection
of the principles of humanity and the dictates of the public conscience,).
1145
However, the language of the clause is not limited to that specific context, and the Martens
Clause has been cited in many other contexts. 106
The Martens clause reflects the idea that when no specific rule applies, the principles of
the law of war form the general guide for conduct during war. 107
On November 27, 1909, the United States deposited its instrument of ratification to the
1907 Hague Convention (X) for the Adaption to Maritime Warfare of the Principles of the
Geneva Convention of October 18, 1907. 108
This treaty was followed by the GWS-Sea, which replaced it in relations between Parties
to the GWS-Sea. 109
The United States signed the Treaty Relating to the Use of Submarines and Noxious
Gases in Warfare on February 6, 1922. 110 Article 6 of the treaty provided that the treaty shall
105
See ADAM ROBERTS & RICHARD GUELFF, DOCUMENTS ON THE LAWS OF WAR 9 (3rd ed., 2000) (The wording of
the Martens Clause was agreed at the 1899 Hague Peace Conference for a specific reason: it was a compromise
following difficult and unresolved debates about whether or not the inhabitants of occupied territory had a right of
resistance.); United States v. Krupp, et al., IX TRIALS OF WAR CRIMINALS BEFORE THE NMT 1340-41 (It must
also be pointed out that in the preamble to the Hague Convention No. IV, it is made abundantly clear that in cases
not included in the Regulations, the inhabitants and the belligerents remain under the protection and the rule of the
principles of the law of nations, as they result from the usages established among civilized peoples, from the laws of
humanity and dictates of the public conscience. As the records of the Hague Peace Conferences of 1899 which
enacted the Hague Regulations show, great emphasis was placed by the participants on the protection of invaded
territories and the preamble just cited, also known as the Mertens Clause, was inserted at the request of the
Belgian delegate, Mertens, who was, as were others, not satisfied with the protection specifically guaranteed to
belligerently occupied territory. Hence, not only the wording (which specifically mentions the inhabitants before it
mentions the belligerents) but also the discussions which took place at the time make it clear that it refers
specifically to belligerently occupied country.).
106
See, e.g., Legality of the Threat or Use of Nuclear Weapons, Advisory Opinion, 1996 I.C.J. 226, 257 (78) (The
Court would likewise refer, in relation to these principles, to the Martens Clause, which was first included in the
Hague Convention II with Respect to the Laws and Customs of War on Land of 1899 and which has proved to be an
effective means of addressing the rapid evolution of military technology.).
107
Refer to 2.1.2.2 (Law of War Principles as a General Guide).
108
William H. Taft, Proclamation Regarding the Hague X, Feb. 28, 1910, 36 STAT. 2371, 2395 (And whereas the
said Convention has been duly ratified by the Government of the United States of America, by and with the advice
and consent of the Senate thereof, and by the Governments of Germany, Austria-Hungary, China, Denmark,
Mexico, the Netherlands, Russia, Bolivia, and Salvador, and the ratifications of the said Governments were, under
the provisions of Article 23 of the said Convention, deposited by their respective plenipotentiaries with the
Netherlands Government on November 27, 1909.).
109
Refer to 19.16.3.1 (Relationship Between the 1907 Hague X and the GWS-Sea).
110
Treaty in Relation to the Use of Submarines and Noxious Gases in Warfare, Feb. 6, 1922, reprinted in 16 AJIL
SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL DOCUMENTS 57, 60 (1922).
1146
take effect on the deposit of all the ratifications. 111 France did not ratify the treaty, and it did not
enter into force. 112
The language of Article 5 of the 1922 Washington Treaty dealing with gas warfare
corresponds to language in the 1925 Protocol for the Prohibition of the Use in War of
Asphyxiating, Poisonous or Other Gases, and of Bacteriological Methods of Warfare signed at
Geneva, June 17, 1925. 113 The 1925 Geneva Gas and Bacteriological Protocol, however, also
prohibits bacteriological methods of warfare. 114
111
Treaty in Relation to the Use of Submarines and Noxious Gases in Warfare, art. 6, Feb. 6, 1922, reprinted in 16
AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL DOCUMENTS 57, 59 (1922) (The present Treaty shall be ratified as soon as possible
in accordance with the constitutional methods of the Signatory Powers and shall take effect on the deposit of all the
ratifications, which shall take place at Washington.).
112
SCHINDER & TOMAN, THE LAWS OF ARMED CONFLICTS 877 (1988) (The Washington Conference of 1922 on the
Limitation of Armaments, in which five of the victorious Powers of World War I took part, adopted the present
Treaty, which due to the failure of France to ratify it, did not enter into force.).
113
Refer to 6.8.2 (Asphyxiating, Poisonous, or Other Gases, and All Analogous Liquids, Materials, or Devices).
114
Refer to 19.12 (1925 Geneva Gas and Bacteriological Protocol).
115
Commission of Jurists to Consider and Report upon the Revision of the Rules of Warfare, General Report, Feb.
19, 1923, reprinted in 32 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL DOCUMENTS 1 (1938) (The Conference on the Limitation
of Armament at Washington adopted at its sixth plenary session on the 4th February, 1922, a resolution for the
appointment of a Commission representing the United States of America, the British Empire, France, Italy and Japan
to consider the following questions: (a) Do existing rules of international law adequately cover new methods of
attack or defence resulting from the introduction or development, since The Hague Conference of 1907, of new
agencies of warfare? (b) If not so, what changes in the existing rules ought to be adopted in consequence thereof as
a part of the law of nations? With the unanimous concurrence of the Powers mentioned in the first of the above
resolutions an invitation to participate in the work of the Commission was extended to and accepted by the
Netherlands Government.).
116
Commission of Jurists to Consider and Report upon the Revision of the Rules of Warfare, General Report, Feb.
19, 1923, reprinted in 32 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL DOCUMENTS 1 (1938) (It was also agreed that the
programme of the Commission should be limited to the preparation of rules relating to aerial warfare, and to rules
relating to the use of radio in time of war.).
117
Commission of Jurists to Consider and Report upon the Revision of the Rules of Warfare, General Report, Feb.
19, 1923, reprinted in 32 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL DOCUMENTS 1-2 (1938) (The United States Government
proposed that the Commission should meet on the 11th December, 1922, at The Hague, and the representatives of
the six Powers mentioned above assembled on that date in the Palace of Peace. At the second meeting of the
1147
The 1923 Hague Air Rules were not, however, subsequently adopted as a treaty by the
United States.
Some provisions in the 1923 Hague Air Rules may reflect customary international law.
For example, the 1923 Hague Air Rules recognize the permissibility of using tracer, incendiary,
or explosive projectiles by or against aircraft, including by States that are Parties to the 1868
Declaration of St. Petersburg. 118
Many of the other provisions in the 1923 Hague Air Rules, however, do not reflect
customary international law. For example, the 1923 Hague Air Rules provide that the crew of
military aircraft must be exclusively military. 119 The 1949 Geneva Conventions, however,
contemplate that crews of military aircraft may include civilian members. 120 As another
example, certain efforts in the 1923 Hague Air Rules to limit the effects of attacks also do not
reflect customary international law. 121
The Geneva Protocol for the Prohibition of the Use in War of Asphyxiating, Poisonous or
Other Gases, and of Bacteriological Methods of Warfare, of June 17, 1925, prohibits the use of
asphyxiating, poisonous, or other gases, and all analogous liquids, materials, or devices, and the
use of bacteriological methods of warfare. 122
Commission the Honorable John Bassett Moore, First Delegate of the United States, was elected President of the
Commission. The Commission has prepared a set of rules for the control of radio in time of war, which are
contained in Part I of this report, and a set of rules for arial warfare, which are contained in Part II of this report.).
118
Refer to 6.5.4.3 (Exploding Bullets); 19.6 (1868 St. Petersburg Declaration).
119
Commission of Jurists to Consider and Report Upon the Revision of the Rules of Warfare, General Report, Part
II: Rules of Arial Warfare, art. 14, Feb. 19, 1923, reprinted in 32 AJIL SUPPLEMENT: OFFICIAL DOCUMENTS 12,
18 (1938) (A military aircraft shall be under the command of a person duly commissioned or enlisted in the
military service of the state; the crew must be exclusively military.).
120
Refer to 14.3.3.3 (Military Aircraft Command and Crew).
121
J. Fred Buzhardt, DoD General Counsel, Letter to Senator Edward Kennedy, Sept. 22, 1972, reprinted in 67 AJIL
122, 123 (1973) (In the application of the laws of war, it is important that there be a general understanding in the
world community as to what shall be legitimate military objectives which may be attacked by air bombardment
under the limitations imposed by treaty or by customary international law. Attempts to limit the effects of attacks in
an unrealistic manner, by definition or otherwise, solely to the essential war making potential of enemy States have
not been successful. For example, such attempts as the 1923 Hague Rules of Air Warfare, proposed by an
International Commission of Jurists, and the 1956 ICRC Draft Rules for the Limitation of the Dangers Incurred by
the Civilian Population in Time of War were not accepted by States and therefore do not reflect the laws of war
either as customary international law or as adopted by treaty.).
122
Refer to 6.8.2 (Asphyxiating, Poisonous, or Other Gases, and All Analogous Liquids, Materials, or Devices);
6.9.1 (Biological Weapons Prohibition on Use as a Method of Warfare).
1148
This treaty followed the 1899 Declaration on Asphyxiating Gases and the 1922
Washington Treaty on Submarines and Noxious Gases. 123 This treaty also followed widespread
use of chemical weapons in World War I.
On November 25, 1969, President Nixon announced the intention of the administration to
seek Senate advice and consent to ratification of the 1925 Geneva Gas and Bacteriological
Protocol as part of U.S. policies relating to chemical and biological weapons. 124 The United
States deposited its instrument of ratification to the 1925 Geneva Gas and Bacteriological
Protocol on April 10, 1975. 125
The United States took a reservation that the Protocol shall cease to be binding on the
government of the United States with respect to the use in war of asphyxiating, poisonous or
other gases, and of all analogous liquids, materials, or devices, in regard to an enemy state if
such state or any of its allies fails to respect the prohibitions laid down in this Protocol. 126 This
reservation would permit use by the United States of chemical weapons and agents in response,
but would not limit in any way the Protocols prohibition with respect to biological weapons. 127
Other States, including France, Belgium, Canada, the USSR (now Russia), and the United
Kingdom issued similar statements upon ratification. 128
123
Refer to 19.7.2 (1899 Declaration on Asphyxiating Gases); 19.10 (1922 Washington Treaty on Submarines
and Noxious Gases).
124
Richard Nixon, Statement on Chemical and Biological Defense Policies and Programs, Nov. 25, 1969, 1969
PUBLIC PAPERS OF THE PRESIDENTS 968 (As to our chemical warfare program, the United States: Reaffirms its
oft-repeated renunciation of the first use of lethal chemical weapons. Extends this renunciation to the first use of
incapacitating chemicals. Consonant with these decisions, the administration will submit to the Senate, for its
advice and consent to ratification, the Geneva Protocol of 1925 which prohibits the first use in war of asphyxiating,
poisonous or other Gases and of Bacteriological Methods of Warfare. The United States has long supported the
principles and objectives of this Protocol. We take this step toward formal ratification to reinforce our continuing
advocacy of international constraints on the use of these weapons.).
125
1925 Geneva Gas and Bacteriological Protocol, Apr. 10, 1975, 1541 UNTS 484 (RATIFICATIONS Instruments
deposited with the Government of France on: 10 April 1975 UNITED STATES OF AMERICA (With effect from
10 April 1975.)).
126
United States, Statement on Ratification of the 1925 Geneva Gas and Bacteriological Protocol, Apr. 10, 1975,
1541 UNTS 484 (That the said Protocol shall cease to be binding on the Government of the United States with
respect to the use in war of asphyxiating, poisonous or other gases, and of all analogous liquids, materials, or
devices, in regard to an enemy State if such State or any of its allies fails to respect the prohibitions laid down in the
Protocol.).
127
William P. Rogers, Letter of Submittal, Aug. 11, 1970, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE 1925
GENEVA GAS AND BACTERIOLOGICAL PROTOCOL VI (This reservation would permit the retaliatory use by the
United States of chemical weapons and agents, but would not limit in any way the Protocols prohibition with
respect to biological weapons.).
128
France, Statement on Ratification of the 1925 Geneva Gas and Bacteriological Protocol, May 9, 1926, 94 LNTS
67 (The said Protocol shall ipso facto cease to be binding on the Government of the French Republic in regard to
any enemy State whose armed forces or whose Allies fail to respect the prohibitions laid down in the Protocol.);
Belgium, Statement on Ratification of the 1925 Geneva Gas and Bacteriological Protocol, Dec. 4, 1928, 94 LNTS
67 ((2) The said Protocol shall ipso facto cease to be binding on the Belgian Government in regard to any enemy
State whose armed forces or whose Allies fail to respect the prohibitions laid down in the Protocol.); Canada,
Statement on Ratification of the 1925 Geneva Gas and Bacteriological Protocol, May 6, 1930, 94 LNTS 71 (The
said Protocol shall cease to be binding on His Britannic Majesty towards any State at enmity with Him whose armed
1149
This treaty was followed by the Chemical Weapons Convention and Biological Weapons
Convention, which, inter alia, place restrictions on the use, development, production, and
possession of weapons addressed by the 1925 Geneva Gas and Bacteriological Protocol. 129
19.13.1 1929 GWS. The United States deposited its instrument of ratification to the 1929
GWS on February 4, 1932. 130
The 1929 GWS was replaced by the GWS in relations between Parties to the GWS. 131
All the Parties to the 1929 GWS have become Parties to the GWS.
19.13.2 1929 GPW. The United States deposited its instrument of ratification to the 1929
GPW on February 4, 1932. 132
The 1929 GPW was replaced by the GPW in relations between Parties to the GPW. 133
All the Parties to the 1929 GPW have become Parties to the GPW.
Provisions of the 1929 GPW were found to reflect customary international law by war
crimes tribunals after World War II. 134 The 1929 GPW may be relevant to understanding
provisions of the 1949 GPW because some provisions of the 1949 GPW were drawn from the
1929 GPW or reflect an effort to improve upon the 1929 GPW.
forces, or whose allies de jure or in fact fail to respect the prohibitions laid down in the Protocol.); Union of Soviet
Socialist Republics, Statement on Accession to the 1925 Geneva Gas and Bacteriological Protocol, Apr. 5, 1928, 94
LNTS 71 ((2) The said Protocol shall cease to be binding on the Government of the Union of Soviet Socialist
Republics in regard to all enemy States whose armed forces or whose Allies de jure or in fact do not respect the
restrictions which are the object of this Protocol.); British Empire, Statement on Ratification of the 1925 Geneva
Gas and Bacteriological Protocol, Apr. 9, 1930, 94 LNTS 69 (The said Protocol shall cease to be binding on His
Britannic Majesty towards any Power at enmity with Him whose armed forces, or the armed forces of whose allies,
fail to respect the prohibitions laid down in the Protocol.).
129
Refer to 19.22 (Chemical Weapons Convention); 19.19 (Biological Weapons Convention).
130
Herbert Hoover, Proclamation Regarding the 1929 GPW, Aug. 4, 1932, 47 STAT. 2021, 2073 (And whereas, the
said Convention has been duly ratified on the part of the United States of America and the instrument of ratification
of the United States of America was deposited with the Government of Switzerland on February 4, 1932; And
whereas, in accordance with Article 92 thereof, the said Convention became effective in respect of the United States
of America six months after the deposit of its instrument of ratification, namely, on August 4, 1932;).
131
Refer to 19.16.2.1 (Relationship Between the GWS and Earlier Conventions).
132
Herbert Hoover, Proclamation Regarding the 1929 GWS, Aug. 4, 1932, 47 STAT. 2074, 2101 (And whereas, the
said Convention has been duly ratified on the part of the United States of America and the instrument of ratification
of the United States of America was deposited with the Government of Switzerland on February 4, 1932: And
whereas, in accordance with Article 33 thereof, the said Convention became effective in respect of the United States
of America six months after the deposit of its instrument of ratification, namely, on August 4, 1932;).
133
Refer to 19.16.4.1 (Relationship Between the GPW and the 1929 GPW).
134
Refer to 9.1.1 (Brief History of POW Law).
1150
19.14 1930 LONDON TREATY FOR THE LIMITATION AND REDUCTION OF NAVAL ARMAMENT AND
1936 LONDON PROTOCOL
Article 22 of the 1930 London Treaty for the Limitation and Reduction of Naval
Armament (1930 London Treaty) and the 1936 London Protocol set forth identical rules
regarding submarine warfare, and the obligations of surface warships and submarines with
respect to the sinking of merchant vessels, including the obligation to put merchant vessels
passengers and crew in a place of safety. 135
The United States deposited its instrument of ratification to the 1930 London Treaty on
October 27, 1930. 136 Although other aspects of the treaty expired on December 31, 1936, Article
22 remains in force. 137 Signatories to the 1930 London Treaty desired that as many States as
possible accept the rules in Article 22; thus, they concluded the 1936 London Protocol with the
same language as that in Article 22 and invited other States to accede to the 1936 London
Protocol. 138 The United States signed the 1936 Protocol on November 6, 1936. 139
The 1935 Roerich Pact was concluded in Washington on April 15, 1935. 140 It provides
for the respect and protection of historic monuments, museums, scientific, artistic, educational
and cultural institutions and their personnel in time of peace as well as in war. 141 Such
135
Refer to 13.7.1 (General Principle Same Rules Applicable to Both Submarine and Surface Warships);
13.5.2 (Attack of Enemy Merchant Vessels); 15.15.3 (Destruction of Neutral Prizes).
136
Herbert Hoover, Proclamation Regarding the 1930 Treaty for the Limitation and Reduction of Naval Armament,
Jan. 1, 1931, 46 STAT. 2858, 2885 (AND WHEREAS the ratification by the United States of America, subject to
the understandings, set forth therein, deposited at London on the 27th day of October, one thousand nine hundred
and thirty,).
137
Treaty for the Limitation and Reduction of Naval Armament art. 23, Apr. 22, 1930, 46 STAT. 2858, 2882 (The
present Treaty shall remain in force until the 31st December, 1936, subject to the following exceptions: (1) Part IV
shall remain in force without limit of time; (2) the provisions of Articles 3, 4 and 5, and of Article 11 and Annex II
to Part II so far as they relate to aircraft carriers, shall remain in force for the same period as the Washington
Treaty.).
138
Procs-Verbal Relating to the Rules of Submarine Warfare Set Forth in Part IV of the Treaty of London of April
22, 1930, preamble, Nov. 6, 1936, 173 LNTS 353, 355 (And whereas all the signatories of the said Treaty desire
that as great a number of Powers as possible should accept the rules contained in the said Part IV as established rules
of international law; The undersigned, representatives of their respective Governments, bearing in mind the said
Article 22 of the Treaty, hereby request the Government of the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Northern
Ireland forthwith to communicate the said rules, as annexed hereto, to the Governments of all Powers which are not
signatories of the said Treaty, with an invitation to accede thereto definitely and without limit of time.).
139
Procs-Verbal Relating to the Rules of Submarine Warfare Set Forth in Part IV of the Treaty of London of April
22, 1930, Nov. 6, 1936, 173 LNTS 353, 357 (Signed in London, the 6th day of November, nineteen hundred and
thirty-six. For the Government of the United States of America: Robert Worth BINGHAM.).
140
Pan American Treaty on the Protection of Artistic and Scientific Institutions and Historic Monuments, Apr. 15,
1935, 49 STAT. 3267.
141
ROERICH PACT art. 1 (The historic monuments, museums, scientific, artistic, educational and cultural institutions
shall be considered as neutral and as such respected and protected by belligerents. The same respect and protection
shall be due to the personnel of the institutions mentioned above. The same respect and protection shall be accorded
1151
institutions and personnel receive protection as cultural property under the 1954 Hague Cultural
Property or the general protection afforded civilian objects and persons. 142
The United States deposited its instrument of ratification to the 1935 Roerich Pact on July
13, 1935. 143
This treaty was followed by the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention. 144 All Parties
to the Roerich Pact are Parties to the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention.
The 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention is supplementary to the Roerich Pact, but
the distinctive emblem of the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention is to be used instead of
the distinguishing flag described in Article III of the 1935 Roerich Pact, in situations where the
1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention and the Regulations for its execution provide for the
use of this distinctive emblem. 145
The four 1949 Geneva Conventions were adopted at a Diplomatic Conference at Geneva
on August 12, 1949. More than 193 States have ratified the 1949 Geneva Conventions. 146
The United States signed each of the 1949 Geneva Conventions on August 12, 1949. The
United States deposited its instrument of ratification to each convention on August 2, 1955. 147
The United States has viewed many of the protections embodied in the 1949 Geneva
Conventions as reflecting appropriate U.S. practice in armed conflict regardless of formal treaty
obligations. 148
to the historic monuments, museums, scientific, artistic, educational and cultural institutions in time of peace as well
as in war.). Refer to 5.18.1.1 (Definition of Cultural Property Notes on Terminology).
142
Refer to 5.18 (Protection of Cultural Property During Hostilities); 5.6 (Discrimination in Conducting
Attacks).
143
Franklin D. Roosevelt, Proclamation Regarding the Roerich Pact, Oct. 25, 1935, 49 STAT. 3267, 3274 (AND
WHEREAS the said Treaty has been duly ratified by the United States of America, whose instrument of ratification
was deposited with the Pan American Union on July 13, 1935;).
144
Refer to 19.17 (1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention).
145
Refer to 19.17.1.2 (Relationship Between the 1935 Roerich Pact and the 1954 Hague Cultural Property
Convention).
146
See DEPARTMENT OF STATE, Treaties in Force: A List of Treaties and Other International Agreements of the
United States in Force on January 1, 2013, 465-66 (2013).
147
213 UNTS 378 (GWS Ratification, Instrument deposited with the Swiss Federal Council on: 2 August 1955
UNITED STATES OF AMERICA (To take effect on 2 February 1956.)); 213 UNTS 382 (GWS-Sea Ratification,
Instrument deposited with the Swiss Federal Council on: 2 August 1955 UNITED STATES OF AMERICA (To take
effect on 2 February 1956.)); 213 UNTS 383 (GPW Ratification, Instrument deposited with the Swiss Federal
Council on: 2 August 1955 UNITED STATES OF AMERICA (To take effect on 2 February 1956.)); 213 UNTS 384
(GC Ratification, Instrument deposited with the Swiss Federal Council on: 2 August 1955 UNITED STATES OF
AMERICA (To take effect on 2 February 1956.)).
1152
The 1949 Geneva Conventions followed earlier multilateral treaties that addressed the
same subjects, including the 1864 GWS, the 1907 Hague X, the 1899 and 1907 Hague
Conventions on the Law of Land Warfare, and the 1929 Geneva Conventions. 149
19.16.1 Common Provisions in the 1949 Geneva Conventions. The four 1949 Geneva
Conventions contain a number of common provisions, i.e., provisions that are substantively the
same (if not identical in text) among the conventions.
The four Geneva Conventions have this duplication, in part, because each convention is
designed to be effective, even if a State only ratifies that particular convention. 151 For example,
the list of persons entitled to receive POW status in Article 4 of the GPW is repeated in the GWS
and GWS-Sea. 152
148
See SENATE EXECUTIVE REPORT 84-9, Geneva Conventions for the Protection of War Victims: Report of the
Committee on Foreign Relations on Executives D, E, F, and G, 82nd Congress, First Session, 32 (Jun. 27, 1955)
(Our Nation has everything to gain and nothing to lose by being a party to the conventions now before the Senate,
and by encouraging their most widespread adoption. As emphasized in this report, the requirements of the four
conventions to a very great degree reflect the actual policies of the United States in World War II. The practices
which they bind nations to follow impose no burden upon us that we would not voluntarily assume in a future
conflict without the injunctions of formal treaty obligations.).
149
Refer to 19.5 (1864 GWS); 19.9 (1907 Hague X); 19.8 (1899 Hague II and 1907 Hague IV Conventions
and Annexed Regulations Regarding Land Warfare); 19.13 (1929 Geneva Conventions).
150
See, e.g., GWS COMMENTARY Foreword (Although published by the International Committee, the Commentary
is the personal work of its authors. The Committee, moreoever, whenever called upon for an opinion on a provision
of an international Convention, always takes care to emphasize that only the participant States are qualified, through
consultation between themselves, to give an oficial and, as it were, authentic interpretation of an intergovernmental
treaty.).
151
See, e.g., II-B FINAL RECORD OF THE DIPLOMATIC CONFERENCE OF GENEVA OF 1949 257 (Mr. NAJAR (Israel): ...
We have a number of Conventions here, with different signatories, which constitute distinct legal instruments. It is
not at all surprising that one more of them should contain Articles of a more or less similar character; but one
Convention is distinguished from another by being a self-contained legal instrument, and by its signatories.); id. at
283 (Mr. FILIPPOV (Union of Soviet Socialist Republics): ... In the amendment submitted to us an allusion is made
to Article 20 of the Wounded and Sick Convention. This reference seems to us inadmissible, as the Prisoners of
War Convention is an entirely independent document and the allusions in its Articles to other Conventions, in
particular the Wounded and Sick, might involve difficulties if the Parties to the conflict were not signatories to both
Conventions.).
152
Refer to 7.3.2 (Persons Entitled to Protection as Wounded, Sick, or Shipwrecked Under the GWS and GWS-
Sea).
1153
19.16.1.1 Common Terms in the 1949 Geneva Conventions Notes on
Terminology. In the 1949 Geneva Conventions, Power generally refers to a State. 153
In the 1949 Geneva Conventions, the Detaining Power refers to the State that holds the
POW or internee. 154
In the 1949 Geneva Conventions, the Protecting Power refers to a neutral State that helps
implement the Conventions. 155
Common Article 2 also provides that each convention shall also apply to all cases of
partial or total occupation of the territory of a High Contracting Party, even if the said occupation
meets with no armed resistance. 158 Common Article 2, thus, helps explain that the law of
belligerent occupation is applicable, even if the occupying forces are not opposed by force. 159
The 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention repeats language used in Common Article
2, and the CCW incorporates language from Common Article 2 by reference.
153
Jack L. Goldsmith III, Assistant Attorney General, Protected Person Status in Occupied Iraq Under the
Fourth Geneva Convention, Mar. 18, 2004, 28 OPINIONS OF THE OFFICE OF LEGAL COUNSEL 35, 39 (Finally, al
Qaeda is not a Power[] in conflict that can accept[] and appl[y] GC4 within the meaning of article 2(3). See, e.g.,
G.I.A.D. Draper, The Red Cross Conventions 16 (1958) (arguing that in the context of Article 2, para. 3, Powers
means States capable then and there of becoming Contracting Parties to these Conventions either by ratification or
by accession); 2B Final Record of the Diplomatic Conference of Geneva of 1949, at 108 (explaining that article
2(3) would impose an obligation to recognize that the Convention be applied to the non-Contracting adverse State,
in so far as the latter accepted and applied the provisions thereof) (emphasis added) (Final Record); supra note 4,
at 23 (using non-Contracting State interchangeably with non-Contracting Power and non-Contracting Party).).
154
Refer to 9.1.2.1 (GPW Notes on Terminology); 10.1.1.1 (GC Notes on Terminology).
155
Refer to 18.15.1.1 (Protecting Power Under the 1949 Geneva Conventions).
156
GWS art. 2 (In addition to the provisions which shall be implemented in peacetime, the present Convention shall
apply to all cases of declared war or of any other armed conflict which may arise between two or more of the High
Contracting Parties, even if the state of war is not recognized by one of them.); GWS-SEA art. 2 (same); GPW art. 2
(same); GC art. 2 (same).
157
Refer to 3.4 (When Jus in Bello Rules Apply).
158
GWS art. 2 (The Convention shall also apply to all cases of partial or total occupation of the territory of a High
Contracting Party, even if the said occupation meets with no armed resistance.); GWS-SEA art. 2 (same); GPW art.
2 (same); GC art. 2 (same).
159
Refer to 11.2.2.3 (Of the Hostile Army Belligerent Occupation Applies to Enemy Territory).
1154
addresses non-international armed conflict. 160 It was the first provision in a multilateral law of
war treaty that addressed humane treatment during non-international armed conflict to gain
widespread ratification by States. 161
19.16.1.4 POW Status and the 1949 Geneva Conventions. Article 4 of the GPW
explains which persons are entitled to receive POW status under the GPW. 163 This provision is
mirrored in the GWS and GWS-Sea, as those conventions are intended to protect persons who
are entitled to POW status under the GPW. 164
The GC excludes from its protection those persons who are entitled to POW status under
the GPW. 165
19.16.2 GWS. The GWS is often called the first Geneva Convention. 167 The GWS
addresses the following subjects on land: (1) the protection of the wounded, sick, and dead; (2)
the rights, duties, and liabilities of military medical and religious personnel; and (3) the
protection of military medical units, facilities, and transports. 168
19.16.2.1 Relationship Between the GWS and Earlier Conventions. The GWS
replaces the Conventions of August 22, 1864, July 6, 1906, and July 27, 1929, in relations
between the Parties to the GWS. 169
160
GPW COMMENTARY 34 (To borrow the phrase of one of the delegates, Article 3 is like a Convention in
miniature. It applies to non-international conflicts only, and will be the only Article applicable to them until such
time as a special agreement between the Parties has brought into force between them all or part of the other
provisions of the Convention.).
161
Refer to 17.2.1.1 (Treaties That Have Provisions That Explicitly Apply to NIAC).
162
Refer to 8.1.4.1 (Common Article 3 of the 1949 Geneva Conventions).
163
Refer to 9.3.2 (Persons Entitled to POW Status).
164
Refer to 7.3.2 (Persons Entitled to Protection as Wounded, Sick, or Shipwrecked Under the GWS and GWS-
Sea).
165
Refer to 10.3.2.3 (Not Protected by the GWS, GWS-Sea, or the GPW).
166
Refer to 7.9.1.2 (Medical and Religious Personnel Who May Be Retained).
167
Geneva Convention for the Amelioration of the Condition of the Wounded and Sick in Armed Forces in the Field
of August 12, 1949, 75 UNTS 31.
168
Refer to 7.1.1 (Interpretation and Application of Provisions Relating to Medical Issues in the GWS, GWS-Sea,
GPW, and GC).
169
GWS art. 59 (The present Convention replaces the Conventions of 22 August 1864, 6 July 1906, and 27 July
1929, in relations between the High Contracting Parties.).
1155
19.16.3 GWS-Sea. The GWS-Sea is often called the second Geneva Convention. 170 The
GWS-Sea addresses the following subjects at sea: (1) the protection of the wounded, sick,
shipwrecked, and dead; (2) the rights, duties, and liabilities of military medical and religious
personnel; and (3) the protection of military medical units, facilities, and transports. 171
19.16.3.1 Relationship Between the 1907 Hague X and the GWS-Sea. The GWS-
Sea replaces the Hague X in relations between the Parties to the GWS-Sea. 172
19.16.4 GPW. The GPW is often called the third Geneva Convention. 173 The GPW
addresses the protection of POWs. 174
19.16.4.1 Relationship Between the GPW and the 1929 GPW. The GPW replaces
the 1929 GPW in relations between the Parties to the GPW. 175
19.16.4.2 Relationship Between the GPW and the 1899 Hague II or 1907 Hague
IV. In the relations between States that are bound by the 1899 Hague II or the 1907 Hague IV,
and that are Parties to the GPW, the GPW shall be complementary to Chapter II of the
Regulations annexed to the 1899 Hague II or the 1907 Hague IV. 176
19.16.5 GC. The GC is often called the fourth Geneva Convention. 177 The GC addresses
the protection of civilians in the hands of a party a conflict, including civilian internees. 178 The
GC also addresses belligerent occupation.
170
Geneva Convention for the Amelioration of the Condition of Wounded, Sick and Shipwrecked Members of
Armed Forces at Sea of August 12, 1949, 75 UNTS 85.
171
Refer to 7.1.1 (Interpretation and Application of Provisions Relating to Medical Issues in the GWS, GWS-Sea,
GPW, and GC).
172
GWS-SEA art. 58 (The present Convention replaces the Xth Hague Convention of October 18, 1907, for the
adaptation to Maritime Warfare of the principles of the Geneva Convention of 1906, in relations between the High
Contracting Parties.).
173
Geneva Convention Relative to the Treatment of Prisoners of War of August 12, 1949, 75 UNTS 135.
174
Refer to 9.1.2 (Interpretation and Application of the GPW).
175
GPW art. 134 (The present Convention replaces the Convention of July 27, 1929, in relations between the High
Contracting Parties.).
176
GPW art. 135 (In the relations between the Powers which are bound by the Hague Convention respecting the
Laws and Customs of War on Land, whether that of July 29, 1899, or that of October 18, 1907, and which are
parties to the present Convention, this last Convention shall be complementary to Chapter II of the Regulations
annexed to the above-mentioned Conventions of the Hague.).
177
Geneva Convention Relative to the Protection of Civilian Persons in Time of War of August 12, 1949, 75 UNTS
287.
178
Refer to 10.1.1 (Interpretation and Application of the GC).
1156
In general, the GC uses the concept of protected person to define the individuals who are
entitled to receive its protections. 179 The provisions of Part II of the GC (articles 13-26) are
wider in application; they do not only apply to those persons who are protected persons under the
GC. 180 These provisions cover the whole of the populations of the countries in conflict. 181
Section I (articles 27-34) of Part III of the GC includes provisions that are common to the
home territories of the parties to the conflict and to occupied territories.
Section II (articles 35-46) of Part III of the GC addresses aliens in the home territory of a
party to the conflict.
Section III (articles 47-78) of Part III of the GC addresses occupied territories.
Section IV (articles 79-135) of Part III of the GC provides regulations for the treatment of
internees.
19.16.5.2 Relationship Between the GC and the 1899 Hague II and the 1907
Hague IV Conventions. In the relations between States that are bound by the 1899 Hague II, or
the 1907 Hague IV, and that are Parties to the GC, the GC shall be supplementary to Sections II
(Articles 22-41 Hostilities) and III (Articles 42-56 Military Authority Over the Territory of
the Hostile State) of the Regulations annexed to the 1899 Hague II or the 1907 Hague IV. 182
The 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention addresses the protection of cultural
property during international armed conflict. 183 It addresses personnel who are engaged in duties
related to the protection of cultural property. 184 It also has provisions that apply during
occupation. 185 Some provisions of the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention apply to non-
international armed conflict. 186
179
Refer to 10.3 (Protected Person Status).
180
Refer to 10.3.3 (Categories of Nationals Specifically Excluded From the Definition of Protected Person Under
the GC).
181
GC art. 13 (The provisions of Part II cover the whole of the populations of the countries in conflict, without any
adverse distinction based, in particular, on race, nationality, religion or political opinion, and are intended to
alleviate the sufferings caused by war.).
182
GC art. 154 (In the relations between the Powers who are bound by The Hague Conventions respecting the
Laws and Customs of War on Land, whether that of July 29, 1899, or that of October 18, 1907, and who are parties
to the present Convention, this last Convention shall be supplementary to Sections II and III of the Regulations
annexed to the above mentioned Conventions of The Hague.).
183
Refer to 5.18 (Protection of Cultural Property).
184
Refer to 4.14 (Personnel Engaged in Duties Related to the Protection of Cultural Property).
185
Refer to 11.19 (Protection of Cultural Property During Occupation).
186
Refer to 17.2.1.1 (Treaties That Have Provisions That Explicitly Apply to NIAC); 17.11 (Protection of
Cultural Property in NIAC).
1157
The 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention was adopted at a diplomatic conference
on May 14, 1954. 187 The United States deposited its instrument of ratification to the Hague
Cultural Property Convention on March 13, 2009, and stated four understandings. 188
Two Protocols to the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention have been adopted. 189
The United States has neither signed nor ratified either one.
19.17.1 Relationship Between the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention and Earlier
Treaties.
19.17.1.2 Relationship Between the 1935 Roerich Pact and the 1954 Hague
Cultural Property Convention. In the relations between States that are bound by the 1935
Roerich Pact and that are Parties to the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention, the 1954
Hague Cultural Property Convention shall be supplementary to the Roerich Pact and shall
substitute for the distinguishing flag described in Article III of the Roerich Pact the emblem
defined in Article 16 of the 1954 Hague Cultural Property Conventionin cases in which the
1954 Hague Cultural Property Convention and the Regulations for its execution provide for the
use of this distinctive emblem. 191
187
Convention for the Protection of Cultural Property in the Event of Armed Conflict, May 14, 1954, 249 UNTS
240.
188
2575 UNTS 7 (RATIFICATION (WITH DECLARATIONS) United States of America Deposit of instrument with the
Director-General of the United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization: 13 March 2009).
189
Protocol for the Protection of Cultural Property in the Event of Armed Conflict, May 14, 1954, 249 UNTS 358;
Second Protocol to The Hague Convention of 1954 for the Protection of Cultural Property in the Event of Armed
Conflict, Mar. 26, 1999, 2253 UNTS 172.
190
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 36(1) (In the relations between Powers which are bound
by the Conventions of The Hague concerning the Laws and Customs of War on Land (IV) and concerning Naval
Bombardment in Time of War (IX), whether those of 29 July, 1899 or those of 18 October, 1907, and which are
Parties to the present Convention, this last Convention shall be supplementary to the aforementioned Convention
(IX) and to the Regulations annexed to the aforementioned Convention (IV) and shall substitute for the emblem
described in Article 5 of the aforementioned Convention (IX) the emblem described in Article 16 of the present
Convention, in cases in which the present Convention and the Regulations for its execution provide for the use of
this distinctive emblem.).
191
1954 HAGUE CULTURAL PROPERTY CONVENTION art. 36(2) (In the relations between Powers which are bound
by the Washington Pact of l 5 April 1935 for the Protection of Artistic and Scientific Institutions and of Historic
Monuments (Roerich Pact) and which are Parties to the present Convention, the latter Convention shall be
supplementary to the Roerich Pact and shall substitute for the distinguishing flag described in Article III of the Pact
the emblem defined in Article 16 of the present Convention, in cases in which the present Convention and the
Regulations for its execution provide for the use of this distinctive emblem.).
1158
19.18 VIENNA CONVENTION ON THE LAW OF TREATIES
The Vienna Convention on the Law of Treaties (VCLT) was adopted on May 23, 1969,
by the U.N. Conference on the Law of Treaties.
The United States signed the VCLT on April 24, 1970. President Nixon transmitted the
VCLT to the Senate for its advice and consent to ratification on November 22, 1971. 192
The United States is not a Party to the VCLT but has viewed many of its provisions as
reflecting customary international law.
The United States deposited its instrument of ratification on March 26, 1975. 194
The Biological Weapons Convention followed the 1925 Geneva Gas and Bacteriological
Protocol. 195
192
Richard Nixon, Letter of Transmittal, Nov. 22, 1971, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE VCLT
III.
193
Convention on the Prohibition of the Development, Production and Stockpiling of Bacteriological (Biological)
and Toxin Weapons and on Their Destruction, 1015 UNTS 164.
194
1015 UNTS 165.
195
Refer to 19.12 (1925 Geneva Gas and Bacteriological Protocol).
196
18 U.S.C. 175 (Prohibitions with respect to biological weapons. (a) In general. -- Whoever knowingly
develops, produces, stockpiles, transfers, acquires, retains, or possesses any biological agent, toxin, or delivery
system for use as a weapon, or knowingly assists a foreign state or any organization to do so, or attempts, threatens,
or conspires to do the same, shall be fined under this title or imprisoned for life or any term of years, or both. There
is extraterritorial Federal jurisdiction over an offense under this section committed by or against a national of the
United States. (b) Additional offense. -- Whoever knowingly possesses any biological agent, toxin, or delivery
system of a type or in a quantity that, under the circumstances, is not reasonably justified by a prophylactic,
protective, bona fide research, or other peaceful purpose, shall be fined under this title, imprisoned not more than 10
years, or both. In this subsection, the terms biological agent and toxin do not encompass any biological agent or
toxin that is in its naturally occurring environment, if the biological agent or toxin has not been cultivated, collected,
or otherwise extracted from its natural source. (c) Definition. -- For purposes of this section, the term for use as a
weapon includes the development, production, transfer, acquisition, retention, or possession of any biological agent,
toxin, or delivery system for other than prophylactic, protective, bona fide research, or other peaceful purposes.).
1159
19.20 1977 ADDITIONAL PROTOCOLS TO THE 1949 GENEVA CONVENTIONS
A diplomatic conference between 1974 and 1977 negotiated two protocols to the 1949
Geneva Conventions that addressed international armed conflict (AP I) and non-international
armed conflict (AP II).
Because these treaties were negotiated at the same time, they may provide information on
States views on differences between the rules applicable in international armed conflict and the
rules applicable in non-international armed conflict. 197
19.20.1 AP I. Protocol (I) Additional to the Geneva Conventions, and Relating to the
Protection of Victims of International Armed Conflicts (AP I) contains rules on the conduct of
hostilities during international armed conflict that are intended to supplement the 1949 Geneva
Conventions. 198 For example, AP I provides additional protections for the wounded and sick,
and provides for the establishment of an international humanitarian fact-finding commission. 199
AP I, however, does not apply to the use of nuclear weapons. 200
The United States signed AP I and stated two understandings. 201 As explained below, AP
I is a significant law of war treaty that the United States has decided not to ratify.
On January 28, 1987, President Reagan informed the Senate that AP I would not be
submitted for the Senates advice and consent to ratification because it is fundamentally and
irreconcilably flawed. 202 However, President Reagan noted that the United States would
support the positive provisions of Protocol I that could be of real humanitarian benefit if
generally observed by parties to international armed conflicts. 203
197
Refer to 17.2.2.2 (Considered Absence of a Restriction in NIAC).
198
Protocol (I) Additional to the Geneva Conventions of August 12, 1949, and Relating to the Protection of Victims
of International Armed Conflicts of June 8, 1977.
199
Refer to 7.20 (AP I Provisions on the Wounded, Sick, and Shipwrecked); 18.14.1.1 (AP I International
Humanitarian Fact-Finding Commission (IHFFC)).
200
Refer to 6.18.3 (AP I Provisions and Nuclear Weapons).
201
United States, Statement on Signature of AP I, 1125 UNTS 404, 434 (1. It is the understanding of the United
States of America that the rules established by this Protocol were not intended to have any effect on and do not
regulate or prohibit the use of nuclear weapons. 2. It is the understanding of the United States of America that the
phrase military deployment preceding the launching of an attack in Article 44, paragraph 3, means any movement
towards a place from which an attack is to be launched.).
202
Ronald Reagan, Letter of Transmittal, Jan. 29, 1987, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING AP II III-IV
(Like all other efforts associated with the International Committee of the Red Cross, this agreement has certain
meritorious elements. But Protocol I is fundamentally and irreconcilably flawed. It contains provisions that would
undermine humanitarian law and endanger civilians in war. These problems are so fundamental in character that
they cannot be remedied through reservations, and I therefore have decided not to submit the Protocol to the Senate
in any form, and I would invite an expression of the sense of the Senate that it shares this view. Finally, the Joint
Chiefs of Staff have also concluded that a number of the provisions of the Protocol are militarily unacceptable.).
203
Ronald Reagan, Letter of Transmittal, Jan. 29, 1987, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING AP II IV
(In this case, for example, we can reject Protocol I as a reference for humanitarian law, and at the same time devise
an alternative reference for the positive provisions of Protocol I that could be of real humanitarian benefit if
1160
This manual references AP I provisions, some of which are consistent with DoD practice.
Unless explicitly noted, no determinations are made about whether any of these AP I provisions
reflect customary international law.
Even where the United States has expressed support for an underlying customary
principle that AP I provisions are based upon, the United States may disagree that the language
of the provision reflects customary international law. For example, with regard to direct
generally observed by parties to international armed conflicts. We are therefore in the process of consulting with
our allies to develop appropriate methods for incorporating these positive provisions into the rules that govern our
military operations, and as customary international law.).
204
Refer to 5.7.3 (Objects That Are Military Objectives).
205
Refer to 4.20.5.1 (U.S. Offense of Recruiting or Using Child Soldiers).
206
Refer to 18.5 (Role of Judge Advocates and Legal Advisers).
207
Refer to 6.2.3 (AP I Requirement for Legal Review of a New Weapon, Means, or Method of Warfare).
208
Refer to 8.1.4.2 (Article 75 of AP I and Relevant AP II Provisions).
209
Refer to 4.24.2 (Other Journalists).
1161
participation in hostilities, the United States has supported the customary principle underlying
Article 51(3) of AP I, but has disagreed that the language of that provision reflects customary
international law. 210 Similarly, the intricacy of the provisions of AP I on objects indispensable to
the survival of the civilian population make it doubtful that such provisions could be
characterized as customary international law, although the United States has supported the
principle that the starvation of civilians not be used as a method of warfare. 211 In addition,
although the United States has supported the principle that civilian civil defense organizations
and their personnel be respected and protected as civilians, a number of military operational
problems have been identified with respect to the system of protection for civil defense
established by AP I. 212
mercenaries; 214
prohibiting the use of enemy flags, insignia, or uniforms to shield, favor, protect, or
impede military operations; 220 and
210
Refer to 5.9.1.2 (AP I, Article 51(3) Provision on Direct Participation in Hostilities).
211
Refer to 5.20.4 (AP I Provision on Objects Indispensable to the Survival of the Civilian Population); 5.20.1
(Starvation Distinction).
212
Refer to 4.22 (AP I Provisions on Civil Defense Personnel).
213
Refer to 3.3.4 (AP I Provision on National Liberation Movements).
214
Refer to 4.21.1 (Treaties on Mercenaries).
215
Refer to 5.13.1 (AP I Provisions on Works and Installations Containing Dangerous Forces).
216
Refer to 4.6.1.2 (AP I and the GPW 4A(2) Conditions).
217
Refer to 5.5.8.2 (AP I Obligation for Combatants to Distinguish Themselves During Attacks or Military
Operations Preparatory to an Attack).
218
Refer to 6.10.3.1 (AP I Provisions on Environmental Protection).
219
Refer to 5.5.3.2 (AP I Presumptions in Favor of Civilian Status in Conducting Attacks).
1162
reprisals. 221
19.20.2 AP II. Protocol (II) Additional to the Geneva Conventions, and Relating to the
Protection of Victims of Non-International Armed Conflict (AP II) addresses certain types of
non-international armed conflicts. 222 AP II reaffirmed, elaborated upon, and supplemented the
protections contained in Common Article 3 of the 1949 Geneva Conventions. 223
19.20.2.1 The United States and AP II. The United States is not a Party to AP II.
The United States signed AP II and stated one understanding on December 12, 1977. 224
President Reagan transmitted AP II to the Senate for its advice and consent to ratification on
January 29, 1987. 225
After the Supreme Courts decision in Hamdan v. Rumsfeld, 548 U.S. 557 (2006), the
Bush Administration moved AP II down on the Executives treaty priority list, indicating that it
did not seek Senate action on the treaty at that time, so that the Administration could study the
treaty in light of the decision. On March 7, 2011, after interagency review, the Obama
Administration urged the Senate to act as soon as practicable on AP II. 226
Although the United States is not a Party to AP II, reviews have concluded that the
provisions of AP II are consistent with U.S. practice, and that any issues could be addressed with
reservations, understandings, and declarations. 227
220
Refer to 5.23.3 (AP I and the Use of Enemy Flags, Insignia, or Uniforms to Shield, Favor, Protect, or Impede
Military Operations).
221
Refer to 18.18.3.4 (AP I Provisions on Reprisals).
222
Protocol (II) Additional to the Geneva Conventions of August 12, 1949, and Relating to the Protection of Victims
of Non-International Armed Conflicts of June 8, 1977.
223
Refer to 19.16.1.3 (Common Article 3 of the 1949 Geneva Conventions).
224
United States, Statement on Signature of AP II, 1125 UNTS 699 (It is the understanding of the United States of
America that the terms used in Part III of this Protocol which are the same as the terms defined in Article 8 of
Protocol I shall so far as relevant be construed in the same sense as those definitions.).
225
Ronald Reagan, Letter of Transmittal, Jan. 29, 1987, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING AP II III.
226
The White House, Office of the Press Secretary, Fact Sheet: New Actions on Guantnamo and Detainee Policy,
Mar. 7, 2011 (Additional Protocol II, which contains detailed humane treatment standards and fair trial guarantees
that apply in the context of non-international armed conflicts, was originally submitted to the Senate for approval by
President Reagan in 1987. The Administration urges the Senate to act as soon as practicable on this Protocol, to
which 165 States are a party. An extensive interagency review concluded that United States military practice is
already consistent with the Protocols provisions.).
227
George P. Shultz, Letter of Submittal, Dec. 13, 1986, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING AP II VIII
(With the above caveats, the obligations contained in Protocol II are no more than a restatement of the rules of
conduct with which U.S. military forces would almost certainly comply as a matter of national policy, constitutional
and legal protections, and common decency.); Hillary Rodham Clinton, Secretary of State and Robert Gates,
Secretary of Defense, Letter to Senators Kerry and Lugar, Mar. 7, 2011 (We have now completed a comprehensive
interagency review of Protocol II, and, subject to reservations, understandings, and declarations that were submitted
to the Senate in 1987, along with refinements and additions that we will submit, assess it to be consistent with
current military practice and beneficial to our national security and foreign policy interests.).
1163
19.20.2.2 AP IIs Requirements for Its Application. By its terms, AP II does not
apply to all armed conflicts not of an international character. Instead, according to its terms, AP
II only applies to armed conflicts that are not covered by Article 1 of AP I and that take place in
the territory of a Party to AP II between its armed forces and dissident armed forces or other
organized armed groups, which, under responsible command, exercise such control over a part of
its territory as to enable them to carry out sustained and concerted military operations and to
implement AP II. 228
This threshold limits the application of AP II to a subset of armed conflicts that would be
covered by Common Article 3 of the 1949 Geneva Conventions. For example, AP II would only
cover conflicts in which dissident armed forces or other organized armed groups are organized
and disciplined like regular armed forces. 229 In addition, non-State armed groups must be in a
position to implement AP II before it is deemed to apply to all parties to the conflict. 230
Although AP II specifies more strict requirements for its application, President Reagan,
in submitting AP II to the Senate for its advice and consent to ratification, recommended that the
United States take the position that it would apply AP II to all armed conflicts that would be
covered by Common Article 3 of the 1949 Geneva Conventions. 231
19.21.1 CCW. The Convention on Certain Conventional Weapons (CCW) and Protocols
I, II, and III were adopted at Geneva on October 10, 1980. Subsequent conferences adopted: (1)
228
AP II art. 1(1) (This Protocol, which develops and supplements Article 3 common to the Geneva Conventions of
12 August 1949 without modifying its existing conditions of application, shall apply to all armed conflicts which are
not covered by Article 1 of the Protocol Additional to the Geneva Conventions of 12 August 1949, and relating to
the Protection of Victims of International Armed Conflicts (Protocol I) and which take place in the territory of a
High Contracting Party between its armed forces and dissident armed forces or other organized armed groups which,
under responsible command, exercise such control over a part of its territory as to enable them to carry out sustained
and concerted military operations and to implement this Protocol.).
229
BOTHE, PARTSCH, & SOLF, NEW RULES 626 (AP II art. 1, 2.5) (Regarding the concept of organized armed
groups the ICRC delivered the following statement during the negotiations in Working Group B of Committee I:
The expression does not mean any armed band acting under a leader. Such armed groups must be structured and
possess organs, and must therefore have a system for allocating authority and responsibility: they must also be
subject to rules of internal discipline. Consequently the expression organized armed groups does not imply any
appreciable difference in degree of organization from that of regular armed forces.).
230
ICRC AP COMMENTARY 1353 (4470) (This is the fundamental criterion which justifies the other elements of
the definition: being under responsible command and in control of a part of the territory concerned, the insurgents
must be in a position to implement the Protocol. The threshold for application therefore seems fairly high. Yet,
apart from the fact that it reflects the desire of the Diplomatic Conference, it must be admitted that this threshold has
a degree of realism. The conditions laid down in this paragraph 1, as analysed above, correspond with actual
circumstances in which the parties may reasonably be expected to apply the rules developed in the Protocol, since
they have the minimum infrastructure required therefor.).
231
George P. Shultz, Letter of Submittal, Dec. 13, 1986, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING AP II VIII
(We are therefore recommending that U.S. ratification be subject to an understanding declaring that the United
States will apply the Protocol to all conflicts covered by Article 3 common to the 1949 Conventions ... . This
understanding will also have the effect of treating as non-international these so-called wars of national liberation
described in Article 1(4) of Protocol I which fail to meet the traditional test of an international conflict.).
1164
an amended Protocol II; (2) Protocols IV and V; and (3) an amendment to apply the CCW and
Protocols I, II, III, and IV to non-international armed conflicts.
Protocols to the CCW are subject to ratification or other acceptance by a State before
such protocols enter into force for that State. Additional protocols that have been adopted by a
Conference of States Parties enter into force as provided in paragraphs 3 and 4 of Article 5 of the
CCW.232 Paragraphs 3 and 4 of Article 5 of the CCW provide, inter alia, that each of the
CCWs Protocols may only enter into force for a State after that State has notified its consent to
be bound by it. 233 Thus, a States notification of its consent to be bound by a Protocol is a
prerequisite to the Protocols entry into force for that State.
Similarly, amendments to the CCW or its Protocols are subject to ratification or other
acceptance by a State before such amendments enter into force for that State. Amendments to
the CCW or its Protocols are adopted and enter into force in the same manner as the CCW and
its Protocols. 234 As discussed above, a State must provide notification of its consent to be bound
by a CCW Protocol before that Protocols entry into force for that State. Similarly, the CCW is
subject to ratification or other acceptance by States. 235 And, the CCW only enters into force for
a State after that State has deposited its instrument of ratification or other acceptance. 236 Thus, a
States acceptance of any amendment to the CCW or its Protocols is a prerequisite to that
amendments entry into force for that State.
232
CCW art. 8(2)(b) (Additional protocols to the CCW adopted at a conference convened under Article 8(2) shall
enter into force as provided in paragraphs 3 and 4 of Article 5 of this Convention.); CCW art. 8(2)(b) (Additional
protocols to the CCW adopted at a conference convened under Article 8(3) shall enter into force as provided in
paragraphs 3 and 4 of Article 5 of this Convention.).
233
CCW art. 5 (3. Each of the Protocols annexed to this Convention shall enter into force six months after the date
by which twenty States have notified their consent to be bound by it in accordance with paragraph 3 or 4 of Article 4
of this Convention. 4. For any State which notifies its consent to be bound by a Protocol annexed to this Convention
after the date by which twenty States have notified their consent to be bound by it, the Protocol shall enter into force
six months after the date on which that State has notified its consent so to be bound.). See also CCW art. 4 (3.
Expressions of consent to be bound by any of the Protocols annexed to this Convention shall be optional for each
State, provided that at the time of the deposit of its instrument of ratification, acceptance or approval of this
Convention or of accession thereto, that State shall notify the Depositary of its consent to be bound by any two or
more of these Protocols. 4. At any time after the deposit of its instrument of ratification, acceptance or approval of
this Convention or of accession thereto, a State may notify the Depositary of its consent to be bound by any annexed
Protocol by which it is not already bound.).
234
CCW art. 8(1)(b) (Amendments to the CCW or its protocols adopted at a conference convened under Article 8(1)
shall be adopted and shall enter into force in the same manner as this Convention and the annexed Protocols, .);
CCW art. 8(3)(a) (Amendments to the CCW or its protocols adopted at a conference convened under Article 8(3)
shall be adopted and enter into force in accordance with subparagraph 1 (b) above.)).
235
CCW art. 4 (1. This Convention is subject to ratification, acceptance or approval by the Signatories. Any State
which has not signed this Convention may accede to it.).
236
See CCW art. 5 (1. This Convention shall enter into force six months after the date of deposit of the twentieth
instrument of ratification, acceptance, approval or accession. 2. For any State which deposits its instrument of
ratification, acceptance, approval or accession after the date of the deposit of the twentieth instrument of ratification,
acceptance, approval or accession, this Convention shall enter into force six months after the date on which that
State has deposited its instrument of ratification, acceptance, approval or accession.).
1165
The United States is a Party to the: (1) CCW; (2) CCW Protocol I; (3) CCW Amended
Mines Protocol; (4) CCW Protocol III on Incendiary Weapons; (5) CCW Protocol IV on
Blinding Laser Weapons; and (6) CCW Protocol V on Explosive Remnants of War. The United
States deposited its instrument of ratification to the CCW and accepted Protocols I and II on
March 25, 1995. The United States provided notification of its consent to be bound by the CCW
Amended Mines Protocol on May 24, 1999. The United States deposited its instrument of
ratification to the Amendment to Article 1 of the CCW, and provided notification of its consent
to be bound by Protocols III, IV, and V, on January 21, 2009.
19.21.1.1 CCW Amended Scope of Application. For the United States, the CCW
and its Protocols apply to non-international armed conflict. 237
On December 21, 2001, Parties to the CCW adopted an amendment to Article 1 of the
CCW that modified the application of the CCW and Protocols I, II, III, and IV to apply to non-
international armed conflicts. 238 The CCW Amended Mines Protocol and CCW Protocol V on
Explosive Remnants of War also apply to non-international armed conflicts. 239
The amended scope of the CCW does not prejudice additional protocols to the CCW
adopted after January 1, 2002, which may apply, exclude, or modify the scope of their
application in relation to Article 1 of the CCW. 240
The United States deposited its instrument of ratification to the amendment to Article 1 of
the CCW on January 21, 2009. 241
U.S. policy before the entry into force for the United States of the amendment to Article 1
of the CCW was to apply the CCW, Protocol I, Protocol II, and CCW Protocol IV on Blinding
Laser Weapons to non-international armed conflict. At the time of the deposit of U.S.
instruments of ratification of the CCW, CCW Protocol I, and CCW Protocol II, the United States
declared its intent to apply the provisions of those instruments to all armed conflicts referred to
in Articles 2 and 3 of the GPW, i.e., both international and non-international armed conflicts. 242
237
Refer to 17.2.1.1 (Treaties That Have Provisions That Explicitly Apply to NIAC).
238
Amendment to the Convention on Prohibitions or Restrictions on the Use of Certain Conventional Weapons
Which May be Deemed to be Excessively Injurious or to have Indiscriminate Effects Overview, 3, MESSAGE FROM
THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING AP III, CCW AMENDED ARTICLE 1, AND CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE
REMNANTS OF WAR 9 (By its terms, this paragraph means that the amended scope provision automatically applies
to CCW Protocols I, II, III, and IV.).
239
Refer to 17.2.1.1 (Treaties That Have Provisions That Explicitly Apply to NIAC).
240
CCW AMENDED art. 1 (The provisions of paragraphs 2 to 6 of this Article shall not prejudice additional
Protocols adopted after January 1, 2002, which may apply, exclude or modify the scope of their application in
relation to this Article.).
241
2562 UNTS 39 (RATIFICATION United States of America Deposit of instrument with the Secretary-General of
the United Nations: 21 January 2009).
242
United States, Statement on Ratification of the CCW, Accepting Protocols I & II, Mar. 24, 1995, 1861 UNTS 482,
482-83 (The United States declares, with reference to the scope of application defined in Article 1 of the
Convention, that the United States will apply the provisions of the Convention, Protocol I, and Protocol II to all
armed conflicts referred to in Articles 2 and 3 common to the Geneva Conventions for the Protection of War
Victims of August 12, 1949.).
1166
Similarly, before the United States ratified the amendment to Article 1 of the CCW, U.S. policy
was to apply the CCW Protocol on Blinding Laser Weapons to all armed conflicts and in
peacetime. 243
19.21.1.2 U.S. Reservation to Article 7(4)(b) of the CCW. The United States took
a reservation to Article 7(4)(b) of the CCW. 244
This Convention, and the annexed Protocols by which a High Contracting Party is
bound, shall apply with respect to an armed conflict against that High Contracting
Party of the type referred to in Article 1, paragraph 4, of Additional Protocol I to
the Geneva Conventions of 12 August 1949 for the Protection of War Victims:
(b) where the High Contracting Party is not a party to Additional Protocol I and
an authority of the type referred to in subparagraph (a) above accepts and applies
the obligations of the Geneva Conventions and of this Convention and the
relevant annexed Protocols in relation to that conflict. Such an acceptance and
application shall have in relation to that conflict the following effects:
(i) the Geneva Conventions and this Convention and its relevant annexed
Protocols are brought into force for the parties to the conflict with immediate
effect;
(ii) the said authority assumes the same rights and obligations as those
which have been assumed by a High Contracting Party to the Geneva
Conventions, this Convention and its relevant annexed Protocols; and
(iii) the Geneva Conventions, this Convention and its relevant annexed
Protocols are equally binding upon all parties to the conflict.
The High Contracting Party and the authority may also agree to accept and apply
the obligations of Additional Protocol I to the Geneva Conventions on a
reciprocal basis.
243
Article-by-Article Analysis of CCW Protocol IV on Blinding Laser Weapons, 3-4, Enclosure C to Warren
Christopher, Letter of Submittal, Dec. 7, 1996, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CCW AMENDED
MINES PROTOCOL, PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS, AND PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS 43-
44 (The United States favored an expanded scope of application for the Blinding Laser Weapons Protocol. As a
matter of policy, the United States will refrain from the use of laser weapons prohibited by the Protocol. Therefore,
while the Blinding Laser Weapons Protocol does not legally apply to all armed conflicts, it is U.S. policy to apply
the Protocol to all such conflicts, however, they may be characterized, and in peacetime.).
244
United States, Statement on Ratification of the CCW, Accepting Protocols I & II, Mar. 24, 1995, 1861 UNTS 482
((1) Reservation. Article 7 (4) (b) of the Convention shall not apply with respect to the United States.).
1167
The U.S. reservation to Article 7(4)(b) of the CCW is consistent with the longstanding objections
of the United States to Article 1(4) of AP I regarding national liberation movements. 245
19.21.2 CCW Protocol I. CCW Protocol I prohibits the use of weapons whose primary
effect is to injure by fragments not detectable by X-rays. 248
CCW Protocol I was adopted by the first CCW Conference in 1980. The United States
accepted CCW Protocol I on March 24, 1995, when it deposited its instrument of ratification to
the CCW. 249
19.21.3 CCW Amended Mines Protocol. The CCW Amended Mines Protocol addresses
landmines, booby-traps, and other devices. 250
CCW Protocol II on Mines, Booby-traps and Other Devices was adopted by the first
CCW Conference in 1980. The United States accepted CCW Protocol II on March 24, 1995,
when it deposited its instrument of ratification to the CCW.251
CCW Protocol II was later substantially amended by the first Review Conference of
CCW States Parties, which concluded its work on May 3, 1996. The CCW Amended Mines
245
Refer to 3.3.4 (AP I Provision on National Liberation Movements).
246
George Aldrich, Ambassador, Chairman of the Delegation, Report of the United States Delegation to the United
Nations Conference on Prohibitions or Restrictions of Use of Certain Conventional Weapons Which May be
Deemed to be Excessively Injurious or to have Indiscriminate Effects, Second Session, Geneva, Switzerland,
September 15-October 10, 1980, 16 (Jan. 15, 1981) (Finally, it is significant to note that the Conference ended with
no finding that these restrictions and prohibitions were imposed because of any agreed belief or finding that they
were in fact excessively injurious or had indiscriminate effects. Thus the adoption of this Convention in no way
affects the legality, under the customary and conventional law of war, of past uses of these weapons in the modes to
be restricted or prohibited. The restrictions and prohibitions contained in the Convention were recognized by the
Conference as being primarily new contractual rules which would only bind parties in the future.).
247
United States, Statement on Signature of the CCW, Apr. 8, 1982, 1342 UNTS 255 (As indicated in the
negotiating record of the 1980 Conference, the prohibitions and restrictions contained in the Convention and its
Protocols are of course new contractual rules (with the exception of certain provisions which restate existing
international law) which will only bind States upon their ratification of, or accession to, the Convention and their
consent to be bound by the Protocols in question.).
248
Refer to 6.11 (Weapons Injuring by Fragments Not Detectable by X-Rays).
249
1861 UNTS 482 (Instrument deposited on: 24 March 1995 UNITED STATES OF AMERICA (With effect from 24
September 1995. Accepting Protocols I and II.)).
250
Refer to 6.12 (Landmines, Booby-Traps, and Other Devices).
251
1861 UNTS 482 (Instrument deposited on: 24 March 1995 UNITED STATES OF AMERICA (With effect from 24
September 1995. Accepting Protocols I and II.)).
1168
Protocol includes more detailed restrictions on the use of mines, booby-traps, and other devices,
and prohibitions on specific types of such devices. The CCW Amended Mines Protocol also
applies to non-international armed conflicts. 252 The CCW Amended Mines Protocol has
provisions that are to be observed at all times, e.g., provisions that are to be implemented in
peace-time. 253
Before the United States accepted the CCW Amended Mines Protocol, U.S. policy was to
observe the requirements of the CCW Amended Mines Protocol to the fullest extent possible. 254
The CCW Amended Mines Protocol entered into force on December 3, 1998. 255 The
United States provided notification of its consent to be bound by the CCW Amended Mines
Protocol with declarations and a reservation on May 24, 1999. 256
19.21.4 CCW Protocol III on Incendiary Weapons. CCW Protocol III on Incendiary
Weapons places certain restrictions on the use of incendiary weapons. 257
CCW Protocol III on Incendiary Weapons was adopted by the first CCW Conference in
1980. The United States provided notification of its consent to be bound by CCW Protocol III
on Incendiary Weapons on January 21, 2009, with a reservation and an understanding. 258
252
Refer to 17.2.1.1 (Treaties That Have Provisions That Explicitly Apply to NIAC).
253
Article-by-Article Analysis of CCW Amended Mines Protocol, 3-4, Enclosure A to Warren Christopher, Letter of
Submittal, Dec. 7, 1996, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE CCW AMENDED MINES PROTOCOL,
PROTOCOL III ON INCENDIARY WEAPONS, AND PROTOCOL IV ON BLINDING LASER WEAPONS 3-4 (Finally, it was
understood that certain provisions of the amended Protocol must be observed at all times. A statement to this effect
was made part of the negotiating record by the delegation of Belgium, speaking on behalf of 24 other delegations,
including the U.S. delegation, at the final plenary session of the Review Conference and was not contested by any
other delegation. This conclusion is supported, as well, by the scope of the Convention itself which makes clear that
it and its annexed Protocols shall apply in situations referred to in Article 2 common to the Geneva Conventions of
12 August 1949. Common Article 2 refers specifically to provisions which shall be implemented in peace-time, a
recognition that certain provisions must be observed at all times if they are to be implemented in good faith. Among
the provisions of the amended Protocol that must be so observed are: the provisions regarding the recording,
marking, monitoring and protection of areas containing mines; provisions of Article 8 regarding transfers; and
provisions of Articles 13 and 14 regarding consultations and compliance. A statement to this effect was made part
of the negotiating record by the U.S. Delegation, and was not contested by any other delegation.).
254
Review Conference of the States Parties to the Convention on Prohibitions or Restrictions on the Use of Certain
Conventional Weapons Which May be Deemed to be Excessively Injurious or to Have Indiscriminate Effects,
Summary Record of the 14th Meeting (Second Part), Second resumed session, Geneva, Apr. 22 May 3, 1996,
CCW/CONF.I/SR.14/Add.1, May 9, 1996, 6-8 (Mr. MATHESON (United States of America) said that the
revised Protocol II on land-mines was a significant advance that would, if widely observed, result in a substantial
decrease in civilian casualties and be an important first step towards the elimination of such mines. While such a
commitment did not legally bind the United States or prejudice the Senates consideration of the amended Protocol,
it was his countrys policy, pending the entry into force of the Protocol, to observe all of its restrictions to the fullest
extent possible from the time of adoption.).
255
2048 UNTS 93 (Entry into force: 3 December 1998, in accordance with article 2 of the Protocol).
256
2065 UNTS 128 (CONSENT TO BE BOUND (WITH DECLARATIONS AND RESERVATION) United States of America
Notification effected with the Secretary-General of the United Nations: 24 May 1999).
257
Refer to 6.14 (Incendiary Weapons).
1169
19.21.5 CCW Protocol IV on Blinding Laser Weapons. CCW Protocol IV on Blinding
Laser Weapons prohibits the use of blinding laser weapons and requires that feasible precautions
be taken in the employment of laser systems to avoid causing permanent blindness. 259
States Parties to the CCW adopted CCW Protocol IV on Blinding Laser Weapons at the
first Review Conference of CCW States Parties, which concluded its work on May 3, 1996. 260
This Protocol was consistent with DoD policy on blinding lasers before the Protocol was
adopted. 261
The United States provided notification of its consent to be bound by CCW Protocol IV
on Blinding Laser Weapons on January 21, 2009, with an understanding. 262
U.S. legal reviews before CCW Protocol IV was adopted concluded that the use of a laser
for the purpose of blinding an enemy combatant would not constitute unnecessary suffering
under the law of war. 263 Similarly, the restrictions in CCW Protocol IV on Blinding Laser
Weapons may be characterized as arms control obligations in that these restrictions do not
establish that the use of lasers as anti-personnel weapons, including for the purpose of blinding,
258
United States, Statement on Consent to Be Bound by CCW Protocol III on Incendiary Weapons, Jan. 21, 2009,
2562 UNTS 36, 37 (It is the understanding of the United States of America that any decision by any military
commander, military personnel, or any other person responsible for planning, authorizing or executing military
action shall only be judged on the basis of that persons assessment of the information reasonably available to the
person at the time the person planned, authorized, or executed the action under review, and shall not be judged on
the basis of information that comes to light after the action under review was taken.). Refer to 6.14.3.2 (U.S.
Reservation to CCW Protocol III on Incendiary Weapons).
259
Refer to 6.15 (Laser Weapons).
260
Additional Protocol to the Convention on Prohibitions or Restrictions on the Use of Certain Conventional
Weapons which may be deemed to be Excessively Injurious or to have Indiscriminate Effects (Protocol IV, entitled
Protocol on Blinding Laser Weapons), Oct. 13, 1995, 2024 UNTS 163.
261
William J. Perry, Secretary of Defense, DOD Policy on Blinding Lasers, Jan. 17, 1997 (amending policy
statement of Aug. 29, 1995) (The Department of Defense prohibits the use of lasers specifically designed to cause
permanent blindness and supports negotiations to prohibit the use of such weapons. However, laser systems are
absolutely vital to our modern military. Among other things, they are currently used for detection, targeting, range-
finding, communications and target destruction. They provide a critical technological edge to U.S. forces and allow
our forces to fight, win and survive on an increasingly lethal battlefield. In addition, lasers provide significant
humanitarian benefits. They allow weapon systems to be increasingly discriminate, thereby reducing collateral
damage to civilian lives and property. The Department of Defense recognizes that accidental or incidental eye
injuries may occur on the battlefield as the result of the use of lasers not specifically designed to cause permanent
blindness. Therefore, we continue to strive, through training and doctrine, to minimize these injuries.).
262
United States, Statement on Consent to Be Bound to CCW Protocol IV on Blinding Laser Weapons, Jan. 21,
2009, 2562 UNTS 38 (It is the understanding of the United States of America with respect to Article 2 that any
decision by any military commander, military personnel, or any other person responsible for planning, authorizing
or executing military action shall only be judged on the basis of that persons assessment of the information
reasonably available to the person at the time the person planned, authorized or executed the action under review,
and shall not be judged on the basis of information that comes to light after the action under review was taken.).
263
Major General Hugh R. Overholt, The Judge Advocate General, Army, Memorandum of Law: Use of Lasers as
Antipersonnel Weapons, 7, Sept. 29, 1988, reprinted in THE ARMY LAWYER 3, 4 (Nov. 1988) (The fundamental
issue with which this review is concerned is whether the use of a laser for the purpose of blinding an enemy soldier
would constitute unnecessary suffering. The conclusion is that it would not.).
1170
is prohibited by the rule against weapons calculated to cause unnecessary suffering nor otherwise
prohibited by the customary law of war. 264
CCW Protocol V on Explosive Remnants of War was adopted on November 28, 2003. 268
The United States provided notification of its consent to be bound by CCW Protocol V
on Explosive Remnants of War on January 21, 2009. 269 The United States expressed its
understanding relating to future arrangements in connection with the settlement of armed
conflicts. 270
264
W. Hays Parks, Special Assistant to The Judge Advocate General of the Army for Law of War Matters,
Memorandum of Law: Travaux Preparatoires and Legal Analysis of Blinding Laser Weapons Protocol, reprinted in
THE ARMY LAWYER 33, 36 (Jun. 1997) (As the delegate from Sweden observed in the fourth and final meeting of
the Laser Working Group on 6 October 1995, Protocol IV is a unique step in combining law of war and arms control
mechanisms. The first sentence of Article 1 follows arms control lines by creating a national obligation to forego
the use on the battlefield of a laser weapon of the type described in the balance of the sentence, rather than
establishing that an antipersonnel laser weapon is inconsistent with the law of war prohibition on unnecessary
suffering. Neither the prohibition in Article 1 nor anything else in Protocol IV establishes, nor was it intended to
establish, that an individual, intentional act of blinding by a laser constitutes unnecessary suffering or is otherwise a
violation of the law of war, for several reasons.).
265
Refer to 6.19 (Explosive Ordnance); 6.20 (Explosive Remnants of War).
266
Overview and Article-by-Article Analysis of CCW Protocol V on Explosive Remnants of War 1-2, MESSAGE FROM
THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING AP III, CCW AMENDED ARTICLE 1, AND CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE
REMNANTS OF WAR 11-12 (Protocol V is the first international agreement specifically aimed at reducing the
humanitarian threat posed by unexploded and abandoned munitions of all types remaining on the battlefield after the
end of armed conflicts. Protocol V contains no restrictions or prohibitions on the use of these weapons; rather, it
addresses what must be done with respect to unexploded munitions that threaten civilians and post-conflict
reconstruction.).
267
Overview and Article-by-Article Analysis of CCW Protocol V on Explosive Remnants of War 1-2, MESSAGE FROM
THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING AP III, CCW AMENDED ARTICLE 1, AND CCW PROTOCOL V ON EXPLOSIVE
REMNANTS OF WAR 11-12 (The Protocol deals primarily with steps to be taken before or after hostilities, not during
them. Protocol V also includes a Technical Annex of suggested best practices that states Parties to the Protocol are
encouraged to follow on a voluntary basis in order to achieve greater munitions reliability.).
268
Protocol on Explosive Remnants of War to the Convention on Prohibitions or Restrictions on the Use of Certain
Conventional Weapons which may be deemed to be Excessively Injurious or to have Indiscriminate Effects
(Protocol V), Nov. 28, 2003, 2399 UNTS 100-177.
269
2562 UNTS 39, 40 (Receipt of notification by the Secretary-General of the United Nations: 21 January 2009).
270
Refer to 6.20.5 (Obligations Under the CCW Protocol V on Explosive Remnants of War That Are Triggered by
the Cessation of Active Hostilities).
1171
19.22 CHEMICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION
The Chemical Weapons Convention creates extensive obligations for States with respect
to the use and possession of chemical weapons. 271
During the negotiation of the Chemical Weapons Convention, President George H.W.
Bush on May 13, 1991, announced that the United States was formally forswearing the use of
chemical weapons for any reason, including retaliation, against any State, effective when the
Convention entered into force. 273
The United States signed the Chemical Weapons Convention on January 13, 1993, and
President Clinton submitted it to the Senate for its advice and consent to ratification on
November 23, 1993. 274 In transmitting the Chemical Weapons Convention to the Senate for its
advice and consent to ratification, President Clinton notified the Senate that the administration
was reviewing the effect of the Conventions prohibition on the use of riot control agents as a
method of warfare on Executive Order No. 11850, which specified the current policy of the
United States with regard to the use of riot control agents in war, and would submit the results of
that review separately to the Senate. 275 The review concluded that under then-current
interpretations of the Chemical Weapons Convention, certain uses of riot control agents
authorized under Executive Order 11850 would no longer be permissible and that a new
Executive Order on riot control agents would be issued. 276 The Senate, as a condition of its
271
Refer to 6.8.3 (Chemical Weapons).
272
CHEMICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION art. 22 (The Articles of this Convention shall not be subject to reservations.
The Annexes of this Convention shall not be subject to reservations incompatible with its object and purpose.).
273
George H. W. Bush, Statement on Chemical Weapons, May 13, 1991, 1991-I PUBLIC PAPERS OF THE PRESIDENTS
503 (To demonstrate the United States commitment to banning chemical weapons, we are formally forswearing the
use of chemical weapons for any reason, including retaliation, against any state, effective when the convention
enters into force, and will propose that all states follow suit.).
274
William J. Clinton, Letter of Transmittal, Nov. 23, 1993, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE
CHEMICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION III (The Convention was opened for signature and was signed by the United
States at Paris on January 13, 1993.).
275
William J. Clinton, Letter of Transmittal, Nov. 23, 1993, MESSAGE FROM THE PRESIDENT TRANSMITTING THE
CHEMICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION V (The Administration is reviewing the impact of the Conventions prohibition
on the use of riot control agents as a method of warfare on Executive Order No. 11850, which specifies the current
policy of the United States with regard to the use of riot control agents in war. The results of the review will be
submitted separately to the Senate.).
276
William J. Clinton, Message to the Senate on the Impact of the Chemical Weapons Convention on the Use of Riot
Control Agents, Jun. 23, 1994, 1994-I PUBLIC PAPERS OF THE PRESIDENTS 1127, 1128 (The CWC does prohibit
the use of RCAs solely against combatants. In addition, according to the current international understanding, the
CWC's prohibition on the use of RCAs as a method of warfare also precludes the use of RCAs even for
humanitarian purposes in situations where combatants and noncombatants are intermingled, such as the rescue of
downed air crews, passengers, and escaping prisoners and situations where civilians are being used to mask or
screen attacks. However, were the international understanding of this issue to change, the United States would not
consider itself bound by this position. Upon receiving the advice and consent of the Senate to ratification of the
1172
advice and consent to ratification, required that the President certify to Congress that the United
States is not restricted by the Chemical Weapons Convention in its use of riot control agents in
certain cases and that Executive Order 11850 would not be modified. 277 President Clinton
provided this certification on April 25, 1997. 278
The United States ratified the Chemical Weapons Convention on April 25, 1997, with
one condition that relates to the Annex on Implementation and Verification. 279 The treaty
requires that sixty-five nations become Party to it before it enters into force, which occurred on
April 29, 1997. 280
Chemical Weapons Convention, a new Executive order outlining U.S. policy on the use of RCAs under the
Convention will be issued.).
277
Senate, Conditions to Ratification of the Chemical Weapons Convention, Senate Resolution 75, 105th Congress,
143 CONGRESSIONAL RECORD S3651, S3657 (1997) ((26) Riot control agents: (A) Permitted uses. Prior to the
deposit of the United States instrument of ratification, the President shall certify to Congress that the United States is
not restricted by the Convention in its use of riot control agents, including the use against combatants who are
parties to a conflict, in any of the following cases: (i) UNITED STATES NOT A PARTY. The conduct of peacetime
military operations within an area of ongoing armed conflict when the United States is not a party to the conflict
(such as recent use of the United States Armed Forces in Somalia, Bosnia, and Rwanda). (ii) CONSENSUAL
PEACEKEEPING. Consensual peacekeeping operations when the use of force is authorized by the receiving state,
including operations pursuant to Chapter VI of the United Nations Charter. (iii) CHAPTER VII PEACEKEEPING.
Peacekeeping operations when force is authorized by the Security Council under Chapter VII of the United Nations
Charter. (B) Implementation. The President shall take no measure, and prescribe no rule or regulation, which
would alter or eliminate Executive Order 11850 of April 8, 1975. (C) Definition. In this paragraph, the term riot
control agent has the meaning given the term in Article II(7) of the Convention.).
278
William J. Clinton, Message to the Congress on the Chemical Weapons Convention, Apr. 25, 1997, 1997-I
PUBLIC PAPERS OF THE PRESIDENTS 495, 495-97 (In accordance with the resolution of advice and consent to
ratification of the Convention on the Prohibition of the Development, Production, Stockpiling and Use of Chemical
Weapons and on Their Destruction, adopted by the Senate of the United States on April 24, 1997, I hereby certify
that: ... In connection with Condition (26), Riot Control Agents, the United States is not restricted by the Convention
in its use of riot control agents, including the use against combatants who are parties to a conflict, in any of the
following cases: (i) the conduct of peacetime military operations within an area of ongoing armed conflict when the
United States is not a party to the conflict (such as recent use of the United States Armed Forces in Somalia, Bosnia,
and Rwanda); (ii) consensual peacekeeping operations when the use of force is authorized by the receiving state,
including operations pursuant to Chapter VI of the United Nations Charter; and (iii) peacekeeping operations when
force is authorized by the Security Council under Chapter VII of the United Nations Charter. In accordance with
Condition (26) on Riot Control Agents, I have certified that the United States is not restricted by the Convention in
its use of riot control agents in various peacetime and peacekeeping operations. These are situations in which the
United States is not engaged in a use of force of a scope, duration and intensity that would trigger the laws of war
with respect to U.S. forces.).
279
United States, Declaration Made on Ratification of the Chemical Weapons Convention, Apr. 29, 1997, 1975
UNTS 475 (Subject to the condition which relates to the Annex on Implementation and Verification, that no
sample collected in the United States pursuant to the Convention will be transferred for analysis to any laboratory
outside the territory of the United States.).
280
Convention on the Prohibition of the Development, Production, Stockpiling and Use of Chemical Weapons and
on Their Destruction, Jan. 13, 1993, 1974 UNTS 317 footnote 1 (Came into force on 29 April 1997, in accordance
with article XXI:). See also CHEMICAL WEAPONS CONVENTION art. 21 (This Convention shall enter into force
180 days after the date of the deposit of the 65th instrument of ratification, but in no case earlier than two years after
its opening for signature.).
1173
In implementation of the Chemical Weapons Convention, Congress enacted laws
prohibiting, inter alia, development, production, acquisition, transfer directly or indirectly,
receipt, stockpiling, retention, possession, use, or threat of use of any chemical weapon. 281
The Rome Statute of the International Criminal Court (Rome Statute) establishes the
International Criminal Court (ICC) at The Hague, Netherlands. 282 Under the Rome Statute,
the ICC may investigate and prosecute certain international crimes (e.g., genocide, war crimes)
in certain situations. 283
The United States signed the Rome Statute on December 31, 2000, but President Clinton
did not submit the treaty to the Senate for its advice and consent to ratification. Because of
significant flaws, President Clinton recommended that his successor not submit the Rome
Statute to the Senate until the United States fundamental concerns with the treaty were
addressed. 284 In particular, the United States has expressed concern that the ICC would claim
jurisdiction over personnel of States that have not ratified the Rome Statute. 285 In addition, for
example, concerns have been raised that the ICC would not provide U.S. persons accused of war
crimes with the procedural protections that they are afforded under U.S. domestic law. 286
On May 6, 2002, the United States filed a letter with the U.N. Secretary General, the
depositary for the Rome Statute, indicating that it does not intend to become a party to the
treaty, and that [a]ccordingly, the United States has no legal obligations arising from its
signature on December 31, 2000. 287 The United States participated as an observer in the Rome
Statutes first Review conference in Kampala, Uganda, May 30-June 11, 2010, and has
281
18 U.S.C.S. 229 ((a) Unlawful conduct. Except as provided in subsection (b), it shall be unlawful for any
person knowingly (1) to develop, produce, otherwise acquire, transfer directly or indirectly, receive, stockpile,
retain, own, possess, or use, or threaten to use, any chemical weapon; or (2) to assist or induce, in any way, any
person to violate paragraph (1), or to attempt or conspire to violate paragraph (1). (b) Exempted agencies and
persons. (1) In general. Subsection (a) does not apply to the retention, ownership, possession, transfer, or receipt of
a chemical weapon by a department, agency, or other entity of the United States, or by a person described in
paragraph (2), pending destruction of the weapon. (2) Exempted persons. A person referred to in paragraph (1) is
(A) any person, including a member of the Armed Forces of the United States, who is authorized by law or by an
appropriate officer of the United States to retain, own, possess, transfer, or receive the chemical weapon; or (B) in an
emergency situation, any otherwise nonculpable person if the person is attempting to destroy or seize the weapon.).
282
Rome Statute of the International Criminal Court, Jul. 17, 1998, 2187 UNTS 90.
283
Refer to 18.20.3 (The International Criminal Court (ICC) Created by the Rome Statute).
284
William J. Clinton, Statement on the Rome Treaty on the International Criminal Court, Dec. 31, 2000, 2000-III
PUBLIC PAPERS OF THE PRESIDENTS 2816.
285
Refer to 18.20.3.1 (Attempt to Assert Jurisdiction With Respect to Nationals of Non-Party States).
286
See, e.g., 22 U.S.C. 7421 (Congress makes the following findings: (7) Any American prosecuted by the
International Criminal Court will, under the Rome Statute, be denied procedural protections to which all Americans
are entitled under the Bill of Rights to the United States Constitution, such as the right to trial by jury.).
287
John Bolton, Letter to Kofi Anan, U.N. Treaty Collection Depository Notification, C.N.434.2002, May 6, 2002.
1174
supported ICC efforts in certain cases. 288 The Department of State Legal Adviser has noted that
U.S. policy is explicitly not to frustrate the object and purpose of the Rome Statute. 289
The U.N. Secretary General has promulgated a bulletin for the purpose of setting out
fundamental principles and rules of international humanitarian law applicable to United Nations
forces conducting operations under United Nations command. 290 The bulletin is not a legally
binding instrument, although, in many cases, the rules reflected in the bulletin reflect law of war
rules that are binding upon the United States as a matter of treaty or customary international law.
The bulletin has been the subject of criticism by States. 291
There is no list of treaty provisions (or other codification) that the United States has
agreed reflects the entirety of the customary international law of war. 292
In 2005, the International Committee of the Red Cross published a study on customary
international humanitarian law (ICRC CIHL Study), which has been criticized for its
methodology and formulation of certain specific rules. 293 The United States likewise has
expressed serious concerns about the methodology used in the ICRC CIHL Study and has stated
288
Refer to 18.20.3.3 (U.S. Law and Policy on Support to the ICC).
289
Harold Hongju Koh, Legal Adviser, Department of State, Remarks on international criminal justice at the Vera
Institute of Justice in New York and at Leiden University, Campus The Hague, 2012 DIGEST OF UNITED STATES
PRACTICE IN INTERNATIONAL LAW 61, 68 (Putting all of this together, as I made clear more than two years ago in a
speech at New York University, What you quite explicitly do not see from this Administration is U.S. hostility
towards the Court. You do not see what international lawyers might call a concerted effort to frustrate the object
and purpose of the Rome Statute. That is explicitly not the policy of this administration. Because although the
United States is not a party to the Rome Statute, we share with the States parties a deep and abiding interest in
seeing the Court successfully complete the important prosecutions it has already begun.).
290
U.N. SECRETARIAT, Secretary-Generals Bulletin: Observance by United Nations Forces of International
Humanitarian Law, U.N. Doc. ST/SGB/1999/13 (Aug. 6, 1999) (The Secretary-General, for the purpose of setting
out fundamental principles and rules of international humanitarian law applicable to United Nations forces
conducting operations under United Nations command and control, promulgates the following:).
291
Report of the Special Committee on Peacekeeping Operations, Comprehensive review of the whole question of
peacekeeping operations in all their aspects, U.N. Doc. A/54/839 82 (Mar. 20, 2000) (The Special Committee
notes the Secretary-Generals comments on the guidelines on compliance with international humanitarian law by
United Nations peacekeepers. The Committee expresses concern about the lack of consultation with Member States
by the Secretariat before finalizing Secretary-Generals Bulletin ST/SGB/1999/13. It requests further clarification
on the Bulletins legal status, and stresses that it must accurately reflect the terms of international humanitarian law.
It requests the Secretary-General to carry out consultations on the Bulletin with the Special Committee.).
292
Refer to 1.8 (Customary International Law).
293
See, e.g., Daniel Bethlehem, The Methodological framework of the Study, ELIZABETH WILMSHURST & SUSAN
BREAU, PERSPECTIVES ON THE ICRC STUDY ON CUSTOMARY INTERNATIONAL HUMANITARIAN LAW 4 (2007)
(Without detracting from this genuine appreciation, it is necessary and appropriate to draw attention to some
important misgivings about the Study, as regards both methodology and the formulation of certain specific Rules.).
1175
that it is not in a position to accept without further analysis the Studys conclusions that certain
rules related to the law of war in fact reflect customary international law. 294
19.26 AP III
A third additional protocol to the 1949 Geneva Conventions was adopted on December 8,
2005. 295 AP III recognizes a red crystal as an additional distinctive emblem for the same
purposes as the distinctive emblems of the Geneva Conventions. 296
The United States deposited its instrument of ratification to AP III on March 8, 2007,
without making any statements of reservation, declaration, or understanding. 297
294
U.S. RESPONSE TO ICRC CIHL STUDY 514 (Given the Studys large scope, we have not yet been able to
complete a detailed review of its conclusions. We recognize that a significant number of the rules set forth in the
Study are applicable in international armed conflict because they have achieved universal status, either as a matter of
treaty law or as with many provisions derived from the Hague Regulations of 1907 customary law. Nonetheless,
it is important to make clear both to you and to the greater international community that, based upon our review
thus far, we are concerned about the methodology used to ascertain rules and about whether the authors have
proffered sufficient facts and evidence to support those rules. Accordingly, the United States is not in a position to
accept without further analysis the Studys conclusions that particular rules related to the laws and customs of war in
fact reflect customary international law.).
295
Protocol additional to the Geneva Conventions of 12 August 1949, and relating to the Adoption of an Additional
Distinctive Emblem (Protocol III), Dec. 8, 2005, 2404 UNTS 1.
296
Refer to 7.15.1.3 (Red Crystal).
297
2444 UNTS 287 (RATIFICATION United States of America Deposit of instrument with the Government of
Switzerland: 8 March 2007).
1176